Riksbanken__nat_upplaga

March 30, 2018 | Author: Oscar Ubeda Segmar | Category: Sweden, Money, Fiat Money, Inflation, Consumer Price Index


Comments



Description

Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Edited by Rodney Edvinsson, Tor Jacobson, and Daniel Waldenström S V E R I GE S R I K S B ANK Ekerlids Förlag Tegnérgatan 37 111 61 Stockholm Tel 08-411 42 70, fax 08-411 42 71 E-mail: [email protected] Homepage: www.ekerlids.com © Te authors Te project web site: www.riksbank.se/forskning/historiskstatistik Cover design: John Persson Cover illustration: Elias Martin, View of Stockholm from Mosebacke (1790) Setting: Gyllene Snittet AB, Helsingborg Printed by: Bulls Graphics in Halmstad, March 2010 ISBN 978-91-7092-124-7 Contents List of tables 6 1. Introduction to Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden: Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Rodney Edvinsson, Tor Jacobson and Daniel Waldenström 11 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective Rodney Edvinsson 26 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 Rodney Edvinsson, Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg 67 4. Te multiple currencies of Sweden-Finland 1534–1803 Rodney Edvinsson 133 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 Rodney Edvinsson 238 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 Håkan Lobell 291 7. From appreciation to depreciation – the exchange rate of the Swedish krona, 1913–2008 Jan Bohlin 340 8. Te evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg 412 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers Johan Söderberg 453 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 Svante Prado 479 Presentation of the authors 528 List of tables Table 2.1. Classifcation into monetary standards developed in the present study based on the relation between the currency(ies) and the object(s) backing the currency(ies). 36 Table 2.2. Monetary standards in Sweden since the 12th century. 43 Table 2.3. Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present. 45 Table 3.1. Number of documents (or summaries of documents) in which the most common foreign gold coins are mentioned compared to ‘mark’. 89 Table A3.1. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. 106 Table A3.2. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/tysk/östgötsk 1211–1538. 114 Table A3.3. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in marks of other Nordic regions. 117 Table A3.4. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark of Lübeck. 119 Table A3.5. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk. 120 Table A3.6. Value of the Swedish mark in gros tournois. 122 Table A3.7. Other exchange rates for foreign silver coins. 122 Table A3.8. Exchange rate of noble in öre. 123 Table A3.9. Exchange rate of Rhinish gulden in mark. 124 Table A3.10. Exchange rate of the Hungarian gulden. 126 Table A3.11. Exchange rate of other gold units in öre. 126 Table 4.1. Te of cial conversion rates for various domestic currencies 1534–1624. 148 Table 4.2. Te of cial conversion rates for various domestic currencies 1624–1724. 176 Table 4.3. Te of cial conversion rates for various domestic currencies from 1777 onwards. 188 Table A4.1. Monthly data on riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt) 1626–86. 192 Table A4.2. Monthly data on one riksdaler carolin in mark kopparmynt 1670–86. 193 Table A4.3. Monthly premium (per cent) on courant silver coins 1670–86. 194 Table A4.4. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. 194 Table A4.5. Te premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative to riksgälds notes in 1789–1803 according to various sources. 209 7 Table A4.6. Monthly premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative riksgälds notes 1789–1803. 210 Table A4.7. Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. 211 Table A4.8. Te exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776. 218 Table A4.9. Te exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. 222 Table A4.10. Te exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. 226 Table A5.1. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kop parmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates). 262 Table A5.2. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kop parmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). 263 Table A5.3. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). 264 Table A5.4. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). 265 Table A5.5. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates). 265 Table A5.6. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). 266 Table A5.7. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). 268 Table A5.8. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). 269 Table A5.9. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in daler kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). 269 Table A5.10. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). 270 Table A5.11. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). 271 Table A5.12. Monthly exchange rates on écu de change (= 3 livres tournois) in marks kopparmynt 1668–85 (estimated spot rates). 272 Table A5.13. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). 272 Table A5.14. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois (franc from 1795) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). 274 Table A5.15. Monthly exchange rates on franc in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates). 275 Table A5.16. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurantbanken notes) in marks kopparmynt 1741–67 (not spot rates). 275 Table A5.17. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurantbanken notes) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). 276 8 Table A5.18. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in courant-money) in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates). 276 Table A5.19. Monthly exchange rates on Gdańsk forin/gulden/złoty (= 30 grosz) in marks kopparmynt 1740–76 (not spot rates). 277 Table A5.20. Monthly exchange rates on Swedish-Pomeranian taler courant in Swedish currency 1740–1800 (not spot rates). 278 Table A5.21. Te exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. 279 Table A5.22. Te exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. 283 Table A5.23. Te exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1777–1804. 287 Table A5.24. Te exchange rate on London and Paris 1777–1804. 288 Table 6.1. Average exchange rate for the shipping season in years when specie and bullion were exported (deviation from mint parity, per cent). 309 Table 6.2 Correlation between frst diferences for unprocessed, reconstructed and original series 1870–80. 315 Table A6.1. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914. 319 Table A6.2. Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. 322 Table A6.3. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. 325 Table A6.4. Monthly exchange rates on Paris. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914. 328 Table A6.5. Monthly exchange rates on Antwerp. SEK per 100 francs 1873–89. 331 Table A6.6. Monthly exchange rates on Brussels. SEK per 100 francs 1873–1914. 331 Table A6.7. Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914. 333 Table A6.8. Monthly exchange rates on Christiania/Oslo. SEK per 100 NOK 1858–1914. 336 Table A7.1. Monthly exchange rates on UK. SEK per GPB 1913–2008. 370 Table A7.2. Monthly exchange rates on USA. SEK per USD 1913–2008. 373 Table A7.3a. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 mark 1913–1921, SEK per 1 million mark January 1922 to September 1923, and SEK per 1 billion mark October 1923 to December 1924. 375 Table A7.3b. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 reichsmark 1924–1945. 375 Table A7.3c. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 DEM 1950–2002. 376 9 Table A7.4a. Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1959. 377 Table A7.4b. Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 franc 1960–2002. 378 Table A7.5a. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1926. 379 Table A7.5b. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 belgas 1926–1944. 380 Table A7.5c. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 BEF 1945–2002. 381 Table A7.6. Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland. SEK per 100 CHF 1915–2008. 382 Table A7.7. Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands. SEK per 100 NLG 1913–2002. 384 Table A7.8. Monthly exchange rates on Denmark. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008. 386 Table A7.9. Monthly exchange rates on Norway. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008. 388 Table A7.10a. Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913–1962. 391 Table A7.10b. Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963–2002. 392 Table A7.11. Monthly exchange rates on Italy. SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2002. 393 Table A7.12. Monthly exchange rates on euro. SEK per EUR 1998–2008. 395 Table A7.13. Monthly exchange rates on Japan. SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008. 395 Table A7.14. Monthly exchange rates on Czech Republic. SEK per 100 CSK 1922–2008. 396 Table A7.15. Monthly exchange rates on Poland. SEK per 100 zloty 1930–39 and per PLN 1998–2008. 397 Table A7.16. Monthly exchange rates on Latvia. SEK per 100 lats 1930–40 and per LVL 1998–2008. 398 Table A7.17. Monthly exchange rates on Estonia. SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008. 398 Table A7.18. Monthly exchange rates on Lithuania. SEK per 100 litas 1932–40 and per LTL 1998–2008. 399 Table A7.19. Periods for which separate exchange rate indices are calculated, the countries included in the indices and the percentage of Sweden’s foreign trade covered by countries included. 400 Table A7.20. Exchange rate index 1913–2008, SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100). 401 Table A7.21. Exchange rate index excluding Germany 1913–24. 404 Table A7.22. Exchange rate index excluding German hyperinfation. 404 Table A7.23. Annual exchange rates 1913–2008. 405 Table A7.24. Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008. 407 Table 8.1. Te currencies followed by the Consumer Price Index presented in this study. 418 Table 8.2. Te weights (in per cent) in the present study for calculating the CPI in 1290–1539. 424 Table 8.3. CPI weights (in per cent) in the present study, 1732–1914. 433 Table A8.1. Te two Consumer Price Indices, the defator and infation indices, for Sweden, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). 443 Table 9.1. Weights of main components in the defator CPI (per cent). 454 Table 9.2. Volatility in real wages and in the defator CPI, 1291–2004, measured as the standard deviation of the percentage year-on-year change. 469 Table A9.1. Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365–1624, öre kopparmynt 1625–1776, skilling 1777–1788, and skilling riksgälds 1789–1850), daily wage in gram silver, and real wage 1365–1850 (1950=100). 472 Table 10.1. Wage series for 1860–1913 from Wages in Sweden used in the present study. 486 Table 10.2. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal wages in the manufacturing industry, 1868–1913. 486 Table 10.3. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of real wages for male workers in manufacturing. 495 Table 10.4. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal hourly earnings by industry, 1970–2007. 502 Table A10.1. Male hourly earnings, 1860–2007, kronor. 510 Table A10.2. Female hourly earnings 1865–2007, kronor. 514 Table A10.3. Male employment weights, 1871–2007. 517 Table A10.4. Female employment weights, 1921–2007. 520 1. Introduction to Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden: Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Rodney Edvinsson, Tor Jacobson and Daniel Waldenström 1.1. Background to the project This book presents new evidence on the long-run evolution of Sweden’s monetary and financial system, beginning in the Middle Ages and leading up to the present day. These new series have been generated as part of a research project run by Sveriges Riksbank, Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden. In this project, a group of academic scholars from the disciplines of economic history and economics have compiled existing evidence and assembled new data. The present volume presents chapters dealing with exchange rates, consumer prices and wages. The overall ambition of this project has been to construct time series that are con- sistent over time and adjusted so as to fit the definitions that are applied today. There is a great difference between compiling contemporary statistics, for which data are often easily accessible, and historical statistics, where the availability of data is more of a problem. Linking long-run time series requires not only an understanding of their economic importance but also thorough knowledge of the relevant historical circumstances under which the data were generated in the past. Needless to say, this makes great demands of the researchers compiling these series. History offers empirically oriented economists an indispensable substitute for sci- entists’ laboratories. Having comparable series that span extensive time periods will greatly facilitate long-term analysis of a number of important issues. For example, the relation between money supply and inflation, or detecting specific long-run pat- terns in the macroeconomy, require that data are consistent and comparable across Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 12 time periods. Economic forecasting can also be based on consistent historical series that go a long way back in time, not just the latest 10 to 15 years. Moreover, our comprehension of the causes and effects of financial crises arguably relies on histori- cal analysis, e.g., by comparing the course of events leading up to the Great Depres- sion around 1930 and to the recent financial turmoil that started in 2007. It is our intention that the series generated within this project will not only be used in academic research. People working with policy analyses, wishing to draw conclusions from historical comparisons, as well as teachers and students at universi- ties and high-schools, should find much useful material here. In order to make the database as accessible to as many as possible, all data and descriptions presented in this volume, as well as additional material used to construct the series, are freely available on the web site of the Riksbank. 1 This database also publishes series of 1 Te address to the database is http://www.riksbank.com/research/historicalstatistics (English version) and http://www.riksbank.se/forskning/historiskstatistik (Swedish version). Te Gate Coin (1885), by Johan August Malmström (1829–1901), a Swedish artist associated with the Symbolist movement. It was quite common in Sweden for children to earn money by opening gates for a passing equipage. Te gate money was usually one to fve öre per equipage, sometimes more. In 1885, fve öre (= 1/20 krona) was the equivalent of a male agrarian work- er’s pay for around 20 minutes’ work; it could buy one kilogram of potatoes or one egg. Source: http://commons.wikimedia.org/wiki/File:Grindslanten.jpg 1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 13 money supply, interest and stock returns, and state loans. There are also plans to include other monetary and financial statistics. A main source of inspiration for this project is a similar recent project at Norges Bank. In the fall of 2004, the Bank published the volume Historical Monetary Statis- tics for Norway 1819–2003, with Øyvind Eitrheim, Jan T. Klovland and Jan F. Qvigstad as editors. Together with a second volume published a few years later (Eitrheim, Klovland and Qvigstad, 2007), the Norwegian project has generated con- siderable new macroeconomic historical evidence with long-run series on prices, money, banking statistics, interest rates, exchange rates and GDP. Most importantly, all series were made freely available on the Bank’s internet site for scholars, students and the public to use at will. While the project is arguably unique in its scope and explicit focus on building a broad historical statistical database, there are other previous contributions with sim- ilar ambitions. For example, the seminal contributions of Friedman and Schwartz (1963) and Cagan (1965) in describing U.S. monetary history greatly increased the general knowledge of and interest in the historical development of monetary and financial systems. Following their lead, subsequent studies of monetary histories in other countries are, e.g., Jonung (1975) on Sweden and Capie and Webber (1985) on the United Kingdom. 2 Why should Sveriges Riksbank shoulder the responsibility for building up a new public access database with historical monetary and financial statistics? There are several reasons. First, building and maintaining a scientific database is a public good that individual researchers cannot be expected to provide. As scholars regularly tend to move on to different places or topics, they are unable to provide the continuity needed to maintain a scientific database. A public institution is better suited to run a database and in the context of a monetary database the Riksbank represents perhaps the most natural ‘focal point’ for the research community. Second, the Riksbank already has a long-standing tradition in taking an active part in promoting the Swed- ish monetary and financial system, as well as in gathering information about it. The Riksbank is the world’s oldest central bank, founded in 1668 by the Swedish Parlia- ment, with a central role in the monetization of Sweden. 3 Third, in the 1920s the Riksbank initiated a research project that much resembles ours. Although it was mainly aimed at writing the history of the Bank, a considerable part of the undertak- ing was the assembly of historical monetary and financial statistics, including long- run series on prices, interest rates, exchange rates and bank balance sheets (Sveriges 2 Tere are some other previous attempts to compile international historical statistics, e.g., Flan- dreau and Zumar (2004). 3 One can, of course, discuss whether Sveriges Riksbank was the frst central bank in a modern sense. Te Bank of England was established somewhat later, in 1694, but performed more cen- tral bank-like practices, such as lender of last resort, before Sveriges Riksbank did (Brisman, 1918). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 14 Riksbank, 1931). 4 A fourth reason why the Riksbank should take responsibility for a project like this is that it continues where Norges Bank started, extending the work on the construction of an extensive international historical statistical database. Hope- fully, these early Nordic efforts will inspire central banks in other countries to begin their own similar projects. 4 Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918–1924: bankens tillkomst och verksamhet was published between 1918 and 1931 and deals with the history of the Riksbank and monetary conditions since the establishment of the Riksbank in 1668 (to some extent, the earlier history of Stockholms Banco is also taken up). Tis work was produced by the Riksbank’s statistical department. Five vol- umes were published, altogether 2,832 pages. Volumes I–IV are arranged chronologically. Vol- ume V contains a table annex of 221 pages, an overview of the composition of the board of gov- ernors and a history of coins and banknotes from the earliest coins until the present. Volume I also contains tables. Te statistical table annex in Volume V consists of four parts: 1) statistics on the Riksbank 1668–1924, 2) exchange rates 1668–1924, 3) the private banks 1834–1924, and 4) the Swedish banks’ position with regard to other countries. Exchange rate notations on the Swedish riksdaler in marks kopparmynt in the primary mate- rial used in Chapter 4. Te material shows, for example, that in June 1655, one riksdaler was valued at 16 marks 4 öre kopparmynt (=16.5 marks kopparmynt). Te sum was the equivalent of a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around four days’ work in Stockholm (see Chapter 9). Source: Sandbergska samlingen, vol. OO (Riksarkivet), f. 631a. 1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 15 1.2. Contents of this volume The nine remaining chapters present novel time-series evidence collected exclusively for this project. In all chapters, the reader is offered a careful description of the mak- ing of the series as well as an introduction to the series as such and how they have evolved over time. The major contribution of the chapters is the detailed accounts of the construc- tion of the series. These accounts include details on how and from where the under- lying data were assembled but also to what extent the series have been adjusted so as to guarantee consistency and comparability over time. In many cases, the underlying data come from different sources and may even differ somewhat in their definitions, depending on how they were generated in the first place. For example, no continu- ous wage series covering the entire period from the Middle Ages to the present exists, for the simple reason that the nature of work has changed entirely over time. Instead, when constructing a composite long-run series, wages for different types of work are combined by making specific adjustments to possible breaks between the constituent series. Similar problems arise when different price series are to be spliced together when constructing a historical Consumer Price Index. In Chapter 2, Rodney Edvinsson presents an overview of the monetary standards in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the present, and how they evolved from a com- modity to a fiat standard. The monetary history of Sweden is both fascinating and perplexing. The foundation of the Riksbank, the world’s oldest central bank, is in itself a consequence of a Swedish peculiarity in the 17th century: the copper stan- dard. At the end of the chapter there is a list of monetary terms historically in use in Sweden, mostly the names of various domestic currencies. The theme in Chapters 3, 4, 5, 6 and 7 is exchange rates. Chapters 3 and 4 focus on the relation between various currencies used as means of payment in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the early 19th century. In Chapters 5, 6 and 7, foreign exchange rates in 1658–2008 are assessed. In Chapter 3, Rodney Edvinsson, Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg present exten- sive new evidence on the evolution of the Swedish monetary system in the first half of the second millennium. It was in this period that parts of the economy came to be monetarised. However, during the Middle Ages the monetary system was decentra- lised, with different currencies circulating in different provinces, and it was not until the 16th century that a common monetary system was formed in the Kingdom of Sweden-Finland. In Chapter 4, Rodney Edvinsson discusses various domestic currencies that circu- lated in Sweden-Finland 1534–1804. He deals with the period when multiple domestic currencies existed at floating exchange rates relative to each other. These currencies were based on silver, gold and copper, but it was also in this period that pure fiat money came into circulation. In Chapter 5, Rodney Edvinsson deals with the foreign exchange in 1658–1804. It was during the 17th century that a foreign exchange developed. The most-traded Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 16 bills of exchange were on Amsterdam and Hamburg, reflecting Sweden’s close eco- nomic relations with Germany and Holland. In Chapter 6, Håkan Lobell deals with foreign exchange during 1803–1914, a period when Sweden was first on a silver standard, and then switched to a gold stan- dard in 1873. The foreign exchange underwent a major transformation. Since the gold points are significantly narrower than the silver points, the volatility of the for- eign exchange decreased significantly after 1873. In the 18th and 19th centuries, bills on London became more important, as England overtook Holland economi- cally and London became the centre of the international financial markets. In Chapter 7, Jan Bohlin provides an overview of Swedish 20th-century exchange rates, including the construction of a composite trade-share weighted exchange rate index for Sweden in 1914–2008. This index is used to trace the strength of the Swedish currency during various periods. In the 20th century the dollar was the most important quoted foreign currency, as the United States overtook Britain as the major power. In Chapter 8, Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg present a new long-run series on the consumer price index for Sweden. The authors have compiled newly located evidence in the Middle Ages and spliced it with later series, creating the lon- gest continuous Consumer Price Index series for Sweden to date. Left, a copper plate with the nominal value of two daler silvermynt (copy). In 1742 this amount was equivalent to wages for three days’ work; today, that would correspond to several thousand SEK (see money on the right). 1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 17 Chapters 9 and 10 compile historical data on wages in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the present, making it possible to assess the long-term development of real wages. In Chapter 9, Johan Söderberg deals with wages in the pre-industrial era, mainly based on unskilled labourers in Stockholm. He uses the Consumer Price Index to deflate nominal wages, to follow the evolution of real wages. An interesting result is that real wages were basically stagnant before the industrial breakthrough. In Chapter 10, Svante Prado presents long-run wage series between 1860 and 2007. He focuses on female and male manufacturing workers. During this period real wages have risen continuously, which can be contrasted to the pre-industrial period discussed in Chapter 9. The most astonishing leap took place in the aftermath of the First World War, due to the restriction of working hours. 1.3. A bird’s-eye view of the second millennium in Sweden This book covers the monetary history of Sweden in most of the second millennium. Although the book title sets the beginning at 1277 (as the first documented exchange rate notation is from that year), Chapter 3 also discusses developments of the mon- etary system during the late Viking Age and its first coins, minted as early as 995. Figures 1.1, 1.2 and 1.3 provide a long-term view of some important monetary vari- ables. Figures 1.1 and 1.2 present the annual growth rates of prices and real wages, respectively, per century. Figure 1.3 presents the indices of silver’s purchasing power in Sweden and UK/England. 5 The correlation between the two indices is very strong, which shows that the Swedish CPI presented in Chapter 8 gives reasonable results concerning long-term developments when compared to the UK/England. Covering such a long period, and attempting to construct various indicators to describe developments over centuries, is of course not without problems. Elements of anachronism are inevitable whenever historical generalizations are to be made. Following exchange rates, inflation and real wages through time requires definitions that are applicable to all of the investigated periods. The chapters of this book there- fore put much effort into conceptual issues. One of the most obvious anachronisms throughout the book is our use of the name Sweden, as also discussed in Chapters 2, 3 and 4. The historical meaning of the Kingdom of Sweden has changed over time, including redrawings of geographic borders, constitutional regime switches determining the right to issue currency, char- ter banks and so forth. Monetary history is closely connected to political history. Changed borders usu- ally changed the currency that was used in the affected areas. Establishing a common monetary system is in itself a political process; a recent example is the development 5 Te purchasing power of silver is set equal to 100 for the OECD in 2005, which implies that in that year it stood at 82.6 in Sweden and 87.7 in UK. Tis is based on household PPPs for the fnal consumption index. See OECD (2009-01-29). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 18 of the European Union and the euro. While macroeconomic historical data, such as GDP, are often constructed for countries within present-day borders, this method is not as meaningful to apply to, for example, exchange rates. Parts of present-day Swe- den are therefore disregarded in this volume, which at the same time does cover areas that historically belonged to and were integrated with the Swedish realm, but are not part of present-day Sweden. The monetary history of Sweden is also closely con- nected to the monetary history of other Nordic countries. Throughout history there have been several monetary and political unions between various Nordic countries. For the Middle Ages it is particularly difficult to write a distinctly Swedish mon- etary history. Figure 1.3 shows that the purchasing power of silver was higher in Sweden than in UK/England, which reflects the backwardness of the Swedish econ- omy. As discussed in Chapter 3, during most of the Middle Ages there was no uni- fied monetary system in Sweden. The Swedish mark was linked at times to the mark of other Nordic countries and Lübeck. In the 13th century, present-day Finland became a consolidated part of the Swedish kingdom, and remained so up to 1808/09, when it was conquered by Russia. Although Gotland, an island in the Baltic Sea, was part of Sweden up to 1361, it had its own currency that also circulated in parts of the Swedish mainland up to the 15th century. Scania, Halland and Blekinge in the south of present-day Sweden belonged to Denmark, except for a brief period in the 14th century, while Jämtland in the northwest of present-day Sweden was part of Nor- way. It was not until the 17th century that these territories, including Gotland, were conquered by Sweden. Sweden (including Finland), Norway and Denmark formed a union in 1397 under the rule of Queen Margaret I of Denmark. Although Sweden continued to mint its own coins, counting in Danish currency was common in the south of Swe- den up to the mid-16th century, as discussed in Chapter 3. Continual tension of an economic nature within the union led to a conflict between Swedes and Danes in the 15th century. The union finally fell apart in the early 1520s, when King Gustav (Eriksson) Vasa assumed power over Sweden and Finland. Denmark and Norway continued the union, which lasted until 1814. As discussed in Chapter 3, while the fine silver content of the Swedish mark dete- riorated during the Middle Ages, prices expressed in Swedish marks were stable (except for a brief period after the mid-14th century). This was an effect of the rising purchasing power of silver (see Figure 1.3), which, in turn, was a consequence of a declining population and trade following the Black Death (probably the most severe economic crisis of the second millennium) and other epidemics. As shown by Johan Söderberg in Chapter 9, real wages reached a high point in the late 15th century, which was also the low point of the population curve. The highest real wage rate dur- ing the Middle Ages, reached in 1478, was not surpassed until the 1890s. Such a peak in real wages in the late 15th century has also been observed for England. 6 6 Campbell (2009, p. 29). 1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 19 The 16th century was the opposite of the Middle Ages. The process of political decentralization was reversed under Gustav (Eriksson) Vasa . The Protestant Reform and the seizure of Church property further strengthened the central power. The monetary system was unified. The purchasing power of silver and real wages declined due to population growth (see Figures 1.2 and 1.3), expansion of trade and the influx of silver to Europe. Inflation was further accentuated by successive debasements (a well-known practice that has been in use as far back as the Roman Empire). In 16th- century Sweden, the stronger state implied greater possibilities to manipulate the currency in order to increase seignorage during times of war. In fact, as shown in Figure 1.1, the Swedish inflation rate in the 16th century was even higher than in the 20th century. The 17th century saw the rise of Sweden as a great power, from being an undis- tinguished country. Due to its involvement in the Thirty Years’ War, Sweden was transformed into a leader of Protestantism. Beside Gotland, Scania, Halland, Ble- kinge and Jämtland, also Estonia (from 1561), Livonia, Kexholm, Ingria, Western Pomerania, Wismar, and Bremen and Verden came under its rule, although the Swedish currency was not introduced in all territories (see, for example, Chapter 5 concerning the exchange rate on Swedish Pomerania). Sweden’s power was partly based on the expansion in mining. A monetary innovation was introduced in 1624, the copper standard. Although the combined copper and silver standard caused some deterioration of the currency, the heavy copper plates limited its magnitude, and inflation was lower than in the previous century (see Figure 1.1). As discussed in Chapter 9, population growth slowed down, which together with the expansion of mining and new incomes from the conquered territories caused real wages to rise somewhat during the 17th century (see Figure 1.2). As discussed in Chapter 4, from around the mid-17th century up to 1776, Swe- den de facto had at least five currencies, three based on silver, one on copper and one on gold. Occasionally additional currencies existed. In Sweden, it was during this period of multiple currencies circulating alongside each other that the fiat standard arose. After 1710 the use of transferred notes expanded significantly. However, the first experience of a fiat standard was not with paper money, but with coin tokens towards the end of the Great Northern War (1700–21). As shown in Chapter 5, in comparison with its neighbours, Sweden’s currency weakened in the 17th and 18th centuries. The Great Northern War ended the Swedish empire. Estonia, Livonia, Ingria and parts of Finland were ceded to Russia. During the Age of Liberty (1718–72), monar- chy was limited by parliamentary rule (which, however, was not a democracy). The press developed substantially during this period. From this period we also have rich sources on economic statistics, such as prices and exchange rates, published by various papers. The Age of Liberty ended with Gustav III’s coup d’état in 1772. An absolute monarchy lasted up to 1809, when King Gustav IV Adolf, the son of Gustav III, was Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 20 King Gustav I (Vasa) in 1557 or 1558. Source: Nationalmuseum. 1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 21 removed from power by a new coup staged by radicalized officers, fuelled by the defeat of Sweden in its war against Russia. The new Swedish constitution of 1809 was influ- enced by Montesquieu’s ideas of the balance of powers. One of Napoleon’s generals became king of Sweden in 1818 as Karl XIV Johan. Economically, the 18th century exhibited a continuation of some of the trends from the 16th century. The circulation of fiat money, which came to dominate money supply, was followed by an increased rate of inflation (see Figure 1.1). Popu- lation growth caused real wages to decline (see Figure 1.2) to a low point at the time of the Napoleonic wars, as discussed in Chapter 9. Various studies of food consump- tion show that the calorie intake decreased between the 16th and 17th centuries and was then roughly stagnant between the 17th and 18th centuries. 7 In 1776–7 a major currency reform was implemented; the copper standard was abolished and the riksdaler silver coin was introduced as the main currency unit in order to stabilize the monetary system. However, paper money continued to circu- late, and its convertibility into silver was later withdrawn. In 1789–1834 the infla- tion rate was substantial but Sweden was not alone in experiencing a monetary crisis during the Napoleonic wars. For example, the Russian and Danish currencies dete- riorated more than the Swedish. Following the loss of Finland to Russia in 1809, Norway and Sweden formed a political union in 1814 which lasted until 1905, when Norway gained full political independence. At first the union did not lead to any monetary homogenization; Norway formed its own central bank in 1816 and issued its own currency. After positive Swedish experiences of linking the currency to a fixed silver rate since 1834, however, plans for monetary cooperation emerged. Following the introduction of the gold standard in 1873, the krona was introduced as the common currency unit in Sweden, Denmark and Norway, and a formal Scandinavian currency union was formed (see further Håkan Lobell’s discussion in Chapter 6). During the entire silver and gold standard periods in the 19th century, Swedish inflation rates were quite low (see Figure 1.1). As discussed by Johan Söderberg in Chapter 9, in the 19th century the Malthu- sian trap was avoided thanks to technological development and the spread of pota- toes. Real wages started to increase despite the rising population (see Figure 1.2). From 1850, GDP per capita started to rise significantly and doubled during the course of the second half of the 19th century, which was followed by increases in real wages as well. This was preceded by important political changes. The struggle between conservative and liberal political forces peaked at the end of the 1830s and was followed by several important liberal reforms in the period 1840–66. The guild system was abolished in 1846. Full freedom of trade was introduced in 1864. The First World War ended the monetary stability of the previous century, as discussed in Chapter 7. The gold standard was suspended in 1914, and although it 7 Morell (1986). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 22 was later reintroduced in 1922–31 and under Bretton Woods in 1951–71, price stability could not be maintained. In Chapter 7 Jan Bohlin concludes that there were two periods when the value of the krona changed significantly: 1915–24, when it appreciated, and 1977–93 when it depreciated in several steps. The exchange rate reflects the relative economic devel- opment of Sweden vis-à-vis other rich countries. During and after the First World War, Sweden’s relative economic position was strengthened. Sweden developed from one of the poorest countries in Western Europe in the 19th century, to one of the richest in the 1960s. Real wages increased substantially during the course of the 20th century, as shown by Figure 1.2 and further discussed by Svante Prado in the final chapter. Inflation was aggravated in the 1970s, 1980s and early 1990s. During the reces- sions in the late 1970s, early 1980s and early 1990s, Sweden’s currency weakened, thus contributing to economic revival but also causing price instability. How these devaluations affected long-term Swedish economic growth is still a debated issue. The manipulation of the Swedish currency by political authorities at times of diffi- culty is a well-established practice, and its historical roots can be traced to the 16th, 17th and 18th centuries. The issue of price and exchange rate stability is not new; it has been debated continually from the Middle Ages to the present. Commitments to a stable currency have been made time and again in history, but great events, such as wars and deep economic crises, often, but far from always, have shattered such assur- ances. Acknowledgements A number of people have contributed to the making of this book. In the initial sta- ges of this project, Claes Berg and Lars Jonung made important contributions to its realization. We have from the very beginning received invaluable support and input from the Norwegian scholars working with their similar project at Norges Bank, in particular Ola Grytten and Jan Tore Klovland at the Norwegian School of Econom- ics and Business Administration in Bergen and Øyvind Eitrheim at Norges Bank. In the process of completing the separate chapters in this volume, a couple of interim workshops were organized in which the following external experts partici- pated and submitted comments and suggestions: Peter Englund, Klas Fregert, Ceci- lia von Heijne, Lars Jonung, Lars O. Lagerqvist, Svante Öberg and our Norwegian colleagues mentioned above. Finally, we would like to thank Mira Barkå and Claudio Carillo at the archive of the Riksbank for helping us to find foreign exchange rates in the 18th, 19th and 20th centuries, Eva Wiséhn at the Royal Coin Cabinet for pictures of coins and notes, and Patrick Hort for improving our written English. 1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 23 Figure 1.1. Te average annual rate of infation (per cent) in Sweden from the 14th to the 20th century. 0 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 14th century 15th century 16th century 17th century 18th century 19th century 20th century Source: Chapter 8. Figure 1.2. Te average annual growth rate (per cent) of real wages in Sweden from the 15th to the 20th century. -1.5 -1 -0.5 0 0.5 1 1.5 2 2.5 15th century 16th century 17th century 18th century 19th century 20th century Source: Chapters 9 and 10. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 24 Figure 1.3. Te purchasing power of silver in UK/England and Sweden 1273-–2006 (OECD average in 2005 =100). 10 100 1,000 10,000 1300 1400 1500 1600 1700 1800 1900 2000 UK/England Sweden Source: Based on Chapters 3, 4, 5, 6, 7 and 8, Of cer (2008), Lindert (2006), and OECD (2009- 01-29). 1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 25 References Brisman, S (1918), ‘Den Palmstruchska banken och Riksens Ständers Bank under den karolinska tiden,’ in Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1918. Vol. I. P.A. Norstedt & Sö- ner, Stockholm. Cagan, P (1965), Determinants and Efects of Changes in the Stock of Money, 1875– 1960, NBER, New York. Campbell, B (2009), ‘Four famines and a pestilence: Harvest, price, and wage varia- tions in England 13th to 19th centuries,’ in Agrarhistoria på många sätt: 28 studi- er om människan och jorden. Stockholm: Kungl. Skogs- och lantbruksakademien. Capie, F, and A Webber (1985), A Monetary History of the United Kingdom 1870– 1982, Vol I. London: George Allen & Unwin. Eitrheim, Ø, J T Klovland, and J F Qvigstad (2004), Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway 1819–2003, Norges Banks skriftserie/Occasional Papers No. 35. Eitrheim, Ø, J T Klovland, and J F Qvigstad (2007), Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway: Part II, Norges Banks skriftserie/Occasional Papers No. 38. Friedman, M, and A J Schwartz (1963), A Monetary History of the United States, 1867–1960, Princeton University Press, Princeton, NJ. Jonung, L (1975) Studies in the Monetary History of Sweden. Los Angeles: University of California. Lindert, P (2006), ‘Silver in Britain – Mint prices 1273–1971 and market prices 1693–1977’. Excel-fle, http://gpih.ucdavis.edu/fles/Silver_value_of_1273– 1977.xls (2008-12-15). Morell, M (1986), Eli F. Heckscher, utspisningsstaterna och den svenska konsumtionen från 1500-talet till 1800-talet: Sammanfattning och komplettering av en lång debatt. Uppsala. OECD, ‘2005 PPP Benchmark results’, http://stats.oecd.org/wbos/Index.aspx?query type=view&queryname=221 (2009-01-29). Of cer, L (2008), ‘What Were the UK Earnings and Prices Ten?’, MeasuringWorth, http://www.measuringworth.org/ukearncpi/ (2009-01-25). Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Statistiska tabeller. Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. V. Stockholm: Norstedts. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 1 Rodney Edvinsson 2.1. Introduction Since 1873 the krona (crown, abbreviated SEK), divisible into 100 öre, has been the main monetary unit in Sweden. Before that date Sweden had various domestic cur- rencies that were used as means of payment. In various periods there was a fluctuat- ing market exchange rate between these currencies. Inflation figures, for example, will therefore differ depending on which monetary unit one follows because the value of some currencies fell more over time than the value of others. 2 This chapter classifies the monetary standards in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the present, and gives an overview of the various currencies that were in use. A com- modity standard was in place during most of Sweden’s history, while the fiat stan- dard is a rather late innovation. The classification into monetary standards is also related to the issue of debasement under the commodity standard and the mecha- nisms behind the rise of multiple currencies. Exchange rates of coins often deviated somewhat from the theoretical exchange rates based on the relations between their intrinsic metal values. The monetary history of Sweden provides examples of imme- diate as well as protracted adjustments of exchange rates and prices in response to debasement. The term “Sweden” used in this book could be questioned from a historical per- spective. Up to the 17th century, the monetary history of various regions within the present borders of Sweden coincided with Denmark’s. Since Finland was part of the kingdom of Sweden-Finland up to 1809, the monetary history of Sweden and Fin- 1 I want to thank especially Jan Bohlin, Bo Franzén, Klas Fregert, Cecilia von Heijne, Lars O. Lagerqvist, Johan Söderberg and Daniel Waldenström for comments on the content of this text. 2 One example is given in Jansson, Palm and Söderberg (1991, pp. 6–12), for the 17th cen- tury. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 27 land coincided up to the early 19th century. Norway and Sweden formed a union in 1814-1905. Up to 1814, the Norwegian monetary system was coordinated with the Danish. In the period 1814–73, Norway retained its own system, where 1 speciedaler = 120 skillings. 3 During the Middle Ages Gotland had its own monetary system. This book discusses foreign exchange rates as well as exchange rates between vari- ous domestic currencies used in Sweden. Foreign exchange is intimately connected to the domestic currency system. Most domestic currencies, like mark, daler and riksdaler, were originally imported. The riksdaler and the ducat 4 circulated as domes- tic as well as foreign coins. 5 At the exchange, often no distinction was made between riksdaler in foreign and domestic coins. Foreign coins played an important role not least because in earlier times international transactions were made in coins. 6 The appendix at the end of this chapter lists various money terms that have been used in Sweden, and Finland, up to the early 19th century. 2.2. The functions of money Money has four basic functions: a medium of exchange, a store of value, a unit of account and a standard of deferred payment. A distinction is sometimes made between the all-purpose money of modern economies, which serves all of money’s four basic functions, and the special-purpose money of economies that are not fully monetarised, which in limited contexts only serves one or two of these functions. 7 Money can exist in either physical or ideal form. Money in ideal form is a pure unit of account or notational device, and was used in exchange and counting houses. Money in physical form (mainly coins before paper notes came into circulation) was initially the only or main medium of exchange and store of value, but this changed during the Early Modern Period, first in foreign trade. Some of the foreign curren- cies quoted in Sweden in the 17th and 18th centuries – most notably, the Ham- burger reichstaler banco – were not minted coins but monies of account. In the medieval and early modern monetary system, it is important to distinguish between monetary units referring to physical means of payment and the ones that served merely as units of account. Although a monetary unit could establish identity between physical and ideal monies, there were periods when a difference arose. This could upset the different functions of money, for example, implying that the unit of account and standard of deferred payment could refer to different mediums of exchange valued differently in the market. After a period of confusion and conflict about, for example, the type of money in which old debts should be paid, the conse- 3 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, p. 56). 4 Te ducat is spelled ‘dukat’ in Swedish. 5 Also in Denmark, most of the rix-dollar coins that circulated in the 16th century were of for- eign origin (Friis and Glamann, 1958, p. 3). 6 Heckscher (1941, p. 5). 7 Turborg (1989, p. 89). Te distinction is criticised in Melitz (1970). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 28 quence could be bifurcation of old monetary units. For example, the term daler referred at first to daler coins minted with a fixed silver content; in the 1570s the daler coin was set equal to 4 marks. Later the daler coin came to be valued at more than 4 marks and a bifurcation occurred between the daler as a coin and the daler as a unit of account. The daler as a coin then came to be termed riksdaler, while the daler became a unit of account equal to 4 marks (see Table 2.3). During the 17th century, the term daler bifurcated further (see Chapter 4). 2.3. Commodity money Money first arose as commodity money, existing in physical form and primarily val- ued for its physical properties. This was also the main form of money in a longer historical perspective. The permanent replacement of commodity money by fiat money is a recent innovation, established in the closing decades of the 20th cen- tury. The introduction of a single domestic currency system can be seen as part of the transformation from a pre-capitalist, feudal or semi-feudal economy, to a modern, capitalist one. An efficient national market required a common abstract standard. 8 To be an effective unit of account for commodities, money itself had to rise beyond its original physical commodity form. However, this Weberian process of rationali- sation within the monetary sphere was protracted and complicated, involving achievements as well as setbacks, a process that is still continuing (at least at the inter- national level, as shown by the rise of the Euro in the late 20th century). Commodity money was linked to various precious metals. In Sweden, three met- als have been important in this respect: silver, gold and copper. Even when commodity money prevailed, coins of precious metal were never 100 per cent pure commodity money. Money as pure commodity would not be money. Velde, Weber and Wright (1999) emphasise that commodity money, as the name suggests, is a ‘hybrid of a commodity and money’. 9 The peculiarity of money is that its usefulness mainly comes from its property as exchange value, not from its physical properties. The face value of the metal coins was generally somewhat higher than their intrinsic metal value, which enabled the ruler to obtain an income from mint- ing. The difference constitutes a ‘fiat component’ of the coin’s face value. 10 As Nathan Sussman puts it, ‘[t]he holder of bullion willingly paid a premium to have raw metal transformed into standard coins, due to the savings on transaction costs to be gained from using a universally accepted medium of exchange’. 11 Keynes even defines a non-monetary economy as ‘an economy in which there is no asset for which 8 Davidson (1919, p. 118). 9 Velde, Weber and Wright (1999, p. 306). 10 Sargent and Velde (2002, p. 19). 11 Sussman (1993, p. 50). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 29 the liquidity-premium is always in excess of the carrying-costs’. 12 Had the monetary unit exactly reflected its fine metal content, the mint would have suffered a loss because of the minting costs. In other words, the mint equivalent, the nominal value minted from a fixed weight of a metal (measured in, for example, daler silvermynt per ship pound), was somewhat higher than the mint price, i.e. the price of bullion when it is brought to the mint. 13 The mint price and the market price of bullion were not necessarily equal. 14 The mint equivalent less the mint price is the gross seignorage per unit weight. 15 Gross seignorage includes minting costs; net seignorage is the mint’s pure profit. The seignorage rate is the ratio of seignorage per unit weight to the mint price (of the same unit weight). For example, at the height of the Great Debasement in England, in 1547, one troy pound pure silver was minted into 7.2 pounds sterling – the mint equivalent – while the mint price of the same unit weight of silver was 12 Keynes (1936, p. 239). 13 Quinn and Roberds (2006, p. 12). 14 Smith (1999 [1776], pp. 59 and 130). 15 Redish (2000, p. 27). Sussman (1993, p. 50), uses the terms ‘mint charge’ instead of gross sei- gnorage and ‘mint par’ instead of mint equivalent. Te Banker and His Wife, by Marinus van Reymerswaele (1490–1546). Te picture shows gold as well as silver coins, and was painted at the time of a commercial revolution in Europe. Source: http://commons.wikimedia.org/wiki/File:De_geldwisselaar_en_zijn_vrouw.jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 30 2.996 pounds sterling. 16 The (gross) seignorage per minted troy pound pure silver was, therefore, 4.204 pounds sterling, and the (gross) seignorage rate 1.403 or 140.3 per cent (=4.204/2.996), an extremely high profit rate at the time. Minting was connected to power and the state formation process. This process was not linear. For example, the first attempt to mint coins in Sweden in the late 10th and early 11th centuries was abandoned. 17 As argued by Jacques Melitz: 18 ‘The monetary evolution of the West has not been guided by an invisible hand of progress, but largely imposed by conspicuous actions of government … Many of the foremost features of the monetary systems we know today, in fact, are the result of governmental improvisations following crises.’ Given that the relative price of bullion does not change dramatically, commodity money should be accompanied by price stability. However, inflation under com- modity money is well known, as discussed further in Chapter 8. This reflects the hybrid nature of commodity money, and that it includes a fiat component, which could be temporarily increased. Depreciation under a metallic standard involves an increase in the mint equiva- lent. It occurs either by enhancing money, i.e. increasing the legal value of the exist- ing coin, or through debasement, i.e. reducing the fineness of the precious metal from which the coins are minted or by reducing the weight of the coins (or both). The ruler could temporarily increase his income from minting through debasement (provided the mint price initially does not increase as much as the mint equivalent). 19 Monetary debasement was the main source of secular inflation in Sweden before 1715, while later inflation was mainly caused by excessive supply of fiat monies. 20 Debasements also gave rise to a complicated monetary system, with the circulation of parallel currencies. Inflation takes different forms under a metallic and a fiat standard. Under a metal- lic standard, the debased coins are supposed to circulate at par with the old, better coins but in reality there is usually, with some delay, a premium on the better coins. Under a fiat standard, the previously issued fiat monies usually do not circulate at a premium, although the bifurcation between riksgälds and banco notes in Sweden during the 1790s shows that this can happen (as mentioned in Chapter 4). Occasionally, depreciation led to the formation of separate currency systems, when the inferior coins usurped the names of the better coins 21 (as in the case of the term daler in Sweden). Therefore, many monetary units became devalued over time (see the list of money terms in the appendix). The strengthening of the monetary unit, or recoinage, under the metallic stan- 16 Redish (2000, p. 90). 17 Malmer (1995, p. 25). 18 Melitz (1970, p. 1032). 19 Spuford (1988, pp. 289-290), and Redish (2000, p. 34). 20 Läge (1961). 21 Heckscher (1941, p. 4). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 31 dard was not the mirror image of depreciation. For example, it was not accompanied by negative seignorage. Although nominal prices usually fell substantially following the introduction of better coins, this should not be interpreted as severe deflation, which is taken account of by the inflation index presented in Chapter 8. When the ruler returned to strong money, he began minting coins of a fine metal content that approximated the older coins before debasement. Whereas under depreciation, debased coins were, at least officially and initially, supposed to be at par with the older better coins, under recoinage the face value of the debased coins was reduced significantly and exchanged at this reduced value for the new strong coins. 22 This can be compared with the 20th century when zeros have been struck from inflation notes on various occasions (see Chapters 7 and 8). The debased coins often ceased to be legal tender after some time. The face value of the coin could fall beneath its intrinsic metal value, which, for example, often happened with old coins with a higher content of precious metal than the new debased coins with the same face value. According to Gresham’s Law, if the difference is sufficiently large, the better coins tend to be driven out of circulation and melted down. 23 However, good money does not always drive out bad money, 24 as shown by the many examples for Sweden in Chapters 3 and 4. The issue is connected to the prob- lem of whether coins circulated by weight, i.e. in accordance with their intrinsic metal value, or by tale, i.e. in accordance with their face value. The better coins could command a premium (though not necessarily in proportion to their weight), allow- ing them to stay in circulation. Although the existence of legal tender legislation required individuals to accept both good and bad coins as if they were of equal value, this was not easily enforced. Even when enforced, the better coins were often hoarded (i.e. used as a store of value) rather than melted down, allowing them to be brought back as means of payment under changed circumstances. The type of transaction tended to differentiate the demand for various types of means of payment. Coins of smaller denomination could be minted with an intrinsic metal value that was significantly lower than their face value; 25 this became more common in the 19th century. Such coins became de facto token coins. Copper was mostly used for this purpose. Reducing the minted amount of coins of smaller denomination, according to the so-called ‘standard formula’, meant that their value did not fall below their face value, at the same time as shortages of petty coins could be avoided. 26 This could be accomplished by either restricting free minting (see below) or increasing the seignorage rate of petty coins. 22 Spuford (1988, p. 290), and Sussman and Zeira (2003, p. 1776). 23 Heckscher (1936 vol. I:1, pp. 202–3), and Heckscher (1941, pp. 3–4). 24 Redish (2000, p. 30), and Rolnick and Weber (1986). 25 Redish (2000, pp. 107–9). 26 Sargent and Velde (2002, p. 5). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 32 2.4. Classification into monetary standards Arthur Rolnick and Warren Weber write that a monetary standard refers to ‘the objects that serve as the unit of account and that back the objects that circulate as generally accepted means of payment (i.e., the objects that back the objects that are money)’. 27 Monetary standards can be classified in various ways and the definitions and terminology can vary between studies. A currency can be seen as a system of account, with a fixed relation between the monetary units constituting this system. Table 2.1 presents a classification into mon- etary standards used in this chapter for Sweden, based on the relation between the currency (or currencies) and the object (or objects) backing the currency (or curren- cies). The main difference is between commodity and fiat standards. Under a commod- ity standard the currency is backed by a fixed amount of a commodity, or several commodities under a multi-commodity standard. Several currencies can also be backed by the same commodity. When the commodity is a metal it is called a metallic stan- dard. Under a fiat standard the unit of account is some abstract value not linked to any commodity. The classification of monetary standards is primarily connected to the function of money as a unit of account, and not, for example, to whether notes or intrinsic value coins are the most common means of payment. The difference between various standards is not black and white. For example, the date when Britain introduced the gold standard is difficult to pin down – the years 1717, 1774, 1816, 1819 and 1821 have been suggested depending on what criteria one uses. 28 Thus, a distinction must be made between the official monetary standard and the de facto standard in place (see Table 2.2). A country can be on a metallic standard officially, while de facto the metallic standard has been abandoned if the circulating notes are made inconvertible. Under a pure metallic standard there must be complete freedom to exchange money for metal and metal for money. One condition often set for a pure metallic standard is free minting, i.e. that any- one can go to the mint and procure for a quantity of unminted metal an amount of coins, with a deduction for seignorage (i.e. ‘free’ does not mean free of charge). 29 A pure metallic standard also presupposes unrestricted export and import of the metals from which the coins are minted. Under a metallic standard based on free minting the price of bullion fluctuates – at least theoretically if the markets function efficiently – within the strict borders of the bullion points (gold, silver or copper points), as is further discussed by Håkan Lobell in Chapter 6 for the 19th century. These points are not determined arbi- trarily, but are market prices. At the upper bound of the bullion price it is profitable 27 Rolnick and Weber (1997, p. 1310). 28 Redish (2000, pp. 161–2). 29 Velde and Weber (1998, p. 5). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 33 to turn specie coins into bullion. Bullion will then be exported. At the lower bound of the bullion price it is profitable to deliver bullion to the mint. Bullion will then be imported. The interval between the upper and the lower bullion point is narrower for silver than for copper and even narrower for gold than for silver. An increase in seignorage rates lowers the lower bound of the bullion price and thus increases its distance from the upper bound. Furthermore, Thomas Sargent and Francois Velde argue that the ‘intervals between the minting and melting points for large and small denomination coins identify a price level band within which the ordinary quantity theory operates, cast in terms of the total quantity of coins’. 30 Free minting can be restricted and minting can be conducted on government account. In Sweden, free minting was periodically restricted, for silver coins in the 16th century 31 and for copper coins in the 17th and 18th centuries. 32 When the right to procure minted coins for unminted metal at the mint is restricted or does not exist, the market value of coins can be held significantly above their intrinsic commodity value. Under such circumstances, there is no lower bound for the bul- lion price, although the upper bound still exists, since the option of melting coins into bullion continues to be open. 33 The band within which the ordinary quantity theory operates will also be wider under such conditions. The difference between free and restricted minting is not always clear, for instance in the case of a significant increase in the seignorage rate. If the fiat component of a coin’s face value is large, the coin in question becomes de facto a token coin. Further- more, Thomas Sargent and Francois Velde argue that in the absence of an explicit free minting policy, the ruler can still pursue a policy that resembles this. Provided the ruler tries to maximise profit, the mint would buy an unlimited amount of metal at a mint price. 34 The mono-metallic standard is based on a single metal. The alternative is the multi- commodity standard. 35 In the West, the multi-commodity standard was not finally abandoned until the late 19th century. The most common multi-commodity standard involves two precious metals. The most common combinations have been silver and gold, gold and copper, and silver and copper. Velde and Weber define a bimetallic standard de jure as one in which two different metals ‘have unlimited legal tender at a fixed rate and both are freely minted’. 36 According to Eli Heckscher, while the bimetallic standard implies a fixed relation between two types of coins based on two different metals, the parallel stan- 30 Sargent and Velde (2002, p. 11). 31 Heckscher (1935 vol. I:1, p. 202). 32 Heckscher (1936 vol. I:2, p. 606). 33 Sargent and Velde (2002, p. 20), and Cottrell (1997, p. 10). 34 Sargent and Velde (2002, p. 129). 35 Redish (2000, p. 26). 36 Velde and Weber (1998). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 34 dard allows a floating exchange rate between coins of different metals. 37 The bime- tallic standard is rather unstable and usually de facto transforms into a parallel or a mono-metallic standard. The fluctuations in the relative prices of various metals cause the mint equivalent at some point in time to be lower than the bullion price for one of the metals. Coins minted from the latter metal therefore either tended to be exchanged at a premium or were withdrawn from circulation (see below). Some authors use a broader definition of bimetallism, referring to all monetary standards where two different metals back one or several currencies. While fiduciary monies, bank notes and token coins, issued by private or public institutions, are convertible into precious metals, fiat monies are not. 38 Under a fiat standard, bank notes and token coins are inconvertible. In practice, it can sometimes be difficult to make a distinction between a fiat and a metallic standard. 39 Under a full metallic standard, all monetary transactions are conducted in metallic coins. With the exception of the early 1660s, this was the case in Sweden up to around 1700. The full metallic standard was initially replaced by a specie standard, implying that fiduciary monies, notes convertible into coins, were issued. The classic example is the international gold standard in 1880–1914 (see Chapter 6). 40 Under a bullion standard, the circulated notes are partly covered by unminted bullion, which was the case when the gold standard was partly re-established internationally in the 1920s. Indirectly it implies that free minting is abolished (if unminted bullion could be exchanged for specie coins it would de facto be a specie standard). Under a specie or bullion exchange standard the national currency is convertible into currencies that, in turn, are convertible into specie or bullion. Only small fluctuations are allowed in the exchange rates. The classic example of a gold exchange standard is the Bretton Woods system after the Second World War (only the dollar was convertible into gold, while other currencies followed the dollar), lasting up to 1971 (see Chapter 7). If free minting prevails (and the seignorage rate is very low), the value of coin types in the same precious metal would tend to be fixed (or fluctuate within a very narrow band). However, if free minting is restricted for at least one coin type, the exchange rate between different coin currencies of the same precious metal could fluctuate. Under such a system, it was usual for each coin currency to have its own legal status and sphere of circulation. For example, in 17th century Sweden, debts made in one coin currency usually had to be paid back in the same coin currency, i.e. there was a clear separation between different standards for deferred payment. Eli Heckscher names such a system a coin types standard (a free translation of the terms “sortmyntfot” in Swedish and “Sortengeld” in German that Heckscher actually used), which he distinguishes from the parallel standard. Under the latter, according to a narrow definition (especially if free minting is a condition), the exchange rate is 37 Heckscher (1936 vol. I:2, p. 607). 38 Redish (2000, pp. 25 and 246). 39 Lobell (2000, pp. 13–14). 40 Redish (2000, p. 246), and Flandreau and Zumer (2004). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 35 fixed for coin types of the same metal. 41 Some authors use a broader definition of the parallel standard that would include fluctuating exchange rates between coins types of the same metal. In this chapter, the somewhat broader term multi-currency standard is introduced, defined as a standard in which several units of account exist that are not fixed in value relative to each other. This is contrasted to a mono-currency standard, based on a single currency (see Table 2.1). For example, the present division of one krona into 100 öre constitutes a mono-currency standard. It involves only one system of account, not two separate systems, since the relation between krona and öre is fixed. While a parallel standard is always a multi-currency standard, the multi-currency standard can also be combined with mono-metallism. Furthermore, it can be com- bined with a fiat standard, if the exchange rates between two or more fiat currencies, or fiat and metallic currencies, fluctuate relative to each other. Under a bimetallic standard, two different metals back the same unit of account or currency, and a fixed exchange rate is presupposed (at least de jure) between coins minted from the two metals. It is, therefore, a mono-currency standard (see Table 2.1). Here the terms multi- and mono-currency standard are used to describe the domestic economy. At an international level, a multi-currency standard usually pre- vails. The introduction of various currency unions (for example, the euro or the international gold standard) can be described as attempts to introduce a mono-cur- rency standard for several countries. 2.5. From commodity to fiat standard Table 2.2 contains descriptions of the monetary standard in Sweden from the 12th century to the present. The riksdaler before 1777 and gold coins before 1873 were mainly international currencies, and have not been considered when establishing monetary standards. Table 2.3 is a summary of the value relations between various currency units, according to official and market rates. The categorisation of Table 2.2 should not be regarded as rigid, since in practice various monetary standards partly overlap. Standards that exist on a permanent basis are easier to identify. One problem concerns periods with a temporary fiat standard, as a result of the need to finance a war. Although the currency was then made inconvertible, there were expectations that convertibility would be restored later at the original rate of conversion. Michael Bordo and Finn Kydland therefore argue that such arrangements should be seen as forms of metallic standards. 42 In Table 2.2 a differentiation is made between ‘long- term’ and ‘short-term’ standards. Before the collapse of the Bretton Woods system, 41 Heckscher (1936 vol. I:1, p. 205). 42 Bordo and Kydland (1992). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 36 Table 2.1. Classifcation into monetary standards developed in the present study based on the relation between the currency(ies) and the object(s) backing the currency(ies). Number of currencies One currency (mono-currency standard) Two or more currencies (multi-currency standard) O b j e c t ( s ) b a c k i n g t h e c u r r e n c y ( i e s ) One com- modity (mono- commodity standard) Mono-currency, mono-com- modity standard. Multi-currency, mono-com- modity standard. Two or more commod ities (multi-com- modity standard) Mono-currency, multi-com- modity standard (for example, bimetallic standard according to a narrow definition). Is unstable and usually transforms into a parallel or a mono-currency, mono-commodity standard. Multi-currency, multi-commodity standard. Two cases: 1) fixed relation between coins of the same metal (parallel standard according to a narrow definition); or 2) fluctuating exchange rate between coin types of the same metal. Abstract unit(s) and commodity/ies Is logically excluded. Would be a mono-currency, mono-commod- ity standard with convertible fiduciary money circulating. Combined fiat and commodity standard. Often de facto a fiat standard if commodity curren- cies play a minor role. Abstract unit(s) (fiat standard) Mono-currency, fiat standard. Multi-currency, fiat standard. all fiat standards were more or less viewed as temporary (sometimes lasting several decades), and the link to a metal was sustained in one form or another. On a long-term basis, Sweden was, in one form or another, on a silver standard up to 1624, on a copper and silver standard 1624–1776, on a silver standard 1776– 1873, on a gold standard 1873–1971, and on a fiat standard from 1971 onwards. In Europe (and other parts of the world 43 ) before the 19th century, silver was the main precious metal backing the currency commonly in use. Gold currency was used to a lesser extent, mainly for high-value transactions. 44 In Sweden, before the adop- tion of the gold standard in 1873, gold coins played only a minor part in domestic trade. The ones imported or minted were mainly used in foreign trade. In medieval and early modern Europe, silver formed a standard to which all currencies and prices could be related. It is therefore the practice of some price historians to transform 43 See, for example, Flynn, Giráldez and von Glahn (2003). 44 Friedman (1990, p. 85). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 37 prices in the local currency into prices in grams of silver, which makes historical prices comparable internationally. Figures 2.1 and 2.2 present the ‘world’ gold-silver (value) ratio from 1400 to 2005 (average of France, Kraków, and Austria 1400–27 and 1542–51; England, France, Kraków, Luzern and Austria 1427–1541 and 1552–1686; Hamburg 1687– 1832; and London from 1833 onwards). Apart from a rise in the first half of the 17th century, the ratio was quite stable before the classic international gold standard in 1880–1914. The exchange rate of one ducat (a gold coin) in riksdaler (linked to silver), presented in Chapter 4 for the period 1652–1776, also displays a surprising stability over time. During the 15th and 16th centuries the ‘world’ gold-silver ratio was around 11. During the first half of the 17th century it increased from 11–12 to 14–15, and then stayed at 14–16 up to the 1870s. Gold became relatively more precious than silver when most developed countries went over from a silver to a gold standard. In the late 19th century the ratio increased to above 30. During the 20th century the value ratio was extremely volatile and its level was much higher than in the previous centuries. One important source of depreciation was the wear from circulation and clipping of coins, which implied that newly minted coins (if not debased) tended to be under- Gold bars produced in Sweden in mid-1950s by Boliden. Each bar weighed 12½ kg and was worth 73,000 SEK according to the Bretton Woods arrangement, which Sweden joined in 1951. In 1955, this sum was the equivalent of a male manufacturing worker’s pay for 7 years (see Chapter 10). Source: http://www.riksbank.se/upload/Bilder_riksbank/Kat_sedlar_mynt1/huller_buller_high.jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 38 0 10 20 30 40 50 60 70 80 90 100 1860 1880 1900 1920 1940 1960 1980 2000 Source: ‘Measuringworth.com”. Based on London prices. Continues the series from Figure 2.1. 5 6 7 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 17 1400 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 Sources: ‘MEMDB – Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’ and ‘Measuringworth. com’. Average of France, Kraków, and Austria 1400–26 and 1542–51; England, France, Kraków, Luzern and Austria 1427–1541 and 1552–1686; Hamburg 1687–1832; Lon- don 1833–50. Figure 2.1. ‘World’ gold-silver (value) ratio 1400–1850 Figure 2.2. ‘World’ gold-silver (value) ratio 1850–2005. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 39 valued relative to older coins. 45 Short-term solutions were either recoinage, when clipped coins were exchanged for new ones at a reduced rate, or debasement, when new, inferior coins could circulate at par with the old ones. 46 The metallic standard was never a complete guarantee for the intrinsic metal content. A debasement cycle consists of rapid debasement followed by recoinage. In Sweden, debasement cycles occurred in the 1350s, the 1360s, 1521–24, 1561–76 and 1590–93, which are fur- ther discussed in Chapters 3 and 4. The period 1716–19, dealt with in Chapter 4, could also be described as a debasement cycle, although the debased coins rather resembled fiat money. Most of these debasement cycles were connected to war and the need to finance the war through increased seignorage, and tended to be accom- panied by rapid price increases. During these debasement cycles older better coins circulated alongside the debased ones, multiplying the number of currencies. The empirical evidence from Sweden shows that the exchange rates of coins often deviated somewhat from the theoretical exchange rates based on the relation between their intrinsic metal contents. Furthermore, there are examples of immediate as well as protracted adjustments of exchange rates and prices in response to debasement. There were also large regional differences. When free minting and the number of debased coins were restricted, these coins initially constituted only a small part of the total money supply, and their value could be upheld significantly above their intrinsic metal value. At times, there was a shortage of means of payment, allowing the successful implementation of this strategy. On some occasions there was an anticipation that the debased coins would later be exchanged for better coins, either at par or at least at a better rate than implied by their fine metal content, allowing them to temporarily and partly function as token coins. This occurred, for example, in 1590–92 and 1716–18. Against this background, there was a need for a currency unit, alongside current money, with a stable precious metal content. In Sweden, the mark silver and various gold coins had this function during the Middle Ages (see Chapter 3), while the riks- daler had that role after the 1530s (see Chapter 4). In Amsterdam and Holland, bank monies arose in the 17th century that were linked to the better coins, according to the standard of the mint, implying that a premium was paid for those monies, as discussed further in Chapter 5. These two foreign currencies also played an impor- tant role in the Swedish economy. From 1624, copper coins were minted in Sweden with the intention that they would circulate at their intrinsic value, which was unusual in Europe. For example, a two-penny copper coin was minted in England in the 1790s with an intrinsic value equal to its face value, weighing 56 grams, but such coins were ordered once only and later castigated as being too clumsy for ordinary use. 47 Sweden was the world’s largest producer of copper and the minting of copper coins was used to regulate the international price of copper. During the 17th century 45 Redish (2000, p. 33). 46 Sussman (1993, p. 52). 47 Redish (2000, p. 108). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 40 the value ratio of copper to silver was around 94. 48 The heaviest copper coins were minted in the form of plates weighing from 0.5 to 20 kg. The copper standard coex- isted with the silver standard (see Chapter 4). In 1777 Sweden returned to the sole silver standard (based on the riksdaler as its main currency unit), which, with the exception of suspended convertibility in 1809–34, then existed up to 1873. In the period 1834–73, free minting was the rule for both silver and gold coins. In the 19th century, minting taxes were introduced, amounting to 0.75 per cent from 1830 for silver coins and to 0.3 per cent from 1835 for gold coins. 49 The first banknotes in Europe of a modern type were issued by Stockholms Banco in 1661, a precursor of the Riksbank, established in 1668, but it was in the 18th century that non-metallic money came to dominate money supply. The fiat standard was in place during four periods in the 18th and 19th centuries: 1716–19, 1745–76, 1789–1803 and 1809–34. All four periods were preceded by wars and the need to finance these by issuing fiat money, which exemplifies how monetary innovation is often the result of crisis. Convertibility was later restored in every case but the fiat 48 Heckscher (1936 vol. I:2, pp. 602–3). 49 Nordisk familjebok (1913). Copper plate minted in 1644 to the nominal value of 10 daler silver- mynt, weighing 19.7 kg. 10 daler silvermynt was the equivalent of a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around 33 days’ work in Stockholm, and could buy fve hectolitres of grains or 30 kg of butter. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 41 monies were exchanged at a reduced rate, even though the initial plan was to restore convertibility at the old par value. The ducat, a gold coin, continued to be minted up to 1868. In 1868–72 another gold coin, the carolin, was minted to link the Swedish gold currency to the Latin Monetary Union, formed in 1865. 50 One carolin was equal to 10 French francs (or units of the Latin Monetary Union) and to 7.1 riksdaler riksmynt. Its fine gold con- tent was 2.90322 grams. Since one riksdaler contained 25.5045 grams fine silver, this relation would imply a gold-silver (value) ratio of 15.59. In comparison, the Latin Monetary Union was based on a gold-silver (value) ratio of 15.5 to 1. However, plans to join the Latin Monetary Union were abandoned after the Franco-German war in 1870–71. 51 Instead, a Scandinavian Currency Union was formed by Denmark and Sweden in 1873, and Norway joined two years later (see Chapter 6). The main currency unit was the krona (crown), which was exchanged for one riksdaler riksmynt. Counting in riksdaler banco and riksdaler specie was abolished. When the Scandinavian Currency Union was formed, Sweden also changed from a silver to a gold (specie) standard, which lasted up to 1914 (see Chap- ters 6 and 7). The fine gold content of one krona was 0.403 grams. Since the riks- daler specie was equal to 4 kronor, the derived gold-silver (value) ratio was 15.81, which was in accordance with international markets. The krona of Sweden, Norway and Denmark, respectively, were equal. After the Scandinavian Currency Union was finally abolished in 1924, the krona continued to be Sweden’s currency unit. When the gold standard was introduced in 1873, free minting was abolished for silver but continued for gold coins. The tax amounted to 0.25 per cent for 20-krona gold coins and ⅓ per cent for 10-krona gold coins. 52 During the 20th century the fiat standard was in place in 1914–22/24, 1931–51 and 1971 onwards (see Chapter 7). After the outbreak of the First World War, the Riksbank suspended convertibility into gold on 2nd August 1914. Convertibility was reintroduced at the old par value after the war, de facto in November 1922 and de jure on 1st April 1924, at the previ- ous price of gold, but was suspended again on 27th September 1931 following the international Great Depression. 53 The period 1924–31 was not a full return to the gold specie standard of 1873–1914. Although gold coins were minted in 1920 and 1925, they were not widely circulated and were mainly used as gold reserves. 54 In June 1933 the krona was fixed to the British pound at 19.40 SEK (compared to 18.1–18.2 SEK under the previous international gold standard), and on 28th August 1939 to the US dollar at 4.20 SEK (compared to around 3.74 SEK under the previ- 50 Wiséhn (1995, pp. 224–6), and Lobell (2000, pp. 117–8). 51 Lobell (2000, p. 117). 52 Nordisk familjebok (1913). 53 Jonung (2000, p. 19). 54 Wettmark (1995, p. 256). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 42 ous international gold standard). The legal price of gold was 20.67 USD per ounce up to 1933, when it was raised in stages to 35 USD per ounce in early 1934. 55 Although during the Second World War a de facto fiat standard was in place, the dollar exchange rate (and therefore also the price of gold in SEK) was stable. In 1946 the krona was revalued by 14.3 percent (1 USD = 3.60), but in 1949 it was devalued by 30.5 percent (1 USD = 5.17 SEK), 56 which is discussed further by Jan Bohlin in Chapter 7. Sweden joined the Bretton-Woods system formally on 31st August 1951, 57 when a gold exchange standard prevailed, but at a higher gold price than during the previ- ous gold standard. Central bank currencies would remain convertible into US dol- lars, and only the US dollar was convertible on demand into gold. 58 During the Bretton Woods system, one US dollar was linked to gold at the rate of 35 USD per ounce or 1.12527 USD per gram. Since one dollar was equal to 5.17321 SEK, this implies that the fine gold content of one krona during the Bretton Woods system was 0.17178 grams, i.e. half of the fine gold content fixed in 1873. Since the fall of the Bretton Woods system in 1971, Sweden has been on a fiat stan- dard. A difference between the present and earlier fiat standards is that the link to pre- cious metals has been completely severed and there are no plans to reintroduce a metal- lic standard. Only from the 1990s onwards has the fiat standard been accompanied by price stability. This international price stability is based on the inflation targets of cen- tral banks, where inflation is measured by the Consumer Price Index. However, the commodity aspect of money has not been completely abandoned. Since the unit of account is backed by the commodities constituting the Consumer Price Index, the present fiat standard possesses some features of a non-metallic multi-commodity stan- dard, resembling what Stanley Jevons called a ‘tabular standard’. 59 Although the unit of account is backed by a decreasing amount of commodities over time (i.e. allowing some inflation), even during the metallic standard the amount of metal backing the unit of account (at least before the 19th century) tended to decrease over time. 55 Friedman (2000, p. 86). 56 Jonung (1975, pp. 182–4), and Jonung (2000, p. 19). 57 Ahlström and Carlsson (2006, p. 64). 58 Redish (2001, p. 247). 59 In the late 19th century, Stanley Jevons (1875, Ch. xxv) favoured a ‘tabular standard’, under which a multiple legal tender would be adjusted in accordance with the general price level. He asked whether ‘the progress of economical and statistical science might not enable us to devise some better standard of value’. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 43 Table 2.2. Monetary standards in Sweden since the 12th century. Period ‘Long- term stan- dard’ ‘Short-term standard’ Official mone- tary standard De facto mone- tary standard Main currency unit Other currency units (on a float- ing market rate with the main unit) 12th cen- tury to 1624 Silver stan- dard linked to the mark Mostly full metallic, multi-currency, sil- ver standard (different currencies were predominant in different regions) Mark (penningar). Before 1300, diffe- rent penny coins in Götaland and Svealand. Mark silver/lödig*, mark gutnisk, Danish mark, gam- mal örtug, rhensk gyllen, noble 1534–1624 Mostly full metallic, mono-currency, sil- ver standard (at some periods multi- currency standard based on silver, in 1590-1592 partly a fiat standard based on token coins) Daler/rdr, gyllen (gold), krongyllen 1624–33 Copper and silver stan- dard linked to daler koppar- mynt and daler silver- mynt as units of account Copper standard Full metallic, multi- currency, copper and silver, standard Öre in copper coins Öre in silver coins, mark in silver coins, rdr 1633–43 Silver standard In the 1630s, full bimetallic, copper and silver, standard. In the early 1640s parallel standard. Dsm/dkm Rdr 1643–65 Copper standard Initially bimetallic and later multi-cur- rency standard Dsm/dkm linked to plates, initially also to silver coins Mark in silver coins, öre in silver coins, rdr, ducat, Palmstruch’s credit notes 1665–74 Silver standard Multi-currency stan- dard Dsm/dkm linked to plates and öre courant Carolin, rdr, ducat, Palmstruch’s credit notes 1674–81 Copper standard Full metallic, multi- currency, copper and silver, standard Dsm/dkm linked to plates Öre courant, caro- lin, rdr, ducat 1681–86 Silver standard Full metallic, multi- currency, copper and silver, standard Dsm/dkm linked to plates and öre courant Carolin, rdr, ducat 1686–1709 Initially bimetallic copper and silver standard, later mono-metallic, sil- ver standard Dsm/dkm linked to öre courant and carolins, initially also plates Rdr, ducat 1709–16 Copper standard Bimetallic, copper and silver, standard Dsm/dkm linked to plates, öre cou- rant and carolins Rdr, ducat Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 44 Table 2.2 (cont.). Monetary standards in Sweden since the 12th century. Period ‘Long- term stan- dard’ ‘Short-term standard’ Official mone- tary standard De facto monetary standard Main currency unit Other currency units (on a float- ing market rate with the main unit) 1716–19 Copper and silver stan- dard linked to daler koppar- mynt and daler silver- mynt as units of account Suspended copper specie standard Fiat standard (multi- currency, fiat, cop- per and silver stan- dard) Dsm in token coins Dsm in plates, Görtz’ carolin, car- olin, öre courant, rdr, ducat 1719–45 Copper specie standard Multi-currency, cop- per and silver, stan- dard Dsm/dkm linked to plates Öre courant, carolin, rdr, ducat 1745–66 Suspended copper specie standard Fiat standard (multi- currency, fiat, cop- per and silver stan- dard) Dsm/dkm, offi- cially in plates, de facto in notes Öre courant, carolin, rdr, ducat 1766–76 Silver standard Officially rdr spe- cie, de facto notes in dsm/dkm Öre courant, carolin, ducat 1776–89 Silver stan- dard linked to riksdaler specie/ riksmynt Silver specie standard Rdr specie Ducat 1789–1803 Silver specie standard (banco) Fiat standard (multi- currency, fiat and sil- ver specie standard) Rdr riksgälds Rdr banco, ducat 1803–09 Silver specie standard Rdr banco/riks- gälds Ducat 1809–34 Suspended sil- ver standard Fiat standard Rdr specie, ducat 1834–55 Silver specie standard Rdr banco/riks- gälds/ specie Ducat 1855–73 Rdr riksmynt Ducat, carolin (gold) 1873–14 Gold stan- dard linked to krona as a unit of account Gold specie standard Krona 1914– 1922/24 Suspended gold standard Fiat standard 1922/ 24–1931 Gold bullion standard (de facto from 1922, de jure from 1924) 1931–51 Suspended gold standard Fiat standard 1951–71 Gold exchange standard 1971– Fiat standard (gold standard abandoned de jure in 1974, de facto in 1971) Sources: Fregert and Jonung (2003, p. 225), Jonung (2000, p. 19), and Wallroth (1918). Abbreviations: d.s.m. – daler silvermynt, d.k.m. – daler kopparmynt, rdr – riksdaler *Not a currency unit. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 45 Table 2.3. Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present. Period Official rates of conversion Market rates Before 1290 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar (Svealand) = 384 penningar (Götaland) 1 mark silver = 2 or 3 to 4.56 mark pen- ningar 1 mark gutnisk of somewhat lower value than the mainland Swedish mark c. 1290– c. 1400 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar 1 mark silver = 3 to 8 mark penningar (in proper coins) c. 1400– c. 1450 1 mark penningar = 1 to 4.5 mark gutniska 1 revalsk (Livonian artig) = 4 to 6 Swed- ish pennies 1 mark lödig = 6 to 11 mark penningar c. 1450– 1534 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar From 1523 1 öre = 2 minted örtugs 1 mark dansk = 3 mark gutniska = ¾ mark svensk = 6 Swedish öre (1450-1550) 1 mark lödig = 8 to 24 mark penningar (in proper coins) 1534–60 1 mark = 8 öre = 192 penningar 1 silver daler = 3 to 4.125 marks 1560–76 1 silver daler = 3.75 to 32 marks 1576–89 1 slagen daler = 4 to 4.5 marks 1589–92 1 slagen daler = 4.5 to 18 marks 1592– 1624 1 mark = 8 öre = 192 penningar 1 (svensk daler) = 4 mark 1 slagen daler/rdr = 4.5 marks in 1607–19 and 6.5 marks in 1619–33. 1 slagen daler/rdr = 4.5 to 6.75 marks Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 46 Period Official rates of conversion Market rates 1624–33 1 d a l e r = 4 m a r k s = 3 2 ö r e 1 öre in copper coins = 1 öre in silver coins 1 rdr = 6.5 marks 1 rdr = 6.5 to 17.5 marks in copper coins 1 rdr = 6.5 to 12.8 marks in öre silver coins 1 rdr = 6.5 to 8 marks in mark silver coins 1633–43 1 d.s.m. = 2 d.k.m. 1 rdr = 12 marks k.m. = 1.5 d.s.m. 1 rdr= 12 to 17.5 marks k.m. 1643–65 1 d.s.m. = 2.5 d.k.m. 1 rdr = 15 marks k.m. = 1.5 d.s.m. 1 rdr = 15 to 21.75 marks k.m. 1 öre in silver coins = 2.5 to 3 öre k.m. 1 daler carolin = 2.5 to 3 d.k.m. 1665–81 1 d . s . m . = 3 d . k . m . 1 carolin = 16 öre s.m. 1 rdr = 19.5 marks k.m. = 1.625 d.s.m. 1 ducat = 100 öre s.m. ≈ 1.923 rdr 1 rdr = 21 to 27.3 marks k.m. 1 öre courant = 3 to 3.5 öre k.m. 1 carolin = 16.5 to 20.8 öre s.m. 1 ducat = 40 to 54 marks k.m. = 1.92 to 2.06 rdr 1681–86 1 carolin = 18 2 /3 öre s.m. 1 rdr = 24 marks k.m. = 2 d.s.m. 1 ducat = 128 öre s.m. = 2 rdr 1 rdr = 22.6 to 27.3 marks k.m. 1 öre courant = 3 to 3.1 öre k.m. 1 carolin = 18 2 /3 to 20 öre s.m. 1 ducat = 48 to 52 marks k.m. = 1.91 to 2.08 rdr 1686– 1716 1 carolin = 20 öre s.m. 1 rdr = 24 marks k.m. = 2 d.s.m. 1 ducat = 128 öre s.m. = 2 rdr 1 rdr = 24 to 27.1 marks k.m. 1 ducat = 47 to 60 marks k.m. = 1.88 to 2.29 rdr 1716–19 1 carolin = 25 öre s.m. 1 görtz’ carolin = 16 öre s.m. 1 rdr = 3 d.s.m. (1718–76) 1 ducat = 2 rdr 1 d.s.m. in token coins = 0.5 to 1 d.s.m. in proper coins 1 rdr= 26 to 140 marks k.m. 1 ducat = 1.99 to 2.03 rdr 1719–45 1 rdr = 34 to 43 marks k.m. 1 öre courant = 3 to 3.4 öre k.m. 1 carolin = 25 to 31 öre s.m. 1 ducat = 68 to 90 marks k.m. = 1.97 to 2.06 rdr 1745–76 1 rdr = 38 to 108 marks k.m. 1 öre courant = 3.1 to 6.5 öre k.m. 1 carolin = 29.5 to 57.5 öre s.m. 1 ducat = 76 to 200 marks k.m. = 1.84 to 2.04 rdr Table 2.3 (cont.). Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 47 Period Official rates of conversion Market rates 1777–89 1 rdr = 48 skillings 1 skilling = 12 run- stycken 1 rdr = 72 marks k.m. = 6 d.s.m. 1 ducat = 94 skillings ≈ 1.958 rdr 1789– 1803 1 ducat = 94 skillings specie 1 rdr banco = 1 to 1.67 rdr riksgälds 1803–09 1 rdr banco = 1.5 rdr riksgälds 1 ducat = 94 skillings specie 1809–34 1 rdr banco = 1.5 rdr riksgälds 1 ducat = 94 skillings specie (102 skillings specie from 1830) 1 rdr specie = 1 to 2 2 /3 rdr banco 1834–55 1 rdr specie = 2 2 /3 rdr banco = 4 rdr riksgälds 1 ducat = 102 skillings specie 1855–73 1 rdr riksmynt = 100 öre 1 rdr specie = 4 rdr riksgälds 1 ducat = 8.25 riksdaler riksmynt 1 carolin (gold) = 7.1 riksdaler riksmynt 1873– 1 krona = 100 öre Abbreviations: s.m. – silvermynt, k.m. – kopparmynt, d. – daler, rdr – riksdaler Table 2.3 (cont.). Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 48 2.6. Conclusions and summary Monetary standards can be classified in various ways. A monetary standard refers to the objects that serve as the unit (or units) of account and that back the objects that are used as accepted means of payment. In this chapter, a distinction is made between a mono-currency standard, based on a single currency, and a multi-currency stan- dard, based on several units of account that are not fixed in value relative to each other. Under a commodity standard, the unit of account is backed by a fixed amount of a commodity, or by several commodities under a multi-commodity standard. In Sweden, gold, silver and copper have been used for this purpose. Under a mono- metallic standard, only one metal backs the unit of account. Under a bimetallic stan- dard two different metals back the same unit of account, which therefore presup- poses (according to a narrow definition) a fixed exchange rate between coin types made from the two metals. A parallel standard involves a fluctuating exchange rate between currencies made of different metals. Under a multi-currency standard, the market exchange rate between currencies of the same precious metal can fluctuate as well. Although Gresham’s Law states that cheap money drives out dear money, one condition for that Law is a fixed exchange rate between the two. The existence of a premium on dear money allows it to remain in circulation alongside cheap money, which on numerous occasions in Swedish monetary history led to the formation of new currencies. Under a fiat standard, the unit of account is some abstract value not linked to any commodity. The means of exchange consist of token coins or bank notes. While fiduciary money is convertible into specie or bullion, fiat money is not. The difference between various monetary standards is not always clear-cut, and there is often a discrepancy between the official and the de facto monetary standard. Definitions of various monetary standards should not be applied too rigidly. Up to 1624 Sweden was on a silver standard, with the mark as the main currency unit. In 1624–1776 a combined silver and copper standard was in place, with daler silvermynt and daler kopparmynt forming a common system of account, although a fiat standard was de facto in place in 1745–1776. In 1777 the sole silver standard was introduced, with the riksdaler as the main currency unit; this lasted only up to 1789 and was followed by a fiat standard with the riksdaler riksgälds as the main cur- rency unit. The silver standard was reintroduced in 1803, was abandoned again in 1809 and reintroduced once more in 1834. In 1873 Sweden went from a silver to a gold (specie) standard. The krona replaced the riksdaler riksmynt as the main cur- rency unit. Since the fall of the Bretton Woods system in 1971, Sweden has been on a pure fiat standard. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 49 Appendix A2: Historical money terms This list presents various money terms that have historically been in use in Sweden (as well as in Finland up to the early 19th century). Some foreign currency units are also included that have been used as means of payment in Sweden. The main sources are Wallroth (1918), Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956-1978), and Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968). For other sources see footnotes and various chapters of this book. Abo: A coin that circulated in Finland in the 15th century and was worth 4–6 pen- ningar. 60 It was the same, or of equal value, as the Livonian artig (revalsk). Adolphin: During the reign of Adolf Fredrik (1751–71) the term ‘adolphin’ was sometimes used instead of carolin, equal to two marks in minted silver coins. One ‘dubbel adolphin’ was two carolins. Albertustaler or Albertusdaalder: A silver coin first minted in 1612 in the Spanish Netherlands, with a fine silver content of 24.65 grams. See korsdaler. Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant: One of the most quoted foreign currencies in Sweden during the 17th, 18th and 19th centuries. It was equal to 2.5 guilders. On the 25th of December 1681 the gulden was set equal to 9.613 grams of fine silver (having been 10.28 grams in 1620–59 and 9.74 grams in 1660–81). In 1845 the fine silver content of one guilder was decreased to 9.45 grams fine sil- ver. 61 Bondemark: A currency unit in Finland in the 15th century, equal to 24 abo or ¾ mark örtug. 62 Carolin (early 17th century): A round gold coin minted in 1606–24 with the face value of 16 marks. It contained 4.8524 grams fine silver. Carolin (1665–1776): A term used officially from the mid-1660s to designate two marks in actual silver metal coins. In the period 1665–1776 one carolin had the unchanged fine silver content of 7.2228 grams. Another term for carolin was ‘halv svensk daler’ (half Swedish daler). During the reign of Fredrik I (1720–51) the term ‘fredrik’ and during the reign of Adolf Fredrik (1751–70) the term ‘adol- phin’ were sometimes used instead of carolin. One carolin was officially equal to 16 öre silvermynt up to 1681, 18⅔ öre silvermynt in 1681–86, 20 öre silvermynt in 1686–1716 and 25 öre silvermynt in 1716–76, although the market exchange rate was often higher. Carolin (19 th century): A gold coin minted in 1868–72. One carolin was equal to 10 French francs (or units of the Latin Monetary Union) and to 7.1 riksdaler riksmynt. Its fine gold content was 2.9032 grams. Carolin (Görtz): ‘Görtzka caroliner’ were minted in 1718. One of Görtz’ carolins 60 Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956-1978), ‘Abo’. 61 See Chapter 5. 62 Hyötyniemi, (2000, p. 50). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 50 was equal to 16 öre courant (the official value of one carolin before 1681), or 16/25 of one ‘old’ carolin. Christin: 8-mark silver coin (later 4 carolins) that was minted in 1649 with the por- trait of Queen Christina. It had the same face value as the later dukaton, although the christin had a higher fine silver content, namely 31.6997 grams. Daler: A silver coin minted in Sweden from 1534 to imitate the German Joachim- daler. Up to 1776 (when the riksdaler became the main currency unit), this coin was not much used in domestic trade. Its fine silver content was stable throughout its existence; in 1534–36: 28.0593 grams, in 1537–41: 27.6245 grams, in 1542– 1638: 25.5957 grams, in 1639–75: 25.2739 grams, in 1676–1830: 25.6973 grams and in 1831–73: 25.5045 grams. From the 1570s, ‘daler’ also came to refer to the unit of account, equal to 4 marks. To distinguish between these two types of daler, the silver daler was called ‘slagen daler’ (minted daler), later riksdaler, and the unit of account ‘svensk daler’ (Swedish daler). In the 17th century, several dif- ferent counting systems arose based on daler silvermynt, daler kopparmynt, daler courant and daler carolin. Daler carolin: A term used after the mid-1660s up to 1776, equal to 2 carolins or 4 marks in silver coins. Another term for daler carolin was ‘svensk daler’ (Swedish daler). One daler carolin was officially set equal to one daler silvermynt up to 1681, to 1  1/6 daler silvermynt in 1681–86, to 1.25 daler silvermynt in 1686– 1716 and to 1 9/16 daler silvermynt in 1716–76, although the market exchange rate was often higher. Daler courant silvermynt: Before 1777, the same as 32 öre courant. Officially one daler courant silvermynt was equal to one daler silvermynt, but in some periods the market rate was higher. Daler klippingmynt (1590s): A term for 4 marks in debased klipping coins. 63 In the late 1592, one daler klippingmynt was set equal to ¼ daler in proper mark coins. Daler kopparmynt: A unit of account that arose in the 17th century to distinguish it from daler silvermynt, although it formed the same system of account. 1 daler kopparmynt = 4 mark kopparmynt = 32 öre kopparmynt. Daler penningar (late 16th century): The same as Swedish daler, equal to 4 marks. 64 Daler silvermynt: A unit of account that arose in the 17th century to distinguish it from daler kopparmynt. In 1624, when the first copper coins were minted, one daler in copper coins was supposed to equal one daler in silver coins. However, the copper coins soon fell in value relative to silver coins. One daler silvermynt was equal to two daler kopparmynt in 1633–43, to 2.5 daler kopparmynt in 1643–65 and to 3 daler kopparmynt in 1665–1776. 1 daler silvermynt = 4 mark 63 Used, for example, in 1592 in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592, part 1 (1939, pp. 70 and 90). 64 Used, for example, in 1596 in Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952, p. 226). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 51 silvermynt = 32 öre silvermynt. Although the fixed relation between the daler sil- vermynt and daler kopparmynt was supposed to establish a fixed relation between silver and copper coins, in some periods there was a deviation between the two types of coin in the market, implying that actual silver coins did not follow daler silvermynt. 1 daler in actual silver coins was, therefore, termed daler courant or daler carolin. After 1776, daler silvermynt continued to be used as a term for 1/6 riksdaler or 8 skillings, and later for 12 skillings riksgälds. 65 Daler silvermynt in specie or daler silvermynt i vitt mynt: Around the mid-17th century, a term for daler silvermynt when payment was made in actual silver coins. From the mid-1660s, the terms ‘daler courant’ and ‘daler carolin’ were used instead. Dubbel pjes (double pjes): In 1739–76, a term for coins that were minted as 10 öre, but had the nominal value of 12 öre courant. Also called ‘12-styver’. Dubbel slant: From the late 17th century the same as two öre silvermynt in copper coins. In 1777–1803 it had the nominal value of ½ skilling (banco). Ducat or florin: First minted in Venice in 1285. A gold coin that was imported to, and from 1654 also minted in, Sweden. The fine gold content of one Swedish ducat was 3.3431 grams in 1654–64, 3.3966 grams in 1665–1835 and 3.4006 grams in 1836–68. One Swedish ducat was worth around two riksdaler (specie). Dukaton or dubbel svensk daler (double Swedish daler): Coin with the face value of 4 carolins. It was minted in 1664–1704 and had the same face value as the earlier christin, although the dukaton had a lower fine silver content, namely 28.8985 grams. Engelot: A gold coin minted in France and England (in England under the name of angel) that was imported to Sweden. In the 16th century it weighed 5.18 grams, but less after 1601. In 1541, one engelot was valued 7.5 marks. Engelsk or själländsk engelsk (English): A Danish 3-penny coin (1/64 Danish mark), minted as an English sterling. It was common in Götaland in the early 15th century, and circulated then as 1/4 Swedish öre (6 Swedish penningar). It initially contained 0.66 grams fine silver (which was less than for the English ster- ling). Enkel daler: In the 16th century the same as the silver daler. Enskilling: In 1834–55 a copper coin with the nominal value of 2/3 skilling banco (= 1 skilling riksgälds). Enstyver: In 1799–1855, a copper coin with the nominal value of 1/4 skilling riksgälds. Florin: The same as ducat. Fredrik: During the reign of Fredrik I (1720–51) the term ‘fredrik’ was sometimes used instead of carolin, equal to two marks in minted silver coins. Fyrk: Equal to ¼ öre. Fyrks were minted in silver in 1523–1601 and in copper in 65 Talvio (1995, p. 205). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 52 1624–60. Also called ‘halvöre’ (half öre), since from 1633 ½ öre in copper coins was set equal to ¼ öre in silver coins. Gammal örtug (old örtug): The örtug minted before 1478. In the late 15th century a premium arose on ‘gammal örtug’: 1 ‘gammal örtug’ = 9 penningar = 1.125 new örtugs in 1481; 1 ‘gammal örtug’ = 10 penningar = 1.25 new örtugs around 1500; and 1 ‘gammal örtug’ = ¾ öre = 1.5 new örtugs after 1523. The ‘gammal örtug’ was also minted in 1589–90 to the nominal value of ¾ öre. Gote or gute: A coin minted in Gotland between 1320–40 and the mid-15th cen- tury, originally the Gotlandic örtug. In the 15th century, 1 öre gutnisk was set equal to 4 gote, so that 1 mark gutnisk = 32 gotar, but the relation 1 öre gutnisk = 3 gote is also known. Gros tournois: A French silver coin that circulated widely in Sweden during the late 13th century and the first half of the 14th century, valued at 17–20 penningar. The gros tournois initially weighed 4.22 grams and had 23/24 fineness. Its weight and fineness were unchanged until 1322. After 1329, its weight changed fre- quently; the coin was no longer minted after 1364. The sterling was reckoned as one third of the gros tournois. 66 Gyllen (silver coin): A currency unit in silver minted in the 1520s. Gyllen (gold coin): The name of several gold coins that circulated in Sweden in the 15th, 16th and 17th centuries. It was supposed to have the same fine gold content as the florin or the ducat, but later the gyllen (gulden) was debased, and several types of gyllen coins circulated at various values. The ‘rhensk gyllen’ (Rhine gul- den) had a lower fine gold content than the ducat and the ‘lätte gyllen’ (light gyl- len) had an even lower content than the rhensk gyllen, whereas the ‘ungersk gyl- len’ followed the ducat. 67 Halv carolin (1665-1776): Half carolin, the same as one mark silver coin. Halvanstyver (one and a half styver) or bankovitten (19th century): In 1802–55, the copper coin with the nominal value of ¼ skilling (banco). Equal in value to one and a half styver. Halvöre: After 1633, the same as ½ öre kopparmynt. 68 Hamburger reichstaler banco: The most quoted foreign currency in Sweden in the 18th and early 19th centuries. One Hamburger reichstaler banco was equal to 3 mark banco. In 1622, the fine silver content of one mark banco was 8.66 gram and of one reichstaler banco 25.98 grams, in accordance with the Leipzig conven- tion establishing the reichstaler in 1566. From 1790 the issue rate of a reichstaler banco was 9.25 per mark of fine silver and the mark banco 27.75 per mark of fine silver. Since the mark of fine silver in Hamburg was equal to 233.855 grams, one reichstaler banco was the equivalent of 25.2816 grams fine silver. Although the 66 Spuford (1986, pp. 184–6). 67 Hildebrand (1983, pp. 910–1 and 947). 68 Stiernstedt (1863, pp. 61–2). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 53 Hamburger reichstaler banco was often used as an equivalent for the riksdaler specie, the value of the Swedish riksdaler specie was normally somewhat higher. Hvid: A Danish coin, minted from mid-14th to the late 17th centuries. Circulated in parts of Sweden in various periods. 1 hvid = 4 (Danish) penningar = 1/3 skill- ing. In 1451, the Danish hvid was set equal to 3 Swedish penningar. It was also used at that value (also called albus) when counting was done in mark danska (= 48 hvid). Joachimstaler: Minted since 1518 in Joachimsthal in Bohemia. From 1534 the Joachimdaler was minted in Sweden and called daler, later slagen daler, riksdaler and riksdaler specie. Kopparrunstycke: A term used from 1719 to 1776 (previously only runstycke) for coins with the face value of one öre kopparmynt that were minted from 1719 onwards. 69 Korsdaler: Probably the same as the Albertustaler (kreutztaler). A coin with a slightly smaller silver content than the riksdaler that was imported to and quoted in the exchange rate markets in 17th century Sweden. In the mid-1660s, the legal value of one korsdaler was set to 50 öre silvermynt, which can be compared to 52 öre silvermynt for one riksdaler. 70 Kreutzer: A copper coin minted by Swedish monarchs in the 17th century for circu- lation in Germany. Krona: The currency unit introduced in Sweden in 1873 to replace the riksdaler when the Scandinavian Monetary Union was formed. One krona was set equal to one riksdaler riksmynt, but was linked to gold instead of silver. The fine gold content of one krona was 0.4032258 grams. The krona of Sweden, Norway and Denmark, respectively, were equal. After the Scandinavian Monetary Union was definitely abolished in 1924, the krona continued to be the currency unit of Swe- den. During the Bretton Woods system, one US dollar was linked to gold at the rate of $35 per ounce or $1.12527 per gram. Sweden joined the Bretton Woods system in 1951. 71 Since one dollar stood at 5.17321 kronor, this would imply that the fine gold content of one krona during the Bretton Woods system was 0.17178 grams, i.e. half of the amount fixed in 1873. 1 krona = 100 öre. The international code is SEK. Krongyllen: A gold coin minted in 1569–73 and 1598–99. One krongyllen was equal to 1.25 slagen daler and its fine gold content was 3.0395 grams. Mark (unit of account): A unit of account used in Sweden up to 1776, equal to ¼ daler or 8 öre. During the 17th century, mark kopparmynt and mark silvermynt became two different units, although forming the same system of account. Mark danska: A unit of account used in Sweden (mainly Götaland) around 1450– 1550. In 1451, the official rate of the Danish hvid was fixed to 3 Swedish pen- 69 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 62). 70 Starbäck (1886, p. 563). 71 Ahlström and Carlsson (2006, p. 64). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 54 ningar. Since one mark danska = 16 skillings = 48 hvider (or albus), one mark danska was equal to 144 Swedish penningar, i.e. 1 mark danska = 6 Swedish öre = ¾ mark svenska. This became purely a unit of account, and counting in mark danska was done in Swedish coins and not in actual Danish coins (i.e. one mark danska was not necessarily equal to one actual Danish mark). Another term was ‘mark danska i svenskt mynt’ (Danish marks in Swedish coins). Mark grossa: Mark in Gotlandic ‘grossa’. 72 Probably the same as mark gutnisk. Mark guld (mark in gold): During the Middle Ages, the same as gold weighing one mark (around 210 grams, gross weight). Mark gutnisk: The mark gutnisk was originally the mark of Gotland, which had its own monetary system in the 12th and 13th centuries. In the 13th century Gotlan- dic coins were also used as the main currency in Öland, Småland and Östergöt- land. In that century: 1 mark gutnisk = 24 örtug = 288 penningar. Some time before the 1340s, Gotland adopted the Hansaetic system, where one Gotlandic örtug or gote was set equal to 3 pennies of Lübeck or 6 Swedish penningar. According to one theory, the Gotlandic mark silver was the same as the mark of Lübeck counted in gotar, originally equal to 64 gotar or 2⅔ traditional Gotlandic marks. 73 In the early 14th century, 1 mark in Götaland was counted as 32 gotar (based on 1 gote = 6 penningar). Since gotar deteriorated in value, this mark, called tysk mark in the 1410s and mark gutnisk from the 1420s, came to be worth less than the mark örtug. 74 Mark gutnisk was worth only ½ mark örtug in the 1420s and early 1430s, and around ¼ mark örtug in the 1440s. Gotland is believed to have adopted the Danish monetary system in 1449, when the gote was replaced by the hvid (= 4 penningar = 1/16 skilling = 1/48 mark), but the old gotar continued to dominate circulation in Gotland and Götaland in the second half of the 15th century. After the mid-15th century the term ‘mark gutnisk’ probably referred to different types of currency. In the 1530s, in Götaland the mark gutnisk was used as a pure unit of account, equal to ¼ mark örtug or ⅓ mark dansk. Mark härdalsk: A unit of account used in Härjedalen during the Middle Ages; it was probably the same as the mark jämtsk. Mark jämtsk: A unit of account used in Jämtland and known from 1346 to the late Middle Ages, probably linked to Norwegian coins from the 14th century. In 1437, 1 mark jämtsk = 1 13/35 Swedish mark. Mark kalmarsk: The same as mark stackota or mark gutnisk. Mark karlgill and köpgill: These two mark currencies are mentioned in Upplands- lagen, written in the late 13th century. 1 öre karlgill was equal to 12 penningar and 1 öre köpgill to 8 penningar. Mark karlgill has been interpreted as mark sil- 72 Sjögren (1944, p. 354). 73 Hyötyniemi (1999). 74 Hyötyniemi, (2000). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 55 ver, which is unconvincing since one mark silver was valued at 3–4.5 mark pen- ningar at the time when the Upplandslagen was written. Mark klipping (1570s): Mark in debased klipping coins. 75 In 1575, one mark in proper coins was set equal to 6.5 marks in debased klipping coins. In 1576, one mark klipping was reduced to one öre (1/8 mark in proper coins). Mark klipping or klippingmynt (1590s): Mark in debased klipping coins. 76 In late 1592, one mark in proper coins was set equal to 4 marks in debased klipping coins, and in May 1594 one mark klipping was further reduced to ¾ öre (0.09375 mark in proper coins). 77 Mark kopparmynt: A unit of account that was never minted. 1 mark kopparmynt = 8 öre kopparmynt = ¼ daler kopparmynt. Foreign exchange rates were often quoted in mark kopparmynt. When the riksdaler was introduced as the main cur- rency unit in 1777, it was set equal to 72 mark kopparmynt. Mark kölnisk (Cologne mark): A silver weight unit used in large parts of Europe. Equal to 233.8 grams of silver in gross weight, although the fineness could vary. Mark lybsk: Lübeck coins were particularly common in Götaland during the 14th and 15th centuries. 1 mark of Lübeck = 16 skilling = 48 Witten = 192 pennies. 1 mark of Lübeck circulated as 2 Swedish marks in the early 14th century, but dete- riorated to 1 mark or somewhat above later during the century. The fine silver content of the mark of Lübeck, equal to 48 Witten, was 50–55 grams in the late 14th century; it was reduced to 46 grams in 1401, to 40 grams in 1411, to 28 grams in 1424, to 25 grams in 1433 and to 20 grams in 1461. Mark lödig: The same as mark silver, a silver weight unit (as opposed to “mark pen- ningar”, which was a currency unit), used in the Middle Ages and the 16th cen- tury. The term ‘mark lödig’ is known from 1341 onwards. Before that, the term mark silver was used instead. In the 16th century it was equal to 210.616 grams of silver, although there is uncertainty concerning the fineness of this silver. Assum- ing that the fineness could vary between 85 and 95 percent, the mark lödig prob- ably contained between 180 and 200 grams fine silver. Mark penningar depreci- ated continually relative to mark lödig during the Middle Ages. Mark penningar (mark in pennies): A currency unit, in contrast to mark lödig. Up to the late 13th century, 1 mark penningar was equal to 192 penningar in Svealand, but to 384 penningar in Götaland. From the late 13th century, 1 ‘mark penningar’ = 192 penningar in both Svealand and Götaland. The equivalent term ‘mark örtug’ was in use from the late 15th century onwards. Mark rigisk or revalsk: The currency unit in Livonia, composed of present-day Estonia and Latvia (Reval was the Swedish and German name for Tallinn). In the 13th century the mark rigisk was equal to 24 artig of Riga. In the 14th century 75 Used, for example, in Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952, p. 98). 76 Used, for example, in 1592 in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592, part 1 (1939, pp. 51 and 62). 77 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592, part 1 (1939, p. 218). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 56 another mark rigisk came into use, set equal to 144 artig, originally at par with the mark silver. 78 In the 1420s a third mark rigisk came into use, set equal to 36 old artig (or new schilling). The Riga way of counting in coins was common in Fin- land during the 15th and first half of the 16th centuries. In the 1520s and ’30s, 1 ‘mark rigisk’ = 9 öre in Swedish penningar. Probably also used as a unit of account for Swedish coins. 79 Mark silver (marcha argenti puri): The same as mark lödig. Up to the 14th century the weight of mark silver could differ between regions. In Stockholm the weight was 209 grams, in Skara 215 grams and in Uppsala 218 grams. 80 The Danish mark silver was 3-4 percent heavier than the Stockholm weight. The term marcha argenti could also refer to units with a much lower fine silver content than the marcha argenti puri, although in Sweden the two terms were often used synony- mously. Mark (silver coins): Coins with this denomination were minted in Sweden in 1536–1755. From around 1660, the term carolin was used to refer to minted two-marks. The fine silver content of a minted one-mark coin was 8.854 grams in 1534–35, 8.2272 grams in 1536–40, 6.0176 grams in 1541–61, 5.8296 grams in 1562, 4.1371 grams in 1563–68, 2.0568 to 3.0852 grams from late 1568 to early 1571, 1.0284 grams from July 1571 to 1574/75, 6.0176 grams in 1576–89 (based on half-mark coins), 2.9971 grams from 1590 to early 1591, 0.6473 to 1.1753 grams from May 1591 to 1592, 4.2311 grams in early 1593, 6.399 grams in late 1593, 6.0522 grams in 1594–1603 (based on half-mark coins), 4.0503 grams in 1604–33, 3.9003 grams in 1634–38, 4.1297 grams in 1639–49, 3.9003 grams in 1649–63 and 3.6114 grams in 1664–1776. The one-mark coin was last minted in 1721, the two-mark coin in 1754 and the four-mark coin in 1755. Mark silvermynt: A unit of account. 1 mark silvermynt = ¼ daler silvermynt = 8 öre silvermynt. Around the mid 17th century a difference in market value arose between the mark silvermynt as a unit of account and the mark silver coin, called ‘halv carolin’ (half carolin), even though their official values were the same up to 1681. The official value of a ‘halv carolin’ was raised to 1 1/6 mark silvermynt in 1681, to 1.25 mark silvermynt in 1686 and to 1 9/16 mark silvermynt in 1716. Mark skånsk: The mark of Skåneland (Scania, Halland, Blekinge and Bornholm), which in the first half of 14th century was different from both the Danish and the Swedish mark. In this period, 1 mark skånsk was valued around 2 Danish marks and around 1.2 Swedish marks. 81 1 mark skånsk = 240 penningar. Mark stackota: A currency unit common in Götaland from the 1440s up to the late 15th century. There is evidence that the term was used as a synonym for mark 78 Hyötyniemi, (1999). 79 Hallenberg (1798, p. 233). 80 Hildebrand (1894, p. 757). 81 See Chapter 3. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 57 gutnisk, but some authors argue that the mark stackota was the traditional Got- landic mark, equal to 24 gotar or ¾ mark gutnisk. 82 Mark sterling: In the 13th and 14th centuries, the same as one mark silver in ster- ling coins. In 1272, one mark sterling was counted as 144 sterling coins, which contained 193 gram fine silver. In 1267 one mark sterling in Cologne weight was counted as 160 sterlings, which, in turn, was equal to two thirds of a pound ster- ling. 83 Mark svenska (Swedish mark): Could refer to two different coins in the 15th and 16th centuries: (1) The same as mark örtug used in Sweden, as distinguished from mark dansk, gutnisk and jämtsk. (2) The same as mark danska in Swedish coins, and hence equal to ¾ mark örtug. Another term was ‘mark danska i svenskt mynt’. 84 Mark stockholmsk or holmsk: The same as mark örtug. 85 Mark västgötsk: The same as mark stackota or mark gutnisk. Mark örtug: The same as mark penningar. Mark östgötsk: The same as mark stackota or mark gutnisk. Myntsedel (coin note): Inconvertible notes issued in 1716 and 1717 with face val- ues of 25, 10 and 5 daler silvermynt. These notes never circulated as widely as ‘mynttecken’ (coin tokens). Mynttecken (coin tokens) or nödmynt (emergency coins): The coin tokens issued in 1716–19 at the face value of one daler silvermynt (except for the last coin token, ‘Hoppet’, issued at the face value of two öre silvermynt in 1719). A pre- mium arose on proper coins relative the coin tokens. Noble: An English gold coin imported to Sweden in the late Middle Ages and the 16th century. Its weight was 7.78 grams from 1354 and 7 grams from 1412. From 1464 the ‘rosenobel’ was minted, weighing 7.78 grams, the same as the noble before 1412. In the second half of the 15th century, 1 noble was worth 3–4 mark örtug. 86 Palmstruchska kreditivsedlar (Palmstruch’s credit notes): Initially convertible notes issued in 1661–64 by Stockholm Banco (forerunner of Sveriges Riksbank); the first banknotes in Europe in a proper sense. They were made inconvertible in 1664 and fell below their par values. After 1667 the notes were exchanged at their full nominal values. Penning (Swedish penny): A currency unit from the Middle Ages to 1776. Up to the late 13th century, in Svealand 1 penning = 1/192 marks, in Götaland 1 pen- ning = 1/384 marks (i.e. 1 Svealand penning = 2 Götaland penningar), and in 82 Hyötyniemi (2000). 83 See Chapter 3. 84 Hallenberg (1798, pp. 35–6). 85 Used, for example, in Stockholms stads tänkebok under vasatiden, part 1, 1524–1529 (1915, pp. 82, 107 and 110). 86 See Chapter 3. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 58 Gotland (and eastern Götaland) 1 penning = 1/288 Gotlandic marks (≈ 1 Göta- land penning). From the late 13th century, 1 penning = 1/192 marks in both Svealand and Götaland (but not Gotland). The penning was not minted after the 16th century, but continued to exist as a unit of account up to 1776. Penning bla/blå: A monetary term used in Västergötland in the mid-12th century. The penning bla was most likely a foreign coin. According to one theory the term referred to a silver penny minted by the house of Blois in France, weighing 1.36 gram. 87 Pjes/pjäs or enkel pjes: In 1719–76 a term for the silver coin that was minted as 5 öre (up to 1684 minted as 4 öre) but had the nominal value of 6 öre courant. It was also called ‘sexstyver’ and ‘tolförestycke’. Its fine silver content was 1.5601 grams. Plåt (plate): After 1715, two daler silvermynt in copper plates (later also 6 daler kop- parmynt in notes). Before 1715, the term riksdalerplåt was used. 88 After 1776, the term referred to 16 skillings (since 2 daler silvermynt = 1/3 riksdaler = 16 skill- ings), and later to 24 skillings riksgälds. 89 Plåtmynt (plate coin): Copper coins minted as plates weighing between 0.378 and 19.7 kg and accepted as means of payment 1644–1776. They were denominated in daler silvermynt. Pound sterling: The quoted currency unit for the exchange rate on London. One pound sterling was equal to 20 shillings or 240 pence. The fine silver content of one pound sterling (if counted in pennies) was reduced from 321.1 to 319.7 grams in 1278, and was further reduced to 308.4 grams in 1335, to 291.1 grams in 1344, 259 grams in 1351, 215.8 grams in 1412, 172.6 grams in 1465, 153.4 grams in 1524, 143.9 grams in 1542, 115.1 in 1552, 111.4 grams in 1601, and 104.6 grams in 1816. Britain went over to the gold standard in 1816. The gold content of the sovereign was fixed at 7.32 grams. 90 Portugalös: The Swedish term for portuguezen, a gold coin. Some were minted dur- ing the reign of Johan III (1568–92). One Swedish portugalös weighed 34.4 grams and was set equal to 10 ducats or 4 rosenobel. Reichstaler: The later term for the joachimthaler in Germany. The standard was introduced in 1566 by the Leipzig convention, which set the reichstaler as a coin containing 1/9 of a Cologne mark silver. In 1754, the Reichstaler was replaced by the Conventionsthaler, containing 1/10 of a Cologne mark silver. Revalsk or räflisk (Livonian artig): The coins of Livonia that dominated circula- tion in Finland during the 15th century. The artig, minted from 1343, was ini- tially valued at 3 pennies of Lübeck or 6 Swedish penningar. In the 15th century, 1 revalsk was valued at 4–6 Swedish penningar. In the early 15th century, the 87 Bjurling (1950). 88 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 62). 89 Talvio (1995, p. 205). 90 See Chapter 5. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 59 term ‘revalsk örtug’ was also common; by the 16th century it had been replaced by the term ‘rigisk skilling’. Rhensk gyllen (Rhinish gulden): A gold coin imported to Sweden during the Mid- dle Ages and the 16th century. Its fine gold content decreased from 3.4 grams in the late 14th century to 2.53 grams in the late 15th century. In the second half of the 15th century and the early 16th century 1 rhensk gyllen was valued around 1.5 mark örtug or 2 mark danska. 91 In 1533, 1 rhensk gyllen = 2/3 ungersk gyllen = 4/5 Joachimthaler. Riksdaler: From the late 16th century the term used for the silver daler (‘slagen daler’), in contrast to the Swedish daler, which was used as a unit of account and was equal to 4 marks. Later on the riksdaler could also denote other types of cur- rency. Riksdaler banco: In 1777–1809 the Riksbank notes were convertible into riksdaler specie and therefore linked to a fixed silver content. In 1809 the banco notes were made inconvertible and the riksdaler banco started to fall in value relative to the riksdaler specie. In 1834, the riksdaler banco (which in 1803 had been set equal to 1.5 riksdaler riksgälds) was fixed in value so that 1 riksdaler banco = 3/8 riksdaler specie. Riksdaler carolin: The same as 3 carolins or 6 marks in silver coins. In 1633–65 the official value of one riksdaler was 6 marks or 48 öre in actual silver coins. The riksdaler counted in actual mark silver coins was termed ‘riksdaler carolin’, in actual öre silver coins ‘riksdaler courant’ and in actual riksdaler coins ‘riksdaler specie’. The market value of the riksdaler specie rose and in 1665 its official value was set equal to 6.5 marks or 52 öre silvermynt. The counting of riksdaler in 6 marks in silver coins, riksdaler carolin, remained, but had a lower value than the riksdaler specie. When the carolin was appreciated in 1681 relative to öre courant, the official value of riksdaler carolin became higher than of the riksdaler courant. After 1665, one riksdaler carolin had the unchanged fine silver content of 21.6684 grams. Riksdaler courant: In the 17th century equal to 48 öre courant, which towards the end of the century was the same as 48 öre silvermynt. In the 18th century it became a pure unit of account equal to 1.5 daler silvermynt (48 öre silvermynt). Up to 1681, 3 carolins were officially equal in value to 48 öre courant. However, in 1681 carolins appreciated relative to öre courant. From then on the riksdaler courant was probably not the same as the riksdaler carolin, although further inves- tigation is needed on this issue. Riksdaler riksgälds: A war with Russia led to the formation of the Riksgäldskon- toret (National Debt Office), which started to issue riksgälds notes in 1789. These notes became inconvertible and soon dominated trade, replacing the Riksbank 91 See Chapter 3. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 60 (banco) notes. Riksdaler rikgälds fell in value relative to riksdaler banco. In 1803 the relation 1 riksdaler riksgälds = 2/3 riksdaler banco was fixed. Riksdaler riksmynt: The main currency unit in 1855–73. Replaced riksdaler riks- gälds at the same face value. 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 100 öre = ¼ riksdaler specie. Riksdaler specie: The riksdaler with a stable fine silver content of 25.3-25.7 grams. The term was already being used in the first half of the 17th century. See daler. Riksdalerplåt: In 1681–1715 a term for the copper plates with a nominal value of two daler silvermynt. In 1681, the official value of the riksdaler was set equal to two daler silvermynt. In 1715 copper plates were revalued by 50 percent, and in 1718 the official value of one riksdaler was set equal to 3 daler silvermynt. From 1715 the term ‘plåt’ was used for two daler silvermynt in copper plates, and later for Riksbank notes of 6 daler kopparmynt. Rosenobel: A gold coin imported to Sweden, above all in the 16th century, weigh- ing 7.78 grams. A double rosenobel (set equal to ½ portugalös or 5 ducats) was minted in Sweden during the reign of Johan III (1568–92) and weighed 15.3 grams. Runstycke (before 1777): A term used from the early 1630s for one öre in copper coins, 92 while one öre in silver coins was termed (h)vitrunstycke. From 1719, the term kopparrunstycke was used. Runstycke (1777–1855): 1/12 skilling. Coincided in value with the kopparrunsty- cke or öre kopparmynt of the currency system before 1777 (since 1 riksdaler = 6 daler silvermynt = 576 öre kopparmynt according to the conversion rate from old to new currency and 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings = 576 runstycken according to the new currency system of 1777). Räknedaler: Daler that began to be used in the 1570s as a unit of account, in con- trast to the silver daler. Sessling or sexling: From the mid-1660s the same as the copper coin with the des- ignated value of 1/6 öre silvermynt. From the early 1680s the term ‘halvöre’ (half öre) was used instead, since 1/6 öre silvermynt = ½ öre kopparmynt. Sexskilling: In 1849–55, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of 4 skill- ings banco (= 6 skillings riksgälds). Sexstyver (18th century): In 1719–76 the same as pjes. Sexstyver (19th century): In 1802–55, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of one skilling banco. Skilling: Introduced in 1777, when the riksdaler became the main currency unit in Sweden. 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings and 1 skilling = 12 runstycken. Later a differ- ence arose between skilling banco, riksgälds and specie. Skilling banco: 1 riksdaler banco = 48 riksdaler banco. From 1803, 1 skilling banco = 1.5 skilling riksgälds. Skilling (Danish): 1 skilling = 1/16 mark = 3 hvids. A currency unit also used in 92 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 61), and Hayes (2001 [1740], p. 337). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 61 parts of Sweden (mainly Götaland) around 1450–1550, where 1 Danish skilling = 1/16 mark danska = 3/64 mark svenska = 3/8 Swedish öre. Skilling riksgälds: Equal to 1/48 riksdaler riksgälds. Skilling specie: Equal to 1/48 riksdaler specie. This was rather a unit of account; no coins were ever minted in this denomination. Skilling svenska penningar (skilling Swedish penningar): A term used before 1550 when accounting was done in mark danska in Götaland. There were no Swedish skilling coins in this period. Neither was payment made in Danish skill- ings (i.e. one ‘skilling svenska pengar’ was not necessarily equal to one skilling in actual Danish coins); it was purely an accounting system based on Swedish coins. One ‘skilling svenska penningar’ was equal to 1/16 mark danska, 3/64 mark örtug or 3/8 Swedish öre. Slant: From the mid-1660s the same as the copper coin with the designated value of one öre silvermynt. In 1777–1803 it had a nominal value of ¼ skilling (banco), since in 1777 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings was exchanged for 192 öre silvermynt (6 daler silvermynt). Another term was ‘enkel slant’. Styver (from the late 1710s to 1776): The same as one öre courant. 93 Styver (1777–1855): A term for skilling coins, where one styver was initially equal to ¼ skilling (banco), 94 and later (from around 1800) ¼ skilling riksgälds or 1/6 skilling banco. This custom arose since the old copper coins continued to circu- late in 1777–1803 at the nominal value of ¼ skilling (banco) per one öre silver- mynt. The term styver was usurped by the coins in skilling riksgälds that were minted from 1799 onwards. Svensk daler (Swedish daler): A unit of account used from the 1570s to designate 4 marks in silver coins, in contrast to slagen daler, which fluctuated in value relative to the minted mark coins. Later the term ‘svensk daler’ referred to two carolins. Tjugostyver (twenty styver): The name for 10 öre after 1855. The value of ‘tju- gostyver’ from 1855 onwards was somewhat less than the value before that of 20 styver, which was equal to 5 skilling riksgälds or 10/96 riksdaler riksgälds. Tolvörestycke (twelve-öre piece): The same as pjes. Up to 1684, these coins were minted as 4 öre (from 1690 as 5 öre), which initially had the nominal value of 12 öre kopparmynt (since one öre silvermynt = 3 öre kopparmynt). 95 In 1717 the nominal value of this coin was increased to 6 öre silvermynt. Tolvskilling (twelve-skilling): From 1834 the same as 1/16 riksdaler specie (since 1 riksdaler specie = 192 skillings riksgälds in 1834–55). After 1855, a term for 25 öre (since 1 riksdaler specie = 400 öre). Treskilling (three-skilling): In 1834–55 a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of 2 skillings banco (= 3 skillings riksgälds). 93 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 62). 94 Talvio (1995, p. 205). 95 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 62). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 62 Tvåstyver (two-styver): In 1799–1855, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of ½ skilling riksgälds. Trestyver (three-styver): In 1802–55, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of ½ skilling banco. Tysk mark: In the 1410s in Götaland, the name for the mark counted as 32 gotar. From the 1420, the term mark gutnisk was used instead. Tunna guld (barrel of gold): A unit of account for larger sums of money, a term borrowed from Germany. 96 First used in the late 16th century. Equal to 100,000 daler silvermynt, originally 100,000 silver daler. Since the daler silvermynt fell in value relative to the riksdaler, one tunna guld expressed in riksdaler fell over time. In 1777 it was equal to 16,666⅓ riksdaler specie (since one riksdaler specie was exchanged for 6 daler silvermynt), and in the 19th century the same as 16,666⅓ riksdaler banco (from 1834 equal to 6250 riksdaler specie). Although the term gives the impression of a specific weight of gold, the amount of gold that one tunna guld could buy fell over time: it could buy around 200 kg gold in the late 16th century, 28–29 kg gold in 1777 and around 10 kg gold in 1834. Ungersk gyllen (Hungarian gulden): A gold coin that was imported as well as minted in 1568–73. One ungersk gyllen minted in Sweden was valued at 1.5 sla- gen daler and its fine gold content was 4.1245 grams. Internationally the coin was equal to one ducat, but in Sweden the minted ungersk gyllen had a higher fine gold content and was, therefore, not equal to one ducat. Vit penning or Witten (white penny): A German 4-penny coin (1/48 mark of Lübeck) that was common in Götaland in the late 14th and early 15th centuries. In this period it circulated as 1/3 Swedish öre (= 1 örtug = 8 penningar). Vitrunstycke: A term used in 1633–1776 for one öre courant. 97 Vitten: Before 1777 a term for one öre silvermynt, in 1777–1855 for ¼ skilling (riksgälds from 1799) in copper (since in 1777, 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings was exchanged for 192 öre silvermynt), and in 1855–73 for ½ öre in bronze. Åbo-mark: A currency unit used in Finland during the 15th century, equal to the Swedish mark but counted in coins of Riga (usually 32–48 revalska). Öre (from 1855 onwards): The öre unit was reintroduced in 1855, although it only shared the name with the old öre. 1 riksdaler riksmynt (from 1873, 1 krona) = 100 öre. For comparison, while in 1777 one riksdaler specie was exchanged for 576 öre kopparmynt, in 1855 one riksdaler specie was set equal to 400 öre. Öre (up to 1776): In the Middle Ages one öre was equal to 1/8 mark and 3 örtug. From the 1290s, 1 öre = 24 penningar in both Svealand and Götaland, but not in Gotland. In the 17th century a difference arose between öre silvermynt, öre kop- parmynt and öre courant. The öre was abolished as a currency unit on the 1st of January 1777. 96 Nordisk Familjebok (1892). See also Heckscher (1941, p. 11). 97 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 61), and Hayes (2001 [1740], p. 337). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 63 Öre courant: The term for öre in actual silver coins. In some periods, for example 1686–1715, one öre courant was equal to one öre silvermynt, but in other periods there was a premium on öre courant. Öre kopparmynt: A unit of account in 1633–1776. 1 öre kopparmynt = 1/8 mark kopparmynt = 1/32 daler kopparmynt. Öre silvermynt: A unit of account in 1633–1776. 1 öre silvermynt = 1/8 mark sil- vermynt = 1/32 daler silvermynt. In 1624, when the first copper coins were minted, one öre in copper coins was supposed to be equal to one öre in silver coins. However, one öre minted in copper soon fell in value relative to one öre minted in silver. One öre silvermynt was set equal to 2 öre kopparmynt in 1633– 43, to 2.5 öre kopparmynt in 1643–65 and to 3 öre kopparmynt in 1665–1776. Örtug: A currency unit in Sweden in the Middle Ages and the 16th century. As a unit of account, 1 örtug = 1/3 öre = 1/24 mark. In 1523, the fine silver content of the öre was reduced, and thereafter 1 minted örtug = ½ öre. In 1589–90, the ‘gammal örtug’ was minted to the value of ¾ öre (in proper coins). This was also the last time örtugs were minted in Sweden. The örtug continued to exist during the 16th century as a unit of account (1 mark = 24 örtugs), which became differ- ent from the minted örtug. Furthermore, one ‘mark dansk’ (used in Götaland as a unit of account around 1450–1550) was also divisible into 24 örtugs. Therefore, the örtugs of the two different systems of account in Götaland and Svealand were different (hence, around 1450–1550, one öre was equal to 3 örtugs in Svealand, but to 4 örtugs in Götaland). 98 98 Hallenberg (1798, p. 175). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 64 Primary published sources Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952), Uppsala. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592, part 1 (1939), Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkebok under vasatiden 1524–1529 (1915), Stockholm. Internet resources ‘MEMDB – Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’, http://sccweb.scc-net.rutgers. edu/memdb (2007-06-10). ‘Measuringworth.com’, http://www.measuringworth.com (2007-06-10). References Ahlström, G, and B Carlsson (2006), Vägval i valutafrågan: Sverige och Bretton Woods, SNS Förlag, Stockholm. Bjurling, O (1950), ‘Penningar blå’, in Scandia, vol. XX, pp. 247–259. Bordo, M, and F Kydland (1992), Te Gold Standard as a Rule, http://clevelandfed. org/research/workpaper/1992/wp9205.pdf (2007-07-29). Cottrell, A (1997), Monetary Endogeneity and the Quantity Teory: Te Case of Com- modity Money, http://www.wfu.edu/~cottrell/commodit.pdf (2007-08-05). Davidson, D (1919), ‘Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1918’, Ekonomisk Tidskrift, 1919, part I, Uppsala and Stockholm. Flandreau, M, and F Zumer (2004), Te Making of Global Finance 1880–1913, OECD, Paris. Flynn, D, A Giráldez, and R von Glahn (eds), (2003), Global Connections and Mone- tary History, 1470–1800, Ashgate, Burlington. Friedman, M (1990), ‘Bimetallism Revisited’, Journal of Economic Perspectives, vol. 4, no. 4 (Fall), pp. 85–104. Friis, A, and K Glamann (1958), A history of prices and wages in Denmark: 1660– 1800, vol. 1, London. Hallenberg, J (1798), Historisk avhandling om mynt och warors warde i Swerige under Konung Gustaf I:s Regering, Stockholm. Hayes, R (2001 [1740]), Te negociator’s magazine: or the most authentick account yet published of the monies, weights, and measures of the principal places of the world, Fac- simile reprint, Elibron Classics. Heckscher, E (1935–1949), Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa, vol. I:1, I:2, II:1 and II:2, Bonnier, Stockholm. Heckscher, E (1941), De svenska penning-, vikt- och måttsystemen: En historisk översikt, Stockholm. Hildebrand, H (1983), Sveriges medeltid, vol. 2, Städerna, Gidlunds, Stockholm. Hyötyniemi, Y (1999), ‘Fyra små gotar på en lybsk skilling’, Nordisk numismatisk uni- ons medlemsblad, pp. 4–16. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 65 Hyötyniemi, Y (2000), ‘Om gutnisk mynträkning på 1400-talet’, Nordisk numisma- tisk unions medlemsblad, pp. 45–53. Jansson, A, L Andersson Palm, and J Söderberg (1991), Dagligt bröd i onda tider: Pri- ser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1770, Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskning, Gothenburg. Jevons, S (1875), Money and the Mechanism of Exchange, D. Appleton and Company, New York, http://www.econlib.org/Library/YPDBooks/Jevons/jvnMMEtoc.html (2007-08-03). Jonung, L (1975), Studies in the Monetary History of Sweden, University of California, Los Angeles. Jonung, L (2000), ‘Från guldmyntfot till infationsmål – svensk stabiliseringspolitik under det 20:e seklet’, Ekonomisk Debatt, vol. 28, no. 1, pp. 17–32. Keynes, J M (1936), Te General Teory of Employment, Interest and Money, MacMil- lan, London. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956– 78), Allhem, Malmö. Lagerqvist, L, and E Nathorst-Böös (1968), Mynt, Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts, Stock- holm. Lobell, H (2000), Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration: De utländska växelkurser- na i Sverige 1834–1880, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Lund. Läge, F-K, (1961), Secular Infation, Riedel, Dordrecht. Malmer, B (1995), ‘Från Olof till Anund. Ur sigtunamyntningens historia’ in Jons- son, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. McCusker, J (1978), Money and Exchange in Europe and America, 1600–1775: A Handbook, Kingsport Press, Kingsport, Tennessee. Melitz, J (1970), ‘Te Polanyi School of Anthropology on Money: An Economist’s View’, American Anthropologist, New Series, vol. 72. No. 5 (October), pp. 1022– 1040. Nordisk Familjebok (1875–99), http://runeberg.org/nf (2007-07-01). Nordisk familjebok (1913), http://runeberg.org/nfbs (2007-08-14). Quinn, S, and W Roberds (2006), An Economic Explanation of the Early Bank of Amsterdam, Debasement, Bills of Exchange, and the Emergence of the First Central Bank, Federal Reserve Bank of Atlanta, Working Paper Series, 2006-13, http:// www.frbatlanta.org/flelegacydocs/wp0613.pdf (2007-08-04). Redish, A (2000), Bimetallism: An Economic and Historical Analysis, Cambridge Uni- versity Press, Cambridge. Redish, A (2001), ‘Bimetallism’ in Whaples, R, EH.Net Encyclopedia, http://eh.net/ encyclopedia/article/redish.bimetallism (2007-07-01). Rolnick, A, and W Weber (1986), ‘Gresham’s Law or Gresham’s Fallacy?’, Te Journal of Political Economy, vol. 94, no. 1 (February), pp. 185–199. Rolnick, A, and W Weber (1997), ‘Money, Infation, and Output under Fiat and Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 66 Commodity Standards’, Te Journal of Political Economy, vol. 105, no. 5 (Decem- ber), pp. 1308–1321. Sargent, T, and F Velde (2002), Te Big Problem of Small Change, Princeton Universi- ty Press, Princeton and Oxford. Sjögren, P (1944), Släkten Trolles historia intill år 1505, Almqvist & Wiksell, Upp- sala. Spuford, P (1986), Handbook of Medieval Exchange, London. Spuford, P (1988), Money and its use in Medieval Europe, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Starbäck, C G (1886), Berättelser ur svenska historien. Bd 6, Carl X Gustaf, Beijer, Stockholm. Stiernstedt, A (1863–1864), Om kopparmyntningen i Sverige och dess utländska besitt- ningar, Stockholm. Smith, A (1999 [1776]), Te Wealth of Nations, Books IV–V, Penguin Books. Sussman, N (1993), ‘Debasements, Royal Revenues, and Infation in France During the Hundred Years’ War, 1415–1422’, Te Journal of Economic History, vol. 53, no. 1 (March), pp. 44–70. Sussman, N, and J Zeira (2003), ‘Commodity money infation: theory and evidence from France in 1350–1436’, Journal of Monetary Economics, vol. 50, pp. 1769– 1793. Talvio, T (1995), ‘Sedlarnas århundrade: Mynt och pappersmynt från 1724 till 1818’” in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Turborg, M (1989), ‘Betalningsmedel under järnålder och tidig medeltid’ in Medel- tidens födelse, Gyllenstiernska Krapperupsstiftelsen, Lund. Velde, F, and W Weber (1998), A Model of Bimetallism, Working Paper 588 (August), Federal Reserve Bank of Minneapolis, Research Department, http://www.minnea- polisfed.org/research/WP/WP588.pdf (2007-08-10). Velde, F, W Weber, and R Wright (1999), ‘A Model of Commodity Money, with App- lications to Gresham’s Law and the Debasement Puzzle’, Review of Economic Dyna- mics, vol. 2, pp. 291–323. Wallroth, K A (1918), Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser, Stockholm. Wettmark, M (1995), ‘Den moderna mynthistorien. Nya metaller’ in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numisma- tiska föreningen, Stockholm. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 1 Rodney Edvinsson, Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg 3.1. Introduction In principle, a market economy could be based on barter – a simple exchange of commodities and services for other commodities or services (i.e. goods). But it is dif- ficult to imagine a sizeable market in the absence of money. Money was, of course, a commodity just like other goods initially, but it has the property of being acceptable as payment for almost all other goods. This property makes it much easier for a buyer and a seller to conclude a deal, at least when people have confidence in the monetary system. In a pre-industrial society such a general trust may exist if the pen- nies are roughly of the same size and carry the same quantity of intrinsic value. Dur- ing the Swedish Middle Ages this intrinsic value consisted of silver in the pennies. In times of monetary stability, medieval pence could readily be used as units of account (price tags) when goods needed to be valued, making exchange even easier. Some people believe that price stability is a modern idea, but many a medieval source makes it clear that keeping money stable was considered to be an important virtue for the regent. 2 In Sweden, as in other European countries, there were periods of stable money that helped market exchange to flourish, as well as periods of royal counterfeiting and economic decline. Many medieval economic problems can be attributed to the swings between stability (trust) and money debasement (distrust). In Sweden, the basic currency unit during the Middle Ages was the mark, which existed up to 1776. There was a difference between the silver mark and ‘mark pen- ningar’ (the mark in pennies). A silver mark was a weight measure, while the mark penningar was the currency unit. In the Middle Ages, the mark penningar was a unit of account. It was not until the 16th century that a coin was minted with the value of one mark penningar. 1 We want to thank especially Lars O. Lagerqvist and Cecilia von Heijne for comments on this chapter. 2 Spuford (2000, p. 59), and Franzén (2006, p. 66). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 68 When discussing the medieval payment system in Sweden it is also important to problematise the concept of Sweden. The boundaries of Sweden changed during the Middle Ages and they differed from what they are today. Finland was conquered in the 12th and 13th centuries. Scania (Skåne), Blekinge and Halland in the south belonged to Denmark for most of the Middle Ages, apart from a brief period in the 14th century (Scania was part of Sweden in 1332–66). Gotland in the Baltic Sea belonged to Sweden up to the 1360s, when it was lost to Denmark. During the 14th century there were several personal unions between Nordic countries, for example between Sweden and Norway in 1319–55 and 1362-63. They eventually lead up to the Kalmar Union, which is a term for a series of personal unions between Sweden (including Finland), Denmark and Norway in 1397–1523, although technically the countries did not relinquish their sovereignty. The Union split into two parts – Den- mark-Norway and Sweden (including Finland) – in the early 1520s. There were also important differences within the borders of the Swedish realm, reflecting a feudal decentralisation of the monetary system. 3.2. Coins, Cash and Credit in Medieval Sweden The first Swedish coins were made in the town of Sigtuna on Lake Mälar (north of present-day Stockholm), probably in the year 995, 3 and at roughly the same time in Norway. Those coins were minted in as pure silver as was possible a thousand years ago and they were produced by a Christian king in surroundings that were still rather pagan. But since the mint die prototype was of Anglo-Saxon origin, the monarch depicted on the pennies was the English king Ethelred, not the Swedish king Olof Skötkonung. This early minting occurred at the end of what we today call the Viking Age. In neighbouring Denmark, minting had already been practiced on and off since the 820s. But unlike the more advanced Denmark and Norway, Sweden discontin- ued minting sometime in the 1030s. This is indeed an economically puzzling lacuna that lasted for more than a century. The Viking Age, with its networks of inter- national exchange, came to an end in the middle of the 11th century; together with other signs of diminishing external trade, one is tempted to see this long interruption in Swedish minting as part of a period of economic stagnation. 4 We do not have a single written contemporary record that mentions the Sigtuna pennies. Thus, we do not know how (or even whether) they were tallied. In fact we do not know if they were used at all in market transactions. The first minted coins played just a marginal role, and circulating silver was completely dominated by for- eign coins. 5 When minting restarted in the 12th century, it did so in the southern parts of the realm. That is to say, first on the island of Gotland in the 1140s and in the province of Västergötland (West Gothland) in the 1150s (Geatish pennies). 3 Lagerqvist (1970, p. 16). 4 Heckscher (1941, pp. 65–6). 5 Jonsson (1995). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 69 These two kinds of new penny were very different in appearance from the Sigtuna coins and were (up to roughly the year 1300) sometimes minted on one side only. What is more, the appearance of the new Swedish pennies varied according to where in the kingdom they were minted, reflecting that European society was characterised by political and economic decentralisation, including the introduction of monetary systems that were based on local institutions, rather than on institutions of a centra- lised monarchy. A provincially based monetary system had already been introduced in the late 1020s in Denmark, when Cnut the Great abandoned his uniform money for the whole of Denmark in favour of two monetary systems – for the eastern and western parts of the country, respectively. German patterns may have inspired the Danish king, 6 and such a decentralized monetary structure was to become a characteristic sign of the feudal system. The Danish and Scanian marks were still valued differently in the 14th century (see Table A3.3). 7 Later, Sweden became a typical feudal example with more than one monetary system in use well up to the early 16th century. Not only did the different pennies in Sweden have different intrinsic values, they were also tallied in different ways. 8 6 Hybel and Poulsen (2007, p. 327). 7 Hybel and Poulsen (2007, p. 333). 8 Klackenberg (1992, pp. 180–1), and Jonsson (2002, p. 46) A model of Birka, a Viking town 1200 years ago, at the Museum of National Antiquities in Stockholm. Birka in Lake Mälar was established in the 8th century and became an impor- tant international trading port. As far as we know, no Swedish coins were minted at that time but foreign coins, mostly Arabic, circulated widely. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 70 Up to at least the end of the 13th century, five different types of penny were minted inside what are Sweden’s borders today and each type was tallied in its own way. There were Geatish pennies, Svealand pennies, Gotlandic pennies, Scanian pennies and pennies from the county of Jämtland. The last two types of penny were part of Danish and Norwegian minting, respectively, while the first two types – Geatish and Svealand pennies – were united into a single mainland monetary system, Swedish pennies, sometime around the year 1300. Gotlandic pennies have been found in many places round the Baltic Sea and played an important role in the south-eastern part of mainland Sweden up to at least the 1260s, 9 but also later in the 15th century. Thus, up to the late 13th century there were regional variations in the currency system. The following relation: 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug, held everywhere in Swe- den. However, while one mark was equal to 192 Swedish pennies or penning (plural: penningar) in Svealand, in Götaland/Geatland/Gothland (mainly in Värmland, Dalsland and Västergötland) it equalled 384 penning (i.e. 1 penning of Svealand = 2 penning of Götaland) and in Gotland it equalled 288 penning (the coins of Gotland also circulated in Öland, Småland and Östergötland). What is now the south of 9 Klackenberg (1992, p. 183). Silver coins and other silver objects from the late Iron Age. Photo: Gabriel Hildebrand/Museum of National Antiquities (in Stockholm). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 71 Sweden (Skåne, Blekinge and Halland) belonged to the Danish system, where ini- tially one örtug was equal to 10–12 penning. 10 When the Swedish mainland got the same currency system around 1300, the Svealand system was adopted, i.e. 1 mark = 192 penning also in Götaland. This tran- sition to a common monetary system was part of the state formation process. How- ever, Gotland (which Denmark conquered in the 1360s) retained its own system. 11 The Gotlandic mark (mark gutnisk) was of the same or lower value than the Swedish mainland mark (see Table A3.2). 12 From 1340 a coin of higher denomination called gote was minted in Gotland. Initially, the division into mark, örtug and penning was a common Nordic sys- tem. In the 14th century Denmark and Norway adopted the German system, where 1 mark = 16 skilling = 192 pennies. Gotland and Götaland adopted the Danish counting system from around 1450. 13 All through the Middle Ages (as well as later) foreign coins were also in use in Sweden. This phenomenon can be seen as a typical feudal trait. One use of foreign money was for trade in export harbours such as Stockholm and Kalmar or cross- border trade in the regions that were close to Norway and Denmark. Thus, Danish and German coins were often in use in the forested province of Småland. 14 Foreign money was also in use when the domestic coin was debased (see below) and when the Crown for one reason or another ceased to mint, as seems to have been the case in Sweden in several years around 1400. 15 There are many examples of exchange rates on foreign coins. The most frequently mentioned up to the mid-14th century were English and French silver coins. In Denmark in 1332–52, the gros tournois functioned more or less as an official norm for the monetary system. 16 After 1350, German coins and various foreign gold coins came to play a larger role. No gold coins were minted in Sweden during the Middle Ages. * The Swedish pennies have not left many traces in the written sources from the mid- 12th up to the mid-13th century. This silence, together with the fact that the coins – like their Viking Age forerunner – were still made of almost pure silver, raises the question of how they were used in an economic context. Contemporary sources mention that pennies were weighed out, indicating that they were treated as bullion 10 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 773). 11 Franzén (2006, p. 40). 12 Franzén (2006, pp. 156–8). 13 Jonsson and Östergren (1998) and Hallenberg (1798). 14 Klackenberg (1992, pp. 183–4). 15 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 842), and SDhk 16586. 16 Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 16). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 72 rather than money (including foreign coins). 17 In the second half of the 13th century the production of coins increased in the realm, and references in the sources indicate that they were in regular use in the expanding markets. Archaeological evidence sug- gests that at the turn of the 14th century money was commonly used not only among aristocrats and burghers, but also among peasants in the countryside. Only the far- northern part of Sweden, with its populated river valleys, was still outside this mod- ernization. 18 There was undoubtedly a trend towards using more and more money in eco- nomic transactions in Sweden. This tendency was intensified during the Late Middle Ages (1350–1527), albeit with periods of severe monetary setbacks. From the mid- 13th century – even earlier on the island of Gotland 19 – the trend in Sweden was for new coins to have less and less intrinsic value; in other words, Swedish pennies included more and more copper at the expense of their silver content. This was not confined to Sweden. The same phenomenon is clearly evident in the more advanced regions in western Europe. Older coins with a higher intrinsic value were melted down or tallied in a higher nominal than the new coins. 20 Under such circumstances – when a coin’s debasement was characterized by trans- parency – it was a modernizing step (towards today’s money, which has no intrinsic value). Another point to note is the importance of money in the special function of legal tender, that is, when the regent accepts his coins as payment of taxes. Such a benevolent royal attitude can be seen as a way of raising the market value of money and helping trade to expand. This was clearly the case during long periods in the Middle Ages, but there were times when a fiat type of money appeared. This was not uncommon in states of cri- sis, such as during wars and outbreaks of the plague, or simply as a result of royal incompetence. In the 1350s, 1360s, 1510s and early 1520s emergency coins, consist- ing almost entirely of copper, were minted in Sweden. Archaeological finds have shown that several types were covered with a thin layer of silver in an attempt to make them look much more precious than they really were. 21 Such a swindle could possibly result in large profits for the Crown, but not for long. The disclosure of such a fraud severely undermined confidence in the monetary system. Goods other than coins were also used for transactions in medieval Sweden. Prim- itive barter, where one good was simply exchanged for another good, was still prac- ticed in Sweden but there was also an exchange of goods against goods in the markets that were part of what we might call a monetarised economy. Since money is just one good among other goods (see above), it was often not possible for a buyer to provide the seller with coins. But medieval man created several witty methods of solving this 17 Klackenberg (1992, p. 185). 18 Klackenberg (1992, p. 179). 19 Myrberg (2008, p. 181). 20 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 936), and Franzén (1998, p. 222). 21 Malmer (1980, p. 58), and Franzén (2006, pp. 77–8). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 73 problem. One was the construction of credit institutions such as pawns and guaran- tors. Another was to use goods other than money as if they were money, so called intermediary goods. 22 In fact, intermediary goods can be regarded as money if they are valued in monetary terms. Silver spoons and iron are two examples of popular substi- tutes for coins and they were often given a price tag in monetary terms when used as cash or credits (pledges) in the markets. 23 Charters that can be described as mortgage deeds expressed in monetary terms are known from as early as the second half of the 13th century (when real property was pawned). 24 All in all, payments in ready money, in mints, were an exception rather than a rule in medieval economic transactions. 3.3. The exchange rate between mark penningar and mark lödig For the 16th century, the gross weight of one silver mark (mark lödig) is generally assumed to have been 210.616 grams of silver, which amounted to 9/10ths of the Cologne mark (233.8 grams). Up to the 14th century, it was not uncommon for purchases of land and other relatively large transactions to be made in silver marks, that is, in weighed silver. The fact that the payment was in weighed silver was some- times explicitly recorded. 25 Payment could also be in weighed gold; this was not rare in early transactions. In what may be the earliest recorded purchase of any kind in Sweden, King Knut announced that he had exchanged one of his farms for landed property in the prov- ince of Södermanland owned by a monastery. In this transaction, which took place some time between 1167 and 1185, the monks also paid 12 marks in gold. 26 Another early document, from the province of Småland, records the purchase of fishing water by the Nydala monastery for three marks in gold. This transaction was confirmed by the King in about 1192. 27 Payment in weighed gold became less common after the mid-13th century. Due to successive debasement of the coin, the mark penningar deteriorated rela- tive to the silver mark during the Middle Ages, from 1:3 in the second half of the 13th century to 1:16 in the late 1510s. 28 As mentioned above, no mark coins were minted until the 16th century. The term ‘mark lödig’ is known from 1341 onwards. Before that the Latin term ‘marchas argenti puri’ (mark pure silver) was commonly used. Although we know roughly how much silver these terms referred to, there is some uncertainty about the 22 Heckscher (1941, pp. 45–6). 23 Franzén (1998, pp. 257–261). 24 Franzén (2006, pp. 50–1). 25 See, e.g., SDhk 761, and Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 938–9). 26 SDhk 214. 27 SDhk 268. See also SDhk 287. 28 Hildebrand (1894, p. 933) and Tordeman (1936, p. 92). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 74 gross weight, the fineness and whether it was minted or unminted silver. During the Middle Ages there seems to have been a shift in the meaning of this term. Mark lödig came to denote a gross weight rather than (almost) pure silver. 29 During the early Middle Ages the mark silver, which was a common Scandinavian measure, probably varied somewhat between regions. According to Hans Hilde- brand, the mark was 209 grams in Stockholm, 215 grams in Skara and 218 grams in Uppsala. 30 One uncertainty concerns the purity of mark lödig or marchas argenti puri. Chemically pure silver was not available before modern times. The maximum purity of silver in the Middle Ages was probably 95–96 per cent. If the silver mark con- tained only 85–95 per cent pure silver, its fine silver content would then be only 180–205 grams. 31 To complicate matters, the term mark silver (Latin: marcha argenti) could differ in meaning from marcha argenti puri and refer to a significantly lower unit of value 32 (for example, the mark silver of Riga and Gotland in the 14th 29 KHL, ‘mark’. 30 Hildebrand (1894, p. 757). 31 KHL, ‘mark’. 32 Hyötyniemi (1999, p. 8). A scale from the late Iron Age. Various medieval monetary units – such as mark, öre, örtug and penning – developed from weight measures with the same names. Photo: Museum of National Antiquities (in Stockholm) 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 75 century, discussed below). In Sweden, however, the term mark silver (marcha argenti) was mostly synonymous with marcha argenti puri. 33 In 1272, a source from Forsheda in Småland counted the mark silver or mark sterling as 144 sterling coins. Since the fine silver content of the sterling was 1.338 grams, 34 this mark silver contained 193 grams fine silver. In another source, from Lübeck in 1267, the mark sterling is counted as 160 sterlings (see Table A3.7). From these two sources it can be established that the Swedish mark silver or mark sterling was 90 percent of the mark sterling used in Lübeck, which is exactly the relation between mark lödig and the Cologne mark in the 16th century. However, this deter- mination of the mark silver is not consistent with all sources. Moreover, the exchange rate in Sweden probably differed from that abroad. In 1282, the Vatican put the Swedish silver mark as equal to 0.8532934 marks of Troy weight, which in turn was valued 160 sterlings, implying that the Swedish mark silver was set equal to only 136.5 sterlings or 182 grams fine silver in sterling coins (1.332 grams fine silver per sterling). According to the same source, the Danish mark silver was 4 per cent larger than the Swedish. 35 In 1334, 1 mark silver was set equal to 5 marks penningar, and 15 marks pennin- gar to 160 gros tournois (see Table A3.6). 36 Since the fine silver content of 1 gros tournois was 3.6 grams, the relation would imply that 1 mark silver contained 192 grams fine silver in gros tournois. Brita Malmer shows that the fine silver content of the penning-coins in the early 14th century was 0.21 grams for group Kr H Ä I and 0.23 grams for group E H L S. 37 The exchange rate for the mark silver in the early 14th century was in the range 1:4.5 – 1:5. Assuming that the lighter coins, group Kr  H  Ä  I, circulated at the exchange rate of 1:5, that would imply that 1 mark silver was equivalent to around 200 grams pure silver, or 210 grams silver of 95–96 per cent fineness. 38 While during the 13th century and the first half of the 14th century the mark silver probably referred to minted silver of close to 90–95 per cent purity with a gross weight of 210–220 grams, in the 15th century the term mark lödig probably referred to unminted silver, which could be somewhat less pure. The value of unminted silver was lower than that of minted domestic coins in the late 14th and early 15th centu- ries (see Figure 3.2), i.e. free minting must have been restricted in one way or another, increasing the seignorage rate. Although Hans Forssell argues that in 15th century Lübeck the fine silver was of 98 to 99.5 per cent purity, 39 i.e. as fine as silver could 33 For an example, see SDhk 2506. 34 Lindert (2006). 35 SDhk 1207. See also Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, pp. 32 and 81). 36 See also Franzén (2006, p. 157, table 5:5). 37 Malmer (1980, pp. 15-19 and 242). 38 Te coins containing a larger amount of silver, belonging to group E H L S, must have circu- lated at a somewhat better exchange rate than 1:5, since assuming such a rate for these coins implies that the mark silver contained 220 grams pure silver, which seems rather unlikely. 39 Forssell (1872, p. 35). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 76 be made at that time, the Swedish mark lödig probably referred to silver of much lower purity. In 1479, goldsmiths were obliged to use silver of 14.5/16 (90.625 per cent) fineness (16 so-called lod = 100 per cent pure silver). In Västerås in 1524, a document refers to the mark lödig of 14/16 fineness (87.5 per cent pure silver), and in 1523 the melting of one mark lödig showed that its silver was of 13.75/16 fineness (85.9375 per cent pure silver). 40 In accordance with these sources, the assumption in the present study is that the silver mark was of 15/16 fineness up to 1350 and then linearly decreased to 14.5/16 fineness in 1479 and to 14/16 fineness in 1524. This implies that the silver mark contained 197 grams fine silver in 1350, 191 grams in 1479 and 184 grams in 1524 (see Table A3.1). In 1375–1400, the mark lödig was valued around 6 mark örtug, which contained around 150 grams fine silver in örtug coins. In 1420–40, the exchange rate of the mark lödig was quite stable at around 8.25 marks örtug, which contained around 170-175 grams fine silver in örtug coins. 41 In 1528, 1 mark lödig was worth around 20 marks örtug, which contained 177 grams fine silver in öre coins. 42 This implies that örtug coins usually circulated significantly above their intrinsic metal value. During the late Middle Ages many foreign silver coins seem to have circulated at a lower value per unit of silver than the domestic coins, or at roughly the same value as unminted silver, a clear difference with the situation in the early Middle Ages. For example in 1460, 1 mark lödig was worth around 7.7 marks of Lübeck, which con- tained around 180 grams fine silver. In 1484, 1 mark lödig was worth around 10 marks of Lübeck, which contained around 200 grams fine silver. 43 From the late 13th century, the downward trend in the fine silver content of the mark penningar was practically continuous and particularly notable in three periods: the decades around 1300, the early 15th century and the early 16th century. In addi- tion, temporary dips occurred in the 1350s, 1360s and early 1520s. These periods of debasement were characterized by war and civil strife, presumably pressing the rulers to use less silver in the coins. Figure 3.1 describes the fine silver equivalent of one mark penningar in 1277– 1539. By the latter date, the mark penningar held only one tenth of the amount of silver it had contained in the late 13th century. The graph is based on around 800 quotations stating the value of the mark penningar relative to the silver mark. With the exception of land prices, this is probably the densest economic series available for medieval Sweden. The large number of quotations indicates the importance that was attached to documenting the relationship between mark silver and mark penningar in economic transactions. Most of these transactions concern sales of landed prop- 40 KHL, ‘mark’. 41 Tordeman (1936, p. 39), and Table A3.1. 42 Wallroth (1918, p. 19). 43 Forssell (1872, p. 35). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 77 erty, which of course represented relatively large sums of money at the time. The annual values are found in Table A3.1. Specifying the exchange rate of the mark penningar relative to the silver mark eliminates one source of uncertainty in economic transactions. The seller was assured that he/she would not receive payment in debased money, and the buyer could be confident that there could be no future claims for payment. 3.4. Exchange rates in the 12th and 13th centuries The second half of the 12th century and the 13th century (mainly the latter) saw a monetarisation of the economy. While coins played hardly any role in the life of an ordinary peasant around the year 1200, a century later this was no longer the case. 44 A large part of the economy had been monetarised, even though barter still domi- nated exchange. The silver coins that circulated up to the 12th century were not fully monetary objects. 45 They had to be weighed and were worth just their value as silver metal. 44 Klackenberg (1992), and Holmberg (1995, p. 64). 45 Klackenberg (1992, p. 185). 0 10 20 30 40 50 60 1260 1280 1300 1320 1340 1360 1380 1400 1420 1440 1460 1480 1500 1520 1540 S i l v e r c o n t e n t , g r a m s Figure 3.1. Silver equivalence (grams) of one Swedish mark (mark penningar), 1277–1539, based on the exchange rate on mark silver (mark lödig). Source: Table A3.1. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 78 They were not distinct from other silver objects. 46 These coins served as a medium of exchange, but only in limited contexts (i.e. they were only special-purpose money). 47 In contrast, in the more developed parts of Europe (Western and Central Europe) the coins were counted since their face value was guaranteed by the ruler. As late as in the second half of the 13th century, a payment of 20 marks silver was made by weighing up pennies of Sweden and Gotland, 48 although there are also examples of Swedish coins being counted from this century. The earliest evidence of exchange rates refers to the last decades of the 13th cen- tury. Petter Dijkman wrote in 1686 that he had access to old sales documents stating that 1 mark silver was worth 3 mark penningar in the years 1277–83, 1289 and 1298. 49 For 1335 and 1350, he puts the exchange rate at 1:4.5. The sales documents from 1277–89 no longer exist, but it is quite likely that Dijkman did have access to documents that have now been lost. Dijkman was careful only to use direct sources as evidence of early exchange rates. The exchange rates he reports from the 1290s onwards are confirmed by other sources that still exist. For the period 1277–82, the Vatican valued 1 mark in Troy weight at 5.344 Swedish mark penningar, and (as mentioned above) 1 Swedish mark silver at 0.8532934 marks of Troy weight, imply- ing: 1 Swedish mark silver = 4.56 Swedish marks penningar. 50 In 1291, two different sources valued the mark silver at 3 and 4.25 marks penningar, respectively. 51 Another source sets the value of 1 mark penningar at 10.2 gros tournois in 1291, implying that the fine silver content of 1 mark penningar was just 41 grams (see Table A3.6). Assuming that 1 mark silver contained 197 grams fine silver, this would entail an exchange rate of 1:4.8 between mark silver and mark penningar in 1291. Thus both Dijkman’s and the Vatican’s exchange rates for the 1270s and 1280s were still preva- lent in the early 1290s. The large differences in exchange rates in the late 13th century were most likely due to the parallel circulation of older and newer pennies that contained different amounts of fine silver. By the early 14th century, the older higher-valued coins had been withdrawn from circulation. No written sources seem to exist on the exchange rate before the 1270s. Opinions about the development of the exchange rate between mark silver and mark pennin- gar during the course of the 12th and 13th centuries fall into two main categories. 46 See Spuford (1988, p. 67). Stanley Jevons (1875, ch. Ix) describes this as a ‘system of currency by weight’. He also points out that such a system was practiced in his own time (the 19th cen- tury). He writes: ‘In all large international transactions, again, currency by weight is the sole method. Te regulations of a state concerning its legal tender have no validity beyond its own frontiers; and as all coins are subject to more or less wear and uncertainty of weight, they are received only for the actual weight of metal they are estimated to contain.’ 47 Turborg (1989). 48 SDhk 761. 49 Dijkman (1686, pp. 78-79). 50 SDhk 1207. See also Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, pp. 81 and 85). 51 Franzén (2006, p. 294). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 79 Some researchers, for example Hildebrand and Bengt Thordeman, assume that the mark penningar was equal to the silver mark in the 12th century, when minting was resumed in Sweden, and the beginning of the 13th century. 52 This view presupposes successive debasements during the 12th and 13th centuries. The other view is that there was no such equivalence in the 12th century. Brita Malmer argues that the deterioration in the value of mark penningar took the form of decreasing fineness rather than a reduction of the coin’s weight. This is logical since a decrease in weight is easier to detect than a decrease in fineness. A decrease in fineness can be observed during the course of the Middle Ages, while the weight of the Swedish pennies remained stable. While the gross weight of Swedish coins was unchanged during the 13th century, their fineness decreased by around 15–20 per cent. 53 To argue for equivalence between mark silver and mark penningar in the 12th century, Thordeman has to assume that the 12th century coins were ¼ penning coins. However, it is also likely that the relation between mark silver and the mark in penning coins was initially adjusted to international conditions. In Denmark, the relation between mark silver and mark penningar was 1:2 to 1:3 (see Table A3.3). It is entirely possible that this was also the relation in Sweden when minting was resumed in the 12th century. This is consistent with evidence that the intrinsic metal value of Swedish coins did not decrease substantially during the course of the 12th and 13th centuries and that the relation 1:3 can be confirmed by written sources in the late 13th century. The provincial law of Uppland, confirmed by the King in 1296, mentions two different mark currencies: mark karlgill and mark köpgild. 1 öre karlgill was equal to 12 penning and 1 öre köpgild to 8 penning. Mark karlgill has been interpreted as mark silver, implying that the exchange rate between mark silver and mark pennin- gar was 1:1.5 not long before the Uppland law had been written. Dovring argues quite convincingly that this is unlikely considering the much larger value difference between mark silver and mark penningar in this period. 54 The existence of a better mark, not equal to the marcha argenti puri, alongside the mark in common circula- tion was a frequent phenomenon during the Middle Ages (not least as a safeguard against the deteriorated currency). For example, in Norway the term mark forngild was used in the 14th century and had the same value as the 13th century mark in pennies. 55 In late 13th century Sweden, the exchange rate of mark silver for mark penningar varied from 1:3 to 1:4.5 (both exchange rates are confirmed by written sources, as mentioned above), i.e. the ratio between the lowest and the highest rates was the same as between mark karlgild and mark köpgild. During the Middle Ages it was not unusual for various fines (more fixed in time) to be paid in better currency, 52 Hildebrand (1894, vol I:2, p. 933), and Tordeman (1936). 53 Malmer (1980), and Hemmingsson (2005). 54 KHL, ‘mark’, and Dovring (1951). 55 Hyötyniemi (1999, p. 8). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 80 while market transactions (which were more variable) were allowed to be made in the deteriorated currency; the latter occurred, for example, in Götaland during the 1410s when the debased Gotlandic coins drove out the better Swedish mainland coins (see below). 56 3.5. The debasement cycles of the 14th century In Sweden, periods of high inflation caused by debasement cycles are not docu- mented prior to the 16th century but there are certain indications that debasement cycles did occur earlier. Most notably in the 1350s and 1360s (following the Black Death), the fine silver content of minted coins decreased substantially. A Swedish coin is mentioned in 1358 that was reduced to one-third of its value against the Norwegian coin, whereas it had recently been at par with the latter. In Kalmar, 1,919 mark penningar were minted in inferior coins in 1361–3 and 785 mark penningar in better coins in 1364–5. 57 Hence it is possible that two debase- ment cycles occurred, one in the 1350s and the other in the early 1360s. Another source relates that the payment of Peter’s pence in 1356–62 was made in a coin that was ‘bad, and of no or inferior value’. When the peasants in 1363 wanted to pay the tax to the Pope in the same bad coins, the tax collectors refused to accept a coin that had been withdrawn from circulation. 58 A better coin was introduced in that year. Bengt Thordeman and Brita Malmer have studied two different types of penning: ME II:1 (Th XX) and ME II:2 (Th XXI), which were minted at end of the reign of King Magnus IV Ericson (1319–64). 59 Both were substantially debased compared to earlier coins. While the fine silver content of the one penning coin minted during the 1340s (ME I:2 or Th XIX) is, on average, 0.22 grams (implying that 1 mark pen- ningar contained 42 grams of fine silver), the fine silver content of ME II:1 varies between 0.02 and 0.17 grams and of ME II: 2 between 0.05 and 0.1 grams. Assum- ing that both ME II: 1 and ME II: 2 were one penning coins, 1 mark penningar of ME II: 1 contained 4 to 33 grams of fine silver, while 1 mark of ME II: 2 contained 10 to 19 grams of fine silver. Thordeman concludes that ME  II:  1 and ME  II:  2 were, in fact, half-penning coins. However, Malmer disagrees; the very large variation in the fine silver content of ME II: 1 rather indicates a gradual deterioration of the coin, which is typical for a debasement cycle (for example, during the 16th century in Sweden). According to Malmer, an ME II: 1 coin had a fine silver content that at its highest, 0.17 grams, was 20–25 per cent less than that of the previously minted 1-penning coins, and therefore it could not have been a half-penning-coin. 56 See footnote 102. 57 Golabiewski Lannby (1995, pp. 93–4), Rasmusson, (1943, p. 271), Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 935), and SDhk 8633. 58 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 830–1). 59 Malmer (1980, pp. 22–3), and Tordeman (1936, pp. 33–4). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 81 The circulation of the worst coins would imply a tenfold increase in prices, assum- ing that prices followed debasement. However, prices are missing for several years. 60 Although direct exchange rates between mark silver and mark penningar are missing for the years when the deterioration in value most likely took place (1352–3 and 1361–2), there are two notations on foreign coins. Using cross exchange rates, these two notations provide information about the value of mark silver in mark penningar. The two quotations show that the exchange rate deteriorated substantially, although not as much as the decrease in the fine silver content of the most debased coins. In March 1351, one mark silver in Cologne weight was still valued at 6 marks penningar (i.e. 1 mark silver in Swedish weight = 5.4 marks penningar). 61 In July 1353, 50 Flemish marks groschen were valued at as much as 950 marks penningar, i.e. 1 Flemish mark groschen = 19 marks penningar. 62 The mark groschen was equal to 120 groschen or ½ pound groschen. In 1353, 1 mark groschen was valued at 6.2882 gold florins or 3.875 marks of Lübeck. 63 Since the mark silver was usually worth 4.5 gold florins 64 or 45 schillinge of Lübeck, this would imply that in 1353, 1 mark silver was valued at 13.6 or 13.8 marks penningar, 13.7 being the average. This 60 Franzén (2006, pp. 77 and 232). 61 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 759). 62 SDhk 6594. 63 Spuford (1986, pp. 215 and 227). 64 In 1363, 1000 marks silver in Cologne weight were valued at 5000 gold forins, i.e. 1 mark sil- ver Swedish weight = 4.5 forins. See Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 1295). A minted örtug from Åbo in Finland in the second half of the 14th century; it contained around one gram of fne silver. At that time, one örtug was a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around four hours’ work in Stockholm (its equivalent in the late 1990s would be a 500-kronor note). It could buy around 0.9 kg of butter or four litres of beer. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 82 exchange rate is consistent with the notation that the debased coins were later reduced to one-third of their nominal value. Papal sources show that a new coin was introduced on February 22nd 1354 and they clearly distinguish between coins collected before and after that date. The old coin was collected throughout the period 1351–3, which shows that the debased coins could have been in circulation during that time. 65 The new coin must have been a better one, since in both 1355 and 1356, one mark silver in Cologne weight was valued at 6 marks penningar (i.e. 1 mark silver Stockholm weight = 5.4 marks penningar). 66 Sources from 1352 and 1353 refer to mark penningar as paid in either proper coins (prompta pecunia) or common coins now in circulation (vsualis monete nunc currentis), which shows that older, better coins probably circulated at a premium alongside debased coins. In December 1361, the fee to Vadstena monastery was set at ½ penny of Lübeck or at one or several Swedish pennies, depending on the current value of the coins (‘pro qualitate monete tunc currentis’). 67 During the stable currency, 1 Swedish penny was equal to ½ penny of Lübeck. This example clearly shows that various coins circulated at quite different exchange rates, and that 1 mark silver was valued at maybe between 5.5 (since 1 mark silver was worth around 2.75 marks of Lübeck) and 10–20 marks penningar, depending on the rate. The only price quotation from when the debasements took place (1352–3 and 1361–2) is for copper in 1361, when copper was valued at 50 marks per ship pound, 68 the highest notation in the whole of the Middle Ages. By way of comparison, in 1366–7 copper was sold for 25 marks per ship pound and in 1333 for 10 marks per ship pound. Assuming that the exchange rate between mark lödig and mark pennin- gar stabilised at 1:6 after 1363, the price of copper in 1361 indicates an exchange rate of (at least) 1:12. The newer coins that circulated during the reign of Albert of Sweden (1363–89) had a lower fine silver content than the better coins which circulated before the mid- 14th century. During this period the örtug was struck as a coin for the first time, copying the German Witten. 69 Earlier the örtug had existed only as a unit of account equal to 8 penning. Its fine silver content was 1.05 grams, implying that the fine silver content of 1 mark penningar had decreased to just 25 grams, 70 a decline of around 60 per cent since the first half of the 14th century. However, the exchange rate of the mark silver in mark penningar decreased by only around 20 per cent from the level in the first half of the 14th century, an indication that coins circulated at a 65 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 909), and SDhk 6799. 66 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 952 and 969). 67 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990 no. 1243). 68 SDhk 8007. 69 Malmer (1980, p. 33). 70 Tordeman (1936, p. 90). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 83 value significantly above their intrinsic metal content, allowing a substantial increase in the seignorage rate. 3.6. The gold:silver exchange rate Silver and gold were both considered to be scarce in Sweden. In the early 1320s, papal emissaries reported that the money they had collected in Sweden had to be kept in the form of the domestic currency, since the scarcity of gold and silver pre- vented its swift exchange. Some of the money had been transformed into useful things (‘res utiles’), such as horses. 71 Foreign gold coins were readily accepted in Sweden. The florin (Latin: floreni), the Florentine gold coin with a weight of 3.53 grams, began to be minted in 1252 and quickly became the dominant international trading coin. It is mentioned in Swedish sources from the end of the 13th century and appears frequently during the 14th century, especially in connection with the activities of papal emissaries. 72 Dur- ing the 15th century, use of the Florentine florin seems to have declined in Sweden; it was partly replaced by the Hungarian florin, which held the same weight and fine- ness as its Italian counterpart. 73 A florin from 1347. Source: Wikipedia, ‘Italian coin forin’. 71 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no 37). 72 Te earliest mention in Sweden appears to be in a letter from 1297 which records a payment of 500 forins by the archbishop at Uppsala; SDhk 1760. 73 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 906 and 911). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 84 Hungarian florin struck in 1353–7. Source: Wikipedia, ‘Guilder’. English gold coins were in frequent use in Sweden during the 15th century. The large coins, nobles, minted during the reign of Edward III, were particularly popu- lar. A noble, minted in London in 1354–5. The obverse (left) depicts the king standing in a ship. Source: Wikipedia, ‘Noble (English coin)’. During the latter part of the 15th century, nobles were increasingly replaced by Ger- man gyllen or gulden. These coins were minted in several parts of Germany. The 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 85 most widely used type in Sweden was the Rhinish gulden (Latin: floreni rinenses; Swedish: rhensk gyllen). As these coins became widespread during the late 15th and early 16th centuries, it became more common to specify the exchange rate between mark penningar and the Rhinish gulden, rather than the rate of the domestic coin to the silver mark. 74 A Rhinish gulden from Mainz, minted between 1399 and 1402. Source: Wikipedia, ‘Guilder’. The earliest information on the exchange rate between gold and silver (the bimetallic ratio) dates from the first part of the 13th century, when the provincial law of Västergötland stipulated that the price for freeing a slave should be 2 öre in gold or 2 marks in silver. 75 Since 8 öre made 1 mark, this amounts to a gold:silver exchange rate of 1:8. However, there is no information as to whether or not this rate was used in actual transactions. In large parts of Europe, between 1250 and 1330 the gold:silver ratio rose from about 1:9 to 1:15. After about 1330, the ratio in Continental Europe and England declined to between 1:10 and 1:11 at the time of the Black Death, reaching a mini- mum in the early 15th century. During the course of the 15th century, gold became more scarce, and the bimetallic ratio rose somewhat. In central and southern Europe it often fell to between 1:11 and 1:12 during the latter half of the 15th century. 76 There are, however, some areas where the relative price of silver was higher. In north- ern Germany, Hamburg often exhibits higher gold:silver ratios. During the latter 74 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 910). 75 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 948). 76 Day (1978, pp. 34, 40), and Spuford (1986, pp. lxi, lxiii). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 86 half of the 15th century the average was about 1:12, fluctuating between 1:10 and 1:15. 77 Bimetallic ratios can be calculated for Sweden if the specie contents of mark pen- ningar and foreign gold coins are known, as well as the exchange rates of these coins. For the period 1328–1534 we have found over 100 exchange rate quotations between various gold coins and Swedish mark penningar. Based on the value of florins (see Table A3.11), it appears that the bimetallic ratio in Sweden was remarkably high around 1330 (at 1:15 to 1:18) and went into a long-term decline thereafter. For a long time, Swedish exchange rates were rather favourable for owners of for- eign gold coins. Compared to most European bimetallic ratios, the amount of silver that had to be paid for minted gold in Sweden was high, at least up to the mid-15th century. This may reflect the confidence and status that were associated with the foreign coins, which for long periods held a constant weight of gold. The value of gold coins could fluctuate significantly. Obviously, contemporaries did not always agree about exchange rates, which were set in a local context. High costs of information and transport may have contributed to a considerable disparity in exchange rates, which could also have been affected by variability in the age and specie content of the coins. The term ‘florin’, for example, does not necessarily refer to the original Florentine coin since florins were copied at many places in Europe, with varying specie content. Wear and tear of the individual coins was no doubt also taken into account in transactions. This suggests a lack of monetary integration, which is not unexpected, given that the Hanseatic area was a rather backward economic zone compared to highly devel- oped regions such as the Netherlands. A recent study reveals that money markets between Lübeck and Prussia were not well integrated in the 14th and 15th centu- ries. 78 Sweden could be expected to be a peripheral region of the Hanseatic area. Gold always had to be imported to Sweden, pushing its price up. Little is known about how gold flowed into Sweden but international trade was clearly a major source. In 1369, for example, Edward III of England allowed a London burgher to send 200 pounds in gold or silver in order to buy herring in Scania (which was then part of Denmark). 79 Churches in Sweden were prominent buyers of expensive gob- lets and other gold objects, nearly all of which were melted down at the time of the Reformation around 1530, or even earlier. Much of the gold came from the Low Countries. 80 Bringing gold to Sweden, then, would normally require sea transport. A major risk associated with maritime transports was piracy. Pirates were a serious threat to trade in the Baltic area during several medieval periods. One example is Eric XIII (Erik of Pomerania), who turned to piracy after he was deposed as king of the Nordic 77 Volckart (2007, p. 51). 78 Volckart and Wolf (2006, pp. 123–4). 79 SDhk 9491. 80 Rasmusson (1962, pp. 177–81), and Källström (1939). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 87 countries in 1439. Based on a fortress on the island of Gotland, he successfully raided many ships. In 1446, he lost a ship off the province of Småland carrying a valuable cargo of gold and silver, as well as other costly goods, that had been collected as taxes in Sweden. Baltic piracy was still a problem at the end of the Middle Ages. 81 Transporting money, as well as other valuables, by land could also be rather risky. The papal emissaries to Sweden faced these dangers when they had to transport and protect the large sums of money they collected in the form of taxes and contribu- tions. On one occasion in 1328, the emissaries sent a monk, escorted by twelve armed horsemen, to fetch a sizeable sum of money that had been deposited at the towns of Uppsala and Strängnäs. Despite his escort, he did not dare to take the money further than to the monastery of Riseberga in the province of Närke, about 80 kilometres from Strängnäs, where it was left on the advice of the bishop of Sträng- näs. Later, the emissaries and the bishop sent an escort of 40 horses to collect the money that had been left at Riseberga. The treasure was further transported to the town of Lödöse on Sweden’s west coast. During this journey, the risk of ambush made the emissaries drive their horses so hard that the animals were injured and had to be sold at a substantial loss on their arrival at Lödöse. From Lödöse, the money was shipped to the Netherlands. 82 The emissaries had every reason to be cautious. Some years earlier, in 1318, a sum of money collected by papal emissaries had been stolen from the cathedral of Växjö in the province of Småland when a band of robbers broke into the chests where the money was stored. 83 After a robbery in the province of Västergötland about a cen- tury later, a clergyman reported to the pope that the money collected had to be taken out of the country in secret. 84 The threat could come not only from robbers but also from the king himself. In about 1460, a papal emissary asked two monks to bring a sum of silver from Skara in Västergötland to the monastery of Julita in the province of Södermanland. The emis- sary instructed the monks to do this in secret and hide the silver in a bottle of beer; according to him, if the king learnt about the silver he would seize all of it. 85 Three silver mines seem to have been worked in medieval Sweden. Two of them were in the province of Dalecarlia (Dalarna). One was Väster Silvberg, a place name meaning ‘western silver mountain’ (‘de monte argenti’ in a Latin document from 1367); the earliest reference to it is from 1354. There were plans to establish a mint there in 1375, which may indicate a fairly substantial output of silver. However, this 81 Vadstenadiariet (1996, no. 564, p. 251). For a description of various periods of more or less intense piracy, see Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 605–15). 82 Brilioth (1915, pp. 157-159), and Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 136d). See also Hildebrand (1879, vol. I:1, p. 36), for an example of robbery of money in the forests between the provinces of Östergötland and Småland in the late 14th century. 83 Brilioth (1915, p. 158). 84 Beckman (1954, p. 32). 85 SDhk 27528. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 88 mine fell into disuse long before the end of the Middle Ages. The other Dalecarlian mine, Öster Silvberg (‘eastern silver mountain’), was started in about 1480 and seems to have fallen into disuse around 1510, when a larger deposit was detected at Sala in the province of Västmanland. 86 The Crown was always eager to control silver mining. In 1489 the government stipulated that all the silver that was produced in the mines had to be sold to the master of the royal mint at the town of Västerås. The stated reason for this measure was that the amount of coin in the country should increase and not be taken abroad, as had been the case up to now. Even the goldsmiths were now obliged to buy their silver only from the master of the royal mint. 87 Silver spoons are often mentioned in late medieval documents, and have also been uncovered in archaeological investigations. They were an important form of savings, as well as status objects, for peasants as well as for townspeople. These spoons could also be used as a means of payment, as their weight appears to have been rather stan- dardized. 88 Taking into account the supply of specie in Sweden, then, it is not surprising that gold was expensive relative to silver. Even so, the exchange rates on gold coins indi- cate a declining trend over time in the bimetallic ratio in Sweden. 89 Most of the few florin exchange rates available date from the years around 1330, whereas noble exchange rate quotations are most common in the period 1420–60. The Rhinish gulden occurs most frequently during the decades around 1500. There is a remark- able lack of data from about 1365 up to 1420. This could indicate that foreign gold coins played a minor role in the Swedish economy during this period, most of which was characterized by demographic decline in the wake of the Black Death. In 1363 one gold florin was valued 0.2 marks silver in Cologne weight, which would imply a gold:silver value ratio of roughly 1:12 to 1:13. The exchange rate on nobles (see Table A3.8) in the first half of the 15th century seems to imply a higher gold:silver ratio (at 1:12 to 1:14) than the average internationally. The exchange rates on the Rhinish gulden (Table A3.9) in the late 15th and early 16th centuries are more prob- lematic since it is not clear whether the mark in Götaland referred to mark örtug or mark danska (equal to 0.75 marks örtug), but these rates do suggest a lower gold:silver ratio than in the first half of the 15th century. How is the gradual improvement in the position of silver over gold to be explained? Although Swedish silver coins continued to be debased, over time each gram of silver in them tended to fetch increasing amounts of gold when exchanged against foreign coins. 86 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 718 and 732), and Ekström (1948). Silver was probably not produced continuously at Silvberg. As late as 1511, however, the Crown purchased silver at Silv berg for minting purposes; SDhk 36922. 87 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 732 and 916). 88 Franzén (1998, pp. 113–4), and Myrdal and Söderberg (1991, p. 95). 89 Information on the gold content of the coins is found in Volckart (2006). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 89 It is possible that the supply of foreign gold coins in Sweden increased, which would have tended to alleviate the scarcity of gold. This cannot be determined with any certainty. We know, however, that gold possessions in the form of rings or Rhin- ish gulden are often recorded in the towns of Stockholm and Arboga during the lat- ter part of the 15th century and the early 16th. 90 Another indication that gold became less scarce in Sweden is the frequency with which foreign gold coins are mentioned, compared to other coins, in medieval docu- ments. The digital database Svenskt Diplomatariums huvudkartotek (SDhk), pro- duced by the National Archive of Sweden, presently contains summaries of texts of about 41,000 charters from the medieval era. Table 3.1 summarizes some informa- tion on how often various types of coin are mentioned in this database (note, how- ever, that the possibility that some evidence in the charters is missing in the database cannot be ruled out). Table 3.1. Number of documents (or summaries of documents) in which the most common foreign gold coins are mentioned compared to ‘mark’. Period Total number of documents Documents men- tioning foreign gold coins Documents men- tioning ‘mark’ Foreign gold coins in per cent of ‘mark’ 1340–1419 15,286 294 3,143 9 1420–99 15,103 376 1,859 20 Source: SDhk. Note: Te gold coins included are forins, nobles, and gulden. Not all references to ‘mark’ denote the Swedish mark; they could also indicate Lübeck marks, Danish marks etc. The right-hand column of Table 3.1 thus informs us about the frequency with which the most common foreign gold coins (florins, nobles, and gulden) are mentioned compared to Swedish as well as other silver (or sometimes copper) coins. The role of foreign gold coins appears to have increased. They are mentioned more frequently in the period 1420–99 than during the preced- ing period 1340–1419, particularly compared to references to ‘mark’, which became less frequent. The greater availability of gold coins could to some extent explain why the bimetallic ratio in Sweden changed in the favour of silver during the late medi- eval period. According to Table 3.1, the number of documents referring to ‘mark’ decreased over time. This should not be taken as an indication of de-monetization in the 15th century (although that possibility cannot be excluded, either). The smaller number of references to ‘mark’ may be due to the fact that in the SDhk database, many docu- 90 Franzén (1998, pp. 107, 112), and Rasmusson (1962, p. 181). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 90 ments after 1420 are available only as short summaries omitting details of payment, whereas documents prior to 1420 are often published in full. 3.7. Mark gutnisk and dansk during the 15th century During the 15th century, different mark currency units were used concurrently in Sweden – mark gutnisk, mark jämtsk, mark svensk, mark stockholmsk, mark dansk, mark östgötsk, mark rigisk, mark stackota, etc. Moreover, Finland developed its own counting system. There is some confusion as to what exactly some of these terms denoted. Meanings often differed even within the same period. This situation reflects the fact that the monetary system was not fully unified, and that significant regional differences persisted, a kind of monetary refeudalisation. Partly due to the Kalmar Union, Danish and Gotlandic coins circulated widely in Götaland. It was not until the reign of Gustavus Vasa, and the end of the Kalmar Union, that the monetary systems of Götaland, Svealand and Finland were unified once more. In the second half of the 14th and the early 15th centuries the Nordic countries and the Wendish towns de facto formed a monetary system, where attempts were made to fix the exchange rates between different coins. 91 The Hanseatic towns started to mint a coin of higher denomination, named Witten, equal to 4 pfennings or 1/48 mark. In Sweden, the larger örtug coins were minted with the same weight (1.3 grams) and fineness as the German Witten. Since the örtug was equal to 1/24 mark örtug, this implies that one Swedish örtug was roughly equal in value to the Witten. The German Witten coin could also be referred to as German örtug. 92 Denmark fol- lowed the Wendish towns and minted Witten coins of its own, called hvid. The relation: 1 Lübeck mark = 2 marks örtug is confirmed by written sources in 1349– 75. In Götaland in the early 15th century, German, Danish and Gotlandic coins dominated the circulation. A source from Småland in 1417 discusses a mark currency unit for which the fol- lowing relation applied (1 mark = 8 öre): 93 1 öre = 4 ‘gutnyska’ = 4 ‘ængliska’ = 3 ‘hwyte pænnia’ A similar relation is documented from other sources during the 1410s for the Göta- land region. 94 The common application of the relation shows the dominance of for- 91 Lundholm (1956, pp. 211–5). 92 SDhk 17811. 93 SDhk 18918. 94 In Östergötland 1411 (Danmarks riges breve 310): 1 øre = 3 ‘hvide tyske penge’ = 4 ‘gotland- ske penge’ = 4 ‘engelske’. In Småland 1412 (SDhk 17811): 1 ‘øre’ = 3 ‘thydiska ørtogher’ = 4 ‘siælenske ængliske’ = 4 ‘gotniske’. In Östergötland 1415 (SDhk 18646): 1 ‘øre’ = 4 ‘ængliske’ = 3 ‘thyske hwite’ (the omission of Gotlandic coins shows that the öre referred to better coins in this case). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 91 eign coins in this region at the time. The ‘hwyte pænnia’ (white penny) referred to the German (and to a lesser extent the Danish) Witten coin, with the nominal value of 4 penning or 1/48 of a Lübeck (or Danish) mark. The ‘ænglisk’ (engelsk) mostly referred to the Danish 3-penny coin, equal to 1/64 of a Danish mark or one English sterling. Thus the relation states that one mark örtug was equal in value to 32 gotar or gutniska, or to half a Lübeck or a Danish mark. This relation was consistent with the fine silver contents of the various coins, although the German coins may have been undervalued. The Danish engelsk (ster- ling) minted in the late 14th and early 15th centuries had a fine silver content of 0.66 grams, implying that a Danish mark engelsk had the fine silver content of 42 grams (1 Danish mark engelsk = 16 skilling = 64 engelsk). In comparison, the fine silver content of 24 Swedish örtug, equal to one Swedish mark örtug, was 25 grams in the 14th century and 21 grams after 1405. The fine silver content of one mark gutnisk, equal to 32 gutar, was around 22 grams in 1340–1400, but was reduced significantly during the course of the 15th century. The fine silver content of the mark of Lübeck, equal to 48 Witten, was 50–55 grams in the late 14th century. 95 In 1401 it was reduced to 46 grams and in 1411 to 40 grams. 96 The relation 4 engelsk for 1 öre, half a Danish mark in engelsk for one Swedish mark, would be reasonable, given the silver contents of the Danish engelsk and the Swedish örtug. Yrjö Hyötyniemi argues convincingly that the relation 1 mark = 8 öre = 32 gotar was not a part of the Gotlandic monetary system, but was initially the counting of one Swedish mark in Gotlandic coins. The gote was originally a Gotlandic örtug, where 1 mark was equal to 24 gotar, and one gote to 12 Gotlandic pennies. How- ever, at times during the first half of the 14th century, Gotland adopted the mone- 95 KHL, ‘engelsk’ and ‘hvid’, and Tordeman (1936, pp. 38 and 57). 96 Nordström (1850, p. 129). Lübeck in the late middle ages. In the second half of the 14th century the Nordic countries and the Wendish towns formed a monetary system with fxed exchange rates between various coins. Source: http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/File:Lubeka_kolorowa_litografa_ksi%C4%85%C5%BCkowa_ XIVw.jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 92 tary system of Lübeck, where 1 gote was set equal to 3 pennies of Lübeck. The Got- landic mark was replaced by the silver mark of Gotland, which was equal to the mark of Lübeck, but counted in Gotlandic coins. One Gotlandic mark silver was initially set equal to 64 gotar or 768 Gotlandic pennies or 2⅔ of the traditional Gotlandic mark. The counting of 1 mark = 32 gotar was only possible because 1 Swedish mark was fixed at ½ mark of Lübeck. According to Hyötyniemi , the Gotlandic mark con- tinued to exist as a local custom. 97 Hyötyniemi’s hypothesis is supported by a source from 1343 stating that one Gotlandic silver mark was worth 30 groats of Flanders, which in the international markets was paid 0.9–1.1 marks of Lübeck (see Table A3.2). By the late 14th century, the fixed relations between various Nordic and German coins could no long be maintained. Other Danish coins were not as good as the ster- ling coins. For example, in 1386 the Danish mark was valued at only 0.625 marks of Lübeck and in 1406 at 0.75 marks of Lübeck. Although in 1405 the Gotlandic and Swedish marks were set equal in value, in 1389 1 Swedish mark was valued at 1.2 Gotlandic marks. In 1402, the Gotlandic silver mark was set equal to 32 öre, imply- ing (given that the öre was equal to 3 gotar in accordance with the traditional Got- landic system) that the gote was valued at only 2 pennies of Lübeck. 98 It was probably the old gotar with a higher fine silver content that was still valued at 6 penning (Swedish pennies) or 3 pennies of Lübeck in the early 15th century. Around 1410, Gotlandic coins seem to have deteriorated significantly compared to the Swedish. When a differentiation occurred between the Swedish mark and the mark of 32 gutar, the latter was initially called ‘tysk mark’ (German mark), which according to Hyötyniemi shows the connection to the Hansaetic monetary system. It was not until the 1420s that this mark was labelled mark gutnisk, but according to Hyötyniemi this was not a Gotlandic but a mainland Swedish mark. 99 By 1413, 1 Swedish mark was valued at 1.5 tyska marks (see Table A3.2). By 1424, 1 mark of Lübeck was worth 4 marks gutnisk/tysk and 2 Danish marks. 100 Since the 1 mark örtug was worth 2 or more marks gutnisk/tysk, this implies that by the 1420s the Danish mark was of an equal or even lower value than the Swedish mark. In 1453, one Swedish öre was set equal to 8 ‘old’ and 12 ‘new’ Danish engelsk. During the course of the 15th century, the fine silver content of the mark of Lübeck more than halved; it was reduced to 28 grams in 1424, to 25 grams in 1433 and to 20 grams in 1461. 101 The mark örtug was quite stable throughout the 15th century, and was reduced only slightly, from 20–21 grams in the first half of the century to 17–19 grams in the second half. Table A3.4 also shows that the exchange 97 Hyötyniemi (1999). 98 Hyötyniemi (1999, p. 9). 99 Hyötyniemi (2000, p. 47). 100 Lundholm (1956, p. 212). 101 Forssell (1872, p. 39), and Lundholm (1956, p. 213). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 93 rate of mark of Lübeck decreased from 2 marks örtug in the late 14th century to just 1 mark örtug in the second half of the 15th century. During the course of the 1410s the debased Gotlandic coins drove out the better Swedish örtug as well as the Danish engelsk and German Witten coins from circula- tion in Götaland. The force of Gresham’s Law is indicated by the Växjö Statute of 1414, which decreed that fines connected to honour, manslaughter and wounds must be paid in the better Swedish mainland coins, while all other transactions were to be made in Gotlandic coins of lower value. 102 However, in Svealand the premium on örtug-coins relative to Gotlandic allowed them to dominate circulation. During the first half of the 15th century a split occurred between counting in mark gutnisk in Götaland and in mark örtug in Svealand. During the second half of the century, when Gotland introduced the Danish monetary system, there was a gradual shift towards counting in mark danska, although this unit came to be linked to the Stock- holm mark. In the first half of the 16th century, mark gutnisk and mark danska first became pure units of account of Swedish coins, and then disappeared as such. During the uprisings in Sweden and Norway, Eric XIII fled to Gotland in 1436 and ruled the island up to 1449, when Denmark regained control. During his reign in Gotland, the fine silver content of the mark gutnisk was reduced significantly, to between 2.2 and 6.5 grams, 103 which was between 1/10 and 1/3 of the mark in Swedish örtugs. 104 This is clearly visible in the exchange rates of mark gutnisk in Table A3.2. While one mark örtug was worth around 2 mark gutnisk in the period 1420–34, it increased to 4 or more in the 1440s. Although the relation 1 öre gutnisk = 4 gotar is the best known, the relation 1 öre = 3 gotar can also be documented for the 1440s and 1450s. According to Paul Sjögren, mark stackota was the same as mark gutnisk, and öre stackota the same as öre gutnisk. 105 Dovring and Hyötyniemi argue against this, claiming that 1 mark stackota = 0.75 marks gutnisk. 106 According to Hyötyniemi, the mark stackota was the traditional Gotlandic mark, equal to 24 Gotlandic örtug, and mark östgötsk and mark västgötsk were only other names for this currency unit, while mark kalmarsk was the same as mark gutnisk. According to Dovring, the difference between the two marks would explain why the öre östgötsk was equal to 3 gotar, while one öre gut- nisk was equal to 4 gotar. The problem with Dovring’s and Hyötyniemi’s argument is that there are also sources which confirm that 1 öre gutnisk was set equal to 3 gutar. 107 Hildebrand shows that one source uses mark stackota and mark gunniska as 102 Hallenberg (1798, p. 13). 103 Tordeman (1936, p. 57). 104 Te debasement could have been implemented some years before Eric came to Gotland. See Hyötyniemi (2002). 105 Sjögren (1944, p. 349). 106 Dovring (1947, pp. 195–7), and Hyötyniemi (2000, pp. 47–9). 107 SDhk 24756 (year 1445) and 26053 (year 1452). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 94 Valdemar Atterdag Holding Visby to Ransom, 1361, signed in 1882 by Carl Gustaf Hellqvist (1851–90), a Swedish history painter. Te Danish king Valdemar IV (Valdemar Atterdag) is depicted collecting taxes from the inhabitants of Visby on the island of Gotland in 1361. Te townspeople were required to fll three large barrels with gold, silver and other valuables. Gotland had previously been part of the Swedish kingdom; the island sufered an economic decline in the late Middle Ages, probably due to long-term structural factors rather than to the Danish invasion. Some details in the painting are incorrect. For example, the man on the right appears to be Jewish, but there were no Jews at that time in Visby. Te dachshund is another anachronism since the frst dachshunds were bred in the 16th century. Source: Nationalmuseum. synonyms. 108 If there was a difference between the mark of 32 gotar and the mark stackota of 24 gotar, where the latter was worth ¾ of the former, it is clear that mark gutnisk was used as a term for both. Another possibility for the counting in 3 and 4 gutar per öre gutnisk is that gutar of different values circulated so that the better-valued gutar appreciated. Hyötyniemi shows that better coins were minted towards the end of Eric XIII’s rule in Gotland, 1444–8. 109 After this period the gote is commonly referred to as ‘grossus’. In the Swed- ish mint regulation of 1453, one örtug was set equal to 8 ‘old and new’ gotniska or 4 grossa, 110 the last probably referring to a Gotlandic coin as well. This implies that the grossa was valued at twice as much as the gotniska. Counting 4 gotniska to one öre 108 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 942). 109 Hyötyniemi (2002). 110 Liedgren (1967, p. 15). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 95 gutnisk, it would imply that one mark örtug would be set equal to 6 mark gutniska in the lower-valued coins. Although such a low exchange rate for the mark gutnisk is not known from other sources, it is possible that the mint regulation attempted to set a value below the actual market rate. Counting 3 grossa to one öre gutnisk, it would imply that one mark gutnisk would be set equal to ¼ mark örtug, which during the second half of the 15th century in Götaland developed into a unit of account also for Swedish coins. From the mid-15th to the mid-16th centuries, Götaland used mark danska as a unit of account, which gradually replaced mark gutnisk. In 1453, the official value of the Danish hvid was set to 3 Swedish penning. Since one Danish mark was 16 skill- ing or 48 hvid, one mark danska was equal to 144 Swedish penning, i.e. one mark danska was set to 6 Swedish öre or ¾ mark örtug. Later this became an account iden- tity linked to the Swedish money, not to actual Danish coins. Both systems could be used in the same transaction. Accounts were sometimes specified in mark örtug, but the total sum could be written in mark danska, without indicating that mark örtug was converted into mark danska. 111 To make matters even more confusing, the term ‘mark svensk’ could have two different meanings, either mark örtug (mostly in Svealand) or mark dansk in Swedish coins (mostly in Götaland). 112 The term ‘mark stockholmsk’ was also commonly used instead of mark örtug. Hallenberg shows that mark gutnisk was a unit of account in the 1530s, equal to 1/3 mark danska or ¼ mark örtug, and no longer referred to actual Gotlandic coins. It is not entirely clear whether such a unit of account already existed in the 15th century. Although the relation 1 svensk mark = 3 mark gutnisk was quite common in the second half of the 15th century, the mark svensk probably referred to the mark dansk, which was equal to ¾ of the mark örtug. 113 During the 1540s, counting in mark danska and gutniska was gradually replaced by the Swedish system. During this transitional period the terms ‘skillingar svenska penningar’ (shillings Swedish pennies) and ‘mark danska i svenskt mynt’ (Danish marks in Swedish coins) were common. Here, there was no Swedish skilling, neither was the payment made in Danish skilling (i.e. one ‘skilling svenska pengar’ was not necessarily equal to one skilling in actual Danish coins). It was purely an accounting system based on Swedish coins. For example, in 1545 one mark in Danish coins was exchanged for 1⅔ marks danska in Swedish coins, which in turn was equal to 1¼ marks örtug. 114 Majvor Östergren and Kenneth Jonsson (1998) point out that although a trans- formation into a Danish monetary system is considered to have taken place in Got- land after the mid-15th century, where the gote was replaced by the hvid (= 4 penning = 1/16 skilling = 1/48 mark), the old gutar continued to dominate the circu lation of 111 Hallenberg (1798, pp. 84 and 155). 112 Hallenberg (1798, pp. 35–6). 113 Dovring (1947, pp. 195–6). 114 Hallenberg (1798, pp. 169 and 302–7). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 96 the island during the second half of the 15th century. One reason for this was prob- ably that the minted amount of hvids was quite small in relation to the gutar minted before the mid-15th century. Table A3.2 shows that one mark lödig was, with a few exceptions, valued consistently at 30-40 marks gutnisk in the whole period 1445– 1513. When the exchange rate of 1.4 mark gutniska for 1 mark örtug is mentioned in 1480, the coins are referred to as ‘gutniska vita’, 115 while in the 1430s and 1440s the term ‘svarta gutniska’ was used. 116 The fine silver content of the Gotlandic mark in hvids (1 mark = 48 hvids) dete- riorated, from 9.5–11 grams in 1455–80, to 5.5–5.9 grams in 1480–1500, 5–6.1 grams in 1510 and 4.9 grams around 1530. 117 The fine silver content in 1480–1510 would roughly entail an exchange rate of 30–35 marks gutniska for one mark silver. This corresponds quite well to the estimated exchange rate for 1513 in Table A3.2, where one mark gutnisk is probably valued at 2–2.5 marks örtug, which shows that mark gutnisk in 1513 most likely referred to Gotlandic hvids minted in 1480–1510. The example from 1513 shows that, in Götaland, mark gutnisk could still refer to actual Gotlandic coins. Hence it is clear that especially after the mid-15th century, but possibly also ear- lier, the term ‘mark gutnisk’ referred to different types of currency. Exactly how the term mark gutnisk was used in the 15th century, and whether it differed from the term mark stackota, still calls for further research. 3.8. Mark rigisk and revalsk During the Middle Ages, the Livonian currency (mark of Riga and Reval) was strongly integrated with the Nordic and Hanseatic monetary system. As early as in 1211, Riga decided to mint its currency at the same exchange rate with the mark silver as in Gotland. 118 In Finland, which had been conquered by Sweden, artig coins of Riga and Reval were more common than Swedish coins during the 15th century, and were called revalsk or räflisk [örtug]. The fixed relation between mark rigisk and mark gutnisk was broken in the early 14th century. While 1 mark silver was worth 7 marks gutniska in 1312, it was worth 6 marks rigiska in 1315–16 (see Table A3.2 and Table A3.5). Hyötyniemi argues that it was in this period that 1 mark silver of Riga was set equal to 6 old marks rigisk or 144 artig of Riga (since 1 old mark rigisk = 24 artig). The counting in this silver mark, also called mark rigisk, continued even though the silver content of the artig deteriorated. In 1343, the Livonian artig was minted at the same value as the Gotlan- dic örtug (gote), which in turn had the same value as 3 pennies or 1/4 schilling of 115 Dovring (1947, p. 197). 116 See, for example, SDhk 23731, Dovring (1947, p. 197), and Hallenberg (1798, p. 17). 117 KHL, ‘hvid’. 118 Myrberg (2008, p. 88). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 97 Lübeck. 119 The mark silver of Riga was, therefore, at par with 36 schilling or 2¼ marks of Lübeck, implying that 1 artig of Riga or revalsk was at par with 6 Swedish pennies (penningar) in the second half of the 14th century. During the 15th century Finland counted the Swedish mark in coins of Livonia. Since the Livonian coins that circulated in Finland were of a different fine silver content, the artig coins were valued differently, mostly varying from 4 to 6 Swedish pennies (see Table A3.5). For example, in 1414, 5 revalska was set equal to 23 pen- ning (23/24 öre) of the Åbo mark. The Åbo mark was not a variant of mark rigisk, but the Swedish mark counted in coins of Riga (however, örtug coins were also minted at Åbo 120 ). Similarly, in Viborg one öre was set equal to 4 revalsk in 1415. Since there was no fixed relation between öre and revalsk, no separate mark currency unit developed at that time in Finland comparable to the mark gutnisk in Götaland. 119 Hyötyniemi (1999). 120 Tordeman (1936, p. 39). Parts of the Baltic Sea according to Carta Marina, created by Olaus Magnus (1490–1557). Te coins of Gotland (‘Gotlandia’), lower left, were also used in Götaland (‘Gothia’). Riga (capital of present-day Latvia) in Livonia, lower right, minted coins according to the stan- dard of Gotland in the 13th century. In Åbo in Finland (to the right of ‘Alandia’), coins of Riga and ‘Rivalia’ (present-day Tallinn in Estonia), visible to the right, were circulating in the 15th century. Te currency of the Swedish realm was sometimes denominated as ‘mark stockholmsk’ or ‘mark holmsk’. ‘Holmia’, upper left, is present-day Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 98 In the 1420s a third mark rigisk came in use, which was set equal to 36 old artig (new schilling) or revalska (i.e. 1 mark silver of Riga = 4 new marks of Riga), which put the mark rigisk roughly equal to the mark örtug. As late as the 1530s and 1540s the mark rigisk was used as a counting unit in Finland, where 1 mark rigisk = 9 Swedish öre. The Swedish mark was counted as 32 skilling of Riga, while 1 mark of Riga was equal to 36 skilling. 121 3.9. Mark jämtsk and härdalsk Jämtland and Härjedalen belonged to Norway in the Middle Ages but had close contacts with Sweden (for example, Jämtland was then part of the episcopate of Uppsala). The term ‘mark jämtsk’ is documented earliest in 1346 and was used at least up to the early 16th century. 122 The same source often mentions both mark jämtsk and mark svensk, which shows that two different currency units were used. The term ‘mark härdalska’ is also mentioned, although it is not clear whether it was the same as the mark jämtsk. 123 Neither Jämtland nor Härjedalen minted their own coins. The only known exchange rate is from 1437, when 1 mark jämtsk = 1 13/35 (≈ 1.37) Swedish marks, i.e. 1 mark silver ≈ 6 marks jämtsk at the time. 124 How the term mark jämtsk came to be used is not clear, but it could have to do with the monetary union between Sweden and Norway in the 1340s and 1350s. In 1340 Norway started to mint coins with the value of 5 marks penningar to one mark silver, instead of 4 marks penningar hitherto. This was an adjustment to the Swedish mark penningar. 125 It is possible that the mark jämtsk was based on the Norwegian currency from the 14th century (or the better currencies of Denmark in the early 15th century). Norway stopped minting its own coins after the late 14th century. In the second half of that century the mark lödig was worth 6 Norwegian marks, which is the same rate as for mark jämtsk in 1437. However, no definite conclusions should be drawn. 3.10. Parallel örtug units The continual reduction of the fine silver content of coins implied that coins of the same nominal value could contain different amounts of silver. While the older, bet- ter coins often tended to be withdrawn from circulation (in accordance with Gresh- am’s Law), they were often at a premium relative to inferior coins, which allowed them to stay in circulation. This happened with the older örtug coins in the late 15th 121 Hallenberg (1798, p. 233). 122 SDhk 5259 and 36939. 123 Ahnlund (1948, pp. 484-486). 124 KHL, ‘mark’. 125 Rasmusson (1943, p. 269). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 99 century, after the fine silver content of the new örtug coins was reduced from 1478 onwards. The örtug minted before 1478 was called ‘gammal örtug’ (old örtug) and its suc- cessor was called ‘ny örtug’ (new örtug). In 1481, 1 gammal örtug = 9 penning = 1.125 new örtug, while the nominal value of the örtug was supposed to be equal to 8 penning. 126 In 1493–1509, 1 gammal örtug stood at 10 penning, in the early 1510s at 12 penning and in the late 1510s at 16–18 penning. 127 Thordeman points out that gammal örtug functioned as a stable currency unit in this period, similarly to the role of the daler/riksdaler after 1534. 128 Although Rhin- ish gulden and mark lödig also functioned as stable units during monetary instabil- ity, gammal örtug could be more convenient to use since it was of a lower value. In 1523, the fine silver content of öre was reduced. Thereafter one minted örtug was equal to ½ öre, i.e. 12 penning. The minted örtug was later called ‘halvöre’ (half öre). After 1523, one gammal örtug was equal to ¾ öre (i.e. 18 penning according to the highest exchange rate, reached in the late 1510s). From the late 1520s onwards, gammal örtug became a unit of account equal to ¾ öre, and no longer referred to the old örtug-coins minted before 1478. 129 In 1589–90 a gammal örtug was minted with the value of ¾ öre (in proper coins). This was the last time örtug coins were minted in Sweden. The coin contained 0.27 grams fine silver, which was less than a third of the örtug minted before 1478. 130 The örtug continued to exist during the 16th century as a unit of account, when one mark = 24 örtug, which became different from the minted örtug. Furthermore, one mark dansk was also divisible into 24 örtug, and the örtug units of Götaland and Svealand differed in value. Hence, before 1550 one öre was equal to 3 örtug in Svealand but to 4 örtug in Götaland. 131 3.11. The debasement cycle in the first quarter of the 16th century During the first two decades of the 16th century, a substantial debasement of the circulated coins led to inflation. This reached a high in the early 1520s, when ‘klip- ping’ coins were brought into circulation. The exchange ratio of mark lödig to mark penningar rose from 1:10 in 1499 to 1:13 in the first decade of the 16th century and to 1:16 in the late 1510s. In a letter dated 1510 to the Archbishop, the Swedish Regent Svante Nilsson complained about the monetary disturbances. He proposed that the nominal value of the old örtug 126 Sandbergska samlingen, O:1, f. 63, RA. 127 Forssell (1982, pp. 22–5). 128 Tordeman (1936, p. 51). 129 Hallenberg (1798, pp. 189–99). 130 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, p. 146), and Wallroth (1918, pp. 44–7). 131 Hallenberg (1798, pp. 175 and 189–99). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 100 (minted before 1478, see above) would be increased from 10 to 12 penning, the new örtug from 8 to 10 penning, and fyrkar (half-örtug) from 4 to 5 penning. In this way the better coins would not be driven out of circulation and exported, as had occurred hitherto (in accordance with Gresham’s Law). 132 Figure 3.2 also shows that there was a negative seignorage on (the heavier) silver coins at this time. The örtug coins minted in the early 16th century had a fine silver content that was only slightly lower than that of the coins minted in the late 15th century. What caused the monetary disarray was the minting of coins of lower denominations which contained significantly less fine silver per mark than the örtug coins. After 1512 the minting of örtug coins ceased for the rest of the decade. 133 In 1521–3 Gustavus Vasa led a rebellion against the Danish King Christian II, who also ruled over the Swedish territories. Both Christian II and Gustavus Vasa minted klipping coins with a very low silver content compared to their face value, 132 SDhk 36678. See also Hammarström (1956, p. 130). 133 Tordeman (1936, p. 90), Malmer (1980, p. 43), and Wallroth (1918). Te Entry of King Gustav Vasa of Sweden into Stockholm, 1523, painted in 1908 by Carl Larsson (1853-1919), representative of the Arts and Crafts Movement. Te minting of large amounts of debased klipping coins, to fnance the war against the Danish king, caused substantial infation in 1523. Source: Nationalmuseum. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 101 which led to price increases when goods were paid for in klipping coins. 134 The klip- ping coins of Christian II were not minted in Sweden, but were imported in huge volumes. The face value of the klipping coin minted by Gustavus Vasa was 18 pen- ning (the contemporary market value of the gammal örtug). While the rate between mark lödig and mark penningar was 1:16 in 1514–20, the market rate between mark lödig and mark klippingar was according to one source as high as 1:50. 135 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös write that today the klipping of Gustavus Vasa is very rare compared to the klipping of Christian II. One theory is that Gustavus Vasa simply replicated the klipping of Christian II on a large scale, and in this way could blame him for the problems with inferior coins. 136 At a meeting in Vadstena on 1st January 1524 it was decided that the klipping coin would be devalued by 1/3, i.e. to 12 penning. Shortly afterwards the klipping coins were demonetised. There are indications that already in April 1524 the klip- ping coins were only worth their metal content. 137 Another problem arose briefly when the Danish klippings were decreed to be invalid in Denmark but continued to be valid as means of payment in Sweden, which caused an inflow of Danish klip- pings to Sweden 138 (later the latter were also decreed to be invalid 139 ). The rate between mark lödig and mark penningar stabilised at 1:16 to 1:20 in 1523–35. 3.12. Seignorage As long as the face value of a coin exceeded the cost of producing it, the ruler made a profit, commonly labelled seignorage. Too little is known about the cost of producing silver coins to establish any tendencies over time. Gross seignorage includes these costs of production. 140 Furthermore, information on the actual mint price is very scarce. Another mode of calculation consists in relating the market value of the mark penning, expressed as the exchange rate against the silver mark, to the metallic silver content of the coins representing one mark. An example may clarify the procedure. Information on the specie content of the 134 Te term ‘klipping’ was used because the coins were clipped directly in a square shape to save time. Klipping coins were minted on several occasions during the 16th and 17th centuries. 135 ‘Myntz och Sölfwers Werdering’, Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar, Misc. 26 Myntväsen, vol. 4. Te fne silver content of one klipping coin with the nominal value of 18 penning was, according to Wallroth (1918, p. 14), 0.4456 grams and 0.382 grams, respectively. According to Torde- man (1936, p. 51), in reality, many klipping coins probably had a lower silver content. See also KHL, ‘klipping’. 136 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, pp. 130–1). 137 KHL, ‘klipping’. 138 Hallenberg (1798, pp. 88–9). 139 In the latter part of the 1520s, 4 marks in Danish klipping coins were worth 1 Swedish mark in new coins. See Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (1929–40, p. 245). 140 Redish (2000, p. 27). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 102 coins is based on numismatic studies. 141 In 1425, for instance, the measured silver weight of mark penningar was 20.7 grams. The market value of mark penningar in grams of silver, on the other hand, is the ratio between the fine silver content of the mark lödig (194 grams in 1425 according to Table A3.1) and the market rate of exchange between the silver mark and the mark penning (in 1425 it took 8 mark penningar to buy one silver mark, so the rate was 8). The value of the mark pennin- gar in grams of silver was then 194/8 = 24.2 grams. The gross seignorage can now be calculated as the market value of mark pennin- gar (24.2 grams) less the metallic silver content of the coins representing one mark (20.7 grams). The market value of the minted coin thus exceeded its specie content. This is expected, given the cost of minting and the ruler’s profit on minting. Dis- regarding the cost of minting, it would have paid to buy silver marks at the going exchange rate and strike them into new coins – but minting was the sole and care- fully guarded privilege of the regent. In this case, the excess amount of silver was 3.5 141 Tordeman (1936), and Malmer (1980). Malmer’s estimated silver weights, combined with her assumptions regarding wear and tear, tend to give unrealistically high silver values of the pen- ning. Figure 3.2. Te gross seignorage rate (in per cent) 1277–1539 based on the market value of mark silver in mark penningar and the fne silver content of the coins representing one mark. Sources: Table A3.1, Malmer (1980), Tordeman (1936) and Wallroth (1918). -30 -20 -10 0 10 20 30 40 50 60 70 80 90 100 1260 1280 1300 1320 1340 1360 1380 1400 1420 1440 1460 1480 1500 1520 1540 Seignorage rate, % 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 103 grams (24.2 less 20.7 grams). The gross seignorage rate is estimated as the ratio of gross seignorage to the metallic silver content of the coins representing one mark, in our example (24.2 less 20.7)/20.7 = 17 per cent. Figure 3.2 shows that our measure of the seignorage rate fluctuated in the period 1277–1350. Initially the gross seignorage rate was close to zero per cent, i.e. coins circulated in accordance with their fine silver content. There were times when gross seignorage was negative, which is counter-intuitive and implies that the ruler minted coin with too high a silver content, or rather that the market did not appraise the coin at its full specie content. The results for this period should be regarded with scepticism until further numismatic studies have been carried out. After the mid-14th century the curve looks quite different. The inflation coins of the 1350s and 1360s temporarily increased the seignorage rate. As mentioned above, in the early 1360s King Albert, coming from Mecklenburg in Germany, introduced a new type of coin, the Witten, later called the örtug (1 örtug = 8 penning or 1/3 öre). Coins of this type were in general use in the Hanseatic towns of northern Ger- many. Although Albert’s reign was characterized by war and civil conflict in Sweden, there was remarkable monetary stability as measured by the exchange rate between mark silver and mark penning, which for several years stood at 1:6. 142 The high level of seignorage during this period suggests that, besides being profitable for the ruler, the introduction of new and better coins was appreciated by the people. Conversely, the inferior coin introduced in the early 15th century by King Erik of Pomerania during a period of financial disorder quickly resulted in a deteriorating seignorage rate. With the exception of a few years around 1500, our measure of the seignorage rate is always positive after the mid-1360s, which seems reasonable. The broad trend over time is that the seignorage rate decreased during the late Middle Ages, up to about 1500. This could be due to several factors. First, people may successively have learnt more about the true specie content of the coins and become more aware of the ongoing debasement. Second, the long demographic decline after the Black Death, continuing well into the 15th century, should have served to reduce demand for money. At the same time, what was perceived as a general scarcity of silver and silver coin probably tended to counteract the long-term decline in the seignorage rate. In 1453, King Karl Knutsson complained of a shortage of domestic currency in the country, leading to the use of bad foreign coin. He mentioned in particular the Gotlandic [gutnisk] coin, which was used to buy Swedish coin. Thus, according to the King, the small amount that was minted in Stockholm was taken away and melted down. The King aimed to expand domestic minting, but these plans were only partly real- ized. 143 142 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 831–6). 143 Liedgren (1967, p. 14), and Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 850). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 104 Sometimes the rulers were active in taking specie out of the country. King Chris- tian I reportedly took large sums of silver and gold (in the form of English nobles) with him when he left the country in 1461, in order to pay for his purchase of Hol- stein. 144 In the 1520s, King Gustavus Vasa arranged for large amounts of silver, much of it confiscated from churches and monasteries, to be shipped to Lübeck in order to pay his war debt. 145 The scarcity of silver continued throughout the medieval era. Exports of silver and coin were prohibited by the Government in 1474 and again by the Chancellor in 1486, arguing that the domestic coin must be improved. 146 The melting down of domestic coin was banned in 1478, and at the same time restrictions were placed on bringing Danish coin into Sweden. 147 Yet the problem remained. This is indicated by the fact that the ban on silver exports was repeated in 1493, 1498, and 1499. 148 As mentioned above, in 1510 the ruler, Svante Nilsson, observed that silver coin was being taken out of the country. 149 Figure 3.2 also shows that the gross seignorage rate was significantly negative at the time. A negative profit from minting implies that there is a positive profit on turning coins into bullion. Gresham’s law seems to have been at work, according to which debased coin will replace coin with a higher specie content. Despite the fact that mark penningar were successively debased, it was apparently still profitable to take these coins out of the country to have them melted down. Great hopes were placed on increasing output from the silver mine at Sala in the province of Västmanland, which was started in about 1509. However, there is no record of a substantial increase in silver production at Sala until about 1530. 150 There were other ways by which the ruler could profit from minting, apart from the fact that the market value of mark penningar usually exceeded the metallic silver content. A 1497 contract between King Hans and the master of the Mint stipulated that the King would receive one gulden for each gold mark and 0.5 marks for each Cologne mark in silver (worth 10/9 of the Swedish mark) that was minted. The master of the Mint was also obliged to mint 20 gold marks and 20 silver marks for the King every year. The King agreed to deliver the necessary gold and silver and to pay for the metal that was lost in the melting process; otherwise the mint master was not to be paid for making these coins. 151 The reign of Gustavus Vasa was characterized by a strengthening of both central state power and the monarch’s personal power. One consequence of this probably 144 Vadstenadiariet (1996, no. 719, pp. 302–4). 145 Källström (1939, pp. 30 and 76), and Hammarström (1956, pp. 407–9). 146 1474: Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 917. Te 1486 prohibition: Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (p. 133). 147 Liedgren (1967, p. 16). 148 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, pp. 917-918), and SDhk 33742 (April 3, 1499). 149 SDhk 36678 (Västerås 16 February, 1510). 150 Hammarström (1956, pp. 276 and 305). 151 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 925). 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 105 was that minting became more profitable for the King. When the King purchased silver for the mint in the beginning of 1529, he paid 16 marks for one silver mark in the mining district; he complained at that time that silver had become so expensive that he had no ‘profit’ from it anymore. He made an agreement with the silver min- ers that the price would be reduced to 12 marks by August, 1529. 152 At this time one mark of pure silver was minted into 24 marks penning. This was also the case in the following year, 1530, when we have some information as to the remuneration of the mint master. According to the contract with the King, the mint master would strike one mark of pure silver into 24 marks penningar and the King would receive 19.375 marks. 153 The mint master was to keep the difference, 4.625 marks, as his payment, which was also meant to cover the cost of minting. The King of course had to pay for transports and other costs. As long as these prices applied, minting should have given the King a handsome profit. Even though the seignorage in Figure 3.2 appears to be modest in the late 1520s, this example reminds us that there were other ways in which the King could profit from minting. This profit probably increased further in the 1530s. In 1536, for instance, the Crown raised the taxes on silver production and in reality paid only 5 marks penningar for each silver mark delivered from the Salberget mine. At the same time, 22 marks were minted from each silver mark. 154 The beginning of the early modern era in Sweden thus produced a very handsome seignorage to the ruler. 3.13. Concluding remarks The medieval system of payments in Sweden, as described above, was complex. The foregoing discussion has aimed to clarify some essential features in a way that may facilitate further study of medieval Swedish economic history by international researchers. For instance, the presentation of the exchange rate between the silver mark and mark penningar provides information that is indispensable to anyone who wishes to convert nominal Swedish prices into silver prices, which in turn is neces- sary for international comparisons. The exchange rate series in Table A3.1, based on around 800 observations, is arguably one of the longest and most reliable economic series that can be produced for the Swedish medieval era. Part of the complexity of the monetary system is due to the lack of a country-wide monetary standard for most of the medieval era. Several currencies existed alongside mark penning. The exchange rates between these various currencies and mark pen- ning (or the silver mark) are sometimes not known at all. In addition, various foreign gold coins circulated at a floating rate. Still, we have tried to summarize the available information in several tables. Using these, it should be possible to use many nominal price quotations expressed in currencies other than mark penning. 152 Hildebrand (1894, vol. I:2, p. 917). 153 Forssell (1872, p. 54). 154 Hammarström (1956, p. 312). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 106 One of the most promising roads for future research into economic conditions in medieval Sweden is the use of modern database technology. A particularly valuable resource is the ongoing construction of Svenskt Diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven (SDhk). This publicly available database provides almost endless possibilities of studying many economic (as well as non-economic) phenomena over time and space. As this database expands to include more complete documents, espe- cially from the period after 1420, an increasingly powerful tool will be available to researchers. Appendix A3: Summary tables Table A3.1. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1277 0.938 197 3.78 3.78 3.00 4.56 52.2 1278 0.938 197 3.78 3.78 3.00 4.56 52.2 1279 0.938 197 3.78 3.78 3.00 4.56 52.2 1280 0.938 197 3.78 3.78 3.00 4.56 52.2 1281 0.938 197 3.78 3.78 3.00 4.56 52.2 1282 0.938 197 3.78 3.78 3.00 4.56 52.2 1283 0.938 197 3.78 3.78 3.00 4.56 52.2 1284 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1285 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1286 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1287 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1288 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1289 0.938 197 3.90 3.90 3.00 3.00 50.6 1290 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1291 0.938 197 3.90 3.90 3.00 4.80* 50.6 1292 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1293 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1294 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1295 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1296 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1297 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1298 0.938 197 3.90 3.90 3.00 3.00 50.6 1299 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1300 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 107 Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1301 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1302 0.938 197 3.90 3.90     50.6 1303 0.938 197 4.15 4.15 3.88 4.42 47.6 1304 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1305 0.938 197 4.91 4.91 40.2 1306 0.938 197 4.83 4.83 40.9 1307 0.938 197 4.74 4.74 41.6 1308 0.938 197 4.66 4.66 42.4 1309 0.938 197 4.58 4.58 43.1 1310 0.938 197 4.50 4.50 4.50 4.50 43.9 1311 0.938 197 4.45 4.45 3.89 5.00 44.4 1312 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1313 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 39.5 1314 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 39.5 1315 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 39.5 1316 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 39.5 1317 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1318 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1319 0.938 197 4.88 4.88 40.5 1320 0.938 197 4.75 4.75 4.75 4.75 41.6 1321 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1322 0.938 197 4.50 4.50     43.9 1323 0.938 197 4.00 4.00 4.00 4.00 49.4 1324 0.938 197 4.29 4.26     46.0 1325 0.938 197 4.58 4.53     43.1 1326 0.938 197 4.87 4.79     40.6 1327 0.938 197 5.16 5.05 4.50 6.00 38.3 1328 0.938 197 5.01 5.00 4.98 5.11 39.4 1329 0.938 197 4.88 4.88 40.5 1330 0.938 197 4.76 4.76 41.5 1331 0.938 197 4.64 4.64 42.6 1332 0.938 197 4.52 4.52 4.52 4.52 43.7 1333 0.938 197 4.72 5.00 4.44 5.00 41.8 1334 0.938 197 4.61 4.61 42.8 1335 0.938 197 4.50 4.50 4.50 4.50 43.9 1336 0.938 197 4.75 4.75 41.6 1337 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1338 0.938 197 4.90 4.90 40.3 Table A3.1 (cont.). Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 108 Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1339 0.938 197 4.80 4.80 4.80 4.80 41.1 1340 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1341 0.938 197 5.10 5.10 38.7 1342 0.938 197 5.20 5.20 38.0 1343 0.938 197 5.30 5.30 37.3 1344 0.938 197 5.40 5.40 36.6 1345 0.938 197 5.50 5.50 5.00 6.00 35.9 1346 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1347 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1348 0.938 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.5 1349 0.938 197 4.87 4.87 40.5 1350 0.938 197 4.67 4.50 4.50 5.00 41.6 1351 0.937 197 5.34 6.00 5.01 7.00 36.9 1352 0.937 197 9.52 9.85     20.7 1353 0.937 197 13.70* 13.70* 13.70* 13.70* 14.4* 1354 0.937 197 5.00 (15**) 5.00 (15**) 5.00 5.00 39.3 (13.1**) 1355 0.936 197 5.42 5.42 5.42 5.42 36.2 1356 0.936 197 5.42 5.42 5.42 5.42 36.1 1357 0.936 197 5.00 5.00 5.00 5.00 39.1 1358 0.936 197 5.42 5.42 5.42 5.42 36.0 1359 0.935 197 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 32.5 1360 0.935 197 5.71 5.71 5.42 6.00 34.1 1361 0.935 197 12* 12* 5.5* 12-20* 16.2* 1362 0.935 197 12 12 16.2 1363 0.934 197 5.42 (12**) 5.42 (12**) 5.42 5.42 35.8 (16.2**) 1364 0.934 197 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 32.3 1365 0.934 197 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 32.2 1366 0.934 197 7.00 8.00 5.00 8.00 27.6 1367 0.933 197 5.50 5.50 5.00 6.00 35.0 1368 0.933 197 4.88 4.50 4.50 6.00 39.5 1369 0.933 196 5.72 6.00 4.50 6.00 33.6 1370 0.933 196 5.32 5.50 4.50 6.00 36.0 1371 0.932 196 5.69 6.00 4.50 6.00 33.7 1372 0.932 196 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 31.9 1373 0.932 196 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 31.8 1374 0.932 196 5.25 5.25 4.50 6.00 36.3 1375 0.931 196 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 31.7 1376 0.931 196 5.59 6.00 4.50 6.00 34.0 Table A3.1 (cont.). Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 109 Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1377 0.931 196 5.84 6.00 4.50 7.20 32.5 1378 0.931 196 5.50 6.00 4.50 6.50 34.5 1379 0.930 196 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 31.5 1380 0.930 196 5.63 6.00 4.50 6.00 33.6 1381 0.930 196 5.95 6.00 4.50 6.50 31.7 1382 0.930 196 6.05 6.00 6.00 6.50 31.2 1383 0.930 196 6.05 6.00 4.50 7.00 31.1 1384 0.929 196 5.80 6.00 4.50 6.50 32.4 1385 0.929 196 6.03 6.00 5.00 6.50 31.1 1386 0.929 196 6.00 6.00 5.00 6.50 31.2 1387 0.929 196 5.75 6.00 5.00 7.00 32.5 1388 0.928 196 6.17 6.00 6.00 6.50 30.3 1389 0.928 195 6.38 6.25 6.00 7.00 29.2 1390 0.928 195 6.13 6.00 6.00 7.00 30.4 1391 0.928 195 6.40 6.00 6.00 7.00 29.0 1392 0.927 195 6.25 6.00 6.00 7.00 29.7 1393 0.927 195 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 30.9 1394 0.927 195 6.29 6.00 6.00 7.00 30.0 1395 0.927 195 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 30.8 1396 0.926 195 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 30.7 1397 0.926 195 6.12 6.12 30.1 1398 0.926 195 6.25 6.00 6.00 7.00 29.4 1399 0.926 195 6.13 6.00 6.00 7.00 30.0 1400 0.925 195 6.08 6.00 6.00 7.00 30.1 1401 0.925 195 6.13 6.00 6.00 7.20 29.9 1402 0.925 195 6.23 6.00 6.00 7.00 29.3 1403 0.925 195 6.14 6.00 6.00 7.00 29.7 1404 0.924 195 6.14 6.00 6.00 7.00 29.7 1405 0.924 195 6.29 6.00 6.00 8.00 28.9 1406 0.924 195 6.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 30.3 1407 0.924 195 6.17 6.00 6.00 7.00 29.4 1408 0.923 194 6.45 6.45 28.1 1409 0.923 194 6.75 6.50 6.00 8.25 26.8 1410 0.923 194 6.58 6.50 6.00 7.50 27.4 1411 0.923 194 6.60 6.00 6.00 8.00 27.3 1412 0.922 194 7.00 7.00 6.00 8.00 25.7 1413 0.922 194 7.10 7.00 6.00 8.50 25.3 1414 0.922 194 7.50 8.00 6.00 8.50 23.9 Table A3.1 (cont.). Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 110 Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1415 0.922 194 8.00 8.00 8.00 8.00 22.4 1416 0.922 194 8.00 8.00 8.00 8.00 22.4 1417 0.921 194 7.43 8.00 6.00 8.50 24.0 1418 0.921 194 8.00 8.00 8.00 8.00 22.3 1419 0.921 194 7.25 7.50 6.00 8.00 24.6 1420 0.921 194 7.00 7.00 6.00 8.00 25.4 1421 0.920 194 7.67 7.50 6.00 9.00 23.2 1422 0.920 194 8.33 8.00 8.00 9.00 21.3 1423 0.920 194 8.00 8.00 8.00 8.00 22.2 1424 0.920 194 8.00 8.00 8.00 8.00 22.2 1425 0.919 194 8.00 8.00 8.00 8.00 22.2 1426 0.919 194 8.25 8.25 8.00 8.50 21.6 1427 0.919 194 8.00 8.00 8.00 8.00 22.2 1428 0.919 193 8.50 8.50 8.00 9.00 20.9 1429 0.918 193 8.50 8.50 8.50 8.50 20.9 1430 0.918 193 8.25 8.25 8.00 8.50 21.6 1431 0.918 193 8.25 8.25 8.00 8.50 21.6 1432 0.918 193 8.50 8.50 8.50 8.50 21.0 1433 0.917 193 8.33 8.50 8.00 8.50 21.4 1434 0.917 193 8.50 8.50 8.50 8.50 21.0 1435 0.917 193 8.50 8.50 8.50 8.50 21.0 1436 0.917 193 8.50 8.50 8.50 8.50 21.0 1437 0.916 193 8.40 8.50 8.00 8.50 21.2 1438 0.916 193 8.50 8.50 8.50 8.50 21.0 1439 0.916 193 8.33 8.50 8.00 8.50 21.4 1440 0.916 193 8.33 8.50 8.00 8.50 21.4 1441 0.915 193 9.00 9.00 8.50 9.50 19.8 1442 0.915 193 8.67 8.50 8.50 9.00 20.6 1443 0.915 193 8.50 8.50 8.00 9.00 21.0 1444 0.915 193 8.58 8.50 8.00 9.50 20.8 1445 0.914 193 8.75 9.00 8.00 9.00 20.4 1446 0.914 193 8.83 9.00 8.50 9.00 20.2 1447 0.914 193 8.67 8.50 8.00 9.00 20.6 1448 0.914 192 8.67 8.50 8.50 9.00 20.6 1449 0.914 192 8.68 8.50 8.50 9.00 20.6 1450 0.913 192 8.86 8.50 8.00 11.00 20.2 1451 0.913 192 8.50 8.50 8.00 9.00 21.0 1452 0.913 192 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 19.9 Table A3.1 (cont.). Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 111 Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1453 0.913 192 8.51 8.50 8.10 9.00 21.0 1454 0.912 192 8.70 9.00 8.00 9.00 20.6 1455 0.912 192 8.50 8.50 8.00 9.00 21.0 1456 0.912 192 8.63 8.63 20.7 1457 0.912 192 8.75 8.75 8.50 9.00 20.4 1458 0.911 192 8.75 9.00 8.00 9.00 19.9 1459 0.911 192 8.50 8.50 8.50 8.50 21.1 1460 0.911 192 8.50 8.50 8.00 9.00 21.1 1461 0.911 192 9.14 9.00 8.50 9.50 19.6 1462 0.910 192 9.07 9.00 8.50 10.00 19.7 1463 0.910 192 9.36 9.00 9.00 10.00 19.1 1464 0.910 192 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 19.9 1465 0.910 192 9.25 9.25 9.00 9.50 19.4 1466 0.909 192 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 19.9 1467 0.909 191 8.75 8.75 8.50 9.00 20.5 1468 0.909 191 9.50 9.50 9.00 10.00 18.9 1469 0.909 191 9.50 9.50 9.00 10.00 18.9 1470 0.908 191 9.80 10.00 9.00 10.00 18.3 1471 0.908 191 9.13 9.00 8.50 10.00 19.7 1472 0.908 191 9.67 10.00 9.00 10.00 18.6 1473 0.908 191 9.33 9.00 9.00 10.00 19.2 1474 0.907 191 9.50 9.50 9.00 10.00 18.9 1475 0.907 191 10.00 10.00 10.00 10.00 17.9 1476 0.907 191 10.00 10.00 10.00 10.00 17.9 1477 0.907 191 9.50 10.00 8.50 10.00 18.9 1478 0.906 191 9.50 9.50 9.00 10.00 18.9 1479 0.906 191 9.71 10.00 9.00 11.00 18.5 1480 0.906 191 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 20.0 1481 0.905 191 10.75 10.75 9.50 12.00 16.7 1482 0.904 190 9.75 9.75 9.50 10.00 18.4 1483 0.903 190 9.88 9.88 18.2 1484 0.903 190 10.00 10.00 10.00 10.00 18.0 1485 0.902 190 9.17 9.00 8.50 10.00 19.6 1486 0.901 190 10.00 10.00 10.00 10.00 18.0 1487 0.901 190 11.00 11.00 11.00 11.00 16.3 1488 0.900 190 10.66 10.66 16.9 1489 0.899 189 10.32 10.32 17.4 1490 0.899 189 10.00 10.00 10.00 10.00 18.0 Table A3.1 (cont.). Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 112 Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1491 0.898 189 9.88 9.88 9.50 10.00 18.2 1492 0.897 189 9.75 9.75 9.50 10.00 18.5 1493 0.897 189 11.00 11.00 11.00 11.00 16.4 1494 0.896 189 10.50 10.50 10.50 10.50 17.1 1495 0.895 189 10.25 10.25 10.00 10.50 17.6 1496 0.894 188 10.00 10.00 10.00 10.00 18.0 1497 0.894 188 10.00 10.00 10.00 10.00 18.0 1498 0.893 188 10.33 10.50 17.6 1499 0.892 188 10.67 11.00 10.00 11.00 17.2 1500 0.892 188 12.00 12.00 12.00 12.00 15.0 1501 0.891 188 12.24 12.24 14.7 1502 0.890 188 12.49 12.49 14.4 1503 0.890 187 12.74 12.74 14.2 1504 0.889 187 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1505 0.888 187 12.50 12.50 12.00 13.00 14.4 1506 0.888 187 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1507 0.887 187 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1508 0.886 187 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1509 0.885 186 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1510 0.885 186 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1511 0.884 186 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1512 0.883 186 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.00 13.9 1513 0.883 186 14.50 14.50 12.5 1514 0.882 186 16.00 16.00 16.00 16.00 11.3 1515 0.881 186 16.00 16.00 16.00 16.00 11.3 1516 0.881 185 12.00 12.00 12.00 12.00 15.1 1517 0.880 185 14.00 14.00 14.00 14.00 12.9 1518 0.879 185 16.00 16.00 16.00 16.00 11.3 1519 0.878 185 16.00 16.00 16.00 16.00 11.3 1520 0.878 185 15.00 15.00 14.00 16.00 12.1 1521 0.877 185 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 8.2 1522 0.876 185 36.00 36.00     5.0 1523 0.876 184 50.00 50.00 16.00 50.00 3.6 1524 0.875 184 19.25 (50**) 19.25 (50**) 19.25 19.25 9.4 (3.6**) 1525 0.875 184 16.00 16.00 16.00 16.00 11.3 1526 0.875 184 17.33 17.33     10.4 1527 0.875 184 18.67 18.67     9.7 Table A3.1 (cont.). Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 113 Year Fineness of silver mark, assump- tion Fine silver content of silver mark, grams Exchange rate, likely mean Exchange rate, likely median Exchange rate, lowest recorded Exchange rate, highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams, based on exchange rate 1528 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 20.00 20.00 9.0 1529 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 18.00 24.00 9.0 1530 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 24.00 24.00 9.0 1531 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 16.00 20.00 9.0 1532 0.875 184 20.00 20.00     9.0 1533 0.875 184 20.00 20.00     9.0 1534 0.875 184 20.00 20.00     9.0 1535 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 16.00 24.00 9.0 1536 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 18.00 20.00 9.0 1537 0.875 184 20.00 20.00     9.0 1538 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 20.00 24.00 9.0 1539 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 24.00 24.00 9.0 1540 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 24.00 24.00 9.0 1541 0.875 184 20.00 20.00 19.33 19.33 9.0 * Cross rates based on foreign exchange rates or prices. ** Debased coins. Comment: Values in italics are intrapolations or guesstimates. Sources: Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (1938, pp. 186, 194–5, 200 and 205), Dalslands diplomatar- ium (1996, pp. 131, 203, 230 and 245), Diplomatarium dalekarlicum, vol. 3 (1846, pp. 197–8), Diplomatarium Norvegicum, vol. 16 (1903, no. 169, 189, 209, 211 and 323), Dijkman (1686), Dovring (1947, p. 194), Forssell (1872, pp. 22–4, 52 and 90–1), Franzén (2006), Gillingstam (1996, pp. 129 and 135–6), Lönnroth (1940, pp. 145–6, 192, 196–7, 200 and 203–4), Närkes medeltida urkunder 1. Riseberga kloster (1935, pp. 67 and 106), Raven van Barnekows räkenskaper för Nyköpings fögderi 1365–1367 (1994), SDhk, Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (1876, pp. 16, 25, 38, 52, 69, 73, 107, 113–4, 245, 253, 257 and 418–20), Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt bur- språk (1917, p. 327), Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (1944, p. 84), Styfe (1875, pp. cxxvi n 2, cxxxvii n 2), Svenska medeltidsregester 1434–1441 (1937, pp. 160, 330 and 506), Svenska riks- archivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351. D. 1, 1351–1382, D. 2, 1383–140, and Tordeman (1936). See also the main text. Table A3.1 (cont.). Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 114 Table A3.2. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/stackot/tysk/ östgötsk 1211–1538. Year 1 silver mark in mark gut- nisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 1 Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk Relation Source 1211 4.5 1 mark silver = 4.5 mark gutnisk. Myrberg (2008, p. 88) 1265 6 1 mark silver = 6 mark rigisk. We assume: 1 mark gutnisk = 1 mark rigisk. Table A3.5 1312 7 1.4 1 mark silver = 5 mark svensk = 7 mark gutnisk SDhk 2506 1333 1 mark Skara weight [215 gram] Gotlan- dic coins = 38 2 /3 gros tournois [= 3.4-4 mark penningar] Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 234) 1343 1 Gotlandic mark silver = 30 groat of Flanders (= 0.9-1.1 mark of Lübeck). Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 461), and Spufford (1986, pp. 226-227) 1351 0.9? 44 mark silver, 9 öre and 1 örtug in Got- landic coins = 132 mark and 6 öre in Swedish coins, i.e. 1 mark silver of Got- land (=2 2 /3 mark gutnisk?) ≈ 3 mark örtug Hyöyniemi (1999, p. 8) 1354 Gotlandic pennies were evaluated to the old Swedish coin SDhk 6802 1364 7.75 (1.3) 1 mark silver = 7.75 mark in Gotlandic coins Hyötyniemi (1999, p. 15) 1389 (7.7) 1.2 1 gotnisk penning [= 1/32 mark tysk/ gutnisk] = 5 svenska penningar. Hildebrand (1894, p. 941) 1402 1 Gotlandic silvermark = 32 [Gotlandic] öre Hyötyniemi (1999, p. 9) 1405 (6.3) 1 ‘swænska pæninga’ [örtug] = 8 ‘pæninga’ and ‘gutniscan pæning’ = 6 ‘pæninga’. We assume: 1 öre gutnisk = 4 gutniska penningar SDhk 16470 1408 (8) (1.25) 2 ‘artinge gotländisch’ [= 2/32 mark gut- nisk] = 1/60 Prussian mark. We assume: 1 Prussan mark = 3 mark örtug Joachim (1896, p. 450) 1411 (1) 1 öre (gutnisk) = 4 ‘gotlandske penge’ = 3 ‘hvide tyske penge’ [i.e. 1 mark lybsk = 2 mark gutnisk]. We assume: 1 mark örtug = ½ mark lybsk. Danmarks riges breve, 4. række, bind 12, 1410–12, no. 310 1413 (11) 1.5 24 mark ‘thyst tal, ok tho i gotniskom pæningom’ = 16 mark ‘swenska pæninga’ SDhk 18147 1420 15 (1.9) 1 mark lödig = 15 mark (Östergötland) SDhk 19573 1420 15 (1.9) 1 mark lödig = 15 mark ‘her i Østergøt- lande’ SDhk 19579 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 115 Year 1 silver mark in mark gut- nisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 1 Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk Relation Source 1422 14 (1.7) 1 mark lödig = 14 mark gutniska Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1424 1 gute = 3/8 German Witten, i.e. [i.e. 1 mark of Lübeck = 4 mark gutnisk] Lundholm (1956, p. 212) 1426 15 (1.8) 1 mark lödig = 15 mark (Skänninge, Öst- ergötland) B.E. Hildebrands sam- lingar, vol 5 1426 20 (2.4) 1 mark lödig = 20 mark in Östergötland Hildebrand (1894, p. 941) 1427 (16) 2 1 mark gutnisk = ½ mark svensk Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1430 20 (2.4) 1 mark lödig = 20 penningemarker in Östergötland Hildebrand (1894, p. 941) 1431 20 (2.4) 1 mark lödig = 20 mark (Hanekind, Öst- ergötland) B.E. Hildebrands sam- lingar, vol 5 1432 18 (2.1) 1 mark lödig = 18 mark gutniska Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1434 (21) (2.5) 1 noble = 10 mark gutniska. We assume: 1 noble = 4 mark örtug. Hallenberg (1798, p. 17) 1440 28 (3.4) 1 mark lödig = 28 mark (Linköping) Lappkatalogen nr 46 1440 30 (3.6) 1 mark lödig = 30 mark (Linköping) Lappkatalogen nr 64 1444 40 (4.6) 1 mark lödig = 40 mark (Linköping) Lappkatalogen nr 152 1445 40 (4.5 ) 1 mark lödig = 40 mark (Skänninge, Öst- ergötland) B.E. Hildebrands sam- lingar, vol 5 1446 (36) 4 1 öre (gutnisk) = 6 penningar = 3 ‘svarta gutar’. Dovring (1947, p. 197) 1450 40 (4.5 ) 1 mark lödig = 40 mark (Skänninge, Öst- ergötland) B.E. Hildebrands sam- lingar, vol 5 1453 (51?) (6? ) 8 ‘gotniska bode nye oc gamble gongen’ = 1 örtug. We assume: 4 ‘gotniska’ = 1 öre gutnisk = 1/8 mark gutnisk. Liedgren (1967, p. 15) 1453 (34? ) (4? ) 8 ‘gotniska bode nye oc gamble gongen’ = 4 ‘grossa’ = 1 örtug. Hyötyniemi assume: 3 grossa = 1 öre gutnisk. Liedgren (1967, p. 15), and Hyötyniemi (2002) 1455 3 or 4? 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1456 (35) 4 1 öre (gutnisk) = 6 penningar = 2 danska vita. Dovring (1947, p. 197) 1457 3 1 mark stockholmsmynt = 3 mark grossa. Sjögren (1944, p. 354) 1459 30 (3.5) 1 mark lödig = 30 mark gutnisk Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1461 40 (4.4) 1 mark lödig = 40 mark in ‘Vadstena öst- götska penningar’ RA, pergamentsbrev 1461-01-03 1464 (36) 4 1 öre gutnisk = 6 penningar Dovring (1947, p. 196) 1472 (39) (4) 1 gyllen = 6 mark gunniska/stackota (the two were used as synonyms). We assume: 1 gyllen = 1.5 mark örtug Hildebrand (1894, p. 942) 1473 3 or 4? 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. Dovring (1947, p. 195) Table A3.2 (cont.). Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/stackot/ tysk/östgötsk 1211–1538. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 116 Year 1 silver mark in mark gut- nisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 1 Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk Relation Source 1474 3 or 4? 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1479 3 or 4? 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1480 16 1.4 1 mark lödig = 16 mark ‘gutniska vita’ = 12 mark ‘Stockholms halvörtugar’ = 11.5 mark ‘nya Stockholms örtug’. Probably relates to the metallic contents of coins rather than actual value relations. Dovring (1947, p. 197) 1482 3 or 4? 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1482 (53) 5 ⅓ 1 öre stackot = ½ skilling [= 1/32 mark dansk] Lundholm (1956, p. 212) 1487 (40) 4 Mark gutnisk was probably here used as a unit of account. Sjögren (1944, pp. 120– 1) 1487 3 4×18 örtugar = 9 mark gutniska Sjögren (1944, p. 354) 1496 3 or 4? 1 mark svenska = 3 mark stackota Hyötyniemi (2000, p. 51) 1513 (< 39) < 2⅔ Flour was purchased for 2 marks danska and sold for 4 marks gutniska [probably Gotlandic hvids, containing 0.1-0.13 grams fine silver per hvid]. Two other goods were sold for 16 and 33 per cent, respectively, above the purchase price. We assume 2 marks danska = 1.5 mark örtug. SDhk 37475 1514 48 (3) 1 mark lödig = 48 mark gutnisk Dovring (1947, p. 195) 1515 (64) 4 Mark gutnisk was probably here used as a unit of account. Lundholm (1956, p. 229) 1533 (68) 4 Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Hallenberg (1798, pp. 170–2) 1535 (68) 4 Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Hallenberg (1798, pp. 172–3) 1536 (72) 4 Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Hallenberg (1798, pp. 173–4) 1537 (76) 4 Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Hallenberg (1798, pp. 174–5) 1538 (80) 4 Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Hallenberg (1798, pp. 181–7) Comments: Te numbers in parentheses are our own estimates based on cross exchange rates (mainly through mark lödig in mark örtug); a question mark signifes a very uncertain interpretation of the sources. Table A3.2 (cont.). Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/stackot/ tysk/östgötsk 1211–1538. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 117 Table A3.3. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in marks of other Nordic regions. Year 1 silver mark in Nordic marks 1 Swed- ish mark in Nordic marks Relation/mark currency Source 1231 3 Danish mark Fauerholdt Jensen (1980, p. 88) 1240 2 1 mark silver = 2 Danish mark penningar [older coins] Fauerholdt Jensen (1980, p. 88) 1256 3.71 Danish mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1263- 1266 4.44 Danish mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1275 3 Norwegian mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1275/ 1280 4 Norwegian mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1285 3 Norwegian mark Nordström (1850, p. 38) 1274- 1282 4.8 (5 in Danish weight) 1 1 mark silver Danish weight = 1.04 mark silver Swedish weight = 5 Danish mark = 5 Swedish mark Fauerholdt Jensen (1980, pp. 30 and 81-86), and SDhk 1207 1282 1 mark in Swedish weight = 0.96 mark in Dan- ish weight Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 81) 1296 6.67 (1.3-2.2) Danish mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1298 5.33 (1-1.5) Danish mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1299 4.5 (1) Norwegian mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1306 8 (2) Danish mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1311 4.5 (0.9) Norwegian mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1313 4.07 (0.8) Scania mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1313- 1314 10-10.67 (2) Danish mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1325 4.5 (0.9) Scania mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1326 4.5 (0.9) Norwegian mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1332- 1334 (4.5) 8/9 1 mark of Scania = 1 mark 1 öre of Sweden Franzén (2006, p. 157) 1332- 1334 (4.5) 8/9 1 Swedish mark = 10 2/3 gros tournois and 1 mark of Scania = 12 gros tournois Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 146) 1334 4.5 (0.8-0.9) 1 mark of Scania = 1 skilling (12) gros tournois. We assume: 1 mark penningar = 9.6-11.3 gros tournois. Fauerholdt Jensen (1980, p. 20), Table A3.6 1338 10 (2) Danish mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1348 (5) 1 Monetary union between Sweden and Norway Rasmusson (1943, p. 270) 1350s 4.44-5 (0.8-1) Norwegian mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1355 (5-6) 1 Monetary union between Sweden and Norway Rasmusson (1943, p. 270) 1358 (5-6) 1 Monetary union between Sweden and Norway Rasmusson (1943, p. 270) 1350- 1360 5 (0.8-1) Scania mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1357 4.3 (0.8-0.9) Scania mark Fauerholdt Jensen (1980, p. 23) 1357 (4) (0.8) 1 Danish mark = 10 schillinge of Lübeck. We assume: 1 Swedish mark = 8 schillinge of Lübeck. Spufford (1986, p. 283) Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 118 Table A3.3 (cont.). Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in marks of other Nordic regions. Year 1 silver mark in Nordic marks 1 Swed- ish mark in Nordic marks Relation/mark currency Source 1358 5 (0.9) 1 mark silver = 5 new mark of Scania Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 1080) 2 nd half of 14 th century 6 (1) Norwegian mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1360 (4.8) 0.83 5 mark of Scania = 6 mark 1 öre of Sweden Franzén (2006, p. 157) 1369 5.625 Scania mark KHL, ‘Myntförsämring’ 1380 (4.5) (0.6) 12 Witten of Flensborg = 10 Witten of Lübeck. We assume: 1 Swedish mark = 24 Witten of Lübeck. KHL, ‘Hvid’ 1386 (4.8) (0.8) 1 Danish mark = 10 schillinge of Lübeck. We assume: 1 Swedish mark = 8 schillinge of Lübeck. Spufford (1986, p. 283) 1406 (4) (0.67) 1 Danish mark = 12 schillinge of Lübeck. We assume: 1 mark of Lübeck = 2 mark örtug. Spufford (1986, p. 283) 1420 3 (0.375) 4 ‘ænglisca’ [= 1/64 Danish mark, although this may have not been Danish money] = 1 ‘øre’, 8 ‘øra’ = 1 mark, 1 ‘lødhogh mark’ = 6 mark SDhk 19466 1424 1 Danish Witten = ½ Witten of Lübeck and 1 Danish penning = ½ lybsk penning, i.e. 1 mark of Lübeck = ½ Danish mark. Lundholm (1956, p. 212) 1437 (6.1) 0.73 17 mark jämtsk 4 öre = 24 mark svenska Ahnlund (1948, p. 482) 1453 (11.3) 4/3 1 ‘dansk hwit’ [4-penning-coin] = 3 ‘peninga’ Liedgren (1967, p. 15) 1453 (10.2) 1.2 1 ‘dansk Skilling’ = 10 ‘peninga’ Liedgren (1967, p. 15) 1453 (12.8) 1.5 1 ‘ny dansk Ängilsk’ [new 3-penning-coin] = 2 ‘peninga’ Liedgren (1967, p. 15) 1453 (8.5) 1 1 ‘gammal Ängilsk’ [old 3-penning-coin of Denmark = 1/64 Danish mark] = 3 ‘peninga’ Liedgren (1967, p. 15) 1456 (35) 4/3 6 penningar = 2 danska vita [= 2/48 Danish mark]. Dovring (1947, p. 197) 1480 14 1.19 1 mark lödig = 14 mark ‘kung Kristians vita’ = 12 mark Stockholms halvörtugar = 11.5 mark Stockholms örtugar. Dovring (1947, p. 197) 1480 13.6 1.15 1 mark lödig = 13.5 mark and ½ öre ‘danska vita’ = 12 mark Stockholms halvörtugar = 11.5 mark Stockholms örtugar. Dovring (1947, p. 197) 1493 (13.3) 4/3 2 ‘danska gamla vita mark’ = 1 Rhinish gulden. We assume: 1 Rhinish gulden = 1.5 mark örtug Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (p. 249, no. 174) 1539 4/3 1 Danish mark = 6 öre Hallenberg (1798, p. 150) 1541 0.9 1 joakimsdaler = 3 mark danskt mynt. We assume: 1 joakimsdaler = 3.5 mark in Swedish coins SS, O:1, f. 74 1545 0.8 3 mark danska penningar = 5 mark danska i svenska penningar = 3 mark 6 öre mark örtug Hallenberg (1798, p. 307) 1602 1 1 Danish mark = 8 öre SS, O:1, f. 141 1618 0.8 1 Danish mark = 10 öre SS, OO, f. 597 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 119 Table A3.4. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark of Lübeck. Year 1 silver mark in mark of Lübeck 1 Swed- ish mark in mark of Lübeck Relation Source 1307 2.75 (0.55) 1100 mark lübska penningar = 400 mark lödigt silver SDhk 2227 1342 2.8 (0.56) 1 mark silver = 45 schillinge of Lübeck. Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 21) 1349 (2.5) 0.5 165 ‘mark lybskt mynt’ = 330 ‘mark gängse svenskt mynt’ SDhk 5862 1361 ? <0.5 ‘en eller flera penningar i nu gängse mynt’ = ‘högst ½ penning lybskt mynt’ SDhk 8044 1364 (3) 0.5 2600 mark penningar = 1300 mark lybska Franzén (2006, p. 287) 1367 (2.5) 0.5 1 penning = ½ lybsk penning SDhk 9056 1375 (3) 0.5 1 lybsk penning = 2 svenska penningar SDhk 10692 1376 (3) 0.5 5 lybska mark = 10 mark svenska pen- ningar SDhk 40742 1390 (3.1) 0.5 1 mark of Lübeck = 2 Swedish mark SRP 2499 1398 (4) (0.625) 1 Prussian mark = 3 Swedish mark, and 1 Prussian mark = 30 schillinge of Lübeck (1399) Hirsch (1858, p. 243), and Sat- tler (1887, p. 144) 1400 (2.6) (0.43) 1 Prussian mark = 4 Swedish mark, and 1 Prussian mark = 27.25 schillinge of Lübeck Hirsch (1858, p. 243), and Sat- tler (1887, p. 144) 1400 2.8 (0.46) 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 26 1411 2.8 (0.43) 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 26) 1413 2.8 (0.4) 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck (good ones) Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 27) 1424 (4) 0.5 4-penning coin minted in Åbo = 2 holen- pfennings of Lübeck Hallenberg (1798, p. 15) 1424 (5.25) (0.66) 1 noble = 42 schillinge of Lübeck and 1 noble = 4 mark penningar Hallenberg (1798, p. 15), and Hildebrand (1983, p. 946) 1425 2.8 (0.35) 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck (probably older, better ones) Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 27) 1453 (9.3) 1.09 1 ‘Städer Skilling’ = 11 ‘peninga’ Liedgren (1967, p. 15) 1453 (8.5) 1 8 ‘Städer peninga’ = 1 örtug Liedgren (1967, p. 15) 1460 (7.7) 0.96 1 mark = 23 solidi lub. [= 23/24 mark of Lübeck] SDhk 27668 1484 (10) 1 1 mark of Lübeck = 1 Swedish mark Stockholms stads skottebok 1516–1525 (p. 307) 1524 (11) 0.67 1 mark of Lübeck = 1.5 Swedish mark Hammarström (1956, p. 405) 1531 (8.5) 0.5 1 mark of Lübeck = 2 Swedish mark Hammarström (1956, p. 405) 1532 (10.6) 0.625 1 mark of Sweden = 10 schillinge of Lübeck * 1539 0.5 1 mark lybsk = 2 mark örtug Hallenberg (1798, p. 150) 1541- 1543 0.65 1 daler = 3 mark örtug = 31 sk Lybsk. We assume: 1 mark lödig = 20 mark örtug. SS, OO, f. 173. 1544 0.5 1 mark lybsk = 2 mark örtug Hallenberg (1798, p. 285) * http://www.histosem.uni-kiel.de/lehrstuehle/land/waehrung/Katalog.html. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 120 Table A3.5. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark rigisk/revalsk. Year 1 silver mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk 1 Swed- ish mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk Relation Source 1211 4.5 1 mark rigisk = 1 mark gutnisk (=1/4.5 mark silver). Myrberg (2008, p. 88) 1265 6 1 mark silver (Danish weight) [= 1.04 mark sil- ver Swedish weight = 1.04 mark silver in the weight of Reval] = 6 mark revalsk 1 öre Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, pp. 81–4) 1282 1 mark silver in Swedish weight = 1 mark silver in the weight of Reval Fauerholdt Jensen (1990, p. 81) 1315 6 1 mark silver = 6 mark rigiska Hyötyniemi (1999, p. 6) 1316 6 1 mark silver = 6 mark rigiska Hyötyniemi (1999, p. 13) 1343 The coins of Riga were to be equal to Gotlan- dic coins. Hauberg (1891) 1401 (7) 1.11* 1 öre = 5 räfliska Nordström (1850, p. 161) 1404 (7) 1.11* 5 ‘ræflisk’ = 1 öre KHL, ‘Baltiska mynt’ 1409 (6) 0,89* 4 ‘Ræfflisca’ = 1 ‘øra’ KHL, ‘Baltiska mynt’ 1409 (4) 0.59* ‘en Ræuelisc ortogh fore IX peninga’ Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok no. 322 1411 (7) 1.11* 5 revalska = 1 öre De la Gardiska archivet 16 (1842, p. 181) 1414 (7) 0.89* 1 old (Åbo-)örtug = 6 penningar KHL, ‘Baltiska mynt’ 1414 (8) 1.07* 1 revalsk = 5 svenska småpenningar FMU 1426 1414 (8) 1.07* 1 revalsk = 5 svenska småpenningar Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok no. 345 1414 (13) 1.78* 1 revalsk = 3 penningar [official rate, probably not a market rate] Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok no. 349, KHL, ‘Bal- tiska mynt’ 1414 (9) 1.16* ‘89 Åbo-mark (5 revalska = 1 öre – 1 penning)’ SDhk 18390 1415 (7) 0.89* ‘40 mark viborgsmynt (4 revalska = 1 öre)’ SDhk 18543 1416 (9) 1.11* 1 revalsk skilling = 1/5 öre Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok no. 364 1416 (11) 1.33* 6 revalska örtug = 1 öre Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok no. 366 1418 (9) 1.07* 1 revalsk = 5 svenska småpenningar FMU 1521 1431 (9) 1.11 5 revalska örtug = 1 öre Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok no. 435 1436 (11) 1.33 Åbosk penning [= 1/36 mark rigisk] = 4 pen- ningar (according to the source, worth 6 pen- ningar earlier) Nordström (1850, p. 161) 1447 9 (1.04) 1 mark lödig = 9 mark rigisk FMU 2698 1451 (8.5) 1 3 skilling rigiska = 2 örtug KHL, ‘Baltiska mynt’ 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 121 Year 1 silver mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk 1 Swed- ish mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk Relation Source 1453 (11) 1.33 1 öre = 6 aboskor Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (p. 226) 1477 (8) 8/9 1 abo = 6 penningar KHL, ‘abo’ 1505- 1506 (14) 1.11 KHL, ‘Baltiska mynt’ 1527 (16) 8/9 1 mark rigisk = 9 öre Hammarström (1956, p. 426) 1533 (16) 8/9 1034 mark revalska = 1163.25 mark örtug Handlingar till bely- sande af Finlands kame- rala förhållanden på 1500-talet, 1 (1892, p. 21) 1535 (16) 8/9 1298 mark rigiska = 1460 mark örtug Hallenberg (1798, pp. 237–8) 1539 8/9 1548 mark 12 skilling rigiska = 1741.25 mark örtug Handlingar rörande Fin- lands kamerala förhål- landen på 1500-talet, 2 (1899, p. 1) 1541 8/9 1 mark [örtug] = 32 skylling [of Riga, 1 mark of Riga = 36 skilling] Hallenberg (1798, pp. 238–9) * See comment below. Comment: Tere seem to be three diferent countings of mark rigisk in the Middle Ages. Up to the early 14th century the mark rigisk was set equal to 24 artig; during the 14th century up to the 1420s the mark silver of Riga was counted as 144 artig; from 1420s the mark of Riga was set equal to 36 old artig or new schillings. To present a consistent series, the table counts one mark rigisk as 36 revalsk for the frst two decades of the 15th century as well (to estimate the value of the mark silver and Swedish mark in the higher-valued mark rigisk for this period, the data must be divided by four). Table A3.5 (cont.). Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark rigisk/revalsk. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 122 Table A3.6. Value of the Swedish mark in gros tournois. Year Assumed fine silver content in 1 gros tournois (gram) Swedish mark in gros tournois Implied fine sil- ver con- tent of the mark (gram) Relation Source 1291 4.044 10.2 41 25.5 gros tournois = 20 öre SDhk 1499 1328 3.6 9.6 34.6 1 gros tournois = 20 penningar Franzén (2006, p. 288) 1332 3.6 11.3 40.7 1 gros tournois = 17 penningar Franzén (2006, p. 288) 1333 3.6 10⅔ 38.4 4 solidus [12] gros tournois = 4 ½ mark SDhk 3956 1334 3.6 10⅔ 38.4 15 mark penningar = 13 solidus 4 gros tournois [=160 gros tournois], and 1 mark silver = 5 penningar Fauerholdt Jensen, 1990 (pp. 82-83) 1339 3.6 9.6 34.6 1 solidus [12] gros tournois = 10 öre SDhk 4541 and 4543 1357 3.6 1 mark silver Cologne weight = 5 skill- ing [12] gros tournois (old) SDhk 7186 Comment: Te gros tournois initially weighed 4.22 grams and had 23/24 fneness (KHL, ‘grossus’), which deteriorated in the 14th century. In Denmark 1332–52, the circulating gros tournois weighed 3.888 grams with 25/27 fneness (Fauerholdt Jensen, 1990, p. 17). Table A3.7. Other exchange rates for foreign silver coins. Year Relation Specified in the source/comments Source 1267 1 mark sterling = 160 sterling Mark sterling probably refers to the Cologne mark silver. SDhk 873 1272 1 mark silver/sterling = 144 ster- ling Mark sterling probably refers to the Swedish mark silver. SDhk 919 1282 1 mark silver in Swedish weight = 0.8533 mark in troy weight 167 mark silver in Swedish weight = 142 mark 4 ounce in troy weight [1 mark in troy weight = 8 ounces] SDhk 1207, and Fau- erholdt Jensen (1990, p. 81) 1328 1 pound sterling = 7.4 mark 67 pound 167 sterlings = 500 mark 6 ½ öre. SDhk 3554 1328 1 pound sterling = 8 1 /3 mark 3 skilling sterling = 10 öre Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 135d) 1328 1 Bohemian penny = 20 Swed- ish pennies 1 Bohemian solidi = 10 öre Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 135c) 1398 1 Preussian mark = 3 mark Styffe (1864, p. 57) 1414 1 Preussian mark = 2.5 mark 1 Preussian schillinge [=1/60 Preussian mark] = 8 penningar Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok nr 349 1416 1 Preussian mark = 2.5 mark 1 Preussian schillinge [=1/60 Preussian mark] = 1/3 öre Åbo domkyrkas svart- bok nr 364 1529 1 Preussian mark ≈ 1.3 mark 2968 Preussian mark ≈ 3900 mark örtug Hammarström (1956, p. 426) 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 123 Table A3.8. Exchange rate of noble in öre. Year Noble in öre Region Source 1395 24 Uppland Styffe (1864, p. 19) 1400 32 Öster götland SDhk 15507 1410 40 Finland FMU 1393 1421 16 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I (1921) 1422 32 Finland FMU 1709 1423 32 Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok nr 403 1424 32 Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 415 1425 32 Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 418 1425 31 Uppland Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (p. 32) 1426 32* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 421 1426 32 Söder manland SDhk 20741 1430 32 Finland FMU 1935 1431 33* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 437 1431 22 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I (1921, p. 29: 32) 1431 32 Närke Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok, p. 180 1432? 33* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 443 1433 32* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 444 1433 32* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 446 1434 32 Finland FMU 1434 80*** Finland Nordström (1850, p. 157) 1437 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 464 1438 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 474 1439 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 477 1439 34 Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 485 1440 34 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I (1921, p. 43: 32) 1440 28 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I (1921, p. 44: 28) 1441 36** Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 464 1441 36 Finland FMU 2388 1441 30 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I (1921, p. 45: 6) 1441 28 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I.(1921, p. 45: 11) 1441 24 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I (1921, p. 45: 16) 1442 32** Finland FMU 2455 1442 32 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I (1921, p. 46: 15) 1443 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 515 1443 36 Finland FMU 2547, probably Åbo marks 1448 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 540 1449 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 551 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 124 Year Noble in öre Region Source 1450 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 556 1452 32 Finland FMU 2901 1454 36* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 566 1454 34 Närke Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok, p. 180 1454 32 Finland Nordström (1850, p. 157) 1455 36 Närke Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok, p. 180 1456 32* Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 566 1456 35 Västman land Arboga stads tänkebok 1 (p. 60) 1456 32 Närke Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok (p. 180) 1458 32 Finland FMU 3068 and 3069 1477 38 Finland FMU 3675 1478 40 Uppland Funbo kyrkas räkenskapsbok, E 216, UUB 1527 72 Uppland Räntekammarböcker, vol 1, RA * Refers to Åbo-coins. ** Refers to Swedish coins. *** Refers to Gotlandic coins. Table A3.9. Exchange rate of Rhinish gulden in mark. Year Rhinish gul- den in mark Region Source 1444 6* Östergötland Lappkatalogen, RA 1444 6* Östergötland SDhk 24505 1477 2** Östergötland Lars Sparres kopiebok B 15 f 218, RA 1482 2** Östergötland Lappkatalogen, no. 121, RA 1482 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol 5, Lappkatalogen no. 139 1485 2** Östergötland Petersson (1973, p. 325 n 22) 1486 2** Östergötland Lappkatalogen, RA 1489 2** Stockholm Petersson (1973, p. 325 n 22), SDhk 32241 1491 2** Östergötland Petersson (1973, p. 325 n 22) 1491 2** Östergötland Lappkatalogen, RA 1492 2** Östergötland Forssell (1872, p. 22) 1492 1⅔ Uppland Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (p. 512) 1492 1.5 Uppland Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (p. 10) 1492 1.5 Uppland Sjögren (1944, p. 263) 1493 2** Småland Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (p. 249) 1493 2** Petersson (1973, p. 325) 1493 1.5 Östergötland Petersson (1973, p. 325) 1493 2** Östergötland SDhk 32853, Rääf (1856, p. 281) 1494 2** Småland Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (p. 249) 1495 2** Östergötland Petersson (1973, p. 325 n 22, Forssell (1872, p. 23) 1497 1.5 Uppland KHL, ‘Gyllen’ 1498 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol 5 Table A3.8 (cont.). Exchange rate of noble in öre. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 125 Year Rhinish gul- den in mark Region Source 1498 2** Östergötland Petersson (1973, p. 325 n 22) 1500 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol 5 1501 2** Lappkatalogen, RA 1503 2** Forssell (1872, p. 23) 1505 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 5 1505 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 6 1506 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 7 1506 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 8 1507 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 9 1508 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 10 1508 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 11 1508 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 12 1508 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 13 1509 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 14 1509 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 15 1509 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 16 1510 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 17 1510 2** Östergötland B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 18 1512 2** Östergötland Forssell (1872, p. 23) 1518 1.625 Uppland Historiska handlingar 40:1 (1977, p. 20 onwards). 1518 2 Uppland Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II-IV, p. 92 1519 2 Uppland Stockholms stads skottebok 1516–1525 (p. 119) 1525 2.5** Östergötland SDhk 38656 1529 2.25 Viborg FMU 6478 1529 3 Sandbergska samlingen OO, f. 26 1529 4 Hildebrand (1894, vol I:2, p. 947) 1530 4 Räntekammarböcker vol 1, RA 1534 2.25 Västergötland Hallenberg (1798, p. 127) * Most likely mark gutnisk. 6 mark gutnisk ≈ 1.5 mark örtug. ** Most likely expressed in mark danska. 2 mark danska = 1.5 mark örtug. Table A3.9 (cont.). Exchange rate of Rhinish gulden in mark. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 126 Table A3.10. Exchange rate of the Hungarian gulden. Year Hungarian gulden in öre Region Source 1489 72** Småland RA, lappkatalogen no. 92 1492 18 Uppland Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (p. 10) 1500 22 Uppland Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (p. 475) 1509 32.3 Forsell (1872, p. 23) 1512 32.4 Hildebrand (1894, vol I:2, p. 947) 1516 24 Uppland Helga lekamens gille II–IV (pp. 46–7) 1527 76 Stockholm Räntekammarböcker vol 1, RA 1529 36 Viborg FMU 6478 1534 30 Västergötland Hallenberg (1798, p. 127) 1538 40 Hallenberg (1798, p. 140) ** Expressed in öre gutnisk. 72 öre gutnisk = 18 Swedish öre. Table A3.11. Exchange rate of other gold units in öre. Year Value in öre Type of gold unit Region Source 1328 12 gold florin Östergötland Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 135c) 1328 577 mark gold Östergötland Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 135c) 1332- 1334 12 gold florin Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 146) 1333 11.62 gold florin Uppland Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 231a) 1334 10 gold florin Fritz & Bäärnhielm (1990, nr 265b and Bilaga 7) 1363 1 gold florin = 0.2 mark silver Cologne weight Uppland Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990, no. 1295) 1432 7 1 /3 gulden Uppland Örebro stads medeltidsurkunder 1 (1993, p. 19) 1432 7 1 /3 arnisk gyllen Uppland de Brun (1924, no. 390) 1434 16* arnoldsk gyllen Västergöt- land SDhk 22089 1436 8 arnoldsk gyllen Finland FMU 1441 16.8 arnoldsk gyllen Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 492 1449 7 arnoldsk gyllen Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 551; refers to Åbo marks 1450 6.5 arnoldsk gyllen Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 556; refers to Åbo marks 1453 6 light gulden Uppland 1453-10-11 B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 5 1460 8 gulden Uppland Stockholms stads skottebok 1460– 1468 (p. 2) 1492 6 arnoldsk gyllen Uppland KHL, ‘Gyllen’ 1510 20 gulden Västmanland Arboga stads tänkebok 3: 244 1520 20 gulden Sandbergska samlingen, O:1, f. 35 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 127 Year Value in öre Type of gold unit Region Source 1521 16 gulden Uppland Stockholms stads skottebok 1516– 1525 (p. 195) 1526 12 gulden of Lübeck Uppland Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (p. 104) 1527 15 probably gulden of Lübeck Uppland Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (p. 235 n 1) 1535 15 probably gulden of Lübeck Sandbergska samlingen, O:1, f. 70 1538 15 probably gulden of Lübeck Hallenberg (1798, p. 139) * Probably expressed in öre gutnisk. 16 öre gutnisk ≈ 7 Swedish öre. Abbreviations FMU: Finlands medeltidsurkunder. KHL: Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformations- tid (1956–78). RA: Riksarkivet, Stockholm. SDhk: Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven. SRP: Svenska riks-archivets pergamentsbref. SS: Sandbergska samlingen, RA. Unpublished sources Riksarkivet, Stockholm (RA) B.E. Hildebrands samlingar, vol. 5–18 Lappkatalogen Lars Sparres kopiebok B 15 Pergamentsbrev Räntekammarböcker, vol. 1 Sandbergska samlingen, O:1 Table A3.11 (cont.). Exchange rate of other gold units in öre. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 128 Uppsala universitetsbibliotek Funbo kyrkas räkenskapsbok, E 216, UUB Landsarkivet i Uppsala Arboga stads tänkebok (Arboga stads rådhusrätts arkiv) Published sources Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 jämte åtkomsthandlingar och andra därmed samhöriga aktstycken (1938), Stockholm. Edited by Almquist, J A. Dalslands diplomatarium (1996), Dalslands fornminnes- och hembygdsförbund, Åmål. Edited by Wiktorsson, P-A, and E Odelman. De la Gardiska archivet, 16 (1842), Lund. Edited by Wieselgren, P. Diplomatarium dalekarlicum, 3 (1846), Stockholm. Edited by Kröningssvärd, C G. Diplomatarium Norvegicum, vol. 16 (1903), Norsk historisk kjeldeskrift-institutt, Christiania. Edited by H.J. Huitfeldt-Kaas. de Brun, Frans (1924), Holmiana at alia, IV, Stockholm. Finlands medeltidsurkunder, 1–8, Finlands statsarkiv 1910–35, Helsingfors. Edited by Hausen, R. Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm, I–IV (1921–30), Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Edited by Collijn, I. Handlingar till belysande af Finlands kamerala förhållanden på 1500-talet, 1 (1892), Helsingfors. Historiska handlingar 40:1. Handlingar till Nordens historia 1515–1523, II:1, juli– december 1518 (1977), Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandi- naviens historia, Stockholm. Edited by Sjödin, L. Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok 1421–1590 (1946), Lunds universitet, Lund. Edited by L:son Samzelius, J. Närkes medeltida urkunder 1. Riseberga kloster (1935), Stockholm. Edited by Gran- dinson, K G. Örebro stads medeltidsurkunder 1 (1993), Örebro stads bildningsförvaltning, Öre- bro. Edited by Hansson, P. Rääf, L F (1856), Samlingar och anteckningar till en beskrifning öfver Ydre härad i Östergötland, I, Linköping. Raven van Barnekows räkenskaper för Nyköpings fögderi 1365–1367 (1994), Stock- holm: Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. Edited by Fritz, B, and E Odelman. Registrum ecclesiæ Aboensis eller Åbo domkyrkas svartbok (1890), Helsingfors. Edited by Hausen, R. Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (1876), Samfundet för utgivande av handskrif- ter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Edited by Hildebrand, H. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 129 Stockholms stads skottebok 1516–1525 (1935), Samfundet för utgivande av hand- skrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Edited by Almquist, J A. Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (1929–40), Gleerup, Lund. Edited by Larsson, L. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt burspråk (1917), Samfundet för utgi- vande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Edited by Hil- debrand, E. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (1944), Samfundet för utgivande av hand- skrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Edited by Carlsson, G. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (1930), Stockholm. Edited by Almquist, J A. SRP - Svenska riks-archivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351. D. 1, 1351–1382, D. 2, 1383–1400 (1866–68), Norstedts, Stockholm. Svenska medeltidsregester 1434–1441 (1937), Norstedts, Stockholm. Edited by Tun- berg, S. Vadstenadiariet (1996), Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandina- viens historia, Stockholm. Edited by Gejrot, C. Digital sources Danmarks riges breve, 4. række, bind 12, 1410–12, http://drb.dsl.dk/oversigt/4-12. html (2008-09-01). Fritz, B, and G Bäärnhielm, 1990, Sveriges mynthistoria: Magnus Erikssons tid 1319– 1363. Stockholm University. Word Perfect file. Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven (SDhk) www.ra.se/ra/ diplomat.html (2008-09-01). References Ahnlund, N (1948), Jämtlands och Härjedalens historia. D. 1, Intill 1537, Norstedts, Stockholm. Beckman, B (1954), Matts Kättilmundsson och hans tid, 2, 1319–1326, Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Brilioth, Y (1915), Den påfiga beskattningen af Sverige intill den stora schismen, Upp- sala. Day, J (1978), ‘Te Great Bullion Famine of the Fifteenth Century’, Past and Present, no. 79 (May), pp. 3–54. Dijkman, P (1686), Observationer, Som kunna gifwa någon anledning til dhe forna Swenskars och Göthers Penninge Rächningz beskafenheet / uthi många hundrade åhr tillbaka / uthur theras egne Handlingar / Lager /Afskeder / Recesser, Kiöpebreef / Cont- racter och Räkningar. Reprinted by Numismatiska Sällskapet i Göteborg (1980). Dovring, F (1947), Attungen och marklandet: studier över agrara förhållanden i medel- tidens Sverige, Gleerup, Lund. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 130 Dovring, F (1951), ‘“Mark karlgill”. Ett bidrag till det fornsvenska bötessystemets his- toria’ in Skrifter utgivna av Institutet för rättshistorisk forskning, Ser. II, vol. 1, Lund. Ekström, Gunnar (1948), ‘När upptäcktes Östra Silverberget?’, Historisk tidskrift, vol. 68, pp. 126–34. Fauerholdt Jensen, L E (1990), Mark sølv: mark penninge – mark korn: mønt: mål og vægt i Danmark 1000–1340, Odense Universitetsforlag, Odense. Forssell, H (1872), Anteckningar om mynt, vigt, mått och varupris i Sverige under de första femtio åren af Vasahusets regering, Norstedts, Stockholm. Franzén, B (1998), Sturetidens monetära system: pant eller penningar som information i köpstaden Arboga, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Franzén, B (2006), Folkungatidens monetära system: penningen mellan pest och patriar- kat 1254–1370, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Gillingstam, H (1996), Brev ur askan: de i slottsbranden eller på annat sätt förlorade miscellaneabreven enligt äldre arkivförteckningar, Johan Peringskiölds anteckningar m.m., Riksarkivet, Stockholm. Golabiewski Lannby, M (1995), ‘Makt, mark och penningar’ in Jonsson, K, U Nord- lind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatis- ka föreningen, Stockholm. Hallenberg, J (1798), Historisk avhandling om mynt och warors wärde i Swerige under Konung Gustaf I:s Regering, Ekmansson, Stockholm. Hammarström, I (1956), Finansförvaltning och varuhandel 1504–1540: studier i de yngre Sturarnas och Gustav Vasas statshushållning, Almqvist & Wiksell, Uppsala. Hauberg, P (1891), ‘Gullands Myntvæsen’ in Aarbøger for Nordisk Oldkyndighed og Historie, Copenhagen, http://www.gladsaxegymnasium.dk/2/hauberg/hbggot1. htm (2008-09-01). Hauberg, P (1906), Danmarks Myntvæsen i Tidsrummet 1146–1241, Det Kongelige danske videnskabernes selskab, Copenhagen. Heckscher, E (1941), Svenskt arbete och liv, Bonnier, Stockholm. Hemmingsson, B (2005), ‘Kenneth Jonsson: Utvecklingen av ekonomin som den speglas i myntningen’, Svensk Numismatisk Tidskrift, no. 3. Hildebrand, H (1879, reprinted 1983), Sveriges medeltid, vol. I:1, Norstedts (reprint: Gidlunds), Stockholm. Hildebrand, H (1894, reprinted 1983), Sveriges medeltid, vol. I:2, Städerna, Nor- stedts (reprint: Gidlunds), Stockholm. Hirsch, T (1858), Danzigs Handels- und Gewerbsgeschichte unter der Herrschaft des Deutschen Ordens, Hinzel, Leipzig. Holmberg, K (1995), ‘När kungens mynt blev allmogens mynt: En översikt över mynt, myntning och myntens roll i det svenska samhället under 1200-talet’ in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Hybel, N, and B Poulsen (2007), Te Danish Resources c. 1000–1550: Growth and Re- cession, Brill, Leiden. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 131 Hyötyniemi, Y (1999), ‘Fyra små gotar på en lybsk skilling’, Nordisk numismatisk unions medlemsblad, pp. 4–16. Hyötyniemi, Y (2000), ‘Om gutnisk mynträkning på 1400-talet’, Nordisk numisma- tisk unions medlemsblad, pp. 45–53. Hyötyniemi, Y (2002), ‘Om grupperingar av äldre gotar’, Nordisk numismatisk unions medlemsblad, pp. 45–59. Jesse, W (1928), Der wendische Münzverein, Lübeck. Jevons, S (1875), Money and the Mechanism of Exchange, D. Appleton and Company, New York, http://www.econlib.org/Library/YPDBooks/Jevons/jvnMMEtoc.html (2007-08-03). Jonsson, K (1995), ‘Från utländsk metall till inhemskt mynt’, in Jonsson, K, U Nor- dlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatis- ka föreningen, Stockholm. Jonsson, K (2002) ‘Utvecklingen av ekonomin som den speglas i myntningen’, in Birger Jarls tid – en brytningstid? Sex föreläsningar från ett symposium i Stockholm våren 2001, Sällskapet Runica et Mediævalia, Opuscula 8, Stockholm. Jonsson, K, and M Östergren (1998), Varför fck Gotland dansk mynträkning vid 1400-talets mitt?, http://www.gladsaxegymnasium.dk/2/artikler/jonssgot.htm (2007-02-01). Joachim, E (ed.) (1896), Das Marienburger Tresslerbuch der Jahre 1399–1409, Tom- as & Oppermann, Königsberg. Klackenberg, H (1992), Moneta nostra: Monetariseringen i medeltidens Sverige, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Källström, O (1939), Medeltida kyrksilver från Sverige och Finland förlorat genom Gustav Vasas konfskationer, Diakonistyrelsen, Stockholm. Lagerqvist, L, and Nathorst-Böös, E (1968), Mynt, Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts, Stockholm. Liedgren, J (1967), ‘Kontrakten med myntmästarna i Stockholm och Uppsala 1449– 1527’, in Nordisk numismatisk årsskrift. Lindert, P (2006), ‘Silver in Britain -- Mint prices 1273-1971 and market prices 1693-1977’. Excel-fle, http://gpih.ucdavis.edu/fles/Silver_value_of_1273-1977. xls (2008-12-15). Lundholm, K-G (1956), Sten Sture den äldre och stormännen, CWK Gleerup, Lund. Lönnroth, E (1940), Statsmakt och statsfnans i det medeltida Sverige, Acta Universita- tis Gothoburgensis, Gothenburg. Malmer, B (1980), Den senmedeltida penningen i Sverige, Vitterhets-, historie- och an- tikvitetsakademien, Stockholm. Myrberg, N (2008), Ett eget värde: Gotlands tidigaste myntning, ca 1140–1220, Stock- holms universitet, Stockholm. Myrdal, J, and J Söderberg (1991), Kontinuitetens dynamik. Agrar ekonomi i 1500-ta- lets Sverige, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Nordström, J (1850), Bidrag till penningeväsendets historia i Sverige intill konung Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 132 Gustaf I:s tid: afhandling, Vitterhets-, historie- och antikvitetsakademien, Stock- holm. Petersson, H (1973), Morgongåvoinstitutet i Sverige, Institutet för rättshistorisk forsk- ning, Stockholm. Rasmusson, N L (1943), ‘Studier i norsk mynthistoria under tiden 1270–1513’ in Fornvännen. Rasmusson, N L (1962), ‘Guldet i Norden under senmedeltiden’, in Proxima Tule. Sverige och Europa under forntid och medeltid, Norstedts, Stockholm. Redish, A (2000), Bimetallism: An Economic and Historical Analysis, Cambridge Uni- versity Press, Cambridge. Sattler, C (ed.) (1887), Handelsrechnungen des Deutschen Ordens, Duncker & Hum- blot, Leipzig. Sjögren, P (1944), Släkten Trolles historia intill år 1505, Almqvist & Wiksell, Uppsala. Spuford, P (1986), Handbook of Medieval Exchange, Boydell and Brewer, London. Spuford, P (1988), Money and its Use in Medieval Europe, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Spuford, P (2000), Monetary Practice and Monetary Teory in Europe (12th–15th. centuries), XXVI Semana de Estudios Medievales Estellas, 19 a 23 de julio de 1999, Gobierno de Navarra, Departemento de Educación y Culture, Pamplona. Stieda, W (ed.) (1921), Hildebrand Veckinghusen: Briefwechsel eines deutschen Kauf- manns im 15. Jahrhundert, Hirzel, Leipzig. Styfe, C G (1864), Bidrag till Skandinaviens historia 2, Stockholm. Tordeman, B (1936), ‘Sveriges medeltidsmynt’, Nordisk Kultur, vol. XXIX, Bon- niers, Stockholm. Turborg, M (1989), ‘Betalningsmedel under järnålder och tidig medeltid’, in Medel- tidens födelse, Gyllenstiernska Krapperupsstiftelsen, Lund. Volckart, O (2006), ‘Te Infuence of Information Costs on the Integration of Finan- cial Markets: Northern Europe, 1350–1560, Appendix 3’, http://www2.wiwi.hu- berlin.de/wg/volckart/pdf_fles/Infocosts%20Discussion%20Paper.pdf (2007- 09-01). Volckart, O (2007), ‘Te Infuence of Information Costs on the Integration of Finan- cial Markets: Northern Europe, 1350–1560’, in Müller, L, and J Ojala (eds.), In- formation Flows: New Approaches to the Historical Study of Business Information, SKS/Finnish Literature Society, Helsinki. Volckart, O, and W Nikolaus (2006), ‘Estimating Financial Integration in the Midd- le Ages: What Can We Learn from a TAR model?’, Journal of Economic History, Vol. 66, no. 1, pp. 122–39. Wallroth, K A (1918), Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser, Stockholm. Östergren, M, and K Jonsson (1998), ‘Varför fck Gotland dansk mynträkning vid 1400-talets mitt?’, http://www.gladsaxegymnasium.dk/2/artikler/jonssgot.htm (2008-09-01). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden-Finland 1534–1803 1 Rodney Edvinsson 4.1. Introduction This chapter discusses the currency system of Sweden-Finland in 1534–1803. What characterises most of the period was the perplexing parallel use of several domestic currencies. Exchange rates fluctuated not only on foreign currencies (see Chapter 5) but also between these domestic currencies. Such a monetary system is here termed a multi-currency standard, in contrast to the mono-currency standard with a single domestic currency (see Chapter 2) that is typical of the modern age. The axiomatic law of identity says that ‘A’ is always equal to ‘A’. The modern capitalist economy presumes such an identity, so that any two ‘American dollars’ are always equal. However, such identities cannot automatically be assumed for the pre- industrial era, since the meaning of a monetary term could differ between contexts and periods, creating confusion and occasionally also disputes about how to interpret contracts. Over time, a monetary term could bifurcate, multiplying the number of monetary units in use that shared the same name. Rationalisation of monetary rela- tions was part of the transformation from a pre-industrial to an industrial, capitalist economy. From the 16th century, Sweden-Finland had two silver currencies, the main one based on the mark, which was equal to 8 öre or 192 penningar (pennies), and the other one based on the silver daler (dollar), with a floating exchange rate between them. The silver daler was an international coin and was minted in Sweden-Finland from 1534 (see Chapter 5). Additional currencies, based on silver, copper and gold, came into use in the following centuries. 1 For many insightful comments and suggestions, I want to thank especially Göran Ahlström, Claes Berg, Bo Franzén, Klas Fregert, Göran Hansson, Lars Jonung, Lars O Lagerqvist, Håkan Lobell and Johan Söderberg. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 134 Figure 4.1 shows how the term ‘daler’ went through several semantic bifurcations in 1534–1873, giving rise to multiple types of monetary units with a historical origin in the silver daler of the 16th century. The first bifurcation occurred in the late 16th century between the silver daler as a coin with a stable silver content and the daler as a unit of account equal to 4 marks or 32 öre. The silver daler was termed slagen daler and later riksdaler (rix-dollar) and riksdaler specie, which continued to exist as a sta- ble monetary unit up to 1873, with about the same fine silver content as the reichs- taler according to the Leipzig convention of 1566 and later the Hamburger reichs- taler banco. In the 17th century further bifurcations occurred for the terms daler and riksdaler. In 1777 the riksdaler became the sole currency unit (if one disregards the gold ducat) but after only twelve years this mono-currency standard gave way to two dif- ferent currencies, one based on the riksdaler banco and the other on the riksdaler riksgälds. When the riksdaler riksgälds was fixed at 2/3 riksdaler banco in 1803, the period of multiple currencies was essentially over. The riksdaler specie [i silver] and the ducat did continue to exist as separate currencies at a floating exchange rate but they were of minor importance as domestic currencies. However, it was not until 1873, when the gold standard was introduced and the riksdaler riksmynt was replaced by the krona as the main unit of account, that Sweden finally got a true mono-cur- rency standard. The geographic spread of Swedish currency is a challenging issue. The boundaries of the kingdom of Sweden changed during the period studied here (see map below). Finland was a part of Sweden until 1809, when it was conquered by Russia, so Fin- land’s monetary history coincided with Sweden’s in this period. The term Sweden- Finland is sometimes used to describe the kingdom of Sweden from the Kalmar Union up to the Napoleonic wars. Scania, Blekinge, Halland, Jämtland, Härjedalen and Gotland belonged to Denmark-Norway in the 16th century, but were conquered by Sweden during the course of the 17th century and are part of Sweden today. Swe- den also had other possessions in this period, mainly in northern Germany and the Baltic region. The German possessions (for example, Swedish Pomerania, which is further discussed in Chapter 5) had their own monetary systems and did not usually use Swedish currencies. In 17th century Estonia, coins were minted according to the Swedish standard. Livonia, Estonia and Ingria were transferred to Russia in 1721. 2 The main disposition of the chapter is chronological. Section 4.2 examines the period 1521–1624, section 4.3 the period 1624–1719, the first period with the cop- per and silver standard, section 4.4 the period 1719–76, and section 4.5 the period after 1776 when riksdaler became the main currency unit in Sweden-Finland. Sec- tion 4.6 summarises the main results. Since the same monetary label could have different meanings in different circum- stances and in different periods, most of the monetary terms in this chapter are not 2 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, pp. 186–207). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 135 translated into English because that could be misleading. For example, the Swedish currency unit ‘daler silvermynt’ could be translated into ‘dollar silver coin’ or ‘dollar silver specie’, which would give the impression of a dollar existing in the form of a silver coin. However, daler silvermynt was a unit of account in which copper plate coins were denominated as well. Furthermore, after around 1665, actual silver coins were counted in daler courant and daler carolin rather than in daler silvermynt (see Figure 4.1). Both primary and secondary sources are used to estimate exchange rates between currencies. Wallroth’s Sveriges mynt 1449–1917 (1918) presents data on the minting, fine metal content and exchange rates between monetary currencies in Sweden from the late Middle Ages to the First World War. Its data on the legally fixed relations between currencies in Sweden are readily accessible and have been used in this study. Its data on the market exchange rate for the riksdaler are used only when there are gaps in other sources. A problem with Wallroth’s exchange rate data is that he does not always present his sources. For some periods he calculates the exchange rate between two coins on the basis of their fine silver contents. However, circulation by weight (i.e. in accordance with the coins intrinsic metal value) cannot simply be assumed (see Chapter 2). Sveriges Riksbank (1931) presents annual exchange rates from 1740 onwards. The annual figures are calculated as averages of the daily market exchange rates in Stockholm stads priscourant 3 and Post- och Inrikes tidningar (some of these primary sources are missing today). These daily exchange rates were never published by the Riksbank, but are available in handwritten form at the Riksbank archive. This mate- rial also provides information on the daily market exchange rates in the period 1705–36. 4 In his study on copper minting in 1624–1714, Wolontis (1936) presents monthly market exchange rates for the 17th century. The Sandbergska samlingen at the Riksarkivet contains some important informa- tion on the exchange rates from the Middle Ages to the 19th century. 5 The material varies in quality but a check with other sources suggests that it is quite reliable. Other sources have also been used and are discussed below. The further back in time one goes, the less reliable are the exchange rates. One 3 Stocholms stads priscourant were published weekly from the early 18th century. Te frst known issues are from 1705. Initially the prices were handwritten on pre-printed formulas, but from March 1740 the price courants were published as a numbered paper. See Svenska folket genom tiderna: vårt lands kulturhistoria i skildringar och bilder. 5, Den karolinska tiden (1939, p. 33). 4 Riksbankens arkiv, ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ and untitled volume with exchange rates 1804–89. 5 Sandbergska samlingen, vol. O:1, O:2 and OO (Riksarkivet). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 136 Figure 4.1. Te bifurcations of the term ‘daler’ 1534–1873. Note: Tis type of fgure of semantic bifurcations has been proposed by Klas Fregert. Te left scale is ordinal, and the diferences between levels should not be interpreted as exact measures. Each col- our denotes a particular monetary unit, though its name could change over time: - Dark blue: Joachimsdaler/daler/slagen daler/riksdaler/riksdaler specie (1534–1873). - Red: (svensk) daler/daler silvermynt i vitt mynt/daler carolin (1576–1776). Bifurcated from daler. - Dark grey: Daler klippingmynt (1591–93). Bifurcated from (svensk) daler. - Purple: Daler kopparmynt (1624/1633–1776). Bifurcated from (svensk) daler. - Light blue: Daler silvermynt (1624/1633–1776). Bifurcated from (svensk) daler. - Green: Daler courant (1650s–1776). Bifurcated from daler silvermynt i vitt mynt. - Pink: Riksdaler carolin (1660s–1776). Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie). - Yellow: Riksdaler courant (1660s–1776). Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie). - Light grey: Daler silvermynt i mynttecken (1716–19). Bifurcated from daler silvermynt. - Brown: Riksdaler banco (1789/1809-1855/1873). Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie). - Black: Riksdaler riksgälds/riksdaler riksmynt/krona (1789–present). Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie). 1 5 3 4 1 6 0 4 1 6 5 0 1 7 7 6 1 8 7 3 1 6 2 4 1 7 8 9 1 8 0 9 daler riksdaler daler carolin slagen daler (svensk) daler daler silver- mynt daler kopparmynt dalercourant riksdaler specie daler silver- mynt i vitt mynt 1 8 3 4 riksdaler banco riksdaler riksgälds riksdaler riksmynt krona daler klippingmynt 1 5 9 2 Joachims- daler 1 7 1 6 daler silvermynt i mynttecken riksdaler (specie) riksdaler riksdaler courant riksdaler carolin Mint equivalent (monetary units per kg fine silver) 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 137 Picture. Te kingdom of Sweden around 1661. Source: Cambridge Modern History Atlas (1912). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 138 specific problem is that the reported exchange rates were not always relevant for the whole of Sweden and the regional differences could be considerable. 6 Various methods are used to calculate central measures of exchange rate data. 7 4.2. The period 1534–1624 Up to 1624, Sweden-Finland had a de facto mono-metallic silver standard (see Chapter 2), albeit with some deviations. Most notably, individuals did not possess the right to turn bullion into coins, i.e. free minting was restricted (see Chapter 2). 8 This was used by the Crown in attempts to raise the value of coins above their intrin- sic metal value, and thus to increase seignorage from minting. These attempts could succeed only if the quantity of minted coins was restricted, which was done only in some periods and with limited success. The 16th century thus saw elements of an inconvertible currency, although it was not until the 18th century that such curren- cies were introduced on a larger scale. In the period 1534-1624 there were two major debasement cycles: 1561–76 and 1590–93. Both coincided with a need to finance a war effort by increasing seignor- age. Some of the inferior coins were called clippings because they were cut into a square form to speed up minting. After some delay, the value of the debased coins fell towards their intrinsic metal value. The two debasement phases were followed by recoinage and the reintroduction of better coins (with the same, or nearly the same, fine silver content as before the debasement). The face value of the debased coins was reduced. 6 Hegardt (1975, p. 222). 7 When data are reliable, the geometric average is used, especially when annual averages are cal- culated from monthly data. Te geometric average of data expressed as a percentage (mainly various premiums) is calculated by transforming the data into ratios, then calculating the geo- metric average of the data in ratio form, and fnally transforming the average ratio into a per- centage. Te advantages of a geometric average as opposed to an arithmetic average are the former’s sym- metry and the fact that exchange rates tend to change geometrically rather than arithmetically. For example, if an annual geometric average is calculated from the monthly data on one pound in dollars, the inverse of this value would be the same as the annual geometric average calcu- lated for the monthly data of one dollar in pounds using the same data set. Te arithmetic aver- age does not gurantee such automatic equality. For example, say that during a year one pound is variously worth one and two dollars, respectively, during equal lengths of time. Te arithme- tic average exchange rate is 1.5 dollars per pound, and the inverse value is 0.667 pounds per dollar, which expresses the value of one dollar in pounds. However, calculating the arithmetic average of the exchange rate of one dollar in pounds (one dollar is worth one pound and half a pound, respectively), is 0.75 pounds per dollar. Te geometric average is 0.707 pounds per dol- lar. When data are less reliable, the median is used. Te median is especially efective to eliminate extreme values. Occasionally, the arithmetic average is also used. 8 Heckscher (1935, vol. I:1, p. 202). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 139 There were also two minor debasements in this period, in 1540 and 1604, but they were not followed (within the next 1–2 decades) by further debasements or recoinage and were therefore not part of a debasement cycle. The two major debasement cycles followed the pattern in other countries. During the Great Debasement in England 1542–51, seignorage rose to as much as 57 per cent of government revenue, whereas the typical level under normal circumstances was less than two per cent. 9 Sussman and Zeira stress that in time people found ways to protect themselves from the consequences of debasement and debasement policy became less effective. 10 There was a limit to the extent to which the fineness of coins could be reduced. The lower the fineness, the greater the probability of recoinage. Expectations rose that the debased coins would be soon worth only their fine metal content. As a result, minting often declined towards the end of a debasement cycle. Rolnick, Velde and Weber (1996) write that the profitability of debasement is still a puzzle. From empirical evidence that lags in prices and exchange rates due to debasement were, at most, only a matter of weeks, they concluded that gold coins circulated by weight (i.e. in accordance with their intrinsic metal value) and that sil- ver coins did so, too, at least some of the time. However, they also find that minting and seignorage increased dramatically in the wake of debasement, which would be illogical if coins did indeed circulate by weight (at least under free minting). Peter Spufford similarly upholds, in relation to Medieval Europe, that when ‘the debase- ments or strengthenings of a currency were very large, the exchange rates, as with modern devaluations, altered radically within weeks or even days’. 11 In their study of the debasement cycles in France during the 14th and 15th cen- turies, Nathan Sussman and Joseph Zeira maintain that debasement was an effective instrument of public finance. 12 In everyday life, debased coins circulated by tale (i.e. in accordance with their face value), not by weight. This was so because determining fineness required the specialised assistance of silversmiths, which was costly. 13 As Sussman and Zeira put it: ‘people did not go to an expert before each transaction at the marketplace, but they did go to an expert after a debasement to check which coins to remint’. 14 According to them, there was a lag of up to several years before the price level adjusted to debasement. While the mint price was disclosed, the mint equivalent (the nominal value minted from a fixed weight of a metal) was not neces- sarily known to the general public. This could be used in the short term to increase the mint equivalent much more than the mint price, and thus to increase the rate of 9 Velde, Weber and Wright (1999, p. 293). 10 Sussman and Zeira (2003). 11 Spuford (1988 p. 293). 12 Sussman (1993) and Sussman and Zeira (2003). 13 In his study of the Swedish Middle Ages, Hans Hildebrand (1983, p. 935) also argues that the general public was well informed about the weight of coins but not so about the percentage of fne silver. 14 Sussman and Zeira (2003, p. 1776). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 140 seignorage (the ratio of the profit from minting to the mint price). Despite the high seignorage, merchants voluntarily provided the mint with more bullion than previ- ously. The price level tended to follow the mint price rather than the mint equiva- lent, at least in the short term. 15 In her study, Angela Redish concludes that the effect of undervaluation was ambiguous. 16 The high seignorage rate during a debasement (which was typical 17 ) partly consti- tutes a temporary deviation from free minting in the proper sense and introduces elements of a fiat standard. If debasement policy is successful, the debased coins, at least temporarily, de facto function as token coins. For example, assuming a gross seignorage rate of 300 per cent, when coins are converted into bullion, only 25 per cent of their nominal value is recovered. In Sweden-Finland, there were periods when the fine silver content per unit of value of coins of lower denomination was lower than that of coins of larger denomi- nation, which opened up for the possibility of a fluctuating exchange rate between coins of various denominations (so that one mark in coins of higher denomination could temporarily be worth more than 8 öre in coins of lower denomination, even though officially 1 mark = 8 öre). Such a multi-currency standard (see Chapter 2) probably existed temporarily in the early 1570s, early 1590s and a few years after 1604, but was more common later, in the 17th and 18th centuries. Better coins minted earlier continued to circulate after the mint equivalent had been increased. The coins of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) (minted up to 1560) and King Erik XIV (minted 1561–8) continued to circulate in the last two decades of the 16th century. However, these older coins did not necessarily circulate by weight. 18 Loans were often paid back in the same coins (for example, silver daler or gold coins 19 ) as those in which they were originally made, thus safeguarding the creditor from inflation. These are clear examples of a multi-currency standard and an econ- omy where money was not fully a generalised unit of account. 15 Sussman (1993, pp. 55 and 61). 16 Redish (2000, p. 33). 17 Velde, Weber and Wright (1999, p. 292). 18 In 1576, 1.25–1.625 marks in the coins of King Erik XIV (Wallroth, 1918, p. 23) were exchanged for one mark in new coins. Te exchange rate, 1.625 marks in coins of King Erik XIV for one mark in new coins, is also reported for 1583 (see Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952, p. 79). Coins of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) circulated after 1576 at their nominal value, despite having a higher silver content than the coins minted after 1576. Accord- ing to one source, marks of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) were exchanged at half their nominal value in 1598 (Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952, p. 271), which was signif- cantly below their intrinsic metal value. 19 One example of a loan in engelots can be found in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941, p. 624). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 141 Riksdaler coins from 1542 (top left), 1631 (top right), and 1829 (bottom). Te silver daler minted in the 16th century was still valid as a means of payment three centuries later. Its fne silver content was stable but the purchasing power of metallic silver fell over time. In terms of what a male unskilled labourer could earn in Stockholm, one silver daler represented wages for around 12 days in 1542, around 6½ days in 1631 and around 3½ days in 1829. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 142 4.2.1. The first silver daler coins It was during the 16th century that the first larger silver coins were minted, an indi- cation that trade in larger volumes was becoming more common. So-called gyllen coins were minted in the 1520s but were superseded later by the daler coins. The first daler coin was minted in 1534 20 after the German taler, which had been introduced in the late 15th century. 21 At first the fine silver content of one daler was 28.06 grams. From 1540 it was reduced to 25.6 grams, after which, with some minor changes, it had this stable silver content up to 1873 (when the krona was intro- duced). From 1593 the slagen daler was also called riksdaler 22 (earlier the term riksdaler mainly referred to foreign coins) and this became the only label for these coins from the early 17th century. The minted daler or riksdaler must be distinguished from the daler as the unit of account, which was set equal to 4 marks from the 1570s onwards. The daler as the unit of account depreciated continually relative to the riksdaler during the 17th and 18th centuries. Later the term riksdaler also came to refer to various currency units of different values. A riksdaler with a stable silver content was named riksdaler specie. The daler with a stable silver content is referred to here as a silver daler (daler/ slagen daler in the 16th century, riksdaler/riksdaler specie in the 17th, 18th and 19th centuries). Since the fine silver content of a silver daler was stable over time, it pro- vides a reference for prices to be expressed in grams of silver. Several sources are used to estimate the exchange rate of the silver daler in marks in the period 1534–1624 (see Figure 4.3). When values differ in the course of a year, a median value has been calculated. 23 Some interpolations are made for years when no reliable sources are available, although most years could be covered. In the 1530s, one silver daler was worth between 3 and 4 marks (see Table A4.7), which was in accordance with the theoretical exchange rate based on the silver con- tents of the two coins. In 1540 the silver content of both coins was reduced, but more for the mark coins. The Crown wanted the mark coins to circulate at the old exchange rate, but ini- tially this failed. The exchange rate of the silver daler rose to 4–4.5 marks in the latter half of the 1540s (the theoretical exchange rate was 4.25 marks). King Gustav Eriks- son complained about this. According to him, the exchange rate should have been 3 marks for one silver daler. A deliberate attempt was made to reduce minting. The mint in Svartsjö was closed in 1550 and in 1551–5 it seems that no coins were 20 Wallroth (1918). 21 Shaw (1895, p. 363). 22 Heckscher (1935, vol. I:1, p. 219). 23 Sandbergska samlingen, Riksarkivet, Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Odén (1955), Odén (1960) and Wallroth (1918). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 143 minted in Sweden-Finland. 24 The reduced quantity of minted coins partly had the desired effect. The exchange rate of the silver daler fell to 3.5–3.75 marks in the lat- ter half of the 1550s, although not as low as the 3 marks desired by the king. Figure 4.2 presents the value ratio (in per cent) of one gram fine silver in mark coins to one gram fine silver in silver daler coins. A value of 100 per cent denotes that the actual exchange rate of the mark was equal to the theoretical rate. A value above 100 per cent indicates that mark coins were overvalued in relation to silver daler coins, and that the seignorage rate was higher for mark coins than for riksdaler coins. Under circulation by weight, the value could fall somewhat below 100 per cent, as can be observed for some periods, since mark coins were more exposed to wear and tear and silver daler coins were used in international trade. Seignorage could be posi- tive at a level slightly below 100 per cent, since the unminted silver was worth some- 24 Lagerqvist (1995, p. 142). Figure 4.2. Value ratio (in per cent) 1535–1625 of one gram fne silver in mark coins to one gram fne silver in riksdaler coins. 80 100 120 140 160 180 200 220 240 260 1540 1550 1560 1570 1580 1590 1600 1610 1620 Sources: Based on Table A4.7 and Wallroth (1918). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 144 Figure 4.3. Daler/slagen daler/riksdaler i marks 1534–1624, market rate. Sources: See Table A4.7. Two breaks occur. In 1575/6, one new mark was exchanged for 6.5 debased mark coins. In 1593, one new mark was exchanged for 4 debased marks. what less than silver in the form of silver daler coins. The figure shows that the amount of seignorage was significant in the periods 1541–60, 1590–92 and 1604– 10, which coincided with debasements. However, the debasement in the early 1570s was probably not as successful in generating substantial seignorage to the Crown. 4.2.2. The debasement cycle of 1561–76 During and after the Northern Seven Years’ War 1563–70 there was a continuous depreciation of the mark, causing rampant inflation. In 1561–62, one silver daler stood at 4 marks. In 1563 the rate stood at 4.5 marks, in 1566–67 at 6–7 marks, and in 1568 at 7–8 marks. The depreciation was worst after the war. Sweden had to pay a ransom of 150,000 daler for the Älvsborg fortress. The price of one silver daler was at most 32 marks, in 1574. 25 Various measures were taken to enforce the face value of the coins and prevent the older, better coins from being melted down into bullion by others than the Crown. Although the Crown was initially able to exchange debased coins at par with the old coins (or at least at a better rate than suggested by their intrinsic metal content), 26 25 Wallroth (1918, pp. 28–9 and 36–7). 26 Heckscher (1935, vol. I:1, p. 205). 0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 1530 1540 1550 1560 1570 1580 1590 1600 1610 1620 Daler in marks 1534-76 Slagen daler in marks 1576-93 Slagen daler/riksdaler in marks 1593-1625 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 145 prices and exchange rates quickly adjusted in response to debasement. The annual Consumer Price Index presented in Chapter 8 closely followed debasement. A decision on 12th May 1575 enabled the public to exchange the debased coins for new, better coins. However, the exchange rate varied. While the official price of one silver daler was 4 marks in new money, it was 9.5–11 marks in coins of 1569, 13 marks in coins of 1570, and 26 marks in coins of 1571–74 (somewhat better than the market exchange rate in 1574). 27 Hence, at least towards the end of the debase- ment cycle, the various coins seem to have circulated by weight, not by tale. Since coins were minted in 1571–74 on a much larger scale than in the previous period, it can probably be assumed that it was the coins of 1571–74 which domi- nated domestic trade (the Crown’s exchange operations also reduced the supply of older coins). The value of the mark klipping-coin was later reduced to one öre (1/8 of a mark), i.e. below its official exchange rate in 1575 as well as its intrinsic metal value. 4.2.3. The daler becomes two different monetary units The distinction between money as a unit of account and as a commodity (intrinsic value coins) increases the likelihood of terminological bifurcations of monetary units (see Figure 4.1). After the inflation episode in the first half of the 1570s, King Johan III wanted the silver daler to equal 4 marks, but that could not be maintained. The fine silver con- tent of one silver daler was 4.25 times the fine silver content of the mark coin. According to Birgitta Odén, it was in this period that the daler came to refer to two different currencies: the unit of account equal to 4 marks and the silver daler. Odén argues that Heckscher was wrong in claiming that these two different meanings of daler did not arise until the 1590s. Still, it was not until the 1590s that a substantial difference can be observed between prices expressed in slagen daler (minted daler) and in räknedaler (daler as unit of account). In the second half of the 1570s and the early 1580s the silver daler stood at 4.25 marks (hence, 1 silver daler = 1.0625 räknedaler); the rate then increased to 4.5 marks in the late 1580s. 28 4.2.4. The debasement cycle of 1590–93 The Northern Seven Years’ War was followed almost immediately by a war with Russia, which continued up to 1595. After the introduction of the new mark, there was a period when the currency was quite stable. In the closing years of the reign of Johan III the value of the Swedish mark then deteriorated rapidly. The rampant 27 Wallroth (1918, p. 23). 28 Odén (1955, p. 241). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 146 inflation caused much confusion and confidence in money weakened. The exchange rate between the silver daler and marks was probably varied, depending on the coins in which the mark was counted. According to Wallroth, in 1592 the exchange rate for one silver daler rose to 38 marks in one-mark coins and to 84 marks in ¼-öre coins. 29 The difference can be explained by the much lower silver content of the ¼-öre coin per unit of value rela- tive to coins of higher denominations. However, Wallroth does not refer to any empirical sources. His exchange rates for 1592 rather seem to be based on the fine silver metal contents of the minted coins (a method he uses elsewhere in his work), not on prevailing market rates. 30 In the present study, no empirical sources have been found to support such high exchange rates. Therefore, Wallroth’s assumptions for 1592 are not used. The empirical material gives a somewhat confusing picture of prices and exchange rates in the early 1590s. The price material, for example in Handlingsräkenskaperna, often indicates a remarkable stability in the early 1590s, which suggests that the debased coins were accepted at their face value and did not cause any substantial inflation. However, Birgitta Odén argues that the prices in Handlingsräkenskaperna in 1591–93 are ficti- tious, since they were used as the basis for barter trade to register relative prices between goods. 31 The old price level could, therefore, be retained, in spite of the rampant inflation when it came to actual monetary transactions. Although minting shows that the debased coins dominated circulation compared to coins minted earlier, 32 according to Eli Heckscher, most trade during the height of monetary disarray in the early 1590s was probably conducted by barter or was discontinued, since people no longer trusted the coin as a means of exchange. Barter trade was also common under normal circumstances. 33 In 1593 and 1594 the inferior coins were exchanged for new coins. As in 1575, the rate varied between different debased coins (see Table 4.1). However, whereas in the mid-1570s debased coins were exchanged largely in accordance with their intrin- sic metal value, in 1593–94 they were exchanged at a much better rate than their fine silver content implied. The fine silver content of the most inferior klipping-mark in 1592 was almost one-tenth of that of the new silver mark minted in 1593, but it was devalued to ¼ of the face value. It was not until May 1594 that the klipping mark 29 Te minting statistics show that mark coins probably dominated circulation over coins of the lowest denomination. 30 Wallroth (1918, pp. 44–5). Te fne silver content of the round one-mark coin was 0.6758 gram, the one-mark klipping coin 0.6473 gram, and the ¼-öre coin 0.0095 gram. Since the fne silver content of the one-daler coin was 25.5957 grams, the exchange rate based on rela- tive silver contents would be 37.9 marks in round one-mark coins, 39.5 marks in mark klip- ping coins and 84.2 marks in ¼-öre coins. 31 Odén, (1960, p. 207). 32 Wallroth (1918, p. 42–7). 33 Heckscher, (1935, vol. I:1, p. 82). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 147 was devalued further, to ¾ öre (=3/32 mark), in accordance with its fine silver con- tent. 34 In 1593, confidence in money had not yet been restored. According to Stockholms stads tänkeböcker, klipping coins as well as proper coins were often rejected as pay- ment. 35 The debasement in the early 1590s could be seen as an attempt, in an emergency, to de facto introduce token coins that were supposed to circulate by tale. The attempt to de facto introduce a fiat currency was initially successful. Price regulations were imposed to ensure this. In January 1591, King Johan III solemnly promised that one year later the debased coins would be exchanged at their full nominal value in better coins. 36 According to Eli Heckscher, arguing against a ‘metallic viewpoint’ that the value of money is completely determined by its intrinsic metal content, the attempt only failed because too many of the inferior coins were minted. He therefore insists that the quantity theory of money is of some relevance for explaining inflation in the 16th century. 37 There was a time lag before debasement affected prices and exchange rates. Stock- holms stads tänkeböcker is filled with reports of high prices and exchange rates in 1592, but there are none in 1590 or 1591. At a meeting between the King’s representatives and the commons on 5th June 1592, it was announced that the mark klipping coin would be reduced to two öre (¼ mark), in accordance with the prevailing market rate, and that prices would be freed. Next day, however, the decision was revoked and it was decreed that the mark coin must be accepted at its full face value. A few days later traders were urged to sell at better prices and prices were imposed on beer and bread but the traders refused to conform. 38 It is likely that during the second half of 1592 the exchange rate stabilised at four debased marks for one mark in proper (older) coins, and that inflation during the debasement cycle in the early 1590s amounted to not more than 300 per cent, not 800 per cent (or more) as suggested by the silver content of the debased coins. For example, there is a report from July 1592 that iron was sold for 24 daler per ship pound in debased coins, but would be paid for at 6 daler per ship pound in older, better coins. 39 Since the exchange rate of the debased coins, even at its lowest in 1592, was more than twice their intrinsic metal value, they continued to de facto function as token coins up to 1593 or early 1594. This is a clear difference from the debasement cycle of 1561–76. One explanation could be that the earlier debasement cycle was more 34 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939, part I, 1592–95, p. 218). 35 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939, part I, 1592–95, p. 118). 36 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1589–1591 (1948, p. 239). 37 Heckscher (1935, vol I:1, p. 227). 38 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939, part I, 1592–95, pp. 51–3 and 63). 39 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939, part I, 1592–95, p. 72). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 148 Table 4.1. Te of cial conversion rates for various domestic currencies 1534–1624. Date Official conversion rates Assumption in this study 1568 1 ungersk gyllen = 1.5 slagen daler 1 krongyllen = 1.25 slagen daler 12/5 1575 1 daler = 4 marks in new money (valid up to 1589) 1 new mark exchanged for 6.5 marks in coins of 1571–74 1 new mark exchanged for 3.25 marks in coins of 1570 1 new mark exchanged for 2.375–2.75 marks in coins of 1569 1 new mark exchanged for 2.125 marks in coins from Vad- stena of 1568 1 new mark exchanged for 1.25–1.625 marks in coins of King Erik XIV 1 mark of coins of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa), no change in nominal value* After 6/3 1576, for klipping coins not exchanged previ- ously: 1 new mark = 8 marks in klipping coins 1 new mark = 6.5 old marks 12/1 1593 1 new mark = 4 marks in 1-mark- and 2-öre coins of 1591 and 1592 (1-mark klipping reduced to 2 öre already on 8/12 1592) 1 new mark exchanged for 2 marks in ½-öre coins of 1591 and 1592 1 new mark exchanged for 1 1 /3 mark in coins of 1590 (including gold coins), and 2-mark and 1/2-mark coins of 1591 and 1592 1 new mark = 1 mark in coins minted before 1590 1 (Swedish) daler = 4 marks (unit of account used up to 1776) 1 silver daler (slagen daler) = 4.5 marks = 1.125 Swedish daler 8/5 1594, 1 mark klipping further devalued to ¾ öre.** 1 new mark = 4 old marks 22/3 1604 1 (Swedish) daler = 4 marks (valid up to 31/12 1776) 1607 1 riksdaler = 4.5 marks = 1.125 daler 7/9 1619 1 riksdaler = 52 öre = 6.5 marks = 1.625 (Swedish) daler (valid up to 16/8 1633) Sources: Wallroth (1918), Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformations- tid (1956–78), Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet), Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968) and Franzén (2006). * According to a royal decree in January 1575. See Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941, p. 544). ** Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592, part 1 (1939, p. 218). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 149 protracted, so that agents had more time to come to terms with the true value of the inferior coins. 4.2.5. The minor debasement in the early 17th century In the period 1593–1604 one silver daler was roughly equal to 4.5 marks. In 1604 the silver content of the mark coin was reduced. According to Wallroth, 40 this led to the exchange rate of one riksdaler being 6 marks from 1604 onwards. However, according to the Sandbergska samlingen, one riksdaler was worth 4.5 marks as late as 1610. Wallroth’s ‘metallistic’ assumptions must again be questioned. In 1607, the official value of the riksdaler was fixed at 4.5 marks. 41 The exchange rate probably rose gradually from 4.5 marks to 6 marks in this period. For example, in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker, an exchange rate of 5 marks and 2 öre for one riksdaler is reported for early 1608. 42 Such a rate suggests circulation neither by weight nor by tale, but something in between. Rather than being immediate, the adjustment of the exchange rate was probably a drawn-out process lasting several years. In this study it is assumed that the exchange rate of the riksdaler was 4.5 marks up to 1607, 5.25 marks in 1608–10, and 6 marks in 1611 (see Table A4.7). One reason for the exchange rate’s slow adjustment after 1604 was that the new, lighter two-öre and one-öre coins did not come into circulation on a sizeable scale until 1608 and 1609. 43 It is possible that in the period 1605–9 the exchange rate for a riksdaler in mark coins differed from that in öre coins. It must be borne in mind that it was the öre coins which dominated money supply. It is also possible that the new mark coins were accepted initially at the same or almost the same face value as the older mark coins and thus at significantly above their intrinsic metal value. 4.2.6. Gold coins The circulation of gold coins in Sweden-Finland in the period 1534-1624 implied that there was not a pure silver standard. However, since domestic transactions were overwhelmingly conducted in mark silver coins, the monetary standard should be described predominantly as a monometallic standard in this period (see Chapter 2). The first gold coin minted in Sweden-Finland was the ungersk gyllen. It was struck in 1568-1573. 44 Another gold coin, minted in 1569-1573 and 1598-1599, was the krongyllen. 45 The fine gold content of one ungersk gyllen was 4.1245 grams 40 Wallroth (1918, p. 60). 41 Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet), O:1 , folio 1434. 42 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1963, vol. VI, 1605–08, p. 302). 43 Wallroth (1918, pp. 62–3). Te 2-öre coins were minted on a small scale in 1605 and then annually from 1608 onwards. Te lighter one-öre coins were not minted until 1609. 44 Tingström (1972, p. 77). 45 Forssell (1872, pp. 84–8). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 150 and of one krongyllen 3.0395 grams. One ungersk gyllen was equal to 1.5 silver daler and one krongyllen to 1.25 silver daler. Since the fine metal content of one silver daler was 25.5957 grams, this would imply that the gold-silver (value) ratio during the 1570s was 9.31:1 based on the ungersk gyllen and 10.53:1 based on the krongyllen. According to one source, one ungersk gyllen was equal in value to 1⅔ daler in 1570 or the late 1560s, 46 implying a gold-silver (value) ratio of 10.3, which is closer to the estimated value ratio based on the krongyllen. Alongside the ungersk gyllen and krongyllen, various other foreign gold coins circulated in Sweden-Finland in the second half of the 16th century. 47 The roseno- bel was valued at around 4 silver daler, the engelot around 2.25 silver daler, the crona around 1.25 silver daler, the ducat 1.4–1.7 silver daler, the double ducat around 3.25 silver daler, the Rhine golden (rhensk gyllen) 0.75–1 silver daler, and the portu- galös 12–15 silver daler. In 1589–92, 1603 and 1606–26 gold coins were minted in the mark denomina- tion, some of them as clippings since they were clipped in square form. The round gold coins struck in 1606–24 had a fine gold content of 0.303 grams per mark, and the klipping gold coins 0.285 grams per mark in 1610–11 and 0.273 grams per mark in 1626. 48 Since the silver mark at the time had the fine silver content of 4.05 grams, this would imply a gold-silver (value) ratio of 13.4-14.2 to 1 in 1606–24 and 14.8:1 in 1626. In comparison, the ratio was around 1:15 in the second half of the 17th century and the 18th century. Also the international gold-silver (value) ratio (see Chapter 2) shows a significant increase between the late 16th century and the mid 17th century. 4.3. The period 1624–1719 In 1624 the first copper coins were minted in Sweden-Finland. These were intrinsic value coins, since their face values were supposed to follow the values of their copper contents. From then on, Sweden-Finland had (to a greater or lesser extent) a com- bined copper and silver standard. This ended in 1777, when the sole silver standard was reintroduced. One reason for introducing copper coins was to manipulate the price of copper. Sweden was the dominant international producer of copper. When copper prices were low, it was thought that they could be increased by reducing cop- per exports and minting a large amount of copper coins for domestic circulation. When the copper coins were introduced in 1624, the price of copper was high. After a few years, the price fell. In the late 1620s, copper coins were minted on an extremely large scale, so that they tended to fall towards their intrinsic metal value. However, the öre minted in silver also depreciated relative to the riksdaler, while the mark coin did not fall as much. 46 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941, p. 96). 47 See Forssell (1872, pp. 86–7) and Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet), O:1, folio 61. 48 Wallroth (1918). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 151 During the first two decades of the copper standard, all copper coins were denom- inated in öre. Copper plates were struck in higher denominations from 1644 onwards. A decision on 26th August 1633 reduced the official value of the öre copper coins by 50 per cent. 49 This gave rise to two different counting systems: one in daler silver- mynt (daler silver coins), abbreviated d.s.m., and the other in daler kopparmynt (daler copper coins), abbreviated d.k.m. In 1633 the relation was: 1 d.s.m. = 2 d.k.m. 1 daler = 4 marks = 32 öre in the respective system. In 1643 the copper öre coins were devalued by a further 20 per cent (for example, the one-öre copper coin from before 1633 was devalued to 2/5 öre silvermynt, while the copper coin minted as one öre silvermynt in 1635–41 was devalued to 4/5 öre silvermynt). Hence, 1 d.s.m. = 2.5 d.k.m. In 1665 the copper coins were devalued by a further 1/6, so that 1 d.s.m. = 3 d.k.m. This was the last reduction, which lasted until 1776. 50 The disinction between daler/mark/öre silvermynt and daler/mark/öre koppar- mynt constituted a system of account and did not necessarily indicate whether the payments were made in coins of copper or of silver. In fact, some petty copper coins were minted in the denomination of öre silvermynt, while all copper plates were minted in the denomination of daler silvermynt. When payment was made in actual silver coins, the terms ‘daler/mark silvermynt in specie’ or ‘daler/mark vitt mynt’ (daler/mark white coins) were often used initial- ly. 51 From the 1660s, the term carolin came to refer to actual silver coins in mark denomination and the term courant to actual silver coins in öre denomination. One carolin was equal to two marks in actual silver coins, and one daler carolin to 4 marks in actual silver coins or to two carolins. One öre courant was the same as one öre in actual silver coins, and one daler courant was equal to 32 öre courant. In some peri- ods, the öre courant was in fact equal to öre silvermynt, but in other periods the equality could not be upheld. 4.3.1. The currency units in Sweden-Finland 1624–1776 From around the mid-17th century up to 1776, Sweden-Finland de facto had five or six different currencies, three based on silver, one or two based on copper and one based on gold. There were some periods when additional currencies were in use. From the 16th century there were three different types of currency based on sil- ver: 1) silver daler/slagen daler/riksdaler (specie), 2) mark/carolins (1 carolin = 2 sil- ver marks) and 3) öre. 52 Although 1 mark = 8 öre was maintained as an accounting identity, it was not valid between coins for all periods. Moreover, the fine silver con- 49 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 109). 50 Wallroth (1918, p. 57). 51 Hegardt (1975, p. 226). 52 Wolontis (1936, p. 183). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 152 tent of 8 öre in silver coins in öre denomination was normally lower than the fine silver content of one mark in silver coins in mark denomination. In 1681 the mark coins were revalued relative to öre coins and this put an end to the equality between one daler carolin and one daler courant. Copper coins also de facto formed two different systems, one in petty coins of lower denominations (termed ‘slantar’) and the other in copper plates of higher denominations. 53 After 1680, the mint equivalent became higher for petty coins than for copper plate coins. The difference was quite small in the late 17th and early 18th centuries (most likely motivated by the petty copper coins’ higher production costs per unit of value), but became significant from 1719 onwards. Before 1719, both petty copper coins and copper plate coins (disregarding the coin tokens of 1716–9) could be described as intrinsic value coins, but after 1719 this was true only for copper plates. 54 Alongside copper and silver coins, there were coins minted in gold. In a sense, there was a monetary standard based on three metals (trimetallism, at least de jure). The main minted gold coin after the mid 17th century was the ducat (imported ducats were already circulating in Sweden in the Middle Ages). The ducat was minted in Sweden in the period 1654–1868 (in foreign provinces also in earlier years). The legal value of the ducat was fixed in the mid-1660s. The exchange rate between the ducat and the riksdaler fluctuated but roughly followed the change in the gold-silver (value) ratio. Throughout the period, one ducat was worth about twice as much as one riksdaler. 55 The total amount of ducats minted was quite small. In the 18th cen- tury ducats probably did not account for more than a tiny fraction of the total minted stock. 56 In addition, foreign coins were still used in domestic transactions, but their role declined in the course of the 17th century. 57 How could this multi-currency system exist for so long and why did not one of the currencies replace the others, as suggested by Gresham’s law? Milton Friedman and Anna Schwartz point out that ‘Gresham’s law, that cheap money drives out dear money, applies only when there is a fixed rate of exchange between the two’, and that the law has been misunderstood and misused because this requirement is often forgotten. For example, because greenback and gold dollars in the 1860s were not interchangeable at a fixed rate, the former did not drive out the 53 Davidson (1919, p. 121). 54 Stiernstedt (1863, pp. 418–9) and Talvio (1995, p. 203). 55 Wallroth (1918). Te main source for the ducat’s exchange rates before 1740 used in this study is the Sandbergska samlingen. In Wolontis (1936, p. 167), monthly exchange rates are avail- able for 1686. 56 Own calculations based on Wallroth (1918). 57 Heckscher (1936, vol. I:2, pp. 638–9). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 153 latter and they could coexist for a time. 58 A premium (agio) on dear money allows it to stay in circulation. Arthur Rolnick and Warren Weber go further and argue that while Gresham’s Law relies on the ‘existence of a fixed rate of exchange that is different from the mar- ket price’, they ‘have found no evidence that such a fixed rate of exchange ever existed, and that is not surprising since it is hard to believe it ever could exist’. 59 According to them, this does not imply that cheap money never drives out dear money, but it cannot constitute a law. There are transaction costs involved in using the dear money at a premium. Rolnick and Weber’s hypothesis is that cheap money drives dear money out of circulation when the transaction costs involved in using the dear money as a means of payment at a premium are significant. Without such trans- action costs, cheap money would never drive out good money. Since coins of small denominations are more expensive to use at a non-par premium than money of large denominations, it is often petty coins that are driven out of circulation, not coins of higher denominations. 60 The relation between market and legal values is somewhat complicated. For example, a premium can reflect the costs involved in the exchange market. That is 58 Friedman and Schwartz (1963, p. 27). 59 Rolnick and Weber (1986, p. 186). 60 However, it should be taken into account that hoarding petty coins is more costly per unit of value than hoarding coins of higher denominations. A one-ducat coin from 1668, the year in which the Riksbank was founded. One ducat con- tained 3.4 grams of fne gold and was equivalent in 1668 to a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around 12 days’ work in Stockholm; it could buy around two hectolitres of grains or 14 kg of butter. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 154 why exchange rates should be calculated as the average of the buying and selling rates, but information on these two types of rate is seldom available for earlier times. The premium on better coins could reflect other circumstances than the value rela- tions of various currency units. For example, in Sweden-Finland in the 18th century, the high cost of transporting copper plates as means of payment resulted in a dis- count (negative premium) on copper plates. Copper plate coins, which were of higher denominations, therefore tended to be driven out of circulation (exported) when undervalued due to high copper prices. The Swedish multi-currency standard was based on different systems of account. Debts in one type of currency had to be paid back in the same currency. Stockholm Banco, and later the Riksbank, had to be liquid in all domestic currencies. 61 Eli Heckscher argues that this was so because the monetary system was not fungible, an example of an economy based on self-subsistence and payments in kind. 62 Money existed as several types of commodity, and was not fully all-purpose money. Even when undervalued, various coin currencies were not driven out of circulation, since they could not be substituted within their sphere of circulation by other coin currencies. In Sweden-Finland, it was during this period of multiple currencies circulating alongside each other that the fiat standard arose. The existence of several currencies based on the same precious metal presupposes a large ‘fiat component’ of the coins’ face value (see Chapter 2). A very small fiat component, due to free minting, would in effect lead to fixed exchange rates between monetary units based on the same metal. For the 1620s and ’30s, annual exchange rates between domestic currencies are presented in Swenne (1933), although the figures are not very reliable for every year. Monthly exchange rates for the riksdaler exist for the period 1640–86 63 and are pre- sented in Table A4.1. Monthly exchange rates for carolins and öre courant exist for the period 1670–81 and for 1686; 64 they are presented in Table A4.2 and Table A4.3. 4.3.2. The relation between copper and silver While there is constant pressure for depreciation under a mono-metallic standard, in some respects the pressure is even greater under a bimetallic standard. With the lat- ter, changes in the relative prices of the two metals imply that after some time, coins of one of the metals become undervalued. Angela Redish points out ‘that undervalu- ation in a bimetallic standard could be removed either by depreciating the underval- ued metal or by appreciating the overvalued metal. Yet in virtually all instances it was 61 Heckscher (1936, vol. I:2, p. 607) and Davidson (1919, pp. 117–20). 62 Heckscher (1936, vol. I:2, p. 638). 63 Wolontis (1936, pp. 167 and 310–1), and Sandbergska samlingen, O:1, folios 1475–88. 64 Wolontis (1936, pp. 167 and 313–4). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 155 the former that occurred.’ 65 This is especially relevant when analysing the double cop- per and silver standard in Sweden-Finland 1624–1776. There are also stabilising factors underpinning bimetallism. For example, when gold became cheaper relative to silver in the 1850s and 1860s, France, which was on a bimetallic standard at the time, absorbed more than half of world’s total production of gold, thus counteract- ing the fall in the gold-silver (value) ratio. 66 Although both silver and copper coins circulated widely in trade, in the period 1624–1776 the metals alternated as the official basis of the main currency unit. It was copper in 1624–33, silver in 1633–44, copper in 1644–64, silver in 1664–74, copper in 1674–81, silver in 1681–1709, copper in 1709–66 and silver in 1766– 76. 67 In 1716–19 and 1745–76 there was de facto a fiat standard. See Chapter 2. Wolontis questions the view that the alternation between the official silver and copper standards in the period 1624–1714 can be attributed to changes in the price of copper relative to silver, i.e. that high copper prices brought about a silver stan- dard (since copper coins would then be driven out of circulation) and low copper prices brought about a copper standard (since silver coins would then be driven out of circulation). Other factors were also at work, according to him. 68 The exchange rate between silver and copper coins was not fixed and it fluctuated during most of the period. Sweden’s monopoly position in the copper market entailed that the price of copper could be affected by policy measures (not necessarily always profit maximising in the short-term) and was therefore not an independent variable. The relation between different currencies changed not only because the price of copper fluctuated relative to silver but also because the mint equivalent (the nominal value minted from a ship pound of copper or silver) of various coin curren- cies changed, too. In the 17th and 18th centuries, the mint equivalent of copper plates was increased on numerous occasions, mostly as a consequence of temporary increases in the price of copper. When the copper price subsequently fell, copper plates became overvalued, which was adjusted by increasing either the mint equiva- lent of silver coins (mainly öre coins) or the official value of existing silver coins rela- tive to copper coins. Minting was to a large extent conducted on government account. 69 Free minting did not apply to copper, so no upper bound existed for the price of copper money. The minting volume of private copper could be large but its maximum quantity was always predetermined. 70 In 1660, the (net) seignorage tax (slagskatt) on the minting of private copper was increased significantly, almost to the level of various charges on 65 Redish (2000, p. 33). 66 Friedman (1990, pp. 89–91), and Jevons (1875, Ch. xii). 67 Wallroth (1918, pp. 59 and 93). 68 Wolontis (1936, pp. 185–9). 69 Davidson (1919, pp. 125–6). 70 Heckscher (1936, vol. I:2, p. 606). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 156 Copper Foundry at the Falun Mine, by Pehr Hilleström the Elder (1732–1816). Source: Nationalmuseum. shipping copper abroad. 71 Because free mining was restricted, there were periods when the face value of copper plate coins was significantly above their intrinsic metal value. Free minting did apply, at least in some periods, to some silver and gold coins. To stimulate minting of silver and gold coins, in 1664 the (net) seignorage tax (slag- 71 Wolontis (1936, p. 133). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 157 skatt) was abolished for them (except for silver coming from the Sala silver mine). No written permission was required to deliver silver and get silver coins in return. This did not apply to 1-öre and 2-öre silver coins, which contained less fine silver per unit of value than the carolins. In 1709, a restriction was imposed so that only one third of the silver delivered to the mint would be minted into 5-öre silver coins, while the other two-thirds would be seen as a loan to the Crown at 6 per cent inter- est. 72 One problem is the existence of more than one market price for copper. There are also many gaps in the time series of the various copper prices. Most notably, free and unfree copper differed in price and did so substantially after 1655. Their quality did not differ, only their legal status. Unfree copper that was shipped abroad was subject to various duties, while free copper was exempt from these taxes. Private copper was usually unfree. Furthermore, the price of Swedish garcopper in Amsterdam was usually substan- tially higher than the free copper price in Stockholm, which can be explained by the high costs of transportation and the risks involved (which could account for 10–15 per cent of the price in Amsterdam). The difference varied. The higher the interna- tional price relative to the price of free copper, the stronger was the incentive to export copper from Sweden-Finland. Copper plate coins were usually exempt from duties when exported, except in the periods 1655–62 and 1666–73 (although the duties on copper plate coins were then lower than for unfree copper). There were also periods when the export of copper plate coins was banned, which led to addi- tional transaction costs if copper plate coins were smuggled abroad. 73 Furthermore, a fourth copper price could be estimated based on copper plate coins. For the period 1624–1715, such a price in riksdaler per ship pound of copper plates is calculated by Josef Wolontis from the exchange rate of the riksdaler and the mint equivalent of copper plates. This price is a measure of the value of copper plate coins as a means of exchange. For example, in 1677 the price of unfree copper was 36 riksdaler (specie) per ship pound, of copper plate coins 45.9 riksdaler per ship pound and of free copper 50 riksdaler per ship pound. The price of Swedish garcop- per in Amsterdam in that year was 64.9 riksdaler per ship pound. 74 The price differ- ence in Amsterdam between Swedish copper coin (plates) and Swedish garcopper was insignificant. 75 In theory, the price of copper plate coins should be highly correlated with the prices of free copper in Sweden and garcopper in Amsterdam (with a deduction for transaction costs, including duties and smuggling costs in some periods). In reality, 72 Nordisk familjebok (1913). 73 Wolontis (1936, pp. 26–8 and 199). 74 Wolontis (1936, pp. 234, 244, 319 and 325). Te mint equivalent of copper plates was 100 daler silvermynt per ship pound, while the riksdaler stood at 26.16 mark kopparmynt or 2.18 daler silvermynt (see Table A4.7). 1 ship pound copper = 136 kilograms. 75 Wolontis (1936, p. 193). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 158 the prices of free copper in Sweden and garcopper in Amsterdam fluctuated sharply compared to the price of copper plate coins in Sweden. For example, while the Amsterdam copper price was very low in the early 1650s, the price of copper plate coins in riksdaler did not fall, and copper plates became worth much more as means of payment than as copper metal for export. 76 With the exception of the 1760s and ’70s (during the fiat standard at the time), the price of copper plates as means of payment was probably never below the unfree copper price (which would have induced the melting down of copper plates for domestic use). Thus, when there was a de facto metallic standard, copper plate coins were always worth more as means of payment than as copper for domestic use. When taken out of circulation, copper plate coins were almost exclusively either exported or saved as treasure. 4.3.3. The period 1624–33 During the period 1624–33, the copper coin was officially the main currency unit, although there was de facto a multi-currency (copper and silver) standard since silver coins circulated alongside copper coins at a floating exchange rate. Although initially at the par rate of 6.5 marks (52 öre) per riksdaler, the value of öre kopparmynt soon fell. The market exchange rate of one riksdaler rose from 6.5 marks in copper coins in 1624, 1625 and early 1626 to 8 marks in late 1626, fell back to 6.5 marks in 1627 and increased to 9 marks in early 1628, 10 marks in late 1628 and 1629, and 14 marks in 1630–33 (see Figure 4.5 and Table A4.7). 77 These fluctuations are too large to be explained by the fluctuations in the copper price. Although the price of copper was high in 1624–25, the market value of copper öre in those years was significantly above the intrinsic metal value. In other words, the cop- per coins initially circulated by tale rather than by weight. The öre silver coin fell in value against both the riksdaler and the mark coin. The öre in silver metal fell far below its intrinsic metal value, which is somewhat puzzling. If the value of öre silver coins had fallen to their intrinsic metal value, one riksdaler would have increased to 7.9 marks in one-öre silver coins. Instead, the riksdaler increased to as much as 12 marks in one-öre silver coins in 1631. 78 One reason for the fall in the value of öre coins in silver was that the towns of Kalmar, Göteborg and Norrköping were given permission to mint their own öre silver coins in 1623, 1625 and 1626, respectively. These coins contained less than the stated amount of silver and were therefore declared invalid as means of payment as of 1st February 1632. 79 Another explanation could be that the excessive minting 76 Wolontis (1936, pp. 194–209). 77 Wolontis (1936, pp. 66–76). 78 Swenne (1933, p. 193). 79 Tingström (1995, p. 185). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 159 of copper coins in particular overcame the previous shortage of means of payment, which also affected the value of öre silver coins. 80 The mark silver coin also fell in value relative to the riksdaler but not as much as the öre silver and copper coins. Two kinds of öre copper coins were minted: klippings and round coins. In the late 1620s the copper klipping fell into disrepute and there was a premium on the round copper coin relative to the klipping coin. A decision to withdraw the klipping coin from circulation was taken on 12th January 1629 but it was exchanged at par for round copper coins with a percentage reduction. 81 The relation between öre silver and copper coins seems to have been one-to-one at least up to 1628. After that the value of the öre copper coin fell more than that of the öre silver coin. Already in 1629 there were fluctuations in the exchange rates between the four main currencies in Sweden-Finland: öre silver and öre copper coins, mark silver coins and the riksdaler. 80 Wolontis (1936, pp. 94–5). 81 Wolontis (1936, p. 71). Sweden adopted a copper standard in 1624. In 1625, the 2 öre kopparmynt (left) weighed around 60 grams and was the equivalent of around two hours’ wages for a male unskilled labourer in Stockholm. It could buy around 0.25 kg of butter or four litres of grains. Right, various copper coins minted in the late 1620s and recovered from the Vasa, a Swedish war- ship that sank in 1628. Photo (left): Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. Photo (right): Swedish National Maritime Museum, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 160 4.3.4. The period 1633–44 During the period 1633–44 the silver coins were officially the main currency unit. However, Josef Wolontis argues that it was the copper coins that de facto dominated money supply, not least since the minting of copper coins was much larger than the minting of silver coins. 82 A decision on 26th August 1633 officially devalued the öre copper coins by 50 per cent. The official value of one riksdaler was reduced to 48 öre silvermynt, i.e. 6 marks silvermynt (or 12 marks kopparmynt), from 6.5 marks previously. 83 How- ever, the market exchange rate for the riksdaler was higher than 12 marks koppar- mynt, namely 13–14 marks in the period 1634–39 and 15 marks in 1640–44. The source material is not entirely reliable concerning the market exchange rate between copper and silver coins in the 1630s and ’40s. For example, ‘mark silver- mynt’ could refer either to the accounting unit (equal to 2 marks kopparmynt or ½ daler kopparmynt) or to actual mark coins in silver. 84 The relation 1 daler silvermynt = 2 daler kopparmynt seems to have been upheld at least up to 1639, 85 implying a de facto bimetallic standard. Silver coins, especially mark coins, became undervalued. 86 However, in the early 1640s, it seems that silver coins circulated by tale in some meetings and with a premium in other meetings (although not necessarily in full proportion to their weight). It is also possible that öre silver coins were more likely to circulate by tale than mark silver coins, although this cannot be confirmed from any sources. On 24th March 1643 the official value of one riksdaler was increased to 15 marks kopparmynt, in accordance with the market rate. 87 At the same time the value of one daler silvermynt was increased a second time, to 2.5 daler kopparmynt. Thus the official value of öre and mark silver coins increased relative to the copper öre coins, the purpose being to reestablish the fixed relations that in theory should underpin bimetallism. 82 Wolontis (1936, p. 98). 83 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 109). 84 Tis is not fully considered in Swenne (1933, p. 190), in his account of the exchange rate of the riksdaler in mark silver coins. 85 According to Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet), OO, folio 612, one riksdaler in 1639 stood at 7.5 marks in ‘hwit mynt’ (white coins). In copper coins one riksdaler stood at 14–15 marks kopparmynt. 86 In the early 1640s the riksdaler stood at around 7.5 marks (60 öre) in silver coins. Te fne sil- ver content of the riksdaler coin was 6.12 times higher than the fne silver content of the one- mark silver coin. Te theoretical exchange rate based on the fne silver content of öre coins was 6.84 marks (55 öre) per riksdaler. 87 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 119). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 161 Queen Christina, portrait by David Beck in 1650. Source: Nationalmuseum. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 162 4.3.5. The period 1644–64 In 1644–64 the copper coins were officially the main currency. The first copper plates, minted in 1644, had the denomination 10 daler silver- mynt and weighed 19.7 kg. These plates were mainly exported and not used as means of payment in domestic trade. The minting of copper plates was suspended in 1645, only to be resumed in 1649. 88 From then on, copper plates were also minted in lower denominations (1, 2, 4 and 8 daler silvermynt) that could be used more effectively as means of payment in domestic trade. At the same time the mint equiv- alent of copper plate coins (but not round copper coins) was increased by 14 per cent, which led to an increase in the exchange rate of the riksdaler during the 1650s, especially towards the end of the decade. The mark and öre silver coins seem to have been at par with the copper coins at least up to 1655, notwithstanding a large fall in copper prices 1650–2. Copper prices were quite high in 1654 and 1655. After the mid-1650s there was a premium on the öre and mark silver coins relative to the copper coins. 89 The premium for mark silver coins was probably somewhat higher than for öre silver coins, but no reliable source for this could be found for the 1650s. The de facto bimetallic standard was trans- formed into a de facto multi-currency standard. Due to higher copper prices, the mint equivalent was further increased in 1660 for both copper plates and round copper coins. The increase was so large that it led to subsequent increases in the riksdaler’s exchange rate as well as in the premiums on mark and öre silver metal coins. The old copper coins minted at a lower mint equiv- alent were exported and largely disappeared from circulation, creating a shortage of money. There was also a premium on these coins. When Stockholms Banco was established in 1657, with Johan Palmstruch as its director, large amounts of old copper plates of the mint equivalent before 1660 were deposited there. In 1661–4 the Bank therefore clipped the deposited copper plates to accord with the new higher mint equivalent established in 1660 and made huge profits from this operation. 90 This rather unusal way of increasing seignorage from debase- ment is an interesting example of how money as an abstract unit of account needs to be distinguished from money as a physical object circulating as means of payment. In 1661 Stockholm Banco began to issue the first bank notes, partly in order to overcome the shortage of money that resulted from the increased mint equivalent in 1660. Initially, the bank notes were quite popular with the public, since they were more convenient means of payment than the metal coins (in particular the heavy copper plates). There was even a small premium on the notes relative to metal coins. The notes probably did not account for more than 10–20 per cent of the total money supply (according to Palmstruch, the total amount of issued notes was 2.7 million 88 Wolontis (1936, p. 114). 89 Wolontis (1936, p. 108). 90 Wolontis (1936, pp. 126–130). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 163 daler kopparmynt), although the circulation velocity of notes was most likely higher than that of copper plates. This was sufficient to reduce the value of the notes, although the discount was never more than 8–10 per cent. When the bank contin- ued to exchange notes at their par value, note-holders made a run on the bank. Notes then became inconvertible in 1664. The Riksdag (the Diet of the Estates of the Realm) decided to withdraw the notes. This was done at their full value. The Riks- dag took over Stockholms Banco and re-established it in 1668 as the Riksbank, the world’s oldest central bank. After that, no bank notes were issued in the rest of the 17th century. 91 91 Heckscher (1936, vol. I:2, pp. 629–30), and Wolontis (1936, pp. 130–3). Stockholm Banco, forerunner of the Riksbank, issued the frst bank notes in Europe in 1661. Te picture shows a bank note issued fve years later with the nominal value of 100 daler sil- vermynt. In 1666, 100 daler silvermynt was what a male unskilled labourer could earn in Stockholm for around 340 days’ work (equivalent to half a million SEK in the early 21st century) and could buy around 360 kg of butter, 9 oxen or 47 hectolitres of grains, i.e., it was a very large sum of money. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 164 4.3.6. The period 1664–81 In 1664–74 silver coins were officially the main currency, although there was de facto a multi-currency, copper and silver standard. On 7th October 1665, the official value of one daler silvermynt was increased for the third time, now to 3 daler kopparmynt, which was in accordance with the mar- ket exchange rate. This was a consequence of the previous increases in the mint equivalent of copper coins. The official value of one riksdaler was increased from 48 öre (6 marks) to 52 öre (6.5 marks) in silver metal coins, 92 and from 15 to 19.5 marks kopparmynt, although that was still below the market exchange rate. The official value of one ducat was set to 100 öre silvermynt, i.e. 1 ducat ≈ 1.923 riks- daler. Since the fine silver content of one riksdaler was 25.2739 grams and the fine gold content of one ducat was 3.3966 grams, the derived value ratio of gold to silver would be around 1:15, which was in accordance with the prevailing ratio in the international markets. Even before the riksdaler’s appreciation to 52 öre in 1665, there was a difference between a riksdaler expressed in different types of silver coin, i.e. between a riksdaler in actual specie coins, in mark silver coins equal to 6 marks and in öre courant equal to 48 öre. For example, in 1662, when the riksdaler’s official value was 15 marks kopparmynt, the market value of one riksdaler in specie was 18.25 marks koppar- mynt, of one riksdaler in mark silver coins 17.25 marks kopparmynt and of one riksdaler in ‘smått mynt’ (petty coins or öre courant) 17 marks kopparmynt. 93 After 1665, the practice of counting a riksdaler in 48 öre or 6 marks in silver coins contin- ued, even though the official value of the riksdaler specie was increased to 52 öre or 6.5 marks in silver coins. A riksdaler equal to 6 marks in silver coins, or 3 carolins, was termed a riksdaler carolin (1 riksdaler carolin = 1.5 daler carolin). The term riks- daler courant was also used but up to 1681 it could probably refer to either 48 öre courant or to 3 carolins (further investigation is needed on this issue). This can cause some confusion. The mint equivalent of copper plates was further increased in 1674, following high copper prices in the previous years. In the period 1674–81 the plate copper coins became the official currency unit, but de facto a multi-currency standard was in place, since there was a premium on both carolins and öre courant. Copper prices began to fall from 1674. Since the mint equivalent of petty copper coins was not increased until 1680, in the second half of the 1670s there was also a premium on round copper coins relative to copper plates, at least in some regions. 94 Very few riksdaler coins were minted after the reign of Queen Christina, which ended in 1654. Only 791 riksdaler were minted in 1676, 2344 in 1707 and 9943 in 92 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 153). 93 Sandbergska samlingen, O:1 , folio 262. 94 Wolontis (1936, p. 159). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 165 1713, 95 i.e. altogether no more than 13,078 riksdaler during a 60-year period! No exact figures are known, but a guesstimate is that maybe up to one million riksdaler coins had been minted during Queen Christina’s reign. 96 The riksdaler coins of Queen Christina contained less fine silver, 25.2739 grams, than the coins minted from 1676 onwards, which contained 25.6973 grams of fine silver. However, since the riksdaler coins of Queen Christina probably continued to dominate circulation in the late 17th and early 18th centuries, the assumption in this study is that the riksdaler coin contained 25.2739 grams of fine silver in 1639–1718, and 25.6973 grams in 1719–1830. The exchange rate on Swedish riksdaler can be compared with the exchange rates on two other types of rix-dollar, the Hamburger reichstaler banco and the Amster- dam rijksdaalder courant, which were the most quoted foreign currencies in Sweden in the 17th and 18th centuries (see Chapter 5). In the period 1660–81 the median price of one Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant (estimated spot price) was 0.961 Swedish riksdaler. Since one Amsterdam rijks- daalder contained 24.35 grams of fine silver and one Swedish riksdaler 25.27 grams, the theoretical price should have been 0.963 Swedish riksdaler for one Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant, i.e. only 0.2 per cent above the actual median price during the period in question. This is a clear indication of relatively efficient markets. In the latter half of the 17th century, the Swedish riksdaler’s exchange rate seems to have been almost equal to the exchange rate on Hamburg, which is not surprising since the silver contents of the two currency units were almost identical. 4.3.7. The period 1681–1709 The silver standard was officially reintroduced in 1681 and lasted until 1709. Silver coins de facto became the main means of payment. On 19th March 1681, the offi- cial value of one riksdaler was increased from 19.5 to 24 marks kopparmynt, of one ducat to two riksdaler, and of one carolin from 6 to 7 marks kopparmynt. On 15th May 1686 one carolin was further increased to 7.5 marks kopparmynt, in accor- dance with the prevailing market exchange rates. However, the market exchange rates of the riksdaler and the carolin against copper coins implied that the copper plates had become undervalued in relation to the international price of copper. 97 When the official relations between silver coins and copper plates were adjusted to the market exchange rates, the undervaluation of copper plates (in terms of the inter- national bullion price) became legally fixed. Copper plates became dear money, and in the coming period were exported and disappeared from circulation. There are also 95 Wallroth (1918). 96 In the year 1652 alone, 117,908.5 riksdaler were minted in riksdaler coins. Tis level was not surpassed until 1769. See Wallroth (1918). 97 Wolontis (1936, p. 161). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 166 reports of a premium on copper plates in the late 18th century (for example, 8 per cent in 1697). 98 One öre silvermynt continued to be equal to three öre kopparmynt, implying that the official value of one carolin was increased from 16 to 18⅔ öre silvermynt in 1681 and to 20 öre silvermynt in 1686. It was further increased to 25 öre silvermynt in 1716. One daler carolin (equal to two carolins or 4 marks in carolins) was no longer officially equal to one daler silvermynt or one daler courant. Up to 1681, the fine silver content per unit of value of the öre courant was 15 per cent below the fine sil- ver content per unit of value of the carolin. This was recognized in the market exchange rate between courant öre coins and carolins. The increase in the official value of the carolin in 1681 therefore simply recognized the market situation, ensur- ing a stable relation between the two silver currency units. When the official value of one carolin was increased to 20 öre silvermynt in 1686, the fine silver content of the öre silver coin was simultaneously reduced, in order to retain the relation 1 daler sil- vermynt = 1 daler courant = 3 daler kopparmynt. In 1686 there was still a premium on öre silver coins; it was somewhat higher for the 4-öre silver coin than for the 2-öre silver coin. 99 This premium disappeared dur- ing the course of the next two decades as the fine silver content of the newly minted öre coins was decreased 100 and the silver coins replaced the copper plates as the main currency. The widening difference between the two silver currencies, daler carolin and daler courant, from the 1680s onwards was a consequence of the bimetallic copper and silver standard, and the attempt to make öre courant follow the copper currency, while not debasing carolins. After 1681, the riksdaler courant and the riksdaler carolin definitely became two different units of account. After the legal appreciation of the carolin to 7.5 marks in 1686, the difference between the two units became quite large. 101 In 1686–1716, one riksdaler carolin was legally fixed to 22.5 (3 times 7.5) marks kopparmynt or 60 (3 times 20) öre silvermynt. This was 25 per cent above the level of one riksdaler 98 See footnote 104. 99 Wolontis (1936, p. 167). 100 Te 5-öre silver coin that was minted from 1690 had the same fne silver content as the previ- ous 4-öre silver coin; 4-öre coins were also reminted into 5-öre coins. See Wallroth (1918) and Wolontis (1936, p. 168). 101 Wolontis (1936, p. 156) argues that the two units ‘riksdaler carolin’ and ‘riksdaler courant’ were the same, both equal to 3 carolins, but this can be questioned. For example, there are two exam- ples in Sandbergska samlingen, one from 1690 (Sandbergska samlingen, O:1, folio 774) and the other from 1697 (Sandbergska samlingen, O:1 , folio 779) where 1 riksdaler courant is set equal to ¾ riksdaler specie and to 1.5 daler silvermynt. Tis presupposes that 1 riksdaler cour- ant is equal to 48 öre courant (which also confrms that the market rate was at par with the legal rate in the 1690s). Wolontis (1936, p. 156) quotes the same source, stating that ‘efter som här i landet gemeligen plägar förstås RD courant till 6 m Smt’, but here ‘6 m Smt’ most likely refers to 1.5 daler silvermynt, not 3 carolins. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 167 courant equal to 48 öre courant. Lars Herlitz writes that during the 18th century, at least in various official documents, the riksdaler courant became a pure unit of account, equal to 1.5 daler silvermynt (i.e. 48 öre silvermynt), and thereafter ceased to be linked to the courant coins. The term was used only sporadically after the mid- 18th century. 102 According to Wolontis, the market exchange rate of one riksdaler carolin was 22.5 marks kopparmynt or 60 öre silvermynt, its par value, throughout the period 1695–1709. 103 In this study it is assumed that no premium existed on carolins and öre courant throughout the period 1687–1715. 104 According to Wolontis, in 1686–95 the exchange rate on Swedish riksdaler as well as on Hamburger reichstaler banco was quite stable at around 25 marks kop- parmynt. 105 The riksdaler coins circulating in the late 17th and early 18th centuries were mainly those that had been minted during the reign of Queen Christina (and to a large extent also foreign taler coins). 106 The Riksbank’s holdings of riksdaler specie decreased from 134,000 in 1696 to a few thousand in the 1710s. 107 Stockholms stads priscourant contains weekly exchange rates for various currencies for the period 31st May 1705 to 9th February 1707. 108 These show that the Ham- burger reichstaler banco (at 26.75–27.75 marks kopparmynt 109 ) was valued at slightly above the Swedish riksdaler specie (at 26–26.5 marks kopparmynt). 110 One explanation for the higher exchange rate of foreign currencies could be the greater demand on Sweden to finance its war efforts during the Great Nordic War 1700–21. 111 The exchange rate of the riksdaler specie also fluctuated around a nar- 102 Herlitz (1974, p. 127). 103 Wolontis (1936, p. 176). 104 In Sandbergska samlingen, O:1, folio 1780, one document reports that, in 1697, 1 riksdaler was sold for 72 to 73 öre silvermynt, i.e. 27–27⅜ marks kopparmynt, but for 25 marks kop- parmynt in copper plates. However, copper plates had largely disappeared from domestic cir- culation in the late 1690s, and the only copper coins that were widely used were those of smaller denominations. Furthermore, in 1697 the riksdaler also stood higher than usual. 105 Wolontis (1936, pp. 175 and 322). 106 Of the coin treasures found for the period 1701–21, the few riksdaler coins (a total of 11 coins) were from the reigns of Gustav II Adolf and Queen Christina. Moreover, the foreign taler coins were more numerous than the Swedish riksdaler coins. No fndings of riksdaler coins are reported for the period 1722–38. Mint treasures are often good indicators of which coins circulated dur- ing the time when the treasure was laid down (which can often be determined by the coin with the latest year of minting). See Sarvas (1969). 107 Sveriges Riksbank (1931, p. 35). 108 Riksbankens arkiv, ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. 109 Direct data; the spot rate would be slightly higher. 110 In December 1708 the exchange rate of the Hamburger reichstaler-banco was 27 marks and of the Swedish riksdaler specie 26.25 marks. See Sandbergska samlingen, O:1 , folio 335 (Rik- sarkivet). 111 Wolontis (1936, pp. 174–5). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 168 rower band (0.5 marks kopparmynt) than the Hamburger reichstaler banco (1 mark kopparmynt). The par value for the riksdaler stood at 24 marks kopparmynt, which was signifi- cantly lower than both the market exchange rate of the riksdaler and the Hamburger reichstaler banco. Since the carolins had become the main currency unit, at least from the 1690s onwards, the mark kopparmynt as a unit of account was linked to carolins. One riksdaler in specie was officially 3.2 carolins, which, in turn, had the fine silver content of 23.11 grams, 8.6 per cent below the fine silver content of one riksdaler in specie. Based on these relations of fine silver contents, a currency linked to the carolin motivated an exchange rate for the riksdaler specie of 26.25 marks kopparmynt. The average exchange rate of one riksdaler was also raised from 25 marks kopparmynt around 1690 to 26.25 marks kopparmynt in the early 18th cen- tury, almost exactly in accordance with the theoretical exchange rate. Given there was free minting of carolins, such circulation by weight is an expected outcome of an efficient market. 4.3.8. The reintroduction of the copper standard in 1709 During the period 1709–66 Sweden-Finland was officially on a copper standard, although a fiat standard was in place in 1716–19 and 1745–76. In 1710, copper plates were again minted on a larger scale. In a longer perspective this had a pro- found effect on the monetary system in Sweden-Finland and stimulated the rise of fiat monies. In this respect, there is some similarity with the effect of the introduc- tion of copper plates in the 1640s and 1650s, which subsequently led to the issuing of the first bank notes in Europe in the 1660s. When the minting of copper plates on a larger scale was resumed in 1710, the mint equivalent was increased. However, in the early 1710s the price of copper rose substantially from the previous decade. Copper plates became dear money and tended to be driven out. When the export of copper plates increased, it was tempo- rarily banned in 1713–14. 112 On 17th May 1715 it was decided that copper plates would be revalued by 50 per cent, which required a stamp. 113 Copper plates once again became cheap money, and were more valuable as means of payment than as metal for export. 4.3.9. The experiment with token coins in 1716–9 Towards the end of the Great Nordic War, 1716–9, the monetary system was in disarray as a result of several changes, most notably the circulation of token coins, called ‘nödmynt’ (emergency coins) or ‘mynttecken’ (coin signs or coin tokens). 112 Wolontis (1936, pp. 180–1) and Tingström (1984, p. 48). 113 Hegardt (1975, p. 229). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 169 The coin tokens minted in 1716–9 were de facto fiat money. The value of the copper metal from which these coins were minted was only 0.5 to 1 per cent of their face value. From an international perspective, this was not the first instance of token coins being used to replace commodity money. For example, the metal value of the copper coins minted in the Spanish Low Countries in 1543 was around 20 per cent of their face value. 114 The debased coins that circulated in Sweden in the early 1590s also partly functioned as token coins (see section 4.2). Although the bank notes issued by Stockholm Banco in the 1660s were non-metallic money, they never came to domi- nate the money supply and mainly functioned as convertible fiduciary notes. Only briefly did they circulate as inconvertible fiat notes before being exchanged at their full value. 115 Various measures were taken to ensure the use of coin tokens by the general pub- lic and to draw in proper money to the State. A decision on 20th December 1717 made the old carolins invalid as means of payment and exchanged for coin tokens, 116 but they were reinstated as legal means of payment on 18th April 1719. To replace the old carolins, the ‘Görtz’ carolin’ was minted in 1718 with a lower fine silver con- tent and a face value of 16 öre silvermynt (instead of 25 öre silvermynt), the old official value of the carolin (before 1681). By a decree of 23rd April 1719, the circulated coin tokens valued at one daler silvermynt (32 öre silvermynt) were redeemed for another type of token coin, ‘Hop- pet’ (The Hope), valued at 2 öre silvermynt, and a note worth 14 öre silvermynt that would be exchangeable later at its full value. 117 The exchange was carried out in June 1719. This implies that the coin token worth one daler silvermynt was in effect devalued by 50 per cent. In practice the devaluation was larger, since not all notes were exchanged at their full value (although a majority of them were repaid later on) and the value of the devalued coin tokens continued to depreciate. Despite this, the assumption in this book is that for 1719, the following relation holds: 1 daler silver- mynt in coin tokens = ½ daler silvermynt in proper money (see also the construction of the Consumer Price Index in Chapter 8). Initially the coin tokens did not significantly disturb the monetary system and were even welcomed for being easy to handle. Later, however, they contributed to inflation. During most of the period with coin tokens, the premium on better coins (mainly copper plates and öre courant) was less than 15 per cent, and only for a few months or half a year did it rise above 50 per cent. According to Gösta Lindeberg, the premium was 4–8 per cent in the second half of 1716, 6–12 per cent in the first half of 1717, 12–36 per cent in the second half, 114 Sargent and Velde (2002, p. 228). 115 Heckscher (1936, vol. I:2, p. 634). 116 Wallroth (1918, p. 92). 117 Stiernstedt (1853, pp. 320–8). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 170 2–5 per cent in the first half of 1718, 12–14 per cent in July–October 1718, and 20–80 per cent in October–December 1718. 118 According to Hegardt, in January 1719 the Uppsala Academy sold rye for 26 marks kopparmynt per barrel when paid in copper plates, but for 40 marks when paid in coin tokens, implying a premium of 67 per cent on plates. Mixed grain was sold for 18 marks kopparmynt when paid in copper plates and 24 when paid in coin tokens, implying a premium of 33 per cent. Although monthly exchange rates are not available for the late 1710s, there are some sources for monthly prices. One problem is that the sources can report prices in either proper coins or coin tokens, without explicitly stating which. The best source for following monthly prices during this period is probably for Göteborg, found in the minutes of the city’s Board of Commerce. 119 Figure 4.4 presents a weighted monthly price index for Göteborg based on 18 goods. 120 The index rose continually from July 1718 to March 1719 and then dropped 61 per cent from March to April 1719. The only reasonable explanation is that there was a change in the currency unit in which prices were expressed, from coin tokens up to March 1719 to proper coins in April. Another source from Göteborg, the accounts of the hospital, 121 shows that butter was purchased for 16 öre silvermynt per Swedish pound (skålpund, equal to 425 g) from 27th January 1719 (12 öre silvermynt 22nd January) to 11th May the same year; from 27th May, butter was bought for 6 öre silvermynt, i.e. a 62 per cent reduction, which corresponds almost exactly to the change in the index based on the prices reported in the minutes of the Board of Commerce. Both these sources indicate that the premium on better coins continued to increase in the early 1719 and may have been as much as 150 per cent in March to May that year, higher than implied by the official 50 per cent reduction of coin tokens announced in April 1719. This is an expected result, since the devaluation of the emergency coins, as explained above, was de facto greater than 50 per cent. Another source of monthly prices is from Falun, where the salesman Erik Sjöberg sold rye for 36 marks kopparmynt per barrel in September 1718, February 1719 and March 1719, for 40 marks kopparmynt in May 1719 and for 48 marks kopparmynt in December 1719. Since this is in complete contrast to the concurrent change in monthly prices in Göteborg, it is highly likely that the prices in Falun were expressed throughout the period in proper coins rather than token coins. 122 118 Lindeberg (1941, pp. 114, 146, 195 and 223). 119 Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900, Signum L:I (Kollegiernas protokoll), vol. 4–6, Göteborgs landsarkiv. 120 Te 18 goods are: wheat, rye, malt, barley, oats, peas, barley groats, meat, fsh, salt, butter, cheese, pork, tallow, hops, twist tobacco, bread and beer. 121 Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900, Signum G:d (Handlingar angående hospitalet), vol. 20 and 22, Göteborgs landsarkiv. 122 ‘Priset på spannmålen i Fahlun från 1716 til 1723 inclusive, av Erik Sjöberg” in Äldre Kom- missioner (Riksarkivet), 408, vol. 6, p. 390. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 171 Price notations in Göte- borg in 1719, at the end of the Great Nordic Wars, showing the efect of infation and the ensuing devaluation of coin tokens. Top, prices in January 1719 at the height of the circulation of coin tokens. Bottom, prices in June the same year, when the coin tokens had been replaced by proper coins. As can be seen, prices for wheat and rye more than halved between these two months (from 32 to 14 daler kopparmynt per barrel for wheat and from 30 to 12 daler kop- parmynt per barrel for rye), which corresponds to the devaluation of the coin tokens. Sources: Göteborgs råd- husrätts och magistrats arkiv, Signum L I (Kolle- giernas protokoll), vol. 4–6, Göteborgs lands- arkiv. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 172 The coin tokens officially circulated at their full value up to early June 1719. Thereafter they circulated at a reduced official value of 2 öre silvermynt. The prob- lem of exchange rates did not disappear after mid-1719. The face value of the coin tokens was reduced but was still too high. The market value of coin tokens was well below 2 öre silvermynt after June 1719. 123 All these factors may have contributed to the high prices in late 1719. 124 The effect was probably greatest on prices for smaller transaction volumes. According to a decree from 4th May 1719, coin tokens at the reduced value of 2 öre silvermynt were to be accepted up to the sum of 10 daler sil- vermynt, and above this 10 daler per 100 daler. 125 In 1719–20 large amounts of coin tokens were reminted to 1 öre kopparmynt (i.e. 1/3 öre silvermynt). Finally, on 18th February 1724 the face value of coin tokens still in circulation was officially reduced to 1 öre kopparmynt, 126 which was probably in accordance with the market rate. In addition to the coin tokens, there were notes called ‘myntsedlar’ (coin notes) which circulated in the same period and fell in value even more than the coin tokens. According to Stiernstedt, these notes lost most of their credit worth. For example, Danish prisoners-of-war almost starved to death because the notes for their mainte- nance could not buy anything. 127 For the period 1715–19, and particularly for 1718, it is especially difficult to cal- culate a mean exchange rate of the riksdaler in mark kopparmynt. The problem is partly connected with whether the mark kopparmynt is expressed in coin tokens or in copper plates. When the metal content of new copper plates was reduced by one third and the face value of old copper plates was increased by 50 per cent in 1715, the riksdaler was considered to be valued at 36 marks kopparmynt. However, it was not until 29th December 1718 that the official value of one riksdaler was changed to 36 marks kopparmynt. 128 Stiernstedt gives one example for the first half of 1718, i.e. before the dramatic increase in the premium on better coins towards late 1718, when one riksdaler was registered (supposedly based on the average exchange rate on Hamburg) at the value of 58 marks kopparmynt and one ducat at 118 marks kopparmynt. 129 The exchange rates reported for this period on Amsterdam and Hamburg are most probably noted in proper money (mainly copper plates), not in coin tokens or notes. 130 The use of coin tokens could most likely be enforced only on domestic 123 Stiernstedt (1867, p. 332) writes that in Autumn 1719, the coin token was not even accepted as one öre silvermynt. 124 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 324). 125 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 323). 126 Stiernstedt (1863, pp. 339–40). 127 Stiernstedt (1863, pp. 295–6). 128 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 270). 129 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 270). 130 Lindeberg (1941, pp. 21–3). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 173 transactions, not on foreign exchange, though this matter is somewhat controver- sial. 131 Even so, the revaluation of older copper plates and carolins does suggest that the exchange rates should have already risen in 1716. However, such a rise did not occur until 1717. 132 One contributory factor could be high copper prices. Carolins had also been revalued (in 1716) but only by 25 per cent. One reason why foreign exchange rates did not increase in 1716 could be that much of the traffic to and from Sweden was controlled by foreigners. 133 Another explanation could be that the exchange rates, at least in 1716, were in units of account rather than actual market rates. 134 The exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam were well below 58 marks kop- parmynt for most of 1718, which indicates that the reported 58 marks kopparmynt for one riksdaler was probably counted in coin tokens. Only for the late 1718 are there reports of an exchange rate of around 80 marks kopparmynt in proper coins and 140 in coin tokens on Amsterdam and Hamburg, respectively. 135 At the height of the monetary disarray, the fall in the exchange rate of Swedish relative to foreign currency affected not only coin tokens but proper coins as well. To calculate the exchange rates in coin tokens, the estimated premium on better coins is used as an indicator. For 1718 this calculation yields an annual average esti- mate of 60 marks kopparmynt for one riksdaler in coin tokens, which is very close to Stiernstedt’s example. The confusion in the exchange rate market probably meant that some people were cheated. For example, the revaluation of old copper plates was announced on 17th May 1715 but was not enforced until the 22nd of that month. Some individuals used the opportunity to buy copper plates in the interval at the old rate from indi- viduals who yet did not know about the revaluation. 136 131 Lindeberg (1941, p. 197). 132 Hegardt (1975, p. 231). 133 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 269). 134 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 270) argues that among the general public one riksdaler was seen to be valued at 36 marks kopparmynt already in 1716. 135 Lindeberg (1941, p. 22). Tis implies that the premium on better coins was 75 per cent. Accord- ing to Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar (Riksarkivet), Handel och sjöfart, Ser. I, vol. 1 Järnhandel, the exchange rate on Amsterdam was 42–47 marks kopparmynt in early 1718 and 80 marks in November and December 1718, and according to Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet), O:1, folio 364, the exchange rate on Hamburg varied between 43.75 and 83.75 marks in 1718. Tis is in accordance with the source stating that the exchange rate on riksdaler in the late 1718 was 80 marks kopparmynt in proper coins and 140 in coin tokens. 136 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 222). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 174 Figure 4.4. Te Consumer Price Index for Göteborg, December 1714 (=100) to December 1720. Sources: Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv, Signum L I (Kollegiernas protokoll), vol. 4–6, Göteborgs landsarkiv. 0 100 200 300 400 500 600 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 Figure 4.5. Riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt), market rate 1620–1720. Sources: See Table A4.7. Marks kopparmynt in coin tokens 1716–18. 0 10 20 30 40 50 60 70 1620 1630 1640 1650 1660 1670 1680 1690 1700 1710 1720 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 175 Figure 4.6. 1 daler carolin and 1 daler courant in daler kopparmynt 1624–1777. Sources: See Table A4.9 and Table A4.10. Notes: Daler kopparmynt in coin tokens 1716–8. 0 2 4 6 8 10 12 1620 1640 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1 daler courant 1 daler carolin Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 176 Table 4.2. Te of cial conversion rates for various domestic currencies1624–1724. Date Official conversion rates 1624 1 öre in copper coins = 1 öre in silver coins (valid to 16/8 1633) 16/8 1633 1 d.s.m. = 2 d.k.m. (valid to 24/3 1643) 1 riksdaler = 12 marks k.m. = 48 öre s.m. = 1.5 d.s.m. (valid to 24/3 1643) 24/3 1643 1 d.s.m. = 2.5 d.k.m. (valid to 7/10 1665) 1 riksdaler = 15 marks k.m. = 48 öre s.m. = 1.5 d.s.m. (valid to 7/10 1665) 7/10 1665 1 d.s.m. = 3 d.k.m. (valid to 1776, for carolins to 19/3 1681) 1 riksdaler = 52 öre s.m. = 19.5 marks k.m. = 52 öre s.m. = 1.625 d.s.m. (valid to 19/3 1681) 1 ducat = 100 öre s.m. (valid to 19/3 1681) 19/3 1681 1 daler carolin (= 2 carolins) = 3.5 d.k.m. = 1 1 /6 d.s.m. = 37 1 /3 öre s.m. (valid to 15/5 1686) 1 riksdaler = 24 marks k.m. = 64 öre s.m. = 2 d.s.m. (valid to 29/12 1718) 1 riksdaler = 1 5/7 daler carolins (valid to 15/5 1686) 1 ducat = 128 öre s.m. (valid to 29/12 1718) = 2 riksdaler (valid to 1776) 15/5 1686 1 daler carolin = 3.75 d.k.m. = 1.25 d.s.m. = 40 öre s.m. 1 riksdaler = 1.6 daler carolins (valid to 23/1 1716) 22/5 1715 Copper plates minted before 1715 revalued 50 per cent (valid to 1776), although this did not apply to plates of cannon metal 23/1 1716 1 daler carolin = 50 öre s.m. = 1.5625 d.s.m. = 4.6875 d.k.m. (valid to 1776, except from 20/12 1717 to 18/4 1719) 18/3 1716 4-öre silver coins of 1665–84 and 5-öre silver coins of 1690–1715 revalued to 5 1/3 öre s.m. = 0.5 d.k.m. (valid to 20/12 1717) 20/12 1717 4-öre silver coins of 1665–84 and 5-öre silver coins of 1690–1715 revalued to 6 öre s.m. (valid to 31/12 1776) 1- and 2-öre silver coins revalued by 100 per cent (valid to 4/5 1719) Old carolins no longer legal means of payment (valid to 18/4 1719) 1718 1 Görtz’ carolin = 16 öre s.m. = 0.5 daler s.m. (valid to 31/12 1776) 29/12 1718 1 riksdaler = 36 marks k.m. = 3 d.s.m. (valid to 1776) 1 ducat = 192 öre s.m. = 2 riksdaler (valid to 1/1 1777) 18/4 1719 1 daler carolin = 50 öre s.m. = 1.5625 d.s.m. = 4.6875 d.k.m. (valid to 1776) 23/4 1719 Coin tokens devalued by 50 per cent (1 d.s.m = 32 öre s.m. of a token coin could be exchanged up to 16/6 for a new token coin of 2 öre s.m. and a debt note worth 14 öre s.m.) Assumption in this study: 1 d.s.m. in proper coins = 2 d.s.m. in coin tokens 4/5 1719 1- and 2-öre silver coins devalued to their actual face value 18/2 1724 Nominal value of remaining coin tokens reduced from 2 öre s.m. (6 öre k.m.) to 1 öre k.m. Sources: Wallroth (1918), Stiernstedt (1863) and Lindeberg (1941). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 177 4.4. The period 1719–76 The period 1719–76 saw a continuation of the previous period’s complicated multi- currency standard, although the monetary situation did become somewhat more stable during the 1720s and ’30s. A fiat standard based on paper notes arose in the 1740s. The fiat currency existed alongside the five metallic currencies – öre courant, carolins, riksdaler, ducats and copper plates – at a fluctuating exchange rate. Plans were made to simplify the monetary system and introduce a mono-currency silver standard with the riksdaler as the main unit, but they were not realised until 1777. 4.4.1. Sources Annual exchange rates between various domestic currencies for the period 1740–67 are published in Sveriges Riksbank (1931). They are based on Stockholms stads priscourant. The background material for the work, which is kept in the Riksbank’s archive, also contains weekly exchange rates between Swedish currencies for parts of the period 1705–67. 137 Stockholms stads priscourant provides weekly data on the exchange rates for the riksdaler and the ducat in the period 1768–76, and for some years also for carolins and öre courant; these data have been used in this study to estimate monthly and annual averages. Table A4.4 presents monthly exchange rates between Swedish currencies 1705–76. The exchange rate on the Swedish riksdaler was of less importance than the exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco and Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant (see Chapter 5). When the riksdaler exchange rate was mentioned without specifying the type of riksdaler, it commonly referred to the Hamburger reichstaler banco. 138 Few sources exist for the annual exchange rates of the Swedish riksdaler and duc- ats in the 1720s and ’30s. For the years where no data are available, the exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam are used as indicators for the Swedish riksdaler. The gold-silver (value) ratio in Hamburg is used as an indicator to estimate the mar- ket rate of ducats in Swedish riksdaler when no other source exists. 4.4.2. The multi-currency, metallic standard of 1719–45 Sweden’s monetary system stabilised in 1719–20, and remained stable until the Swedish-Russian War in 1741–3. The official exchange rate of one riksdaler was 36 marks kopparmynt. The exchange rate of the Hamburger reichstaler banco was 38–41 marks kopparmynt in autumn 1719 and by January next year it had fallen to 37 marks kopparmynt (see Chapter 5). In the course of 1720 it then declined to 36 marks kopparmynt – the perceived par value. 139 137 Riksbankens arkiv, ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. 138 Heckscher (1949, vol. II:2, p. 734). 139 Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar (Riksarkivet), Handel och sjöfart, Ser. I, vol. 1 Järnhandel. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 178 In 1728–33 the market rate of the riksdaler was probably the same as the official rate, but a premium on the riksdaler arose during the latter 1730s. The price level fell during the course of 1720 (a bad harvest in 1719 contributed to the high level in the first half of the year) and was quite stable in the 1720s and 1730s. 140 While the legal value ratio of riksdaler to carolins was too low (based on the fine silver contents of the two coins) up to 1715, from 1719 onwards it became too high. This could have several effects: the riksdaler could fall below the par value of 36 marks kopparmynt, a premium could arise on carolins or there would be a move to melt down or hoard carolins. All three phenomena seem to have been present during the course of the 1720s and ’30s. In the period 1718–29 a total of around 75,000 riksdaler was minted, which can be compared to just 13,078 during the whole period 1655–1717. 141 For 1724–33, this study assumes that the market rate of carolins was at par with the copper coins. In the mid-1720s the riksdaler’s exchange rate fell below its par value (36 marks kopparmynt), 142 but in the late 1720s it rose again to its par value. Since the silver content of the carolin was 8 per cent higher than the riksdaler according to the offi- cial relation between the two, 143 it was profitable to melt down carolins, given that there was no premium on them. Some sources indicate that in the three years preced- ing 1731, four million carolins were melted down in Danish and Holstein mints, 144 amounting to around one-third of the total stock of carolins. 145 An official report in 1731 stated that the weaker coin, the copper plate, had driven out the better coin, the carolin. 146 In the same year, free minting of silver coins was introduced on very favourable terms. 147 Table A4.4 shows that at least from January 1734, a small premium was paid on carolins, which allowed them to stay in circulation, counteracting the mechanisms of Gresham’s Law. At least up to 1757, the premium for carolins was larger than for riksdaler coins. Important changes in the first decades of the 18th century created a pure circula- tion device, without any intrinsic value content. 140 Lindgren (1971, pp. 330–3). 141 Calculations based on Wallroth (1918). 142 Sjöstrand (1908, p. 17). 143 In 1719–76, the of cial exchange rate of one riksdaler specie was 3.84 carolins. However, the fne silver content of 3.84 carolins was 27.74 grams, while the fne silver content of one riks- daler was 25.7 grams. In comparison, one riksdaler was of cially equal to 96 öre courant, while the fne silver content of 96 öre courant was 22.34 grams in one-öre-coins and 24.96 grams in pjeser (in 5-öre and 10-öre coins with the legal values of 6 and 12 öre, respectively). Calculated from Wallroth (1918). 144 Sjöstrand (1908, p. 9). 145 Based on minting data, see Wallroth (1918). 146 Tingström (1984, p. 62). 147 Sjöstrand (1908, pp. 12–13). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 179 In 1701, the Riksbank began to issue ‘transportsedlar’ (transferred notes). As the name indicates, these notes had to be ‘transported’, i.e. re-assigned from the old to the new owner. This obstructed a wider circulation in the early 18th century for various reasons: the procedure was time-consuming, people did not want to put their name on the notes, illiteracy was widespread among the peasantry and there were substitutes for notes (‘assignationer’ and ‘kassasedlar’) that functioned more effi- ciently. In time, people learnt to avoid transportation until the new owner wanted to cash the note in the bank. 148 As mentioned in the previous section, the copper standard was officially reintro- duced in 1709 and from 1710 copper plates were again minted on a larger scale. These plates were a very unpractical means of payment. The Crown had an interest in facilitating more convenient means of payment. The use of transferred notes expanded significantly after 1710 and this coincided with the reintroduction of the copper standard. A decree in 1726 ordained that the Riksbank’s transferred notes would be accepted for payment of taxes. 149 The total amount of outstanding notes increased from 12,219 daler silvermynt in 1722 to 1 million daler silvermynt in 1730 and to 5.3 million daler silvermynt in 1740, roughly from 0.01–0.02 per cent of GDP in 1722 to 1–1.5 per cent in 1730 and 5–6 per cent in 1740. 150 The riksdaler’s exchange rate was expressed in marks kopparmynt. The mark kop- parmynt came to be linked to the market value of notes rather than of plates. Ini- tially, the increase in notes did not cause a significant increase in the riksdaler’s exchange rate. The notes were convertible into copper plates by the Riksbank. In 1730 there was, in fact, a premium of 1.5–2 per cent on notes relative to plates. There was also an additional charge (‘remissage’) of 6–7 per cent if plates were to be transported to the countryside. 151 Eli Heckscher estimates that the exchange rate had to rise at least 10 per cent above the value of copper plates (free copper) to make it profitable to export copper. 152 However, only after 1733 did the market rate of the riksdaler increase above the par value of 3 daler silvermynt. In the early 1740s, the exchange rate was, on average, only 5 per cent above the official par value (see Figure 4.7). 4.4.3. The fiat standard of 1745–76 After massive note issues during the war with Russia in the early 1740s, the exchange rate on riksdaler increased from an average of 3.17 daler silvermynt in 1741 to 3.46 148 Heckscher (1949, vol. II:2, p. 737–8), and Talvio (1995, p. 206). 149 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, pp. 168–9). 150 Based on Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Edvinsson (2005a) and (2005b). 151 Heckscher (1949, vol. II:2, p. 737–8). 152 Heckscher (1949, vol. II:2, pp. 746–7). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 180 daler silvermynt in 1744 (see Figure 4.7). 153 In 1743, the total amount of outstand- ing notes increased to 9.5 million daler silvermynt, roughly 10–12 per cent of GDP. Since the bank notes were convertible, there was a massive drain on the Riksbank’s metallic reserves. 154 A decree in October 1745 made the Riksbank’s notes inconvert- ible into copper plates 155 and Sweden-Finland de facto introduced a fiat standard that remained in place until the coin reform of 1776. The Riksbank only converted notes into petty copper coins (‘slantar’) 156 but the latter’s mint equivalent was 67 per cent higher that that of copper plates and they were de facto token coins. Since vari- ous coin currencies continued to circulate alongside the notes, the fiat standard was combined with the copper and silver standard, forming a multi-currency standard. From the mid-1740s, non-metallic money came to constitute the largest part of the money supply in Sweden-Finland. Petty copper coins followed the bank notes in value, but there was an increasing premium on carolins, öre courant and later also copper plates. In the period 1768–76, the premium on copper plates was between 35 and 125 per cent (see Table A4.4). In the early 1760s the paper notes fell to their lowest levels hitherto. In 1762–63 the riksdaler occasionally stood at over 100 marks kopparmynt. When the Cap Party (‘mössorna’) ousted the Hat Party (‘hattarna’) from power at the Riksdag of 1765/6, they attempted to reintroduce the riksdaler’s former parity (36 marks kopparmynt or 3 daler silvermynt). Preparations were made to abolish the copper standard and rein- troduce the silver standard, but the fiat standard was de facto in operation up to 1776. 157 Notes were supposed to be exchangeable into riksdaler specie but since they had been issued on a copper basis, the exchange rate would be determined by the value relation of silver to copper (and copper stood low at that time). 158 A decade passed before the great coin reform took place in 1776. In 1766 it was not entirely clear how silver would be brought into circulation. The policy focused instead on the exchange rate. 159 The idea was that the return to the former parity would occur gradually over a ten-year period. Instead, there was severe deflation in the late 1760s, with falling exchange rates (see Figure 4.7). Eli Heckscher argues that the notes in circulation did not decrease as much as indicated by the fall in the exchange rate. Large amounts of notes were withdrawn from circu- lation and saved in the expectation of an increase in their value relative to the silver 153 Sjöstrand (1909, pp. 48–9). 154 However, according to Stockholms stads priscourant (Kungliga biblioteket), in the period 1741– 53 (with data missing for 1743–46 and 1751–52), the price of free copper fuctuated around 180 daler silvermynt per ship pound, the mint equivalent of copper plates. In 1753, it still stood at 166 daler silvermynt per ship pound. 155 Wallroth (1918, p. 93). 156 Sjöstrand (1908, p. 63). 157 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 397). 158 Montgomery (1920, p. 46). 159 Montgomery (1920, pp. 37–48). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 181 A note issued as 6 daler kopparmynt; bank notes came to dominate the money supply in Swe- den in the 18th century. In 1759, this sum was the equivalent of a male unskilled labourer’s wages for around three day’s work in Stockholm. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 182 currencies. 160 When the Hats regained power from the Caps in 1769, the exchange rate rose again. The par value of 36 marks kopparmynt had to be abandoned. Both the rise in the early 1760s and the fall in the late 1760s (see Figure 4.7) could be described as overreactions, or overshootings. 161 The Hats pressed on with the prepa- rations for introducing a sole silver specie standard. 162 In the period 1766–76, large amounts of riksdaler coins were minted; copper plates continued to be legal means of payment but were more used as commodities. Based on the intrinsic metallic values, the Hamburger reichstaler banco should be worth 1.6 per cent less than the Swedish riksdaler, and the Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant 6.5 per cent less. In median terms, in 1740–76, the estimated spot rate of Hamburger reichstaler banco stood 2.7 per cent below the Swedish riksdaler and the Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant 7.7 per cent below, in both cases below the theo- retical exchange rate (see also Chapter 5). It was mostly in the period 1766–76 that the exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam was below the theoretical rate. In the period 1740–65, the spot exchange rate was mostly above the theoretical rate. The discrepency between the exchange rates of the Swedish riksdaler and Ham- burger reichstaler banco was largest during the deflation in the late 1760s (see Figure 4.7). While the Hamburger reichstaler banco decreased from its highest level of 89 marks kopparmynt in 1765 to 42 marks kopparmynt in 1768–9 (spot rates), the Swedish riksdaler stayed at 50.7 marks kopparmynt in 1768 and 60.6 marks kop- parmynt in 1769. For the period 1740–76 the correlation between the exchange rates of the Swed- ish riksdaler and ducats (+0.996) is, in fact, stronger than the correlation between the Swedish riksdaler and either the Hamburger reichstaler banco (+0.976) or the Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant (+0.977). This shows that the estimated spot rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam probably also reflected other factors than the price of silver (for example, fluctuations in the shadow interest rate of the bills of exchange). The exchange rate of the Swedish riksdaler should therefore be preferable for trans- forming nominal prices into silver prices, though the calculation of Swedish prices in Hamburger reichstaler banco and Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant could be useful for international comparisons. 4.5. The period after 1776 4.5.1. The minting reform of 1776 In 1776 a large minting reform amounted in principle to the abolition of the medi- eval division into marks, öre and penningar, the multi-currency, copper and silver 160 Heckscher (1949, vol. II:2, p. 783), and Jonung (1975, p. 181). 161 Lobell (2000, p. 9). 162 Montgomery (1920, p. 79). 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 183 standard, and the counting in kopparmynt, silvermynt, öre courant and carolins. A mono-currency, silver specie standard was de facto introduced, with the riksdaler – the only stable means of payment that had existed in Sweden-Finland since the 16th century – as the sole unit of account (disregarding the ducat). One riksdaler was divided into 48 skillings, and one skilling into 12 runstycken. The old currencies ceased to be legal means of payment as of 1777 and were exchanged for riksdaler coins and fiduciary notes (although notes in daler kopparmynt continued to circulate for some years). 163 The old silver coins were exchanged at their full value, i.e. one riksdaler for 3 daler courant or for 1.92 daler carolins. However, the Riksbank notes and the round copper coins were reduced in value by 50 per cent, i.e. 1 riksdaler = 6 daler silvermynt (72 marks kopparmynt), in accordance with the riksdal- er’s market rate. The metallic value of 6 daler silvermynt of copper plates was worth more than one riksdaler, and on 7th October 1777 it was decided that one riksdaler would be exchanged for 4 daler silvermynt in copper plates. 164 163 Montgomery (1920, p. 221). 164 Wallroth (1918, p. 93). Figure 4.7. Hamburger reichstaler banco and Swedish riksdaler in daler silvermynt 1712– 76, market rate. Sources: See Table A4.7 and Chapter 5. Note: Daler silvermynt in coin tokens 1716–18. Counting in silvermynt and kopparmynt was abol- ished as of 1st January 1777. Te riksdaler became the main currency unit in Sweden-Finland, set equal to 6 daler silvermynt in notes. 0 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 1712 1720 1728 1736 1744 1752 1760 1768 1776 1 Hamburg reichstaler banco 1 riksdaler specie Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 184 Many of the old labels (‘plåt’, ‘daler’, ‘styver’, etc) for currency units continued to be used well into the 19th century. 165 For example, daler silvermynt continued to refer to 1/6 riksdaler or 8 skillings (later 12 skillings riksgälds). 4.5.2. The rise of three different riksdaler units after 1789 The reintroduced mono-currency, silver standard did not last long. As on many other occasions, it was the need to finance war efforts that reinstated the fiat standard for some time. A war with Russia led to the establishment of Riksgäldskontoret (National Debt Office), which started to issue riksgälds notes in 1789. These notes soon dominated trade and replaced the Riksbank notes (banco riksdaler), which were still convertible into specie (so that the riksdaler banco was equal in value to the riksdaler specie coin), as the main notes in circulation. The legal status of riksgälds notes was initially somewhat unclear. 166 They began to fall in value compared to riksdaler banco. In 1789, the silver standard was de facto replaced by a multi-currency, combined fiat and silver standard, which lasted until 1803 (see also Chapter 2). In the present study, the monthly premium on banco notes relative to riksgälds notes is estimated as an average of Stockholm and Göteborg notations. 167 The pre- mium was 1–7 per cent in 1789 and the first half of 1790. Except for 1794 and early 1795 (when it increased to over 20 per cent), it was around 10–12 per cent up to 1797. In 1798 and 1799 it rose continuously to around 50 per cent. See figure 4.8. The existence of two different currencies created some confusion as to the cur- rency in which prices and exchange rates were recorded. The foreign exchange rates presented in this study are based on Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and the background material to this work (see Chapter 5). From 19th May 1797 the exchange rate is expressed both in riksdaler riksgälds and in riksdaler banco. For the period 1789–96 it is not clear whether the exchange rates on foreign curren- 165 Talvio (1995, p. 205). 166 Ahlström (1974, pp. 32–8). 167 Based on Ahlström (1972, pp. 133–4) for Stockholm and Mårtensson (1958) for Göteborg. Ahlström presents two series; one is the reported agio (premium) from July 1789 to November 1798, and the other is based on the exchange rates on Hamburg, London and Amsterdam expressed in banco and riksgälds notes, covering the period May 1797 to August 1803. Mårtens- son’s series cover the whole period from March 1790 to December 1802. Te reported agio in Stockholm corresponds quite well to the premium in Göteborg. However, the premium based on exchange rates in Stockholm is substantially underestimated in comparison to the reported agio in Stockholm and Göteborg up to November 1798. From December 1798, the premium based on foreign exchange seems to correspond quite well to the premium in Göteborg. Te calculated premium of the present study is an arithmetic average of the reported agio in Stock- holm and Göteborg up to November 1798, and from December 1798 an arithmetic average of the premiums based on foreign exchange and the Göteborg premium, with some minor adjust- ments for the months when data are missing in one of the series. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 185 cies are expressed in riksdaler banco or in riksdaler riksgälds. In Sveriges Riksbank (1931) it is claimed that the exchange rates for this period were in riksdaler riks- gälds. 168 Göran Ahlström questions this assumption, and argues that the exchange rate was most probably in riksdaler banco up to 1796. 169 No definite conclusions can be drawn from a perusal of daily exchange rates during May 1797, which can be found in the unpublished primary tables underpinning the work of Sveriges Riks- bank (1931). 170 In Sandbergska samlingen there is a table that presents the exchange rate on Hamburg both in riksdaler banco och in riksgälds. 171 The exchange rate in riksdaler banco in the period 1789–96 seems to follow the rate presented in Sveriges Riksbank (1931), while the exchange rate in riksdaler riksgälds is significantly above the latter. 172 Ahlström therefore seems to be correct. In this study, the foreign exchange data presented in Sveriges Riksbank (1931) are assumed to be expressed in riksdaler banco for the period 1789–96, while the premium calculated from the foreign exchange rates (which differs from the actually recorded premium) in Sandbergska samlingen is used to estimate rates in riksdaler riksgälds. The difference between the foreign exchange rate in riksgälds and banco was quite small in 1797. The foreign exchange rate in riksgälds partly included the premium on banco notes. For example, according to Sandbergska samlingen, the premium on banco notes calculated from the foreign exchange was 2.9 per cent in 1797, but the ‘noted agio’ (the actually recorded premium) was 10 per cent. The opposite situation prevailed in domestic trade when prices were quoted both in riksdaler riksgälds and in riksdaler banco. For example, the calculated premium on banco notes for 1797 based on grain prices at Kungsåra Church was 18.7 per cent, which was much higher than the noted agio. Ahlström argues that the type of transaction must be taken into account, and ‘that the agio was used for purposes of price adjustment, i.e. that the stronger part in a transaction took out a higher agio instead of putting pressure on the prices’. 173 168 Sveriges Riksbank (1931, p. 158). 169 Ahlström (1972, p. 137). 170 ”Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803” (Riksbankens arkiv). Fur- thermore, it is possible that the reported exchange rates during parts of the period 1789–97 are a mixture of payments in riksdaler banco and riksdaler riksgälds. Tis is particularly the case for the periods March to September 1791 and August 1793 to January 1794. For example, on 8th November 1793, one Hamburg reichstaler banco was paid 52.75, 53 and 57 skillings, respectively. Te diference between 52.75 and 53 skillings on the one hand and 57 skillings on the other seems to be quite large for the same transaction day. Te same large diference is reported in various periods for the exchange rate on Amsterdam. 171 Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet), O:1, folio 364. 172 Compared with the level in Sveriges Riksbank (1931), the exchange rate in riksdaler banco in the period 1789–96 presented in Sandbergska samlingen was, on average (here geometric aver- age), 0.9 per cent higher while the exchange rate in riksdaler riksgälds was, on average, 7.5 per cent higher. 173 Ahlström (1972, p. 140). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 186 According to Sandbergska samlingen, the noted agio was, on average, 13.4 per cent in 1793–96, and the premium calculated from the exchange rates on Hamburg 9.1 per cent. In the same period, the premium calculated from price differences at Kungsåra Church was 17.5 per cent. In 1799–1802, the average premium calculated from the exchange rates noted in Stockholm was 44 per cent, while the premium calculated from the price differences at Kungsåra Church was 57 per cent. The noted agio presented by Sture Mårtensson for Göteborg was in the same period 49 per cent and the premium calculated from the exchange rates on Hamburg was 51 per cent. Thus, in Göteborg the premium on banco notes calculated from the foreign exchange was higher than the noted agio, which was the opposite of the situation in Stock- holm. See Table A4.5. From 1799 the premium on banco notes centered on around 50 per cent, although it still fluctuated sharply. In Göteborg the premium was as high as 66.7 per cent in December 1801. 174 Since the riksdaler banco was convertible up to 1808, this study assumes that 1 riksdaler specie [i silver] = 1 riksdaler banco = 48 skillings banco for the whole period 1777–1808 even though the Hamburger reichstaler banco was noted above 48 skill- ings (see Chapter 5). In 1803 the relation between banco och riksgälds notes was fixed and the mono- 174 Mårtensson (1958, p. 25). See also Ahlström (1974, p. 28). Te First Battle of Svensksund on August 24, 1789, by Johan Tietrich Schoultz. King Gustav III had riksgälds notes printed to fnance the war against Russia (1788–90); they soon fell in value relative to banco notes, which could still be exchanged for silver coins in the Riksbank. War was often the main cause of monetary instability. Source: Nationalmuseum. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 187 currency, silver specie standard was briefly reintroduced. From then on, one riksdaler banco was equal to 1.5 riksdaler riksgälds. However, the exchange rate of the Hamburg reichstaler banco refused to bounce back to its par value, making it profitable to exchange notes for silver from the Riksbank. The war in 1808–10 led to a massive increase in Riksbank notes in circulation. In 1809, the banco notes were finally made inconvertible. 175 The fiat standard prevailed until 1834. The banco notes fell drastically in value relative to the riksdaler specie [i silver], and since the riksdaler riksgälds was fixed to the riksdaler banco, it also fell in value. Hence, a difference arose between riks- daler banco and riksdaler specie [i silver], and from then on there were three different riksdaler units. There were also three different skillings, which followed these three riksdaler units. 176 In 1834, when the mono-currency, silver specie standard was reintro- duced once more, the relation between riksdaler specie and riksdaler banco was fixed so that: 1 riksdaler specie = 2⅔ riksdaler banco = 4 riksdaler riksgälds. In 1855 the riks- daler riksgälds was replaced by the riksdaler riksmynt; in 1873 the latter was replaced by the krona (SEK). The period after 1803 is further discussed by Håkan Lobell in Chapter 6. 175 Brisman (1931, pp. 9–15). Inconvertibility was de facto introduced in early 1809 but was not sanctioned until 1810. 176 Te skilling specie was rather a unit of account; no coins with that denomination were ever minted. Figure 4.8. Premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative to riksgälds notes 1789– 1803, market rate based on monthly data. Sources: See Table A4.6. 0 10 20 30 40 50 60 70 1790 1792 1794 1796 1798 1800 1802 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 188 Table 4.3. Te of cial conversion rates for various domestic currencies from 1777 onwards. Date Official conversion rates 1/1 1777 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings 1 skilling = 12 runstycken 1 skilling = 4 öre s.m. in petty copper coins (i.e. twice the old par value, valid to 29/8 1803) 1 riksdaler exchanged for 6 d.s.m. in paper notes (i.e. twice the old par value) 1 riksdaler exchanged for 3 d.s.m. in courant silver coins (i.e. in accordance with old par value) 1 riksdaler exchanged for 1.92 daler carolins (i.e. in accordance with old par value) 1 ducat = 94 skillings (specie) = 1 23/24 riksdaler (valid to 7/4 1830) 7/10 1777 1 riksdaler exchanged for 4 d.s.m. in copper plates 29/8 1803 1 riksdaler banco = 1.5 riksdaler riksgälds = 72 skillings riksgälds 1 skilling banco = 1.5 skilling riksgälds Öre s.m. in copper coins ceased to be legal means of payment 19/6 1816 1 skilling (banco) = 2 öre s.m. in copper coins of 2- and 1-öre s.m. denomination minted up to 1778 7/4 1830 1 ducat = 2.125 riksdaler specie (valid to 1855) 1/10 1834 1 riksdaler specie = 2 ⅔ riksdaler banco = 4 riksdaler riksgälds 1855 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 100 öre = 32 skillings banco 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 1 riksdaler riksgälds 1 ducat = 8.25 riksdaler riksmynt = 2.0625 riksdaler specie 29/12 1871 1 carolin (gold coin) = 7.1 riksdaler riksmynt 30/5 1873 1 krona = 1 riksdaler riksmynt =100 öre Source: Wallroth (1918). 4.5.3. Transforming historical prices into a common currency unit One problem when comparisons are made over time is that the currency unit has changed. In some studies, the krona (SEK) is also used as a unit of account for the period before 1873. Within numismatic and economic-historical research at least two different methods have been applied. Lennart Jörberg chooses to follow the nominal unit back to 1732. One krona is set equal to one riksdaler riksmynt 1855–73, to one riksdaler riksgälds 1789–55 and to one riksdaler specie 1776–89. Hence, one riksdaler specie was equal to 1 SEK in 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 189 1776 but to 4 SEK in 1873. Based on the relation 1 riksdaler = 6 daler silvermynt, Jörberg assumes that in 1732–76: 1 krona = 6 daler silvermynt = 18 daler kopparmynt = 72 marks (kopparmynt) This, however, can only be applied to the round copper coins and the Riksbank notes. Since the Riksbank notes were de facto the main means of payment, Jörberg’s assumption seems reasonable. His procedure is also advocated in Fregert and Gustafs- son (2005). Wallroth (1918) chooses a method that follows the riksdaler specie unit back- wards in time. In contrast to Jörberg, Wallroth follows not the main currency actu- ally used in trade, but the coin with a stable silver content (the silver content of riksdaler specie changed only slightly over time). The method assumes that one riks- daler specie de facto became 4 kronor. Hence, one riksdaler specie was always equal to 4 kronor. To estimate other currencies in SEK, Wallroth uses both the officially fixed and the market exchange rates of the riksdaler in those currencies. 4.6. Summary This chapter deals with the history of currencies and exchange rates in Sweden-Fin- land in 1534–1803, a period that is notable and perplexing for its multiple domestic currencies. Since Finland belonged to the kingdom of Sweden up to 1809, in this period the two areas had the same monetary system. In 1534–1624 Sweden-Finland was on a mono-metallic silver standard. Although gold coins circulated as well, they played a rather marginal role. The main currency unit was the mark, equal to 8 öre or 192 penningar (pennies). At times in the 16th and early 17th centuries the monetary system approached a mono-currency stan- dard, but there were also currencies of minor or temporary importance in domestic trade that circulated alongside the main currency, most importantly the silver daler. The first silver daler coins were minted in 1534. Throughout its lifetime, 1534– 1873, the fine silver content of the silver daler or riksdaler (specie) coin was stable (with only minor adjustments). In contrast, the fine silver content of the mark decreased over time. In the 1570s the silver daler was officially fixed at 4 marks or 32 öre, but its market exchange rate was somewhat higher. A bifurcation then occurred between the silver daler and the daler as a unit of account, equal to 4 marks or 32 öre. The silver daler was later called riksdaler. When the fine silver content of the mark silver coin was lowered in the 17th century, the exchange rate of the riksdaler in marks increased. In 1624, a copper standard was introduced; it lasted until 1776. The silver stan- dard continued to exist alongside the copper standard. In this period, at least five or six domestic currencies were in use, three based on silver, one or two based on copper and one based on gold. In addition, fiat currency circulated in the mid-1660s, Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 190 1716–9 and 1745–76. Since attempts were made to fix the relations between various metallic currencies, the monetary system could be described as bi- or trimetallic. At times, however, the market exchange rates between these currencies floated and the official value relations had to be adjusted on numerous occasions. Since the price of copper fluctuated relative to silver, there was a tendency to debase copper coins when copper prices were high; when copper prices fell back, the silver coins were undervalued. Initially, one daler in copper coins was supposed to be equal to one daler in silver coins. However, in expectation of rising copper prices, which were already high, the copper content of the copper coins was set too low in 1624. The market value of copper coins relative silver coins then fell quickly in the late 1620s and early 1630s. A multi-currency standard arose. One daler silvermynt was set equal to 2 daler kopparmynt in 1633–43, to 2.5 daler kopparmynt in 1643– 65 and to 3 daler kopparmynt in 1665–76. Initially the daler kopparmynt was a unit for copper coins, and daler silvermynt for silver coins; later, copper coins were denominated both in daler kopparmynt and in daler silvermynt. The relation 1 mark = 8 öre was upheld as an accounting identity, but the value relations between the actual silver coins were not always in accordance with this. The fine silver content per unit of value was normally lower for öre coins than for mark coins. A distinctive feature of the multi-currency standard in Sweden-Finland during the 17th and 18th centuries was that market exchange rates fluctuated not only between the copper and silver currencies, but also between various silver currencies. From the 1660s the term carolin came to refer to silver coins in mark denomina- tion and courant to silver coins in öre denomination. Carolins and öre courant were the main domestic silver currencies, while up to the 1760s the riksdaler was mainly used in international trade. One carolin was equal to two marks in silver coins, and one daler carolin to two carolins. One öre courant was the same as one öre in silver coins, and one daler courant was equal to 32 öre courant. In 1681 and 1686 the carolins were officially revalued relative to öre courant so that the identity between one daler carolin and one daler courant definitely disappeared. The widening differ- ence between the two main silver currencies from the 1680s was a consequence of the bimetallic copper and silver standard, and the attempt to make one silver cur- rency (courant) follow the copper currency by lowering its fine silver content, while not debasing the other silver currency (carolins). Officially, one öre courant was equal to one öre silvermynt, but during the fiat standards of the 18th century this identity could not be maintained in the market. The ducat, minted in gold, was also used as a currency unit, although mainly in international trade. Stockholm Banco issued bank notes in the 1660s, though they mainly functioned as convertible fiduciary notes. Only briefly did they circulate as unconvertible fiat notes before being exchanged at their full value. These notes never dominated the money supply. The fiat standard in 1716–9 was based on coin tokens, which circulated alongside 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 191 the silver and copper currencies. A premium arose on these metallic currencies. The unit daler silvermynt could refer to either coin tokens or metallic currencies, and it is not always clear in which currency prices and foreign exchange rates were quoted. Prices expressed in coin tokens increased dramatically during the course of 1718 and early 1719. Later in 1719, coin tokens were devalued by 50 per cent. During the fiat standard of 1745–76 the units daler kopparmynt and daler silver- mynt followed the bank notes, but the metallic currencies continued to exist at a premium. The exchange rate of the riksdaler increased from 3 daler silvermynt in the early 1730s to 6 daler silvermynt in late 1776. In effect, the bank notes were deval- ued by 50 per cent. Although the value relations between copper coins were officially fixed in 1624– 1776, in some periods there were two different copper currencies, one based on cop- per plates and the other on round copper coins (‘slantar’). Most notably, this occurred during the fiat standard of 1745–76. The round copper coins (with a lower copper content per unit of value than copper plates) then followed the value of the notes. Tables A4.7 to A4.10 present the exchange rates between various domestic currency units used in Sweden-Finland. Table A4.7 contains the exchange rate of the riksdaler in mark silver coins for the period 1534–1624 and in mark kopparmynt for 1624– 1776. Table A4.8 presents the exchange rate of the ducat in mark kopparmynt and riksdaler specie for the period 1652–1776. Table A4.9 contains the exchange rate of daler carolin in daler kopparmynt and of the riksdaler in mark silver coins (half caro- lins) for the period 1624–1776. Table A4.10 presents the exchange rate of öre courant in öre kopparmynt and of riksdaler in öre courant. The copper standard contained the seeds of its own destruction, though it was remarkably long-lived. The high transaction costs involved when payments were made in intrinsic copper coins, especially copper plates, encouraged the introduction of a fiat currency. Once paper notes came to dominate circulation, even in smaller denominations, the need for a copper currency decreased. In 1777 a mono-currency, silver standard was reintroduced, but with the riksdaler as the main unit. However, the existence of paper money in the form of convertible fiduciary notes also became a threat to the silver standard itself, especially during times of war. The monetary uniformity only lasted until 1789. Riksgäldskontoret (National Debt Office) started to issue riksgälds notes in 1789 and they fell in value relative to the riksdaler banco, which continued to be convertible into silver coins (riksdaler specie) by the Riksbank. Hence, an unconvertible fiat standard was briefly combined with a convertible metallic standard. The monthly premium on banco notes relative to riksgälds notes is presented in Table A4.6. In 1803 the relation 1 riksdaler riks- gälds = ⅔ riksdaler banco was fixed, which basically ended the period of multiple currencies. Even though the riksdaler specie and the ducat were on floating exchange rates after 1803, these two currencies played only a minor role in domestic trade. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 192 Appendix A4: Summary tables Table A4.1. Monthly data on riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt) 1626–86. Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Ave- rage 1626 6.5 6.5 8 6.966 1627 6.5 6.5 1628 9 10 9.487 1640 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 1641 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 1642 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 1643 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 1644 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15.25 15 15 15 15.02 1645 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1646 16 16 16 16 16 16 15.5 15 15.75 15.75 15.75 15.75 15.79 1647 15.5 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15.04 1648 15 15 15 15 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 15.58 1649 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1650 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1651 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1652 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1653 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1654 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1655 16 16 16.25 16.25 16.38 16.25 16.25 16.25 16.75 16.75 16.25 16.25 16.3 1656 16.5 16.5 16.5 16.5 16.63 16.5 16.63 16.5 16.63 16.63 16.63 16.63 16.56 1657 16.25 16.75 16.63 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 17 17 17 16 16.7 1658 17 17 17 17 17 17 17 17 17 17 17.25 17.13 17.03 1659 17.13 17.38 17.75 17.25 17.25 17.25 17.25 17.5 17.5 17.75 17.75 17.75 17.46 1660 17.25 17.25 17.25 18 18 17.75 17.25 18 18 18 18 18 17.73 1661 18 18 18 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.19 1662 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 1663 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.75 18.75 18.5 18.5 19 19 19 18.56 1664 20 20 20 20 20 19 19 19 20 20.5 20.5 21 19.91 1665 21.5 21.75 21.5 21.5 21.25 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21.21 1666 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 1667 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 1668 21 21 21.25 21.25 21 21 21 21.06 21 21 21 21 21.05 1669 21 21 21 21 21.25 21.13 21 21 21 21 21 21 21.03 1670 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 1671 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 1672 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 1673 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21.13 21.13 21.13 21.13 21.31 21.07 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 193 Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Ave- rage 1674 21.31 21 21 21.13 21.25 21.5 21.5 21.75 22 22 22 22 21.53 1675 22 22.25 22.5 22.56 22.88 22.94 23.13 23.38 26.38 24.13 24.5 24.5 23.4 1676 24 24 24.25 24.25 24.38 24.88 25.13 25.75 26 25.75 25.75 25.75 24.98 1677 25.75 25.75 25.75 26 26 26.5 26 26 26.5 26.5 26.5 26.75 26.16 1678 26.75 26.75 26.75 27 27 27 27 26.75 26.75 26.75 26.75 26.75 26.83 1679 27 27 27 27 27 27 27 27 27 27 27 27 27 1680 27.27 27 27.27 27 27 27 27 27 27.27 27.27 27.27 27.27 27.13 1681 27.27 27.27 27 24 22.56 24 24 24 24.5 24.5 25 25 24.88 1682 24.75 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 24.98 1683 25.13 25.13 25.13 25.44 25.44 25.44 25 25 25 25 25 25 25.14 1684 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 1685 25 25.06 1686 25.13 25.13 24.69 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24.24 Sources: Wolontis (1936) and Swenne (1933). Annual average calculated as geometric. Table A4.2. Monthly data on one riksdaler carolin in mark kopparmynt 1670–86. Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Ave- rage 1670 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 1671 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 1672 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 1673 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 19 1674 19 19 19 19 19 19.5 19.5 19.63 20 20 20 20 19.464 1675 20 20 20 20.19 20.31 20.5 20.5 21 21 21.13 21.13 21.38 20.588 1676 21 21 21 21 21 21 21.5 21.75 22 22 22 22 21.433 1677 22 22 22 22 22 22.13 22.13 22.13 22.13 22.5 22.63 22.88 22.207 1678 23 23.13 23.13 23.38 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23.052 1679 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 23 1680 23 23.23 23.06 23 23.13 23.13 23.13 23.06 23.06 23.06 23.06 23.06 23.082 1681 23.19 23 23 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21.498 1686 22 22 21.5 21 21 21 22.5 22.5 22.5 22.5 22.5 22.5 21.949 Source: Wolontis (1936). Annual average calculated as geometric. 1 riksdaler carolin = 3 carolins. Table A4.1 (cont.). Monthly data on riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt) 1626–86. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 194 Table A4.3. Monthly premium (per cent) on courant silver coins 1670–86. Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Ave- rage 1670 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 1671 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 1672 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 1673 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 0 1674 0 0 0 0 0 1 1 1.25 1.75 1.75 2 2 0.896 1675 2 2.25 2.25 3 3 3 3 3 3.75 3.75 3.75 5.5 3.188 1676 6.25 7.75 6.75 6.75 7.75 8.25 9.5 10.25 11.5 12.33 12.33 12.5 9.326 1677 12.5 12.5 12.5 12.5 15 16.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 15.54 1678 17.75 17.75 17.75 18.5 18.5 17 17 16.75 17 16 16.5 16.5 17.25 1679 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 15.17 15.17 16.49 1680 15.17 15.17 15.5 14.44 13.5 14.33 11.44 12.17 9.778 11.17 11.17 11.17 12.92 1681 9.778 6.5 6.5 (2) (2) (2) (2) (2) (2) (2) (2) (2) 3.398 1686 3* (2.5 **) 3* (2.5 **) 3* (2.5 **) 1.5* (1**) 1.5* (1**) 1.5* (1**) 1.5* (2**) 1.5* (1**) 1.5* (1**) 1.5* (1**) 1.5* (1**) 1.5* (1**) 1.77* (1.4**) Source: Wolontis (1936). Annual average calculated as arithmetic. Par value: 1 öre courant = 1 öre silvermynt. * 4-öre coins ** 2-öre coins Table A4.4. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 12 daler k.m. before 1718, 18 daler k.m. after 1718) 1 riksdaler specie in daler kop- parmynt (par value 6 daler k.m. before 1718, 9 daler k.m. after 1718) Average Lowest Highest Average Lowest Highest 1705 May 12.5 12.5 12.5 6.5 6.5 6.5 1705 June 13.75 13.5 14 6.5 6.5 6.5 1705 July 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1705 Aug 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1705 Sept 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1705 Oct 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.559 6.55 6.563 1705 Nov 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1705 Dec 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 Jan 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 Feb 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 March 13.56 13.5 13.63 6.594 6.563 6.625 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 195 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 12 daler k.m. before 1718, 18 daler k.m. after 1718) 1 riksdaler specie in daler kop- parmynt (par value 6 daler k.m. before 1718, 9 daler k.m. after 1718) Average Lowest Highest Average Lowest Highest 1706 April 1706 May 13.63 13.63 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 June 13.63 13.63 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 July 13.63 13.63 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 Aug 13.63 13.63 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 Sept 13.63 13.63 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 Oct 13.63 13.63 13.63 6.563 6.563 6.563 1706 Nov 13.75 13.5 14 6.594 6.563 6.625 1706 Dec 13.7 13.5 14 6.525 6.5 6.563 1707 Jan 13.54 13.5 14 6.542 6.5 6.563 1707 Feb 13.5 13.5 13.5 6.531 6.5 6.563 1708 Dec 13.94 13.88 14 6.563 6.563 6.563 1711 Sept 14.06 14.06 14.06 6.5 6.5 6.5 1728 Nov 18.5 18.5 18.5 9 9 9 1729 Sept 18.25 18.25 18.25 9 9 9 1729 Oct 18.31 18.25 18.38 9 9 9 1733 Jan 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 Feb 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 March 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 April 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 May 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 June 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 July 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 Aug 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 Sept 18 18 18 9 9 9 1733 Oct 18.18 18.16 18.19 9 9 9 1733 Nov 18.03 18 18.16 9 9 9 1733 Dec 18 18 18 9 9 9 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 196 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler specie in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1734 Jan 18.19 18.16 18.25 9.125 9.125 9.125 1.016 1.015 1.018 25.97 25.94 26 1734 Feb 18.13 18.13 18.19 9.133 9.125 9.188 1.016 1.015 1.018 25.97 25.94 26 1734 Mar 18.18 18.13 18.25 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.016 1.015 1.018 25.91 25.81 26 1734 April 18.22 18.19 18.25 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.015 1.015 1.015 25.84 25.81 25.88 1734 May 18.19 18.19 18.19 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.015 1.015 1.015 25.84 25.81 25.88 1734 June 18.19 18.19 18.19 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.015 1.015 1.015 25.84 25.81 25.88 1734 July 18.25 18.25 18.25 1734 Aug 18 18 18 1734 Sept 18.13 18 18.31 1734 Oct 18.23 18 18.31 9.188 9.188 9.188 1.02 1.02 1.02 25.88 25.88 25.88 1734 Nov 18.23 18 18.38 9.198 9.188 9.25 1.023 1.02 1.025 25.88 25.88 25.88 1734 Dec 1736 Jan 1736 Feb 1736 Mar 18.75 18.75 18.75 1736 April 1736 May 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.038 1.038 1.04 27.81 27.75 27.88 1736 June 18.78 18.75 19 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.035 1.035 1.035 27.89 27.88 27.91 1736 July 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.035 1.035 1.035 27.88 27.88 27.88 1736 Aug 19.12 18.75 19.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.035 1.035 1.035 27.88 27.88 27.88 1736 Sep 18.78 18.75 18.86 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.035 1.035 1.035 28 28 28 1736 Oct 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.027 1.025 1.03 28.08 28 28.13 1736 Nov 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.027 1.025 1.03 28.56 28.25 29 1736 Dec 18.73 18.5 18.81 9.416 9.375 9.5 1.025 1.025 1.025 28.41 28 28.75 1740 Jan 1740 Feb 1740 Mar 18.61 18.56 18.63 9.45 9.375 9.5 1.033 1.03 1.035 27.26 27.13 27.38 1740 April 18.6 18.56 18.63 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.032 1.03 1.035 27.32 27.25 27.44 1740 May 18.65 18.56 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.031 1.03 1.035 27.39 27.38 27.44 1740 June 18.68 18.56 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.03 1.03 1.035 27.35 27.25 27.38 1740 July 18.72 18.69 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.032 1.03 1.035 27.25 27.25 27.25 1740 Aug 18.67 18.63 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.032 1.03 1.035 27.31 27.25 27.38 1740 Sept 18.66 18.63 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.032 1.03 1.035 27.27 27.25 27.38 1740 Oct 18.66 18.63 18.69 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.037 1.035 1.04 27.31 27.25 27.38 1740 Nov 18.66 18.63 18.69 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.045 1.04 1.05 27.36 27.31 27.38 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 197 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1740 Dec 18.64 18.63 18.69 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.047 1.045 1.05 27.34 27.25 27.38 1741 Jan 18.68 18.63 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.046 1.04 1.05 27.35 27.25 27.38 1741 Feb 18.63 18.63 18.66 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.05 1.05 1.05 27.3 27.25 27.38 1741 Mar 18.65 18.63 18.69 9.487 9.438 9.5 1.047 1.045 1.05 27.38 27.38 27.38 1741 April 18.63 18.63 18.63 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.041 1.03 1.045 27.46 27.31 27.75 1741 May 18.72 18.69 18.75 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.03 1.03 1.03 27.85 27.75 28 1741 June 18.72 18.69 18.75 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.036 1.03 1.04 27.8 27.75 27.88 1741 July 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.044 1.04 1.05 27.7 27.63 27.75 1741 Aug 19.29 18.88 20 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.049 1.045 1.05 27.67 27.63 27.75 1741 Sept 19.06 19 19.25 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.046 1.045 1.05 27.53 27.5 27.63 1741 Oct 19.25 19.19 19.38 9.523 9.5 9.563 1.047 1.045 1.05 27.33 27.25 27.5 1741 Nov 19.31 19.19 19.5 9.581 9.5 9.625 1.049 1.045 1.05 27.24 27.13 27.38 1741 Dec 19.28 19.25 19.38 9.594 9.563 9.625 1.052 1.05 1.06 27.28 27.25 27.38 1742 Jan 19.46 19.38 19.56 9.594 9.563 9.625 1.056 1.05 1.06 27.34 27.25 27.38 1742 Feb 19.64 19.5 20 9.594 9.563 9.625 1.057 1.055 1.06 27.51 27.5 27.56 1742 Mar 19.66 19.5 19.75 9.594 9.563 9.625 1.058 1.055 1.06 27.56 27.5 27.63 1742 April 19.83 19.75 20 9.594 9.563 9.625 1.06 1.06 1.06 27.77 27.63 27.88 1742 May 20 20 20 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.06 1.06 1.06 28.05 28 28.13 1742 June 20 20 20 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.067 1.06 1.07 28.44 28.25 28.5 1742 July 20.65 20 21 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.071 1.06 1.08 28.55 28.5 28.63 1742 Aug 20.43 19.5 21 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.08 1.08 1.08 28.56 28.5 28.63 1742 Sept 19.56 19 20 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.067 1.055 1.08 28.29 28.13 28.5 1742 Oct 19.55 19.38 20 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.06 1.05 1.07 28.06 28 28.13 1742 Nov 19.62 19.5 19.75 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.065 1.06 1.07 28.12 28 28.25 1742 Dec 19.62 19.5 19.75 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.062 1.06 1.065 28.25 28.25 28.25 1743 Jan 19.62 19.5 19.75 9.624 9.5 9.75 1.066 1.06 1.07 28.41 28.25 28.63 1743 Feb 19.62 19.5 19.75 9.716 9.5 10 1.066 1.06 1.07 28.77 28.63 28.88 1743 Mar 20.08 19.75 20.5 9.832 9.5 10 1.067 1.065 1.07 29.25 29 29.5 1743 April 20.12 20 20.25 9.874 9.75 10 1.08 1.08 1.08 29.54 29.5 29.75 1743 May 20.12 20 20.25 10 10 10 1.078 1.075 1.08 29.7 29.63 29.75 1743 June 20.67 20 22.5 10.04 10 10.25 1.085 1.08 1.11 29.87 29.75 30 1743 July 20.16 20 20.5 10.12 10 10.25 1.076 1.07 1.08 30.12 30 30.25 1743 Aug 20.25 20 21 10.12 10 10.25 1.068 1.065 1.07 30.25 30.25 30.25 1743 Sept 20.25 20 20.5 10.12 10 10.25 1.072 1.065 1.08 30.22 29.5 30.5 1743 Oct 20.31 20 20.5 10.12 10 10.25 1.072 1.07 1.075 29.56 29.5 30 1743 Nov 20.59 20.5 20.75 10.17 10 10.38 1.077 1.07 1.08 29.5 29.5 29.5 1743 Dec 20.78 20.5 21 10.34 10.25 10.5 1.08 1.08 1.08 29.5 29.5 29.5 1744 Jan 20.81 20.5 21 10.34 10.25 10.5 1.085 1.08 1.09 29.62 29.5 30 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 198 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1744 Feb 20.87 20.75 21 10.31 10.25 10.38 1.09 1.09 1.09 29.91 29.75 30 1744 Mar 20.87 20.75 21 10.31 10.25 10.38 1.086 1.08 1.09 29.96 29.88 30 1744 April 20.81 20.75 21 10.44 10.38 10.5 1.091 1.09 1.095 30.06 30 30.13 1744 May 21 21 21 10.5 10.5 10.5 1.101 1.09 1.11 30.2 30 30.25 1744 June 21 21 21 10.31 10.25 10.5 1.108 1.105 1.11 30.11 30 30.25 1744 July 21.06 21 21.5 10.37 10.25 10.5 1.11 1.11 1.11 30.25 30.25 30.25 1744 Aug 21 21 21 10.37 10.25 10.5 1.112 1.11 1.115 30.25 30.25 30.25 1744 Sept 21.12 21 21.5 10.33 10.25 10.5 1.106 1.1 1.11 30.27 30.25 30.38 1744 Oct 21.33 21.25 21.5 10.34 10.25 10.5 1.107 1.1 1.11 30.27 30.25 30.38 1744 Nov 21.44 21.38 21.5 10.45 10.38 10.5 1.112 1.11 1.115 30.31 30.25 30.38 1744 Dec 21.5 21.5 21.5 10.5 10.5 10.5 1.113 1.11 1.115 30.34 30.25 30.38 1745 Jan 21.62 21.5 21.75 10.62 10.5 10.75 1.114 1.11 1.12 30.34 30.25 30.44 1745 Feb 21.62 21.5 21.75 10.62 10.5 10.75 1.115 1.115 1.115 30.4 30.38 30.44 1745 Mar 21.94 21.75 22 10.75 10.75 10.75 1.117 1.115 1.12 30.69 30.5 30.75 1745 April 21.22 20.75 21.75 10.62 10.25 10.75 1.112 1.105 1.12 30.64 30.38 30.88 1745 May 20.43 20 21 10.19 10 10.5 1.107 1.105 1.11 30.44 30.38 30.5 1745 June 1.109 1.105 1.115 30.45 30.38 30.5 1745 July 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.111 1.11 1.115 30.45 30.38 30.5 1745 Aug 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.112 1.11 1.115 30.44 30.38 30.5 1745 Sept 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.112 1.11 1.115 30.29 30.13 30.5 1745 Oct 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.119 1.115 1.125 30.2 30 30.38 1745 Nov 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.127 1.12 1.13 30.55 30.25 30.75 1745 Dec 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.131 1.13 1.135 30.77 30.75 30.88 1746 Jan 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.142 1.14 1.145 30.77 30.75 31 1746 Feb 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.14 1.14 1.14 30.87 30.75 31 1746 Mar 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.136 1.13 1.14 30.87 30.75 31 1746 April 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.132 1.13 1.135 30.87 30.75 31 1746 May 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.128 1.12 1.13 30.65 30.5 30.75 1746 June 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.125 1.12 1.13 30.66 30.5 30.75 1746 July 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.135 1.13 1.14 30.82 30.75 31 1746 Aug 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.145 1.14 1.15 30.94 30.88 31 1746 Sept 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.15 1.15 1.15 31 31 31 1746 Oct 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.15 1.15 1.15 31.19 31 31.25 1746 Nov 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.147 1.14 1.15 31.31 31.25 31.5 1746 Dec 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.14 1.14 1.14 31.62 31.25 31.75 1747 Jan 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.137 1.13 1.14 31.9 31.75 32 1747 Feb 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.132 1.13 1.135 32 32 32 1747 Mar 20 20 20 10 10 10 1.141 1.14 1.145 32 32 32 1747 April 1.143 1.14 1.15 32 32 32 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 199 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1747 May 22.75 22.75 22.75 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.152 1.145 1.16 32.06 32 32.25 1747 June 22.75 22.75 22.75 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.156 1.15 1.16 32 32 32 1747 July 22.77 22.75 23 11.55 11.5 11.75 1.165 1.16 1.17 32.15 32 32.25 1747 Aug 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.17 1.17 1.17 32.25 32.25 32.25 1747 Sept 22.94 22.75 23 11.55 11.5 11.63 1.17 1.17 1.17 32.25 32.25 32.25 1747 Oct 23 23 23 11.72 11.5 11.75 1.175 1.17 1.18 32.25 32.25 32.25 1747 Nov 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.173 1.17 1.18 32.19 32 32.25 1747 Dec 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.164 1.16 1.17 32.12 32 32.25 1748 Jan 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.165 1.16 1.17 32.25 32 32.38 1748 Feb 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.165 1.16 1.17 32.12 32 32.25 1748 Mar 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.164 1.16 1.17 32.3 32 32.5 1748 April 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.165 1.16 1.17 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 May 22.87 22.75 23 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.169 1.16 1.18 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 June 22.67 22.5 23 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.177 1.175 1.18 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 July 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.177 1.175 1.18 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 Aug 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.177 1.175 1.18 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 Sept 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.178 1.175 1.18 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 Oct 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.18 1.18 1.18 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 Nov 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.53 11.5 11.75 1.18 1.18 1.18 32.37 32.25 32.5 1748 Dec 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.172 1.16 1.18 32.5 32.5 32.5 1749 Jan 1749 Feb 1749 Mar 1749 April 1749 May 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.177 1.175 1.18 32.75 32.75 32.75 1749 June 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.177 1.175 1.18 33 33 33 1749 July 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.178 1.175 1.18 33 33 33 1749 Aug 22.62 22.5 22.75 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.18 1.18 1.18 33 33 33 1749 Sept 22.56 22.5 22.75 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.18 1.18 1.18 33.09 33 33.25 1749 Oct 22.47 22.25 22.5 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.18 1.18 1.18 33.12 33 33.25 1749 Nov 22.5 22.5 22.5 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.18 1.18 1.18 33.12 33 33.25 1749 Dec 22.33 22 22.5 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.18 1.18 1.18 33.12 33 33.25 1750 Jan 22 22 22 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.177 1.175 1.18 33.12 33 33.25 1750 Feb 22 22 22 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.175 1.175 1.175 33.12 33 33.25 1750 Mar 22 22 22 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.175 1.175 1.175 33.12 33 33.25 1750 April 21.91 21.5 22 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.175 1.175 1.175 33.12 33 33.25 1750 May 21.52 21 21.75 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.175 1.175 1.175 33.12 33 33.25 1750 June 21.12 21 21.25 11.62 11.5 11.75 1.167 1.165 1.17 33.12 33 33.25 1750 July 20.87 20.75 21 11.37 11.25 11.5 1.162 1.16 1.165 33.12 33 33.25 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 200 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1750 Aug 20.67 20.5 21 11.37 11.25 11.5 1.161 1.15 1.165 33.12 33 33.25 1750 Sept 20.28 20 20.5 11.19 11 11.25 1.14 1.12 1.15 33.09 33 33.25 1750 Oct 20.12 20 20.25 11 11 11 1.117 1.115 1.12 33 33 33 1750 Nov 19.97 19.75 20.25 10.9 10.5 11 1.099 1.08 1.11 32.72 32.5 33 1750 Dec 19.87 19.75 20 10.65 10 11 1.075 1.07 1.08 32.52 32.25 32.75 1751 Jan 19.77 19.5 20 10.25 10 10.5 1.075 1.06 1.09 32.4 32 33 1751 Feb 19.62 19.5 19.75 10.25 10 10.5 1.075 1.07 1.08 32.87 32.75 33 1751 Mar 19.62 19.5 19.75 10.25 10 10.5 1.075 1.07 1.08 32.87 32.75 33 1751 April 19.62 19.5 19.75 10.25 10 10.5 1.081 1.07 1.09 32.87 32.75 33 1751 May 19.72 19.5 20 10.25 10 10.5 1.074 1.07 1.08 32.87 32.75 33 1751 June 19.87 19.75 20 10.25 10 10.5 1.082 1.07 1.09 32.87 32.75 33 1751 July 19.87 19.75 20 10.25 10 10.5 1.085 1.08 1.09 32.87 32.75 33 1751 Aug 19.87 19.75 20 10.25 10 10.5 1.085 1.08 1.09 32.87 32.75 33 1751 Sept 19.87 19.75 20 10.25 10 10.5 1.085 1.08 1.09 32.62 32.5 32.75 1751 Oct 19.87 19.75 20 10.71 10 11 1.076 1.07 1.09 32.25 32 32.75 1751 Nov 19.87 19.75 20 10.87 10.75 11 1.072 1.07 1.075 32.12 32 32.25 1751 Dec 19.87 19.75 20 10.87 10.75 11 1.072 1.07 1.075 32.37 32.25 32.5 1752 Jan 19.56 19 20 10.75 10.5 11 1.072 1.07 1.075 32.25 32 32.5 1752 Feb 19.75 19.5 20 10.87 10.5 11.25 1.075 1.07 1.08 32.33 32 32.5 1752 Mar 20 20 20 11.12 11 11.25 1.077 1.075 1.08 32.5 32.5 32.5 1752 April 19.9 19.5 20 10.97 10.5 11.25 1.081 1.08 1.085 32.37 32 32.5 1752 May 19.44 19.25 19.5 10.5 10.5 10.5 1.077 1.07 1.08 32.05 32 32.25 1752 June 19.55 19.25 19.75 10.4 10 10.5 1.074 1.07 1.08 32.11 32 32.25 1752 July 19.12 19 19.5 10 10 10 1.071 1.07 1.075 32.06 32 32.25 1752 Aug 19 19 19 10 10 10 1.067 1.06 1.07 31.87 31.5 32 1752 Sept 19 19 19 10 10 10 1.054 1.05 1.06 31.45 31 32 1752 Oct 19.16 19 19.25 10.16 10 10.25 1.048 1.045 1.05 30.31 30 30.5 1752 Nov 19.12 19 19.25 10.12 10 10.25 1.05 1.05 1.05 30.34 30 30.5 1752 Dec 19.12 19 19.25 10.12 10 10.25 1.05 1.05 1.05 30.05 30 30.5 1753 Jan 19.12 19 19.25 10.15 10 10.5 1.049 1.045 1.05 29.78 29.5 30 1753 Feb 19.12 19 19.25 10.16 10 10.5 1.051 1.05 1.055 29.75 29.63 30 1753 Mar 19.12 19 19.25 10.12 10 10.25 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.69 29.63 29.75 1753 April 19.12 19 19.25 10.12 10 10.25 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.69 29.63 29.75 1753 May 19.12 19 19.25 10.12 10 10.25 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.67 29.5 29.75 1753 June 19.12 19 19.25 10.12 10 10.25 1.052 1.05 1.06 29.62 29.5 29.75 1753 July 19.22 19 19.75 10 10 10 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.61 29.5 29.75 1753 Aug 19.31 19 19.75 10 10 10 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.69 29.63 29.75 1753 Sept 19.5 19.25 19.75 10 10 10 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.69 29.63 29.75 1753 Oct 19.4 19.25 19.75 10.05 10 10.25 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.66 29.63 29.75 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 201 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1753 Nov 19.37 19.25 19.5 10 10 10 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.63 29.63 29.63 1753 Dec 19.37 19.25 19.5 10.37 10.25 10.5 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.62 29.5 29.75 1754 Jan 19.37 19.25 19.5 9.949 9.75 10 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.67 29.5 29.75 1754 Feb 19.37 19.25 19.5 9.906 9.75 10 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.75 29.75 29.75 1754 Mar 19.37 19.25 19.5 10 10 10 1.057 1.055 1.06 29.81 29.75 29.88 1754 April 19.5 19.5 19.5 10.05 10 10.25 1.057 1.055 1.06 29.98 29.88 30.25 1754 May 19.59 19.5 19.75 10 10 10 1.057 1.055 1.06 29.95 29.88 30 1754 June 19.62 19.5 19.75 10.09 10 10.5 1.055 1.055 1.055 29.94 29.88 30 1754 July 19.62 19.5 19.75 10.37 10.25 10.5 1.055 1.055 1.055 29.94 29.88 30 1754 Aug 19.62 19.5 19.75 10.37 10.25 10.5 1.051 1.05 1.055 29.91 29.75 30 1754 Sept 19.52 19.5 19.63 10.37 10.25 10.5 1.051 1.05 1.055 29.86 29.75 30 1754 Oct 19.37 19 19.75 10.49 10 11 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.87 29.75 30 1754 Nov 19.59 19.5 19.75 10.5 10.5 10.5 1.05 1.05 1.05 29.86 29.75 30 1754 Dec 19.52 19.5 19.75 10.3 10.25 10.5 1.053 1.05 1.055 29.91 29.75 30 1755 Jan 19.62 19.5 19.75 10.25 10.25 10.25 1.055 1.055 1.055 29.94 29.88 30 1755 Feb 19.55 19.5 19.75 10.19 10 10.25 1.055 1.055 1.055 29.98 29.88 30.13 1755 Mar 19.56 19.5 19.63 10.06 10 10.25 1.055 1.055 1.055 30.14 30.13 30.25 1755 April 19.57 19.5 19.75 9.996 9.5 10.25 1.055 1.055 1.055 30.05 29.88 30.25 1755 May 19.62 19.5 19.75 10 10 10 1.055 1.055 1.055 29.91 29.75 30 1755 June 19.62 19.5 19.75 10 10 10 1.055 1.055 1.055 29.87 29.75 30 1755 July 19.62 19.5 19.75 10 10 10 1.055 1.055 1.055 29.97 29.75 30 1755 Aug 19.72 19.5 20 10 10 10 1.055 1.055 1.055 30 30 30 1755 Sept 19.5 19.5 19.5 10.22 10 10.75 1.055 1.055 1.055 30.05 30 30.13 1755 Oct 19.78 19.5 20 10.59 10.25 10.75 1.055 1.055 1.055 30 30 30 1755 Nov 19.87 19.75 20 10.5 10.25 10.75 1.055 1.055 1.055 30 30 30 1755 Dec 19.96 19.75 20.13 10.5 10.25 10.75 1.055 1.055 1.055 30 30 30 1756 Jan 1756 Feb 30.62 30.5 30.75 1756 Mar 1.062 1.06 1.065 30.62 30.5 30.75 1756 April 1.062 1.06 1.065 30.62 30.5 30.75 1756 May 10.5 10.5 10.5 1.06 1.06 1.06 30.62 30.5 30.75 1756 June 10.5 10.5 10.5 1.06 1.06 1.06 30.62 30.5 30.75 1756 July 21.25 21.25 21.25 1.06 1.06 1.06 30.87 30.5 31.25 1756 Aug 20.75 20.75 20.75 1.06 1.06 1.06 31.05 31 31.25 1756 Sept 20.75 20.75 20.75 1.06 1.06 1.06 31 31 31 1756 Oct 20.75 20.75 20.75 1.062 1.06 1.07 31 31 31 1756 Nov 20.9 20.75 21 11 11 11 1.068 1.065 1.07 31.07 31 31.13 1756 Dec 21 21 21 11 11 11 1.07 1.07 1.07 31.13 31.13 31.13 1757 Jan 21.47 21.25 21.5 11.12 11 11.5 1.07 1.07 1.07 31.13 31.13 31.13 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 202 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1757 Feb 21.5 21.5 21.5 11 11 11 1.07 1.07 1.07 31.19 31.13 31.25 1757 Mar 21.7 21.5 22 10.8 10.5 11 1.06 1.06 1.06 31.6 31.5 31.75 1757 April 21.75 21.5 22 10.87 10.75 11 1.06 1.06 1.06 31.62 31.5 31.75 1757 May 21.9 21.5 22 10.87 10.75 11 1.067 1.06 1.075 32 31.5 32.25 1757 June 22 22 22 10.87 10.75 11 1.075 1.075 1.075 32.25 32.25 32.25 1757 July 23 23 23 11 11 11 1.092 1.085 1.1 32.25 32.25 32.25 1757 Aug 23.2 23 24 11 11 11 1.122 1.12 1.13 32.52 32.5 32.75 1757 Sept 24 24 24 11.37 11.25 11.5 1.15 1.13 1.17 32.62 32.5 32.75 1757 Oct 24 24 24 11.5 11.5 11.5 1.16 1.16 1.16 32.62 32.5 32.75 1757 Nov 24 24 24 11.6 11.5 11.75 1.172 1.16 1.19 33.17 32.5 34 1757 Dec 24 24 24 11.75 11.75 11.75 1.19 1.19 1.19 34 34 34 1758 Jan 24.85 24.75 25 12.55 12.25 12.75 1.186 1.18 1.19 34.2 34 34.5 1758 Feb 25.25 24.75 26 12.66 12.5 12.75 1.189 1.18 1.2 34.44 34 35 1758 Mar 26.4 26 26.75 13 12.75 13.25 1.235 1.22 1.26 35.37 35 36 1758 April 27 26.5 27.25 13.62 13.25 14 1.257 1.24 1.27 36.12 35.5 36.5 1758 May 27.22 27 27.5 13.75 13.5 14 1.268 1.25 1.28 36.25 36 36.5 1758 June 27.06 26.75 27.5 13.62 13.5 14 1.275 1.26 1.28 36.37 36 36.5 1758 July 26.56 26.25 27 13.12 13 13.5 1.282 1.28 1.3 36.5 36.5 36.5 1758 Aug 26.12 26 26.75 13 13 13 1.286 1.28 1.32 36.5 36.5 36.5 1758 Sept 26.09 26 26.25 13 13 13 1.31 1.3 1.32 36.5 36.5 36.5 1758 Oct 26 26 26 13.1 13 13.5 1.316 1.3 1.33 36.5 36.5 36.5 1758 Nov 25.81 25 26 13.25 13 13.5 1.327 1.32 1.34 36.69 36.5 37 1758 Dec 25.93 25 26.5 13.25 13 13.5 1.335 1.33 1.34 37.12 37 37.25 1759 Jan 26.5 26.5 26.5 13.65 13 14 1.335 1.33 1.34 37.12 37 37.25 1759 Feb 26.5 26.5 26.5 13.75 13.5 14 1.335 1.33 1.34 37.12 37 37.25 1759 Mar 26.5 26.5 26.5 13.75 13.5 14 1.335 1.33 1.34 37.12 37 37.25 1759 April 26.37 26.25 26.5 13.87 13.5 14 1.335 1.33 1.34 38.62 38.5 38.75 1759 May 26.45 26.25 26.5 13.75 13.5 14 1.335 1.33 1.34 39 38.5 39.5 1759 June 26.5 26.5 26.5 13.75 13.5 14 1.335 1.33 1.34 39.25 39 39.5 1759 July 26.5 26.5 26.5 14.5 14.5 14.5 1.335 1.33 1.34 39.25 39 39.5 1759 Aug 26.5 26.5 26.5 14.5 14.5 14.5 1.335 1.33 1.34 39.25 39 39.5 1759 Sept 26.5 26.5 26.5 14.5 14.5 14.5 1.335 1.33 1.34 39.25 39 39.5 1759 Oct 26.55 26.5 26.75 14.6 14.5 15 1.357 1.33 1.4 39.45 39 40 1759 Nov 26.62 26.5 26.75 14.75 14.5 15 1.39 1.38 1.4 39.75 39.5 40 1759 Dec 27.06 26.5 27.5 15 14.5 15.25 1.42 1.38 1.45 39.75 39.5 40 1760 Jan 27.8 27.5 28 15.45 15.25 15.5 1.45 1.45 1.45 41.94 39.5 42.5 1760 Feb 28 28 28 15.5 15.5 15.5 1.46 1.46 1.46 43 43 43 1760 Mar 29 28.5 29.5 15.75 15.75 15.75 1.47 1.46 1.48 43.37 43 43.5 1760 April 29.95 29.5 30.25 15.75 15.75 15.75 1.48 1.48 1.48 43.6 43.5 43.75 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 203 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1760 May 29.5 29 30 15.81 15.75 16 1.5 1.5 1.5 44.44 43.75 45 1760 June 30.25 30 30.5 16 16 16 1.5 1.5 1.5 45.12 45 45.5 1760 July 30 30 30 16 16 16 1.5 1.5 1.5 45.5 45.5 45.5 1760 Aug 31 31 31 16.25 16.25 16.25 1.5 1.5 1.5 46.25 46.25 46.25 1760 Sept 31 31 31 16.25 16.25 16.25 1.5 1.5 1.5 46.25 46.25 46.25 1760 Oct 31 31 31 16.25 16.25 16.25 1.5 1.5 1.5 46.25 46.25 46.25 1760 Nov 32 31.5 32.5 16.25 16.25 16.25 1.5 1.5 1.5 46.87 46.25 47.5 1760 Dec 33 33 33 17 17 17 1.52 1.52 1.52 47.5 47.5 47.5 1761 Jan 33.75 33.5 34 17.5 17.5 17.5 1.53 1.52 1.54 47.5 47.5 47.5 1761 Feb 34 34 34 17.5 17.5 17.5 1.53 1.52 1.54 48.12 47.5 48.75 1761 Mar 34.1 34 34.5 17.55 17.5 17.75 1.524 1.52 1.54 48.75 48.75 48.75 1761 April 35.12 34.5 35.5 17.94 17.75 18 1.565 1.54 1.58 49.68 48.75 50 1761 May 35.5 35.5 35.5 18 18 18 1.6 1.6 1.6 50 50 50 1761 June 35.8 35.5 36 18 18 18 1.61 1.6 1.65 50 50 50 1761 July 36.5 36.5 36.5 18 18 18 1.65 1.65 1.65 50 50 50 1761 Aug 36.5 36.5 36.5 18 18 18 1.675 1.65 1.7 50.56 50 50.75 1761 Sept 36.2 36 36.5 18 18 18 1.73 1.7 1.75 50.75 50.75 50.75 1761 Oct 36.56 36 36.75 18 18 18 1.75 1.75 1.75 50.75 50.75 50.75 1761 Nov 36.25 36 36.5 18 18 18 1.725 1.7 1.75 50.75 50.75 50.75 1761 Dec 36.5 36.5 36.5 18.5 18.5 18.5 1.72 1.7 1.75 50.75 50.75 50.75 1762 Jan 36.5 36.5 36.5 18.5 18.5 18.5 1.7 1.7 1.7 50.75 50.75 50.75 1762 Feb 36.87 36.5 37 18.75 18.5 19 1.725 1.7 1.75 50.75 50.75 50.75 1762 Mar 38.4 38 39 19 19 19 1.75 1.75 1.75 50.75 50.75 50.75 1762 April 39.75 39 40 19.5 19 20 1.75 1.75 1.75 50.75 50.75 50.75 1762 May 40 40 40 20 20 20 1.8 1.8 1.8 51 50.75 51.25 1762 June 41.09 40 42 20.8 20 21 1.804 1.8 1.82 51.25 51.25 51.25 1762 July 42.75 42 43 21.75 21 22 1.88 1.82 1.9 51.81 51.25 52 1762 Aug 43 43 43 22 22 22 1.959 1.9 2 52 52 52 1762 Sept 43 43 43 22 22 22 2 2 2 52 52 52 1762 Oct 48.49 48 50 24.2 23 27 2.09 2.06 2.12 52.25 52 52.5 1762 Nov 49.59 48 50 25.67 24 27 2.095 2 2.12 55 55 55 1762 Dec 45 45 45 24.25 24 25 2 2 2 55.61 55 57.5 1763 Jan 43.47 42 45 24.49 24 25 2 2 2 57.5 57.5 57.5 1763 Feb 42.73 42 45 23.24 22.5 24 2 2 2 57.5 57.5 57.5 1763 Mar 44.18 42 45 22.79 22.5 24 2 2 2 57.5 57.5 57.5 1763 April 42 42 42 21.25 21 22 2 2 2 57.5 57.5 57.5 1763 May 41.19 40 42 20.59 20 21 1.992 1.98 2 56.49 55 57.5 1763 June 39.75 39 40 19.75 19 20 1.995 1.98 2 55 55 55 1763 July 39.5 39 40 19.49 19 20 2 2 2 55 55 55 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 204 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1763 Aug 41 40.5 42 20.79 20 22 2 2 2 55 55 55 1763 Sept 42.75 42 43 22.49 22 23 2.04 2 2.08 55 55 55 1763 Oct 44.24 43 45 23.49 23 24 2.085 2.08 2.1 56.24 55 57.5 1763 Nov 45.74 45 47 23.24 22.5 24 2.125 2.1 2.15 56.24 55 57.5 1763 Dec 44.25 44 45 22.12 22 22.5 2.025 2 2.1 55 55 55 1764 Jan 44.4 44 45 22 22 22 2 2 2 55 55 55 1764 Feb 43.25 43 44 22.49 22 23 2 2 2 55 55 55 1764 Mar 42.25 42 43 22.81 22.75 23 2 2 2 55 55 55 1764 April 42.75 42 43 22.12 22 22.5 2 2 2 55 55 55 1764 May 43 43 43 22.99 22 23.5 2 2 2 55 55 55 1764 June 43 43 43 22.5 22.5 22.5 2.1 2.1 2.1 55 55 55 1764 July 43.2 43 44 22.6 22.5 23 2.1 2.1 2.1 55 55 55 1764 Aug 44.25 44 44.5 23.83 23.5 24 2.1 2.1 2.1 55 55 55 1764 Sept 45.37 45 45.5 23.75 23.5 24 2.125 2.1 2.15 55 55 55 1764 Oct 45.3 45 46.5 23.1 23 23.5 2.15 2.15 2.15 55 55 55 1764 Nov 46.62 46 47 23.75 23.5 24 2.15 2.15 2.15 55 55 55 1764 Dec 46 46 46 23.25 23 23.5 2.15 2.15 2.15 55 55 55 1765 Jan 45.2 45 46 23 23 23 2.15 2.15 2.15 55 55 55 1765 Feb 44.12 44 44.5 22.87 22.5 23 2.111 2 2.15 55 55 55 1765 Mar 44.25 44 44.5 22 22 22 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 April 44.5 44.5 44.5 22 22 22 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 May 46 45 46.5 22 22 22 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 June 45.87 45 46 22 22 22 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 July 46 46 46 22 22 22 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 Aug 46 46 46 22.25 22 22.5 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 Sept 46 46 46 22.5 22.5 22.5 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 Oct 45.33 45 46 22.17 22 22.5 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 Nov 40.66 40 42 20.06 18 21 2 2 2 55 55 55 1765 Dec 40 40 40 19.79 18 20 2 2 2 1766 Jan 38.73 37 40 19.1 18 20 2 2 2 1766 Feb 37.99 37 39 18.61 18 19.5 2 2 2 1766 Mar 37.5 37 38 18.49 18 19 2 2 2 1766 April 39.03 37 42 20.12 18 21.5 2 2 2 1766 May 41.5 41 42 21.25 21 21.5 2 2 2 1766 June 41.5 41 42 21.25 21 21.5 2 2 2 1766 July 40.3 39 41 20.39 19 21 2 2 2 1766 Aug 39.5 39 40 19.49 19 20 2 2 2 1766 Sept 37.2 36 38 18.5 18 19 1.996 1.98 2 1766 Oct 36.5 36 37 18 18 18 1.99 1.98 2 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 205 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1766 Nov 35.68 35 37 17.43 17 18 1.944 1.9 2 1766 Dec 34.29 33.5 35.5 17.15 17 17.5 1.849 1.8 1.9 1767 Jan 33.5 33.5 33.5 17 17 17 1.79 1.78 1.8 1767 Feb 33.37 33 33.5 16.75 16.5 17 1.78 1.78 1.78 1767 Mar 33.75 33.5 34 16.87 16.5 17.25 1.76 1.76 1.76 1767 April 33.75 33.5 34 16.87 16.5 17.25 1767 May 33.75 33.5 34 16.87 16.5 17.25 1767 June 33.6 33 34 16.7 16.5 17.25 1767 July 32.5 32 33 16.21 15.75 16.75 1767 Aug 30.55 27 32 15.12 14 15.75 1767 Sept 26.85 26.5 27 13.25 13 13.5 1767 Oct 24.49 24 25 12 11.75 12.25 1767 Nov 24.25 24 25 11.87 11.75 12 1767 Dec 24 24 24 12.03 11.75 12.5 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) 1 da ler s.m. in plat es in da ler s.m. Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1768 Jan 24 24 24 1768 Feb 22 22 22 1768 Mar 22 22 22 1.167 1.167 1.167 1768 Apr 1.154 1.15 1.167 1768 May 22 22 22 1.163 1.15 1.167 32 32 32 1768 June 22 22 22 12 12 12 1.167 1.167 1.167 32 32 32 1768 July 24.81 24.25 25.5 12.62 12.5 12.75 1.167 1.167 1.167 1768 Aug 25.32 25 25.5 13.1 12.75 13.25 1.25 1.25 1.25 30.5 30.5 30.5 1.383 1768 Sept 25.25 25 25.5 13.12 13 13.25 1.25 1.25 1.25 30.5 30.5 30.5 1.385 1768 Oct 25.75 25.5 26 12.84 12.5 13 1.356 1768 Nov 26.33 26 26.5 13 13 13 1.372 1768 Dec 27.25 27 27.5 14 14 14 1.478 1769 Jan 27.5 27.5 27.5 14 14 14 33 33 33 1.478 1769 Feb 27.5 27.5 27.5 13.87 13.5 14 1.333 1.333 1.333 33 33 33 1.464 1769 Mar 1.333 1.333 1.333 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 206 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) 1 da ler s.m. in plat es in da ler s.m. Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1769 Apr 26.8 26.5 27 13.92 13.5 14 1.332 1.33 1.333 1.469 1769 May 26.75 26.5 27 13.62 13.5 14 1.331 1.33 1.333 34 34 34 1.438 1769 June 1.333 1.333 1.333 34 34 34 1769 July 28 28 28 15.75 15.5 16 1.333 1.333 1.333 34 34 34 1.662 1769 Aug 28.89 28 30 16.02 15.5 16.5 1.333 1.333 1.333 1.62 1769 Sept 29.75 29.5 30 16.21 16 16.5 1.5 1.5 1.5 1.621 1769 Oct 17.06 17 17.13 1.5 1.5 1.5 1.706 1769 Nov 16.87 16.75 17 1.5 1.5 1.5 1.687 1769 Dec 16.87 16.75 17 1.5 1.5 1.5 1.687 1770 Jan 30.7 30 31 17.59 16.75 18 1.505 1.5 1.53 1.759 1770 Feb 30 30 30 17.37 17.13 17.75 1.737 1770 Mar 30 30 30 16.88 16 17 1.688 1770 Apr 16.96 16.75 17 1.696 1770 May 31.75 31.5 32 16.9 16.75 17 1.69 1770 June 31.12 31 31.5 1770 July 31 31 31 17.18 16.75 18 1.718 1770 Aug 17.5 17.5 17.5 1.75 1770 Sept 34.5 34.5 34.5 17.37 17.25 17.5 1.737 1770 Oct 33.25 33.25 33.25 17.35 17.25 17.5 1.735 1770 Nov 33 33 33 17.37 17.25 17.5 1.655 1.65 1.66 1.737 1770 Dec 17.25 17.25 17.25 1.655 1.65 1.66 1.725 1771 Jan 33.25 33.25 33.25 17.55 17.25 17.75 1.655 1.65 1.66 1.852 1771 Feb 33.62 33.25 34 17.75 17.75 17.75 1.874 1771 Mar 33.56 33.5 34 17.42 17.25 17.5 1.838 1771 Apr 33.5 33.5 33.5 17.19 17 17.25 1.814 1771 May 32.5 32.5 32.5 16.5 16.5 16.5 1.742 1771 June 32.37 32 32.5 16.25 16 16.5 1.715 1771 July 33 33 33 16.44 16.25 16.63 1.735 1771 Aug 33 33 33 16.58 16.5 17.16 1.75 1771 Sept 32.87 32.5 33 16.47 16.25 16.5 1.738 1771 Oct 32.5 32.5 32.5 16.37 16.25 16.5 1.728 1771 Nov 33 33 33 16.75 16.75 16.75 1.768 1771 Dec 33.17 33 33.5 16.94 16.75 17.13 1.788 1772 Jan 33.25 33 33.5 17.06 17 17.13 1.801 1772 Feb 33.25 33 33.5 1772 Mar 1772 Apr 17.62 17.5 17.75 1.86 1772 May 17.81 17.5 18 1.88 1772 June 18 18 18 1.9 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 207 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) 1 da ler s.m. in plat es in da ler s.m. Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1772 July 35 34.5 35.5 18.37 18 19 1.939 1772 Aug 35 34.5 35.5 19 19 19 2.006 1772 Sept 33.37 33 34.5 18.77 18.75 18.88 1.981 1772 Oct 34.37 33.5 34.5 18.72 18.63 18.75 1.976 1772 Nov 34.5 34.5 34.5 18.88 18.88 18.88 1.6 1.6 1.6 1.992 1772 Dec 36.12 36 36.25 19.4 19.25 19.5 2.048 1773 Jan 36.12 36 36.25 19.44 19.38 19.5 2.052 1773 Feb 36.12 36 36.25 19.44 19.38 19.5 2.052 1773 Mar 39.5 39 40 20.71 20 21.5 2.186 1773 Apr 39.25 39 40 20.57 19.75 21.5 2.171 1773 May 20.87 20.75 21 2.203 1773 June 39.42 39 39.75 21 21 21 2.217 1773 July 39.94 39.5 40 20.73 20.5 20.88 2.188 1773 Aug 39.85 39 40 20.51 20.25 20.63 2.165 1773 Sept 39.31 39 40 20.31 20.25 20.38 2.144 1773 Oct 39.87 39 40 20.75 20.31 21 2.191 1773 Nov 40 40 40 21.06 21 21.13 1.986 1.973 2 2.223 1773 Dec 40 40 40 21.13 21.13 21.13 1.986 1.973 2 2.23 1774 Jan 39.87 39.5 40 21.44 21.25 21.5 1.986 1.973 2 2.263 1774 Feb 39.75 39.5 40 21.31 21.25 21.5 1.986 1.973 2 2.25 1774 Mar 39.75 39.5 40 21.25 21.25 21.25 1.986 1.973 2 2.123 1774 Apr 39.75 39.5 40 20.41 20.38 20.5 1.986 1.973 2 1.965 1774 May 39.15 39 39.5 19.75 19.5 20.25 1.986 1.973 2 1.902 1774 June 39 39 39 19.5 19.5 19.5 1.986 1.973 2 1.878 1774 July 38.75 38.5 39 19.31 19.25 19.5 1.986 1.973 2 1.86 1774 Aug 36.75 36.5 37 1.986 1.973 2 1774 Sept 36.56 36.5 37 18.5 18.5 18.5 1.986 1.973 2 1.781 1774 Oct 36.22 36 36.5 18.5 18.5 18.5 1.986 1.973 2 1.781 1774 Nov 36.12 36 36.25 18.5 18.5 18.5 1.986 1.973 2 1.781 1774 Dec 36.12 36 36.25 18.75 18.75 18.75 1.986 1.973 2 1.806 1775 Jan 36.12 36 36.25 18.75 18.75 18.75 1.986 1.973 2 1.806 1775 Feb 36.5 36.5 36.5 1.986 1.973 2 1775 Mar 36.5 36.5 36.5 1.986 1.973 2 1775 Apr 36.5 36.5 36.5 1.993 1.973 2 1775 May 35.25 35.25 35.25 17.88 17.88 17.88 2 2 2 1775 June 35.75 35.75 35.75 17.88 17.88 17.88 2 2 2 1775 July 17.88 17.88 17.88 2 2 2 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 208 Y e a r M o n t h 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) 1 da ler s.m. in plat es in da ler s.m. Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1775 Aug 36 36 36 18 18 18 2 2 2 1.667 1775 Sept 35.83 35.5 36 17.83 17.5 18 2 2 2 1.651 1775 Oct 35.5 35.5 35.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 2 2 2 1.62 1775 Nov 35.5 35.5 35.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 2 2 2 1.62 1775 Dec 35.5 35.5 35.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 2 2 2 1.62 1776 Jan 35.5 35.5 35.5 17.5 17.5 17.5 2 2 2 1.62 1776 Feb 35.5 35.5 35.5 17.59 17.5 18 2 2 2 1.629 1776 Mar 35.5 35.5 35.5 17.87 17.75 18 1.655 1776 Apr 35.45 35.25 35.5 17.89 17.75 18 1.656 1776 May 35.25 35.25 35.25 17.94 17.88 18 1.661 1776 June 35.25 35.25 35.25 18 18 18 1.617 1776 July 35.25 35.25 35.25 18 18 18 1.833 1.833 1.833 1.617 1776 Aug 35.25 35.25 35.25 18 18 18 1.833 1.833 1.833 1.617 1776 Sept 35.25 35.25 35.25 18 18 18 1.833 1.833 1.833 1.617 1776 Oct 35.25 35.25 35.25 18 18 18 1.833 1.833 1.833 1.617 1776 Nov 35.25 35.25 35.25 18 18 18 1.833 1.833 1.833 1.617 1776 Dec 35.25 35.25 35.25 18 18 18 1.833 1.833 1.833 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Sources: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv) and Stockholms stads priscourant (Kungliga biblioteket, Stockholms stadsarkiv and Wahrendorf- ska arkivet). Te monthly average is calculated as geometric. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 209 Table A4.5. Te premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative to riksgälds notes in 1789–1803 according to various sources. Year Noted premium (agio): Premium based on foreign exchange rate quotations Price differ- ences This study** Wall- roth (1918, p. 149) Mårt- ens- son (1958, pp. 20-25) Ahl- ström (1972, p. 133) Ss, O:1, f. 364–5 Ahl- ström (1972, p. 134), on Ham- burg Ahl- ström (1972, p. 134), on 3 cur- ren- cies* Ss, O:1, f. 364–5, on Ham- burg Mårt- ens- son (1958, p. 26), on Ham- burg) von Schwe- rin (1903, p. 43) 1789 1.5 7.1 1.5 1790 6 5.5 8.8 0.9 8.3 7.9 1791 6 12.1 10.2 4.9 8.4 11.4 1792 10 10.1 3.4 7.9 10.6 1793 14 11.4 12.1 12.5 5.5 18.8 11.4 1794 22 21.1 21.1 16.5 8.6 18.8 20.9 1795 10 11.6 11.8 14 11.6 16.3 12.1 1796 10 10.3 10.3 10.5 10.9 16.3 10.2 1797 14 11.4 10 10 4.4 4.8 2.9 18.7 10.5 1798 23.5 20.9 20.3 18.5 10.2 10.8 30.1 56.3 21.8 1799 50 44.0 41.8 41.1 45.8 46.1 56.1 41.8 1800 47 43.4 38.9 40.5 47.4 44.4 56.2 44.5 1801 48 55.2 44.9 46.8 42.9 56.0 58.3 49.1 1802 50 53.5 48.3 49.6 48.8 56.9 56.3 51.3 1803 50 49.7 50.8 55.4 50.9 * Average of the premiums calculated according to exchange rate quotations on Hamburg, London and Amsterdam. ** See Table A4.6. Abbreviation: Ss – Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 210 Table A4.6. Monthly premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative riksgälds notes 1789–1803. Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Annual geometric average** 1789 1.2 1.8 1.5 1790 7.3 6.3 4.0 5.9 6.0 5.8 6.6 9.9 8.5 11.5 11.7 12.0 7.9 1791 11.5 10.9 11.0 11.1 11.1 12.7 11.6 12.2 12.6 11.2 10.6 10.2 11.4 1792 10.5 10.5 10.5 10.5 10.3 10.6 10.5 10.5 10.6 10.5 10.8 10.7 10.6 1793 10.7 11.2 11.3 11.4 11.6 11.0 11.2 12.2 11.2 11.7 11.4 12.8 11.4 1794 14.9 21.3 19.8 21.0 22.0 21.8 22.2 22.6 22.7 22.1 22.1 19.1 20.9 1795 17.1 17.1 16.2 13.3 11.6 10.2 10.2 10.1 10.1 10.0 10.1 10.1 12.1 1796 10.0 10.3 10.0 10.6 10.7 10.4 10.2 10.2 10.3 10.2 10.1 10.2 10.2 1797 10.0 10.1 10.1 10.0 10.3 10.6 10.5 10.9 10.7 11.2 10.3 12.0 10.5 1798 12.0 17.8 17.7 19.3 20.9 19.1 19.7 23.9 23.8 26.7 26.6 36.4 21.8 1799 36.6 35.7 33.5 32.6 39.2 40.9 44.5 44.0 44.8 45.8 55.0 51.3 41.8 1800 57.3 61.5 46.9 42.0 42.0 38.1 39.1 38.3 42.6 43.0 43.5 41.9 44.5 1801 40.3 53.0 46.0 50.4 43.5 42.2 46.7 50.7 52.6 54.4 56.1 54.3 49.1 1802 49.5 47.5 47.4 53.2 50.8 52.8 52.5 51.7 52.3 51.6 54.3 52.7 51.3 1803 50.4 51.2 50.1 51.0 51.8 54.4 52.3 49.5 50* 50* 50* 50* 50.9 Sources: See footnote 167. * Te premium was fxed at 50 per cent as of 29th August 1803. ** See footnote 7. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 211 Table A4.7. Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. Year Source Offi- cial rate Market rate Low- est High- est 1534 Based on silver contents of daler and mark 3.169 1535 Ss, O:1, f. 70 and 1784. 3.688 3.375 4 1536 Ss, O:1, f. 72, and OO, f. 35 3.5 3 4 1537 Median of previous and next year 3.25 1538 Hallenberg (1798, p. 139) 3 1539 Median of previous and next year 3.5 1540 Ss, O:1, f. 84 4 1541 Ss, O:1, f. 74 and 1783, and OO, f. 173. 3.5 3 4 1542 Ss, O:1, f. 1774, and OO, f. 173. 3 1543 Ss, O:1, f. 78, and OO, f. 173. 3 1544 Median of previous and next year 3.5 1545 Ss, O:1, f. 81, 83 and 1783, and OO, f. 170 4 3.5 4.125 1546 Ss, O:1, f. 83 and 1783, and OO, f. 170 4 1547 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Sst 1544–48 (1936, p. 266) 4 4 4.25 1548 Ss, O:1, f. 84 and 1783, Sst 1544–48 (1936, p. 266) 3.375 4 1549 Ss, O:1, f. 85; RAs ämnessamlingar, Misc. 26 Myntväsen vol 4 4.125 4 4.25 1550 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Ss, O:1, f. 87 and 1783, Hal- lenberg (1798, p. 284), Forssell (1872, p. 87). 3.5 3.875 3.5 4.5 1551 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2) 3.5 1552 Median of previous and next year 3.5 1553 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Ss, O:1, f. 89, 90 and 1783 3.5 1554 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2) 4 1555 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Vsat 1577–1610 (1952, p. 70) 3.5 1556 Ss, O:1, f. 93 and 1783 3.5 1557 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Ss, O:1, f. 94–96, 98 and 1783, Hallenberg (1798, p. 313) 3.5 3 3.75 1558 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Hallenberg (1798, p. 313) 3.625 3.5 3.75 1559 Heckscher (1935, pp. 211–2), Ss, O:1, f. 99 and 1783, and OO 734, Hallenberg (1798, p. 313) 3.750 3.5 3.75 1560 Ss, O:1, f. 100, 1774 and 1783, and OO, f. 176, Hallenberg (1798, pp. 313–4) 3.750 3.5 4 1561 Hallenberg (1798, p. 314), Ss, OO, f. 743 4 1562 Hallenberg (1798, p. 314) 4 1563 Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar. Misc. 26 Myntväsen vol 4 4.5 1564 Ss, O:1, f. 100 and 102, and OO, f. 40 5 4 6.5 1565 Based on silver contents 6.187 1566 Based on silver contents. See also Wallroth (1918, pp. 28–9) 6.187 1567 Wallroth (1918, pp. 28–9), Ss, O:1 , f. 102, 107 and 1783 6.5 5 8 1568 Wallroth (1918, pp. 28–9), 7 marks in Ss, O:1, f. 102 7.5 7 8 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 212 Year Source Offi- cial rate Market rate Low- est High- est 1569 Ss, O:1 , f. 107, and OO, f. 42 9 8 10 1570 Ss, O:1 , f. 107 10 1571 Odén (1955, pp. 237 and 256), Ss, O:1, f. 104 and 107, and OO, f. 42 13.250 10 20 1572 Odén (1955, p. 237), and Ss, OO, f. 50 20 8 25 1573 Odén (1955, pp. 237–8), Ss, O:1 , f. 108 and 109 26 24 28.375 1574 Odén (1955, p. 238) 32 1575 Odén (1955, p. 240), Ss, O:1 , f. 110 and 111, Sst 1568–75 (1941, pp. 378, 544 and 615) 28 26 32 1576 Odén (1955, p. 241), Sst 1568–75 (1941, pp. 378, 544 and 615) 4 26* (4**) 1577 Odén (1955, p. 241) 4 4.250 1578 Ss, O:1 , f. 119 4 4.460 1579 Odén (1955, p. 241) 4 4.250 1580 Odén (1955, p. 241), Ss, O:1 , f. 126 and 1833 4 4.250 1581 Odén (1955, p. 241) and Ss, O:1 , f. 1833 4 4.250 1582 Odén (1955, p. 245) 4 4.250 1583 Odén (1955, p. 241) 4 4.250 1584 Odén (1955, p. 241) 4 4.250 1585 Odén (1955, p. 241) 4 4.250 1586 Ss, O:1 , f. 128 and 129 4 4.5 1587 Odén (1960, p. 207), Vsat 1577–1610 (1952, p. 127) 4 4.5 1588 Odén (1960, p. 207), Vsat 1577–1610 (1952, p. 133) 4 4.5 1589 Ss, O:1 , f. 130 4 4.5 1590 Median of previous and next year 4 4.65 1591 Odén (1960, p. 210) 4 4.8 1592 Sst från år 1592 (1939, part I, 1592–95, pp. 8, 25 and 51) 4 15.75 10.125 18 1593 Wallroth (1918, pp. 24 and 50) 4.5 18* (4.5**) 1594 Ss, O:1 , f. 137 4.5 4.5 1595 Odén (1960, p. 210) 4.5 4.444 1596 Sst från år 1592 (1954, part II, 1596–99, p. 90). 4.5 4.5 1597 Sst från år 1592 (1963, vol. VI, 1605–08, p. 14) 4.5 4.5 1598 Sst från år 1592 (1954, vol. II, 1596–99, p. 216) 4.5 4.5 1599 Ss, O:1 , f. 1860 4.5 4.480 1600 Wallroth (1918, p. 50) 4.5 4.5 1601 Ss, OO , f. 185, Sst från år 1592 (1957, part II, 1601–02, p. 149) 4.5 4.6875 4.5 4.875 1602 Ss, O:1 , f. 142 4.5 4.5 1603 Wallroth (1918, p. 50 4.5 4.5 1604 Ss, O:1 , f. 145 and 147, and OO, f. 593 4.5 4.550 4.5 4.75 Table A4.7 (cont.). Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 213 Year Source Official rate (mark koppar- mynt after 1624) Market rate (mark koppar- mynt after 1624) Lowest Highest 1605 Ss, O:1 , f. 145 and 148 4.5 4.5 1606 Ss, O:1 , f. 161 assumes 1 slagen daler = 4.5 as late as 1610 4.5 4.5 1607 Ss, O:1 , f. 161 assumes 1 slagen daler = 4.5 as late as 1610. 1607 års myntplacat 13th of April 1 rdr = 4 1/2 mark accord- ing to Ss, O:1 , f. 1434. 4.5 4.5 1608 Sst från år 1592 (1963, vol. VI, 1605–08, p. 302) 4.5 5.250 1609 Interpolation. 4.5 5.250 1610 Interpolation. 4.5 5.250 1611 Ss, O:1 , f. 162, and OO, f. 186 4.5 6 1612 Ss, O:1 , f. 164, and OO, f. 595 4.5 6 1613 Stierndstedt (1863, p. 12) 4.5 7 1614 Ss, O:1 , f. 169, and OO, f. 595 4.5 6.250 6 6.5 1615 Ss, O:1 , f. 171 and 1434 4.5 6.5 1616 Ss, O:1 , f. 172 4.5 6.5 1617 Ss, O:1 , f. 173 4.5 6.375 6.25 6.5 1618 Ss, O:1 , f. 174 and 175 4.5 6.625 6.5 6.75 1619 Wallroth (1918, p. 61) and Ss, O:1 , f. 1434 4.5 (6.5) 6.5 1620 Ss, O:1 , f. 182 6.5 6.5 1621 Ss, O:1 , f. 1466, and OO, f. 595 6.5 6.5 1622 Ss, O:1 , f. 189 6.5 6.583 1623 Ss, O:1 , f. 599 6.5 6.5 1624 Wolontis (1936, p. 68) 6.5 6.5 1625 Ss, O:1 , f. 197 6.5 6.667 1626 Wolontis (1936, p. 66) 6.5 7 1627 Swenne (1933, p. 195) 6.5 7 1628 Swenne (1933, p. 196), Stiernstedt (1863, p. 97) 6.5 9.5 1629 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 6.5 14.5 1630 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 6.5 15.750 1631 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 6.5 16.240 15.5 17 1632 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 6.5 15.132 14 16.5 Table A4.7 (cont.). Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 214 Table A4.7 (cont.). Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776. Year Source Official rate, mark koppar- mynt Market rate, mark koppar- mynt Lowest Highest 1633 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 6.5 (12) 14.491 12 17.5 1634 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 12 12.961 12 14 1635 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 12 13.565 12 16 1636 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 12 13 1637 Swenne (1933, p. 196) 12 13.491 13 14 1638 Swenne (1933, p. 196), Vendels sockens dombok 1615–1645 (1925, p. 138) 12 13 1639 Swenne (1933, p. 196), Ss, OO, f. 612 12 14.5 14 15 1640 Wolontis (1936) 12 15 15 15 1641 Wolontis (1936) 12 15 15 15 1642 Wolontis (1936) 12 15 15 15 1643 Wolontis (1936) 12 (15) 15 15 15 1644 Wolontis (1936) 15 15.021 15 15.25 1645 Wolontis (1936) 15 16 16 16 1646 Wolontis (1936) 15 15.789 15 16 1647 Wolontis (1936) 15 15.041 15 15.5 1648 Wolontis (1936) 15 15.575 15 16 1649 Wolontis (1936) 15 16 16 16 1650 Wolontis (1936) 15 16 16 16 1651 Wolontis (1936) 15 16 16 16 1652 Wolontis (1936) 15 16 16 16 1653 Wolontis (1936) 15 16 16 16 1654 Wolontis (1936) 15 16 16 16 1655 Wolontis (1936) 15 16.301 16 16.75 1656 Wolontis (1936) 15 16.562 16.5 16.625 1657 Wolontis (1936) 15 16.695 16 17 1658 Wolontis (1936) 15 17.031 17 17.25 1659 Wolontis (1936) 15 17.457 17.125 17.75 1660 Wolontis (1936) 15 17.726 17.25 18 1661 Wolontis (1936) 15 18.187 18 18.25 1662 Wolontis (1936) 15 18.25 18.25 18.25 1663 Wolontis (1936) 15 18.56 18.25 19 1664 Wolontis (1936) 15 19.907 19 21 1665 Wolontis (1936) 15 (19.5) 21.207 21 21.75 1666 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21 21 21 1667 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21 21 21 1668 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21.047 21 21.25 1669 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21.031 21 21.25 1670 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21 21 21 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 215 Year Source Official rate, mark koppar- mynt Market rate, mark koppar- mynt Lowest Highest 1671 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21 21 21 1672 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21 21 21 1673 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21.068 21 21.3125 1674 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 21.533 21 22 1675 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 23.398 22 26.375 1676 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 24.978 24 26 1677 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 26.164 25.75 26.75 1678 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 26.833 26.75 27 1679 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 27 27 27 1680 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 27.135 27 27.27 1681 Wolontis (1936) 19.5 (24) 24.884 22.56 27.27 1682 Wolontis (1936) 24 24.979 24.75 25 1683 Wolontis (1936) 24 25.14 25 25.4375 1684 Wolontis (1936) 24 25 25 25 1685 Wolontis (1936) 24 25.062 25 25.06242 1686 Wolontis (1936) 24 24.241 24 25.125 1687 Wolontis (1936, p. 174) 24 25.25 1688 Wolontis (1936, p. 174) 24 25.25 1689 Wolontis (1936, p. 174) 24 25.25 1690 Wolontis (1936, p. 174) 24 25.25 1691 Ss, O:1 , f. 328 24 24.749 24.5 25 1692 Ss, O:1 , f. 329 24 25 1693 Ss, O:1 , f. 1780 24 24.75 1694 Ss, O:1 , f. 1780 24 25 1695 Ss, OO , f. 653 24 25 1696 Based on Hamburger banco 24 27.016 1697 Ss, O:1 , f. 335 24 27.187 27 27.375 1698 Based on Hamburger banco 24 26.535 1699 Based on Hamburger banco 24 24.864 1700 Based on Hamburger banco 24 25.747 1701 Based on Hamburger banco 24 24.989 1702 Based on Hamburger banco 24 24.611 1703 Based on Hamburger banco 24 26.463 1704 Based on silver contents 24 26.244 1705 Riksbankens arkiv 24 26.186 26 26.25 1706 Riksbankens arkiv 24 26.259 26 26.5 1707 Riksbankens arkiv 24 26.146 26 26.25 1708 Ss, O:1 , f. 335 24 26.25 1709 Based on silver contents 24 26.244 Table A4.7 (cont.). Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 216 Year Source Official rate, mark koppar- mynt Market rate, mark koppar- mynt Lowest Highest 1710 Based on silver contents 24 26.244 1711 Ss, O:1 , f. 344 24 26 1712 Based on silver contents 24 26.244 1713 Based on silver contents 24 26.244 1714 Based on Hamburger banco 24 25.723 1715 Ss, O:1 , f. 345 24 25 1716 Ss, O:1 , f. 347 24 27.56* (26**) 1717 Interpolation, based on Hamburger banco 24 38.386* (34.273**) 1718 Interpolation, based on Hamburger banco 24 (36) 60.371* (52.625**) 1719 Interpolation, based on Hamburger banco 36 41.405 1720 Ss, O:1 , f. 580 and 1251 36 40.314 39 42 1721 Interpolation 36 37.775 1722 Interpolation 36 38.103 1723 Interpolation 36 36.576 1724 Interpolation 36 36.44 1725 Sjöstrand (1908, p. 17) 36 34 1726 Interpolation 36 34.712 1727 Interpolation 36 35.696 1728 Riksbankens arkiv 36 36 1729 Riksbankens arkiv 36 36 1730 Interpolation 36 36 1731 Interpolation 36 36 1732 Interpolation 36 36 1733 Riksbankens arkiv 36 36 36 36 1734 Riksbankens arkiv 36 36.634 36.5 37 1735 Sjöstrand (1908, p. 17) 36 36.75 1736 Riksbankens arkiv 36 37.614 37.5 38 1737 Interpolation 36 37.234 1738 Sjöstrand (1908, p. 48) 36 37.25 1739 Interpolation 36 37.161 1740 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 37.779 37.5 38 1741 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 38.02 37.5 38.5 1742 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 38.456 38 39 1743 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 40.025 38 42 1744 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 41.531 41 42 Table A4.7 (cont.). Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 217 Year Source Official rate, mark koppar- mynt Market rate, mark koppar- mynt Lowest Highest 1745 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 40.949 40 43 1746 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 40 40 40 1747 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 44.384 40 47 1748 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 46.258 46 47 1749 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 46.497 46 47 1750 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 45.389 42 47 1751 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 41.55 40 44 1752 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 41.643 40 45 1753 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 40.411 40 42 1754 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 40.795 39 44 1755 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 40.759 38 43 1756 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 42.97 42 44 1757 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 44.572 42 47 1758 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 52.618 49 56 1759 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 56.754 52 61 1760 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 64.067 61 68 1761 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 71.654 70 74 1762 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 84.994 74 108 1763 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 87.701 76 100 1764 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 91.702 88 96 1765 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 87.461 72 92 1766 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 76.417 68 86 1767 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 36 59.894 47 69 1768 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 50.172 48 56 1769 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 60.692 54 68.5 1770 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 68.916 64 72 1771 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 67.371 64 71 1772 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 72.614 68 78 1773 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 82.143 77.5 86 1774 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 78.584 74 86 1775 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 72.478 70 75 1776 Stockholms stads priscouranter 36 71.594 70 75 1777 According to the mint reform of 1776 72 72 *In debased coins (coin tokens 1716–18) ** In proper coins For abbreviations, see section ‘Abbreviations’. Table A4.7 (cont.). Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 218 Table A4.8. Te exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776. Year Source 1 ducat in mark kop- parmynt, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, official rate Gold- silver (value) ratio, Sweden Gold- silver (value) ratio, ‘world’* 1652 Ss, O:1 , f. 562 32 2 14.867 14.41 1653 Ss, OO , f. 628 32 2 14.867 14.44 1654 Ss, O:1 , f. 563 32 2 15.12 14.39 1655 Interpolation 32.601 2 15.12 14.44 1656 Interpolation 33.125 2 15.12 14.42 1657 Interpolation 33.391 2 15.12 14.42 1658 Interpolation 34.062 2 15.12 14.37 1659 Interpolation 34.914 2 15.12 14.33 1660 Interpolation 35.452 2 15.12 14.33 1661 Ss, O:1 , f. 255 and 566 39.846 2.191 16.563 14.52 1662 Ss, O:1 , f. 258 and 259 36.125 1.979 14.965 14.53 1663 Ss, O:1 , f. 1724 37.12 2 15.12 14.40 1664 Ss, O:1 , f. 262 39.815 2 15.12 14.44 1665 Interpolation 40.782 1.923 1.923 14.31 14.49 1666 Interpolation 40.385 1.923 1.923 14.31 14.80 1667 Hegardt (1975, p. 226) 40.8 1.943 1.923 14.457 14.85 1668 Interpolation 40.474 1.923 1.923 14.31 14.90 1669 Ss, O:1 , f. 286 42 1.997 1.923 14.86 14.98 1670 Ss, O:1 , f. 570 42 2 1.923 14.882 15.09 1671 Interpolation 42 2 1.923 14.882 15.24 1672 Ss, OO , f. 659 42 2 1.923 14.882 15.30 1673 Ss, O:1 , f. 280 42.135 2 1.923 14.882 15.27 1674 Ss, O:1 , f. 295 and 298 44.43 2.063 1.923 15.353 15.16 1675 Interpolation 46.795 2 1.923 14.882 15.15 1676 Interpolation 49.956 2 1.923 14.882 15.20 1677 Ss, O:1 , f. 295 52 1.987 1.923 14.788 15.20 1678 Ss, O:1 , f. 295 52 1.938 1.923 14.42 15.08 1679 Ss, O:1 , f. 663 and 310 54 2 1.923 14.882 15.09 1680 Ss, O:1 , f. 1910 54.269 2 1.923 14.882 15.08 1681 Ss, O:1 , f. 315 49.5 1.989 1.923 (2) 14.801 15.02 1682 Interpolation 49.968 2 2 14.885 15.16 1683 Ss, O:1 , f. 577 52 2.068 2 15.391 15.12 1684 Ss, O:1 , f. 322 52 2.08 2 15.477 15.06 1685 Ss, O:1 , f. 322 48 1.915 2 14.251 15.02 1686 Wolontis (1936, p. 167 48.81 2.014 2 14.983 15.14 1687 Ss, O:1 , f. 322 and 578 46.989 1.861 2 13.847 14.94 1688 Interpolation 50.5 2 2 14.882 14.94 1689 Interpolation 50.5 2 2 14.882 15.02 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 219 Year Source 1 ducat in mark kop- parmynt, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, official rate Gold- silver (value) ratio, Sweden Gold- silver (value) ratio, ‘world’* 1690 Interpolation 50.5 2 2 14.882 15.02 1691 Interpolation 49.497 2 2 14.882 14.98 1692 Interpolation 50 2 2 14.882 14.92 1693 Ss, O:1 , f. 330 52 2.101 2 15.633 14.83 1694 Interpolation 50 2 2 14.882 14.87 1695 Interpolation 50 2 2 14.882 15.02 1696 Interpolation 54.033 2 2 14.882 15.00 1697 Ss, O:1 , f. 335 55.759 2.061 2 15.333 15.20 1698 Interpolation 53.07 2 2 14.882 15.07 1699 Interpolation 49.728 2 2 14.882 14.94 1700 Ss, O:1 , f. 1922 54 2.097 2 15.606 14.81 1701 Interpolation 49.978 2 2 14.882 15.07 1702 Interpolation 49.223 2 2 14.882 15.52 1703 Interpolation 52.927 2 2 14.882 15.17 1704 Interpolation 52.488 2 2 14.882 15.22 1705 Riksbankens arkiv. 53.791 2.054 2 15.285 15.11 1706 Riksbankens arkiv. 54.502 2.076 2 15.444 15.27 1707 Riksbankens arkiv. 54.082 2.068 2 15.392 15.44 1708 Ss, O:1 , f. 335 55.749 2.124 2 15.803 15.41 1709 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 53.998 2.058 2 15.31 15.31 1710 Ss, OO , f. 677 60 2.286 2 17.012 15.22 1711 Ss, O:1 , f. 344 56.25 2.163 2 16.098 15.29 1712 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 53.998 2.058 2 15.31 15.31 1713 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 53.751 2.048 2 15.24 15.24 1714 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 52.304 2.033 2 15.13 15.13 1715 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 50.766 2.031 2 15.11 15.11 1716 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 55.891** (52.727***) 2.028 2 15.09 15.09 1717 Ss, O:1 , f. 350 76.772** (68.547***) 2 2 14.882 15.13 1718 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 270) 122.82** (107.06***) 2.034 2 15.138 15.11 1719 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 82.585 1.995 2 15.09 15.09 1720 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 580) and Ss, O:1 , f. 580 80.628 2 2 15.131 15.04 Table A4.8 (cont.). Te exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 220 Year Source 1 ducat in mark kop- parmynt, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, official rate Gold- silver (value) ratio, Sweden Gold- silver (value) ratio, ‘world’* 1721 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 75.145 1.989 2 15.05 15.05 1722 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 76.401 2.005 2 15.17 15.17 1723 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 73.484 2.009 2 15.2 15.20 1724 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 72.881 2 2 15.11 15.11 1725 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 68 2 2 15.11 15.11 1726 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 69.424 2 2 15.15 15.15 1727 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 71.392 2 2 15.24 15.24 1728 Riksbankens arkiv 74 2.056 2 15.552 15.11 1729 Riksbankens arkiv 73.125 2.031 2 15.368 14.92 1730 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 72 2 2 14.81 14.81 1731 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 72 2 2 14.94 14.94 1732 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 72 2 2 15.09 15.09 1733 Riksbankens arkiv 72.069 2.002 2 15.146 15.18 1734 Riksbankens arkiv 72.706 1.985 2 15.015 15.39 1735 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 74.854 2.037 2 15.41 15.41 1736 Riksbankens arkiv 75.181 1.999 2 15.122 15.18 1737 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 73.92 1.985 2 15.02 15.02 1738 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 73.411 1.971 2 14.91 14.91 1739 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio 73.723 1.971 2 14.91 14.91 1740 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 74.613 1.975 2 14.942 14.94 1741 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 75.645 1.99 2 15.053 14.92 1742 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 79.331 2.063 2 15.607 14.85 1743 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 80.852 2.02 2 15.283 14.85 1744 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 84.27 2.029 2 15.351 14.87 1745 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 82.297 2.01 2 15.205 14.98 1746 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 80 2 2 15.131 15.13 1747 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 87.912 1.975 2 14.939 15.26 1748 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 90.931 1.966 2 14.872 15.11 1749 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 90.286 1.942 2 14.69 14.80 Table A4.8 (cont.). Te exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 221 Year Source 1 ducat in mark kop- parmynt, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, market rate 1 ducat in riksdaler specie, official rate Gold- silver (value) ratio, Sweden Gold- silver (value) ratio, ‘world’* 1750 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 84.057 1.852 2 14.011 14.55 1751 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 79.164 1.905 2 14.415 14.39 1752 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 77.562 1.863 2 14.091 14.54 1753 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 76.975 1.905 2 14.411 14.54 1754 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 78.032 1.913 2 14.471 14.48 1755 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 78.669 1.93 2 14.602 14.68 1756 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 81.675 1.901 2 14.38 14.94 1757 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 90.742 2.036 2 15.402 14.87 1758 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 104.73 1.99 2 15.059 14.85 1759 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 106.18 1.871 2 14.155 14.15 1760 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 120.69 1.884 2 14.252 14.14 1761 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 142.2 1.985 2 15.014 14.54 1762 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 167.41 1.97 2 14.902 15.27 1763 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 170.1 1.94 2 14.674 14.99 1764 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 176.38 1.923 2 14.551 14.70 1765 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 177.79 2.033 2 15.379 14.83 1766 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 152.99 2.002 2 15.147 14.80 1767 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) 120.32 2.009 2 15.198 14.85 1768 Stockholms stads pris- courant 95.94 1.912 2 14.467 14.80 1769 Stockholms stads pris- courant 114.13 1.881 2 14.227 14.72 1770 Stockholms stads pris- courant 127.22 1.846 2 13.966 14.62 1771 Stockholms stads pris- courant 132.11 1.961 2 14.836 14.66 1772 Stockholms stads pris- courant 137.55 1.894 2 14.332 14.52 1773 Stockholms stads pris- courant 156.14 1.901 2 14.381 14.62 1774 Stockholms stads pris- courant 152.47 1.94 2 14.679 14.62 1775 Stockholms stads pris- courant 143.6 1.981 2 14.99 14.72 1776 Stockholms stads pris- courant 141.32 1.974 2 14.933 14.55 * Average of England, France, Kraków, Luzern and Austria in 1652–86. Hamburg in 1687–1776. Source: ‘MEMDB - Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’. ** In coin tokens *** In proper coins Ss – Sandbergska samlingen. Table A4.8 (cont.). Te exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 222 Table A4.9. Te exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. Year Source Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, market rate Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, official rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), market rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), official rate 1624 Wallroth (1918) 1 1 6.5 6.5 1625 Ss, O:1 , f. 197 1 1 6.667 6.5 1626 Wallroth (1918) 1.077 1 6.5 6.5 1627 Wallroth (1918) 1.077 1 6.5 6.5 1628 Wolontis (1936, p. 94), Stiernstedt (1863, p. 97) 1.462 1 6.5 6.5 1629 Wolontis (1936, p. 94), Swenne (1933, p. 189) 2.071 1 7 6.5 1630 Wolontis (1936, p. 94) 2.1 1 7.5 6.5 1631 Wolontis (1936, p. 94) 2.165 1 7.5 6.5 1632 Wolontis (1936, p. 94) 2.018 1 7.5 6.5 1633 Swenne (1933, pp. 189-190) 2.07* (1.811**) 1 (2) 7* (8**) 6.5 (6) 1634 Swenne (1933, pp. 189–90) 2* (1.949**) 2 6.481* (6.65**) 6 1635 Swenne (1933, pp. 189–90) 2* (1.809**) 2 6.782* (7.5**) 6 1636 Swenne (1933, p. 190) 2 2 6.5 6 1637 Swenne (1933, p. 190) 2 2 6.745 6 1638 Swenne (1933, p. 190) 2 2 6.5 6 1639 Swenne (1933, p. 190), Ss, OO, f. 612 2 2 7.25 6 1640 Interpolation 2.105 2 7.125 6 1641 Wolontis (1936, p. 102) 2.143 2 7 6 1642 Interpolation 2.308 2 6.5 6 1643 Wolontis (1936, p. 102) 2.5 2 (2.5) 6 6 1644 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.008 6 1645 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.4 6 1646 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.316 6 1647 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.016 6 1648 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.23 6 1649 Swenne (1933, p. 190) 2.5 2.5 6.4 6 1650 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.4 6 1651 Swenne (1933, p. 190) 2.5 2.5 6.4 6 1652 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.4 6 1653 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.4 6 1654 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 6.4 6 1655 Interpolation 2.547 2.5 6.4 6 1656 Interpolation 2.588 2.5 6.4 6 1657 Interpolation 2.609 2.5 6.4 6 1658 Interpolation 2.661 2.5 6.4 6 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 223 Year Source Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, market rate Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, official rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), market rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), official rate 1659 Interpolation 2.728 2.5 6.4 6 1660 Interpolation 2.77 2.5 6.4 6 1661 Interpolation 2.842 2.5 6.4 6 1662 Ss, O:1 , f. 262 2.875 2.5 6.348 6 1663 Interpolation 2.855 2.5 6.5 6 1664 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3.063 2.5 6.5 6 1665 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3.138 2.5 (3) 6.757 6 (6.5) 1666 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3.108 3 6.757 6.5 1667 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3.108 3 6.757 6.5 1668 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3.115 3 6.757 6.5 1669 Ss, O:1 , f. 286 3.112 3 6.757 6.5 1670 Wolontis (1936) 3.167 3 6.632 6.5 1671 Wolontis (1936) 3.167 3 6.632 6.5 1672 Wolontis (1936) 3.167 3 6.632 6.5 1673 Wolontis (1936) 3.167 3 6.653 6.5 1674 Wolontis (1936) 3.244 3 6.638 6.5 1675 Wolontis (1936) 3.431 3 6.819 6.5 1676 Wolontis (1936) 3.572 3 6.993 6.5 1677 Wolontis (1936) 3.701 3 7.069 6.5 1678 Wolontis (1936) 3.842 3 6.984 6.5 1679 Wolontis (1936) 3.833 3 7.043 6.5 1680 Wolontis (1936) 3.847 3 7.054 6.5 1681 Wolontis (1936) 3.583 3 (3.5) 6.945 6.5 (6.857) 1682 Interpolation 3.5 3.5 7.137 6.857 1683 Interpolation 3.6 3.5 6.983 6.857 1684 Interpolation 3.6 3.5 6.944 6.857 1685 Interpolation 3.667 3.5 6.835 6.857 1686 Wolontis (1936) 3.658 3.5 (3.75) 6.626 6.857 (6.4) 1687 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.733 6.4 1688 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.733 6.4 1689 Ss, O:1 , f. 676 3.75 3.75 6.733 6.4 1690 Ss, O:1 , f. 677 3.75 3.75 6.733 6.4 1691 Ss, O:1 , f. 679 3.75 3.75 6.6 6.4 1692 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.667 6.4 1693 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.6 6.4 Table A4.9 (cont.). Te exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 224 Year Source Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, market rate Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, official rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), market rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), official rate 1694 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.667 6.4 1695 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.667 6.4 1696 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 7.204 6.4 1697 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 7.216 6.4 1698 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 7.076 6.4 1699 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.63 6.4 1700 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.866 6.4 1701 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.664 6.4 1702 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.563 6.4 1703 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 7.057 6.4 1704 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.998 6.4 1705 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.983 6.4 1706 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 7.002 6.4 1707 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.972 6.4 1708 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 7 6.4 1709 Wolontis (1936, p. 176) 3.75 3.75 6.998 6.4 1710 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.998 6.4 1711 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.933 6.4 1712 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.998 6.4 1713 Ss, O:1 , f. 687 3.75 3.75 6.998 6.4 1714 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.859 6.4 1715 Interpolation 3.75 3.75 6.667 6.4 1716 Interpolation 4.969*** (4.6875 ****) 4.6875 5.547 5.12 1717 Interpolation 5.25*** (4.6875 ****) 4.6875 7.312 5.12 1718 Not legal tender 1719 Interpolation 5.457 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1720 Interpolation 5.348 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1721 Interpolation 4.978 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1722 Interpolation 5.021 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1723 Interpolation 4.82 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1724 Interpolation 4.802 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1725 Interpolation 4.511 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1726 Interpolation 4.575 4.6875 7.538 7.68 Table A4.9 (cont.). Te exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 225 Year Source Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, market rate Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, official rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), market rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), official rate 1727 Interpolation 4.704 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1728 Ss, O:1 , f. 357 4.781 4.6875 7.529 7.68 1729 Interpolation 4.776 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1730 Interpolation 4.776 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1731 Interpolation 4.776 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1732 Interpolation 4.776 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1733 Interpolation 4.776 4.6875 7.538 7.68 1734 Riksbankens arkiv 4.854 4.6875 7.546 7.68 1735 Interpolation 4.996 4.6875 7.355 7.68 1736 Riksbankens arkiv 5.262 4.6875 7.149 7.68 1737 Interpolation 5.029 4.6875 7.355 7.68 1738 Sjöstrand (1908, p. 48) 4.781 4.6875 7.791 7.68 1739 Interpolation 5.052 4.6875 7.355 7.68 1740 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.122 4.6875 7.376 7.68 1741 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.154 4.6875 7.376 7.68 1742 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.257 4.6875 7.315 7.68 1743 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.541 4.6875 7.223 7.68 1744 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.649 4.6875 7.352 7.68 1745 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.713 4.6875 7.167 7.68 1746 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.806 4.6875 6.89 7.68 1747 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.018 4.6875 7.398 7.68 1748 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.065 4.6875 7.627 7.68 1749 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.167 4.6875 7.539 7.68 1750 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.193 4.6875 7.329 7.68 1751 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.123 4.6875 6.786 7.68 1752 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.931 4.6875 7.022 7.68 1753 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.564 4.6875 7.263 7.68 1754 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.601 4.6875 7.284 7.68 1755 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.624 4.6875 7.248 7.68 1756 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.774 4.6875 7.442 7.68 1757 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.045 4.6875 7.374 7.68 1758 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.757 4.6875 7.787 7.68 1759 Stockholms stads priscourant 7.262 4.6875 7.815 7.68 1760 Stockholms stads priscourant 8.433 4.6875 7.597 7.68 1761 Stockholms stads priscourant 9.336 4.6875 7.675 7.68 1762 Stockholms stads priscourant 9.744 4.6875 8.722 7.68 Table A4.9 (cont.). Te exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 226 Year Source Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, market rate Daler carolin in daler koppar- mynt, official rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), market rate Riks- daler in half carolins (marks), official rate 1763 Stockholms stads priscourant 10.529 4.6875 8.33 7.68 1764 Stockholms stads priscourant 10.313 4.6875 8.892 7.68 1765 Stockholms stads priscourant 10.313 4.6875 8.481 7.68 1766 Interpolation 9.516 4.6875 8.031 7.68 1767 Interpolation 7.380 4.6875 8.116 7.68 1768 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.858 4.6875 8.565 7.68 1769 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.581 4.6875 9.222 7.68 1770 Interpolation 8.066 4.6875 8.544 7.68 1771 Interpolation 8.000 4.6875 8.421 7.68 1772 Interpolation 8.336 4.6875 8.711 7.68 1773 Interpolation 9.753 4.6875 8.423 7.68 1774 Interpolation 9.662 4.6875 8.133 7.68 1775 Interpolation 9.302 4.6875 7.792 7.68 1776 Interpolation 8.957 4.6875 7.993 7.68 1777 According to the mint reform of 1776 9.375 9.375 7.68 7.68 * In marks minted from 1633 onwards ** In marks minted before 1633 *** In coin tokens **** In proper coins Ss – Sandbergska samlingen. Table A4.10. Te exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. Year Source Öre cou- rant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kop- parmynt, market rate Daler silver- mynt in daler koppar- mynt Riksdaler in öre courant, market rate Riksdaler in öre courant, official rate 1624 Wolontis (1936, p. 68) 1 1 52 52 1625 Ss, O:1 , f. 197 1 1 53.6 52 1626 Interpolation 1 1 56 52 1627 Interpolation 1 1 56 52 1628 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 1 1 76 52 Table A4.9 (cont.). Te exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 227 Year Source Öre cou- rant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kop- parmynt, market rate Daler silver- mynt in daler koppar- mynt Riksdaler in öre courant, market rate Riksdaler in öre courant, official rate 1629 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 1.318 1 88 52 1630 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 1.428 1 88 52 1631 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 1.353 1 96 52 1632 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 1.681 1 72 52 1633 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 2.07* (1.61**) 1 (2) 56* (72**) 52 (48) 1634 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 2* (1.525**) 2 51.8* (68**) 48 1635 Swenne (1933, p. 193) 2* (1.428**) 2 54.3* (76**) 48 1636 Interpolation 2 2 52 48 1637 Interpolation 2 2 53.6 48 1638 Interpolation 2 2 52 48 1639 Interpolation 2 2 58 48 1640 Interpolation 2.105 2 57 48 1641 Wolontis (1936, p. 102) 2.143 2 56 48 1642 Interpolation 2.308 2 52 48 1643 Wolontis (1936, p. 102) 2.5 2 (2.5) 48 48 1644 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 48 48 1645 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 51.2 48 1646 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 50.4 48 1647 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 48 48 1648 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 49.6 48 1649 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 51.2 48 1650 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 51.2 48 1651 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 51.2 48 1652 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 51.2 48 1653 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 51.2 48 1654 Interpolation 2.5 2.5 51.2 48 1655 Interpolation 2.51 2.5 52 48 1656 Interpolation 2.55 2.5 52 48 1657 Interpolation 2.571 2.5 52 48 1658 Interpolation 2.623 2.5 52 48 1659 Interpolation 2.688 2.5 52 48 1660 Interpolation 2.73 2.5 52 48 1661 Interpolation 2.801 2.5 52 48 1662 Ss, O:1 , f. 262 2.833 2.5 51.2 48 Table A4.10 (cont.). Te exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 228 Year Source Öre cou- rant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kop- parmynt, market rate Daler silver- mynt in daler koppar- mynt Riksdaler in öre courant, market rate Riksdaler in öre courant, official rate 1663 Interpolation 2.814 2.5 52.8 48 1664 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3 2.5 52.8 48 1665 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3 2.5 (3) 56.8 48 (52) 1666 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3 3 56 52 1667 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3 3 56 52 1668 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3 3 56.12 52 1669 Wolontis (1936, p. 144) 3 3 56.08 52 1670 Wolontis (1936) 3 3 56 52 1671 Wolontis (1936) 3 3 56 52 1672 Wolontis (1936) 3 3 56 52 1673 Wolontis (1936) 3 3 56.18 52 1674 Wolontis (1936) 3.027 3 56.91 52 1675 Wolontis (1936) 3.096 3 60.47 52 1676 Wolontis (1936) 3.28 3 60.93 52 1677 Wolontis (1936) 3.466 3 60.39 52 1678 Wolontis (1936) 3.518 3 61.03 52 1679 Wolontis (1936) 3.495 3 61.81 52 1680 Wolontis (1936) 3.388 3 64.08 52 1681 Wolontis (1936) 3.102 3 64.18 52 (64) 1682 Interpolation 3.06 3 65.3 64 1683 Interpolation 3.06 3 65.73 64 1684 Interpolation 3.06 3 65.36 64 1685 Interpolation 3.06 3 65.52 64 1686 Wolontis (1936) 3.048 3 63.63 64 1687 Interpolation 3 3 67.33 64 1688 Interpolation 3 3 67.33 64 1689 Interpolation 3 3 67.33 64 1690 Interpolation 3 3 67.33 64 1691 Interpolation 3 3 66 64 1692 Interpolation 3 3 66.67 64 1693 Interpolation 3 3 66 64 1694 Interpolation 3 3 66.67 64 1695 Interpolation 3 3 66.67 64 1696 Interpolation 3 3 72.04 64 1697 Interpolation 3 3 72.16 64 1698 Interpolation 3 3 70.76 64 Table A4.10 (cont.). Te exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 229 Year Source Öre cou- rant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kop- parmynt, market rate Daler silver- mynt in daler koppar- mynt Riksdaler in öre courant, market rate Riksdaler in öre courant, official rate 1699 Interpolation 3 3 66.3 64 1700 Interpolation 3 3 68.66 64 1701 Interpolation 3 3 66.64 64 1702 Interpolation 3 3 65.63 64 1703 Interpolation 3 3 70.57 64 1704 Interpolation 3 3 69.98 64 1705 Interpolation 3 3 69.83 64 1706 Interpolation 3 3 70.02 64 1707 Interpolation 3 3 69.72 64 1708 Interpolation 3 3 70 64 1709 Interpolation 3 3 69.98 64 1710 Interpolation 3 3 69.98 64 1711 Interpolation 3 3 69.33 64 1712 Interpolation 3 3 69.98 64 1713 Interpolation 3 3 69.98 64 1714 Interpolation 3 3 68.59 64 1715 Interpolation 3 3 66.67 64 1716 Interpolation 3.18*** (3****) 3 73.49 64 1717 Interpolation 3.36*** (3****) 3 102.4 64 1718 Interpolation 3.442*** (3****) 3 161 64 1719 Interpolation 3 3 110.4 96 1720 Interpolation 3 3 107.5 96 1721 Interpolation 3 3 100.7 96 1722 Interpolation 3 3 101.6 96 1723 Interpolation 3 3 97.53 96 1724 Interpolation 3 3 97.17 96 1725 Interpolation 3 3 90.67 96 1726 Interpolation 3 3 92.57 96 1727 Interpolation 3 3 95.19 96 1728 Interpolation 3 3 96 96 1729 Interpolation 3 3 96 96 1730 Interpolation 3 3 96 96 1731 Interpolation 3 3 96 96 1732 Interpolation 3 3 96 96 Table A4.10 (cont.). Te exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 230 Year Source Öre cou- rant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kop- parmynt, market rate Daler silver- mynt in daler koppar- mynt Riksdaler in öre courant, market rate Riksdaler in öre courant, official rate 1733 Interpolation 3 3 96 96 1734 Riksbankens arkiv 3.051 3 96.05 96 1735 Interpolation 3.043 3 96.62 96 1736 Riksbankens arkiv 3.096 3 97.19 96 1737 Interpolation 3.043 3 97.25 96 1738 Interpolation 3.064 3 97.25 96 1739 Interpolation 3.057 3 97.25 96 1740 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.106 3 97.32 96 1741 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.135 3 97.03 96 1742 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.191 3 96.41 96 1743 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.222 3 99.38 96 1744 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.305 3 100.5 96 1745 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.347 3 97.87 96 1746 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.418 3 93.63 96 1747 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.469 3 102.7 96 1748 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.518 3 105.2 96 1749 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.533 3 105.3 96 1750 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.449 3 105.3 96 1751 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.234 3 102.8 96 1752 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.199 3 104.1 96 1753 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.151 3 102.6 96 1754 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.159 3 103.3 96 1755 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.165 3 103 96 1756 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.187 3 107.9 96 1757 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.319 3 107.4 96 1758 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.814 3 110.4 96 1759 Stockholms stads priscourant 4.045 3 112.3 96 1760 Stockholms stads priscourant 4.47 3 114.7 96 1761 Stockholms stads priscourant 4.896 3 117.1 96 1762 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.623 3 120.9 96 1763 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.064 3 115.7 96 1764 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.216 3 118 96 1765 Stockholms stads priscourant 6.064 3 115.4 96 1766 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.944 3 102.9 96 1767 Stockholms stads priscourant 4.561 3 105.1 96 1768 Stockholms stads priscourant 3.608 3 111.2 96 Table A4.10 (cont.). Te exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 231 Year Source Öre cou- rant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kop- parmynt, market rate Daler silver- mynt in daler koppar- mynt Riksdaler in öre courant, market rate Riksdaler in öre courant, official rate 1769 Stockholms stads priscourant 4.159 3 116.7 96 1770 Ss, O:1 , f. 1263 and 1969 4.735 3 116.4 96 1771 Stockholms stads priscourant 4.765 3 118.7 96 1772 Stockholms stads priscourant 4.8 3 121 96 1773 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.808 3 113.1 96 1774 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.959 3 105.5 96 1775 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.988 3 96.83 96 1776 Stockholms stads priscourant 5.621 3 101.9 96 1777 According to the mint reform of 1776 6 6 96 96 * In öre minted from 1633 onwards ** In öre minted before 1633 *** In coin tokens **** In proper coins Ss – Sandbergska samlingen. Table A4.10 (cont.). Te exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 232 Abbreviations d.k.m. – daler kopparmynt d.s.m. – daler silvermynt k.m. – kopparmynt RA – Riksarkivet RBA – Riksbankens arkiv RD – riksdaler rdr – riksdaler s.m. – silvermynt SEK – Swedish krona Ss – Sanderbergska samlingen Sst – Stockholms stads tänkeböcker USD – US dollar Vsät – Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker Unpublished primary sources Göteborgs landsarkiv Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900, Signum L I (Kollegiernas protokoll), vol. 4–6. Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900, Signum G d (Handlingar angående hospitalet), vol. 20 and 22. Kungliga biblioteket Stockholms stads priscourant, 1740–55 and 1761–67 (microfilmed). Riksarkivet (RA) Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar, Handel och sjöfart, Ser. I, vol. 1 Järnhandel. Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar. Misc. 26 Myntväsen vol 4. Sandbergska samlingen, vol. O:1, O:2 and OO. Äldre Kommissioner, 408, vol. 6, ‘Priset på spannmålen i Fahlun från 1716 til 1723 inclusive, av Erik Sjöberg’. Riksbankens arkiv (RBA) ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. Untitled volume with exchange rates 1804–89. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 233 Stockholms stadsarkiv Stockholms stads priscourant, (1752), 1756–60, 1768–74 and 1776 (microfilmed). Wahrendorffska arkivet Stockholms stads priscourant, 1775–76 (microfilmed). Published primary sources Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1544–1548 (1936), Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941), Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1589–1591 (1948), Stockholms stadsböcker från äldre tid. Ser. 2, N.F.:8. Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592, parts 1-21 (1939–2006), Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkebok under vasatiden (1908–), Stockholm. Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952), Uppsala. Internet resources ‘MEMDB - Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’, http://sccweb.scc-net.rutgers. edu/memdb (2007-06-10). ‘Measuringworth.com’, http://www.measuringworth.com (2007-06-10). References and secondary sources Ahlström, G (1972), ‘Part IV. Te Period 1776–1802’, in Jörberg, L, A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914, vol. 2, GWK Gleerup, Lund. Ahlström, G (1974), Studier i svensk ekonomisk politik och prisutveckling 1776–1802, Studentlitteratur, Lund. Bjurling, O (1945), Skånes utrikessjöfart 1660–1720: En studie i Skånes handelssjöfart, C.W.K Gleerup, Lund. Brisman, S (1931), ‘Tiden 1803–-1834’, in Sveriges Riksbank 1668-1924: Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet, vol IV, Sveriges Riksbank. Bordo, M, and F Kydland (1992), Te Gold Standard as a Rule, http://clevelandfed. org/research/workpaper/1992/wp9205.pdf (2007-07-29). Cottrell, A (1997), Monetary Endogeneity and the Quantity Teory: Te Case of Com- modity Money, http://www.wfu.edu/~cottrell/commodit.pdf (2007-08-05). Davidson, D (1919), ‘Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1918’, in Ekonomisk Tidskrift, 1919, part I. Uppsala and Stockholm. Edvinsson, R (2005a), Growth, Accumulation, Crisis: With New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800–2000, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 234 Edvinsson, R (2005b), Annual estimates of Swedish GDP in 1720–1800, Ratio Work- ing Papers No. 70, Stockholm. Flynn, D, A Giráldez, and R von Glahn (ed) (2003), Global Connections and Mone- tary History, 1470–1800, Ashgate, Burlington. Forssell, H (1872), Anteckningar om mynt, vigt, mått och varupris i Sverige under de första femtio åren af Vasahusets regering, Stockholm. Franzén, B (2006), Folkungatidens monetära system: penningen mellan pest och patriar- kat 1254–1370, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Fregert, K, and R Gustafsson, (2005), Fiscal statistics for Sweden 1719–2003, Work- ing Papers, Department of Economics, Lund University, No. 2005:40, http://sw- opec.hhs.se/lunewp/abs/lunewp2005_040.htm (2005-10-01). Fregert, K, and L Jonung (2003), Makroekonomi: Teori, politik & institutioner, Stu- dentlitteratur, Lund. Friedman, M (1990), ‘Bimetallism Revisited’, in Journal of Economic Perspectives, vol. 4, No. 4 (Fall), pp. 85–104. Friedman, M, and A Schwartz (1963), A Monetary History of the United States, 1867– 1960, Princeton University Press, Princeton. Friis, A, and K Glamann (1958), A history of prices and wages in Denmark: 1660– 1800, vol. 1, London. Gallarotti, G (1994), ‘Te scramble for gold: monetary regime transformation in the 1870s’, in Bordo, M, and F Capie (eds.), Monetary regimes in transation, Cam- bridge University Press, Cambridge. Hallenberg, J (1798), Historisk avhandling om mynt och warors warde i Swerige under Konung Gustaf I:s Regering, Stockholm. Hammarström, I (1956), Finansförvaltning och varuhandel 1504–1540: Studier i de yngre sturarnas Gustav Vasas statshushållning, Almqvist & Wiksells Boktryckeri Aktiebolag, Uppsala. Hansson, G (2006), Såld spannmål av kyrkotionden: Priser i Östergötland under Sveri- ges stormaktstid, Print & Media, Umeå universitet, Umeå. Heckscher, E (1935–49), Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa, vol. I:1, I:2, II:1 and II:2, Bonnier, Stockholm. Heckscher, E (1941), De svenska penning-, vikt- och måttsystemen: En historisk översikt, Stockholm. Hegardt, A (1975), Akademiens spannmål: Uppbörd, handel och priser vid Uppsala uni- versitet 1635–1719, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Herlitz, L (1974), Jordegendom och ränta: omfördelningen av jordbrukets merprodukt i Skaraborgs län under frihetstiden, Ekonomisk-historiska inst., Gothenburg. Hildebrand, H (1983), Sveriges medeltid, vol. 2, Städerna, Gidlunds, Stockholm. Holmberg, K (1995), ‘När kungens mynt blev allmogens mynt: En översikt över mynt, myntning och myntens roll i det svenska samhället under 1200-talet’, in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 235 Jansson, A, L Andersson Palm, and J Söderberg (1991), Dagligt bröd i onda tider: Pri- ser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1770, Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskning, Göteborg. Jevons, S (1875), Money and the Mechanism of Exchange, D. Appleton and Company, New York, http://www.econlib.org/Library/YPDBooks/Jevons/jvnMMEtoc.html (2007-08-03). Jonsson, K, and M Östergren (1998), Varför fck Gotland dansk mynträkning vid 1400-talets mitt?, http://www.gladsaxegymnasium.dk/2/artikler/jonssgot.htm (2007-02-01). Jonsson, K (1995), ‘Från utländsk metall till inhemskt mynt’, in Jonsson, K, U Nord- lind, and I Wiséhn (ed), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Jonung, L (1975), Studies in the Monetary History of Sweden, University of California, Los Angeles. Jonung, L (2000), ‘Från guldmyntfot till infationsmål – svensk stabiliseringspolitik under det 20:e seklet’, in Ekonomisk Debatt, Vol. 28, No. 1, pp. 17–32. Jörberg, L (1972), A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914, vol. 1 and 2, GWK Gleerup, Lund. Keynes, J M (1936), Te General Teory of Employment, Interest and Money, Mac- Millan, London. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956– 78), Allhem, Malmö. Lagerqvist, L, and E Nathorst-Böös (1968), Mynt, Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts, Stockholm. Lagerqvist, L (1995), ‘Äldre Vasatid’, in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Lagerqvist, L, and E Nathorst-Böös (2002), Vad kostade det? - priser och löner från medeltid till våra dagar, 5th edition, Natur och kultur/LT, Stockholm. Lindeberg, G (1941), Svensk ekonomisk politik under den Görtzska perioden, Lund. Lobell, H (2000), Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration: De utländska växelkurser- na i Sverige 1834–1880, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Lund. Läge, F-K, (1961), Secular Infation, Riedel, Dordrecht. Malmer, B (1995), ‘Från Olof till Anund. Ur sigtunamyntningens historia’, in Jons- son, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svens- ka numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Melitz, J (1970), ‘Te Polanyi School of Anthropology on Money: An Economist’s View’, in American Anthropologist, New Series, vol. 72, no. 5 (October), pp. 1022–40. Miskimin, H (1963), Money, Prices, and Foreign Exchange in Fourteenth-Century France, Yale University Press, New Haven and London. Montgomery, A (1920), ‘Riksbanken och de valutapolitiska problemen, 1719–1778’, in Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918: bankens tillkomst och verksamhet, vol. III, Nor- stedts, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 236 Mårtensson, S (1958), Agiot under kreditsedelepoken 1789–1802, Göteborg. Mårtensson, S (1961), Bryggerinäringen i Göteborg: Tiden från bryggaregillets tillkomst år 1661 intill 1800-talets början, Oscar Isacsons Boktryckeri Aktiebolag, Gothen- burg. Nordisk familjebok (1913), http://runeberg.org/nfbs (2007-08-14). Odén, B (1955), Rikets uppbörd och utgift: statsfnanser och fnansförvaltning under se- nare 1500-talet, Gleerup, Lund. Odén, B (1955), Rikets uppbörd och utgift: statsfnanser och fnansförvaltning under se- nare 1500-talet, Gleerup, Lund. Odén, B (1960), Kopparhandel och statsmonopol: studier i svensk handelshistoria under senare 1500-talet, Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Redish, A (2000), Bimetallism: An Economic and Historical Analysis, Cambridge Uni- versity Press, Cambridge. Rolnick, A, F Velde, and W Weber (1996), ‘Te Debasement Puzzle: An Essay on Medieval Monetary History’, in Te Journal of Economic History, Vol. 56, No. 4 (December), pp. 789–808. Rolnick, A, and W Weber (1986), ‘Gresham’s Law or Gresham’s Fallacy?’, in Te Jour- nal of Political Economy, vol. 94, no. 1 (February), pp. 185–99. Rolnick, A, and W Weber (1997), ‘Money, Infation, and Output under Fiat and Commodity Standards’, in Te Journal of Political Economy, vol. 105, no. 5 (De- cember), pp. 1308–21. Sargent, T, and F Velde (2002), Te Big Problem of Small Change, Princeton Univer- sity Press, Princeton and Oxford. Sarvas, P (1969), ‘De svenska myntskatterna från 1700-talet’, in Nordisk Numisma- tisk Årsskrift 1969, pp. 116–72. von Schwerin, F B, (1903), Bidrag till kännedom af fäderneslandet, Norstedt, Stock- holm. Shaw, W (1895), Te History of Currency, Wilsons & Milne, London. Sjöstrand, E (1908), Mynt- och bankpolitik under hattväldet 1738–1764, Almqvist & Wiksells Boktryckeri, Uppsala. Spuford, P (1988), Money and its use in Medieval Europe, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Stiernstedt, A (1863), Om kopparmyntningen i Sverige och dess utländska besittningar, Stockholm. Svenska folket genom tiderna: vårt lands kulturhistoria i skildringar och bilder. 5, Den karolinska tiden (1939), Allhem, Malmö. Sussman, N (1993), ‘Debasements, Royal Revenues, and Infation in France During the Hundred Years’ War, 1415–1422’, in Te Journal of Economic History, vol. 53, no. 1 (March), pp. 44–70. Sussman, N, and Zeira, J (2003), ‘Commodity money infation: theory and evidence from France in 1350–1436’, in Journal of Monetary Economics, vol. 50, pp. 1769– 93. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 237 Sveriges Riksbank (1931), Statistiska tabeller. Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet, vol. V, Nordstedts, Stockholm. Swenne, H (1933), Svenska adelns ekonomiska privilegier 1612–1651: Med särskild hänsyn till Älvsborgs län, Erlanders boktryckeri AB, Göteborg. Söderberg, J (2002), Prices in Stockholm 1539–1620. Version 3, May 2002. Excel fle, http://www.iisg.nl/hpw/stockholm.xls (2005-09-04). Söderberg, J (1993), ‘Infation i 1500- och 1600-talets Sverige’, in PECVNIA. Skrif- ter i mynt- och penninghistoriska ämnen utgivna av Kungl. Myntkabinettet, Stock- holm, No. 4. Talvio, T (1995), ‘Sedlarnas århundrade: Mynt och pappersmynt från 1724 till 1818’, in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Tordeman, B (1936), ‘Sveriges medeltidsmynt’, in Nordisk Kultur, vol. XXIX, Bon- nier, Stockholm. Turborg, M (1989), ‘Betalningsmedel under järnålder och tidig medeltid’, in Med- eltidens födelse, Gyllenstiernska Krapperupsstiftelsen, Lund. Tingström, B (1972), Svensk numismatisk uppslagsbok. Mynt i ord och bild 1521– 1972, Numismatiska bokförlaget, Stockholm. Tingström, B (1984), Sveriges plåtmynt 1644–1776: En undersökning av plåtmyntens roll som betalningsmedel, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Tingström, B (1995), ‘Stormaktstidens penningväsen’, in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska för- eningen, Stockholm. Velde, F, and W Weber (1998), A Model of Bimetallism. Working Paper 588 (August), Federal Reserve Bank of Minneapolis, Research Department, http://www.minne- apolisfed.org/research/WP/WP588.pdf (2007-08-10). Velde, F, W Weber, and R Wright (1999), ‘A Model of Commodity Money, with Ap- plications to Gresham’s Law and the Debasement Puzzle’, in Review of Economic Dynamics, vol. 2, pp. 291–323. Vendels sockens dombok 1615–1645 (1925), Almqvist & Wiksell, Uppsala 1925. Wallroth, K A (1918), Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser, Stockholm. Wettmark, M (1995), ‘Den moderna mynthistorien. Nya metaller’, in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numis- matiska föreningen, Stockholm. Wiséhn, I (1995), ‘Från kaos till ordning: 1800-talets betalningsmedel’, in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds.), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska nu- mismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Wolontis, J (1936), Kopparmyntningen i Sverige 1624–1714, Lund. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 1 Rodney Edvinsson 5.1. Introduction This chapter deals with foreign exchange rates in Sweden in the period 1658–1803. Since Finland was part of Sweden up to 1808/9, Swedish currency was also current there. However, the primary data used in this study are from Stockholm and other towns in present-day Sweden. In the 18th century, the most frequently quoted exchange rates in Sweden were on Amsterdam, Hamburg, London, Paris, Copenhagen, Gdańsk and Swedish Pomerania. Of these seven, the exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam were the most frequent. At that time, all seven currencies were based in one way or another on precious metals, primarily silver, and the par relations between them were, there- fore, largely determined by their intrinsic metal values. A classic distinction is made between exchange of coins and exchange by bills. 2 The bill of exchange is a written order by the drawer to the drawee to pay money to the payee. Before the spread of paper currency, payments in international trade were often made in bills. While foreign exchange was, at least from the 17th century, mainly conducted in bills, exchange between domestic currencies was mostly con- ducted in actual coins. Bills of exchange had different terms to maturity, from a few days (sight bills) up to more than 6 months. Nowadays, the spot exchange rate is usually calculated as the average of the buying and selling rates. For earlier times, the price of sight bills is often the only available source for the calculation of spot exchange rates. The price of 1 Some of the data presented in this chapter have been constructed in cooperation with Johan Söderberg, Martin Sutinen and Göran Hansson. For many insightful comments and sugges- tions, I want also to thank Göran Ahlström, Marc Flandreau, Klas Fregert, Jan T Klovland, Lars O Lagerqvist and Håkan Lobell. 2 McCusker (1978, p. 18). 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 239 bills with longer terms to maturity should be lower than the price of sight bills, and in theory the difference would be determined by the prevailing interest rate. In real- ity it is not as simple. The price of a sight bill does not necessarily equal the spot exchange rate, since it took time to transport the bill from one city to another and there was a grace period between the day when the bill was presented and the day when it was paid. 3 In Hamburg, the grace period could be up to 12 days. 4 A bigger problem with historical exchange rates is that the sources do not always provide information on the durations of the bills of exchange. 5 Several authors emphasise that bills of exchange were useful instruments for evad- ing usury ceilings and hiding interest rates. By the 18th century, credit instruments had been developed that were based on exchange rate derivatives. A low bill price is tantamount to a high interest rate. Knowing the prices of bills of various terms to maturity enables one to calculate the short-term market interest rate, and knowing the interest rate enables one to calculate a theoretical spot exchange rate. According to Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco, the interest rate calculated from bills of exchange on, for example, Amsterdam traded in London provides information on the interest rate in Amsterdam, not London, since it is Amsterdam money that is bought, not London money. Furthermore, they argue that such a shadow interest rate is somewhat higher than the actual rate, since it includes additional transaction costs because the foreign market is located further away than the domestic market. 6 Several of the quoted foreign currencies have their origins in the German reichs- taler. According to the Leipzig convention in 1566, the German reichstaler as a coin was to contain 1/9 of a Cologne mark of silver, or 25.98 grams of fine silver. The unit was adopted in other countries and was widely used across Europe, as riksdaler in Sweden, rigsdaler in Denmark and rijksdaalder in Holland. Sometimes the term rix-dollar is used as a common label for the various national coins. 7 In 1754 the Reichstaler was replaced by the Conventionsthaler, containing 1/10 of a Cologne mark of silver. 5.2. Current and bank money Exchange rates on Amsterdam and Hamburg could be quoted in two different cur- rencies, one being actual coins or current money (courant) and the other notional or bank money (banco). Bank money existed in the form of credit on the books of the bank. Bank money supplied by the Bank of Amsterdam, founded in 1609, and Hamburger Bank, founded in 1619, included a premium or agio relative to current 3 See Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco (2006, p. 23). 4 Hayes (2001 [1740], p. 307). 5 Lobell (2000, pp. 231–2). 6 Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco (2006). 7 Hayes (2001 [1740]) and Attman (1983, p. 8). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 240 money. 8 For example, a premium of 4 percent on banco money implied that 100 guilders in banco money was the equivalent of 104 guilders in courant money. The premium was much higher in Hamburg (around 20 per cent in the 18th century) 9 than in Amsterdam (around 4–5 per cent), 10 although the two banks had much the same regulations. 11 The premiums were a consequence of the two banks’ refusal to accept inferior coins at par with their bank monies, 12 which were linked to the better coins, accord- ing to the standard of the mint. 13 Inferior coins circulated widely (because of wear and tear, clipping and small increases in the mint equivalent) and tended to drive out better coins (unless the latter circulated at a premium). Most rix-dollar coins that circulated in the 17th and 18th centuries had a significantly lower fine silver content than the 25.98 grams established by the Leipzig convention. The Swedish riksdaler coins, weighing 25.3–25.7 grams, had, in fact, a higher fine silver content than in other countries. 14 In addition, bank money had other advantages even compared to newly minted coins; since it was secure from fire, robbery and other accidents, it could easily be transferred between cities, etc. As pointed out by Adam Smith in The Wealth of Nations: 15 Te agio of the bank of Hamburg, for example, which is said to be commonly about fourteen per cent, is the supposed diference between the good standard money of the state, and the clipt, worn, and diminished currency poured into it from all the neighbouring states. Before 1609 the great quantity of clipt and worn foreign coin, which the extensive trade of Amsterdam brought from all parts of Europe, reduced the value of its cur- rency about nine per cent below that of good money fresh from the mint. Such money no sooner appeared than it was melted down or carried away, as it always is in such circumstances. At some time in the 18th century (not known when) the Bank of Amsterdam stopped paying specie for banco notes. The currency supplied by the bank became de facto inconvertible. The premium on bank money was kept at a stable level since the bank usually bought bank money when the premium fell below 4.5 per cent and sold 8 McCusker (1978, pp. 42–79). 9 Monthly premiums on Hamburg bank money can be found in McCusker (1978, pp. 65–8) for the period 1672–1775. 10 Monthly premiums on Amsterdam bank money can be found in McCusker (1978, pp. 46–51) for the period 1638–1775, and in Posthumus (1946, pp. 651–6) for the period 1648–1819. 11 Hayes (2001 [1740], p. 301). 12 However, in, for example, Amsterdam the premium was not of cially sanctioned until the 1650s. See Quinn and Roberds (2006). 13 van Dillen (1936, pp. 89–90). 14 Sjöstrand (1908, p.10). 15 Smith (1999 [1776], p. 57). 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 241 whenever it rose above 4⅞ per cent 16 (in this respect, it was a kind of specie exchange standard). This could not be sustained in some periods. Most notably in 1794–1802 there was a significant discount (negative premium) on banco money (at most 27 per cent in January 1795). 17 In Sweden, the exchange rate on Hamburg was mostly quoted on banco money. In contrast, the exchange rate on Amsterdam was mostly quoted on current money. 5.3. Sources and calculations for this study For the period after 1740, Sveriges Riksbank (1931) presents a continuous annual series of exchange rates on Amsterdam, Hamburg, Paris and London (the annual average of these series is arithmetic). The rates are based on quotations in various newspapers, such as Stockholms stads priscourant. All the data that were collected for Sveriges Riksbank (1931) is stored in the archive of Sweden’s central bank. 18 The data have been used in this study, since the material includes weekly data, data for the period 1705–36 and notations on other foreign currencies. For the period before 1740, several other sources are used in this study. The best data are for 1660–85. Monthly prices exist for bills of exchange of vari- ous durations (8 days, 14 days, one month, two months, and longer) on Amsterdam and Hamburg, and for 1668–85 on Paris. There are also a few notations on Gdańsk, but none on London. 19 After that period, such detailed price differentiation between bills with various terms to maturity is available only from the mid-19th century onwards. The exchange rates in 1660–85 are calculated from monthly data on bills with various durations and an estimated average interest rate for the period. When estimating interest rates, comparisons should not be made between bills of short duration, for example one-month bills relative to 14-day bills, since the price of bills was often rounded off, which could systematically distort the computed interest rate. Data on bills of longer duration, 4 to 8 months, exist mainly for the period 1662–9. To estimate an interest rate for this period, the prices of these bills have been compared to the prices of one-month bills. The interest rate r, in per cent, is calculated as: 16 van Dillen (1936, pp. 101–2). 17 Posthumus (1946, p. 655). 18 Riksbankens arkiv, ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. 19 Kammarkollegii, oordnade handlingar, no. 444 (Riksarkivet). Posthumus (1946, pp. 592–3) presents the exchange rate in Amsterdam on Stockholm for 1664, 1665, 1669, 1671 and 1672. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 242 ( ) 100 100 1 2 12 2 1 − × ⎟ ⎟ ⎟ ⎠ ⎞ ⎜ ⎜ ⎜ ⎝ ⎛ ⎟ ⎟ ⎠ ⎞ ⎜ ⎜ ⎝ ⎛ = − bill bill T T bill bill P P r where P is the price and T the time duration in months of two bills, bill 1 and bill 2. The 34 different interest rates that have been calculated range from -6.3 to 35.5 per cent (based on both Hamburg and Amsterdam exchange rates). The median value is 12.5 per cent, which seems to be quite a robust result. 20 This is consistent with a monthly interest rate of one per cent (12.7 per cent on an annual basis), which according to Eli Heckscher was very common in the 17th century. 21 The extreme values can be explained by market fluctuations during the month and price differ- ences between brokers. While the individual values are unreliable, especially the extreme values (and negative interest rates did, of course, not exist), the median should be quite reliable. The high interest rate in 17th-century Sweden – despite a more homogeneous capital market in the latter part of the century and a statutory maximum rate of 8 per cent from 1666 and 6 per cent from 1687 – is known from many sources. 22 Lower interest rates, 6–8 per cent, were common in this period, but mostly for loans with security and of a somewhat longer duration, involving lower risks. Following the argument of Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco (see above), the shadow interest rate calculated from bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg must be seen as reflecting the interest rate in those cities, not in Stockholm. Although the interest rate was probably lower in Amsterdam and Hamburg than in Stockholm, the shadow interest rate was probably higher than the actual one because of the addi- tional cost of acquiring information about the foreign markets. Christina Dalhede gives two examples of short-term interest rates in Lübeck, one of 10 per cent in 1664 20 Te interest rate of the frst quartile is 9.3 per cent and of the third quartile 13.1 per cent, which was probably roughly the range for the actual short-term interest rate at the time. Te median for the frst 17 values (in 1662–6) is 12.4 per cent and 12.9 percent for the last 17 values (in 1667–9), which is an indication that the market interest rate seems to have been quite stable over time, at least in the 1660s (which was a decade of some fnancial turmoil in Sweden). Te median interest rate estimated from Amsterdam bills is 12.7 percent and 12.3 percent estimated from Hamburg bills, which likewise is a negligible diference. 21 Heckscher (1936, vol I:2, p. 578). 22 Heckscher (1936, vol I:2, pp. 577–81), and Montgomery (1920, p. 140). Heckscher mentions an interest rate as high as 42 per cent in 1631; according to him, the interest rate fell towards the end of the 17th century. A table of interest rates published in 1690 shows that they varied between 5 and 12 per cent, despite the legislated maximum of 6 per cent. Te variation can be explained by the variation in the risk premium. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 243 on a 3-month loan and the other of 12 per cent in 1667 on a 4–12-month loan, 23 which conforms to the high interest rates calculated for Hamburg and Amsterdam in the present study. The computed median interest rate of 12.5 per cent differs significantly from the interest rates in Amsterdam, London and Paris as estimated by Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco for the 18th century (after 1720). 24 Based on bills of exchange with various terms to maturity, they conclude that the average interest rate was around 3–5 per cent in that century. That would mean that the interest rate was more than halved between the 17th and 18th centuries. Further investigation is necessary before such a conclusion can be drawn. In Chapter 6, Håkan Lobell assumes that the shadow interest rate was 5 per cent in the first half of the 19th century; that is also the assumption in this chapter for the 18th century. For 1704–1804, it is also assumed that the term to maturity was 67 days for bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg and 90 days for bills on London and Paris, which corresponds to Lobell’s assump- tions for the early 19th century. The few notations on terms to maturity in the late 18th century are consistent with these conjectures. Tables A5.1, A5.5 and A5.12 present monthly exchange rates on Hamburg, Amsterdam and Paris, respectively, for the period 1660–85 (for Paris 1668–85), based on bills with between 8 days and two months to maturity and an assumed interest rate of 12.5 per cent (which disregards the possibility that this rate may have 23 Dalhede (2006, p. 117). 24 Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco (2006, p. 24). View of Stockholm, 1801, by Elias Martin (1739–1818). Source: Nationalmuseum. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 244 fluctuated over time). 25 Neither has allowance been made for the grace period between the day when the bill was presented and the day when it was paid (this could be viewed as a pure transaction cost). The data have been collected and the calculations have been made in collaboration with Göran Hansson for Amsterdam and with Martin Sutinen for Hamburg and Paris. There are various sources for annual exchange rates in the period 1696–1739. 26 For this period, annual averages have been estimated mainly by taking the geometric average of the highest and lowest quotations. For the years when direct data are missing, cross rates have been calculated for the exchange rates on Amsterdam, Paris and London, based on the exchange rate in Stockholm on Hamburg, in Amsterdam on Hamburg, 27 and in London on Ham- burg, Paris and Amsterdam. 28 The cross rates are adjusted to take into account the difference between cross rates and actual rates in the adjacent periods where data on actual rates do exist. When the sources do not provide information about the bills’ terms to maturity, the spot rates are calculated from the direct data on exchange rates by increasing the latter by 1.5 per cent in 1658–85, which is consistent with, for example, 1.5 month bills and a 12 per cent interest rate. For 1686–1703, the bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg are increased by one per cent and bills on London by 1.05 90/365 . For the period 1704–1804, the bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg are increased by 1.05 67/365 and the bills on London and Paris by 1.05 90/365 , consistent with the assumption of a 5 per cent interest rate. See furthermore Tables A5.21 to A5.24 for annual series. The monthly data presented for the period 1705–1803 are raw data (mostly based on two- and three-month bills), not spot rates. 5.4. Notations on foreign currencies in Swedish currency The presented foreign exchange rates are in Swedish currency, which changed during the studied period (see Chapter 4). As a consequence of inflation, the value of Swed- ish currency fell relative to the quoted foreign currencies during the course of the 18th century. Up to 1776, foreign currencies were usually quoted in mark kopparmynt (one daler kopparmynt = 4 marks kopparmynt). In 1716–9 so-called coin tokens circulated that fell in value relative to proper 25 Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco (2006, p. 23). 26 Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet), O:1, folio 364, presents exchange rates on Hamburg from 1703 onwards, Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar (Riksarkivet), Handel och sjöfart, Ser. I, vol. 1 Järnhandel, exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam from 1703 onwards (also on London in 1704), and Börstorpssamlingen (Riksarkivet), vol. 85, exchange rates on Hamburg in 1696– 1704. 27 Found in Posthumus (1946). 28 Found in McCusker (1978). 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 245 money (mainly copper plates). The only exchange rates reported for this period were on Amsterdam and Hamburg, and these were most probably noted in proper money, not in coin tokens. As explained in Chapter 4, the use of coin tokens was not easy to enforce on the foreign exchange, although there are some uncertainties on this matter. Tables A5.21 to A5.22 present the estimated exchange rates in coin tokens as well, by using the premium on proper money to compute those rates (see Chapter 4). In 1777–88 foreign currencies were usually quoted in skilling (one riksdaler was equal to 48 skilling). Since one Swedish riksdaler was exchanged for 72 marks kop- parmynt in 1777, this implies that one skilling was exchanged for 1.5 marks kop- parmynt in that year. In 1789–1803, Sweden had two currencies: riksdaler banco (= 48 skilling banco), still convertible into riksdaler specie coins, and riksdaler riksgälds (= 48 skilling riksgälds), which fell in value relative to the specie coins. For the period 1789–96 the foreign exchange rates were most likely expressed in banco notes, although there are some uncertainties about this. As discussed in Chapter 4, the pre- mium (agio) on banco notes cannot be used to transform exchange rates from banco to riksgälds, since the premium on banco notes was affected by market situations. From May 1797 to 1803 the foreign exchange rates are expressed both in riksdaler riksgälds and in riksdaler banco. The premium that can be estimated from these data differs somewhat from the noted agio (premium) in the domestic market. Figure 5.1 compares an index of the quotations on Hamburg, Amsterdam and London with the Swedish inflation index (see Chapter 8) in 1658–1838. All three foreign currencies had a relatively stable precious metal content during the studied period (at least in the long run). The currency index clearly shows how Swedish cur- rency deteriorated relative to these three stable currencies, which was due to debase- ments and the circulation of fiat money. Up to the 1770s the currency and the infla- tion indices follow each other in the long run, but after the 1770s the price level rose more than the quotation on the three foreign currencies. Hence, part of the increase in prices in the late 18th century must be explained by other factors than a deterio- rating currency. Between 1658 and 1838 the currency index increased 35-fold, while the price level rose 53-fold. The sharpest devaluations of Swedish currency occurred in 1716–19, 1756–62, 1769–73, 1788–99 and 1808–20, which coincided with the circulation of fiat monies (see Chapter 2). 5.5. Quotations on Hamburg During the studied period the Hamburg reichstaler banco was the most important foreign currency quoted in Sweden. Before 1777, quotations on the Hamburg reichs- taler banco were even more important than quotations on the domestic riksdaler. Hamburg was the centre of exchange for the Baltic area. The bank money of Hamburg was viewed as one of the securest in Europe, and all foreign exchange was negotiated through the bank. Hamburg shared its current money with the city of Lübeck. As the circulated coins deteriorated, the premium on bank money increased from 3 per cent in 1672 to over 20 per cent in the 1770s (see Table A5.21). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 246 Figure 5.1. Index of quotations on Hamburg, Amsterdam and London in Swedish currency and the Swedish infation index 1658–1838 (1658 = 100). Sources: Tables A5.21 to A5.24, Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 8. Note: Te two indices follow mark kopparmynt in 1658–1776, riksdaler specie in 1777–88 and riksdaler riksgälds in 1789–1838. In the period 1716–19 they follow the coin tokens and assume that these tokens were devalued by 50 per cent in 1719. The Hamburger reichstaler banco was equal to 3 marks banco. 29 Eli Heckscher writes that the ‘Hamburg Rixdollar Banco was an ideal money, equivalent to one- ninth of the mark of Cologne, in fine silver, which ought to give it a weight in fine silver of 25.984 gr., though in Sweden it was generally considered as corresponding only to 25.276 gr.’ 30 In comparison, in the 18th century the minted Swedish riks- daler (specie) had a fine silver content of 25.6973 grams. From 1790 the issue rate of one reichstaler banco was 9.25 per mark of fine silver and of the mark banco 27.75 per mark of fine silver. Since the mark of fine silver in Hamburg was equal to 233.855 grams (the Cologne mark), from then on one reichs- taler banco was the equivalent of 25.2816 grams. 31 In Sweden, almost all exchange rates are quoted in bank money, but a few nota- tions on the current money of Lübeck are extant. Tables A5.1 to A5.4 present 29 Attman (1983, p. 8). 30 Heckscher (1934, p. 194). 31 Shaw (1895, p. 387). 100 1,000 10,000 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 1820 1840 Inflation index, Sweden Index, quotations on Hamburg, Amsterdam and London in Swedish currency 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 247 monthly exchange rates on Hamburg; Tables A5.21 and A5.23 give the annual rates. Although the exchange rate on current money of Hamburg can be estimated by deducting the premium on Hamburger reichstaler banco, which is presented for the period 1672–1775 in Table A5.21, the few notations in Stockholm on the current money show that the premium on bank money estimated from the Stockholm data deviated somewhat from the noted premium in Hamburg. An example of exchange rate notations in Stockholm in early 1668 (the year in which the Riksbank was founded). Prices for bills difered with their terms to maturity (8 days, 14 days, 1 month, 2 months, 4 months and 6 months). Bills of longer duration were cheaper, refecting a shadow interest rate. For example, in January a 2-month bill on Hamburg (reichstaler banco) was sold for 20¾ marks kopparmynt, while an 8-day bill was sold for 21¼ marks kopparmynt.Tere were also diferences between brokers. In March, a 2-month bill on Amsterdam was sold for somewhat less than a 4-month bill by another broker. Source: Kammarkollegii, oordnade handlingar, nr 444 (Riksarkivet). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 248 Figure 5.2. Swedish riksdaler per Hamburger Reichstaler banco 1658–1808. Sources: Tables A5.21 and A5.23, Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 4. Figure 5.2 presents the Hamburger Reichstaler banco in Swedish riksdaler (spe- cie/banco) in 1658–1808. The silver content of both currencies was stable through- out the period. The par level was slightly below 1 (0.984 in the late 18th century, but closer to 1 in the late 17th century). This level applied during most of the period but at times there were significant deviations, most notably in 1769 and after 1789, caused by monetary instability. In 1769, the high valuation of the Swedish riksdaler was an effect of deflationary policies (see Chapter 4), while after 1789 the riksdaler banco was valued less than Hamburger reichstaler banco because of the circulation of riksgälds notes and expectations that banco notes could become inconvertible as well, which in fact happened in 1808–9. The deviation in 1769 most likely went beyond the specie points (see Chapter 6). 5.6. Quotations on Amsterdam Up to 1681, the guilder/florin 32 was a unit of account rather than a minted coin. It was equal to 20 stuivers. The rijksdaalder coin that was minted in the late 16th cen- tury and the first half of the 17th century had a fine silver content of 25.7 grams; it was set equal to 42 stuivers in 1583, 46 stuivers in 1596, 47 stuivers in 1603, 48 32 Te guilder as a money of account equal to 20 stuivers should not be confused with the silver carolus guilder, which was an actual coin minted in the 16th and early 17th centuries. 0.6 0.65 0.7 0.75 0.8 0.85 0.9 0.95 1 1.05 1.1 1.15 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 249 stuivers in 1610–9 and 50 stuivers (i.e. 2.5 guilders) from 1619 onwards. According to the Dutch price historian Posthumus, the fine silver content of one guilder was 11.17 grams in 1597–1603, 10.94 grams in 1604–6, 10.89 grams in 1607–10, 10.71 grams in 1611–9 (since the rijksdaalder was equal to 48 stuivers), 10.28 grams in 1620–59 (since the rijksdaalder was equal to 50 stuivers) and 9.74 grams in 1660–81 (since the silver ducat contained 24.37 grams fine silver and was set equal to the rijksdaalder). 33 On 25th December 1681 the states of Holland and West Friesland prescribed the minting of the first gulden (guilder) piece, which hitherto had existed only as money of account. The guilder was fixed at 9.613 grams of fine silver, which did not change until 1845. Thus the fine silver content of one rijksdaalder courant became 24.03 grams, i.e. 6.5 per cent below the fine silver content of the rijksdaalder coins minted in the first half of the 17th century. From 1845 the guilder contained 9.45 grams of fine silver. 34 33 Posthumus (1946, pp. cviii–cix). 34 Shaw (1895, pp. 350–5), and Posthumus (1936, p. lv). Dam Square, Amsterdam, by Gerrit Berckheyde (1638–98), a Dutch specialist in town- scapes. Notations on Amsterdam were very frequent at the Stockholm exchange in the second half of the 17th century. Source: http://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/File:AmsterdamDamsquar.jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 250 Figure 5.3. Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in Hamburger reichstaler banco 1660–1810 based on Swedish foreign exchange. Sources: Tables A5.21 and A5.23, Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 4. Tables A5.5 to A5.8 present monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam; Tables A5.21 and A5.23 give the annual rates. To express the exchange rate on Amsterdam in banco money, the exchange rate on rijksdaalder courant can be augmented with the premium on bank money, for which annual data are presented for 1660–1776. 35 Figure 5.3 presents the cross rate of Amsterdam rijksdaalder in Hamburg reichs- taler banco in 1660–1810 based on the data from the foreign exchange in Sweden. The par level based on the fine silver contents of the two currencies in the late 19th century was 0.96, which was also the average and the median value in Sweden in 1660–1810. The coefficient of variation was only 2.7 percent, an indication of quite efficient markets and that the two currencies moved within the specie points. 5.7. Quotations on London One pound sterling was equal to 20 shillings or 240 pence. 36 Since the fine silver content of one penny was 0.479 grams in 1560–1600 and 0.464 grams in 1601– 1815, the fine silver content of one pound sterling (if counted in pennies) was 115.1 35 See footnote 10. 36 McCusker (1978, p. 35). 0.88 0.9 0.92 0.94 0.96 0.98 1 1.02 1.04 1.06 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 251 grams in 1560–1600 and 111.4 grams in 1601–1815. 37 However, in the period 1717–1815 the silver content of the pound was de facto somewhat lower. England had a bimetallic standard in 1717–1815, based on a value ratio of gold to silver of 15.072 to 1. This tended to overvalue gold and cause an outflow of silver and an inflow of gold. Britain introduced a mono-metallic gold standard de jure in 1816. The fine gold content of the sovereign with the nominal value of one pound was then fixed at 7.3224 grams. Although England played a dominant role in the world economy, in the 18th century the exchange on Hamburg and Amsterdam was much more important for Sweden. This is confirmed by what The Negociator’s Magazine wrote about Sweden in 1740: ‘To London they mostly exchange by the Way of Amsterdam or Ham- burgh; but sometimes Exchange may be directly to London …’ 38 Tables A5.9 to A5.11 present monthly exchange rates on London; Tables A5.22 and A5.24 give the annual rates. Figure 5.4 presents the cross rate of the British pound in Hamburger reichstaler banco based on the exchange rates in Sweden 1700–1830. The par level based on the 37 ‘Allen - Unger Database: European Commodity Prices 1260–1914’. 38 Hayes (2001 [1740], p. 338). London: Te Tames and the City of London from Richmond House, 1747, by Gio- vanni Antonio Canal (1697–1768), a Venetian artist. During the 18th century the pound sterling became an important currency on the Stockholm exchange. Source: http://commons.wikimedia.org/wiki/File:Canaletto_london.jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 252 Figure 5.4. Te pound sterling in Hamburger reichstaler banco based on exchange rates in Sweden 1704–1830. Sources: Tables A5.21 to A5.24, Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 4. silver contents of the two currencies was around 4.4 reichstaler per pound. During the 18th century the market rate was normally below this level because of the over- valuation of gold under the bimetallic standard, making British silver coins underval- ued. Very few silver coins were in fact minted after 1717, and Britain was, therefore, de facto on a gold standard in the 18th century. During the French Revolutionary and Napoleonic wars, sterling reached its low- est level, due to excessive note issues and the suspension of conversion on demand in 1797. 39 In the early 1810s sterling was one fourth below its par level against the reichstaler banco (see also Chapter 6). The situation led to the Bullionist Contro- versy, where the Bullionists, among them David Ricardo, argued that convertibility must be restored, while the Anti-Bullionists claimed that banks would not issue more notes than commerce demanded. Convertibility into gold was not restored until 1821. 39 Mayhew (1999, p. 132–52). 3.2 3.4 3.6 3.8 4 4.2 4.4 4.6 4.8 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 1820 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 253 5.8. Quotations on Paris In the sources used in this study, the exchange rate on Paris is quoted in livres tournois in 1740–1794, but in écu de change in 1668–1707. The écu de change was the French equivalent of the reichstaler. One écu de change was equal to three livres tournois, and one livres tournois to 20 sou tournois. This accounting relation was stable in the 17th and 18th centuries up to the French revolution, despite the monetary chaos in the 17th and early 18th centuries. 40 Livres tournois ceased to be minted in 1641 but continued to exist as a unit of account. 41 In the 18th century some quotations were also made on Bordeaux and Marseille. Tables A5.12 to A5.15 present monthly exchange rates on Paris; Tables A5.22 and A5.24 give annual rates. 40 McCusker (1978, pp. 87–8). 41 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, p. 78). Te Storming of the Bastille in Paris, July 1789. Despite the dramatic events, the value of the livres tournois was quite stable relative to other currencies. Te French currency did not start to deteriorate until 1791. Source: http://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/5/57/Anonymous_-_Prise_de_la_Bastille. jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 254 Figure 5.5. Te livres tournois (franc) in marks kopparmynt (= 1/72 riksdaler specie 1777– 88 and 1/72 riksdaler riksgälds 1789–1810) and Hamburger reichstaler banco based on foreign exchange in Sweden 1668–1810 (estimated spot rates). Sources: Tables A5.21 to A5.24, and Sveriges Riksbank (1931). 0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 0 0.1 0.2 0.3 0.4 0.5 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) livres tournois in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) The French currency was unstable in 1681–1725 but for this period only a few notations exist from Sweden. The fine silver content of one livres tournois was 11.61 grams in 1603–35, 9.06–10.31 grams in 1636–41, 7.71–8.75 grams in 1642–99, 5.85–8.3 grams in 1700–17, 3.06–5.64 grams in 1718–26, and 4.7 grams in 1727– 89. 42 As can be seen from Table A5.22, French currency reached its lowest level in 1720, following the collapse of the shares in the Mississippi Company and John Law’s failed experimentation with bank notes. In the aftermath of the French revolution the monetary system initially fell into disarray. As shown in Table A5.14, the exchange rate on Paris (in skilling banco) decreased by a third between 1789/90 and 1792/3. The franc was introduced in 1795, based on a decimal system (equal to 100 centimes), and was set equal to the old livres tournois. Its fine silver content was 4.5 grams, 43 implying a par level of 8.4 skilling banco for one livre tournois. In 1803 a bimetallic standard was introduced, based on a gold-silver (value) ratio of 15.5 to 1. 44 The fine gold content of one franc was 0.29 grams. 42 ‘Allen - Unger Database: European Commodity Prices 1260–1914’ 43 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, p. 78). 44 Redish (1994, p. 70). 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 255 Figure 5.5 presents the market value of the livres tournois (franc from 1795) in Swedish and Hamburg currencies in 1668–1808. It shows that while the value relation between French and Swedish currency in the 1750s was about the same as in the 1660s, in this period French currency fell relative to the stable Hamburger reichs taler banco. After the 1750s Swedish currency fell relative to French currency, while, with the exception of a dip after the French Revolution, French currency was stable against the Hamburger reichstaler banco. In the period 1740–88, the median value of one livres tournois was 0.19 Hamburger reichstaler banco, which was also the theoretical exchange rate between the two currencies based on their fine silver contents. 5.9. Quotations on Copenhagen Before the union with Sweden in 1814, Norway was part of the Danish kingdom, with a common currency unit. Since the late medieval period (see Chapter 3), the Danish mark was set equal to roughly half the value of the Lübeck mark, although this could not be maintained in some periods. Like the Lübeck mark, the Danish mark was divided into 16 skillings. The Danish rigsdaler or speciedaler was linked to the German reichstaler, later at par with the Hamburg reichstaler banco. In the 18th century it contained 25.28 grams of fine silver, only slightly less than the Swedish riksdaler. Since the Hamburg reichstaler was divided into 3 German marks, this implies that the par level of the Danish rigsdaler was 6 marks. In 1625 the following relation was fixed: 1 rigsdaler or speciedaler = 6 marks = 96 skillings. In the late 17th century the crown was also minted, set equal to 64 skillings or 4 marks. 45 The Danish rigsdaler as a unit of account, equal to 96 skillings in coins or notes, must be distinguished from the actual rigsdaler in specie coins. Given that low-stan- dard coins were minted, a premium arose on speciedaler in courant money (‘kurant- mønt’). The fine silver content of the crown was also debased. Therefore there was also a premium on the speciedaler in crown coins, although not as high as the pre- mium on speciedaler in courant money. In his study of prices in Jämtland, which Sweden conquered from Denmark- Norway in 1645, Göran Hansson finds that prices were quoted in Swedish daler kopparmynt as well as in Norwegian rigsdaler in the period 1666–88, making it pos- sible to estimate the exchange rates between these two currencies. 46 Throughout this period one Norwegian rigsdaler stood at around 4.5 Swedish daler kopparmynt, which was significantly below the market rate of the Swedish riksdaler specie and the Hamburg reichstaler banco. The quoted Norwegian rigsdaler is, therefore, mostly likely not the specie riksdaler. While in 1666–76 one Norwegian rigsdaler was val- ued at 0.8–0.9 Hamburg reichstaler banco, in 1677–88 it was valued at only around 0.7 Hamburg reichstaler banco. In comparison, the data of Friis and Glamann show 45 Friis and Glamann (1958, pp. 3–4 and 15). 46 Hansson (2009). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 256 Figure 5.6. Te Danish rigsdaler kurant in marks kopparmynt (= 1/72 riksdaler specie 1777–88 and 1/72 riksdaler riksgälds 1789–1808) and Hamburger reichstaler banco based on foreign exchange in Sweden 1741–1815 (estimated spot rates). Sources: Tables A5.16 to A5.18, Table A5.21 and A5.23, untitled volume with exchange rates 1804– 89 (Riksbankens arkiv), Sveriges Riksbank (1931), and Chapter 6. that the Danish rigsdaler in courant coins stood at around 0.9 Hamburg reichstaler banco in the 1690s. 47 One possible explanation for the low exchange rate of the Norwegian rigsdaler in Jämtland is that inferior coins circulated in Jämtland during the 1680s. Friis and Glamann also show that the fine silver content of the minted coins varied significantly in the late 17th century. For example, in 1660–70, the most common coins that were minted contained only 65 per cent per unit of the nominal value of the fine silver of the speciedaler. 48 In 1713–28, paper money circulated in Denmark but was not equivalent to coins in value. In 1737 the Kurantbanken was established as a privately-owned bank; it was nationalised in 1773. Although its notes were supposed to be convertible, con- vertibility was suspended in 1745–7 and from 1759. There were periods of varying length when the value of the Kurantbanken notes fell below the value of current money in coins. In 1791, the Dansk-Norske Speciesbank was established and issued notes that initially were convertible into speciedaler. 49 Figure 5.6 presents the exchange rate on the Danish rigsdaler kurant 1741–1815 in Swedish and Hamburg currencies (based on Tables A5.16 to A5.18 up to 1803). 47 Friis and Glamann (1958, pp. 33–4). 48 Friis and Glamann (1958, p. 6). 49 Friis and Glamann (1958, pp. 5–16). 38 38 32,75 34 56 54 54 0 20 40 60 80 100 120 140 1740 1750 1760 1770 1780 1790 1800 1810 0 0.2 0.4 0.6 0.8 1 1.2 1.4 Danish rigsdaler kurant in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) Danish rigsdaler kurant in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 257 The quotations on Copenhagen follow the Kurantbanken notes, not the courant coins, as is shown, for example, by the deterioration of the Danish currency in 1788–9. Figure 5.6 shows that during most of the second half of the 19th century the Danish rigsdaler stood at around 0.8 Hamburger reichstaler banco, while appreciat- ing against the Swedish currency. Hence, the Danish currency was much more stable than the Swedish in the 18th century, despite the periods of inconvertibility. The worst Danish inflation occurred instead in the early 19th century, at the time of the Napoleonic wars, as is further discussed by Håkan Lobell in Chapter 6. After 1807, the Danish currency fell like a stone against the Swedish currency, even though the latter fell substantially against the Hamburger reichstaler banco. In 1813 one Danish rigsbankdaler was exchanged for 6 rigsdaler kurant. 5.10. Quotations on Gdańsk Quotations on Gdańsk were quite common in the 18th century. Gdańsk was one of the largest cities on the Baltic seaboard and handled most of Poland’s maritime trade via the river Vistula. In Poland in the late 17th century both good and bad coins circulated, forming parallel currencies. While the ducat was worth around 7.5 Polish florins (Gulden or złoty) in better coins, it was worth up to 18 Polish florins in inferior coins. 50 The city of Gdańsk used the better coins, which was especially important in foreign trade, and that is the currency that was quoted in Stockholm. The florin was divided into 30 grosz[y] in better coins. The best material exists for the period 1740–76 and is presented in Table A5.19. Figure 5.7 presents the Gdańsk florin in Swedish marks kopparmynt and Hamburger reichstaler banco for the same period. It shows that the value of both Gdańsk and Swedish currencies fell relative to the stable silver currency of Hamburg during the investigated period. Between 1750 and 1765 the fine silver content of the Gdańsk florin decreased, from around six to four grams, due to the debasement of coins. 51 Since the Swedish currency deteriorated even more, the value of the Polish florin in marks kopparmynt increased somewhat between 1740 and 1776. Although the value of the Gdańsk florin doubled in Swedish currency between 1755 and 1762 in con- nection with the high inflation in Sweden, later the Gdańsk florin fell back to lower levels. There are also some quotations from the periods 1675–81 and 1777–81, although not on the florin, but on a taler unit. After 1781 quotations on Gdańsk no longer appear in the Swedish sources, reflecting the decline of Gdańsk as an important sea- port. 50 Furtak (1935, p. 45). 51 Furtak (1935, pp. 47 and 77). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 258 Figure 5.7. Gdańsk forin in Swedish marks kopparmynt and Hamburger reichstaler banco 1740–76 (estimated spot rates). Sources: Table 5.19 and Table 5.21. 5.11. Quotations on Swedish Pomerania Western Pomerania and a strip of Eastern Pomerania, including the cities of Stral- sund och Greifswald and the island of Rügen, belonged to Sweden in the period 1637–1814 (formally from 1648). After the Napoleonic wars, Swedish Pomerania was ceded to Denmark in exchange for Norway in 1814 and was transferred to Prus- sia in 1815. Swedish Pomerania minted its own coins and had its own currency sys- tem, from 1690 adopting the Leipzig Money Convention (although some deviations occurred from this Convention). The taler was the main unit of account, and was of a lower fine silver content than the original reichstaler. Swedish notes were not accepted in Swedish Pomerania. 52 Since Swedish Pomerania had its own currency system, the Pomeranian taler was often quoted at the foreign exchange in Sweden. Table A5.20 presents monthly exchange rates for the period 1740–1800, and Figure 5.8 the Pomeranian taler in Swedish marks kopparmynt and Hamburger reichstaler banco for the same period. Most notable in Figure 5.8 is the falling exchange rate on the Swedish-Pomera- nian taler in the early 1760s, and the subsequent appreciation. This was caused by 52 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, pp. 194–200). 0 5 10 15 20 25 30 1740 1744 1748 1752 1756 1760 1764 1768 1772 1776 0 0.05 0.1 0.15 0.2 0.25 0.3 Gdańsk florin in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) Gdańsk florin in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 259 rapid debasement of the Pomeranian taler to finance Sweden’s war efforts 53 during the Seven Years’ War (1756–63) that pitted Prussia, Britain and some smaller Ger- man states against Sweden, Austria, France, Russia and Saxony. The value of the Pomeranian taler decreased from, on average, 0.74 Hamburger reichstaler banco in 1758 to, on average, 0.17 reichstaler banco in 1764/5. The Pomeranian taler even fell in value relative to the weak Swedish currency. However, with the minting of better coins, by April-May 1766 the exchange rate had increased again to 0.69 reichs- taler banco. In 1788 it stood at 0.77 reichstaler banco, the same as before the infla- tionary episode. 5.12. Summary Foreign currencies played a crucial role in Sweden. Most of the domestic currency units were, in fact, originally imported. In this study, primary data on monthly exchange rates are presented on Hamburg (reichstaler banco), Amsterdam (rijks- 53 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968, p. 197). Wiesen bei Greifswald, 1820–2, by Caspar David Friedrich (1774–1840), a German Romantic landscape painter. Greifswald, where Friedrich was born, belonged to Sweden from 1631 to 1814 (formally from 1648). However, Swedish Pomerania retained its own currency, which was quoted in Stockholm. Source: http://upload.wikimedia.org/wikipedia/commons/b/be/Caspar_David_Friedrich_043.jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 260 daalder courant), London (pound), Paris (livres tournois/franc), Gdańsk (florin/gul- den/złoty = 30 groszy), Copenhagen (rigsdaler kurant = 96 skillings) and Swedish Pomerania (taler) in 1660–1803. All of these foreign currencies were courant money, i.e. linked to actual coins, except for the Hamburg reichstaler banco, which was bank money. Bank money existed also in Amsterdam, but the quotations in Sweden were on its courant money. Since direct data are missing for some years, cross rates are used to fill in some gaps for the annual series. The primary data are bills of various durations, in the 18th century mostly 67- and 90-day bills. To estimate spot rates, an assumption must be made of a shadow interest rate on these bills, which is problematic since no such rate is known for the 18th century. Only the monthly data 1660–85 are of sufficiently good quality for estimating reliable spot rates for this period. In the period 1662–9 the estimated median shadow interest rate on bills of exchange was as high as 12.5 per cent. This result deviates significantly from the shadow interest rates of 3–5 per cent in the 18th century recently estimated by Flandreau, Galimard, Jobst, and Marco. It is, there- fore, likely that interest rates decreased substantially between the 17th and 18th cen- turies. Figure 5.8. Swedish Pomeranian taler in Swedish marks kopparmynt (= 1/72 riksdaler specie 1777–88 and 1/72 riksdaler riksgälds 1789–1800) and Hamburger reichstaler banco 1740–1800 (estimated spot rates). Sources: Tables A5.20, A5.21 and A5.23. 0 10 20 30 40 50 60 70 80 90 0 0.1 0.2 0.3 0.4 0.5 0.6 0.7 0.8 0.9 1740 1750 1760 1770 1780 1790 1800 Pomeranian taler in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) Pomeranian taler in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 261 The quoted currencies were all based on precious metals, as was the Swedish riks- daler (specie), which implies that the par values between those currencies were deter- mined by their fine metal contents. The actual market rate deviated from these par relations, and on some occasions, at times of monetary instability, the deviation could be quite large. Compared with its neighbours, Sweden had a weak currency in the 18th century. The quoted currencies on Hamburg, Amsterdam and London were relatively stable in the long term, and the Swedish currency fell substantially relative to these three currencies. Sweden experienced substantial inflation during the 18th century. The Hamburg and Amsterdam rix-dollars contained (more or less) fixed amounts of fine silver, and functioned as important reference points for the monetary system of Swe- den. The Hamburg reichstaler banco was even used as a proxy for the value of the riksdaler specie coin. The French livres tournois (franc from 1795), the Danish rigs- daler kurant and the Polish florin were also more stable than the Swedish currency in the 18th century, although the Danish rigsdaler kurant was significantly devalued after 1807. The Swedish-Pomeranian taler fell substantially against the Swedish cur- rency in 1758–65 but was also quite stable in other periods. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 262 Appendix A5: Summary tables Table A5.1. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1660 17.63 17.63 17.72 17.5 17.63 17.18 17.12 17.7 17.5 17.67 17.89 17.71 1661 18.33 18.38 18.38 18.39 18.39 18.39 18.39 18.39 18.19 17.89 17.84 18.14 1662 18.34 18.38 18.49 18.49 18.03 17.92 18.05 18 18.14 18.3 18.18 18.25 1663 18.44 18.57 18.39 18.34 18.43 18.34 18.72 18.95 18.95 19.55 19.56 20.14 1664 21.45 21.4 20.04 20.05 19.67 19.24 19.55 19.86 19.91 19.06 20.45 20.93 1665 20.91 21.15 21.28 20.59 20.2 20.42 20.57 21 21 21.13 21.07 21.09 1666 21.18 20.95 21 20.91 20.93 20.98 20.88 21.05 21 20.93 20.7 20.4 1667 20.71 20.77 20.96 21.01 20.87 20.93 20.96 21.01 20.96 20.94 20.96 19.19 1668 21.21 20.9 21 21.13 21.13 21.25 21 20.82 20.77 20.75 20.8 20.82 1669 20.45 20.55 20.65 20.77 20.43 20.43 20.41 20.62 20.83 20.52 20.68 21 1670 20.82 20.84 21.04 21.07 20.87 20.22 20.24 20.5 20.8 21.07 21.09 21.13 1671 21 21 21.05 21.02 20.84 20.82 21.05 21.05 21 21.05 21.13 21 1672 20.91 20.88 21 20.89 21 20.75 20.94 20.97 20.89 20.97 20.97 20.97 1673 20.99 21.12 21.15 21.15 21 20.75 20.6 20.78 20.97 21.1 21.07 21.13 1674 21.38 21.51 21.26 21.26 21.26 21 21 21.07 21.57 22.14 22.26 22.39 1675 22.39 22.14 22.29 22.1 22.04 22.04 22.47 23.48 24.02 23.73 23.14 22.77 1676 22.66 22.51 22.56 22.66 22.73 22.39 22.76 23.14 23.35 23.52 24.02 24.18 1677 23.79 23.92 24.17 24.3 24.3 24.36 24.4 25.09 25.22 25.41 25.53 25.53 1678 24.9 25.41 24.97 24.78 24.78 24.53 24.36 24.31 24.27 24.24 24.27 24.24 1679 24.4 24.36 25.03 25.28 25.16 25.66 25.94 26.62 27.17 27.07 27.1 27.7 1680 27.88 27.9 27.97 28.14 27.29 26.92 26.79 27.14 27.62 27.39 27.52 27.82 1681 27.88 27.88 28.05 27.42 26.57 26.32 26.19 25.49 25.28 25.28 25.16 25.03 1682 24.99 24.74 25.11 25.52 25.02 24.99 25.03 24.74 24.92 24.61 24.44 25.12 1683 25.06 25.24 25.11 25.19 24.65 24.71 24.71 24.37 24.11 25.12 25.11 25.25 1684 25.31 25.52 25.25 25.06 24.86 24.99 24.87 24.87 24.74 24.8 24.68 24.75 1685 24.93 25.06 25.02 24.87 24.87 24.84 24.67 24.61 24.61 24.86 24.94 24.96 Sources: Kammarkollegiet, oordnade handlingar, no. 444 (Riksarkivet). Te data have been col- lected and calculated in cooperation with Martin Sutinen. Te monthly data are based on bills of 8 days to 2 months, assuming an interest rate of 12.5 per cent. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 263 Table A5.2. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1705 27 27.44 27.19 27.31 27.31 25.75 27.38 27.44 1706 27.44 27.31 27.31 26.94 27 27.06 27 26.94 26.81 26.81 26.5 1707 26.94 26.81 1722 37 37.13 37 37 36.88 36.88 37 37 1723 36.88 36.75 36.63 1727 33.75 34.88 34.5 34.94 35.13 35.38 35.75 1728 35.88 35.25 35.5 35.75 35 35 35.75 37.75 35.63 35.88 35.5 1729 36.5 36 35.5 34.75 1733 35.25 35.25 35.38 35.75 35.63 35 34.94 35.25 35.38 35 35.44 35.13 1734 35.38 35.25 35.56 35.69 35.44 35.31 35.06 35.19 35.38 35.38 35.5 35.31 1735 35.69 35.88 36 36.06 36.06 36.19 35.75 35.81 35.38 35.19 35.25 35.63 1740 37.13 37.19 37.13 37.31 37.25 36.5 37.06 37 37.13 37.19 1741 37.31 37.31 37.38 37.19 37.25 37.06 36.81 37.44 37.94 39 39.75 40.38 1742 41.06 40.44 40.63 41.25 41.13 40.94 40.75 39.5 37.38 37.38 38.19 38.25 1743 38.38 38.13 38.38 39.63 40.75 40.25 39 40.75 41.38 42.38 43.13 44.06 1744 43.13 43 42.75 43.75 44.63 43 43.25 43.25 44.38 44.94 45.25 45.5 1745 45.75 45.5 46.38 43.63 41.25 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 1746 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 1747 40 40 40 44.88 44.5 45.13 45.25 44.5 44.63 44.63 46.5 1748 46.38 45 45 45.13 44.38 43.56 43.44 43.63 44 44.13 44.13 44.38 1749 44.5 44.13 43.38 43 42.75 42.75 43.38 43.5 1750 43.63 43.38 43.13 42.5 41.88 41.88 41.69 41 40.25 40.31 40.5 40.5 1751 40.38 40.25 40.5 40.88 40.81 40.63 40.38 40.13 39.63 1752 39.88 39.38 39.38 38.75 38.38 37.5 36.38 36.88 36.75 37.38 37.88 38.25 1753 38.13 38.13 38.13 37.75 37.63 37.63 37.94 38.13 38.06 38 38.25 38.63 1754 38.63 38.63 38.63 38.63 38.63 38.69 38.88 38.81 38.81 38.81 38.81 38.81 1755 38.81 38.81 38.81 38.81 38.5 38.63 38.5 38.06 37.81 38.13 39 40 1756 41.38 41.88 40.75 39.38 39.5 39.63 39.63 39.63 39.38 39.38 41.13 41.88 1757 42.25 40.88 40.25 40.63 41.88 43.38 44.75 46.5 46.88 46.88 48 49.63 1758 49.63 53.13 55.5 54.13 53.38 52 50.38 49.5 49.25 49.25 49.25 49 1759 48.63 48.25 47.88 47.5 47.38 48.75 49.25 49.25 51 52.38 53.13 54.13 1760 56.75 59.75 61 58.13 59.75 60.13 63 65.88 66.88 68 70.13 73.38 1761 73.75 72.25 73.5 74.13 71.75 71.13 71.75 71.5 69.75 69.13 72 74.25 1762 73.63 74 75.5 77.63 77.75 80.5 88.25 89.25 92.88 102.6 101.8 91.5 1763 84.5 81.88 84 81 80 79 75 76.5 83 90 86.25 85.5 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 264 Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1764 84.5 81.5 81.5 82.25 83.5 85.25 84.75 86.5 92.25 93.5 92 86 1765 82.75 82.75 84.75 85.13 85.13 91.5 90.5 88.5 86.5 83.5 80.5 79.5 1766 77.75 77 70 70 70 70 70 70 70 68.75 68.25 67.25 1767 66 66 65.75 65.25 64.5 62.75 57.75 48 43.5 43.5 43.25 42.75 1768 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 1769 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 42 1770 56 55.5 55 55 55 55 60.5 64.5 63.75 65 64.5 65 1771 65 65 65.25 63.5 61 61 62.25 61.5 62 62.5 63.5 64.25 1772 64.5 66 67 68.75 68.75 68.5 71 73.25 71 70.25 70 73 1773 73.75 82 81 81 81.5 81.5 80.5 79.38 80.13 80.38 80.63 1774 80.5 80.5 80.38 80.13 77.75 75.5 73.5 72.38 72.5 72.75 73.13 73.25 1775 71 70.5 70.13 69.38 68.63 68.25 68.38 68.63 69 69 69 69.13 1776 69.13 68.88 69.13 69 68.88 68.88 69 69 69 69 69.13 69.63 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on two- month bills. Table A5.3. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1777 46.33 46.42 46.25 46.58 46.58 46.58 46.5 45.5 45.25 45.33 46.5 46.67 1778 46.67 47 46.83 46.29 46.29 45 44.75 44.83 45.08 45.58 46.75 46.58 1779 46.63 46.42 45.25 45.58 45.58 45.71 45.29 45.63 45.58 46.29 47.13 47.13 1780 47 47 46.67 46 45.58 45 45.58 45.71 45.42 46 47.08 47.08 1781 46.75 45.75 45.58 45.17 45.08 45.88 45.42 45.13 44.92 44.5 45.58 44.58 1782 45.17 45.5 45 45 45.13 45.63 45.13 45.5 45.42 45.42 46 46.13 1783 45.58 46 45.75 45.75 45.79 46.88 47.17 47.79 47.79 47.83 48 48 1784 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 50 49.25 52 53 1785 51.25 49.13 49.42 49.33 48.88 48.71 49.5 49.5 49.88 49.58 51.25 49.75 1786 48.75 47.75 47.5 47.38 47 47 46.63 47.13 47.63 47.42 48 48 1787 47.42 46.63 46.29 46.38 46.29 46.21 46.25 46.25 45.88 46.5 46.75 46.88 1788 46.5 46.75 46.5 46.13 46 46.75 46.88 47.5 46.88 46.5 46.75 1789 47 48 47.75 48.63 48.5 49.75 51 49.13 51.25 55.75 55.25 1790 53.5 55 56.5 54.5 55 56 56.75 54 54.5 55.5 54.5 54.5 1791 53.75 53.5 53.38 53.25 52.5 51.5 50 50.58 50.42 49.25 49.5 49.5 1792 49 49 50 50 50.75 51.75 50.88 51 52.25 52.25 52.25 52.25 1793 52.25 53 51.88 53.75 54.5 54.5 53.75 52.88 54.5 55.5 54.75 57.5 1794 57.25 52 51.25 51.38 50.75 50.88 51 49.5 49.25 49 49 48 1795 48 48 48 48 47 47 47 47 47 47 47 47 Table A5.2 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 265 Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1796 47 47 47 47 47 47.5 47 47 47 47.5 48 48 1797 49.25 49.13 49.63 50.5 50.13 50.13 50 51.5 50.75 50.25 51 51.5 1798 53.5 50 50.5 50.5 1799 50.5 52 53 52.75 52 53 53 52.38 51 52 53.5 1800 54 52 51 51 51 50 49.5 49.5 49.75 1801 50 52.75 52.75 52.5 52.5 52.75 52 51 51.25 51.5 51.13 51.5 1802 53 53 52 51.5 50.5 51.5 50.5 50.63 49.5 49 49.25 50 1803 50.5 50.33 50.67 51.5 51 52.21 52.25 52 48.5 49.25 48.88 50.5 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month fgures, and mostly based on two-month bills. Table A5.4. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1797 51.25 52.25 51.5 53 53 54 53.75 55.5 1798 56.88 56 54 53.75 53.25 51 51 53 52.5 54.25 56 69.5 1799 67.75 71 72 74 73.75 76 75.5 76 74.5 77.5 82 1800 75.25 72.25 68 69.25 69.75 70 69.75 69.75 70.75 1801 69.75 79.5 73.75 74.25 73.75 74.5 73.25 75 76.75 78 77.88 77.88 1802 79.5 76.75 76.75 75.25 74.5 75.25 75.75 75.25 73.75 73.13 76.25 75.75 1803 75.75 76.25 76 77.13 77.88 79.75 78.75 78.25 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month fgures, and mostly based on two-month bills. Table A5.5. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1660 17.2 17.33 17.02 17.12 16.56 16.31 16.43 16.93 16.98 16.98 17.02 17.25 1661 17.42 17.63 17.84 17.92 17.92 18.14 18.09 18.09 17.5 17.69 17.37 17.62 1662 17.7 17.86 17.99 18 17.65 17.31 17.33 17.5 17.55 17.81 17.94 18.07 1663 18.27 18.3 18.28 18.14 18.09 18.31 18.75 18.82 18.83 19.05 19.13 19.62 1664 21.38 21.45 20.75 19.8 19.39 19.32 19.1 19.39 19.2 19.38 20.1 20.1 1665 20.42 20.34 20.26 20.45 20.22 20.17 20.32 20.40 20.66 20.68 20.68 21 1666 20.3 20.28 20.28 20.37 20.57 20.68 20.91 20.71 20.25 20.28 19.91 20.2 1667 20.2 20.17 20.17 20.17 20.2 20.21 20.17 20.15 20.14 20.12 20.2 20.17 1668 20.21 20.17 20.21 20.23 20.2 20.4 20.21 20.07 20.13 20.17 20.07 20.05 Table A5.3 (cont). Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling banco, 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 266 Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1669 20.14 20 20.32 20.4 20.12 20.19 19.89 19.68 19.82 19.42 20.17 20.42 1670 20.5 20.65 20.96 20.94 20.2 20.09 19.7 19.84 20.19 20.56 20.69 20.44 1671 20.06 20.05 20.2 19.94 19.69 19.75 20.12 20.12 20.12 20.20 20.12 19.94 1672 19.87 19.93 20.18 20.34 20.25 20.20 20.11 20.05 20 20.28 20.75 20.63 1673 20.59 21.09 20.18 20.74 20.7 20.59 20.27 20.27 20.08 20.05 20.57 20.27 1674 20.44 20.56 20.52 20.2 20.2 20.03 20 20.12 20.34 20.58 20.38 20.38 1675 20.63 20.95 20.85 20.5 20.55 20.5 20.5 21.44 21.63 21.46 21.13 20.69 1676 20.55 20.7 21.15 20.65 20.45 20.5 21.7 21.56 22.04 22.33 22.83 23.05 1677 22.76 22.89 23.23 23.33 23.29 23.29 23.65 23.91 24.31 24.46 24.18 23.96 1678 24.42 24.36 23.86 23.79 23.73 23.5 23.35 23.35 23.32 23.16 23.26 23.12 1679 23.29 23.79 24.05 24.36 24.34 25.16 25.22 25.66 25.87 26.16 26 26.56 1680 26.79 26.94 27.07 27.19 26.12 25.81 25.53 26.51 26.37 26.49 26.12 26.82 1681 26.98 26.85 27 26.12 25.44 25.37 25.11 24.61 24.24 24.15 23.98 24.23 1682 24.31 24.01 24.31 24.61 24.11 23.98 23.89 23.73 23.48 23.1 23.1 24.05 1683 23.67 24.24 24.05 24.11 24.05 23.08 23.1 24.24 22.91 23.02 23.31 23.69 1684 23.83 24.02 23.79 23.67 23.52 23.44 23.44 23.61 23.5 23.35 23.35 23.51 1685 23.61 23.54 23.73 23.35 23.35 23.31 23.06 23.1 23.23 23.1 23.23 23.85 Sources: Kammarkollegiet, oordnade handlingar, no. 444 (Riksarkivet). Te data have been col- lected and calculated in cooperation with Göran Hansson. Te monthly data are based on bills of 8 days to 2 months, assuming an interest rate of 12.5 per cent. Table A5.6. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1705 25.75 26.44 26 26.13 26.06 26 26.19 26.31 1706 26.13 26.19 26.06 25.94 25.88 25.94 25.94 25.94 25.81 25.81 25.5 1707 25.94 25.81 1724 33.75 34.5 34 33.75 33.63 33.75 33.75 33.63 33.75 33.5 1725 33.88 34 1726 1727 33.63 35 35 35 1728 35.5 35 35 35.5 35.25 34.5 35 35 34.88 34.75 35 34.38 1729 34.63 34.5 35.13 34.75 32.88 32.88 1733 34.25 34.38 34.56 34.88 34.88 34.25 34.44 34.94 34.81 34.38 34.75 34.38 1734 34.88 34.81 35 35.25 35.06 35 34.56 34.94 35.13 35.06 35.13 1735 34.19 34.5 34.69 1736 34.88 35.38 35.69 35.88 35.81 35.75 35.38 35.25 34.44 34.5 34.25 34.69 Table A5.5 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates). 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 267 Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1740 35.44 35.56 35.63 35.69 35.75 35.13 35.5 35.56 35.81 35.75 1741 35.88 36 35.88 35.75 35.88 35.75 35.5 36.25 36.69 37.5 37.75 39 1742 39.38 39.19 39.19 39.63 39.38 39.13 39.19 37.75 35.88 35.88 36.25 36.31 1743 36.56 36.88 36.88 37.88 38.88 40 38.25 38.5 39.5 40.38 41.13 42.25 1744 41.31 41.13 40.81 41.75 42.63 41.13 41.5 41.5 42.69 43.13 43.5 43.75 1745 43.81 43.75 44.38 42 39.5 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 1746 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.25 1747 38.25 38.25 38.25 43.88 43.63 44.13 44.38 43.75 43.75 43.88 45.63 1748 45.13 44.13 44.38 44 43 42.38 42 41.88 41.88 41.88 42 42 1749 42.5 42 41.5 41.25 41 40.88 41.13 41 1750 41 41 40.88 40.5 39.88 39.94 39.69 38.88 38.38 38.25 38.25 38.25 1751 38.13 38.13 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.13 37.88 37.88 37.38 1752 37.63 37.25 36.88 36.63 36.13 35.25 34.25 34.63 34.75 35.25 35.75 36 1753 35.88 35.94 35.88 35.69 35.63 35.38 35.69 35.81 35.63 35.75 35.88 36 1754 36.13 36.13 36.13 36.13 36.06 36.19 36.13 36 36 36.06 36.13 36.06 1755 36 36.06 36.06 36.06 36.06 36.13 36.13 36.13 36.06 36.13 36.88 38.25 1756 39.38 39.88 39.25 38.13 38.25 38.5 38.63 38.63 38.5 38.63 40.5 41.38 1757 42 41.13 40.5 40.69 42.25 44.63 46.13 47.63 47.88 47.88 48.5 49.75 1758 50.44 54.13 56.38 55.13 55 53 51.88 51.13 51 51 50.88 50.63 1759 50.38 50.25 50.5 50.63 50.88 52.25 52.63 52 52.5 53.63 54.25 55.25 1760 57.38 60.75 62.5 59.5 59.75 58.5 60 62.38 62.5 63 64.63 67.75 1761 68.13 67.25 68.75 69 67 66.88 67.88 67.13 66 65.13 67.75 69.25 1762 68.88 70 71.5 74 75 79 86.75 85 93.63 102.5 101 89.5 1763 83 80.75 82.75 80 78.75 78 74 75.75 82.25 84.5 83.5 83 1764 80.63 77 77.75 78.25 79.5 81.25 81 82.75 88.25 90 88.5 82 1765 79.25 79.25 80.5 81 81 87.5 86 85 83.5 80.5 77.5 76.5 1766 75 74 69 69 69 69 69.5 70 70 69 69 67.25 1767 66 66 66 66 66 64 58.5 49 44.5 44.25 43.75 42.25 1768 41.38 41.63 41.63 41.75 41.75 41.75 41.75 41.13 41.25 41.75 40.5 41.75 1769 41.75 41.75 40.63 41.75 40.38 41.75 41.75 41.75 41.75 41.75 1770 54 53.5 53 53 53 53 58 61.75 60.5 61.5 60.75 61 1771 61 61 61 59 58.5 58 59.5 58.75 59 59.5 60 60 1772 60.5 62.25 63 65 64.75 64.75 67 69 67 66.25 68.25 69 1773 69.25 78 77.5 78.25 78.5 78.25 77.5 76.38 76.38 76.25 76 1774 75.88 76 76 76 73.75 71.5 70.38 69 69 69.13 69.13 69.13 1775 67 66.75 66.38 66 65.5 65.25 65.25 65.25 65.25 65.38 65.25 65.25 1776 65.13 64.88 65.25 65.25 65.25 65.13 65.13 64.88 64.75 64.75 64.38 64.75 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on two- month bills. Table A5.6 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 268 Table A5.7. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1777 43.25 43.33 43.33 43.75 44 43.83 43.17 42.25 42.25 42.33 43.17 43.5 1778 43.33 44 44 43.33 43.25 42.17 42.08 42.75 43 43 43.88 44 1779 43.5 44.13 43.75 43.63 44.08 44 43.58 43.5 43.75 44.13 44.67 43.79 1780 45 45.08 45.08 44.13 44 43 43.42 43.42 43.42 43.75 44.5 44.17 1781 43.88 44 43.75 43.13 43.17 43.88 43.5 43.17 42.63 42.08 42.33 41.38 1782 41.88 42.25 42 42 42.25 42.38 42.21 42.08 41.5 40.88 41.5 40.75 1783 41.17 42.58 42.5 42 41.75 42.75 43.33 44.71 44.79 45.25 45.5 45.33 1784 45.33 45.33 45.33 45.5 45.5 45.5 46 46.5 46.5 46.33 48 48.5 1785 47.25 46 46 46 46 45.75 46.58 46.63 46.88 46.67 48.38 47 1786 46.63 45.5 45 45.5 45.25 45 44.63 44.5 44.75 44.5 45 45 1787 44.42 44 43.58 43.58 43.25 43.33 43.21 43.13 43 43.75 44 44 1788 43.42 43.75 43.75 43.38 43 43.5 42.88 43.67 42.75 42.5 42.42 1789 43.38 44.88 44.5 45.63 45.5 46.81 47 46.5 48.75 52.5 51.38 1790 50 52.13 53.5 52.25 52 53 53.75 51 51.5 52.5 51.5 51 1791 50.5 50.5 50 50.25 50 49.5 49.25 48.58 48.42 47 47.13 47.5 1792 47 47.25 48 48 48.5 49.5 48.75 49 50 49.75 49.75 49.75 1793 50 51 50.5 52.25 53 51.75 52.5 51.25 53.13 52.08 51.13 53.5 1794 53.25 48.25 47.75 48 47.75 47.38 47 45 45.5 45 45 46 1795 47 46 45.75 42 42 43 42.5 42.5 41.75 1796 41 43 42 42.5 42 42.33 41.88 41.25 40.33 41.25 41.75 42 1797 43.63 43 45 45.5 45 45 45.5 46.25 47 46.75 47.5 1798 51 45 44 1799 46.5 46 46 46 46.63 47.5 47.5 47 48 1800 50.5 48 47.75 47 47 46 46 46 1801 50 47.5 47 46.75 47 47 1802 47 47.63 47.38 47 47.13 47 46.5 45.75 45.88 46.5 1803 48 48.5 49 48.5 47.75 45.5 46 45.25 46.13 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month fgures, and mostly based on two-month bills. For monthly exchange rates after 1803, see Chapter 6. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 269 Table A5.8. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1797 46.5 48 47 48 49 50.5 50 51.38 1798 53.38 52 50 51.25 50.75 48 48 49 50.5 49.75 51 61.5 1799 60.5 63 63.75 65 64.75 67 69 69 68 71 71 1800 72 68.5 64 66 65.5 66 65.5 65.5 65.75 1801 64.25 74 67 69 69.5 70 68.25 69.5 70.5 72.25 72.38 71.75 1802 72.25 70.5 70.5 71.5 70.5 71.25 70.75 70.25 69.25 69.25 71.5 71.25 1803 70.25 72 71.25 73.25 73.25 75.25 74.88 72.38 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month fgures, and mostly based on two-month bills. Table A5.9. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in daler kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1705 27 27 27.13 27.31 27.31 27.31 27.38 27.56 1706 27.56 27.63 27.44 27.5 27.5 27.38 27.31 27.19 27.25 27.81 28 1707 28.13 27.88 1727 37.5 36.5 37.5 37.25 37 37.38 37.88 38 1728 38.5 38.38 38.38 38.5 37.38 37 37.38 37 37.13 37.13 37.13 36.63 1729 37.25 37 37.13 37.5 36.88 33.38 33.38 1733 37.25 37.25 37.5 37.75 37.75 37.25 37.25 37.38 37.38 37.31 37.88 37.88 1734 38.38 38.75 39 39.38 39.25 39.25 38.81 38.88 39.19 39.25 39.38 1735 38.5 38.94 38.75 1736 39.5 39.25 39.63 39.56 39.31 39.13 38.63 38.38 37.63 37.5 37.63 37.69 1740 39.63 39.63 39.44 39.44 39.31 38.56 38.63 38.88 39.13 39 1741 39.25 39.13 39.19 39.13 39.13 38.75 38.31 39 39.13 39.94 40.63 42.5 1742 42.13 42 41.88 42.63 42.38 42.13 42.25 41.44 39.38 39.13 39.63 39.63 1743 40.38 40.63 41.13 41.25 42.13 41.75 41.19 41.75 42.63 43.5 44.5 46.13 1744 45 44.88 44.31 45.13 46.13 44.38 44.75 45.13 45.63 46.13 46.5 46.88 1745 47.13 47.38 48.63 45.88 44.25 41.5 41.5 41.5 1746 41.5 41.5 41.5 41.5 41.5 41.5 41.5 1747 41.5 41.5 41.5 48.63 48.25 48.63 48.75 48.5 48.5 48.63 50.5 1748 50 48.25 49 48.88 48.25 47.75 47.13 47.5 47.38 47.5 47.75 47.75 1749 48.5 48.13 47.25 46.63 46.38 45.63 45.63 45.63 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 270 Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1750 45.5 45.25 44.88 44.38 43.5 43.13 43.13 42.38 41.63 41.5 42.38 42.5 1751 42.38 42.25 42.13 42.5 42.38 42.38 42.13 41.88 41.5 1752 42.13 41.63 40.88 40.38 39.88 39.25 37.75 38 38.25 38.25 39.13 39.63 1753 39.5 39.13 38.88 38.81 38.5 38.56 38.69 38.88 38.88 39.13 39.38 40 1754 39.88 39.88 39.94 39.88 39.88 40.13 40.06 40 40.13 40.25 40.44 40.44 1755 40.44 40.44 40.63 40.88 40.88 41 41.06 41.06 41 41.06 41.81 42.88 1756 44.25 45 44.13 43.5 42.75 43.63 44.25 43.75 43.75 44 45.5 47.25 1757 47.5 46.75 46 46.25 47.88 48.38 49.38 51.38 51.5 51.5 52.5 53.75 1758 54.25 57 60.5 58.75 58.38 56.5 55.5 54.88 54.88 54.63 54.63 54.75 1759 54.25 54.25 54.5 54.75 54.75 55.88 56.63 58.25 58.38 59.5 62.13 1760 62.75 64.25 67.63 65.5 65 63.75 64.75 67 67.25 67.25 69 72.5 1761 72.5 71.88 72.5 73.13 72 69.75 70.5 70.5 68.75 68.5 71.5 75.5 1762 74.5 76 78.25 81 81.63 84.38 92.25 95.75 100 110.5 108 96.5 1763 89.88 86.75 87.75 85 83.25 82.25 78 79.5 79.5 93 90 89.25 1764 86.75 85.5 86.75 86.75 89 90.5 91.5 93 98.75 100 99.5 92.5 1765 90.5 90.25 93 93.5 98.63 96 94.75 93 89 89.5 84 1766 83 83 76 76 76 76.5 76.5 76.5 74 75.13 73 1767 72 71.88 71.88 72 71.75 69.13 64 52.25 48.75 47.5 46.75 45.25 1768 46 46 45.38 46.25 44.5 1769 1770 56.13 57 56.38 56.5 66.5 65.25 64.5 65.5 64.75 65.75 1771 65.5 66 66 64.25 63.25 62 63.5 62.75 62.75 63.75 63.5 64 1772 67 67.25 71 69.5 69.5 72 74.5 72.75 72.5 74.5 76.5 1773 67.38 86.63 87.25 87.5 86.5 85.5 86.13 86 86 1774 86.5 86.5 86.5 84 81.25 79 77.25 77.38 77.38 77.25 77.38 1775 75.5 75 74.75 73.38 72.5 72 72 72 72.25 72.38 72.38 72 1776 72.06 71.75 72.13 71.88 71.63 71.25 70.25 70.38 70.25 70.13 70.06 70.19 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on three-month bills. Table A5.10. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1777 3.91 3.91 3.917 3.931 3.925 3.901 3.854 3.771 3.708 3.742 3.818 3.859 1778 3.859 3.888 3.927 3.953 3.953 3.938 3.948 3.979 3.979 3.99 4.063 4.099 1779 4.208 4.224 4.146 4.188 4.182 4.135 4.073 4.031 3.927 4.021 4.104 4.146 1780 4.156 4.198 4.194 4.099 4.078 4.042 4.026 4.021 4.021 4.047 4.073 4.052 1781 4.01 3.958 3.917 3.875 3.854 3.823 3.729 3.698 3.625 3.609 3.63 3.589 1782 3.677 3.708 3.698 3.724 3.734 3.75 3.76 3.755 3.708 3.688 3.688 3.688 Table A5.9 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in daler kopparmynt 1705– 76 (not spot rates). 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 271 Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1783 3.724 3.833 3.792 3.776 3.714 3.724 3.75 3.849 3.854 4 4.073 4.125 1784 4.229 4.25 4.281 4.297 4.281 4.344 4.333 4.37 4.406 4.385 4.521 4.688 1785 4.563 4.49 4.484 4.438 4.344 4.375 4.427 4.516 4.521 4.484 4.536 4.5 1786 4.38 4.323 4.333 4.281 4.181 4.104 4.125 4.161 4.167 4.182 4.271 4.26 1787 4.146 4.104 4.104 4.104 4.104 4.073 4.083 4.099 4.109 4.177 4.193 4.229 1788 4.208 4.214 4.245 4.208 4.156 4.177 4.161 4.208 4.151 4.141 4.151 1789 4.255 4.313 4.359 4.391 4.469 4.531 4.604 4.526 4.656 4.917 4.938 1790 5.042 5.083 5.208 5.167 5.25 5.219 5.208 5.167 5.042 5.01 4.917 4.896 1791 4.958 4.917 4.875 4.896 4.854 4.781 4.703 4.703 4.698 4.604 4.484 4.719 1792 4.375 4.458 4.479 4.448 4.438 4.469 4.448 4.448 4.51 4.552 4.583 4.625 1793 4.703 4.786 4.875 5.021 5.125 5.125 5.125 5.083 5.167 5.063 5.219 5.073 1794 5.036 4.818 4.823 4.823 4.75 4.625 4.625 4.5 4.458 4.375 4.313 4.188 1795 4.167 4.125 4.135 4.188 4.021 3.917 3.917 3.875 3.875 3.885 3.938 3.938 1796 3.938 4.01 3.979 4.167 4.104 4.094 4.01 4 4 4.104 4.188 4.25 1797 4.375 4.396 4.417 4.542 4.583 4.604 4.667 4.802 4.948 4.813 4.865 5 1798 4.833 4.833 1799 4.729 4.979 4.917 4.854 4.719 3.854 3.792 1800 4.083 4.125 4.104 4 4.021 4.01 3.938 1801 3.896 4.167 4.271 4.083 4.094 4.083 4.229 4.208 4.156 1802 4.323 4.24 4.208 4.26 4.198 4.219 4.156 4.156 4.24 1803 4.5 4.5 4.438 4.438 4.417 4.417 4.344 4.125 4.167 4.208 4.375 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on three-month bills. Table A5.11. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1797 4.635 4.771 4.724 4.958 5.083 5.083 5.177 5.271 1798 5.271 5.375 5.167 5.203 5.172 4.979 4.958 5.125 5.208 5.208 5.375 6.708 1799 6.49 6.719 6.76 6.938 6.792 6.813 6.75 6.75 6.25 5.917 6.188 1800 5.917 5.833 5.708 5.813 5.729 5.688 5.688 5.688 5.479 1801 5.438 6.146 6.083 5.917 5.958 5.875 6.042 6.146 6.313 6.375 6.354 1802 6.521 6.354 6.323 6.313 6.167 6.271 6.302 6.313 6.25 6.292 6.417 6.448 1803 6.583 6.75 6.708 6.75 6.688 6.792 6.677 6.625 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on three-month bills. Table A5.10 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler banco 1777– 1803 (not spot rates). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 272 Table A5.12. Monthly exchange rates on écu de change (= 3 livres tournois) in marks kopparmynt 1668–85 (estimated spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1668 21.41 1669 21.41 21.41 21.41 21.41 21.41 21.41 1670 21.21 21.31 21.41 21.41 21.41 21.18 21.29 21.29 21.4 1671 21.63 21.21 21.41 21.21 21.31 21.31 21.21 21.31 1672 21.21 21.21 21.21 21.21 21.31 21.18 20.95 20.95 20.95 20.83 1673 20.7 20.7 21.21 21.21 21.15 21.06 21.21 21.06 21.06 21.21 1674 21.21 21.21 21.21 21.21 21.21 21.21 21.56 21.56 21.56 21.4 21.6 21.4 1675 21.56 21.71 21.56 21.56 21.56 22.07 22.07 22.07 22.22 22.22 1676 22.58 22.72 22.72 21.81 20.95 22.2 22.58 23.73 23.73 24.99 1677 24.24 24.24 24.24 24.24 24.74 25.25 25.25 25.49 25.37 1678 25.25 25.25 25.25 25.25 25.25 25.5 25.37 24.73 24.61 24.61 24.61 1679 24.61 24.61 24.74 24.61 24.74 25.11 25.62 25.97 26.13 26.13 26.13 26.89 1680 27.14 27.27 28.02 28.28 28.28 27.14 27.27 27.77 27.53 28.04 28.55 1681 28.28 28.28 27.27 27.07 27.27 27.1 27.14 26.13 25.93 25.25 25.47 1682 25.5 25.25 25.75 26.13 26.13 25.24 24.84 24.73 24.65 24.73 25.25 1683 25.25 25.11 25.4 25.41 24.74 24.74 24.92 24.06 24.73 25.06 25.25 25.12 1684 25.5 25.06 25.16 24.99 24.96 24.74 24.87 24.93 24.8 24.62 24.84 1685 25.15 25.25 24.98 24.73 25.09 24.9 24.73 24.78 24.73 24.74 24.98 25.11 Source: Kammarkollegiet, oordnade handlingar, no. 444 (Riksarkivet). Te monthly data are based on bills of 8 days to 2 months, assuming an interest rate of 12.5 per cent. Table A5.13. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1705 7.25 7.25 7.139 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.25 1706 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.167 7.167 7.167 7.167 7.167 1707 7.25 7.25 1740 7.375 7.5 7.438 7.125 7.125 7.125 7.125 1741 7.125 7.125 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.25 7.5 7.75 1742 7.625 7.563 7.438 7.5 7.5 7.375 1743 7.75 1744 8.75 8.75 1745 9.25 9.25 8.5 1746 1747 7.5 7.5 7.5 8 1748 9.125 9.125 9.125 9.125 8.75 8.75 8.75 8.75 9 9 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 273 Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1749 8.75 8.75 8.5 8.375 8.375 8.375 8.375 8.375 1750 8.375 8.5 8.5 8.5 8.5 8.5 8.5 8.375 8.25 8 8 8 1751 8 8 8 8 8 8 8 8 7.875 1752 7.5 7.5 7.25 1753 7 7.5 7.375 7.5 7.5 1754 7.375 7.375 7.438 7.25 1755 7.5 7.5 7.5 1756 8.5 8.188 7.938 8 8 8 8 8 8 8 8 1757 1758 9.75 9.75 1759 9.75 1760 10.75 11.75 11.75 12 12 12.25 12.5 12.5 1761 14 12.75 12.75 13 13 13 13 13 13.25 1762 13.25 13.5 13.5 14 14 16 16 17 1763 17 17 17 16 16 16.25 1764 18 16.25 15 19 1765 16 18 18 1766 15 15 13.5 1767 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 12.75 12 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 14.5 14.5 1774 14.25 1775 13.06 12.5 12.5 1776 12.5 12.38 12.38 12.94 12.25 12.38 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on three-month bills. Table A5.13 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 274 Table A5.14. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois (franc from 1795) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1777 8.25 8.25 8.25 8.333 8.292 8.333 8.167 8.292 8.292 8.375 1778 8.417 8.333 8.417 8.308 8.333 8.333 8.333 8.375 8.333 8.417 1779 8.417 8 8.25 8.333 8.333 8.417 8.333 1780 8.375 8.25 8.333 8.125 8.333 8.333 8.417 8.333 8.333 1781 8.25 8.333 8.333 8.167 8.167 8.333 8.167 8.167 8.208 8.25 8 7.875 1782 7.75 8 7.875 8 7.917 8.083 8.125 8.083 8.083 8.042 7.875 1783 7.917 8 7.875 8 8 8.167 8.167 8.25 8.25 8.25 8.75 8.833 1784 9.042 8.917 9.292 9.219 8.875 9.167 9.042 9.292 9.208 9.208 9.333 9.417 1785 9.167 8.75 8.625 8.417 8.625 8.375 8.542 8.75 8.625 8.75 8.792 8.75 1786 8.5 8.667 8.5 8.5 8.417 8.458 8.417 8.167 8.25 8.333 8.333 8.5 1787 8.5 8.25 8.083 8.5 8.5 8.125 8.167 8.083 8.125 8.208 8.25 8.229 1788 8.25 8.25 8.125 8.167 8.083 8.125 8.25 8.375 1789 8.25 8.25 8.167 8.375 8.5 8.667 8.375 8.417 9.083 8.917 1790 8.833 9 9.5 9.417 9.375 9.375 9.75 9.333 9.333 9.333 1791 9 9 9 8.833 8.75 8 7.917 8 8 1792 7.5 6.875 6 6 6 6.167 6.333 7 7 1793 7 6 1794 7 1795 1796 1797 9 9 1798 1799 8.5 1800 1801 9.875 1802 10 8 9 9.5 1803 9.25 9.75 8.5 9.833 8.667 8.667 8.667 8.5 8.667 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on three-month bills. Underlined data = exchange rates on Bourdeaux. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 275 Table A5.15. Monthly exchange rates on franc in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1798 10 9.5 1799 13 12.67 14 14 1800 13.75 12 12.71 12.75 12.75 1801 12.5 13.33 13.5 14 13.38 13.67 14 14 15 14.5 1802 14.5 13.25 13.25 13.25 13.5 12.79 12.75 13.38 13.13 1803 13.04 14 13.5 14.13 13.75 14.75 14 14 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates, and mostly based on three-month bills. Table A5.16. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurant- banken notes) in marks kopparmynt 1741–67 (not spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1741 31.5 31.5 31.5 31.5 31.5 31.5 1752 38 38 1753 32.75 1754 1755 34 1760 56 54 54 55 1761 1762 1763 66 66 1764 66 65 66 65 68 72 72 1765 64 1766 50 1767 50 50 50 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 276 Table A5.17. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurantbanken notes) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1780 36 37 1781 36 1782 35.5 36 1783 34 35 37 37.33 37 37 1784 36.5 37.5 36 36.5 36 38 1785 37 36.75 37 36.5 36.38 36.75 36.75 36.75 37 36.5 37 1786 36.5 35.75 36 35.5 34.5 35.38 35.5 1787 35 34.25 34.25 34 34 34 33.04 1788 33.25 33 33.5 33 32.25 32.5 1789 31.75 32.13 33 33 33.5 35.5 35.75 1790 37 35 36 37 37.25 38 40 40 1791 40 40.25 41 40.5 39 36.25 37.5 38.5 37 38 1792 36.75 37 38 38 38.5 38 38.13 39.25 39.75 39.5 40 1793 39.75 40 42 41 42 42.5 1794 40.5 42 41.5 41 1795 39 40.75 39 39.75 39 39 40 39.5 39.75 39.25 39.5 1796 39.5 39 39 39 39.5 40 38.88 38.5 38.5 39.5 40.25 1797 40.5 41 40.75 40.5 41 43 40.5 43 42 42.13 42 43.75 1798 1799 40 42.5 41 1800 1801 38 38 37 36.63 1802 36 34.5 34 1803 37 37 36 33.33 34.83 34.75 34 34.5 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates. Table A5.18. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in courant- money) in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates). Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1798 45.75 46.25 45 44.75 44.5 41.25 42.63 43 43.75 43 45.25 56.5 1799 55.25 55.75 56.25 56.75 56.25 58.5 58.25 58 56 60.5 64 1800 59 55 55 57.25 55 55 54.25 54.5 54 1801 52 57 54.75 55.25 53.5 53.38 53.25 54.63 54.38 54.5 55.5 54.5 1802 55.5 54.75 54.38 53.5 51.75 53.25 52.25 51.75 51 51 52.5 52 1803 53.88 56.13 55.75 56.5 55.5 56 54.25 51.88 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 277 Table A5.19. Monthly exchange rates on Gdańsk forin/gulden/złoty (= 30 grosz) in marks kopparmynt 1740–76 (not spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 1740 9 9. 5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 1741 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.438 9.438 9.438 9.5 9.625 9.75 10 1742 10 9.75 9.75 1743 9.75 9 9.625 9.875 10.5 10.25 11.25 1744 11 10.75 10.75 1745 9.75 1746 9.75 9.75 9.75 11.5 11.5 11.5 1747 1748 12 12 12 12 12 11.38 11.38 11.5 11.5 11.5 11.5 1749 11.5 11.38 11.38 11.25 11.13 11.13 11.13 11.38 1750 11 11 11 11 11 10.75 10.5 10.5 10.5 10.25 10.25 10.13 1751 10 9.75 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 1752 9.875 9.563 9.5 9.5 9.375 9.375 9.25 9.25 9.625 9.375 1753 9.125 9.125 9.125 9.125 9 9.063 9.063 9 1754 9.25 9 9 9 1755 9 9 1756 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 9.5 1757 10.5 1758 12.63 12.63 12.25 12.25 1759 11.5 11.5 11.5 14 1760 14 14 14 14 12 12 13 14 1761 16 15.75 15 14.5 15 15 15 14 15.25 1762 16 19 19.25 21 22 1763 19 17 1764 17 15.5 16 16.25 15.5 15.5 1765 16 17 17 1766 13 14.56 12.88 12.88 12.88 12.88 12.88 1767 12.88 12.44 12 12 12 12.5 12 1768 1769 1770 11.5 1771 11 1772 11.5 1773 13.25 13 1774 1775 13.25 1776 14 11.38 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 278 Table A5.20. Monthly exchange rates on Swedish-Pomeranian taler courant in Swedish currency 1740–1800 (not spot rates). Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec in marks kopparmynt 1740 28 27 27.5 27.5 27.5 1741 28.5 28.5 28.5 28.25 28 28.13 28.13 28.75 28.88 29.25 29.75 29.5 1742 30.5 1743 30.5 30 1744 32 1745 34.5 32 1746 29.25 29.25 29.25 33 33 33 1747 1748 34.88 35 35 35 33 32.75 32.5 32.5 33.25 33.63 1749 34 34 34 33 33 33.5 1750 33.75 33.5 32.75 32.5 32.5 32.5 32.5 32.5 32 30.5 1751 30.5 30.5 30.5 30 30 30 30 30 30 1752 27 28 27 25.25 26 26 28 1753 26.5 26.5 26 25.5 1754 26 26.5 26 26 26.75 26 25.63 1755 26 26.5 27 1756 28 28 28 28 28 28 28 27.5 27.5 27.75 1757 28.5 28.5 28.5 31.5 1758 48 42 41 34.5 33 33 1759 1760 32 31 28 27.5 27.5 29 1761 26.5 29.5 22 26 1762 23 1763 17.75 15.88 14 1764 16.5 13.38 14.5 15 1765 15.06 15 15 1766 49 49 in skilling banco 1788 36 35.5 1792 41.5 in skilling riksgälds 1799 44 48 48 48 1800 51 48 48 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). Te monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 279 Table A5.21. Te exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Premium on Ham- burg bank money (%) Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder cou- rant in marks kopparmynt Premium on Amster- dam bank money (%) Direct data (spot rates 1660-1685) Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates 1660–85) Esti- mated spot rates Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1658 17 17.255 1659 17 17.255 1660 17.572 17.077 18.297 17.572 16.924 16.284 17.545 16.924 3.25 1661 18.258 17.672 18.548 18.258 17.768 17.081 18.297 17.768 1662 18.213 17.591 18.583 18.213 17.724 17.167 18.297 17.724 1663 18.857 18.177 20.302 18.857 18.628 18.051 19.839 18.628 3.25 1664 20.121 18.356 21.67 20.121 19.929 18.583 21.597 19.929 3.06 1665 20.866 19.375 21.555 20.866 20.465 20.09 21.095 20.465 3.06 1666 20.909 20.395 21.305 20.909 20.394 19.63 21.054 20.394 1667 20.767 19.187 21.555 20.767 20.171 19.692 20.302 20.171 1668 20.964 20.197 21.305 20.964 20.176 19.758 21.305 20.176 1669 20.61 20.302 21.095 20.61 20.044 19.313 20.702 20.044 3.65 1670 20.804 20.133 21.206 20.804 20.392 19.597 21.054 20.392 1671 21.003 20.592 21.206 21.003 20.026 19.613 20.905 20.026 3.88 1672 20.929 20.702 21.054 20.929 7.12 20.214 19.801 20.803 20.214 3.8 1673 20.984 20.512 21.206 20.984 20.446 20.051 21.206 20.446 1674 21.502 20.954 22.469 21.502 20.31 19.944 20.844 20.31 4.16 1675 22.708 21.964 24.062 22.708 20.895 20.302 21.711 20.895 3.66 1676 23.034 22.307 24.187 23.034 21.44 20.302 23.059 21.44 3.78 1677 24.661 23.731 25.566 24.661 23.599 22.721 24.563 23.599 3.96 1678 24.585 24.187 25.566 24.585 23.6 23.104 24.488 23.6 3.78 1679 25.934 24.312 27.77 25.934 25.017 23.226 26.769 25.017 4.16 1680 27.529 26.761 28.275 27.529 26.475 25.498 27.265 26.475 4.01 1681 26.354 24.993 28.072 26.354 25.316 23.606 27.07 25.316 3.58 1682 24.935 24.108 25.566 24.935 23.887 23.059 24.741 23.887 4.01 1683 24.884 23.983 25.372 24.884 23.616 22.601 24.359 23.616 4 1684 24.974 24.642 25.53 24.974 23.584 23.226 24.108 23.584 4.28 1685 24.854 24.488 25.239 24.854 23.371 23.037 23.964 23.371 4.25 1686 24.241 24.483 22.907 23.136 5.06 1687 25 25.25 10.21 24.252 24.495 1688 25 25.25 9.88 23.761 23.999 5.18 1689 25 25.25 10.12 23.432 23.666 5.47 1690 25 25.25 10.89 1691 25 25.25 10.73 23.376 23.609 5.42 1692 25 25.25 9.98 23.009 23.239 5.48 1693 25 25.25 9.6 23.572 23.808 7.38 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 280 Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Premium on Ham- burg bank money (%) Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder cou- rant in marks kopparmynt Premium on Amster- dam bank money (%) Direct data (spot rates 1660-1685) Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates 1660–85) Esti- mated spot rates Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1694 25 25.25 11.09 23.553 23.788 4.77 1695 25 25.25 12.67 23.925 24.164 4.83 1696 26.749 26.5 27 27.016 14.29 25.505 25.76 4.76 1697 26.685 26.25 27.25 26.952 13.98 26.216 26.478 4.96 1698 26.28 25 27.625 26.543 13.74 25.287 25.54 4.82 1699 24.625 24.5 24.75 24.871 13.57 23.495 23.73 5.17 1700 25.499 25.25 25.75 25.754 14.28 24.6 24.846 4.65 1701 24.749 24.5 25 24.996 13.39 24.247 24.489 4.73 1702 24.375 24.25 24.5 24.618 13.34 23.749 23.986 3 1703 26.209 24.5 26.875 26.471 15.1 24.855 23.875 25.875 25.103 2.81 1704 27.098 26.25 27.75 27.342 17.17 25.225 24.125 26.375 25.452 2.69 1705 27.311 27 27.75 27.557 18.8 25.872 25.5 26.25 26.105 3.27 1706 27.122 26.75 27.5 27.366 18.24 26.245 25.75 26.75 26.481 5.54 1707 26.998 26.75 27.5 27.241 17.56 25.875 25.75 26 26.107 5.62 1708 26.781 26.5 27 27.022 16.95 25.687 25.5 25.875 25.918 4.84 1709 27.299 26.5 28.75 27.545 16.78 26.921 26 27.875 27.163 4.83 1710 27.486 26.375 28.75 27.734 16.73 26.118 25.5 26.75 26.352 4.76 1711 26.711 26 27.75 26.951 16.71 25.367 24.75 26 25.596 1712 27.274 26.375 28 27.519 16.54 26.175 25.375 27 26.41 1713 26.608 25.5 28 26.847 17.28 26.58 26 27 26.819 1714 25.56 25 26 25.79 18.28 25.48 24.5 26.5 25.71 4.5 1715 25.793 25 27.5 26.025 19.7 23.979 23 25 24.195 1716 26.546 25 28.75 26.785* 28.39** 20.9 25.573 24 27.25 25.803* 27.35** 1717 33.952 29 39.75 34.258* 38.37** 24.72 32.473 27.75 38 32.765* 36.7** 1718 52.056 43.75 83.75 52.525* 60.26** 27.74 49.933 42 80 50.382* 57.8** 4.59 1719 40.03 38 41 40.39 29.7 38.884 36 42 39.234 1720 36.289 36 37 36.615 28.33 35.123 34.75 35.5 35.439 1721 36.24 35 37 36.566 28.84 35.749 35.5 36 36.071 1722 36.616 35.25 37.25 36.945 29.53 35.999 35.75 36.25 36.323 5.25 1723 35.577 34.125 36.625 35.897 30.35 34.139 32.375 36 34.447 4.94 1724 35.209 34.125 36 35.526 31.35 34.242 33.5 35 34.55 4.57 1725 33.968 32 35.75 34.274 33.24 32.985 32 34 33.282 4.42 1726 33.552 32.5 34.5 33.854 16 32.606 31.5 33.75 32.899 4.88 1727 34.293 32.5 35.5 34.602 16 33.735 32.75 34.75 34.039 4.97 Table A5.21 (cont.) . Te exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 281 Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Premium on Ham- burg bank money (%) Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder cou- rant in marks kopparmynt Premium on Amster- dam bank money (%) Direct data (spot rates 1660-1685) Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates 1660–85) Esti- mated spot rates Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1728 35.11 33.5 36 35.426 16 34.869 34.25 35.5 35.183 4.79 1729 34.806 34 35.5 35.119 16 34.227 33 35.5 34.535 4.77 1730 35.119 34.25 35.75 35.435 16 33.369 32.75 34 33.669 4.58 1731 34.933 34.25 35.5 35.247 16 33.496 33 34 33.798 4.52 1732 34.958 33.625 35.75 35.272 16 34.369 33.75 35 34.679 4.02 1733 35.308 34.75 35.875 35.626 16 34.623 34.25 35 34.934 3.8 1734 35.31 34.75 35.75 35.627 16 34.869 34.25 35.5 35.183 4.44 1735 35.369 34.75 36 35.688 16 34.992 34.25 35.75 35.307 4 1736 35.68 34.75 36.375 36.001 16 34.667 33.5 35.875 34.979 3.9 1737 36.028 35.5 36.5 36.352 16 34.936 34.625 35.25 35.25 4.02 1738 35.933 35.25 36.5 36.256 16.31 35.056 34.375 35.75 35.371 4.45 1739 36.305 35.25 37 36.632 17.48 34.996 34.5 35.5 35.311 5.11 1740 37.06 36 37.5 37.393 18.03 35.55 34.75 35.875 35.87 5.23 1741 37.86 36.75 41 38.201 17.49 36.44 35.375 39.5 36.768 4.64 1742 39.53 36.75 42 39.886 17.79 37.81 35.25 40 38.15 4.43 1743 40.48 37 44.25 40.844 18.85 38.74 35.75 42.5 39.089 4.8 1744 43.83 42 45.75 44.224 19.37 41.98 40 44 42.358 4.86 1745 43.57 40 47 43.962 20 41.75 38.25 45.25 42.126 4.93 1746 40 40 40 40.36 18.67 38.25 38.25 38.25 38.594 4.86 1747 44.23 40 47.5 44.628 16.5 43.11 38.25 46.25 43.498 4.65 1748 44.47 43.125 47.25 44.87 16.17 43.08 41.75 46 43.468 4.74 1749 43.45 42.25 44.75 43.841 17.05 41.53 40.5 42.75 41.904 4.64 1750 41.74 40 43.75 42.116 17.51 39.69 38.125 41 40.047 4.53 1751 40.28 39.25 41 40.642 17.68 37.92 37 38.25 38.261 4.88 1752 38 36 40 38.342 16.44 35.68 33.75 37.75 36.001 4.48 1753 37.99 37.5 38.75 38.332 17.34 35.75 35 36 36.072 4.63 1754 38.71 38.5 39 39.058 17.24 36.07 36 36.25 36.394 4.51 1755 38.63 37.5 40.75 38.978 17.56 36.33 36 39 36.657 4.18 1756 40.28 39 43 40.642 17.42 39.08 37.75 42.25 39.432 4.22 1757 43.84 40.25 49.75 44.234 11.7 44.7 40.25 50 45.102 3.76 1758 51.49 48.75 56.25 51.953 7.68 52.9 50.125 57.25 53.376 3.33 1759 49.55 47.25 55 49.996 8.02 51.89 50.25 56.25 52.357 2.27 1760 63.21 55 76 63.779 18.58 61.63 55.5 70 62.184 3.11 1761 72.04 67.75 75.75 72.688 24.83 67.41 63.75 70.75 68.016 4.53 1762 85.28 73 108 86.047 22.39 83.93 68.5 108 84.685 3.02 1763 81.82 73 94.5 82.556 23.85 80.43 71.5 93 81.154 2.36 Table A5.21 (cont.) . Te exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 282 Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Premium on Ham- burg bank money (%) Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder cou- rant in marks kopparmynt Premium on Amster- dam bank money (%) Direct data (spot rates 1660-1685) Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates 1660–85) Esti- mated spot rates Aver- age Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1764 86.08 79 96 86.854 26.21 82.07 74 93 82.808 3.12 1765 88.87 79 94 89.669 21.44 81.69 76 90 82.425 3.76 1766 70.53 66.5 80 71.165 19.88 69.88 66.5 77 70.509 4.74 1767 56.42 42 66 56.928 17.72 56.41 41 66 56.917 4.76 1768 42 42 42 42.378 22.35 41.64 39.25 41.75 42.015 4.58 1769 42 42 42 42.378 24.6 41.59 39 41.75 41.964 4.87 1770 60.54 55 68 61.085 24.26 57.15 53 64 57.664 4.9 1771 62.93 60 65.5 63.496 24.64 59.41 57 61 59.944 4.88 1772 70.26 64 74.5 70.892 25.08 66.08 60 70 66.674 4.75 1773 80.23 73.5 82.5 80.952 24.71 76.88 69 79.5 77.572 4.66 1774 75.75 72 80.5 76.431 23.88 71.91 69 76 72.557 4.73 1775 69.3 68.25 72 69.923 21.88 65.72 65.25 68 66.311 4.7 1776 69.06 68.5 70 69.681 64.9 64 65.25 65.484 4.781 Underlined data = based on cross rates. Sources: See the main text. For 1660–85, the exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam are esti- mated spot rates, based on bills of 8 days to 2 months, assuming an annual interest rate of 12.5 per cent, and the average calculated as the geometric average of the monthly data (see Table A5.5). To calculate spot rates for the period 1658–9 the direct data are increased by 1.5 per cent; for 1686– 1703 the increase is 1 per cent. For 1704–77 the direct data is increased by 1.05 67/365 . * Estimated rates in proper coins 1716–18. ** Estimated rate in coin tokens 1716–18. Table A5.21 (cont.) . Te exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 283 Table A5.22. Te exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates up to 1702) Esti- mated spot rates Average Lowest Highest Average Lowest Highest 1658 17.49 17.752 1659 18.197 18.47 1660 20.226 20.53 1661 21.137 21.454 1662 1663 21.206 21.525 6.914 6.914 1664 22.108 22.44 7.013 7.013 1665 22.026 22.356 7.043 7.043 1666 21.096 21.413 1667 21.81 22.137 7.151 7.151 1668 22.936 23.28 7.138 7.138 7.138 7.138 1669 22.517 22.855 7.138 7.138 7.138 7.138 1670 22.826 23.168 7.108 7.061 7.138 7.108 1671 22.921 23.265 7.108 7.069 7.209 7.108 1672 22.316 22.651 7.033 6.943 7.104 7.033 1673 21.487 21.809 7.018 6.901 7.069 7.018 1674 21.526 21.849 7.12 7.069 7.199 7.12 1675 23.315 23.665 7.286 7.188 7.405 7.286 1676 24.302 24.666 7.592 6.985 7.91 7.592 1677 26.424 26.82 8.259 8.079 8.498 8.259 1678 26.664 27.064 8.352 8.203 8.499 8.352 1679 26.235 26.628 8.477 8.203 8.71 8.477 1680 29.829 30.277 9.25 9.048 9.425 9.25 1681 28.784 29.216 8.939 8.415 9.425 8.939 1682 26.872 27.276 8.429 8.217 8.71 8.429 1683 26.556 26.954 8.327 8.021 8.469 8.327 1684 26.552 26.95 8.317 8.207 8.499 8.317 1685 26.831 27.234 8.31 8.243 8.415 8.31 1686 1687 1688 1689 25.869 26.182 8.294 8.294 1690 25.234 25.54 1691 25.39 25.698 7.302 7.302 1692 25.738 26.049 7.364 7.364 1693 24.711 25.01 7.191 7.191 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 284 Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates up to 1702) Esti- mated spot rates Average Lowest Highest Average Lowest Highest 1694 24 24.291 7.434 7.434 1695 22.224 22.493 7.332 7.332 1696 25.564 25.873 7.927 7.927 1697 29.253 29.607 7.732 7.732 1698 27.932 28.27 7.318 7.318 1699 25.846 26.159 6.882 6.882 1700 27.079 27.407 7.153 7.153 1701 26.985 27.312 6.875 6.875 1702 25.659 25.969 6.477 6.477 1703 26.351 26.67 1704 26.625 26.947 1705 27.25 26.875 27.625 27.58 7.222 7.111 7.333 7.31 1706 27.375 26.75 28 27.706 7.25 7.167 7.333 7.338 1707 28 27.75 28.25 28.339 7.333 7.167 7.5 7.422 1708 27.695 28.03 7.447 7.537 1709 27.624 27.959 7.583 7.675 1710 27.763 28.099 7.549 7.64 1711 27.483 27.815 1712 27.994 28.333 1713 28.281 28.623 6.263 6.339 1714 27.498 27.831 6.494 6.572 1715 27.972 28.311 7.936 8.032 1716 28.256 28.598* 30.314** 7.647 7.74* 8.2** 1717 35.458 35.887* 40.193** 10.02 10.14* 11.35** 1718 54.381 55.039* 63.14** 11.9 12.05* 13.82** 1719 42.695 43.212 7.229 7.317 1720 38.29 38.754 3.763 3.808 1721 38.262 38.725 5.55 5.617 1722 39.63 40.11 5.453 5.519 1723 37.957 38.417 5.105 5.166 1724 36.999 37.447 6.706 6.788 1725 35.611 36.042 8.078 8.176 1726 35.973 36.408 7.752 7.846 1727 37.25 36.5 38 37.701 7.256 7.343 Table 5.22 (cont.). Te exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 285 Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates up to 1702) Esti- mated spot rates Average Lowest Highest Average Lowest Highest 1728 37.5 36.5 38.5 37.954 7.197 7.284 1729 37.25 36.5 38 37.701 7.008 7.093 1730 36.405 36.845 6.979 7.064 1731 37.052 37.5 6.926 7.01 1732 37.307 37.759 7.091 7.176 1733 37.46 37 38 37.913 7.081 7.167 1734 39.02 38 39.5 39.492 7.26 7.348 1735 38.84 38.5 39 39.31 7.187 7.274 1736 38.57 37 40 39.037 7.145 7.232 1737 38.499 38.965 7.288 7.376 1738 38.42 38.885 7.192 7.279 1739 39.229 39.704 7.169 7.256 1740 39.25 38 39.75 39.725 7.19 7 7.5 7.277 1741 39.28 38.125 42.5 39.755 7.26 7 7.75 7.348 1742 41.04 38.75 43.125 41.537 7.48 7.25 7.625 7.571 1743 42.31 39.75 46.5 42.822 7.963 8.059 1744 45.36 43.25 47 45.909 8.79 8.5 9 8.896 1745 45.93 41.5 49.25 46.486 9 8.5 9.25 9.109 1746 41.5 41.5 41.5 42.002 7.8 7.895 1747 47 41.5 51 47.569 7.5 7.5 7.5 7.591 1748 48.12 46.75 50.5 48.702 8.95 8.75 9.125 9.058 1749 46.82 45.5 48.75 47.387 8.43 8.25 8.75 8.532 1750 43.53 41 45.75 44.057 8.36 8 8.5 8.461 1751 42.13 41.25 42.75 42.64 7.88 7.75 8 7.975 1752 39.77 37.5 42.25 40.251 7.244 7.332 1753 38.92 38.375 40 39.391 7.31 6.5 7.5 7.398 1754 40.07 39.75 40.5 40.555 7.35 7.25 7.5 7.439 1755 41.01 40.375 43.5 41.506 7.5 7.5 7.5 7.591 1756 44.03 42.25 47.5 44.563 8.03 7.875 8.5 8.127 1757 49.34 46 53.75 49.937 8.489 8.591 1758 56.44 54 61 57.123 9.75 9.75 9.75 9.868 1759 55.64 54.25 62.5 56.313 9.75 9.75 9.75 9.868 1760 66.58 61.5 75 67.386 11.94 10.75 12.5 12.08 1761 71.18 68 76 72.041 13.03 12.75 14 13.19 1762 90.72 74 117 91.818 14.42 13.25 17 14.59 1763 84.33 76 93 85.351 16.52 16 17 16.72 1764 91.61 83 102.5 92.719 16.97 15 19 17.18 Table 5.22 (cont.). Te exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 286 Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data Esti- mated spot rates Direct data (spot rates up to 1702) Esti- mated spot rates Average Lowest Highest Average Lowest Highest 1765 92.06 83 101 93.174 17.2 16 18 17.41 1766 77.46 73 85 78.398 14.56 13.5 15 14.74 1767 60.41 45 72 61.141 13.24 12 13.5 13.4 1768 45.9 44.5 46.5 46.456 8.097 8.195 1769 42.207 42.718 7.996 8.093 1770 63.14 55.5 68 63.904 11 11 11 11.13 1771 63.96 61 66 64.734 11.88 12.03 1772 71.78 67 77 72.649 13.24 13.4 1773 85.78 67 88 86.818 14.5 14.5 14.5 14.68 1774 80.08 77 86.5 81.049 13.5 13 14.25 13.66 1775 72.71 71.75 76 73.59 12.8 12.38 13.125 12.95 1776 70.93 69.875 72.375 71.788 12.51 12.25 13.5 12.66 Underlined data = based on cross rates. Sources: See the main text. To calculate spot rates, the direct data are increased by 1.5 per cent for London in 1658–85, by 1.05 90/365 for London in 1686–1703, and by 1.05 90/365 for Paris and Lon- don in 1704–76. For Paris 1668–1685, see Table A5.12. * Estimated rates in proper coins 1716–18. ** Estimated rate in coin tokens 1716–18. Table 5.22 (cont.). Te exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 287 Table A5.23. Te exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1777–1804. Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder courant in skilling banco, direct data skill- ing banco, spot rate skill- ing riks- gälds, spot rate skilling banco, direct data skill- ing banco, spot rate skill- ing riks- gälds, spot rate Ave- rage Low- est High- est Aver- age Low- est High- est 1777 46.16 45 47 46.575 43.2 42 44 43.589 1778 45.97 44.5 47 46.384 43.19 42 44.33 43.579 1779 46.01 45 47.5 46.424 44.01 43.25 45 44.406 1780 46.25 45 47.5 46.666 44.04 43 45.5 44.436 1781 45.31 44.13 47 45.718 43.03 41.25 45.75 43.417 1782 45.43 45 46.5 45.839 41.8 40 43 42.176 1783 46.84 45 48.5 47.261 43.4 41 46 43.79 1784 49.35 48 54 49.794 46.51 45.33 49.5 46.928 1785 49.56 48 52.5 50.006 46.56 45 48.5 46.979 1786 47.78 46.5 49 48.21 45.24 44.25 47 45.647 1787 46.47 45.75 47.75 46.888 43.62 42.75 44.75 44.012 1788 46.59 45.75 47.5 47.009 43.12 42.25 43.75 43.508 1789 51.55 47 58.5 52.014 55.711 48.48 43.25 54 48.916 1790 54.79 52 58 55.283 55.785 51.93 49 56 52.397 1791 51.52 49 54 51.983 54.507 49.33 47 51.5 49.774 1792 51.17 49 52.5 51.63 53.411 49.01 47 50 49.451 1793 54 51.5 58 54.486 57.485 51.66 48 53.5 52.125 1794 51.04 48 57.25 51.499 55.913 47.65 44.5 53.25 48.079 1795 47.32 47 48 47.746 53.274 43.47 41 47 43.861 1796 47.34 47 49 47.766 52.99 41.84 40.33 43 42.216 1797 50.62 50 52.5 51.075 52.115 45.07 43 48 45.475 47.907 1798 50.94 50 53.5 51.398 54.496 45.44 44 51 45.849 51.439 1799 52.35 50 54 52.821 74.878 46.92 46 48 47.342 66.523 1800 50.62 49 54 51.075 70.983 47.1 46 50.5 47.524 66.796 1801 51.82 50 53 52.286 75.967 47.41 46.5 50 47.837 70.741 1802 50.82 48.67 54 51.277 76.038 46.79 45.75 47.75 47.211 71.205 1803 50.69 48 53 51.146 78.106 46.56 45 49.5 46.979 73.667 1804 50.78 49.5 53 51.237 76.855 47.57 46 49 47.998 71.997 Sources: See the main text. To calculate spot rates, the direct data are increased by 1.05 67/365 . Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 288 Table A5.24. Te exchange rate on London and Paris 1777–1804. Year London, 1 pound sterling in Paris, 1 livres tournois (franc from 1795) in riksdaler banco, direct data riks- daler banco, spot rate riks- daler riks- gälds, spot rate skilling banco, direct data skill- ing banco, spot rate skill- ing riks- gälds, spot rate Aver- rage Low- est High- est Aver- age Lowest High- est 1777 3.835 3.688 3.938 3.881 8.27 8 8.75 8.3701 1778 3.948 3.854 4.01 3.9957 8.36 8.2 8.417 8.4612 1779 4.105 3.854 4.24 4.1549 8.23 7.917 8.417 8.3296 1780 4.089 3.99 4.229 4.1387 8.35 7.917 8.5 8.4511 1781 3.757 3.5 4.021 3.8028 8.16 7.5 8.333 8.2588 1782 3.713 3.656 3.771 3.7576 8.01 7.5 8.25 8.1069 1783 3.83 3.677 4.167 3.8761 8.21 7.75 9 8.3094 1784 4.382 4.229 4.792 4.4351 9.14 8.5 9.667 9.2506 1785 4.474 4.25 4.625 4.5281 8.64 8 9.333 8.7446 1786 4.238 4.083 4.438 4.2896 8.39 8.167 8.667 8.4915 1787 4.122 4.063 4.25 4.1718 8.19 7.833 8.5 8.2891 1788 4.179 4.125 4.281 4.2295 8.19 8 8.5 8.2891 1789 4.635 4.219 5.167 4.6909 8.54 8 9.167 8.6434 1790 5.113 4.792 5.333 5.1748 9.33 8.5 10 9.4429 1791 4.8 4.396 5.042 4.8585 8.33 7.833 9 8.4308 1792 4.492 4.333 4.667 4.5465 6.44 6 7.5 6.5179 1793 5.085 4.656 5.292 5.147 6.5 6 7 6.5787 1794 4.665 4.167 5.292 4.7213 7* 7 7 7.0847 1795 3.978 3.833 4.25 4.0263 1796 4.066 3.917 4.333 4.115 1797 4.618 4.333 5.104 4.6736 4.8834 9 9 9 9.1089 1798 4.833 4.833 4.833 4.8918 5.3253 9.949 1799 4.83 4.583 5 4.888 6.6383 8.5 8 9 8.6029 13.431 1800 4.054 3.938 4.25 4.1032 5.7667 13.036 1801 4.132 3.896 4.271 4.1817 6.1291 9.83 9.75 10 9.949 13.785 1802 4.209 4.146 4.323 4.2597 6.4131 8.9 8 10 9.0077 13.38 1803 4.268 3.917 4.5 4.3194 6.7727 8.87 8 10 8.9774 14.25 1804 4.565 4.333 4.75 4.62 6.9301 9.12 8.25 10 9.2304 13.846 Sources: See the main text. To calculate spot rates, the direct data are increased by 1.05 90/365 . * Bordeaux 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 289 Unpublished sources Riksarkivet (RA) Börstorpssamlingen, vol. 85. Kammarkollegii, oordnade handlingar, no. 444. Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar, Handel och sjöfart, Ser. I, vol. 1 Järnhandel. Sandbergska samlingen, vol. O:1. Riksbankens arkiv (RBA) ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. Untitled volume with exchange rates 1804–89. References Attman, A (1983), Dutch Enterprise in the World Bullion Trade 1550–1800, Kungl. Vetenskaps- och Vitterhets-Samhället, Gothenburg. Dalhede, C (2006), Handelsfamiljer på stormaktstidens Europamarknad. 4, Viner, kvinnor, kapital: en 1600-talshandel med potential? Fjärrhandelsfamiljerna Jeroni- mus Möller i Lübeck och Sibrant Valck i Göteborg, Warne förlag, Partille. van Dillen, J G (1934), ‘Te Bank of Amsterdam’, in Van Dillen, J G (ed.), History of the Principal Public Banks, Te Hague. Flandreau, M, C Galimard, C Jobst, and P Marco (2006), Te Bell Jar: Interest Rates Between Two Revolutions, 1688–1789, http://coursenligne.sciences-po.fr/marc. fandreau/fchiers_articles/BELLJAR_draft121.pdf (2007-07-28). Flandreau, M, and F Zumer (2004), Te Making of Global Finance 1880–1913, OECD, Paris. Friis, A, and K Glamann (1958), A History of Prices and Wages in Denmark 1660– 1800, vol. 1, Institute of Economics and History, Copenhagen. Furtak, T (1935), Ceny w Gdańsku w latach 1701-1815, Skład Glówny, Lwów. Hansson, G (2009), ‘Priser på spannmål i Jämtland och Härjedalen 1648–1721’, http://www.ekhistmotet09.ekhist.uu.se/fledownload.php?id=116 (2009-03-28). Hayes, R (2001 [1740]), Te negociator’s magazine: or the most authentick account yet published of the monies, weights, and measures of the principal places of the world, Facsimile reprint, Elibron Classics. Heckscher, E (1934), ‘Te bank of Sweden in its connection with the bank of Am- sterdam’, in Van Dillen, J G (ed.), History of the Principal Public Banks, Te Hague. Heckscher, E (1935–49), Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa, vol. I:1, I:2, II:1 and II:2, Bonnier, Stockholm. Lagerqvist, L, and E Nathorst-Böös (1968), Mynt, Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 290 Lobell, H (2000), Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration: De utländska växelkurser- na i Sverige 1834–1880, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Lund. Mayhew, N (1999), Sterling: Te History of a Currency, Wiley, New York. McCusker, J (1978), Money and Exchange in Europe and America, 1600–1775: A Handbook. Kingsport Press, Kingsport, Tennessee. Montgomery, A (1920), ‘Riksbanken och de valutapolitiska problemen, 1719–1778’ in Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918: bankens tillkomst och verksamhet, vol. III, Nor- stedts, Stockholm. Posthumus, N W (1946), Inquiry into the History of Prices in Holland, vol. I, E.J. Brill, Leiden. Quinn, S, and W Roberds (2006), An Economic Explanation of the Early Bank of Am- sterdam, Debasement, Bills of Exchange, and the Emergence of the First Central Bank, Federal Reserve Bank of Atlanta, Working Paper Series, 2006-13, http://www. frbatlanta.org/flelegacydocs/wp0613.pdf (2007-08-04). Redish, A (1994), ‘Te Latin Monetary Union and the emergence of the internation- al gold standard’ in Bordo, M, and F Capie (eds.), Monetary Regimes in Transition, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Shaw, W (1895), Te History of Currency, Wilsons & Milne, London. Sjöstrand, E (1908), Mynt- och bankpolitik under hattväldet 1738–1764, Almqvist & Wiksells Boktryckeri, Uppsala. Smith, A (1999 [1776]), Te Wealth of Nations, Books IV-V, Penguin Books. Internet resources ‘Allen - Unger Database: European Commodity Prices 1260–1914’, http://www2. history.ubc.ca/unger/htm_fles/new_grain.htm (2007-06-17). 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 Håkan Lobell 6.1. Introduction This chapter presents foreign exchange rates in the ‘long’ 19th century (from 1804 up to the outbreak of the First World War in 1914). The account notes the types of exchange rate series that are included in the data base and the sources for those series. Obtaining long and reasonably homogeneous series entails dealing with matters such as some currencies being issued in different places at different times, the variety of the instruments that were traded at different times and the changing composition of exchange market participants. Another factor that needs to be taken into account is the integration of credit markets and associated foreign exchange markets. The way in which a number of these problems have been tackled is reported in this chapter. The new exchange rate data that this project has produced also pave the way for new analyses of the integration process. First, however, comes a summary of the develop- ment of foreign exchange policy and monetary regimes in the 19th century. The new monthly exchange rate series that are the fruit of this work turn out to be extremely suitable as a starting point for an analysis of the history of Sweden’s monetary system in the 1800s. 6.2. Exchange rates, foreign exchange policy and monetary regimes in the 19th century Figure 6.1 shows monthly exchange rates on Hamburg and London, which for Swe- den were the principal international financial centres in the 19th century. 1 A pro- nounced depreciation and large fluctuations in these exchange rates give way to 1 Note that the exchange rates are expressed in terms of Swedish currency units per unit of the foreign currency. Tat was how exchange rates were expressed in Sweden in the 19th century. In this context, a ‘rising foreign exchange rate’ denotes a ‘fall’ or ‘depreciation’ of the Swedish currency and vice versa. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 292 Figure 6.1 Exchange rates with Hamburg (left scale) and London (right scale) 1804–1914 30 40 50 60 70 80 90 100 110 5 7 9 11 13 15 17 19 21 23 1804 1814 1824 1834 1844 1854 1864 1874 1884 1894 1904 1914 Hamburg SEK/100 mark London SEK/£ Source: Tables A6.1 and A6.2. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 293 increasing stability that leads up to the international gold standard with its histori- cally exceptional exchange stability. Here we have a good illustration of what Eli Heckscher described as a transition from confusion and disorder to an orderly and harmonious monetary system. 2 Moreover, four fairly distinct periods are evident in the series. From 1803 to 1809 Sweden was on a silver standard. This was suspended in 1809 in connection with the war with Russia and the deposition of Gustav IV Adolf; the currency remained inconvertible until 1834 and Sweden was, in practice, on a paper standard. This was also the period with a marked depreciation. A cur- rency reform in September 1834 meant that bank notes could again be redeemed for silver. Sweden then remained on a silver standard until 1873, when this was replaced by a gold standard. These periods are considered in somewhat more detail below. 6.2.1. The silver standard 1803–09 At the turn of the 18th century Sweden was obliged to move to an inconvertible paper standard. The monetary system was based on a silver coin, riksdaler specie, but in 1789 excessive note issues denominated in riksdaler riksgälds in connection with the war with Russia had forced the Riksbank to suspend the redemption of notes for silver. Riksdaler riksgälds were issued by the National Debt Office (Riksgäldskon- toret) – side by side with the Riksbank’s note issues in riksdaler banco and skilling banco – to enable the Crown to finance the war despite the intransigence of the Riksbank, which was controlled by the Riksdag 3 . Specie payments were resumed in 1803 (the ‘realisation’ of 1803) and notes could again be redeemed for silver. Mean- while, however, the period of inconvertibility had led to an agio of 50 per cent between the two paper currencies: riksdaler banco and riksdaler riksgälds. This neces- sitated a corresponding devaluation of riksdaler riksgälds. Te introduction of a silver or a gold standard had considerable implications for the workings of the foreign exchange market and for exchange rate movements. A paper currency based on silver 4 , such as Sweden restored in 1803, meant that notes could be exchanged for silver coin and this tied the value of the paper currency to the silver coin. Te exchange rate with another silver-based currency will then have a par- ity that is determined by the nominal value of the domestic currency expressed in sil- ver in relation to the nominal value of the foreign currency for the same amount of silver. However, this assumes a free exchange of silver between countries and in prac- tice this exchange is associated with transaction costs for commissions, insurance and transport, for example. Prices could therefore vary within certain limits before it became proftable to export/import silver to/from other countries with a silver stan- 2 Heckscher (1941). 3 Te Diet of the Estates of the Realm up to 1866, then a bicameral parliament up to 1970, when parliament became unicameral. 4 Or any other precious metal or, for that matter, other commodities that are used as a stand- ard. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 294 dard where the purchasing power of silver difered. Tese limits are known as silver points (more generally, commodity points). As a rule, however, neither coin nor pre- cious metals were used for international foreign exchange transactions; these were arranged instead with bills of exchange (or drafts), which in the case of Sweden were almost exclusively drawn on foreign banks or bankers. For most of the period, the exchange rates shown in Figure 6.1 are actually the prices of foreign bills from exchange dealing on Swedish bourses. Te silver points accordingly determined the limits of the exchange rate’s deviations from parity, which in principle would have corresponded to transaction costs for silver. Rates above or below these points would have meant it was proftable to carry out foreign transactions in silver instead of in customary fnancial instruments, which at this time were primarily bills. 5 So as long as the domestic paper currency could be redeemed for silver and this silver could be used for foreign transactions, the exchange rate could neither fall below nor rise above the silver points. At macro level, as we say today, the adjustment occurs in markets for goods as well as for money. One of the frst to present a theoretical argument of this type was the 18th century philosopher David Hume, whose model for adjustment with a metallic standard is usually known as the ‘price-specie fow mechanism’. In general terms, he asserted that the value of a country’s coin is determined by the quantity of metallic currency in proportion to the output of goods and services (the quantity theory of money). If the proportion shifts, for instance because the quantity of money increases without a corresponding change in the amount of available goods, prices tend to rise, which is tantamount to a fall in the value of money. If money is worth less, it becomes proftable to import goods from countries where the purchasing power of the cur- rency is unchanged. As the outfow of money to pay for the additional imports reduces the quantity of the domestic currency, the value of the currency will return to its equilibrium level. In other words, the domestic price level tends to fall to a level that is internationally competitive. Hume wanted to demonstrate the futility of the contemporary mercantilist ambition to maintain a trade surplus and build up a stock of bullion. He used an analogy with fuids to explain that trade and the money sup- ply tend to fnd their own levels. His ideas were current in Sweden in the early 19th century but so were a number of other opinions about how the monetary system functioned with a silver standard. At the time, the resumption of convertibility in 1803 was commonly regarded as a failure in that the National Debt Of ce’s notes – which circulated alongside the Riksbank’s notes and were responsible for the monetary expansion which had neces- sitated the paper standard – were devalued by 50 per cent relative to banco money. Even so, the currency performed comparatively satisfactorily in the years after the resumption. Figure 6.1 shows that in these years, fuctuations around parity for the 5 A special case is silver point arbitrage, which uses exchange rate diferentials and silver transac- tions with the sole aim of profting from the spread between the silver point and the exchange rate. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 295 exchange rates with Hamburg and London amounted to a few percentage points. Parity, or mint parity, in this context is the theoretical exchange rate expressed as units of domestic currency per foreign currency units equal in value to the same amount of silver. By 1807 the situation had changed; ongoing war and blockades on the Continent led to exchange market unrest, foreign exchange rates rose to the silver point and notes were converted into silver, mainly for export. Tis precarious situa- tion was exacerbated by the war with Russia. Convertibility was maintained initially, notwithstanding large note issues, because British subsidies enabled the Riksbank to replenish its silver reserves. 6 6.2.2. The suspension period 1809–34 The war and acute financial requirements after the deposition of Gustav IV Adolf led to greatly increased note issues in 1808–09. The ensuing inflation resulted in a com- bination of agio between banco and silver currency and growing pressure on Swe- den’s banco currency relative to the principal foreign currencies. Convertibility became increasingly restricted as the war proceeded and seems to have been sus- pended in practice in the final phase when the king was deposed and power passed to the Riksdag. An indication that this was the case is that exchange rates began to exceed the levels at which silver had been exported earlier, which suggests that the silver points had ceased to be effective. Convertibility was formally suspended in March 1810. 7 With a paper standard unequivocally in place and inefective silver points, exchange rates started to rise and then shot up in the winter of 1810/11. Te huge initial depreciation can have been an instance of overshooting – the tendency for fnancial market participants in particular to generate excessive price movements. 8 Te rates did fall back but the depreciation still amounted to as much as about 65 per cent in 1812. Tis was followed by a period of long-term depreciation, accompanied by considerable exchange rate fuctuations, for instance at the time of the campaign against Norway in 1817 and the British fnancial crisis in 1825. Te depreciation occurred during the international recession in the wake of the Napoleonic wars, when there were also periods of international defation. Post-war economic setbacks also hit Sweden, particularly Göteborg and the western region. It is possible, how- ever, that defation was less pronounced than in other countries and instead took the form of a marked depreciation of the currency. Te paper standard was by far the most important economic policy issue in the 1810s and ’20s. Te currency’s depreciation, the agio between paper and silver money and the suspension of convertibility were frequently likened to a national bankruptcy 6 Brisman (1931, p. 10). 7 Brisman (1931, pp. 9-16). 8 Cf. Dornbusch (1976). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 296 in that the State could not meet its commitments (notes) with specie (silver). Te large exchange rate fuctuations and the comparatively sizeable price movements dur- ing this period were attributed to this lack of confdence and were judged to be a seri- ous impediment to economic development. On behalf of the Crown Prince (subse- quently the King), on several occasions in these decades ‘fnance secretary’ Skogman attempted to counter the depreciation and exchange rate fuctuations by means of extensive currency operations, to little or no avail. While Sweden’s exchange rates with the major international currencies, even the franc, increased dramatically after 1809, the exchange rates on Copenhagen declined spectacularly. Denmark was deeply involved in the continental confict and the mili- tary efort was largely fnanced by issues of courant bank notes, which led to infation and currency depreciation. 9 Te force of the Danish depreciation between 1808 and 1813 is well illustrated by the dramatic decline against the Swedish currency, which was itself depreciating rapidly (see Figure 6.2). Te virtual collapse of the Danish courant currency necessitated far-reaching mon- etary reforms in Denmark. In 1813 the courant rigsdaler was replaced by a new rigs- bankrigsdaler (or rigsbankdaler) at the rate of 6:1. Te new currency was not con- vertible but nevertheless became more stable, at least in terms of Swedish currency. In 1818 the Danish Nationalbank was established and organised as an independent joint stock company in a further attempt to stabilise the monetary system. 10 Further- more, the Nationalbank conducted contractive monetary policies in the 1820s and ’30s in an attempt to accomplish a considerable appreciation of the rigsbankrigs- daler. As a result, between 1817 and 1834 the Danish currency appreciated consider- ably in terms of Swedish currency, from around 30 to about 100 SEK per 100 DKK. Te Swedish monetary reforms after the currency depreciation were not nearly as far-reaching as those in Denmark. During the 1820s, the Swedish depreciation against the major currencies was less marked, though the fuctuations remained con- siderable. Tis led the Riksdag to start a serious discussion about a new currency reform. By the Riksdag of 1822/23 it was increasingly recognised that the deprecia- tion was an irrevocable fact. Unlike their colleagues in Denmark, Swedish politicians considered that the advantages of an appreciation of the banco currency were out- weighed by the drawbacks because a monetary tightening could be economically harmful. In Britain, parliamentary debate in 1817 had resulted in a decision to implement a formal devaluation of sterling and resumption of specie payments in 1821. Te path of the Swedish exchange rate against sterling in Figure 6.1 suggests that the Swedish depreciation went further than the British since the Swedish cur- rency depreciated almost as much as against reichsthaler Hamburg banco, which was an ideal currency that could not depreciate in terms of silver. However, the Swedish 9 Svendsen and Hansen (1968, pp. 84-99). 10 Svendsen and Hansen (1968, pp. 137-196). 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 297 Riksdag decided to put of a return to convertibility on the grounds that the Riks- bank had not yet accumulated adequate reserves of silver. Another factor was the King’s objection to a solution that involved devaluation; he continued to argue for an appreciation of the riskdaler note to its pre-war level. 11 Te struggle between the Riksdag, where a majority favoured an of cial banco devaluation, and Karl XIV Johan continued throughout the decade. In the end, just as the session of 1828–30 was drawing to a close, the King relented; a law prescribing convertibility into silver and regulating the administration of the Riksbank was passed in March 1830. A resumption of specie payments in silver had to wait, however, until the next Riksdag had approved constitutional amendments in September 1834. During the Riksdag of 1833–34 there was some concern that a resumption of sil- ver payments would occasion a run on the Riksbank. Tat these fears were by no means unfounded is indicated by the marked increase in the exchange rate during the frst half of the 1830s (Figure 6.1) in connection with the political disturbances on the Continent and Britain’s fnancial crisis. If silver payments had been resumed when the exchange rate was highest, presumably the opportunities for arbitrage would have led to a major infux of notes and exports of silver. In September, how- 11 See e.g. Andreen (1961). Figure 6.2 Exchange rates on Copenhagen (left scale), Paris (right scale) and Amsterdam (right scale) 1804–30 0 50 100 150 200 250 300 350 400 0 20 40 60 80 100 120 140 160 180 200 1805 1810 1815 1820 1825 1830 1835 Copenhagen SEK/100 DKK Paris SEK/100 franc Amsterdam SEK/100 gulden Source: Tables A6.3, A6.4 and A6.6. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 298 ever, when convertibility was restored, exchange rates were on the way down and sil- ver payments could be resumed without dif culty. Te paper riksdaler had then depreciated to only 3/8ths of its earlier value against the silver riksdaler. 6.2.3. The silver standard 1834–73 The Riksbank actually started to accept notes for silver in September 1834. The weight of riksdaler specie was reduced by approximately 0.1 grams to approximately 25.1 grams fine silver, while the paper currencies were officially written down from 1 till 2⅔ riksdaler banco, or from 48 to 128 skilling banco, per riksdaler specie. So there was a de facto devaluation of the Swedish paper currencies against foreign cur- rencies, from c. 48 to 127.4 skilling banco per Hamburger reichsthaler banco. There was no fixed parity with sterling because since 1821 Britain had adopted a gold stan- dard; as the price of silver fluctuates relative to the price of gold, no fixed parity could be calculated between these two metals. Exchange rates with the other Scandinavian currencies were calculated in Danish rigsdaler and Norwegian specie, on Amsterdam in Holländsk riksdaler kurant and on Paris in francs. Following the resumption of silver payments, exchange rates became considerably more stable. Te international economic recovery probably contributed to this but so did the credibility of the new monetary regime. Te profound change that accompa- nied the return to a silver standard in 1834 is also evident from Figure 6.1. By vigor- ously defending the convertibility of the paper currency and naturally also thanks to Sweden not being directly involved in military conficts, the Riksbank managed to maintain convertibility until the outbreak of the First World War. Exchange rate movements in this period were essentially limited by silver points at frst, later by gold points. Te exchange rate fuctuations that continued to occur (see Figure 6.1) were con- nected as a rule with changing international economic conditions and largely remained within the range of the silver points. Prior to the First World War there was no lasting depreciation or appreciation, at least against other silver currencies such as the one in Hamburg. Britain, as mentioned, was on a gold standard both de facto and de jure from 1821. Some appreciation of the Swedish riksdaler against sterling can be discerned in Figures 6.1 and 6.3; presumably because the discovery of gold in California and Australia greatly increased the supply of gold and this afected the price of gold relative to silver. But there were no sizeable fuctuations or permanent depreciations or appreciations. Otherwise, exchange rates in the period on a silver standard up to 1873 refected two main tendencies. One was that with ongoing integration, transaction costs decreased over time and this led to a narrower range between the silver points. Tis long-term external integration is considered in more detail below. Te other ten- dency was for exchange rate fuctuations to occur largely in the upper part of the range between the silver points. Tis is evident in the exchange rates from Paris, 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 299 Figure 6.3 Foreign exchange rates during the silver standard 1834–73 60 70 80 90 100 110 120 130 140 150 160 10 12 14 16 18 20 22 24 Hamburg SEK/100 mark Paris SEK/100 franc Amsterdam SEK/100 gulden Copenhagen SEK/100 Dkr Christiania SEK/100 Nkr London (Right scale) SEK/£ 1835 1840 1845 1850 1855 1860 1865 1870 Source: Tables A6.1 to A6.8. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 300 Copenhagen and Hamburg (see Figure 6.3) and could be evidence of some continu- ous pressure for a depreciation of Sweden’s currency. For Sweden, a typical international economic cycle went roughly as follows. Inter- national downturns weakened Swedish exports at the same time as the international credit market became less liquid because downturns were usually associated with credit crunches and fnancial crises of varying severity. Tis led to a diminishing sup- ply of currency until the exchange rate had risen to the silver export point and it became proftable to use silver for foreign transactions instead of the conventional instruments, or even to practicing silver arbitrage. Silver exported in this way was Tis 10-riksdaler riksmynt note from January 1873 was still redeemable for silver coins in the Riksbank, either 2.5 riksdaler specie (since 1 ‘riksdaler i silfwer’ = 4 riksdaler riksmynt) or 20 ‘ort’ (= 85 grams) silver of 12/16 fneness (‘tolf-lödigt’) in minted coins. 10 riksdaler riksmynt was, therefore, the equivalent of 64 grams of fne silver in minted coins. Sweden switched from a silver to a gold standard later that year, setting 1 krona (linked to gold) = 1 riksdaler riksmynt. See also the next illustration. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 301 largely withdrawn from the Riksbank and most of it was shipped to Hamburg. 12 In that notes were redeemed for much the same amount, there was a domestic mone- tary squeeze and this limited the potential supply of credit from the Riksbank. More- over, the revised version of the Riksbank’s regulations, from 1844, required the board of directors to cancel credit to banks and the public when silver was exported (the Bank was still engaged in purely commercial transactions at this time). Tis was sel- dom done on a sizeable scale because to some extent the Riksbank could sterilise, or counter, a reduction of the money supply, for instance by using unexploited note- issuing rights or by supplementing its specie and bullion with foreign fnancial assets/ drawing rights. On the whole, however, international downturns did result in a rather drastic tightening of the credit market due to direct reductions of the money supply and credit restrictions. Contemporaries referred to this as a strypsystem (liter- ally: ‘throttle system’). Te pattern was repeated during the international economic downturns and crises around 1837, 1842/43, 1847 and 1857, and to a lesser degree during Britain’s brief but intense fnancial crisis in 1866. Te pattern during economic recoveries was somewhat diferent. Te Riksbank was generally short of silver and aimed to replenish the metallic reserves as soon as exchange rates had fallen back and the outfow of silver had ceased. But instead of waiting for increased exports and an improvement in international credit markets that would bring exchange rates close to the silver import point, making it proftable for people to import silver and deposit it in the Riksbank, the Bank itself set about importing silver when exchange rates were approaching their parities. By purchasing large amounts of foreign currency for this purpose, in practice the Riksbank created a foor for exchange rates at their par value, which was one reason why exchange rate fuctuations on Hamburg tended to stay in the upper part of the band. Te external shocks were considerable. During the depression after the crisis in 1837, for instance, Sweden lost a major part of its comparatively large exports of bar iron and an even larger share of more manufactured iron products to the United States. Another example, where the crisis was more fnancial than economic, was when the downturn that followed the boom during the Crimean war led to a sharp international fnancial crisis and a run on banks in 1857. Te failure of the Ohio Life Insurance and Trust Company triggered a collapse of fnancial and credit markets, whereupon the panic spread across the world and even Hamburg banks, usually sol- vent and liquid, had to suspend payments. Te domestic macroeconomic adjustment efects of the cyclical external fows of silver were probably rather limited because economic conditions usually improved simultaneously for Sweden and for trading partners and credit markets abroad. More- 12 Of course there were exceptions. In the 1840s, when a separate monetary system was estab- lished in what had become a Russian province, a stock of predominantly Swedish notes in Fin- land was redeemed for silver that was then exported. Meanwhile there was extensive arbitrage with the Riksbank’s stock of Spanish piastres to Asia. Moreover, silver was exported to London towards the end of the period. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 302 over, the Swedish economy was still predominantly agricultural and less afected by international fuctuations. But even in agriculture, a process of commercialisation and international integration was under way during the period with a silver stan- dard. However, this monetary regime, with the exchange rate as a central variable, meant on the whole that the long-term growth of the money supply in Sweden was deter- mined by the international supply of and demand for silver. As a result, it probably helps to explain why no permanent currency depreciations occurred during the rest of the period up to 1914. Te regime also lay behind the fact that during the four decades with a silver standard, the Riksbank made hardly any contribution to the increase in the money supply. Sweden’s overall annual economic growth averaged rather more than 3 per cent (at current prices), which could be expected to have gen- erated a corresponding increase in demand for money because it was not until the latter half of the century that the banking system and routine transactions became appreciably more up-to-date. With a largely unchanged money supply and a trend- wise increase in demand, the monetary regime (in Sweden as well as internationally) should have had a defationary efect. 13 However, the private banks helped to gener- ate a long-term increase in the money supply and growing liquidity. Tey did so, not so much via the credit multiplier in the way that is usually understood, but by issu- ing notes based on their capital and reserves of the Riksbank’s paper currency. 14 Te metric system was applied to Swedish currency in the second half of the 1850s. Te new paper currency, riksdaler riksmynt, was subdivided into 100 öre. Te ratio of new riksdaler riksmynt to old riksdaler banco was the same as for riksdaler riksgälds, i.e. 1.5:1. Moreover, the units in which exchange rates on Hamburg were quoted were changed so that the currency was reported in terms of Hamburger mark banco (3 Hamburger mark banco =1 Hamburger reichsthaler banco) and rates were expressed in riksdaler riksmynt per 100 Hamburger mark banco. Bills on Amsterdam were calculated in guilder as of 1858. Te new exchange rate parities on Hamburg and Amsterdam were then c. 132.70 riksdaler riksmynt per 100 Hamburger mark banco, and c. 150.4 riksdaler riksmynt per 100 guilders. 6.2.4. The gold standard 1873–1914 The creation of a universal international monetary system based on the French gold franc was discussed in earnest in the 1860s but the idea had to be shelved after the Franco-Prussian war of 1870–71. The indemnity which France, as the loser, had to pay Prussia served as a basis for the unification of Germany and a final amalgamation of German currency systems. 15 Germany’s adoption of a gold standard was followed 13 See e.g. McKinnon (1993). 14 Ögren (2006). 15 In 1871 there were still three diferent currencies in the territories that were to become Ger- many: the Prussian thaler, the Hamburger mark banco and the south-German gulden. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 303 by Sweden and Denmark in 1873, when these two countries agreed on a common currency system, and in 1875 by Norway, which also joined what then became the Scandinavian Currency Union with the Scandinavian krona as the unit of account. The new exchange rate parities were 88.8888… kronor/100 marks with Germany, 72 kronor/100 francs with France and Belgium, which were both participating in the Latin Monetary Union, 18.1595 kronor/pound with Britain, and 149.9903 kro- nor/100 guilders with the Netherlands. Te krona was equivalent in value to the former riksdaler riksgälds and riksdaler riksmynt. New external parities were established and were fxed in practice both with sterling and quite soon with a growing number of other currencies as these were tied to gold during the emergence of the classic or international gold standard. Te three countries in the Scandinavian Currency Union each retained their central bank and cooperated and coordinated their monetary and exchange rate policies. Still, the main reason why the Union worked so well for almost three decades was the gold standard, which imposed stringent restrictions on monetary policy as well as on eco- nomic policy in general. Te resultant symmetry promoted currency harmonisation and the Union’s long existence 16 . Te Union’s internal exchange rate parity was, of course, 1:1. Under the 19th-century gold standard, exchange rates were notably stable (see Figure 6.4). One reason was that a gold standard cut the cost of transactions in gold compared with silver, with the result that gold points had a much smaller range than silver points. Te band within which exchange rates could fuctuate without eliciting corrective arbitrage or transactions in gold became correspondingly narrower. Note that this was by no means a period of fnancial and economic calm. Serious international fnancial crises occurred in 1874, 1890, 1903 and 1907, as did a more domestic Swedish fnancial crisis in 1878 and 1879. In the years up to 1889, more- over, there was a protracted recession with defationary tendencies and this was fol- lowed in the 1890s by a lengthy international economic upswing with rising prices. Te break in the international price trend is usually associated with an increased international supply of monetary gold as a consequence of the discovery of gold deposits in South Africa and Alaska, together with more ef cient technology for extracting metals. Te Swedish economy underwent extensive and profound changes that were accompanied by a massive import of capital, which sustained high long- term growth of both investment and consumption. But it also resulted in a long series of large current-account defcits. In that a stable exchange rate could be main- tained for so long, the gold standard was no doubt an important factor behind the particular nature of Sweden’s industrialisation. 17 With Sweden on a gold standard, the operational aspects of monetary and exchange policy changed considerably. Convertibility into precious metal continued 16 Talia 2004, pp. 201 onwards. 17 Schön (2007). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 304 Figure 6.4 Exchange rates during the gold standard 1873–1914 60 70 80 90 100 110 120 130 140 150 160 10 12 14 16 18 20 22 24 Hamburg SEK/100 mark Paris SEK/100 franc Amsterdam SEK/100 gulden Antwerpen SEK/100 franc Brussels SEK/100 franc Copenhagen SEK/100 Dkr Christiania SEK/100 Nkr London(Right scale) SEK/£ 1875 1880 1885 1890 1895 1900 1905 1910 1915 Source: Tables A6.1 to A6.8. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 305 to be the Riksbank’s overriding concern but the means for this were augmented, for instance by setting up operational functions. Two of the directors were designated ‘delegates for foreign operations’ with the task of managing foreign exchange policy. Moreover, the Bank began to trade in foreign currency to a growing extent, both with banks and with the general public. Another important development was the Riksbank’s increasingly well-prepared discount rate adjustments to conditions abroad and to the situation in exchange markets. Te Bank had been experimenting with interest rate adjustments since the crisis of 1857. From 1864, moreover, an amendment to the usury law meant that interest rates ceased to be limited to maximum 6 per cent (see Figure 6.5). 18 Interest rate adjustments and fnancial transactions accordingly replaced the regu- lar earlier fows of precious metal, the Riksbank’s redemption of banknotes and the 18 Note, however, that this change only applied to interest on short-term credit/paper. A 10-krona note from 1877, convertible into gold coins by the Riksbank. In the 1870s, 10 SEK was the equivalent of 4 grams of fne gold and corresponded to a male manufacturing labourer’s pay for 40 to 50 hours’ work. See also the previous illustration. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 306 efects of this on the credit market via the money supply as a mechanism for adjust- ment. Instead of constantly struggling to safeguard or replenish the silver reserves, the Bank was able to achieve an unbroken long-term accumulation of gold reserves and a corresponding growth of the money supply. Te private banks’ right to issue notes was fnally withdrawn in 1902. It should be born in mind that it was not until around the time of the transition to a gold standard that a number of preconditions for an ef cient interest rate policy were in place. Tere had been a growing understanding of how interest rates and interest rate policy work; in the early 1860s this acquired a more scientifc founda- tion, for instance through G. J. Goschen’s Te Teory of the Foreign Exchanges. Another factor, possibly the most important, was that both the fnancial system and the banking system in Sweden had not only become considerably larger and more developed but were also increasingly integrated internationally. It is worth consider- ing whether an interest rate policy would have been at all meaningful or efective in earlier times when international liquidity was less abundant and fnancial fows may not have been suf ciently large to infuence with interest rates. Still, the above is not a suf cient explanation for the outstanding stability of exchange rates during the international gold standard. Tis is evident not least in a comparison with later decades of the 20th century (see e.g. the next chapter in this volume). So what is the explanation? One interpretation that has become infuential is that the gold standard constituted a ‘credible commitment mechanism’. 19 A frm 19 Bordo and Kydland (1995). Figure 6.5. Te Riksbank: of cial discount rate 1828–1914 Source: Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Del V. Statistiska tabeller. 1840 1850 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1830 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 307 and perhaps above all a historically long-term undertaking to maintain convertibility to precious metal sent a signal to fnancial market participants that, at least in peace- time, the State would not go to any extremes of either fscal or monetary policy. Tis created confdence among international creditors and investors; moreover, the mini- mised exchange rate risk meant that credit was almost always available. Borrowers in turn could disregard exchange risks. Matters were probably not made worse by the fact that Sweden had managed to uphold convertibility to precious metal ever since September 1834. 6.3. Market integration During the 19th century the credit and foreign exchange markets in Sweden under- went an extensive and thorough transformation and integration. These processes are analysed in this section with reference to their possible importance for the concur- rent development of foreign exchange rates. The new exchange rate series which the project has yielded can be used to both extend and deepen the analyses of long-term integration. The significance of integration for the level of silver and gold points is analysed and thereby the changes in this period in the range formed by these points. This is followed by a study of how the transformation and integration of the Swedish credit and financial markets can be related to the process of integration. The section ends with a look at the development of integration related to the Scandinavian Cur- rency Union. 6.3.1. Silver and gold points Sweden’s foreign exchange market was affected, as mentioned, by an ongoing inte- gration during the periods with a silver or gold standard. This integration can be connected to some extent with innovations in transport and falling transport costs but what helped above all to lower transaction costs was decreased costs for commissions, brokerage, insurance and so on. In that the relative level of transaction costs deter- mined the levels of silver and gold points, over time the range within which exchange rates could fluctuate without eliciting silver or gold arbitrage became narrower. In this way, integration contributed to a long-term stabilisation of exchange rates. 20 Initially, moreover, the level of silver points varied seasonally because shipping was the cheapest form of transport for silver transactions. Transaction costs were there- fore higher during the winter because shipping became ice-bound; this meant that the distance between the silver points widened. In time, this variation diminished as new forms of transport, above all the construction of railways, reduced the cost of moving silver by land, a practice that in those days was not as dependent on seasonal conditions as shipping. Te seasonal variation in exchange rates seems to have largely 20 Lobell (2000, 2006). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 308 ceased during the 1860s. Another factor was that during the 19th century Sweden’s foreign trade became increasingly diversifed and less dependent on seasonal condi- tions. Integration led, for example, to falling transaction costs for foreign arbitrage and transactions in silver and gold, which led in turn to a narrowing of the range between silver or gold points and thereby contributed to increasing exchange rate stability. Tis tendency in the period 1834–80 has been analysed earlier in Lobell (2000, 2006). Te Riksbank’s new Historical Monetary Statistics now permit new indirect observations of market integration in the period from 1807/08 to 1834. One approach to estimating costs for transactions and arbitrage involves observing the level of exchange rates in periods when we know that silver or gold was exported. Tis assumes that normal means of payment, i.e. foreign bills, and silver were substi- tutes, so that silver could be used when the exchange rate reached a level at which it became proftable to use silver for foreign transactions despite the above-mentioned additional costs. Given also that the market was ef cient, the exchange rate ought not to exceed the silver point, in which case the prevailing rate when silver was actually exported should in practice represent the silver point. Transaction costs are then calcu- lated as the diference between exchange parity and the implicit silver or gold point. Comparisons between direct and indirect measurements of transaction costs have shown fairly good agreement for the period 1834–80. In this case, the average exchange rate for the shipping season was used as an indirect measure. In the work mentioned above, export statistics for silver and gold from the Board of Trade (Kom- merskollegium) served as an indicator of the years in which precious metal was exported; for the early 19th century one has to rely on indirect information from the Riksbank in Brisman (1930, pp. 8–9). Brisman states, as mentioned above, that sil- ver was withdrawn from the Riksbank and exported at least in 1807. Te average exchange rate for the period from April to October would then constitute a measure of the silver export point’s level in that year. Te new observation is presented in Table 6.1 together with data from Lobell (2006, p. 316). Te silver export points refer to exchange rates on Hamburg (which received virtually all the monetary silver that was exported) and are expressed as a percentage of the exchange rate parity. Te fgures in Table 6.1 indicate that between the end of the 1830s and the mid 1870s, transaction costs decreased from about two per cent to about half of one per cent of parity. It seems that this fall was preceded by a much steeper reduction since 1807, when transaction costs for exporting silver apparently amounted to more than thirteen per cent of parity. Tis is not entirely unreasonable in view of the situation in 1807, when the Continent was embroiled in war and blockades. In a study of the integration of Anglo-American foreign exchange markets, Of cer (1996, pp. 182– 185) demonstrated that transaction costs fell markedly between the periods 1791– 1800 and 1821–30. From the present material it is not possible to conclude whether or not the above-mentioned reduction of costs for transactions between Sweden and the Continent occurred between the same periods but it does not seem improbable. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 309 6.3.2. The Swedish financial system and foreign exchange market In the first half of the 19th century the major part of Swedish foreign exchange trans- actions was associated with the sizeable merchant bankers in Stockholm and Göte- borg. 21 Their operations included goods, credit, transport and foreign exchange. They were a direct source of foreign currency to clients but foreign exchange trading was largely a matter for the exchanges in the principal towns. Until the end of the 1870s the Swedish foreign exchange market was centred on these exchanges. Swed- ish exchange trading in the 19th century was dominated by bills drawn on Hamburg and London, which for Sweden were the most important international commercial and financial centres. 22 In the present context, foreign exchange rates are the foreign bill prices that were set in the exchanges’ auctions up to the end of 1889. 23 21 See e.g. Fridlizius (1981, p. 417), Söderlund (1964, p. 45), Andersson (2007). 22 Lobell (2000, p. 144). 23 Auctions were held on two days each week when the items traded were largely goods, foreign currency and maritime insurance. Certain brokers were appointed to perform the auctions, which lasted for one hour (see Algott 1963). Table 6.1. Average exchange rate for the shipping season in years when specie and bullion were exported (deviation from mint parity, per cent) Year Average exchange rate Year Average exchange rate Year Average exchange rate Year Average exchange rate 1807 13.1 1837 1.8 1848 2.6 1859 1.3 1870 .. 1838 2.3 1849 .. 1860 .. 1871 .. 1839 .. 1850 .. 1861 1.2 1872 .. 1840 .. 1851 .. 1862 .. 1873 .. 1841 .. 1852 .. 1863 1.0 1874 .. 1842 1.5 1853 .. 1864 .. 1875 0.4 ** 1843 1.5 1854 .. 1865 .. 1876 .. 1844 1.7 * 1855 .. 1866 1.4 1877 .. 1845 .. 1856 1.2 1867 0.9 1878 .. 1846 .. 1857 1.2 1868 1.1 1879 .. 1847 .. 1858 .. 1869 0.5 1880 .. * Tis fgure is from observations by Skogman (1846). ** Tis fgure denotes the average of exchange rates between September 1874 and April 1875. Sources: Data for 1807 and 1808 are calculations from exchange rates on Hamburg in database His- torical Monetary Statistics of Sweden 1668–2008, Sveriges Riksbank. Data between 1837 and 1880 are from Lobell (2006). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 310 Te role of banking companies in the foreign exchange market was very modest in the frst half of the century. Tree private banks (discount companies) were estab- lished in 1803, in Stockholm, Göteborg and Malmö, but they all failed during the international post-war crisis of 1817. Te frst savings banks appeared in the 1820s, followed by the frst private banks and mortgage institutions in 1830 and 1833, respectively. As a rule, however, the note-issuing banking companies did not trade in foreign exchange until around 1860. 24 Moreover, the rudimentary nature of Swedish credit instruments and the dif culties in promoting operations in domestic bills made Swedish commercial paper less attractive internationally. Exchange market liquidity was rather unstable in the frst half of the 19th cen- tury. It varied seasonally and was afected by the above-mentioned international credit market conditions. Bills on Hamburg and London were the most important currencies on the Swedish exchanges and bills in other currencies were traded less frequently. Tis is refected in the correspondingly large gaps in the exchange rate quotations for these currencies in the present database. During the boom in the 1850s, however, new participants and practices caused the international credit and foreign exchange markets to expand and change. Besides expanding, it has been shown that the foreign exchange market became more sophisticated, though the fnancial bubble that accompanied this did come to a disastrous end in the crisis of 1857. 25 In banking, deposits and cash transactions got under way in the 1850s and made a breakthrough in the 1860s. In the 1850s the banks also began to discount domes- tic bills, albeit on a very modest scale; discounting caught on, however, in the 1860s as the number of banks increased and the banking system became more widespread. Meanwhile the Swedish banks were becoming more integrated internationally. Te growth of international interbank trading in the 1860s included the Swedish bank- ing system and helped to improve the liquidity and elasticity of the international for- eign exchange market. At the turn of the century, foreign exchange transactions had left the exchanges and become a natural part of banking operations. Te exchanges in turn were in the process of becoming stock exchanges. Te Riksbank was active in the foreign exchange market from time to time in the period with a silver standard. Te Bank sold foreign currency when the foreign exchange rates were approaching the silver export point; but as the Bank’s foreign assets and drawing rights were comparatively small, its sales were relatively insignif- cant up to the end of the 1880s. Te Bank’s purchases of foreign currency in connec- tion with imports of bullion were probably more extensive. 26 Te Riksbank began to trade in foreign exchange on a regular basis in 1872; in the 1880s the Bank became the central player in the Swedish interbank and foreign exchange markets. 27 As a 24 Brisman (1937, pp. 186–7). 25 Einzig (1962). 26 Lobell (2000). 27 Brisman (1931, p. 285, p. 222). 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 311 result, the Riksbank’s of cial exchange rates served as a benchmark for the Swedish market; the Bank’s rates are included in the database as of 1890. Te Riksbank’s exchange rates were presumably adapted to the market rates. In a statement in 1911 about how exchange rates changed increasingly frequently, the Bank’s principal delegate, Bror Karl Johan Langenskiöld, described how foreign cur- rencies were priced. His account shows that the Bank set exchange rates on the basis of information cabled from foreign markets. It seems that banks in Sweden normally followed the Riksbank’s exchange rates. Langenskiöld related that commercial banks could obtain information about exchange rates from the Riksbank by telephone or by messenger. 28 Together with innovations in transportation and communication, this qualitative transformation and development of the Swedish credit and foreign exchange markets contributed, as we saw in the previous section, to both the internal and the interna- tional integration of the Swedish foreign exchange market. One way of measuring this integration involves studying the development of price diferentials for equiva- lent fnancial assets at geographically separate markets. In perfectly integrated mar- kets that conform to the law of one price, prices should be completely uniform. Te integration of the Swedish foreign exchange market is illustrated below in terms of a one-year moving average of daily price diferentials for three-month bills on London between the exchanges in Stockholm and Göteborg from 1843 (when the Göteborg exchange was established) to 1880. Tus, instead of the silver or gold points that were used to study external integration and the resultant exchange rate band, a some- what diferent type of commodity points (or rather ‘three-month sterling bill points’) is employed in this analysis of the internal integration of the Swedish credit and for- eign exchange markets. Te price diferentials comprise both positive and negative deviations from the price of rather homogeneous three-month sterling bills on Lon- don. Te more or less continuous falling trend for the mean as well as the standard deviation (see Figure 6.6) indicates a correspondingly continuous rate of integration of the Swedish foreign exchange market and presumably of the Swedish fnancial sys- tem as a whole. 6.3.3. The Scandinavian Currency Union By the time the Swedish financial system had undergone this expansion, transforma- tion and integration, conditions had also been created for making Swedish paper internationally acceptable on an entirely new scale. Short Swedish paper began to be quoted regularly abroad, starting with St. Petersburg in 1878. As of 1882, Swedish bills were also being listed in the major international financial centres. Previously, apart of course from Swedish specie, only Swedish notes had been listed on the Copenhagen and Hamburg exchanges and virtually all the Swedish bonds that were 28 Riksbank archives: F1A:3. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 312 traded abroad had been made out in foreign currency. From the 1880s onwards, bonds denominated in Swedish currency were marketable internationally. The stable currency based on gold and membership of the Scandinavian Currency Union were naturally no less important in this respect. Talia (2004, pp. 135–153) has shown that the Scandinavian Currency Union and, perhaps above all, the Union’s clearing agreement in the late 1880s promoted the integration of foreign exchange markets in Scandinavia. Te present project’s new data with Scandinavian bill prices from Hamburg confrm Talia’s observations in that they show that certain small price deviations occurred initially but became even smaller over time (see Figure 6.7). A more unexpected fnding is that the Hamburg exchange rate quotations for Scandinavian currencies show a slightly rising trend over as much as ffteen to twenty years, which has not been noted earlier for exchange rates under the gold standard. A Figure 6.6. One-year moving average of daily market quotations 1843–80. Mean and standard deviation of absolute price diferentials between the Stockholm and Göteborg exchanges (SEK/pound sterling). (Moving sample: n=104) (Log scale) Note. Te x-axis indicates the month and year of the last observation in 52-week series (104 trad- ing days). Tus, the frst observation concerns 104 price diferentials in the period from 3 January 1843 to 2 January 1844. Source: Modifed from Lobell (2000, p. 161). 0.02 0.04 0.06 0.08 0.10 0.12 Mean Standard Deviation 1850 1845 1855 1860 1865 1870 1875 1880 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 313 comparison of Hamburg bid prices for Scandinavian bills with prices for bills drawn on Hamburg/Berlin and priced in Stockholm, which show no trend, reveals a price diferential that diminishes in the long run. Tere still seems to have been some price diferential at the outbreak of the First World War. Te price diferential amounted at most to c. 0.7 per cent of parity; the most probable explanation is that it represented a risk premium which presumably con- cerned two circumstances. One part of the premium can relate to uncertainty about how the Currency Union and the gold standard would succeed in the Scandinavian countries. Te other part can be due to the international markets still being some- what sceptical about Scandinavian bills of exchange which, as mentioned, had been introduced on the internationally more important exchanges as recently as 1882. 6.4. Exchange rate data 1804–1914: description and sources Foreign exchange rates in the 19th century were actually prices for foreign bills of exchange. Most of the trading from which the price information in this project has been obtained was done on the exchanges. The Swedish centres for the foreign exchange market, at least up to the 1870s, were the Stockholm exchange and, from Figure 6.7. Exchange rates for Scandinavian bills of exchange in Hamburg Börse (Copenhagen, Stockholm, Christiania) and German bills in Stockholm 1882–1913 (Hamburg/Berlin) (mark/100 kronor) Source: See the main text. 111.0 111.2 111.4 111.6 111.8 112.0 112.2 112.4 112.6 112.8 113.0 1885 1890 1895 1900 1905 1910 Copenhagen mark/100 DKK Stockholm mark/100 SEK Christiania mark/100 NOK Hamburg/Berlin mark/100 SEK Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 314 its establishment in 1842, the exchange in Göteborg. Trade in Swedish bills in finan- cial centres abroad started as late as in 1882. On the Stockholm exchange, foreign bills were traded on Tuesdays and Fridays. Te market quotations for bills on the Stockholm exchange have been obtained from two daily newspapers: Aftonbladet and Post- och Inrikes Tidningar. Market quo- tations were published regularly by local newspapers. Te underlying data cover almost all trading days (i.e. two per week) from 1800 to 1889. Another source is the manuscript for the ffth, statistical volume for the history of the Riksbank that was published in 1931. 29 Information from the manuscript has been used mainly for the periods 1800–34 and 1881–89. However, a note on sources in the above-mentioned volume makes it clear that the daily newspaper Post- och Inrikes Tidningar was also the basis for those statistics. 30 As mentioned in the previous section, the trade practices and the way in which foreign exchange rates were quoted changed in the latter part of the century. Te vol- ume of interbank trading and the Riksbank’s trading gradually outweighed exchange trading as the period drew to a close. For the period 1890–1914 the exchange rates in this database are the Riksbank’s and have been compiled from the Bank’s internal documents. 6.4.1. Sight rates and time bills Assembling 19th century exchange rate data is not entirely straightforward. The actual rate of exchange is our concern but as bills are financial instruments, their prices sometimes include other components besides the ‘true’ exchange rate. In the first half of the century, market quotations for foreign bills were based on usance or a time perspective, which means that the calculation of an actual sight exchange rate has to allow for trade practices and time to maturity. Prior to 1847, bills on the Hamburg exchange, for example, usually had 67 days to maturity. Foreign bills were normally priced with a discount for the time to maturity. How- ever, the sight rate for a sight bill, E s , can be derived by simply cancelling the discount on a time bill, E d . Take, for example, time bill E d with d days to the due date, where the interest rate at the financial centre where the bill was made out is given by i: ⎟ ⎠ ⎞ ⎜ ⎝ ⎛ ⎟ ⎠ ⎞ ⎜ ⎝ ⎛ − = 365 100 1 d i E E d s (1) Eliminating the discount gives bill rates that are closer to the ‘true’ exchange rates. In this study, interest rate series from the financial centres where the bills were made 29 Sveriges Riksbank (1931). 30 Sveriges Riksbank (1931, p. 142). 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 315 out have served as a basis for calculating sight or ‘true’ exchange rates in accordance with equation 1. The interest rate series from London for the period 1836–80 is ‘Minimum Rate of Discount, Bank of England’ and comes from NBER online Macro History Database (http://www.nber.org), which is based in turn on informa- tion from The Economist. The interest rate series from Hamburg for the period 1824–52 is ‘Discont an der Hamburger Börse’ from Soetbeer (1855, p. 125) and is based on calculations of monthly averages using O. C. Gaedechen’s annotations. However, monthly interest rate data for Hamburg and London are missing for the period 1804–23 as well as for 1835, and for Paris for the period 1804–53. A stan- dardised rate of five per cent has then been used instead. The figure is not simply guesswork. In a book on the credit market, J. J. Nordström (1853, p. 161), head of the national archives and subsequently bank inspector, stated that this was a com- mon procedure for discounting maturity periods at the Stockholm exchange in the mid-19th century. It could be argued that this approach should also be adopted for the period to which Nordström refers. The foreign exchange historian Paul Einzig (1962, p. 175) has claimed, as mentioned, that the foreign exchange market became more ‘refined’ in the mid-19th century, which meant that more consideration was paid to maturity periods, postal days, grace periods, etc. 31 In our opinion, however, as there are no grounds for assuming that, in practice, calculations were invariably done in this way, it is preferable to use the actual discount rate whenever this is available. It should be noted, though, that there is no direct evidence to show that five per cent was used as a standard rate in the early part of the 19th century. There has been no elimination of the discount for time bills on Amsterdam and Copenhagen during the periods 1804–52 and 1804–34, respectively, since there is insufficient information on maturity periods. An exchange rate series from which discounting has been eliminated is presented in Figure 6.8. It represents the difference between a series of time bill quotations and a series of estimated quotations of sight rates in the period 1834–52. For the latter part of the 19th century, quotations are available for both sight and time bills, which makes it possible to compare the ‘accuracy’ of the sight rate calcula- tions. Actual sight rates are compared in Figure 6.9 with rates that were reconstructed by applying equation 1 above. The results show fairly good agreement in terms of the level of the series and its medium- and long-term variation. Table 6.2 Correlation between frst diferences for unprocessed, reconstructed and original series 1870–80 3-month Sight or short sight Calculated 3-month 1.00 0.69 0.54 Sight or short sight 0.69 1.00 0.54 Calculated 0.54 0.54 1.00 31 Note that postal days and grace periods are not considered in the present calculations. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 316 Figure 6.8 An original series compared with a series with discounting eliminated (skilling banco per reichsthaler Hamburg banco) 124 126 128 130 132 134 136 138 140 1834 1836 1838 1840 1842 1844 1846 1848 1850 Original series Series with discounting eliminated Figure 6.9 Comparison of a reconstructed and an original series of sight rates 1870–80 (SEK/£) 17.6 17.7 17.8 17.9 18 18.1 18.2 18.3 18.4 18.5 18.6 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 Exchange rate on £ at Stockholm Exchange, reconstructed Estimated monthly average, sight rate Source: See the main text. Source: See the main text. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 317 Tere is some diference, on the other hand, in the pattern of short-term varia- tions. Tis is even clearer in a more thorough comparison of the short-term (monthly) changes in the reconstructed and the ‘actual’ exchange rates. From Table 6.2 it will be seen that the frst diferences of the unprocessed series for 3-month and sight rates are more closely correlated than those of the reconstructed series. Appendix A6.1 Quotations on Hamburg and Hamburg/Berlin The currency units that were most important for the Swedish foreign exchange mar- ket as regards quotations on Hamburg and Hamburg/Berlin changed a few times during the period and have been converted into consistent series of SEK per 100 marks. Between 1804 and 1857, quotations on Hamburg were made in skilling banco per reichsthaler Hamburg banco; from 1858 to 1872 they were made in riks- daler riksmynt per 100 marks Hamburg banco and between 1873 and 1914 in kro- nor per 100 marks (in some instances referred to as riksmark or reichsmark). Con- versions into SEK/100 marks have been done on the basis of 1 reichsthaler Hamburg banco = 3 marks Hamburg banco = 4.5 marks 32 and 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 32 skilling banco and 1 riksdaler banco = 48 skilling banco = 1.5 riksdaler riksgälds = 1.5 SEK. 33 Quotations during the period 1804–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange, while the Riksbank’s of cial quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. 32 Te exact conversion rate in the transition period 1871–76 between mark Hamburg banco and mark is not entirely clear in the literature. K.A.W. (probably the banker Knut Wallenberg) writes, for example, in the encyclopedia Nordisk familjebok (1911, p. 995) that mark banco (of Hamburg and Altona) had a value somewhat above 1.50 reichsmark. 33 For example, in order to convert 128 skilling banco into kronor (or riksdaler riksgälds or riks- daler riksmynt) the fgure in skillings is divided by 32 (128 ÷ 32 = 4 kronor), and to convert 128 skilling banco into riksdaler banco the fgure in skillings is divided by 48 (128 ÷ 48 = 2 2/3 riksdaler banco [or 2 riksdaler banco and 32 skilling banco]). Tus, to convert for exam- ple 50 kronor in order to obtain skilling banco the fgure in kronor is multiplied by 32 (50 × 32 = 1600 skilling banco), or into riksdaler banco by dividing it with 1.5 (50 ÷ 1.5 = 33 1/3 riksdaler banco [or 33 riksdaler banco and 16 skilling banco]). Accordingly, if an exchange rate for example in August 1846, 89 SEK per 100 mark, is con- verted to obtain the original rate expressed in skilling banco per reichsthaler Hamburg banco, one may multiply the numerator, the rate in SEK, with 32 to obtain skilling banco, and divide marks with 4.5 to obtain reichsthaler Hamburg banco in the denominator, and fnally divide the rate with 100: ( ) banco Hamburg er reichsthal per banco skilling 128.16 100 12816 100 5 . 4 1 32 89 = = ⎥ ⎥ ⎥ ⎥ ⎦ ⎤ ⎢ ⎢ ⎢ ⎢ ⎣ ⎡ ⎟ ⎠ ⎞ ⎜ ⎝ ⎛ × Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 318 Observations are monthly mid-range in the periods 1804–33 and 1881–89, end- of-month 1834–80 and monthly average 1890–14. Te sources for the periods 1804–33 and 1881–89 are unpublished tables that most likely were the basis for cal- culations for the ffth, statistical volume in Sveriges Riksbank (1931); daily newspa- pers are reported to be the sources in that volume. Daily newspapers (mostly Post och inrikes tidningar and Aftonbladet) are sources for Hamburg quotations in the period 1834–80. Of cial Riksbank quotations on ‘Hamburg/Berlin’ 1890–1914 are from unpublished material in the Bank. Quotations are short sight for the period 1848–80 and sight for 1881–1914. Te primary instruments traded on the Stockholm stock exchange between 1804 and 1847 were 67-day bills drawn on Hamburg. Consequently the discount embedded in the prices has to be added in order to obtain exchange rates short sight or sight. Te exact calculations and data sources are presented in the previous section of this chapter. Te Harbour of Hamburg, by Anders Zorn (1860–1920). Bills on Hamburg were the most quoted foreign currency in Sweden in the frst half of the 19th century. Source: Nationalmuseum. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 319 Table A6.1. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1804 35.31 35.31 35.48 35.57 35.48 35.57 35.57 35.48 35.66 35.48 36.62 36.27 1805 36.18 36.36 36.18 36.27 35.83 35.57 35.48 34.78 34.78 34.87 35.22 35.04 1806 34.78 34.87 35.04 34.96 35.92 35.66 35.92 35.66 35.66 36.01 37.15 39.95 1807 39.07 39.25 37.67 37.67 37.41 37.85 36.97 37.41 38.37 38.37 39.42 38.90 1808 38.37 37.76 37.15 36.45 36.45 36.45 36.45 36.45 37.15 39.25 39.95 39.95 1809 37.15 37.50 40.65 42.75 44.86 44.33 43.63 44.27 44.16 45.03 1810 48.71 47.48 50.81 48.89 51.16 55.37 54.84 53.79 55.37 59.57 58.52 64.83 1811 65.18 81.30 95.32 71.49 70.09 76.40 77.10 77.45 76.05 73.24 71.84 65.53 1812 60.28 64.48 62.03 62.73 63.43 65.18 62.73 62.73 65.53 66.93 65.18 1813 65.18 65.18 60.98 60.28 65.88 70.09 1814 66.58 67.28 64.83 63.43 65.18 65.01 68.34 70.61 1815 72.19 74.29 68.51 75.69 81.30 81.30 73.94 72.89 72.54 71.49 71.49 1816 71.49 80.60 81.65 80.25 80.95 84.11 82.65 86.85 84.11 84.11 84.11 88.19 1817 81.94 74.23 69.21 81.13 76.63 78.32 77.97 77.91 77.10 72.89 72.83 78.50 1818 75.64 77.10 77.21 77.10 76.22 79.08 77.10 77.51 75.69 75.64 78.44 80.60 1819 81.65 83.40 84.11 82.00 83.87 84.11 88.25 87.55 86.91 88.89 94.38 99.52 1820 97.25 94.62 94.50 93.92 94.50 94.62 92.52 90.41 86.91 89.71 89.07 89.30 1821 87.96 88.14 88.31 84.40 80.60 81.65 83.35 85.51 84.81 87.61 91.11 88.66 1822 87.90 87.55 84.81 85.80 86.50 87.61 87.61 86.21 86.21 86.91 87.96 88.31 1823 88.31 88.31 87.96 86.56 86.91 86.85 85.45 85.51 86.91 88.95 89.71 89.71 1824 89.34 88.66 88.83 89.57 89.75 89.71 90.33 90.16 90.06 89.98 90.00 90.04 1825 90.00 90.00 89.42 88.36 86.57 86.59 85.39 85.74 85.41 85.90 86.65 86.85 1826 87.11 86.83 88.89 89.26 88.85 90.40 91.04 90.59 93.43 94.62 94.88 96.48 1827 97.40 95.27 95.74 94.75 95.52 97.05 96.32 95.95 93.57 92.47 95.39 94.18 1828 91.96 91.18 91.10 89.36 88.42 88.71 88.42 86.17 87.25 84.80 83.68 85.85 1829 85.42 85.40 85.34 86.12 85.93 86.83 85.70 85.86 86.29 88.91 90.71 89.57 1830 89.19 90.00 89.77 89.81 90.95 90.95 89.63 90.89 91.18 93.20 97.79 96.15 1831 96.32 94.81 95.53 95.56 96.80 97.63 97.67 97.90 97.06 99.62 99.39 100.93 1832 101.2 101.90 101.19 102.10 103.35 100.95 102.67 101.85 101.10 102.60 103.90 103.90 1833 103.83 103.78 103.85 103.78 102.97 103.40 100.23 97.63 94.94 97.78 96.30 99.25 1834 96.32 95.53 95.88 94.49 93.83 93.53 92.13 92.22 92.26 91.08 92.79 93.53 1835 92.00 92.31 91.94 91.66 90.96 88.17 89.22 88.50 88.95 89.07 89.28 89.40 1836 89.61 89.34 89.30 89.36 89.11 87.37 87.74 87.39 87.88 87.86 89.30 90.58 1837 88.95 88.76 89.05 89.03 91.08 90.04 90.35 91.02 90.65 92.37 92.40 92.52 1838 91.37 90.96 92.00 91.85 91.11 91.17 90.80 90.76 90.69 90.69 91.43 92.10 1839 91.45 90.65 89.34 88.03 88.70 88.89 89.24 89.20 89.16 88.66 89.55 89.42 1840 90.24 89.87 89.91 90.00 90.12 90.16 90.10 89.36 88.66 89.51 90.20 90.20 1841 89.28 90.24 90.37 90.37 89.67 90.20 89.77 90.20 90.57 90.49 91.45 92.24 1842 91.41 91.33 90.63 90.32 90.47 90.14 90.67 90.35 89.24 90.63 92.09 91.83 1843 93.07 91.94 91.24 90.55 90.57 90.22 89.87 89.89 90.00 90.04 90.65 91.31 1844 91.31 91.29 91.04 90.49 90.80 89.90 89.11 89.38 88.62 88.60 89.30 89.34 1845 89.93 88.54 88.52 88.68 88.50 88.89 88.81 88.83 89.05 89.30 89.32 89.16 1846 88.92 89.01 88.76 89.32 89.24 88.57 89.12 89.00 89.04 88.40 88.58 88.89 1847 89.17 89.06 89.11 88.96 88.54 88.54 88.54 88.54 88.54 88.89 88.89 89.35 1848 89.41 89.58 91.32 90.97 91.32 90.63 90.63 90.28 90.45 90.63 91.67 91.67 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 320 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1849 91.67 91.49 90.97 90.28 90.28 89.58 89.24 89.41 89.58 90.28 90.28 89.76 1850 89.93 89.76 89.41 89.24 89.24 88.89 89.06 89.24 89.06 89.24 90.80 90.28 1851 90.28 89.76 89.41 89.24 89.24 88.89 89.58 89.41 89.24 89.58 89.24 90.80 1852 89.93 89.93 89.24 89.41 89.58 89.06 89.58 89.76 88.72 89.24 89.24 89.06 1853 89.06 88.89 88.89 88.89 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.24 1854 89.24 89.06 89.24 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.58 1855 89.58 89.93 89.76 89.41 89.24 89.41 89.24 89.24 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.35 1856 89.58 89.81 89.81 89.41 89.41 89.24 89.58 89.88 89.70 89.76 89.93 90.63 1857 91.15 91.15 89.93 89.58 89.58 88.89 89.76 89.58 89.06 89.58 90.28 92.36 1858 94.11 90.24 90.10 90.10 89.67 89.17 90.10 89.77 88.99 89.26 89.77 90.61 1859 90.78 89.77 89.93 89.70 90.27 90.10 89.94 89.43 89.43 89.43 89.43 89.43 1860 89.77 89.94 89.77 89.60 89.27 89.44 89.54 89.60 89.77 89.70 89.94 89.94 1861 90.84 90.60 89.94 89.94 89.84 89.44 89.77 89.44 89.77 89.44 90.10 90.44 1862 90.27 90.27 89.54 89.77 89.44 89.60 89.27 89.27 89.44 89.60 89.77 89.77 1863 89.60 89.44 89.60 89.60 89.60 89.60 89.60 89.10 89.44 89.60 89.94 90.27 1864 89.94 89.60 89.60 89.60 89.54 89.60 89.60 89.50 89.77 89.44 89.44 89.44 1865 89.44 89.44 89.27 89.27 89.27 89.44 89.44 89.60 89.60 89.60 89.44 89.60 1866 89.77 89.77 89.60 89.77 89.77 90.10 90.10 89.77 89.60 89.77 89.77 89.60 1867 89.77 89.60 89.44 89.44 89.54 89.44 89.44 89.38 89.34 89.44 89.44 89.50 1868 89.77 89.60 89.44 89.34 89.44 89.60 89.94 89.94 89.94 89.34 89.37 89.60 1869 89.77 89.60 89.34 89.30 89.27 89.20 89.10 89.04 88.87 88.87 88.99 88.99 1870 88.99 88.99 88.99 88.99 88.99 88.94 89.84 89.27 88.99 88.94 88.94 88.94 1871 88.77 88.77 88.67 88.60 88.50 88.37 88.30 88.30 88.27 88.30 88.27 88.20 1872 88.27 88.20 88.20 88.20 88.20 88.10 88.10 88.44 88.27 88.27 87.93 87.93 1873 88.42 89.00 88.90 89.35 89.75 89.35 89.40 89.40 89.10 88.80 89.00 88.75 1874 89.30 89.20 89.10 89.15 89.00 88.90 89.00 89.00 88.90 89.25 89.25 89.00 1875 89.25 89.10 89.00 88.90 88.75 88.80 89.00 89.00 89.05 89.20 89.10 89.00 1876 89.15 88.90 88.90 88.90 88.90 88.85 88.85 88.85 88.90 89.00 88.90 88.90 1877 89.00 89.00 89.00 88.95 89.00 89.00 89.00 89.00 89.20 89.20 89.10 89.10 1878 89.15 89.15 89.15 89.15 89.15 89.10 89.10 89.10 89.10 89.10 89.00 89.00 1879 89.10 89.10 89.10 89.10 89.10 88.90 88.90 88.85 88.85 89.15 89.10 89.05 1880 89.03 88.87 88.80 88.87 88.86 88.81 88.81 88.84 88.91 88.94 89.00 88.99 1881 88.98 89.00 88.99 88.99 89.09 88.90 88.98 89.00 89.08 89.18 89.18 89.18 1882 89.21 89.20 89.16 89.15 89.15 89.13 89.14 89.14 89.08 89.05 89.11 89.22 1883 89.19 89.11 89.09 89.06 89.03 88.98 89.03 89.00 89.01 88.98 89.04 89.10 1884 89.10 89.07 89.04 89.01 89.01 88.93 89.00 89.03 89.06 89.11 89.10 89.14 1885 89.11 89.10 89.08 89.15 89.20 89.11 89.13 89.19 89.23 89.29 89.27 89.27 1886 89.23 89.14 89.01 88.96 89.00 88.97 88.95 88.95 88.95 89.01 89.10 89.10 1887 89.10 89.11 89.08 89.12 89.15 89.11 89.10 89.09 89.10 89.10 89.09 89.05 1888 89.07 89.10 89.12 89.12 89.05 89.04 89.00 88.97 89.01 89.12 89.15 89.15 1889 89.09 89.08 88.99 88.93 88.90 88.89 88.91 88.93 88.95 88.99 89.11 89.20 1890 89.12 89.05 89.08 89.13 89.10 89.20 89.14 89.10 89.13 89.21 89.28 89.30 1891 89.24 89.25 89.13 89.04 88.90 88.94 89.03 89.12 89.18 89.20 89.21 89.20 1892 89.18 89.01 88.95 88.91 88.90 88.96 88.94 88.86 88.94 88.98 88.95 88.99 1893 88.99 88.91 88.86 88.85 88.85 88.87 88.99 89.01 89.13 89.18 89.19 89.17 Table A6.1 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 321 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1894 89.07 88.91 88.88 88.84 88.85 88.85 88.85 88.87 88.90 88.90 88.90 88.90 1895 88.90 88.90 88.90 88.86 88.85 88.85 88.86 88.90 88.90 88.87 88.87 88.83 1896 88.88 88.93 88.93 88.90 88.89 88.90 88.90 88.90 88.95 89.06 89.10 89.13 1897 89.14 89.07 89.00 88.98 88.95 88.95 88.95 88.95 89.01 89.04 89.05 89.05 1898 89.01 88.93 88.90 88.90 88.96 88.98 89.03 89.01 89.07 89.13 89.11 89.17 1899 89.20 89.20 89.22 89.18 89.08 89.02 88.96 88.99 89.05 89.12 89.15 89.09 1900 89.10 89.10 89.11 89.12 89.10 89.08 89.08 89.01 89.07 89.10 89.01 89.00 1901 89.00 88.98 88.95 88.95 88.86 88.88 88.90 88.87 88.91 88.97 88.95 88.97 1902 88.96 88.94 88.95 88.95 88.95 88.95 88.90 88.90 88.88 88.90 88.87 88.91 1903 89.01 89.00 89.02 88.97 89.00 89.02 89.05 89.07 89.14 89.13 89.07 89.02 1904 89.04 89.05 89.07 89.05 89.07 89.03 89.02 88.91 89.02 89.13 89.17 89.04 1905 88.92 88.93 88.88 88.80 88.77 88.80 88.87 88.87 88.91 88.91 88.98 89.07 1906 89.01 88.96 88.95 88.90 88.87 88.88 88.92 88.97 89.06 89.07 89.10 89.12 1907 89.18 89.15 89.19 89.15 89.12 89.07 89.05 89.12 89.19 89.26 89.31 89.38 1908 89.36 89.18 89.22 89.22 89.20 89.22 89.07 88.97 88.98 88.94 88.87 88.89 1909 88.90 88.91 88.99 88.99 88.94 88.92 89.02 88.96 88.96 89.04 89.09 89.04 1910 89.06 89.02 89.05 88.97 88.97 88.95 88.95 88.97 88.99 88.92 88.92 88.94 1911 88.97 89.00 88.95 88.90 88.90 88.89 88.90 88.86 88.95 88.99 88.95 88.91 1912 88.94 88.92 88.99 88.93 88.90 88.95 88.90 88.90 88.95 88.97 88.97 89.04 1913 89.04 89.15 89.58 89.17 89.15 89.18 89.12 89.13 89.10 89.11 89.04 88.93 1914 88.90 88.90 88.98 88.94 89.01 89.01 89.00 89.16 89.26 87.62 84.97 87.41 Sources: 1804–33 and 1881–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1834– 80: Post och inrikes tidningar and Aftonbladet; 1890–1914: Riksbankens växelkurser på Hamburg/Ber- lin, 1890–1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Appendix A6.2 Quotations on London As the British currency was unchanged throughout the 19th century, even though it was officially converted into a monometallic gold currency in 1816, calculating con- sistent series of SEK per £1 is a simple matter. Quotations for bills drawn on London were made in skilling banco per £1 before 1858, in riksdaler riksmynt per £1 between 1858 and 1872 and in kronor per £1 thereafter. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been done on the basis of 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 32 skilling banco. Sterling quotations in the period 1804–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange, while the Riksbank’s of cial quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. Observations are monthly mid-range in the periods 1804–42 and 1881–89 and monthly average in 1843–80 and 1890–1914. Te sources for periods 1804–42 and 1881–89 are unpublished tables from the Riksbank; daily newspapers are reported to be the sources in that volume. Daily newspapers (Post och inrikes tidningar, Aftonbla- det and Göteborgs handels- och sjöfartstidning) are sources for daily London quotations Table A6.1 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 322 in the period 1843–80 from which monthly averages have been calculated. Of cial quotations on London 1890–1914 are from unpublished material in the Bank. Te most homogeneous series of quotations on London before 1870 are 90-day sterling bills. Consequently the discount that was deducted from these prices has to be added in order to obtain exchange rates short sight or sight. Te exact calculations and data sources are presented in the previous section. Table A6.2. Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1804 6.74 6.68 6.83 6.96 7.06 7.02 7.02 6.98 6.93 6.91 7.15 6.90 1805 6.98 7.06 7.06 7.06 7.01 6.96 6.91 6.71 6.58 6.33 6.39 6.17 1806 6.36 6.60 6.71 6.58 6.90 6.74 6.76 6.80 6.64 6.76 7.07 6.91 1807 7.48 7.40 7.23 7.28 7.21 7.12 7.02 6.94 6.85 6.99 7.01 7.09 1808 7.15 6.96 6.80 6.74 6.82 6.79 6.81 6.80 6.79 6.79 6.80 6.77 1809 6.76 6.76 6.88 6.94 6.93 6.91 6.91 7.07 7.10 7.04 7.06 7.15 1810 8.16 7.78 8.57 8.46 8.84 9.56 9.14 9.37 9.59 9.65 9.56 9.57 1811 9.58 9.59 9.60 9.62 9.63 9.64 9.65 9.66 9.68 9.69 9.70 9.71 1812 9.72 9.74 9.75 9.76 9.77 9.78 9.80 9.81 9.41 9.60 9.81 9.87 1813 10.25 10.63 10.69 9.37 10.19 10.62 10.63 11.33 11.61 10.99 11.07 11.74 1814 11.50 11.49 11.52 11.17 10.33 10.36 10.92 11.36 11.79 11.50 11.99 12.37 1815 13.07 13.23 12.12 11.88 12.64 12.51 12.64 12.64 13.02 13.40 13.54 13.54 1816 13.54 15.06 15.95 15.69 15.82 16.45 17.09 17.67 17.34 17.34 17.34 17.97 1817 16.20 14.52 13.79 15.95 15.22 15.41 14.93 14.98 14.68 13.91 13.69 14.81 1818 14.15 14.43 14.37 14.33 14.14 14.80 14.49 14.53 14.28 14.01 14.36 15.06 1819 16.69 15.61 15.99 15.29 15.82 16.44 17.47 17.84 17.57 17.67 18.72 19.74 1820 19.46 18.98 18.96 19.08 19.24 19.33 19.13 18.70 17.97 16.96 18.48 18.73 1821 18.48 18.45 18.54 17.85 17.06 17.40 17.43 17.97 17.37 18.05 18.48 18.22 1822 18.10 18.10 17.44 17.71 17.96 16.89 18.22 18.01 17.96 18.10 18.14 18.13 1823 18.35 18.32 18.25 18.05 18.33 18.07 17.83 18.05 18.21 18.60 18.60 18.58 1824 18.49 18.38 18.46 18.53 18.51 18.48 18.55 18.58 18.60 18.59 18.57 18.60 1825 18.55 18.55 18.10 17.49 17.32 17.37 17.13 17.24 17.11 17.34 17.10 17.24 1826 17.38 17.70 18.16 18.47 18.45 19.09 19.11 19.01 19.43 19.70 19.74 19.74 1827 20.12 19.69 19.99 19.73 19.78 20.09 19.69 19.58 19.08 18.79 19.23 18.86 1828 18.73 18.54 18.53 18.35 18.12 18.28 18.28 17.74 17.81 17.21 17.08 17.39 1829 17.21 17.38 17.44 17.71 17.65 17.78 17.55 17.45 17.65 18.22 18.85 18.58 1830 18.50 18.78 18.79 18.79 18.85 18.86 18.28 18.59 18.46 18.78 19.74 19.33 1831 19.43 19.22 19.42 19.41 19.74 19.91 19.84 19.76 19.54 20.10 20.18 20.31 1832 20.50 20.93 20.93 21.13 21.51 21.01 21.32 21.26 20.93 21.32 21.38 21.42 1833 21.55 21.63 21.58 21.47 21.47 21.51 20.72 20.01 19.36 19.92 19.55 20.12 1834 19.51 19.48 19.52 19.26 19.11 19.06 18.84 18.84 18.72 18.53 18.98 18.90 1835 18.81 18.80 18.85 18.81 18.69 18.02 18.27 18.27 18.25 18.30 18.25 18.19 1836 18.26 18.36 18.31 18.26 18.17 17.76 17.74 17.75 17.76 17.77 17.91 18.02 1837 17.89 17.93 18.15 18.35 18.73 18.73 18.65 18.79 18.76 19.03 18.98 18.88 1838 18.64 18.58 18.89 18.79 18.71 18.70 18.51 18.49 18.41 18.46 18.48 18.30 1839 18.36 18.23 17.96 17.63 17.73 17.76 17.84 17.72 17.79 17.64 17.95 17.95 1840 18.31 18.29 18.35 18.13 18.29 18.15 18.17 17.86 17.64 17.63 17.91 17.88 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 323 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1841 17.90 18.03 18.10 18.22 18.41 18.22 18.16 18.17 18.22 18.29 18.48 18.53 1842 18.67 18.75 18.67 18.61 18.37 18.36 18.56 18.53 18.28 18.56 18.81 18.69 1843 18.90 18.90 18.86 18.78 18.87 18.74 18.62 18.62 18.60 18.54 18.70 18.75 1844 18.76 18.73 18.67 18.63 18.57 18.35 18.16 18.19 18.10 18.01 18.18 18.17 1845 18.28 18.36 18.21 18.20 18.15 18.19 18.17 18.10 18.09 18.02 18.00 18.10 1846 18.15 18.19 18.20 18.18 18.28 18.30 18.16 18.19 18.14 18.05 18.02 18.12 1847 17.98 17.91 17.86 17.93 18.02 17.99 17.95 17.98 18.01 18.18 18.34 18.48 1848 18.46 18.33 18.66 18.89 18.97 18.61 18.49 18.51 18.34 18.35 18.61 18.78 1849 18.88 18.76 18.56 18.51 18.49 18.48 18.45 18.44 18.44 18.48 18.65 18.49 1850 18.47 18.48 18.45 18.48 18.40 18.21 18.11 18.12 18.09 18.04 18.06 17.85 1851 17.85 18.01 17.95 17.87 17.81 17.84 17.87 17.90 17.89 18.01 18.12 18.19 1852 18.17 18.22 18.08 18.14 18.23 18.17 18.10 18.05 18.03 17.92 17.72 17.61 1853 17.59 17.63 17.69 17.70 17.72 17.71 17.63 17.66 17.63 17.63 17.53 17.56 1854 17.55 17.58 17.49 17.44 17.56 17.62 17.64 17.71 17.73 17.74 17.71 17.66 1855 17.72 17.82 17.84 18.06 17.96 17.89 17.87 17.83 17.78 17.87 17.89 17.93 1856 18.04 18.22 18.40 18.32 18.25 18.09 17.89 17.96 17.81 17.76 17.86 17.90 1857 18.01 18.12 18.01 17.93 17.89 17.78 17.78 17.88 17.77 17.75 18.04 18.45 1858 18.55 18.24 17.96 17.88 17.90 17.75 17.92 18.08 17.85 17.78 17.85 18.05 1859 18.06 17.93 17.81 17.79 17.61 17.59 17.64 17.68 17.70 17.63 17.66 17.68 1860 17.69 17.77 17.75 17.77 17.73 17.68 17.70 17.76 17.74 17.71 17.81 17.93 1861 18.05 18.08 18.10 18.03 18.08 18.05 18.16 18.07 18.12 18.13 18.05 18.12 1862 18.11 18.09 17.94 17.98 17.91 17.90 17.89 17.83 17.75 17.72 17.72 17.75 1863 17.77 17.86 17.79 17.85 17.86 17.85 17.90 17.96 17.85 17.77 17.84 17.85 1864 17.84 17.81 17.78 17.80 17.92 17.86 17.87 18.00 17.89 17.93 17.90 17.76 1865 17.78 17.80 17.83 17.86 17.91 17.92 17.90 17.99 17.95 17.98 17.96 17.92 1866 18.03 18.14 18.10 18.07 18.03 17.86 17.99 18.15 17.90 17.90 17.93 17.88 1867 17.94 17.98 17.99 17.92 17.98 17.97 17.99 18.05 18.07 18.04 18.06 18.08 1868 18.11 18.09 18.09 18.05 18.08 18.08 18.10 18.11 18.10 18.06 18.02 18.11 1869 18.14 18.15 18.12 18.17 18.17 18.15 18.14 18.11 17.98 17.92 17.93 17.99 1870 17.97 17.96 17.97 18.00 17.97 17.94 17.82 18.01 17.99 17.94 17.88 17.90 1871 17.92 17.96 17.94 17.93 17.95 17.90 17.80 17.80 17.77 17.87 17.82 17.71 1872 17.75 17.78 17.76 17.82 17.88 17.84 17.90 17.94 17.84 17.96 18.04 17.97 1873 17.96 18.01 17.94 17.99 18.05 18.02 18.05 18.03 17.99 18.08 18.14 17.96 1874 18.03 18.10 18.09 18.11 18.09 18.07 18.11 18.20 18.17 18.18 18.23 18.27 1875 18.27 18.25 18.25 18.27 18.28 18.28 18.26 18.15 18.13 18.09 18.08 18.12 1876 18.19 18.21 18.22 18.16 18.12 18.15 18.16 18.18 18.18 18.16 18.13 18.12 1877 18.14 18.19 18.18 18.15 18.20 18.21 18.17 18.18 18.23 18.25 18.26 18.21 1878 18.21 18.17 18.19 18.21 18.21 18.19 18.22 18.28 18.29 18.24 18.24 18.22 1879 18.21 18.19 18.20 18.19 18.16 18.13 18.17 18.18 18.17 18.12 18.16 18.15 1880 18.15 18.15 18.16 18.14 18.15 18.17 18.19 18.19 18.18 18.17 18.13 18.15 1881 18.16 18.22 18.21 18.23 18.23 18.22 18.23 18.23 18.23 18.24 18.22 18.21 1882 18.24 18.27 18.25 18.24 18.24 18.23 18.23 18.23 18.23 18.20 18.18 18.17 1883 18.17 18.22 18.23 18.21 18.22 18.24 18.24 18.25 18.23 18.18 18.17 18.17 1884 18.19 18.24 18.25 18.22 18.20 18.20 18.20 18.19 18.18 18.18 18.22 18.26 1885 18.26 18.27 18.29 18.27 18.24 18.19 18.18 18.18 18.19 18.18 18.18 18.18 1886 18.21 18.21 18.18 18.18 18.19 18.16 18.15 18.17 18.17 18.17 18.18 18.18 Table A6.2 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 324 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1887 18.20 18.18 18.19 18.17 18.17 18.16 18.15 18.19 18.22 18.20 18.16 18.14 1888 18.16 18.16 18.14 18.14 18.16 18.14 18.16 18.21 18.23 18.23 18.19 18.19 1889 18.19 18.21 18.23 18.20 18.18 18.17 18.17 18.19 18.22 18.20 18.17 18.17 1890 18.21 18.23 18.20 18.18 18.17 18.16 18.21 18.24 18.19 18.20 18.22 18.20 1891 18.18 18.17 18.17 18.16 18.19 18.17 18.14 18.14 18.15 18.15 18.17 18.16 1892 18.16 18.18 18.19 18.18 18.16 18.13 18.15 18.15 18.14 18.14 18.13 18.12 1893 18.12 18.16 18.17 18.16 18.20 18.16 18.16 18.21 18.19 18.14 18.14 18.14 1894 18.17 18.20 18.18 18.14 18.13 18.12 18.12 18.13 18.12 18.10 18.13 18.13 1895 18.15 18.19 18.18 18.19 18.19 18.17 18.16 18.19 18.16 18.15 18.19 18.16 1896 18.18 18.21 18.20 18.17 18.16 18.13 18.13 18.14 18.14 18.15 18.17 18.16 1897 18.19 18.19 18.17 18.14 18.14 18.11 18.11 18.13 18.15 18.13 18.12 18.14 1898 18.17 18.18 18.21 18.25 18.25 18.16 18.15 18.17 18.18 18.22 18.23 18.22 1899 18.23 18.22 18.22 18.24 18.23 18.20 18.21 18.24 18.22 18.25 18.23 18.27 1900 18.28 18.28 18.26 18.27 18.28 18.20 18.22 18.25 18.24 18.23 18.20 18.18 1901 18.21 18.23 18.19 18.16 18.17 18.15 18.14 18.16 18.15 18.14 18.17 18.16 1902 18.16 18.19 18.20 18.21 18.22 18.21 18.20 18.21 18.19 18.18 18.17 18.18 1903 18.21 18.24 18.25 18.24 18.22 18.18 18.15 18.15 18.17 18.19 18.21 18.19 1904 18.22 18.25 18.21 18.21 18.18 18.17 18.18 18.19 18.17 18.16 18.16 18.15 1905 18.17 18.21 18.19 18.18 18.18 18.18 18.19 18.18 18.17 18.18 18.18 18.17 1906 18.20 18.23 18.22 18.21 18.22 18.21 18.20 18.21 18.21 18.23 18.28 18.27 1907 18.28 18.29 18.30 18.28 18.24 18.23 18.21 18.22 18.26 18.29 18.36 18.36 1908 18.33 18.26 18.25 18.23 18.21 18.20 18.16 18.15 18.15 18.16 18.18 18.19 1909 18.21 18.24 18.25 18.21 18.18 18.18 18.20 18.19 18.16 18.20 18.24 18.22 1910 18.22 18.22 18.22 18.24 18.25 18.21 18.19 18.20 18.19 18.20 18.21 18.17 1911 18.21 18.23 18.20 18.19 18.18 18.16 18.19 18.19 18.21 18.25 18.20 18.19 1912 18.23 18.24 18.22 18.22 18.20 18.20 18.21 18.20 18.20 18.24 18.26 18.21 1913 18.23 18.26 18.26 18.26 18.24 18.23 18.24 18.24 18.20 18.24 18.26 18.23 1914 18.23 18.18 18.19 18.20 18.24 18.25 18.25 18.36 18.63 18.85 18.99 19.19 Sources: 1804–42 and 1881–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1843– 80: Post och inrikes tidningar and Aftonbladet; 1890–1914: Riksbankens växelkurser på London, 1890– 1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Appendix A6.3 Quotations on Amsterdam The currency units in quotations on Amsterdam changed a few times during the period and have been converted into consistent series of SEK/100 gulden. Quota- tions on Amsterdam were originally made in skilling banco per Holländsk riksdaler kurant between 1804 and 1857. From 1858 to 1872 quotations were made in riks- daler riksmynt per 100 Holländsk gulden and between 1873 and 1914 in kronor per 100 gulden. Conversions into SEK per 100 gulden have been done on the basis of 2.5 Holländsk gulden = 1 Holländsk riksdaler kurant, 1 Holländsk gulden = 1 gul- den and 32 skilling banco = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 1 SEK (krona). Table A6.2 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 325 Quotations between 1804 and 1889 are from the Stockholm stock exchange and are monthly mid-range observations. Te sources are unpublished tables that most likely were the basis for calculations for the ffth, statistical volume in Sveriges Riks- bank (1931); daily newspapers are reported to be the sources in that volume. Monthly averages from the Riksbank’s of cial quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. Of cial quotations are from unpublished material in the Bank. Quotations on bills drawn on Amsterdam in the period 1804–52 are u.s.o. since there is no information on periods of maturity. Quotations are short sight or less than 50 days for 1853–80 and sight for 1881–1914. Table A6.3. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1804 58.3 58.1 58.8 59.4 59.7 59.7 59.7 59.5 59.5 59.5 60.0 60.3 1805 59.5 59.8 59.5 59.7 59.5 59.5 59.2 58.3 57.7 57.7 57.7 56.9 1806 56.7 56.9 58.6 59.2 60.9 59.4 59.7 60.5 60.2 60.2 61.3 65.6 1807 66.9 66.7 66.6 65.6 64.4 64.7 64.1 63.9 64.1 64.7 66.3 68.1 1808 66.9 66.9 64.7 66.3 1809 75.0 71.9 1810 81.3 77.5 83.1 98.1 88.8 93.1 97.5 103.8 100.0 1811 136.9 126.9 118.8 1812 102.5 107.5 107.5 115.0 105.0 116.3 115.0 1813 113.8 111.3 1814 112.5 111.3 113.8 114.4 114.1 108.1 108.1 108.8 115.0 118.1 1815 121.3 123.8 119.4 125.6 132.5 133.8 125.0 123.8 123.8 123.1 125.0 1816 125.0 130.0 135.3 133.1 133.1 136.6 142.5 143.5 140.4 142.5 145.5 148.2 1817 139.1 127.8 115.5 132.3 133.5 130.1 129.7 128.5 127.4 117.5 121.0 126.3 1818 123.8 127.4 128.3 129.0 126.9 131.1 130.9 130.5 127.7 125.6 128.5 132.0 1819 137.2 138.2 138.8 137.4 141.1 142.6 146.3 148.5 147.5 149.3 157.5 166.3 1820 165.0 161.3 158.8 159.4 159.4 160.6 158.1 151.3 145.6 148.4 150.9 152.8 1821 151.6 149.9 150.6 147.5 138.9 137.5 139.2 139.5 140.4 141.3 146.9 148.1 1822 146.6 146.6 143.0 143.1 145.6 147.2 149.0 147.8 146.3 147.4 150.6 151.0 1823 151.1 151.3 150.9 148.4 147.1 146.9 144.6 144.1 145.5 149.3 152.5 153.1 1824 153.4 153.3 154.1 155.5 155.3 155.3 155.6 154.4 154.4 155.3 155.8 156.9 1825 155.9 155.2 153.8 150.0 146.4 146.1 144.4 144.4 144.4 142.4 144.6 143.8 1826 143.6 143.8 147.4 147.3 149.0 151.9 155.3 154.4 157.3 159.8 162.4 164.2 1827 164.7 162.7 163.8 163.0 163.4 163.0 164.2 163.0 160.8 158.2 159.0 158.4 1828 155.4 154.4 154.7 153.1 150.2 149.7 150.3 146.6 145.9 144.6 143.4 145.0 1829 145.6 144.8 145.9 145.9 144.9 144.5 143.7 142.6 142.8 145.5 150.0 150.6 1830 149.4 150.6 153.0 152.0 152.3 152.0 150.4 149.0 149.7 152.5 161.3 163.5 1831 163.1 161.9 163.1 162.5 163.9 165.0 163.9 164.4 163.2 165.3 168.4 170.3 1832 170.6 171.3 173.5 171.9 174.5 172.8 171.1 171.3 171.6 171.9 173.8 175.0 1833 175.7 177.3 178.4 178.8 176.9 176.1 173.4 166.9 162.2 162.5 163.1 164.7 1834 161.9 160.5 159.7 158.0 156.0 155.8 153.8 152.7 152.4 151.3 152.4 154.1 1835 153.3 152.8 153.6 153.3 153.0 148.8 148.4 148.4 148.0 148.3 148.6 149.2 1836 148.8 150.0 150.0 149.1 149.0 147.5 145.9 144.5 144.9 145.3 146.7 149.4 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 326 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1837 148.0 148.1 149.1 148.4 151.3 151.1 151.5 152.3 152.1 153.8 155.6 155.9 1838 154.4 152.7 154.1 154.1 151.7 152.0 150.8 150.2 150.5 150.4 151.8 153.1 1839 153.1 152.2 151.9 148.6 147.5 147.0 146.4 146.0 145.5 145.0 146.5 150.6 1840 148.4 150.9 150.0 151.6 150.6 149.9 149.4 148.3 146.6 147.8 148.1 149.2 1841 148.4 149.1 150.0 149.1 149.0 149.2 148.8 149.1 149.8 150.2 151.6 153.8 1842 152.3 152.2 152.0 150.9 150.9 149.8 149.4 150.3 148.4 149.1 153.8 154.1 1843 154.2 153.8 153.8 152.3 153.1 152.8 150.6 150.9 151.6 151.3 152.5 154.5 1844 153.8 153.4 153.1 153.1 151.6 150.0 149.4 149.4 149.1 147.8 150.0 150.4 1845 150.0 149.4 149.1 148.1 147.2 147.2 147.0 146.6 146.4 145.6 145.4 147.5 1846 148.1 148.8 148.3 146.1 147.3 147.8 146.9 146.9 146.8 145.8 146.9 148.4 1847 148.8 147.5 147.2 147.8 147.2 146.6 146.9 147.2 147.3 147.3 147.2 149.1 1848 150.6 150.0 151.6 152.2 154.1 152.5 152.1 152.1 151.9 151.9 153.8 154.7 1849 154.5 154.4 153.1 153.5 152.8 152.2 151.9 152.2 152.3 152.2 152.5 153.2 1850 153.8 153.4 152.6 152.2 150.0 150.2 149.4 149.6 149.1 149.5 151.5 151.3 1851 151.3 151.6 151.3 150.9 149.7 150.5 150.6 151.4 150.0 150.6 151.3 152.2 1852 152.7 152.5 153.1 151.9 151.3 150.8 150.1 150.6 150.1 150.2 150.6 150.6 1853 149.7 150.9 149.9 149.1 149.2 150.0 148.4 149.4 149.1 148.4 149.1 150.3 1854 150.0 150.3 150.2 149.1 149.3 149.4 149.7 149.5 149.4 149.7 149.1 149.5 1855 149.7 150.3 150.9 150.6 149.2 148.6 148.8 149.4 148.6 148.6 149.5 149.4 1856 151.3 151.6 151.3 150.9 150.6 149.4 149.5 150.3 150.2 150.5 150.8 152.2 1857 152.8 153.4 152.2 150.3 150.0 149.5 150.0 150.5 149.7 149.1 149.4 153.1 1858 154.1 151.6 150.5 150.5 152.0 150.8 151.1 150.5 150.5 152.0 153.0 1859 153.0 152.4 151.6 151.5 150.5 150.9 151.3 150.8 151.0 151.6 152.0 151.8 1860 152.0 152.0 152.3 151.5 150.3 150.0 150.3 149.8 150.3 150.5 152.8 1861 152.3 151.5 150.5 152.1 150.0 150.5 150.4 152.3 150.5 150.8 152.8 1862 152.5 154.0 154.0 154.0 151.9 151.6 151.8 150.3 150.8 152.8 153.8 1863 152.3 151.0 152.0 151.9 152.0 150.5 150.1 150.5 151.5 150.5 150.4 151.0 1864 150.9 150.4 151.0 149.5 149.5 149.3 148.6 151.6 150.9 1865 151.9 152.3 151.8 151.8 150.5 150.0 150.4 150.3 150.3 1866 151.5 152.0 151.5 152.5 152.0 153.0 152.0 153.0 153.0 1867 153.0 152.5 152.5 152.8 152.6 152.2 152.0 152.3 152.1 1868 152.1 152.4 152.6 152.2 152.4 152.6 152.0 152.0 1869 152.0 151.8 151.0 151.6 150.5 151.5 151.9 1870 151.6 152.8 150.8 150.6 151.8 151.5 150.0 152.5 151.8 1871 151.4 151.5 151.5 151.0 150.9 149.5 150.4 150.2 1872 149.3 149.0 148.6 148.9 148.8 148.8 1873 149.3 150.4 149.4 149.9 150.7 150.4 150.6 150.8 150.4 151.0 151.1 150.9 1874 151.3 153.1 152.9 152.4 152.8 152.9 152.4 152.8 153.0 153.4 154.3 154.8 1875 155.2 156.4 154.5 156.4 156.3 154.4 153.0 152.5 152.2 151.0 150.9 151.0 1876 151.0 151.2 151.1 151.0 150.7 150.9 150.8 150.7 150.6 150.8 151.0 150.9 1877 150.9 151.1 151.3 151.5 151.1 151.4 151.2 151.1 150.7 150.8 151.0 150.6 1878 150.5 150.6 150.8 150.9 150.9 150.5 150.9 151.2 150.9 151.1 150.2 150.8 1879 150.5 151.0 150.8 151.0 151.3 151.2 151.2 151.2 150.9 150.4 150.4 150.4 1880 150.5 150.9 151.0 150.7 150.4 150.6 150.3 150.2 150.1 150.0 150.1 150.1 1881 150.1 150.2 150.3 150.6 150.7 150.8 150.8 150.5 150.0 150.1 150.1 150.3 1882 150.7 150.5 150.3 150.1 Table A6.3 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 327 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1883 151.4 150.7 150.5 150.4 150.2 150.3 150.3 1884 150.4 150.8 150.9 150.9 150.8 150.6 150.6 150.3 150.3 150.2 150.2 150.3 1885 150.6 151.1 151.2 151.3 151.2 151.1 151.1 151.0 150.8 150.7 150.9 150.9 1886 151.0 151.0 151.0 151.0 150.9 150.6 150.5 150.5 150.4 150.2 150.4 150.3 1887 150.4 150.2 150.2 150.3 150.7 150.6 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.4 1888 150.6 150.8 150.7 150.7 150.6 150.5 150.6 150.8 150.6 150.5 150.5 150.5 1889 150.6 150.7 150.7 150.6 150.7 150.6 150.6 150.6 150.6 150.5 150.3 150.3 1890 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.6 150.8 150.6 150.7 150.7 150.5 150.5 150.4 150.5 1891 150.8 150.6 150.7 150.6 150.6 150.5 150.5 150.4 150.2 150.2 150.4 150.5 1892 150.6 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.4 150.4 150.4 150.2 150.2 150.3 150.3 1893 150.3 150.6 150.6 150.6 150.4 150.1 149.8 150.1 150.3 150.6 150.7 150.7 1894 150.9 151.0 150.8 150.5 150.4 150.3 150.3 150.1 149.8 150.0 150.3 150.2 1895 150.4 150.6 150.4 150.2 150.3 150.1 150.2 150.1 149.9 149.7 149.8 149.7 1896 149.7 149.8 150.0 150.2 150.3 149.8 150.0 150.0 149.9 149.9 150.2 150.0 1897 150.4 150.5 150.3 150.2 150.3 150.2 150.1 150.1 150.0 150.2 150.4 150.3 1898 150.5 150.8 150.7 150.8 150.9 150.6 150.8 150.8 150.6 150.5 150.6 150.4 1899 150.6 150.5 150.3 150.3 150.2 149.9 150.0 150.4 150.4 151.0 151.2 151.0 1900 151.3 151.1 150.5 150.7 150.9 150.5 150.7 150.6 150.5 150.8 150.9 150.7 1901 150.9 150.9 150.5 150.2 150.6 150.3 150.3 150.1 150.9 150.0 150.2 150.0 1902 150.0 150.0 150.0 150.0 150.1 150.0 150.0 150.1 150.1 150.0 149.9 149.9 1903 150.1 150.3 150.3 150.4 150.4 150.1 150.4 150.4 150.4 150.7 150.9 150.9 1904 151.0 151.0 150.7 150.7 150.6 150.2 150.5 150.5 150.3 150.5 150.7 150.6 1905 150.6 150.7 150.6 150.5 150.5 150.4 150.6 150.7 150.1 150.0 149.9 150.0 1906 150.5 150.3 150.1 150.0 150.1 150.1 150.3 150.6 150.5 150.6 150.7 150.7 1907 150.9 150.8 150.8 151.0 151.1 151.0 151.0 151.2 151.2 151.6 151.6 151.5 1908 151.4 151.2 150.8 150.6 150.6 150.4 150.4 150.3 150.4 150.5 150.8 150.8 1909 150.9 150.7 150.6 150.8 150.7 150.4 150.6 150.5 150.3 150.3 150.3 150.2 1910 150.4 150.2 150.0 150.5 150.8 150.7 150.8 150.9 150.8 150.7 150.7 150.7 1911 150.8 150.8 150.7 150.7 150.7 150.5 150.7 150.6 150.5 150.6 150.7 150.7 1912 150.9 150.8 150.7 150.8 150.8 150.7 150.8 150.8 150.8 151.1 151.0 150.8 1913 150.9 150.8 150.5 150.6 150.4 150.2 150.3 150.3 150.3 150.6 150.7 150.5 1914 150.8 150.7 150.6 150.7 150.7 150.5 150.6 150.8 155.6 160.6 161.0 161.9 Sources: 1804–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1890–14: Riksbank- ens växelkurser på Amsterdam, 1890–1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Appendix A6.4 Quotations on Paris Quotations on Paris were made in skilling banco per franc before 1858 and in riks- daler riksmynt per franc between 1858 and 1872. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been done on the basis of 32 skilling banco = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 1 SEK. Quotations on bills drawn on Paris in francs during the period 1804–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange, while the Riksbank’s of cial quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. Table A6.3 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 328 Observations on franc rates are monthly mid-range in the period 1804–89 and monthly average 1890–1914. Te sources for the period 1804–89 are unpublished tables from the Riksbank. Of cial quotations on Paris 1890–1914 are from unpub- lished material in the Bank. Te maturity periods of bills drawn on Paris before June 1853 are somewhat unclear. However, it seems quite clear that the rates refer to paper with a longer dura- tion than short sight. A note in the primary tables says that rates from 1853 refer to 90-day paper, so it seems safe to assume that quotations are on at least 90-day paper. Consequently, the discount embedded in the prices has to be added in order to obtain ‘true’ sight exchange rates. Because interest rate data from Paris are lacking for this period, a standard interest rate of fve percent has been used to calculate sight rates. Te exact procedure is outlined in the previous section. Table A6.4. Monthly exchange rates on Paris. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1804 28.74 29.40 27.42 29.53 29.53 28.61 28.08 28.21 29.53 28.61 28.48 30.06 1805 29.40 28.87 28.48 28.34 29.40 28.21 28.48 27.95 27.16 27.95 25.84 28.48 1806 28.21 26.89 27.95 27.82 29.53 26.89 30.06 28.48 28.61 30.06 30.85 1807 33.22 32.96 33.22 32.96 30.98 31.24 30.06 33.22 1808 33.22 34.01 30.85 1809 39.55 41.13 37.97 39.55 38.76 1810 41.13 41.13 42.32 47.46 49.04 50.62 56.95 1811 63.28 68.03 63.28 62.49 63.28 64.86 63.28 63.28 62.23 57.74 1812 52.21 54.58 56.95 54.58 55.37 57.74 55.37 55.37 56.95 1813 56.42 50.62 58.53 1814 55.37 52.73 53.39 53.26 55.37 56.56 1815 58.53 58.53 56.95 56.95 61.70 61.30 1816 61.70 60.91 64.86 62.49 64.86 70.40 68.16 70.40 71.19 70.00 1817 66.44 64.07 57.74 60.91 66.84 61.83 62.49 60.64 60.78 56.16 58.93 58.80 1818 60.12 59.85 61.70 60.25 58.53 61.30 62.49 61.57 59.59 57.35 58.93 63.28 1819 66.44 67.10 68.03 65.65 65.65 67.76 68.42 69.61 68.69 70.14 75.94 79.89 1820 77.52 78.57 75.80 75.94 76.07 76.46 78.57 76.73 71.59 72.24 73.30 73.70 1821 71.98 73.96 74.22 72.77 69.34 66.44 69.48 70.40 70.53 68.95 72.77 71.19 1822 71.45 71.72 71.19 70.53 70.27 71.98 73.43 71.32 71.19 71.45 71.85 71.98 1823 72.38 72.38 73.30 72.77 71.72 71.72 70.66 70.00 71.06 71.06 73.70 73.70 1824 72.77 72.51 72.24 73.17 73.56 73.56 73.96 73.30 74.09 73.96 73.96 74.75 1825 73.83 75.15 74.88 72.64 70.93 70.79 69.87 69.21 68.82 68.55 69.34 69.21 1826 70.66 70.99 71.59 70.27 71.32 73.43 74.35 73.43 74.75 75.94 77.91 79.36 1827 80.42 79.63 78.31 77.52 77.39 78.18 78.05 77.65 76.60 74.75 75.01 75.54 1828 74.35 74.49 73.96 73.43 72.11 72.24 71.72 70.53 70.53 70.00 68.03 69.21 1829 69.87 69.74 69.74 69.87 69.21 69.08 68.03 68.42 68.55 69.61 72.51 72.38 1830 72.38 72.38 73.30 73.30 73.43 73.70 72.24 72.51 72.64 73.56 77.39 78.31 1831 78.31 78.05 78.31 78.31 79.23 80.68 79.50 79.10 78.57 79.36 80.02 81.21 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 329 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1832 81.47 81.61 82.79 82.53 83.06 82.13 81.67 81.61 81.87 81.74 83.45 83.32 1833 83.45 83.71 82.79 83.71 83.32 83.32 82.26 79.10 77.12 76.99 77.39 78.31 1834 77.78 77.65 76.99 76.33 75.80 75.15 74.09 74.09 73.43 73.30 73.83 74.62 1835 74.35 73.83 74.22 74.09 73.96 71.72 71.72 71.19 71.72 71.26 71.26 71.06 1836 72.90 72.64 73.70 71.72 71.45 70.40 70.00 69.61 70.14 70.27 71.72 72.77 1837 72.11 71.72 71.59 72.11 73.56 72.51 72.77 73.43 73.17 74.35 74.75 74.62 1838 73.56 73.30 74.22 73.96 73.43 73.56 72.77 72.51 72.38 72.38 72.51 73.30 1839 72.90 72.64 72.77 71.45 70.66 71.19 71.19 70.40 70.27 70.14 70.66 71.72 1840 72.51 73.43 73.17 72.90 72.24 72.11 71.85 71.26 71.72 71.45 71.06 71.32 1841 71.59 71.59 71.45 71.98 72.24 71.98 71.92 71.92 71.98 72.24 73.17 73.83 1842 73.83 73.83 73.70 73.83 72.90 72.64 72.24 72.51 72.51 72.38 73.56 73.83 1843 74.35 74.35 74.49 74.09 73.83 73.04 72.64 72.77 73.30 72.51 73.43 73.70 1844 74.09 73.96 73.96 73.30 73.04 72.24 71.72 71.32 71.72 71.06 71.45 72.11 1845 72.24 72.51 72.38 71.59 71.59 71.72 71.06 71.32 71.19 70.93 70.93 71.06 1846 71.06 71.72 71.72 71.45 71.45 71.32 70.93 70.79 70.93 70.73 71.45 71.19 1847 71.06 70.79 71.19 70.66 70.14 70.53 70.27 70.79 70.79 70.93 71.19 72.11 1848 72.51 72.11 72.64 74.35 75.67 74.35 73.30 74.22 73.17 73.56 74.62 74.88 1849 75.41 75.41 75.15 73.96 74.35 74.22 73.43 73.56 73.56 73.70 73.83 73.56 1850 73.43 73.83 73.96 73.30 73.30 73.04 73.17 72.24 72.24 72.24 72.90 73.04 1851 73.30 72.77 72.51 73.17 73.30 72.05 73.17 72.38 72.24 72.51 72.77 73.30 1852 72.51 72.90 72.90 72.64 72.77 73.04 72.11 72.24 72.11 71.85 71.85 71.59 1853 71.72 71.59 71.98 72.11 71.45 71.45 71.09 71.61 71.61 70.83 70.83 70.83 1854 70.96 70.57 70.64 70.70 70.70 70.70 70.70 70.96 71.35 71.35 71.29 1855 71.16 71.35 70.83 71.35 71.35 70.44 70.83 1856 1857 72.92 71.09 72.92 71.88 68.75 71.22 1858 70.38 70.75 70.80 70.70 70.00 72.25 71.25 72.00 70.50 72.00 72.50 1859 71.75 71.75 70.75 70.75 71.00 71.00 69.83 70.05 70.10 71.00 70.60 70.88 1860 71.18 70.75 71.13 70.88 70.20 70.50 69.90 70.50 70.80 71.13 71.38 1861 71.50 70.50 71.00 71.75 71.00 70.63 71.00 1862 71.90 71.00 71.50 71.45 71.00 71.00 70.80 70.75 70.75 1863 70.95 71.08 70.85 71.13 70.98 70.90 70.95 70.60 70.75 70.38 1864 71.00 70.90 70.10 70.30 70.67 70.25 1865 70.50 1866 1867 71.50 71.90 72.00 1868 72.13 72.00 71.90 1869 72.10 1870 71.25 71.65 1871 71.63 70.95 70.95 70.50 1872 69.95 70.48 69.70 1873 70.28 70.70 70.73 70.80 70.93 70.50 70.70 71.10 71.05 71.08 71.10 71.10 1874 71.43 71.70 71.85 71.95 71.93 71.90 71.88 72.18 72.33 72.38 72.60 72.85 1875 72.80 72.84 72.80 72.73 72.70 72.60 72.30 72.20 72.10 72.00 71.83 71.95 Table A6.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Paris. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 330 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1876 72.23 72.40 72.40 72.25 72.00 71.93 71.88 72.05 72.08 72.18 72.21 72.18 1877 72.30 72.34 72.39 72.50 72.43 72.48 72.23 72.20 72.38 72.33 72.28 72.30 1878 72.35 72.30 72.35 72.28 72.26 72.23 72.20 72.30 72.33 72.16 72.08 71.98 1879 72.08 72.15 72.06 72.05 71.95 71.94 71.87 71.93 71.79 71.65 71.70 71.80 1880 71.88 72.00 72.00 71.92 71.85 71.79 71.75 71.79 71.68 71.65 71.65 71.71 1881 71.83 71.93 72.10 72.00 72.05 72.10 72.13 72.20 72.00 71.85 72.08 72.08 1882 72.35 72.43 72.28 72.25 72.40 72.40 72.50 72.45 72.28 72.13 72.10 72.05 1883 72.13 72.33 72.25 72.23 72.23 72.15 72.15 72.10 72.08 71.93 72.00 72.05 1884 72.23 72.35 72.38 72.35 72.30 72.15 72.25 72.25 72.20 72.13 72.11 72.13 1885 72.17 72.15 72.18 72.13 72.13 72.14 72.03 72.15 72.13 72.10 72.10 72.10 1886 72.18 72.28 72.35 72.40 72.25 72.03 71.90 71.90 71.93 71.95 71.88 71.73 1887 71.83 71.73 71.73 71.83 71.99 72.00 71.95 71.98 71.80 71.73 71.73 71.65 1888 71.78 72.00 71.88 71.83 71.85 71.83 71.90 71.88 71.85 71.80 71.80 71.85 1889 71.93 72.05 72.01 72.04 72.10 72.20 72.25 72.25 72.18 72.13 72.00 72.03 1890 72.13 72.25 72.20 72.18 72.27 72.27 72.25 72.13 71.99 71.91 71.97 71.99 1891 72.09 72.10 72.08 72.05 72.03 71.91 71.85 71.85 71.79 71.78 71.96 72.00 1892 72.07 72.20 72.20 72.20 72.17 72.08 72.15 72.15 72.12 72.06 72.00 72.05 1893 72.15 72.28 72.24 72.27 72.21 72.15 72.11 72.05 71.99 72.00 72.05 72.08 1894 72.19 72.30 72.22 72.08 72.01 72.03 72.06 72.06 71.97 71.98 72.16 72.16 1895 72.15 72.21 72.07 72.07 72.15 72.09 72.10 72.03 71.94 71.96 72.13 72.00 1896 72.06 72.17 72.19 72.22 72.28 72.11 72.06 72.05 72.04 72.04 72.02 71.97 1897 72.11 72.23 72.19 72.21 72.28 72.20 72.19 72.12 72.08 72.00 72.04 71.95 1898 72.03 72.08 72.00 72.09 72.10 71.92 72.05 72.01 71.94 71.96 71.98 72.08 1899 72.34 72.36 72.27 72.29 72.28 72.27 72.24 72.24 72.14 72.17 72.20 72.18 1900 72.47 72.58 72.48 72.53 72.62 72.44 72.54 72.53 72.49 72.56 72.49 72.44 1901 72.52 72.38 72.21 72.15 72.22 72.02 72.03 72.08 71.99 72.07 72.29 72.21 1902 72.27 72.38 72.38 72.34 72.33 72.27 72.34 72.32 72.24 72.31 72.32 72.29 1903 72.44 72.56 72.55 72.50 72.40 72.26 72.29 72.19 72.14 72.31 72.35 72.28 1904 72.40 72.47 72.40 72.46 72.41 72.17 72.10 72.08 72.07 72.24 72.27 72.13 1905 72.29 72.33 72.22 72.30 72.25 72.26 72.35 72.30 72.20 72.28 72.32 72.35 1906 72.46 72.50 72.48 72.50 72.38 72.36 72.37 72.37 72.32 72.37 72.40 72.36 1907 72.52 72.47 72.35 72.47 72.56 72.51 72.44 72.58 72.62 72.79 72.87 72.88 1908 72.82 72.53 72.52 72.58 72.54 72.44 72.30 72.21 72.26 72.34 72.44 72.45 1909 72.50 72.39 72.32 72.35 72.29 72.16 72.28 72.21 72.22 72.35 72.37 72.29 1910 72.37 72.37 72.30 72.26 72.24 72.17 72.21 72.16 72.10 72.04 72.05 71.95 1911 72.05 72.08 71.97 71.90 71.90 71.81 71.95 72.04 72.26 72.51 72.27 72.10 1912 72.26 72.23 72.20 72.22 72.16 72.14 72.19 72.07 72.00 72.26 72.38 72.24 1913 72.39 72.37 72.31 72.37 72.37 72.26 72.28 72.24 72.11 72.19 72.18 72.02 1914 72.21 72.18 72.16 72.34 72.48 72.49 72.53 73.25 73.73 74.67 76.09 77.45 Sources: 1804–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1890–1914: Riks- bankens växelkurser på Paris, 1890–1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Table A6.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Paris. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 331 Appendix A6.5 Quotations on Antwerp and Brussels Belgium adopted an independent franc – equal to the French franc – in 1832 and joined the Latin Monetary Union in 1865. Thus, SEK/franc applies for the whole sample 1873–1914. Quotations for bills drawn on Antwerp and Brussels in francs during the period 1873–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange, while the Riksbank’s of cial quo- tations are used for the period 1890–1914. Observations on franc rates are monthly mid-range in the period 1873–89 and monthly average for 1890–1914. Te sources for the period 1873–89 are unpub- lished tables from the Riksbank. Of cial quotations on Antwerp and Brussels for 1890–1914 are from unpublished material in the Bank. Quotations on Antwerp and Brussels refer to short sight bills of exchange in 1873– 89 and to sight bills between 1890 and 1914. Table A6.5. Monthly exchange rates on Antwerp. SEK per 100 francs 1873–89. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1873 70.65 71.00 71.00 70.85 70.93 70.85 70.88 71.25 71.00 71.18 71.00 70.75 1874 71.15 71.58 71.70 71.83 71.90 71.83 71.83 72.13 72.28 72.33 72.53 72.73 1875 72.80 72.75 72.63 72.70 72.65 72.60 72.20 72.08 72.03 71.95 72.00 71.95 1876 72.25 72.35 72.35 72.18 71.98 71.98 71.88 71.95 72.05 71.98 72.23 72.25 1877 72.28 72.25 72.34 72.40 72.48 72.45 72.20 72.20 72.25 72.25 72.25 72.40 1878 72.25 72.23 72.35 72.35 72.05 72.15 72.13 72.30 72.23 72.15 72.08 71.98 1879 72.03 72.15 72.15 72.10 71.88 71.90 71.85 72.00 71.90 71.65 71.69 71.80 1880 71.83 71.95 71.99 71.88 71.72 71.78 71.75 71.77 71.68 71.50 71.78 71.80 1881 71.85 71.95 71.98 72.00 72.05 72.10 72.13 72.18 72.00 71.90 72.03 72.10 1882 72.33 72.40 72.28 72.25 72.35 72.38 72.45 72.45 72.28 72.13 72.10 72.08 1883 72.13 72.33 72.25 72.23 72.23 72.15 72.15 72.10 72.08 72.00 72.00 72.08 1884 72.23 72.38 72.38 72.35 72.30 72.25 72.25 72.25 72.20 72.15 72.13 72.13 1885 72.18 72.15 72.15 72.13 72.13 72.13 72.13 72.15 72.09 72.10 72.05 72.00 1886 72.13 72.28 72.35 72.40 72.40 71.95 71.85 71.90 71.75 1887 71.57 71.70 1888 71.75 71.83 71.85 71.80 71.77 71.77 1889 71.95 72.00 72.12 71.98 72.00 Sources: 1890–1914: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank). Table A6.6. Monthly exchange rates on Brussels. SEK per 100 francs 1873–1914. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1873 70.95 71.10 1874 1875 70.90 72.30 1876 71.35 1877 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 332 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1878 1879 1880 71.10 1881 71.00 1882 71.07 71.10 1883 71.40 1884 1885 71.38 71.87 1886 71.95 71.88 71.85 71.60 1887 71.90 71.75 1888 71.80 71.30 1889 72.08 72.08 71.75 71.90 71.95 1890 72.11 72.25 72.20 72.15 72.22 72.24 72.25 72.13 71.99 71.91 71.92 71.99 1891 72.06 72.10 72.08 72.05 72.03 71.91 71.85 71.84 71.79 71.76 71.91 71.95 1892 72.02 72.15 72.19 72.16 72.15 72.08 72.15 72.15 72.12 72.06 72.00 72.00 1893 72.08 72.23 72.20 72.22 72.17 72.10 72.05 71.92 71.93 71.99 72.02 72.06 1894 72.17 72.25 72.20 72.02 72.00 71.95 72.00 72.06 71.99 72.00 72.16 72.13 1895 72.15 72.12 72.03 72.05 72.05 71.99 72.04 72.03 71.95 71.95 72.03 71.94 1896 72.02 72.04 72.09 72.12 72.19 72.08 72.05 72.06 72.01 71.95 71.96 71.89 1897 72.02 72.18 72.14 72.11 72.18 72.09 72.10 72.08 72.01 71.94 71.99 71.90 1898 71.98 71.99 71.95 71.95 72.00 71.90 71.99 71.98 71.81 71.87 71.82 71.84 1899 72.21 72.25 72.15 72.15 72.14 72.12 72.11 72.12 72.00 72.00 72.09 72.14 1900 72.32 72.48 72.38 72.41 72.49 72.34 72.41 72.39 72.37 72.44 72.39 72.36 1901 72.41 72.33 72.16 72.07 72.12 71.93 72.00 72.04 71.96 72.02 72.17 72.08 1902 72.17 72.25 72.29 72.26 72.28 72.24 72.24 72.26 72.19 72.20 72.17 72.19 1903 72.36 72.46 72.45 72.40 72.30 72.16 72.18 72.09 72.01 72.18 72.23 72.18 1904 72.29 72.34 72.24 72.28 72.23 72.13 72.12 72.13 72.08 72.15 72.13 72.02 1905 72.15 72.25 72.21 72.21 72.14 72.12 72.19 72.23 72.10 72.08 72.11 72.13 1906 72.32 72.38 72.26 72.26 72.22 72.19 72.17 72.21 72.15 72.15 72.16 72.15 1907 72.21 72.25 72.23 72.28 72.32 72.30 72.28 72.37 72.40 72.55 72.72 72.78 1908 72.75 72.48 72.43 72.40 72.34 72.29 72.12 72.05 72.05 72.07 72.14 72.20 1909 72.27 72.20 72.19 72.17 72.13 72.01 72.09 72.05 72.04 72.12 72.10 72.02 1910 72.05 72.05 72.01 72.04 72.01 71.95 71.96 71.89 71.83 71.77 71.83 71.83 1911 71.90 71.93 71.85 71.77 71.75 71.61 71.67 71.79 71.91 72.09 71.94 71.79 1912 71.90 71.98 71.83 71.81 71.81 71.75 71.84 71.89 71.85 72.01 72.05 71.82 1913 71.95 71.96 71.87 71.96 71.91 71.79 71.83 71.84 71.69 71.75 71.75 71.58 1914 71.74 71.83 71.82 71.97 72.03 71.99 72.13 72.65 72.78 73.00 73.73 Sources: 1873–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1890–1914: Riks- bankens växelkurser på Bruxelles, 1890–1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Table A6.6 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Brussels. SEK per 100 francs 1873–1914. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 333 Appendix A6.6 Quotations on Copenhagen The Danish courant currency virtually collapsed during the Napoleonic wars, as we have seen earlier. Quotations on Copenhagen were made in skilling banco per Dansk rigsdaler kurant between 1804 and February 1813. After the collapse of the rigsdaler kurant, Denmark adopted a new currency, the silver-based rigsbankrigsdaler, which equalled six rigsdaler kurant. Quotations were made in riksdaler riksmynt per rigs- bankrigsdaler after Sweden switched its currency unit in 1858. When Denmark and Sweden formed a Scandinavian Currency Union in 1873 (Norway joined in 1875), Denmark changed to the joint Scandinavian gold-based krone as its official cur- rency. The conversion rate between krone (DKK) and rigsbankrigsdaler was 2:1. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been based on 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 32 skilling banco. Quotations between 1804 and 1889 are from the Stockholm stock exchange and are monthly mid-range observations. Te sources are unpublished tables that most likely were the basis for the ffth, statistical volume in Sveriges Riksbank (1931), which in turn was based on daily newspapers. Exchange rates for the period 1882– 1914 are cross-calculations of exchange rates on Stockholm and Copenhagen based on end-of-month quotations at the Hamburg stock exchange. Te data are bid prices (‘geld’) from Hamburger Geld- und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN. Of cielle Ausgabe, available at Commerzbibliothek at Hamburg stock exchange. Quotations on bills drawn on Copenhagen in the period 1804–34 are u.s.o. since there is no information on time to maturity. Table A6.7. Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1804 322.3 323.4 327.0 325.8 327.0 330.5 331.6 331.6 327.0 328.1 330.5 332.8 1805 335.2 332.8 329.3 332.8 339.8 350.4 353.9 344.5 342.2 336.3 337.5 334.0 1806 336.3 336.3 341.0 341.0 348.4 339.8 342.6 343.8 337.5 338.7 344.5 358.6 1807 346.9 352.7 346.9 343.8 344.5 359.8 353.9 349.2 344.5 344.5 344.5 345.7 1808 349.2 352.7 317.6 321.1 314.1 290.6 295.3 309.4 304.7 300.0 285.9 295.3 1809 288.3 271.9 300.0 234.4 187.5 206.3 208.6 180.5 182.8 175.8 1810 154.7 178.1 171.1 166.4 166.4 189.8 178.1 159.4 157.0 137.1 152.3 168.8 1811 150.0 138.3 150.0 131.3 132.4 133.6 128.9 127.7 119.5 117.2 116.0 113.7 1812 100.8 111.3 110.5 109.0 110.2 105.5 89.1 82.0 70.3 60.9 55.1 50.4 1813 53.9 51.6 1814 40.6 37.1 34.4 31.6 29.7 26.6 30.5 30.3 30.3 28.9 1815 28.5 27.7 27.3 26.6 27.3 28.4 29.7 27.0 27.5 27.3 27.0 1816 28.1 27.5 27.3 27.1 27.0 28.1 28.9 28.7 27.5 26.9 29.4 32.8 1817 30.0 28.4 26.4 29.8 33.8 37.5 1818 1819 1820 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 334 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1821 1822 1823 1824 87.5 1825 1826 1827 1828 94.5 93.8 1829 1830 1831 1832 1833 1834 102.3 1835 102.3 102.3 102.4 102.0 101.4 99.2 99.0 99.0 99.2 99.6 99.7 99.8 1836 99.6 101.1 100.4 99.9 99.0 98.4 98.1 96.5 97.7 97.5 99.3 101.8 1837 102.1 99.8 99.9 100.2 102.0 100.8 101.6 102.7 100.4 103.9 104.3 104.7 1838 103.6 104.1 104.3 104.7 103.8 104.3 103.8 104.5 104.7 101.6 105.3 105.6 1839 105.3 105.7 105.1 103.1 100.2 102.7 102.3 102.3 100.2 99.8 101.4 104.3 1840 104.7 105.5 103.1 104.3 105.1 105.1 105.1 104.0 104.6 104.8 105.1 105.5 1841 105.1 104.7 105.1 104.4 103.8 103.9 103.6 103.5 104.3 104.2 104.8 106.3 1842 105.5 104.8 104.3 102.0 103.5 103.1 102.9 103.9 102.3 102.0 104.7 104.8 1843 105.1 103.5 104.3 102.5 102.7 100.7 99.7 101.2 102.0 102.0 104.4 104.3 1844 104.7 104.7 104.3 103.9 104.0 103.9 102.7 102.3 101.2 101.0 102.1 102.0 1845 102.2 102.0 100.8 100.7 100.6 100.1 101.0 100.6 101.2 102.3 102.7 104.2 1846 104.7 102.7 102.3 101.6 102.5 101.9 101.3 101.6 102.0 103.3 102.7 103.1 1847 102.7 102.0 102.1 101.2 102.0 101.6 101.6 100.8 101.6 102.0 102.3 102.2 1848 101.6 101.9 102.7 104.7 104.5 103.9 104.7 103.9 102.9 103.5 105.2 105.5 1849 105.5 103.5 102.7 102.7 101.8 102.2 102.1 102.1 101.3 101.6 102.0 102.0 1850 101.4 102.1 102.0 101.2 101.0 100.8 100.5 100.8 100.6 100.6 100.5 100.4 1851 100.8 100.0 100.7 100.4 100.4 99.8 100.4 100.4 100.2 100.4 100.7 101.2 1852 101.4 101.2 101.2 99.5 99.6 100.7 100.4 100.4 100.0 100.4 101.2 100.0 1853 100.4 100.8 99.3 100.0 99.7 100.4 101.2 100.2 100.4 100.8 101.2 101.6 1854 101.8 101.6 102.3 101.6 101.2 101.6 100.8 101.8 102.0 102.7 102.6 103.1 1855 103.7 102.5 103.1 103.3 103.5 103.1 103.3 102.3 102.3 102.3 102.0 102.7 1856 100.4 102.0 102.0 101.2 102.3 102.0 101.6 101.6 100.8 101.2 100.8 102.3 1857 102.7 102.3 102.0 101.6 100.8 100.8 99.6 100.4 100.4 100.8 101.6 101.2 1858 104.3 101.5 102.0 102.0 101.8 101.6 100.3 100.5 101.0 101.8 101.8 1859 101.8 101.5 101.5 100.0 101.3 101.3 100.0 101.0 101.1 101.0 100.9 100.8 1860 101.1 100.9 100.9 102.3 100.0 99.6 100.3 100.3 99.9 100.9 101.0 1861 100.9 100.9 100.5 100.2 100.5 101.0 100.3 99.8 100.8 100.5 100.5 100.8 1862 101.3 101.4 101.3 101.1 100.6 100.0 100.3 100.0 100.0 99.9 100.0 99.9 1863 99.9 100.4 99.7 99.7 99.6 100.0 99.4 99.8 100.0 100.3 100.6 100.8 1864 101.1 100.8 100.8 100.3 99.6 99.9 100.1 100.0 99.7 100.1 100.5 99.9 Table A6.7 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 335 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1865 100.3 99.8 99.5 99.3 99.3 99.5 99.5 99.4 99.6 99.6 99.8 99.9 1866 100.0 100.5 100.4 99.8 100.0 100.5 100.0 99.8 100.5 100.5 100.5 101.0 1867 100.8 100.3 100.5 100.0 100.5 100.5 100.5 100.3 100.5 99.8 100.0 100.1 1868 99.4 100.0 100.5 99.9 100.4 100.3 99.8 100.0 99.9 99.8 100.1 1869 99.8 100.1 99.9 99.1 99.8 99.7 100.0 99.0 99.5 99.9 99.9 1870 99.4 99.3 99.8 100.0 99.5 99.6 99.9 99.5 99.9 1871 99.5 99.1 99.0 99.3 99.4 99.4 1872 99.1 1873 98.1 98.1 98.1 98.2 98.3 98.1 98.4 98.5 98.4 98.1 97.9 97.9 1874 99.5 99.8 99.6 99.4 99.6 99.6 99.6 99.6 99.6 99.8 1875 99.9 99.9 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.8 99.9 99.7 1876 99.7 99.9 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.7 99.8 1877 100.0 1878 99.9 1879 100.0 99.7 1880 1881 1882 100.1 100.1 100.1 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.1 100.1 100.0 100.0 99.9 1883 99.9 99.8 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1884 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1885 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.1 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1886 100.0 100.2 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1887 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 1888 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 1889 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1890 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 99.9 100.0 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 1891 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1892 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1893 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1894 100.0 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1895 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1896 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1897 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1898 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1899 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1900 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1901 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1902 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1903 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1904 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1905 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1906 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1907 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1908 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 Table A6.7 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 336 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1909 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1910 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1911 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1912 100.0 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1913 99.9 100.0 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 Sources: 1804–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1890–1914: Cross- calculations of data from Hamburger Geld- und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN. Of cielle Ausgabe. Com- merzbibliothek, Hamburger Börse. Appendix A6.7 Quotations on Christiania/Oslo Quotations on Norwegian currency in Sweden were made in riksdaler riksmynt per Norsk specie between 1858 and 1872 and in kronor per Norsk specie in 1873 and 1874. Norway joined the Scandinavian Currency Union in 1875 and adopted the joint Scandinavian gold-based krone as its official currency. The conversion rate between krone (NOK) and Norsk specie was 4:1. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been based on 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt. Quotations between 1858 and 1882 are from the Stockholm stock exchange and are monthly mid-range observations. Te sources are unpublished tables for the ffth, statistical volume in Sveriges Riksbank (1931), based in turn on daily newspapers. Exchange rates for the period 1883–1914 are cross-calculations of exchange rates on Stockholm and Christiania, based on end-of-month quotations at the Hamburg stock exchange. Te data are bid prices (‘geld’) gathered from annual volumes of Hamburger Geld- und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN. Of cielle Ausgabe, available at Commerzbibliothek at Hamburg stock exchange. Table A6.8. Monthly exchange rates on Christiania/Oslo. SEK per 100 NOK 1858–1914. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1858 101.6 1859 1860 98.8 100.0 101.0 101.0 101.0 1861 101.0 100.0 101.0 101.0 1862 101.0 101.0 100.3 100.5 1863 100.5 99.6 100.0 100.0 100.5 1864 98.8 101.0 1865 99.9 98.3 99.0 100.0 1866 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1867 100.0 1868 1869 100.0 100.0 1870 98.8 98.8 98.3 100.0 1871 Table A6.7 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 337 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1872 1873 99.5 99.3 98.5 1874 99.5 1875 1876 99.9 1877 100.0 1878 1879 99.1 1880 1881 100.0 100.0 100.0 1882 1883 100.0 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.8 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 1884 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 1885 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1886 99.9 99.9 100.0 99.8 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1887 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1888 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1889 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 1890 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 1891 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1892 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1893 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1894 100.0 99.9 99.9 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1895 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1896 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1897 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1898 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1899 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1900 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1901 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1902 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1903 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1904 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1905 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1906 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1907 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 1908 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1909 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1910 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1911 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1912 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 100.0 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 1913 100.0 100.0 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 Sources: 1858–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1890–1914: Cross calculations of data from Hamburger Geld- und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN. Of cielle Ausgabe. Com- merzbibliothek, Hamburger Börse. Table A6.8 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Christiania/Oslo. SEK per 100 NOK 1858–1914. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 338 References Algott, S (1963), Stockholms fondbörs 100 år. Nord. bokh., Stockholm. Andersson, M (2007), ‘Kreditförbindelser på Europamarknaden Peter Ekman III 1793 och Ekman & Co 1810.’ Conference paper, Svenska ekonomisk-historiska mötet (Stockholm 12–14 October 2007). Andreen, P G (1961), Politik och fnansväsen: från 1815 års riksdag till 1830 års reali- sationsbeslut. Del två, 1823–1830. Stockholm studies in history. Almqvist & Wik- sell, Stockholm. Bordo, M D and F E Kydland (1995), ‘Te Gold Standard as a Rule: An Essay in Exploration.’ Explorations in Economic History, Vol. 32, No. 4. Brisman, S (1931), ‘Tiden 1803–1834’ in Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918 : bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. Del 4. Sveriges Riksbank. Stockholm. Brisman, S (1937), Östergötlands enskilda bank. Linköping. Dornbusch, R (1976), ‘Expectations and Exchange Rate Dynamics.’ Journal of Polit- ical Economy, Vol. 84, No. 6, pp. 1161–76. Einzig, P (1962), Te History of Foreign Exchange. MacMillan, London. Fridlizius, G (1981), ‘Handel och sjöfart – förändringens tid.’ in Bjurling, O. (ed.) Malmö stads historia. Tredje delen/1820–1870. Malmö stad, Malmö. Heckscher, E F (1941), Svenskt arbete och liv: från medeltiden till nutiden. Bonnier, Stockholm. Lobell, H (2000), Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration. De utländska växelkur- serna i Sverige 1834−1880. [Exchange Rate Policy and Market Integration. Foreign Exchange Rates in Sweden 1834–1880] Dissertation. Almqvist och Wiksell Inter- national, Södertälje. Lobell, H (2004), ‘Integration and Ef ciency in the Foreign Exchange Market in Sweden 1834–1880’ Scandinavian Economic History Review. 2004:1. Lobell, H (2006), ‘Te Range of Stockholm-Hamburg and Stockholm-London Spe- cie Points 1834–1880.’ Vierteljahrschrift für Sozial- und Wirtschaftsgeschichte. 2006:3. McKinnon, R I (1993), ‘Te Rules of the Game: International Money in Historical Perspective.’ Journal of Economic Literature, Vol. XXXI, March 1993, pp. 1–44. Nordström, J J (1853), Afhandlingar hörande till läran om crediten. Norstedt, Stock- holm. Of cer, L H (1996), Between the Dollar-Sterling Gold Points: Exchange Rates, Parity and Market Behavior. Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Pick, F and R Sédillot (1971), All the Monies of the World. A Chronicle of Currency Values. Pick Publication Corp., New York. Schön, L (2007), ‘Capital Movements, Exchange Rates and Market Integration: Te Baltic Area 1870–1913’ in Centres and Peripheries in Banking. Te Historical Development of Financial Markets, Cottrell, P. L., Lange, E. and Olsson, U. (eds.), Studies in Banking and Financial History. Ashgate, Aldershot. 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 339 Skogman, C D (1845–6), Anteckningar om rikets ständers bank och allmänna lånerö- relsen i Sverige. Stockholm. Soetbeer, A (1855), Beiträge und Materialen zurBeurtheilung von Geld- und Bank- Fragen mit besonderer Rücksicht auf Hamburg. Herold, Hamburg. Svendsen, K E and S A Hansen (1968), Dansk Pengehistorie 1700–1960. Bind 1, Danmarks nationalbank, København. Söderlund, E (1964), Skandinaviska banken i det svenska bankväsendets historia 1864– 1914. Skandinaviska Banken, Stockholm. Talia, K (2004), Te Scandinavian Currency Union 1873–1924 – Studies in Monetary Integration and Disintegration. (PhD Diss.) Institute for Research in Economic History. Stockholm. Ögren, A (2003), Reserves, Money Supply and Prices: Te International Adjustment Mechanism in Sweden under the Silver and Gold Standards, 1834–1913. SSE/EFI Working Paper Series in Economics and Finance No 544 November, 2003. Ögren, A (2005), ‘Free or central banking? Liquidity and Financial Deepening in Sweden, 1834–1913.’ Explorations in Economic History, Vol. 43. Other sources Hamburger Geld- und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN. Of cielle Ausgabe. Commerzbib- liothek, Hamburger Börse. Various years. NBER ‘Online Macro History Data Base’, http://www.nber.org/databases/macrohis- tory/contents/. Riksbank archive ‘F1A:3 Riksbankschefers protokoll. V. Moll, Valutor, utländska’ Riksbankens växelkurser på Amsterdam, 1890–1914. Unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank. Riksbankens växelkurser på Bruxelles, 1890–1914. Unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank. Riksbankens växelkurser på London, 1890–1914. Unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank. Riksbankens växelkurser på Hamburg/Berlin, 1890–1914. Unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank. Riksbankens växelkurser på Paris, 1890–1914. Unpublished volume, Sveriges Riks- bank. Sveriges Riksbank (1931), Statistiska tabeller. Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet, V, Norstedts, Stockholm Sveriges Riksbank ‘Växelkurser NN.’ Unpublished tables, various years. 7. From appreciation to depreciation – the exchange rate of the Swedish krona, 1913–2008 Jan Bohlin 7.1. Introduction In this chapter, monthly exchange rates of the Swedish krona are presented for the period 1913–2008. The exchange rates are the prices quoted in Stockholm for cur- rencies, in other words, how many Swedish kronor (SEK) equalled a given unit of a foreign currency. The monthly exchange rates are calculated as monthly averages of daily quotations, except for the period 1952–1974, when the monthly rate is the average of the highest and lowest daily quotations in that particular month. During the Second World War and its aftermath, international trade was to a large extent characterised by bilateral trading arrangements and for many currencies there was no active exchange market. Accordingly, the same exchange rate was used for many years and daily quotations are lacking for most currencies. In the 1930s, after the break-up of the Gold Standard, and during the Second World War and its after- math, clearing exchange rates were often used in international transactions. In most cases, however, the clearing rates closely tracked the official market exchange rates, and the latter are used in this chapter. 1 2 To get a better overview of the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate, an ex- change rate index has been constructed with the aims of including the currencies of 1 Monthly exchange rates and annual averages of monthly exchange rates are in Appendix A7.1. A more comprehensive dataset can be downloaded from Sveriges Riksbank’s website for histor- ical monetary statistics. For the period after 1995, exchange rate data may also be downloaded from Sveriges Riksbank’s website. 2 Te sources used for constructing monthly exchange rates are given in Appendix A7.1. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 341 countries whose share of Swedish foreign trade (exports + imports) amounted to at least one per cent and of covering at least 80 per cent of Swedish foreign trade. Due to a lack of data, this could not be achieved for some years and some countries. Moreover, the availability of unbroken series of data led to the inclusion in the index of the currencies of some countries whose shares in Swedish foreign trade were less than one per cent in particular years. An obvious example is the Swiss franc. Trade weights have been constructed with the use of official Swedish foreign trade sta- tistics. 3 Countries’ trade shares shift over time and political changes lead to the disappear- ance of some states and the (re-)birth of new ones. In constructing an exchange rate index, we therefore need to adjust weights periodically. Weights have been adjusted every fve years, and an exchange rate index has been calculated for each fve-year period. In some cases, political changes, currency reforms and data availability have led to periods being a little longer or shorter. 4 When interpreting the evolution of the exchange rate index, it is important to take into consideration the evolution of the international monetary system in the 20th century. Several regime shifts have occurred and the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate must be viewed against the background of those changes. Te follow- ing sections contain an account of the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate under the varying regimes of the international monetary system in the 20th century. 7.2. The First World War and the demise of the classical gold standard 7.2.1. Swedish exchange rate policy during and after the First World War From 1873 until 1914 Sweden was on the gold standard. The fully-fledged gold standard rested on a few central pillars: the unit of account was tied to a certain amount of gold; gold coins circulated domestically and banknotes could be con- verted into gold on demand; there were no legal restrictions on the melting of gold coins into bullion; and there were no obstacles to the export of gold. 5 When these rules were adhered to, exchange rates between countries on the gold standard were fixed. They could only vary between the ‘gold points’, which mirrored the cost of transporting gold between countries. The First World War put an end to the classi- cal gold standard. Governments to a large extent financed war efforts by printing 3 SOS Handel (from 1961 SOS Utrikeshandel). From 1977 the trade weight data derive from the website of Statistiska Centralbyrån (Statistics Sweden): www.scb.se. 4 Table A7.19 in Appendix A7.2 documents the chosen sub-periods, the base year for each period and the countries included. It also shows the included countries’ shares of total Swedish foreign trade (exports + imports) in the chosen base years. 5 Kenwood and Lougheed (1985, p. 117). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 342 money and the rate of inflation rose. From 1915, many central banks ceased to hon- our their obligation to exchange banknotes for gold and banned the export of bul- lion and gold coins. Accordingly, exchange rates started to deviate from the gold parities and there was no longer any mechanism for bringing them back. The only country that stuck to a fully-fledged gold standard during the war was the United States. When gold started to fow out of Sweden following the outbreak of war, the Riks- bank (Sweden’s central bank) decided on 2 August, 1914 that banknotes would no longer be convertible into gold. 6 Ten, on November 25, 1914, the Riksbank decided to ban the export of gold. Tis meant that in practice Sweden had left the gold stan- dard. Te immediate consequence was a loss of exchange rate stability. Between the autumn of 1914 and March 1915 the krona depreciated by 6–8 per cent against cur- rencies such as sterling, the US dollar and the French franc, while it appreciated against the German mark. In the spring of 1915 the depreciation of the German mark against the krona accelerated and from April 1915 the krona started to appreciate against ‘high-val- ued currencies’ such as sterling and the US dollar. Te Riksbank’s gold reserves increased again, as did the supply of sterling and US dollars when Swedish export income rose after Swedish timber was removed from the German list of contra- band goods. Since gold backing was more than suf cient, the Riksbank reintro- duced the convertibility of banknotes for gold at the turn of 1915. However, as the gold export ban was still in force, the Swedish exchange rate could deviate from the old gold parities. In the early months of 1916 the Swedish krona rose above the old parities. Since gold could fow into Sweden and the Riksbank was committed to exchanging banknotes for gold, one might have expected that the krona would be driven down towards the gold parities. However, this did not happen because, according to Heckscher, the gold standard did not function properly; it was no longer a ‘bona fde gold standard’. 7 Wartime conditions severely obstructed private shipments of gold to Sweden. 8 For the Riksbank, being obliged to exchange banknotes for gold at the old parities was bad business, especially since the gold reserves were now deemed to be more than suf cient. Tus, a month or so after it had been reinstalled, gold convertibility was again abandoned on February 8, 1916. However, some remnants of the old gold standard were still in place, since the Scandinavian currency union was still in opera- tion. Accordingly, Norwegian and Danish frms and citizens could still use their own countries’ gold coins in Sweden. Te currency union prevented the Swedish krona from deviating all that much from the Danish and Norwegian krona. After a meet- ing of representatives of the Scandinavian central banks at the end of February 1916, 6 Te following account of the evolution of Swedish exchange rate policy 1914–24 is based on Heckscher (1926) and Östlind (1945). 7 Heckscher (1926, p. 44). 8 Östlind (1945, p. 38). 7. From appreciation to depreciation 343 Norway and Denmark also prohibited the export of gold. In mid April 1916, the central banks of Denmark and Norway also abolished their obligation to exchange gold for banknotes. At the same time, the three Scandinavian central banks all with- drew the right for citizens of their countries to mint gold coins. After this, the only remnant of the old gold standard that still existed was the central banks’ possibility of settling debts in gold coins. In this respect the Scandinavian currency union was still in force. When the Danish and Norwegian krona started to fall against the Swedish from the summer of 1916, gold coins started to be exported from Norway and Denmark to Sweden. Te Norwegian central bank used gold coins to settle its liabilities with Sveriges Riksbank. Despite the fow of gold coins to Sweden from Denmark and Norway, the Swedish krona appreciated against its Scandinavian neighbours, since the export of gold coins from the Danish and Norwegian central banks did not afect the valuation of the currencies in the hands of the general public. Gold coins did not circulate and the central banks refused to exchange gold for banknotes. For Sveriges Riksbank, the infow of gold coins from Denmark and Norway was unwelcome since the appreciation of the Swedish krona meant that gold could be bought more cheaply elsewhere. After negotiations between the Scandinavian central banks in the spring of 1917, the ban on exports on gold was extended to include gold coins. A queue outside the Riksbank to exchange notes for gold at the outbreak of the First World War in 1914. Source: Stockholm City Museum. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 344 Despite the gold embargo, gold continued to fow into Sweden. Sweden ran a substantial trade surplus in these years and part of it was regulated with gold pay- ments. Te Riksbank willingly converted some of the gold into banknotes because the regulations were such that an increased circulation of banknotes required an increase in the Bank’s gold reserves. 9 Another part of the Swedish export surplus was arranged by extending credit to foreign buyers. Swedish exporters were prepared to extend credit to foreign customers denominated in their currencies since the curren- cies were expected to return to the old gold parities soon after the end of the war, whereupon exporters would earn a nice proft. To understand the fnancing of the Swedish export surplus during the war years, it must be born in mind that since the middle of the 19th century Sweden had imported massive amounts of capital. Financial assets which Swedish borrowers had pledged to foreigners could now be mobilized to pay for Swedish exports and were accordingly repatriated to Sweden. Especially in Germany this arrangement was a common way of paying for imports from Sweden. 10 After the Scandinavian gold embargo in April 1916 there was no limit to the kro- na’s appreciation above the old gold parities. Strong appreciation up to November 1917 was followed by depreciation, so that a year later the krona had returned to approximately the same level as two years earlier. Te period of depreciation was apparently a result of expectations that the war would soon end and exchange rates would then return to the old gold parities. Even after its depreciation at the end of 1917, the krona was still above the pre- war gold parities, particularly against the German mark but also against sterling and to a lesser extent the US dollar. In 1919–20 the krona’s exchange rate followed that of sterling and it accordingly depreciated against the dollar. Te dollar’s exchange rate against the krona rose above the old gold parities. However, as other currencies depre- ciated more against the dollar, the krona still appreciated against a trade-weighted average of other currencies. Economists considered that the gold export ban was responsible for the krona’s depreciation against the dollar. In a newspaper article on March 11, 1920, a leading economist, Eli Heckscher, urged the Swedish public to exert their right to exchange banknotes for gold in the Riksbank. His aim was to push the Riksbank into raising the discount rate and thereby help to curb the rate of infation, which was rising. Te immediate efect was that the Riksbank cancelled its obligation to exchange gold for banknotes on March 17. 11 Te Riksbank also raised the discount rate and kept it at a high level even when the business cycle turned downwards in the autumn of 1920 and prices started to fall precipitously. In late 1920 the krona started to appreciate again against the dollar; two years later it had returned to the old gold parities and then stabilized at that level. When the ban on gold exports was abolished and the 9 Östlind (1945, pp. 47–48). 10 Schön (2000, pp. 280–81). 11 Heckscher (1926, pp. 112–13). 7. From appreciation to depreciation 345 Riksbank again undertook to exchange gold for banknotes, on 1st April 1924 the krona was also formally back on the gold standard. Te return to the gold standard had been preceded by an intense discussion among economists about the goals of monetary and foreign exchange rate policy. Te well- known economist Knut Wicksell advocated severe defation and a return to the price level from 1914, which for him also meant abandoning the gold standard, whereas most economists favoured more lenient defation and a return to the gold standard. Te primary goal for a majority of Swedish economists was price stability, while a return to the price level from 1914 was considered unrealistic. Te return to gold was seen as necessary in order to anchor the price level to a fxed norm. 7.2.2. The Swedish exchange rate 1914–24 This section presents a summary view of the Swedish exchange rate during and after the First World War up to the restoration of the gold standard in 1924. Figure 7.1 shows the path of the Swedish krona’s exchange rate against a trade-weighted average of Sweden’s trading partners in the period 1914–24. Given Germany’s large weight in Sweden’s foreign trade, the German hyperinflation of 1921–23 has a large impact on the exchange rate index. A separate index that excludes the German hyperinfla- tion has therefore been calculated for these years. The broad picture is nevertheless the same, with and without German hyperinflation. The exchange rate excluding German hyperinflation shows an appreciation of the krona by roughly 100 per cent between 1914 and 1924, which means that in 1924 a Swedish citizen had to pay Figure 7.1: Exchange rate index, 1914–24 (January 1914=100) Source: See Appendices A7.2, Table A7.20 to A7.22. 90 100 110 120 130 140 150 80 120 160 200 240 280 320 1914 1916 1918 1920 1922 1924 Exchange rate index 1914-24 (excluding Germany), foreign currency/kr Jan 1914=100) left scale Exchange rated index 1914-24 (excluding German hyperinflation), foreign currency/kr (Jan 1914=100) right scale Exchange rate index 1914-1924, foreign currency/kr (Jan 1914=100) right scale Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 346 only half as many kronor as in 1914 for a trade-weighted basket of foreign curren- cies. The sharp fluctuations in the krona’s exchange rate in 1917–18 are also clear. After the war, the krona continued its upward float until the restoration of the gold standard in the mid-1920s. Even before the German hyperinfation in 1921–23, the krona’s appreciation is to a large extent driven by the depreciation of the German mark; between 1914 and 1920 the mark fell more than 90 per cent from its gold parity of 0.89 to 0.07. It is therefore of some interest to calculate an exchange rate index where Germany is excluded altogether in the period 1914–24. According to such an index 12 (see Figure 7.1, left scale) the krona appreciated by 20–30 per cent between 1914 and 1924; much of this appreciation occurred between the end of hostilities and the restoration of the gold standard in 1924. Did the krona also appreciate in real terms? In other words, did the krona’s pur- chasing power increase in terms of foreign goods? To answer that question we must look at the evolution of the price level in Sweden and among Sweden’s trading part- 12 Te same weights (excluding Germany) as in the other indices have been used. A woman feeding a stove with old German marks in 1923. Te infation notes burned for longer than the frewood that people could buy for the same amount of money. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 347 ners. Before doing so, we must discuss the concept of real exchange rates and its rela- tionship to the purchasing power parity doctrine. Te purchasing power parity (PPP) doctrine is an infuential theory in interna- tional economics on what determines exchange rates. 13 It is based on the law of one price, which states that an identical commodity must fetch the same price every- where. If, for example, the dollar price of wheat of a given quality is lower in the US than in Sweden, dealers would make a proft by buying wheat in the US and selling it at the higher price in Sweden. Tis arbitrage would last until the dollar price of wheat is the same in both countries. What applies to a single commodity applies to a bundle of commodities. In its absolute form, the PPP doctrine for exchange rate determination states: e = P h /P f ; where P h is the price for a bundle of goods in the home country, P f is the price for the same bundle of goods in a foreign country, and e is the exchange rate (how many units of their own currency home country citizens have to pay for a unit of foreign currency). Because of transport costs and other obstacles to trade, such as tarifs, the PPP doctrine cannot be expected to hold in its absolute version. More common is the relative version of the PPP doctrine, which states that the percentage change in the exchange rate between two countries equals the diference in the percentage rate of price level changes between the two countries, i.e.: ê = ^ P h – ^ P f ; where the caret stands for growth rates. Tis was the version of the PPP doctrine espoused by the Swedish economist Gustaf Cassel, who is often cred- ited with being the originator of the PPP doctrine. When testing the relative version of the PPP doctrine, economists commonly use price index numbers for the various countries, for instance GDP defators, consumer price indices or wholesale price indices. An obvious problem here is that commodity baskets difer between coun- tries. Moreover, many commodities do not enter international trade. We would therefore not expect commodity arbitrage to directly bring exchange rates into line with changes in price levels. It has been shown that countries at a lower level of devel- opment, with tradable sector wages that are lower than in developed countries, also have lower wages and therefore prices in the non-tradable sector compared to devel- oped countries. Teir general price level is therefore lower than in more highly devel- oped countries; as this is not mirrored in their exchange rates, their currencies are undervalued. Another reason why we cannot expect the PPP doctrine to apply directly is that changes in wages and prices are more sluggish than changes in exchange rates. Te latter are asset prices and therefore to a large extent governed by expectations. In fnancially deregulated economies, with high cross-border mobility of fnance, exchange rates deviate from what we would expect from the PPP doctrine. Data show that exchange rates can diverge for decades from what would be expected from PPP levels, even for countries at a similar level of development. 13 For an overview of the PPP doctrine, see Sarno (2008). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 348 Economists often calculate the real exchange rate, RER, according to the follow- ing formula: RER = P h /P f e. If RER is unity, the currencies are ‘fairly’ valued. If it is larger than unity, the exchange rate is overvalued, meaning that the home country’s citizens have more purchasing power abroad than at home. If it is lower than unity, the exchange rate is undervalued. In practice, RER calculations are done with price index numbers that are set to unity in a common period. From that period we can calculate RERs forwards and backwards, but we do not know whether its value in the period set to unity is ‘fair’ in the sense that PPPs are equalised. Without such a refer- ence point we cannot tell whether exchange rates are ‘overvalued’ or ‘undervalued’ at a certain point in time; at best we can only tell in which direction RERs are headed. Statistical agencies, such as Eurostat and the OECD, publish PPP benchmarks for recent decades. For earlier periods we have to rely on the eforts of economists and economic historians. Te various available PPP benchmarks are not directly compa- rable with respect to coverage and methods of calculation. Tey therefore give us only some general idea of the extent of a currency’s over- or undervaluation at a point in time. According to a PPP benchmark for 1914, the Swedish krona was slightly 0.9 1.0 1.1 1.2 1.3 1.4 1.5 1914 1916 1918 1920 1922 1924 1914 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs 1914 Real exchange rate 1914-25 (1914=0.96) Figure 7.2: Real exchange rate index 1914–24 (1914=0.96) Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7.1); consumer price indices (Mitchell 2003b; Mitchell 2003a); purchasing power parities 1914 (Williamson 1995). Note: Williamson’s PPP data pertain to 1905 except for the US and Sweden, for which they pertain to 1909 and 1914. Tey have been recalculated to 1914 values by means of consumer price index numbers derived from Mitchell. Te real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1915 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark, Norway, UK, USA and France. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 349 undervalued, with a PPP of 0.96. 14 I have accordingly scaled the Swedish RER to 0.96 for 1914. For the following ten years the RERs have been calculated from annual averages of our monthly exchange rates and consumer price index numbers for the various countries. Because of the distorting efects of the extraordinary Ger- man depreciation and hyperinfation, Germany was excluded from the calculations for the period 1914–24. As shown by Figure 7.2, the exchange rate of the krona seems to have been greatly overvalued at the end of the First World War; by roughly 40 per cent according to our calculation. Tat the krona was overvalued at that time was also the opinion of contemporary economists. 15 Te defation that followed in 1921–23 was extraordi- narily harsh in Sweden, which led to a fast fall in the Swedish RER in the frst half of the 1920s; in 1925 it was nearly back at unity, indicating that at that time the krona was possibly only slightly overvalued. 7.3. The restoration and fall of the inter-war gold standard 7.3.1. Overview of the international monetary system, 1924–39 After the First World War, currencies continued to float. 16 The inflationary condi- tions during the war continued in the first post-war years. In some countries, such as Germany, Austria and Hungary, high inflation developed into hyperinflation. In those countries, the stabilization of the price level entailed the creation of new mon- etary units backed by gold. Austria reconstructed its monetary unit in that way in 1923, Germany and Poland in 1924 and Hungary in 1925. 17 In other countries, among them Sweden and the UK, a combination of a sharp economic downturn and harsh deflationary policies broke inflation in 1921–23, when the price level fell pre- cipitously. Economists, and politicians taking advice from them, argued for a return to the gold standard. A monetary system founded on gold was considered to be the only guarantee of price stability. Countries like Sweden and the UK, where inflation had been contained, went back to gold in 1924 and 1925 at the old parities. Britain’s return to gold prompted other countries, such as Australia, the Netherlands and South Africa, to follow suit. 18 Re-establishing the old gold parities took longer in Denmark and Norway; Denmark went back to gold in January 1927, Norway in the 14 Calculated from trade weighted RERs for the Swedish krona against the currencies of Denmark, Norway, Great Britain, USA and France. For later periods Germany is also included in the cal- culated RER indices. PPP data come from Williamson (1995). Te trade weights are from 1915. 15 Östlind (1945, p. 329–30). 16 Te following overview of the international monetary system in the inter-war period is largely based on Kenwood and Lougheed (1985, Ch. 12–13) and Eichengreen (1996, Ch. 3). 17 Eichengreen (1996, p. 47). 18 Eichengreen (1996, pp. 47–48). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 350 autumn of 1927. 19 France stabilized its currency at about the same time as Den- mark 20 but did so at a fifth of the pre-war gold parity. Like France, Belgium and Italy experienced inflation in the 1920s which was not followed by sharp deflation, as it was in Britain and the Scandinavian countries; they went back to gold in 1925 and 1927, respectively. By 1927, all the major countries’ currencies were convertible into gold at fxed parities. Capital fowed freely across national borders. Everything appeared to be back to normal but in fact the gold standard only lasted another fve years. Many fac- tors exerted a strain on the interwar gold standard and caused it to function less smoothly than before the First World War. First, there was the problem of insuf - cient gold reserves with which to back currencies. Te world’s gold reserves grew much more slowly than output. Te Genoa conference in 1922 therefore decided that central banks should be allowed to hold reserves not only in gold but also in convertible currencies. Te interwar gold standard was accordingly a gold exchange standard. An additional problem was the unequal distribution of the available gold reserves. Gold tended to accumulate in just a few countries. Te USA possessed almost half of the available gold reserves and in Europe it was France that accumu- lated gold. Te French franc was clearly undervalued at the new parities, while the UK struggled with persistent current-account defcits, apparently because of an over- valued pound. In the context of political democracy it was dif cult for the British to pursue defationary policies, while the French did not permit the price level to rise. Te asymmetry in the interwar gold standard was exacerbated by international capi- tal fows in the late 1920s. Te USA was the major lender in that decade, while Ger- many and East European states were the main borrowers. 21 A large part of the inter- national lending was short-term. When the US Federal Reserve raised the interest rate in 1928 to curb the Wall Street boom, the supply of fnance to these countries dried up. In the middle of a deep economic crisis, German governments were now forced to adopt defationary policies to defend the gold standard. Signs that the gold standard was beginning to crumble frst appeared in 1929. Peripheral countries dependent on exporting prime commodities were hard hit by declining export revenues at the same time as capital imports diminished. Argentina, Brazil, Uruguay and other Latin American countries limited gold convertibility in 1929, as did Australia and New Zeeland. Canada introduced an embargo on gold exports. 22 Te strains on the inter-war gold standard grew when in November 1931 an Austrian bank, Credit Anstalt, was on the brink of default and was bailed out by the government. Te banking crisis led to capital fight that spread to Hungary and Germany. To stem the tide, both countries installed exchange controls that prohib- 19 Klovland (1998, p. 31). 20 France stabilized its currency in late 1926 and went back de jure to the gold standard in June 1928 (Eichengreen 1996, p. 47). 21 Feinstein et al. (1997, Ch 5). 22 Eichengreen (1996, p. 49). 7. From appreciation to depreciation 351 ited the free cross-border fow of capital. Tereby these countries de facto left the gold standard. Te British balance of payments deteriorated sharply in the summer of 1931. Financial capital fed from Britain. Despite interest rate hikes by the Bank of Eng- land, arresting the capital fight and defending the gold parity of sterling proved impossible. On September 19, 1931, the Bank of England suspended gold convert- ibility and devalued the pound by roughly 30 per cent against the gold currencies. Britain’s decision was followed by the countries in the British colonial empire and dominions, as well as by the Scandinavian countries, Finland and some other coun- tries, such as Portugal. 23 After the events of 1931, the international monetary system disintegrated into three blocs. Exchange controls in Austria, Germany and countries in Eastern Europe under German infuence prohibited the free cross-border movement of capital. Although their currencies were backed by gold, the use of exchange controls signifed that they had left the gold standard. To trade with these countries, governments had to arrange bilateral agreements. Te Sterling Bloc consisted of the countries that fol- lowed Britain in suspending gold convertibility and pegged their exchange rates to sterling. Te remaining gold countries – the USA and the remaining European coun- tries, notably France, Belgium, Switzerland, the Netherlands, Poland and Czechoslo- vakia – tried to adhere to the gold standard and formed the Gold Bloc. In 1933 the USA devalued the dollar and suspended gold convertibility 24 , and in 1934–36 vari- ous European gold bloc countries also devalued their currencies. By the mid 1930s there was not much left of the gold standard. 7.3.2. The Swedish exchange rate in the 1930s When the UK left the gold standard in mid-September 1931, Sweden followed suit a week later because the Riksbank’s foreign currency reserves were dwindling rapid- ly. 25 It was disclosed that a considerable part of these reserves consisted of dollar bills of exchange issued by various Krueger enterprises, which were now of dubious value. A policy declaration stated that the primary goal of monetary policy would now be to keep the krona’s purchasing power stable. This entailed abandoning the fixed exchange rate regime so the exchange rate could be used to stabilize the price level. The Riksbank did not intervene in the foreign exchange market immediately after Sweden had left the gold standard. The krona started to appreciate against sterling, which fell below 17 kronor, after which the krona started to depreciate again and was back to the old parity at 18.16 in November 1931. The Riksbank then decided to peg the krona to sterling at the old gold parity, a decision that was at odds with the 23 Feinstein et al. (1997, pp. 151-4) 24 Eichengreen (1996, p. 87) 25 Te following account of Swedish exchange rate policy in the 1930s is based on Jonung (1979) and Berg and Jonung (1999). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 352 monetary policy declaration two months earlier that the goal of a fixed exchange rate would be abandoned. The peg at the old parity could not be maintained for long. After the Krueger crash in March 1932 the krona depreciated against sterling, which rose above 19.50 kronor in the summer of 1932. From the spring of 1932 it was abundantly clear that the international depression had hit the Swedish economy and that defationary forces were building up. Tis allowed the Riksbank to let the krona depreciate without importing infation and risking the stated monetary policy goal of price stability. After the US left the gold standard in the spring of 1933, the international currency market became less vola- tile and the exchange rates of sterling and the US dollar stabilised. In June 1933 the Riksbank decided to peg the krona to sterling at 19.40. Te peg was maintained until the outbreak of the Second World War. Figure 7.3, showing the evolution of our trade-weighted exchange rate index, gives an overview of the Swedish exchange rate in the period 1924–39. After the major currencies had returned to gold in the mid 1920s, the krona was more or less stable until its depreciation in 1931–32; by 1934 its value had fallen by roughly 25 per cent. From the level in 1934 it appreciated slightly up to 1937, mainly due to deval- uations in gold bloc countries. Nevertheless, despite a slight appreciation between 1934 and 1937, at the outbreak of the Second World War the krona had depreciated more than 20 per cent compared to the situation before Sweden left the gold stan- dard in 1931. Did the krona also depreciate in real terms? Swedish economic historiography considers that the krona did depreciate in real terms in the 1920s, since defation in Sweden was more severe than in most other countries. 26 Furthermore, following the depreciation in 1931–32, the krona’s real exchange rate fell even more in the early 1930s. 27 Te inter-war depreciation of the Swedish real exchange rate is evident in Figure 7.4. However, the depreciation in the 1920s must be seen in the light of the krona’s clear overvaluation in the early 1920s as a result of its appreciation during the First World War. If our real exchange rate index for Sweden against six major trading partners is set at 0.96 for 1914, based on a PPP benchmark for that year, the value for 1926 is close to unity, indicating a ‘fair value’ for the krona, in which case the depreciation in 1932 led to an undervaluation of the krona by 10–15 per cent in the 1930s. Starting instead from a PPP benchmark for 1927 28 , which indicates a 12 per cent overvaluation of the krona in that year, the 1931–32 depreciation only brought it back to a ‘fair value’. In sum, it seems obvious that the krona did depreciate in real terms in the inter- war period. Te extent to which it was ‘overvalued’ or ‘undervalued’ during parts of 26 Lundberg (1983). 27 Tat the devaluation of the Swedish krona as well as the Danish and Norwegian krona also cor- responded to a real depreciation has been pointed out by Klovland (1998, pp. 318–21). 28 Calculated from PPP benchmarks 1927 for Sweden, Denmark, Norway, UK, USA, Germany and France as given in Williamson (1995). 7. From appreciation to depreciation 353 Figure 7.4: Real exchange rate index 1925–39 (1926=1) Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7.1); consumer price indices (Mitchell 2003b; Mitchell 2003a); purchasing power parities 1927 (Williamson 1995). Note: Te real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1930 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark, Norway, UK, USA, Germany and France. Figure 7.3: Exchange rate index, 1924–39 (January 1929=100) Sources: See Appendix A7.2, Table A7.20. 0.80 0.85 0.90 0.95 1.00 1.05 1.10 1.15 1926 1928 1930 1932 1934 1936 1938 1927 Real exchange rate 1925-39 (1926=1) Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1927 70 75 80 85 90 95 100 105 110 1924 1926 1928 1930 1932 1934 1936 1938 Exchange rate index, foreign currency/kr (Jan 1929=100) Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 354 this period is more dif cult to determine, given the dif culty of establishing refer- ence points of ‘fair value’ against which to measure this. An enduring trade surplus may indicate undervaluation. Sweden had a surplus of 1–2 per cent of GDP during the 1920s 29 whereas the surplus was smaller in the 1930s, when the krona depreci- ated most markedly in real terms. Te latter may perhaps be explained by the fact that the krona did not depreciate against the sterling area, while trade with Germany, against which the krona depreciated sharply, was conducted via bilateral negotia- tions. 7.4. The reshaping of the international monetary system after the Second World War: the Bretton Woods system 7.4.1. An overview of the international monetary system in the Bretton Woods era In July 1944, delegates from 44 allied nations convened in Bretton Woods, New Hampshire, to draw up the guidelines for a new international monetary system. 30 The conference had been preceded by proposals for the functioning of a new inter- national monetary system from Keynes, who headed the British delegation, and Dexter White, the leader of the US delegation. Keynes argued for a system where countries could adjust their exchange rates, in other words an ‘adjustable peg sys- tem’, to achieve external balance. He also suggested the creation of an international clearing system with extensive credit facilities for the participating countries and a new international unit of account which he called bancor. Dexter White’s proposal was closer to the old gold standard. He foresaw a system of fixed exchange rates where each national currency was pegged to gold. Exchange rate adjustments would be allowed only after consultations with a new ‘International Stabilization Fund’. To support countries with external deficits, Dexter White suggested the creation of credit facilities, the size of which was dependent on quotas paid in gold or in the countries’ own currencies to the ‘International Stabilization Fund’. The result of the Bretton Woods proceedings was a compromise between the proposals of Keynes and Dexter White, with the latter clearly exerting more influence, corresponding to the USA’s leading role in the international economy. Te Bretton Woods system was a fxed exchange rate system. Each country’s cur- rency would be pegged to the dollar at a fxed rate, but a deviation of one per cent up or down from this rate would be allowed. Te dollar in turn was pegged to gold and exchangeable for it at the rate of 35 dollars per ounce. Only in a situation of ‘funda- mental disequilibrium’ in the external balance was a country allowed to devalue its 29 Krantz and Schön (2007); Edvinsson (2005). 30 Te following account of the international monetary system in the period 1944–1973 is pri- marily based on Eichengreen (1996) and Kenwood and Lougheed (1985). 7. From appreciation to depreciation 355 currency by up to ten per cent after consultation with the International Monetary fund, IMF, a new international agency set up to monitor the system. Trough the IMF, the participating countries were also granted a certain amount of credit facili- ties, dependent on and fnanced by country quotas, of which 25 percent was to be paid in gold or ‘convertible currencies’ (meaning the dollar) and the rest in national currency. Te size of the quotas refected each country’s economic strength and also determined the country’s voting rights in the IMF. To promote economic develop- ment, the International Bank for Reconstruction and Development, also called the World Bank, was set up to provide loans to developing countries. Te Bretton Woods system established the dollar as the world’s leading reserve currency. In practice, the international monetary system was now based on a dollar standard. Although the dollar was exchangeable for gold, the Bretton Woods system was fundamentally diferent from the old gold standard. Firstly, it was an ‘adjustable peg system’. In other words, it was possible to devalue a currency instead of being obliged to follow a defationary monetary policy to restore competitiveness. Sec- ondly, countries were allowed to use capital controls to avert volatile capital fows. Tirdly, a new international agency, the IMF, was created to monitor the system. Te IMF could also extend credit to countries in trouble and had the right to sanction governments who did not play by the rules. Te new international monetary system agreed upon in Bretton Woods was sup- posed to become fully operational after fve years, when all currencies would be fully convertible. In fact, ffteen years passed before all the major currencies became fully convertible in December 1958. European reconstruction after the Second World War required enormous resources. Countries had dif culties in exporting enough to earn the dollars they needed to pay for goods from the US. A lack of export revenue and a shortage of dollars made it hard for European countries to restore the convert- ibility of their currencies. A case in point was the British attempt to restore the gold convertibility of sterling in 1947; international reserves diminished so rapidly that after only six weeks the Bank of England was forced to re-suspend gold convertibility in August 1947. When the US economy went into recession in 1948–49, European countries found it even harder to earn suf cient export revenue. To strengthen their competi- tiveness, they devalued their currencies by 30 per cent against the dollar in Septem- ber 1949. Te European Recovery and Relief Plan, also called the Marshall Plan, which was put into efect in 1947, helped to alleviate the dollar shortage. To admin- ister this Plan, the Organization for European Economic Cooperation, OEEC, was founded and the European Payment Union, EPU, was set up under its auspices. Te EPU was a clearing arrangement for facilitating trade between West European coun- tries. Te countries taking part agreed to work towards current account convertibil- ity and also adopted a ‘code of liberalization’ which mandated the removal of restric- tions on currency conversion for trade purposes. Under the EPU, trade restrictions were abolished more quickly among European countries than on imports from the Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 356 USA. European countries also used exchange controls to alleviate balance of pay- ments problems; moreover, France resorted to a devaluation in 1957. In December 1958 Western European countries restored the convertibility of their currencies, which signifed that the Bretton Woods system was in full operation. Te system lasted for another ffteen years. It soon became apparent that the main prob- lem with the international monetary system had ceased to be insuf cient dollar liquidity and was rather a ‘dollar overhang’. In 1961, for the frst time since the Sec- ond World War, other countries’ combined reserves of gold and hard currencies exceeded the US gold and currency reserve. Although the USA still had a positive trade balance, its balance of payments had shown a defcit since 1958 as a result of investment and military expenditures abroad. Te situation worsened in the 1960s as the US surplus on merchandise trade was gradually undermined by the increasing competitiveness of other industrial nations. Te architects of the Bretton Woods sys- tem had not foreseen the rapid growth of world trade in the 1950s and ’60s. Te sup- ply of gold grew much more slowly than world trade and it became increasingly clear that the gold reserves of the US would not suf ce if countries with a trade surplus were to insist on exchanging their dollar reserves for gold at of cial parities. Te French president de Gaulle pointed out that the international monetary system gave the US seigniorage privileges that were not available to other countries and on many occasions he threatened to exchange the French dollar reserves for gold. Te lack of gold reserves also threatened to drive up the price of gold to well above the of cial parities. In 1961, eight countries among the Group of Ten created a Gold Pool in order to preserve the of cial price of gold at 35 dollars per ounce by means of market interventions. Tis worked until 1967, when sterling came under pressure. France left the Gold Pool in 1968 and was soon followed by Britain. From 1968 a two-tiered system emerged, where the free market price of gold rose high above the of cial price. Te crisis in the Bretton Woods system in the late 1960s was manifested in the realignment of exchange rates. Te fxed rates that had been set in the 1950s were becoming increasingly outdated because countries difered in the development of productivity and hence of competitiveness. For example, West Germany ran persis- tent current-account surpluses, which indicated that the D-mark was undervalued, while the UK tended to have continual trade defcits, which suggested that sterling was overvalued. In November 1967 sterling was devalued by 15 per cent and two years later, in October 1969, the West German mark was revalued by 10 per cent. Two months earlier, France had devalued the franc by the same amount after a year of student protests and rampant labour unrest. Critical observers, among them the Belgian monetary economist Robert Trif n, pointed out that the Bretton Woods system had a built-in contradiction. US defcits supplied the world economy with liquidity, since the dollar was the reserve currency, at the same time as growing US defcits undermined the dollar’s stability. Te US defcits represented a dilemma for countries, such as West Germany, that ran a cur- 7. From appreciation to depreciation 357 rent-account surplus. A devaluation of the dollar would deprive them of some of their savings; if, however, they continued to accumulate dollar reserves they risked infation since dollars could be exchanged for local currency at a fxed rate. Te latter problem was exacerbated by the growing Eurodollar market, which increased liquid- ity in the banking system outside the control of central banks. To lessen the need for more dollar liquidity, countries in the IMF agreed to create additional credit facili- ties. Te Group of Ten (the central banks in the ten leading countries), had already entered a ‘General Agreement to Borrow’ in 1962. As of 1970, moreover, countries could accumulate reserves in the form of Special Drawing Rights, which were allo- cated to countries in relation to their quotas in the IMF. 31 Te Special Drawing Rights and other credit facilities were clearly insuf cient to replace the dollar as an international reserve currency. Te built-in contradiction of the Bretton Woods system – that the international reserve currency was also a national currency whose stability was being undermined by mounting US defcits – remained. In the spring of 1971 dollars fowed to Western Europe in a steady stream. Te Dutch and West German central banks permitted their currencies to foat upwards. Te US trade balance turned into a defcit in 1971; on August 13 that year the US President, Richard Nixon, announced that the US had suspended the dollar’s con- vertibility into gold and imposed a 10 per cent surcharge on merchandise imports. Te suspension of gold convertibility removed a central pillar of the Bretton Woods system. In the following months, central banks discussed how the interna- tional monetary system could be reformed. At a meeting at the Smithsonian confer- ence centre in New York in December 1971, participants from the Group of Ten countries signed the Smithsonian Agreement. Te US 10 per cent import surcharge was rescinded and the dollar was devalued by 8 percent, while the German, Swiss and Benelux currencies were revalued. Moreover, the band within which exchange rates were allowed to foat without requiring central bank intervention was widened to ±2 ¼ per cent. Despite Nixon’s claim that the Smithsonian Agreement was ‘the most signifcant monetary agreement in the history of the world’, nothing really changed. Te US dollar continued to be a weak currency. A second devaluation of the dollar, by 10 per cent, against major European currencies was negotiated in 1973 but this time West Germany and other European countries decided to let their currencies foat. Tis put an end to the Bretton Woods fxed exchange rate system. 32 7.4.2. Sweden and the Bretton Woods system In the aftermath of the Second World War, an important issue in Swedish economic policy was the prevention of inflation, which was increasing. To stem price increases for imported goods, which spilled over to the home market and fostered inflation, 31 Kenwood and Lougheed (1985, pp. 279–80). 32 Eichengreen (1996, pp. 128–34). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 358 Figure 7.5: Exchange rate index, 1946–73 (January 1950=100) Sources: See Appendix A7.2, Table A7.20. the krona was revalued by 14 per cent in 1946. 33 This had the drawback of weakening the competitive position of Swedish producers. When sterling was devalued by 30 per cent against the US dollar in September 1949, the krona followed suit along with many other European currencies. Sweden did not at frst participate in the Bretton Woods system since it was con- sidered incompatible with Swedish neutrality in foreign policy. However, Sweden did join in August 1951; the immediate reason seems to have been that the GATT agree- ments, which Sweden had ratifed, presupposed membership of the Bretton Woods institutions. Te history of the Swedish exchange rate from adherence to the Bretton Woods system up to its demise in 1973 is intertwined with that of other West Euro- pean countries. In the 1950s Sweden participated in the EPU and in 1958 the Swed- ish krona became fully convertible along with other European currencies. Te Swed- ish exchange rate against the dollar was stable from 1949 to 1971. When, at the time of the Smithsonian agreement, the dollar depreciated by 10 per cent against the Ger- man mark and other strong currencies, such as the Japanese yen, it depreciated by only 6 per cent against the krona; in other words, Sweden’s currency depreciated against the German mark and the Japanese yen. 34 Figure 7.5 gives an overview of the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate in the 33 Te following account of Swedish exchange rate policy under the Bretton Woods system is pri- marily based on Wihlborg (1993). For Sweden and the Bretton Woods institutions, see also Ahlström and Carlsson (2006). 34 Wihlborg (1993) 90 95 100 105 110 115 120 1946 1950 1954 1958 1962 1966 1970 Exchange rate index, foreign currency/kr (Jan1950=100) 7. From appreciation to depreciation 359 0.92 0.96 1.00 1.04 1.08 1.12 1.16 1.20 1952 1956 1960 1964 1968 1972 1975 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1975 Real exchange rate 1950-1975 (1951=1) period 1946–73, as measured by our trade-weighted exchange rate index. Te reval- uation in 1946 and the devaluation in 1949 are clearly visible. 35 Te krona was then quite stable in the 1950s, with a tendency to appreciate slightly in 1957 and 1958 due to the devaluation of the French franc in these years. Te increasing turbulence in international currency markets towards the end of the 1960s is also clearly visible in the graph. Te krona appreciated in 1967 due to the devaluation of sterling in 1967 and then depreciated slightly in 1969 due to a revaluation of the West German mark in the autumn. Te net result of the exchange rate realignment in late 1971 was a slight appreciation of the krona. Early in 1973, Sweden joined the European snake arrangement, after which the krona foated along with other European currencies. Figure 7.6 shows the development of the krona’s real exchange rates against six main trading partners 1950–75. A PPP benchmark from 1975 indicates that at that time the Swedish krona was overvalued by 12 per cent against a trade-weighted aver- 35 It has been argued (Wihlborg 1993, p. 205) that the 30 per cent devaluation in 1949 was of no great importance since it was done against the US dollar and the Swiss franc, both of which had relatively small weights in Swedish foreign trade. However, our trade-weighted exchange rate index fell by 14 per cent following the devaluation, a not insignifcant amount. Figure 7.6: Real exchange rate index 1950–75 (1951=1) Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7.1); consumer price indices (Mitchell 2003b; Mitchell 2003a); purchasing power parities 1975 (Williamson 1995). Note: Te real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1975 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark, Norway, UK, USA, Germany and France. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 360 age of six main trading partners. 36 In other words, for a Swedish citizen abroad, the krona’s purchasing power was on average 12 per cent higher than at home. It was mainly in the 1960s that the krona appreciated in real terms when it revalued nomi- nally against the pound at the same time as the rate of infation in Sweden (and many other West European countries) was markedly higher than in Germany and the US. All this signifes that the krona appears to have been overvalued when the Bretton Woods system collapsed. 7.5. After Bretton Woods, 1973–2008 7.5.1. Overview of the international monetary system after the break- up of the Bretton Woods system The demise of the Bretton Woods system was a watershed in the history of the inter- national monetary system. The system was no longer anchored to a metallic cur- rency. To safeguard price stability, central banks had to rely on monetary policy, which now could be pursued without regard for its effect on exchange rates. 37 Currencies now ‘foated’ against each other. In other words, exchange rates were determined by market forces, without central banks being obliged to intervene in order to stabilize them at some predetermined rate. In practice, however, govern- ments and central banks did not completely disregard the evolution of exchange rates. In many respects, the post-Bretton Woods international monetary system can be characterized as a regime of ‘managed foating’. European central banks tried to limit fuctuations among European currencies that were involved in various forms of European monetary cooperation, while the US and Japan let their currencies foat, initially without regard to their value. In the second half of the 1970s the US dollar depreciated against the Japanese yen and the German mark, and sterling weakened even more; this refected the higher rates of infation in the US and the UK. After a shift in economic policy doctrine around 1980, both the US and the UK gave priority to combating infation. Te central banks in both countries raised interest rates and their currencies appreciated. Foreign capital was attracted by high interest rates in the US, which led to an even larger appreciation of the dollar. 38 By 1985 many observers were worried that exchange rates were ‘misaligned’, i.e. they did not refect economic fundamentals, which led to 36 As before, the real exchange rate index is calculated with respect to Denmark, Norway, Great Britain, Germany, France and the USA. Trade weights derive from 1975. Extrapolating back- wards from a level of 1.12 for the real exchange rate in 1975 (according to a PPP benchmark from1975), gives a value close to unity for 1951. We have therefore scaled the real exchange rate index to unity for this year. 37 Te following overview of the international monetary system since 1973 is primarily based on Eichengreen (1996, Ch. 5) and Kenwood and Lougheed (1985, Ch. 16, 18) 38 Eichengreen (1996, pp. 146–47) 7. From appreciation to depreciation 361 central bank agreements to rectify them by means of market interventions. When the G5 fnance ministers and central bank governors met at the City Plaza Hotel in New York in September 1985, they agreed to press for ‘an orderly appreciation of non-dol- lar currencies’ in order to fend of rising protectionist sentiments in the US Congress caused by the dwindling competitiveness of US frms due to the high value of the dollar. After the Plaza accord, the US dollar depreciated rapidly and the Europeans and the Japanese raised concerns that the dollar deprecation had gone too far. At a G7 summit in Louvre in February 1987 it was agreed to stabilize exchange rates at the current levels. 39 Tese examples show that while the currencies of the major eco- nomic powers foated against each other in the 1980s, there were still attempts to realign exchange rates by means of policy coordination. After the demise of the Bretton Woods system, European countries decided to continue with monetary cooperation in a regime of managed foating. If exchange rates were permitted to drift apart unduly, that could jeopardize the goals of a Euro- pean economic union, for which a common currency was a central pillar. European monetary cooperation had started after the Smithsonian agreement in 1971, when countries were permitted to let their currencies fuctuate within a band of ±2¼ per cent against the dollar. Teoretically this made it possible for the exchange rate gap between two European currencies to widen by nine percent, namely if one currency depreciated by 4½ per cent against the dollar while another country appreciated by the same amount. To prevent such a drifting apart of exchange rates, European coun- tries agreed that their exchange rates should not deviate by more than ±2¼ per cent against each other, implying a maximum change of 4½ per cent in the exchange rate between any two currencies. Tis arrangement was named ‘the snake in the tunnel’. When the US dollar started to foat freely and the tunnel broke up in 1973, Euro- pean countries decided to continue their commitment to limit mutual exchange rate variations to ±2¼ percent. Te arrangement, now named just ‘the snake’, or ‘the snake in the lake’, since there was now no tunnel, meant that the European curren- cies taking part foated as a group against other currencies, such as the dollar and the yen. Apart from the original EEC countries, other European countries, among them Sweden, also participated in the arrangement. Te snake countries established short- term credit facilities to member countries with weak currencies and set up a Euro- pean Monetary Cooperation Fund, whose board was made up of representatives for the national central banks, to monitor monetary policies. However, varying rates of infation and varying fscal and monetary policies among the European countries made the snake arrangement dif cult to uphold. Tere were occasional devaluations and revaluations of currencies and countries withdrew and re-joined the snake. For example, France withdrew in January 1974, re-entered in July 1975 and withdrew again in March 1976. Te end result was that in the troubled macroeconomic envi- ronment of the late 1970s the European countries failed to keep fuctuations in their 39 Eichengreen (1996, pp. 149–50) Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 362 mutual exchange rates within the narrow band stipulated by the snake arrange- ment. 40 In 1979, European exchange rate collaboration was renewed through a French ini- tiative by setting up the European Monetary System (EMS). Te original six EEC countries and the new members Denmark and Ireland participated, while the UK stayed outside. As with the snake, it was agreed that participating countries should strive to keep mutual exchange rate variations within a band of ±2¼ percent, though Italy was granted a wider band of ±6 percent. None of the original participating countries left the EMS in the 1980s but exchange rates were frequently ‘realigned’, especially in the frst half of that decade. Over the course of the 1980s the German mark appreciated against the Italian lira by more than 60 per cent, against the French franc and the Irish pound by more than 40 per cent, and against the Belgian/Luxem- bourg franc and the Danish krona by more than 30 per cent. 41 7.5.2. The Swedish krona after the fall of the Bretton Woods system Sweden joined the European snake arrangement in March 1973 and for the next two years the krona’s exchange rate against the German mark was quite stable. From the mid-1970s Sweden was hard hit by structural crises in manufacturing and a loss of competitiveness due to rising unit labour costs. In October 1976, the Frankfurt realignment of European exchange rates entailed a devaluation of the krona by 3 per cent against the mark. Even so, in 1976 the Swedish exchange rate appreciated against a weighted average of Sweden’s trading partners, due to the decline of the US dollar and sterling. In April 1977, the krona was devalued by 6 per cent against the snake currencies. Another devaluation, by 10 per cent, followed in August that year. At the same time, Sweden decided to withdraw from the European currency coop- eration in the snake. From now on the Swedish krona was pegged to a basket of 14 currencies, each weighted for its share in Sweden’s foreign trade, with a double weight for the US dollar. Further loss of competiveness and concern over current- account deficits led to another 10 per cent devaluation against the currency basket in September 1981. 42 While the devaluations in 1977 and 1981 might be considered defensive, in the sense that they were undertaken to ‘rectify’ an alleged overvaluation of the krona, manifesting itself in current-account deficits, the next devaluation, in October 1982, was presented as an ‘offensive’ measure. The new Social Democrat government motivated it as a means to strengthen the profitability and competive- ness of manufacturing and to kick-start the economy. The devaluation’s obvious ‘beggar thy neighbour’ nature was criticized by the IMF and also raised concern among Sweden’s Nordic neighbours. In the course of the 1980s Sweden’s unit labour costs rose faster than many of its 40 Eichengreen (1996, pp. 152-59). 41 Eichengreen (1996, p. 164). 42 Wihlborg (1993, pp. 226-28). 7. From appreciation to depreciation 363 competitors’, which eroded the benefts that the Swedish manufacturing industry had obtained from the devaluation in 1982. Te Swedish central bank, the Riks- bank, declared that there would not be a devaluation this time round. Instead, the krona was tied to the European Currency Unit in May 1991. In the EMS crisis in 1992 the krona was one of the currencies that came under speculative attacks. Te Riksbank tried in vain to defend the exchange rate by raising the marginal rate of interest to three digit levels and by purchases in the currency markets. According to the Bank of International Settlements, the Riksbank’s reserve losses amounted to more than 10 per cent of Sweden’s Gross National Product. 43 On 19 November the Riksbank had to abandon its defence of the krona. Sweden has had a foating exchange rate regime ever since. Te break-up of the Bretton Woods system inaugurated a long period of depreci- ation of the Swedish krona. Tis is clear from our exchange rate index for the period 1973–2008, Figure 7.7. 44 Te krona drifted upwards in the frst few years, mainly due to the depreciation of the US dollar and sterling. Tereafter it was taken down by a series of three devaluations in 1977–82, all of which are clearly visible in the graph. Te end result was a depreciation of the krona by 30–35 per cent from the sit- uation at the break-up of the Bretton Woods system. 43 Eichengreen (1996, p. 174). 44 From October 1981 the Riksbank publishes an exchange rate index, the TCW index. It is based on fewer currencies and diferent (fxed) weights from our index. Nevertheless, as can be seen from Figure 7.7, its long-run evolution is similar to our index. Bengt Dennis, Governor of the Riksbank at the time of the EMS crisis in 1992. Source:http://www.riksbank. se/templates/ Page.aspx?id=4231 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 364 0.8 0.9 1.0 1.1 1.2 1.3 1.4 1975 1980 1985 1990 1995 2000 2005 1985 1975 Real exchange rates 1973-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rates based on purchasing power parities for GDP (OECD), 1973-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1985 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1975 40 50 60 70 80 90 100 110 1975 1980 1985 1990 1995 2000 2005 Exchange rate index 1973-2008, foreign currency/kr (Jan 1975=100) TCW index, Sveriges Riksbank Figure 7.8: Real exchange rate index 1973–2008 (1983=1) Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7.1); consumer price indices, OECD web site; purchasing power parities 1975 (Williamson 1995); purchasing power parities 1985 (Maddison 1991); pur- chasing power parities for other years, OECD website. Note: Te real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1985 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark, Norway, UK, USA, Germany and France. Figure 7.7: Exchange rate index, 1973–2008 (January 1975=100) Sources: Exchange rate index see Appendix A.7.2, Table A7.20;TCW index, Sveriges Riksbank’s website. Note: Te TCW index starts in October 1981, at which date it has been scaled to the same number as our exchange rate index. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 365 Te devaluation in the autumn of 1982 was followed by a period of relative stability until the EMS crisis in 1992. When the Riksbank then abandoned the defence of the fxed exchange rate, initiating the current period of foating exchange rates, the krona fell by about 30 per cent, which meant that the value of the krona in the spring of 1993 was roughly half of what it had been when the Bretton Woods system collapsed 20 years earlier. Te foating exchange rate system since 1992 has brought a sharp increase in the volatility of the exchange rate, hitherto without any clear trend. 45 Te basic reason for the decline in the value of the Swedish krona was of course that the price level in Sweden rose faster than in its trading partners. Te real exchange rate was more stable. From 1995 the OECD has computed Purchasing Power Pari- ties (PPP) for all OECD countries for the years 1995, 1999, 2002 and 2005. Euro- stat has constructed PPP data for European countries for the years 1995–98, 1999, 2002 and 2005. 46 Before 1995, PPPs supplied by the OECD and Eurostat are back- casted by means of the implicit GDP price defator for each country. PPP bench- marks from 1995 onwards make it possible to compute real exchange rates directly, based on relative prices for a given basket of commodities, as shown in Figure 7.8. Te krona’s real exchange rate against a weighted average of six main trading part- ners 47 is more or less stable from 1993 to 2008 when computed directly from PPPs and nominal exchange rates. A real exchange index constructed instead from the consumer price indices of the various countries and nominal exchange rates shows a marked depreciation after 1993. Te main diference between the two indices is the period 1995–2000, when the information obtained from consumer price indices deviates from the implicit price evolution mirrored by PPPs. 48 As always, it is dif - cult to fx a point in time when the krona can be said to have been ‘fairly’ valued. From the OECD and Eurostat PPP data from 1985 it would appear that the krona was approximately ‘fairly’ valued 49 in 1983 after the 1982 devaluation. 50 We have 45 At the time of writing in February 2009, it remains to be seen whether the current sharp fall in the krona, initiated towards the end of 2008 and ongoing in the frst two months of 2009, will be permanent, or whether the krona will bounce back. 46 PPP data can be downloaded from the OECD’s website. 47 Te real exchange rate index is calculated with respect to the same six countries as before: USA, UK, Germany, France, Denmark and Norway. 48 No matter how we calculate, the krona seems to be wildly undervalued at the time of writing in February 2009. 49 Tat the krona was ‘fairly valued’ in 1983 is based on a real exchange rate of 1.06 in 1985 (cal- culated from PPP data) for Sweden against a trade-weighted average of six countries (Maddi- son 1991, p. 197). 50 In 1982, though, the common opinion among observers seems to have been that the krona was undervalued after the devaluation, as measured for example by unit labour costs (Nordin 1991), see also Wihlborg (1991), while it was ‘fairly’ valued just before the 1982 devaluation. Also, the real exchange rate backcasted by means of price index data from a level of unity in 1983 leads to a much higher overvaluation of the real exchange rate in the mid-1970s than is shown by, for example, the 1975 PPP benchmark, see Figure 7.8. Tis example illustrates the problems involved in extrapolating by means of price index numbers between benchmark levels. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 366 Figure 7.9: Exchange rate index 1913-2008 (January 1929=100) Sources: See Appendices A7.1 and A7.2. therefore set the real exchange rate index to unity in 1983. From this perspective, the krona was clearly overvalued at the onset of the EMS crisis in 1992. After the depre- ciation in 1992–93 it became ‘fairly’ valued again. Its subsequent evolution is, as we have pointed out, dependent on which measure we adopt for the real exchange rate. 51 7.6. A bird’s-eye view of the krona’s exchange rate, 1913–2008 The history of the Swedish exchange rate since the First World War can be summed up by noting that there were two periods when the value of the krona changed mark- edly. One was from 1915 to early 1924, when the krona appreciated. The other was 1977–93, when the krona depreciated in several steps. Between 1924 and 1977 there was no long-run change in the value of the krona, event though the depreciation in the 1930s and the appreciation in the aftermath of the Second World War were sig- 51 Tere is also a large diference in 1973–83 between the real exchange rate calculated from con- sumer price indices or from PPP data from the OECD. Tis is strange since the OECD data are supposedly backcasted by means of price indices, namely GDP defators. Te diference would be approximately the same with PPPs based on private consumption backcasted by means of consumer price indices. 40 50 60 70 80 90 100 110 120 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 Exchange rate index 1913-2008 (excluding Germany 1913-24), foreign currency/kr (Jan 1929=100) Exchange rate index 1913-2008, foreign currency/kr (Jan 1929=100) 7. From appreciation to depreciation 367 Figure 7.10: Real exchange rate indices, 1914–2088 Sources: See Figures 7.2, 7.4, 7.6 and 7.8. Note: Te real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark, Norway, UK, USA, Germany and France, except for 1913–23 when Germany is excluded from the index. nificant episodes in the history of the Swedish exchange rate. As can be seen from Figure 7.9, showing the long-run evolution of the krona’s exchange rate against a trade-weighted average of Sweden’s trading partners, the depreciation of Sweden’s krona in 1977–92 has brought its value back to much the same level as before the First World War. However, this picture is heavily dependent on the sharp deprecia- tion of the German currency in the period 1913–23. If Germany is excluded from the index for those years, the krona’s appreciation during and after the First World War is less pronounced. In this case, since 1913 the krona has depreciated by roughly 40 per cent against a weighted average of trading partners. 0.8 0.9 1.0 1.1 1.2 1.3 1.4 1.5 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 1914 1927 1975 1985 Real exchange rate index 1914-25 (1914=0.96) Real exchange rate index 1925-39 (1926=1) Real exchange rate index 1950-75 (1951=1) Real exchange rate index 1973-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rates index based on PPPs 1983-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1914 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1927 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1975 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1985 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 368 Te evolution of the Swedish krona’s exchange rate must be put in perspective by relating it to regime shifts in the international monetary system. In the periods of fxed exchange rates, i.e. the interwar gold standard and the Bretton Woods system 1951–73, the krona’s nominal exchange rate shows only minor fuctuations. For Swe- den this was also the case in the periods 1931–51 and 1973–92, when the Riksbank had a target for the exchange rate by pegging the krona to other currencies: sterling in the 1930s and a basket of currencies in the 1970s and 1980s. Te major exchange rate realignments that did take place in the period 1931–92 were a result of discre- tionary decisions by the Riksbank, in other word devaluations or revaluations. In the periods of free foating, i.e. 1915–24 and since 1992/93, the fuctuations were also larger than in other periods. Both periods also signify major changes in the value of the krona; appreciation during the First World War and depreciation after 1992/93. During and after the Second World War there was no functional international mon- etary system and the krona’s exchange rate was pegged to major currencies, such as sterling and the US dollar. Whether the exchange rate was adjusted by the Riksbank’s discretionary decisions or by the interplay of market forces during a period of foating exchange rates, its long-run evolution was connected to the buying power of the krona. Figure 7.10 shows a trade-weighted average of the real exchange rate against six other currencies 52 for various sub-periods. Te real exchange rate has been set to unity in a year in which the nominal exchange rate seems to have been close to ‘fair value’, based on information from PPP data. A value larger than unity indicates overvaluation of the krona, while a value below unity indicates undervaluation. Given that PPP bench- marks are error-prone, as are the price indices used to backcast or forecast from PPP levels, the exact magnitude of the measured real exchange rate should obviously be taken with a pinch of salt. We can be more certain about long-run trends. A frst con- clusion is that there is no long-run trend in the evolution of the real exchange rate. Real exchange rates can drift in one direction for as long as two decades. Because of the rather long periods during which exchange rates can deviate from what would be predicted from varying infation rates, many economists have concluded that the purchasing power parity doctrine is of limited value for the determination of exchange rates in the short or medium term. However, as illustrated by Swedish data, over the very long run, real exchange rates do sooner or later mean-revert. Secondly, there are clearly periods of real appreciation or depreciation, in which a previous period of overshooting/undershooting in the value of the krona is corrected. Te appreciation of the krona during the First World War was also a real apprecia- tion. Te krona subsequently depreciated in real terms but this should be seen against the background of its high overvaluation in the early 1920s. Te devaluation in 1931 also led to a depreciation in real terms, which strengthened the competitiveness of Swedish producers. Te krona was probably undervalued in the 1930s, following the 1931 devaluation. During the Bretton Woods period the krona appreciated in real terms against our group of six major trading partners. Te devaluations in 1977–81 52 Denmark, Norway, USA, UK, Germany, France. As mentioned, Germany is excluded from the index for the period 1914–24. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 369 addressed a problem of overvaluation of the krona and strengthened the competitive- ness of Swedish industry. Te same can be said for the depreciation of the krona in 1992/93. Tereafter the krona has depreciated in real terms. Most economists agree that in terms of ‘fundamentals’ the krona is undervalued today (at the time of writ- ing in February 2009). Te depreciation of the krona since the autumn of 2008 is a vivid illustration of the extent to which prices of fnancial assets are governed by expectations of the future. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 370 Appendix A7.1: Monthly exchange rates 1913–2008 A7.1.1 Sources The exchange rates are the currency prices quoted in Stockholm, i.e. the sum in Swedish kronor (SEK) that was equivalent to a given unit of a foreign currency. In collecting monthly exchange rate data, the following sources have been used: For the period 1913–19 the monthly exchange rates for sterling, the German reichsmark, the French franc and, from 1915, the US dollar derive from information in Sveriges riksbank årsbok (Yearbook of the Swedish Central Bank). All other exchange rates for this period derive from information on monthly exchange rates collected in the archives of Sveriges Riksbank (Sweden’s central bank). For the period 1920–79 the exchange rate data derive from Sveriges riksbank årsbok, from 1978 Sveriges riksbank statistisk årsbok (Statistical Yearbook of the Swedish Central Bank). In this source we lack data on the exchange rate between the Swedish krona and the Japanese yen before 1977. For the period 1960–77 the monthly exchange rates between the Japanese yen and the Swedish krona have been calculated from monthly exchange rates between the Norwegian krona and the Japanese yen and between the Norwegian krona and the Swedish krona as reported on the Norwegian Central Bank’s website of exchange rates: http://www.norges-bank.no/english/statistics/ exchange/. For the period 1980–99 the exchange rate data derive from information collected in the archives of Sveriges riksbank (Sweden’s central bank) except for the Swiss franc and the Icelandic krona in 1980, where the data derive from Sveriges riksbank statis- tisk årsbok. For the period from 2000 onwards the exchange rate data derive from the website of Sveriges riksbank (Sweden’s central bank): http://www.riksbank.se/tem- plates/stat.aspx?id=15882. Table A7.1. Monthly exchange rates on UK. SEK per GBP 1913–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 18.26 18.26 18.26 18.26 18.25 18.23 18.25 18.23 18.20 18.24 18.26 18.23 1914 18.22 18.18 18.19 18.21 18.24 18.22 18.26 18.37 18.67 18.77 18.48 19.20 1915 19.26 19.41 19.40 18.70 18.38 18.13 18.33 18.24 18.11 17.87 17.25 16.94 1916 17.27 17.02 16.69 16.09 15.69 16.14 16.71 16.71 16.88 16.78 16.82 16.41 1917 16.16 16.14 16.05 15.87 15.88 15.76 15.14 14.34 14.04 12.68 11.99 13.93 1918 14.23 14.50 14.61 14.07 14.01 13.78 13.40 13.44 14.28 16.07 16.89 16.46 1919 16.58 16.94 17.04 17.38 18.08 17.95 17.86 17.38 17.10 17.27 17.85 17.87 1920 17.84 18.23 18.31 18.01 18.21 18.13 17.74 17.63 17.44 17.68 18.02 17.88 1921 17.57 17.45 17.23 16.73 16.96 16.89 17.27 17.30 17.12 16.85 17.11 16.95 1922 16.93 16.70 16.75 16.97 17.30 17.25 17.14 16.95 16.77 16.66 16.70 17.09 1923 17.34 17.65 17.64 17.48 17.37 17.38 17.28 17.15 17.11 17.14 16.68 16.57 1924 16.28 16.39 16.33 16.40 16.40 16.27 16.43 16.91 16.78 16.87 17.19 17.41 1925 17.75 17.68 17.73 17.81 18.15 18.16 18.11 18.08 18.08 18.08 18.12 18.11 7. From appreciation to depreciation 371 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1926 18.14 18.16 18.13 18.16 18.17 18.16 18.16 18.16 18.16 18.15 18.17 18.15 1927 18.18 18.18 18.15 18.14 18.16 18.12 18.13 18.12 18.10 18.09 18.10 18.09 1928 18.14 18.16 18.18 18.19 18.19 18.19 18.15 18.14 18.13 18.14 18.15 18.13 1929 18.14 18.16 18.17 18.16 18.15 18.12 18.10 18.10 18.10 18.14 18.15 18.09 1930 18.14 18.13 18.11 18.10 18.11 18.10 18.10 18.12 18.10 18.10 18.10 18.10 1931 18.14 18.15 18.14 18.15 18.14 18.15 18.15 18.16 17.63 16.94 17.93 18.03 1932 17.91 17.95 18.32 19.66 19.64 19.52 19.52 19.48 19.50 19.35 18.80 18.31 1933 18.38 18.78 18.92 19.08 19.45 19.46 19.41 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 1934 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.41 19.41 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 1935 19.40 19.41 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 1936 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 1937 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.41 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.41 1938 19.41 19.41 19.42 19.41 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.40 19.42 19.42 19.43 1939 19.43 19.42 19.42 19.41 19.42 19.43 19.42 19.29 16.99 16.95 16.60 16.70 1940 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 1941 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 1942 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 1943 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 1944 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 1945 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.95 1946 16.96 16.95 16.95 16.95 16.94 16.92 15.47 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 1947 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 1948 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 1949 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 1950 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 1951 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 1952 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.52 14.56 1953 14.59 14.59 14.60 14.60 14.54 14.52 14.51 14.47 14.46 14.44 14.47 14.50 1954 14.51 14.53 14.55 14.57 14.54 14.52 14.53 14.52 14.51 14.54 14.56 14.54 1955 14.52 14.53 14.55 14.56 14.53 14.47 14.43 14.40 14.42 14.44 14.50 14.53 1956 14.54 14.54 14.54 14.55 14.55 14.50 14.43 14.41 14.43 14.47 14.42 14.45 1957 14.49 14.52 14.49 14.51 14.49 14.46 14.47 14.44 14.47 14.49 14.51 14.50 1958 14.51 14.53 14.54 14.53 14.50 14.48 14.44 14.44 14.47 14.50 14.49 14.50 1959 14.53 14.54 14.57 14.58 14.57 14.57 14.56 14.55 14.52 14.53 14.53 14.51 1960 14.52 14.53 14.54 14.52 14.52 14.48 14.51 14.50 14.53 14.53 14.55 14.54 1961 14.51 14.49 14.47 14.47 14.43 14.42 14.40 14.48 14.56 14.56 14.57 14.54 1962 14.54 14.53 14.51 14.50 14.49 14.46 14.46 14.45 14.45 14.45 14.49 14.56 1963 14.54 14.60 14.55 14.56 14.54 14.53 14.53 14.55 14.53 14.54 14.54 14.54 1964 14.53 14.51 14.43 14.40 14.40 14.37 14.37 14.33 14.33 14.37 14.37 14.37 1965 14.35 14.37 14.36 14.40 14.43 14.43 14.43 14.44 14.47 14.51 14.52 14.51 1966 14.51 14.50 14.43 14.43 14.41 14.41 14.42 14.42 14.43 14.45 14.45 14.45 1967 14.45 14.45 14.45 14.45 14.43 14.39 14.38 14.38 14.38 14.40 13.47 12.48 1968 12.44 12.46 12.41 12.43 12.36 12.34 12.36 12.35 12.34 12.37 12.36 12.35 1969 12.36 12.39 12.39 12.38 12.36 12.38 12.37 12.35 12.35 12.36 12.40 12.40 1970 12.42 12.48 12.53 12.53 12.51 12.46 12.42 12.39 12.41 12.40 12.39 12.38 1971 12.44 12.51 12.50 12.50 12.51 12.51 12.51 12.51 12.54 12.52 12.45 12.38 Table A7.1 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on UK. SEK per GBP 1913–2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 372 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1972 12.41 12.49 12.52 12.51 12.44 12.00 11.53 11.60 11.55 11.31 11.19 11.16 1973 11.20 11.12 11.11 11.21 11.25 10.86 10.31 10.32 10.21 10.17 10.41 10.57 1974 10.69 10.74 10.72 10.55 10.31 10.50 10.45 10.41 10.41 10.31 10.10 9.80 1975 9.57 9.55 9.51 9.44 9.15 8.97 9.02 9.14 9.28 9.06 9.02 8.93 1976 8.90 8.88 8.59 8.16 8.01 7.88 8.00 7.88 7.55 7.00 6.92 6.99 1977 7.23 7.28 7.25 7.48 7.50 7.61 7.51 7.77 8.48 8.51 8.74 8.83 1978 9.05 9.03 8.82 8.53 8.48 8.48 8.62 8.64 8.67 8.63 8.59 8.72 1979 8.73 8.77 8.91 9.11 9.06 9.18 9.55 9.46 9.24 9.05 9.02 9.20 1980 9.40 9.57 9.60 9.69 9.72 9.76 9.80 9.91 10.00 10.14 10.33 10.34 1981 10.70 10.59 10.30 10.24 10.24 10.01 9.74 9.67 9.86 10.23 10.44 10.59 1982 10.61 10.66 10.56 10.49 10.49 10.59 10.62 10.62 10.68 12.16 12.27 11.92 1983 11.55 11.41 11.17 11.55 11.82 11.86 11.76 11.82 11.82 11.67 11.71 11.57 1984 11.54 11.53 11.29 11.16 11.24 11.17 10.98 10.99 10.82 10.61 10.67 10.55 1985 10.25 10.22 10.56 11.16 11.23 11.35 11.70 11.53 11.47 11.33 11.25 11.15 1986 10.85 10.57 10.62 10.85 10.88 10.88 10.68 10.31 10.19 9.84 9.93 9.93 1987 9.97 9.94 10.22 10.30 10.45 10.35 10.38 10.37 10.50 10.56 10.79 10.88 1988 10.77 10.65 10.89 10.05 11.05 10.87 10.82 11.01 10.85 10.90 11.02 11.12 1989 11.13 11.09 10.96 10.84 10.71 10.40 10.50 10.45 10.39 10.25 10.12 10.05 1990 10.18 10.41 10.03 10.02 10.17 10.42 10.76 10.99 10.86 10.99 10.94 10.85 1991 10.91 10.89 10.78 10.72 10.63 10.61 10.66 10.66 10.65 10.61 10.55 10.45 1992 10.40 10.44 10.39 10.47 10.58 10.53 10.37 10.26 9.93 9.26 9.51 10.68 1993 11.12 10.84 11.29 11.36 11.50 11.22 11.90 12.01 12.22 12.05 12.24 12.46 1994 12.16 11.80 11.80 11.68 11.61 11.90 11.99 11.94 11.78 11.66 11.69 11.72 1995 11.76 11.62 11.63 11.82 11.58 11.58 11.45 11.34 11.13 10.79 10.32 10.20 1996 10.28 10.57 10.28 10.19 10.30 10.31 10.32 10.26 10.35 10.45 11.01 11.33 1997 11.72 12.02 12.29 12.51 12.53 12.73 13.05 12.82 12.32 12.36 12.76 12.94 1998 13.10 13.24 13.23 13.08 12.59 13.03 13.13 13.27 13.29 13.29 13.28 13.45 1999 12.92 12.94 13.31 13.41 13.63 13.59 13.31 13.26 13.34 13.50 13.54 13.69 2000 13.89 13.85 13.74 13.81 13.71 13.20 13.48 13.81 13.84 14.47 14.37 14.12 2001 14.01 14.16 14.50 14.63 14.74 15.09 15.21 14.85 15.52 15.34 15.23 15.20 2002 14.96 15.02 14.71 14.87 14.68 14.16 14.52 14.55 14.54 14.45 14.25 14.18 2003 13.96 13.68 13.50 13.28 12.85 12.96 13.13 13.21 13.01 12.91 12.98 12.85 2004 13.20 13.56 13.75 13.79 13.58 13.77 13.80 13.73 13.35 13.11 12.89 12.94 2005 12.96 13.17 13.12 13.42 13.44 13.85 13.71 13.63 13.78 13.83 14.08 13.90 2006 13.58 13.67 13.64 13.44 13.67 13.45 13.39 13.60 13.74 13.75 13.51 13.43 2007 13.69 13.75 13.67 13.61 13.51 13.82 13.62 13.75 13.49 13.18 13.11 13.10 2008 12.63 12.48 12.14 11.77 11.76 11.84 11.93 11.85 11.97 12.51 12.20 11.96 Table A7.1 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on UK. SEK per GBP 1913–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 373 Table A7.2. Monthly exchange rates on USA. SEK per USD 1913–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.76 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.76 3.76 1914 3.76 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.79 3.85 3.86 3.92 3.97 1915 3.99 4.03 4.04 3.90 3.82 3.80 3.84 3.87 3.88 3.81 3.70 3.59 1916 3.63 3.57 3.52 3.40 3.34 3.41 3.53 3.53 3.56 3.55 3.56 3.48 1917 3.41 3.40 3.38 3.37 3.35 3.33 3.20 3.02 2.96 2.67 2.54 2.96 1918 3.02 3.06 3.08 2.98 2.96 2.91 2.82 2.83 3.02 3.39 3.55 3.48 1919 3.50 3.57 3.64 3.75 3.88 3.88 4.01 4.06 4.10 4.13 4.36 4.68 1920 4.85 5.41 4.99 4.60 4.75 4.62 4.59 4.88 4.97 5.09 5.26 5.12 1921 4.72 4.51 4.41 4.25 4.27 4.46 4.75 4.74 4.60 4.37 4.32 4.09 1922 4.01 3.83 3.80 3.85 3.89 3.88 3.86 3.80 3.79 3.76 3.73 3.72 1923 3.73 3.76 3.75 3.75 3.75 3.77 3.77 3.76 3.77 3.74 3.79 3.79 1924 3.79 3.80 3.79 3.77 3.77 3.76 3.76 3.75 3.76 3.76 3.73 3.71 1925 3.71 3.71 3.71 3.71 3.74 3.74 3.73 3.72 3.73 3.74 3.74 3.73 1926 3.74 3.74 3.73 3.74 3.74 3.73 3.73 3.74 3.74 3.74 3.75 3.74 1927 3.75 3.75 3.74 3.74 3.74 3.73 3.73 3.73 3.72 3.72 3.72 3.71 1928 3.72 3.73 3.73 3.73 3.73 3.73 3.73 3.74 3.74 3.74 3.74 3.74 1929 3.74 3.74 3.75 3.75 3.74 3.74 3.73 3.73 3.73 3.73 3.72 3.71 1930 3.73 3.73 3.72 3.72 3.73 3.73 3.72 3.72 3.72 3.73 3.73 3.73 1931 3.74 3.74 3.74 3.74 3.73 3.73 3.74 3.73 3.85 4.35 4.83 5.37 1932 5.22 5.19 5.06 5.23 5.35 5.36 5.50 5.60 5.62 5.73 5.74 5.58 1933 5.47 5.48 5.49 5.33 4.94 4.69 4.20 4.31 4.18 4.17 3.79 3.79 1934 3.76 3.87 3.82 3.77 3.81 3.85 3.86 3.84 3.89 3.94 3.90 3.93 1935 3.97 3.99 4.07 4.02 3.97 3.94 3.92 3.91 3.94 3.96 3.95 3.94 1936 3.92 3.89 3.91 3.93 3.91 3.87 3.87 3.87 3.86 3.96 3.98 3.96 1937 3.96 3.97 3.98 3.95 3.94 3.94 3.91 3.90 3.92 3.92 3.89 3.89 1938 3.89 3.87 3.90 3.90 3.91 3.92 3.94 3.98 4.05 4.08 4.13 4.16 1939 4.17 4.15 4.15 4.15 4.15 4.15 4.15 4.16 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 1940 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 1941 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 1942 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 1943 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 1944 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 1945 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 1946 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 4.20 3.84 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 1947 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 1948 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 1949 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 3.60 4.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1950 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1951 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1952 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1953 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1954 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1955 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1956 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1957 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1958 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 374 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1959 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.19 1960 5.19 5.19 5.18 5.17 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.16 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.18 1961 5.18 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1962 5.18 5.16 5.16 5.15 5.15 5.15 5.15 5.15 5.16 5.16 5.18 5.20 1963 5.19 5.19 5.20 5.20 5.20 5.19 5.19 5.20 5.20 5.20 5.20 5.20 1964 5.20 5.19 5.16 5.15 5.15 5.14 5.15 5.15 5.15 5.17 5.16 5.15 1965 5.15 5.14 5.14 5.15 5.16 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.17 5.15 5.18 5.18 1966 5.18 5.18 5.16 5.17 5.16 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 1967 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.16 5.16 5.16 5.16 5.16 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.17 1968 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.18 5.18 1969 5.18 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.17 1970 5.17 5.19 5.20 5.21 5.21 5.20 5.19 5.19 5.21 5.19 5.18 5.18 1971 5.17 5.18 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.17 5.12 5.07 5.03 4.99 4.91 1972 4.84 4.80 4.78 4.79 4.76 4.75 4.74 4.74 4.74 4.75 4.75 4.75 1973 4.73 4.59 4.49 4.51 4.44 4.22 4.08 4.15 4.22 4.19 4.34 4.54 1974 4.76 4.71 4.55 4.39 4.29 4.40 4.38 4.44 4.49 4.41 4.34 4.20 1975 4.05 3.99 3.93 3.99 3.95 3.93 4.13 4.33 4.45 4.41 4.40 4.42 1976 4.39 4.38 4.41 4.41 4.42 4.46 4.48 4.42 4.36 4.26 4.22 4.17 1977 4.22 4.26 4.22 4.35 4.36 4.42 4.36 4.46 4.86 4.80 4.80 4.76 1978 4.67 4.65 4.61 4.61 4.66 4.62 4.55 4.45 4.43 4.30 4.38 4.39 1979 4.35 4.37 4.37 4.40 4.40 4.35 4.23 4.23 4.20 4.21 4.23 4.19 1980 4.15 4.18 4.35 4.37 4.22 4.18 4.13 4.18 4.16 4.20 4.31 4.42 1981 4.45 4.62 4.62 4.69 4.90 5.06 5.19 5.31 5.43 5.55 5.49 5.55 1982 5.63 5.77 5.84 5.92 5.78 6.02 6.12 6.14 6.23 7.16 7.51 7.36 1983 7.33 7.44 7.48 7.49 7.50 7.64 7.69 7.87 7.88 7.79 7.92 8.06 1984 8.18 8.02 7.74 7.84 8.09 8.11 8.31 8.36 8.58 8.69 8.58 8.85 1985 9.07 9.32 9.43 8.97 9.01 8.86 8.50 8.31 8.40 7.96 7.81 7.69 1986 7.60 7.41 7.24 7.25 7.16 7.22 7.07 6.94 6.92 6.89 6.97 6.92 1987 6.61 6.51 6.42 6.32 6.25 6.35 6.44 6.49 6.38 6.36 6.08 5.96 1988 5.98 6.06 5.96 5.89 5.91 6.09 6.34 6.48 6.45 6.28 6.09 6.08 1989 6.26 6.32 6.38 6.37 6.60 6.69 6.48 6.55 6.61 6.46 6.43 6.23 1990 6.19 6.12 6.17 6.13 6.06 6.10 5.96 5.78 5.77 5.65 5.57 5.62 1991 5.65 5.54 5.89 6.13 6.15 6.43 6.48 6.34 6.18 6.16 5.94 5.75 1992 5.74 5.87 6.03 5.96 5.84 5.69 5.40 5.29 5.37 5.58 6.22 6.88 1993 7.25 7.53 7.74 7.44 7.33 7.41 7.96 8.05 8.02 8.01 8.26 8.36 1994 8.14 7.98 7.91 7.88 7.72 7.81 7.76 7.74 7.54 7.26 7.35 7.52 1995 7.47 7.39 7.27 7.34 7.29 7.26 7.18 7.23 7.14 6.84 6.60 6.63 1996 6.72 6.88 6.73 6.72 6.80 6.68 6.64 6.62 6.64 6.60 6.62 6.81 1997 7.06 7.40 7.65 7.68 7.67 7.74 7.81 8.00 7.70 7.57 7.56 7.78 1998 8.00 8.08 7.97 7.82 7.69 7.91 7.99 8.13 7.91 7.85 7.99 8.05 1999 7.82 7.95 8.22 8.32 8.44 8.51 8.46 8.26 8.22 8.15 8.34 8.48 2000 8.47 8.65 8.69 8.72 9.09 8.74 8.93 9.27 9.66 9.96 10.08 9.66 2001 9.47 9.74 10.03 10.20 10.33 10.78 10.77 10.33 10.61 10.56 10.60 10.56 2002 10.44 10.56 10.34 10.31 10.05 9.56 9.34 9.46 9.35 9.28 9.07 8.95 2003 8.64 8.49 8.53 8.44 7.92 7.81 8.08 8.28 8.09 7.70 7.68 7.36 2004 7.25 7.26 7.52 7.65 7.61 7.53 7.49 7.54 7.45 7.26 6.94 6.70 Table A7.2 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on USA. SEK per USD 1913–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 375 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 2005 6.90 6.98 6.88 7.08 7.25 7.61 7.83 7.60 7.62 7.84 8.11 7.95 2006 7.70 7.82 7.82 7.61 7.31 7.29 7.26 7.19 7.28 7.34 7.07 6.84 2007 6.98 7.02 7.02 6.84 6.81 6.96 6.70 6.85 6.69 6.45 6.33 6.47 2008 6.42 6.35 6.06 5.95 5.99 6.03 6.00 6.27 6.65 7.41 7.96 8.00 Table A7.3a. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 mark 1913–1921, SEK per 1 million mark January 1922 to September 1923, and SEK per 1 trillion mark October 1923 to December 1924.* Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 89.07 89.15 89.32 89.17 89.15 89.19 89.14 89.13 89.10 89.10 89.03 88.92 1914 88.90 88.90 88.97 88.95 88.99 89.03 89.01 89.20 89.24 87.72 84.93 87.21 1915 87.44 85.93 83.41 80.36 78.97 77.69 78.58 78.61 79.29 78.34 74.66 69.36 1916 67.71 65.70 62.51 61.79 61.77 62.52 63.49 62.71 62.40 61.82 60.87 56.76 1917 57.00 56.86 54.16 52.08 51.41 47.32 45.39 42.58 41.17 37.06 37.72 53.56 1918 58.38 58.86 59.94 58.46 57.87 54.80 48.97 46.65 46.00 51.59 48.63 42.24 1919 42.91 39.48 35.42 30.70 30.99 27.39 26.69 21.29 17.34 15.52 11.47 9.98 1920 8.40 5.67 6.23 7.92 10.49 12.09 11.71 10.34 8.75 7.61 7.00 7.13 1921 7.40 7.47 7.12 6.79 6.99 6.58 6.25 5.70 4.55 3.09 1.75 2.21 1922 21388 18654 14012 13518 13643 12771 8231 3963 2746 1396 2368 523 1923 294.62 154.58 185.40 165.21 91.00 40.60 15.77 2.90 0.0500 1275 1.500 0.996 1924 0.943 0.888 0.873 0.898 0.898 0.905 0.900 0.896 0.898 0.898 0.889 0.884 * October 11, 1924: 1 Reichsmark = 1,000,000,000,000 Papiermark. Table A7.3b. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 reichsmark 1924–1945.* Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1924 88.90 88.41 1925 88.40 88.39 88.40 88.16 89.03 88.98 88.75 88.71 88.94 89.04 89.12 89.01 1926 89.01 88.99 88.89 88.98 89.03 88.90 88.97 89.02 89.11 89.11 89.05 89.09 1927 88.91 88.86 88.71 88.56 88.64 88.52 88.72 88.74 88.62 88.69 88.71 88.57 1928 88.71 88.96 89.11 89.14 89.21 89.13 89.16 89.11 89.12 89.13 89.18 89.09 1929 88.95 88.84 88.86 88.81 93.35 89.13 88.96 88.94 88.95 89.03 89.07 88.85 1930 89.01 89.04 88.89 88.85 88.98 88.88 88.83 88.88 88.69 88.71 88.86 88.92 1931 88.87 88.83 88.92 88.97 88.82 88.61 88.52 88.87 91.09 102.22 115.17 127.79 1932 124.21 124.11 121.41 125.65 128.42 127.97 131.24 134.20 134.44 137.09 137.30 134.07 1933 130.75 133.70 131.90 130.77 136.04 135.89 139.39 141.56 148.04 148.41 145.19 142.30 1934 145.54 150.93 151.92 149.60 150.68 148.53 148.22 151.61 156.79 159.48 156.84 158.18 1935 159.53 160.10 162.35 162.34 160.48 159.61 158.41 158.23 158.81 159.59 159.09 158.79 1936 158.65 158.54 158.32 158.32 157.81 156.23 156.29 155.72 155.08 159.71 160.36 159.80 1937 159.53 160.00 160.33 159.39 158.35 158.10 157.60 157.31 157.65 157.79 157.35 157.11 1938 156.94 157.01 157.30 157.25 157.46 158.10 158.71 159.89 161.99 163.74 165.83 167.42 Table A7.2 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on USA. SEK per USD 1913–2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 376 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1939 167.59 166.99 166.82 166.89 167.16 167.00 167.00 167.03 168.50 168.68 169.00 169.00 1940 169.00 169.00 169.00 169.00 168.65 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 1941 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 1942 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.60 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 1943 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 1944 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 1945 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 168.50 * 21 June 1948: 1 DEM = 1 reichsmark for essential currency such as wages, payment of rents, etc, and 1 DEM = 10 reichsmark for the remainder in private non-bank credit balance. Table A7.3c. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 DEM 1950–2002. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1950 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 1951 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 1952 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 1953 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.30 123.68 124.08 124.10 123.83 123.78 123.63 123.73 124.03 1954 124.18 124.20 124.20 124.15 123.85 123.53 123.93 124.03 123.75 123.88 123.83 123.75 1955 123.70 123.53 123.48 123.65 123.75 123.63 123.48 123.25 123.33 123.35 123.68 123.95 1956 124.05 124.10 124.15 124.13 124.10 124.10 123.75 123.48 123.48 123.75 123.50 123.53 1957 123.65 123.60 123.48 123.53 123.43 123.55 123.95 123.80 123.78 123.40 123.33 123.35 1958 123.43 123.70 123.73 123.88 123.93 123.90 123.80 123.63 123.83 124.10 123.98 124.00 1959 124.03 123.98 123.90 123.88 123.93 124.03 123.90 123.83 123.85 124.03 124.30 124.40 1960 124.43 124.35 124.35 124.05 124.13 124.03 123.98 123.83 123.95 123.95 124.00 124.15 1961 124.10 124.05 127.33 130.35 130.18 130.18 130.00 129.55 129.68 129.50 129.33 129.58 1962 129.55 129.20 129.10 128.98 128.98 129.05 129.28 129.00 129.00 128.85 129.13 130.00 1963 129.48 129.70 130.08 130.28 130.43 130.53 130.30 130.48 130.58 130.73 130.80 130.88 1964 130.68 130.63 129.85 129.53 129.45 129.48 129.63 129.48 129.58 130.05 129.88 129.71 1965 129.40 129.35 129.38 129.60 129.48 129.40 129.28 129.08 129.00 129.35 129.55 129.50 1966 129.15 128.98 128.78 128.70 128.50 129.03 129.60 129.70 129.83 130.10 130.30 130.43 1967 130.25 130.28 130.18 129.95 129.88 129.60 129.08 129.05 129.15 129.33 129.85 129.78 1968 129.20 129.23 129.75 129.90 130.03 129.50 129.23 129.35 130.13 130.15 130.25 129.88 1969 129.45 129.00 129.03 129.38 130.33 129.50 129.55 129.63 132.38 138.45 140.20 140.60 1970 140.40 140.75 141.58 142.78 143.63 143.08 143.08 142.80 143.38 143.08 142.78 142.23 1971 142.18 142.63 142.35 142.18 145.15 146.43 148.53 151.25 151.35 151.38 150.30 150.03 1972 149.63 150.98 150.68 150.65 149.83 150.78 150.03 148.68 148.33 148.00 148.33 148.63 1973 148.83 153.38 158.88 159.58 158.90 164.90 171.75 172.50 173.63 173.38 169.50 171.38 1974 170.93 173.20 174.50 174.45 173.70 173.75 171.43 169.80 168.85 169.60 172.38 171.33 1975 171.24 171.29 169.77 167.69 167.79 167.72 167.53 167.97 170.11 170.49 169.92 168.40 1976 168.48 171.11 172.33 173.86 172.59 172.92 173.76 174.71 174.77 175.35 175.08 174.67 1977 176.40 176.85 176.48 183.26 184.83 187.78 190.67 192.20 209.17 210.93 214.13 221.06 1978 220.77 223.96 226.81 225.75 221.27 221.55 221.37 222.60 224.73 233.14 230.20 233.33 1979 235.43 235.54 235.05 232.14 230.63 230.62 231.79 230.98 233.83 235.68 238.46 241.38 Table A7.3b (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 reichsmark 1924– 1945.* 7. From appreciation to depreciation 377 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1980 240.82 239.03 235.34 233.52 235.51 236.07 236.44 233.48 232.51 228.10 224.47 223.70 1981 221.60 214.95 218.81 217.65 213.79 212.87 212.71 212.31 230.53 246.44 246.75 245.71 1982 245.29 243.80 245.39 246.99 250.61 248.32 248.32 248.07 248.98 283.30 294.10 303.97 1983 306.72 306.50 310.68 307.45 304.11 299.81 297.47 294.19 295.50 299.44 295.27 293.57 1984 291.37 296.37 298.17 296.93 294.16 296.25 291.97 289.77 283.96 283.39 287.27 285.72 1985 286.41 283.25 285.32 291.30 289.37 289.43 291.32 297.98 296.11 301.29 301.28 305.54 1986 311.46 317.28 320.06 318.81 321.03 322.80 328.37 336.18 338.91 343.58 344.04 347.03 1987 356.29 356.51 350.12 348.90 350.30 348.96 348.76 349.59 352.14 352.71 361.32 363.85 1988 361.57 356.93 354.85 352.28 348.92 347.58 344.37 343.44 345.29 344.88 348.34 346.74 1989 341.95 341.41 342.26 340.75 337.84 337.73 341.90 339.80 338.73 345.82 351.32 361.60 1990 364.93 364.40 361.83 362.86 364.64 361.97 363.25 368.12 367.65 370.45 374.73 376.67 1991 373.70 374.54 367.79 359.63 358.69 360.63 361.84 363.08 363.96 364.57 365.03 365.82 1992 364.09 362.98 362.72 361.65 360.25 361.02 362.62 364.22 369.79 377.12 392.11 435.16 1993 449.02 459.16 469.52 466.43 456.64 449.73 463.99 474.65 494.22 489.48 483.78 488.99 1994 467.05 459.40 467.45 464.14 465.49 478.68 494.29 494.90 485.97 477.63 477.56 478.91 1995 487.57 491.81 516.48 533.36 518.36 518.12 516.93 500.65 488.75 483.53 465.98 460.07 1996 460.08 469.43 455.69 446.70 443.63 437.48 441.35 446.63 441.33 432.00 438.29 439.34 1997 440.02 442.22 450.95 449.31 450.73 448.77 436.41 433.89 430.56 430.99 436.58 438.03 1998 441.19 445.30 436.38 431.28 433.46 441.36 444.30 454.56 464.26 479.02 475.49 482.79 1999 464.45 455.54 457.34 455.88 458.97 451.67 447.31 447.81 441.40 446.30 441.27 439.16 2000 439.49 435.17 429.23 422.84 421.24 424.98 429.89 429.29 430.10 435.96 441.10 442.93 2001 454.86 458.81 466.57 465.80 462.91 470.44 473.24 475.69 494.26 489.81 481.29 482.85 2002 471.88 469.72 Table A7.4a. Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1959.* Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 72.39 72.38 72.45 72.51 72.48 72.27 72.29 72.24 72.11 72.18 72.17 72.07 1914 72.20 72.18 72.17 72.36 72.49 72.50 72.48 73.30 74.00 74.68 76.08 77.46 1915 77.48 77.60 77.01 73.64 72.01 69.93 68.91 66.81 65.85 65.30 62.22 61.54 1916 62.08 60.77 59.20 56.49 55.63 57.42 59.54 59.46 60.59 60.63 60.70 59.20 1917 58.29 58.16 57.87 58.29 58.43 57.89 55.46 52.14 51.05 46.20 43.96 51.54 1918 52.59 53.58 53.76 51.94 51.79 50.83 49.47 50.12 54.98 61.89 65.52 63.76 1919 63.95 65.34 64.18 63.86 61.65 60.72 58.05 52.13 48.47 48.39 46.69 44.03 1920 41.80 38.21 35.89 28.62 32.63 36.45 37.59 35.12 33.67 35.36 31.72 30.49 1921 30.44 32.52 31.35 30.88 36.01 36.23 37.28 36.89 33.83 31.69 31.10 31.89 1922 32.74 33.44 34.55 35.55 35.56 34.09 31.83 30.27 29.07 27.82 25.66 26.93 1923 25.11 23.17 23.74 25.17 25.03 23.89 22.27 21.55 22.12 22.70 21.13 20.11 1924 18.03 17.01 17.87 22.05 22.05 19.92 19.41 19.97 20.08 19.77 19.78 20.13 1925 20.13 19.67 19.29 19.35 19.37 17.95 17.64 17.60 17.17 16.66 14.93 14.12 1926 14.18 13.82 13.48 12.77 11.94 11.15 9.47 10.69 10.85 11.12 12.92 14.89 1927 14.91 14.78 14.68 14.67 14.70 14.66 14.67 14.65 14.65 14.64 14.65 14.65 1928 14.67 14.70 14.70 14.70 14.70 14.69 14.67 14.65 14.64 14.65 14.65 14.64 1929 14.64 14.64 14.65 14.66 14.65 14.64 14.66 14.65 14.64 14.68 14.69 14.64 Table A7.3c (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 DEM 1950–2002. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 378 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1930 14.67 14.63 14.61 14.61 14.64 14.64 14.66 14.66 14.64 14.64 14.66 14.65 1931 14.68 14.67 14.64 14.63 14.62 14.63 14.68 14.68 15.17 17.45 19.09 21.23 1932 20.66 20.62 20.11 20.89 21.35 21.43 21.86 22.22 22.23 22.76 22.72 22.02 1933 21.50 21.66 21.82 21.97 22.77 22.65 22.84 23.20 24.20 24.30 23.76 23.32 1934 24.01 25.03 25.17 24.97 25.20 25.43 25.43 25.58 26.01 26.13 25.69 25.95 1935 25.96 26.31 27.00 26.55 26.22 26.06 26.02 25.93 25.98 26.11 26.02 26.04 1936 25.98 25.99 25.96 25.92 25.75 25.53 25.64 25.49 25.33 18.81 18.51 18.50 1937 18.50 18.51 18.34 17.82 17.66 17.57 15.01 14.70 14.00 13.25 13.25 13.25 1938 13.07 12.81 12.30 12.20 11.11 11.00 10.99 10.98 11.00 10.96 10.95 11.03 1939 11.05 11.05 11.05 11.05 11.05 11.05 11.05 10.99 9.75 9.74 9.52 9.52 1940 9.60 9.61 9.12 8.55 7.94 8.94 9.59 9.75 9.80 9.88 9.51 9.00 1941 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 1942 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 1943 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 1944 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.00 1945 8.48 8.48 8.48 8.48 8.48 8.48 7.82 1946 3.53 3.53 3.53 3.53 3.53 8.58 3.23 3.08 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 1947 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 1948 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 3.03 1949 1.38 1.38 1.38 1.37 1.33 1.33 1.33 1.33 1.38 1.49 1.49 1.49 1950 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1951 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1952 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1953 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.48 1.48 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.48 1.48 1.49 1954 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.48 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1955 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.48 1.48 1.49 1956 1.49 1.49 1.49 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1957 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.48 1.47 1.48 1.35 1.24 1.23 1.23 1.24 1958 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.24 1.23 1.15 1959 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 1.06 *January 1, 1960: 1 new franc = 100 old francs. Table A7.4b. Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 franc 1960–2002. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1960 105.80 105.75 105.80 105.58 105.65 105.58 105.60 105.53 105.58 105.38 105.63 105.70 1961 105.70 105.70 105.68 105.65 105.53 105.63 105.65 105.33 105.43 105.38 105.45 105.75 1962 105.68 105.50 105.40 105.30 105.28 105.25 105.25 105.23 105.35 105.35 105.70 106.10 1963 105.93 106.00 106.15 106.23 106.18 106.03 105.98 106.15 106.10 106.18 106.18 106.20 1964 106.10 105.95 105.35 105.13 105.08 105.05 105.25 105.13 105.18 105.55 105.45 105.28 1965 105.13 105.08 105.05 105.25 105.35 105.58 105.65 105.75 105.65 105.70 105.80 105.80 1966 105.70 105.70 105.50 105.53 105.43 105.53 105.70 105.58 105.28 105.00 104.90 104.73 Table A7.4a (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913– 1959.* 7. From appreciation to depreciation 379 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1967 104.70 104.70 104.60 104.60 105.00 105.23 105.33 105.40 105.43 105.68 105.80 105.53 1968 105.15 105.15 105.43 105.20 104.53 104.18 104.15 104.05 104.03 104.18 104.48 104.75 1969 104.73 104.75 104.53 102.85 104.28 104.30 104.28 98.75 93.38 92.78 92.88 93.05 1970 93.30 93.75 94.05 94.20 94.43 94.25 94.20 94.08 94.45 94.20 94.03 93.88 1971 93.80 94.00 93.85 93.88 94.13 93.63 93.88 93.03 92.05 91.15 90.58 91.43 1972 93.48 94.38 94.93 95.25 95.10 95.13 94.85 94.73 94.78 94.70 94.40 93.63 1973 93.63 96.75 99.75 99.75 99.48 100.15 100.75 98.58 99.45 99.65 99.33 98.78 1974 95.45 95.35 94.88 90.75 88.55 90.15 92.60 93.25 93.95 93.45 92.50 93.28 1975 92.90 93.29 93.75 94.98 97.48 98.11 97.95 98.99 99.69 99.98 99.90 99.24 1976 98.11 98.13 95.60 94.53 94.10 94.16 92.64 89.03 88.83 85.69 84.73 83.69 1977 85.01 85.59 84.84 87.76 88.11 89.61 89.91 91.21 98.91 99.03 99.07 99.35 1978 99.22 96.24 98.05 100.58 100.38 100.91 102.49 102.37 101.75 102.10 100.84 101.71 1979 102.76 102.45 102.14 101.16 99.90 99.70 99.68 99.33 100.07 100.53 101.73 103.01 1980 102.91 102.06 101.00 100.83 100.99 101.55 101.98 100.87 100.15 98.77 97.11 96.74 1981 95.98 92.85 92.91 92.24 89.39 89.49 89.63 88.91 96.44 98.74 97.96 97.23 1982 96.64 95.99 95.22 94.92 96.32 92.08 89.43 88.97 88.30 100.34 104.22 107.42 1983 108.33 108.22 106.91 102.62 101.20 99.77 99.04 97.88 97.93 98.08 97.14 96.36 1984 95.37 96.40 96.84 96.61 95.83 96.47 95.23 94.49 92.63 92.47 93.70 93.33 1985 93.65 92.76 93.46 95.52 95.00 95.01 95.86 97.61 97.14 98.87 98.93 100.01 1986 101.57 103.48 104.16 100.69 100.86 101.36 102.12 103.25 103.61 105.05 105.30 105.88 1987 106.97 107.14 105.28 104.88 104.88 104.58 104.87 104.83 105.56 105.73 106.55 107.44 1988 107.21 105.74 104.68 103.88 103.11 103.11 102.27 101.56 101.63 101.22 102.09 101.62 1989 100.44 100.38 101.07 100.89 99.98 99.65 100.94 100.71 100.43 102.00 103.44 105.96 1990 107.31 107.62 107.33 108.15 108.43 107.74 108.40 109.84 109.83 110.74 111.43 111.09 1991 110.21 110.20 108.20 106.55 105.93 106.45 106.60 106.84 106.93 106.90 106.94 107.05 1992 106.76 106.62 106.84 107.00 107.15 107.26 107.48 107.40 108.75 111.17 115.90 127.63 1993 132.46 135.59 138.19 137.89 135.47 133.64 136.33 135.58 141.20 139.51 139.89 142.90 1994 137.62 135.22 137.16 135.48 135.95 140.14 144.25 144.44 142.08 139.55 139.10 138.89 1995 141.09 141.43 145.75 151.81 146.52 147.58 148.51 145.53 141.75 138.50 135.08 133.54 1996 134.36 136.53 133.07 131.62 131.11 129.09 130.34 130.80 129.58 127.73 129.52 130.03 1997 130.39 130.98 133.67 133.39 133.65 132.96 129.33 128.74 128.08 128.46 130.38 130.84 1998 131.75 132.84 130.17 128.69 129.24 131.64 132.52 135.59 138.45 142.87 141.81 143.96 1999 138.48 135.83 136.36 135.93 136.85 134.67 133.37 133.52 131.61 133.07 131.57 130.94 2000 131.04 129.75 127.98 126.08 125.60 126.71 128.18 128.00 128.24 129.99 131.52 132.07 2001 135.62 136.80 139.12 138.89 138.02 140.27 141.10 141.83 147.37 146.04 143.50 143.97 2002 140.70 140.05 Table A7.5a. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1926.* Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 71.95 71.96 71.87 71.96 71.91 71.79 71.83 71.84 71.69 71.75 71.75 71.58 1914 71.74 71.83 71.82 71.97 72.03 71.99 72.13 72.65 72.78 73.00 73.73 1915 1916 Table A7.4b (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 franc 1960–2002. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 380 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1917 1918 1919 1920 41.82 39.32 37.55 30.62 34.26 38.40 40.11 37.63 35.89 35.40 33.78 32.30 1921 32.01 34.30 32.90 31.93 44.34 36.07 36.62 35.92 33.32 31.28 30.18 30.87 1922 31.52 31.92 32.50 32.89 32.59 32.00 30.27 28.83 27.51 26.01 23.80 24.88 1923 23.03 20.50 20.74 21.88 21.68 20.55 18.55 17.70 18.58 19.55 18.24 17.59 1924 16.23 14.90 14.96 18.54 18.54 17.34 17.25 18.99 18.80 18.21 18.17 18.55 1925 18.90 18.96 18.90 18.89 18.89 17.73 17.36 17.02 16.80 17.02 17.06 17.03 1926 17.02 17.05 16.06 13.88 11.85 11.21 9.31 10.45 10.32 10.53 * October 25, 1926: 1 Belga = 5 Old Francs. Table A7.5b. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 belgas 1926–1944. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1926 52.25 52.26 52.20 1927 52.15 52.20 52.05 51.98 52.03 51.97 52.02 51.94 51.88 51.80 51.89 51.93 1928 51.72 51.96 52.03 52.09 52.13 52.11 52.10 52.06 52.05 52.05 52.05 52.03 1929 52.05 52.06 52.05 52.04 52.01 51.94 51.95 51.96 51.72 52.10 52.10 51.98 1930 51.98 51.98 51.96 51.98 52.09 52.03 52.06 52.06 51.97 51.99 52.03 52.11 1931 52.15 52.13 52.08 51.99 51.96 52.00 52.18 52.16 53.83 61.57 67.59 74.90 1932 73.17 72.96 71.29 74.03 75.49 75.29 76.83 78.34 78.46 80.19 80.39 78.13 1933 76.26 77.24 77.81 78.21 81.07 80.80 81.60 83.03 86.60 86.97 84.73 83.02 1934 85.33 88.82 89.37 88.65 89.55 90.32 90.24 91.28 92.71 92.81 91.18 92.25 1935 93.01 93.46 93.66 68.70 67.67 67.20 66.78 66.41 66.73 66.96 66.88 66.75 1936 66.70 66.65 66.77 66.75 66.58 65.74 65.89 65.43 65.45 67.18 67.71 67.42 1937 67.11 67.25 67.41 67.02 66.75 66.75 66.25 66.03 66.37 66.27 66.35 66.36 1938 66.04 65.99 66.04 66.10 66.19 66.67 66.92 67.54 68.65 69.41 70.16 70.55 1939 70.73 70.25 70.13 70.28 71.00 71.00 70.86 70.79 72.80 71.79 70.33 70.75 1940 71.58 71.88 71.65 71.43 70.72 70.60 70.60 69.52 68.01 67.85 67.21 67.21 1941 67.21 67.40 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 1942 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 1943 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 1944 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 67.50 Table A7.5a (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913– 1926.* 7. From appreciation to depreciation 381 Table A7.5c. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 BEF 1945–2002. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1945 9.60 9.60 9.60 9.60 9.60 9.60 9.60 1946 9.60 9.60 9.60 9.60 9.60 9.60 8.77 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 1947 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 1948 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 1949 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.23 8.87 10.37 10.37 10.37 1950 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 1951 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 1952 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 10.37 1953 10.37 10.38 10.39 10.38 10.37 10.39 10.39 10.36 10.34 10.34 10.35 10.38 1954 10.41 10.42 10.42 10.39 10.36 10.35 10.38 10.41 10.40 10.42 10.44 10.43 1955 10.43 10.43 10.43 10.42 10.41 10.38 10.37 10.38 10.39 10.39 10.41 10.43 1956 10.43 10.43 10.44 10.43 10.43 10.43 10.41 10.39 10.39 10.39 10.37 10.35 1957 10.35 10.35 10.33 10.33 10.32 10.33 10.36 10.40 10.39 10.37 10.38 10.39 1958 10.41 10.43 10.42 10.43 10.42 10.41 10.41 10.41 10.43 10.42 10.41 10.42 1959 10.39 10.38 10.38 10.40 10.41 10.39 10.40 10.39 10.38 10.38 10.39 10.39 1960 10.41 10.42 10.41 10.40 10.40 10.39 10.37 10.32 10.37 10.40 10.43 10.45 1961 10.42 10.39 10.40 10.36 10.35 10.38 10.42 10.42 10.43 10.42 10.42 10.43 1962 10.43 10.40 10.39 10.38 10.38 10.38 10.38 10.39 10.39 10.39 10.42 10.46 1963 10.44 10.44 10.45 10.46 10.44 10.43 10.42 10.44 10.43 10.44 10.45 10.46 1964 10.45 10.44 10.38 10.36 10.36 10.35 10.37 10.37 10.39 10.43 10.43 10.40 1965 10.39 10.39 10.39 10.41 10.42 10.44 10.45 10.46 10.44 10.45 10.46 10.45 1966 10.44 10.43 10.40 10.39 10.39 10.40 10.42 10.43 10.40 10.38 10.39 10.39 1967 10.39 10.42 10.42 10.41 10.42 10.41 10.41 10.42 10.43 10.45 10.46 10.44 1968 10.42 10.44 10.44 10.43 10.43 10.40 10.38 10.36 10.32 10.31 10.34 10.35 1969 10.34 10.35 10.32 10.33 10.33 10.31 10.33 10.33 10.32 10.37 10.43 10.44 1970 10.43 10.47 10.51 10.51 10.51 10.49 10.48 10.47 10.51 10.49 10.46 10.45 1971 10.44 10.46 10.44 10.44 10.45 10.42 10.43 10.49 10.67 10.75 10.82 10.81 1972 10.90 10.97 10.91 10.89 10.86 10.86 10.83 10.82 10.80 10.77 10.80 10.79 1973 10.81 11.08 11.41 11.32 11.31 11.32 11.43 11.33 11.43 11.47 11.35 11.30 1974 11.28 11.46 11.47 11.38 11.42 11.52 11.55 11.50 11.43 11.44 11.48 11.41 1975 11.44 11.48 11.46 11.34 11.30 11.25 11.24 11.31 11.37 11.32 11.28 11.20 1976 11.18 11.22 11.25 11.33 11.30 11.25 11.28 11.34 11.36 11.43 11.43 11.45 1977 11.51 11.54 11.52 11.98 12.09 12.27 12.30 12.56 13.59 13.58 13.65 14.09 1978 14.26 14.41 14.59 14.50 14.20 14.14 14.07 14.16 14.28 14.80 14.68 14.76 1979 14.94 14.96 14.87 14.65 14.41 14.37 14.48 14.44 14.56 14.62 14.72 14.83 1980 14.83 14.73 14.54 14.56 14.67 14.75 14.78 14.61 14.50 14.24 13.98 13.91 1981 13.79 13.34 13.36 13.30 13.12 13.03 12.99 13.00 14.10 14.76 14.71 14.52 1982 14.42 14.08 13.18 13.09 13.28 13.07 13.03 12.97 12.94 14.62 15.16 15.51 1983 15.65 15.61 15.79 15.44 15.24 15.01 14.87 14.69 14.66 14.71 14.54 14.44 1984 14.29 14.49 14.58 14.54 14.46 14.54 14.41 14.36 14.10 14.02 14.24 14.23 1985 14.32 14.12 14.20 14.47 14.39 14.37 14.47 14.74 14.65 14.87 14.90 15.00 1986 15.25 15.51 15.64 15.65 15.73 15.81 15.96 16.24 16.37 16.56 16.57 16.69 1987 17.17 17.23 16.91 16.85 16.90 16.85 16.84 16.85 16.97 16.96 17.28 17.40 1988 17.30 17.08 16.97 16.85 16.72 16.63 16.46 16.40 16.48 16.47 16.64 16.56 1989 16.34 16.30 16.35 16.29 16.15 16.15 16.35 16.26 16.20 16.48 16.75 17.22 1990 17.42 17.48 17.44 17.56 17.69 17.62 17.65 17.91 17.88 18.00 18.17 18.21 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 382 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1991 18.14 18.20 17.44 17.49 17.69 17.62 17.65 17.63 17.67 17.69 17.74 17.76 1992 16.68 17.62 17.86 17.59 17.45 17.54 17.58 17.68 17.94 18.31 19.06 21.15 1993 21.81 22.27 22.79 22.65 22.22 21.88 22.48 22.34 23.02 22.49 22.80 23.40 1994 22.45 22.29 22.68 22.54 22.62 23.25 23.98 24.03 23.61 23.22 23.21 23.27 1995 23.67 23.88 25.02 25.93 25.19 25.22 25.14 24.35 23.76 23.50 22.67 22.39 1996 22.38 22.83 22.17 21.74 21.58 21.27 21.43 21.68 21.43 20.97 21.27 21.31 1997 21.34 21.43 21.86 21.78 21.84 21.75 21.13 21.01 20.86 20.89 21.17 21.23 1998 21.39 21.58 21.15 20.90 21.01 21.40 21.54 22.04 22.51 23.22 23.05 23.40 1999 22.52 22.09 22.17 22.10 22.25 21.90 21.69 21.71 21.40 21.64 21.39 21.29 2000 21.31 21.10 20.81 20.50 20.42 20.60 20.84 20.81 20.85 21.14 21.39 21.47 2001 22.05 22.25 22.62 22.58 22.44 22.81 22.94 23.06 23.96 23.75 23.33 23.41 2002 22.88 22.77 Table A7.6. Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland. SEK per 100 CHF 1915–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1915 71.96 69.53 68.06 1916 70.37 68.55 67.37 65.81 63.47 64.86 66.96 66.39 66.99 67.14 68.28 68.78 1917 67.97 67.87 67.35 65.52 65.54 67.00 69.07 67.76 63.17 58.06 57.67 68.13 1918 67.62 68.46 70.07 70.09 72.20 73.00 71.39 69.32 67.77 69.58 71.76 71.31 1919 71.80 73.07 73.84 75.89 77.14 73.20 71.96 71.97 73.06 73.75 78.90 85.52 1920 86.60 88.35 84.24 82.24 83.94 83.89 80.84 81.06 80.74 81.00 81.63 79.02 1921 73.90 73.65 74.98 74.03 76.33 76.04 78.80 79.97 79.29 79.85 81.32 79.56 1922 78.09 75.16 74.55 74.99 74.78 73.89 73.81 72.41 71.26 69.46 68.79 70.39 1923 70.21 70.99 70.11 68.65 67.81 67.76 66.27 67.68 67.51 67.84 66.97 66.45 1924 66.33 66.60 66.14 67.04 67.04 66.73 68.51 70.91 71.12 72.19 72.00 72.00 1925 71.83 71.49 71.17 71.82 72.35 72.59 72.40 72.32 72.10 72.11 72.14 72.14 1926 72.22 72.02 71.89 72.18 72.38 72.31 72.36 72.27 72.33 72.32 72.33 72.24 1927 72.23 72.14 71.96 71.85 71.96 71.93 71.98 71.92 71.81 71.70 71.71 71.62 1928 71.75 71.75 71.79 71.84 71.88 71.88 71.99 71.98 72.00 72.05 72.07 72.06 1929 72.03 72.01 72.06 72.12 72.13 71.79 71.84 71.89 71.99 72.14 72.21 72.15 1930 72.13 71.99 72.09 72.15 72.21 72.20 72.32 72.37 72.29 72.38 72.32 72.36 1931 72.38 72.13 72.06 71.99 72.00 72.41 72.66 72.92 75.31 85.80 94.28 105.28 1932 102.44 102.00 98.54 102.63 105.48 105.35 107.84 109.89 109.18 111.53 111.33 108.46 1933 106.06 106.92 107.18 107.99 112.27 111.57 113.02 114.99 120.01 120.63 117.80 115.48 1934 118.67 123.28 123.92 122.76 124.25 125.45 125.76 126.86 128.89 129.50 126.78 127.68 1935 128.68 129.25 133.06 130.51 128.90 128.94 128.79 128.23 128.35 129.03 128.34 128.04 1936 128.18 128.64 128.57 128.25 126.73 125.69 126.97 126.29 122.59 91.92 91.86 91.47 1937 91.17 91.00 91.03 90.56 90.38 90.32 89.92 89.95 90.37 90.49 90.25 90.10 1938 90.05 90.16 90.13 89.95 89.56 89.82 90.39 91.33 91.76 93.00 93.91 94.55 1939 91.41 91.36 94.23 93.48 93.75 93.99 93.98 94.15 95.96 95.30 95.25 95.25 1940 95.25 95.14 94.55 94.55 94.55 94.79 95.68 95.93 96.06 97.58 97.80 97.80 1941 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 1942 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 97.00 1943 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 Table A7.5c (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 BEF 1945–2002. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 383 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1944 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 1945 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.80 97.65 1946 97.65 97.65 97.66 97.65 97.65 97.85 89.28 83.70 83.70 83.70 88.70 83.70 1947 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 1948 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 1949 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 83.70 94.18 118.50 118.50 118.50 1950 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 1951 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 1952 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 118.50 1953 118.50 118.50 118.53 118.75 118.88 119.03 119.25 119.00 118.85 118.75 118.68 118.73 1954 118.93 119.18 119.23 119.25 119.00 118.85 119.10 119.15 119.05 119.10 119.03 118.93 1955 118.78 118.75 118.73 118.70 118.78 118.55 118.63 118.53 118.58 118.48 118.68 118.83 1956 118.88 118.88 118.93 118.80 118.75 118.80 118.63 118.53 118.38 118.50 118.23 118.23 1957 118.38 118.35 118.30 118.35 118.30 118.43 118.73 118.85 118.93 118.45 118.38 118.38 1958 118.53 118.48 118.55 118.65 118.65 118.53 118.50 118.43 118.70 118.83 118.58 119.38 1959 120.13 120.13 119.90 119.90 119.90 120.15 120.20 120.13 119.90 119.50 119.48 119.98 1960 120.00 119.73 119.63 119.33 119.68 119.90 119.88 119.85 119.95 120.05 120.15 120.38 1961 120.25 119.83 119.80 119.75 119.43 119.65 119.90 119.88 120.13 119.78 119.80 120.08 1962 120.00 119.55 119.05 118.75 119.05 119.45 119.43 119.28 119.40 119.45 119.95 120.40 1963 119.90 120.05 120.05 120.23 120.25 120.15 120.10 120.40 120.50 120.55 120.50 120.60 1964 120.45 120.08 119.28 119.18 119.28 119.28 119.30 119.15 119.33 119.75 119.73 119.50 1965 119.20 118.90 118.50 118.60 118.80 119.38 119.68 120.03 119.90 120.00 120.00 120.08 1966 119.75 119.48 119.10 119.40 119.63 119.83 119.98 119.70 119.63 119.63 119.88 119.93 1967 119.60 119.43 119.43 119.53 119.73 119.58 119.48 119.15 119.10 119.38 119.95 119.88 1968 119.20 118.95 119.65 119.48 119.90 120.30 120.53 120.43 120.33 120.48 120.60 120.68 1969 120.15 120.13 120.30 119.93 119.78 120.08 120.13 120.25 120.50 120.08 119.80 120.08 1970 120.00 120.78 120.93 121.08 120.93 120.55 120.68 120.68 121.00 120.00 120.03 120.15 1971 120.20 120.53 120.35 120.33 123.78 126.38 126.33 127.88 127.93 126.75 125.88 125.48 1972 124.25 124.78 124.10 124.35 123.48 126.00 125.98 125.33 125.13 125.13 125.40 126.08 1973 128.53 137.38 140.75 139.70 140.70 138.73 144.75 140.93 140.30 138.10 137.70 141.50 1974 143.70 148.40 148.93 146.03 148.05 147.05 148.13 148.83 150.45 152.25 157.90 159.73 1975 160.47 161.07 158.93 155.69 157.36 157.35 158.26 161.32 164.35 165.23 165.73 167.43 1976 168.50 170.56 171.96 174.42 177.61 180.45 180.15 178.18 176.27 174.22 173.00 170.16 1977 169.48 168.89 165.40 172.28 172.98 177.66 180.62 185.32 204.57 210.89 218.26 229.06 1978 235.36 244.20 243.34 242.31 237.46 244.83 252.35 266.80 281.99 279.46 262.17 261.67 1979 260.68 261.08 260.17 256.38 254.79 255.55 256.73 255.14 260.12 259.35 256.84 261.71 1980 260.71 255.23 247.21 249.33 253.77 255.37 257.20 253.07 253.85 249.33 253.77 255.37 1981 244.80 236.85 239.96 238.72 237.55 244.25 247.67 244.95 268.16 294.25 307.57 305.61 1982 304.87 305.04 309.45 302.26 297.35 290.39 292.04 291.70 291.64 330.38 342.26 358.40 1983 372.39 369.21 363.06 364.83 364.19 361.70 363.58 363.77 364.47 369.19 365.10 367.36 1984 366.05 363.16 360.56 358.51 356.70 355.50 345.41 345.90 343.47 344.40 348.58 346.30 1985 341.61 333.39 335.72 347.28 343.97 344.73 351.64 362.83 359.98 367.45 367.00 365.25 1986 367.78 378.85 379.77 381.02 386.13 391.71 404.93 417.30 418.44 419.60 413.27 414.37 1987 424.60 422.24 417.72 422.74 426.41 420.82 419.68 422.25 425.06 425.12 439.66 446.77 1988 444.29 435.34 429.40 425.98 418.99 417.71 414.52 409.50 409.07 407.46 415.08 411.86 Table A7.6 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland. SEK per 100 CHF 1915– 2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 384 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1989 402.36 401.44 397.80 387.05 380.61 391.17 397.00 394.31 391.35 395.67 397.28 401.61 1990 406.53 412.80 408.12 411.66 427.03 427.75 427.73 441.38 441.77 440.83 443.07 440.38 1991 443.49 437.83 425.69 425.22 423.16 420.36 417.57 416.41 416.29 416.61 412.90 413.22 1992 409.76 403.84 399.55 393.52 391.64 398.36 405.32 406.75 419.53 425.28 435.54 483.93 1993 490.88 496.61 508.77 509.89 506.18 503.92 525.14 537.52 564.95 556.54 553.75 570.60 1994 552.98 547.15 553.06 547.84 546.07 566.93 585.78 587.14 583.12 574.06 567.74 565.72 1995 579.87 581.23 619.98 647.73 625.28 626.70 621.07 604.57 600.89 596.89 577.58 569.37 1996 570.15 562.70 551.35 551.35 542.28 531.65 538.12 550.43 539.65 524.82 519.85 514.41 1997 507.14 509.47 521.89 526.05 536.49 537.47 527.32 527.80 523.17 521.49 537.48 541.21 1998 543.26 551.66 535.74 519.91 520.31 529.37 527.57 543.74 563.84 586.86 577.63 593.04 1999 565.97 557.31 560.89 556.66 560.11 554.03 545.38 547.32 538.98 547.67 537.71 536.47 2000 533.70 529.65 523.17 525.45 529.30 532.68 542.06 541.37 549.68 563.48 567.05 572.38 2001 581.70 584.38 594.16 595.93 590.19 604.21 611.50 614.33 647.99 647.25 641.96 640.06 2002 625.94 621.79 616.90 623.00 633.00 619.59 633.80 632.35 626.17 621.56 618.69 618.61 2003 627.67 623.58 627.77 612.48 604.26 592.11 594.17 599.57 586.16 581.95 576.42 580.01 2004 583.43 583.67 589.22 590.08 592.48 601.93 602.22 597.53 589.43 587.30 591.55 584.95 2005 585.27 586.14 586.69 592.30 595.11 601.70 605.07 601.58 602.79 608.45 619.06 609.84 2006 601.31 599.48 599.10 592.48 599.87 592.00 587.37 583.76 585.45 582.13 571.83 566.03 2007 562.12 566.32 576.59 564.39 557.80 564.28 554.53 569.13 563.95 549.45 563.10 568.05 2008 582.02 582.32 598.57 587.40 573.67 580.99 584.43 579.73 599.58 647.74 668.37 694.15 Table A7.7. Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands. SEK per 100 NLG 1913–2002. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 150.85 150.95 150.49 150.64 150.43 150.17 150.31 150.25 150.29 150.63 150.67 150.46 1914 150.81 150.72 150.56 150.66 150.73 150.53 150.60 150.84 155.57 160.57 161.03 161.90 1915 161.27 163.58 162.20 155.18 152.56 151.85 154.41 155.93 156.66 156.87 155.18 153.85 1916 159.99 151.66 149.01 144.43 136.44 141.55 146.09 145.01 145.62 144.85 144.75 140.59 1917 138.56 137.72 136.43 136.17 137.27 136.66 139.35 126.12 124.35 115.49 111.32 127.48 1918 130.07 135.13 140.70 140.24 146.11 147.21 145.81 145.64 144.87 145.73 148.85 146.69 1919 146.33 146.82 147.09 151.06 153.91 152.22 152.69 151.54 152.89 156.23 164.10 177.60 1920 182.87 201.36 182.42 169.84 172.90 166.70 160.60 160.32 155.45 157.19 158.71 158.52 1921 154.69 154.05 151.93 148.14 151.94 149.04 151.47 147.36 146.02 145.81 150.78 148.59 1922 147.42 144.39 145.06 146.09 150.29 150.27 149.59 147.57 146.87 146.42 146.56 148.15 1923 147.62 148.90 148.69 147.24 147.10 147.83 148.06 148.13 148.30 148.53 145.08 144.85 1924 143.04 143.10 141.40 141.37 141.37 141.29 142.88 146.08 144.89 147.18 149.46 150.09 1925 150.06 149.16 148.26 148.45 150.25 150.13 149.47 149.95 150.15 150.23 150.52 150.21 1926 150.20 149.82 149.57 149.95 150.35 150.03 150.07 150.00 149.98 149.79 149.94 149.79 1927 149.84 149.99 149.67 149.45 149.71 149.58 149.70 149.48 149.21 149.35 150.00 149.88 1928 150.17 150.10 150.05 150.23 150.42 150.37 150.37 149.97 149.91 150.02 150.22 150.16 1929 150.10 149.92 150.03 150.39 150.51 150.10 149.80 149.64 149.76 150.06 150.22 149.74 1930 149.93 149.57 149.41 149.56 149.98 149.79 149.73 149.90 149.99 150.14 150.05 150.15 1931 150.38 150.00 149.78 149.97 149.96 150.20 150.55 150.79 155.30 176.70 194.53 217.03 1932 210.49 210.20 204.58 212.93 217.75 217.37 222.05 226.34 226.40 231.38 231.46 217.36 Table A7.6 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland. SEK per 100 CHF 1915– 2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 385 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1933 220.31 221.56 222.68 224.71 233.34 231.88 235.04 239.21 249.38 250.44 244.27 239.11 1934 245.60 255.61 257.31 255.94 258.77 261.53 261.41 262.62 267.03 268.50 263.41 260.67 1935 268.16 269.50 277.07 271.41 269.12 267.37 266.89 265.30 266.31 268.38 267.74 267.28 1936 267.24 267.11 267.29 266.87 264.37 262.17 263.62 262.66 257.23 213.28 214.87 216.26 1937 217.03 217.25 217.97 216.77 216.39 216.70 215.72 215.23 216.50 216.94 215.93 216.56 1938 216.76 217.08 217.08 217.10 216.80 217.09 217.19 217.57 218.54 222.19 224.79 226.72 1939 226.46 222.96 220.66 221.01 223.01 221.34 221.53 222.86 225.13 224.30 221.00 224.20 1940 224.73 224.28 223.57 323.50 333.50 333.50 323.50 223.50 223.50 223.15 223.97 222.97 1941 222.97 223.32 223.50 223.60 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 1942 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 323.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 1943 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 1944 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 223.50 1945 157.75 157.75 1946 158.50 158.50 158.50 158.50 158.50 158.50 144.94 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 1947 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 1948 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 1949 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 135.90 136.12 136.55 136.55 136.55 1950 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 1951 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 1952 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.55 136.53 1953 136.48 136.90 137.20 136.95 136.83 137.18 137.25 136.98 136.45 136.28 136.25 136.63 1954 136.93 137.05 136.98 136.90 136.90 136.75 136.95 136.98 136.90 137.08 137.25 137.30 1955 137.30 137.25 137.13 137.03 136.98 136.35 136.00 136.05 136.40 136.38 136.75 137.08 1956 137.10 136.98 136.83 136.75 136.58 136.23 135.93 135.70 135.93 136.33 136.13 136.03 1957 136.08 136.23 136.10 136.35 136.10 135.88 136.10 135.98 136.33 136.50 136.63 136.88 1958 137.20 137.03 136.93 136.93 137.00 136.93 136.85 136.80 137.10 137.28 137.10 137.10 1959 137.28 137.33 137.28 137.35 137.35 137.40 137.35 137.25 137.18 137.30 137.38 137.55 1960 137.60 137.58 137.53 137.23 137.35 137.23 137.18 137.03 137.10 137.23 137.15 137.43 1961 137.20 136.68 140.33 144.05 143.90 144.05 144.03 143.68 143.50 143.68 143.83 143.78 1962 143.63 142.95 142.98 143.28 143.40 143.38 143.45 143.08 143.25 143.28 143.63 144.48 1963 144.13 144.23 144.55 144.83 144.70 144.33 144.10 144.10 144.10 144.45 144.48 144.50 1964 144.28 143.95 143.13 142.70 142.50 142.23 142.48 142.50 142.73 143.45 143.78 143.50 1965 143.30 143.20 143.03 143.23 143.38 143.53 143.73 143.93 143.78 144.00 143.90 143.68 1966 143.33 143.00 142.85 142.43 142.33 141.78 143.50 143.35 143.18 143.18 143.30 143.33 1967 143.45 143.38 143.20 143.05 143.28 143.23 143.33 143.60 143.73 144.03 144.15 143.98 1968 143.63 143.45 143.55 143.23 143.08 143.05 143.03 142.55 142.33 142.45 143.20 143.65 1969 143.35 143.08 142.85 142.58 142.30 142.35 142.43 143.08 143.45 143.85 143.68 143.15 1970 142.53 142.78 143.38 143.43 143.63 143.53 143.85 144.13 144.68 144.55 144.13 143.88 1971 143.93 144.15 143.90 143.65 145.68 145.58 145.53 148.15 149.40 149.95 150.88 149.50 1972 150.23 151.18 150.28 149.20 148.35 149.50 149.20 147.60 146.80 146.73 147.30 147.33 1973 148.18 152.75 154.98 153.48 153.60 155.35 157.50 156.88 162.55 166.48 163.18 162.78 1974 163.90 166.23 166.53 165.23 165.33 165.55 166.73 166.30 165.60 165.93 166.15 165.00 1975 164.88 165.58 165.88 164.43 163.97 163.04 162.10 163.76 165.90 165.64 165.55 164.36 1976 164.16 164.55 163.94 164.15 162.80 162.75 164.03 165.12 167.10 167.28 167.65 167.57 1977 168.60 169.31 169.16 176.04 177.53 178.54 178.62 183.47 197.43 197.30 198.50 204.23 Table A7.7 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands. SEK per 100 NLG 1913– 2002. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 386 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1978 206.01 208.86 212.16 211.38 206.91 206.56 205.07 205.60 206.95 214.33 212.75 215.30 1979 218.09 218.13 217.76 214.70 211.74 210.27 210.62 210.45 212.44 212.45 214.07 218.22 1980 218.22 216.81 214.49 212.78 213.81 215.22 216.22 214.49 213.83 210.30 207.18 206.07 1981 203.94 197.35 197.78 196.32 192.33 191.49 191.22 191.25 207.85 223.07 224.98 224.38 1982 223.82 222.34 223.04 222.67 225.55 224.65 224.83 225.46 227.31 259.78 269.72 275.53 1983 278.59 277.98 279.11 272.97 270.45 267.52 265.89 263.04 264.23 266.90 263.48 261.66 1984 259.29 262.74 264.17 263.27 261.44 262.89 258.76 256.92 251.84 251.30 254.69 253.18 1985 253.54 250.16 252.34 257.60 256.33 256.76 258.78 264.93 263.28 267.20 267.48 271.36 1986 276.34 280.89 283.50 282.81 285.11 286.68 291.43 298.23 300.22 304.07 304.56 307.08 1987 315.85 315.86 310.03 309.26 310.78 309.83 309.85 310.33 312.85 313.48 321.10 323.40 1988 321.81 317.94 315.94 314.07 311.43 309.27 305.36 304.22 306.07 305.96 308.91 307.29 1989 303.00 302.50 303.44 302.08 299.72 299.86 303.23 301.41 300.47 306.32 311.40 320.45 1990 323.51 323.39 321.37 322.36 324.24 321.57 322.35 326.76 326.20 328.65 332.19 333.93 1991 331.48 332.34 326.33 319.19 318.37 321.18 321.18 322.18 322.98 323.33 324.30 324.61 1992 323.30 322.54 322.24 321.51 320.04 320.45 321.60 323.08 328.38 335.08 348.57 387.26 1993 399.42 407.96 417.68 415.07 407.11 401.00 412.62 421.85 440.08 435.51 433.24 436.52 1994 417.15 409.68 415.97 413.33 414.75 427.05 440.68 440.75 433.48 426.33 426.07 427.19 1995 434.94 438.73 460.61 476.30 463.09 463.06 461.47 447.05 436.29 431.70 416.07 410.90 1996 410.85 419.22 407.03 399.45 396.82 390.58 393.24 398.16 393.69 385.08 390.77 391.56 1997 391.85 393.67 400.73 399.52 400.78 398.89 387.55 385.23 382.31 382.53 387.35 388.71 1998 391.48 395.07 387.17 383.09 384.62 391.57 394.10 403.09 411.57 424.74 421.71 428.38 1999 412.20 404.30 405.89 404.60 407.34 400.86 396.99 397.44 391.75 396.10 391.63 389.76 2000 390.05 386.22 380.95 375.28 373.86 377.17 381.54 381.00 381.73 386.92 391.48 393.11 2001 403.69 407.20 414.09 413.41 410.84 417.52 420.00 422.18 438.67 434.71 427.15 428.53 2002 418.80 416.88 Table A7.8. Monthly exchange rates on Denmark. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 1914 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 1915 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 99.62 99.08 98.10 1916 99.46 99.93 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 99.02 97.47 96.60 95.88 94.19 1917 93.28 93.47 96.45 95.57 95.83 96.18 93.69 91.71 91.06 86.13 86.43 93.11 1918 92.88 93.45 94.16 92.87 92.28 90.21 88.33 88.30 90.52 92.82 95.02 92.72 1919 92.40 92.76 93.03 93.88 93.72 92.46 91.19 88.66 89.84 88.97 90.67 87.60 1920 85.88 80.41 83.99 82.10 79.17 77.24 75.26 72.84 69.43 71.03 70.31 76.24 1921 84.81 83.79 76.73 77.33 77.34 76.97 75.39 76.72 81.54 82.63 79.97 79.85 1922 80.32 79.11 80.96 81.74 83.36 84.14 83.20 81.97 79.94 76.02 75.47 76.84 1923 74.07 71.91 72.32 71.13 70.13 67.86 66.30 68.55 68.29 66.62 65.70 67.95 1924 65.13 61.25 59.82 64.02 64.02 63.45 60.53 61.08 63.83 66.05 65.56 65.56 1925 66.23 66.17 67.08 68.58 70.39 71.40 79.59 87.09 92.04 92.16 93.22 93.02 1926 92.83 95.10 97.56 97.89 98.04 98.96 99.06 99.30 99.39 99.56 99.84 99.81 1927 99.89 99.93 99.67 99.68 99.85 99.80 99.89 99.91 99.69 99.62 99.62 99.38 Table A7.7 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands. SEK per 100 NLG 1913– 2002. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 387 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1928 99.72 99.83 99.89 99.95 100.01 99.99 99.89 99.79 99.74 99.77 99.79 99.78 1929 99.80 99.82 99.82 99.85 99.76 99.57 99.46 99.44 99.45 99.72 99.74 99.56 1930 99.72 99.79 99.73 99.65 99.66 99.69 99.70 99.77 99.67 99.69 99.71 99.73 1931 99.89 99.95 99.92 99.93 99.92 99.94 99.93 99.95 98.41 96.22 99.84 99.70 1932 98.86 99.04 101.04 108.16 107.80 106.90 105.86 104.15 101.38 100.94 98.25 95.42 1933 93.01 84.13 84.66 85.42 87.06 87.09 87.02 86.98 86.75 86.75 86.85 86.85 1934 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.86 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 1935 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 1936 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 1937 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.85 86.72 86.74 1938 86.75 86.77 86.79 86.75 86.75 86.75 86.75 86.75 86.75 86.83 86.80 86.81 1939 86.84 86.79 86.81 86.79 86.80 86.83 86.77 86.72 81.24 81.25 81.25 81.25 1940 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 1941 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 81.25 1942 83.02 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 1943 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 1944 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 1945 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.90 87.78 87.55 87.55 87.55 87.55 1946 87.55 87.55 87.65 87.55 87.55 87.55 80.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 1947 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 1948 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 1949 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 1950 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 1951 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 1952 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 1953 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.13 75.13 74.93 74.85 74.68 74.73 74.90 1954 75.08 75.13 75.05 75.05 74.90 74.75 74.95 74.98 74.85 74.95 75.05 75.08 1955 75.08 75.13 75.20 75.18 75.00 74.78 74.69 74.63 74.73 74.93 75.18 75.33 1956 75.40 75.38 75.30 75.25 75.10 75.00 74.80 74.65 74.73 74.98 74.75 74.78 1957 74.90 74.93 74.80 74.75 74.67 74.67 74.90 74.83 74.93 74.98 75.00 75.05 1958 75.13 75.20 75.28 75.18 75.10 75.03 74.85 74.85 74.98 75.08 75.05 75.08 1959 75.18 75.18 75.28 75.33 75.25 75.33 75.28 75.25 75.23 75.25 75.23 75.20 1960 75.20 75.18 75.23 75.13 75.03 74.95 75.08 75.03 75.20 75.18 75.20 75.23 1961 75.10 74.98 75.00 74.90 74.70 74.73 74.70 74.98 75.28 75.25 75.23 75.40 1962 75.30 75.10 75.03 74.90 74.80 74.80 74.75 74.60 74.58 74.60 74.90 75.35 1963 75.18 75.28 75.38 75.45 75.35 75.30 75.25 75.28 75.38 75.40 75.38 75.45 1964 75.30 75.10 74.75 74.68 74.60 74.50 74.58 74.38 74.40 74.70 74.60 74.58 1965 74.48 74.45 74.40 74.58 74.68 74.68 74.68 74.70 74.90 75.20 75.25 75.30 1966 75.25 75.10 74.93 74.95 74.75 74.75 74.88 74.78 75.00 75.15 75.03 75.13 1967 75.03 74.83 74.88 74.83 74.70 74.58 74.50 74.50 74.63 74.75 72.10 69.53 1968 69.48 69.45 69.58 69.55 69.40 69.30 69.05 68.88 68.98 69.10 69.10 69.25 1969 69.15 69.00 69.05 68.93 68.83 68.93 68.90 68.83 68.93 68.93 69.15 69.20 1970 69.18 69.38 69.60 69.50 69.48 69.43 69.35 69.23 69.55 69.43 69.25 69.28 1971 69.23 69.33 69.23 69.15 69.10 69.10 69.08 69.25 69.68 69.45 69.18 68.88 1972 68.90 68.85 68.78 68.68 68.45 68.38 68.13 68.50 68.60 68.85 69.13 69.45 1973 69.20 71.08 73.25 73.05 72.30 72.43 73.25 73.13 73.95 74.13 73.15 73.65 Table A7.8 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Denmark. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 388 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1974 72.75 73.35 73.60 73.10 73.35 73.68 74.10 73.65 72.60 73.33 73.73 73.10 1975 72.34 72.23 72.51 72.31 72.40 72.40 72.49 72.73 73.48 73.26 72.99 72.03 1976 71.34 71.50 71.85 73.10 73.07 72.86 72.73 72.80 72.82 72.42 71.62 71.51 1977 71.75 71.97 72.05 72.87 72.68 73.31 73.20 74.07 78.80 78.71 78.58 80.14 1978 81.14 82.02 82.56 82.22 81.91 81.96 81.27 81.01 81.63 83.98 83.40 83.81 1979 84.95 85.09 84.34 83.46 81.76 80.13 80.72 80.24 80.94 80.67 80.52 78.04 1980 77.20 76.64 75.48 75.01 75.40 76.04 76.43 75.60 75.23 74.17 73.14 73.03 1981 72.15 69.86 69.71 69.24 68.05 67.84 67.95 67.64 73.58 76.87 76.72 75.87 1982 75.17 74.13 72.77 72.70 73.92 72.39 71.82 71.28 70.92 80.50 83.98 86.34 1983 87.17 86.85 86.94 86.64 85.34 83.85 82.87 81.79 82.28 82.84 81.98 81.19 1984 80.55 81.35 81.47 80.91 80.44 80.83 79.92 79.57 78.44 78.49 79.60 79.77 1985 80.23 79.25 79.84 81.19 80.60 80.72 81.15 82.39 81.73 83.14 83.34 84.32 1986 85.05 86.17 86.73 86.50 86.88 87.21 87.89 89.44 89.68 91.28 91.28 91.92 1987 94.03 94.51 93.11 92.63 93.19 92.78 92.07 91.29 91.51 91.91 93.72 94.48 1988 94.25 93.45 92.79 91.85 91.21 91.49 90.67 89.92 90.01 89.61 90.38 89.91 1989 88.41 87.87 87.92 87.69 86.88 86.88 88.09 87.56 87.26 88.85 90.56 93.17 1990 94.25 94.69 94.58 95.27 95.81 95.20 95.54 96.40 96.38 97.20 97.86 97.83 1991 97.21 97.45 95.91 94.09 93.86 93.76 93.58 93.91 94.18 94.35 94.11 94.02 1992 93.83 93.65 93.48 93.40 93.26 93.71 94.21 94.44 95.59 97.68 101.80 112.51 1993 116.40 119.54 122.27 121.45 118.83 117.48 119.93 116.50 120.69 120.99 122.12 124.69 1994 120.21 117.84 119.31 118.34 118.90 122.13 125.83 125.16 123.28 122.03 122.00 122.04 1995 123.75 124.60 128.97 135.30 132.41 132.76 132.70 129.13 126.05 124.53 120.25 118.79 1996 118.95 121.35 117.95 115.77 114.94 113.43 114.48 115.53 114.55 112.67 114.11 114.79 1997 115.37 115.94 118.22 117.94 118.36 117.86 114.58 113.90 113.09 113.19 114.70 115.01 1998 115.83 116.84 114.48 113.12 113.74 115.88 116.55 119.34 121.89 125.98 125.06 126.91 1999 122.05 119.83 120.34 119.96 120.76 118.88 117.62 117.76 116.13 117.44 116.06 115.44 2000 115.44 114.32 112.73 111.01 110.49 111.41 112.73 112.58 112.73 114.49 115.71 116.17 2001 119.19 120.24 122.25 122.07 121.35 123.43 124.33 124.97 129.91 128.82 126.43 126.86 2002 124.17 123.65 121.90 122.85 124.04 122.67 124.76 124.58 123.51 122.56 122.22 122.44 2003 123.47 123.11 124.17 123.34 123.29 122.76 123.70 124.25 122.11 121.26 120.89 121.17 2004 122.68 123.22 123.91 123.21 122.72 122.97 123.68 123.60 122.28 121.82 121.16 120.79 2005 121.69 122.05 122.02 123.02 123.50 124.37 126.42 125.25 125.19 126.28 128.25 126.60 2006 124.89 125.14 125.97 125.08 125.22 123.85 123.50 123.40 124.29 124.14 122.11 121.24 2007 121.83 123.19 124.81 124.00 123.51 125.39 123.46 125.23 124.70 123.12 124.56 126.34 2008 126.61 125.66 126.14 125.65 124.88 125.68 126.82 125.97 128.17 132.07 135.93 143.87 Table A7.9. Monthly exchange rates on Norway. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 1914 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 1915 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 100.00 99.70 1916 99.56 99.98 100.00 100.13 100.41 100.00 100.00 99.95 99.15 98.26 97.98 96.10 1917 95.15 95.05 98.52 98.07 98.04 97.60 94.93 92.01 91.32 86.19 86.95 95.90 1918 97.02 96.43 95.70 93.87 92.68 91.33 89.03 88.81 92.45 94.66 97.61 96.62 Table A7.8 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Denmark. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 389 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1919 97.15 97.41 96.19 96.49 98.31 97.95 96.48 94.71 94.56 94.59 96.80 95.80 1920 93.27 93.18 88.84 90.96 87.83 80.61 75.92 72.83 69.40 70.46 70.14 75.65 1921 82.87 80.56 71.70 68.04 67.37 65.43 63.84 62.00 59.33 55.16 61.28 62.32 1922 63.09 63.83 67.72 71.68 72.05 66.70 64.49 65.45 63.58 67.25 68.68 70.38 1923 69.71 69.93 68.42 67.13 62.18 62.78 61.21 60.78 60.69 58.91 56.00 56.83 1924 53.99 50.95 51.65 52.44 52.44 51.07 50.59 52.19 52.14 53.73 54.94 56.01 1925 56.75 56.65 57.20 60.00 62.93 63.55 67.41 70.16 77.09 75.82 76.18 76.04 1926 76.16 78.03 80.36 80.94 81.02 82.57 82.01 82.01 82.05 88.57 94.99 94.75 1927 95.76 96.80 97.49 96.78 96.35 96.65 96.61 96.84 98.14 97.92 98.44 98.67 1928 99.03 99.23 99.43 99.69 99.89 99.87 99.85 99.79 99.74 99.75 99.78 99.70 1929 99.75 99.82 99.88 99.89 99.78 99.60 99.49 99.47 99.47 99.73 99.75 99.50 1930 99.64 99.66 99.69 99.65 99.72 99.72 99.70 99.74 99.64 99.69 99.71 99.72 1931 99.89 99.91 99.94 99.94 99.93 99.94 99.93 99.97 99.80 96.41 99.22 98.75 1932 97.84 97.75 99.17 100.36 99.06 97.09 97.30 97.98 98.32 98.30 96.34 94.69 1933 94.79 96.52 97.20 97.89 99.24 98.57 97.79 97.94 97.75 97.75 97.75 97.75 1934 97.67 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 1935 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 1936 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 1937 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.65 97.65 97.65 97.65 97.65 97.65 97.61 97.64 1938 97.65 97.66 97.69 97.65 97.62 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.60 97.70 97.69 97.70 1939 97.74 97.68 97.70 97.65 97.70 97.73 97.66 97.48 96.00 96.00 96.00 96.00 1940 96.00 95.93 95.54 95.55 95.55 95.55 95.55 95.55 95.55 95.55 95.55 95.55 1941 95.61 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 1942 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 1943 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 1944 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 1945 95.65 95.65 95.65 95.65 90.52 84.65 84.65 84.65 84.65 84.65 84.65 84.65 1946 84.65 84.85 84.65 84.85 84.65 84.65 77.39 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1947 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1948 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1949 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1950 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1951 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1952 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1953 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.55 1954 72.65 72.75 72.80 72.90 72.80 72.65 72.75 72.70 72.63 72.73 72.88 72.78 1955 72.65 72.73 72.85 72.88 72.73 72.43 72.22 72.15 72.25 72.38 72.65 72.78 1956 72.83 72.80 72.83 72.85 72.85 72.60 72.33 72.25 72.35 72.53 72.43 72.63 1957 72.75 72.73 72.68 72.70 72.60 72.50 72.55 72.43 72.68 72.73 72.68 72.58 1958 72.63 72.73 72.78 72.70 72.60 72.50 72.38 72.35 72.48 72.63 72.55 72.55 1959 72.70 72.73 72.78 72.88 72.85 72.90 72.85 72.83 72.70 72.73 72.70 72.65 1960 72.65 72.60 72.68 72.65 72.65 72.50 72.53 72.50 72.63 72.63 72.68 72.70 1961 72.60 72.50 72.48 72.45 72.28 72.23 72.20 72.48 72.83 72.83 72.78 72.80 1962 72.70 72.60 72.50 72.43 72.35 72.28 72.25 72.20 72.20 72.23 72.48 72.80 1963 72.68 72.75 72.83 72.88 72.85 72.78 72.68 72.78 72.68 72.73 72.70 72.75 1964 72.68 72.55 72.18 72.10 72.08 72.03 72.05 71.93 71.98 72.20 72.15 72.10 Table A7.9 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Norway. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 390 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1965 71.98 72.00 71.95 72.15 72.25 72.30 72.38 72.48 72.48 72.60 72.60 72.60 1966 72.58 72.48 72.30 72.28 72.23 72.28 72.38 72.45 72.50 72.55 72.55 72.60 1967 72.48 72.43 72.38 72.33 72.28 72.28 72.25 72.30 72.33 72.45 72.55 72.55 1968 72.50 72.50 72.60 72.58 72.53 72.55 72.53 72.43 72.48 72.58 72.65 72.63 1969 72.58 72.60 72.60 72.60 72.60 72.68 72.63 72.48 72.55 72.43 72.48 72.55 1970 72.50 72.73 72.98 73.00 72.90 72.83 72.80 72.70 72.98 72.83 72.65 72.70 1971 72.53 72.65 72.55 72.60 72.73 72.80 72.88 73.65 73.98 73.68 73.15 72.80 1972 72.35 72.28 72.53 72.75 72.55 73.18 72.93 72.63 71.95 72.10 72.05 72.13 1973 72.00 74.38 76.25 76.60 76.80 77.45 77.50 75.95 76.48 76.65 78.00 80.73 1974 81.05 81.35 81.33 80.55 81.15 80.63 81.43 81.15 81.10 80.20 79.70 79.25 1975 79.45 79.80 80.23 80.03 79.84 80.23 79.75 79.32 79.61 79.80 79.78 79.63 1976 79.05 79.46 79.63 80.35 80.55 80.46 80.20 80.33 80.35 80.27 80.24 80.08 1977 80.09 80.57 80.48 82.42 82.77 83.79 82.99 84.20 88.74 87.70 88.12 90.83 1978 90.96 88.43 86.80 86.02 85.72 85.57 84.41 84.68 85.11 87.33 86.62 86.33 1979 86.03 85.91 85.89 85.60 84.89 84.37 83.92 84.08 84.36 84.90 84.34 84.20 1980 84.60 85.62 86.24 86.43 86.00 86.02 85.83 85.97 86.08 85.77 86.01 85.51 1981 85.07 85.31 85.56 85.94 86.57 85.72 85.15 85.98 91.09 93.93 94.47 96.06 1982 96.04 96.72 97.01 97.41 97.10 97.48 96.45 92.12 90.42 99.92 103.82 104.91 1983 104.07 104.69 104.39 105.05 105.60 105.34 105.15 105.50 106.22 106.46 106.20 104.60 1984 104.05 104.19 103.29 103.31 103.61 103.81 101.34 100.85 99.75 98.11 98.73 98.84 1985 99.02 98.77 99.64 100.86 100.65 100.59 100.63 101.03 100.90 100.84 100.30 100.64 1986 100.75 101.80 101.66 101.45 96.42 94.88 94.75 94.43 94.41 93.79 92.67 91.98 1987 92.40 92.99 92.81 93.45 94.14 94.69 95.47 95.66 96.15 96.05 94.80 93.40 1988 94.27 94.52 94.15 95.02 95.66 95.68 94.73 94.21 93.40 93.16 92.87 93.53 1989 94.02 94.22 94.11 93.90 93.65 93.24 93.24 93.09 92.91 93.22 93.33 94.02 1990 94.52 94.60 93.71 93.63 94.14 94.31 94.64 95.18 95.16 95.56 96.07 96.20 1991 95.67 95.85 94.34 92.61 92.22 92.53 92.78 92.90 93.01 93.06 93.01 92.90 1992 93.64 92.58 92.46 92.38 92.34 92.35 92.32 92.35 92.48 92.44 96.17 103.43 1993 105.56 107.97 110.42 109.95 107.94 106.36 108.92 109.37 113.25 111.89 111.85 112.68 1994 108.37 106.48 107.68 107.01 107.40 110.25 113.03 112.83 110.77 109.69 109.27 109.68 1995 111.47 112.02 115.80 118.71 115.92 116.41 116.30 114.07 111.63 109.66 105.63 104.30 1996 104.77 107.46 104.73 103.52 103.41 102.29 102.95 103.28 102.88 101.76 104.25 105.38 1997 109.55 111.73 112.44 110.27 108.69 107.54 105.05 104.82 105.26 107.04 107.16 107.43 1998 107.00 106.93 105.14 103.93 103.28 104.45 104.77 105.42 104.44 105.68 107.30 106.22 1999 105.11 103.00 105.09 107.17 108.97 108.13 107.02 105.98 104.99 105.34 105.32 106.01 2000 105.81 105.09 103.47 101.46 100.48 100.81 102.80 103.66 104.74 106.53 107.97 106.54 2001 108.02 109.33 111.85 112.29 113.22 115.93 116.14 115.53 120.93 119.78 118.79 118.05 2002 116.49 117.97 117.35 119.71 122.70 122.99 125.14 124.48 124.57 124.02 123.99 124.58 2003 125.05 121.31 117.62 116.99 116.21 111.73 110.83 111.73 110.61 109.38 109.65 109.69 2004 106.33 104.59 108.11 110.50 111.26 110.41 108.54 110.30 108.78 109.98 110.57 109.15 2005 110.18 109.22 111.01 112.06 113.70 117.28 118.94 118.02 119.65 120.24 122.25 118.35 2006 115.86 115.92 117.79 119.00 119.75 117.65 116.06 115.23 112.29 110.28 110.42 110.76 2007 109.80 113.56 114.37 113.84 113.11 115.83 115.77 116.84 118.62 119.30 117.04 117.52 2008 118.58 117.82 118.05 117.69 118.37 117.33 117.53 117.83 117.38 114.60 114.85 114.46 Table A7.9 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Norway. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 391 Table A7.10a. Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913–1962.* Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 72.04 72.05 72.05 72.05 72.04 72.00 72.00 72.00 72.00 72.02 71.98 71.90 1914 71.88 71.85 71.85 71.85 71.88 71.90 71.89 71.70 71.61 70.95 67.63 66.00 1915 66.00 67.95 66.90 65.15 62.05 57.38 55.73 54.48 55.37 55.97 53.24 50.76 1916 50.32 51.65 51.48 49.59 47.31 48.75 50.68 50.58 53.70 52.26 50.18 48.18 1917 47.62 46.98 46.60 45.90 46.46 47.77 51.23 45.77 42.53 35.24 31.29 41.38 1918 45.87 46.96 41.77 34.86 35.26 34.22 35.58 41.98 38.79 1919 38.81 37.89 36.66 38.94 39.02 34.32 29.87 26.92 23.24 18.18 16.46 14.48 1920 18.04 21.94 26.10 25.39 24.76 21.58 18.36 15.73 15.69 13.38 11.38 12.67 1921 14.99 14.92 11.82 9.70 9.18 7.73 7.90 7.16 6.64 6.71 8.14 7.80 1922 7.64 7.73 7.97 7.45 8.17 8.49 8.27 8.12 8.26 8.73 9.52 9.32 1923 9.26 9.89 10.36 10.35 10.37 10.42 10.43 10.40 10.18 10.18 10.04 9.40 1924 9.53 9.61 9.56 9.38 9.38 9.46 9.45 9.44 9.43 9.45 9.40 9.35 1925 9.36 9.36 9.36 9.37 9.45 9.45 9.37 9.41 9.43 9.43 9.45 9.43 1926 9.43 9.43 9.42 9.38 9.43 9.42 9.42 9.42 9.43 9.43 9.32 9.36 1927 9.44 9.45 9.43 9.42 9.42 9.41 9.42 9.41 9.39 9.37 9.37 9.34 1928 9.38 9.39 9.39 9.39 9.39 9.39 9.40 9.42 9.42 9.43 9.43 9.41 1929 9.41 9.42 9.43 9.42 9.42 9.40 9.39 9.39 9.40 9.37 9.37 9.34 1930 9.38 9.39 9.39 9.38 9.39 9.38 9.38 9.37 9.38 9.38 9.39 9.39 1931 9.41 9.41 9.41 9.41 9.40 9.40 9.41 9.42 9.65 9.71 9.11 7.67 1932 7.76 8.11 8.46 9.17 9.17 9.06 8.36 8.15 8.42 8.34 8.26 8.14 1933 8.17 8.36 8.40 8.46 8.64 8.64 8.61 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 1934 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 1935 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 1936 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 1937 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.61 8.61 8.60 8.61 8.61 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 1938 8.60 8.61 8.62 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 1939 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 1940 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 1941 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.69 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 1942 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 1943 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 1944 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 1945 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 8.59 4.91 4.72 3.51 3.51 3.31 3.12 3.12 1946 3.12 3.12 3.12 3.12 3.12 3.12 2.86 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 1947 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 1948 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 1949 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.69 2.32 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1950 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1951 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1952 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1953 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1954 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1955 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1956 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 1957 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.27 2.26 2.26 2.26 1.95 1.63 1.63 1.63 1958 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 1.64 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 392 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1959 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1960 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.63 1961 1.63 1.63 1.63 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1962 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.62 1.61 1.61 1.61 1.61 1.61 1.62 1.62 * January 1, 1963: 1 new markkaa = 100 old markkaa. Table A7.10b. Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963–2002. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1963 161.10 161.25 161.50 161.63 161.58 161.43 161.38 161.55 161.58 161.63 161.68 161.80 1964 161.80 161.68 160.88 160.28 160.10 160.00 160.10 159.90 160.10 160.80 160.95 160.55 1965 160.30 160.23 159.98 160.15 160.35 160.60 160.85 160.88 160.78 161.00 161.03 161.00 1966 160.88 160.93 160.50 160.58 160.48 160.53 160.85 160.80 160.85 161.00 160.95 160.95 1967 160.93 160.83 160.75 160.45 160.50 160.35 160.38 160.48 160.63 142.28 123.88 123.48 1968 123.28 123.53 123.80 123.95 123.90 123.90 123.90 123.80 123.75 123.90 124.08 124.05 1969 123.95 124.00 123.90 123.93 123.65 123.33 123.13 123.05 123.20 122.98 123.25 123.45 1970 123.60 124.15 124.70 124.90 124.98 124.63 124.70 124.53 125.00 124.80 124.38 124.28 1971 124.18 124.35 124.13 124.03 123.63 123.38 123.80 123.08 122.18 121.20 120.30 118.50 1972 116.93 116.13 115.55 116.08 115.33 115.00 114.68 114.75 114.78 114.70 114.28 114.05 1973 113.70 115.40 115.88 116.73 115.55 112.88 112.75 113.93 114.18 113.55 116.78 118.85 1974 121.15 120.65 119.85 117.85 116.63 119.63 120.00 118.65 117.90 116.28 116.28 115.95 1975 114.57 114.44 112.48 112.00 111.25 111.33 112.90 114.48 115.74 113.99 114.01 114.42 1976 114.36 114.55 114.89 114.77 114.29 114.40 115.32 113.88 112.50 110.60 110.13 109.75 1977 111.07 111.42 111.12 108.10 107.06 108.58 108.63 109.23 116.67 116.11 115.27 115.68 1978 116.58 113.88 110.81 110.25 109.29 108.11 108.33 108.38 109.03 109.39 109.55 109.66 1979 110.06 110.28 110.18 109.96 109.95 109.92 110.14 110.31 110.20 111.83 111.87 112.43 1980 112.49 112.47 113.03 114.63 114.37 114.60 114.53 114.46 114.18 113.98 114.02 114.36 1981 114.70 113.77 113.62 113.47 113.73 114.06 114.49 115.03 120.93 125.69 126.45 127.20 1982 127.84 128.02 127.95 128.56 128.57 129.01 129.54 129.44 129.85 133.70 136.06 137.71 1983 138.01 138.37 138.13 138.08 138.11 138.10 137.86 137.94 138.25 138.22 137.94 137.92 1984 137.90 138.44 138.03 139.01 139.21 139.42 138.29 138.02 136.96 136.54 137.34 137.47 1985 136.87 136.30 137.74 139.45 139.30 139.36 139.59 140.11 139.82 140.31 140.32 140.41 1986 140.54 141.22 141.48 141.71 140.41 139.22 139.71 140.69 140.95 140.98 140.83 141.24 1987 142.96 143.15 142.75 143.28 144.01 143.75 143.93 144.43 145.57 146.23 147.19 147.49 1988 148.34 147.38 147.28 147.35 146.99 146.63 145.10 145.40 145.95 145.99 147.17 147.43 1989 147.67 147.44 148.77 152.14 151.79 151.29 151.71 150.95 150.01 151.16 151.23 152.95 1990 154.25 155.14 153.53 153.52 154.50 154.24 155.28 156.28 155.81 156.23 156.55 156.20 1991 155.08 154.43 153.80 153.45 152.51 152.42 150.93 149.60 149.45 149.65 142.33 134.79 1992 133.73 132.95 132.97 132.74 132.64 132.55 132.55 132.63 122.05 118.85 123.32 134.10 1993 134.00 129.58 129.59 132.89 133.82 133.73 137.72 138.09 138.63 139.39 142.38 145.32 1994 142.79 143.01 143.04 143.61 142.73 144.00 149.25 150.65 151.62 155.26 155.81 155.03 1995 157.67 159.03 165.93 172.12 169.03 169.00 169.00 168.10 163.45 160.22 155.65 153.11 1996 151.40 151.24 146.36 142.11 143.02 143.03 144.75 147.80 146.34 144.38 145.59 147.03 1997 147.98 148.79 150.88 149.80 149.41 149.75 147.25 145.13 143.86 143.77 144.91 144.96 Table A7.10a (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913– 1962.* 7. From appreciation to depreciation 393 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1998 145.77 146.82 143.80 140.35 142.62 145.22 146.17 149.46 152.52 157.41 156.36 158.80 1999 152.78 149.85 150.44 149.96 150.98 148.57 147.14 147.31 145.20 146.81 145.15 144.46 2000 144.57 143.15 141.19 139.09 138.57 139.79 141.41 141.21 141.48 143.41 145.10 145.70 2001 149.62 150.93 153.48 153.22 152.27 154.75 155.67 156.48 162.59 161.12 158.32 158.83 2002 155.22 154.51 Table A7.11. Monthly exchange rates on Italy. SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2002. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1920 20.20 19.49 18.54 1921 17.35 16.90 17.02 19.87 23.05 22.73 21.99 20.60 19.95 17.68 18.13 18.55 1922 17.67 18.84 19.76 20.83 20.61 19.45 17.80 17.26 16.30 15.84 16.96 18.81 1923 18.48 18.30 18.32 18.91 18.34 17.43 16.42 16.30 16.79 17.34 16.84 16.69 1924 16.71 16.73 16.47 16.88 16.88 16.44 16.27 16.81 16.62 16.51 16.29 16.09 1925 15.57 15.40 15.20 15.35 15.33 14.48 13.77 13.72 15.16 15.05 15.07 15.16 1926 15.16 15.11 15.05 15.10 14.54 13.82 12.70 12.43 13.80 15.58 15.96 16.72 1927 16.37 16.32 16.96 19.04 20.37 21.08 20.55 20.42 20.32 20.38 20.35 20.08 1928 19.75 19.80 19.76 19.72 19.70 19.66 19.65 19.64 19.59 19.64 19.65 19.61 1929 19.60 19.56 19.61 19.51 19.63 19.59 19.57 19.57 19.58 19.56 19.53 19.46 1930 19.51 19.55 19.55 19.53 19.57 19.56 19.54 19.51 19.52 19.53 19.54 19.56 1931 19.58 19.58 19.59 19.59 19.56 19.56 19.57 19.58 20.11 23.00 25.22 28.00 1932 26.77 27.30 26.74 27.47 28.10 27.99 28.52 29.13 29.32 29.80 29.81 28.99 1933 28.40 28.47 28.61 29.07 30.50 30.36 31.20 31.49 32.88 32.97 32.17 31.51 1934 32.27 33.59 33.12 32.56 32.73 33.47 33.29 33.63 34.10 34.28 33.57 33.86 1935 34.25 34.25 34.45 33.57 32.97 32.79 32.59 32.50 32.50 32.50 32.50 32.50 1936 32.50 32.50 32.50 32.50 31.57 31.00 31.00 31.00 30.56 23.10 21.25 21.08 1937 21.00 21.21 21.25 21.17 21.00 21.00 20.94 20.85 20.84 20.75 20.67 20.65 1938 20.65 20.55 20.62 20.65 20.69 20.73 20.87 21.08 21.43 21.62 21.86 22.08 1939 22.13 22.05 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.42 22.03 21.77 21.75 1940 21.75 21.55 21.80 21.30 21.36 21.40 21.40 21.40 21.40 21.40 21.40 21.40 1941 21.40 21.37 21.35 21.35 21.44 22.25 22.25 22.25 22.25 22.25 22.25 22.25 1942 21.96 21.95 21.99 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 22.00 1943 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 1944 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 22.20 1945 1946 1947 14.63 14.63 14.60 14.58 14.58 14.58 14.58 14.58 14.58 14.58 14.58 14.58 1948 1949 0.83 0.83 1950 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1951 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1952 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1953 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1954 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1955 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 Table A7.10b (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963–2002. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 394 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1956 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1957 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1958 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.83 1959 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 1960 0.84 0.84 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 1961 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 1962 0.84 0.84 0.85 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.84 0.84 1963 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 1964 0.84 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1965 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1966 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.86 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1967 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.83 1968 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.83 1969 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 1970 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.83 1971 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.82 0.82 1972 0.82 0.82 0.82 0.83 0.82 0.82 0.82 0.82 0.82 0.82 0.82 0.82 1973 0.82 0.80 0.79 0.78 0.76 0.72 0.72 0.73 0.76 0.75 0.75 0.76 1974 0.75 0.73 0.73 0.70 0.69 0.68 0.69 0.68 0.68 0.67 0.65 0.64 1975 0.63 0.63 0.63 0.63 0.63 0.63 0.64 0.65 0.66 0.65 0.65 0.65 1976 0.63 0.58 0.54 0.51 0.52 0.53 0.54 0.54 0.53 0.51 0.50 0.49 1977 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.50 0.50 0.51 0.50 0.51 0.56 0.55 0.55 0.55 1978 0.55 0.55 0.55 0.55 0.54 0.54 0.55 0.54 0.54 0.54 0.53 0.53 1979 0.53 0.53 0.53 0.52 0.52 0.52 0.52 0.52 0.52 0.51 0.52 0.52 1980 0.52 0.52 0.51 0.50 0.50 0.50 0.50 0.50 0.49 0.48 0.48 0.47 1981 0.47 0.46 0.45 0.44 0.43 0.43 0.43 0.43 0.46 0.47 0.46 0.46 1982 0.46 0.46 0.45 0.45 0.45 0.48 0.45 0.45 0.44 0.50 0.51 0.53 1983 0.54 0.54 0.53 0.52 0.51 0.51 0.51 0.50 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.49 1984 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.47 0.46 0.46 0.46 0.47 1985 0.47 0.46 0.46 0.46 0.46 0.46 0.45 0.45 0.44 0.45 0.45 0.45 1986 0.46 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.48 0.49 0.49 0.50 0.50 0.50 1987 0.51 0.50 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.48 0.48 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.50 1988 0.49 0.49 0.48 0.48 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 1989 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.48 0.47 0.47 0.48 0.49 1990 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.50 0.50 0.50 0.50 0.50 0.49 0.50 0.50 0.50 1991 0.50 0.50 0.50 0.49 0.48 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.48 0.49 0.49 0.48 1992 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.46 0.43 0.46 0.49 1993 0.49 0.49 0.49 0.48 0.50 0.49 0.50 0.50 0.51 0.50 0.49 0.50 1994 0.48 0.47 0.47 0.49 0.48 0.49 0.50 0.49 0.48 0.47 0.46 0.46 1995 0.46 0.46 0.43 0.43 0.44 0.44 0.45 0.45 0.44 0.43 0.41 0.42 1996 0.42 0.44 0.43 0.43 0.44 0.43 0.44 0.44 0.44 0.43 0.44 0.45 1997 0.45 0.45 0.45 0.45 0.46 0.46 0.45 0.44 0.44 0.44 0.45 0.45 1998 0.45 0.45 0.44 0.44 0.44 0.45 0.45 0.46 0.47 0.48 0.48 0.49 1999 0.47 0.46 0.46 0.46 0.46 0.46 0.45 0.45 0.45 0.45 0.45 0.44 2000 0.44 0.44 0.43 0.43 0.43 0.43 0.43 0.43 0.43 0.44 0.45 0.45 2001 0.46 0.46 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.48 0.48 0.48 0.50 0.49 0.49 0.49 2002 0.48 0.47 Table A7.11 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Italy. SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2002. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 395 Table A7.12. Monthly exchange rates on euro. SEK per EUR 1998–2008.* Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1998 8.71 8.79 8.65 8.55 8.54 8.72 8.78 8.96 9.13 9.44 9.35 9.48 1999 9.08 8.91 8.94 8.92 8.98 8.83 8.75 8.76 8.63 8.73 8.63 8.59 2000 8.60 8.51 8.40 8.27 8.24 8.31 8.41 8.40 8.41 8.53 8.63 8.66 2001 8.90 8.97 9.13 9.11 9.05 9.20 9.26 9.30 9.67 9.58 9.41 9.44 2002 9.23 9.19 9.06 9.13 9.22 9.12 9.27 9.25 9.17 9.11 9.08 9.09 2003 9.18 9.15 9.22 9.16 9.15 9.11 9.19 9.24 9.07 9.01 8.99 9.02 2004 9.14 9.18 9.23 9.17 9.13 9.14 9.20 9.19 9.10 9.06 9.00 8.98 2005 9.05 9.08 9.09 9.17 9.19 9.26 9.43 9.34 9.34 9.42 9.57 9.44 2006 9.32 9.34 9.40 9.33 9.34 9.23 9.21 9.21 9.27 9.26 9.10 9.04 2007 9.08 9.18 9.30 9.24 9.20 9.34 9.19 9.32 9.29 9.18 9.28 9.42 2008 9.43 9.37 9.40 9.37 9.32 9.37 9.46 9.40 9.56 9.84 10.12 10.72 * 1 Euro = 13.7603 Austrian schillings = 40.3399 Belgian francs = 2.20371 Dutch gulden = 5.94573 Finnish markka = 6.55957 French francs = 1.95583 German Mark = 0.787564 Irish pounds = 1936.27 Italian lire = 40.3399 Luxembourg francs = 200.482 Portuguese escudos = 166.386 Span- ish pesetas = 340.750 Greek drachmas. Table A7.13. Monthly exchange rates on Japan. SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1960 1.45 1.45 1.46 1.44 1.45 1.45 1.46 1.45 1.46 1.46 1.45 1.46 1961 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.45 1.44 1.44 1.45 1962 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.45 1.45 1.46 1.46 1963 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.45 1.45 1.45 1.44 1.45 1.45 1.45 1.45 1.45 1964 1.45 1.44 1.44 1.43 1.43 1.43 1.43 1.43 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.45 1965 1.45 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.45 1.45 1.45 1966 1.45 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1967 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.45 1.44 1968 1.44 1.44 1.45 1.44 1.44 1.45 1.45 1.45 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1969 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.45 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1970 1.46 1.46 1.47 1.47 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.47 1.47 1.46 1.46 1971 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.46 1.48 1.54 1.56 1.56 1.56 1972 1.57 1.59 1.59 1.60 1.58 1.59 1.59 1.59 1.58 1.59 1.59 1.59 1973 1.59 1.68 1.72 1.72 1.70 1.63 1.56 1.59 1.61 1.59 1.59 1.64 1974 1.64 1.63 1.64 1.61 1.56 1.56 1.53 1.48 1.52 1.49 1.46 1.41 1975 1.37 1.38 1.38 1.38 1.37 1.35 1.41 1.47 1.50 1.47 1.47 1.46 1976 1.45 1.47 1.48 1.49 1.49 1.51 1.53 1.53 1.53 1.48 1.44 1.43 1977 1.47 1.51 1.52 1.60 1.59 1.63 1.66 1.69 1.83 1.90 1.98 1.99 1978 1.96 1.95 2.01 2.09 2.08 2.17 2.29 2.38 2.35 2.35 2.30 2.26 1979 2.22 2.20 2.14 2.04 2.03 2.00 1.96 1.95 1.90 1.84 1.74 1.75 1980 1.75 1.72 1.76 1.76 1.86 1.92 1.88 1.87 1.95 2.01 2.03 2.11 1981 2.21 2.25 2.22 2.19 2.23 2.27 2.24 2.28 2.37 2.40 2.47 2.55 1982 2.51 2.46 2.43 2.43 2.45 2.41 2.41 2.38 2.38 2.65 2.85 3.04 1983 3.15 3.16 3.15 3.16 3.20 3.19 3.20 3.22 3.25 3.35 3.37 3.45 1984 3.50 3.44 3.44 3.49 3.51 3.48 3.43 3.46 3.50 3.53 3.53 3.58 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 396 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1985 3.58 3.59 3.65 3.57 3.58 3.56 3.52 3.51 3.55 3.71 3.84 3.80 1986 3.80 4.01 4.06 4.14 4.29 4.31 4.46 4.51 4.48 4.42 4.28 4.26 1987 4.29 4.25 4.24 4.43 4.46 4.40 4.29 4.41 4.46 4.44 4.50 4.63 1988 4.69 4.69 4.69 4.72 4.74 4.80 4.77 4.85 4.80 4.87 4.95 4.93 1989 4.93 4.96 4.90 4.83 4.77 4.65 4.61 4.64 4.56 4.55 4.48 4.39 1990 4.26 4.18 4.03 3.87 3.95 3.97 4.00 3.93 4.17 4.35 4.33 4.22 1991 4.22 4.26 4.30 4.47 4.46 4.60 4.69 4.63 4.59 4.71 4.58 4.48 1992 4.56 4.58 4.54 4.47 4.47 4.76 4.30 4.19 4.38 4.61 5.02 5.55 1993 5.80 6.23 6.61 6.63 6.64 6.91 7.39 7.76 7.61 7.50 7.66 7.62 1994 7.30 7.50 7.53 7.63 7.45 7.60 7.87 7.75 7.63 7.37 7.50 7.51 1995 7.49 7.52 8.01 8.79 8.01 8.58 8.23 7.65 7.11 6.79 6.47 6.51 1996 6.37 6.51 6.36 6.27 6.40 6.14 6.08 6.14 6.05 5.88 5.90 6.00 1997 5.99 6.02 6.25 6.12 6.47 6.78 6.78 6.78 6.38 6.26 6.04 6.01 1998 6.18 6.43 6.18 5.93 5.70 5.62 5.68 5.61 5.88 6.49 6.64 6.86 1999 6.92 6.82 6.87 6.97 6.93 7.05 7.07 7.29 7.67 7.69 7.96 8.27 2000 8.07 7.91 8.16 8.28 8.41 8.24 8.28 8.58 9.05 9.19 9.25 8.62 2001 8.11 8.38 8.28 8.24 8.48 8.82 8.64 8.51 8.94 8.71 8.66 8.32 2002 7.88 7.91 7.89 7.88 7.96 7.74 7.91 7.95 7.75 7.49 7.46 7.32 2003 7.27 7.11 7.20 7.04 6.76 6.60 6.81 6.97 7.03 7.03 7.03 6.82 2004 6.81 6.82 6.94 7.11 6.79 6.88 6.85 6.83 6.77 6.66 6.62 6.46 2005 6.68 6.65 6.54 6.60 6.79 7.00 6.99 6.87 6.86 6.83 6.85 6.71 2006 6.67 6.64 6.67 6.50 6.55 6.37 6.28 6.20 6.22 6.18 6.03 5.84 2007 5.80 5.83 5.99 5.76 5.64 5.68 5.51 5.87 5.82 5.57 5.70 5.77 2008 5.95 5.93 6.01 5.80 5.75 5.64 5.62 5.74 6.24 7.41 8.21 8.77 Table A7.14. Monthly exchange rates on Czech Republic. SEK per 100 CSK 1922–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1922 6.70 7.18 6.70 7.65 7.64 7.56 8.57 11.15 12.15 12.58 12.00 11.65 1923 10.83 11.20 11.24 11.29 11.26 11.36 11.36 11.15 11.36 11.36 11.16 11.23 1924 11.18 11.18 11.18 11.18 11.18 11.12 11.18 11.21 11.22 11.31 11.27 11.30 1925 11.25 11.06 11.10 11.11 11.19 11.15 11.12 11.10 11.16 11.17 11.19 11.18 1926 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.13 11.15 11.13 11.10 11.10 11.13 11.15 11.15 11.15 1927 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.13 11.09 11.07 11.10 11.05 1928 11.08 11.10 11.10 11.10 11.10 11.08 11.11 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.15 11.13 1929 11.12 11.13 11.13 11.12 11.12 11.11 11.10 11.10 11.10 11.07 11.06 11.06 1930 11.07 11.07 11.07 11.06 11.09 11.10 11.08 11.07 11.08 11.08 11.09 11.09 1931 11.10 11.09 11.10 11.10 11.08 11.09 11.10 11.11 11.46 13.37 14.52 16.28 1932 15.84 15.75 15.51 16.05 16.31 16.47 16.74 16.99 17.07 17.52 17.47 16.93 1933 16.59 16.63 16.69 16.85 17.55 17.53 17.58 17.88 18.72 19.98 18.38 17.93 1934 18.58 17.82 16.25 16.07 16.32 16.53 16.37 16.59 16.83 16.97 16.78 16.93 1935 16.87 17.01 17.50 17.34 17.06 16.73 16.69 16.55 16.62 16.76 16.67 16.62 1936 16.64 16.60 16.60 16.60 16.49 16.37 16.40 16.26 16.19 15.09 14.27 14.23 1937 14.06 14.10 14.10 14.03 14.00 13.97 13.84 13.80 13.87 13.88 13.76 13.75 1938 13.75 13.77 13.82 13.81 13.72 13.73 13.77 13.86 14.07 14.21 14.30 14.45 1939 14.52 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.40 14.40 14.41 14.60 14.60 14.60 14.60 Table A7.13 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Japan. SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 397 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1940 14.60 14.57 14.49 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 14.50 16.23 1998 22.63 23.43 23.44 23.20 23.61 23.71 24.96 25.32 25.81 26.73 26.75 26.86 1999 25.47 23.64 23.55 23.49 23.81 23.77 23.91 23.98 23.69 23.74 23.73 23.82 2000 23.58 23.84 23.56 22.78 22.53 23.10 23.61 23.75 23.74 24.18 24.93 24.87 2001 25.32 25.90 26.39 26.37 26.33 27.10 27.33 27.33 28.30 28.55 28.27 29.01 2002 28.81 28.90 28.84 30.09 30.18 30.07 31.22 30.05 30.37 29.69 29.53 29.19 2003 29.14 28.94 29.05 28.94 29.16 29.02 28.85 28.62 28.02 28.17 28.13 27.93 2004 27.90 27.95 28.00 28.20 28.52 28.89 29.16 29.05 28.78 28.79 28.78 29.28 2005 29.87 30.31 30.53 30.43 30.39 30.83 31.24 31.57 31.84 31.75 32.67 32.58 2006 32.45 32.87 32.82 32.75 33.02 32.56 32.39 32.65 32.65 32.73 32.49 32.52 2007 32.63 32.53 33.14 33.01 32.59 32.71 32.39 33.47 33.71 33.56 34.74 35.89 2008 36.20 36.89 37.35 37.42 37.13 38.53 40.19 38.68 39.11 39.71 40.24 41.14 Table A7.15. Monthly exchange rates on Poland. SEK per 100 zloty 1930–39 and per PLN 1998–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1930 41.94 41.93 41.89 41.85 41.90 41.89 41.85 41.88 41.89 41.88 41.88 41.87 1931 41.97 41.93 41.95 41.94 41.86 41.90 41.95 42.00 43.30 49.89 54.60 60.88 1932 59.46 58.85 57.95 59.57 60.84 60.93 62.34 63.48 63.64 65.06 65.22 63.72 1933 62.10 62.26 62.76 63.64 65.92 65.63 65.80 66.96 69.88 70.65 68.90 67.52 1934 69.27 72.37 72.73 72.12 72.64 73.25 73.50 73.88 75.16 75.48 74.14 74.62 1935 75.59 75.78 77.76 76.39 75.23 74.85 74.71 74.35 74.40 74.84 74.64 74.53 1936 74.53 74.58 74.46 74.25 73.94 73.42 73.75 73.21 73.08 75.34 75.25 75.25 1937 75.25 75.43 75.72 75.46 75.00 75.00 74.59 74.10 74.50 74.50 74.15 74.00 1938 74.00 74.00 74.18 74.50 74.30 74.37 74.53 75.23 76.83 77.46 78.16 79.11 1939 79.37 78.77 78.57 78.65 78.50 78.50 78.50 78.44 81.00 81.00 81.00 81.00 1998 2.27 2.28 2.30 2.28 2.25 2.27 2.31 2.29 2.20 2.25 2.32 2.32 1999 2.22 2.10 2.08 2.09 2.15 2.15 2.18 2.09 2.02 1.99 1.96 2.04 2000 2.07 2.08 2.12 2.07 2.02 1.99 2.07 2.13 2.15 2.15 2.21 2.23 2001 2.30 2.38 2.47 2.53 2.60 2.71 2.57 2.44 2.51 2.56 2.59 2.63 2002 2.57 2.52 2.50 2.54 2.49 2.37 2.27 2.27 2.25 2.25 2.30 2.28 2003 2.25 2.20 2.13 2.13 2.12 2.05 2.07 2.12 2.03 1.96 1.95 1.94 2004 1.94 1.90 1.94 1.93 1.93 1.99 2.06 2.08 2.08 2.10 2.11 2.17 2005 2.22 2.28 2.26 2.21 2.20 2.28 2.30 2.31 2.38 2.40 2.41 2.45 2006 2.44 2.46 2.42 2.38 2.40 2.30 2.31 2.36 2.34 2.37 2.38 2.37 2007 2.34 2.36 2.39 2.42 2.43 2.45 2.44 2.45 2.45 2.48 2.54 2.62 2008 2.61 2.62 2.66 2.72 2.74 2.78 2.90 2.86 2.84 2.76 2.72 2.27 Table A7.14 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Czech Republic. SEK per 100 CSK 1922– 2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 398 Table A7.16. Monthly exchange rates on Latvia. SEK per 100 lats 1930–40 and per LVL 1998–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1930 71.89 71.93 71.94 71.90 71.93 71.94 71.90 71.88 71.90 71.87 71.84 71.83 1931 71.96 71.97 71.99 72.00 71.96 71.95 71.98 72.12 72.13 77.63 90.20 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 77.35 77.35 1938 77.35 77.42 77.50 77.50 77.50 77.50 77.50 77.50 77.56 77.96 77.75 77.75 1939 77.75 77.75 77.75 77.75 77.75 77.75 77.75 77.41 76.93 79.02 79.50 79.50 1940 79.50 79.30 78.47 78.68 79.83 80.00 80.00 80.00 80.00 80.00 80.00 80.00 1998 13.51 13.74 13.52 13.24 13.05 13.28 13.36 13.48 13.37 13.60 13.78 14.01 1999 13.70 13.77 14.00 14.10 14.26 14.24 14.06 13.95 14.00 14.06 14.24 14.48 2000 14.46 14.53 14.63 14.70 14.99 14.62 14.87 15.27 15.69 16.01 16.05 15.48 2001 15.35 15.72 16.06 16.20 16.39 16.98 16.97 16.54 17.13 17.04 16.96 16.86 2002 16.42 16.46 16.27 16.31 16.13 15.61 15.57 15.69 15.51 15.30 15.10 15.04 2003 14.81 14.68 14.74 14.57 14.08 13.91 14.20 14.43 14.21 13.89 13.89 13.62 2004 13.63 13.71 13.99 14.11 13.93 13.93 13.94 13.96 13.76 13.54 13.24 13.02 2005 13.00 13.05 13.05 13.17 13.21 13.30 13.55 13.42 13.41 13.53 13.74 13.55 2006 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 13.39 12.95 2007 13.02 13.12 13.12 13.13 13.21 13.41 13.18 13.36 13.24 13.05 13.25 13.51 2008 13.51 13.44 13.49 13.44 13.34 13.33 13.45 13.35 13.54 13.88 14.27 15.13 Table A7.17. Monthly exchange rates on Estonia. SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1930 99.58 99.48 99.41 99.30 99.33 99.27 99.23 99.39 99.37 99.29 99.35 99.33 1931 99.46 99.56 99.63 99.60 99.56 99.45 99.49 99.77 99.83 107.67 125.17 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 107.25 107.25 1938 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.25 107.35 1939 107.50 107.50 107.42 107.35 107.50 107.50 107.50 107.33 100.60 101.00 101.00 101.00 1940 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 101.00 1998 0.55 0.56 0.55 0.54 0.54 0.55 0.56 0.57 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.60 1999 0.58 0.57 0.57 0.57 0.57 0.56 0.56 0.56 0.55 0.56 0.55 0.55 2000 0.55 0.54 0.54 0.53 0.53 0.53 0.54 0.54 0.54 0.54 0.55 0.55 2001 0.57 0.57 0.58 0.58 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.62 0.61 0.60 0.60 7. From appreciation to depreciation 399 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 2002 0.59 0.59 0.58 0.58 0.59 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.58 0.58 0.58 2003 0.59 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.58 0.58 0.57 0.58 2004 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.58 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.58 0.58 0.58 0.57 2005 0.58 0.58 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.61 0.60 2006 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.58 0.58 2007 0.58 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.60 0.59 0.60 0.59 0.59 0.59 0.60 2008 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.60 0.61 0.63 0.65 0.69 Table A7.18. Monthly exchange rates on Lithuania. SEK per 100 litas 1932–40 and per LTL 1998–2008. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1932 56.12 1933 55.50 55.61 55.76 55.40 59.08 58.83 58.89 59.66 62.56 62.73 61.29 60.09 1934 61.69 64.21 64.71 64.16 64.80 65.37 65.29 65.70 67.02 67.06 65.96 66.35 1935 67.34 67.51 69.17 68.25 67.23 66.86 66.70 66.38 66.40 66.96 66.83 66.71 1936 66.77 66.68 66.59 66.50 66.08 65.42 65.75 65.54 65.45 67.26 67.75 67.50 1937 67.50 67.50 67.59 67.45 67.25 67.25 66.76 66.30 66.46 66.74 66.35 66.25 1938 66.25 66.25 66.25 66.25 66.31 66.49 66.91 67.11 68.85 69.62 70.17 70.66 1939 70.78 70.31 70.37 70.50 70.50 70.50 70.42 70.25 70.88 71.25 71.25 71.25 1940 71.25 71.32 71.70 71.70 71.98 72.00 72.00 72.00 72.00 72.00 72.00 72.00 1998 2.00 2.02 1.99 1.96 1.92 1.98 2.00 2.03 1.98 1.96 2.00 2.01 1999 1.96 1.99 2.05 2.08 2.11 2.13 2.11 2.06 2.06 2.04 2.08 2.12 2000 2.13 2.16 2.14 2.15 2.27 2.23 2.23 2.32 2.40 2.49 2.52 2.42 2001 2.37 2.43 2.51 2.55 2.58 2.69 2.69 2.58 2.65 2.64 2.65 2.64 2002 2.61 2.66 2.63 2.65 2.67 2.64 2.68 2.68 2.66 2.64 2.63 2.63 2003 2.66 2.65 2.67 2.65 2.65 2.64 2.66 2.68 2.63 2.61 2.60 2.61 2004 2.65 2.66 2.67 2.66 2.64 2.65 2.66 2.66 2.63 2.62 2.61 2.60 2005 2.62 2.63 2.63 2.65 2.66 2.68 2.73 2.70 2.70 2.73 2.77 2.73 2006 2.70 2.70 2.72 2.70 2.70 2.68 2.67 2.67 2.69 2.68 2.64 2.62 2007 2.63 2.66 2.69 2.68 2.67 2.70 2.66 2.70 2.69 2.66 2.69 2.73 2008 2.73 2.71 2.72 2.71 2.70 2.72 2.74 2.72 2.77 2.85 2.93 3.10 Table A7.17 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Estonia. SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 400 Appendix A7.2: Exchange rate index January 1913– December 2008 Table A7.19: Periods for which separate exchange rate indices are calculated, the countries included in the indices and the percentage of Sweden’s foreign trade covered by countries included. Period (weights pertain- ing to year) Countries whose currencies are included in the exchange rate index Percentage of Swe- den’s total foreign trade (imports + exports) for countries included in the index 1913,1–1916,1 (1915) UK, USA, Germany, France, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Aus- tria, Russia 88.2 (excl. Germany 58.2) 1916,1–1921,1 (1915) UK, USA, Germany, France, Switzerland, Netherlands, Den- mark, Norway 83.6 (excl. Germany 53.6) 1921,1–1924,2 (1920) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy Spain 86.8 (excl. Germany 74.5) 1924,2–1930,1 (1925) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Spain, Czechoslovakia 85.5 1930,1–1935,1 (1930) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Spain, Czechoslovakia, Poland 86.5 1935,1–1940,1 (1935) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Czechoslovakia, Poland 84 1940,1–1943,1 (1940) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy 82.2 1943,1–1944,9 (1943) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Portugal, Argentina 83.6 1944,9–1945,5 (1944) UK, USA, Germany, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Nor- way, Finland, Portugal, Argentina 79.7 1945,5–1945,12 (1945) UK, USA, Switzerland, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Argentina 66.2 1945,12–1950,1 (1946) UK, USA, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Den- mark, Norway, Finland, Argentina 66.1 1950,1–1950,9 (1950) UK, USA, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Den- mark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Argentina, Brazil 60.5 1950,9–1955,1 (1950) UK, USA, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Den- mark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Argentina, Brazil 72.1 1955,1–1960,1 (1955) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy 81.7 1960,1–1965,1(1960) See, previous period 76.7 1965,1–1970,1 (1965) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Spain, Austria, Canada, Japan 82.2 1970,1–1975,1 (1970) See previous period 85.9 1975,1–1980,1 (1975) See previous period 82 7. From appreciation to depreciation 401 Period (weights pertain- ing to year) Countries whose currencies are included in the exchange rate index Percentage of Swe- den’s total foreign trade (imports + exports) for countries included in the index 1980,1–1985,1 (980) See previous period 76.5 1985,–1990,1 (1985) See previous period 82.4 1990,1–1995,1 (1990) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Spain, Austria, Canada, Japan, Portugal,Australia 85.3 1995,1–2000,1 (1995) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Spain, Austria, Canada, Japan, Portugal, Australia 83.7 2000,1–2002,2 (2000) UK, USA, Germany, France, Belgium, Switzerland, Netherlands, Denmark, Norway, Finland, Italy, Spain, Canada, Japan, Aus- tralia, Czech Republic, Poland, Estonia, P.R.China, Hong Kong, Turkey, Taiwan, Mexico, Malaysia, Russia 88 2002,2–2005,1 (2000) Euro-land (Germany, France Belgium, Netherlands, Finland, Italy, Spain, Austria, Portugal, Ireland, Greece), UK, USA, Swit- zerland, Denmark, Norway, Canada, Japan, Australia, Czech Republic, Poland, Estonia, P.R. China, Hong Kong, Turkey, Tai- wan, Mexico, Malaysia, Russia 91.1 2005,1– (2005) Euro-land (Germany, France Belgium, Netherlands, Finland, Italy, Spain, Austria, Portugal, Ireland, Greece), UK, USA, Swit- zerland, Denmark, Norway, Canada, Japan, Australia, Czech Republic, Hungary, Poland, Latvia, Estonia, Lithuania, P. R. China, Hong Kong, Turkey, Mexico, Russia 90.3 Table A7.20. Exchange rate index 1913-2008, SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100). Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 231.44 231.51 231.67 231.56 231.62 231.42 231.42 231.37 231.27 231.42 231.49 231.26 1914 231.23 231.00 231.09 231.12 231.25 231.19 231.26 231.84 233.70 232.34 228.92 233.30 1915 233.93 233.81 231.08 223.83 219.75 210.80 217.50 216.91 217.26 214.54 207.00 199.11 1916 198.82 194.91 189.80 185.65 183.38 186.58 190.95 189.80 190.20 188.87 187.94 180.82 1917 179.23 178.89 176.37 173.32 172.50 167.63 161.68 153.00 149.65 136.23 133.28 163.54 1918 160.68 172.45 174.46 169.69 168.81 163.88 154.98 152.69 157.48 173.60 175.62 166.20 1919 167.48 165.84 162.34 159.85 163.70 159.07 158.62 150.86 146.09 145.01 145.49 146.95 1920 146.38 149.75 145.45 141.36 145.75 144.82 141.91 141.86 139.19 140.48 142.12 141.87 1921 139.29 128.92 124.31 120.65 123.93 122.71 124.59 122.97 118.50 112.14 109.83 123.93 1922 108.97 106.76 106.56 108.04 109.67 108.59 106.02 103.49 101.71 100.32 100.14 101.61 1923 101.29 101.59 101.67 101.20 100.26 99.68 98.44 98.05 98.11 97.87 95.89 95.64 1924 93.58 92.82 92.57 94.51 94.51 93.37 93.24 95.18 95.19 95.88 96.70 93.21 1925 93.87 93.59 93.67 94.18 95.58 95.13 95.98 96.99 98.17 98.03 97.84 97.50 1926 97.55 97.88 98.02 97.70 97.25 97.20 96.38 96.85 97.01 97.77 98.84 99.35 1927 99.55 99.71 99.70 99.76 99.92 99.80 99.85 99.77 99.76 99.73 99.79 99.59 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 402 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1928 99.89 100.05 100.12 100.15 100.21 100.15 100.11 100.07 100.04 100.04 100.07 99.99 1929 100.00 99.93 99.90 99.85 100.89 99.68 99.61 99.62 99.63 99.69 99.67 99.36 1930 99.51 99.45 99.29 99.25 99.35 99.22 99.17 99.12 99.01 98.99 99.20 99.16 1931 99.22 99.18 99.24 99.23 99.07 99.01 99.00 99.05 100.07 107.09 116.61 125.17 1932 122.48 122.32 121.09 126.50 128.34 127.95 129.82 131.45 131.52 133.19 132.24 128.61 1933 126.67 127.76 127.72 127.34 129.36 128.20 127.59 129.20 131.99 132.38 129.02 127.49 1934 128.89 132.40 132.46 131.28 132.07 131.95 131.84 133.04 135.37 136.52 134.94 135.65 1935 136.58 136.96 138.43 136.44 135.48 134.93 134.54 134.32 134.65 135.05 134.81 134.68 1936 134.54 134.36 134.42 134.49 134.02 133.27 133.37 133.11 132.65 130.42 130.31 130.11 1937 130.03 130.22 130.34 129.82 129.43 129.35 128.42 128.17 128.26 128.10 127.78 127.73 1938 127.62 127.52 127.66 127.62 127.40 127.57 127.86 128.41 128.41 130.17 131.02 131.70 1939 131.76 131.37 131.31 131.32 131.47 131.42 131.38 131.16 126.81 126.66 125.86 126.13 1940 126.67 126.59 126.50 127.85 127.77 127.94 127.95 126.29 126.25 126.33 126.25 126.13 1941 126.13 126.14 126.14 126.14 126.17 126.46 126.56 126.46 126.46 126.46 126.46 126.46 1942 126.42 126.67 126.68 126.69 126.69 126.69 126.72 128.35 126.69 126.69 126.69 126.69 1943 126.80 126.80 126.80 126.80 126.80 126.79 126.79 126.79 127.13 127.22 127.22 127.22 1944 127.22 127.22 127.20 127.18 127.07 127.10 127.12 127.09 127.06 125.08 125.30 125.29 1945 125.06 125.08 125.21 125.20 124.98 118.02 117.74 115.97 115.94 115.65 115.28 115.29 1946 110.88 110.89 110.95 110.96 110.96 116.18 101.50 95.27 95.22 95.18 95.64 95.13 1947 95.13 95.13 95.13 95.13 95.13 95.13 95.15 95.21 95.22 95.23 95.26 95.27 1948 95.27 95.27 95.28 95.28 95.28 95.12 93.77 93.82 93.79 93.74 93.76 93.77 1949 92.05 92.11 92.11 92.11 92.07 92.07 91.65 91.59 97.30 106.64 106.48 106.48 1950 106.48 106.48 106.48 106.48 106.48 106.48 106.48 106.48 105.34 105.13 105.06 104.99 1951 105.06 105.06 105.05 105.06 105.04 105.04 105.04 105.04 104.99 104.99 104.98 105.00 1952 105.00 105.03 105.06 105.06 105.07 105.08 105.08 105.08 105.08 105.08 105.11 105.17 1953 105.23 105.25 105.30 105.26 105.18 105.24 105.27 105.10 105.01 104.92 105.01 105.16 1954 105.28 105.35 105.35 105.38 105.25 105.10 105.26 105.27 105.20 105.31 105.39 105.34 1955 105.28 105.27 105.31 105.34 105.27 105.01 104.84 104.74 104.83 104.87 105.15 105.34 1956 105.39 105.39 105.38 105.38 105.35 105.18 104.90 104.75 104.81 105.03 104.80 104.87 1957 105.00 105.05 104.94 104.98 104.89 104.82 105.04 104.35 103.71 103.40 103.43 103.44 1958 103.55 103.65 103.68 103.67 103.61 103.53 103.42 103.37 103.55 103.67 103.56 103.21 1959 102.91 102.93 102.97 103.02 103.01 103.03 102.98 102.93 102.85 102.91 102.97 103.00 1960 103.03 103.01 103.01 102.86 102.88 102.74 102.79 102.69 102.84 102.86 102.94 103.01 1961 102.90 102.75 103.45 104.09 103.89 103.92 103.89 103.97 104.25 104.19 104.18 104.23 1962 104.18 103.97 103.93 103.77 103.73 103.69 103.71 103.60 103.63 103.61 103.92 104.45 1963 104.17 104.36 104.43 104.53 104.48 104.41 104.31 104.45 104.42 104.51 104.52 104.57 1964 104.46 104.31 103.71 103.50 103.44 103.36 103.45 103.30 103.37 103.74 103.69 103.57 1965 103.40 103.38 103.32 103.52 103.62 103.69 103.73 103.79 103.79 103.96 104.07 104.05 1966 103.92 103.81 103.56 103.52 103.41 103.52 103.93 103.82 103.85 103.94 103.94 103.99 1967 103.91 103.88 103.83 103.74 103.72 103.59 103.48 103.53 103.59 103.24 101.30 99.58 1968 99.34 99.34 99.48 99.49 99.37 99.22 99.17 99.10 99.20 99.32 99.42 99.40 1969 99.25 99.18 99.13 99.06 99.24 99.15 99.13 98.81 99.07 100.12 100.54 100.63 1970 100.58 100.95 101.33 101.50 101.60 101.38 101.32 101.21 101.59 101.38 101.18 101.06 1971 101.08 101.36 101.21 101.17 101.86 102.03 102.36 102.87 102.97 102.70 102.17 101.67 1972 101.52 101.83 101.75 101.81 101.31 100.97 100.05 99.87 99.65 99.31 99.20 99.22 Table A7.20 (cont.). Exchange rate index 1913-2008, SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100). 7. From appreciation to depreciation 403 Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1973 99.31 101.08 102.75 102.93 102.50 101.99 102.33 102.20 102.98 102.86 103.01 104.68 1974 105.25 105.80 105.62 104.14 103.43 104.22 104.23 103.85 103.68 103.34 103.32 102.23 1975 101.29 101.22 100.73 100.33 99.75 99.42 100.14 101.35 102.71 102.03 101.80 101.32 1976 100.86 100.94 100.41 99.96 99.60 99.59 100.01 99.43 98.58 96.81 96.19 95.84 1977 96.92 97.36 96.97 99.61 99.90 101.31 101.15 102.83 111.12 111.23 112.35 114.48 1978 115.02 115.09 114.90 114.19 113.17 113.31 113.48 113.89 114.73 116.35 115.26 116.03 1979 116.49 116.64 116.58 116.06 115.21 114.80 115.39 115.01 115.25 115.24 115.45 116.09 1980 116.22 116.19 115.97 115.95 116.07 116.45 116.44 116.06 115.95 115.33 115.18 115.37 1981 115.58 114.00 113.81 113.49 113.19 113.05 112.88 113.09 119.94 125.09 125.71 126.14 1982 126.10 126.02 125.61 125.78 126.17 126.17 125.82 125.15 125.33 140.99 145.86 147.51 1983 147.74 147.74 147.62 147.32 147.13 146.48 145.88 145.72 146.17 146.47 145.99 145.59 1984 145.28 145.66 144.54 144.46 144.81 145.10 143.73 143.44 142.27 141.86 142.78 143.16 1985 143.34 142.82 144.41 146.24 145.94 145.85 146.14 146.83 146.43 146.67 146.30 146.65 1986 147.08 148.06 148.51 148.55 148.28 148.50 149.21 149.94 150.12 150.30 150.27 150.68 1987 152.23 152.12 150.95 151.03 151.67 151.27 151.42 151.80 152.65 152.93 154.42 155.05 1988 154.76 153.59 153.19 150.82 152.26 152.17 151.57 151.90 151.59 151.29 152.11 152.07 1989 151.46 151.40 151.44 150.90 150.29 149.62 150.41 150.04 149.55 150.47 151.40 153.22 1990 154.21 154.49 153.10 153.21 154.12 154.18 154.85 155.93 155.73 156.60 157.17 157.16 1991 156.65 156.52 155.43 154.47 154.02 155.30 155.62 155.27 154.77 155.11 153.55 152.09 1992 151.49 151.83 152.07 151.60 151.16 151.32 149.88 149.45 149.26 149.69 157.13 173.27 1993 178.76 181.93 186.37 185.20 182.96 181.37 188.18 189.85 194.72 192.91 194.04 196.46 1994 189.45 186.75 188.25 187.48 186.84 191.30 195.94 195.59 192.51 189.44 189.66 190.21 1995 192.29 192.62 198.03 204.45 199.57 200.23 199.38 195.30 190.77 186.84 180.21 178.48 1996 178.98 182.56 177.76 175.29 175.35 173.13 174.07 175.29 174.26 171.90 174.87 176.75 1997 179.12 181.37 185.05 184.74 185.22 185.46 182.84 182.11 179.15 179.11 181.04 182.25 1998 183.93 185.69 182.52 179.81 178.78 182.28 183.48 186.72 188.83 193.41 193.26 195.69 1999 189.19 186.89 189.13 189.70 191.59 189.75 187.73 187.25 185.86 187.37 186.82 187.34 2000 187.62 186.93 185.49 183.78 184.50 183.20 186.14 188.29 190.57 194.44 196.34 194.17 2001 196.02 198.73 202.63 203.49 204.01 209.05 209.53 207.51 215.34 213.59 211.34 211.25 2002 207.05 207.28 204.27 205.88 206.31 202.25 204.26 204.36 202.74 201.11 199.77 199.42 2003 199.12 197.04 197.30 195.67 193.04 191.41 193.64 195.24 191.91 189.46 189.36 188.21 2004 189.43 190.21 192.73 192.98 191.69 191.92 192.37 192.68 190.24 189.02 187.09 185.74 2005 187.88 188.89 188.68 190.88 192.29 196.09 199.38 197.14 197.85 199.98 203.63 200.53 2006 197.15 198.19 199.06 197.12 196.40 193.85 193.11 193.02 193.91 193.74 190.45 188.50 2007 189.70 191.97 193.72 192.16 191.38 194.73 191.50 194.27 193.37 190.81 191.57 194.22 2008 193.96 192.62 191.72 190.29 189.96 191.00 192.61 192.66 196.44 203.27 208.96 215.60 Table A7.20 (cont.). Exchange rate index 1913-2008, SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 404 Table A7.21. Exchange rate index excluding Germany 1913–24. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 120.05 120.05 120.05 120.05 120.10 119.93 119.98 119.94 119.85 119.98 120.11 120.01 1914 120.03 119.80 119.84 119.89 120.00 119.93 120.04 120.72 122.38 123.03 122.88 125.40 1915 125.76 126.61 126.54 122.85 121.09 119.99 121.01 120.89 120.57 119.26 116.25 114.20 1916 115.95 114.32 112.73 109.64 107.60 109.80 112.83 112.54 113.19 112.54 112.60 110.07 1917 108.39 108.22 108.51 107.73 107.63 107.13 103.56 98.36 96.67 88.40 85.08 97.41 1918 100.35 100.44 101.24 98.31 98.08 96.54 94.04 94.18 99.16 108.46 113.14 110.70 1919 111.22 113.02 113.73 115.99 119.21 118.45 118.72 116.83 116.28 117.04 121.37 124.12 1920 125.11 130.81 126.35 121.02 122.54 120.16 117.88 119.15 118.24 120.51 122.58 122.23 1921 119.62 111.44 107.66 104.76 107.57 107.33 109.96 109.64 107.85 104.90 105.74 109.76 1922 103.96 102.39 103.28 104.88 106.48 105.60 104.10 102.56 101.07 100.00 99.59 101.49 1923 101.22 101.56 101.62 101.16 100.24 99.67 98.44 98.05 98.11 97.87 95.89 95.64 1924 93.58 92.82 92.57 94.51 94.51 93.37 93.24 95.18 95.19 95.88 96.70 93.21 1925 93.87 93.59 93.67 94.18 95.58 95.13 95.98 96.99 98.17 98.03 97.84 97.50 Table A7.22. Exchange rate index excluding German hyperinfation. Jan Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 1913 198.77 198.82 198.97 198.87 198.92 198.75 198.75 198.71 198.62 198.75 198.81 198.61 1914 198.58 198.39 198.47 198.49 198.60 198.55 198.62 199.10 200.71 199.54 196.60 200.37 1915 200.90 200.80 198.46 192.23 188.73 181.04 186.79 186.29 186.58 184.25 177.78 171.00 1916 170.75 167.39 163.00 159.44 157.49 160.24 163.99 163.01 163.35 162.21 161.40 155.29 1917 153.93 153.63 151.47 148.85 148.14 143.96 138.85 131.40 128.53 117.00 114.46 140.45 1918 138.00 148.10 149.83 145.73 144.98 140.74 133.10 131.13 135.25 149.09 150.83 142.74 1919 143.84 142.42 139.42 137.28 140.59 136.61 136.22 129.56 125.46 124.54 124.95 126.20 1920 125.71 128.61 124.92 121.41 125.17 124.37 121.88 121.84 119.54 120.65 122.05 121.84 1921 119.62 111.44 107.66 104.76 107.57 107.33 109.96 109.64 107.85 104.90 105.74 109.84 1922 103.96 102.39 103.28 104.88 106.48 105.60 104.10 102.56 101.07 100.00 99.59 101.49 1923 101.22 101.56 101.62 101.16 100.24 99.67 98.44 98.05 98.11 97.87 95.89 95.64 1924 93.58 92.82 92.57 94.51 94.51 93.37 93.24 95.18 95.19 95.88 96.70 93.21 1925 93.87 93.59 93.67 94.18 95.58 95.13 95.98 96.99 98.17 98.03 97.84 97.50 Because of the rapid German infation during World War One and the hyperinfation in 1921–23, separate exchange indices have been calculated that exclude Germany in the periods 1913–24 and 1921–23. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 405 Appendix A7.3: Summary tables of annual rates Table A7.23. Annual exchange rates 1913–2008. Year UK USA Ger many France Belgi um Swit zer- land Ne ther - lands Den- mark Nor way Fin land 1913 18.24 3.75 89.12 72.29 71.82 150.51 100.00 100.00 72.01 1914 18.41 3.80 88.41 73.47 72.33 153.64 100.00 100.00 70.89 1915 18.32 3.85 79.25 69.64 69.83 156.59 99.73 99.97 58.97 1916 16.60 3.51 62.45 59.28 67.06 145.73 98.53 99.29 50.36 1917 14.76 3.12 47.52 53.87 65.32 130.24 92.68 94.06 43.69 1918 14.60 3.08 52.37 54.78 70.19 142.98 91.94 93.81 39.21 1919 17.43 3.95 23.43 55.92 74.92 154.16 91.24 96.36 27.95 1920 17.92 4.92 8.38 34.62 36.28 82.76 168.41 76.81 80.25 18.09 1921 17.12 4.45 4.99 33.25 33.96 77.27 149.96 79.37 66.21 9.02 1922 16.93 3.83 59.67* 31.28 29.39 73.08 147.38 80.21 67.01 8.28 1923 17.23 3.76 0.73* 22.94 19.81 68.17 147.52 69.19 62.71 10.10 1924 16.63 3.76 89.7 19.62 17.48 68.84 144.31 63.32 52.65 9.45 1925 17.99 3.73 88.74 17.72 17.86 72.04 149.73 78.12 66.18 9.40 1926 18.15 3.74 89.01 12.17 52.24 72.24 149.96 98.09 83.43 9.41 1927 18.13 3.73 88.69 14.69 51.99 71.90 149.66 99.74 97.20 9.41 1928 18.16 3.73 89.09 14.67 52.03 71.92 150.16 99.84 99.64 9.40 1929 18.13 3.73 89.30 14.65 52.00 72.03 150.02 99.67 99.68 9.40 1930 18.11 3.73 88.88 14.64 52.02 72.23 149.85 99.71 99.69 9.38 1931 17.97 3.99 94.84 15.72 55.78 77.64 160.86 99.46 99.46 9.27 1932 18.99 5.43 129.91 21.56 76.16 106.15 218.87 102.24 97.84 8.44 1933 19.20 4.61 138.52 22.81 81.37 112.72 234.11 86.86 97.57 8.52 1934 19.40 3.85 152.30 25.38 90.19 125.28 259.80 86.85 97.61 8.60 1935 19.40 3.96 159.77 26.18 72.89 129.17 268.69 86.85 97.60 8.60 1936 19.40 3.91 157.89 23.73 66.52 116.99 250.92 86.85 97.60 8.60 1937 19.40 3.93 158.37 15.84 66.66 90.46 216.58 86.83 97.63 8.60 1938 19.41 3.98 160.10 11.51 67.50 91.20 219.05 86.77 97.65 8.60 1939 18.50 4.17 167.64 10.55 70.89 94.00 222.86 84.90 97.11 8.60 1940 16.95 4.20 168.68 9.26 69.83 95.80 254.26 81.25 95.62 8.59 1941 16.95 4.20 168.50 9.00 67.47 97.80 223.45 81.25 95.65 8.60 1942 16.95 4.20 168.51 9.00 67.50 97.00 230.49 87.48 95.65 8.59 1943 16.95 4.20 168.50 9.00 67.50 97.80 223.50 87.90 95.65 8.59 1944 16.95 4.20 168.50 97.80 223.50 87.90 95.65 8.59 1945 16.95 4.20 8.38 9.60 97.79 157.75 87.77 88.66 5.24 1946 15.76 3.91 3.55 8.93 91.35 147.56 81.50 78.82 2.91 1947 14.50 3.60 3.03 8.23 83.70 135.90 75.05 72.55 2.69 1948 14.50 3.60 3.03 8.23 83.70 135.90 75.05 72.55 2.69 1949 14.50 3.99 1.39 8.77 92.20 136.08 75.05 72.55 2.48 1950 14.50 5.18 123.30 1.49 10.37 118.50 136.55 75.05 72.55 2.27 1951 14.50 5.18 123.30 1.49 10.37 118.50 136.55 75.05 72.55 2.27 1952 14.51 5.18 123.30 1.49 10.37 118.50 136.55 75.05 72.55 2.27 1953 14.52 5.18 123.67 1.49 10.37 118.79 136.78 74.96 72.55 2.27 1954 14.54 5.18 123.94 1.49 10.40 119.06 137.00 74.98 72.75 2.27 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 406 Year UK USA Ger many France Belgi um Swit zer- land Ne ther - lands Den- mark Nor way Fin land 1955 14.49 5.18 123.56 1.49 10.40 118.66 136.72 74.98 72.55 2.27 1956 14.48 5.18 123.84 1.48 10.41 118.62 136.37 75.01 72.60 2.27 1957 14.49 5.18 123.57 1.38 10.35 118.48 136.26 74.86 72.63 2.06 1958 14.49 5.18 123.82 1.23 10.42 118.65 137.02 75.06 72.57 1.64 1959 14.54 5.18 124.00 1.06 10.39 119.94 137.33 75.25 72.77 1.63 1960 14.52 5.17 124.10 105.63 10.40 119.87 137.30 75.13 72.61 1.63 1961 14.49 5.17 128.63 105.57 10.40 119.85 142.36 75.02 72.54 1.62 1962 14.49 5.16 129.17 105.45 10.40 119.48 143.40 74.89 72.42 1.61 1963 14.54 5.19 130.35 106.11 10.44 120.27 144.37 75.34 72.75 161.51 1964 14.40 5.16 129.83 105.37 10.39 119.52 143.10 74.68 72.17 160.59 1965 14.43 5.16 129.36 105.48 10.43 119.42 143.55 74.77 72.31 160.59 1966 14.44 5.17 129.42 105.38 10.40 119.66 142.96 74.97 72.43 160.77 1967 14.16 5.17 129.70 105.16 10.42 119.52 143.53 74.05 72.38 152.20 1968 12.38 5.17 129.71 104.60 10.38 120.04 143.10 69.26 72.54 123.82 1969 12.37 5.17 132.22 99.91 10.35 120.10 143.01 68.98 72.56 123.48 1970 12.44 5.19 142.46 94.07 10.48 120.56 143.70 69.39 72.80 124.55 1971 12.49 5.11 146.93 92.94 10.55 124.28 146.67 69.22 73.00 122.71 1972 11.88 4.76 149.54 94.61 10.85 125.00 148.63 68.72 72.45 115.18 1973 10.72 4.37 164.51 98.82 11.29 139.04 157.22 72.70 76.54 115.00 1974 10.41 4.44 171.98 92.82 11.44 149.89 165.70 73.36 80.74 118.39 1975 9.22 4.16 169.15 97.15 11.33 161.06 164.58 72.60 79.79 113.46 1976 7.87 4.36 173.29 91.47 11.32 174.58 165.08 72.30 80.08 113.27 1977 7.83 4.48 193.05 91.36 12.53 186.84 182.82 74.78 84.32 111.53 1978 8.68 4.52 225.41 100.54 14.40 253.88 209.29 82.24 86.48 110.24 1979 9.10 4.29 234.27 101.03 14.65 258.20 214.06 81.71 84.87 110.59 1980 9.85 4.24 233.19 100.40 14.50 253.66 213.25 75.27 85.84 113.92 1981 10.21 5.06 224.12 93.42 13.65 257.93 203.10 71.21 88.31 117.64 1982 10.95 6.26 258.16 95.66 13.75 308.95 234.64 75.34 97.37 130.48 1983 11.64 7.67 300.84 101.04 15.05 365.73 269.25 84.12 105.27 138.08 1984 11.04 8.27 291.23 94.93 14.35 352.79 258.34 80.10 101.63 138.05 1985 11.09 8.59 293.14 96.13 14.54 351.54 259.90 81.48 100.32 139.12 1986 10.46 7.13 328.92 103.10 15.99 397.35 291.57 88.31 96.52 140.75 1987 10.39 6.35 353.25 105.72 17.02 426.01 313.52 92.93 94.33 144.55 1988 10.83 6.13 349.56 103.16 16.71 419.79 310.64 91.28 94.26 146.75 1989 10.57 6.45 343.36 101.31 16.40 394.76 304.44 88.41 93.58 150.58 1990 10.54 5.92 366.76 108.98 17.75 427.20 325.52 95.91 94.81 155.12 1991 10.67 6.05 364.91 107.39 17.73 422.30 323.93 94.69 93.40 149.76 1992 10.22 5.81 372.28 109.85 18.01 413.75 330.68 96.32 93.70 129.98 1993 11.67 7.77 470.23 137.35 22.51 526.37 418.78 120.05 109.65 136.18 1994 11.81 7.71 475.83 139.13 23.09 564.61 424.25 121.40 109.35 147.98 1995 11.25 7.13 497.99 142.99 24.20 603.82 444.59 127.34 112.58 163.42 1996 10.47 6.71 445.88 131.13 21.67 541.15 397.93 115.69 103.88 146.06 1997 12.50 7.63 440.65 130.89 21.35 526.31 391.53 115.66 108.05 147.19 1998 13.16 7.95 452.11 134.86 21.92 548.87 401.09 118.71 105.37 148.66 Table A7.23 (cont.). Annual exchange rates 1913–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 407 Year UK USA Ger many France Belgi um Swit zer- land Ne ther - lands Den- mark Nor way Fin land 1999 13.37 8.26 450.52 134.33 21.84 550.63 399.85 118.50 106.00 148.20 2000 13.85 9.15 431.80 128.75 20.94 542.26 383.23 113.30 104.09 142.04 2001 14.87 10.32 472.90 141.00 22.93 612.33 419.71 124.11 114.92 155.56 2002 14.57 9.71 624.26 123.28 121.96 2003 13.19 8.08 600.25 122.79 114.13 2004 13.45 7.35 591.12 122.67 109.03 2005 13.57 7.46 599.41 124.54 115.83 2006 13.57 7.37 588.30 124.06 115.04 2007 13.52 6.76 563.27 124.17 115.44 2008 12.08 6.55 605.42 128.84 117.03 * SEK per 1 million mark. Note: UK: SEK per GBP USA: SEK per USD Germany: SEK per 100 mark 1913-1921, SEK per 1 million mark 1922-1923, SEK per 100 reichs- mark 1924-1945, SEK per DEM 1950-2001. France: SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913-1959, SEK per 100 franc 1960-2001. Belgium: SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913-1925, SEK per 100 belgas 1926-1943, SEK per 100 BEF 1945-2001. Switzerland: SEK per 100 CHF 1915-2008 Netherlands: SEK per 100 NLG 1913-2001 Denmark: SEK per 100 DKK 1913-2008 Norway: SEK per 100 NKK 1913-2008 Finland: SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913-1962, SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963-2001 Te annual averages have been calculated as geometric averages of monthly exchange rates. Table A7.24. Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008. Italy Euro Japan Czech Re pub- lic Po land Latvia Esto nia Li thu- ania Ex - chan ge rate index (ERI) ERI excl. Ger- many 1913-24 ERI excl. Ger man hyper in- fla tion 1913 231.46 120.01 198.78 1914 231.52 121.15 198.83 1915 218.56 121.20 187.70 1916 188.92 111.96 162.25 1917 170.42 99.06 146.36 1918 165.70 101.05 142.31 1919 155.73 117.11 133.74 Table A7.23 (cont.). Annual exchange rates 1913–2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 408 Italy Euro Japan Czech Re pub- lic Po land Latvia Esto nia Li thu- ania Ex - chan ge rate index (ERI) ERI excl. Ger- many 1913-24 ERI excl. Ger man hyper in- fla tion 1920 143.38 122.17 123.14 1921 19.37 122.44 108.79 108.80 1922 18.28 9.02 105.10 102.93 102.93 1923 17.49 11.23 99.12 99.10 99.10 1924 16.56 11.21 94.22 94.22 94.22 1925 14.92 11.15 95.86 95.86 95.86 1926 14.61 11.14 97.65 1927 19.28 11.12 99.74 1928 19.68 11.12 100.07 1929 19.56 11.10 99.82 1930 19.54 11.08 41.89 71.90 99.36 99.23 1931 20.93 11.93 44.99 74.00 102.41 103.19 1932 28.31 16.54 61.71 127.90 1933 30.59 17.67 65.94 58.73 128.71 1934 33.37 16.82 73.25 65.18 133.02 1935 33.11 16.87 75.25 67.19 135.57 1936 28.85 15.95 74.25 66.44 132.91 1937 20.94 13.93 74.81 66.95 128.97 1938 21.06 13.94 75.53 77.57 107.26 67.57 128.65 1939 22.01 14.51 79.43 78.05 105.22 70.69 129.70 1940 21.46 14.68 79.65 101.00 71.83 126.87 1941 21.88 126.34 1942 21.99 126.80 1943 22.20 126.93 1944 22.20 126.66 1945 119.87 1946 103.75 1947 14.59 95.18 1948 94.51 1949 95.86 1950 0.83 106.03 1951 0.83 105.03 1952 0.83 105.08 1953 0.83 105.16 1954 0.83 105.29 1955 0.83 105.10 1956 0.83 105.10 1957 0.83 104.42 1958 0.83 103.54 1959 0.84 102.96 1960 0.84 1.45 102.89 1961 0.84 1.45 103.81 Table A7.24 (cont.). Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 409 Italy Euro Japan Czech Re pub- lic Po land Latvia Esto nia Li thu- ania Ex - chan ge rate index (ERI) ERI excl. Ger- many 1913-24 ERI excl. Ger man hyper in- fla tion 1962 0.84 1.45 103.85 1963 0.84 1.45 104.43 1964 0.83 1.44 103.66 1965 0.83 1.44 103.69 1966 0.83 1.44 103.77 1967 0.83 1.44 103.11 1968 0.83 1.45 99.32 1969 0.83 1.46 99.44 1970 0.83 1.46 101.25 1971 0.83 1.49 101.95 1972 0.82 1.59 100.53 1973 0.76 1.63 102.38 1974 0.69 1.54 104.09 1975 0.64 1.42 101.00 1976 0.53 1.49 99.00 1977 0.52 1.69 103.58 1978 0.54 2.18 114.61 1979 0.52 1.97 115.68 1980 0.50 1.88 115.93 1981 0.45 2.30 117.05 1982 0.47 2.53 130.29 1983 0.51 3.24 146.65 1984 0.47 3.49 143.92 1985 0.45 3.62 145.63 1986 0.48 4.25 149.12 1987 0.49 4.40 152.29 1988 0.47 4.79 152.27 1989 0.47 4.69 150.85 1990 0.50 4.10 155.06 1991 0.49 4.50 154.90 1992 0.47 4.61 153.06 1993 0.50 7.00 187.65 1994 0.48 7.55 190.26 1995 0.44 7.56 193.02 1996 0.43 6.17 175.83 1997 0.45 6.32 182.27 1998 0.46 8.92 6.09 24.66 2.28 13.49 0.56 1.99 186.13 1999 0.46 8.81 7.28 23.88 2.09 14.07 0.56 2.06 188.21 2000 0.44 8.45 8.49 23.70 2.11 15.10 0.54 2.28 188.41 2001 0.48 9.25 8.50 27.16 2.52 16.51 0.59 2.58 206.79 2002 9.16 7.76 29.74 2.38 15.78 0.59 2.65 203.71 2003 9.12 6.97 28.66 2.08 14.25 0.58 2.64 193.42 Table A7.24 (cont.). Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 410 Italy Euro Japan Czech Re pub- lic Po land Latvia Esto nia Li thu- ania Ex - chan ge rate index (ERI) ERI excl. Ger- many 1913-24 ERI excl. Ger man hyper in- fla tion 2004 9.13 6.79 28.60 2.02 13.73 0.58 2.64 190.50 2005 9.28 6.78 31.16 2.31 13.33 0.59 2.69 195.20 2006 9.25 6.34 32.66 2.38 13.35 0.59 2.68 194.52 2007 9.25 5.74 33.35 2.45 13.22 0.59 2.68 192.44 2008 9.61 6.35 38.52 2.70 13.67 0.61 2.78 196.44 Note: Italy: SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2001 Euro: SEK per EUR 1998–2008 Japan: SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008 Czech Republic: SEK per 100 CSK 1922–2008 Poland: SEK per 100 zloty 1930–39 and per PLN 1998–2008 Latvia: SEK per 100 lats 1930–40 and per LVL 1998–2008 Estonia: SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008 Lithuania: SEK per 100 litas 1932–40 and per LTL 1998–2008 Te annual averages have been calculated as geometric averages of monthly exchange rates. References: Of cial statistics publications: SOS handel SOS Utrikeshandel Sveriges riksbank årsbok Sveriges riskbank statistisk årsbok www.riksbank.se www.scb.se www.oecd.org www.norges-bank.no/english/statistics/exchange/ Literature: Ahlström, G and B Carlson (2006), Vägval i valutafrågan. Sverige och Bretton Woods. Stockholm: SNS förlag. Berg, C and L Jonung (1999), ‘Pioneering price level targeting’. Te Swedish experi- ence 1931-1937. Journal of monetary economics 43, pp. 525–51. Edvinsson, R (2005), Growth, Accumulation, Crisis: with New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800-2000. Stockholm: Stockholm Studies in Economic History 41. Table A7.24 (cont.). Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008. 7. From appreciation to depreciation 411 Eichengreen, B (1996), Globalizing Capital. A History of the International Monetary System. Princeton NJ: Princeton University Press. Feinstein, C H, P Temin and G Toniolo (1997), Te European economy between the wars. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Heckscher, E F (1926), ‘Penningväsende och penningpolitik. Från krigsutbrottet till den internationella guldmyntfotens återställelse 1914–1925’. In E F Heckscher (ed.) Bidrag till Sveriges ekonomiska och sociala historia under och efter världskriget. Del II. Stockholm: P. A. Norstedt söners förlag. Jonung, L (1979), ‘Knut Wicksell’s norm of price stabilization and Swedish mone- tary policy in the 1930’s’. Journal of Monetary Economics 5, pp. 459–96. Kenwood, A G and A L Lougheed (1985), Te growth of the international economy 1820–1980. An introductory text. London: George Allen & Unwin. Klovland, J T (1998), ‘Monetary policy and business cycles in the interwar years: the Scandinavian experience’. European Review of Economic History 2, pp. 309–44. Krantz, O and L Schön (2007), Swedish Historical National Accounts 1800–2000. Lund: Almqvist & Wicksell International. Lundberg, E (1983), Ekonomiska kriser för och nu. Stockholm: SNS. Maddison, A (1991), Dynamic Forces in Capitalist Development. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Mitchell, B R (2003a), International historical statistics: Europe, 1750–2000. New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Mitchell, B R (2003b), International historical statistics: the Americas, 1750–2000. New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Nordin, M (1991), ‘Den svenska industrins konkurrenskraft 1973–1989’. In L Jonung (ed.) Devalveringen 1982 – rivstart eller snedtändning? Perspektiv på svensk devalveringspolitik. Stockholm: SNS, pp. 118–40. Sarno, L (2008), ‘purchasing power parity’. In Te New Palgrave Dictionary of Eco- nomics Online, S N Durlauf and L E Blume (eds.). London Palgrave Macmillan. Schön, L (2000), En modern svensk ekonomisk historia. Tillväxt och strukturomvand- ling under två sekel. Stockholm: SNS. Wihlborg, C (1991), ‘Den reala växelkursen 1974–1989’. In L Jonung (ed.) Deval- veringen 1982 – rivstart eller snedtänding? Perspektiv på svensk devalveringspolitik. Stockholm: SNS, pp. 240–57. Wihlborg, C (1993), ‘Växelkurspolitiken’. In L Werin (ed.) Från räntereglering till infationsnorm. Det fnansiella systemet och riksbankens politik 1945–1990. Stock- holm: SNS, pp. 196–244. Williamson, J G (1995), ‘Te evolution of global labor markets since 1830: back- ground evidence and hypotheses’. Explorations in Economic History, Vol. 32, pp. 141–96. Östlind, A (1945), Svensk samhällsekonomi 1914–1922. Stockholm: Svenska bank- föreningen. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices, 1290–2008 1 Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg 8.1. Introduction The purpose of this chapter is to describe the construction of a Consumer Price Index (CPI) for Sweden 1290–2008. The aim is not to present new empirical mate- rial, but rather to use the rich empirical material collected in earlier studies on the price history of Sweden to construct a price index that as far as possible uses a consis- tent method over time. 2 The chapter also discusses some theoretical and conceptual problems in relation to constructing a historical CPI. An index covering a span from the Middle Ages to the present raises much more questions than modern-type consumer price indices. It raises the issue of what inflation actually is. 8.2. Methodological issues A price index is a measure of the level of prices in the compared year (t) in relation to the level of prices in the price reference period (0). A volume (or real) index is derived by dividing the ratio between nominal values in two years by the price index, a pro- cedure termed ‘deflation’. The price indices can be constructed in various ways, depending on how the individual prices are weighted. The two most common price indices are the CPI and the GDP deflator in market prices (the deflator is used to transform nominal values into volume values, and can be seen as a price index). The GDP deflator is in a certain sense a broader price 1 We want to thank Ulf Jonsson, Astrid Kander, Per Simonsson and Daniel Waldenström for commenting earlier versions of this chapter. 2 Te terminology of this chapter follows as closely as possible the one used in Consumer price index manual (ILO and others, 2004). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 413 index, and is a weighted average of the price indices for the final demand of house- holds and NPISH (Non-Profit Institutions Serving Households), government final demand, gross fixed capital formation and net export. The CPI should not be confused with the deflator of household and NPISH final consumption used in the national accounts; they are based on different methods. 3 The deflator of household and NPISH final demand shall include all types of con- sumption. This is not necessarily the case in calculations of a CPI. A CPI can be based on a narrower range of goods and services, for example, only private consump- tion in towns. The CPI normally also covers a smaller number of households (for example, the wealthiest households are sometimes excluded). Often imputed values of rents for self-owned dwellings are included, while imputed values of agricultural products for own use are excluded. The latter are included in the deflator of house- hold and NPISH final demand. The index principles of the two indices often differ. While the CPI mostly uses quantities from an earlier period, for example in a Laspeyres price index, the national accounts mostly use quantities of a later period, 3 ILO and others (2004, p. 58). A store in Stockholm in 1910. Source: Stockholm City Museum. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 414 for example in a Paasche price index. The differences between the index principles are usually quite small if an annual chain index is applied. One problem with price indices is that the pattern of consumption changes over time. Comparison over time becomes increasingly difficult. This makes chaining necessary, i.e. the price reference period is changed regularly, and the different con- secutive time series are linked to each other with one common period as the base period. Chaining is preferable if the studied period is very long, as is the case with a historical CPI. The price level in the 21st century cannot be reasonably estimated on the basis of consumption weights pertaining to the 17th century. The preferred option is an annual chain index, but this presupposes knowledge of the composition of consumption in every year, which can be difficult to obtain for a historical price index (although historical national accounts could provide certain information in Tere are a number of sources for pre-indus- trial prices in Sweden. Tese are price nota- tions in Göteborg from December 1734 according to the mar- ket scales, which were semi-market prices. Source: Göteborgs råd- husrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900, L 1, vol. 6 (Göteborgs lands- arkiv). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 415 that direction). The second best option is to change the weights regularly, although not as often as annually. The period with a common price reference year or period is named a deflation period. This is also the chosen option in the present study for the period before 1914. Furthermore, there is a theoretical difference between the cost of a representative basket of consumption products and the cost of guaranteeing a certain level of utility or welfare of a consumer. The former is called a Consumer Price Index, while the latter is a Cost-of-Living Index. A CPI measures the average change of prices, and is therefore best represented by the concept of a basket of products, a so-called Lowe Te Christmas Fair, by Georg von Rosen (1843–1923). Source: Nationalmuseum. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 416 type index. This purpose also reflects the central bank concept of inflation, even though the CPI is not specifically designed to measure general inflation. The main purpose of a Cost-of-Living Index is, however, not to provide a general measure of inflation, but rather to serve as an instrument for deflating nominal wages in order to calculate real wages. 4 For example, the introduction of potatoes in the late 18th cen- tury enabled consumers to partly switch from rye and barley to potatoes. If the weight reference period is situated earlier in time, when potatoes were not part of consump- tion, a constant basket index will overestimate the cost of living in later periods compared to earlier periods. Nevertheless, a Consumer Price Index (CPI) can be assumed to roughly approxi- mate a Cost-Of-Living Index (COLI), especially if the basket of consumed products is changed regularly and a chain index is constructed. There are also some price indices that can be assumed to better approximate a COLI, which has to do with consumer preferences and cross-elasticities of demand for the consumed products (i.e. the responsiveness of the quantity demanded for a good to the price change of another good). The more often the weight reference period is changed, when a chain index is constructed, the more such a price index tends to, at least theoretically, approach a COLI. The substitution effects depend on the cross-elasticity of various products. 5 Since we do not have access to annual changes in the composition of consumer products for earlier periods, the annual fluctuations in relative prices are actually the most reliable indicator of annual fluc- tuations in relative consumption quantities. Another problem is that the cross-elas- ticity of demand can vary significantly both between products and between types of expenditure at a more aggregated level. The price elasticity of individual foodstuffs can be high, but the price elasticity of food expenditures as a whole is probably quite low. The main consideration behind constructing a historical CPI in this study is the central bank concept of inflation and to a lesser degree the notion of a cost-of-living index. This partly stands in contrast to previous studies on the cost of living in Swe- den, for example Gunnar Myrdal’s The Cost of Living in Sweden 1830–1930, whose main purpose was to ‘serve as a means for the investigation of real wages in Sweden’. 6 This study mainly uses the Laspeyres formula. The weights are quite difficult to estimate and the calculations are based on estimates of expenditure shares during certain base periods, which is possible if the Laspeyres formula is used. The Laspeyres price index is a measure of the level of prices of products i in period t in relation to period 0, the price reference period, which for the Laspeyres price index is the same as the weight reference period, b, the period of the quantities, q: 4 Statistiska centralbyrån (2001, pp. 7–9). 5 Grytten (2004). 6 Myrdal (1933, p. 49). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 417 L ,t P 0 = ¯ ¯ i ,i ,i i ,i t,i q p q p 0 0 0 = ¯ J J J ` ' ' ( | i , i ,i t,i s p p 0 0 0 (1) Formula 1 shows that the Laspeyres price index can be rewritten as a weighted arith- metic average of the price relatives using the expenditure shares in the price reference period ( 0,0 i s ) as weights. Prior to 1850, consumption patterns generally did not change as much as they have done later. In a long-term perspective, volume GDP per capita was stagnant. Hence, the deflation periods are longer for the earlier periods. Furthermore, the further back in time, the fewer the products that could be rep- resented by longer price data time series; moreover, the data are often restricted to some or only one region. This of course makes it virtually impossible to construct an annual chain index, whereby the quantities are changed every year. The weights and the duration of deflation periods must take this into account. Calculations of a CPI for modern times normally ignore barter transactions. 7 How- ever, if the economy is dominated by barter transactions, such an approach is problem- atic. One theoretical problem is that prices only relate to goods sold on the market, while most produced goods were not traded. However, the existence of a market implies that producers had the alternative of either consuming the product or selling it on the market. Hence, there was an alternative cost for the use of product, which could be measured in price terms. Such an alternative cost would, of course, be lower than the market price since we have to deduct various transaction costs involved in trade. Nevertheless, the alternative cost should be related to the market price to some degree. Periods of hyperinflation or high inflation also cause problems for the construc- tion of a historical CPI. This is because in such periods prices can be expressed in prices of different types, one in the debased currency and one in a more stable cur- rency unit, for example a foreign currency or previously minted coins in precious metal. At the end of such inflation periods the currency unit is often changed by devaluing the weaker currency, causing prices to fall back to previous levels. This is specifically addressed in this study by constructing two different CPIs, one that can be used to deflate other price series and another that better functions as a measure of inflation. 8.3. The currency unit for the CPI in this study Since 1873, the Swedish currency unit has been the krona (SEK). However, before that year, the Swedish currency was changed on numerous occasions (see Chapters 2, 3, 4 and 6), which must be taken account of when constructing a historical CPI. 7 ILO and others, (2004, p. 19). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 418 There were also periods, most notably 1624–1803, when domestic currencies existed side-by-side, with a fluctuating exchange rate between them. The development of a price index expressed in one of these currencies may, therefore, differ from the devel- opment of a price index expressed in another currency. As a general rule, the CPI should follow the currency that was used most frequently in transactions. Table 8.1 presents the currencies that are followed by the Consumer Price Index of this study for different periods. Table 8.1: Te currencies followed by the Consumer Price Index presented in this study. Period Currency 1290–1624 Mark penningar 1624–1776 Mark kopparmynt (in 1624 equal to mark penningar) 1776–89 Riksdaler specie (in 1776 equal to 72 marks kopparmynt) 1789–1855 Riksdaler riksgälds (in 1789 equal to the riksdaler specie) 1855–73 Riksdaler riksmynt (in 1855 equal to riksdaler riksgälds) 1873 onwards Krona (SEK) The currencies in Table 8.1 are the basis for the construction of a first variant of a CPI, which we call a deflator index. It is an index of prices expressed in the main currency unit: 1 SEK = 72 marks. This index is most suitable for deflating other price series, i.e. to estimate real or relative prices (see section 8.9 for concrete exam- ples). However, a second variant, an inflation index, is also constructed to take into consideration times of very high inflation, when inflation money was circulated which later was replaced by a more stable currency. This occurred in six periods: 1351–4, 1361–4, 1521–4, 1561–76, 1590–3 and 1715–9. At the end of these infla- tion periods, the inflation coins could be exchanged for new coins, albeit at a much lower rate than was nominally assigned to the inflation coins. When prices were expressed in proper coins, they have been converted into prices in inflation coins by using the exchange rate between the inflation coins and proper coins. This could be compared to modern times when zeros have been struck from infla- tion notes on various occasions, for example when the new mark was introduced in Germany in 1924 and was set equal to one trillion old marks. The introduction of new notes implies that prices of products are sold at a lower nominal figure, but in such a situation an inflation index should not record any dramatic deflation, since this is just a matter of changing one currency for another. This is most clearly shown when prices are recorded in both currencies during the overlapping period. Genuine deflation can occur following a period of inflation, when the inflation money is appreciated for various reasons. An example of this is the deflation in Swe- den in the early 1920s, when the CPI fell by more than 30 per cent. The direct cause was the reintroduction of the same relation of the krona to gold as before the First World War (see also Chapter 7). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 419 The inflation index is based on the exchange rate between the inflation money and the new coins that were introduced (see Chapters 3 and 4), and the annual change in the deflator index is corrected accordingly. There were also two other inflation periods, 1624–1665 and 1789–1834, where it is not clear which currency to follow. The deflator index in these cases follows the inflation coins. The difference between those two periods and the six periods men- tioned above is that in the former the inflation currency became the main currency afterwards, while in the periods 1351–4, 1361–4, 1521–4, 1561–76, 1590–3 and 1715–9 the old currency was restored. The problem is most clearly illustrated by the development of the deflator index between 1574 and 1576, during which this index records a fall by 82 per cent. This should, however, not be interpreted as a period of severe deflation. What happened was that a new mark was introduced in 1575 with a higher fine silver content than the old mark (see Chapter 4). For example, while a 4-öre coin (a half mark) of 1572 contained 0.5142 grams fine silver, a 4-öre coin of 1575 contained 3.088 grams fine silver, i.e. a six-fold increase. 8 8 Wallroth (1918, pp. 37 and 41). Hungary in 1946, illustrating the efects of hyperinfation. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 420 The Consumer Price Manual argues that it is not necessary to refrain from having more than one CPI: 9 ‘There is no necessity to have only a single CPI. When only a single CPI is com- piled and published, there is a risk that it may be used for purposes for which it is not appropriate. More than one CPI could be published in order to meet different ana- lytic or policy needs.’ The deflator and inflation indices, respectively, partly reflect different purposes of price indices. If the price index is to measure the cost-of-living in order to deflate nominal wages over time or to estimate the real price of various goods, then a defla- tor index could be used. However, if the price index is to measure inflation, the infla- tion index should be preferable, since a simple deflator does not always reflect actual inflation when currencies with the same name, but at different exchange rates, are used through time. The two CPIs are presented in Table A8.1. To calculate price indices expressed in other Swedish currencies (for example riksdaler banco instead of riksdaler riksgälds in 1789–1803, or daler carolin instead of daler kopparmynt in 1624–1777), the exchange rates presented in Chapter 4 can be used to transform the CPI of this study. 8.4. The period 1290–1539 The data for constructing a CPI for the period 1290–1539 are based on price data collected by Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg (2006). 10 From the early 15th century the price data are quite rich for the most important commodities, though not for every year. Before that period, only a few years and a few commodities can be covered. The missing years have been interpolated for vari- ous commodities. The price of barley or unspecified grain has been interpolated using the price of rye, and vice versa. The interpolations are based on silver prices (see section 8.4.4 below); only in the second stage are they transformed into nominal prices. The best data exist for seven goods: grain, beer, salt, oxen, butter, wax, and iron. Only for these goods, it seems, can price series covering fifty years or more be assem- bled. Grain prices are the most frequent. Before 1500, grain prices usually refer to unspecified grain or barley, not to rye, which was more expensive. The cultivation of rye gradually spread at the expense of barley, but the latter crop still dominated in the 16th century. The CPI of the present study also uses data on the prices of three other goods – rye, hops and copper. For these three goods data exist mainly from the 1460s onwards. Though the focus on these goods is motivated by the state of the sources, the mix 9 ILO and others (2004, p. 33). 10 See also Söderberg (2007). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 421 has some advantages. Iron and butter were Swedish export articles. During the Mid- dle Ages, iron (and copper) became the dominant export articles from Sweden. Salt is the only good that was always imported. It also was the only imported good, besides hops in the late Middle Ages, that was vital in popular consumption. Oxen were exported in certain periods, but the beef trade was also subject to substantial changes in organization. Grain was of course the most essential good in the domestic economy, but in foreign trade it was rather marginal. Beer was an increasingly popu- lar and important consumption good. The beer market widened during the late Middle Ages. This is closely linked to the increased use of hops in brewing, making for a more tasteful and durable beer. Compared to these goods, wax played a smaller role in the economy. It was mainly used for making candles for religious ceremo- nies. 8.4.1. Sources The major part of the price quotations are from the province of Uppland, which included Stockholm, the largest town. Uppland probably was the most commercial- ized part of medieval Sweden, at least from the late 14th century. Several oxen and butter prices, however, are from the southern province of Små- land, bordering on Denmark. This reflects the regional division of labour, in which Småland and some western provinces had a prominent role in cattle-raising, but also the fact that oxen and cows were sometimes used as partial payment in land sales. Finland was part of the kingdom of Sweden in the medieval era. For this reason, Finnish prices are also included, though their number is not large. Nearly all of them come from Turku (Åbo) in south-western Finland, which appears to have been fairly price-integrated with Uppland. The majority of the price quotations stem from market transactions carried out by various institutions. Three sources are of particular importance: Parish churches regularly sold the surplus of grain that resulted from tithes deliv- ered by their tenants. 11 Many grain price quotations, and most wax prices, refer to transactions involving these churches. The accounts of the City of Stockholm report many kinds of purchase. For instance, the City bought considerable amounts of beer to be consumed on festive occasions. About seven litres of beer per person was consumed at the annual May feast in Stockholm City Hall in the 1460s. A third, very useful source is the large collection of medieval letters that has been published on the Internet by Riksarkivet (The National Archives): ‘Svenskt Diplo- matariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven’. Currently, more than 40,000 doc- uments have been registered and are digitally searchable. These documents report many market transactions in various goods. Some prices are valuations in connection 11 See, e.g., Andræ (1965). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 422 with land transactions or the bequeathing of property. These prices seem to conform well to outright market prices. Price tariffs set by the authorities are not used in this study. Tariffs generally aimed at lowering market prices during dearth, and it is not known to what extent such maximum prices were followed. 8.4.2. Units of measurement For beer, one barrel is assumed to comprise 117.5 litres. 12 For butter and wax, prices are often given per lispund. The lispund is assumed to equal 6.647 kg, which is the weight known from the 16th century. 13 Butter prices could also be given per barrel. This constitutes a problem, since there were at least three barrels in use in the butter trade: one of 13 (or 13½), one of 16 and one of 18 lispund. 14 The use of the 13 (or 13½) lispund barrel seems to have been limited to West Sweden, whereas the 16 lispund barrel was commonly used in Uppland and other parts of East Sweden. The 18 lispund barrel is documented from southern Swe- den. For copper, prices are usually given per ship pound (skeppund = 20 lispund). The weight of the medieval ship pound is not known for certain but was probably about 133 kg, which is the weight known from the 16th century. 15 12 Sahlgren (1981, col. 58), and Morell (1988, p. 33). 13 Morell (1988, p. 10). 14 Hammarström (1956, p. 380 n 20), Dovring (1947, p. 204), and Jansson (1995, p. 274). 15 Jansson (1981, col. 544), and Morell (1988, pp. 10 and 46). From an exhibition at the Museum of National Antiquities, Stockholm. No Swedish market price notations for consumer goods exist before 1290. However, a few prices are recorded in the provincial laws, mainly in connection with various fnes. According to the Gutalag from the early 13th century, a dead person’s relatives could demand the following payments for manslaughter: - Slave – 225 grams of silver (above) - Free non-Gotlander – 2 kg of silver (middle) - Free Gotlander – 4.8 kg of silver (below). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 423 For grain, one last is assumed to equal 45 hectolitres. 16 For iron, prices are usually given per last or fat (1 last = 12 fat). The weight of the medieval fat is not known for certain but is generally assumed to have been about 170 kg. 17 Hence, the iron last would correspond to about 2,040 kg. Prices refer to cut pieces of iron (osmonds), not to bar iron, which was not introduced until after the medieval period. For salt, prices are usually given per barrel. The salt barrel is assumed to equal 15 lispund according to a regulation from 1478. 18 The lispund is assumed to equal 6.647 kg. 19 Consequently a barrel of salt is assumed to amount to 99.7 kg. 8.4.3. Nominal prices Prices are expressed in the nominal currency, mark penningar (which during the late Middle Ages commonly was labelled mark örtug). Throughout the Middle Ages the following relations were defined in the monetary system (see also Chapter 3): 1 mark penningar = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar. 20 8.4.4. Silver prices As mentioned above, the interpolation of missing values is based on so-called silver prices, which express prices in grams of silver per modern metric weight or volume unit. Silver prices also facilitate comparisons with international prices. It is particu- larly during periods of debasement, followed by recoinage, that interpolating missing values using silver prices is preferable to interpolating such values based on nominal prices, since the latter method could completely miss price increases caused by such debasements. The fine silver content of the Swedish mark was gradually reduced during the Middle Ages, which is discussed further in Chapter 3. People were aware of this and therefore often specified the exchange ratio between the currency actually used and the stable silver mark (mark lödig) that was to be applied in each particular economic transaction. The gross weight of the silver mark is here, as in previous research, assumed to be 210.6 grams of silver, although the fine silver content was somewhat lower (assumed in Chapter 3 to be between 184 and 197 grams). The calculation of the silver price of the various goods is based on these exchange rates. One example: in 1346, the price of an ox was 3 mark penningar. At the same time, the exchange rate of mark penningar to the silver mark was 5.0. For that year 16 Jansson (1981, col. 132). 17 Nationalencyklopedin, article ‘Fat’. 18 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474-1483 (p. 183). 19 Morell (1988). 20 For the period after 1450 it is not completely clear whether some of the prices were expressed in mark penningar or mark danska, equal to ¾ mark penningar (see Chapter 3). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 424 the fine silver content of the silver mark was 197 grams according to Chapter 3. Thus, one mark penningar was exchanged for 197/5 ≈ 39 grams of fine silver. The silver price of this ox of 3 mark penningar then equals (3/5)*197 ≈ 118 grams of fine silver. 8.4.5. Index construction The index is constructed differently for each of the periods 1290–1330, 1330–1420 and 1420–1539 (see Table 8.2). For the period 1420–1539 ten commodities are covered: grain, rye, bear, butter, iron, copper, oxen, wax, salt and hops. With the exception of 1445, price data exist for at least one commodity in every year of this period. For 1330–1420 the price index is based on seven commodities: grain, rye, bear, butter, iron, copper and oxen. For 1290–1330 the index is mainly based on the price of grain, complemented with some annual data on the price of butter. For the period 1420–1539, rye, grain and beer weigh most heavily (55 per cent), since vegetable products were the most important part of consumption. 21 The five per cent weight given to beer may seem rather small, but here we assume that the price of beer was largely determined by the price of rye and grain. Animal products (butter and oxen) are assumed to have accounted for 25 per cent of the total budget. The weight for non-food products is only 12 per cent. The relative weights for earlier periods are the same as for 1420–1539 (see Table 8.2), with the difference that some commodities are missing. The annual fluctuations of the CPI in the period 1420–1539 should be inter- preted with caution, since not all years could be covered. For the period 1290–1420, the CPI is an indicator, not of annual fluctuations, but rather of the long-term trend. Table 8.2. Te weights (in per cent) in the present study for calculating the CPI in 1290– 1539. Period Grain Rye Beer Butt- er Iron Cop- per Oxen Wax Salt Hops Sum 1290–1330 46.15 30.77 23.08 100 1330–1420 33.71 22.47 5.62 16.85 6.74 3.37 11.24 100 1420–1539 30.00 20.00 5.00 15.00 6.00 3.00 10.00 3.00 3.00 5.00 100 8.4.6. Possible high inflation in the 1350s and 1360s Periods of high inflation caused by debasement cycles are reliably documented from the 16th century onwards. Prior to that, there are indications of two debasement cycles following the Black Death, roughly in 1351–4 and 1361–4, as discussed fur- 21 See Jansson, Andersson Palm, och Söderberg (1991), for a further discussion on the budget composition in the 16th century. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 425 ther in Chapter 3. The fine silver content of the debased penning coins was less than 1/5 and 1/10, respectively, of the fine silver content of previously minted penning coins (minted in 1332–50), suggesting an inflation rate of more than 1000 per cent if prices followed debasement. 22 Prices are missing for several years. The only price data that exist to support the hypothesis of high inflation is a price notation for copper in 1361, which cost 50 mark penningar per ship pound. This was 100 per cent above the price in 1366–67 and five times the price in 1333. It may be suspected that the debased coins were exchanged for newer, better coins at a significant discount, although the debased coins may also have functioned as token coins, i.e. circulated substantially above their intrinsic metal value. In this study it is assumed (as in Chapter 3) that the debased coins were devalued by two thirds in 1354 and by half in 1364; this is the basis for calculating the difference between the deflator index and the inflation index for this period. 8.4.7. The high-inflation period of 1521–23 In 1521–23 Christian II and Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) minted so called klipping coins with a very low silver content compared to their nominal value, which is discussed further in Chapter 3. It is not completely clear how common the klipping coins were in trade in these years, or whether the older, better coins dominated trade instead. The older coins were probably hoarded and taken out of circulation in those years, but returned as means of payment from 1524 onwards. 23 For foreign trade there are many examples of foreign coins being used as means of payment, but this was also common during periods of low inflation. According to Ingrid Hammarström, prices increased many times over in 1522 and 1523, not only for foreign products but also for domestic ones, which favours the hypothesis that the klipping coins were, in fact, the main coins in circulation. 24 As discussed in Chapter 3, in early 1524 the klipping coin was devalued by one third. However, the exchange rates of mark lödig in proper and klipping coins, respectively, suggests that the klipping coins were worth less than half (19.25/50) of their nominal value in proper coins. In this study it is therefore assumed that 1 new mark = 50/19.25 old marks, which is the basis for calculating the difference between the deflator index and the inflation index for this period. 8.5. The period 1539–1732 Eli Heckscher has constructed a price index for Sweden for the period 1540–1620 based on Stockholm prices. This price index has been improved by Johan Söderberg, 22 Franzén (2006, pp. 77 and 232). 23 Hildebrand (1983, p. 870), and Tordeman (1936, p. 51). 24 Hammarström (1956, p. 388). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 426 with additional data. Söderberg has constructed a Laspeyres-type cost-of-living index for Stockholm for the period 1539–1719. 25 This is the basis of the present CPI. One difference for the period 1539–1620 is that the price of rye has been changed from the consumption year to the harvest year (which is the practice internationally). The price index for the period 1719–32 is based on data presented in Fregert and Gustafs- son (2005), which in turn are based on Stockholm prices in Jansson et al. (1991). The prices in Jansson et al. (1991) have been collected from various accounts, most importantly those of the Town Council of Stockholm and of Stockholm Cas- tle. 26 Price scales set by the authorities have not been used, since they cannot be assumed to reflect market prices. Substantial quantities were traded on the market, and the price data are therefore to be seen as producer prices. The citizens of Stock- holm most probably had to pay higher prices for their daily needs but in this context it is important that the sources are of the same character throughout the period. The most important source for food prices during the first half of the 17th cen- tury is the accounts of Stockholm Castle. This material provides information about the purchases in cash of various commodities, as well as deliveries in kind from the castles and counties. From 1650 the main source in Jansson et al. (1991) is the food prices on the accounts of the orphanage of Stockholm (Allmänna barnhuset). The accounts of Danviken Hospital provide some complementary information. The main source for prices of building materials in Jansson et al. (1991) is the accounts of the Town Council of Stockholm. This material contains detailed descrip- tions of the building works initiated by the Town Council and the wages of various building workers. Also the Church accounts (for example, those of Storkyrkoförsam- lingen and the German Church) provide information on prices of building materials as well as wages. Cloth prices are gathered from the accounts of Stockholm Castle (klädkammaren, Slottsarkivet). The grain price for the period 1600–27 is the average of the prices of rye and barley. For the years when rye and barley prices are missing, the price of grain (spann- mål) has been used. This type of price generally referred to rye and barley in equal amounts, although the proportion could have shifted somewhat over time. For the period 1635–1719, Jansson et al. (1991) draw on the grain prices presented by Hegardt for the sales of Uppsala Academy in Stockholm. 27 These are barley prices from Uppland. 28 25 Söderberg (2002) and Jansson, Andersson Palm, och Söderberg (1991). 26 On the accounts of the Town Council of Stockholm during the frst decades of the 17th cen- tury, see Sandström (1983) and Ericson (1988). See also Söderberg (1987). 27 Hegardt (1975). 28 Te price of barley was somewhat lower than the price of rye and therefore also somewhat lower than the price of grain (‘spannmål’), which consisted of half rye and half barley. However, the price diference between barley and grain was most probably not so large that a systematic dis- tortion would arise when the price series of grain (‘spannmål’) up to 1635 is linked to Hegardt’s barley price thereafter. In 1600–20, the price of rye in the accounts of Crown trade at Stock- holm (the ‘handling’) was, on average, 15 per cent above the price of barley. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 427 Drawings by Olaus Magnus. Exchange without money. Te Nordic people to the left ofer four, dried pike fsh, axes, scissors, knives, and cloth. Te Russians to the right ofer skins, arrows, butter, and bows. Processing barley Beer brewing Foreign wines Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 428 Certain lacunae in the accounts make the source material more problematic for some of the years before 1635. Grain prices in the years around 1630 are not availa- ble for Stockholm, so the price series of Kungsåra Church in Västmanland county are used instead in Jansson et al. (1991) (with corrections by Kurt Ågren). 29 This series starts in 1624 and continues for a very long period. For the period 1635–49, the price level in the Kungsåra accounts was somewhat above the price level of the sales of Uppsala Academy in Stockholm. Hegardt’s prices are 7.8 per cent below the prices in Kungsåra. To correct for this difference in price levels in Västmanland and Stockholm, the Kungsåra prices for the period 1628–34 have been reduced by this difference in Jansson et al. (1991). Some quotations that exist for Stockholm for those years do not seem to differ significantly from the calculated prices based on Kungsåra accounts. For weights and measures, information about changes is often lacking, especially before 1600. Here, the following assumptions concern the grain barrel in Stock- holm. The medieval grain barrel of 117.5 litres is assumed to have been in use until 1570, when it increased to 127 litres. By 1600, it had grown further to 146.6 litres, using a linear interpolation from 1570. The barrel was further changed to 156 litres in 1665 and to 165 litres in 1739. 30 The pound, which was used to weigh butter and meat, also increased on several occasions. Furthermore, the barrel in which salted commodities and fish were measured was changed in 1665. The assumption in Jans- son et al. (1991) follows Mats Morell in the case of the pound as well as the fish bar- rel. 31 Prices have been interpolated for the years when direct data are missing. 8.5.1. The high-inflation period 1561–76 In the period 1560–75 the mark coin was debased continually, which caused sub- stantial price increases, as discussed further in Chapter 4. In 1575 a recoinage took place and one new mark was exchanged for 6.5 marks 29 von Schwerin (1903, pp. 25 onwards). Te series was used by Heckscher, but some corrections have been made to the series by Kurt Ågren (1964, pp. 25 onwards) after checking the original accounts. 30 As in Hegardt (1975, p. 202), the assumption in Jansson et al. (1991) is that the grain barrel was not changed in Mälardalen by the decision on targets, measures and weights in 1638. It is likely that the so-called old Stockholm barrel of 146.6 litres continued to be used throughout the frst half of the 17th century. Hence, Jansson et al. (1991) makes the same assumption as Hannerberg and Morell that the Royal decree on weights and measurement in 1605 did not entail any change in the barrel used in the Mälardalen region. See Hannerberg (1946, p. 423), and Morell (1988, p. 36). 31 Morell (1988). Te pound used as measure for commodities such as butter, tallow and meat, was according to Morell changed from 6.04 kg to 8.31 kg in 1605. In 1634 the pound was increased to 8.43 kg and in 1665 to 8.5 kg. Te fsh barrel (the same as the salt and four bar- rel) was increased from 117.5 to 125.6 litres. Jansson et al. (1991) assumes that the barrel for lime and tar was increased by the same amount in 1665. In Jansson et al. (1991) the prices are transformed to the measures and weights that were valid from 1665 onwards. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 429 minted 1571–74, 32 which is the basis for estimating the inflation index from the deflator index. The deflator index shows a high figure in both 1574 and 1575, followed by an 80 per cent decrease in 1576. This would imply that the prices were still expressed in the old currency in 1575. To calculate an inflation index, the ratio of the deflator index in 1576 to 1575 is multiplied by the factor 6.5, based on the exchange rate between new and old marks. 8.5.2. The high-inflation period 1590–93 In the final years of the reign of Johan III (d. 1592), the value of the Swedish mark deteriorated rapidly and the rampant inflation caused much confusion, as discussed further in Chapter 4. In 1593 and 1594 the debased coins were exchanged for new coins, and the worst one-mark coins were reduced to ¼ of their face value. In this study it is therefore assumed that 1 new mark = 4 old marks. The price material, for example the accounts of Crown trade (Handlingsräkenska- perna) that form the basis for the deflator index, often displays a surprising stability in the early 1590s, which would suggest that the debased coins were accepted at their face value and did not cause any substantial inflation. Thus the deflator index does not show any increase in the recorded price level (it actually indicates a slight fall). Exactly which currency the CPI follows is not completely clear, but it does not show the expected upward trend. The effect of debasement on prices came with a time lag. As discussed in Chapter 4, it was not until 1592 that the debasement had a signifi- cant impact on prices and exchange rates, but it was in that year that a recoinage took place and prices were reported in the new coins. Thus the deflator index partly con- ceals the inflation of 1592. To calculate the inflation index from the deflator index in the period 1589–93, the deflator index is adjusted according to the exchange rate of the silver daler in the period 1589–92 (see Chapter 4) while the relation 1 new mark = 4 old marks is assumed for 1593. Between 1589 and 1593 the inflation index increased by 291 per cent. 8.5.3. The inflation period 1715–19 Another period of high inflation occurred in 1715–19, as a consequence of the circu- lation of token coins, as discussed in more detail in Chapter 4. Although initially the coin tokens did not cause any large price increase, at the end of this period prices did rise significantly. In 1719 the value of the coin tokens was reduced by 50 per cent; for that year it is therefore assumed here that 1 daler silvermynt in token coins = ½ daler silvermynt in proper money. 32 Wallroth (1918, p. 23). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 430 One question is whether the prices on which the deflator index is based are in proper coins or in token coins. The price of rye is based on proper coins, 33 while the prices of other products are probably in token coins. Since regulations depressed prices in token coins in Stockholm, the assumption in this study is that the basis for the deflator index was, in fact, prices in proper coins. In order to calculate an inflation index for 1717 and 1718 it is necessary to esti- mate the price level in token coins and in proper coins, which involves setting the exchange rate between the two types of currency (see Chapter 4). To transform the deflator index into the inflation index, the assumption here is that the ratio of prices in tokens coins to prices in proper coins was 1.06 in 1716, 1.24 in 1717, 1.5 in 1718 and 2 in 1719 (end-of-year figures). 8.6. The period 1732–1914 Gunnar Myrdal’s (1933) annual cost of living index extends back to 1830 and is still used by Statistics Sweden. 34 However, Myrdal’s index must be regarded as somewhat dated. A number of supplements can be made to this index in the light of new price data that have been produced by various researchers. A variety of consumer price indices for the 18th century are presented in Jörberg 33 Te price of rye for Stockholm in Jansson, Andersson Palm, och Söderberg (1991) is based on the sales of Uppsala Akademi in Stockholm in proper coins. Te latter series can be found in Hegardt (1975). 34 Statistiska centralbyrån (2005). Te emergency coins that were minted towards the end of the Great Nordic Wars circulated at the nominal value of 1 daler silvermynt, the equivalent in 1716 of an unskilled labourer’s wage for two days’ work in Stockholm. ‘Hoppet’ (Te Hope), the last emergency coin, minted in 1719, circulated at the nominal value of 2 öre silvermynt, which in that year was equiva- lent to an unskilled labourer’s wage in Stockholm for only 45 minutes’ work. Photo: Te Royal Coin Cabinet, Stockholm. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 431 (1972) and Åmark (1921). For the period 1732–1914 the present CPI is based on data in Jörberg (1972) and Myrdal (1933), supplemented with data on salt pub- lished in Stefan Carlén (1997) and price indices of various industrial products pre- sented by Lennart Schön (1988). Different weights apply to each of the periods 1732–82, 1782–1830, 1830–70 and 1870–1913 (see Table 8.3). The weights have been adjusted in accordance with earlier studies by Gunnar Myrdal and Lennart Jörberg, and to fit the patterns of consumption according to historical national accounts. 35 Figure 8.1 compares the present Consumer Price Index with Jörberg’s for 1732– 1914 and Myrdal’s for 1830–1914. The differences between the new CPI and Jör- berg’s index are negligible from 1732 up to about 1870. After that year, the new CPI does not increase as much as Jörberg’s index. This is due to the differences in the composition of index weights. For the period 1870–1914, the new CPI includes goods such as potatoes, sugar, coffee, gas and coke, which are missing in Jörberg’s index. For the period 1865–1914 lighting is not included in Jörberg’s index, whereas the new index includes goods that reflect this cost (rape oil and tallow candles). The new index thus includes more industrial goods and imported goods, which tended to become relatively cheaper in the decades after 1870. Compared to Myrdal’s index for the period 1830–1914, the differences with the new index are quite small. 35 Edvinsson (2005). A Stockholm Market in 1750, by an unknown artist. Source: Nordiska museet. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 432 Market Day in Linköping in 1891. Source: Östergötlands Länsmuseum. 0 20 40 60 80 100 120 140 160 180 200 Index Jörberg Index Myrdal New CPI I n d e x 1 8 5 0 = 1 0 0 1730 1750 1770 1790 1810 1830 1850 1870 1890 1910 Figure 8.1. Te present Consumer Price Index compared to Jörberg’s and Myrdal’s, 1732– 1914 (1850 = 100). Sources: Table A8.1, Jörberg (1972) and Myrdal (1933). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 433 Table 8.3. CPI weights (in per cent) in the present study, 1732–1914. 1732–82 1782–1830 1830–70 1870–1913 Rye 21 21 14.4 9.8 Barley 7.5 7.5 7.2 4.2 Wheat 2.25 2.25 2.16 4.9 Oats 4.5 4.5 4.32 2.8 Hard ryebread 1.44 1.4 Coffee 0.72 0.7 Sugar 0.72 0.7 Salt 0.75 0.75 0.72 0.7 Potatoes 2.88 2.8 Peas 2.25 2.25 2.16 1.4 Beef 4.5 4.5 4.32 5.6 Pork 6.75 6.75 6.48 9.8 Butter 18.75 18.75 2.88 4.9 Milk 15.12 12.6 Cheese 1.5 1.5 1.44 2.1 Eggs 0.75 0.75 0.72 1.4 Baltic herring 2.25 2.25 2.16 2.1 Dried fish 2.25 2.25 2.16 2.1 Birch wood 3 3 3 2 Pine wood 3 3 3 2 Charcoal 1 1 1 1 Gas 1 Coke 1 Tallow 2.3 1 1 1 Rape oil 0.65 0.8 Tallow candles 0.65 0.8 2.5 Linen 6 6 6.5 7 Coarse cloth 6 6 6.5 7 Tanned cow hides 1.2 1.2 1.4 1.5 Pig iron 0.5 0.5 1 1 Bar iron 0.5 0.5 1 1 Bricks 1 1 1.5 1.5 Tar 0.5 0.5 0.5 0.5 Sum 100 100 100 100 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 434 8.7. The period 1914–2008 For the period after 1914, the CPI is the same as the index presented by Statistics Sweden. The first official cost-of-living index was calculated from July 1914 and onwards. 36 The main concern was to represent the conditions of the life of the less well-to-do and it was therefore not a general CPI. Regional coverage was fairly wide. The quotations did not reflect prices in purely rural districts with agricultural production, but rather in towns, municipalities and important industrial districts. From 1918 the cost-of-living index was calculated four times a year, on about the 1st of January, April, July and October and the prices referred to the 15th of the last month of each quarter, i.e. 15th of December, 15th of March, 15th of July and 15th of October. Taxes were also included but are easily eliminated to obtain an index without taxes. This index continued on a quarterly basis up to 1954, when it was replaced by the monthly CPI. From September 1916 monthly indices were also calculated, but only for foodstuffs and fuel and lighting. In the period 1914–31, the quantities of the cost-of-living index were based on a budget enquiry in 1913–14 37 which happened to coincide with the price reference period (July 1914). During this period the cost-of-living index could therefore be considered to be of a Laspeyres type. In 1932 a revision was made; the new weights were based on the budget inquiry of 1923, while the price reference period was shifted to 1931. 38 The budget inquiry of 1923 was broader and also included some middle social layers. In 1939 a revision was made based on the budget enquiry of 1933. Since the weight reference period was not the same as the price reference period, the cost-of-living in the period 1932–43 was strictly speaking not a Laspeyres price index, but rather a Lowe price index. 39 In 1943 a major revision was made to the cost-of-living index based on the find- ings of a Commission in 1943, which recommended a chain index of Edgeworth’s type. The Edgeworth price index is a basket index (Lowe index) whose quantities are the arithmetic average of the quantities in two periods. 40 The revision of the house- hold budget was to be made every December. 41 One problem for the cost-of-living index arose during the World Wars. For exam- ple, during the First World War the deterioration in the quality of clothes was not taken into consideration, implying that the price increase was underestimated. 42 When Sweden left the gold standard in September 1931, it was feared that this would lead to price increases. Because of its special character, the cost-of-living index was seen as a not entirely satisfactory measure of changes in retail prices. This explains 36 Bouvin (1933). 37 Bouvin (1933, p. 160). 38 Kungl. Socialstyrelsen (1961, p. 92). 39 See ILO and others, (2004, p. 2). 40 ILO and others, (2004, p. 268). 41 Kungl. Socialstyrelsen (1961, pp. 101–4). 42 Bouvin (1933, p. 158). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 435 why the Riksbank constructed a monthly price index, called a consumption price index, in the period 1931–48 with the aim of obtaining an index that reflected price changes for the whole of private consumption, not just consumption by a specific type of household. Besides being monthly, this price index had the advantage that its weights were changed more frequently. The quantities used were in principle an average of the two periods compared. This was an advantage particularly during the Second World War, when several goods disappeared from the market. Seasonal fluc- tuations were eliminated for potatoes, eggs, fruit and vegetables by replacing the monthly price by the average of prices in the previous 12 months. 43 In 1931–7 the Riksbank’s consumption price index applied an arithmetic for- mula of the price index type, but from 1937 this was replaced by the geometric for- mula of a Törnqvist price index type. The Törnqvist price index is a weighted geo- metric average of price relatives using the arithmetic average of the expenditure shares in two periods. In 1949, the index was taken over by the Social Welfare Board, its name was changed to the General CPI of the Social Welfare Board and there was a return to the arithmetic formula. The method of changing weights annually was also applied to the cost-of-living index on the recommendation of the Commission from 1943. The formula used by the Riksbank in 1931–7 was adopted for the cost-of-living index from 1943 onwards. 44 The present official monthly CPI has been published by Statistics Sweden since June 1954. This index replaced the other indices. The fictive lower-income family was dropped and the index came to be a measure of price changes generally for the whole of private consumption. The CPI was linked to the cost-of-living index, not to the monthly Riksbank index, in spite of the fact that the Riksbank index was more similar to the construction of the CPI. The choice was made because the cost-of- living index had a more official character. 45 Chaining was based on a long-term index, which estimated the change from Decem- ber in the previous year to December in the present year, and a short-term index, which estimated the change from December in the previous year to the month in question in the present year. This followed the recommendation of the Commission in 1943. 46 The long-term index (L) used the weights for the present year, and was of an Edgeworth type. It was calculated as follows: 12 12 1 t, , t- L = ¯ ¯ i t i , t- i i t i t, i q p q p 12 1 12 (2) 43 Kungl. Socialstyrelsen (1961, pp. 104–6), Sveriges Riksbank, (1949, pp. 21*–30*), and Sveri- ges Riksbank, (1949, pp. 25 and 84–5). 44 Kungl. Socialstyrelsen (1961, pp. 104–6). 45 Kungl. Socialstyrelsen (1961, p. 107). 46 Statistiska centralbyrån (2001, pp. 18–9). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 436 The short term index (K) used the weights of the previous year, and was of a Laspeyres type. It was calculated as follows: t,m , t- K 12 1 = ¯ ¯ i t- i , t- i i t- i t,m i q p q p 1 12 1 1 (3) From January 2005 Statistics Sweden has changed its method once again. The computa- tions are made in two steps, applying an annual chain index. The long-term chaining is no longer made from December to December, but from one whole year to another using the Walsh formula (where the price reference period is the previous year, i.e. 0 = t-1). 47 The Walsh price index is a basket index (Lowe index) whose quantities are the geometric average of the quantities in the two periods. However, to estimate a monthly index, the price level of one month is compared to the price level two years earlier using that year’s quantities, i.e. in that case the Laspeyres formula is used. Hence, to calculate the price level of month m in year t in the price level of year r the following formula would be used (r > 2003, since Statistics Sweden used another method up to 2004): t,m r I = ( ) ( ) H ¯ ¯ ¯ ¯ ÷ + J J J J ` ' ' ' ( | 2 1 1 1 1 2 2 2 t r k i ,i k- k,i ,i k- i ,i k- k,i k,i i t- i t- i i t- i t,m i q q p q q p q p q p (4) One problem with Statistics Sweden’s officially produced CPI is that it is legally fixed and cannot be changed, even though errors are sometimes detected later. There- fore, a so-called shadow index is computed with corrections for these mistakes. In the period 1980–2000, six such mistakes were corrected in the shadow index. 48 For its historical CPI series, Statistics Sweden seems to use the shadow index rather than the legally fixed CPI. Statistics Sweden also produces other consumer-type price indices that are not considered here. 8.8. A short overview Figure 8.2 presents the deflator index and the inflation index for the period 1290– 2008. The scale is logarithmic. Between 1290 and 2008 the price level increased by a factor of 55 million, or, on average, by 2.5 per cent per year, which can be com- pared to the Riksbank’s present inflation target of two per cent per annum. Figure 8.2 shows that there is a secular pattern of inflation demarcated by inter- national events such as major wars. 47 Statistiska centralbyrån (2004) and Statistiska centralbyrån (2006, p. 61). 48 Statistiska centralbyrån (2001, p. 72). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 437 High inflation typified the 1350s and 1360s, and the 16th, 18th and 20th centu- ries. The average annual rate of inflation was 18 per cent in 1351–64, 6.3 per cent in 1518–1633, 3.5 per cent in 1715–1812 and 4.7 per cent in 1914–91. The high inflation in the 18th and 20th centuries was caused by the circulation of fiat monies. If the relative price of bullion does not change considerably, commodity money should be accompanied by price stability. Nevertheless, inflation under commodity money is well known. The highest inflation rate can be recorded for the 16th cen- tury, not the 20th, despite the presence of a commodity standard at the time (see Chapter 2). Most of the Middle Ages, the 17th and 19th centuries, and the period from the early 1990s onwards were accompanied by stability of prices. The average annual rate of inflation was 0.1 per cent in 1290–1351, 0.04 per cent in 1364–1518, 0.8 per cent in 1633–1715, 0.5 per cent in 1812–1914 and 1.7 per cent in 1991–2008. While the price stability in earlier periods was connected with the prevalent com- modity standards, the recent low inflation is combined with a fiat standard. Interestingly, Ola Grytten, who presents a CPI for Norway back to 1516, finds a similar pattern of the secular movement of prices as in Sweden, from the 16th cen- tury to today. 49 49 Grytten (2004, pp. 73–4). Figure 8.2 Te two CPIs, the defator index and the infation index, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). Source: Table A8.1. 0.00001 0.0001 0.001 0.01 0.1 1 10 100 1,000 10,000 1300 1400 1500 1600 1700 1800 1900 2000 Deflator index Inflation index Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 438 8.9. The CPI at work It is time for some illustrations of the potential usefulness of the new CPI. Below we briefly present two applications, relating to iron and grain prices, and land prices, respectively. A further example concerning the real wage is given in Chapter 9. Deflating the price of an item by the CPI could be interpreted as a calculation of that item’s real price, since such a series shows how much the item could buy in terms of goods and services constituting the CPI. 8.9.1. Iron and grain prices Figure 8.3 presents the evolution of the price of iron in Stockholm, deflated by the CPI deflator index, in the very long term. The medieval prices refer to osmond iron, but from 1540 onwards they pertain to bar iron (the two series have been linked at Te Dannemora Iron Mine in Uppland, by Elias Martin (1739–1818). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 439 that year). Bar iron was a more refined product which cost about twice as much per weight unit as osmond iron. From the latter 14th century up to the First World War, the real price of iron was reduced by a factor of ten. It is striking that this decline in the real price of iron did not accelerate in the early modern era. Instead, the reduction of the deflated price proceeded at a fairly constant rate up to the early 18th century, when the real price rose. Presumably, technological progress and economies of scale was the main factors behind the long-term decline in the relative price of iron. However, the upward shift in the deflated price curve around 1720 is probably due to the Swedish authorities’ deliberate attempts to hold back output and limit the supply of exported iron in the hope that this would raise the price in the major mar- ket, England. As a result, exports were largely constant for half a century up to about 1780, despite a growing demand for iron in the world market. The real price of grains, on the other hand, roughly follows an inverted U-shaped curve. The real price of grains rose during the late Middle Ages and the 16th century, stagnated during the 17th century, climbed again and peaked during the latter dec- ades of the 18th century. These trends conform to the trends in population, with the 16th and 18th centuries as growth periods. In the first half of the 19th century, how- ever, something decisive happened. The relative price of grain began to drop. For the first time, there were long periods when per capita harvests rose. These price relations capture the fundamental production problems of pre-indus- 10 100 1,000 1300 1400 1500 1600 1700 1800 1900 2000 Iron Grains Figure 8.3: Prices of iron and grains in Sweden defated by the CPI defator index, 1291– 2007 (index 1580–99 = 100). Source: See the main text. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 440 trial society. Agricultural per capita growth came late, and this large but relatively immobile sector dominated the economy for centuries. Once agriculture began to industrialize, however, the changes were dramatic and rapid. During the second half of the 20th century, the drop in the real price of grains was much larger than for iron. The fall in the relative price of grains has continued until very recently. Signs of a reversal occur at the very end of the series, though this is an upsurge from a his- torically extremely low level of the relative price of grain. 8.9.2. Land prices Even though land was one of the most important commodities in the pre-industrial economy, land prices in Sweden have not been studied extensively. An exception is the recent pioneering study by Bo Franzén (2006), presenting the evolution of land prices for part of the medieval era up to 1370. Figure 8.4 presents results from a pilot study of land prices, deflated by the CPI deflator index. It is based on 605 land sales, primarily in the province of Uppland, from 1294 to 1651. The long-term decline in this relative price is notable. Previous research has observed that the relative price of land dropped after the Black Death. It is clear from these data that the decline continued throughout most of the 16th cen- tury, and that the relative price of land did not turn upwards until after about 1580. This may at first sight seem surprising, since population growth was probably sub- stantial during the 16th century as a whole. The longevity of the decline may be explained by restrictions on the land market, forcing the seller to offer the land to his or her relatives before selling to anybody else. Land purchases had to be registered in the local court, which sometimes applied fixed prices per land that were considerably below prices in the unrestricted market. 8.10. Summary and conclusions The purpose of this chapter is to present a CPI for Sweden for the period 1290– 2008. The index is linked up with the present CPI published by Statistics Sweden. The basic advantage of the CPI presented in this chapter is that it allows the link- ing of medieval price data to those of more recent periods. It makes it possible to estimate the inflation rate during various periods and to compare the price level in one year with the price level in an earlier year. This also opens up for broader inter- national comparisons, making possible an extended analysis of Swedish prices in a European and global context. Constructing an index that covers more than seven centuries poses conceptual as well as empirical problems. It raises many more questions than do modern type con- sumer price indices. For example, the currency unit was changed on numerous occasions, and in some periods multiple currencies were used at a floating exchange rate relative to each 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 441 other. During so-called debasement cycles, the currency deteriorated and was later replaced by a stronger currency at a reduced value. There are different ways of con- structing a price index under such circumstances. The chapter presents two different CPIs: a deflator index and an inflation index. The deflator index follows the main currency unit through time; mark for the period 1290–1624, daler kopparmynt 1624–1776, specie riksdaler 1776–89, riks- daler riksgälds 1789–1855, riksdaler riksmynt 1855–73, and krona for the period 1873 onwards. The deflator index is an index of prices expressed in the main Swed- ish currency unit: 1 SEK = 72 marks. The inflation index is constructed to take into consideration times of very high inflation, when inflation money was circulated and was later replaced by a more sta- ble currency. This occurred in six periods: 1351–4, 1361–4, 1521–4, 1561–6, 1590–3 and 1715–9. At the end of these inflation periods, the inflation coins could 1 10 100 1,000 10,000 1260 1300 1340 1380 1420 1460 1500 1540 1580 1620 1660 Figure 8.4. Land prices per öresland in East Sweden, 1294–1651, defated by the CPI (1500 = 100). Sources: Table A8.1, Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven, Svenska riks- archivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351, vol 1 and 2 (1866–1868); Uppländska domböcker (1925–1956), vol. 1–9, Sjuhundra härads domböcker 1601–1651 (1984). Note. Te öresland was part of the medieval and early modern land measurement system in East Sweden, in which 1 markland = 8 öresland = 24 örtugland. Tese units aimed at capturing the yield of a farming unit rather than measuring its area. Terefore, no exact translation can be made into modern measurements. It is clear, however, that one öresland was not a large landholding. Dovring (1947, p. 31) estimates the median size of the markland at about 14 hectares by the mid-16th cen- tury. Te normal size of the öresland would then be slightly less than 2 hectares. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 442 be exchanged for the new coins, albeit at a much lower rate than was nominally assigned to the inflation coins. The inflation index takes into account that the infla- tion coins were devalued by two thirds in 1354, by 50 per cent in 1364, by 61.5 per cent in 1524, by 11/13 in 1576, by 75 per cent in 1593 and by 50 per cent in 1719, whereas the deflator index does not. When prices were expressed in proper coins, they have been converted into prices in inflation coins by using the exchange rate between these coins. This chapter argues that if the purpose is to measure the rate of inflation over longer time spans, a price index should be measured in the currency most in use, which usually is the weaker one. Under such assumptions the old, debased currency, and the new, better currency must be viewed as two different cur- rencies (going under the same name), which our inflation index takes into account. This study finds that in the period 1290–2008 the average annual rate of Swedish inflation was 2.5 per cent, only slightly above the Riksbank’s present inflation target. There was also a clear secular movement in prices. While the 14th, 16th, 18th and 20th centuries saw high rates of inflation, the 15th, 17th and 19th centuries were characterised by relative price stability. Whether the 21st century will once again mark the return of price stability is an open question. The chapter also presents some examples of how our CPI could be used. By deflat- ing various relative prices by the CPI, some long-term economic trends can be ana- lysed. Our study finds that the relative price of iron declined significantly from the latter 14th century to the early 18th century. On the other hand, the relative price of grain either increased or stagnated before the industrial revolution. In Chapter 9 it is shown that real wage rates even declined between the 15th and the early 19th centu- ries. These price relations capture the fundamental production problems of pre- industrial society. The iron industry shows that there was a dynamic sector in the pre-industrial period that could achieve significant advances in productivity. How- ever, before the industrial revolution this sector was too small to generate substantial increases in the living standards of a majority of the population. Agricultural per capita growth came first in the 19th century, and this large but relatively immobile sector dominated the pre-industrial economy. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 443 Appendix A8: Summary table Table A8.1. Te two Consumer Price Indices, the defator and infation indices, for Sweden, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). Year Deflator index Inflation index Year Deflator index Inflation index Year Deflator index Inflation index 1290 0.0644 0.000079 1335 0.0666 0.000082 1380 0.0570 0.000422 1291 0.0645 0.000080 1336 0.0687 0.000085 1381 0.0656 0.000485 1292 0.0708 0.000087 1337 0.0703 0.000087 1382 0.0671 0.000497 1293 0.0954 0.000118 1338 0.0730 0.000090 1383 0.0652 0.000482 1294 0.0523 0.000065 1339 0.0674 0.000083 1384 0.0648 0.000480 1295 0.0707 0.000087 1340 0.0703 0.000087 1385 0.0608 0.000450 1296 0.0584 0.000072 1341 0.0687 0.000085 1386 0.0605 0.000448 1297 0.0522 0.000064 1342 0.0700 0.000086 1387 0.0601 0.000445 1298 0.0445 0.000055 1343 0.0715 0.000088 1388 0.0653 0.000483 1299 0.0368 0.000045 1344 0.0729 0.000090 1389 0.0607 0.000449 1300 0.0368 0.000045 1345 0.0732 0.000090 1390 0.0605 0.000448 1301 0.0368 0.000045 1346 0.0681 0.000084 1391 0.0681 0.000504 1302 0.0584 0.000072 1347 0.0672 0.000083 1392 0.0650 0.000482 1303 0.0465 0.000057 1348 0.0669 0.000083 1393 0.0623 0.000461 1304 0.0560 0.000069 1349 0.0738 0.000091 1394 0.0651 0.000482 1305 0.0550 0.000068 1350 0.0624 0.000077 1395 0.0641 0.000475 1306 0.0702 0.000087 1351 0.0713 0.000088 1396 0.0640 0.000474 1307 0.0571 0.000071 1352 0.1272 0.000157 1397 0.0633 0.000469 1308 0.0561 0.000069 1353 0.1831 0.000226 1398 0.0651 0.000482 1309 0.0512 0.000063 1354 0.0555 0.000205 1399 0.0635 0.000470 1310 0.0579 0.000072 1355 0.0596 0.000221 1400 0.0623 0.000462 1311 0.0572 0.000071 1356 0.0596 0.000221 1401 0.0628 0.000465 1312 0.0644 0.000079 1357 0.0628 0.000233 1402 0.0637 0.000472 1313 0.2737 0.000338 1358 0.0596 0.000221 1403 0.0624 0.000462 1314 0.0797 0.000098 1359 0.0620 0.000229 1404 0.0621 0.000460 1315 0.0797 0.000098 1360 0.0678 0.000251 1405 0.1300 0.000962 1316 0.0797 0.000098 1361 0.1263 0.000467 1406 0.1274 0.000943 1317 0.0797 0.000098 1362 0.1548 0.000573 1407 0.0741 0.000549 1318 0.0797 0.000098 1363 0.0699 0.000518 1408 0.0771 0.000571 1319 0.0575 0.000071 1364 0.1026 0.000760 1409 0.0721 0.000534 1320 0.0626 0.000077 1365 0.0997 0.000738 1410 0.0623 0.000462 1321 0.0659 0.000081 1366 0.0845 0.000626 1411 0.0690 0.000511 1322 0.0593 0.000073 1367 0.0819 0.000607 1412 0.0567 0.000420 1323 0.0569 0.000070 1368 0.0687 0.000509 1413 0.0777 0.000575 1324 0.0553 0.000068 1369 0.0766 0.000567 1414 0.0953 0.000705 1325 0.0610 0.000075 1370 0.0716 0.000530 1415 0.0867 0.000642 1326 0.0695 0.000086 1371 0.0721 0.000534 1416 0.0856 0.000634 1327 0.0753 0.000093 1372 0.0719 0.000532 1417 0.0680 0.000503 1328 0.1230 0.000152 1373 0.0708 0.000524 1418 0.0746 0.000553 1329 0.0710 0.000088 1374 0.0653 0.000483 1419 0.0707 0.000524 1330 0.0692 0.000085 1375 0.0712 0.000527 1420 0.0627 0.000464 1331 0.0676 0.000083 1376 0.0608 0.000450 1421 0.0741 0.000549 1332 0.0602 0.000074 1377 0.0610 0.000452 1422 0.0837 0.000619 1333 0.0676 0.000083 1378 0.0612 0.000453 1423 0.0865 0.000641 1334 0.0684 0.000084 1379 0.0710 0.000526 1424 0.0725 0.000537 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 444 Year Deflator index Inflation index Year Deflator index Inflation index Year Deflator index Inflation index 1425 0.0700 0.000518 1471 0.0783 0.000580 1517 0.1004 0.000744 1426 0.0727 0.000538 1472 0.0750 0.000555 1518 0.0953 0.000706 1427 0.0621 0.000460 1473 0.0644 0.000477 1519 0.1228 0.000909 1428 0.0621 0.000460 1474 0.0542 0.000402 1520 0.0931 0.000690 1429 0.0741 0.000549 1475 0.0561 0.000415 1521 0.1371 0.001015 1430 0.0757 0.000561 1476 0.0619 0.000459 1522 0.1922 0.001423 1431 0.0619 0.000458 1477 0.0533 0.000394 1523 0.3017 0.002234 1432 0.0600 0.000444 1478 0.0499 0.000370 1524 0.1259 0.002421 1433 0.0573 0.000424 1479 0.0482 0.000357 1525 0.1215 0.002336 1434 0.0667 0.000494 1480 0.0636 0.000471 1526 0.1015 0.001951 1435 0.0591 0.000437 1481 0.0649 0.000480 1527 0.1646 0.003166 1436 0.0593 0.000439 1482 0.0669 0.000496 1528 0.1546 0.002973 1437 0.0567 0.000420 1483 0.0649 0.000481 1529 0.1305 0.002510 1438 0.0797 0.000590 1484 0.0677 0.000501 1530 0.1597 0.003072 1439 0.0736 0.000545 1485 0.0596 0.000441 1531 0.1491 0.002867 1440 0.0661 0.000489 1486 0.0702 0.000520 1532 0.1526 0.002934 1441 0.0686 0.000508 1487 0.0675 0.000500 1533 0.1442 0.002773 1442 0.0632 0.000468 1488 0.0747 0.000553 1534 0.1328 0.002555 1443 0.0673 0.000498 1489 0.0685 0.000507 1535 0.1390 0.002673 1444 0.0687 0.000509 1490 0.0844 0.000625 1536 0.1289 0.002478 1445 0.0587 0.000435 1491 0.0833 0.000616 1537 0.1402 0.002696 1446 0.0607 0.000450 1492 0.0807 0.000597 1538 0.1485 0.002855 1447 0.0563 0.000417 1493 0.0731 0.000541 1539 0.1789 0.003440 1448 0.0780 0.000577 1494 0.0707 0.000524 1540 0.1693 0.003255 1449 0.0731 0.000541 1495 0.0627 0.000464 1541 0.1806 0.003474 1450 0.0614 0.000455 1496 0.0590 0.000437 1542 0.2115 0.004068 1451 0.0615 0.000455 1497 0.0553 0.000410 1543 0.2223 0.004276 1452 0.0605 0.000448 1498 0.0622 0.000461 1544 0.2316 0.004454 1453 0.0508 0.000376 1499 0.0727 0.000538 1545 0.2450 0.004712 1454 0.0643 0.000476 1500 0.0802 0.000593 1546 0.2042 0.003927 1455 0.0987 0.000731 1501 0.0648 0.000480 1547 0.2262 0.004349 1456 0.0923 0.000683 1502 0.0546 0.000404 1548 0.2306 0.004434 1457 0.0728 0.000539 1503 0.0657 0.000487 1549 0.2827 0.005436 1458 0.0749 0.000554 1504 0.0657 0.000486 1550 0.2942 0.005657 1459 0.0709 0.000525 1505 0.0728 0.000539 1551 0.2892 0.005562 1460 0.0722 0.000535 1506 0.0873 0.000646 1552 0.2635 0.005067 1461 0.0751 0.000556 1507 0.0875 0.000648 1553 0.2927 0.005629 1462 0.0795 0.000589 1508 0.1102 0.000816 1554 0.2913 0.005603 1463 0.0738 0.000546 1509 0.0969 0.000718 1555 0.2873 0.005525 1464 0.0703 0.000520 1510 0.0866 0.000641 1556 0.3165 0.006086 1465 0.0696 0.000516 1511 0.0960 0.000711 1557 0.2826 0.005435 1466 0.0639 0.000473 1512 0.0781 0.000578 1558 0.2829 0.005440 1467 0.0666 0.000493 1513 0.0841 0.000623 1559 0.2887 0.005552 1468 0.0666 0.000493 1514 0.0808 0.000598 1560 0.3170 0.006096 1469 0.0758 0.000561 1515 0.0873 0.000647 1561 0.3285 0.006318 1470 0.0847 0.000627 1516 0.0800 0.000592 1562 0.4035 0.007759 Table A8.1 (cont.). Te two Consumer Price Indices, the defator and infation indices, for Sweden, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 445 Year Deflator index Inflation index Year Deflator index Inflation index Year Deflator index Inflation index 1563 0.4326 0.008318 1609 0.7138 0.3569 1655 2.555 1.277 1564 0.5541 0.01066 1610 0.8212 0.4106 1656 2.702 1.351 1565 0.5765 0.01109 1611 0.7326 0.3663 1657 2.880 1.440 1566 0.5484 0.01055 1612 0.8189 0.4094 1658 2.423 1.211 1567 0.6269 0.01206 1613 0.8410 0.4205 1659 3.025 1.512 1568 0.7167 0.01378 1614 0.8950 0.4475 1660 3.068 1.534 1569 0.7803 0.01501 1615 0.8882 0.4441 1661 3.562 1.781 1570 1.0237 0.01969 1616 0.8830 0.4415 1662 3.359 1.680 1571 1.5058 0.02896 1617 0.8033 0.4017 1663 3.405 1.703 1572 1.6848 0.03240 1618 0.9029 0.4514 1664 3.175 1.588 1573 2.1575 0.04149 1619 0.8223 0.4112 1665 3.473 1.736 1574 2.2457 0.04319 1620 0.7584 0.3792 1666 3.362 1.681 1575 2.1036 0.04045 1621 0.6264 0.3132 1667 3.387 1.693 1576 0.4141 0.05177 1622 0.7185 0.3593 1668 2.877 1.439 1577 0.4021 0.05026 1623 0.8199 0.4099 1669 3.074 1.537 1578 0.4142 0.05177 1624 0.8536 0.4268 1670 2.843 1.422 1579 0.4169 0.05211 1625 0.8475 0.4237 1671 2.834 1.417 1580 0.4583 0.05729 1626 0.9672 0.4836 1672 3.298 1.649 1581 0.4132 0.05165 1627 1.044 0.5220 1673 2.929 1.465 1582 0.3843 0.04803 1628 1.428 0.7139 1674 4.127 2.063 1583 0.3904 0.04881 1629 1.520 0.7600 1675 4.013 2.007 1584 0.4034 0.05043 1630 1.984 0.9918 1676 3.636 1.818 1585 0.4211 0.05264 1631 1.941 0.9703 1677 4.234 2.117 1586 0.4421 0.05526 1632 1.839 0.9197 1678 4.093 2.047 1587 0.4597 0.05746 1633 2.309 1.155 1679 3.731 1.865 1588 0.5159 0.06449 1634 2.220 1.110 1680 3.058 1.529 1589 0.5003 0.06253 1635 2.042 1.021 1681 2.960 1.480 1590 0.5219 0.06523 1636 2.079 1.039 1682 2.850 1.425 1591 0.5448 0.06810 1637 1.996 0.998 1683 2.865 1.432 1592 0.4895 0.2448 1638 1.956 0.978 1684 3.857 1.928 1593 0.5978 0.2989 1639 2.076 1.038 1685 2.982 1.491 1594 0.4716 0.2358 1640 2.048 1.024 1686 2.859 1.429 1595 0.5266 0.2633 1641 2.386 1.193 1687 3.003 1.502 1596 0.6918 0.3459 1642 2.398 1.199 1688 3.215 1.607 1597 0.8003 0.4001 1643 2.340 1.170 1689 3.058 1.529 1598 0.6755 0.3378 1644 2.690 1.345 1690 3.129 1.564 1599 0.6759 0.3379 1645 2.328 1.164 1691 3.003 1.502 1600 0.5360 0.2680 1646 2.380 1.190 1692 3.193 1.597 1601 0.6980 0.3490 1647 2.358 1.179 1693 4.425 2.212 1602 0.7235 0.3618 1648 2.414 1.207 1694 4.155 2.077 1603 0.6457 0.3229 1649 2.822 1.411 1695 3.111 1.555 1604 0.6779 0.3390 1650 3.894 1.947 1696 4.244 2.122 1605 0.6231 0.3115 1651 3.040 1.520 1697 5.036 2.518 1606 0.6231 0.3115 1652 3.854 1.927 1698 5.266 2.633 1607 0.6761 0.3381 1653 2.395 1.198 1699 4.244 2.122 1608 0.6674 0.3337 1654 2.386 1.193 1700 3.894 1.947 Table A8.1 (cont.). Te two Consumer Price Indices, the defator and infation indices, for Sweden, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 446 Year Deflator index Inflation index Year Both indices Year Both indices Year Both indices 1701 3.454 1.727 1747 6.007 1793 15.43 1839 61.43 1702 3.805 1.902 1748 6.453 1794 17.72 1840 61.02 1703 3.765 1.882 1749 6.022 1795 18.63 1841 63.81 1704 3.252 1.626 1750 5.764 1796 18.51 1842 63.40 1705 3.556 1.778 1751 6.070 1797 19.04 1843 60.35 1706 3.504 1.752 1752 6.067 1798 20.63 1844 55.46 1707 4.130 2.065 1753 5.923 1799 23.93 1845 61.63 1708 4.327 2.163 1754 6.202 1800 28.66 1846 63.87 1709 6.098 3.049 1755 6.627 1801 27.87 1847 64.63 1710 3.976 1.988 1756 7.364 1802 27.06 1848 60.93 1711 3.651 1.825 1757 7.949 1803 25.98 1849 60.41 1712 3.863 1.931 1758 7.967 1804 27.10 1850 63.43 1713 3.715 1.858 1759 7.511 1805 28.01 1851 65.58 1714 4.680 2.340 1760 7.824 1806 31.70 1852 64.99 1715 4.348 2.174 1761 9.079 1807 32.82 1853 70.05 1716 5.266 2.791 1762 12.65 1808 42.37 1854 71.50 1717 7.913 4.906 1763 13.71 1809 43.00 1855 83.40 1718 7.790 5.843 1764 14.49 1810 43.82 1856 89.23 1719 9.983 9.983 1765 13.58 1811 50.29 1857 87.34 1720 6.172 6.172 1766 12.05 1812 59.73 1858 75.22 1721 6.038 6.038 1767 9.80 1813 58.36 1859 73.23 1722 4.964 4.964 1768 8.61 1814 57.13 1860 79.24 1723 4.830 4.830 1769 8.50 1815 54.06 1861 82.92 1724 4.703 4.703 1770 9.48 1816 58.12 1862 80.56 1725 4.673 4.673 1771 11.66 1817 59.04 1863 77.43 1726 5.079 5.079 1772 12.24 1818 60.78 1864 73.41 1727 5.140 5.140 1773 11.28 1819 61.33 1865 73.81 1728 4.606 4.606 1774 9.92 1820 55.13 1866 76.62 1729 4.327 4.327 1775 11.62 1821 51.05 1867 85.84 1730 4.272 4.272 1776 11.61 1822 51.42 1868 85.10 1731 4.054 4.054 1777 11.85 1823 49.06 1869 76.91 1732 4.084 4.084 1778 12.48 1824 49.30 1870 77.17 1733 4.401 4.401 1779 12.30 1825 50.83 1871 78.68 1734 4.242 4.242 1780 12.39 1826 60.37 1872 82.17 1735 4.414 4.414 1781 13.05 1827 54.04 1873 89.44 1736 4.604 4.604 1782 13.09 1828 50.22 1874 90.78 1737 4.148 4.148 1783 13.67 1829 53.24 1875 89.84 1738 3.985 3.985 1784 12.43 1830 55.88 1876 89.80 1739 4.389 4.389 1785 13.29 1831 61.32 1877 89.60 1740 5.149 5.149 1786 13.60 1832 56.94 1878 81.71 1741 5.716 5.716 1787 12.83 1833 55.65 1879 77.94 1742 5.312 5.312 1788 13.58 1834 57.20 1880 82.62 1743 5.136 5.136 1789 13.95 1835 56.81 1881 84.34 1744 4.912 4.912 1790 13.91 1836 58.34 1882 83.73 1745 5.432 5.432 1791 13.72 1837 61.69 1883 82.03 1746 5.669 5.669 1792 14.63 1838 63.82 1884 78.99 Table A8.1 (cont.). Te two Consumer Price Indices, the defator and infation indices, for Sweden, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 447 Table A8.1 (cont.). Te two Consumer Price Indices, the defator and infation indices, for Sweden, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). Year Both indices Year Both indices Year Both indices Year Both indices Year Both indices 1885 74.88 1910 91.69 1935 155 1960 407 1985 2246 1886 71.05 1911 92.80 1936 157 1961 416 1986 2341 1887 66.91 1912 97.72 1937 162 1962 436 1987 2440 1888 71.00 1913 98.80 1938 165 1963 449 1988 2582 1889 73.15 1914 100.1 1939 170 1964 463 1989 2748 1890 74.40 1915 115 1940 193 1965 487 1990 3036 1891 79.27 1916 130 1941 219 1966 519 1991 3319 1892 75.95 1917 164 1942 234 1967 540 1992 3395 1893 73.85 1918 241 1943 235 1968 551 1993 3553 1894 70.01 1919 266 1944 234 1969 566 1994 3631 1895 70.07 1920 271 1945 233 1970 605 1995 3723 1896 70.63 1921 221 1946 234 1971 650 1996 3740 1897 73.80 1922 184 1947 241 1972 689 1997 3760 1898 76.27 1923 174 1948 255 1973 735 1998 3754 1899 80.85 1924 174 1949 256 1974 808 1999 3772 1900 83.05 1925 177 1950 260 1975 887 2000 3809 1901 82.58 1926 171 1951 304 1976 979 2001 3902 1902 82.94 1927 169 1952 326 1977 1090 2002 3986 1903 82.59 1928 170 1953 328 1978 1200 2003 4063 1904 82.62 1929 168 1954 331 1979 1286 2004 4078 1905 83.98 1930 162 1955 339 1980 1461 2005 4097 1906 86.91 1931 157 1956 356 1981 1638 2006 4153 1907 91.32 1932 155 1957 372 1982 1778 2007 4243 1908 93.15 1933 151 1958 388 1983 1937 2008 4390 1909 91.81 1934 152 1959 391 1984 2092 2009 (4378) Sources: See the main text. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 448 Primary sources Göteborgs landsarkiv Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900, Signum L I (Kollegiernas protokoll), vol. 4–6. Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900, Signum G d (Handlingar angående hospitalet), vol. 20 and 22. Kungliga biblioteket Stockholms stads priscourant, 1740–55 and 1761–67 (microflmed). Riksarkivet ‘Myntz och Sölfwers Werdering’, in Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar, Misc. 26 Mynt- väsen, vol. 4. Svenskt Diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven, www.ra.se/ra/diplo- mat.html (2007-06-01). Stockholms stadsarkiv Stockholms stads priscourant, (1752), 1756–60, 1768–74 and 1776 (microflmed). Wahrendorffska arkivet Stockholms stads priscourant, 1775–76 (microflmed). Published primary materials Sjuhundra härads domböcker 1601–1651 (1984), vol. 1, Norrtälje släktforskarfören- ing, Norrtälje. Editor: Sundelius, N. Stockholms stads statistiska kontor (1906–36), Statistisk månadsskrift, Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1589–1591 (1948), Stockholms stadsböcker från äldre tid. Ser. 2, N.F.:8, Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939–), Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt burspråk (1917) Kungl. Samfundet för utgivande af handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Edited by E Hildebrand. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 449 Svenska riks-archivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351 (1866–68), vol. 1 (1351– 82), and vol. 2 (1383–1400), Riksarkivet, Stockholm. Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven (SDhk) www.ra.se/ra/ diplomat.html (2008-09-01). Uppländska domböcker (1925–56), vol. 1-9, Kungl. Humanistiska Vetenskapssam- fundet i Uppsala, Uppsala. References and secondary sources Ahlström, G (1972), ‘Part IV. Te Period 1776–1802’, in Jörberg, L, A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914, vol. 2, GWK Gleerup, Lund. Andræ, C G (1965), ‘Studier i Funbo kyrkas räkenskaper’, Historisk tidskrift, vol. 85, pp. 385–440. Bjurling, O (1945), Skånes utrikessjöfart 1660-1720: En studie i Skånes handelssjöfart, Gleerup, Lund. Bouvin, S (1933), ‘Appendix. Te Of cial Statistics of Retail Prices and Cost of Liv- ing in Sweden up to 1931’, in Myrdal, G (ed.), Te Cost of Living in Sweden 1830–1930, P.S. King & Son, Ltd, Westminster. Carlén, S (1997), Staten som marknadens salt: en studie i institutionsbildning, kollek- tivt handlande och tidig välfärdspolitik på en strategisk varumarknad i övergången mellan merkantilism och liberalism 1720-1862, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Dovring, F (1947), Attungen och marklandet: Studier över agrara förhållanden i medeltidens Sverige, Gleerup, Lund. Edvinsson, R (2005), Growth, Accumulation, Crisis: With New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800-2000, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Ericson, L (1988), Borgare och byråkrater. Omvandlingen av Stockholms stadsförvalt- ning 1599-1637, Stockholm. Franzén, B (2006), Folkungatidens monetära system: penningen mellan pest och patriar- kat 1254-1370, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Franzén, B, and J Söderberg (2006), ‘Svenska spannmålspriser under medeltiden i ett europeiskt perspektiv’, Historisk Tidskrift, vol. 126, no. 2, pp. 189–214. Fregert, K, och R Gustafsson (2005), Fiscal statistics for Sweden 1719–2003, Working Papers, Department of Economics, Lund University, No 2005:40, http://swopec. hhs.se/lunewp/abs/lunewp2005_040.htm (2005-10-01). Grytten, O (2004), ‘A consumer price index for Norway’, in Eitrheim, Ø, J Klov- land, and J Qvigstad (eds.), Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway 1819–2003, Norges bank, Oslo. Hammarström I (1956), Finansförvaltning och varuhandel 1504–1540: Studier i de yngre sturarnas Gustav Vasas statshushållning, Almqvist & Wiksell, Uppsala. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 450 Hannerberg, D (1949), ‘Centrala och of ciella svenska spannmålsmått från 1500-talets mitt till 1665’, K Lantbruksakademiens tidskrift, vol. 85. Hansson, G (2006), Såld spannmål av kyrkotionden: Priser i Östergötland under Sver- iges stormaktstid, Umeå universitet, Umeå. Heckscher, E (1935–49), Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa, vol. I:1, I:2, II:1 and II:2, Bonnier, Stockholm. Hegardt, A (1975), Akademiens spannmål: Uppbörd, handel och priser vid Uppsala universitet 1635–1719, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Hildebrand, H (1894, reprinted 1983), Sveriges medeltid, vol. I:2, Städerna, Nor- stedts (reprint: Gidlunds), Stockholm. ILO, IMF, OECD, Eurostat, FN and World Bank (2004), Consumer Price Index Manual: Teory and Practice, Geneva. Jansson, A, L Palm, och J Söderberg (1991), Dagligt bröd i onda tider: Priser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1770, Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskning, Gothenburg. Jansson, S O (1981), ‘Läst’, Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid, vol. 11, Rosenkilde og Bagger, København. Jansson, S O (1981), ‘Skippund, Sverige’, Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid, vol. 15, Rosenkilde og Bagger, København. Jansson, S O (1995), Måttordboken, andra upplagan, Nordiska museets förlag, Stock- holm. Jörberg, L (1972), A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914, vol. 1-2, Gleerup, Lund. Kungl. Socialstyrelsen (1961), Konsumentpriser och indexberäkningar åren 1931– 1959, Stockholm. Lagerqvist, L, and E Nathorst-Böös (2002), Vad kostade det? - priser och löner från medeltid till våra dagar, 5th edition, Natur och kultur/LT, Stockholm. Lindgren, H (1971), Spannmålshandel och priser vid Uppsala akademi 1720–1789: en prövning av markegångstaxornas källvärde, Almqvist & Wiksell, Uppsala. Lönnroth, E (1940), Statsmakt och statsfnans i det medeltida Sverige: Studier över skat- teväsen och länsförvaltning, Wettergren & Kerbergs förlag. Morell, M (1988), Om mått- och viktsystemens utveckling i Sverige sedan 1500-talet, Uppsala Papers in Economic History, Research report 16. Myrdal, G (1933), Te Cost of Living in Sweden 1830–1930, P.S. King & Son, West- minster. Nationalencyklopedin (1991), vol. 6, article ‘Fat’, Bra Böcker, Höganäs. Odén, B (1960), Kopparhandel och statsmonopol: studier i svensk handelshistoria under senare 1500-talet, Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Sahlgren, N (1981), ‘Tunna’, Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid, vol. 19, Rosenkilde og Bagger, København. 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 451 Sandström, Å (1983), ‘Stockholms stads fnanser 1608–1621’, Historisk Tidskrift, vol. 103. von Schwerin, F B, (1903), Bidrag till kännedom af fäderneslandet, Norstedt, Stock- holm. Schön, L (1988), Historiska nationalräkenskaper för Sverige. 2, Industri och hantverk 1800–1980, Ekonomisk-historiska föreningen, Lund. Statistiska centralbyrån (2001), Te Swedish Consumer Price Index: A handbook of methods. Örebro. [Written by Jörgen Dalén]. Statistiska centralbyrån (2004), Förbättrad KPI-konstruktion från januari 2005: Teknisk beskrivning, http://www.scb.se/statistik/PR/PR0101/2004M03/ Pm11307.pdf (2006-06-01). Statistiska centralbyrån (2005), Statistiska Meddelanden PR 15 SM 0501, Kon- sumentprisindex 1830–2004 (Consumer Price Index 1830–2004). Statistiska centralbyrån (2006), Statistiska Meddelanden PR 15 SM 0601, Kon- sumentprisindex 1830–2005 (Consumer Price Index 1830–2004). Stiernstedt, A (1863), Om kopparmyntningen i Sverige och dess utländska besittningar, vol. I, Stockholm. Sussman, N (1993), ‘Debasements, Royal Revenues, and Infation in France During the Hundred Years’ War, 1415–1422’, Te Journal of Economic History, vol. 53, no. 1 (March), pp. 44–70. Sveriges riksbank (1909–78), Årsbok – Sveriges riksbank, Stockholm. Sveriges Riksbank (1931), Statistiska tabeller. Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet, vol. V, Norstedts, Stockholm. Sveriges riksbank (1979–2001), Statistisk årsbok – Sveriges riksbank, Stockholm. Söderberg, J (1987), ‘Hade Heckscher rätt? Priser och reallöner i 1500-talets Stock- holm’, Historisk tidskrift, vol. 107, no. 3, pp. 341–56. Söderberg, J (1993), ‘Infation i 1500- och 1600-talets Sverige’, in PECVNIA. Skrifter i mynt- och penninghistoriska ämnen utgivna av Kungl. Myntkabinettet, Stockholm, no. 4. Söderberg, J (2002), Priser i Stockholm 1539–1620, version 3, maj 2002. Excel fle, http://www.iisg.nl/hpw/stockholm.xls (2005-09-04). Söderberg, J (2007), ‘Prices and Economic Change in Medieval Sweden’, Scandina- vian Economic History Review, vol. 55, no. 2, pp. 128–52. Tullkomitén (1865), Underdånigt betänkande: afgifvet af de för uppgörande af förslag till ny tulltaxa den 6 november 1863 i nåder tillförordnade komiterade, P.A. Nor- stedt & Söner, Stockholm. Tullkomitén (1882), Tullkomiténs underdåniga betänkande af år 1882. 1. Bihang, Statistiska tabeller öfver Sveriges industriela utveckling åren 1860–1879, Stock- holm. Wallroth, K A (1918), Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser, Stockholm. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 452 Ågren, K (1964), Adelns bönder och kronans. Skatter och besvär i Uppland 1650–1680, Uppsala. Åmark, K (1915), Spannmålshandel och spannmålspolitik i Sverige 1719–1830, Stock- holms högskola, Stockholm. Åmark, K (1921), ‘En svensk prishistorisk studie’, Ekonomisk Tidskrift, vol. XII. Åmark, K (1924), Handels- och prisöversikter rörande spannmål: jämte bihang, innefattande vissa internationella prisjämförelser angående viktigare jordbruks- produkter, SOU 1924:55, Tull- och Traktatkommitténs utredningar och betänk- ande XXV, Stockholm. 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers Johan Söderberg 9.1. Introduction This chapter presents a very long-term view of real wages of unskilled labourers in Sweden, particularly in Stockholm, from medieval times up to the present. Emphasis is on the pre-industrial era up to about 1860. The wages series is based on the building accounts of Stockholm City, supple- mented with some institutional and parish archives. 1 The accounts of the Town Council of Stockholm contain detailed descriptions of the building works initiated by the Council and the daily wages of various building workers. Here we focus on unskilled labourers, since this is the only category for which long series of daily wage rates are available. 2 Parish accounts (e.g., Storkyrkoförsamlingen and the German Church) also provide information on wages. Wages were paid in cash and for most of the period examined there were no substantial additional benefits in kind (though the City occasionally did pay for the gloves used by labourers, and gave them some beer). In the late medieval era, though, beer and food could be a substantial part of wages (see Section 9.2 below). For the period 1365–1864, wages refer to daily summer rates of male unskilled labourers in Stockholm (the 1365 quotation actually refers to the town of Nyköping, about 100 km south of Stockholm). 3 From 1864 onwards, this series is linked to the series of wages for industrial and mining workers in Sweden presented by Svante 1 Söderberg (1987a); Jansson, Palm and Söderberg (1991); Söderberg, Jonsson and Persson (1991). 2 For wages of other groups of labourers in Stockholm (e.g., carpenters, masons, and female labourers) for the 17th and early 18th centuries, see Jansson, Palm and Söderberg (1991, pp. 18–21, pp. 96–108). 3 Daily wage rates of unskilled labourers in Stockholm 1860–64 are drawn from Höjer (1967, p. 423). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 454 Prado in Chapter 10 below. 4 Hence, the series presented is not homogeneous. Nev- ertheless, it should give a rough general overview of real wage trends over a very long period. As pointed out by Prado in the subsequent chapter, statistical agencies have not been eager to use the term ‘unskilled’ during the 20th century. As a result, the construction of reliable wage series for unskilled non-agricultural workers from the 1860s onwards will require further research. Real wages are often used as an indicator of material living standards. It should be kept in mind, though, that real wage rates do not say anything about unemploy- ment. Real incomes may therefore evolve differently from real wages. Furthermore, the real wage rates of male labourers used here do not automatically mirror family or household incomes, to which women and children may have contributed as well. Also, the length of the working day and the intensity of work may vary in a way that is not reflected in daily wage rates. However, we rarely have information on unem- ployment, work intensity, and household incomes in the past. After all, real wage calculations often seem to be the single best proxy available for trends and fluctua- tions in purchasing power among various categories of labourers, at least when it comes to producing long-term series. The deflator CPI presented in Chapter 8 above is used here for the calculation of real wages. The weights of goods used in the construction of the CPI were also pre- sented there, and are given in simplified form in Table 9.1 below. A few words should be added regarding the choice of these weights. Table 9.1. Weights of main components in the defator CPI (per cent) Component Period 1539–1731 1732–82 1782–1830 1830–70 1870–1913 Foodstuffs 75.0 75.0 75.0 72.0 70.0 Fuel, lighting, building materials 7.5 9.3 9.3 9.6 10.5 Clothing 10.0 13.2 13.2 14.4 15.5 Other 7.5 2.5 2.5 4.0 4.0 Total 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 As seen from Table 9.1, foodstuffs are the dominant item in the deflator index for the period up to 1913, with weights ranging from 75 to 70 per cent. These weights are based on data on the composition of food at two Stockholm institutions, the Danviken asylum and the Orphanage, at selected points in time from 1571 and 1781. 5 They are somewhat lower than the weights employed by Jörberg in previous 4 For the period 1865–1930, a series of earnings of unskilled municipal workers in Stockholm is published in Bagge et al. (1935, Vol. II, p. 55). Tis series does not appear suf ciently reliable to be used here, since the rate of increase over the period as a whole in unrealistically high. 5 Jansson, Palm and Söderberg (1991, p. 5); Utterström (1978, p. 143, pp. 216–7). 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 455 Swedish research. 6 They are fairly close to weights used in modern international research. For Britain, Robert Allen assumes a weight of 73.5 per cent for foodstuffs (including beer and tobacco) in his construction of a price index employed to cap- 6 Jörberg (Vol. I, 1972, p. 119, p. 182, p. 349) used weights for foodstufs ranging between 83.3 per cent (for the period 1732–1804) and 81.4 per cent (for the period 1865–1914). Te Ebonists, by Elias Martin (1739–1818). Source: Nationalmuseum. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 456 ture real wage developments during the Industrial Revolution (1770–1869). 7 This is slightly less that the weights put forward in earlier research by Feinstein (1998), who assumes a weight of 79 per cent for food and drink in 1788/92, declining somewhat to 76 per cent in 1828/32 and further to 73 per cent in 1858/62. 8 The differences between various modern researchers in their assumptions about the share of food in the cost of living thus appear to be modest, as there is general agreement that food was the dominant component. * 7 Allen (2007, p. 16). For Antwerp in the late 16th century, Scholliers (1960) constructs an index with a food component of 75 per cent, which is identical to the weight used in the present study for that period. 8 Feinstein (1998, p. 635). Regulation of working hours and wages for journeymen and apprentices in the building sector (‘mur-gesäller’ and ‘mur-gossar’) and carpenters (‘timmermän’) in Göteborg in 1804. Te length of the working day varied over the year, from 7 hours from 26 November to 21st January (from 8 a.m. to 4 p.m. with a 1-hour break) to 11¾ hours from 8 April to 15 Sep- tember (from 5 a.m. to 7 p.m. with a 2¼-hour break). Moreover, the daily wage varied with the number of hours per day. Journeymen earned around 15 per cent more than apprentices. Source: Göteborgs stadsarkiv, Oordnade inneliggande handlingar E II j:3 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 457 Figure 9.1 below reports real wages of labourers from 1365 up to 2004. The main trends in real wages in Stockholm after 1500 can be divided into four phases: 1. The first phase is characterized by a decline during most of the 16th century. 2. The second phase is a recovery during the 17th century, continuing up to about 1730. 3. A new phase of depression of real wages occurred from about 1730 up to 1800. 4. After about 1800, there is a strong upsurge in real wages. These phases are further discussed below. 9.2. The medieval era and the 16th century Data on late medieval wages in Sweden are very sparse. In modern research there has been no attempt to compare Swedish wages for the medieval era with those of later periods. 9 In order to make such a comparison possible, some assumptions have to be made regarding medieval wage rates. First, late medieval daily wage rates are of two kinds. Most of them refer to actual wages paid according to the accounts. In a few cases, however, regulations of maxi- mum wage rates were issued by the Stockholm City authorities. Normally, the rates given in such regulations should be expected to be lower than actual wages paid, since their purpose would be to counteract increases in market wages. For the years 1476, 1478, and 1496, the daily rates in Figure 9.1 refer to regulations issued by the Stockholm City authorities. 10 They should be interpreted as probable minimum wages. Even as such, they suggest a relatively high level of real wages during the 15th century, continuing in the early years of the 16th century. Second, some wage rates include food and beer, whereas others do not, while yet others do not give any information in this respect. For the years 1476, 1478, and 1496, the regulated daily summer cash wage rate was 0.5 öre. In addition, the labourer received food and beer. Here, the value of food and beer is estimated at 0.5 öre for these years. This is based on several pieces of information. Assuming that food comprised half the wage rate seems reasonable in the light of conditions in the copper-producing district at Kopparberget in the province of Dalarna. There, the daily wage rate for a labourer without food in 1499 was set at twice the wage rate including food. 11 There are also examples from Stockholm of wage rates of labourers who were given no food being twice as high as when food was included in the daily wage. This relationship is found in 1517, for male as well as female labourers, and in 9 Note, though, the early attempt at real wage analysis by Sommarin (1908, pp. 42–51, p. 75). He argued that real wages of Swedish labourers were unusually favourable during the 15th cen- tury, especially its latter half. However, the major part of the prices he included in the discus- sion was of a normative character, expressed in various royal regulations. 10 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 (1917, pp. 179, 467); Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (1930, p. 271). 11 Sommarin (1908, pp. 47–8). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 458 Figure 9.1. Real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm, 1365–1864, and industrial workers in Sweden 1865–2004 (index 1950 = 100). Source: Table A9.1. Note: A vertical line marks the change in 1865 from unskilled labourers in Stockholm to industrial workers in Sweden. 1525–26. 12 It may also be noted that the cost of a soldier’s daily food was set at 0.5 öre at Stockholm in 1508. 13 During the late Middle Ages, beer could sometimes be a substantial part of the daily wage. This was the case at least in 1467, when beer made up 1/6 of the wage for some labourers and 1/8 of the wage for some others. 14 This is suggestive of a fairly high living standard, since much of the energy content of the raw material (barley) is lost in the brewing process. Labourers living at the physical subsistence level would be expected to consume cereals in other forms, e.g. as bread or porridge. Beer grew in popularity in Sweden during the late Middle Ages and became a central item of con- sumption on festive occasions. At least seven litres of beer per person was, for exam- ple, consumed at the annual May feast at Stockholm City Hall in the 1460s. 15 This of course also indicates that material living conditions exceeded the minimum level. Although the number of observations before 1500 is small, a statistical test (t test) 12 1517: Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II–IV (1923, p. 59, pp. 72–3, p. 75). 1525–1526: Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II–IV (1923, p. 135, p. 137). 13 Stockholms stads skottebok 1501–1510 (1915, p. 274). 14 Stockholms stads skottebok 1460–1468 (1926, p. 287). 15 Dahlbäck (1987, p.171). 1 10 100 1,000 1300 1400 1500 1600 1700 1800 1900 2000 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 459 reveals a significant difference in means between real wages before that year and those registered for the period 1500–1800. 16 Late medieval labourers thus found themselves in a rather favourable situation, in Stockholm as well as in other parts of northern and western Europe, where popula- tion decline after the Black Death raised the price of labour. 17 In Stockholm, how- ever, the high level of real wages did not last much beyond 1500. Real wages were quite volatile in the 1510s and ’20s. This is a turbulent period in Swedish history, characterized by war and civil unrest. The high volatility suggests a low level of wel- fare where basic living conditions were unstable. There are also many qualitative statements on the poverty of the country in the early 16th century. 18 16 Assuming equal or unequal variances, the t value is -7.57 and -5.61, respectively. Both are sig- nifcant at a very high level. 17 For an overview of conditions in England see Clark (2007a, p. 41); more detailed analysis in Clark (2005) and Clark (2007b). 18 See, e.g., Letter from the inhabitants of the province of Hälsingland, 19 February 1507 (SDhk 35724); Letter to Svante Nilsson 28 June 1508 on poverty in the province of Småland; Letters to Svante Nils- son 22 February 1509 (SDhk 36448) and 12 December 1508 (SDhk 36356) on poverty in north- ern Sweden and Finland. On the severe famine of 1509 see Olsson (1947). A letter to Svante Nilsson dated 1 September 1510 describes the lack of food in the mining district of Norberg (SDhk 36804). See also Letter from the Mayor and Council of Uppsala to Svante Nilsson, 14 July 1511 (SDhk 37033), reporting that the town, due to poverty, is unable to keep the prisoners assigned to it and that the peas- ants threaten to kill them if they stay much longer (see also SDhk 36759, 22 June, 1510). Figure 9.2. Nominal wage rates of unskilled labourers in Stockholm and defator CPI, 1291–2004 (index 1780/89 = 100). Source: Table A9.1. Note: Missing values in the defator CPI have been interpolated. 0 1 10 100 1,000 10,000 100,000 1,000,000 1250 1300 1350 1400 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 1900 1950 2000 Wage rate CPI Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 460 The 16th century was characterized by strong population growth in Sweden as well as generally in northern and north-western Europe. Growing population pres- sure led to the expansion of cultivated land, and marginal land was increasingly used for grain production. 19 Despite land reclamation, it seems that the total output of grains in Sweden did not keep pace with population growth. The decline in per capita grain production seems to have been the major force behind the substantial rise in the relative price of grains. Grain prices in Sweden rose more steeply than prices of animal foodstuffs, which in turn rose less than prices of textiles and building materials. This conforms to trends elsewhere in western Europe. 20 After about 1540, the trend in real wages in Stockholm is clearly downward. By 1600, real wages were about 40 per cent lower than in 1540. This may seem a remarkably strong fall but it resembles trends found in several other places in Europe, e.g., in southern England and Valencia. 21 The real wages of agricultural labourers in Sweden during the 16th century have not been systematically explored. It is clear, though, that these wages declined at least around mid-century, as nominal daily wage rates were practically unchanged, whereas food prices were rising. It should be remembered, though, that agricultural labourers in Sweden made up a small proportion of the total labour force at this time; the great increase in landless labourers did not take place until the 19th century. 22 The real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm fell dramatically during the extreme inflation around 1573 and 1592. During the latter inflation period, there are indications in the sources of unusually severe conditions for these labourers. At the Horn brick-yard, quantities of herring and smelt were distributed to the workers in 1592 ‘in order that they would be serviceable for work’. This suggests that real incomes had fallen below the physiological minimum at which meaningful work could be carried out. Already in October 1591, the Stockholm City accounts register that extra cash payments were given to the day labourers ‘since they had a poor daily wage’. 23 After the inflationary periods, however, real wages tended to return to their for- mer levels. Thus, extreme inflation had no lasting influence on real wages. Figure 9.2 illustrates that, as a rule, nominal wages in the pre-industrial era closely followed the changes in the general price level. Thus, the view often put forward in international literature, that nominal wages were frequently rather inflexible for long periods, does not fully fit the situation in Stockholm, where inflation was an ongoing phenome- non. There is no counterpart here, for example, to the stability of nominal wages observed in southern England from 1412 up to 1545, when daily wage rates of 19 Kriedte (1983); Abel (1967, p. 117). 20 Myrdal and Söderberg (2002, pp. 96–108); Bowden (1967); Braudel and Spooner (1967, pp. 425–7, 482–3). 21 Söderberg (1987a, p. 353). 22 Söderberg (1987a, p. 354). 23 Söderberg (1987a, p. 352). 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 461 unskilled building labourers were unchanged at 4 pence a day. 24 Sharp drops in wage rates relative to prices, as occurred around 1592, were rare in Stockholm. 9.3. The period c. 1600–1730 The most surprising feature of the long-term evolution of real wages is perhaps that the wars and the militarization of the Swedish economy during the Great Power Era (ending in 1721) did not prevent a growth in real wages. This is in agreement, how- ever, with upward real wage trends in several other places in Europe during the 17th century. The rise in real wages can be linked to stagnating or declining relative food prices and tendencies to depression in the agrarian sector. 25 In the Stockholm case, it should be noted that the population increased rapidly in the 17th century, from about 10,000 in the early years of the century to nearly 60,000 around 1690. Demand for labour, e.g., for building and shipbuilding, seems to have been high as Stockholm became the capital of a centralized state. 26 This expansion helps to explain the upward trend in real wages. It is part of a general European tendency for big towns and cities, often with a large administrative or mili- tary sector, to expand during the period 1600–1750. Besides Stockholm, several other capitals, e.g., Madrid, Paris, and Copenhagen, exhibited dynamic tendencies during this phase. On the other hand, many industrial towns regressed during this period. 27 It may be of some interest to note that the length of the working day for carpen- ters and masons was regulated in 1675. The Stockholm magistrate decided that work should start at 5 a.m. and continue until 7 p.m. during the summer season (covering the light half of the year). The working day was thus set to comprise 14 hours. This decision was taken in response to complaints that workers did not arrive at work until 6 a.m. and left at 6 p.m. During the winter season (the dark half of the year) work was to be carried out from sunrise to sunset. 28 If this regulation was adhered to, there must have been very little possibility of earning extra income by performing work over and above the summer-season working day. 9.4. The period c. 1730–1800 The trend towards stagnating or falling food prices ended during the first part of the 18th century. Rising grain prices was a general European tendency from about 1730 to 1800. As grain prices were still a major element of the cost of living of labourers and nominal wages were rather inflexible, the outcome was a depression of real wages 24 Brown and Hopkins (1981, p. 11). 25 See, e.g., Hobsbawm (1965, p. 28); Slicher van Bath (1963, pp. 209–10); Felloni (1977, p. 28); Brown and Hopkins (1981, p. 82). 26 Jansson, Palm and Söderberg (1991, pp. 30–1). 27 Vries (1984). 28 Pursche (1979, pp. 100, 150 f, 304). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 462 similar to the one in the 16th century. A deep trough in real wages occurred during the Revolutionary and Napoleonic wars, due to sharply rising food prices. Despite substantial technological and institutional changes, around 1800 most urban as well as rural labourers actually seem to have been worse off in terms of material living standards than at any other time during the preceding five centuries. As in the 16th century, it was grain prices in particular that rose strongly, in Swe- den as well as in Europe in general. The relative price change was driven by popula- tion growth. A new period of land reclamation started during the 18th century. The surplus from agrarian production was distributed more unequally than before. In general, farmers who produced a surplus for sale on the market should have gained from the relative price shift in favour of grains. Agricultural land prices and rents should be expected to have turned upwards. This was in fact the case in Sweden. In particular, prices of small landholdings surged upwards, stimulating the division of farms. As a result, income differentials between rich and poor widened. The stratum of landless labourers grew strongly after 1750. 29 Figure 9.3 compares real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm with real wages of male agricultural labourers in rural Sweden from 1732 up to 1914 (the lat- ter series deflated with the CPI used elsewhere in this chapter). 29 Herlitz (1974). Similar tendencies are seen in France, for example; Söderberg, Jonsson and Pers- son (1991, pp. 78–80). Labourers in Stockholm in 1767, by Johan Sevenbom (1721–84). Source: Stockholm City Museum. 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 463 The real wage decline 1730–1800 was more pronounced in Stockholm than in rural Sweden. One reason for this may be that Stockholm real wages suffered not only from the price rise of grains and other foodstuffs, but also from de-industrializa- tion. The most important industrial branch in the capital was textile manufacturing, which declined during the second half of the 18th century and the first part of the 19th. Most of the silk industry, for example, ceased to exist. Low profits forced many Stockholm artisans into bankruptcy during the latter part of the 18th century, and their total number fell. Unemployment in the capital probably increased, and part of the labour force was driven into informal sector occupations. These informal occu- pations included illegal or quasi-legal activities such as the production of handicraft items without belonging to a guild, or the selling of alcohol or various goods in the streets. 30 The economic problems affected demographic trends. The population of Stockholm hardly changed in the latter half of the 18th century and the early 19th, and the marriage rate fell from 13.3 per 1,000 in 1751–60 to only 8.2 in 1801– 10. 31 From Figure 9.3 we also see that the fluctuations in real wages in Stockholm exceeded those in rural Sweden. During years of high prices, the Stockholm curve tended to fall below that for rural Sweden, whereas the opposite was often true for low-price years. This is an effect of greater flexibility in nominal wage rates in Stock- holm compared to rural Sweden. It should be kept in mind that these real wage trends are not typical of social groups who enjoyed substantial payment in kind. One large such group was male and female servants in urban as well as in rural Sweden. Food and lodging was the major part of their pay. The real wage decline for them must have been less steep during this period (and, correspondingly, the rise in their real wages during the 19th century should have been less pronounced than for labourers with no payment in kind). Some civil and military functionaries, particularly the clergy and officers of the county regiments, had their pay in kind from tithes and rents. They probably gained from the grain price rise. Urban functionaries, on the other hand, were often money-salaried. They became increasingly disadvantaged compared with their col- leagues in rural regions. 32 Here, as elsewhere, we observe a redistribution of income from urban to rural regions during the latter part of the 18th century. As seen in Figure 9.3, the erosion of real wages in Stockholm was pronounced in the period 1730–1800. Could it be realistic to assume such a dramatic downturn not only in real wage rates but also in real incomes and living standards? Probably not. The declining real wage rates of male labourers may to some extent have been com- pensated by increased labour market participation by women and children. During the 18th and early 19th centuries, institutional changes were undertaken in Stockholm in order to facilitate the running of small businesses in certain branches 30 Söderberg, Jonsson and Persson (1991, pp. 46–64). 31 Statistisk årsbok för Stockholms stad 38 (1905, p. 66). 32 Artéus (1982, Chapter 5). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 464 by women and widows. The authorities were well aware that many married men were unable to provide for their families, due to insufficient income, illness, or heavy drinking. In order to avoid increased poor relief costs, the authorities stimulated the opening of certain businesses to women. While most trades remained closed to women, quite a number of women were allowed to earn an income in various occu- pations: as hawkers (making and selling certain kinds of food), innkeepers, rowing mamsels, or bakers. They could also work as vendors of tobacco, certain textile goods or used clothes, furniture and household utensils. 33 This expansion of female trades should to some degree have counteracted the decline of male incomes in lower social strata. Yet, this new interest in female employment could not prevent the loss of many jobs for women as textile manufactories closed. In international research, the concept of ‘the industrious revolution’ has been used to delineate a new type of household behaviour, involving an increased supply of market-oriented and money-earning activities and a simultaneous increase in 33 Bladh (1991, pp. 50–56). Figure 9.3. Real wage rates of unskilled labourers in Stockholm and of male agricultural labourers in Sweden, 1732–1914, index 1780/89 = 100. Sources: Stockholm: see Figure 9.1; rural Sweden: Jörberg (1972), Vol. I, pp. 710 onwards. 0 50 100 150 200 250 300 350 400 1740 1760 1780 1800 1820 1840 1860 1880 1900 1920 Stockholm Rural Sweden 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 465 demand for many kinds of goods offered in the market. This revolution, driven by consumer aspirations, took place roughly between 1650 and 1850 in western Europe. Even though real wage rates of labourers fell during most of the 18th century, annual household incomes could increase as a result of working longer hours during the year, a higher work intensity, greater specialization in household production, and increased labour market participation by women and children. 34 In the Stockholm case, there were several ways in which household incomes could be further supplemented by children’s work. For example, the newspaper Dagligt Allehanda was started in Stockholm in 1767 as an advertising medium (in itself a typi- cal phenomenon of the rising consumer aspirations and market expansion connected with ‘the industrious revolution’). This newspaper was distributed by a combination of subscriptions and street sales by newspaper boys; contemporaries referred to the lat- ter method as ‘the English way’ of distribution. 35 There is as yet no thorough study of Swedish conditions from the perspective of ‘the industrious revolution’ but there are several indications that such an interpreta- tion could be realistic. The growing role of married women in the Stockholm econ- omy fits this pattern. In Sweden as well as in England, the growth of second-hand markets in clothes and other goods was probably also important in making con- sumption cheap enough to include the lower classes. 36 Consumers in Sweden, as else- where in western Europe, were attracted by new and exotic goods such as tobacco, sugar, and silk. While the economy of Stockholm stagnated in the period 1760–1850, several towns in other parts of Sweden expanded. The growing incomes of peasants stimu- lated handicrafts and small industries such as book-binders’ shops, where hymnbooks, calendars and almanacs were made. 37 New types of consumption were spreading to rural areas. In parts of northern Sweden during the late 18th century, the peasants criticized young people and servants for being affected by urban habits such as wearing watches, silk waistcoats, velvet trousers, and high hats with buckles and silk ribbons. This problem was said to be most serious along the trade routes to Stockholm. 38 The traditional dark, uniform dress habits among the peasantry were giving way to more varied styles. ‘People are more inclined towards multiform than uniform’, one author from rural northern Sweden observed around 1770. 39 In Småland in southern Swe- den, contemporaries observed that dress fashion was now changing from year to year. Men as well as women, not only married women but also girl servants, now dressed like the urban population. They followed the latest fashion, including silk items imported 34 Vries (2008). 35 Sylwan (1896, pp. 496–504); Sylwan (1896, p. 430 n 2). 36 On England see Lemire (1988). 37 Söderlund (1949). 38 Svensson (1969, p. 82). 39 Nordenström (1923, p. 60). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 466 by the Swedish East India Company, and other colourful fabrics. 40 In response to increased demand, cottage production of textiles grew in many rural areas and seems to have been better adapted to local demands than were the products of manufacto- ries in the capital. De-industrialization in Stockholm thus went hand in hand with industrial (or proto-industrial) growth in rural areas. Like the changes in the previous period, this is also part of a broader European pattern, or what de Vries labels a new urbanization period from 1750 to 1800/1850. These regional shifts can also be interpreted against the background of the new consumer aspirations that were driving the industrious revolution. Much of the urban growth now took place in relatively small cities, stim- ulated by relative price shifts to the advantage of agrarian producers. 41 9.5. The period after 1800 The dominant feature of Figure 9.1 is of course the steep increase in real wages after 1800. Real wages rose after the Napoleonic wars, as grain prices declined, but this growth did not continue in the second quarter of the 19th century. The first sus- tained rise in the purchasing power of labour did not materialize until after about 40 Gaslander (1982, pp. 66–8). 41 Vries (1984). Skeppsbron in 1860, in the old town of Stockholm, by Carl Johan Billmark (1804–70). Source: http://sv.wikipedia.org/wiki/Fil:Skeppsbron_1860_Carl_Johan_Billmark.jpg 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 467 1870, when industrialization gained ground. At about that time, real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm began to depart from those of agricultural labour- ers in rural Sweden, as is evident from Figure 9.3. Already by 1900, real wages were substantially higher than ever before. A new industrial structure was established in Stockholm. Mechanical engineering and typo- graphic industry, relying on relatively high wages, became key branches. Low-wage branches, such as the textile and match industries, could not survive in the capital and had to relocate to regions where wages were lower. In 1895, the working day of Stockholm building labourers was still as long as 12 hours in the summer half of the year (April to September). By 1900, the working day had been shortened to 10 hours and the 48-hour week was introduced in 1920. 42 In other words, an unprecedented wage rise went hand in hand with a substantial short- ening of working hours. This further underscores the improvement of labourers’ conditions connected with industrialization. 9.6. Volatility in real wages and prices International research has emphasized that fluctuations in real wages (or in prices of basic necessities) can be seen as a welfare indicator. Large swings from one year to another had serious welfare implications. In times of falling prices, this could give rise to unforeseen increases in purchasing power, as nominal wages were inflexible. But in years of crisis, surging prices increased the risk of malnutrition and excess mortality. Unstable prices were a fundamental problem of pre-industrial economies due to the large fluctuations they caused in living conditions. Stable prices enhanced welfare by facilitating more regular provisioning with basic foodstuffs. 43 The Italian economic historian, Carlo Cipolla, interprets the standard medieval economic policy of price regulation against the background of unstable prices and their repercussions on living standards. 44 For this reason, it is important to assess not only the level of real wages but also the magnitude of the fluctuations around the trend. From Figure 9.1 it is immedi- ately obvious that the real wages of Stockholm labourers became more stable in the long run. The short-term fluctuations around the trend were clearly greater before the mid-18th century than afterwards. In other words, volatility was reduced. Figure 9.4 and Table 9.2 provide a clearer picture of how volatility has changed. 42 Bagge et al. (1935, Vol I, pp. 14–5). 43 Persson (1999, p. 23, p. 31). 44 Cipolla (1967, pp. 404–7). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 468 Figure 9.4. Volatility of real wages of labourers in Stockholm/Sweden 1468–2004, measured as the percentage year-on-year change in real wages. Source: Table A9.1. -100 -50 0 50 100 150 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 1900 1950 2000 -100 -50 0 50 100 150 200 250 300 350 1250 1300 1350 1400 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 1900 1950 2000 Figure 9.5. Volatility of the defator CPI, 1291–2004, measured as the percentage year-on- year change in the CPI. Note: Missing values in the defator CPI have been interpolated. Source: Table A9.1. 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 469 Table 9.2. Volatility in real wages and in the defator CPI, 1291–2004, measured as the standard deviation of the percentage year-on-year change. Period Volatility of real wages Volatility of deflator CPI 1291–1399 38.1 1400–99 17.8 1500–99 20.0 19.2 1600–99 16.4 14.7 1700–99 13.3 12.6 1800–99 9.5 6.9 1900–2004 4.7 7.0 Source: Table A9.1. Due to the scarcity of medieval wage data, real wage volatility cannot be calculated before the 16th century. Price data are more continuous, however. This makes it possible to give a picture of price volatility for earlier periods. Figure 9.5 and Table 9.2 suggest that price volatility, as measured by the deflator CPI, was quite high dur- ing the period 1291–1399. However, the calculation of price volatility for this early period should be viewed with caution since data are sparse and the extremely high price in 1313 (which should perhaps be dated to the harvest year 1315) has a strong impact on the result. It should be added, however, that the period 1315–17 is well- known for harvest failures in northern Europe, probably the worst during the cen- tury. Crops were damaged by cold and wet weather, and the grain shortage led to extremely high prices. 45 Data availability is much better from the early 15th century onwards. The fairly high level of volatility in the 15th century, and even more so in the 16th century, is probably realistic. The years of monetary crisis, described in Chapter 8 above, con- tributed to the high volatility in the 16th century. After that, volatility decreased for 45 Kershaw (1973, pp. 6–10); Jordan (1996, pp. 15–6, 50–2). Te price of wheat and barley in England, in grams of silver per litre, was higher in 1316 and 1317 than in any other year between the start of the series in 1209 and the years 1623 and 1637, respectively. See the large price data fle compiled by Gregory Clark, England_1209-1914_(Clark).xls, available from Global Price and Income History Group, http://gpih.ucdavis.edu/. At Lübeck, the very high price of rye in 1315 was noted by the chronicler Detmar; Lucas (1930, p. 353). Danish chroniclers also wrote about the high prices this year following the destruction of crops by rain; Historiske kild- eskrifter og bearbejdelser af dansk historie især fra det 16. aarhundrede, Vol. 1 (1873, p. 589). Te Swedish price record from 1313 stems from the 15th-century chronicler Ericus Olai, who used a now lost source; Ahnlund (1953, p. 161). It is possible that this quotation should be dated to the harvest year of 1315 instead, since it seems unlikely that Sweden escaped this harvest fail- ure. Jordan (1996, p. 194 note 63) refers to Swedish chronicles mentioning unusual thunder and terrible displays of lightning in 1315. Te rainy weather may be connected with an erup- tion of the volcano Kaharoa in New Zealand, which lasted about five years; Nairn et al (2004). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 470 prices as well as real wages. The parallel trend is not surprising since short-run fluc- tuations in real wages were primarily due to changing prices of the goods included in the CPI, especially the price of grains, not to fluctuating nominal wages. The reduction in the volatility of prices and real wages suggests more regular pro- visioning, leading to more stable living conditions after the 16th century. This reduc- tion continued throughout the pre-industrial era, no doubt due in part to the expan- sion of trade in the Baltic area in the 17th century, enabling Sweden to import grains from Livonia and other regions in times of high prices or harvest failures. It is also likely that Swedish harvests became more stable during the 19th century, producing a substantial decline in price volatility. During the industrial period, prices as well as real wages became even more stable in the short run, despite temporary upturns during the World Wars. In particular, the First World War had a strong impact on price volatility. For this reason, overall price volatility during the period 1900–2004 was of the same magnitude as during the 19th century. 9.7. Concluding discussion The real wage trends during the period up to about 1800 seem to agree with an eco- nomic model of the type presented by Thomas Robert Malthus more than two hun- dred years ago. According to Malthus, no long-term improvement in living standards was possible because population growth would tend to exceed the increase in food production. If the population declined (e.g., due to epidemics, famine, or war), the price of labour would rise. This would lead to an improvement for the labourers, but only temporarily, since renewed population growth would soon press real wages down again. Land reclamation could not solve the problem since the cultivation of less productive marginal lands would lead to rising food prices. Malthus assumed that agricultural productivity could not rise in the longer run. The actual pattern in Sweden, as well as in many other parts of Europe, fits this model fairly well. We have seen that strong population growth during most of the 16th and 18th centuries pushed real wages down, whereas real wages improved during the 17th century when population pressure was weaker. No sustained growth in real wages occurred in the pre-industrial era. The years around 1800 were characterized by lower real wages than in any other period (though single years with even lower wages can be found in connection with the harvest fail- ures of the late 1590s). Real wages improved from the early 19th century onwards. Yet it was not until industrialization had gained momentum around 1870 that the highest levels in the pre-industrial era were surpassed. With industrialization, the Malthusian mechanism was no longer effective, as population as well as real wages surged upwards. During the pre-industrial era up to 1800, an unskilled labourer could buy approx- imately 1 kg of butter for his daily wage. In 2004, the average male industrial worker 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 471 could buy 25 times as much for his pre-tax daily wage. Despite some setbacks during the two world wars and a tendency towards weaker growth after the late 1970s, real wage development in the last two centuries is one of strong and almost uninter- rupted growth. Volatility in real wages and prices has been used here as a welfare indicator, based on the assumption that large swings in these variables were harmful to labourers. The evolution of volatility tells a somewhat different story than does the mere movement of real wages. Prices as well as real wages became more stable in the long run, as the short-term fluctuations were already diminishing in the 17th century, followed by further reductions during the subsequent century. This levelling tendency is proba- bly due to the expansion of trade in grains, resulting in a more regular supply. So even if Stockholm labourers did not enjoy any sustained rise in real wages before the advent of industrialization, at least they benefited from more stable prices and wages. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 472 Table A9.1. Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624, öre kopparmynt 1625-1776, skilling 1777-1788, and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850), daily wage in gram silver, and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100). Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage 1365 1 4.0 18 1552 3 2.7 17 1594 4 (16 i ) 2.8 13 1430 0.83 2.2 16 1553 3 2.7 15 1595 5 3.6 14 1440 0.83 2.2 19 1554 3 2.4 15 1596 5 3.6 11 1467 1 2.6 22 1555 3 2.7 15 1597 5 3.6 9 1468 1 2.4 22 1556 3 2.7 14 1598 5 3.6 11 1476 1 2.2 24 1557 3 2.7 16 1599 5 3.6 11 1478 1 2.4 30 1558 3 2.6 16 1600 5 3.6 14 1496 1 2.3 25 1559 3 2.6 15 1601 4.5 3.1 10 1497 1 2.3 27 1560 3 2.6 14 1602 5 3.6 10 1501 1 1.8 23 1561 3.5 2.8 16 1603 5 3.6 11 1502 1 1.8 27 1562 3.5 2.8 13 1604 5 3.5 11 1509 1 1.7 15 1563 4.42 3.1 15 1605 5 3.6 12 1510 1.17 2.0 20 1564 5.33 3.4 14 1606 5 3.6 12 1512 1 1.7 19 1565 5.33 2.8 14 1607 5 3.6 11 1513 1.33 2.1 23 1566 8 4.1 22 1608 5 3.0 11 1516 1.33 2.5 25 1567 8 3.9 19 1609 6 3.7 12 1517 1.33 2.2 20 1568 8 3.4 17 1610 6 3.7 11 1518 1.33 1.9 21 1569 9 3.2 17 1611 6 3.2 12 1519 1.33 1.9 16 1570 10 3.2 14 1612 6 3.2 11 1520 1.33 2.0 21 1571 11 2.7 11 1613 6 2.7 11 1521 1.33 1.4 14 1572 11 1.8 10 1614 6.25 3.2 10 1522 1.33 0.8 10 1573 12 1.5 8 1615 6.5 3.2 11 1523 2.25 i 1.0 11 1574 16 1.6 11 1616 7 3.4 12 1524 1 1.2 12 1575 21.33 2.4 15 1617 7 3.5 13 1525 1 1.4 12 1576 4 3.2 14 1618 7 3.4 11 1526 1 1.3 15 1577 4 3.0 15 1619 8 3.9 14 1529 1 1.1 11 1578 4 2.9 14 1620 8 3.9 16 1536 1 1.0 11 1579 4 3.0 14 1621 8 3.9 19 1537 1 1.1 11 1580 4 3.0 13 1622 8 3.9 16 1539 2 2.0 17 1581 4 3.0 14 1623 8 3.9 14 1540 2 1.7 17 1582 4 3.0 15 1624 8 3.9 14 1541 2.25 2.2 18 1583 4 3.0 15 1625 9 4.3 16 1542 2 2.1 14 1584 4 3.0 15 1626 9 4.1 14 1543 3 3.2 20 1585 4 3.0 14 1627 10 4.6 14 1544 3 2.7 19 1586 4 2.8 13 1628 12 4.0 12 1545 2.63 2.1 16 1587 4 2.8 13 1629 14 3.1 14 1546 2.25 1.8 16 1588 4 2.8 11 1630 18 3.7 13 1547 2.25 1.7 15 1589 4 2.8 12 1631 20 3.9 15 1548 2.5 2.0 16 1590 4 2.8 11 1632 16 3.4 13 1549 2.5 1.9 13 1591 4 2.7 11 1633 16 3.5 10 1550 3 2.5 15 1592 2 (8 i ) 1.6 6 1634 16 3.9 11 1551 3 2.7 15 1593 2.75 (11 i ) 2.0 7 1635 18 4.2 13 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 473 Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage 1636 18 4.4 13 1679 32 3.7 13 1722 64 5.4 19 1637 18 4.3 13 1680 32 3.7 15 1723 48 4.2 15 1638 18 4.4 14 1681 32 4.1 16 1724 48 4.3 15 1639 18 3.9 13 1682 32 4.0 17 1725 48 4.5 15 1640 20 4.2 14 1683 32 4.0 17 1726 48 4.5 14 1641 20 4.2 12 1684 32 4.0 12 1727 48 4.3 14 1642 24 5.1 15 1685 32 4.0 16 1728 48 4.3 15 1643 24 5.1 15 1686 40 5.2 21 1729 48 4.3 16 1644 24 5.0 13 1687 40 5.1 20 1730 48 4.3 17 1645 24 4.7 15 1688 40 5.1 18 1731 48 4.3 18 1646 24 4.8 15 1689 40 5.1 19 1732 48 4.3 17 1647 25 5.3 16 1690 40 5.1 19 1733 48 4.3 16 1648 24 4.9 15 1691 40 5.1 20 1734 48 4.2 17 1649 24 4.7 13 1692 40 5.1 19 1735 48 4.2 16 1650 24 4.7 9 1693 40 5.1 13 1736 48 4.1 15 1651 22.4 4.4 11 1694 40 5.1 14 1737 48 4.2 17 1652 24 4.7 9 1695 40 5.1 19 1738 64 5.5 24 1653 26.88 5.3 17 1696 40 4.7 14 1739 64 5.5 22 1654 32 6.3 20 1697 40 4.6 12 1740 64 5.4 18 1655 32 6.2 19 1698 40 4.8 11 1741 64 5.4 17 1656 24 4.6 13 1699 40 5.1 14 1742 64 5.3 18 1657 24 4.5 12 1700 40 5.0 15 1743 68 5.5 20 1658 24 4.5 15 1701 40 5.1 17 1744 72 5.6 22 1659 24 4.3 12 1702 40 5.2 16 1745 64 5.0 17 1660 24 4.3 12 1703 40 4.8 16 1746 64 5.1 17 1661 24 4.2 10 1704 40 4.8 18 1747 64 4.6 16 1662 24 4.2 11 1705 40 4.8 17 1748 64 4.4 15 1663 24 4.1 10 1706 40 4.8 17 1749 64 4.4 16 1664 24 3.8 11 1707 40 4.8 14 1750 64 4.5 16 1665 24 3.6 10 1708 40 4.8 14 1751 64 4.9 16 1666 28 4.2 12 1709 40 4.8 10 1752 64 4.9 16 1667 28 4.2 12 1710 40 4.8 15 1753 64 5.1 16 1668 28 4.2 14 1711 40 4.9 16 1754 64 5.0 15 1669 28 4.2 13 1712 40 4.8 15 1755 64 5.0 14 1670 28 4.2 15 1713 40 4.8 16 1756 64 4.8 13 1671 28 4.2 15 1714 48 5.9 15 1757 64 4.6 12 1672 28 4.2 13 1715 48 6.1 16 1758 64 3.9 12 1673 28 4.2 14 1716 48 5.5 13 1759 68 3.8 13 1674 28 4.1 10 1717 48 4.0 9 1760 76 3.8 14 1675 28 3.8 10 1718 48 2.5 9 1761 80 3.6 13 1676 30 3.8 12 1719 80 6.2 12 1762 96 3.6 11 1677 32 3.9 11 1720 64 5.1 15 1763 88 3.2 9 1678 32 3.8 12 1721 72 6.2 18 1764 88 3.1 9 Table A9.1 (cont.). Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624, öre kopparmynt 1625-1776, skilling 1777-1788, and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850), daily wage in gram silver, and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 474 Table A9.1 (cont.). Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624, öre kopparmynt 1625-1776, skilling 1777-1788, and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850), daily wage in gram silver, and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100). Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage Year No - minal wage Gram silver Real wage Year Gram silver Real wage 1765 96 3.5 10 1808 20 7.1 8 1851 7.6 15 1766 112 4.7 14 1809 20 5.5 8 1852 7.6 16 1767 112 6.0 17 1810 20 4.4 8 1853 7.6 14 1768 88 5.6 15 1811 24 3.7 8 1854 8.0 15 1769 88 4.7 15 1812 24 4.5 7 1855 8.0 13 1770 88 4.1 14 1813 33 6.2 10 1856 9.6 14 1771 88 4.2 11 1814 33 5.9 10 1857 9.6 15 1772 112 5.0 14 1815 33 5.3 11 1858 11.2 20 1773 112 4.4 15 1816 33 4.8 10 1859 11.2 20 1774 112 4.6 17 1817 33 5.1 10 1860 9.6 16 1775 96 4.3 12 1818 33 5.1 10 1861 9.6 15 1776 112 5.0 14 1819 33 4.5 10 1862 9.6 16 1777 9.33 ii (112 iii ) 5.0 14 1820 33 4.2 11 1863 9.6 17 1778 9.33 5.0 13 1821 30 4.1 10 1864 9.0 16 1779 9.33 5.0 13 1822 30 4.1 10 1865 9.7 18 1780 9.33 5.0 13 1823 37.5 5.1 14 1866 9.3 16 1781 9.33 5.0 13 1824 42 5.5 15 1867 9.7 15 1782 9.33 5.0 13 1825 49.5 6.7 17 1868 10.4 16 1783 9.33 5.0 12 1826 49.5 6.5 15 1869 11.0 19 1784 9.33 5.0 13 1827 49.5 6.1 16 1870 10.5 18 1785 9.33 5.0 12 1828 49.5 6.6 17 1871 10.8 18 1786 9.33 5.0 12 1829 54 7.4 18 1872 12.2 20 1787 9.33 5.0 13 1830 54 7.0 17 1873 13.0 19 1788 9.33 5.0 12 1831 51 6.1 15 1874 14.5 21 1789 9.33 4.9 12 1832 51 5.9 16 1875 15.0 21 1790 9.33 4.6 12 1833 54 6.3 17 1876 15.5 20 1791 9.33 4.5 12 1834 54 6.7 17 1877 15.5 21 1792 9.33 4.5 11 1835 54 7.2 17 1878 15.4 22 1793 9.33 4.5 11 1836 54 7.2 16 1879 14.7 22 1794 10.67 4.7 11 1837 54 7.2 16 1880 15.2 22 1795 10.67 5.1 10 1838 54 7.2 15 1881 16.1 22 1796 10.67 5.2 10 1839 54 7.2 16 1882 16.6 23 1797 10.67 5.2 10 1840 54 7.2 16 1883 17.0 23 1798 10.67 4.7 9 1841 54 7.2 15 1884 17.2 25 1799 10.67 4.0 8 1842 54 7.2 15 1885 17.8 26 1800 10.67 4.0 7 1843 54 7.2 16 1886 18.6 27 1801 10.67 3.8 7 1844 54 7.2 17 1887 18.9 28 1802 10.67 3.8 7 1845 54 7.2 16 1888 20.2 27 1803 12 4.3 8 1846 54 7.2 15 1889 21.5 28 1804 16 5.7 10 1847 54 7.2 15 1890 19.7 28 1805 16 5.7 10 1848 54 7.2 16 1891 21.2 27 1806 16 5.7 9 1849 54 7.2 16 1892 24.3 29 1807 16 5.7 9 1850 57 7.6 16 1893 27.9 30 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 475 Table A9.1 (cont.). Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624, öre kopparmynt 1625-1776, skilling 1777-1788, and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850), daily wage in gram silver, and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100). Year Gram silver Real wage Year Real wage Year Real wage 1894 34.6 32 1915 39 1936 71 1895 34.0 32 1916 38 1937 72 1896 34.1 33 1917 38 1938 74 1897 40.0 33 1918 37 1939 74 1898 43.4 34 1919 45 1940 71 1899 44.4 34 1920 55 1941 67 1900 45.0 34 1921 67 1942 69 1901 46.8 35 1922 58 1943 72 1902 53.9 35 1923 59 1944 74 1903 53.0 36 1924 60 1945 78 1904 51.4 37 1925 61 1946 83 1905 50.3 37 1926 64 1947 93 1906 47.7 38 1927 64 1948 95 1907 51.6 38 1928 65 1949 98 1908 65.4 38 1929 67 1950 100 1909 69.0 40 1930 70 1910 69.4 42 1931 72 1911 70.7 42 1932 71 1912 64.4 41 1933 72 1913 66.7 42 1934 72 1914 74.7 43 1935 71 i In klipping coins. ii In skilling. iii In öre kopparmynt. 1 daler kopparmynt (in 1625-1777) = 32 öre kopparmynt. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 476 References Digital sources Global Price and Income History Group, England_1209-1914_(Clark).xls. Online at: http://gpih.ucdavis.edu/ SDhk = Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven. Online at: www.ra.se/ra/diplomat.html Published sources Abel, W (1967), Agricultural Fluctuations in Europe from the Tirteenth to the Twenti- eth Centuries, Methuen, London. Ahnlund, N (1953), Stockholms historia före Gustav Vasa, Monografer utgivna av Stockholms kommunalförvaltning, Stockholm. Allen, R C (2007), Pessimism Preserved: Real Wages in the British Industrial Revo- lution, Oxford University Department of Economics Working Paper 314, Oxford. Artéus, G (1982), Krigsmakt och samhälle i frihetstidens Sverige, Militärhistoriska för- laget, Stockholm. Bagge, G, E Lundberg and I Svennilsson (1935), Wages in Sweden 1860–1930, Vol. I–II, P S King & Son, London. Bladh, C (1991), Månglerskor. Att sälja från bod och korg i Stockholm 1819–1846, Stockholmsmonografer utgivna av Stockholms stad, Stockholm. Bowden, P (1967), ‘Agricultural prices, farm profts, and rents’, in J Tirsk (ed.), Te Agrarian History of England and Wales IV, Cambridge University Press, Cam- bridge. Braudel, F and F Spooner (1967), ‘Prices in Europe from 1450 to 1750’, Cambridge Economic History of Europe IV, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Brown, H Phelps and S V Hopkins (1981), A Perspective of Wages and Prices, Meth- uen, London. Cipolla, C M (1963), ‘Te Italian and Iberian Peninsula’, in M M Postan, E E Rich and E Miller (eds.), Te Cambridge Economic History of Europe III. Economic Organization and Policies in the Middle Ages, Cambridge University Press, Cam- bridge. Clark, G (2005), ‘Te Condition of the Working-Class in England, 1209–2004”, Journal of Political Economy, Vol. 113(6), pp. 1307–1340. Clark, G (2007a), A Farewell to Alms: A Brief Economic History of the World, Prince- ton University Press, Princeton. Clark G (2007b), ‘Farm Wages, Population and Economic Growth, England, 1209- 1869’, Economic History Review, Vol. 60(1), pp. 97–135. Dahlbäck, G (1987), I medeltidens Stockholm, Stockholms medeltidsmuseum, Stock- holm. 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 477 Feinstein, C (1998), ‘Pessimism Perpetuated: Real Wages and the Standard of Living in Britain during and after the Industrial Revolution’, Journal of Economic His- tory, Vol. 58, No. 3 (Sep., 1998), pp. 625–658. Felloni, G (1977), ‘Italy’, in C Wilson and G Parker (eds.), An Introduction to the Sources of European Economic History 1500-1800, Weidenfeld & Nicolson, Lon- don. Gaslander, P (1982), Beskrifning om svenska allmogens sinnelag och seder, Västbo härad, Småland [1774], Rediviva, Stockholm. Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II–IV (1923), I Collijn (ed.), Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Herlitz, L (1974), Jordegendom och ränta. Omfördelningen av jordbrukets merprodukt i Skaraborgs län under frihetstiden, Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen, Göte- borg. Historiske kildeskrifter og bearbejdelser af dansk historie især fra det 16. aarhundrede, Vol. 1 (1873), Holger Rørdam (ed.), Monumenta historiæ danicæ, København. Hobsbawm, E J (1965), ‘Te General Crisis of the European Economy in the Seven- teenth Century’, in T Aston (ed.), Crisis in Europe, 1560–1660, London. Höjer, T (1967), Sockenstämmor och kommunalförvaltning i Stockholm fram till 1864, Monografer utgivna av Stockholms kommunalförvaltning, Stockholm. Jansson, A, L A Palm and J Söderberg (1991), Dagligt bröd i onda tider: priser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1700, Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskn- ing, Göteborg. Jordan, W C (1996), Te Great Famine: Northern Europe in the Early Fourteenth Cen- tury, Princeton University Press, Princeton. Jörberg, L (1972), A History of Prices in Sweden, Vol. I, Gleerup, Lund. Kershaw, I (1973), ‘Te Great Famine’, Past and Present No. 59, pp. 3–50. Kriedte, P (1983), Peasants, Landlords and Merchant Capitalists; Europe and the World Economy, 1500–1800, Berg, Oxford. Lemire, B (1988), ‘Consumerism in Preindustrial and Early Industrial England: Te Trade in Secondhand Clothes’, Journal of British Studies, Vol. 27 (Jan.), pp. 1–24. Lucas, H S (1930), ‘Te Great European Famine of 1315, 1316, and 1317’, Specu- lum, Vol. 5, No. 4 (Oct.), pp. 343–77. Myrdal, J and J Söderberg (2002), Te Agrarian Economy of Sixteenth-Century Swe- den, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Stockholm. Nairn, I A et al (2004), ‘Rhyolite Magma Processes of the AD 1315 Kaharoa Erup- tion Episode, Tarawera Volcano, New Zealand’, Journal of Volcanology and Geo- thermal Research, Vol. 131, pp. 265–294. Nordenström, M M (1923), Utkast till beskrifning öfwer Stöde socken vid Medelpads södra ådal belägen, N J G Wide (ed.), Ledin, Sundsvall. Olsson, G (1946), ‘Freden i Köpenhamn 1509’, Studier tillägnade Curt Weibull, Elanders, Göteborg. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 478 Persson, K G (1999), Grain Markets in Europe, 1500–1900: Integration and Deregu- lation, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Pursche, W (1979), Timmermansämbetet i Stockholm före år 1700, Stockholms bygg- mästareförening, Stockholm. Scholliers, E (1960), Loonarbeid en honger: de levensstandaard in de XVe en XVIe eeuw te Antwerpen, Antwerp. Slicher van Bath, B H (1963), Te Agrarian History of Western Europe, Edward Arnold, London. Sommarin, E (1908), Bidrag till kännedom om arbetareförhållanden vid svenska berg- verk och bruk, Univ, Lund. Statistisk årsbok för Stockholms stad, Vol. 38 (1905), Stockholms stads statistiska kon- tor, Stockholm. Stockholms stads skottebok 1460–1468 (1926), J A Almqvist (ed.), Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Stockholms stads skottebok 1501–1510 (1915), H Hildebrand (ed.), Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt burspråk (1917), E Hildebrand (ed.), Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stock- holm. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (1930), J A Almqvist (ed.), Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia, Stockholm. Svensson, S (1969), Bygd och yttervärld, Nordiska museet, Stockholm. Sylwan, O (1896), ‘Vår första dagstidning’, Ord och Bild, Vol. 3. Sylwan, O (1896), Svenska pressens historia till statshvälfningen 1772, Gleerup, Lund. Söderberg, J (1987a), ‘Hade Heckscher rätt? Priser och reallöner i 1500-talets Stock- holm’, Historisk tidskrift, Vol. 107, pp. 341–356. Söderberg, J (1987b), ‘Real Wage Trends in Urban Europe, 1730-1850: Stockholm in a Comparative Perspective’, Social History, Vol. 12, pp. 155–176. Söderberg, J, U Jonsson and C Persson (1991), A Stagnating Metropolis: Te Economy and Demography of Stockholm, 1750–1850, Cambridge University Press, Cam- bridge. Söderlund, E (1949), Hantverkarna, Vol. II, Tiden, Stockholm. Utterström, G (1978), Fattig och föräldralös i Stockholm på 1600- och 1700-talen, Universitetsbiblioteket, Umeå. Vries, J de (1984), European Urbanization 1500–1800, Methuen, London. Vries, J de (2008), Te Industrious Revolution: Consumer Behavior and the Household Economy, 1650 to the Present, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 Svante Prado 10.1. Introduction The nominal wage represents the marginal return to a unit of labour input. 1 The rise or fall in nominal wages is one of the most central aspects of an economy in which competitive labour markets determine the price of manpower. In addition, the move- ment of nominal wages, deflated by a cost-of-living index, indicates progress or decline in living standards, the most important by-product of economic growth. 2 Throughout most of the pre-modern era, and also in many of today’s less developed countries, the ratio between wages and prices has failed to remain on a long-term upward track, preventing workers from gaining sustainable increases in the purchas- ing power of goods and services. It is only during the era of modern economic growth that expectations of perpetual rises in real wages have been fulfilled. From our van- tage point, workers have gained enormously since the onset of sustainable increases in income per capita in the mid-19th century. Since 1860, real wages of male manu- facturing workers have on average increased 2.25 per cent annually, implying that purchasing power thus measured has increased by a factor of 26. Workers have gained access to an almost infinite variety of goods and services. Of course, they have also enjoyed shorter working hours per week, longer holidays and decreased years of work over the lifetime, as well as improved working conditions and greater security 1 Te author would like to acknowledge Daniel Waldenström, Christer Lundh, Jan Bohlin, Oskar Broberg, Rodney Edvinsson, Lars Svensson, Jonatan Svanlund, Johan Söderberg, Stefan Öberg, Martin Fritz and Erik Bengtsson for helpful suggestions. Any remaining errors rest with the author. 2 Tere are various objections to using the growth of real hourly earnings as a measure of chang- ing living standards. To address issues of material living standards, annual household earnings, or annual disposable incomes, would be a better indicator of material well-being. Furthermore, these real hourly earnings exclude payroll taxes, the signifcance of which increased notably in the latter half of the twentieth century. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 480 in the face of unemployment and sickness. Still, the importance of real wages as a manifestation of the material benefits of economic growth serves to justify the close attention social scientists devote to the measurement of nominal wages. 3 The purpose of this chapter is to document series of nominal and real wages of male and female manufacturing workers in 1860–2007. 4 An attempt is made to construct nine wage series for groups of industries and an overall average series for manufacturing as a whole, spanning the era in its entirety and circumventing the constraint imposed by inter-temporal inconsistency in the classification of industry. The first half of the chapter deals with the nature, sources and definitions of the his- torical wage sources available, with particular attention to the different wage sources before and after 1913. The second half contains a discussion of the results, with respect to growth rates of male real wages and the evolutions of the female-to-male wage gap and inter-industry wage differentials. 10.2. Quality of labour Needless to say, employers have altered minimum hiring standards many a time since 1860. This project shares with all historical wage studies the intention of estab- lishing wage series with as high a degree of inter-temporal consistency as possible in the qualifications demanded of the workers. Commonly, attempts to document long-term series for wages seek to trace the evolution of wages for an unchanged professional characteristic, like unskilled, manual or plain labourer. The idea is that it is possible to trace the nominal price of a particular kind of labour service, the essential feature of which, despite the many far-reaching implications of technologi- cal development, has remained fairly unchanged over time. It is also sometimes sug- gested that this kind of labour service commands no industry-specific formal skill or requires little or no on-the-job training. Therefore unskilled workers are subjected to 3 Scholliers (1989) is an excellent introduction to the signifcant role which the measurement and interpretation of real wages have played in the historiography of economic history. In brief, whereas an older tradition used real wages as an indicator of the evolution of living standard, most importantly in the discussions of the British industrial revolution, modern approaches also use nominal and real wages to address issues of, for instance, divergence and convergence between sectors, regions and countries and various aspects of income distributions. 4 Research on the long-term evolution of wages by sectors in Sweden is relatively scarce. An early example is Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933, 1935), who constructed 7 industry-specifc wage series based on archival research and wage series of agriculture and municipal workers spanning 1860–1913. Other works include Jungenfelt (1959, 1966), who constructed annual wage series covering the period 1870–1950 and all major sectors of the economy; Jörberg’s (1972) magisterial volumes of prices, which contain wage series for day workers in agriculture based on market price scales in 1732–1914; Björklund and Stenlund (1995), who presented annual wages for 6 manufacturing industries in 1870–1950; Svensson (1995), who explored the female-to-male wage gap in 1913–90 on the basis of wage data from the of cial statistics for 11 manufacturing industries; and Ljungberg (2004), who has compiled series of earnings of graduate and college engineers in 1867–2002 to study educational pay-of. 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 481 similar forces of demand and supply in the labour market which do not derive from industry-specific developments of new technologies. 5 Before the proportion of manufacturing industries reached significant importance in the economy, typical workers labelled unskilled were mostly found in the con- struction sector, for instance helpers in the building trade or unskilled road and canal construction workers. 6 In the initial stages of industrialisation it is perhaps doubtful whether unskilled workers were a common category of labour since most manufac- turing industries were small-scaled and relied on handicraft-based technologies; they were what Kenneth Sokoloff tellingly referred to as artisanal shops. 7 For instance, in the Swedish mechanical engineering industry at the beginning of the 20th century, only 13 per cent were helpers and 83 per cent were workers with a specific profession (the rest were supervisors and apprentices). 8 Other industries, for instance the saw- mill industry and iron and steel works, 9 employed a mass of helpers and transport 5 Williamson (1995). 6 Te most classic example of long-term series of construction workers is that of Phelps Brown and Hopkins (1955, 1956). A more recent one is Allen (2001). For Sweden, see Johan Söder- berg’s contribution in Chapter 9 of this volume. 7 Sokolof (1984). 8 Lundh Nilsson (2007, p. 96). 9 Monthlies, Utterström and Söderlund (1959) provide insights into the type of labour that iron works needed; for the labour service performed at the sawmill industry, see Gustafsson (1965) and Cornell (1982). Te Kohlswa ironworks in 1900. Source: http://commons.wikimedia.org/wiki/File:Kohlswa_jernverk.jpg. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 482 workers, but unskilled workers probably did no become preponderant in manufac- turing industries before the mass production technologies in the 20th century. 10 The Social Board’s official wage statistics, which came into being in 1913, do not men- tion a specific occupational category like common labour or unskilled labour. They simply distinguish between workers on the one hand and technical personnel (engi- neers, chemists, and supervisors), administrative staff and shop assistants on the other. Thus the label worker is very heterogeneous. Statistical agencies in the 20th century have in general not responded to economic historians’ infatuation with the prefix unskilled. 11 It is a great paradox that whereas the rise of mass production tech- nologies in the 20th century turned the manufacturing industry into a large employer of the typical unskilled worker, the label unskilled fell out of favour among statistical agencies. When the 20th century drew to a close, and the forces of technical develop- ment and capital accumulation served to contract the labour force in manufacturing industries, the share of unskilled workers started to decline. Perhaps the market ser- vice sectors, some of which are characterised by a multiplicity of quite monotonous labour services, have instead become the most important employer of unskilled workers. 10.3. Historical wage sources Today’s researchers with a keen eye on the historical dimensions of wages depend crucially on past generations’ concern with the detailed documentation and compila- tion of wage records. Various possible wage sources are at our disposal, which makes the enterprise to patch some or all of them together, to capture as long a time span of history as possible, particularly challenging. Sweden is known for its rich source of statistical material from earlier times, for instance a census from 1749 and annual publications of industrial statistics from the mid-19th century. With wage statistics one is however inclined to take a less benign view on the supply of useful source material, in particular for the 19th century. For instance, we have nothing that at all closely resembles the Norwegian Wedervang’s Arkiv, which supplies a wealth of wage quotations back to the mid-18th century. 12 We also lack the type of government surveys which were conducted in the US post-bellum years, the so-called Weeks and Aldrich reports, 13 or the wage material which A. L. Bowley and G.H. Wood used to compile their pioneering index of average earnings in the UK during the 19th centu- 10 Goldin and Katz (1998) argue along a somewhat diferent line. Teir model, supported by his- torical evidence from the early 20th century, predicts that the increase in the relative demand for skilled labour was associated with the technological shifts from factories to continuous-pro- cess and batch methods, and from steam and water power to electricity. Te use of modern technology reduced the need for unskilled workers and increased the proportion of white-col- lar workers. 11 David and Sollar (1977). 12 Grytten (2007). 13 Margo (2006). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 483 ry. 14 The scarceness of wage data may be one explanation for the faint interest which Swedish economic historians have taken in the evolution of wages during the era of industrialisation before the First World War. 15 In relation to the US and the UK, the overwhelmingly agrarian nature of the Swedish economy in the latter half of the 19th century may explain the low priority Swedish authorities gave to the systematic collection and presentation of wages in sectors other than agriculture. Action was taken only when the first major labour conflicts occurred around the turn of the century, posing a threat to the social order. A series of investigations into working conditions and wage remunerations in manu- facturing industries paved the way for the establishment of the Social Board’s official wage statistics in 1913. Our knowledge of wage movements before the First World 14 Feinstein (1990). 15 In contrast, the list of works on the historical evolution of real wages for American manufac- turing workers is lengthy. Tree well-known books are Douglas (1930); de Long (1960) and Rees (1961). In the British case, the most cited works have focused on the development of wages during the industrial revolution and the 19th century, for instance Hobsbawm (1957), Hartwell (1961), Lindert and Williamson (1983) and Feinstein (1998). Te AGA factory in Lidingö, outside Stock- holm, in 1915. Source: http://commons.wiki- media.org/wiki/File:AGA_ Fabrik_1910.jpg Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 484 War relies instead on the large-scale project Wages in Sweden, which presents the results of a major research programme intended to trace the evolution of nominal and real wages. 16 The presentation of the sources and methods used to construct the present series of Swedish wages thus falls into two parts. The first covers 1860–1913 and deals with Wages in Sweden, and the second covers 1913–2007, coinciding with the publication of official wage statistics. 10.3.1. Wages in Sweden, 1860–1913 It may be useful to distinguish between wage rates and earnings, although the bound- ary between them is frequently blurred. Many historical studies, including the pres- ent one, are forced to depend on a mixture of these two types of measure. Wage rate is the stipulated return for a given time unit of labour input, usually hourly or daily for blue-collar workers and monthly for white-collar workers. It excludes payment for overtime work, premiums, bonuses and other forms of payment by result, as well as payment in kind. Studies intending to establish the movement of wage rates and capture a lengthy time span rely ultimately on firm records that show the stipulated wage rate, or on wage rates established by labour unions. Earnings is a more inclusive measure which incorporates the effects of changes in the composition of the labour force between industries and of changes within each industry by age, sex, skill and region. It also allows for the effect of payments for overtime work, and for premi- ums, bonuses and other forms of payment by result as well as any rise in hourly rates paid to compensate for a reduction in standard hours worked. Dividing the wage bill by the number of working hours gives a measure of average hourly earnings. In the 1920s, Gösta Bagge, at the Institute for Social Sciences at Stockholm Uni- versity, launched a large-scale project with the explicit intention of tracing the evolu- tion of wages, cost of living and national income for Sweden between 1860 and 1930. 17 Two of the final five volumes which were published in the 1930s deal with wages, the first in the manufacturing and mining sectors and the second in the municipal service sectors and the agriculture and forestry sectors. Weak unionisation in Swedish manufacturing industries pre-1900 precluded the authors of Wages in Sweden from using union wage rates. Instead they relied on wage rates paid to individual workers based on information from about 100 firms whose payrolls had been preserved. The method used to construct wage series for 1860– 1913 can be described as a four-stage procedure: 18 First, collect payrolls from firms whose wage records had survived. Second, select workers from a few representative occupations in each firm. One of the selection criteria was that the worker’s employ- ment exceeded 11 months, thus excluding temporary workers. A worker’s wage was recorded for no more than 5–10 years, thereby eliminating the influence of age on 16 Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933, 1935). 17 Carlsson (1982) gives all the fascinating details about the whole project. 18 Bagge, Lundberg and Svenningson (1933, pp. 15–46). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 485 wage movements. Payment in kind, although a more important component in the latter half of the 19th century than it is today, was generally omitted. 19 The most important benefit was access to free housing. The authors discussed the matter at length yet approached it ambiguously. In most instances the value of free housing was not incorporated into earnings. In other cases, when some workers received a cash allowance for rent while others had free housing, the value of free housing was included. Third, compute wage averages for each firm. Fourth, combine the different firm-spe- cific wage series to form industry-specific series, with weights based on the quality of the series, the size of the firm and the relative importance of the industry. The method described above is sometimes called kinetic since it tracks the move- ment of wages better than it establishes the average wage level of all workers in a par- ticular industry, a methodology which is attributed to A. L. Bowley. 20 Cross-sections were therefore used to compare the wage levels of the selected workers in relation to the average level of all workers in a particular concern. These cross-sections were made for 1865, 1885 and 1905 and it was found that in most cases the wage level of the selected workers was on average five per cent higher than the average of all work- ers. In addition, the authors considered the problems of heterogeneity with respect to age, gender and professional qualifications. Today we stand to benefit greatly from that careful consideration because it made possible the documentation of homoge- neous professional characteristics. For most of the industries there are separate series for skilled, in a few cases also semi-skilled, and unskilled workers. Furthermore, the industry-specific wage series exclude the potential influence of changes in the com- position of the labour force. The disadvantages concern, for instance, the low cover- age and the equivocal approach to benefits in kind. It is also doubtful whether these wage levels can be used to address issues of standards of living since they do not reflect the levels of income which workers had at their disposal. The wage data for manufacturing represent the most comprehensive part of the project. The authors documented 7 industry-specific wage series in the main section of the volume, while the appendix contains the original wage data from the firm records. Besides these 7 manufacturing industries there are wage series for sugar industries and railway workers. In relation to the 9 industries included in the present chapter, Wages in Sweden does not provide wage series for the quarrying industry and the chemical industry. Based on the wage material presented in their monographs section, I have attempted to establish wage series for these industries, though undeni- ably these two series rest on a more tenuous empirical foundation. For female work- ers there are two industry-specific wage series, textiles and food, but no aggregate series. 19 Te value of food allowance made up a minor value relative to the cash wage in most indus- tries. Te major exception to this rule is the payment system of the iron works where the val- ues of benefts in kind and free housing were signifcant and therefore included in the estimate of hourly and annual earnings (Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson 1933, pp. 85–90). 20 Bowley (1895). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 486 Table 10.1. Wage series for 1860–1913 from Wages in Sweden used in the present study Wage First observation Male workers Mining annual 1860 Metal hourly 1860 Engineering hourly 1860 Quarrying hourly, daily 1868 Wood hourly 1870 Paper hourly 1860 Food hourly 1861 Textile hourly 1865 Chemical hourly, daily, annual 1871 Female workers Food hourly 1888 Textile hourly 1865 Table 10.2. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal wages in the manufacturing industry, 1868–1913 Wage Sawmills included Sawmills excluded New series hourly 1.6 2.0 Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson hourly 2.2 Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson annual 1.9 Sources: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 table 26); new series: Appendix, table A10.1. What do we know about the reliability of the wage evidence presented in Wages in Sweden? Admittedly, not all that much. Bo Gustafsson has shown that there are problems with the wage series of sawmill workers in 1890–1913. Based on an inves- tigation into the movement of wages for sawmill workers in Norrland 1896–1913, he argued that the sawmill series in Wages in Sweden shows too little progress and that the wage levels are too high. He has also raised concerns about the omission of temporary workers. 21 Others have criticised the methodology and the wage data for workers in the match industry. 22 The present author has cast some doubt on the weighting scheme applied in Wages in Sweden. 23 The lack of transparency in the description of how the different wage series were combined into an aggregate mea- sure makes it difficult to replicate the result. Lennart Schön has raised the level of gross output for several industries, including sawmills, within the context of Swedish Historical National Accounts. 24 We therefore have reasons to suspect that weighting 21 Gustafsson (1965). 22 Berglund (1982). 23 Prado (2008a). 24 Schön (1988). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 487 with respect to these higher levels of gross output, and thereby employment, will modify the series of average wages for manufacturing workers in Wages in Sweden. Weighting the industry-specific series to allow for the large number of workers employed in the sawmill industry lowers the estimated growth rate of the new series of wages for manufacturing as a whole before 1890 compared to the aggregate series in Wages in Sweden, as Table 10.2 shows. 25 The reason is the sluggish growth of saw- mill workers’ wages, which rose steeply in the wake of booming conditions in world markets for sawmill products in the first half of the 1870s but collapsed when the boom turned to bust in the second half of that decade. In fact, sawmill workers’ wages did not resume a sustained upward course like that of manufacturing until the beginning of the 1890s. Thus, the aggregate series of manufacturing wages offered here shows slower progress than the corresponding series in Wages in Sweden. 10.3.2. The official wage statistics, 1913–2007 Apart from the wage statistics for day-workers in agriculture that were reported in the Swedish Agricultural Statistics, the first official attempt to document wage con- ditions covered the manufacturing sector. This was because the first far-reaching labour conflicts in Sweden occurred among industrial workers. The authorities felt a pressing need for more information on labour and wage conditions in several manu- facturing industries. Therefore, in 1899–1909 the Board of Trade (Kommerskolle- gium) undertook a number of special investigations into the following industries: bakeries, tobacco industry, mechanical engineering and book printing. The method- ology of these investigations conformed to a resolution passed by the International Statistical Institute requiring wage statistics to be based on individual wage data. To meet that requirement, each wage survey was directed at a single industry in a par- ticular year, which limited the possible number of industries and years to be investi- gated. 26 However, the inflationary conditions in the aftermath of the First World War, when money wages first rose dramatically and then plummeted in the ensuing deflation, required that wage statistics be published annually. Otherwise they would be outdated and of limited use by the time they saw the light of day. 27 To render an annual publication possible, several modifications, in practice sim- plifications, were necessary. As with most official wage statistics, the method used by the Social Board from 1913 onwards was designed to provide a measure of average hourly earnings, thus fundamentally different from the attempt made in Wages in 25 Te computed growth rate in Prado (2008a p. 57) is slightly diferent from the growth rate reported in Table 10.2 because the constituent series are not identical and have diferent weights. However, the diference between a series with sawmills included and one with them excluded remains. 26 A recent doctoral dissertation, Lundh Nilsson (2007), is based on the investigation of wages in the mechanical engineering industry. 27 SOU (1931). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 488 Sweden to provide a more specific and homogeneous measure of wages. The Social Board collected data by requesting firms to provide information on wages and other closely related issues in surveys. It extracted from a single firm the total sum paid out as wages during one year and divided this sum by the number of working hours, days or workers (the average number of workers on a number of pay-days, for instance once a week). Thus, in their final shape, the official wage statistics concealed firm- specific wage information. In this way the Social Board tackled the reluctance of many employers to submit detailed information about wages. Tere are three types of hourly wage, labelled a, b and c. Categories a and b represent payment for regular working hours, where a stands for time wages and b piece wages; piece wages are generally higher. Label c is the total wage sum paid out divided by the number of working hours. Te wage sum includes all kinds of payment, whether piece wages, time wages, benefts in kind, holiday pay or overtime. In their own publications, the Social Board and Statistics Sweden use the c-wage to illustrate movements of hourly earnings over time. It is the most satisfactory available measure of average hourly earn- ings and is used in the present study. However, it is not accessible throughout the period; after 1992 Statistics Sweden provides only wage data that exclude overtime pay, which lowers their reported wage levels by around twenty per cent. Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson levelled damning criticism at the way the of cial wage statistics were constructed. 28 A series of earnings so constructed makes no dis- tinction between factors which change the composition of the work force, apart from holding constant for the impact of females, males and the under-age, for which the of cial wage statistics provided separate information. Te inherent problem with this method, as the authors correctly pointed out, is that a change in the computed aver- age may be caused by a number of factors other than changing wage rates. For instance, if the proportions of skilled and unskilled workers change in favour of skilled workers, the increase in the average wage mirrors not only changing wage rates but also the compositional efect of higher wages for skilled workers. Likewise, if the average age of the working population in a specifc frm increases, so will the measure of average earnings. Further problems include the proportions of full- and part-time workers. A substantial proportion of temporary workers will drive a wedge between the measures of average annual and hourly earnings. In many cases the actual number of employed workers is higher than the average number of workers given by the statistics, which leads to too high an estimate of annual income per worker. Tis is especially problematic in industries with pronounced seasonal charac- teristics or those employing casual labour. Te method does not, however, cause any problems with the number of hours, which means that in the of cial statistics hourly wages are more useful than annual. Even though Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson painted the method of the of cial statistics in rather derogatory colours, they acknowledged the statistics’ usefulness for 28 Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933, pp. 243–7). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 489 indicating wage movements post-1913. In their fnal index, the of cial post-1913 series is linked to their pre-1913 series to provide a wage series covering the entire era 1860–1930. Tey also admitted that the of cial statistics covered a much broader segment of the manufacturing sector. In 1930, it encompassed 67 per cent of the industries, and while that share admittedly was smaller in 1913, it rose in the course of the 20th century to include the lion’s share of all frms. Te years before 1921 represent the most serious lacuna in the of cial statistics. It is sometimes wrongly asserted that the Social Board began to publish wage statistics annually in 1913, whereas in fact it did not do so until 1919. In 1918 the Social Board requested frms to report wages not only for that year but also for 1913–17. Tis wage material is less complete, and less reliable, than for post-1919 years, and there are no wage data for 1914 and 1915. Besides, no information on average hourly wages was given between 1913 and 1920. Later on, the Social Board estimated hourly wage series for male and female workers for manufacturing as a whole on the basis of information on working hours, but the gap in our knowledge as to the evolution of hourly wages in diferent industries still exists. Tere are two ways out of this dilemma, neither of them very satisfactory. One is to extrapolate backwards from 1920 to 1913 by drawing on the series of daily wages. However, the substantial reduction of work- ing hours in the two years preceding the Hours of Labour Act in 1920 makes daily wages a bad indicator of hourly wages. Te rate at which reductions took place var- ied widely by type of activity and location, making it dif cult to ascertain the move- ment of hourly wages for diferent industries. And there are still gaps in 1914 and 1915. Te other way out involves flling the gap with the Social Board’s aggregate hourly wage series, a solution which gives the misleading impression that all indus- tries grew in tandem. Te preferred solution here is to leave out all industry-specifc wage series 1913–21. Te labels for the nine diferent manufacturing industries are conditioned by a classifcation scheme called SNI 92, 29 which was put into practice in 1993. 30 Some of the major changes which SNI 92 brought about cannot be dealt with satisfactorily; for instance, wood industries do not include furniture after 1993. Similar breaks have occurred in 1952 and 1971. Frequent changes in classifcation schemes pose a challenge to the very idea of establishing long-term wage series for diferent indus- tries. In the coming section an attempt is therefore made to deal with inter-temporal inconsistencies. 10.4. Aggregation Constructing wage series spanning the most recent one-and-a-half centuries encoun- ters major difficulties and many potential pitfalls. Few industries have been classified 29 Svensk näringslivsindelning. 30 SNI 92 became SNI 2002 but that involved only minor modifcations. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 490 in the same manner throughout the entire era. Industries like metal and engineering, whose product varieties defy efforts to capture their nature by labels, are difficult per se, whereas other difficulties arise mostly because of breaks in classifications. Another closely related problem is the effects of economic growth and technical development on the evolution of skill requirements (human capital), the tasks workers are set to carry out and labour’s working conditions more generally. All this has of course changed a lot since 1860. The only thing a worker in the wood industry in 2007 has in common with his peer 150 years earlier is probably the material (wood) that is being processed. To deal with inter-temporal inconsistencies in the definition of industries and the different sources and methodologies used before and after 1913, indices of average hourly earnings for nine industries are compiled with no attention paid to the actual wage levels in different industries. Still, the construction of an aggregate measure requires allowance for these wage levels because an important part of the movement in average hourly earnings may be due to the changing proportions of low and high wage occupations. Modern economic growth often entails the expansion of dynamic industries whose wage levels exceed those of industries sliding into decline. The approach used in the present study is therefore designed to provide an estimate of levels of average hourly earnings in nine industries, with indices of hourly earnings in A mass meeting in Stockholm during the general strike in 1909. Source: http://sv.wikipedia.org/wiki/Fil:Storstrejk.jpg. 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 491 each industry scaled proportionally to the actual hourly wages in a reference year, as in (1), where the wage levels for each industry in 1950, W i,1950 , are multiplied by all the years in each industry’s wage index. , ,1950 Estimated wage levels = w i t i index W * (1) Te wage levels thus constructed comply with the of cial wage statistics between 1913 and 1992. Tey also track Wages in Sweden’s pre-1913 estimated wage levels very well; the diference is on average less than one per cent in 1880–1913. Before 1880 the gap expands because the new series grows more slowly. From 1992 onwards the wage levels of the new series are, however, higher than Statistics Sweden’s because the latter exclude overtime pay. Whereas interpretations of actual wage levels extend- ing further back in history admittedly call for great caution, these series of wage lev- els at least allow the computation of inter-industry and gender pay ratios on the one hand, and permit the computation of proper index numbers on the other. Te next step is to come up with the corresponding numbers of workers for the nine industries for which hourly wage levels have been estimated. Tat requires data for employment which tally with the classifcation of the nine wage series. Tis requirement is only party met; for instance, the Swedish Industrial Statistics started using SNI 69 in 1969, while the of cial wage statistics did not apply it until 1972. A more severe shortcoming concerns the ways in which employment fgures have been obtained for diferent sub-periods. Te Swedish Industrial Statistics pre-1913 sufer from insuf cient coverage and cannot therefore be used as a source of employment. Alternative employment series are used instead. 31 Another major change in the way employment was recorded occurred in 1989, and employment weights had to be derived elsewhere. AKU, 32 which is based on household surveys about people’s cur- rent employment, was used as an indicator of employment trends between 1986 and 1992; from then on employment fgures from RAMS 33 were used. From the perspec- tive of the present study, the diferent sources sufer from inter-temporal variations in reported levels of number of workers, which render necessary a solution similar to (1). Tus, indices of employment were compiled and scaled proportionally to the actual number of workers in 1950. Tat gives industry-specifc series of estimated employment for the entire era. Te employment series are only intended to measure the changing proportions of employment between diferent industries. Tey are not designed to provide a measure of the actual number of people employed. In the appendix, they appear as employment shares, not as absolute numbers. 31 Te unpublished, industry-specifc employment series underlying the aggregate series of employ- ment in manufacturing in Prado (2008a p. 194) have been used. To make these new employ- ment series comparable to the Swedish Industrial Statistics’ post-1913 series, they incorporate Schön’s (1988) estimated number of handicraft workers. 32 Arbetskraftsundersökning (labour force surveys). 33 Registerbaserad arbetsmarknadsstatistik (register-based labour market statistics). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 492 1 1 An index of average hourly earnings = = = ∑ ∑ ∑ n n i,t i i n n i=1 W N N N ∑ W N i,r i,r i,t i=1 i,t i,r (2) Equipped with series of wage and employment levels annually, a series of weighted means can be straightforwardly computed, in the form of either levels or an index, as in (2), where r stands for reference year. Tis series of wages incorporates the efects of inter-industry growth rates and shifts in employment structure but does not satisfy the properties of an index number because the choice of reference year does not afect the estimated annual growth rate. It cannot tell us whether structural transfor- mation contributed to the rise in average earnings. To do that, the series needs to be decomposed into two proper index numbers, one showing intra-occupational wage movements, a Laspeyres index (3), and the other inter-occupational structural shifts, a Paasche index (4). 34 , , 1 , , 1 Laspeyres index numbers = = = ∑ ∑ n i t i b i n i b i b i W N W N (3) , , , 1 1 , , , 1 1 Paasche index numbers = = = = = ∑ ∑ ∑ ∑ n n i t i t i b i i n n i t i b i t i i W N N W N N × (4) Now the chosen base year (b) will affect the movement of the series. A Laspeyres index number measures the way wages would have changed if the sectoral structure had remained the same as in the base year. Two Laspeyres index numbers can be computed, one with the first and the other with the last year as base year, to gain at least a brief understanding of the extent to which the structure influenced the aver- age annual growth rate. The computation of these two index figures reveals that the choice of early or late base year has a negligible affect on the estimated annual growth rate: the difference is 0.02 percentage points. Further evidence of the insignificance of inter-occupational structural shifts for the estimated growth rates is that the Paasche index remains essentially flat. In fact, over such a long period the insignificance of weighting is an expected result. The effect of the intra-industry growth rates dwarfs the potential impact of the employment structure on the movement of the series of weighted means. Differ- 34 Dividing (2) by (3) gives (4). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 493 ent weighting schemes will only exert an influence on a series of means if the con- stituent components grow at significantly varying rates, and/or there are very large inter-industry wage gaps. Intra-industry growth rates do sometimes diverge over short time spans, as testified by the previously discussed example of the sawmill industry in 1870–90, but in the long run it is not entirely likely that wages in any industry will either race ahead perpetually or notoriously lag behind. Competitive forces and movements of labour tend to keep the band within which rates of wage growth range quite narrow. In addition, the influence of labour unions through cen- tralized bargaining contributes to even out the variability in inter-industry growth rates of wages. The weights employed affect the estimated growth rate of the aggre- gate for the more volatile pre-1913 era, when there were frequent shifts in intra- industry growth rates. The importance of weighting diminishes gradually in the interwar years, and disappears altogether after the Second World War, when wage progress was notably uniform. Furthermore, the chosen weights have an impact on the movement of the series comprising both female and male wages, because female wages outgrew male in the 20th century at the same time as the share of female workers increased. 10.5. Long-term evidence of nominal and real wages The series of hourly wages for male manufacturing workers offers the most consis- tent evidence of the evolution of nominal wages for the era in its entirety. The long- term, quite steep, upward movement of nominal wages depicted in Figure 10.1 is an expected result because, first, the investigated period coincides with the onset of modern economic growth in Sweden, and second, nominal wages do not take price increases for consumables into account. Nominal wages increased on average by 5.3 per cent annually but the rate fluctuated significantly. The first era of industrializa- tion until 1913 was accompanied by steady increases in nominal wages. The most remarkable surge in nominal wages took place towards the end and in the aftermath of the First World War, between 1917 and 1921, when wages rose 134 per cent. Wages then fell substantially in the ensuing deflation but remained quite stable in the rest of the 1920s and the 1930s. A steady and long-term rise followed from the 1950s until the depression at the beginning of the 1990s. After the crises, nominal wages have increased moderately. However, the movement of nominal wages may give a misleading impression of the evolution of workers’ final means for purchasing goods and services. At times, reliable measurement of price changes is a far more crucial element in achieving a correct assessment of movements in real wages, especially when fluctuations in prices were very much greater than those in nominal wages. Bringing in the measure of cost-of-living which Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg offer in Chapter 8 per- mits a preliminary assessment of the speed at which improvements in living stan- dards have taken place from 1860 to today. The most striking feature of Figure 10.2 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 494 Figure 10.1. Nominal hourly earnings (kronor) of male manufacturing workers, 1860– 2007 Note: Logarithmic scale Source: Appendix, Table A10.1. is the incessant force with which economic growth has propelled the growth of real wages since 1860. Although a few setbacks, brief in time yet serious in terms of los- ing foregone gains in consumption, did interrupt the general upward movement of workers’ purchasing power, the general tendency is undisputable. Most economists and economic historians would probably agree that the growth of labour productiv- ity is the most important determinant of the growth of real wages, even though intermittent changes in the share of value added accruing to labour at times drive a wedge between the movements of labour productivity and real wages. Still, there are those who have argued that the reverse may be the case, that exogenous growth in real wages may trigger the growth of labour productivity. 35 Turning now to the sub-periods, the average rate of progress varied widely, as indi- cated by the computed growth rates in Table 10.3, where the time spans follow Angus Maddison’s widely used classifcation of the last one-and-a-half centuries. As will be clear below, somewhat diferent turning points in fact give a better ft with the evolu- tion of Swedish real wages. 36 Te frst wave of industrialization from 1860 to about the mid-1890s brought with it steady if erratic progress of real wages. A signifcant part of the series’ volatility comes from the sawmill industry, which weighs heavily. Te rapid expansion of this industry peaked in 1874 and the subsequent drop to the trough in 1891 cut the wage level by half. Between 1870 and 1912 the series’ average annual growth rate was 0.4 per cent, which was 72 per cent less than the rate for 35 Wright (2006) and David and Wright (2003). 36 Maddison (1991). 0.1 1.0 10.0 100.0 1000.0 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 495 Figure 10.2. Real hourly earnings of male manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 Note: Real hourly earnings in kronor of 1950. Logarithmic scale Sources: nominal earnings: Appendix, Table A10.2; cost-of-living: Chapter 8, Table 8.4 in this vol- ume. manufacturing as a whole. Although volatility decreased after the 1890s, the average annual growth rate actually decelerated somewhat, which is surprising given that the growth of labour productivity was appreciably faster after the mid-1890s. 37 Here is a possible macro-economic clue to workers’ dissatisfaction with the wage benefts they reaped in relation to profts, manifested most signifcantly in the general strike in 1909. Table 10.3. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of real wages for male workers in manufacturing Label Years Growth rate (per cent) The whole era 1860–2007 2.3 Industrialisation 1860–1913 1.6 Interwar years 1913–1950 2.1 Golden age 1950–1973 3.8 Globalisation 1973–2007 1.1 Source: Appendix, Table A10.1. Unlike the series of nominal wages, which gives the impression of unbroken improve- ments in the lot of workers during the First World War, the real wage measurement highlights the initial, detrimental war conditions. Real wages dropped about 11 per cent from 1914 to 1918 because shortages of imported food led to price increases 37 Prado (2008a p. 167). 0.1 1.0 10.0 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 496 that greatly exceeded the increases in nominal wages. However, real wages then soared in the following three years, from 1918 to 1921. Workers gained annual real wage increases of more than twenty per cent and the total increase was no less than 77 per cent. Even though the subsequent severe deflation cut real wages by 14 per cent, contemporaries witnessed an unprecedented rise in real wages. These anoma- lous increases in average hourly earnings are partly explained by the marked reduc- tions in working hours in 1918–20; in 1920, the working week was restricted to 48 hours in manufacturing, commerce and transport. 38 Annual wages did not increase by nearly as much as hourly wages. 39 Te interwar era, plagued by recurrent labour disputes and high rates of unem- ployment, brought comparatively modest real wage increases, mostly because of stag- nation in the 1930s. Te fearsome crisis at the beginning of the 1930s, the Great Depression, did not in fact leave a conspicuously negative mark in the wage record but the 1930s as a whole looks particularly pale given the Swedish growth record in that decade: the annual per capita GDP growth rate was more than 3 per cent in 1930 to 1939 and the growth of labour productivity in manufacturing industry was vigorous. 40 By inference, labour’s share of value added in the manufacturing industry decreased. 41 Te 1938 Saltsjöbad agreement between the employers association, SAF, and the labour union, LO, establishing a set of rules governing central wage negotiations and restrictions circumscribing the adverse efects of strikes, was the culmination of a series of attempts to solve the problems of recurrent labour disputes. It ushered in an era of relative peace and consensus between the representatives of capital and labour, which lasted until the end of the 1960s. 42 As with the beginning of the First World War, real wage reductions occurred initially in the Second World War because price increases for consumables exceeded nominal wage increases. Tere is a striking paral- lel here between the two World Wars; the opening (three) years reduced real wages by about 8 per cent and in both cases reductions were caused by price increases for goods and services. However, the era which followed the Second World War brought large and per- manent gains in living standards. Because of rapid increases in labour productivity and an institutional set-up designed to promote consensus between the combatants in labour markets, workers in most developed countries enjoyed a long-lasting period of peace and prosperity. 43 Te traditional dating of this golden era is 1950 to 1973. Until at least the end of the 1960s there were few labour disputes and the latter half 38 Isidorsson (2000). 39 Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 pp. 260–1 ). 40 Edvinsson (2005). 41 Schön (2004). 42 Lundh (2004). 43 Eichengreen (1996). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 497 of that decade also saw the emergence of the so-called Swedish model. 44 Te Swedish real wage series indicate, however, that the golden era actually started in 1942 and lasted until 1976, signifying 35 years of uninterrupted real wage increases, unprece- dented in modern times. Te average annual growth rate was no less than 4.1 per cent, 1.8 percentage points above the growth rate recorded for the period 1860– 2007 as a whole. Te long series of years during which real wages grew rapidly and sustainably has perhaps tended to perpetuate the notion that this achievement is the standard against which other growth records should be judged. Tat is questionable. Te long-term evidence of real wages suggests instead that the era after the Second World War was exceptional, which makes it unsuitable as a benchmark. Since then, the growth of real wages has been relatively sluggish, on average 1.2 per cent per annum. Above all, progress in this period has been more episodic; with brief episodes of rapid acceleration, deceleration and even temporary declines. Between 1976 and 1983 real wages actually decreased by 11 per cent, which con- trasts sharply with the more optimistic nominal wage picture in Figure 10.1, which does not allow for the infationary conditions in the wake of the oil crises and the three consecutive devaluations of the currency. In sharp contrast with the interwar period, when both nominal and real wages grew at a sedate pace, the crises at the end of the 1970s involved nominal wage increases that greatly exceeded the growth of real wages. Contemporaries predicted just a brief deceleration in the growth of real wages and a rebound in economic growth in the next few years. Economic policy was therefore designed to safeguard employment with massive industrial subsidization to prevent substantive destruction of human and material capital and the labour unions continued to demand high nominal wage increases in response to soaring infation. 45 Te expectations of a brief slump came to naught, however, and the confict between labour unions and the employers’ association heightened. By historical standards, the crises in the late 1970s and early 1980s seem to have entailed the most protracted and deepest wage recession in the entire era. Te next severe setback, at the beginning of the 1990s, was comparatively brief, reducing real wages by 4.4 per cent between 1990 and 1993. Since 1994 we have enjoyed 13 years of unbroken real wage gains, historically rivalled only by the golden period 1942–76. Te rate of infation was brought down, which meant that modest nominal wage increases translated into respectable increases in real wages; between 1994 and 2007 real wages grew by 2.4 per cent per annum. Yet, to break the record after the Second World War, we need a further 23 years of uninterrupted real wage growth, an accomplishment that seems increasingly remote in the light of the current economic crisis. 44 Lundberg (1985); Lindbeck (1997). 45 Bohlin (1999). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 498 10.6. The evolution of the wage structure The present investigation permits a cursory scan of two measures of wage dispersion: the gender pay ratio and inter-industry wage differentials. The female to male wage ratio for blue-collar workers in manufacturing at large is a crude measure of the inequality of pay. The interpretation of the ratio’s size requires caution. The measure does not reveal whether the observed payment gaps were in fact generated by differ- ences in educational attainments and job-related qualifications. However, those who are prepared to waive all reservations concerning the multitude of possible interpre- tations may find some interest in what the long-term gender pay ratio suggests. An outstanding feature of this ratio is that female wages have outgrown male wages since 1865, although female catching up has been episodic rather than continuous. Figure 10.3 shows that convergence was manifest in three, easily identifiable periods, the first of which took place immediately after the First World War, the second between 1943 and 1949 and the third, and most pronounced, between 1961 and 1978. This evidence of sharp contractions of the male to female wage gap in manufacturing in three marked episodes during the 20th century accords well with what Lars Svens- son, on the basis of the official wage statistics, found in his investigation. 46 Apart from these episodes of rapid developments of female relative wages, the gap between male and female wages has been quite stable. Before 1913, the female-to-male pay ratio was on average 50 in the textile industry; thus, a female worker had to toil twice as long as a male worker to earn the same annual wage. In 2007, the male wage advantage had narrowed to on average 8 per cent. This marked contraction of the gender wage gap is one of the most pervasive aspects of the evolution of labour mar- kets in the 20th century, in Sweden as well as in other developed countries. 47 Another noteworthy aspect is the increase in the female participation rate in the manufactur- ing industry, from 16 per cent in 1913 to 29 per cent at the end of the 1980s. Since then, the rate has fallen back to 25 percent. 48 The three occurrences of gender wage gap contractions in the 20th century, par- ticularly the last one, have attracted close attention. An earlier camp interpreted the narrowing of the gender pay gap after the Second World War as a response to policy changes promoting equal opportunities for male and female workers. 49 Most of these policies, for instance the abolition of separate wage tariffs for male and female work- ers and agreements designed to promote workers at the lower end of the market, were implemented in the 1960s and 1970s. Lars Svensson questions the idea that these strategies to favour wage compression were solely responsible for the female wage catch up in the 1960s and 1970s. Two factors cast doubt on the policy change 46 Svensson (1995, 1996). 47 Blau and Kahn (2000). 48 Most women are employed in sectors other than manufacturing. Before 1960 the proportion of women in gainful employment engaged in manufacturing was 30 per cent; today it is down to 10 per cent (Svensson 2003). 49 Hibbs (1990), Löfström and Gustafsson (1991) and Gustafsson and Lantz (1985). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 499 Figure 10.3. Te female-to-male wage ratio in manufacturing, 1865–2007 Note: Te pre-1913 series is based solely on wage ratios in the textile industry. Sources: Appendix, Tables A10.1 and A10.2. hypothesis: first, the tendency towards wage compression started before the change in wage policy; second, market and demographic forces, in terms of a relative scarcity of married women willing to enter the labour markets, and surplus demand for female labour services in connection with technological developments and rational- ization, were very favourable for the development of female relative wages. Svensson shows that the increase in demand for female labour was particularly strong in the metal, engineering and electro-mechanical industries. The most striking example is the automotive industry, where the female to male wage ratio increased by 32 per- centage points between 1960 and 1965, and female employment increased by 750 per cent. Similar unbalanced growth characteristics – varying rates of female relative wage gains within different industries – served to contract the gender pay gap in the two earlier episodes of convergence, in 1919–22 and from 1943 to 1949. Thus the effects of inter-industrial employment structures do not seem to have played an important part in the race between female and male wages in the manufacturing industry. 50 The other measure of wage dispersion which the present investigation enables us to explore is the variation of wage levels by industry. These inter-industry wage gaps are sometimes referred to as a surprisingly sustainable feature of economic develop- ment that calls for an explanation. One would perhaps expect the gaps to disappear altogether as a result of equilibrating market forces but they disobey this simple logic and thus have engaged numerous minds in economics and economic history. 51 The 50 Svensson (1995). 51 Cullen (1956), Johansen (1958), Krueger and Summers (1987) and Allen (1995). For Sweden, see Svensson (2004) and Hibbs and Locking (1996, 2000). 50 60 70 80 90 100 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 500 long-term Swedish evidence indicates that the 20th century witnessed a pro- nounced compression of these wage differentials. In the course of the nearly one- and-a-half centuries this chapter encompasses, these differentials have diminished but have not completely disappeared. Figure 10.4 shows the evolution of the coef- ficient of variation for male wages since 1871, and for female wages since 1921. Disregarding for a moment the anomalous peak in the mid-1870, attributable to the anomalous behaviour of wages for male sawmill workers, the ratio was roughly halved between the pre-1913 era of industrialization and the end of the 1960s, after which it has remained quite stable. Inter-industry wage dispersions were gen- erally smaller among female workers for the period as a whole but since the ten- dency towards wage compression among male workers was more pronounced and there was a slight tendency towards increased dispersion among female workers in the 1970s and 1980s, the two measures nearly converged around the turn of the century. Three eras of major wage compression permanently reduced the magni- tude of the coefficient of variation, each of them by about forty per cent. The first coincides broadly with the first pre-1913 wave of industrialization; the second started at the beginning of the 1930s and lasted until the end of the 1940s; and the third spanned the golden period after the Second World War, from the end of the 1950s to the beginning of the 1970s. 52 The deflation at the beginning of the 1920s also compressed the wage structure temporarily but wage dispersion quickly rebounded during the rest of the 1920s. The reason for the sudden wage compres- 52 Lundh (2002 p. 203) documents the coef cient of variation for a similar classifcation of indus- tries from the of cial wage statistics between 1930 and 1970. His documentation also shows that the wage structure became more compressed in the 1930s, 1940s and 1960s. Figure 10.4. Te evolution of inter-industry wage dispersion, 1871–2007 (coef cient of variation) Sources: Appendix, Tables A10.1 and A10.2 0 5 10 15 20 25 30 35 40 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 male female 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 501 sion during the deflation was that industries with relatively high wage levels expe- rienced a more precipitous drop in wages than did low-wage industries. The same mechanism compressed the wage structure at the beginning of the 1930s and dur- ing the Second World War. The size order of the hourly wage levels among the nine industries underwent some changes, particularly before 1913. Wages in mining remained at the top throughout the period, usually followed by engineering and paper. At the other end of the scale, the wood industry seems to have performed consistently badly, the 1870s notwithstanding. Other low wage industries were food (apart from the pre- 1913 period), textiles and quarrying. The female story is similar. The highest wages were paid to female workers in the engineering industry until the mid-1960s, when female wages in mining rose from the lowest to the highest position in just a few years. During the rest of the period, mining remained at the top of the table, while engineering wages declined relatively. Low wages were paid to female workers in the textile, food, wood and quarrying industries. In general, high-wage industries were oriented towards the world market. It is tempting to view this movement towards greater wage compression as a response to the rise of labour unions and to government involvement in the labour market through regulation and legislation designed to promote wage equality. In particular, the concurrence of wage compression on the one hand and centralized bargaining and wage solidarity on the other in the 1960s hints at a possible connec- Te Little Brewery, 1890, by Anders Zorn (1860–1920). Source: Nationalmuseum. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 502 tion, running from policy to performance. 53 The interlude of prominent equaliza- tion of inter-industry wage gaps in the 1960s made the Swedish wage structure in manufacturing very compressed in an international perspective, especially in relation to the US. 54 In Sweden, most of the industry wage differentials can be explained by industry differences in labour quality and working conditions, while in the US, the industry variable is a more important wage determinant. Swedish wage differentials by occupation have been almost erased. The difference between the two countries suggests that labour unions play an important part. 55 And, as Claudia Goldin con- cludes, and which contrasts with her study object, the American labour market, European labour markets have been fundamentally transformed by institutional wage settings, employment security laws, mandated work councils and centralized bargaining. 56 The remarkably uniform pace of wage progress among the nine indus- tries since at least the 1970s – itemized in Table 10.4, which shows the annual growth rates of female and male wages by industry in 1970–2007 – is difficult to imagine without the establishment of collective agreements and pervasive unionization in the manufacturing industry. In Sweden, the first wave of labour unions occurred in the 1880s. The establishment of new labour unions continued through the 1890s and 1900s until the general strike in 1909, which marked a turning point in labour union memberships. The share of workers associated with a labour union recovered in the 1920s and rose steadily from then on until the 1950s, when close to 80 per cent of blue-collar workers belonged to a labour union. 57 Table 10.4. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal hourly earnings by industry, 1970–2007 Male Female Mining 6.7 6.8 Metal 6.8 6.9 Engineering 6.7 7.0 Quarrying 6.8 7.0 Wood 6.7 7.0 Paper 6.8 7.0 Food 6.8 6.9 Textile 6.9 6.9 Chemical 7.1 7.1 Sources: Appendix, Tables A10.1 and A10.2. 53 Hedin and Holmlund (1995) and Hibbs and Locking (2000). 54 Kreuger and Summers (1987). 55 Edin and Zetterberg (1992). 56 Goldin (2000 p. 550). 57 Lundh (2002 pp. 100–1). 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 503 A modern printing works. Source: Riksbanken.se Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 504 Still, as others have pointed out many times, the perceived wisdom that policy and labour market institutions always exert a strong influence on the way history unfolds often turns out to be unfounded. Instead, authors often conclude that the voice and actions of unionized labour and the legislation which often follows in their wake simply reinforce long-term forces that have already been set in motion. 58 Sus- tainable gains in real wages started in the 1860s, before labour unions appeared on the stage and the levelling tendency of inter-industry wage differentials predated the policy of wage solidarity. 10.7. Conclusions This chapter presents series of earnings for female and male manufacturing workers from 1860 to 2007, for 9 separate industries and for manufacturing as a whole. Wage data from the pre-1913 period, when there is a paucity of official wage statis- tics, are taken from Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson’s major contribution, Wages in Sweden, whose first volume (1933) contains industry-specific wage series based on thus far novel and extensive archival research. They attempted to establish wage rates for homogeneous professional classifications, paying due consideration to the effects of age, qualifications and gender. In spite of all the decades that have elapsed since its publication, Wages in Sweden still sums up what we know about wage movements in the manufacturing sector before 1913. After 1913 the Social Board, first, and Statis- tics Sweden, later, provide average hourly earnings by industry. The coverage is sig- nificantly improved in relation to Wages in Sweden but the measure of average hourly earnings by industry in the official statistics makes no distinction between worker’s formal and professional qualifications. Te allocation of industries into nine groups is based on Statistics Sweden’s latest classifcation scheme, SNI 1992/2002, making it possible to carry the series forward henceforth. Te approach used to construct a weighted average of manufacturing is designed to provide an estimate of levels of average hourly earnings in nine indus- tries, with indices of hourly earnings in each industry scaled proportionally to the actual hourly wages in a reference year (1950). Te same methodology was used to establish series of employment. Te decomposition of the series of average wages into Laspeyres and Paasche index numbers shows that inter-occupational employment shifts did not contribute signifcantly to the growth of average earnings. Male nominal wages in the manufacturing sector increased at an annual average rate of 5.3 per cent from 1860 to 2007. Because nominal wages fail to account for price increases for the goods which make up workers’ consumption bundle, they lead 58 For instance, Roine and Waldenström (2009) show that the wealth share of the top decile started declining long before the welfare state and a set of redistributive policies could possibly have afected income distribution. Scheve and Stasavage (2009) likewise demonstrate that the decline of top income shares occurred before centralized wage bargaining was introduced in a sample of OECD countries. 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 505 us astray as to the real gains in purchasing power. Te real wage, which is the pre- ferred measure, has grown more moderately, 2.25 per cent annually. Te era after the Second World War stands out for the series of 35 years of unbroken real wage progress, averaging 4.1 per cent annually, unprecedented in modern times. Te most astonishing leap forward took place, however, in the aftermath of the First World War, 1919–21, when average hourly earnings soared by about 20 per cent annually, due above all to cuts in working hours. Te most prolonged and severe real wage cri- sis occurred in 1977 to 1983, cutting earlier real wage gains by 11 per cent. Tis long-term wage study permits a preliminary look at the evolution of two measures of wage dispersion: the gender pay ratio and inter-industry wage diferen- tials. Female wage convergence was profound in three well-defned periods, raising the female to male wage ratio from about 50 to 90. Te most recent and important of these episodes ran from 1961 to 1978. Since then, the ratio has been rather stable. A combination of policy, intended to promote wage compression via regulation, and the supply of and demand for female labour services, closed most of the remaining gender wage gap in the 1960s and 1970s. Te movement of the coef cient of varia- tion indicates that the wage structure has become more compressed since the pre- 1913 initial surge of industrialization. Te measure was roughly halved between the pre-1913 era of industrialization and the end of the 1960s, after which it has remained quite stable. While it is true that wage compression began before unionization and legislation could possibly have had a signifcant impact on the wage structure, collec- tive agreements between labour unions and the employer’s association surely set the stage for the levelling tendency during the 20th century. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 506 Appendix A10.1 Classification of industry Te following account gives the sources underlying the nominal wage series and employment weights. Words in italics mark entries in any of the following volumes: Wages: 1913–28: Sociala meddelanden, Socialstyrelsen 1929–51: Statistisk årsbok, Socialstyrelsen 1952–60: Statens ofentliga statistik, Löner, Socialstyrelsen 1961–93: Statens ofentliga statistik, Löner, Statistiska centralbyrån 1994–2007: Statistiska meddelanden, Statistiska centralbyrån Employment: 1913–58: Statens ofentliga statistik, Industri, Kommerskollegium 1959–86: Statens ofentliga statistik, Industri, Statistiska centralbyrån 1987–92: Arbetskraftsundersökning, Statistiska centralbyrån 1993–2007: Registerbaserad arbetsmarknadsstatistik, Statistiska centralbyrån Mining Wages 1860–1913: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. 104, Table 8), male annual wages at mines in central Sweden 1913–51: Gruvor och anrikningsverk 1952–71: Malmgruvor 1972–93: SNI 69 2 1994–2007: SNI 92 10–14 Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) 1913–67: Järnmalmsgruvor och anrikningsverk; Andra malmgruvor och anrikningsverk 1968–85: SNI 69 2 1986–2007: SNI 92 10–14 Metal Wages 1860–1913: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. 74–5, Table 6), male hourly wages at iron works 1913–51: Järn- stål och kopparverk; Järn- och stålmanufaktur; Metalmanufaktur; Guld- och silverfabriker 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 507 1952–71: Järn- och metallverk; Järn- och stålmanufaktur; Annan metallindustri 1972–93: SNI 69 37; SNI 69 381 1994–2007: SNI 92 27–28 Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–39: Verk för framställning av järn och stål; Verk för framställning av andra me taller; Järn- och stålmannufaktur; Metallmanufaktur; Guld- och silverfabriker; Annan järn- och metallindustri 1940–68: Järn- och stålverk; Andra metallverk; Järn- och stålmanufaktur; Guld- silver- och nysilverfabriker 1969–85: SNI 69 37; SNI 69 381 1986–2007: SNI 92 27–28 Engineering Wages 1860–1913: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. 115, Table 10), male hourly wages at metal manufacturing and engineering works. 1913–51: Mekaniska verkstäder; Skeppsvarv och båtbyggerier; Instrument och urfab- riker; Fabriker för elektriska maskiner 1952–71: Mekaniska verkstäder; Bil- och karosserifabriker; Reparationsverkstäder; Skeppsvarv; Elektroteknisk industri 1972–93: SNI 69 38 with SNI 69 381 excluded 1994–2007: SNI 92 29–35 Note: Te wage series for 1860–1913 contains a certain amount of industries that actually belong to Metal. Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–39: Mekaniska verkstäder; Skeppsvarv och båtbyggeri, Instrument- och urfabriker; Fabriker för elektriska apparater; Fabriker för elektriska apparater och ledningar 1940–67: Andra Mekaniska verkstäder och gjuterier; Skeppsvarv och båtbyggeri, Instru- ment- och urfabriker; Transportmedelsfabriker (utom skeppsvarv); Elektroteknisk indus- tri 1968–85: SNI 69 38, with SNI 69 381 excluded 1986–2007: SNI 92 29–35 Quarrying, clay and glass industry Wages 1868–1913: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933, monograph section), based on wage series for glass workers, workers at china factories, brick makers, workers at cement factories and hewers. For a more detailed description, see Prado (2008a p. 59). Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 508 1913–51: Jord- och stenindustri 1952–71: Jord- och stenindustri; Kolgruvor 1972–93: SNI 69 36 1993–2007: SNI 92 26 Employment 1868–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–51: Jord- och stenindustri 1952–68: Jord- och stenindustri; Kolgruvor 1969–85: SNI 69 36 1986–2007: SNI 92 26 Wood industry Wages 1870–1913: Bagge, Lundborg and Svennilson (1933 p. 143, Table 12), arithmetic mean of the series of hourly earnings of sawers and plank pilers 1913–71: Träindustri 1972–93: SNI 69 33 1994–2007: SNI 92 20 Note: Te wage series for 1870–1913 and 1994–2007 do not include the furniture industry Employment 1870–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–51: Träindustri 1952–68: Träindustri; Wallboardfabriker 1969–85: SNI 69 33; SNI 69 34113 1986–2007: SNI 92 20 Pulp, paper and printing Wages 1860–1913: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. 172, Table 15), hourly earn- ings for male wood pulp workers and hourly earnings for skilled paper mill workers (p. 187, Table 16). 1913–51: Pappers- och grafsk industri 1952–71: Massafabriker och pappersbruk; Pappersvaru- och grafsk industri 1972–93: SNI 69 34 1994–2007: SNI 92 21–22 Note: Te wage series for 1860–1913 does not include the book printing industry. Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 509 1913–51: Pappers- och grafsk industri 1952–68: Massa- och pappersindustri; Grafsk industri 1969–85: SNI 69 34, with SNI 69 34113 excluded 1986–2007: SNI 92 21–22 Food, beverages and tobacco Wages 1861–1913: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. 196, Table 18), male and female hourly wages 1913–51: Livsmedelsindustri 1952–71: Livsmedelsindustri; Dryckesvaru- och tobaksindustri 1972–93: SNI 69 31 1994–2007: SNI 92 15–16 Note: Te wage series for 1861–1913 does not include the tobacco industry Employment 1861–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–51: Livsmedelsindustri 1952–68: Livsmedelsindustri; Dryckesvaru- och tobaksindustri 1969–85: SNI 69 31 1986–2007: SNI 92 15–16 Textiles, leather and hair Wages 1865–13: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. 220, Table 20), male and female hourly wages 1913–71: Textil- och beklädnadsindustri; Läder- och hårindustri 1972–93: SNI 69 32 1994–2007: SNI 92 17–19 Note: Te wage series for male and female wages in 1865–1913 does not include the leather and hair industry. Employment 1865–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–68: Textil- och beklädnadsindustri; Läder- och hårindustri 1969–85: SNI 69 32 1986–2007: SNI 92 17–19 Chemical Wages 1871–1913: Bagge, Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 monographic secton) arithme- tic mean of the series of wages for workers at soap factories, nitroglycerine factories, Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 510 superphosphate factories, match factories and candle moulders at stearine factories. For a more detailed description, see Prado (2008a p. 61–2). 1913–71: Kemisk-teknisk industri; Gummivaruindustri 1972–93: SNI 69 35 1993–2007: SNI 92 23–25 Employment 1871–1912: Prado (2008b) 1913–68: Kemisk-teknisk industri, Gummivaruindustri, Gummirepationsverkstäder 1969–85: SNI 69 35 1986–2007: SNI 92 23–25 Appendix A10.2. Table A10.1. Male hourly earnings, 1860-2007, kronor Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1860 0.20 0.08 0.12 0.11 1861 0.21 0.09 0.12 0.11 0.16 1862 0.22 0.13 0.12 0.11 0.16 1863 0.21 0.12 0.13 0.12 0.16 1864 0.22 0.10 0.12 0.12 0.16 1865 0.22 0.11 0.13 0.12 0.17 0.13 1866 0.22 0.09 0.13 0.12 0.17 0.13 1867 0.22 0.10 0.14 0.12 0.17 0.13 1868 0.23 0.13 0.14 0.15 0.12 0.17 0.13 1869 0.23 0.15 0.16 0.14 0.12 0.17 0.13 1870 0.23 0.10 0.17 0.15 0.29 0.12 0.17 0.13 1871 0.24 0.12 0.17 0.16 0.27 0.12 0.17 0.13 0.16 0.17 1872 0.27 0.15 0.19 0.17 0.30 0.14 0.19 0.13 0.19 0.20 1873 0.33 0.15 0.20 0.18 0.33 0.16 0.21 0.14 0.23 0.22 1874 0.35 0.18 0.21 0.20 0.44 0.18 0.22 0.16 0.25 0.25 1875 0.34 0.18 0.21 0.22 0.28 0.19 0.22 0.17 0.27 0.22 1876 0.32 0.17 0.20 0.22 0.29 0.19 0.20 0.18 0.27 0.22 1877 0.32 0.18 0.19 0.22 0.32 0.19 0.23 0.18 0.27 0.23 1878 0.30 0.17 0.18 0.20 0.27 0.19 0.22 0.18 0.25 0.22 1879 0.28 0.15 0.17 0.16 0.23 0.18 0.22 0.17 0.24 0.20 1880 0.29 0.16 0.19 0.19 0.20 0.18 0.22 0.17 0.25 0.19 1881 0.30 0.14 0.21 0.20 0.22 0.18 0.22 0.18 0.25 0.20 1882 0.31 0.16 0.21 0.20 0.23 0.18 0.22 0.19 0.26 0.21 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 511 Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1883 0.32 0.17 0.21 0.20 0.23 0.19 0.21 0.19 0.26 0.21 1884 0.32 0.17 0.21 0.20 0.22 0.19 0.22 0.18 0.26 0.21 1885 0.31 0.17 0.21 0.20 0.22 0.19 0.22 0.19 0.26 0.21 1886 0.29 0.17 0.20 0.20 0.22 0.18 0.22 0.19 0.26 0.21 1887 0.28 0.17 0.20 0.20 0.21 0.18 0.22 0.19 0.26 0.20 1888 0.26 0.17 0.21 0.20 0.22 0.19 0.22 0.19 0.26 0.21 1889 0.29 0.16 0.23 0.22 0.23 0.19 0.23 0.19 0.28 0.21 1890 0.31 0.18 0.23 0.22 0.22 0.20 0.25 0.20 0.30 0.22 1891 0.31 0.17 0.24 0.23 0.22 0.22 0.26 0.20 0.30 0.23 1892 0.32 0.19 0.23 0.23 0.23 0.22 0.27 0.21 0.31 0.24 1893 0.32 0.18 0.24 0.23 0.23 0.22 0.28 0.21 0.31 0.24 1894 0.32 0.18 0.24 0.24 0.23 0.22 0.28 0.22 0.31 0.24 1895 0.32 0.18 0.25 0.24 0.23 0.23 0.28 0.22 0.32 0.25 1896 0.33 0.18 0.27 0.25 0.24 0.24 0.29 0.22 0.30 0.25 1897 0.35 0.19 0.27 0.25 0.25 0.26 0.32 0.23 0.32 0.26 1898 0.37 0.21 0.30 0.26 0.26 0.27 0.33 0.25 0.33 0.28 1899 0.39 0.22 0.31 0.28 0.27 0.28 0.34 0.26 0.34 0.29 1900 0.41 0.23 0.33 0.28 0.28 0.29 0.35 0.26 0.35 0.30 1901 0.42 0.24 0.32 0.29 0.27 0.29 0.35 0.28 0.35 0.30 1902 0.42 0.25 0.33 0.28 0.27 0.29 0.36 0.29 0.36 0.31 1903 0.41 0.25 0.33 0.29 0.28 0.30 0.37 0.28 0.36 0.31 1904 0.43 0.26 0.36 0.29 0.29 0.31 0.37 0.28 0.36 0.32 1905 0.43 0.27 0.38 0.30 0.30 0.32 0.39 0.30 0.37 0.33 1906 0.45 0.29 0.39 0.32 0.30 0.33 0.41 0.32 0.40 0.34 1907 0.48 0.29 0.41 0.34 0.32 0.36 0.42 0.33 0.43 0.36 1908 0.51 0.29 0.42 0.35 0.32 0.32 0.45 0.34 0.44 0.37 1909 0.41 0.31 0.43 0.34 0.32 0.38 0.47 0.35 0.44 0.38 1910 0.53 0.37 0.44 0.36 0.34 0.38 0.48 0.35 0.43 0.40 1911 0.55 0.37 0.45 0.37 0.35 0.39 0.47 0.37 0.44 0.41 1912 0.55 0.39 0.47 0.38 0.36 0.40 0.49 0.40 0.45 0.42 1913 0.57 0.39 0.46 0.42 0.37 0.43 0.49 0.41 0.46 0.43 1914 0.45 1915 0.48 1916 0.53 1917 0.67 1918 0.96 1919 1.28 1920 1.58 1921 2.06 1.42 1.68 1.44 1.34 1.55 1.79 1.48 1.66 1.57 1922 1.43 1.06 1.25 0.94 0.95 1.08 1.39 1.10 1.16 1.13 1923 1.17 1.02 1.13 0.97 0.98 1.08 1.18 1.06 1.07 1.06 1924 1.36 1.04 1.17 0.99 0.98 1.07 1.23 1.07 1.11 1.09 1925 1.41 1.07 1.19 1.03 0.99 1.11 1.31 1.08 1.14 1.12 Table A10.1 (cont.). Male hourly earnings, 1860-2007, kronor Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 512 Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1926 1.52 1.08 1.20 1.04 0.98 1.15 1.37 1.06 1.13 1.14 1927 1.58 1.09 1.21 0.94 1.01 1.15 1.34 1.07 1.13 1.13 1928 1.63 1.11 1.23 0.95 1.02 1.19 1.35 1.08 1.14 1.15 1929 1.65 1.13 1.26 0.97 1.05 1.20 1.38 1.07 1.17 1.17 1930 1.71 1.15 1.27 0.98 1.04 1.23 1.38 1.09 1.20 1.19 1931 1.73 1.13 1.27 0.97 1.00 1.24 1.37 1.09 1.20 1.17 1932 1.65 1.09 1.23 0.94 0.96 1.19 1.37 1.06 1.20 1.14 1933 1.54 1.09 1.22 0.94 0.95 1.16 1.36 1.07 1.20 1.13 1934 1.42 1.11 1.23 0.97 0.94 1.19 1.33 1.06 1.19 1.14 1935 1.44 1.14 1.24 0.98 0.97 1.21 1.34 1.06 1.20 1.15 1936 1.50 1.15 1.27 1.00 0.96 1.24 1.35 1.07 1.23 1.17 1937 1.63 1.19 1.30 1.02 1.00 1.30 1.38 1.12 1.27 1.21 1938 1.72 1.27 1.39 1.09 1.06 1.37 1.43 1.14 1.33 1.28 1939 1.79 1.32 1.43 1.12 1.10 1.41 1.45 1.18 1.36 1.32 1940 1.84 1.44 1.57 1.23 1.18 1.52 1.55 1.31 1.49 1.45 1941 1.96 1.57 1.69 1.31 1.27 1.63 1.63 1.40 1.61 1.56 1942 2.16 1.71 1.85 1.46 1.40 1.76 1.75 1.55 1.72 1.70 1943 2.26 1.79 1.91 1.57 1.47 1.82 1.83 1.62 1.78 1.77 1944 2.28 1.84 1.96 1.63 1.51 1.87 1.85 1.70 1.83 1.82 1945 2.33 1.92 2.05 1.73 1.63 1.95 1.92 1.79 1.93 1.91 1946 2.47 2.03 2.15 1.88 1.81 2.10 2.04 1.95 2.07 2.04 1947 2.85 2.34 2.45 2.18 2.07 2.40 2.31 2.25 2.39 2.34 1948 3.20 2.55 2.65 2.34 2.25 2.59 2.50 2.46 2.59 2.54 1949 3.34 2.66 2.76 2.42 2.31 2.62 2.49 2.57 2.67 2.62 1950 3.57 2.78 2.88 2.51 2.40 2.70 2.57 2.63 2.78 2.73 1951 4.18 3.37 3.46 3.04 2.95 3.24 3.05 3.10 3.15 3.27 1952 5.03 4.05 4.14 3.59 3.42 3.97 3.57 3.59 3.83 3.91 1953 5.30 4.27 4.44 3.76 3.59 4.11 3.75 3.75 4.03 4.13 1954 5.50 4.41 4.60 4.00 3.84 4.36 3.85 3.89 4.28 4.31 1955 5.92 4.77 4.93 4.34 4.17 4.79 4.23 4.19 4.61 4.68 1956 6.36 5.19 5.35 4.66 4.48 5.20 4.52 4.55 5.01 5.06 1957 6.80 5.51 5.64 4.96 4.75 5.48 4.76 4.80 5.28 5.35 1958 7.20 5.84 6.01 5.27 5.05 5.75 5.05 5.08 5.53 5.68 1959 7.55 6.12 6.25 5.52 5.32 6.00 5.33 5.30 5.73 5.93 1960 8.03 6.51 6.60 5.99 5.67 6.46 5.71 5.64 6.10 6.32 1961 8.62 7.05 7.10 6.45 6.11 6.97 6.19 6.14 6.56 6.83 1962 9.04 7.31 7.68 7.07 6.66 7.47 6.92 6.76 7.06 7.35 1963 9.58 8.09 8.23 7.59 7.19 8.02 7.51 7.25 7.53 7.93 1964 10.17 8.72 8.86 8.31 7.83 8.77 8.16 7.91 8.19 8.58 1965 10.95 9.60 9.73 9.19 8.67 9.74 8.97 8.70 9.08 9.46 1966 11.78 10.37 10.53 10.04 9.38 10.56 9.94 9.46 9.82 10.26 1967 12.46 11.01 11.41 10.77 10.20 11.51 10.76 10.13 10.59 11.06 1968 13.23 11.98 12.10 11.51 10.85 12.55 11.46 11.01 11.25 11.85 Table A10.1 (cont.). Male hourly earnings, 1860-2007, kronor 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 513 Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1969 14.32 12.99 13.06 12.58 11.85 13.76 12.43 11.95 12.28 12.86 1970 16.26 14.47 14.50 13.94 13.20 15.23 13.80 13.14 13.75 14.30 1971 18.21 15.97 15.90 15.13 14.31 16.44 15.14 14.44 15.03 15.67 1972 19.56 17.92 17.10 17.16 16.12 18.65 17.31 16.40 16.62 17.33 1973 21.09 19.57 18.62 18.43 17.57 20.13 18.60 17.79 17.86 18.82 1974 23.96 21.96 20.61 20.59 19.90 23.08 20.58 19.91 20.11 21.04 1975 29.35 25.87 23.96 24.08 23.02 27.30 24.27 23.13 23.61 24.64 1976 32.85 29.13 26.83 27.34 25.76 31.14 27.88 26.30 27.18 27.81 1977 36.45 31.16 29.11 29.63 27.84 33.49 29.77 28.15 29.37 30.02 1978 39.09 33.78 31.54 32.50 30.89 36.60 33.04 30.84 32.29 32.70 1979 41.46 38.05 34.85 36.03 33.87 41.41 36.68 34.45 35.94 36.39 1980 45.60 41.77 38.27 40.51 37.21 45.72 40.44 38.31 40.09 40.12 1981 50.27 44.87 41.95 43.83 40.63 49.79 44.46 41.54 43.71 43.74 1982 51.49 47.74 44.29 46.37 42.72 51.98 46.56 43.75 46.40 46.15 1983 54.28 50.32 46.88 49.01 45.28 55.54 49.59 46.20 49.44 48.90 1984 63.23 56.30 52.00 55.16 50.32 62.64 54.14 51.85 55.56 54.51 1985 67.12 61.34 56.25 59.96 54.53 68.66 58.80 55.36 60.00 59.11 1986 72.47 65.84 60.23 64.50 58.24 72.80 62.77 59.80 64.29 63.25 1987 77.18 71.81 63.80 68.68 62.78 78.51 67.23 64.06 69.21 67.77 1988 83.66 75.33 69.01 74.81 67.62 84.40 72.95 69.24 75.20 72.87 1989 89.17 83.57 76.08 81.71 75.27 91.15 80.71 76.44 83.18 80.36 1990 100.89 92.49 83.52 92.02 83.79 101.88 87.67 83.39 91.92 88.82 1991 108.76 96.29 87.93 94.61 87.05 106.54 90.84 86.80 95.98 92.84 1992 117.45 102.56 95.36 100.25 94.45 110.00 97.70 94.24 104.63 99.57 1993 117.39 102.93 94.50 100.26 94.47 110.82 97.83 93.32 103.79 99.52 1994 121.75 105.66 97.43 103.18 97.57 115.51 101.37 94.34 107.69 102.68 1995 124.85 111.61 102.16 105.85 102.11 120.43 105.52 100.16 109.88 107.22 1996 135.83 118.36 111.75 113.89 110.10 129.62 112.99 105.61 117.19 115.69 1997 140.39 124.53 115.32 117.76 113.67 133.91 115.62 108.70 122.90 119.88 1998 138.48 129.11 120.40 124.54 117.28 137.53 119.82 116.82 126.11 124.32 1999 141.94 132.42 122.02 126.47 119.56 138.90 121.30 118.07 131.75 126.57 2000 147.66 135.74 127.82 128.89 123.16 144.83 128.47 126.56 136.58 131.75 2001 152.31 143.02 129.72 135.07 128.81 150.52 129.95 129.81 142.52 135.72 2002 158.03 145.31 133.59 137.61 132.90 154.19 136.50 131.18 146.75 139.48 2003 160.77 150.16 139.69 143.78 137.22 158.95 140.08 138.18 151.72 144.78 2004 168.40 154.09 144.25 148.50 142.03 166.70 145.14 142.93 156.19 149.65 2005 172.69 157.89 150.10 146.69 146.24 170.99 149.22 148.80 160.24 154.32 2006 184.49 162.54 154.50 150.92 150.08 176.96 154.78 150.55 166.58 159.18 2007 192.95 171.07 161.13 160.73 157.17 183.51 161.08 157.67 171.53 166.17 Table A10.1 (cont.). Male hourly earnings, 1860-2007, kronor Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 514 Table A10.2. Female hourly earnings 1865–2007, kronor Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1865 0.07 1866 0.08 1867 0.08 1868 0.07 1869 0.07 1870 0.07 1871 0.08 1872 0.08 1873 0.08 1874 0.09 1875 0.09 1876 0.09 1877 0.10 1878 0.09 1879 0.09 1880 0.09 1881 0.10 1882 0.10 1883 0.10 1884 0.11 1885 0.11 1886 0.11 1887 0.11 1888 0.09 0.11 1889 0.09 0.12 1890 0.12 0.12 1891 0.13 0.12 1892 0.13 0.12 1893 0.13 0.12 1894 0.13 0.13 1895 0.14 0.13 1896 0.15 0.14 1897 0.15 0.14 1898 0.16 0.15 1899 0.15 0.15 1900 0.16 0.15 1901 0.16 0.15 1902 0.17 0.15 1903 0.17 0.16 1904 0.18 0.16 1905 0.18 0.17 1906 0.20 0.18 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 515 Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1907 0.21 0.19 1908 0.23 0.19 1909 0.26 0.20 1910 0.27 0.21 1911 0.26 0.21 1912 0.27 0.23 1913 0.28 0.23 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 0.91 1.07 0.83 0.83 0.99 1.10 0.91 1.00 0.98 1922 0.70 0.77 0.57 0.77 0.75 0.87 0.71 0.76 0.75 1923 0.66 0.70 0.59 0.65 0.69 0.75 0.68 0.69 0.69 1924 0.69 0.72 0.55 0.69 0.70 0.79 0.68 0.69 0.71 1925 0.72 0.81 0.60 0.68 0.69 0.83 0.69 0.71 0.72 1926 0.72 0.87 0.63 0.69 0.74 0.85 0.68 0.72 0.73 1927 0.72 0.90 0.59 0.72 0.70 0.86 0.69 0.72 0.74 1928 0.73 0.91 0.61 0.74 0.72 0.84 0.70 0.73 0.74 1929 0.73 0.93 0.66 0.69 0.74 0.86 0.70 0.73 0.75 1930 0.74 0.96 0.67 0.69 0.74 0.86 0.72 0.77 0.76 1931 0.74 0.93 0.67 0.71 0.76 0.85 0.71 0.77 0.76 1932 0.73 0.85 0.65 0.73 0.75 0.85 0.72 0.77 0.75 1933 0.72 0.84 0.65 0.78 0.74 0.85 0.70 0.77 0.74 1934 0.73 0.86 0.65 0.75 0.76 0.83 0.70 0.76 0.74 1935 0.75 0.86 0.64 0.74 0.76 0.84 0.71 0.76 0.75 1936 0.75 0.87 0.64 0.69 0.77 0.84 0.71 0.77 0.75 1937 0.76 0.89 0.64 0.70 0.80 0.86 0.74 0.78 0.78 1938 0.82 0.98 0.68 0.70 0.83 0.88 0.76 0.83 0.81 1939 0.84 1.02 0.69 0.75 0.88 0.91 0.80 0.83 0.84 1940 0.92 1.09 0.75 0.88 0.95 1.00 0.89 0.91 0.93 1941 1.00 1.19 0.80 0.90 1.04 1.07 0.96 1.01 1.01 1942 1.08 1.28 0.89 0.99 1.13 1.15 1.05 1.09 1.10 1943 1.13 1.22 0.96 1.00 1.18 1.20 1.09 1.11 1.13 1944 1.18 1.35 1.02 1.06 1.22 1.22 1.16 1.15 1.19 1945 1.26 1.43 1.08 1.12 1.30 1.27 1.25 1.23 1.27 1946 1.35 1.48 1.20 1.30 1.43 1.40 1.37 1.33 1.38 1947 1.57 1.73 1.47 1.53 1.69 1.64 1.61 1.57 1.63 1948 1.74 1.89 1.61 1.70 1.88 1.78 1.79 1.73 1.80 1949 1.81 1.98 1.66 1.75 1.91 1.86 1.86 1.82 1.87 Table A10.2 (cont.). Female hourly earnings 1865–2007, kronor Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 516 Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1950 1.90 2.07 1.70 1.82 1.96 1.87 1.92 1.91 1.93 1951 2.30 2.49 2.07 2.21 2.29 2.29 2.29 2.24 2.31 1952 2.52 2.80 3.05 2.49 2.57 2.91 2.71 2.67 2.68 2.77 1953 2.59 2.92 3.21 2.59 2.72 3.01 2.85 2.79 2.81 2.88 1954 2.67 3.01 3.31 2.82 2.84 3.11 2.96 2.91 2.99 3.00 1955 2.87 3.25 3.53 2.94 3.18 3.42 3.23 3.13 3.25 3.25 1956 3.14 3.56 3.88 3.20 3.45 3.71 3.50 3.40 3.54 3.55 1957 3.22 3.79 4.11 3.39 3.68 3.92 3.69 3.62 3.75 3.76 1958 3.33 4.02 4.38 3.55 3.85 4.13 3.90 3.82 3.94 3.98 1959 3.39 4.21 4.54 3.68 4.12 4.28 4.11 3.96 4.08 4.14 1960 3.84 4.50 4.80 3.97 4.41 4.53 4.43 4.21 4.35 4.41 1961 4.32 4.87 5.15 4.28 4.73 4.88 4.82 4.56 4.69 4.78 1962 4.80 5.40 5.63 4.77 5.26 5.32 5.39 5.02 5.12 5.27 1963 5.30 5.97 6.32 5.21 5.82 5.83 5.91 5.46 5.50 5.79 1964 5.97 6.64 7.05 5.75 6.35 6.53 6.49 6.01 6.04 6.41 1965 7.03 7.58 7.96 6.50 7.16 7.27 7.18 6.66 6.82 7.21 1966 8.38 8.39 8.77 7.34 7.90 8.02 8.02 7.31 7.59 7.99 1967 9.89 9.19 9.56 8.04 8.76 8.94 8.81 7.98 8.40 8.77 1968 10.46 9.65 10.12 8.82 9.28 9.66 9.33 8.69 8.99 9.38 1969 11.43 10.42 10.89 9.78 10.26 10.74 10.26 9.55 9.90 10.29 1970 13.55 11.73 12.14 11.11 11.48 11.89 11.49 10.62 11.25 11.55 1971 15.35 13.27 13.68 12.50 12.87 13.15 12.82 11.82 12.60 12.97 1972 17.14 15.43 15.09 14.49 14.45 15.17 14.83 13.49 14.40 14.75 1973 18.39 16.86 16.44 15.83 15.87 16.51 15.94 14.76 15.47 16.06 1974 20.78 18.80 18.20 17.66 17.81 18.98 17.61 16.39 17.42 17.96 1975 25.17 22.48 21.55 21.10 20.79 22.72 20.82 19.37 20.45 21.34 1976 28.17 25.58 24.82 24.36 23.74 25.27 24.22 22.46 23.55 24.48 1977 31.55 27.86 26.93 26.43 25.76 28.47 26.08 24.57 25.45 26.73 1978 33.90 30.57 29.63 29.42 28.84 31.76 29.10 27.19 27.97 29.55 1979 35.88 34.30 33.29 32.24 32.07 35.33 32.47 30.34 31.14 33.05 1980 41.08 37.85 36.82 36.36 35.40 39.46 36.11 33.81 34.73 36.71 1981 44.78 40.75 40.62 40.00 38.57 42.82 39.57 36.96 37.87 40.14 1982 46.25 43.02 43.02 41.78 40.48 45.29 41.90 38.73 40.20 42.42 1983 49.29 45.53 45.67 44.37 43.11 47.91 44.34 41.09 42.83 45.00 1984 57.73 50.44 50.75 50.56 47.38 53.52 48.42 45.31 48.13 49.98 1985 60.59 55.27 54.75 54.77 51.59 58.59 52.57 48.74 51.98 54.24 1986 66.80 59.45 58.90 59.55 55.00 62.64 56.67 52.76 56.03 58.35 1987 70.42 65.18 62.22 63.25 59.24 66.93 60.62 55.93 60.06 62.34 1988 73.10 67.42 67.33 68.64 63.52 72.01 65.62 60.46 64.96 67.07 1989 77.82 74.49 73.05 74.19 70.09 78.27 72.18 65.90 71.21 73.25 1990 87.54 81.49 79.40 82.73 77.00 86.49 78.27 73.61 78.22 80.21 1991 92.21 84.88 84.45 85.95 80.26 91.50 81.46 74.82 81.74 84.43 1992 101.83 90.14 92.15 92.33 86.98 94.79 90.13 82.01 84.70 90.61 Table A10.2 (cont.). Female hourly earnings 1865–2007, kronor 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 517 Mining Metal En gin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal Weight- ed average 1993 99.82 91.54 91.00 91.41 88.16 94.23 88.75 80.47 88.14 90.39 1994 102.92 93.31 94.09 95.78 91.90 96.57 93.93 81.06 91.93 93.48 1995 108.61 97.90 99.33 98.84 94.05 99.93 96.50 84.98 94.20 97.39 1996 116.24 104.40 107.62 104.33 107.23 107.56 104.45 90.65 100.16 105.03 1997 121.08 109.47 112.67 110.35 110.60 113.43 106.44 94.68 105.19 109.75 1998 116.70 115.08 117.21 114.19 113.65 120.65 110.87 101.29 108.96 114.76 1999 119.78 117.82 120.60 117.43 114.58 120.92 110.50 103.94 116.52 117.49 2000 122.85 121.11 125.72 119.47 117.98 125.63 115.43 106.95 120.12 121.93 2001 128.53 130.25 126.41 123.31 123.14 130.58 119.13 111.52 125.09 125.58 2002 138.23 130.42 127.65 125.95 126.19 134.15 125.53 114.53 130.20 128.57 2003 138.70 136.82 134.36 129.44 129.01 138.13 127.63 119.82 134.01 133.47 2004 153.01 141.94 138.47 132.08 134.64 144.57 133.05 122.95 137.86 138.27 2005 159.51 145.51 143.60 137.60 140.39 149.21 135.51 125.35 140.94 142.47 2006 176.89 149.14 149.40 141.44 142.85 152.34 141.92 130.05 145.86 147.46 2007 186.94 154.52 154.14 146.73 148.95 159.11 147.21 134.62 151.31 152.85 Table A10.3 Male employment weights, 1871–2007 Mining Metal Engin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal 1871 0.04 0.25 0.07 0.07 0.18 0.03 0.19 0.05 0.11 1872 0.05 0.25 0.07 0.08 0.18 0.04 0.18 0.05 0.10 1873 0.05 0.24 0.08 0.08 0.18 0.04 0.17 0.05 0.10 1874 0.06 0.24 0.09 0.08 0.17 0.05 0.17 0.05 0.10 1875 0.05 0.24 0.09 0.08 0.17 0.05 0.17 0.05 0.10 1876 0.04 0.25 0.08 0.09 0.18 0.05 0.16 0.05 0.10 1877 0.04 0.24 0.08 0.10 0.19 0.05 0.16 0.05 0.10 1878 0.03 0.24 0.07 0.10 0.19 0.04 0.17 0.05 0.10 1879 0.03 0.24 0.07 0.10 0.20 0.04 0.17 0.05 0.10 1880 0.04 0.25 0.07 0.11 0.18 0.05 0.16 0.05 0.10 1881 0.04 0.25 0.08 0.09 0.18 0.05 0.16 0.05 0.10 1882 0.04 0.25 0.09 0.09 0.17 0.05 0.16 0.04 0.10 1883 0.04 0.25 0.10 0.09 0.16 0.05 0.16 0.04 0.10 1884 0.04 0.25 0.09 0.10 0.17 0.05 0.16 0.04 0.10 1885 0.04 0.24 0.09 0.10 0.17 0.05 0.16 0.05 0.10 1886 0.04 0.25 0.09 0.10 0.16 0.06 0.16 0.05 0.09 1887 0.04 0.24 0.08 0.10 0.17 0.06 0.16 0.05 0.09 1888 0.04 0.25 0.09 0.10 0.16 0.07 0.15 0.05 0.09 1889 0.03 0.25 0.10 0.11 0.16 0.07 0.14 0.05 0.08 1890 0.03 0.26 0.10 0.11 0.15 0.07 0.14 0.05 0.08 1891 0.03 0.24 0.10 0.14 0.15 0.08 0.14 0.05 0.08 1892 0.04 0.20 0.11 0.14 0.15 0.07 0.16 0.05 0.08 Table A10.2 (cont.). Female hourly earnings 1865–2007, kronor Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 518 Mining Metal Engin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal 1893 0.04 0.16 0.11 0.15 0.15 0.08 0.17 0.05 0.08 1894 0.04 0.16 0.11 0.15 0.15 0.08 0.16 0.06 0.08 1895 0.04 0.16 0.12 0.16 0.15 0.09 0.16 0.06 0.08 1896 0.04 0.15 0.13 0.17 0.15 0.09 0.15 0.06 0.07 1897 0.04 0.14 0.14 0.17 0.15 0.09 0.14 0.06 0.07 1898 0.04 0.14 0.14 0.18 0.14 0.09 0.14 0.06 0.07 1899 0.03 0.15 0.15 0.18 0.14 0.09 0.13 0.06 0.06 1900 0.04 0.14 0.15 0.18 0.14 0.09 0.13 0.06 0.06 1901 0.04 0.14 0.14 0.18 0.14 0.10 0.14 0.06 0.06 1902 0.04 0.14 0.14 0.19 0.13 0.10 0.14 0.06 0.06 1903 0.04 0.14 0.14 0.19 0.14 0.10 0.13 0.06 0.05 1904 0.04 0.14 0.15 0.19 0.13 0.11 0.13 0.07 0.05 1905 0.04 0.15 0.15 0.20 0.12 0.11 0.13 0.07 0.05 1906 0.04 0.14 0.15 0.19 0.12 0.11 0.13 0.07 0.05 1907 0.03 0.15 0.16 0.18 0.12 0.12 0.12 0.06 0.05 1908 0.04 0.14 0.17 0.18 0.11 0.13 0.12 0.06 0.05 1909 0.03 0.14 0.15 0.18 0.11 0.13 0.13 0.07 0.05 1910 0.03 0.14 0.15 0.18 0.12 0.13 0.13 0.07 0.05 1911 0.04 0.14 0.16 0.18 0.12 0.13 0.12 0.07 0.05 1912 0.03 0.14 0.16 0.18 0.11 0.13 0.12 0.07 0.06 1913 0.04 0.14 0.16 0.18 0.11 0.13 0.12 0.07 0.06 1914 0.03 0.14 0.17 0.18 0.11 0.13 0.12 0.07 0.06 1915 0.04 0.14 0.18 0.15 0.11 0.13 0.12 0.07 0.06 1916 0.04 0.14 0.20 0.13 0.12 0.13 0.12 0.07 0.06 1917 0.04 0.14 0.21 0.14 0.11 0.13 0.11 0.06 0.06 1918 0.04 0.14 0.22 0.15 0.11 0.13 0.10 0.06 0.07 1919 0.03 0.13 0.21 0.15 0.11 0.14 0.10 0.06 0.07 1920 0.03 0.13 0.20 0.14 0.11 0.15 0.11 0.07 0.06 1921 0.03 0.12 0.18 0.14 0.10 0.16 0.14 0.07 0.06 1922 0.03 0.12 0.13 0.14 0.12 0.18 0.14 0.08 0.06 1923 0.02 0.13 0.16 0.15 0.12 0.17 0.10 0.09 0.06 1924 0.02 0.13 0.17 0.15 0.11 0.16 0.12 0.08 0.06 1925 0.02 0.13 0.18 0.16 0.11 0.16 0.11 0.08 0.06 1926 0.02 0.13 0.18 0.15 0.11 0.16 0.11 0.08 0.05 1927 0.02 0.13 0.19 0.15 0.11 0.17 0.09 0.08 0.05 1928 0.02 0.13 0.19 0.14 0.11 0.17 0.11 0.08 0.05 1929 0.02 0.13 0.20 0.15 0.11 0.17 0.10 0.08 0.05 1930 0.02 0.13 0.20 0.15 0.10 0.16 0.10 0.08 0.05 1931 0.02 0.14 0.20 0.14 0.11 0.16 0.10 0.09 0.05 1932 0.02 0.15 0.19 0.13 0.11 0.16 0.10 0.09 0.05 1933 0.01 0.16 0.19 0.12 0.10 0.16 0.10 0.10 0.05 1934 0.02 0.16 0.20 0.11 0.11 0.15 0.10 0.10 0.05 1935 0.02 0.17 0.21 0.11 0.11 0.14 0.10 0.09 0.05 1936 0.02 0.17 0.22 0.12 0.10 0.14 0.09 0.09 0.05 Table A10.3 (cont.). Male employment weights, 1871–2007 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 519 Mining Metal Engin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal 1937 0.02 0.18 0.23 0.12 0.10 0.13 0.09 0.09 0.05 1938 0.02 0.17 0.24 0.12 0.10 0.13 0.09 0.09 0.05 1939 0.02 0.17 0.24 0.11 0.10 0.13 0.09 0.09 0.05 1940 0.02 0.15 0.28 0.09 0.09 0.12 0.10 0.10 0.06 1941 0.02 0.15 0.29 0.10 0.09 0.11 0.09 0.09 0.06 1942 0.02 0.15 0.29 0.12 0.08 0.11 0.09 0.08 0.06 1943 0.02 0.14 0.30 0.13 0.09 0.10 0.09 0.08 0.06 1944 0.02 0.14 0.30 0.12 0.09 0.10 0.09 0.08 0.06 1945 0.01 0.14 0.29 0.12 0.09 0.11 0.09 0.08 0.06 1946 0.01 0.14 0.31 0.11 0.09 0.12 0.08 0.09 0.06 1947 0.01 0.14 0.31 0.10 0.09 0.12 0.08 0.09 0.06 1948 0.01 0.14 0.32 0.10 0.08 0.12 0.08 0.09 0.06 1949 0.01 0.14 0.33 0.09 0.08 0.12 0.08 0.09 0.06 1950 0.01 0.14 0.33 0.09 0.08 0.12 0.08 0.09 0.06 1951 0.01 0.14 0.33 0.08 0.08 0.12 0.09 0.09 0.06 1952 0.02 0.15 0.33 0.09 0.07 0.11 0.08 0.09 0.06 1953 0.02 0.16 0.32 0.09 0.07 0.11 0.08 0.09 0.06 1954 0.02 0.15 0.32 0.09 0.08 0.11 0.08 0.09 0.06 1955 0.02 0.16 0.34 0.09 0.04 0.12 0.09 0.08 0.06 1956 0.02 0.15 0.33 0.08 0.08 0.12 0.08 0.08 0.06 1957 0.02 0.16 0.34 0.08 0.07 0.12 0.08 0.07 0.06 1958 0.02 0.16 0.34 0.08 0.07 0.12 0.08 0.07 0.06 1959 0.02 0.16 0.34 0.08 0.07 0.12 0.08 0.07 0.06 1960 0.02 0.17 0.34 0.08 0.07 0.12 0.08 0.06 0.06 1961 0.02 0.17 0.35 0.08 0.07 0.12 0.07 0.06 0.06 1962 0.02 0.17 0.36 0.08 0.07 0.12 0.07 0.06 0.06 1963 0.01 0.16 0.37 0.08 0.07 0.12 0.07 0.06 0.06 1964 0.01 0.17 0.37 0.08 0.07 0.11 0.07 0.06 0.06 1965 0.01 0.17 0.37 0.08 0.07 0.11 0.07 0.06 0.06 1966 0.01 0.17 0.37 0.08 0.07 0.11 0.07 0.05 0.06 1967 0.01 0.17 0.37 0.08 0.08 0.11 0.07 0.05 0.06 1968 0.01 0.19 0.37 0.07 0.08 0.10 0.07 0.05 0.06 1969 0.01 0.20 0.37 0.07 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.04 0.06 1970 0.01 0.20 0.38 0.06 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.04 0.07 1971 0.01 0.20 0.39 0.06 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.04 0.07 1972 0.01 0.20 0.39 0.06 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.04 0.07 1973 0.01 0.20 0.40 0.05 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.04 0.07 1974 0.01 0.20 0.41 0.05 0.07 0.09 0.06 0.03 0.07 1975 0.01 0.20 0.42 0.05 0.07 0.09 0.07 0.03 0.07 1976 0.01 0.20 0.42 0.05 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.03 0.07 1977 0.01 0.20 0.41 0.05 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.03 0.07 1978 0.01 0.19 0.42 0.05 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.03 0.07 1979 0.01 0.19 0.42 0.05 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.02 0.07 1980 0.01 0.19 0.41 0.05 0.07 0.10 0.07 0.02 0.07 Table A10.3 (cont.). Male employment weights, 1871–2007 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 520 Mining Metal Engin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal 1981 0.01 0.19 0.41 0.04 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.07 1982 0.01 0.19 0.42 0.04 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.07 1983 0.01 0.19 0.42 0.04 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.08 1984 0.01 0.19 0.42 0.04 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.08 1985 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.04 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.08 1986 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.04 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.08 1987 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.04 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.08 1988 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.04 0.06 0.11 0.07 0.02 0.08 1989 0.01 0.18 0.42 0.04 0.06 0.11 0.08 0.01 0.08 1990 0.01 0.18 0.41 0.05 0.06 0.11 0.08 0.01 0.08 1991 0.01 0.18 0.42 0.04 0.06 0.12 0.08 0.01 0.07 1992 0.01 0.17 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.12 0.08 0.02 0.07 1993 0.01 0.17 0.41 0.03 0.06 0.12 0.09 0.02 0.08 1994 0.02 0.17 0.41 0.03 0.06 0.12 0.09 0.02 0.08 1995 0.02 0.18 0.42 0.03 0.06 0.11 0.08 0.01 0.08 1996 0.02 0.18 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.11 0.08 0.01 0.08 1997 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.11 0.08 0.01 0.08 1998 0.01 0.18 0.44 0.03 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.08 1999 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.08 2000 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.08 2001 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.09 2002 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.09 2003 0.01 0.18 0.43 0.03 0.06 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.09 2004 0.01 0.19 0.43 0.03 0.07 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.09 2005 0.01 0.19 0.43 0.03 0.07 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.08 2006 0.01 0.19 0.43 0.03 0.07 0.09 0.08 0.01 0.08 2007 0.01 0.19 0.43 0.03 0.07 0.10 0.08 0.01 0.08 Table A10.4 Female employment weights, 1921–2007 Mining Metal Engin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal 1921 0.04 0.04 0.04 0.01 0.12 0.24 0.39 0.11 1922 0.04 0.03 0.04 0.01 0.12 0.21 0.44 0.11 1923 0.05 0.04 0.04 0.01 0.12 0.21 0.44 0.11 1924 0.05 0.04 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.20 0.44 0.11 1925 0.05 0.05 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.18 0.44 0.11 1926 0.05 0.05 0.03 0.01 0.13 0.18 0.44 0.11 1927 0.05 0.05 0.03 0.01 0.13 0.17 0.44 0.12 1928 0.05 0.06 0.03 0.01 0.13 0.16 0.45 0.12 1929 0.06 0.06 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.16 0.44 0.12 1930 0.05 0.06 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.16 0.45 0.11 1931 0.05 0.06 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.16 0.47 0.11 Table A10.3 (cont.). Male employment weights, 1871–2007 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 521 Mining Metal Engin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal 1932 0.05 0.05 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.16 0.47 0.11 1933 0.05 0.05 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.15 0.48 0.11 1934 0.05 0.06 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.15 0.50 0.10 1935 0.06 0.07 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.14 0.49 0.09 1936 0.05 0.07 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.14 0.50 0.09 1937 0.05 0.08 0.03 0.01 0.11 0.14 0.48 0.09 1938 0.05 0.09 0.03 0.01 0.11 0.14 0.48 0.09 1939 0.06 0.09 0.03 0.01 0.11 0.13 0.48 0.09 1940 0.07 0.10 0.03 0.01 0.10 0.12 0.47 0.11 1941 0.08 0.11 0.03 0.01 0.11 0.12 0.45 0.10 1942 0.08 0.12 0.05 0.01 0.11 0.12 0.42 0.09 1943 0.08 0.13 0.05 0.01 0.11 0.11 0.42 0.09 1944 0.08 0.13 0.05 0.01 0.12 0.11 0.43 0.09 1945 0.08 0.12 0.05 0.01 0.12 0.11 0.42 0.08 1946 0.08 0.12 0.05 0.01 0.12 0.11 0.42 0.08 1947 0.08 0.13 0.04 0.01 0.12 0.11 0.43 0.08 1948 0.08 0.13 0.04 0.01 0.11 0.11 0.45 0.08 1949 0.08 0.13 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.11 0.45 0.07 1950 0.08 0.12 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.10 0.45 0.08 1951 0.09 0.13 0.03 0.01 0.11 0.11 0.44 0.08 1952 0.002 0.09 0.15 0.04 0.01 0.12 0.12 0.40 0.08 1953 0.002 0.08 0.13 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.12 0.42 0.08 1954 0.002 0.09 0.14 0.04 0.01 0.12 0.12 0.40 0.08 1955 0.002 0.10 0.15 0.04 0.01 0.12 0.11 0.39 0.08 1956 0.002 0.10 0.15 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.13 0.38 0.08 1957 0.002 0.10 0.15 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.12 0.37 0.08 1958 0.002 0.09 0.16 0.03 0.01 0.13 0.13 0.36 0.08 1959 0.002 0.10 0.16 0.03 0.01 0.13 0.13 0.36 0.08 1960 0.003 0.11 0.16 0.03 0.01 0.13 0.13 0.34 0.08 1961 0.003 0.11 0.18 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.13 0.33 0.08 1962 0.003 0.11 0.19 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.13 0.32 0.08 1963 0.003 0.11 0.20 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.13 0.31 0.08 1964 0.002 0.11 0.20 0.03 0.02 0.12 0.13 0.30 0.08 1965 0.002 0.12 0.21 0.04 0.02 0.12 0.13 0.28 0.08 1966 0.003 0.12 0.22 0.04 0.02 0.12 0.13 0.25 0.09 1967 0.002 0.13 0.22 0.04 0.02 0.12 0.13 0.25 0.09 1968 0.002 0.12 0.22 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.14 0.24 0.09 1969 0.002 0.13 0.24 0.03 0.02 0.12 0.14 0.22 0.10 1970 0.002 0.14 0.27 0.03 0.02 0.12 0.13 0.19 0.10 1971 0.003 0.14 0.29 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.13 0.17 0.10 1972 0.003 0.14 0.28 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.13 0.17 0.10 1973 0.003 0.15 0.29 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.12 0.16 0.10 1974 0.003 0.16 0.31 0.03 0.03 0.11 0.12 0.14 0.10 1975 0.004 0.16 0.33 0.03 0.03 0.11 0.11 0.13 0.10 Table A10.4 (cont.) Female employment weights, 1921–2007 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 522 Mining Metal Engin- eering Quarry- ing Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi- cal 1976 0.004 0.16 0.33 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.12 0.12 0.10 1977 0.004 0.16 0.33 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.12 0.11 0.09 1978 0.004 0.16 0.33 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.12 0.10 0.09 1979 0.004 0.16 0.33 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.12 0.10 0.10 1980 0.004 0.16 0.33 0.03 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.09 0.10 1981 0.004 0.16 0.34 0.03 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.09 0.10 1982 0.005 0.16 0.33 0.03 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.09 0.10 1983 0.004 0.16 0.34 0.03 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.09 0.10 1984 0.004 0.16 0.34 0.02 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.08 0.10 1985 0.004 0.15 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.08 0.10 1986 0.004 0.15 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.08 0.10 1987 0.004 0.15 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.13 0.12 0.08 0.10 1988 0.008 0.14 0.37 0.02 0.03 0.14 0.12 0.07 0.10 1989 0.008 0.13 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.15 0.12 0.07 0.10 1990 0.006 0.13 0.35 0.02 0.03 0.16 0.14 0.06 0.10 1991 0.005 0.13 0.35 0.02 0.03 0.17 0.14 0.06 0.10 1992 0.004 0.13 0.34 0.02 0.03 0.18 0.14 0.05 0.11 1993 0.005 0.11 0.33 0.02 0.03 0.19 0.14 0.05 0.12 1994 0.005 0.11 0.33 0.02 0.03 0.18 0.14 0.06 0.12 1995 0.006 0.11 0.34 0.02 0.03 0.18 0.14 0.05 0.12 1996 0.006 0.11 0.35 0.02 0.03 0.18 0.14 0.05 0.13 1997 0.005 0.11 0.35 0.02 0.03 0.17 0.13 0.05 0.13 1998 0.005 0.11 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.17 0.13 0.04 0.13 1999 0.005 0.11 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.17 0.14 0.04 0.12 2000 0.004 0.11 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.16 0.13 0.04 0.14 2001 0.004 0.11 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.16 0.14 0.04 0.14 2002 0.005 0.10 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.16 0.14 0.03 0.15 2003 0.005 0.10 0.36 0.02 0.03 0.16 0.14 0.03 0.15 2004 0.005 0.11 0.35 0.02 0.03 0.16 0.14 0.03 0.15 2005 0.006 0.11 0.35 0.02 0.03 0.16 0.14 0.03 0.15 2006 0.006 0.11 0.35 0.02 0.04 0.16 0.14 0.03 0.15 2007 0.006 0.11 0.35 0.02 0.04 0.16 0.14 0.03 0.15 Table A10.4 (cont.) Female employment weights, 1921–2007 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 523 References Books and articles Allen, R C (2001), ‘Te Great Divergence in European Wages and Prices from the Middle Ages to the First World War’, Explorations in Economic History, vol 38, pp. 411–47. Allen, S G (1995), ‘Updated Notes on the Interindustry Wage Structure, 1890– 1990’, Industrial and Labor Relations Review, vol 48, pp. 305–21. Bagge, G, E Lundberg and I Svennilson (1933), Wages in Sweden 1860–1930, Part One, P. S. King & Son, London. Bagge, G, E Lundberg and I Svennilson (1935), Wages in Sweden 1860–1930, Part Two, P. S. King & Son, London. Berglund, B (1982), Industriarbetarklassens formering: arbete och teknisk förändring vid tre svenska fabriker under 1800-talet, doctoral dissertation, Ekonomisk-histo- riska institutionen, Göteborgs universitet. Björklund, J and H Stenlund (1995), ‘Real Wages in Sweden, 1870–1950: a Study of Six Industrial Branches’, in Scholliers, P and Zamagni, V (eds.), Labour’s Reward, Elgar, Aldershot. Blau, F D and L M Kahn (2000), ‘Gender Diferences in Pay’, Journal of Economic Perspectives, vol 14, pp. 75–99. Bohlin, J (1999), ‘Te Rise and Fall of the Swedish Model’, in Foreman-Peck, J and Federico, G (eds.), European Industrial Policy: the Twentieth-Century Experiences, Oxford University Press, Oxford. Bowley, A L (1895), ‘Changes in Average Wages (Nominal and Real) in the United Kingdom between 1860 and 1891’, Journal of the Royal Statistical Society, vol 58, pp. 223–85. Carlson, B (1982), Bagge, Lindahl och nationalinkomsten: om National Income of Swe- den 1861–1930, Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen, Lunds universitet. Cornell, L (1982), Sundsvallsdistriktets sågverksarbetare 1860–1890: arbete, levnads- förhållanden, rekrytering, doctoral dissertation, Ekonomisk-historiska institutio- nen, Göteborgs universitet. Cullen, D (1956), ‘Te Interindustry Wage Structure: 1899–1950’, American Eco- nomic Review, vol 46, pp. 353–69. David, P A and P Solar (1977), ‘A Bicentury Contribution to the History of the Cost of Living in America’, Research in Economic History, vol 2, pp. 1–80. David, P A and G Wright (2003), ‘General Purpose Technologies and Surges in Pro- ductivity: Historical Refections on the Future of the ICT Revolution’, in David, P A and M Tomas (eds.), Te Economic Future in Historical Perspective, Oxford University Press, Oxford. Douglas, P (1930), Real Wages in the United States: 1891–1926, Houghton Mif in, Boston. Edin, P A and B Holmlund (1995), ‘Te Swedish Wage Structure: the Rise and Fall Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 524 of Solidarity Wage Policy’, in Freeman, R B and L Katz (eds.), Diferences and Changes in Wage Structures, University of Chicago Press, Chicago. Edin, P A and J Zetterberg (1992), ‘Interindustry wage diferentials: evidence from Sweden and a comparison with the United States’, American Economic Review, Vol. 82, pp. 1341–49. Edvinsson, R (2005), Growth, Accumulation, and Crises: with New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800–2000, doctoral dissertation, Department of Economic History, Stockholm University. Eichengreen, B (1996), ‘Institutions and Economic Growth: Europe after World War II’, in Crafts, N F R and Toniolo, G (eds.), Economic Growth in Europe since 1945, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Feinstein, C H (1990), ‘New Estimates of Average Earnings in the United Kingdom, 1880–1913’, Economic History Review, vol 43, pp. 595–632. Feinstein, C H (1998), ‘Pessimism Perpetuated: Real Wages and the Standard of Liv- ing in Britain during and after the Industrial Revolution’, Journal of Economic History, vol 58, pp. 625–57. Goldin, C (2000), ‘Labour Markets in the Twentieth Century’, in Gallman, R E and S Engerman (eds.), Te Cambridge Economic History of the United States: the Twen- tieth Century, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Goldin, C and J Katz (1998), ‘Te Origins of technology-skill complementarity’, Quarterly Journal of Economics, Vol. 113, pp. 693–732. Grytten, O (2007), ‘Professor Dr. Ingvar B. Wedervang’s Historical Archive on Wages and Prices’, in Eitrheim, Ø, J T Klovland, and J F Qvigstad (eds.), Historical Mone- tary Statistics for Norway, Norges Bank’s Occasional Papers No. 38, Oslo. Gustafsson, B (1965), Den norrländska sågverksindustrins arbetare 1890–1913: arbets- och levnadsförhållanden, doctoral dissertation, Ekonomisk-historiska institutio- nen, Uppsala universitet. Gustafsson, S and P Lantz (1985), Arbete och löner: ekonomiska teorier och fakta kring skillnader mellan kvinnor och män, IUI, Arbetslivscentrum, Stockholm. Hartwell, R M (1961), ‘Te Rising Standard of Living in England, 1800–1850’, Eco- nomic History Review, vol 13, pp. 397–416. Hibbs, D A (1990), ‘Wage Compression under Solidarity Wage Bargaining in Swe- den’, FIEF Economic Research Report No. 30, Stockholm. Hibbs, D A and H Locking (1996), ‘Wage Compression, Wage Drift and Wage Infation in Sweden’, Labour Economics, vol 3, pp. 104–41. Hibbs, D A and H Locking (2000), ‘Wage Dispersion and Productivity Ef ciency: Evidence for Sweden’, Journal of Labor Economics, vol 18, pp. 755–82. Hobsbawm, E J (1957), ‘Te British Standard of Living’, Economic History Review, vol 10, pp. 46–68. Isidorsson, T (2001), Striden om tiden: arbetstidens utveckling i Sverige under 100 år i ett internationellt perspektiv, doctoral dissertation, Historiska institutionen, Göte- borgs universitet. 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 525 Johansen, L (1958), ‘A Note on the Teory of Interindustrial Wage Diferentials’, Review of Economic Studies, vol 25, pp. 109–13. Jungenfelt, K G (1959), Lönernas andel av nationalinkomsten: en studie över vissa sidor av inkomstfördelningens utveckling i Sverige, Nationalekonomiska institutionen, Uppsala universitet. Jungenfelt, K G (1966), Löneandelen och den ekonomiska utvecklingen, Almquist & Wicksell, Stockholm. Jörberg, L (1972), A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914, vol 1, Gleerup, Lund. Kreuger, A B and L H Summers (1987), ‘Refections on the Interindustry Wage Structure’, in Lang, K and J S Leonard (eds.), Unemployment and the Structure of Labor Markets, Blackwell, Oxford. Lindbeck, A (1997), ‘Te Swedish Experiment’, Journal of Economic Literature, vol 35, pp. 1273–319. Lindert, P H and J G Williamson (1980), ‘English Workers’ Living Standards during the Industrial Revolution: a New Look’, Economic History Review, vol 36, pp. 1–25. Ljungberg, J (2004), ‘Earnings Diferentials and Productivity in Sweden, 1870– 1980’, in Heikkinen, S and van Zanden, J L (eds.), Exploring Economic Growth, International Institute of Social History, Amsterdam. Long, C D (1960), Wages and Earnings in the United States 1860–1890, Princeton University Press, Princeton. Lundberg, E (1985), ‘Te Rise and Fall of the Swedish Model’, Journal of Economic Literature, vol 23, pp. 1–36. Lundh, C (2002), Spelets regler: institutioner och lönebildning på den svenska arbets- marknaden 1850–2000, SNS, Stockholm. Lundh, C (2004), ‘Wage Formation and Institutional Change in the Swedish Labour Market 1850–2000’ in Lundh, C, J Olofsson, L Schön and L Svensson (eds.), Wage Formation, Labour Market Institutions and Economic Transformation in Swe- den 1860–2000, Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Lundh Nilsson, F (2007), Lönande lärande: teknologisk förändring, yrkesskicklighet och lön i svensk verkstadsindustri omkring 1900, doctotral dissertation, Ekonomisk- historiska institutionen, Lunds universitet. Löfström, A and S Gustafsson (1991), ‘Policy Changes and Women’s Wages in Swe- den’, in Willborn, S L (eds), Women’s Wages: Stability and Changes in Six Industri- alized Countries, Jai Press, London. Maddison, A (1991), Dynamic Forces in Capitalist Development: a Long-Run Compar- ative View, Oxford University Press, Oxford. Margo, R A (2006), ‘Wages and Wage Inequality’ in Carter, S B (ed.), Historical Sta- tistics of the United States: Earliest Times to the Present, vol 2, Work and Welfare, Cambridge University Press, New York. Montelius, S, G Utterström and E Söderlund (1959), Fagerstabrukens historia: arbe- tare och arbetarförhållanden, Almqvist & Wiksell, Uppsala. Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 526 Olofsson, J, L Schön and L Svensson (eds.), Wage Formation, Labour Market Institu- tions and Economic Transformation in Sweden 1860–2000, Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Phelps Brown, E H and S V Hopkins (1955), ‘Seven Centuries of Building Wages’, Economica, vol 22, pp. 195–206. Phelps Brown, E H and S V Hopkins (1956), ‘Seven Centuries of the Prices of Con- sumables, Compared with Builders’ Wage Rates’, Economica, vol 23, pp. 296– 314. Prado, S (2008a), Aspiring to a Higher Rank: Swedish Factor Prices and Productivity in International Perspective, 1860–1950, doctoral dissertation, Department of Eco- nomic History, University of Gothenburg. Prado, S (2008b), ‘Estimates of employment in Swedish manufacturing, 1868– 1912’, unpublished manuscript, Department of Economic History, University of Gothenburg. Rees, A (1961), Real Wages in Manufacturing, 1890–1914, National Bureau of Eco- nomic Research, New York. Roine, J and D Waldenström (2009), ‘Wealth Concentration over the Path of Devel- opment: Sweden, 1873–2006’, Scandinavian Journal of Economics, vol 111, pp. 151–87. Scheve, K and D Stasavage (2009), ‘Institutions, Partisanship, and Inequality in the Long Run’, World Politics, vol 61, pp. 215–53. Scholliers, P (1989), ‘Introductory Remarks: Comparing Real Wages in the 19th and 20th Centuries’, in Scholliers, P (ed.), Real Wages in 19th and 20th Century Europe: Historical and Comparative Perspectives. Berg, Oxford. Schön, L (1988), Historiska nationalräkenskaper för Sverige: industri och hantverk 1800–1980, Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen, Lunds universitet. Schön, L (2004), ‘Te Wage Share, Cycles and the Kuznets Curve’, in Lundh, C, Sokolof, K L (1984), ‘Was the Transition from the Artisanal Shop to the Nonmech- anized Factory Associated with Gains in Ef ciency? Evidence from the U.S. Man- ufacturing Censuses of 1820 and 1850’, Explorations in Economic History, vol 21, pp. 351–82. SOU 1931:32, Utredning och förslag rörande viss omläggning av socialstyrelsens lönesta- tistik, Socialstyrelsen. Svensson, L (1995), Closing the Gender Gap: Determinants of Change in the Female-to- Male Blue Collar Wage Ratio in Swedish Manufacturing 1913–1990, doctoral dis- sertation, Department of Economic History, Lund University. Svensson, L (1996), ‘Politics or Market Forces? Te Determinants of the Relative Wage Movements of Female Industrial Workers in Sweden, 1960–1990’, Scandi- navian Economic History Review, vol 44, pp. 161–82. Svensson, L (2003), ‘Explaining Equalization: Political Institutions, Market Forces, and Reduction of the Gender Wage Gap in Sweden, 1920–95’, Social Science History, vol 27, pp. 371–95. 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 527 Svensson, L (2004), ‘Industrial Dynamics, Labour Demand, and Wage Diferentials in the Swedish Manufacturing Industry 1930–1990’ in Lundh, C, J Olofsson, L Schön and L Svensson (eds.), Wage Formation, Labour Market Institutions and Eco- nomic Transformation in Sweden 1860–2000, Almqvist & Wiksell, Stockholm. Williamson, J G (1995), ‘Te Evolution of Global Labor Markets since 1830: Back- ground Evidence and Hypotheses’, Explorations in Economic History, vol 32, pp. 141–96. Wright, G (2006), ‘Productivity Growth and the American Labor Market: the 1990s in Historical Perspective’, in Rhode, P W and G Toniolo (eds.), Te Global Econ- omy in the 1990s: a Long-Run Perspective, Cambridge University Press, Cam- bridge. Presentation of the authors Jan Bohlin is a teacher and researcher in economic history at the Department of Economic History, School of Business, Economics and Law, University of Gothen- burg. His main field of interests lies in quantitative economic history of the late nineteenth and twentieth century. He has published in international journals in eco- nomic history. Rodney Edvinsson is PhD in Economic History and researcher at Stockholm Uni- versity. His research fields are: historical national accounts, economic growth from the Middle Ages to the present, agrarian history, price history and monetary history. He is also the editor of Historia.se. Bo Franzén is a senior lecturer at Department of Economic History at Stockholm University. Mr. Franzén is a former secondary-school teacher who in the last one and a half decade has done research about markets and their participants in medieval Sweden. Tor Jacobson is head of research at Sveriges Riksbank. He has previously worked at Uppsala University and at the Stockholm School of Economics. His published research is in the fields of empirical macro and empirical banking, and in statistics. Håkan Lobell (PhD) is Assistant Professor in Economic History at Lund University. His main research interests lie in fields of monetary and financial history and long term economic growth and change. Recent research has focused on historical national accounts for Sweden, historical monetary and financial statistics and growth and stagnation in the Western European economies. Svante Prado is Ph.D in economic history at the Department of Economic History, University of Gothenburg. His dissertation was completed in 2008 dealing with Swed- ish factor prices and productivity in international perspective, 1860–1950. His is cur- rently working on Swedish wages and labour markets in the 19th and 20th century as well as early 20th century international comparisons of labour productivity. Johan Söderberg, Professor in Economic History at Stockholm University. His research interests involve medieval and early modern price history as well as the his- tory of climate. Daniel Waldenström is a research fellow at the Research Institute of Industrial Eco- nomics (IFN) with doctoral degrees in both economics and in economic history. His research interests involve income and wealth inequality and historical financial de velop ment. Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Edited by Rodney Edvinsson, Tor Jacobson, and Daniel Waldenström SVERIGES RIKSBANK Ekerlids Förlag Tegnérgatan 37 111 61 Stockholm Tel 08-411 42 70, fax 08-411 42 71 E-mail: [email protected] Homepage: www.ekerlids.com © The authors The project web site: www.riksbank.se/forskning/historiskstatistik Cover design: John Persson Cover illustration: Elias Martin, View of Stockholm from Mosebacke (1790) Setting: Gyllene Snittet AB, Helsingborg Printed by: Bulls Graphics in Halmstad, March 2010 ISBN 978-91-7092-124-7 Contents List of tables 1. Introduction to Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden: Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Rodney Edvinsson, Tor Jacobson and Daniel Waldenström 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective Rodney Edvinsson 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 Rodney Edvinsson, Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden-Finland 1534–1803 Rodney Edvinsson 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 Rodney Edvinsson 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 Håkan Lobell 7. From appreciation to depreciation – the exchange rate of the Swedish krona, 1913–2008 Jan Bohlin 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers Johan Söderberg 10. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers, 1860–2007 Svante Prado Presentation of the authors 6 11 26 67 133 238 291 340 412 453 479 528 List of tables Table 2.1. Classification into monetary standards developed in the present study based on the relation between the currency(ies) and the object(s) backing the currency(ies). Monetary standards in Sweden since the 12th century. Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present. Number of documents (or summaries of documents) in which the most common foreign gold coins are mentioned compared to ‘mark’. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/tysk/östgötsk 1211–1538. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in marks of other Nordic regions. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark of Lübeck. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk. Value of the Swedish mark in gros tournois. Other exchange rates for foreign silver coins. Exchange rate of noble in öre. Exchange rate of Rhinish gulden in mark. Exchange rate of the Hungarian gulden. Exchange rate of other gold units in öre. The official conversion rates for various domestic currencies 1534–1624. The official conversion rates for various domestic currencies 1624–1724. The official conversion rates for various domestic currencies from 1777 onwards. Monthly data on riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt) 1626–86. Monthly data on one riksdaler carolin in mark kopparmynt 1670–86. Monthly premium (per cent) on courant silver coins 1670–86. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. The premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative to riksgälds notes in 1789–1803 according to various sources. Table 2.2. Table 2.3. 36 43 45 Table 3.1. 89 106 114 117 119 120 122 122 123 124 126 126 Table A3.1. Table A3.2. Table A3.3. Table A3.4. Table A3.5. Table A3.6. Table A3.7. Table A3.8. Table A3.9. Table A3.10. Table A3.11. Table 4.1. Table 4.2. Table 4.3. Table A4.1. Table A4.2. Table A4.3. Table A4.4. Table A4.5. 148 176 188 192 193 194 194 209 7 Table A4.6. Monthly premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative riksgälds notes 1789–1803. Table A4.7. Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. Table A4.8. The exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776. Table A4.9. The exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. Table A4.10. The exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. Table A5.1. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates). Table A5.2. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Table A5.3. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.4. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.5. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates). Table A5.6. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Table A5.7. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.8. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.9. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in daler kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Table A5.10. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.11. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.12. Monthly exchange rates on écu de change (= 3 livres tournois) in marks kopparmynt 1668–85 (estimated spot rates). Table A5.13. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates). Table A5.14. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois (franc from 1795) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.15. Monthly exchange rates on franc in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.16. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurantbanken notes) in marks kopparmynt 1741–67 (not spot rates). Table A5.17. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurantbanken notes) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates). 210 211 218 222 226 262 263 264 265 265 266 268 269 269 270 271 272 272 274 275 275 276 8 Table A5.18. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in courant-money) in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates). Table A5.19. Monthly exchange rates on Gdańsk florin/gulden/złoty (= 30 grosz) in marks kopparmynt 1740–76 (not spot rates). Table A5.20. Monthly exchange rates on Swedish-Pomeranian taler courant in Swedish currency 1740–1800 (not spot rates). Table A5.21. The exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. Table A5.22. The exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. Table A5.23. The exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1777–1804. Table A5.24. The exchange rate on London and Paris 1777–1804. Table 6.1. Average exchange rate for the shipping season in years when specie and bullion were exported (deviation from mint parity, per cent). Correlation between first differences for unprocessed, reconstructed and original series 1870–80. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914. Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. Monthly exchange rates on Paris. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914. Monthly exchange rates on Antwerp. SEK per 100 francs 1873–89. Monthly exchange rates on Brussels. SEK per 100 francs 1873–1914. Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914. Monthly exchange rates on Christiania/Oslo. SEK per 100 NOK 1858–1914. 276 277 278 279 283 287 288 309 315 319 322 325 328 331 331 333 336 370 373 Table 6.2 Table A6.1. Table A6.2. Table A6.3. Table A6.4. Table A6.5. Table A6.6. Table A6.7. Table A6.8. Table A7.1. Monthly exchange rates on UK. SEK per GPB 1913–2008. Table A7.2. Monthly exchange rates on USA. SEK per USD 1913–2008. Table A7.3a. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 mark 1913–1921, SEK per 1 million mark January 1922 to September 1923, and SEK per 1 billion mark October 1923 to December 1924. Table A7.3b. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 reichsmark 1924–1945. Table A7.3c. Monthly exchange rates on Germany. SEK per 100 DEM 1950–2002. 375 375 376 9 Table A7.4a. Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1959. Table A7.4b. Monthly exchange rates on France. SEK per 100 franc 1960–2002. Table A7.5a. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1926. Table A7.5b. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 belgas 1926–1944. Table A7.5c. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium. SEK per 100 BEF 1945–2002. Table A7.6. Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland. SEK per 100 CHF 1915–2008. Table A7.7. Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands. SEK per 100 NLG 1913–2002. Table A7.8. Monthly exchange rates on Denmark. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008. Table A7.9. Monthly exchange rates on Norway. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008. Table A7.10a. Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913–1962. Table A7.10b. Monthly exchange rates on Finland. SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963–2002. Table A7.11. Monthly exchange rates on Italy. SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2002. Table A7.12. Monthly exchange rates on euro. SEK per EUR 1998–2008. Table A7.13. Monthly exchange rates on Japan. SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008. Table A7.14. Monthly exchange rates on Czech Republic. SEK per 100 CSK 1922–2008. Table A7.15. Monthly exchange rates on Poland. SEK per 100 zloty 1930–39 and per PLN 1998–2008. Table A7.16. Monthly exchange rates on Latvia. SEK per 100 lats 1930–40 and per LVL 1998–2008. Table A7.17. Monthly exchange rates on Estonia. SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008. Table A7.18. Monthly exchange rates on Lithuania. SEK per 100 litas 1932–40 and per LTL 1998–2008. Table A7.19. Periods for which separate exchange rate indices are calculated, the countries included in the indices and the percentage of Sweden’s foreign trade covered by countries included. Table A7.20. Exchange rate index 1913–2008, SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100). Table A7.21. Exchange rate index excluding Germany 1913–24. Table A7.22. Exchange rate index excluding German hyperinflation. 377 378 379 380 381 382 384 386 388 391 392 393 395 395 396 397 398 398 399 400 401 404 404 Table A7.23. Annual exchange rates 1913–2008. Table A7.24. Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008. Table 8.1. The currencies followed by the Consumer Price Index presented in this study. Table 8.2. The weights (in per cent) in the present study for calculating the CPI in 1290–1539. Table 8.3. CPI weights (in per cent) in the present study, 1732–1914. Table A8.1. The two Consumer Price Indices, the deflator and inflation indices, for Sweden, 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). Table 9.1. Table 9.2. Weights of main components in the deflator CPI (per cent). Volatility in real wages and in the deflator CPI, 1291–2004, measured as the standard deviation of the percentage year-on-year change. Table A9.1. Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365–1624, öre kopparmynt 1625–1776, skilling 1777–1788, and skilling riksgälds 1789–1850), daily wage in gram silver, and real wage 1365–1850 (1950=100). 405 407 418 424 433 443 454 469 472 Table 10.1. Wage series for 1860–1913 from Wages in Sweden used in the present study. Table 10.2. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal wages in the manufacturing industry, 1868–1913. Table 10.3. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of real wages for male workers in manufacturing. Table 10.4. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal hourly earnings by industry, 1970–2007. Table A10.1. Male hourly earnings, 1860–2007, kronor. Table A10.2. Female hourly earnings 1865–2007, kronor. Table A10.3. Male employment weights, 1871–2007. Table A10.4. Female employment weights, 1921–2007. 486 486 495 502 510 514 517 520 and historical statistics. or detecting specific long-run patterns in the macroeconomy. this makes great demands of the researchers compiling these series. These new series have been generated as part of a research project run by Sveriges Riksbank. History offers empirically oriented economists an indispensable substitute for scientists’ laboratories. 1277–2008 Rodney Edvinsson. Tor Jacobson and Daniel Waldenström 1. Linking long-run time series requires not only an understanding of their economic importance but also thorough knowledge of the relevant historical circumstances under which the data were generated in the past. for which data are often easily accessible. the relation between money supply and inflation. The present volume presents chapters dealing with exchange rates. Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden.1. beginning in the Middle Ages and leading up to the present day. prices. In this project. Introduction to Historical Monetary and Financial Statistics for Sweden: Exchange rates. Background to the project This book presents new evidence on the long-run evolution of Sweden’s monetary and financial system. consumer prices and wages.1. a group of academic scholars from the disciplines of economic history and economics have compiled existing evidence and assembled new data. and wages. where the availability of data is more of a problem. There is a great difference between compiling contemporary statistics. Having comparable series that span extensive time periods will greatly facilitate long-term analysis of a number of important issues. The overall ambition of this project has been to construct time series that are consistent over time and adjusted so as to fit the definitions that are applied today. require that data are consistent and comparable across . Needless to say. For example. as well as teachers and students at universities and high-schools.wikimedia. are freely available on the web site of the Riksbank. should find much useful material here.. a Swedish artist associated with the Symbolist movement. it could buy one kilogram of potatoes or one egg. e. In order to make the database as accessible to as many as possible. by comparing the course of events leading up to the Great Depression around 1930 and to the recent financial turmoil that started in 2007.com/research/historicalstatistics (English version) and http://www. by Johan August Malmström (1829–1901). as well as additional material used to construct the series. It is our intention that the series generated within this project will not only be used in academic research. sometimes more.1 This database also publishes series of 1 The address to the database is http://www.riksbank. wishing to draw conclusions from historical comparisons. . Economic forecasting can also be based on consistent historical series that go a long way back in time. People working with policy analyses.org/wiki/File:Grindslanten. In 1885.g.se/forskning/historiskstatistik (Swedish version). our comprehension of the causes and effects of financial crises arguably relies on historical analysis. The gate money was usually one to five öre per equipage. all data and descriptions presented in this volume. five öre (= 1/20 krona) was the equivalent of a male agrarian worker’s pay for around 20 minutes’ work. prices.jpg time periods. not just the latest 10 to 15 years. and wages. Source: http://commons.12 Exchange rates. It was quite common in Sweden for children to earn money by opening gates for a passing equipage. 1277–2008 The Gate Coin (1885).riksbank. Moreover. The Bank of England was established somewhat later. with a central role in the monetization of Sweden. before Sveriges Riksbank did (Brisman. For example. Following their lead. discuss whether Sveriges Riksbank was the first central bank in a modern sense. One can. exchange rates and GDP. e. money. in the 1920s the Riksbank initiated a research project that much resembles ours. Most importantly. of course. In the fall of 2004. monetary history greatly increased the general knowledge of and interest in the historical development of monetary and financial systems. e.S.3 Third. . Klovland and Qvigstad. building and maintaining a scientific database is a public good that individual researchers cannot be expected to provide. A public institution is better suited to run a database and in the context of a monetary database the Riksbank represents perhaps the most natural ‘focal point’ for the research community. interest rates. exchange rates and bank balance sheets (Sveriges 2 3 There are some other previous attempts to compile international historical statistics.. Klovland and Jan F. 1277–2008 13 money supply. Together with a second volume published a few years later (Eitrheim. founded in 1668 by the Swedish Parliament. all series were made freely available on the Bank’s internet site for scholars. Second.g. but performed more central bank-like practices. 2007).1. Qvigstad as editors. prices. interest and stock returns.. Flandreau and Zumar (2004). 1918). the Norwegian project has generated considerable new macroeconomic historical evidence with long-run series on prices.2 Why should Sveriges Riksbank shoulder the responsibility for building up a new public access database with historical monetary and financial statistics? There are several reasons. First. a considerable part of the undertaking was the assembly of historical monetary and financial statistics. as well as in gathering information about it. including longrun series on prices. they are unable to provide the continuity needed to maintain a scientific database. subsequent studies of monetary histories in other countries are. banking statistics. and wages. the Riksbank already has a long-standing tradition in taking an active part in promoting the Swedish monetary and financial system. There are also plans to include other monetary and financial statistics. As scholars regularly tend to move on to different places or topics. and state loans. Exchange rates. Jonung (1975) on Sweden and Capie and Webber (1985) on the United Kingdom. there are other previous contributions with similar ambitions. in 1694. Although it was mainly aimed at writing the history of the Bank. such as lender of last resort. students and the public to use at will. interest rates. While the project is arguably unique in its scope and explicit focus on building a broad historical statistical database. A main source of inspiration for this project is a similar recent project at Norges Bank. The Riksbank is the world’s oldest central bank. with Øyvind Eitrheim. the Bank published the volume Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway 1819–2003.g. the seminal contributions of Friedman and Schwartz (1963) and Cagan (1965) in describing U. Jan T. Five volumes were published. vol. extending the work on the construction of an extensive international historical statistical database. 4 Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918–1924: bankens tillkomst och verksamhet was published between 1918 and 1931 and deals with the history of the Riksbank and monetary conditions since the establishment of the Riksbank in 1668 (to some extent. that in June 1655. f. one riksdaler was valued at 16 marks 4 öre kopparmynt (=16. The material shows. 1931). Volumes I–IV are arranged chronologically.14 Exchange rates. prices. This work was produced by the Riksbank’s statistical department. Volume I also contains tables.4 A fourth reason why the Riksbank should take responsibility for a project like this is that it continues where Norges Bank started. Riksbank. OO (Riksarkivet). 2) exchange rates 1668–1924. and wages. The statistical table annex in Volume V consists of four parts: 1) statistics on the Riksbank 1668–1924. 1277–2008 Exchange rate notations on the Swedish riksdaler in marks kopparmynt in the primary material used in Chapter 4. .5 marks kopparmynt). Source: Sandbergska samlingen. an overview of the composition of the board of governors and a history of coins and banknotes from the earliest coins until the present. 3) the private banks 1834–1924. The sum was the equivalent of a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around four days’ work in Stockholm (see Chapter 9). altogether 2. Hopefully.832 pages. Volume V contains a table annex of 221 pages. the earlier history of Stockholms Banco is also taken up). for example. these early Nordic efforts will inspire central banks in other countries to begin their own similar projects. and 4) the Swedish banks’ position with regard to other countries. 631a. It was during the 17th century that a foreign exchange developed. The foundation of the Riksbank. during the Middle Ages the monetary system was decentralised. the underlying data come from different sources and may even differ somewhat in their definitions. 6 and 7. Rodney Edvinsson discusses various domestic currencies that circulated in Sweden-Finland 1534–1804. wages for different types of work are combined by making specific adjustments to possible breaks between the constituent series. depending on how they were generated in the first place. In all chapters. At the end of the chapter there is a list of monetary terms historically in use in Sweden. These accounts include details on how and from where the underlying data were assembled but also to what extent the series have been adjusted so as to guarantee consistency and comparability over time. In Chapter 5. and it was not until the 16th century that a common monetary system was formed in the Kingdom of Sweden-Finland. the reader is offered a careful description of the making of the series as well as an introduction to the series as such and how they have evolved over time. when constructing a composite long-run series. Rodney Edvinsson presents an overview of the monetary standards in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the present. but it was also in this period that pure fiat money came into circulation. In Chapters 5. The theme in Chapters 3. Instead. In Chapter 2. In many cases. 6 and 7 is exchange rates. and how they evolved from a commodity to a fiat standard. foreign exchange rates in 1658–2008 are assessed.1. prices.2. Exchange rates. In Chapter 4. mostly the names of various domestic currencies. However. and wages. Chapters 3 and 4 focus on the relation between various currencies used as means of payment in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the early 19th century. In Chapter 3. for the simple reason that the nature of work has changed entirely over time. It was in this period that parts of the economy came to be monetarised. The major contribution of the chapters is the detailed accounts of the construction of the series. 1277–2008 15 1. 4. with different currencies circulating in different provinces. The most-traded . Rodney Edvinsson. Contents of this volume The nine remaining chapters present novel time-series evidence collected exclusively for this project. no continuous wage series covering the entire period from the Middle Ages to the present exists. These currencies were based on silver. Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg present extensive new evidence on the evolution of the Swedish monetary system in the first half of the second millennium. Rodney Edvinsson deals with the foreign exchange in 1658–1804. Similar problems arise when different price series are to be spliced together when constructing a historical Consumer Price Index. 5. the world’s oldest central bank. gold and copper. For example. He deals with the period when multiple domestic currencies existed at floating exchange rates relative to each other. is in itself a consequence of a Swedish peculiarity in the 17th century: the copper standard. The monetary history of Sweden is both fascinating and perplexing. In the 20th century the dollar was the most important quoted foreign currency. 1277–2008 Left. . Since the gold points are significantly narrower than the silver points. In 1742 this amount was equivalent to wages for three days’ work. bills of exchange were on Amsterdam and Hamburg. the volatility of the foreign exchange decreased significantly after 1873.16 Exchange rates. including the construction of a composite trade-share weighted exchange rate index for Sweden in 1914–2008. Jan Bohlin provides an overview of Swedish 20th-century exchange rates. Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg present a new long-run series on the consumer price index for Sweden. and wages. In Chapter 8. a period when Sweden was first on a silver standard. In Chapter 6. as England overtook Holland economically and London became the centre of the international financial markets. This index is used to trace the strength of the Swedish currency during various periods. In the 18th and 19th centuries. bills on London became more important. creating the longest continuous Consumer Price Index series for Sweden to date. The authors have compiled newly located evidence in the Middle Ages and spliced it with later series. prices. and then switched to a gold standard in 1873. reflecting Sweden’s close economic relations with Germany and Holland. Håkan Lobell deals with foreign exchange during 1803–1914. In Chapter 7. a copper plate with the nominal value of two daler silvermynt (copy). today. as the United States overtook Britain as the major power. The foreign exchange underwent a major transformation. that would correspond to several thousand SEK (see money on the right). minted as early as 995.1 and 1. is of course not without problems. respectively. In Chapter 10. A bird’s-eye view of the second millennium in Sweden This book covers the monetary history of Sweden in most of the second millennium. which implies that in that year it stood at 82. He uses the Consumer Price Index to deflate nominal wages. Following exchange rates. He focuses on female and male manufacturing workers. inflation and real wages through time requires definitions that are applicable to all of the investigated periods.5 The correlation between the two indices is very strong. Svante Prado presents long-run wage series between 1860 and 2007. The most astonishing leap took place in the aftermath of the First World War. constitutional regime switches determining the right to issue currency. . Establishing a common monetary system is in itself a political process. charter banks and so forth. Covering such a long period. Although the book title sets the beginning at 1277 (as the first documented exchange rate notation is from that year). Figure 1. including redrawings of geographic borders.3 presents the indices of silver’s purchasing power in Sweden and UK/England. to follow the evolution of real wages.7 in UK. Chapter 3 also discusses developments of the monetary system during the late Viking Age and its first coins. Johan Söderberg deals with wages in the pre-industrial era. 1277–2008 17 Chapters 9 and 10 compile historical data on wages in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the present. 1.2 present the annual growth rates of prices and real wages. 1. This is based on household PPPs for the final consumption index. The chapters of this book therefore put much effort into conceptual issues. An interesting result is that real wages were basically stagnant before the industrial breakthrough.3 provide a long-term view of some important monetary variables.1. making it possible to assess the long-term development of real wages. Figures 1. During this period real wages have risen continuously. as also discussed in Chapters 2. which can be contrasted to the pre-industrial period discussed in Chapter 9.2 and 1. In Chapter 9.6 in Sweden and 87. mainly based on unskilled labourers in Stockholm. The historical meaning of the Kingdom of Sweden has changed over time. Figures 1. One of the most obvious anachronisms throughout the book is our use of the name Sweden. See OECD (2009-01-29).3. per century. 3 and 4. Changed borders usually changed the currency that was used in the affected areas. and wages. due to the restriction of working hours. which shows that the Swedish CPI presented in Chapter 8 gives reasonable results concerning long-term developments when compared to the UK/England. Elements of anachronism are inevitable whenever historical generalizations are to be made. a recent example is the development 5 The purchasing power of silver is set equal to 100 for the OECD in 2005. and attempting to construct various indicators to describe developments over centuries.1. Monetary history is closely connected to political history. prices. Exchange rates. 1277–2008 of the European Union and the euro. but are not part of present-day Sweden. Halland and Blekinge in the south of present-day Sweden belonged to Denmark. Norway and Denmark formed a union in 1397 under the rule of Queen Margaret I of Denmark. which reflects the backwardness of the Swedish economy. which lasted until 1814. which at the same time does cover areas that historically belonged to and were integrated with the Swedish realm. prices. which was also the low point of the population curve.18 Exchange rates. Figure 1. while Jämtland in the northwest of present-day Sweden was part of Norway. as discussed in Chapter 3. Sweden (including Finland). except for a brief period in the 14th century. Although Gotland. this method is not as meaningful to apply to. It was not until the 17th century that these territories. in turn. The monetary history of Sweden is also closely connected to the monetary history of other Nordic countries. Scania. was not surpassed until the 1890s. Continual tension of an economic nature within the union led to a conflict between Swedes and Danes in the 15th century.6 6 Campbell (2009. The Swedish mark was linked at times to the mark of other Nordic countries and Lübeck. In the 13th century. it had its own currency that also circulated in parts of the Swedish mainland up to the 15th century. and remained so up to 1808/09. when King Gustav (Eriksson) Vasa assumed power over Sweden and Finland. p. are often constructed for countries within present-day borders. an island in the Baltic Sea. which. As discussed in Chapter 3. were conquered by Sweden. was part of Sweden up to 1361. counting in Danish currency was common in the south of Sweden up to the mid-16th century. As discussed in Chapter 3. Denmark and Norway continued the union. while the fine silver content of the Swedish mark deteriorated during the Middle Ages. exchange rates. The union finally fell apart in the early 1520s. .3 shows that the purchasing power of silver was higher in Sweden than in UK/England. While macroeconomic historical data. Throughout history there have been several monetary and political unions between various Nordic countries. during most of the Middle Ages there was no unified monetary system in Sweden. This was an effect of the rising purchasing power of silver (see Figure 1. such as GDP. real wages reached a high point in the late 15th century. including Gotland. The highest real wage rate during the Middle Ages. present-day Finland became a consolidated part of the Swedish kingdom. Although Sweden continued to mint its own coins.3). reached in 1478. Such a peak in real wages in the late 15th century has also been observed for England. was a consequence of a declining population and trade following the Black Death (probably the most severe economic crisis of the second millennium) and other epidemics. when it was conquered by Russia. prices expressed in Swedish marks were stable (except for a brief period after the mid-14th century). Parts of present-day Sweden are therefore disregarded in this volume. 29). and wages. for example. For the Middle Ages it is particularly difficult to write a distinctly Swedish monetary history. As shown by Johan Söderberg in Chapter 9. such as prices and exchange rates. prices. expansion of trade and the influx of silver to Europe. from around the mid-17th century up to 1776.1.3). however.1. Estonia. also Estonia (from 1561). three based on silver. The Age of Liberty ended with Gustav III’s coup d’état in 1772. As discussed in Chapter 9. Sweden’s currency weakened in the 17th and 18th centuries. published by various papers. and Bremen and Verden came under its rule. when King Gustav IV Adolf. The 17th century saw the rise of Sweden as a great power.1). for example. From this period we also have rich sources on economic statistics. monarchy was limited by parliamentary rule (which. During the Age of Liberty (1718–72). Wismar. The Great Northern War ended the Swedish empire.2). was not a democracy). in comparison with its neighbours. population growth slowed down. Chapter 5 concerning the exchange rate on Swedish Pomerania). Livonia. Although the combined copper and silver standard caused some deterioration of the currency. was . and inflation was lower than in the previous century (see Figure 1. the copper standard. Inflation was further accentuated by successive debasements (a well-known practice that has been in use as far back as the Roman Empire). and wages. the stronger state implied greater possibilities to manipulate the currency in order to increase seignorage during times of war. Western Pomerania. from being an undistinguished country. 1277–2008 19 The 16th century was the opposite of the Middle Ages. as shown in Figure 1. the Swedish inflation rate in the 16th century was even higher than in the 20th century. In Sweden. The process of political decentralization was reversed under Gustav (Eriksson) Vasa . the son of Gustav III.2 and 1. The monetary system was unified. Beside Gotland. Occasionally additional currencies existed. The press developed substantially during this period. The purchasing power of silver and real wages declined due to population growth (see Figures 1. Halland. An absolute monarchy lasted up to 1809. which together with the expansion of mining and new incomes from the conquered territories caused real wages to rise somewhat during the 17th century (see Figure 1. the heavy copper plates limited its magnitude. As shown in Chapter 5. Sweden was transformed into a leader of Protestantism. Scania. but with coin tokens towards the end of the Great Northern War (1700–21). Kexholm. In fact. A monetary innovation was introduced in 1624. Sweden de facto had at least five currencies. Livonia. The Protestant Reform and the seizure of Church property further strengthened the central power. After 1710 the use of transferred notes expanded significantly. In 16thcentury Sweden. one on copper and one on gold. As discussed in Chapter 4. Due to its involvement in the Thirty Years’ War. it was during this period of multiple currencies circulating alongside each other that the fiat standard arose. Exchange rates. Blekinge and Jämtland. Ingria. although the Swedish currency was not introduced in all territories (see. the first experience of a fiat standard was not with paper money. Sweden’s power was partly based on the expansion in mining. Ingria and parts of Finland were ceded to Russia. However. Source: Nationalmuseum. prices.20 Exchange rates. . 1277–2008 King Gustav I (Vasa) in 1557 or 1558. and wages. Exchange rates. However.2) to a low point at the time of the Napoleonic wars. and a formal Scandinavian currency union was formed (see further Håkan Lobell’s discussion in Chapter 6). This was preceded by important political changes. One of Napoleon’s generals became king of Sweden in 1818 as Karl XIV Johan. As discussed by Johan Söderberg in Chapter 9. Denmark and Norway. At first the union did not lead to any monetary homogenization. which came to dominate money supply. From 1850. and wages. The new Swedish constitution of 1809 was influenced by Montesquieu’s ideas of the balance of powers. and its convertibility into silver was later withdrawn. Various studies of food consumption show that the calorie intake decreased between the 16th and 17th centuries and was then roughly stagnant between the 17th and 18th centuries. . After positive Swedish experiences of linking the currency to a fixed silver rate since 1834.1). as discussed in Chapter 7. however. in the 19th century the Malthusian trap was avoided thanks to technological development and the spread of potatoes. Economically. which was followed by increases in real wages as well.1. when Norway gained full political independence. plans for monetary cooperation emerged. Real wages started to increase despite the rising population (see Figure 1.1). as discussed in Chapter 9. and although it 7 Morell (1986). was followed by an increased rate of inflation (see Figure 1. Full freedom of trade was introduced in 1864. Population growth caused real wages to decline (see Figure 1. the krona was introduced as the common currency unit in Sweden. the Russian and Danish currencies deteriorated more than the Swedish. For example. 1277–2008 21 removed from power by a new coup staged by radicalized officers. GDP per capita started to rise significantly and doubled during the course of the second half of the 19th century. paper money continued to circulate. prices. Following the loss of Finland to Russia in 1809. Following the introduction of the gold standard in 1873. the copper standard was abolished and the riksdaler silver coin was introduced as the main currency unit in order to stabilize the monetary system. The struggle between conservative and liberal political forces peaked at the end of the 1830s and was followed by several important liberal reforms in the period 1840–66. During the entire silver and gold standard periods in the 19th century. The First World War ended the monetary stability of the previous century. Swedish inflation rates were quite low (see Figure 1. In 1789–1834 the inflation rate was substantial but Sweden was not alone in experiencing a monetary crisis during the Napoleonic wars. The guild system was abolished in 1846. the 18th century exhibited a continuation of some of the trends from the 16th century. fuelled by the defeat of Sweden in its war against Russia. The circulation of fiat money. Norway formed its own central bank in 1816 and issued its own currency. Norway and Sweden formed a political union in 1814 which lasted until 1905. The gold standard was suspended in 1914.2).7 In 1776–7 a major currency reform was implemented. 17th and 18th centuries. Svante Öberg and our Norwegian colleagues mentioned above. The manipulation of the Swedish currency by political authorities at times of difficulty is a well-established practice. Lagerqvist. How these devaluations affected long-term Swedish economic growth is still a debated issue. Commitments to a stable currency have been made time and again in history. Lars O. and Patrick Hort for improving our written English. 1277–2008 was later reintroduced in 1922–31 and under Bretton Woods in 1951–71. a couple of interim workshops were organized in which the following external experts participated and submitted comments and suggestions: Peter Englund. Cecilia von Heijne. Sweden’s currency weakened.22 Exchange rates. and 1977–93 when it depreciated in several steps. Claes Berg and Lars Jonung made important contributions to its realization. In the process of completing the separate chapters in this volume.2 and further discussed by Svante Prado in the final chapter. The issue of price and exchange rate stability is not new. We have from the very beginning received invaluable support and input from the Norwegian scholars working with their similar project at Norges Bank. often. 1980s and early 1990s. In Chapter 7 Jan Bohlin concludes that there were two periods when the value of the krona changed significantly: 1915–24. to one of the richest in the 1960s. price stability could not be maintained. early 1980s and early 1990s. prices. have shattered such assurances. During and after the First World War. Sweden’s relative economic position was strengthened. and wages. when it appreciated. and its historical roots can be traced to the 16th. Eva Wiséhn at the Royal Coin Cabinet for pictures of coins and notes. 19th and 20th centuries. Inflation was aggravated in the 1970s. In the initial stages of this project. Finally. but great events. Lars Jonung. but far from always. such as wars and deep economic crises. The exchange rate reflects the relative economic development of Sweden vis-à-vis other rich countries. it has been debated continually from the Middle Ages to the present. . thus contributing to economic revival but also causing price instability. During the recessions in the late 1970s. Real wages increased substantially during the course of the 20th century. Sweden developed from one of the poorest countries in Western Europe in the 19th century. Klas Fregert. Acknowledgements A number of people have contributed to the making of this book. in particular Ola Grytten and Jan Tore Klovland at the Norwegian School of Economics and Business Administration in Bergen and Øyvind Eitrheim at Norges Bank. as shown by Figure 1. we would like to thank Mira Barkå and Claudio Carillo at the archive of the Riksbank for helping us to find foreign exchange rates in the 18th. 5 0 -0.5 1 0. 7 6 5 4 3 2 1 0 14th century Source: Chapter 8.5 -1 -1. Exchange rates. 2. 15th century 16th century 17th century 18th century 19th century 20th century Figure 1.5 15th century 16th century 17th century 18th century 19th century 20th century Source: Chapters 9 and 10.1.2. and wages. 1277–2008 23 Figure 1. The average annual growth rate (per cent) of real wages in Sweden from the 15th to the 20th century. prices.5 2 1. The average annual rate of inflation (per cent) in Sweden from the 14th to the 20th century.1. . prices.3. 10. The purchasing power of silver in UK/England and Sweden 1273-–2006 (OECD average in 2005 =100).000 100 10 1300 1400 1500 1600 UK/England 1700 Sweden 1800 1900 2000 Source: Based on Chapters 3. 7 and 8. 4. 1277–2008 Figure 1. Officer (2008). Lindert (2006). .24 Exchange rates.000 1. and OECD (200901-29). 5. 6. and wages. Friedman. Uppsala. Stockholm. Heckscher. A Monetary History of the United Kingdom 1870– 1982.measuringworth. and A J Schwartz (1963). MeasuringWorth. M. Morell. 35.aspx?query type=view&queryname=221 (2009-01-29). I. Jonung. Princeton.edu/files/Silver_value_of_1273– 1977.’ in Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1918. 1867–1960. ‘Silver in Britain – Mint prices 1273–1971 and market prices 1693–1977’. and J F Qvigstad (2007). Exchange rates.och lantbruksakademien.A. and A Webber (1985). J T Klovland. Skogs. L (1975) Studies in the Monetary History of Sweden. J T Klovland.’ in Agrarhistoria på många sätt: 28 studier om människan och jorden. OECD. Stockholm: Norstedts.1. Norstedt & Söner. Ø. Eli F. Ø. P (2006). Campbell. P (1965).org/wbos/Index. http://stats. P. ‘What Were the UK Earnings and Prices Then?’. Princeton University Press. Lindert.ucdavis. M (1986). ‘2005 PPP Benchmark results’. ‘Den Palmstruchska banken och Riksens Ständers Bank under den karolinska tiden. Vol I. Eitrheim. Vol. London: George Allen & Unwin. ‘Four famines and a pestilence: Harvest. Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway 1819–2003. http://www. Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway: Part II. L (2008). utspisningsstaterna och den svenska konsumtionen från 1500-talet till 1800-talet: Sammanfattning och komplettering av en lång debatt.xls (2008-12-15). Stockholm: Kungl. V. Eitrheim. prices. B (2009). Capie. and wages. Officer. S (1918). Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924. Norges Banks skriftserie/Occasional Papers No. A Monetary History of the United States. Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Statistiska tabeller.org/ukearncpi/ (2009-01-25). Cagan. Determinants and Effects of Changes in the Stock of Money.oecd. 1875– 1960. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. and J F Qvigstad (2004). . F. price. Los Angeles: University of California. 38. Excel-file. NBER. http://gpih. Norges Banks skriftserie/Occasional Papers No. New York. 1277–2008 25 References Brisman. NJ. and wage variations in England 13th to 19th centuries. while the fiat standard is a rather late innovation.2. 6–12). Johan Söderberg and Daniel Waldenström for comments on the content of this text. Cecilia von Heijne. for the 17th century. Exchange rates of coins often deviated somewhat from the theoretical exchange rates based on the relations between their intrinsic metal values. Lagerqvist. abbreviated SEK). The term “Sweden” used in this book could be questioned from a historical perspective. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective1 Rodney Edvinsson 2. the monetary history of various regions within the present borders of Sweden coincided with Denmark’s. 2 . has been the main monetary unit in Sweden. One example is given in Jansson. will therefore differ depending on which monetary unit one follows because the value of some currencies fell more over time than the value of others.2 This chapter classifies the monetary standards in Sweden from the Middle Ages to the present. Klas Fregert. the monetary history of Sweden and Fin1 I want to thank especially Jan Bohlin.1. Inflation figures. The monetary history of Sweden provides examples of immediate as well as protracted adjustments of exchange rates and prices in response to debasement. Before that date Sweden had various domestic currencies that were used as means of payment. Since Finland was part of the kingdom of Sweden-Finland up to 1809. for example. A commodity standard was in place during most of Sweden’s history. divisible into 100 öre. and gives an overview of the various currencies that were in use. In various periods there was a fluctuating market exchange rate between these currencies. Palm and Söderberg (1991. Up to the 17th century. pp. The classification into monetary standards is also related to the issue of debasement under the commodity standard and the mechanisms behind the rise of multiple currencies. Bo Franzén. Introduction Since 1873 the krona (crown. Lars O. Foreign exchange is intimately connected to the domestic currency system. p. 3).7 Money can exist in either physical or ideal form. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 27 land coincided up to the early 19th century. After a period of confusion and conflict about. p. a store of value. first in foreign trade.5 At the exchange. In the period 1814–73. Up to 1814. which in limited contexts only serves one or two of these functions. 89). often no distinction was made between riksdaler in foreign and domestic coins. Norway retained its own system. 1958. Although a monetary unit could establish identity between physical and ideal monies. p.2. This could upset the different functions of money. and Finland. p. implying that the unit of account and standard of deferred payment could refer to different mediums of exchange valued differently in the market. which serves all of money’s four basic functions.3 During the Middle Ages Gotland had its own monetary system. for example. were originally imported. This book discusses foreign exchange rates as well as exchange rates between various domestic currencies used in Sweden. Money in physical form (mainly coins before paper notes came into circulation) was initially the only or main medium of exchange and store of value. 5). Most domestic currencies. Foreign coins played an important role not least because in earlier times international transactions were made in coins. Also in Denmark. 56). but this changed during the Early Modern Period. Some of the foreign currencies quoted in Sweden in the 17th and 18th centuries – most notably. most of the rix-dollar coins that circulated in the 16th century were of foreign origin (Friis and Glamann. there were periods when a difference arose.6 The appendix at the end of this chapter lists various money terms that have been used in Sweden. Norway and Sweden formed a union in 1814-1905. and the special-purpose money of economies that are not fully monetarised. the Hamburger reichstaler banco – were not minted coins but monies of account. 2. In the medieval and early modern monetary system. Thurborg (1989. and was used in exchange and counting houses. like mark. . the conse3 4 5 6 7 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968. a unit of account and a standard of deferred payment. The ducat is spelled ‘dukat’ in Swedish. for example. the Norwegian monetary system was coordinated with the Danish. The riksdaler and the ducat4 circulated as domestic as well as foreign coins. it is important to distinguish between monetary units referring to physical means of payment and the ones that served merely as units of account. up to the early 19th century. Money in ideal form is a pure unit of account or notational device. Heckscher (1941. A distinction is sometimes made between the all-purpose money of modern economies. The distinction is criticised in Melitz (1970). The functions of money Money has four basic functions: a medium of exchange. the type of money in which old debts should be paid. daler and riksdaler. where 1 speciedaler = 120 skillings.2. The introduction of a single domestic currency system can be seen as part of the transformation from a pre-capitalist. In Sweden. not from its physical properties. p. feudal or semi-feudal economy. For example. This was also the main form of money in a longer historical perspective. Weber and Wright (1999.3. gold and copper.8 To be an effective unit of account for commodities. and wages.9 The peculiarity of money is that its usefulness mainly comes from its property as exchange value. coins of precious metal were never 100 per cent pure commodity money. Money as pure commodity would not be money. 19). p. is a ‘hybrid of a commodity and money’. The daler as a coin then came to be termed riksdaler. 118). 1277–2008 quence could be bifurcation of old monetary units. capitalist one. Velde. 2. the term daler bifurcated further (see Chapter 4). . 306). During the 17th century. The permanent replacement of commodity money by fiat money is a recent innovation. prices. existing in physical form and primarily valued for its physical properties. Velde. in the 1570s the daler coin was set equal to 4 marks. a process that is still continuing (at least at the international level.3). The face value of the metal coins was generally somewhat higher than their intrinsic metal value. while the daler became a unit of account equal to 4 marks (see Table 2. Weber and Wright (1999) emphasise that commodity money. Commodity money Money first arose as commodity money.11 Keynes even defines a non-monetary economy as ‘an economy in which there is no asset for which 8 9 10 11 Davidson (1919. An efficient national market required a common abstract standard. However. Sargent and Velde (2002. The difference constitutes a ‘fiat component’ of the coin’s face value. Even when commodity money prevailed. the term daler referred at first to daler coins minted with a fixed silver content.28 Exchange rates. ‘[t]he holder of bullion willingly paid a premium to have raw metal transformed into standard coins. Sussman (1993. three metals have been important in this respect: silver. 50). to a modern. Later the daler coin came to be valued at more than 4 marks and a bifurcation occurred between the daler as a coin and the daler as a unit of account. involving achievements as well as setbacks. Commodity money was linked to various precious metals. as the name suggests. as shown by the rise of the Euro in the late 20th century). p. money itself had to rise beyond its original physical commodity form. which enabled the ruler to obtain an income from minting. p. this Weberian process of rationalisation within the monetary sphere was protracted and complicated. established in the closing decades of the 20th century. due to the savings on transaction costs to be gained from using a universally accepted medium of exchange’.10 As Nathan Sussman puts it. 2. Smith (1999 [1776]. 239). i. by Marinus van Reymerswaele (1490–1546). the nominal value minted from a fixed weight of a metal (measured in. The seignorage rate is the ratio of seignorage per unit weight to the mint price (of the same unit weight).wikimedia. 59 and 130). one troy pound pure silver was minted into 7.13 The mint price and the market price of bullion were not necessarily equal. The picture shows gold as well as silver coins. uses the terms ‘mint charge’ instead of gross seignorage and ‘mint par’ instead of mint equivalent. was somewhat higher than the mint price. in 1547.14 The mint equivalent less the mint price is the gross seignorage per unit weight.jpg the liquidity-premium is always in excess of the carrying-costs’.e.12 Had the monetary unit exactly reflected its fine metal content. the price of bullion when it is brought to the mint. p. and was painted at the time of a commercial revolution in Europe. p. In other words. . Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 29 The Banker and His Wife. For example.15 Gross seignorage includes minting costs. the mint would have suffered a loss because of the minting costs.org/wiki/File:De_geldwisselaar_en_zijn_vrouw. at the height of the Great Debasement in England. Sussman (1993. for example. Quinn and Roberds (2006. pp.2 pounds sterling – the mint equivalent – while the mint price of the same unit weight of silver was 12 13 14 15 Keynes (1936. p. Redish (2000. 27). 12). 50). net seignorage is the mint’s pure profit. the mint equivalent. daler silvermynt per ship pound). p. Source: http://commons. 996). although the bifurcation between riksgälds and banco notes in Sweden during the 1790s shows that this can happen (as mentioned in Chapter 4). Minting was connected to power and the state formation process. This process was not linear. commodity money should be accompanied by price stability. 34). p. p.16 The (gross) seignorage per minted troy pound pure silver was. p.403 or 140.204 pounds sterling. or recoinage. 1277–2008 2. Spufford (1988. 90). therefore. The ruler could temporarily increase his income from minting through debasement (provided the mint price initially does not increase as much as the mint equivalent). However. and wages.996 pounds sterling. the first attempt to mint coins in Sweden in the late 10th and early 11th centuries was abandoned. as discussed further in Chapter 8. Heckscher (1941.19 Monetary debasement was the main source of secular inflation in Sweden before 1715. increasing the legal value of the existing coin. p. i. For example. Occasionally. the debased coins are supposed to circulate at par with the old. It occurs either by enhancing money. better coins but in reality there is usually. 4). when the inferior coins usurped the names of the better coins21 (as in the case of the term daler in Sweden). and Redish (2000. prices. Läge (1961). and the (gross) seignorage rate 1. p.204/2. Melitz (1970.e.17 As argued by Jacques Melitz:18 ‘The monetary evolution of the West has not been guided by an invisible hand of progress. 1032).3 per cent (=4. under the metallic stan16 17 18 19 20 21 Redish (2000. Malmer (1995. pp.20 Debasements also gave rise to a complicated monetary system. the previously issued fiat monies usually do not circulate at a premium. 25). Therefore.e. i. inflation under commodity money is well known. and that it includes a fiat component. Depreciation under a metallic standard involves an increase in the mint equivalent. a premium on the better coins. Under a metallic standard. are the result of governmental improvisations following crises. reducing the fineness of the precious metal from which the coins are minted or by reducing the weight of the coins (or both). depreciation led to the formation of separate currency systems. Inflation takes different forms under a metallic and a fiat standard. or through debasement. but largely imposed by conspicuous actions of government … Many of the foremost features of the monetary systems we know today. with the circulation of parallel currencies. many monetary units became devalued over time (see the list of money terms in the appendix). which could be temporarily increased. 4.’ Given that the relative price of bullion does not change dramatically.30 Exchange rates. This reflects the hybrid nature of commodity money. 289-290). with some delay. while later inflation was mainly caused by excessive supply of fiat monies. Under a fiat standard. . in fact. an extremely high profit rate at the time. The strengthening of the monetary unit. which. 290). The issue is connected to the problem of whether coins circulated by weight.25 this became more common in the 19th century. 3–4). 1776). According to Gresham’s Law. pp. Such coins became de facto token coins. allowing them to stay in circulation. When the ruler returned to strong money. good money does not always drive out bad money. for example. 30). 22 23 24 25 26 Spufford (1988. p. The type of transaction tended to differentiate the demand for various types of means of payment. . I:1. Although the existence of legal tender legislation required individuals to accept both good and bad coins as if they were of equal value. Heckscher (1936 vol.e. and Heckscher (1941. he began minting coins of a fine metal content that approximated the older coins before debasement.e. it was not accompanied by negative seignorage. according to the so-called ‘standard formula’. at the same time as shortages of petty coins could be avoided. which is taken account of by the inflation index presented in Chapter 8. Redish (2000. pp. Sargent and Velde (2002. p. debased coins were.e. The debased coins often ceased to be legal tender after some time. if the difference is sufficiently large.22 This can be compared with the 20th century when zeros have been struck from inflation notes on various occasions (see Chapters 7 and 8). this was not easily enforced. 5). meant that their value did not fall below their face value. 107–9). Although nominal prices usually fell substantially following the introduction of better coins. pp. The face value of the coin could fall beneath its intrinsic metal value. the better coins tend to be driven out of circulation and melted down. at least officially and initially. and Sussman and Zeira (2003. Reducing the minted amount of coins of smaller denomination.2. used as a store of value) rather than melted down.23 However. in accordance with their face value. or by tale. Coins of smaller denomination could be minted with an intrinsic metal value that was significantly lower than their face value. i. p.26 This could be accomplished by either restricting free minting (see below) or increasing the seignorage rate of petty coins. supposed to be at par with the older better coins. Whereas under depreciation. allowing them to be brought back as means of payment under changed circumstances. under recoinage the face value of the debased coins was reduced significantly and exchanged at this reduced value for the new strong coins. often happened with old coins with a higher content of precious metal than the new debased coins with the same face value. the better coins were often hoarded (i. The better coins could command a premium (though not necessarily in proportion to their weight). Even when enforced. Copper was mostly used for this purpose. p. Redish (2000. 202–3). in accordance with their intrinsic metal value. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 31 dard was not the mirror image of depreciation. i. this should not be interpreted as severe deflation. and Rolnick and Weber (1986). For example.24 as shown by the many examples for Sweden in Chapters 3 and 4. silver or copper points). 161–2). Under a metallic standard based on free minting the price of bullion fluctuates – at least theoretically if the markets function efficiently – within the strict borders of the bullion points (gold. the objects that back the objects that are money)’. The difference between various standards is not black and white. Classification into monetary standards Arthur Rolnick and Warren Weber write that a monetary standard refers to ‘the objects that serve as the unit of account and that back the objects that circulate as generally accepted means of payment (i.e. 28 Redish (2000.. A currency can be seen as a system of account. a distinction must be made between the official monetary standard and the de facto standard in place (see Table 2. A country can be on a metallic standard officially. 5). for example. i.1 presents a classification into monetary standards used in this chapter for Sweden. Under a pure metallic standard there must be complete freedom to exchange money for metal and metal for money. The main difference is between commodity and fiat standards.4.e. Table 2. One condition often set for a pure metallic standard is free minting. p. Under a fiat standard the unit of account is some abstract value not linked to any commodity. as is further discussed by Håkan Lobell in Chapter 6 for the 19th century. Several currencies can also be backed by the same commodity. with a deduction for seignorage (i.2). 1277–2008 2. pp. The classification of monetary standards is primarily connected to the function of money as a unit of account. but are market prices. or several commodities under a multi-commodity standard. p. to whether notes or intrinsic value coins are the most common means of payment. 1819 and 1821 have been suggested depending on what criteria one uses. 29 Velde and Weber (1998. that anyone can go to the mint and procure for a quantity of unminted metal an amount of coins. while de facto the metallic standard has been abandoned if the circulating notes are made inconvertible. based on the relation between the currency (or currencies) and the object (or objects) backing the currency (or currencies). 1774. These points are not determined arbitrarily. For example.e. and wages. At the upper bound of the bullion price it is profitable 27 Rolnick and Weber (1997. Under a commodity standard the currency is backed by a fixed amount of a commodity. 1310).29 A pure metallic standard also presupposes unrestricted export and import of the metals from which the coins are minted. the date when Britain introduced the gold standard is difficult to pin down – the years 1717. prices. and not. ‘free’ does not mean free of charge). with a fixed relation between the monetary units constituting this system.27 Monetary standards can be classified in various ways and the definitions and terminology can vary between studies.32 Exchange rates. 1816. .28 Thus. When the commodity is a metal it is called a metallic standard. p. Redish (2000. the mint would buy an unlimited amount of metal at a mint price. the parallel stan30 31 32 33 34 35 36 Sargent and Velde (2002. p. p. Thomas Sargent and Francois Velde argue that the ‘intervals between the minting and melting points for large and small denomination coins identify a price level band within which the ordinary quantity theory operates. p. p.30 Free minting can be restricted and minting can be conducted on government account. for silver coins in the 16th century31 and for copper coins in the 17th and 18th centuries. free minting was periodically restricted. If the fiat component of a coin’s face value is large.33 The band within which the ordinary quantity theory operates will also be wider under such conditions. Bullion will then be exported. Furthermore. 20). 11). The most common multi-commodity standard involves two precious metals. the market value of coins can be held significantly above their intrinsic commodity value. p. p. The interval between the upper and the lower bullion point is narrower for silver than for copper and even narrower for gold than for silver. In Sweden.36 According to Eli Heckscher. since the option of melting coins into bullion continues to be open. 606). cast in terms of the total quantity of coins’. Thomas Sargent and Francois Velde argue that in the absence of an explicit free minting policy.2. At the lower bound of the bullion price it is profitable to deliver bullion to the mint. and Cottrell (1997. 202). I:1.35 In the West. The alternative is the multicommodity standard.32 When the right to procure minted coins for unminted metal at the mint is restricted or does not exist. Furthermore. 10). there is no lower bound for the bullion price. Heckscher (1935 vol.34 The mono-metallic standard is based on a single metal. and silver and copper. Sargent and Velde (2002. 129). Sargent and Velde (2002. although the upper bound still exists. The difference between free and restricted minting is not always clear. Heckscher (1936 vol. An increase in seignorage rates lowers the lower bound of the bullion price and thus increases its distance from the upper bound. . The most common combinations have been silver and gold. the coin in question becomes de facto a token coin. I:2. while the bimetallic standard implies a fixed relation between two types of coins based on two different metals. the multi-commodity standard was not finally abandoned until the late 19th century. Velde and Weber (1998). Bullion will then be imported. the ruler can still pursue a policy that resembles this. Velde and Weber define a bimetallic standard de jure as one in which two different metals ‘have unlimited legal tender at a fixed rate and both are freely minted’. 26). for instance in the case of a significant increase in the seignorage rate. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 33 to turn specie coins into bullion. Under such circumstances. gold and copper. Provided the ruler tries to maximise profit. were issued. The full metallic standard was initially replaced by a specie standard. it can sometimes be difficult to make a distinction between a fiat and a metallic standard. and wages. there was a clear separation between different standards for deferred payment. For example. the exchange rate between different coin currencies of the same precious metal could fluctuate. referring to all monetary standards where two different metals back one or several currencies. 607). the value of coin types in the same precious metal would tend to be fixed (or fluctuate within a very narrow band). and Flandreau and Zumer (2004). if free minting is restricted for at least one coin type. The classic example is the international gold standard in 1880–1914 (see Chapter 6). fiat monies are not. While fiduciary monies. i.34 Exchange rates. prices. 13–14).38 Under a fiat standard. Some authors use a broader definition of bimetallism. Under such a system. which was the case when the gold standard was partly re-established internationally in the 1920s. bank notes and token coins. the exchange rate is 37 38 39 40 Heckscher (1936 vol. while other currencies followed the dollar). pp. Coins minted from the latter metal therefore either tended to be exchanged at a premium or were withdrawn from circulation (see below). notes convertible into coins. Eli Heckscher names such a system a coin types standard (a free translation of the terms “sortmyntfot” in Swedish and “Sortengeld” in German that Heckscher actually used). 25 and 246). this was the case in Sweden up to around 1700. p. If free minting prevails (and the seignorage rate is very low). In practice.39 Under a full metallic standard. The fluctuations in the relative prices of various metals cause the mint equivalent at some point in time to be lower than the bullion price for one of the metals. I:2. 246). which he distinguishes from the parallel standard. 1277–2008 dard allows a floating exchange rate between coins of different metals. it was usual for each coin currency to have its own legal status and sphere of circulation. lasting up to 1971 (see Chapter 7). bank notes and token coins are inconvertible. Only small fluctuations are allowed in the exchange rates.40 Under a bullion standard. in 17th century Sweden. issued by private or public institutions. Redish (2000.e. the circulated notes are partly covered by unminted bullion. With the exception of the early 1660s. all monetary transactions are conducted in metallic coins. are convertible into precious metals. p. The classic example of a gold exchange standard is the Bretton Woods system after the Second World War (only the dollar was convertible into gold. Redish (2000. However. Indirectly it implies that free minting is abolished (if unminted bullion could be exchanged for specie coins it would de facto be a specie standard). in turn. are convertible into specie or bullion. debts made in one coin currency usually had to be paid back in the same coin currency. Under a specie or bullion exchange standard the national currency is convertible into currencies that. according to a narrow definition (especially if free minting is a condition). Under the latter. implying that fiduciary monies. Lobell (2000. pp.37 The bimetallic standard is rather unstable and usually de facto transforms into a parallel or a mono-metallic standard. . since the relation between krona and öre is fixed. a multi-currency standard usually prevails. Michael Bordo and Finn Kydland therefore argue that such arrangements should be seen as forms of metallic standards. since in practice various monetary standards partly overlap. While a parallel standard is always a multi-currency standard.2 a differentiation is made between ‘longterm’ and ‘short-term’ standards. Table 2. Before the collapse of the Bretton Woods system. if the exchange rates between two or more fiat currencies. or fiat and metallic currencies. based on a single currency (see Table 2. there were expectations that convertibility would be restored later at the original rate of conversion. 205). a mono-currency standard (see Table 2.41 Some authors use a broader definition of the parallel standard that would include fluctuating exchange rates between coins types of the same metal. I:1. It is. as a result of the need to finance a war. the somewhat broader term multi-currency standard is introduced. Standards that exist on a permanent basis are easier to identify. 2. the multi-currency standard can also be combined with mono-metallism. it can be combined with a fiat standard. the present division of one krona into 100 öre constitutes a mono-currency standard. according to official and market rates.and mono-currency standard are used to describe the domestic economy. For example. . not two separate systems.2 contains descriptions of the monetary standard in Sweden from the 12th century to the present.2 should not be regarded as rigid. the euro or the international gold standard) can be described as attempts to introduce a mono-currency standard for several countries. Under a bimetallic standard.3 is a summary of the value relations between various currency units. p. therefore. The introduction of various currency unions (for example. and have not been considered when establishing monetary standards. The riksdaler before 1777 and gold coins before 1873 were mainly international currencies. 41 Heckscher (1936 vol. At an international level. From commodity to fiat standard Table 2. two different metals back the same unit of account or currency. In this chapter. This is contrasted to a mono-currency standard. Furthermore. Here the terms multi.1).1). It involves only one system of account. and a fixed exchange rate is presupposed (at least de jure) between coins minted from the two metals.2. Although the currency was then made inconvertible. fluctuate relative to each other. defined as a standard in which several units of account exist that are not fixed in value relative to each other. 42 Bordo and Kydland (1992).5. One problem concerns periods with a temporary fiat standard. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 35 fixed for coin types of the same metal.42 In Table 2. The categorisation of Table 2. prices.1. Mono-currency. In medieval and early modern Europe. 85). Abstract unit(s) and commodity/ies Is logically excluded. Multi-currency. Sweden was. Would be a mono-currency. mono-commodity standard. and the link to a metal was sustained in one form or another. and on a fiat standard from 1971 onwards. multi-commodity standard. Often de facto a fiat standard if commodity currencies play a minor role. gold coins played only a minor part in domestic trade. silver was the main precious metal backing the currency commonly in use. p. Flynn. mono-commodity standard. Object(s) backing the currency(ies) Mono-currency. silver formed a standard to which all currencies and prices could be related. . Giráldez and von Glahn (2003).44 In Sweden. fiat standard. on a copper and silver standard 1624–1776. fiat standard. Multi-currency. and wages. in one form or another. mono-commodity standard with convertible fiduciary money circulating. It is therefore the practice of some price historians to transform 43 See. for example. Is unstable and usually transforms into a parallel or a mono-currency. mainly for high-value transactions. on a gold standard 1873–1971. multi-commodity standard (for example. bimetallic standard according to a narrow definition). The ones imported or minted were mainly used in foreign trade. on a silver standard up to 1624. 1277–2008 Table 2. On a long-term basis. Combined fiat and commodity standard. 44 Friedman (1990. or 2) fluctuating exchange rate between coin types of the same metal. Gold currency was used to a lesser extent. on a silver standard 1776– 1873. before the adoption of the gold standard in 1873. Two cases: 1) fixed relation between coins of the same metal (parallel standard according to a narrow definition). In Europe (and other parts of the world43) before the 19th century.36 Exchange rates. Number of currencies One currency Two or more currencies (mono-currency standard) (multi-currency standard) One commodity (monocommodity standard) Two or more commodities (multi-commodity standard) Mono-currency. mono-commodity standard. Multi-currency. Classification into monetary standards developed in the present study based on the relation between the currency(ies) and the object(s) backing the currency(ies). Abstract unit(s) (fiat standard) all fiat standards were more or less viewed as temporary (sometimes lasting several decades). riksbank. and then stayed at 14–16 up to the 1870s.jpg prices in the local currency into prices in grams of silver. Kraków.2. One important source of depreciation was the wear from circulation and clipping of coins. which implied that newly minted coins (if not debased) tended to be under- . England. presented in Chapter 4 for the period 1652–1776.000 SEK according to the Bretton Woods arrangement. this sum was the equivalent of a male manufacturing worker’s pay for 7 years (see Chapter 10). Luzern and Austria 1427–1541 and 1552–1686. which makes historical prices comparable internationally. Hamburg 1687– 1832. Source: http://www. which Sweden joined in 1951. During the 20th century the value ratio was extremely volatile and its level was much higher than in the previous centuries. the ratio was quite stable before the classic international gold standard in 1880–1914. In 1955.1 and 2. also displays a surprising stability over time. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 37 Gold bars produced in Sweden in mid-1950s by Boliden. During the first half of the 17th century it increased from 11–12 to 14–15. Figures 2. Each bar weighed 12½ kg and was worth 73. and London from 1833 onwards). and Austria 1400–27 and 1542–51. In the late 19th century the ratio increased to above 30. Apart from a rise in the first half of the 17th century. Kraków. Gold became relatively more precious than silver when most developed countries went over from a silver to a gold standard.se/upload/Bilder_riksbank/Kat_sedlar_mynt1/huller_buller_high. During the 15th and 16th centuries the ‘world’ gold-silver ratio was around 11. France. The exchange rate of one ducat (a gold coin) in riksdaler (linked to silver).2 present the ‘world’ gold-silver (value) ratio from 1400 to 2005 (average of France. 1. Continues the series from Figure 2. 100 90 80 70 60 50 40 30 20 10 0 1860 1880 1900 1920 1940 1960 1980 2000 Source: ‘Measuringworth. England. Hamburg 1687–1832. Kraków. France.2. Kraków. and wages. Luzern and Austria 1427–1541 and 1552–1686. ‘World’ gold-silver (value) ratio 1850–2005. com’. prices. Figure 2.1. Based on London prices. Average of France.com”.38 Exchange rates. London 1833–50. and Austria 1400–26 and 1542–51. 1277–2008 Figure 2. . ‘World’ gold-silver (value) ratio 1400–1850 17 16 15 14 13 12 11 10 9 8 7 6 5 1400 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 Sources: ‘MEMDB – Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’ and ‘Measuringworth. Furthermore.47 Sweden was the world’s largest producer of copper and the minting of copper coins was used to regulate the international price of copper. could also be described as a debasement cycle. which was unusual in Europe. In Amsterdam and Holland. the 1360s. A debasement cycle consists of rapid debasement followed by recoinage. when new. In Sweden. or debasement. 46 Sussman (1993. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 39 valued relative to older coins. although the debased coins rather resembled fiat money. During these debasement cycles older better coins circulated alongside the debased ones. weighing 56 grams. as discussed further in Chapter 5.46 The metallic standard was never a complete guarantee for the intrinsic metal content. either at par or at least at a better rate than implied by their fine metal content. 33). When free minting and the number of debased coins were restricted. Most of these debasement cycles were connected to war and the need to finance the war through increased seignorage. At times. 1561–76 and 1590–93. 47 Redish (2000. there was a shortage of means of payment. This occurred. according to the standard of the mint. There were also large regional differences. The empirical evidence from Sweden shows that the exchange rates of coins often deviated somewhat from the theoretical exchange rates based on the relation between their intrinsic metal contents. Against this background. and tended to be accompanied by rapid price increases. in 1590–92 and 1716–18. there are examples of immediate as well as protracted adjustments of exchange rates and prices in response to debasement. p. with a stable precious metal content. In Sweden. During the 17th century 45 Redish (2000. but such coins were ordered once only and later castigated as being too clumsy for ordinary use. copper coins were minted in Sweden with the intention that they would circulate at their intrinsic value. inferior coins could circulate at par with the old ones. these coins initially constituted only a small part of the total money supply. bank monies arose in the 17th century that were linked to the better coins. which are further discussed in Chapters 3 and 4. From 1624. 52). The period 1716–19. On some occasions there was an anticipation that the debased coins would later be exchanged for better coins. 108). dealt with in Chapter 4. allowing them to temporarily and partly function as token coins. allowing the successful implementation of this strategy.45 Short-term solutions were either recoinage. 1521–24. multiplying the number of currencies.2. debasement cycles occurred in the 1350s. alongside current money. . These two foreign currencies also played an important role in the Swedish economy. a two-penny copper coin was minted in England in the 1790s with an intrinsic value equal to its face value. p. For example. when clipped coins were exchanged for new ones at a reduced rate. and their value could be upheld significantly above their intrinsic metal value. the mark silver and various gold coins had this function during the Middle Ages (see Chapter 3). for example. there was a need for a currency unit. p. implying that a premium was paid for those monies. while the riksdaler had that role after the 1530s (see Chapter 4). 48 The heaviest copper coins were minted in the form of plates weighing from 0. and could buy five hectolitres of grains or 30 kg of butter. a precursor of the Riksbank. established in 1668. and wages. I:2. 1277–2008 Copper plate minted in 1644 to the nominal value of 10 daler silvermynt.75 per cent from 1830 for silver coins and to 0.40 Exchange rates. weighing 19. free minting was the rule for both silver and gold coins. Stockholm. but it was in the 18th century that non-metallic money came to dominate money supply. which.49 The first banknotes in Europe of a modern type were issued by Stockholms Banco in 1661. Convertibility was later restored in every case but the fiat 48 Heckscher (1936 vol. 1789–1803 and 1809–34. 49 Nordisk familjebok (1913). minting taxes were introduced. pp. prices. then existed up to 1873. the value ratio of copper to silver was around 94.7 kg.3 per cent from 1835 for gold coins. All four periods were preceded by wars and the need to finance these by issuing fiat money. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet. 1745–76. 10 daler silvermynt was the equivalent of a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around 33 days’ work in Stockholm. In 1777 Sweden returned to the sole silver standard (based on the riksdaler as its main currency unit). 602–3). The fiat standard was in place during four periods in the 18th and 19th centuries: 1716–19.5 to 20 kg. . with the exception of suspended convertibility in 1809–34. In the 19th century. The copper standard coexisted with the silver standard (see Chapter 4). which exemplifies how monetary innovation is often the result of crisis. In the period 1834–73. amounting to 0. 2.403 grams. which was in accordance with international markets. When the gold standard was introduced in 1873. at the previous price of gold. Norway and Denmark. The ducat. 19). 117).5 to 1. In 1868–72 another gold coin. However. 1931–51 and 1971 onwards (see Chapter 7).1 riksdaler riksmynt.53 The period 1924–31 was not a full return to the gold specie standard of 1873–1914. The fine gold content of one krona was 0.40 SEK (compared to 18.20 SEK (compared to around 3. a Scandinavian Currency Union was formed by Denmark and Sweden in 1873. The tax amounted to 0. even though the initial plan was to restore convertibility at the old par value.25 per cent for 20-krona gold coins and ⅓ per cent for 10-krona gold coins. After the outbreak of the First World War. but was suspended again on 27th September 1931 following the international Great Depression. The main currency unit was the krona (crown). respectively.54 In June 1933 the krona was fixed to the British pound at 19. p. and on 28th August 1939 to the US dollar at 4.74 SEK under the previ- 50 51 52 53 54 Wiséhn (1995.51 Instead.2 SEK under the previous international gold standard). was minted to link the Swedish gold currency to the Latin Monetary Union. . which lasted up to 1914 (see Chapters 6 and 7). pp. and Norway joined two years later (see Chapter 6). Sweden also changed from a silver to a gold (specie) standard. free minting was abolished for silver but continued for gold coins. Wettmark (1995.90322 grams. a gold coin. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 41 monies were exchanged at a reduced rate. de facto in November 1922 and de jure on 1st April 1924. formed in 1865.52 During the 20th century the fiat standard was in place in 1914–22/24. The krona of Sweden. 117–8). 256). Nordisk familjebok (1913). Its fine gold content was 2. continued to be minted up to 1868. were equal. Since the riksdaler specie was equal to 4 kronor. and Lobell (2000.5045 grams fine silver. Counting in riksdaler banco and riksdaler specie was abolished. Lobell (2000. p. Convertibility was reintroduced at the old par value after the war. plans to join the Latin Monetary Union were abandoned after the Franco-German war in 1870–71. the krona continued to be Sweden’s currency unit.1–18. In comparison. Jonung (2000.59. After the Scandinavian Currency Union was finally abolished in 1924. 224–6). this relation would imply a gold-silver (value) ratio of 15. the Latin Monetary Union was based on a gold-silver (value) ratio of 15.50 One carolin was equal to 10 French francs (or units of the Latin Monetary Union) and to 7. the derived gold-silver (value) ratio was 15. p. Since one riksdaler contained 25. they were not widely circulated and were mainly used as gold reserves. When the Scandinavian Currency Union was formed. pp.81. the carolin. Although gold coins were minted in 1920 and 1925. the Riksbank suspended convertibility into gold on 2nd August 1914. which was exchanged for one riksdaler riksmynt. e.58 During the Bretton Woods system. This international price stability is based on the inflation targets of central banks.e.5 percent (1 USD = 5. Since one dollar was equal to 5. Only from the 1990s onwards has the fiat standard been accompanied by price stability. the dollar exchange rate (and therefore also the price of gold in SEK) was stable. Since the fall of the Bretton Woods system in 1971. Ahlström and Carlsson (2006.17 SEK). but at a higher gold price than during the previous gold standard. Jonung (1975. and only the US dollar was convertible on demand into gold. Ch.17178 grams. p. even during the metallic standard the amount of metal backing the unit of account (at least before the 19th century) tended to decrease over time. 86). p.59 Although the unit of account is backed by a decreasing amount of commodities over time (i. but in 1949 it was devalued by 30. resembling what Stanley Jevons called a ‘tabular standard’.17321 SEK.55 Although during the Second World War a de facto fiat standard was in place. 64). where inflation is measured by the Consumer Price Index. The legal price of gold was 20. 247). Central bank currencies would remain convertible into US dollars. pp. Stanley Jevons (1875.67 USD per ounce up to 1933. 1277–2008 ous international gold standard). p.3 percent (1 USD = 3. Since the unit of account is backed by the commodities constituting the Consumer Price Index. In 1946 the krona was revalued by 14.56 which is discussed further by Jan Bohlin in Chapter 7. 182–4). this implies that the fine gold content of one krona during the Bretton Woods system was 0. when it was raised in stages to 35 USD per ounce in early 1934. However. and wages. the present fiat standard possesses some features of a non-metallic multi-commodity standard. and Jonung (2000.42 Exchange rates. Sweden has been on a fiat standard. p. Redish (2001. In the late 19th century. Sweden joined the Bretton-Woods system formally on 31st August 1951. one US dollar was linked to gold at the rate of 35 USD per ounce or 1. prices. half of the fine gold content fixed in 1873. xxv) favoured a ‘tabular standard’.12527 USD per gram. allowing some inflation).60). He asked whether ‘the progress of economical and statistical science might not enable us to devise some better standard of value’. A difference between the present and earlier fiat standards is that the link to precious metals has been completely severed and there are no plans to reintroduce a metallic standard. under which a multiple legal tender would be adjusted in accordance with the general price level.57 when a gold exchange standard prevailed. the commodity aspect of money has not been completely abandoned. i. 55 56 57 58 59 Friedman (2000. . 19). Mark silver/lödig*. rdr. standard courant Initially bimetallic Dsm/dkm linked Rdr. ducat currency. silDaler/rdr. gamin Götaland and mal örtug. ducat standard and silver. Monetary standards in Sweden since the 12th century. ducat and silver. standard coins.Dsm/dkm linked Carolin. copper coins mark in silver and silver. ducat. predominant in different regions) rent penny coins Danish mark. gyllen ver standard (at some periods multi(gold). Copper Initially bimetallic Dsm/dkm linked Mark in silver standard and later multi-cur. multi. öre in silver rency standard also to silver coins coins. standard Silver standard Full metallic. standard to plates. rdr. initially coins. ver standard (different currencies were Before 1300. ducat copper and silver to öre courant and standard. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 43 Table 2. initially mono-metallic. rdr.2. noble Mostly full metallic.Dsm/dkm linked Carolin. copper to plates and öre and silver. multi. rdr Silver standard In the 1630s. carostandard currency. rdr.Dsm/dkm linked Öre courant. standard. diffe. copper and silver. In the early 1640s parallel standard. Period ‘Longterm standard’ ‘Short-term standard’ Official moneDe facto monetary standard tary standard Other currency units (on a floating market rate with the main unit) Mostly full metallic. copper Dsm/dkm linked Rdr. full Dsm/dkm Rdr bimetallic. öre courant and carolins Main currency unit 12th century to 1624 Silver standard linked to the mark 1534–1624 1624–33 1633–43 1643–65 Copper and silver standard linked to daler kopparmynt and daler silvermynt as units of account 1665–74 1674–81 1681–86 1686–1709 1709–16 . sil.mark gutnisk.2.Mark (penningar). silalso plates ver standard Copper Bimetallic. multi. mono-currency.Öre in copper Öre in silver coins.to plates. krongyllen currency standard based on silver. ducat. gyllen. Palmstruch’s credit notes Silver standard Multi-currency stan. dard to plates and öre Palmstruch’s courant credit notes Copper Full metallic. copper to plates lin. later carolins. standard currency. rhensk Svealand. multi-currency. in 1590-1592 partly a fiat standard based on token coins) Copper Full metallic. ducat Öre courant. . – daler kopparmynt. rdr.2 (cont. fiat and silspecie/ (banco) ver specie standard) riksmynt 1803–09 Silver specie standard Rdr banco/riksgälds 1809–34 Suspended silFiat standard ver standard 1834–55 Silver specie standard Rdr banco/riksgälds/ specie 1855–73 Rdr riksmynt 1873–14 1914– 1922/24 1922/ 24–1931 1931–51 1951–71 1971– Gold standard linked to krona as a unit of account Gold specie standard Suspended gold Fiat standard standard Gold bullion standard (de facto from 1922.s. copper and silver standard) Multi-currency. 1277–2008 Table 2.m. ducat 1716–19 1719–45 1745–66 Dsm/dkm.44 Exchange rates. carolin. de facto in notes 1766–76 Officially rdr specie. and Wallroth (1918). öre courant. and wages. d. – daler silvermynt. rdr. de jure from 1924) Suspended gold Fiat standard standard Gold exchange standard Fiat standard (gold standard abandoned de jure in 1974.k.Silver specie standard Rdr specie Fiat standard (multi. officially in plates. copper and silver. copper and silver standard) Dsm in token coins Dsm/dkm linked to plates Ducat Rdr specie. prices. Period ‘Longterm standard’ ‘Short-term standard’ Official mone. 225). Görtz’ carolin. ducat Ducat Rdr banco. rdr – riksdaler *Not a currency unit. ducat Ducat Ducat. Abbreviations: d. carolin (gold) Sources: Fregert and Jonung (2003.De facto monetary tary standard standard Main currency unit Other currency units (on a floating market rate with the main unit) Dsm in plates. p. ducat Öre courant. carolin.Rdr riksgälds 1789–1803 dard linked Silver specie to riksdaler standard currency. de facto in 1971) Krona Copper and silver standard linked to daler kopparmynt and daler silvermynt as units of account Suspended copper specie standard Copper specie standard Suspended copper specie standard Silver standard Fiat standard (multicurrency. Jonung (2000. 19). fiat. de facto notes in dsm/dkm 1776–89 Silver stan. carolin. rdr.m.). fiat. standard Fiat standard (multicurrency. Monetary standards in Sweden since the 12th century. ducat Öre courant. carolin. p. 125 marks 1 silver daler = 3. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 45 Table 2. Period Before 1290 c.75 marks . 1290– c. 1450– 1534 1534–60 1560–76 1576–89 1589–92 1592– 1624 From 1523 1 öre = 2 minted örtugs 1 mark dansk = 3 mark gutniska = ¾ mark svensk = 6 Swedish öre (1450-1550) 1 mark lödig = 8 to 24 mark penningar (in proper coins) 1 silver daler = 3 to 4.3.5 marks in 1619–33.5 to 6. 1 slagen daler/rdr = 4. 1400– c.5 marks in 1607–19 and 6. 1400 c.5 marks 1 slagen daler = 4.2.75 to 32 marks 1 slagen daler = 4 to 4. Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present.56 mark penningar 1 mark gutnisk of somewhat lower value than the mainland Swedish mark 1 mark silver = 3 to 8 mark penningar (in proper coins) 1 mark penningar = 1 to 4.5 to 18 marks 1 mark = 8 öre = 192 penningar 1 mark = 8 öre = 192 penningar 1 (svensk daler) = 4 mark 1 slagen daler/rdr = 4. 1450 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar Official rates of conversion 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar (Svealand) = 384 penningar (Götaland) Market rates 1 mark silver = 2 or 3 to 4.5 mark gutniska 1 revalsk (Livonian artig) = 4 to 6 Swedish pennies 1 mark lödig = 6 to 11 mark penningar 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar c. 6 to 27.1 to 6. Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present.3 (cont. 1 carolin = 18 2/3 to 20 öre s.m. = 2 rdr 1 carolin = 20 öre s.97 to 2.k.5 to 57.m.m.29 rdr 1 d.5 to 1 d.m.5 öre k.m. ≈ 1.m.5 to 3 d. 1 rdr = 3 d.m.5 marks 1 d.s. 1 ducat = 100 öre s. = 1. 1 ducat = 48 to 52 marks k. 1745–76 1 carolin = 29.m.s.s.s.03 rdr 1 rdr = 34 to 43 marks k. Period Official rates of conversion 1 öre in copper coins = 1 öre in silver coins 1 rdr = 6. 1 öre courant = 3 to 3.s.5 öre s. in proper coins 1 rdr= 26 to 140 marks k.5 marks k.s.m. 1 öre courant = 3 to 3. = 1.m.k.1 marks k.m.m.s.625 d.m. = 3 d. = 2 rdr 1686– 1716 1716–19 .3 marks k.5 to 17. 1 ducat = 68 to 90 marks k.46 Exchange rates. 1 ducat = 128 öre s.m. = 2 d.923 rdr 1 daler = 4 marks = 32 öre 1 d.m. 1 ducat = 1.m. = 2 d.m. = 1.m. 1 rdr = 15 to 21.04 rdr 1624–33 1633–43 1681–86 1 carolin = 18 2/3 öre s.06 rdr 1 rdr = 38 to 108 marks k. = 1.88 to 2.m.m. 1 rdr = 19.s. 1 ducat = 40 to 54 marks k.8 marks in öre silver coins 1 rdr = 6. 1 daler carolin = 2. 1 öre courant = 3.5 d.m.99 to 2. 1665–81 1 carolin = 16 öre s. 1643–65 1 öre in silver coins = 2. 1 ducat = 47 to 60 marks k.m.m.5 to 20.m.m. prices. = 1. 1 rdr = 24 marks k.5 d. 1 görtz’ carolin = 16 öre s.m. Market rates 1 rdr = 6.m. = 2 d.m.06 rdr 1 rdr = 22. 1277–2008 Table 2. 1 rdr = 24 marks k.91 to 2. 1 ducat = 76 to 200 marks k. and wages.m.s.m.84 to 2.m.5 to 8 marks in mark silver coins 1 rdr= 12 to 17.5 to 12. = 1.s.m.1 öre k.m.m.m.8 öre s.m. 1 rdr = 15 marks k.).5 d.m. 1 ducat = 128 öre s.m.k. (1718–76) 1 ducat = 2 rdr 1 öre courant = 3 to 3.m.08 rdr 1 rdr = 24 to 27.5 to 3 öre k. 1719–45 1 carolin = 25 öre s. 1 rdr = 21 to 27.k.5 marks in copper coins 1 rdr = 6.m.m. = 1.3 marks k.m.75 marks k. 1 carolin = 16.m.m.5 öre k.m. = 1.m.92 to 2.s. 1 rdr = 12 marks k.5 marks k. 1 carolin = 25 to 31 öre s.m.m. = 2. in token coins = 0.4 öre k. 1 d.m.m. Exchange rates between Swedish currencies from the Middle Ages to the present.2. – silvermynt. = 6 d.25 riksdaler riksmynt 1 carolin (gold) = 7.5 rdr riksgälds 1 rdr specie = 1 to 2 2/3 rdr banco 1 rdr banco = 1 to 1. Period 1777–89 1789– 1803 1803–09 Official rates of conversion 1 rdr = 72 marks k.3 (cont. d. – kopparmynt.s.m.m.67 rdr riksgälds Market rates 1809–34 1834–55 1 ducat = 94 skillings specie (102 skillings specie from 1830) 1 rdr specie = 2 2/3 rdr banco = 4 rdr riksgälds 1 ducat = 102 skillings specie 1 rdr riksmynt = 100 öre 1 rdr specie = 4 rdr riksgälds 1 ducat = 8.m. 1 ducat = 94 skillings ≈ 1. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 47 Table 2.m.).5 rdr riksgälds 1 ducat = 94 skillings specie 1 rdr banco = 1. rdr – riksdaler .958 rdr 1 rdr = 48 skillings 1 skilling = 12 runstycken 1 ducat = 94 skillings specie 1 rdr banco = 1. k. – daler.1 riksdaler riksmynt 1 krona = 100 öre 1855–73 1873– Abbreviations: s. or by several commodities under a multi-commodity standard. While fiduciary money is convertible into specie or bullion. A parallel standard involves a fluctuating exchange rate between currencies made of different metals.48 Exchange rates. Under a monometallic standard. The difference between various monetary standards is not always clear-cut. Under a fiat standard. Conclusions and summary Monetary standards can be classified in various ways. 1277–2008 2. In 1624–1776 a combined silver and copper standard was in place. fiat money is not. Although Gresham’s Law states that cheap money drives out dear money. which on numerous occasions in Swedish monetary history led to the formation of new currencies. the market exchange rate between currencies of the same precious metal can fluctuate as well. and wages. In this chapter. which therefore presupposes (according to a narrow definition) a fixed exchange rate between coin types made from the two metals. based on several units of account that are not fixed in value relative to each other. the unit of account is backed by a fixed amount of a commodity. with daler silvermynt and daler kopparmynt forming a common system of account. Under a bimetallic standard two different metals back the same unit of account. In 1777 the sole silver standard was introduced. . and a multi-currency standard. In 1873 Sweden went from a silver to a gold (specie) standard. the unit of account is some abstract value not linked to any commodity. and there is often a discrepancy between the official and the de facto monetary standard. Sweden has been on a pure fiat standard. The silver standard was reintroduced in 1803. The existence of a premium on dear money allows it to remain in circulation alongside cheap money. gold. Since the fall of the Bretton Woods system in 1971. A monetary standard refers to the objects that serve as the unit (or units) of account and that back the objects that are used as accepted means of payment. with the mark as the main currency unit. based on a single currency. Under a commodity standard. this lasted only up to 1789 and was followed by a fiat standard with the riksdaler riksgälds as the main currency unit. In Sweden. a distinction is made between a mono-currency standard. Under a multi-currency standard. The krona replaced the riksdaler riksmynt as the main currency unit. one condition for that Law is a fixed exchange rate between the two.6. The means of exchange consist of token coins or bank notes. Up to 1624 Sweden was on a silver standard. prices. with the riksdaler as the main currency unit. silver and copper have been used for this purpose. only one metal backs the unit of account. although a fiat standard was de facto in place in 1745–1776. Definitions of various monetary standards should not be applied too rigidly. was abandoned again in 1809 and reintroduced once more in 1834. In 1845 the fine silver content of one guilder was decreased to 9. Its fine gold content was 2. For other sources see footnotes and various chapters of this book. Carolin (Görtz): ‘Görtzka caroliner’ were minted in 1718.5 guilders. 61 See Chapter 5. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956-1978). In the period 1665–1776 one carolin had the unchanged fine silver content of 7.61 Bondemark: A currency unit in Finland in the 15th century. as the Livonian artig (revalsk). Albertustaler or Albertusdaalder: A silver coin first minted in 1612 in the Spanish Netherlands. One ‘dubbel adolphin’ was two carolins.45 grams fine silver. Another term for carolin was ‘halv svensk daler’ (half Swedish daler). Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 49 Appendix A2: Historical money terms This list presents various money terms that have historically been in use in Sweden (as well as in Finland up to the early 19th century).1 riksdaler riksmynt. 62 Hyötyniemi. ‘Abo’.62 Carolin (early 17th century): A round gold coin minted in 1606–24 with the face value of 16 marks. During the reign of Fredrik I (1720–51) the term ‘fredrik’ and during the reign of Adolf Fredrik (1751–70) the term ‘adolphin’ were sometimes used instead of carolin.613 grams of fine silver (having been 10.2228 grams. equal to 24 abo or ¾ mark örtug. Carolin (1665–1776): A term used officially from the mid-1660s to designate two marks in actual silver metal coins. and Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968). 50).2. Carolin (19th century): A gold coin minted in 1868–72. equal to two marks in minted silver coins. (2000.65 grams. 20 öre silvermynt in 1686–1716 and 25 öre silvermynt in 1716–76. On the 25th of December 1681 the gulden was set equal to 9.60 It was the same. Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant: One of the most quoted foreign currencies in Sweden during the 17th. although the market exchange rate was often higher. Adolphin: During the reign of Adolf Fredrik (1751–71) the term ‘adolphin’ was sometimes used instead of carolin. It contained 4. .74 grams in 1660–81). One carolin was officially equal to 16 öre silvermynt up to 1681. It was equal to 2. Abo: A coin that circulated in Finland in the 15th century and was worth 4–6 penningar. One of Görtz’ carolins 60 Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956-1978).28 grams in 1620–59 and 9. with a fine silver content of 24. 18th and 19th centuries. Some foreign currency units are also included that have been used as means of payment in Sweden. 18⅔ öre silvermynt in 1681–86.9032 grams. The main sources are Wallroth (1918). See korsdaler. or of equal value.8524 grams fine silver. p. One carolin was equal to 10 French francs (or units of the Latin Monetary Union) and to 7. Up to 1776 (when the riksdaler became the main currency unit). Another term for daler carolin was ‘svensk daler’ (Swedish daler). and the unit of account ‘svensk daler’ (Swedish daler). 70 and 90). Daler klippingmynt (1590s): A term for 4 marks in debased klipping coins. to 1. in 1676–1830: 25. and wages. in 1542– 1638: 25. although the market exchange rate was often higher. later riksdaler. One daler silvermynt was equal to two daler kopparmynt in 1633–43. Christin: 8-mark silver coin (later 4 carolins) that was minted in 1649 with the portrait of Queen Christina. Officially one daler courant silvermynt was equal to one daler silvermynt. In 1624. one daler in copper coins was supposed to equal one daler in silver coins.63 In the late 1592. To distinguish between these two types of daler. Daler: A silver coin minted in Sweden from 1534 to imitate the German Joachimdaler. Its fine silver content was stable throughout its existence. for example. to 2. although the christin had a higher fine silver content. It had the same face value as the later dukaton. Daler carolin: A term used after the mid-1660s up to 1776. 1277–2008 was equal to 16 öre courant (the official value of one carolin before 1681). in 1596 in Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952. Daler penningar (late 16th century): The same as Swedish daler. daler kopparmynt. one daler klippingmynt was set equal to ¼ daler in proper mark coins.2739 grams. equal to 2 carolins or 4 marks in silver coins.5957 grams. for example. in 1534–36: 28.5045 grams.25 daler silvermynt in 1686– 1716 and to 1 9/16 daler silvermynt in 1716–76. In the 17th century.6245 grams.6973 grams and in 1831–73: 25. daler courant and daler carolin. part 1 (1939. equal to 4 marks. One daler carolin was officially set equal to one daler silvermynt up to 1681. Daler kopparmynt: A unit of account that arose in the 17th century to distinguish it from daler silvermynt. the copper coins soon fell in value relative to silver coins. namely 31. equal to 4 marks. several different counting systems arose based on daler silvermynt. . 226). However. although it formed the same system of account. in 1639–75: 25. 64 Used. Daler courant silvermynt: Before 1777. in 1592 in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592. pp. to 1 1/6 daler silvermynt in 1681–86.6997 grams.5 daler kopparmynt in 1643–65 and to 3 daler kopparmynt in 1665–1776. or 16/25 of one ‘old’ carolin.50 Exchange rates. 1 daler kopparmynt = 4 mark kopparmynt = 32 öre kopparmynt.64 Daler silvermynt: A unit of account that arose in the 17th century to distinguish it from daler kopparmynt. ‘daler’ also came to refer to the unit of account. the silver daler was called ‘slagen daler’ (minted daler). p. when the first copper coins were minted.0593 grams. From the 1570s. but in some periods the market rate was higher. prices. the same as 32 öre courant. in 1537–41: 27. 1 daler silvermynt = 4 mark 63 Used. this coin was not much used in domestic trade. Also called ‘12-styver’.8985 grams. but had the nominal value of 12 öre courant. Ducat or florin: First minted in Venice in 1285. daler silvermynt continued to be used as a term for 1/6 riksdaler or 8 skillings.5 marks. It was minted in 1664–1704 and had the same face value as the earlier christin. equal to two marks in minted silver coins. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 51 silvermynt = 32 öre silvermynt. a copper coin with the nominal value of 1/4 skilling riksgälds. One Swedish ducat was worth around two riksdaler (specie). and from 1654 also minted in. It initially contained 0. Enstyver: In 1799–1855.4006 grams in 1836–68. 205). In 1777–1803 it had the nominal value of ½ skilling (banco). After 1776.3966 grams in 1665–1835 and 3. The fine gold content of one Swedish ducat was 3. a term for daler silvermynt when payment was made in actual silver coins. one engelot was valued 7. Fyrks were minted in silver in 1523–1601 and in copper in 65 Talvio (1995. In the 16th century it weighed 5. in some periods there was a deviation between the two types of coin in the market. Fredrik: During the reign of Fredrik I (1720–51) the term ‘fredrik’ was sometimes used instead of carolin. It was common in Götaland in the early 15th century. Dubbel slant: From the late 17th century the same as two öre silvermynt in copper coins. Engelsk or själländsk engelsk (English): A Danish 3-penny coin (1/64 Danish mark). Dukaton or dubbel svensk daler (double Swedish daler): Coin with the face value of 4 carolins.3431 grams in 1654–64. Dubbel pjes (double pjes): In 1739–76. although the dukaton had a lower fine silver content. Enkel daler: In the 16th century the same as the silver daler. A gold coin that was imported to. termed daler courant or daler carolin. the terms ‘daler courant’ and ‘daler carolin’ were used instead. Although the fixed relation between the daler silvermynt and daler kopparmynt was supposed to establish a fixed relation between silver and copper coins. but less after 1601. Florin: The same as ducat. Sweden. implying that actual silver coins did not follow daler silvermynt. Enskilling: In 1834–55 a copper coin with the nominal value of 2/3 skilling banco (= 1 skilling riksgälds).65 Daler silvermynt in specie or daler silvermynt i vitt mynt: Around the mid-17th century. From the mid-1660s. a term for coins that were minted as 10 öre. and later for 12 skillings riksgälds. Fyrk: Equal to ¼ öre. p.2. In 1541. 3. minted as an English sterling. .66 grams fine silver (which was less than for the English sterling).18 grams. namely 28. therefore. 1 daler in actual silver coins was. Engelot: A gold coin minted in France and England (in England under the name of angel) that was imported to Sweden. and circulated then as 1/4 Swedish öre (6 Swedish penningar). The sterling was reckoned as one third of the gros tournois.98 grams. 67 Hildebrand (1983. 61–2). and wages. pp. one reichstaler banco was the equivalent of 25. . Since the mark of fine silver in Hamburg was equal to 233. 68 Stiernstedt (1863. From 1790 the issue rate of a reichstaler banco was 9. Gammal örtug (old örtug): The örtug minted before 1478. Gote or gute: A coin minted in Gotland between 1320–40 and the mid-15th century.68 Hamburger reichstaler banco: The most quoted foreign currency in Sweden in the 18th and early 19th centuries.66 gram and of one reichstaler banco 25.52 Exchange rates.67 Halv carolin (1665-1776): Half carolin. It was supposed to have the same fine gold content as the florin or the ducat. Halvöre: After 1633.25 new örtugs around 1500. 184–6). After 1329. The gros tournois initially weighed 4. the coin was no longer minted after 1364. In the late 15th century a premium arose on ‘gammal örtug’: 1 ‘gammal örtug’ = 9 penningar = 1. the same as one mark silver coin. the fine silver content of one mark banco was 8. Halvanstyver (one and a half styver) or bankovitten (19th century): In 1802–55.75 per mark of fine silver. Gyllen (gold coin): The name of several gold coins that circulated in Sweden in the 15th. but the relation 1 öre gutnisk = 3 gote is also known. valued at 17–20 penningar.125 new örtugs in 1481.2816 grams fine silver. 1 öre gutnisk was set equal to 4 gote. 1277–2008 1624–60. originally the Gotlandic örtug. In the 15th century. The ‘rhensk gyllen’ (Rhine gulden) had a lower fine gold content than the ducat and the ‘lätte gyllen’ (light gyllen) had an even lower content than the rhensk gyllen. since from 1633 ½ öre in copper coins was set equal to ¼ öre in silver coins. Its weight and fineness were unchanged until 1322.855 grams. Gros tournois: A French silver coin that circulated widely in Sweden during the late 13th century and the first half of the 14th century.25 per mark of fine silver and the mark banco 27. so that 1 mark gutnisk = 32 gotar. in accordance with the Leipzig convention establishing the reichstaler in 1566. Although the 66 Spufford (1986. Equal in value to one and a half styver. pp. 910–1 and 947). Also called ‘halvöre’ (half öre).5 new örtugs after 1523. One Hamburger reichstaler banco was equal to 3 mark banco. 1 ‘gammal örtug’ = 10 penningar = 1. pp. In 1622. 16th and 17th centuries. the copper coin with the nominal value of ¼ skilling (banco). the same as ½ öre kopparmynt. whereas the ‘ungersk gyllen’ followed the ducat. and 1 ‘gammal örtug’ = ¾ öre = 1.22 grams and had 23/24 fineness. and several types of gyllen coins circulated at various values. prices. The ‘gammal örtug’ was also minted in 1589–90 to the nominal value of ¾ öre. but later the gyllen (gulden) was debased. 66 Gyllen (silver coin): A currency unit in silver minted in the 1520s. its weight changed frequently. Hvid: A Danish coin. the official rate of the Danish hvid was fixed to 3 Swedish pen69 Stiernstedt (1863. half of the amount fixed in 1873. but was linked to gold instead of silver. respectively. 64). the krona continued to be the currency unit of Sweden. 70 Starbäck (1886. which can be compared to 52 öre silvermynt for one riksdaler. Mark (unit of account): A unit of account used in Sweden up to 1776. The international code is SEK. The fine gold content of one krona was 0.2. Mark danska: A unit of account used in Sweden (mainly Götaland) around 1450– 1550. One krona was set equal to one riksdaler riksmynt.17321 kronor.0395 grams. 1 krona = 100 öre. Kopparrunstycke: A term used from 1719 to 1776 (previously only runstycke) for coins with the face value of one öre kopparmynt that were minted from 1719 onwards. Krona: The currency unit introduced in Sweden in 1873 to replace the riksdaler when the Scandinavian Monetary Union was formed. Sweden joined the Bretton Woods system in 1951. were equal. 1 hvid = 4 (Danish) penningar = 1/3 skilling.17178 grams. 62). Circulated in parts of Sweden in various periods. this would imply that the fine gold content of one krona during the Bretton Woods system was 0. minted from mid-14th to the late 17th centuries. In 1451. In the mid-1660s. It was also used at that value (also called albus) when counting was done in mark danska (= 48 hvid). p. Joachimstaler: Minted since 1518 in Joachimsthal in Bohemia.71 Since one dollar stood at 5. 563). Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 53 Hamburger reichstaler banco was often used as an equivalent for the riksdaler specie. the legal value of one korsdaler was set to 50 öre silvermynt.69 Korsdaler: Probably the same as the Albertustaler (kreutztaler). From 1534 the Joachimdaler was minted in Sweden and called daler.4032258 grams.e.12527 per gram. Krongyllen: A gold coin minted in 1569–73 and 1598–99.25 slagen daler and its fine gold content was 3. the value of the Swedish riksdaler specie was normally somewhat higher. mark kopparmynt and mark silvermynt became two different units.70 Kreutzer: A copper coin minted by Swedish monarchs in the 17th century for circulation in Germany. During the Bretton Woods system. The krona of Sweden. 71 Ahlström and Carlsson (2006. p. the Danish hvid was set equal to 3 Swedish penningar. A coin with a slightly smaller silver content than the riksdaler that was imported to and quoted in the exchange rate markets in 17th century Sweden. one US dollar was linked to gold at the rate of $35 per ounce or $1. One krongyllen was equal to 1. In 1451. i. equal to ¼ daler or 8 öre. . After the Scandinavian Monetary Union was definitely abolished in 1924. p. although forming the same system of account. later slagen daler. During the 17th century. Norway and Denmark. riksdaler and riksdaler specie. gross weight). Mark karlgill and köpgill: These two mark currencies are mentioned in Upplandslagen. which had its own monetary system in the 12th and 13th centuries.54 Exchange rates. Mark guld (mark in gold): During the Middle Ages. Mark härdalsk: A unit of account used in Härjedalen during the Middle Ages. Another term was ‘mark danska i svenskt mynt’ (Danish marks in Swedish coins). equal to ¼ mark örtug or ⅓ mark dansk. i. one mark danska was not necessarily equal to one actual Danish mark). and around ¼ mark örtug in the 1440s. 1277–2008 ningar. (2000). Mark grossa: Mark in Gotlandic ‘grossa’. and wages. 1 mark jämtsk = 1 13/35 Swedish mark. 74 Hyötyniemi. Some time before the 1340s. 1 mark danska = 6 Swedish öre = ¾ mark svenska. . Since gotar deteriorated in value. Gotland adopted the Hansaetic system. and counting in mark danska was done in Swedish coins and not in actual Danish coins (i. In the 1530s. 354). 73 Hyötyniemi (1999). written in the late 13th century. where one Gotlandic örtug or gote was set equal to 3 pennies of Lübeck or 6 Swedish penningar. Since one mark danska = 16 skillings = 48 hvider (or albus). in Götaland the mark gutnisk was used as a pure unit of account.e.73 In the early 14th century. but the old gotar continued to dominate circulation in Gotland and Götaland in the second half of the 15th century. After the mid-15th century the term ‘mark gutnisk’ probably referred to different types of currency. This became purely a unit of account. 1 mark in Götaland was counted as 32 gotar (based on 1 gote = 6 penningar). Mark kalmarsk: The same as mark stackota or mark gutnisk. According to one theory. 1 öre karlgill was equal to 12 penningar and 1 öre köpgill to 8 penningar. Mark gutnisk: The mark gutnisk was originally the mark of Gotland.74 Mark gutnisk was worth only ½ mark örtug in the 1420s and early 1430s. In 1437. Mark jämtsk: A unit of account used in Jämtland and known from 1346 to the late Middle Ages. it was probably the same as the mark jämtsk. called tysk mark in the 1410s and mark gutnisk from the 1420s. In the 13th century Gotlandic coins were also used as the main currency in Öland. one mark danska was equal to 144 Swedish penningar.72 Probably the same as mark gutnisk.e. when the gote was replaced by the hvid (= 4 penningar = 1/16 skilling = 1/48 mark). In that century: 1 mark gutnisk = 24 örtug = 288 penningar. Småland and Östergötland. the same as gold weighing one mark (around 210 grams. Gotland is believed to have adopted the Danish monetary system in 1449. came to be worth less than the mark örtug. Mark karlgill has been interpreted as mark sil- 72 Sjögren (1944. prices. the Gotlandic mark silver was the same as the mark of Lübeck counted in gotar. probably linked to Norwegian coins from the 14th century. p. this mark. originally equal to 64 gotar or 2⅔ traditional Gotlandic marks. 616 grams of silver. 98). in 1592 in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592.77 Mark kopparmynt: A unit of account that was never minted. In the 14th century 75 Used.75 In 1575. the mark lödig probably contained between 180 and 200 grams fine silver. 77 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592.09375 mark in proper coins).5 marks in debased klipping coins. The term ‘mark lödig’ is known from 1341 onwards. part 1 (1939. used in the Middle Ages and the 16th century. When the riksdaler was introduced as the main currency unit in 1777. one mark in proper coins was set equal to 6. Mark lödig: The same as mark silver. which is unconvincing since one mark silver was valued at 3–4. which was a currency unit). 1 mark kopparmynt = 8 öre kopparmynt = ¼ daler kopparmynt. Mark kölnisk (Cologne mark): A silver weight unit used in large parts of Europe. it was set equal to 72 mark kopparmynt. to 40 grams in 1411. In 1576. The equivalent term ‘mark örtug’ was in use from the late 15th century onwards. the term mark silver was used instead. was 50–55 grams in the late 14th century. In the 16th century it was equal to 210. p. part 1 (1939. Mark klipping (1570s): Mark in debased klipping coins. but to 384 penningar in Götaland. Mark rigisk or revalsk: The currency unit in Livonia. 1 mark of Lübeck = 16 skilling = 48 Witten = 192 pennies. Up to the late 13th century. and in May 1594 one mark klipping was further reduced to ¾ öre (0. Mark klipping or klippingmynt (1590s): Mark in debased klipping coins.2. to 25 grams in 1433 and to 20 grams in 1461. one mark in proper coins was set equal to 4 marks in debased klipping coins. Before that. p. 218). 76 Used. equal to 48 Witten.8 grams of silver in gross weight. In the 13th century the mark rigisk was equal to 24 artig of Riga. From the late 13th century. a silver weight unit (as opposed to “mark penningar”. for example. Mark lybsk: Lübeck coins were particularly common in Götaland during the 14th and 15th centuries. it was reduced to 46 grams in 1401. in Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952.5 mark penningar at the time when the Upplandslagen was written. The fine silver content of the mark of Lübeck. 1 ‘mark penningar’ = 192 penningar in both Svealand and Götaland. . Mark penningar (mark in pennies): A currency unit. one mark klipping was reduced to one öre (1/8 mark in proper coins). in contrast to mark lödig. composed of present-day Estonia and Latvia (Reval was the Swedish and German name for Tallinn). although there is uncertainty concerning the fineness of this silver. Foreign exchange rates were often quoted in mark kopparmynt. but deteriorated to 1 mark or somewhat above later during the century. pp. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 55 ver. for example. although the fineness could vary. 1 mark of Lübeck circulated as 2 Swedish marks in the early 14th century. Assuming that the fineness could vary between 85 and 95 percent. 51 and 62). 1 mark penningar was equal to 192 penningar in Svealand. Equal to 233.76 In late 1592. to 28 grams in 1424. Mark penningar depreciated continually relative to mark lödig during the Middle Ages. 1297 grams in 1639–49.9003 grams in 1649–63 and 3. 1277–2008 another mark rigisk came into use. called ‘halv carolin’ (half carolin). originally at par with the mark silver. even though their official values were the same up to 1681. In Stockholm the weight was 209 grams. which in the first half of 14th century was different from both the Danish and the Swedish mark. (1999). The Riga way of counting in coins was common in Finland during the 15th and first half of the 16th centuries.8296 grams in 1562.25 mark silvermynt in 1686 and to 1 9/16 mark silvermynt in 1716. The one-mark coin was last minted in 1721. In the 1520s and ’30s. prices. The fine silver content of a minted one-mark coin was 8. Hildebrand (1894.6473 to 1. 4. 1 mark skånsk was valued around 2 Danish marks and around 1.79 Mark silver (marcha argenti puri): The same as mark lödig. Mark (silver coins): Coins with this denomination were minted in Sweden in 1536–1755. The term marcha argenti could also refer to units with a much lower fine silver content than the marcha argenti puri.78 In the 1420s a third mark rigisk came into use. and wages. 1. in Skara 215 grams and in Uppsala 218 grams. although in Sweden the two terms were often used synonymously. 3. 0. set equal to 36 old artig (or new schilling).0852 grams from late 1568 to early 1571. 2.0176 grams in 1541–61.399 grams in late 1593.9003 grams in 1634–38.0568 to 3. Mark silvermynt: A unit of account.2311 grams in early 1593. In this period.854 grams in 1534–35. 1 mark silvermynt = ¼ daler silvermynt = 8 öre silvermynt. Up to the 14th century the weight of mark silver could differ between regions. Halland.1371 grams in 1563–68. 1 ‘mark rigisk’ = 9 öre in Swedish penningar.2272 grams in 1536–40. the two-mark coin in 1754 and the four-mark coin in 1755.6114 grams in 1664–1776. Probably also used as a unit of account for Swedish coins. 6.1753 grams from May 1591 to 1592. 2. 6. set equal to 144 artig. 4.0176 grams in 1576–89 (based on half-mark coins). Blekinge and Bornholm). See Chapter 3.9971 grams from 1590 to early 1591. Hallenberg (1798.56 Exchange rates. 757).81 1 mark skånsk = 240 penningar. 233).0284 grams from July 1571 to 1574/75. p. From around 1660. Mark stackota: A currency unit common in Götaland from the 1440s up to the late 15th century. Around the mid 17th century a difference in market value arose between the mark silvermynt as a unit of account and the mark silver coin. the term carolin was used to refer to minted two-marks. . 5.80 The Danish mark silver was 3-4 percent heavier than the Stockholm weight. The official value of a ‘halv carolin’ was raised to 1 1/6 mark silvermynt in 1681.2 Swedish marks. Mark skånsk: The mark of Skåneland (Scania.0522 grams in 1594–1603 (based on half-mark coins). to 1. There is evidence that the term was used as a synonym for mark 78 79 80 81 Hyötyniemi.0503 grams in 1604–33. 4. 4. p. 3. 8. 6. 6. 1524–1529 (1915. Mark östgötsk: The same as mark stackota or mark gutnisk. part 1. A premium arose on proper coins relative the coin tokens. 86 See Chapter 3. equal to 24 gotar or ¾ mark gutnisk.85 Mark västgötsk: The same as mark stackota or mark gutnisk. in turn. pp. the same as one mark silver in sterling coins.83 Mark svenska (Swedish mark): Could refer to two different coins in the 15th and 16th centuries: (1) The same as mark örtug used in Sweden. pp. See Chapter 3. Its weight was 7. 1 Svealand penning = 2 Götaland penningar). Noble: An English gold coin imported to Sweden in the late Middle Ages and the 16th century. 1 noble was worth 3–4 mark örtug. 107 and 110). one mark sterling was counted as 144 sterling coins. which.86 Palmstruchska kreditivsedlar (Palmstruch’s credit notes): Initially convertible notes issued in 1661–64 by Stockholm Banco (forerunner of Sveriges Riksbank). and hence equal to ¾ mark örtug. Another term was ‘mark danska i svenskt mynt’. the first banknotes in Europe in a proper sense.82 Mark sterling: In the 13th and 14th centuries. After 1667 the notes were exchanged at their full nominal values. From 1464 the ‘rosenobel’ was minted. in Götaland 1 penning = 1/384 marks (i. gutnisk and jämtsk. the same as the noble before 1412. 82. Mynttecken (coin tokens) or nödmynt (emergency coins): The coin tokens issued in 1716–19 at the face value of one daler silvermynt (except for the last coin token. Mark örtug: The same as mark penningar. for example. in Svealand 1 penning = 1/192 marks. Penning (Swedish penny): A currency unit from the Middle Ages to 1776.84 Mark stockholmsk or holmsk: The same as mark örtug. These notes never circulated as widely as ‘mynttecken’ (coin tokens). Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 57 gutnisk. (2) The same as mark danska in Swedish coins.2. They were made inconvertible in 1664 and fell below their par values. Up to the late 13th century. as distinguished from mark dansk. In the second half of the 15th century. Myntsedel (coin note): Inconvertible notes issued in 1716 and 1717 with face values of 25. in Stockholms stads tänkebok under vasatiden. issued at the face value of two öre silvermynt in 1719). 35–6). . and in 82 83 84 85 Hyötyniemi (2000). Hallenberg (1798. In 1272. which contained 193 gram fine silver. but some authors argue that the mark stackota was the traditional Gotlandic mark.78 grams from 1354 and 7 grams from 1412.78 grams. weighing 7.e. Used. was equal to two thirds of a pound sterling. ‘Hoppet’. 10 and 5 daler silvermynt. In 1267 one mark sterling in Cologne weight was counted as 160 sterlings. 1 to 319. and 104. One pound sterling was equal to 20 shillings or 240 pence.378 and 19. p.90 Portugalös: The Swedish term for portuguezen. the Reichstaler was replaced by the Conventionsthaler.32 grams. Pound sterling: The quoted currency unit for the exchange rate on London. Its fine silver content was 1. One Swedish portugalös weighed 34. but continued to exist as a unit of account up to 1776. It was also called ‘sexstyver’ and ‘tolförestycke’. p.4 grams and was set equal to 10 ducats or 4 rosenobel. According to one theory the term referred to a silver penny minted by the house of Blois in France.9 grams in 1542. 259 grams in 1351. the term referred to 16 skillings (since 2 daler silvermynt = 1/3 riksdaler = 16 skillings). which set the reichstaler as a coin containing 1/9 of a Cologne mark silver.7 grams in 1278. In 1754.58 Exchange rates.6 grams in 1465.87 Pjes/pjäs or enkel pjes: In 1719–76 a term for the silver coin that was minted as 5 öre (up to 1684 minted as 4 öre) but had the nominal value of 6 öre courant. Plåt (plate): After 1715. They were denominated in daler silvermynt. and later to 24 skillings riksgälds. See Chapter 5.36 gram. 143. .5601 grams. Reichstaler: The later term for the joachimthaler in Germany. weighing 1. The fine silver content of one pound sterling (if counted in pennies) was reduced from 321. to 291. minted from 1343. the 87 88 89 90 Bjurling (1950). 172.4 grams in 1335. 153. the term riksdalerplåt was used. The artig. 205). Penning bla/blå: A monetary term used in Västergötland in the mid-12th century.89 Plåtmynt (plate coin): Copper coins minted as plates weighing between 0. 215. 1277–2008 Gotland (and eastern Götaland) 1 penning = 1/288 Gotlandic marks (≈ 1 Götaland penning). The penning bla was most likely a foreign coin. and wages. Stiernstedt (1863. prices. 1 penning = 1/192 marks in both Svealand and Götaland (but not Gotland). In the early 15th century.4 grams in 1601. 62). two daler silvermynt in copper plates (later also 6 daler kopparmynt in notes). 115. containing 1/10 of a Cologne mark silver. From the late 13th century.1 in 1552.7 kg and accepted as means of payment 1644–1776.1 grams in 1344. In the 15th century. 1 revalsk was valued at 4–6 Swedish penningar. Revalsk or räflisk (Livonian artig): The coins of Livonia that dominated circulation in Finland during the 15th century.4 grams in 1524. The standard was introduced in 1566 by the Leipzig convention. Before 1715.6 grams in 1816. The penning was not minted after the 16th century. a gold coin. Talvio (1995. and was further reduced to 308. The gold content of the sovereign was fixed at 7. was initially valued at 3 pennies of Lübeck or 6 Swedish penningar. Some were minted during the reign of Johan III (1568–92). Britain went over to the gold standard in 1816.8 grams in 1412.88 After 1776. 111. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 59 term ‘revalsk örtug’ was also common; by the 16th century it had been replaced by the term ‘rigisk skilling’. Rhensk gyllen (Rhinish gulden): A gold coin imported to Sweden during the Middle Ages and the 16th century. Its fine gold content decreased from 3.4 grams in the late 14th century to 2.53 grams in the late 15th century. In the second half of the 15th century and the early 16th century 1 rhensk gyllen was valued around 1.5 mark örtug or 2 mark danska.91 In 1533, 1 rhensk gyllen = 2/3 ungersk gyllen = 4/5 Joachimthaler. Riksdaler: From the late 16th century the term used for the silver daler (‘slagen daler’), in contrast to the Swedish daler, which was used as a unit of account and was equal to 4 marks. Later on the riksdaler could also denote other types of currency. Riksdaler banco: In 1777–1809 the Riksbank notes were convertible into riksdaler specie and therefore linked to a fixed silver content. In 1809 the banco notes were made inconvertible and the riksdaler banco started to fall in value relative to the riksdaler specie. In 1834, the riksdaler banco (which in 1803 had been set equal to 1.5 riksdaler riksgälds) was fixed in value so that 1 riksdaler banco = 3/8 riksdaler specie. Riksdaler carolin: The same as 3 carolins or 6 marks in silver coins. In 1633–65 the official value of one riksdaler was 6 marks or 48 öre in actual silver coins. The riksdaler counted in actual mark silver coins was termed ‘riksdaler carolin’, in actual öre silver coins ‘riksdaler courant’ and in actual riksdaler coins ‘riksdaler specie’. The market value of the riksdaler specie rose and in 1665 its official value was set equal to 6.5 marks or 52 öre silvermynt. The counting of riksdaler in 6 marks in silver coins, riksdaler carolin, remained, but had a lower value than the riksdaler specie. When the carolin was appreciated in 1681 relative to öre courant, the official value of riksdaler carolin became higher than of the riksdaler courant. After 1665, one riksdaler carolin had the unchanged fine silver content of 21.6684 grams. Riksdaler courant: In the 17th century equal to 48 öre courant, which towards the end of the century was the same as 48 öre silvermynt. In the 18th century it became a pure unit of account equal to 1.5 daler silvermynt (48 öre silvermynt). Up to 1681, 3 carolins were officially equal in value to 48 öre courant. However, in 1681 carolins appreciated relative to öre courant. From then on the riksdaler courant was probably not the same as the riksdaler carolin, although further investigation is needed on this issue. Riksdaler riksgälds: A war with Russia led to the formation of the Riksgäldskontoret (National Debt Office), which started to issue riksgälds notes in 1789. These notes became inconvertible and soon dominated trade, replacing the Riksbank 91 See Chapter 3. 60 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 (banco) notes. Riksdaler rikgälds fell in value relative to riksdaler banco. In 1803 the relation 1 riksdaler riksgälds = 2/3 riksdaler banco was fixed. Riksdaler riksmynt: The main currency unit in 1855–73. Replaced riksdaler riksgälds at the same face value. 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 100 öre = ¼ riksdaler specie. Riksdaler specie: The riksdaler with a stable fine silver content of 25.3-25.7 grams. The term was already being used in the first half of the 17th century. See daler. Riksdalerplåt: In 1681–1715 a term for the copper plates with a nominal value of two daler silvermynt. In 1681, the official value of the riksdaler was set equal to two daler silvermynt. In 1715 copper plates were revalued by 50 percent, and in 1718 the official value of one riksdaler was set equal to 3 daler silvermynt. From 1715 the term ‘plåt’ was used for two daler silvermynt in copper plates, and later for Riksbank notes of 6 daler kopparmynt. Rosenobel: A gold coin imported to Sweden, above all in the 16th century, weighing 7.78 grams. A double rosenobel (set equal to ½ portugalös or 5 ducats) was minted in Sweden during the reign of Johan III (1568–92) and weighed 15.3 grams. Runstycke (before 1777): A term used from the early 1630s for one öre in copper coins,92 while one öre in silver coins was termed (h)vitrunstycke. From 1719, the term kopparrunstycke was used. Runstycke (1777–1855): 1/12 skilling. Coincided in value with the kopparrunstycke or öre kopparmynt of the currency system before 1777 (since 1 riksdaler = 6 daler silvermynt = 576 öre kopparmynt according to the conversion rate from old to new currency and 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings = 576 runstycken according to the new currency system of 1777). Räknedaler: Daler that began to be used in the 1570s as a unit of account, in contrast to the silver daler. Sessling or sexling: From the mid-1660s the same as the copper coin with the designated value of 1/6 öre silvermynt. From the early 1680s the term ‘halvöre’ (half öre) was used instead, since 1/6 öre silvermynt = ½ öre kopparmynt. Sexskilling: In 1849–55, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of 4 skillings banco (= 6 skillings riksgälds). Sexstyver (18th century): In 1719–76 the same as pjes. Sexstyver (19th century): In 1802–55, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of one skilling banco. Skilling: Introduced in 1777, when the riksdaler became the main currency unit in Sweden. 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings and 1 skilling = 12 runstycken. Later a difference arose between skilling banco, riksgälds and specie. Skilling banco: 1 riksdaler banco = 48 riksdaler banco. From 1803, 1 skilling banco = 1.5 skilling riksgälds. Skilling (Danish): 1 skilling = 1/16 mark = 3 hvids. A currency unit also used in 92 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 61), and Hayes (2001 [1740], p. 337). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 61 parts of Sweden (mainly Götaland) around 1450–1550, where 1 Danish skilling = 1/16 mark danska = 3/64 mark svenska = 3/8 Swedish öre. Skilling riksgälds: Equal to 1/48 riksdaler riksgälds. Skilling specie: Equal to 1/48 riksdaler specie. This was rather a unit of account; no coins were ever minted in this denomination. Skilling svenska penningar (skilling Swedish penningar): A term used before 1550 when accounting was done in mark danska in Götaland. There were no Swedish skilling coins in this period. Neither was payment made in Danish skillings (i.e. one ‘skilling svenska pengar’ was not necessarily equal to one skilling in actual Danish coins); it was purely an accounting system based on Swedish coins. One ‘skilling svenska penningar’ was equal to 1/16 mark danska, 3/64 mark örtug or 3/8 Swedish öre. Slant: From the mid-1660s the same as the copper coin with the designated value of one öre silvermynt. In 1777–1803 it had a nominal value of ¼ skilling (banco), since in 1777 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings was exchanged for 192 öre silvermynt (6 daler silvermynt). Another term was ‘enkel slant’. Styver (from the late 1710s to 1776): The same as one öre courant.93 Styver (1777–1855): A term for skilling coins, where one styver was initially equal to ¼ skilling (banco),94 and later (from around 1800) ¼ skilling riksgälds or 1/6 skilling banco. This custom arose since the old copper coins continued to circulate in 1777–1803 at the nominal value of ¼ skilling (banco) per one öre silvermynt. The term styver was usurped by the coins in skilling riksgälds that were minted from 1799 onwards. Svensk daler (Swedish daler): A unit of account used from the 1570s to designate 4 marks in silver coins, in contrast to slagen daler, which fluctuated in value relative to the minted mark coins. Later the term ‘svensk daler’ referred to two carolins. Tjugostyver (twenty styver): The name for 10 öre after 1855. The value of ‘tjugostyver’ from 1855 onwards was somewhat less than the value before that of 20 styver, which was equal to 5 skilling riksgälds or 10/96 riksdaler riksgälds. Tolvörestycke (twelve-öre piece): The same as pjes. Up to 1684, these coins were minted as 4 öre (from 1690 as 5 öre), which initially had the nominal value of 12 öre kopparmynt (since one öre silvermynt = 3 öre kopparmynt).95 In 1717 the nominal value of this coin was increased to 6 öre silvermynt. Tolvskilling (twelve-skilling): From 1834 the same as 1/16 riksdaler specie (since 1 riksdaler specie = 192 skillings riksgälds in 1834–55). After 1855, a term for 25 öre (since 1 riksdaler specie = 400 öre). Treskilling (three-skilling): In 1834–55 a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of 2 skillings banco (= 3 skillings riksgälds). 93 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 62). 94 Talvio (1995, p. 205). 95 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 62). 62 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Tvåstyver (two-styver): In 1799–1855, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of ½ skilling riksgälds. Trestyver (three-styver): In 1802–55, a term for the copper coin with a nominal value of ½ skilling banco. Tysk mark: In the 1410s in Götaland, the name for the mark counted as 32 gotar. From the 1420, the term mark gutnisk was used instead. Tunna guld (barrel of gold): A unit of account for larger sums of money, a term borrowed from Germany.96 First used in the late 16th century. Equal to 100,000 daler silvermynt, originally 100,000 silver daler. Since the daler silvermynt fell in value relative to the riksdaler, one tunna guld expressed in riksdaler fell over time. In 1777 it was equal to 16,666⅓ riksdaler specie (since one riksdaler specie was exchanged for 6 daler silvermynt), and in the 19th century the same as 16,666⅓ riksdaler banco (from 1834 equal to 6250 riksdaler specie). Although the term gives the impression of a specific weight of gold, the amount of gold that one tunna guld could buy fell over time: it could buy around 200 kg gold in the late 16th century, 28–29 kg gold in 1777 and around 10 kg gold in 1834. Ungersk gyllen (Hungarian gulden): A gold coin that was imported as well as minted in 1568–73. One ungersk gyllen minted in Sweden was valued at 1.5 slagen daler and its fine gold content was 4.1245 grams. Internationally the coin was equal to one ducat, but in Sweden the minted ungersk gyllen had a higher fine gold content and was, therefore, not equal to one ducat. Vit penning or Witten (white penny): A German 4-penny coin (1/48 mark of Lübeck) that was common in Götaland in the late 14th and early 15th centuries. In this period it circulated as 1/3 Swedish öre (= 1 örtug = 8 penningar). Vitrunstycke: A term used in 1633–1776 for one öre courant.97 Vitten: Before 1777 a term for one öre silvermynt, in 1777–1855 for ¼ skilling (riksgälds from 1799) in copper (since in 1777, 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings was exchanged for 192 öre silvermynt), and in 1855–73 for ½ öre in bronze. Åbo-mark: A currency unit used in Finland during the 15th century, equal to the Swedish mark but counted in coins of Riga (usually 32–48 revalska). Öre (from 1855 onwards): The öre unit was reintroduced in 1855, although it only shared the name with the old öre. 1 riksdaler riksmynt (from 1873, 1 krona) = 100 öre. For comparison, while in 1777 one riksdaler specie was exchanged for 576 öre kopparmynt, in 1855 one riksdaler specie was set equal to 400 öre. Öre (up to 1776): In the Middle Ages one öre was equal to 1/8 mark and 3 örtug. From the 1290s, 1 öre = 24 penningar in both Svealand and Götaland, but not in Gotland. In the 17th century a difference arose between öre silvermynt, öre kopparmynt and öre courant. The öre was abolished as a currency unit on the 1st of January 1777. 96 Nordisk Familjebok (1892). See also Heckscher (1941, p. 11). 97 Stiernstedt (1863, p. 61), and Hayes (2001 [1740], p. 337). 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 63 Öre courant: The term for öre in actual silver coins. In some periods, for example 1686–1715, one öre courant was equal to one öre silvermynt, but in other periods there was a premium on öre courant. Öre kopparmynt: A unit of account in 1633–1776. 1 öre kopparmynt = 1/8 mark kopparmynt = 1/32 daler kopparmynt. Öre silvermynt: A unit of account in 1633–1776. 1 öre silvermynt = 1/8 mark silvermynt = 1/32 daler silvermynt. In 1624, when the first copper coins were minted, one öre in copper coins was supposed to be equal to one öre in silver coins. However, one öre minted in copper soon fell in value relative to one öre minted in silver. One öre silvermynt was set equal to 2 öre kopparmynt in 1633– 43, to 2.5 öre kopparmynt in 1643–65 and to 3 öre kopparmynt in 1665–1776. Örtug: A currency unit in Sweden in the Middle Ages and the 16th century. As a unit of account, 1 örtug = 1/3 öre = 1/24 mark. In 1523, the fine silver content of the öre was reduced, and thereafter 1 minted örtug = ½ öre. In 1589–90, the ‘gammal örtug’ was minted to the value of ¾ öre (in proper coins). This was also the last time örtugs were minted in Sweden. The örtug continued to exist during the 16th century as a unit of account (1 mark = 24 örtugs), which became different from the minted örtug. Furthermore, one ‘mark dansk’ (used in Götaland as a unit of account around 1450–1550) was also divisible into 24 örtugs. Therefore, the örtugs of the two different systems of account in Götaland and Svealand were different (hence, around 1450–1550, one öre was equal to 3 örtugs in Svealand, but to 4 örtugs in Götaland).98 98 Hallenberg (1798, p. 175). 64 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Primary published sources Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952), Uppsala. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592, part 1 (1939), Stockholm. Stockholms stads tänkebok under vasatiden 1524–1529 (1915), Stockholm. Internet resources ‘MEMDB – Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’, http://sccweb.scc-net.rutgers. edu/memdb (2007-06-10). ‘Measuringworth.com’, http://www.measuringworth.com (2007-06-10). References Ahlström, G, and B Carlsson (2006), Vägval i valutafrågan: Sverige och Bretton Woods, SNS Förlag, Stockholm. Bjurling, O (1950), ‘Penningar blå’, in Scandia, vol. XX, pp. 247–259. Bordo, M, and F Kydland (1992), The Gold Standard as a Rule, http://clevelandfed. org/research/workpaper/1992/wp9205.pdf (2007-07-29). Cottrell, A (1997), Monetary Endogeneity and the Quantity Theory: The Case of Commodity Money, http://www.wfu.edu/~cottrell/commodit.pdf (2007-08-05). Davidson, D (1919), ‘Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1918’, Ekonomisk Tidskrift, 1919, part I, Uppsala and Stockholm. Flandreau, M, and F Zumer (2004), The Making of Global Finance 1880–1913, OECD, Paris. Flynn, D, A Giráldez, and R von Glahn (eds), (2003), Global Connections and Monetary History, 1470–1800, Ashgate, Burlington. Friedman, M (1990), ‘Bimetallism Revisited’, Journal of Economic Perspectives, vol. 4, no. 4 (Fall), pp. 85–104. Friis, A, and K Glamann (1958), A history of prices and wages in Denmark: 1660– 1800, vol. 1, London. Hallenberg, J (1798), Historisk avhandling om mynt och warors warde i Swerige under Konung Gustaf I:s Regering, Stockholm. Hayes, R (2001 [1740]), The negociator’s magazine: or the most authentick account yet published of the monies, weights, and measures of the principal places of the world, Facsimile reprint, Elibron Classics. Heckscher, E (1935–1949), Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa, vol. I:1, I:2, II:1 and II:2, Bonnier, Stockholm. Heckscher, E (1941), De svenska penning-, vikt- och måttsystemen: En historisk översikt, Stockholm. Hildebrand, H (1983), Sveriges medeltid, vol. 2, Städerna, Gidlunds, Stockholm. Hyötyniemi, Y (1999), ‘Fyra små gotar på en lybsk skilling’, Nordisk numismatisk unions medlemsblad, pp. 4–16. 2. Swedish monetary standards in a historical perspective 65 Hyötyniemi, Y (2000), ‘Om gutnisk mynträkning på 1400-talet’, Nordisk numismatisk unions medlemsblad, pp. 45–53. Jansson, A, L Andersson Palm, and J Söderberg (1991), Dagligt bröd i onda tider: Priser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1770, Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskning, Gothenburg. Jevons, S (1875), Money and the Mechanism of Exchange, D. Appleton and Company, New York, http://www.econlib.org/Library/YPDBooks/Jevons/jvnMMEtoc.html (2007-08-03). Jonung, L (1975), Studies in the Monetary History of Sweden, University of California, Los Angeles. Jonung, L (2000), ‘Från guldmyntfot till inflationsmål – svensk stabiliseringspolitik under det 20:e seklet’, Ekonomisk Debatt, vol. 28, no. 1, pp. 17–32. Keynes, J M (1936), The General Theory of Employment, Interest and Money, MacMillan, London. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956– 78), Allhem, Malmö. Lagerqvist, L, and E Nathorst-Böös (1968), Mynt, Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts, Stockholm. Lobell, H (2000), Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration: De utländska växelkurserna i Sverige 1834–1880, Almqvist & Wiksell International, Lund. Läge, F-K, (1961), Secular Inflation, Riedel, Dordrecht. Malmer, B (1995), ‘Från Olof till Anund. Ur sigtunamyntningens historia’ in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. McCusker, J (1978), Money and Exchange in Europe and America, 1600–1775: A Handbook, Kingsport Press, Kingsport, Tennessee. Melitz, J (1970), ‘The Polanyi School of Anthropology on Money: An Economist’s View’, American Anthropologist, New Series, vol. 72. No. 5 (October), pp. 1022– 1040. Nordisk Familjebok (1875–99), http://runeberg.org/nf (2007-07-01). Nordisk familjebok (1913), http://runeberg.org/nfbs (2007-08-14). Quinn, S, and W Roberds (2006), An Economic Explanation of the Early Bank of Amsterdam, Debasement, Bills of Exchange, and the Emergence of the First Central Bank, Federal Reserve Bank of Atlanta, Working Paper Series, 2006-13, http:// www.frbatlanta.org/filelegacydocs/wp0613.pdf (2007-08-04). Redish, A (2000), Bimetallism: An Economic and Historical Analysis, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Redish, A (2001), ‘Bimetallism’ in Whaples, R, EH.Net Encyclopedia, http://eh.net/ encyclopedia/article/redish.bimetallism (2007-07-01). Rolnick, A, and W Weber (1986), ‘Gresham’s Law or Gresham’s Fallacy?’, The Journal of Political Economy, vol. 94, no. 1 (February), pp. 185–199. Rolnick, A, and W Weber (1997), ‘Money, Inflation, and Output under Fiat and 66 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Commodity Standards’, The Journal of Political Economy, vol. 105, no. 5 (December), pp. 1308–1321. Sargent, T, and F Velde (2002), The Big Problem of Small Change, Princeton University Press, Princeton and Oxford. Sjögren, P (1944), Släkten Trolles historia intill år 1505, Almqvist & Wiksell, Uppsala. Spufford, P (1986), Handbook of Medieval Exchange, London. Spufford, P (1988), Money and its use in Medieval Europe, Cambridge University Press, Cambridge. Starbäck, C G (1886), Berättelser ur svenska historien. Bd 6, Carl X Gustaf, Beijer, Stockholm. Stiernstedt, A (1863–1864), Om kopparmyntningen i Sverige och dess utländska besittningar, Stockholm. Smith, A (1999 [1776]), The Wealth of Nations, Books IV–V, Penguin Books. Sussman, N (1993), ‘Debasements, Royal Revenues, and Inflation in France During the Hundred Years’ War, 1415–1422’, The Journal of Economic History, vol. 53, no. 1 (March), pp. 44–70. Sussman, N, and J Zeira (2003), ‘Commodity money inflation: theory and evidence from France in 1350–1436’, Journal of Monetary Economics, vol. 50, pp. 1769– 1793. Talvio, T (1995), ‘Sedlarnas århundrade: Mynt och pappersmynt från 1724 till 1818’” in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. Thurborg, M (1989), ‘Betalningsmedel under järnålder och tidig medeltid’ in Medeltidens födelse, Gyllenstiernska Krapperupsstiftelsen, Lund. Velde, F, and W Weber (1998), A Model of Bimetallism, Working Paper 588 (August), Federal Reserve Bank of Minneapolis, Research Department, http://www.minneapolisfed.org/research/WP/WP588.pdf (2007-08-10). Velde, F, W Weber, and R Wright (1999), ‘A Model of Commodity Money, with Applications to Gresham’s Law and the Debasement Puzzle’, Review of Economic Dynamics, vol. 2, pp. 291–323. Wallroth, K A (1918), Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser, Stockholm. Wettmark, M (1995), ‘Den moderna mynthistorien. Nya metaller’ in Jonsson, K, U Nordlind, and I Wiséhn (eds), Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995, Svenska numismatiska föreningen, Stockholm. 3. Swedish Payment Systems 995–15341 Rodney Edvinsson, Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg 3.1. Introduction In principle, a market economy could be based on barter – a simple exchange of commodities and services for other commodities or services (i.e. goods). But it is difficult to imagine a sizeable market in the absence of money. Money was, of course, a commodity just like other goods initially, but it has the property of being acceptable as payment for almost all other goods. This property makes it much easier for a buyer and a seller to conclude a deal, at least when people have confidence in the monetary system. In a pre-industrial society such a general trust may exist if the pennies are roughly of the same size and carry the same quantity of intrinsic value. During the Swedish Middle Ages this intrinsic value consisted of silver in the pennies. In times of monetary stability, medieval pence could readily be used as units of account (price tags) when goods needed to be valued, making exchange even easier. Some people believe that price stability is a modern idea, but many a medieval source makes it clear that keeping money stable was considered to be an important virtue for the regent.2 In Sweden, as in other European countries, there were periods of stable money that helped market exchange to flourish, as well as periods of royal counterfeiting and economic decline. Many medieval economic problems can be attributed to the swings between stability (trust) and money debasement (distrust). In Sweden, the basic currency unit during the Middle Ages was the mark, which existed up to 1776. There was a difference between the silver mark and ‘mark penningar’ (the mark in pennies). A silver mark was a weight measure, while the mark penningar was the currency unit. In the Middle Ages, the mark penningar was a unit of account. It was not until the 16th century that a coin was minted with the value of one mark penningar. 1 2 We want to thank especially Lars O. Lagerqvist and Cecilia von Heijne for comments on this chapter. Spufford (2000, p. 59), and Franzén (2006, p. 66). 68 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 When discussing the medieval payment system in Sweden it is also important to problematise the concept of Sweden. The boundaries of Sweden changed during the Middle Ages and they differed from what they are today. Finland was conquered in the 12th and 13th centuries. Scania (Skåne), Blekinge and Halland in the south belonged to Denmark for most of the Middle Ages, apart from a brief period in the 14th century (Scania was part of Sweden in 1332–66). Gotland in the Baltic Sea belonged to Sweden up to the 1360s, when it was lost to Denmark. During the 14th century there were several personal unions between Nordic countries, for example between Sweden and Norway in 1319–55 and 1362-63. They eventually lead up to the Kalmar Union, which is a term for a series of personal unions between Sweden (including Finland), Denmark and Norway in 1397–1523, although technically the countries did not relinquish their sovereignty. The Union split into two parts – Denmark-Norway and Sweden (including Finland) – in the early 1520s. There were also important differences within the borders of the Swedish realm, reflecting a feudal decentralisation of the monetary system. 3.2. Coins, Cash and Credit in Medieval Sweden The first Swedish coins were made in the town of Sigtuna on Lake Mälar (north of present-day Stockholm), probably in the year 995,3 and at roughly the same time in Norway. Those coins were minted in as pure silver as was possible a thousand years ago and they were produced by a Christian king in surroundings that were still rather pagan. But since the mint die prototype was of Anglo-Saxon origin, the monarch depicted on the pennies was the English king Ethelred, not the Swedish king Olof Skötkonung. This early minting occurred at the end of what we today call the Viking Age. In neighbouring Denmark, minting had already been practiced on and off since the 820s. But unlike the more advanced Denmark and Norway, Sweden discontinued minting sometime in the 1030s. This is indeed an economically puzzling lacuna that lasted for more than a century. The Viking Age, with its networks of international exchange, came to an end in the middle of the 11th century; together with other signs of diminishing external trade, one is tempted to see this long interruption in Swedish minting as part of a period of economic stagnation.4 We do not have a single written contemporary record that mentions the Sigtuna pennies. Thus, we do not know how (or even whether) they were tallied. In fact we do not know if they were used at all in market transactions. The first minted coins played just a marginal role, and circulating silver was completely dominated by foreign coins.5 When minting restarted in the 12th century, it did so in the southern parts of the realm. That is to say, first on the island of Gotland in the 1140s and in the province of Västergötland (West Gothland) in the 1150s (Geatish pennies). 3 4 5 Lagerqvist (1970, p. 16). Heckscher (1941, pp. 65–6). Jonsson (1995). no Swedish coins were minted at that time but foreign coins. including the introduction of monetary systems that were based on local institutions. The Danish and Scanian marks were still valued differently in the 14th century (see Table A3. respectively. p. rather than on institutions of a centralised monarchy. reflecting that European society was characterised by political and economic decentralisation.6 and such a decentralized monetary structure was to become a characteristic sign of the feudal system.3. they were also tallied in different ways. These two kinds of new penny were very different in appearance from the Sigtuna coins and were (up to roughly the year 1300) sometimes minted on one side only.8 6 7 8 Hybel and Poulsen (2007. 333). a Viking town 1200 years ago. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 69 A model of Birka. Birka in Lake Mälar was established in the 8th century and became an important international trading port. Sweden became a typical feudal example with more than one monetary system in use well up to the early 16th century. the appearance of the new Swedish pennies varied according to where in the kingdom they were minted. pp. A provincially based monetary system had already been introduced in the late 1020s in Denmark. 46) . 180–1). Hybel and Poulsen (2007. 327). What is more.3). Klackenberg (1992. circulated widely. p. Not only did the different pennies in Sweden have different intrinsic values. As far as we know. when Cnut the Great abandoned his uniform money for the whole of Denmark in favour of two monetary systems – for the eastern and western parts of the country. p. at the Museum of National Antiquities in Stockholm. and Jonsson (2002. mostly Arabic. German patterns may have inspired the Danish king.7 Later. Småland and Östergötland). Up to at least the end of the 13th century. Gotlandic pennies have been found in many places round the Baltic Sea and played an important role in the south-eastern part of mainland Sweden up to at least the 1260s. up to the late 13th century there were regional variations in the currency system. sometime around the year 1300. However. Svealand pennies. The last two types of penny were part of Danish and Norwegian minting. Scanian pennies and pennies from the county of Jämtland. 1 penning of Svealand = 2 penning of Götaland) and in Gotland it equalled 288 penning (the coins of Gotland also circulated in Öland. while the first two types – Geatish and Svealand pennies – were united into a single mainland monetary system. The following relation: 1 mark = 8 öre = 24 örtug. held everywhere in Sweden. Gotlandic pennies. Dalsland and Västergötland) it equalled 384 penning (i. Photo: Gabriel Hildebrand/Museum of National Antiquities (in Stockholm). respectively. Swedish pennies. five different types of penny were minted inside what are Sweden’s borders today and each type was tallied in its own way.9 but also later in the 15th century. p. Thus. in Götaland/Geatland/Gothland (mainly in Värmland. . There were Geatish pennies.70 Exchange rates. and wages. prices. What is now the south of 9 Klackenberg (1992.e. 1277–2008 Silver coins and other silver objects from the late Iron Age. while one mark was equal to 192 Swedish pennies or penning (plural: penningar) in Svealand. 183). p. Fauerholdt Jensen (1990. Jonsson and Östergren (1998) and Hallenberg (1798). p. pp. In Denmark in 1332–52. Hildebrand (1894. Klackenberg (1992. pp. the gros tournois functioned more or less as an official norm for the monetary system. * The Swedish pennies have not left many traces in the written sources from the mid12th up to the mid-13th century. vol.e.14 Foreign money was also in use when the domestic coin was debased (see below) and when the Crown for one reason or another ceased to mint. i. Franzén (2006. Franzén (2006. German coins and various foreign gold coins came to play a larger role. 1 mark = 192 penning also in Götaland. I:2. This transition to a common monetary system was part of the state formation process. Blekinge and Halland) belonged to the Danish system. This silence. where initially one örtug was equal to 10–12 penning. the Svealand system was adopted.15 There are many examples of exchange rates on foreign coins. Initially. raises the question of how they were used in an economic context. vol.10 When the Swedish mainland got the same currency system around 1300. The most frequently mentioned up to the mid-14th century were English and French silver coins.13 All through the Middle Ages (as well as later) foreign coins were also in use in Sweden. This phenomenon can be seen as a typical feudal trait. Gotland and Götaland adopted the Danish counting system from around 1450.11 The Gotlandic mark (mark gutnisk) was of the same or lower value than the Swedish mainland mark (see Table A3. Thus. 16). 842). and SDhk 16586. Gotland (which Denmark conquered in the 1360s) retained its own system. indicating that they were treated as bullion 10 11 12 13 14 15 16 Hildebrand (1894. Danish and German coins were often in use in the forested province of Småland. as seems to have been the case in Sweden in several years around 1400. One use of foreign money was for trade in export harbours such as Stockholm and Kalmar or crossborder trade in the regions that were close to Norway and Denmark.3. I:2.2). 40). 156–8). together with the fact that the coins – like their Viking Age forerunner – were still made of almost pure silver. where 1 mark = 16 skilling = 192 pennies.16 After 1350. p. örtug and penning was a common Nordic system. No gold coins were minted in Sweden during the Middle Ages. 183–4). 773).12 From 1340 a coin of higher denomination called gote was minted in Gotland. In the 14th century Denmark and Norway adopted the German system. the division into mark. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 71 Sweden (Skåne. p. However. . Contemporary sources mention that pennies were weighed out. and Franzén (1998. This was clearly the case during long periods in the Middle Ages. p. Since money is just one good among other goods (see above). Only the farnorthern part of Sweden. and references in the sources indicate that they were in regular use in the expanding markets. Malmer (1980. Myrberg (2008. 936). and wages.18 There was undoubtedly a trend towards using more and more money in economic transactions in Sweden. pp. 179). Older coins with a higher intrinsic value were melted down or tallied in a higher nominal than the new coins. were minted in Sweden. in other words. Such a benevolent royal attitude can be seen as a way of raising the market value of money and helping trade to expand. p. was still practiced in Sweden but there was also an exchange of goods against goods in the markets that were part of what we might call a monetarised economy. 77–8). but also among peasants in the countryside. Archaeological evidence suggests that at the turn of the 14th century money was commonly used not only among aristocrats and burghers. I:2. p. was still outside this modernization. vol. Archaeological finds have shown that several types were covered with a thin layer of silver in an attempt to make them look much more precious than they really were. This was not confined to Sweden. but there were times when a fiat type of money appeared.17 In the second half of the 13th century the production of coins increased in the realm. p. This tendency was intensified during the Late Middle Ages (1350–1527). 222). but not for long. p. This was not uncommon in states of crisis. where one good was simply exchanged for another good. Hildebrand (1894. it was often not possible for a buyer to provide the seller with coins. prices. Goods other than coins were also used for transactions in medieval Sweden. albeit with periods of severe monetary setbacks. 1360s. when the regent accepts his coins as payment of taxes. 1510s and early 1520s emergency coins. or simply as a result of royal incompetence.72 Exchange rates. with its populated river valleys. Klackenberg (1992. consisting almost entirely of copper. 185).20 Under such circumstances – when a coin’s debasement was characterized by transparency – it was a modernizing step (towards today’s money. Swedish pennies included more and more copper at the expense of their silver content.21 Such a swindle could possibly result in large profits for the Crown. Another point to note is the importance of money in the special function of legal tender. But medieval man created several witty methods of solving this 17 18 19 20 21 Klackenberg (1992. 1277–2008 rather than money (including foreign coins). The same phenomenon is clearly evident in the more advanced regions in western Europe. From the mid13th century – even earlier on the island of Gotland19 – the trend in Sweden was for new coins to have less and less intrinsic value. and Franzén (2006. that is. which has no intrinsic value). 58). The disclosure of such a fraud severely undermined confidence in the monetary system. In the 1350s. Primitive barter. such as during wars and outbreaks of the plague. 181). p. . that is. intermediary goods can be regarded as money if they are valued in monetary terms. Franzén (1998.8 grams). 3. 50–1). King Knut announced that he had exchanged one of his farms for landed property in the province of Södermanland owned by a monastery.25 Payment could also be in weighed gold. which amounted to 9/10ths of the Cologne mark (233. See also SDhk 287.22 In fact. Silver spoons and iron are two examples of popular substitutes for coins and they were often given a price tag in monetary terms when used as cash or credits (pledges) in the markets. In this transaction. p. Up to the 14th century. One was the construction of credit institutions such as pawns and guarantors. 257–261). 938–9). this was not rare in early transactions. The fact that the payment was in weighed silver was sometimes explicitly recorded. and Hildebrand (1894.616 grams of silver. 933) and Thordeman (1936. Franzén (2006. The term ‘mark lödig’ is known from 1341 onwards. from 1:3 in the second half of the 13th century to 1:16 in the late 1510s. which took place some time between 1167 and 1185. the mark penningar deteriorated relative to the silver mark during the Middle Ages. 45–6). e. Another was to use goods other than money as if they were money.24 All in all. SDhk 214. Hildebrand (1894. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 73 problem. pp. pp. pp. Although we know roughly how much silver these terms referred to.27 Payment in weighed gold became less common after the mid-13th century. were an exception rather than a rule in medieval economic transactions..23 Charters that can be described as mortgage deeds expressed in monetary terms are known from as early as the second half of the 13th century (when real property was pawned). pp. in mints. vol. I:2. 92).3. from the province of Småland.26 Another early document. payments in ready money. Before that the Latin term ‘marchas argenti puri’ (mark pure silver) was commonly used.g. records the purchase of fishing water by the Nydala monastery for three marks in gold. See. so called intermediary goods. SDhk 268. In what may be the earliest recorded purchase of any kind in Sweden. there is some uncertainty about the 22 23 24 25 26 27 28 Heckscher (1941. p.3. Due to successive debasement of the coin. no mark coins were minted until the 16th century. the gross weight of one silver mark (mark lödig) is generally assumed to have been 210. . SDhk 761. in weighed silver. The exchange rate between mark penningar and mark lödig For the 16th century. This transaction was confirmed by the King in about 1192. the monks also paid 12 marks in gold. it was not uncommon for purchases of land and other relatively large transactions to be made in silver marks.28 As mentioned above. During the Middle Ages there seems to have been a shift in the meaning of this term. which was a common Scandinavian measure. 8). If the silver mark contained only 85–95 per cent pure silver. ‘mark’.31 To complicate matters. the mark was 209 grams in Stockholm.29 During the early Middle Ages the mark silver. and wages. The maximum purity of silver in the Middle Ages was probably 95–96 per cent. the fineness and whether it was minted or unminted silver. According to Hans Hildebrand. Hildebrand (1894. Hyötyniemi (1999. Mark lödig came to denote a gross weight rather than (almost) pure silver. . the term mark silver (Latin: marcha argenti) could differ in meaning from marcha argenti puri and refer to a significantly lower unit of value32 (for example.30 One uncertainty concerns the purity of mark lödig or marchas argenti puri. probably varied somewhat between regions. 215 grams in Skara and 218 grams in Uppsala. its fine silver content would then be only 180–205 grams. p. 757).74 Exchange rates. 1277–2008 A scale from the late Iron Age. örtug and penning – developed from weight measures with the same names. Various medieval monetary units – such as mark. KHL. the mark silver of Riga and Gotland in the 14th 29 30 31 32 KHL. öre. prices. Chemically pure silver was not available before modern times. p. ‘mark’. Photo: Museum of National Antiquities (in Stockholm) gross weight. pp. the Vatican put the Swedish silver mark as equal to 0.e.338 grams.36 Since the fine silver content of 1 gros tournois was 3. which seems rather unlikely. See also Fauerholdt Jensen (1990. 32 and 81).332 grams fine silver per sterling). Malmer (1980. the mark sterling is counted as 160 sterlings (see Table A3. In another source. 35).3.6 grams. pp. i. which could be somewhat less pure. see SDhk 2506.5 sterlings or 182 grams fine silver in sterling coins (1.8532934 marks of Troy weight. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 75 century. which in turn was valued 160 sterlings.5 – 1:5. or 210 grams silver of 95–96 per cent fineness. belonging to group E H L S. Lindert (2006). circulated at the exchange rate of 1:5. which is exactly the relation between mark lödig and the Cologne mark in the 16th century. Since the fine silver content of the sterling was 1. however. a source from Forsheda in Småland counted the mark silver or mark sterling as 144 sterling coins. from Lübeck in 1267. Assuming that the lighter coins.7). p. SDhk 1207. as fine as silver could 33 34 35 36 37 38 For an example.39 i.2). this determination of the mark silver is not consistent with all sources. 15-19 and 242). discussed below). .38 While during the 13th century and the first half of the 14th century the mark silver probably referred to minted silver of close to 90–95 per cent purity with a gross weight of 210–220 grams. must have circulated at a somewhat better exchange rate than 1:5. since assuming such a rate for these coins implies that the mark silver contained 220 grams pure silver. the relation would imply that 1 mark silver contained 192 grams fine silver in gros tournois. Although Hans Forssell argues that in 15th century Lübeck the fine silver was of 98 to 99. The coins containing a larger amount of silver.6). that would imply that 1 mark silver was equivalent to around 200 grams pure silver. table 5:5). 157. 39 Forssell (1872.5 per cent purity. According to the same source.21 grams for group Kr H Ä I and 0.35 In 1334. In 1282. group Kr  H  Ä  I. in the 15th century the term mark lödig probably referred to unminted silver. implying that the Swedish mark silver was set equal to only 136. the exchange rate in Sweden probably differed from that abroad. 1 mark silver was set equal to 5 marks penningar.34 this mark silver contained 193 grams fine silver.37 The exchange rate for the mark silver in the early 14th century was in the range 1:4. increasing the seignorage rate. and 15 marks penningar to 160 gros tournois (see Table A3. Brita Malmer shows that the fine silver content of the penning-coins in the early 14th century was 0. p. See also Franzén (2006.33 In 1272. Moreover. From these two sources it can be established that the Swedish mark silver or mark sterling was 90 percent of the mark sterling used in Lübeck. the Danish mark silver was 4 per cent larger than the Swedish. The value of unminted silver was lower than that of minted domestic coins in the late 14th and early 15th centuries (see Figure 3. free minting must have been restricted in one way or another.23 grams for group E H L S. However. the term mark silver (marcha argenti) was mostly synonymous with marcha argenti puri. In Sweden.e. or at roughly the same value as unminted silver. 19). The large number of quotations indicates the importance that was attached to documenting the relationship between mark silver and mark penningar in economic transactions. In 1479. In 1375–1400.25 marks örtug. a clear difference with the situation in the early Middle Ages. 1 mark lödig was worth around 20 marks örtug.75/16 fineness (85.41 In 1528. Wallroth (1918. 35). This implies that the silver mark contained 197 grams fine silver in 1350. the early 15th century and the early 16th century.9375 per cent pure silver). prices. which contained 177 grams fine silver in öre coins.1). the downward trend in the fine silver content of the mark penningar was practically continuous and particularly notable in three periods: the decades around 1300.5/16 (90. p. which contained around 170-175 grams fine silver in örtug coins. In addition.625 per cent) fineness (16 so-called lod = 100 per cent pure silver). the mark penningar held only one tenth of the amount of silver it had contained in the late 13th century. For example in 1460. and in 1523 the melting of one mark lödig showed that its silver was of 13. With the exception of land prices.40 In accordance with these sources. the assumption in the present study is that the silver mark was of 15/16 fineness up to 1350 and then linearly decreased to 14. Figure 3. 39). In 1420–40.1. By the latter date. 1 mark lödig was worth around 7. These periods of debasement were characterized by war and civil strife. and wages. which contained around 150 grams fine silver in örtug coins. In Västerås in 1524.5/16 fineness in 1479 and to 14/16 fineness in 1524. this is probably the densest economic series available for medieval Sweden. the exchange rate of the mark lödig was quite stable at around 8. Most of these transactions concern sales of landed prop- 40 41 42 43 KHL. goldsmiths were obliged to use silver of 14.1 describes the fine silver equivalent of one mark penningar in 1277– 1539. a document refers to the mark lödig of 14/16 fineness (87. 1360s and early 1520s.42 This implies that örtug coins usually circulated significantly above their intrinsic metal value. which contained around 180 grams fine silver. In 1484. Thordeman (1936. ‘mark’. p. 1 mark lödig was worth around 10 marks of Lübeck. 1277–2008 be made at that time.76 Exchange rates. . which contained around 200 grams fine silver. presumably pressing the rulers to use less silver in the coins. p. temporary dips occurred in the 1350s. During the late Middle Ages many foreign silver coins seem to have circulated at a lower value per unit of silver than the domestic coins.43 From the late 13th century. The graph is based on around 800 quotations stating the value of the mark penningar relative to the silver mark. and Table A3.7 marks of Lübeck. the Swedish mark lödig probably referred to silver of much lower purity. the mark lödig was valued around 6 mark örtug.5 per cent pure silver). Forssell (1872. 191 grams in 1479 and 184 grams in 1524 (see Table A3. Exchange rates in the 12th and 13th centuries The second half of the 12th century and the 13th century (mainly the latter) saw a monetarisation of the economy. The annual values are found in Table A3. Specifying the exchange rate of the mark penningar relative to the silver mark eliminates one source of uncertainty in economic transactions.1.1. even though barter still dominated exchange. and the buyer could be confident that there could be no future claims for payment. While coins played hardly any role in the life of an ordinary peasant around the year 1200. erty. 64). 45 Klackenberg (1992. and Holmberg (1995. based on the exchange rate on mark silver (mark lödig). a century later this was no longer the case. 1277–1539.1.4. 185). Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 77 Figure 3. 3. 60 50 Silver content. The seller was assured that he/she would not receive payment in debased money. grams 40 30 20 10 0 1260 1280 1300 1320 1340 1360 1380 1400 1420 1440 1460 1480 1500 1520 1540 Source: Table A3.3. 44 Klackenberg (1992).45 They had to be weighed and were worth just their value as silver metal. Silver equivalence (grams) of one Swedish mark (mark penningar). p. . which of course represented relatively large sums of money at the time. The silver coins that circulated up to the 12th century were not fully monetary objects. p.44 A large part of the economy had been monetarised. two different sources valued the mark silver at 3 and 4. the older higher-valued coins had been withdrawn from circulation. again. 51 Franzén (2006.50 In 1291. the Vatican valued 1 mark in Troy weight at 5.’ 47 Thurborg (1989). He writes: ‘In all large international transactions. Dijkman was careful only to use direct sources as evidence of early exchange rates.5. 78-79). Thus both Dijkman’s and the Vatican’s exchange rates for the 1270s and 1280s were still prevalent in the early 1290s.49 For 1335 and 1350. 1277–2008 They were not distinct from other silver objects. and (as mentioned above) 1 Swedish mark silver at 0.47 In contrast. The large differences in exchange rates in the late 13th century were most likely due to the parallel circulation of older and newer pennies that contained different amounts of fine silver. and as all coins are subject to more or less wear and uncertainty of weight.48 although there are also examples of Swedish coins being counted from this century. 81 and 85). but it is quite likely that Dijkman did have access to documents that have now been lost. pp.56 Swedish marks penningar. they are received only for the actual weight of metal they are estimated to contain. 67). No written sources seem to exist on the exchange rate before the 1270s.e. 46 See Spufford (1988.8 between mark silver and mark penningar in 1291. implying that the fine silver content of 1 mark penningar was just 41 grams (see Table A3.8532934 marks of Troy weight. 1289 and 1298.46 These coins served as a medium of exchange. 49 Dijkman (1686. 50 SDhk 1207. Stanley Jevons (1875. this would entail an exchange rate of 1:4. As late as in the second half of the 13th century. Petter Dijkman wrote in 1686 that he had access to old sales documents stating that 1 mark silver was worth 3 mark penningar in the years 1277–83.6). respectively. currency by weight is the sole method. He also points out that such a system was practiced in his own time (the 19th century). See also Fauerholdt Jensen (1990. By the early 14th century.78 Exchange rates.344 Swedish mark penningar.51 Another source sets the value of 1 mark penningar at 10. The sales documents from 1277–89 no longer exist. Assuming that 1 mark silver contained 197 grams fine silver.2 gros tournois in 1291. The earliest evidence of exchange rates refers to the last decades of the 13th century. in the more developed parts of Europe (Western and Central Europe) the coins were counted since their face value was guaranteed by the ruler. The regulations of a state concerning its legal tender have no validity beyond its own frontiers. pp. p. they were only special-purpose money). implying: 1 Swedish mark silver = 4. 294). but only in limited contexts (i. and wages. a payment of 20 marks silver was made by weighing up pennies of Sweden and Gotland. p. Opinions about the development of the exchange rate between mark silver and mark penningar during the course of the 12th and 13th centuries fall into two main categories.25 marks penningar. he puts the exchange rate at 1:4. Ix) describes this as a ‘system of currency by weight’. ch. prices. The exchange rates he reports from the 1290s onwards are confirmed by other sources that still exist. . For the period 1277–82. 48 SDhk 761. The provincial law of Uppland. Dovring argues quite convincingly that this is unlikely considering the much larger value difference between mark silver and mark penningar in this period. The other view is that there was no such equivalence in the 12th century. Malmer (1980). confirmed by the King in 1296. for example Hildebrand and Bengt Thordeman. and Hemmingsson (2005). In Denmark. the relation between mark silver and mark penningar was 1:2 to 1:3 (see Table A3. when minting was resumed in Sweden.54 The existence of a better mark. Hyötyniemi (1999.53 To argue for equivalence between mark silver and mark penningar in the 12th century. . i. as mentioned above). ‘mark’.e. Mark karlgill has been interpreted as mark silver.52 This view presupposes successive debasements during the 12th and 13th centuries.5 not long before the Uppland law had been written. the ratio between the lowest and the highest rates was the same as between mark karlgild and mark köpgild. alongside the mark in common circulation was a frequent phenomenon during the Middle Ages (not least as a safeguard against the deteriorated currency). 1 öre karlgill was equal to 12 penning and 1 öre köpgild to 8 penning. and the beginning of the 13th century. and Dovring (1951). Brita Malmer argues that the deterioration in the value of mark penningar took the form of decreasing fineness rather than a reduction of the coin’s weight. implying that the exchange rate between mark silver and mark penningar was 1:1. in Norway the term mark forngild was used in the 14th century and had the same value as the 13th century mark in pennies. 52 53 54 55 Hildebrand (1894.3). assume that the mark penningar was equal to the silver mark in the 12th century. 933). the exchange rate of mark silver for mark penningar varied from 1:3 to 1:4. and Thordeman (1936). During the Middle Ages it was not unusual for various fines (more fixed in time) to be paid in better currency. It is entirely possible that this was also the relation in Sweden when minting was resumed in the 12th century. A decrease in fineness can be observed during the course of the Middle Ages.55 In late 13th century Sweden. This is consistent with evidence that the intrinsic metal value of Swedish coins did not decrease substantially during the course of the 12th and 13th centuries and that the relation 1:3 can be confirmed by written sources in the late 13th century. their fineness decreased by around 15–20 per cent. mentions two different mark currencies: mark karlgill and mark köpgild. However. While the gross weight of Swedish coins was unchanged during the 13th century. For example.5 (both exchange rates are confirmed by written sources. it is also likely that the relation between mark silver and the mark in penning coins was initially adjusted to international conditions. not equal to the marcha argenti puri. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 79 Some researchers. while the weight of the Swedish pennies remained stable. KHL. 8). vol I:2. p. Thordeman has to assume that the 12th century coins were ¼ penning coins. This is logical since a decrease in weight is easier to detect than a decrease in fineness. p.3. while 1 mark of ME II: 2 contained 10 to 19 grams of fine silver. Assuming that both ME II: 1 and ME II: 2 were one penning coins. 0. whereas it had recently been at par with the latter. 271). 59 Malmer (1980. (1943. . In Kalmar. an ME II: 1 coin had a fine silver content that at its highest. Hildebrand (1894. pp. during the 16th century in Sweden). 1 mark penningar of ME II: 1 contained 4 to 33 grams of fine silver. and therefore it could not have been a half-penning-coin. periods of high inflation caused by debasement cycles are not documented prior to the 16th century but there are certain indications that debasement cycles did occur earlier. pp.17 grams. 57 Golabiewski Lannby (1995. I:2. When the peasants in 1363 wanted to pay the tax to the Pope in the same bad coins.919 mark penningar were minted in inferior coins in 1361–3 and 785 mark penningar in better coins in 1364–5.05 and 0. The debasement cycles of the 14th century In Sweden. 58 Hildebrand (1894. for example. the latter occurred. which is typical for a debasement cycle (for example. 33–4). was 20–25 per cent less than that of the previously minted 1-penning coins.02 and 0. prices. p. which were minted at end of the reign of King Magnus IV Ericson (1319–64). and Thordeman (1936. 1277–2008 while market transactions (which were more variable) were allowed to be made in the deteriorated currency. Another source relates that the payment of Peter’s pence in 1356–62 was made in a coin that was ‘bad.1 grams. 935). the very large variation in the fine silver content of ME II: 1 rather indicates a gradual deterioration of the coin. and SDhk 8633.22 grams (implying that 1 mark penningar contained 42 grams of fine silver). 22–3). 830–1). p. and wages. 1.59 Both were substantially debased compared to earlier coins.5. A Swedish coin is mentioned in 1358 that was reduced to one-third of its value against the Norwegian coin. 0. vol.17 grams and of ME II: 2 between 0. in fact. pp. Thordeman concludes that ME  II:  1 and ME  II:  2 were.58 A better coin was introduced in that year. pp. in Götaland during the 1410s when the debased Gotlandic coins drove out the better Swedish mainland coins (see below). the fine silver content of minted coins decreased substantially. vol. However. Bengt Thordeman and Brita Malmer have studied two different types of penning: ME II:1 (Th XX) and ME II:2 (Th XXI). and of no or inferior value’. half-penning coins. Most notably in the 1350s and 1360s (following the Black Death). I:2. Rasmusson.80 Exchange rates. on average. the tax collectors refused to accept a coin that had been withdrawn from circulation. Malmer disagrees. 56 See footnote 102. 93–4).56 3. the fine silver content of ME II:1 varies between 0. While the fine silver content of the one penning coin minted during the 1340s (ME I:2 or Th XIX) is. one in the 1350s and the other in the early 1360s.57 Hence it is possible that two debasement cycles occurred. According to Malmer. 1 Flemish mark groschen = 19 marks penningar.63 Since the mark silver was usually worth 4. Using cross exchange rates. 759). Stockholm. At that time. 1 mark silver in Swedish weight = 5.5 florins. This 60 61 62 63 64 Franzén (2006. The two quotations show that the exchange rate deteriorated substantially.8 marks penningar. no. no. one mark silver in Cologne weight was still valued at 6 marks penningar (i. Spufford (1986. 77 and 232). In 1363.4 marks penningar). It could buy around 0.62 The mark groschen was equal to 120 groschen or ½ pound groschen. one örtug was a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around four hours’ work in Stockholm (its equivalent in the late 1990s would be a 500-kronor note). However. pp. prices are missing for several years.61 In July 1353. Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. there are two notations on foreign coins. 1000 marks silver in Cologne weight were valued at 5000 gold florins. 13. this would imply that in 1353. 1 mark groschen was valued at 6.2882 gold florins or 3. 1295). pp.e. 50 Flemish marks groschen were valued at as much as 950 marks penningar.9 kg of butter or four litres of beer.875 marks of Lübeck. 1 mark silver Swedish weight = 4. although not as much as the decrease in the fine silver content of the most debased coins. assuming that prices followed debasement. . 215 and 227). Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet.e. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 81 A minted örtug from Åbo in Finland in the second half of the 14th century.7 being the average. it contained around one gram of fine silver. The circulation of the worst coins would imply a tenfold increase in prices.5 gold florins64 or 45 schillinge of Lübeck. i. SDhk 6594. See Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990.6 or 13. 1 mark silver was valued at 13.60 Although direct exchange rates between mark silver and mark penningar are missing for the years when the deterioration in value most likely took place (1352–3 and 1361–2). In 1353.3. these two notations provide information about the value of mark silver in mark penningar. In March 1351.e. i. 75 marks of Lübeck) and 10–20 marks penningar. 1243). copying the German Witten. better coins probably circulated at a premium alongside debased coins. p. depending on the current value of the coins (‘pro qualitate monete tunc currentis’). in 1366–7 copper was sold for 25 marks per ship pound and in 1333 for 10 marks per ship pound. since in both 1355 and 1356. Malmer (1980. Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990 no. However.05 grams. Thordeman (1936. The newer coins that circulated during the reign of Albert of Sweden (1363–89) had a lower fine silver content than the better coins which circulated before the mid14th century.69 Earlier the örtug had existed only as a unit of account equal to 8 penning. SDhk 8007. . which shows that the debased coins could have been in circulation during that time. 1 mark silver Stockholm weight = 5.70 a decline of around 60 per cent since the first half of the 14th century.5 (since 1 mark silver was worth around 2. no. and SDhk 6799. Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. 1 Swedish penny was equal to ½ penny of Lübeck. p. depending on the rate. 90). The only price quotation from when the debasements took place (1352–3 and 1361–2) is for copper in 1361. implying that the fine silver content of 1 mark penningar had decreased to just 25 grams. During this period the örtug was struck as a coin for the first time. prices. Papal sources show that a new coin was introduced on February 22nd 1354 and they clearly distinguish between coins collected before and after that date.e. This example clearly shows that various coins circulated at quite different exchange rates. no. Assuming that the exchange rate between mark lödig and mark penningar stabilised at 1:6 after 1363. the exchange rate of the mark silver in mark penningar decreased by only around 20 per cent from the level in the first half of the 14th century.66 Sources from 1352 and 1353 refer to mark penningar as paid in either proper coins (prompta pecunia) or common coins now in circulation (vsualis monete nunc currentis). 909). the fee to Vadstena monastery was set at ½ penny of Lübeck or at one or several Swedish pennies.68 the highest notation in the whole of the Middle Ages. 33).4 marks penningar). 1277–2008 exchange rate is consistent with the notation that the debased coins were later reduced to one-third of their nominal value. The old coin was collected throughout the period 1351–3.67 During the stable currency. the price of copper in 1361 indicates an exchange rate of (at least) 1:12. and that 1 mark silver was valued at maybe between 5. one mark silver in Cologne weight was valued at 6 marks penningar (i. an indication that coins circulated at a 65 66 67 68 69 70 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. In December 1361. when copper was valued at 50 marks per ship pound. By way of comparison. Its fine silver content was 1. and wages. 952 and 969).65 The new coin must have been a better one.82 Exchange rates. which shows that older. it was partly replaced by the Hungarian florin. 906 and 911).6. SDhk 1760. The florin (Latin: floreni). 3. . which held the same weight and fineness as its Italian counterpart. I:2. began to be minted in 1252 and quickly became the dominant international trading coin. 71 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990.72 During the 15th century. ‘Italian coin florin’. The gold:silver exchange rate Silver and gold were both considered to be scarce in Sweden.53 grams. Source: Wikipedia. since the scarcity of gold and silver prevented its swift exchange. such as horses.73 A florin from 1347. 72 The earliest mention in Sweden appears to be in a letter from 1297 which records a payment of 500 florins by the archbishop at Uppsala. It is mentioned in Swedish sources from the end of the 13th century and appears frequently during the 14th century. vol. allowing a substantial increase in the seignorage rate. Some of the money had been transformed into useful things (‘res utiles’). the Florentine gold coin with a weight of 3. especially in connection with the activities of papal emissaries. 73 Hildebrand (1894. pp.71 Foreign gold coins were readily accepted in Sweden. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 83 value significantly above their intrinsic metal content. use of the Florentine florin seems to have declined in Sweden.3. no 37). papal emissaries reported that the money they had collected in Sweden had to be kept in the form of the domestic currency. In the early 1320s. and wages. ‘Noble (English coin)’. During the latter part of the 15th century. Source: Wikipedia. minted in London in 1354–5. nobles were increasingly replaced by German gyllen or gulden. The large coins. These coins were minted in several parts of Germany. ‘Guilder’. Source: Wikipedia. 1277–2008 Hungarian florin struck in 1353–7. The . prices. The obverse (left) depicts the king standing in a ship. were particularly popular. minted during the reign of Edward III. nobles. English gold coins were in frequent use in Sweden during the 15th century. A noble.84 Exchange rates. 948).75 Since 8 öre made 1 mark. it became more common to specify the exchange rate between mark penningar and the Rhinish gulden. In northern Germany. minted between 1399 and 1402. . Source: Wikipedia. between 1250 and 1330 the gold:silver ratio rose from about 1:9 to 1:15. 910). p. 40). when the provincial law of Västergötland stipulated that the price for freeing a slave should be 2 öre in gold or 2 marks in silver.74 A Rhinish gulden from Mainz. vol. In central and southern Europe it often fell to between 1:11 and 1:12 during the latter half of the 15th century. As these coins became widespread during the late 15th and early 16th centuries. During the latter 74 Hildebrand (1894. Hamburg often exhibits higher gold:silver ratios. After about 1330. and Spufford (1986. The earliest information on the exchange rate between gold and silver (the bimetallic ratio) dates from the first part of the 13th century. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 85 most widely used type in Sweden was the Rhinish gulden (Latin: floreni rinenses. rather than the rate of the domestic coin to the silver mark.3. p. pp. reaching a minimum in the early 15th century. vol. lxiii). ‘Guilder’. pp. there is no information as to whether or not this rate was used in actual transactions. lxi. 76 Day (1978.76 There are. 75 Hildebrand (1894. Swedish: rhensk gyllen). I:2. In large parts of Europe. During the course of the 15th century. 34. gold became more scarce. I:2. however. some areas where the relative price of silver was higher. the ratio in Continental Europe and England declined to between 1:10 and 1:11 at the time of the Black Death. this amounts to a gold:silver exchange rate of 1:8. However. and the bimetallic ratio rose somewhat. A recent study reveals that money markets between Lübeck and Prussia were not well integrated in the 14th and 15th centuries. as well as the exchange rates of these coins. . 51). A major risk associated with maritime transports was piracy.78 Sweden could be expected to be a peripheral region of the Hanseatic area. This suggests a lack of monetary integration. For the period 1328–1534 we have found over 100 exchange rate quotations between various gold coins and Swedish mark penningar. Gold always had to be imported to Sweden. which is not unexpected. Swedish exchange rates were rather favourable for owners of foreign gold coins.11). Pirates were a serious threat to trade in the Baltic area during several medieval periods. 1277–2008 half of the 15th century the average was about 1:12. for example. given that the Hanseatic area was a rather backward economic zone compared to highly developed regions such as the Netherlands. For a long time. or even earlier. it appears that the bimetallic ratio in Sweden was remarkably high around 1330 (at 1:15 to 1:18) and went into a long-term decline thereafter. 123–4). which were set in a local context. which for long periods held a constant weight of gold. Volckart and Wolf (2006. Edward III of England allowed a London burgher to send 200 pounds in gold or silver in order to buy herring in Scania (which was then part of Denmark). with varying specie content. Little is known about how gold flowed into Sweden but international trade was clearly a major source. pp. pp. 177–81). Much of the gold came from the Low Countries. pushing its price up. The term ‘florin’. fluctuating between 1:10 and 1:15. would normally require sea transport.79 Churches in Sweden were prominent buyers of expensive goblets and other gold objects. Obviously. prices. the amount of silver that had to be paid for minted gold in Sweden was high. Based on the value of florins (see Table A3. and wages. contemporaries did not always agree about exchange rates. nearly all of which were melted down at the time of the Reformation around 1530. Wear and tear of the individual coins was no doubt also taken into account in transactions. p. The value of gold coins could fluctuate significantly. In 1369. at least up to the mid-15th century. for example. Compared to most European bimetallic ratios. High costs of information and transport may have contributed to a considerable disparity in exchange rates.77 Bimetallic ratios can be calculated for Sweden if the specie contents of mark penningar and foreign gold coins are known. who turned to piracy after he was deposed as king of the Nordic 77 78 79 80 Volckart (2007. does not necessarily refer to the original Florentine coin since florins were copied at many places in Europe.80 Bringing gold to Sweden. SDhk 9491.86 Exchange rates. One example is Eric XIII (Erik of Pomerania). This may reflect the confidence and status that were associated with the foreign coins. then. which could also have been affected by variability in the age and specie content of the coins. and Källström (1939). Rasmusson (1962. On one occasion in 1328. 158). 136d). However. Some years earlier. From Lödöse. 85 SDhk 27528. a place name meaning ‘western silver mountain’ (‘de monte argenti’ in a Latin document from 1367). by land could also be rather risky. and Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. The papal emissaries to Sweden faced these dangers when they had to transport and protect the large sums of money they collected in the form of taxes and contributions.83 After a robbery in the province of Västergötland about a century later. During this journey. I:1. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 87 countries in 1439. that had been collected as taxes in Sweden. Later. as well as other valuables. no. as well as other costly goods.84 The threat could come not only from robbers but also from the king himself. . the risk of ambush made the emissaries drive their horses so hard that the animals were injured and had to be sold at a substantial loss on their arrival at Lödöse. p.82 The emissaries had every reason to be cautious. where it was left on the advice of the bishop of Strängnäs. in 1318. Two of them were in the province of Dalecarlia (Dalarna). See also Hildebrand (1879. for an example of robbery of money in the forests between the provinces of Östergötland and Småland in the late 14th century. 32). he successfully raided many ships. p. There were plans to establish a mint there in 1375. a papal emissary asked two monks to bring a sum of silver from Skara in Västergötland to the monastery of Julita in the province of Södermanland. a clergyman reported to the pope that the money collected had to be taken out of the country in secret. he lost a ship off the province of Småland carrying a valuable cargo of gold and silver. p. 605–15). Baltic piracy was still a problem at the end of the Middle Ages. I:2. pp. the emissaries sent a monk. about 80 kilometres from Strängnäs.3. 564. p. One was Väster Silvberg. For a description of various periods of more or less intense piracy. Despite his escort. vol. In 1446. 84 Beckman (1954. 36). which may indicate a fairly substantial output of silver. see Hildebrand (1894. 82 Brilioth (1915. pp. In about 1460. 251). the emissaries and the bishop sent an escort of 40 horses to collect the money that had been left at Riseberga. the earliest reference to it is from 1354. The emissary instructed the monks to do this in secret and hide the silver in a bottle of beer. The treasure was further transported to the town of Lödöse on Sweden’s west coast.81 Transporting money. escorted by twelve armed horsemen. this 81 Vadstenadiariet (1996. he did not dare to take the money further than to the monastery of Riseberga in the province of Närke. the money was shipped to the Netherlands. to fetch a sizeable sum of money that had been deposited at the towns of Uppsala and Strängnäs. 157-159).85 Three silver mines seem to have been worked in medieval Sweden. vol. according to him. Based on a fortress on the island of Gotland. if the king learnt about the silver he would seize all of it. 83 Brilioth (1915. a sum of money collected by papal emissaries had been stolen from the cathedral of Växjö in the province of Småland when a band of robbers broke into the chests where the money was stored. no. p. In 1363 one gold florin was valued 0.75 marks örtug). Öster Silvberg (‘eastern silver mountain’). In 1489 the government stipulated that all the silver that was produced in the mines had to be sold to the master of the royal mint at the town of Västerås. pp. vol. prices. They were an important form of savings. was started in about 1480 and seems to have fallen into disuse around 1510. as well as status objects. but these rates do suggest a lower gold:silver ratio than in the first half of the 15th century. 89 Information on the gold content of the coins is found in Volckart (2006). These spoons could also be used as a means of payment. for peasants as well as for townspeople. The other Dalecarlian mine. 732 and 916). the exchange rates on gold coins indicate a declining trend over time in the bimetallic ratio in Sweden. pp. however. and Ekström (1948).88 Exchange rates. 113–4). pp. How is the gradual improvement in the position of silver over gold to be explained? Although Swedish silver coins continued to be debased. as their weight appears to have been rather standardized.9) in the late 15th and early 16th centuries are more problematic since it is not clear whether the mark in Götaland referred to mark örtug or mark danska (equal to 0.8) in the first half of the 15th century seems to imply a higher gold:silver ratio (at 1:12 to 1:14) than the average internationally. the Crown purchased silver at Silvberg for minting purposes. it is not surprising that gold was expensive relative to silver.89 Most of the few florin exchange rates available date from the years around 1330. As late as 1511.88 Taking into account the supply of specie in Sweden. which would imply a gold:silver value ratio of roughly 1:12 to 1:13.87 Silver spoons are often mentioned in late medieval documents. when a larger deposit was detected at Sala in the province of Västmanland. The stated reason for this measure was that the amount of coin in the country should increase and not be taken abroad. 718 and 732). whereas noble exchange rate quotations are most common in the period 1420–60. I:2. SDhk 36922. The exchange rate on nobles (see Table A3. The exchange rates on the Rhinish gulden (Table A3. over time each gram of silver in them tended to fetch increasing amounts of gold when exchanged against foreign coins. 1277–2008 mine fell into disuse long before the end of the Middle Ages. vol. Silver was probably not produced continuously at Silvberg. 87 Hildebrand (1894. then. and wages. There is a remarkable lack of data from about 1365 up to 1420. I:2. Even the goldsmiths were now obliged to buy their silver only from the master of the royal mint. 95).2 marks silver in Cologne weight. This could indicate that foreign gold coins played a minor role in the Swedish economy during this period. as had been the case up to now. The Rhinish gulden occurs most frequently during the decades around 1500. and have also been uncovered in archaeological investigations. 86 Hildebrand (1894. . most of which was characterized by demographic decline in the wake of the Black Death. Even so. and Myrdal and Söderberg (1991. 88 Franzén (1998.86 The Crown was always eager to control silver mining. 90 Another indication that gold became less scarce in Sweden is the frequency with which foreign gold coins are mentioned. They are mentioned more frequently in the period 1420–99 than during the preceding period 1340–1419. nobles. however. 112). produced by the National Archive of Sweden.103 Documents mentioning foreign gold coins 294 376 Documents mentioning ‘mark’ 3. Table 3. Danish marks etc.859 Foreign gold coins in per cent of ‘mark’ 9 20 1340–1419 1420–99 Source: SDhk. particularly compared to references to ‘mark’. 181). The role of foreign gold coins appears to have increased. We know. According to Table 3. which would have tended to alleviate the scarcity of gold. Number of documents (or summaries of documents) in which the most common foreign gold coins are mentioned compared to ‘mark’. however. Table 3. Note: The gold coins included are florins.1 thus informs us about the frequency with which the most common foreign gold coins (florins.1. The greater availability of gold coins could to some extent explain why the bimetallic ratio in Sweden changed in the favour of silver during the late medieval period.000 charters from the medieval era. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 89 It is possible that the supply of foreign gold coins in Sweden increased. either).1. pp. The smaller number of references to ‘mark’ may be due to the fact that in the SDhk database. many docu- 90 Franzén (1998. Not all references to ‘mark’ denote the Swedish mark. nobles. p.286 15. . and Rasmusson (1962. The right-hand column of Table 3. compared to other coins. 107. Period Total number of documents 15. that gold possessions in the form of rings or Rhinish gulden are often recorded in the towns of Stockholm and Arboga during the latter part of the 15th century and the early 16th. presently contains summaries of texts of about 41. in medieval documents. which became less frequent.1 summarizes some information on how often various types of coin are mentioned in this database (note. The digital database Svenskt Diplomatariums huvudkartotek (SDhk). and gulden) are mentioned compared to Swedish as well as other silver (or sometimes copper) coins. the number of documents referring to ‘mark’ decreased over time. that the possibility that some evidence in the charters is missing in the database cannot be ruled out). and gulden. This should not be taken as an indication of de-monetization in the 15th century (although that possibility cannot be excluded. This cannot be determined with any certainty.3.143 1. they could also indicate Lübeck marks. 91 The Hanseatic towns started to mint a coin of higher denomination. prices. This situation reflects the fact that the monetary system was not fully unified. In Götaland in the early 15th century. SDhk 18918. German. 3. A source from Småland in 1417 discusses a mark currency unit for which the following relation applied (1 mark = 8 öre):93 1 öre = 4 ‘gutnyska’ = 4 ‘ængliska’ = 3 ‘hwyte pænnia’ A similar relation is documented from other sources during the 1410s for the Götaland region. mark dansk. called hvid. a kind of monetary refeudalisation. and wages. mark stackota. different mark currency units were used concurrently in Sweden – mark gutnisk. this implies that one Swedish örtug was roughly equal in value to the Witten. mark stockholmsk.90 Exchange rates. There is some confusion as to what exactly some of these terms denoted. equal to 4 pfennings or 1/48 mark. Mark gutnisk and dansk during the 15th century During the 15th century. The relation: 1 Lübeck mark = 2 marks örtug is confirmed by written sources in 1349– 75. pp. Danish and Gotlandic coins dominated the circulation.92 Denmark followed the Wendish towns and minted Witten coins of its own. mark jämtsk. In Östergötland 1411 (Danmarks riges breve 310): 1 øre = 3 ‘hvide tyske penge’ = 4 ‘gotlandske penge’ = 4 ‘engelske’. 211–5). whereas documents prior to 1420 are often published in full. Partly due to the Kalmar Union. SDhk 17811. In Sweden.3 grams) and fineness as the German Witten. mark rigisk. the larger örtug coins were minted with the same weight (1. mark svensk. Since the örtug was equal to 1/24 mark örtug. In Östergötland 1415 (SDhk 18646): 1 ‘øre’ = 4 ‘ængliske’ = 3 ‘thyske hwite’ (the omission of Gotlandic coins shows that the öre referred to better coins in this case). In the second half of the 14th and the early 15th centuries the Nordic countries and the Wendish towns de facto formed a monetary system. mark östgötsk. It was not until the reign of Gustavus Vasa.94 The common application of the relation shows the dominance of for91 92 93 94 Lundholm (1956. Meanings often differed even within the same period. that the monetary systems of Götaland. named Witten. and the end of the Kalmar Union. where attempts were made to fix the exchange rates between different coins.7. and that significant regional differences persisted. . Danish and Gotlandic coins circulated widely in Götaland. The German Witten coin could also be referred to as German örtug. Finland developed its own counting system. Moreover. Svealand and Finland were unified once more. 1277–2008 ments after 1420 are available only as short summaries omitting details of payment. etc. In Småland 1412 (SDhk 17811): 1 ‘øre’ = 3 ‘thydiska ørtogher’ = 4 ‘siælenske ængliske’ = 4 ‘gotniske’. Gotland adopted the mone95 KHL. equal to 1/64 of a Danish mark or one English sterling. The Danish engelsk (sterling) minted in the late 14th and early 15th centuries had a fine silver content of 0. Source: http://en. The fine silver content of one mark gutnisk. 96 Nordström (1850. The gote was originally a Gotlandic örtug. was 50–55 grams in the late 14th century. implying that a Danish mark engelsk had the fine silver content of 42 grams (1 Danish mark engelsk = 16 skilling = 64 engelsk). Yrjö Hyötyniemi argues convincingly that the relation 1 mark = 8 öre = 32 gotar was not a part of the Gotlandic monetary system. although the German coins may have been undervalued.3. . equal to 32 gutar. In comparison. equal to 48 Witten. This relation was consistent with the fine silver contents of the various coins.wikipedia. was around 22 grams in 1340–1400. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 91 Lübeck in the late middle ages. The ‘hwyte pænnia’ (white penny) referred to the German (and to a lesser extent the Danish) Witten coin. ‘engelsk’ and ‘hvid’. at times during the first half of the 14th century. but was initially the counting of one Swedish mark in Gotlandic coins. was 25 grams in the 14th century and 21 grams after 1405. where 1 mark was equal to 24 gotar. 129). pp. and one gote to 12 Gotlandic pennies. given the silver contents of the Danish engelsk and the Swedish örtug. with the nominal value of 4 penning or 1/48 of a Lübeck (or Danish) mark. equal to one Swedish mark örtug. In the second half of the 14th century the Nordic countries and the Wendish towns formed a monetary system with fixed exchange rates between various coins. The ‘ænglisk’ (engelsk) mostly referred to the Danish 3-penny coin. The fine silver content of the mark of Lübeck.96 The relation 4 engelsk for 1 öre. or to half a Lübeck or a Danish mark.org/wiki/File:Lubeka_kolorowa_litografia_ksi%C4%85%C5%BCkowa_ XIVw.66 grams. the fine silver content of 24 Swedish örtug. 38 and 57).jpg eign coins in this region at the time. half a Danish mark in engelsk for one Swedish mark. but was reduced significantly during the course of the 15th century. However. and Thordeman (1936. p.95 In 1401 it was reduced to 46 grams and in 1411 to 40 grams. Thus the relation states that one mark örtug was equal in value to 32 gotar or gutniska. would be reasonable. which was equal to the mark of Lübeck. 9). Gotlandic coins seem to have deteriorated significantly compared to the Swedish. 1 Swedish mark was valued at 1.1 marks of Lübeck (see Table A3. p. 99 Hyötyniemi (2000. the Gotlandic mark continued to exist as a local custom. in 1389 1 Swedish mark was valued at 1. 212). Although in 1405 the Gotlandic and Swedish marks were set equal in value. Other Danish coins were not as good as the sterling coins. The counting of 1 mark = 32 gotar was only possible because 1 Swedish mark was fixed at ½ mark of Lübeck. prices.97 Hyötyniemi’s hypothesis is supported by a source from 1343 stating that one Gotlandic silver mark was worth 30 groats of Flanders. the Gotlandic silver mark was set equal to 32 öre. from 20–21 grams in the first half of the century to 17–19 grams in the second half. but according to Hyötyniemi this was not a Gotlandic but a mainland Swedish mark. p. It was not until the 1420s that this mark was labelled mark gutnisk. in 1386 the Danish mark was valued at only 0. 47). p. 213). In 1402. 100 Lundholm (1956.625 marks of Lübeck and in 1406 at 0. For example. In 1453. where 1 gote was set equal to 3 pennies of Lübeck. 1 mark of Lübeck was worth 4 marks gutnisk/tysk and 2 Danish marks.9–1. 101 Forssell (1872. 39). 1277–2008 tary system of Lübeck. the latter was initially called ‘tysk mark’ (German mark).2). Table A3. When a differentiation occurred between the Swedish mark and the mark of 32 gutar. The Gotlandic mark was replaced by the silver mark of Gotland. . it was reduced to 28 grams in 1424. One Gotlandic mark silver was initially set equal to 64 gotar or 768 Gotlandic pennies or 2⅔ of the traditional Gotlandic mark. According to Hyötyniemi .100 Since the 1 mark örtug was worth 2 or more marks gutnisk/tysk.98 It was probably the old gotar with a higher fine silver content that was still valued at 6 penning (Swedish pennies) or 3 pennies of Lübeck in the early 15th century. and Lundholm (1956.4 also shows that the exchange 97 Hyötyniemi (1999). and wages.101 The mark örtug was quite stable throughout the 15th century. By the late 14th century. to 25 grams in 1433 and to 20 grams in 1461. which in the international markets was paid 0. which according to Hyötyniemi shows the connection to the Hansaetic monetary system.2).99 By 1413. and was reduced only slightly. p. the fine silver content of the mark of Lübeck more than halved. During the course of the 15th century. 98 Hyötyniemi (1999. the fixed relations between various Nordic and German coins could no long be maintained. but counted in Gotlandic coins.75 marks of Lübeck. p.92 Exchange rates. implying (given that the öre was equal to 3 gotar in accordance with the traditional Gotlandic system) that the gote was valued at only 2 pennies of Lübeck. Around 1410.5 tyska marks (see Table A3. this implies that by the 1420s the Danish mark was of an equal or even lower value than the Swedish mark. By 1424. one Swedish öre was set equal to 8 ‘old’ and 12 ‘new’ Danish engelsk.2 Gotlandic marks. 75 marks gutnisk. p. the difference between the two marks would explain why the öre östgötsk was equal to 3 gotar. in Svealand the premium on örtug-coins relative to Gotlandic allowed them to dominate circulation. Although the relation 1 öre gutnisk = 4 gotar is the best known. there was a gradual shift towards counting in mark danska. when Denmark regained control. 47–9). According to Dovring. and öre stackota the same as öre gutnisk.102 However.103 which was between 1/10 and 1/3 of the mark in Swedish örtugs. mark stackota was the same as mark gutnisk. 13). while all other transactions were to be made in Gotlandic coins of lower value. While one mark örtug was worth around 2 mark gutnisk in the period 1420–34. pp.5 grams. During the first half of the 15th century a split occurred between counting in mark gutnisk in Götaland and in mark örtug in Svealand.104 This is clearly visible in the exchange rates of mark gutnisk in Table A3. See Hyötyniemi (2002). . During the second half of the century. The force of Gresham’s Law is indicated by the Växjö Statute of 1414. manslaughter and wounds must be paid in the better Swedish mainland coins. According to Paul Sjögren. 103 Thordeman (1936.107 Hildebrand shows that one source uses mark stackota and mark gunniska as 102 Hallenberg (1798. while mark kalmarsk was the same as mark gutnisk. 57). 106 Dovring (1947. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 93 rate of mark of Lübeck decreased from 2 marks örtug in the late 14th century to just 1 mark örtug in the second half of the 15th century. it increased to 4 or more in the 1440s. and then disappeared as such.2. and Hyötyniemi (2000. p. Eric XIII fled to Gotland in 1436 and ruled the island up to 1449.106 According to Hyötyniemi. while one öre gutnisk was equal to 4 gotar.2 and 6. the mark stackota was the traditional Gotlandic mark. and mark östgötsk and mark västgötsk were only other names for this currency unit. The problem with Dovring’s and Hyötyniemi’s argument is that there are also sources which confirm that 1 öre gutnisk was set equal to 3 gutar. mark gutnisk and mark danska first became pure units of account of Swedish coins. 195–7). equal to 24 Gotlandic örtug.105 Dovring and Hyötyniemi argue against this. which decreed that fines connected to honour. although this unit came to be linked to the Stockholm mark. when Gotland introduced the Danish monetary system. During the course of the 1410s the debased Gotlandic coins drove out the better Swedish örtug as well as the Danish engelsk and German Witten coins from circulation in Götaland. 107 SDhk 24756 (year 1445) and 26053 (year 1452). In the first half of the 16th century. pp. 105 Sjögren (1944. the fine silver content of the mark gutnisk was reduced significantly. the relation 1 öre = 3 gotar can also be documented for the 1440s and 1450s. to between 2. 104 The debasement could have been implemented some years before Eric came to Gotland. During the uprisings in Sweden and Norway. 349). p.3. During his reign in Gotland. claiming that 1 mark stackota = 0. Counting 4 gotniska to one öre 108 Hildebrand (1894. it is clear that mark gutnisk was used as a term for both. Some details in the painting are incorrect. probably due to long-term structural factors rather than to the Danish invasion. Gotland had previously been part of the Swedish kingdom. 942). The townspeople were required to fill three large barrels with gold. the island suffered an economic decline in the late Middle Ages. synonyms. This implies that the grossa was valued at twice as much as the gotniska. 1277–2008 Valdemar Atterdag Holding Visby to Ransom. 1361. the man on the right appears to be Jewish.94 Exchange rates.109 After this period the gote is commonly referred to as ‘grossus’. In the Swedish mint regulation of 1453. For example. vol. prices.108 If there was a difference between the mark of 32 gotar and the mark stackota of 24 gotar. . 110 Liedgren (1967. signed in 1882 by Carl Gustaf Hellqvist (1851–90).110 the last probably referring to a Gotlandic coin as well. I:2. The dachshund is another anachronism since the first dachshunds were bred in the 16th century. Hyötyniemi shows that better coins were minted towards the end of Eric XIII’s rule in Gotland. and wages. but there were no Jews at that time in Visby. p. p. 1444–8. Source: Nationalmuseum. silver and other valuables. 15). The Danish king Valdemar IV (Valdemar Atterdag) is depicted collecting taxes from the inhabitants of Visby on the island of Gotland in 1361. 109 Hyötyniemi (2002). a Swedish history painter. where the latter was worth ¾ of the former. Another possibility for the counting in 3 and 4 gutar per öre gutnisk is that gutar of different values circulated so that the better-valued gutar appreciated. one örtug was set equal to 8 ‘old and new’ gotniska or 4 grossa. 113 During the 1540s. 195–6). i. Although such a low exchange rate for the mark gutnisk is not known from other sources. one mark danska was equal to 144 Swedish penning. neither was the payment made in Danish skilling (i.114 Majvor Östergren and Kenneth Jonsson (1998) point out that although a transformation into a Danish monetary system is considered to have taken place in Gotland after the mid-15th century.e. Here. pp. Since one Danish mark was 16 skilling or 48 hvid.e.111 To make matters even more confusing. which in turn was equal to 1¼ marks örtug. it would imply that one mark gutnisk would be set equal to ¼ mark örtug. where the gote was replaced by the hvid (= 4 penning = 1/16 skilling = 1/48 mark). 113 Dovring (1947. there was no Swedish skilling. Götaland used mark danska as a unit of account. which gradually replaced mark gutnisk. not to actual Danish coins. Accounts were sometimes specified in mark örtug. in 1545 one mark in Danish coins was exchanged for 1⅔ marks danska in Swedish coins. 112 Hallenberg (1798. either mark örtug (mostly in Svealand) or mark dansk in Swedish coins (mostly in Götaland). which was equal to ¾ of the mark örtug. pp. . Although the relation 1 svensk mark = 3 mark gutnisk was quite common in the second half of the 15th century. 84 and 155). 169 and 302–7). equal to 1/3 mark danska or ¼ mark örtug. one ‘skilling svenska pengar’ was not necessarily equal to one skilling in actual Danish coins).112 The term ‘mark stockholmsk’ was also commonly used instead of mark örtug. the mark svensk probably referred to the mark dansk. Counting 3 grossa to one öre gutnisk.3. In 1453. the term ‘mark svensk’ could have two different meanings. without indicating that mark örtug was converted into mark danska. 35–6). It is not entirely clear whether such a unit of account already existed in the 15th century. During this transitional period the terms ‘skillingar svenska penningar’ (shillings Swedish pennies) and ‘mark danska i svenskt mynt’ (Danish marks in Swedish coins) were common. the official value of the Danish hvid was set to 3 Swedish penning. pp. which during the second half of the 15th century in Götaland developed into a unit of account also for Swedish coins. one mark danska was set to 6 Swedish öre or ¾ mark örtug. It was purely an accounting system based on Swedish coins. it is possible that the mint regulation attempted to set a value below the actual market rate. counting in mark danska and gutniska was gradually replaced by the Swedish system. For example. and no longer referred to actual Gotlandic coins. but the total sum could be written in mark danska. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 95 gutnisk. Both systems could be used in the same transaction. 114 Hallenberg (1798. the old gutar continued to dominate the circulation of 111 Hallenberg (1798. From the mid-15th to the mid-16th centuries. Later this became an account identity linked to the Swedish money. Hallenberg shows that mark gutnisk was a unit of account in the 1530s. it would imply that one mark örtug would be set equal to 6 mark gutniska in the lower-valued coins. pp. 1277–2008 the island during the second half of the 15th century. p.5–11 grams in 1455–80. the term ‘mark gutnisk’ referred to different types of currency. in Götaland. p. 197). the coins are referred to as ‘gutniska vita’.4 mark gutniska for 1 mark örtug is mentioned in 1480. The counting in this silver mark. but possibly also earlier. artig coins of Riga and Reval were more common than Swedish coins during the 15th century. 197). While 1 mark silver was worth 7 marks gutniska in 1312. the Livonian artig was minted at the same value as the Gotlandic örtug (gote). continued even though the silver content of the artig deteriorated. Riga decided to mint its currency at the same exchange rate with the mark silver as in Gotland.5 marks örtug.2 shows that one mark lödig was. The fixed relation between mark rigisk and mark gutnisk was broken in the early 14th century. to 5. still calls for further research. As early as in 1211. One reason for this was probably that the minted amount of hvids was quite small in relation to the gutar minted before the mid-15th century.2 and Table A3. Hyötyniemi argues that it was in this period that 1 mark silver of Riga was set equal to 6 old marks rigisk or 144 artig of Riga (since 1 old mark rigisk = 24 artig). Table A3. 116 See. p. SDhk 23731. and Hallenberg (1798. 118 Myrberg (2008.118 In Finland. In 1343. with a few exceptions.1 grams in 1510 and 4. Dovring (1947. 17). which had been conquered by Sweden. and were called revalsk or räflisk [örtug].8. Exactly how the term mark gutnisk was used in the 15th century.9 grams in 1480–1500.117 The fine silver content in 1480–1510 would roughly entail an exchange rate of 30–35 marks gutniska for one mark silver. also called mark rigisk. When the exchange rate of 1. prices.96 Exchange rates. p.5–5. This corresponds quite well to the estimated exchange rate for 1513 in Table A3. valued consistently at 30-40 marks gutnisk in the whole period 1445– 1513. it was worth 6 marks rigiska in 1315–16 (see Table A3. and wages.115 while in the 1430s and 1440s the term ‘svarta gutniska’ was used.5). mark gutnisk could still refer to actual Gotlandic coins. Mark rigisk and revalsk During the Middle Ages.2. from 9.116 The fine silver content of the Gotlandic mark in hvids (1 mark = 48 hvids) deteriorated. the Livonian currency (mark of Riga and Reval) was strongly integrated with the Nordic and Hanseatic monetary system. The example from 1513 shows that.9 grams around 1530. 3. which shows that mark gutnisk in 1513 most likely referred to Gotlandic hvids minted in 1480–1510. and whether it differed from the term mark stackota. 88). for example. where one mark gutnisk is probably valued at 2–2. 117 KHL. Hence it is clear that especially after the mid-15th century. 5–6. ‘hvid’. . which in turn had the same value as 3 pennies or 1/4 schilling of 115 Dovring (1947. were also used in Götaland (‘Gothia’).119 The mark silver of Riga was. at par with 36 schilling or 2¼ marks of Lübeck. In Åbo in Finland (to the right of ‘Alandia’). örtug coins were also minted at Åbo120). During the 15th century Finland counted the Swedish mark in coins of Livonia.5). no separate mark currency unit developed at that time in Finland comparable to the mark gutnisk in Götaland. Since the Livonian coins that circulated in Finland were of a different fine silver content. coins of Riga and ‘Rivalia’ (present-day Tallinn in Estonia). upper left. visible to the right. in 1414. mostly varying from 4 to 6 Swedish pennies (see Table A3. minted coins according to the standard of Gotland in the 13th century. The Åbo mark was not a variant of mark rigisk. Lübeck. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 97 Parts of the Baltic Sea according to Carta Marina. 120 Thordeman (1936. ‘Holmia’. The currency of the Swedish realm was sometimes denominated as ‘mark stockholmsk’ or ‘mark holmsk’. lower left. 39). implying that 1 artig of Riga or revalsk was at par with 6 Swedish pennies (penningar) in the second half of the 14th century. were circulating in the 15th century. Since there was no fixed relation between öre and revalsk. Riga (capital of present-day Latvia) in Livonia. is present-day Stockholm. created by Olaus Magnus (1490–1557). the artig coins were valued differently. p. but the Swedish mark counted in coins of Riga (however. 5 revalska was set equal to 23 penning (23/24 öre) of the Åbo mark. therefore. For example. . lower right. The coins of Gotland (‘Gotlandia’). 119 Hyötyniemi (1999). Similarly. in Viborg one öre was set equal to 4 revalsk in 1415.3. ‘mark’. Norway stopped minting its own coins after the late 14th century. 233). when 1 mark jämtsk = 1 13/35 (≈ 1. However.37) Swedish marks. prices.98 Exchange rates. which allowed them to stay in circulation. 3. although it is not clear whether it was the same as the mark jämtsk. 484-486). 1277–2008 In the 1420s a third mark rigisk came in use. . 1 mark silver ≈ 6 marks jämtsk at the time. 122 SDhk 5259 and 36939.e. The only known exchange rate is from 1437.124 How the term mark jämtsk came to be used is not clear. which was set equal to 36 old artig (new schilling) or revalska (i. Mark jämtsk and härdalsk Jämtland and Härjedalen belonged to Norway in the Middle Ages but had close contacts with Sweden (for example. 124 KHL. 269).121 3.10. Jämtland was then part of the episcopate of Uppsala). pp.e. This was an adjustment to the Swedish mark penningar. instead of 4 marks penningar hitherto. better coins often tended to be withdrawn from circulation (in accordance with Gresham’s Law). but it could have to do with the monetary union between Sweden and Norway in the 1340s and 1350s. The term ‘mark härdalska’ is also mentioned. 125 Rasmusson (1943. This happened with the older örtug coins in the late 15th 121 Hallenberg (1798. which is the same rate as for mark jämtsk in 1437.122 The same source often mentions both mark jämtsk and mark svensk. and wages. Parallel örtug units The continual reduction of the fine silver content of coins implied that coins of the same nominal value could contain different amounts of silver. As late as the 1530s and 1540s the mark rigisk was used as a counting unit in Finland. no definite conclusions should be drawn. i. 1 mark silver of Riga = 4 new marks of Riga). while 1 mark of Riga was equal to 36 skilling. p. The Swedish mark was counted as 32 skilling of Riga. they were often at a premium relative to inferior coins. which shows that two different currency units were used.125 It is possible that the mark jämtsk was based on the Norwegian currency from the 14th century (or the better currencies of Denmark in the early 15th century). While the older.123 Neither Jämtland nor Härjedalen minted their own coins. where 1 mark rigisk = 9 Swedish öre.9. In 1340 Norway started to mint coins with the value of 5 marks penningar to one mark silver. p. which put the mark rigisk roughly equal to the mark örtug. 123 Ahnlund (1948. The term ‘mark jämtsk’ is documented earliest in 1346 and was used at least up to the early 16th century. In the second half of that century the mark lödig was worth 6 Norwegian marks. after the fine silver content of the new örtug coins was reduced from 1478 onwards. Thereafter one minted örtug was equal to ½ öre. The coin contained 0. 51). one gammal örtug was equal to ¾ öre (i. O:1.127 Thordeman points out that gammal örtug functioned as a stable currency unit in this period. From the late 1520s onwards.131 3. 44–7). In a letter dated 1510 to the Archbishop. 63.125 new örtug. pp. 129 Hallenberg (1798. Hence. one mark dansk was also divisible into 24 örtug. i. reached in the late 1510s). RA. p. the fine silver content of öre was reduced. and the örtug units of Götaland and Svealand differed in value. when one mark = 24 örtug. which was less than a third of the örtug minted before 1478. 22–5). which became different from the minted örtug. Furthermore. gammal örtug became a unit of account equal to ¾ öre.3. He proposed that the nominal value of the old örtug 126 Sandbergska samlingen.27 grams fine silver. 175 and 189–99). The örtug minted before 1478 was called ‘gammal örtug’ (old örtug) and its successor was called ‘ny örtug’ (new örtug). In 1523. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 99 century.128 Although Rhinish gulden and mark lödig also functioned as stable units during monetary instability. This was the last time örtug coins were minted in Sweden. In 1481. After 1523. pp. before 1550 one öre was equal to 3 örtug in Svealand but to 4 örtug in Götaland.11. and no longer referred to the old örtug-coins minted before 1478. 1 gammal örtug = 9 penning = 1.130 The örtug continued to exist during the 16th century as a unit of account. gammal örtug could be more convenient to use since it was of a lower value. pp. 146). when ‘klipping’ coins were brought into circulation. 130 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968.e. 18 penning according to the highest exchange rate. The debasement cycle in the first quarter of the 16th century During the first two decades of the 16th century. 1 gammal örtug stood at 10 penning. . while the nominal value of the örtug was supposed to be equal to 8 penning. similarly to the role of the daler/riksdaler after 1534. p.e. 12 penning. pp. The exchange ratio of mark lödig to mark penningar rose from 1:10 in 1499 to 1:13 in the first decade of the 16th century and to 1:16 in the late 1510s. a substantial debasement of the circulated coins led to inflation.126 In 1493–1509. f. The minted örtug was later called ‘halvöre’ (half öre). 127 Forssell (1982. 189–99). in the early 1510s at 12 penning and in the late 1510s at 16–18 penning. 131 Hallenberg (1798. 128 Thordeman (1936. and Wallroth (1918. This reached a high in the early 1520s. the Swedish Regent Svante Nilsson complained about the monetary disturbances.129 In 1589–90 a gammal örtug was minted with the value of ¾ öre (in proper coins). to finance the war against the Danish king.132 Figure 3. . Both Christian II and Gustavus Vasa minted klipping coins with a very low silver content compared to their face value. and Wallroth (1918). The minting of large amounts of debased klipping coins. p. prices. the new örtug from 8 to 10 penning. 1523. In this way the better coins would not be driven out of circulation and exported. (minted before 1478. 90). 132 SDhk 36678. see above) would be increased from 10 to 12 penning. p. representative of the Arts and Crafts Movement.2 also shows that there was a negative seignorage on (the heavier) silver coins at this time.100 Exchange rates. What caused the monetary disarray was the minting of coins of lower denominations which contained significantly less fine silver per mark than the örtug coins.133 In 1521–3 Gustavus Vasa led a rebellion against the Danish King Christian II. 133 Thordeman (1936. 130). See also Hammarström (1956. who also ruled over the Swedish territories. 43). painted in 1908 by Carl Larsson (1853-1919). as had occurred hitherto (in accordance with Gresham’s Law). and fyrkar (half-örtug) from 4 to 5 penning. caused substantial inflation in 1523. p. 1277–2008 The Entry of King Gustav Vasa of Sweden into Stockholm. After 1512 the minting of örtug coins ceased for the rest of the decade. Malmer (1980. The örtug coins minted in the early 16th century had a fine silver content that was only slightly lower than that of the coins minted in the late 15th century. and wages. Source: Nationalmuseum. Seignorage As long as the face value of a coin exceeded the cost of producing it. Klipping coins were minted on several occasions during the 16th and 17th centuries. 51). The face value of the klipping coin minted by Gustavus Vasa was 18 penning (the contemporary market value of the gammal örtug). p. p. respectively. Another mode of calculation consists in relating the market value of the mark penning. but were imported in huge volumes. according to Wallroth (1918. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 101 which led to price increases when goods were paid for in klipping coins.e. Shortly afterwards the klipping coins were demonetised. 130–1). According to Thordeman (1936. i. commonly labelled seignorage. pp. p. 135 ‘Myntz och Sölfwers Werdering’.382 grams. 140 Redish (2000. The rate between mark lödig and mark penningar stabilised at 1:16 to 1:20 in 1523–35.135 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös write that today the klipping of Gustavus Vasa is very rare compared to the klipping of Christian II. The fine silver content of one klipping coin with the nominal value of 18 penning was. 138 Hallenberg (1798. to 12 penning. vol.12. many klipping coins probably had a lower silver content. 136 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968. 139 In the latter part of the 1520s. 27). 14). ‘klipping’. An example may clarify the procedure. information on the actual mint price is very scarce.140 Furthermore. 245). Misc. in reality.3. See Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (1929–40. which caused an inflow of Danish klippings to Sweden138 (later the latter were also decreed to be invalid139). While the rate between mark lödig and mark penningar was 1:16 in 1514–20. 137 KHL. 26 Myntväsen. 0. the ruler made a profit. See also KHL.4456 grams and 0. 88–9). to the metallic silver content of the coins representing one mark. There are indications that already in April 1524 the klipping coins were only worth their metal content.137 Another problem arose briefly when the Danish klippings were decreed to be invalid in Denmark but continued to be valid as means of payment in Sweden.134 The klipping coins of Christian II were not minted in Sweden. One theory is that Gustavus Vasa simply replicated the klipping of Christian II on a large scale. 3. the market rate between mark lödig and mark klippingar was according to one source as high as 1:50. Information on the specie content of the 134 The term ‘klipping’ was used because the coins were clipped directly in a square shape to save time. 4. ‘klipping’. Gross seignorage includes these costs of production. p. Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar. Too little is known about the cost of producing silver coins to establish any tendencies over time. and in this way could blame him for the problems with inferior coins. expressed as the exchange rate against the silver mark. 4 marks in Danish klipping coins were worth 1 Swedish mark in new coins. . pp.136 At a meeting in Vadstena on 1st January 1524 it was decided that the klipping coin would be devalued by 1/3. The market value of mark penningar in grams of silver. 1277–2008 Figure 3. and wages. coins is based on numismatic studies. it would have paid to buy silver marks at the going exchange rate and strike them into new coins – but minting was the sole and carefully guarded privilege of the regent.7 grams. combined with her assumptions regarding wear and tear. given the cost of minting and the ruler’s profit on minting.5 141 Thordeman (1936). Malmer’s estimated silver weights. on the other hand. The value of the mark penningar in grams of silver was then 194/8 = 24.2 grams. the measured silver weight of mark penningar was 20. tend to give unrealistically high silver values of the penning. This is expected. Thordeman (1936) and Wallroth (1918). Disregarding the cost of minting.7 grams). prices. The gross seignorage rate (in per cent) 1277–1539 based on the market value of mark silver in mark penningar and the fine silver content of the coins representing one mark. The market value of the minted coin thus exceeded its specie content. In this case.1. is the ratio between the fine silver content of the mark lödig (194 grams in 1425 according to Table A3. so the rate was 8). % 100 90 80 70 60 50 40 30 20 10 0 -10 -20 -30 1260 1280 1300 1320 1340 1360 1380 1400 1420 1440 1460 1480 1500 1520 1540 Sources: Table A3. and Malmer (1980). Malmer (1980). . the excess amount of silver was 3. for instance.141 In 1425.2 grams) less the metallic silver content of the coins representing one mark (20.1) and the market rate of exchange between the silver mark and the mark penning (in 1425 it took 8 mark penningar to buy one silver mark. Seignorage rate.2. The gross seignorage can now be calculated as the market value of mark penningar (24.102 Exchange rates. in our example (24. This could be due to several factors. which is counter-intuitive and implies that the ruler minted coin with too high a silver content.7 grams). i. The inflation coins of the 1350s and 1360s temporarily increased the seignorage rate. but these plans were only partly realized. which was used to buy Swedish coin.e. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 103 grams (24. in the early 1360s King Albert. the long demographic decline after the Black Death. vol. He mentioned in particular the Gotlandic [gutnisk] coin. or rather that the market did not appraise the coin at its full specie content. which seems reasonable. Second. Initially the gross seignorage rate was close to zero per cent. coins circulated in accordance with their fine silver content. pp. up to about 1500. The gross seignorage rate is estimated as the ratio of gross seignorage to the metallic silver content of the coins representing one mark. In 1453.143 142 Hildebrand (1894. 831–6). Coins of this type were in general use in the Hanseatic towns of northern Germany. At the same time. people may successively have learnt more about the true specie content of the coins and become more aware of the ongoing debasement.142 The high level of seignorage during this period suggests that. 143 Liedgren (1967. 850). which for several years stood at 1:6. Figure 3.3. and Hildebrand (1894.2 shows that our measure of the seignorage rate fluctuated in the period 1277–1350.2 less 20. I:2. leading to the use of bad foreign coin. The broad trend over time is that the seignorage rate decreased during the late Middle Ages. coming from Mecklenburg in Germany. The King aimed to expand domestic minting. should have served to reduce demand for money. what was perceived as a general scarcity of silver and silver coin probably tended to counteract the long-term decline in the seignorage rate. The results for this period should be regarded with scepticism until further numismatic studies have been carried out. I:2. There were times when gross seignorage was negative. Thus. later called the örtug (1 örtug = 8 penning or 1/3 öre). introduced a new type of coin.7)/20. our measure of the seignorage rate is always positive after the mid-1360s. Although Albert’s reign was characterized by war and civil conflict in Sweden. King Karl Knutsson complained of a shortage of domestic currency in the country.2 less 20. the Witten. the inferior coin introduced in the early 15th century by King Erik of Pomerania during a period of financial disorder quickly resulted in a deteriorating seignorage rate. the introduction of new and better coins was appreciated by the people. p. Conversely. As mentioned above. 14).7 = 17 per cent. besides being profitable for the ruler. . the small amount that was minted in Stockholm was taken away and melted down. continuing well into the 15th century. With the exception of a few years around 1500. After the mid-14th century the curve looks quite different. vol. First. there was remarkable monetary stability as measured by the exchange rate between mark silver and mark penning. according to the King. p. p. Gresham’s law seems to have been at work. much of it confiscated from churches and monasteries. 147 Liedgren (1967. King Gustavus Vasa arranged for large amounts of silver. Great hopes were placed on increasing output from the silver mine at Sala in the province of Västmanland. vol. A 1497 contract between King Hans and the master of the Mint stipulated that the King would receive one gulden for each gold mark and 0. 133). One consequence of this probably 144 Vadstenadiariet (1996. 719. and wages. Exports of silver and coin were prohibited by the Government in 1474 and again by the Chancellor in 1486. no. otherwise the mint master was not to be paid for making these coins.146 The melting down of domestic coin was banned in 1478. apart from the fact that the market value of mark penningar usually exceeded the metallic silver content. p. there is no record of a substantial increase in silver production at Sala until about 1530. to be shipped to Lübeck in order to pay his war debt. However. and SDhk 33742 (April 3. . arguing that the domestic coin must be improved. 1510). I:2.148 As mentioned above. A negative profit from minting implies that there is a positive profit on turning coins into bullion. 1499). it was apparently still profitable to take these coins out of the country to have them melted down. observed that silver coin was being taken out of the country. 276 and 305). 30 and 76).147 Yet the problem remained. vol. according to which debased coin will replace coin with a higher specie content. 151 Hildebrand (1894.150 There were other ways by which the ruler could profit from minting. 145 Källström (1939. pp. 149 SDhk 36678 (Västerås 16 February. prices. Svante Nilsson. I:2. 917-918). and 1499. pp. 146 1474: Hildebrand (1894. Despite the fact that mark penningar were successively debased. in order to pay for his purchase of Holstein. The King agreed to deliver the necessary gold and silver and to pay for the metal that was lost in the melting process. The master of the Mint was also obliged to mint 20 gold marks and 20 silver marks for the King every year. 1277–2008 Sometimes the rulers were active in taking specie out of the country. This is indicated by the fact that the ban on silver exports was repeated in 1493. in 1510 the ruler. 407–9). 16).151 The reign of Gustavus Vasa was characterized by a strengthening of both central state power and the monarch’s personal power. which was started in about 1509. and at the same time restrictions were placed on bringing Danish coin into Sweden. 148 Hildebrand (1894. I:2. 925). 150 Hammarström (1956. pp. and Hammarström (1956. vol. 1498. 302–4). pp. 917.104 Exchange rates. pp.2 also shows that the gross seignorage rate was significantly negative at the time.149 Figure 3.144 In the 1520s. p. King Christian I reportedly took large sums of silver and gold (in the form of English nobles) with him when he left the country in 1461.5 marks for each Cologne mark in silver (worth 10/9 of the Swedish mark) that was minted.145 The scarcity of silver continued throughout the medieval era. The 1486 prohibition: Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (p. This profit probably increased further in the 1530s.625 marks.153 The mint master was to keep the difference. .2 appears to be modest in the late 1520s.152 At this time one mark of pure silver was minted into 24 marks penning. In addition. In 1536. 22 marks were minted from each silver mark. 153 Forssell (1872. This was also the case in the following year. At the same time. p. the Crown raised the taxes on silver production and in reality paid only 5 marks penningar for each silver mark delivered from the Salberget mine. 3. various foreign gold coins circulated at a floating rate. The foregoing discussion has aimed to clarify some essential features in a way that may facilitate further study of medieval Swedish economic history by international researchers. Still. 1529. According to the contract with the King. 152 Hildebrand (1894. this example reminds us that there were other ways in which the King could profit from minting.3. which in turn is necessary for international comparisons. he complained at that time that silver had become so expensive that he had no ‘profit’ from it anymore. Part of the complexity of the monetary system is due to the lack of a country-wide monetary standard for most of the medieval era. was complex. it should be possible to use many nominal price quotations expressed in currencies other than mark penning. which was also meant to cover the cost of minting.1.375 marks. based on around 800 observations. as his payment. 917). The exchange rate series in Table A3.154 The beginning of the early modern era in Sweden thus produced a very handsome seignorage to the ruler. p. When the King purchased silver for the mint in the beginning of 1529. 312). I:2. is arguably one of the longest and most reliable economic series that can be produced for the Swedish medieval era. 54). Several currencies existed alongside mark penning.13. Even though the seignorage in Figure 3. Using these. The exchange rates between these various currencies and mark penning (or the silver mark) are sometimes not known at all. Concluding remarks The medieval system of payments in Sweden. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 105 was that minting became more profitable for the King. The King of course had to pay for transports and other costs. when we have some information as to the remuneration of the mint master. 1530. we have tried to summarize the available information in several tables. the mint master would strike one mark of pure silver into 24 marks penningar and the King would receive 19. For instance. the presentation of the exchange rate between the silver mark and mark penningar provides information that is indispensable to anyone who wishes to convert nominal Swedish prices into silver prices. 4. vol. As long as these prices applied. he paid 16 marks for one silver mark in the mining district. for instance. as described above. minting should have given the King a handsome profit. 154 Hammarström (1956. p. He made an agreement with the silver miners that the price would be reduced to 12 marks by August. 78 3.90 3.90 3.56 4.00 3.90 3.90 3.106 Exchange rates. Year Fineness of silver mark.78 3.90 3.90 3.78 3.938 0.90 3.938 0.90 3.938 0. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams.90 3.78 3. A particularly valuable resource is the ongoing construction of Svenskt Diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven (SDhk).2 52. likely mean Exchange rate.2 52.56 4.00 3.938 0.78 3.00 3.2 52.6 50.90 3. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark.938 0.6 50.90 3.938 0.938 0.56 4.90 3.938 0.90 3.90 3.00   3.78 3.6 50. Appendix A3: Summary tables Table A3.90 3.78 3.00           3.938 0. This publicly available database provides almost endless possibilities of studying many economic (as well as non-economic) phenomena over time and space.90 3.6 50.6 50.00     4.78 3.1.6 50.90 3.938 0. especially from the period after 1420.00     . grams Exchange rate.938 0.78 3.00             3.938 0.938 0.90 3.6 50.938 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 3.90 3.938 0.90 3.6 50.56 4.2 52.6 50.78 3.90 3.6 50.938 0.938 0.6 50.6 50. based on exchange rate 52.938 0.938 0.90 3.938 0.56 4. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.6 50. lowest recorded Exchange rate.00 3.78 3.80*             3.6 50.00   4.938 0.78 3.6 1277 1278 1279 1280 1281 1282 1283 1284 1285 1286 1287 1288 1289 1290 1291 1292 1293 1294 1295 1296 1297 1298 1299 1300 0.6 50.90 3.78 3.90 3.938 0.90 3.00 3.90 3.938 0.00 3. likely median Exchange rate.2 52. and wages.6 50.938 0.56 4. 1277–2008 One of the most promising roads for future research into economic conditions in medieval Sweden is the use of modern database technology.90 3.90 3.90 3.56           3. prices.90 3.90 3. an increasingly powerful tool will be available to researchers.90 3. As this database expands to include more complete documents.78 3.2 50.90 3.90 3.2 52. 9 41.90     3.00 4.938 0.1 43.76 4.5 43.938 0.00 4.938 0.938 0.50 4.938 0.938 0.3 39.00 4.58 4.5 41.00 5.75 5.8 42.3 1301 1302 1303 1304 1305 1306 1307 1308 1309 1310 1311 1312 1313 1314 1315 1316 1317 1318 1319 1320 1321 1322 1323 1324 1325 1326 1327 1328 1329 1330 1331 1332 1333 1334 1335 1336 1337 1338 0.74 4.52 4.7 41. grams Exchange rate.938 0.6 47.00       6.90 3.75 5.50 5.1 40.5 39.938 0.5 40.00 4.938 0.75 5.91 4.00 4.50 4.15 5.45 5.938 0. lowest recorded Exchange rate.00 5.938 0.00 5.0 43.00     4.00 4.00 4.8 43.5 40.76 4.9 41.52 5.75 5.90 3.42 5.00 5.75 5.26 4.87 5.83 4.01 4.938 0.938 0.938 0.00 4.83 4.00 5.00       4.00 4.938 0.50 5.00 5.64 4.16 5. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 107 Table A3.938 0.00 4. based on exchange rate 50.938 0.6 38.75 5.00 5.00   4.50 5.45 5.4 39.53 4.00 4.52 5.938 0.00 5.90 3.50 4.3.938 0.9 44.61 4.11 4.88 4.938 0.98 5. likely mean Exchange rate.5 39.91 4.938 0.938 0.89 5.05 5.5 39.6 39.90 4.50 3.00 4.00 5.00 5.00 4. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.88 4.938 0.90 4.52 4.4 43.00 .00 5.5 39.938 0.29 4.938 0. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark.2 40.58 4.5 40.50 4.44 4.4 40.938 0.938 0.6 43.938 0.938 0.6 50.938 0.938 0.4 46.61 4. Year Fineness of silver mark.6 39.00 5.5 39.938 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 3.00 4. likely median Exchange rate.9 49.6 42.00 4.00 5. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams.00 5.00 4.938 0.00 5.5 42.72 4.88 4.50 4.00 4.50 4.50 4.00 5.74 4.6 39.938 0.938 0.88 4.1 (cont.00 4.64 4.00 5.938 0.79 5.66 4.15 5.5 41.938 0.66 4.58 4.938 0.00   4.5 39.88 5.). 00 5.00 6.8 (16.50 4.00 8.80 5.935 0.937 0.00 6.30 5.00 6.932 0.00 6.42 6.5 34.0 32.00 6.00 5.7 38.42 (12**) 6.1 39.108 Exchange rates.00 4.7 31.00 5.00 5.00 4.6 35.80 5.20 5.932 0.00 5.40 5.42 5.25 6.2 27.42 5.59 4.50 4.00 8.935 0.937 0.00 5. based on exchange rate 41.50 5.00 9.00 (15**) 5.0 1339 1340 1341 1342 1343 1344 1345 1346 1347 1348 1349 1350 1351 1352 1353 1354 1355 1356 1357 1358 1359 1360 1361 1362 1363 1364 1365 1366 1367 1368 1369 1370 1371 1372 1373 1374 1375 1376 0.42 6.70* 5.5 38.934 0.00 5. lowest recorded Exchange rate.938 0.00 5.00 5.00 5.938 0.00 6.2 36.00 6.80 5.50 6. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams.5 33.00 12-20* 5.42 5.00 6. 1277–2008 Table A3.42 5.80 5.42 5.00 6.50 6. grams Exchange rate.933 0.00 5.938 0.2**) 32.931 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 197 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 4.00 4.932 0.5 41.25 6.00 4.30 5.936 0. Year Fineness of silver mark.00 5.00 5.42 5.938 0.50 5.933 0.931 0.935 0.71 12* 12 5.00 6.937 0.50 6.00 5.10 5.85 13.00 5.42 5.5 39.00 5.5* 5.9 20.2* 16.3 32. and wages.00 6.00 6.933 0.2 35.0 39.1 36.938 0.00 4.32 5.50 6.00 5.10 5.938 0.00 4.50 4.87 4.72 5. likely median Exchange rate.933 0.934 0.00 5.3 36.00 6.932 0.934 0. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark.3 (13.00 5. prices.00 5.40 5.938 0.8 36.42 (12**) 6.42 5.00 6.70* 5.50 6.1 39.34 9.50 4.935 0.20 5.936 0.00 4.71 12* 12 5.6 36.00 5.938 0.936 0.42 5.50 6.00 5.938 0.50 5.00 4. likely mean Exchange rate.52 13.00 5.69 6.7 34.1 (cont.42 6.9 31.).1 16.1**) 36.00 5.00 5.00 6.88 5.937 0.00 (15**) 5.00 6.3 31.938 0.87 4.7 14.938 0.9 39.6 35.00 5.67 5.5 39.42 6.0 37.42 6.4* 39.00 5.42 6.00 5.6 36.00 6.938 0.00 .0 33.00 7.00 6.01   13.00   13.00 5.00 7.70* 5.5 40.00 5.934 0.00 5.00 6.00 6.70* 5.50 4. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.936 0. 922 0.00 6.925 0.923 0.23 6.00 7.00 6.8 27.931 0.00 6.00 7.00 6.00 6.00 6.13 6.0 30.03 6.930 0.1 26. lowest recorded Exchange rate.925 0.00 6.4 27.50 6.25 6.927 0.00 6.00 6.930 0.929 0.2 32.00 7.25 6.922 0.922 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 196 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 195 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 5.29 6.1 32.12 6.00 6.00 6.05 5.00 6.3.00 6.924 0. based on exchange rate 32. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.00 6.00 6.00 6. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams. Year Fineness of silver mark.4 28.4 30.50 6.50 7.38 6.00 6.928 0.0 30.930 0.7 30.60 7.00 6.00 7.00 6.00 6.13 6.00 6.00 7.00 8.50 6.00 6.9 30.50 7.931 0.50 4.923 0.00 6.00 8.00 6.80 6.00 6.7 31.95 6.00 6.0 29. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark.84 5.924 0.00 6.00 6. likely median Exchange rate.00 8.00 6.7 25.13 6.50 6.00 6.10 7.00 6.00 6.00 6.00 7.05 6.00 6.00 6.50 6.929 0.926 0.927 0.925 0.927 0.00 6.50 .930 0.58 6.00 6.00 6.50 6.929 0.00 6.1 31.00 6.00 6.00 6.2 30.17 6.00 7.00 6.45 6.00 7.00 6.00 7.50 6.00 6.926 0.6 31.926 0.00 7.17 6.00 6.00 4.928 0.75 6.5 31.00 4.924 0.928 0.50 6.9 29.928 0.930 0.00 6.5 30.00 6.00 7.3 23.00 6.00 6.50 4.3 29.00 6.00 6.00 6.7 29.924 0.1 29.3 29.5 33.929 0.25 6.45 6.63 5.40 6.00 7.00 4.00 5.00 6.7 30.926 0.9 30.00 6.75 6.00 6.4 29.5 34.00 5.00 7.923 0.50 6.00 8.00 7.00 6.00 6.).00 7.927 0.00 6.12 6. grams Exchange rate.00 6.25 7.00 6.9 1377 1378 1379 1380 1381 1382 1383 1384 1385 1386 1387 1388 1389 1390 1391 1392 1393 1394 1395 1396 1397 1398 1399 1400 1401 1402 1403 1404 1405 1406 1407 1408 1409 1410 1411 1412 1413 1414 0.50 7.923 0.14 6.00 5.14 6.1 (cont.8 30. likely mean Exchange rate.925 0.20 6.00 6.50 6.50 4.3 25.50 5.00 6.2 31.29 6.4 31.3 29.00 8.7 28.00 6.00 5.1 29.20 7.50 8.00 6.08 6.50 8. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 109 Table A3.00 6. 916 0.0 19.00 8.00 9.43 8.6 22.40 8.913 0.2 21. 1277–2008 Table A3.75 8.8 20. lowest recorded Exchange rate.50 8.25 8.919 0.9 21.918 0.6 21.00 7.00 9.00 7.50 7.00 8.00 8.50 8.25 8.50 8.4 20.916 0.50 8.50 8.917 0.00 8.33 8.0 21.00 8.6 25.00 6.914 0.00 8.00 8.4 22.00 8.2 21.00 6.00 8.00 8.50 8.00 9.2 21.50 9. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark.50 8.4 24.919 0.00 9.9 20.3 24.00 8.50 8.6 21.50 8.00 8.00 8.00 9.00 8.50 9.00 8.00 8.0 21.916 0.00 8.914 0.50 8.917 0.50 8.00 8.68 8.50 8.00 8.50 8.913 0.918 0.).00 7.917 0.0 21.922 0.6 20.25 8.67 8.915 0.913 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 194 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 193 192 192 192 192 192 8.50 8.915 0.915 0.50 8.00 9.917 0.00 8.50 8.00 11.50 8.50 8.50 9.921 0.00 8.920 0.00 8.00 8.0 21.921 0.50 8.00 9.00 8.50 9.00 8.50 8.00 8.4 19.00 8.50 8.00 8.8 20.50 8.00 8.2 22.50 8.918 0.00 8.920 0.00 8.50 8.2 21.50 8.86 8.0 22.920 0.50 8.921 0.50 8.921 0.00 8.50 9.0 21.00 6. prices. Year Fineness of silver mark.00 8.6 21. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.4 21.00 8.50 8.914 0.50 9.00 8.00 8.50 8.50 8.50 9.00 8.50 8.25 7.919 0.00 .00 9.50 8.00 6.00 9.25 8.00 8.33 9.33 8.50 8.00 8.00 8.50 8.25 8.50 8.50 8.110 Exchange rates.50 8.50 8.00 8.00 8.4 23.922 0.00 7.50 8.50 8.914 0.0 20.6 20.67 8.00 9.6 20.50 8.00 9.00 8.00 8. grams Exchange rate.916 0.00 8. likely mean Exchange rate.50 8.2 20.50 8.83 8.920 0.67 8.25 8.918 0.50 8.9 1415 1416 1417 1418 1419 1420 1421 1422 1423 1424 1425 1426 1427 1428 1429 1430 1431 1432 1433 1434 1435 1436 1437 1438 1439 1440 1441 1442 1443 1444 1445 1446 1447 1448 1449 1450 1451 1452 0.00 9.00 7. likely median Exchange rate.00 8.50 8.00 9. and wages.50 8.3 22.919 0. based on exchange rate 22.58 8. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams.914 0.915 0.50 8.33 8.50 8.50 8.00 8.00 8.2 20.00 8.67 8.1 (cont.2 22.4 21. 908 0.00 10.906 0.908 0. based on exchange rate 21.00 8.907 0.1 21.00 9.9 19.00 8.00 9.50 10.00 10.50 9.75 9.00 10.00 10.00 9.00 10.75 9.00 10.9 17.0 19.6 18.909 0.00 .00 12.).00 8.00 9.901 0.07 9.906 0.912 0.33 9.50 8. lowest recorded Exchange rate.00 11. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.32 10.00 11.9 18.70 8.00 10.00 10.00 8.00 10.50 9.00 10.9 20.7 19.00 9. Year Fineness of silver mark.36 9.7 18.00 9.912 0.00 10.00 8.908 0.911 0.00 9.6 19.6 19.00 9.5 20.00 9.00 9.00 10.00 9.911 0.9 17.3 19.50 9.910 0.67 9. grams Exchange rate.00 10.00 8.00 11.32 10.911 0.00 10.50 8.00 8.3.910 0.909 0.00 9.75 9.00 9.910 0.9 18.909 0.50 9.00 8.50 9.00 9.66 10.906 0.911 0.00 9.903 0.908 0.0 16.00 9.50 10.2 18.00 10.50 10.4 19.00 9.00 9.9 18.7 18.75 8.50 9.899 0.9 17.63 8.17 10.50 9.80 9.00 10.00 10. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 111 Table A3.66 10.0 20.50 8.71 9.00 10.0 16.6 21.00 9.00 8.00 9.00 8.2 18.00 9.00 9.907 0.75 9.00 9.9 18.75 9.1 19.75 8.910 0.7 20.75 9.1 19.00 10.00 8.50 9.63 8.00 9.900 0.00 10.00 8.50 9.50 10.00 10.00 10.913 0.00 9.50 9.0 20. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark.4 19.50 8.00 10.00 9.50 9.50 8.5 18.10 8.00 11.00 10.905 0.25 9.13 9.50 8.4 18.00 9.1 (cont. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams.901 0.50 9.00 10.14 9. likely mean Exchange rate. likely median Exchange rate.899 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 192 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 191 190 190 190 190 190 190 190 189 189 8.00 9.50 10.907 0.912 0.50 9.88 10.00 11.00 8.50 8.50 9.00 9.51 8.00 10.9 21.50 9.00 9.00 9.00 9.4 18.88 10.00 10.25 9.907 0.00 8.9 18.75 9.3 16.00 8.00 10.00 9.903 0.902 0.00 10.909 0.50 10.912 0.50 10.904 0.0 1453 1454 1455 1456 1457 1458 1459 1460 1461 1462 1463 1464 1465 1466 1467 1468 1469 1470 1471 1472 1473 1474 1475 1476 1477 1478 1479 1480 1481 1482 1483 1484 1485 1486 1487 1488 1489 1490 0. 6 18.88 9.50 16.892 0.894 0.0 14.00 10.00 13.00 16. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark.7 14.879 0.893 0.00 13.00 16.00 13.885 0. 1277–2008 Table A3.888 0.4 17.00 22.876 0.1 8.00 13.00 12.00 13.1 12.00   50.00 10.6 9.00 19.00 13.00 14.00 16.25 (50**) 16.00 15.50 10.00 13.00 16.2 13.00 12.895 0.891 0.49 12.7 1491 1492 1493 1494 1495 1496 1497 1498 1499 1500 1501 1502 1503 1504 1505 1506 1507 1508 1509 1510 1511 1512 1513 1514 1515 1516 1517 1518 1519 1520 1521 1522 1523 1524 1525 1526 1527 0.00 12.9 14.9 13.3 12.9 13. Year Fineness of silver mark.3 10.0 18.67 9.00 12.00     13.24 12.3 15.9 13.00 10.00 13.50 10.00 12.9 13.00 10.24 12.00 19.00 12.112 Exchange rates.887 0.00 13.1 17.00 10.2 5.00 16.67 9.894 0.1 (cont.00 13.00 10.00 16.49 12.889 0.25 16.4 (3.00 13.9 11.00 10.00 16.00 16.00 10.25 10.50 9.00 13.75 11.50 16.2 15.884 0.00 19.00 10.875 0.00 22.88 9.00 13.00 16.00     .4 13.875 0. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams.890 0.892 0.00 16. prices.00 14.00 17.00 13.9 12.881 0.881 0.50 13.6 17.00 10.00 13.00 13.9 13.00 10.00 16.6**) 11.00 36.00 13.00 12.878 0.00 16.33 10.886 0.74 13.67 12.3 11.00 11. likely median Exchange rate.50 10.5 16.00 14.880 0.875 189 189 189 189 189 188 188 188 188 188 188 188 187 187 187 187 187 187 186 186 186 186 186 186 186 185 185 185 185 185 185 185 184 184 184 184 184 9.00 13.875 0.00 16.896 0.00 50.878 0.00 17.00 13.883 0.877 0.898 0.25 10.33 18. grams Exchange rate.4 14. lowest recorded Exchange rate.50 10.00 10.50 11.00 50.00 12.883 0.890 0.00 11.00 13.33 18.00 12.3 11.00 12.897 0.00 19.00 13.00 14.25 (50**) 16.00 14.00 12.00 16.00 22.0 17.5 11.25 16.897 0.876 0.50 13.50 11.00 13.0 3.00 13.882 0.00 22.00 10.888 0. likely mean Exchange rate.00 13.00 15.2 18.00 14.885 0.50 10. and wages.74 13.00   16.9 13.00 13.75 11.00 13. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.00 16.).00 14.00 13.00 36.00 13.00 10.4 9.00 12. based on exchange rate 18. 52. Franzén (2006). Comment: Values in italics are intrapolations or guesstimates. 22–4. pp. Forssell (1872. no. Dijkman (1686).00 20.3. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (1944. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 113 Table A3.00 24. Styffe (1875. Year Fineness of silver mark. lowest recorded Exchange rate.00 18. 230 and 245). pp. Svenska riksarchivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351.875 0.00 20. 1.0 9. 145–6.00 20. 16. 16 (1903. Sources: Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (1938. D. ** Debased coins.00 20. 84). 245.00       16.00 20. Närkes medeltida urkunder 1.0 9.875 0.875 0.0 9.00 20.00 24.00 20. likely median Exchange rate. p.00 20.0 9.0 9. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt burspråk (1917.00 20.1 (cont. 1351–1382. 197–8). pp. 169.0 9. pp. Diplomatarium Norvegicum.875 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 184 20.00 20.00 20.00 20.00       24.00 20. 25. 3 (1846. 160. 257 and 418–20). 186.875 0.875 0.00 20.00 20. 194). 52 and 90–1). . 330 and 506).875 0.00 20.00 16. 209. See also the main text. based on exchange rate 9. 2. 327).00 20.00 20.00 20. vol. 131. and Thordeman (1936).00 24. pp.875 0. SDhk.00 18. 211 and 323).). pp. 38. 113–4.0 9.00 24.0 9.875 0. 73.33 * Cross rates based on foreign exchange rates or prices. cxxvi n 2. 203.00   24. 69.0 9.00 20.00 19. 200 and 203–4). pp. 192. vol.00 20.00 20. Dovring (1947.875 0.875 0. 189. p.00   20.00 20. 196–7.0 9.33 20. grams Exchange rate. Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (1876. likely mean Exchange rate. Exchange rate of mark silver/lödig in mark penningar/örtug 1277–1541.00 20.00 20. Riseberga kloster (1935.0 1528 1529 1530 1531 1532 1533 1534 1535 1536 1537 1538 1539 1540 1541 0.875 0.00 20.0 9.00 20.00 24.00 20. Raven van Barnekows räkenskaper för Nyköpings fögderi 1365–1367 (1994). 67 and 106). Dalslands diplomatarium (1996. Diplomatarium dalekarlicum.0 9.00 19. 200 and 205).00 20. p. D. 107.00 24. 129 and 135–6). Gillingstam (1996. 253. assumption Fine silver content of silver mark. pp. cxxxvii n 2).875 0. 194–5.00 24.0 9. highest recorded Fine silver content of mark in grams. Svenska medeltidsregester 1434–1441 (1937. Lönnroth (1940. pp.875 0. 1383–140. pp.00 20. 2 1408 (8) (1. 9) SDhk 16470 Joachim (1896. 941) Hyötyniemi (1999. and wages.5 mark gutnisk. bind 12. 9 öre and 1 örtug in Gotlandic coins = 132 mark and 6 öre in Swedish coins. pp. no. Year 1 silver mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 4. 450) Danmarks riges breve.2.7) (1. p. 15) Hildebrand (1894. 1 mark lybsk = 2 mark gutnisk]. 1 Gotlandic silvermark = 32 [Gotlandic] öre ‘swænska pæninga’ [örtug] = 8 ‘pæninga’ and ‘gutniscan pæning’ = 6 ‘pæninga’. 8) 1. 226-227) Hyöyniemi (1999.9) 44 mark silver.114 Exchange rates. We assume: 1 mark örtug = ½ mark lybsk. 24 mark ‘thyst tal.4 1343 1351 0. 4. 1 mark silver = 5 mark svensk = 7 mark gutnisk 1 mark Skara weight [215 gram] Gotlandic coins = 38 2/3 gros tournois [= 3. We assume: 1 Prussan mark = 3 mark örtug 1 öre (gutnisk) = 4 ‘gotlandske penge’ = 3 ‘hvide tyske penge’ [i. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/stackot/tysk/ östgötsk 1211–1538. We assume: 1 öre gutnisk = 4 gutniska penningar 2 ‘artinge gotländisch’ [= 2/32 mark gutnisk] = 1/60 Prussian mark.9) (1. prices. We assume: 1 mark gutnisk = 1 mark rigisk.1 mark of Lübeck). p.9-1. række.4-4 mark penningar] 1 Gotlandic mark silver = 30 groat of Flanders (= 0.75 mark in Gotlandic coins 1 gotnisk penning [= 1/32 mark tysk/ gutnisk] = 5 svenska penningar. p. p.3) 1 7.9? 1354 1364 1389 1402 1405 (6. 234) Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990.e.75 (7. ok tho i gotniskom pæningom’ = 16 mark ‘swenska pæninga’ 1 mark lödig = 15 mark (Östergötland) 1 mark lödig = 15 mark ‘her i Østergøtlande’ SDhk 6802 Hyötyniemi (1999. 1410–12. i. 88) Table A3.5 6 7 1 Swedish Relation mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 1 mark silver = 4. 461).3) 1. p.5 SDhk 2506 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990.5 1420 1420 15 15 (1.25) 1411 (1) 1413 (11) 1. and Spufford (1986. no. 1 mark silver of Gotland (=2 2/3 mark gutnisk?) ≈ 3 mark örtug Gotlandic pennies were evaluated to the old Swedish coin 1 mark silver = 7. 1 mark silver = 6 mark rigisk. 310 SDhk 18147 SDhk 19573 SDhk 19579 .e. p. no. Source 1211 1265 1312 1333 Myrberg (2008. 1277–2008 Table A3. p. p. pergamentsbrev 1461-01-03 Dovring (1947. p.5 ) 4 (4. p. 1 mark of Lübeck = 4 mark gutnisk] 1 mark lödig = 15 mark (Skänninge. vol 5 Hildebrand (1894. p. Östergötland) 1 öre (gutnisk) = 6 penningar = 3 ‘svarta gutar’. p.E. 196) Hildebrand (1894. p. p. Hyötyniemi assume: 3 grossa = 1 öre gutnisk. p.e. 1 öre (gutnisk) = 6 penningar = 2 danska vita.5 ) (6? ) Dovring (1947.5) (3. p. 941) B.8) (2. p. i. Hildebrands samlingar. vol 5 Dovring (1947.3. We assume: 4 ‘gotniska’ = 1 öre gutnisk = 1/8 mark gutnisk. Source 1422 1424 1426 1426 1427 1430 1431 1432 1434 1440 1440 1444 1445 1446 1450 1453 15 20 (16) 20 20 18 (21) 28 30 40 40 (36) 40 (51?) (1. 8 ‘gotniska bode nye oc gamble gongen’ = 4 ‘grossa’ = 1 örtug. 354) Dovring (1947. 197) B. 195) Hallenberg (1798. 212) B. p. Östergötland) 8 ‘gotniska bode nye oc gamble gongen’ = 1 örtug.4) 2 (2.5) (4. 15) 1453 (34? ) (4? ) Liedgren (1967. 1 mark lödig = 30 mark gutnisk 1 mark lödig = 40 mark in ‘Vadstena östgötska penningar’ 1 öre gutnisk = 6 penningar 1 gyllen = 6 mark gunniska/stackota (the two were used as synonyms). 941) Dovring (1947. 195) Lundholm (1956. p. 15). Hildebrands samlingar.E. Year 1 silver mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 14 1 Swedish Relation mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk (1.7) 1 mark lödig = 14 mark gutniska 1 gute = 3/8 German Witten. Hildebrands samlingar. 942) Dovring (1947. vol 5 Liedgren (1967. 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. 195) Hildebrand (1894.E. [i. Östergötland) 1 mark lödig = 18 mark gutniska 1 noble = 10 mark gutniska.4) 4 (4) 30 40 (36) (39) 1473 3 or 4? .2 (cont.5 mark örtug 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. 1 mark stockholmsmynt = 3 mark grossa. 1 mark lödig = 40 mark (Skänninge. p.6) (4.).1) (2. We assume: 1 gyllen = 1. 197) Sjögren (1944.6) (4.4) (3.4) (2.e. 17) Lappkatalogen nr 46 Lappkatalogen nr 64 Lappkatalogen nr 152 B. 195) Dovring (1947. 195) 1455 1456 1457 1459 1461 1464 1472 (35) 3 or 4? 4 3 (3. p. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/stackot/ tysk/östgötsk 1211–1538. We assume: 1 noble = 4 mark örtug. Hildebrands samlingar. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 115 Table A3.E. and Hyötyniemi (2002) Dovring (1947. vol 5 Dovring (1947. 195) RA. Östergötland) 1 mark lödig = 20 mark in Östergötland 1 mark gutnisk = ½ mark svensk 1 mark lödig = 20 penningemarker in Östergötland 1 mark lödig = 20 mark (Hanekind. p. p. 1 mark lödig = 28 mark (Linköping) 1 mark lödig = 30 mark (Linköping) 1 mark lödig = 40 mark (Linköping) 1 mark lödig = 40 mark (Skänninge.4) (2. ). above the purchase price. 174–5) Hallenberg (1798. 173–4) Hallenberg (1798. 195) Lundholm (1956. 212) Sjögren (1944. pp. respectively. 195) Dovring (1947. 181–7) Comments: The numbers in parentheses are our own estimates based on cross exchange rates (mainly through mark lödig in mark örtug).13 grams fine silver per hvid]. Probably relates to the metallic contents of coins rather than actual value relations. p. pp. p. pp. p. . 195) Lundholm (1956. 51) SDhk 37475 1514 1515 1533 1535 1536 1537 1538 48 (64) (68) (68) (72) (76) (80) (3) 4 4 4 4 4 4 Dovring (1947. 195) Dovring (1947.5 mark ‘nya Stockholms örtug’. pp. Two other goods were sold for 16 and 33 per cent. Year 1 silver mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 1 Swedish Relation mark in mark gutnisk/ stackot/ tysk/ östgötsk 3 or 4? 3 or 4? 1. a question mark signifies a very uncertain interpretation of the sources. containing 0. Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Mark gutnisk was here a unit of account Source 1474 1479 1480 16 Dovring (1947. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark gutnisk/stackot/ tysk/östgötsk 1211–1538. p. We assume 2 marks danska = 1. prices. 1 mark lödig = 16 mark ‘gutniska vita’ = 12 mark ‘Stockholms halvörtugar’ = 11. pp. p.2 (cont. 197) 1482 1482 1487 1487 1496 1513 (53) (40) 3 or 4? 5⅓ 4 3 3 or 4? (< 39) < 2⅔ Dovring (1947.1-0. and wages. p.116 Exchange rates. 1277–2008 Table A3. pp. p. 354) Hyötyniemi (2000.5 mark örtug. 4×18 örtugar = 9 mark gutniska 1 mark svenska = 3 mark stackota Flour was purchased for 2 marks danska and sold for 4 marks gutniska [probably Gotlandic hvids. 1 öre stackot = ½ skilling [= 1/32 mark dansk] Mark gutnisk was probably here used as a unit of account. 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. 229) Hallenberg (1798. p. 170–2) Hallenberg (1798. 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. 120– 1) Sjögren (1944. 1 mark lödig = 48 mark gutnisk Mark gutnisk was probably here used as a unit of account.4 1 mark svensk = 3 mark gutnisk. 172–3) Hallenberg (1798. p. 5 (1.5) (4.8-1) (0.8 (5 in Danish weight) 1 Swed.3-2.67 5. 20). p. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL.5 4. and SDhk 1207 Fauerholdt Jensen (1990. 23) Spufford (1986. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in marks of other Nordic regions. p. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. pp. . p.3.5 4. ‘Myntförsämring’ Nordström (1850.8-1) 1 1 (0. p.07 10-10. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. p. Table A3. 157) Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990.5) (1) (2) (0.8) 1 Swedish mark = 10 2/3 gros tournois and 1 mark of Scania = 12 gros tournois 1 mark of Scania = 1 skilling (12) gros tournois. p.9) (0.Relation/mark currency ish mark in Nordic marks Danish mark Source 1231 1240 1256 12631266 1275 1275/ 1280 1285 12741282 1282 1296 1298 1299 1306 1311 1313 13131314 1325 1326 13321334 13321334 1334 Fauerholdt Jensen (1980.04 mark silver Swedish weight = 5 Danish mark = 5 Swedish mark 1 mark in Swedish weight = 0.6-11. 81) KHL. 283) 1 6. Danish mark Monetary union between Sweden and Norway Norwegian mark Monetary union between Sweden and Norway Monetary union between Sweden and Norway Scania mark Scania mark 1 Danish mark = 10 schillinge of Lübeck.9) 1338 1348 1350s 1355 1358 13501360 1357 1357 10 (5) 4. We assume: 1 Swedish mark = 8 schillinge of Lübeck. p. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL.67 4. 88) 1 mark silver = 2 Danish mark penningar [older Fauerholdt Jensen (1980.8-0.2) (1-1. Year 1 silver mark in Nordic marks 3 2 3. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. 270) KHL.9) 8/9 8/9 (0. 88) coins] Danish mark KHL.44-5 (5-6) (5-6) 5 4. 270) KHL.44 3 4 3 4. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 117 Table A3.3. 38) Fauerholdt Jensen (1980. ‘Myntförsämring’ Franzén (2006.8) (2) (0.71 4. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. ‘Myntförsämring’ Rasmusson (1943. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. ‘Myntförsämring’ Rasmusson (1943. ‘Myntförsämring’ Fauerholdt Jensen (1980. p.5) 4.9) (0.3 gros tournois.33 4. We assume: 1 mark penningar = 9. p. ‘Myntförsämring’ Norwegian mark Norwegian mark Norwegian mark 1 mark silver Danish weight = 1. no.5 8 4.96 mark in Danish weight Danish mark Danish mark Norwegian mark Danish mark Norwegian mark Scania mark Danish mark Scania mark Norwegian mark 1 mark of Scania = 1 mark 1 öre of Sweden KHL.6 KHL.3 (4) (2) 1 (0. p. p. 30 and 81-86).9) (0. 146) Fauerholdt Jensen (1980.8-0. 270) Rasmusson (1943.5 (4. ‘Myntförsämring’ Danish mark KHL. 5 mark in Swedish coins 3 mark danska penningar = 5 mark danska i svenska penningar = 3 mark 6 öre mark örtug 1 Danish mark = 8 öre 1 Danish mark = 10 öre Franzén (2006. 15) Liedgren (1967.3 (cont.8 5 mark of Scania = 6 mark 1 öre of Sweden Scania mark 12 Witten of Flensborg = 10 Witten of Lübeck. no. p. 283) Spufford (1986.118 Exchange rates.3) (10. O:1. 74 Hallenberg (1798. Year 1 silver mark in Nordic marks 5 6 1 Swed.5 mark and ½ öre ‘danska vita’ = 12 mark Stockholms halvörtugar = 11.6 1. 1277–2008 Table A3. prices.2) (12. 1 Danish mark = 10 schillinge of Lübeck.8) (0. ‘Myntförsämring’ (4.5 mark Stockholms örtugar. p. f. OO. f.625 (4.5 1 4/3 1.5 mark Stockholms örtugar. 17 mark jämtsk 4 öre = 24 mark svenska 1 ‘dansk hwit’ [4-penning-coin] = 3 ‘peninga’ 1 ‘dansk Skilling’ = 10 ‘peninga’ 1 ‘ny dansk Ängilsk’ [new 3-penning-coin] = 2 ‘peninga’ 1 ‘gammal Ängilsk’ [old 3-penning-coin of Denmark = 1/64 Danish mark] = 3 ‘peninga’ 6 penningar = 2 danska vita [= 2/48 Danish mark]. 283) SDhk 19466 Lundholm (1956.73 4/3 1.9 1545 1602 1618 0. p. 157) KHL. 15) Liedgren (1967. p.15 1493 1539 1541 (13.5) (4. 307) SS. 197) Dovring (1947. p.8) (8. We assume: 1 Rhinish gulden = 1. 150) SS.2 1.5 mark örtug 1 Danish mark = 6 öre 1 joakimsdaler = 3 mark danskt mynt.67) (0.e. 1 mark lödig = 14 mark ‘kung Kristians vita’ = 12 mark Stockholms halvörtugar = 11. p. ‘Hvid’ Spufford (1986. 15) Liedgren (1967. and wages. 482) Liedgren (1967.83 (0.6) (0.8) 5. O:1.8) (4) 3 0.Relation/mark currency ish mark in Nordic marks (0. p.5) (35) 14 0. We assume: 1 Swedish mark = 24 Witten of Lübeck. 197) Dovring (1947. 1 ‘lødhogh mark’ = 6 mark 1 Danish Witten = ½ Witten of Lübeck and 1 Danish penning = ½ lybsk penning. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in marks of other Nordic regions. no. We assume: 1 mark of Lübeck = 2 mark örtug.1) (11. 1 Danish mark = 12 schillinge of Lübeck. 8 ‘øra’ = 1 mark. We assume: 1 Swedish mark = 8 schillinge of Lübeck. 4 ‘ænglisca’ [= 1/64 Danish mark. 1 mark of Lübeck = ½ Danish mark. i. 1080) KHL. p.9) 1 mark silver = 5 new mark of Scania (1) Norwegian mark Source 1358 2nd half of 14th century 1360 1369 1380 1386 1406 1420 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. 2 ‘danska gamla vita mark’ = 1 Rhinish gulden.375) 1424 1437 1453 1453 1453 1453 1456 1480 (6. 15) Dovring (1947. 249. p. 1 mark lödig = 13.). 212) Ahnlund (1948.19 1480 13. 174) Hallenberg (1798. 197) Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (p. p. p. 597 . p.3) 4/3 4/3 0. p.8 1 0. We assume: 1 joakimsdaler = 3. 141 SS. although this may have not been Danish money] = 1 ‘øre’. p. f. ‘Myntförsämring’ KHL. 7) (10) (11) (8.5 Swedish mark 1 mark of Lübeck = 2 Swedish mark 1 mark of Sweden = 10 schillinge of Lübeck 1 mark lybsk = 2 mark örtug 1 daler = 3 mark örtug = 31 sk Lybsk. 173. 0.1) (4) 1 SwedRelation ish mark in mark of Lübeck (0.5) ? (3) (2. p.625) 1 Prussian mark = 3 Swedish mark. better ones) 1 ‘Städer Skilling’ = 11 ‘peninga’ 8 ‘Städer peninga’ = 1 örtug 1 mark = 23 solidi lub. p.5 0. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 119 Table A3. 144) Fauerholdt Jensen (1990.5 1 penning = ½ lybsk penning 0. 243). p.43) 1 Prussian mark = 4 Swedish mark. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark of Lübeck.3. 15) Hallenberg (1798. 26) Fauerholdt Jensen (1990.5) (3) (3) (3.8 (2. p. [= 23/24 mark of Lübeck] 1 mark of Lübeck = 1 Swedish mark 1 mark of Lübeck = 1.5 165 ‘mark lybskt mynt’ = 330 ‘mark gängse svenskt mynt’ <0. 144) Hirsch (1858. 307) Hammarström (1956. p. 946) Fauerholdt Jensen (1990.5 ‘en eller flera penningar i nu gängse mynt’ = ‘högst ½ penning lybskt mynt’ 0.56) 1 mark silver = 45 schillinge of Lübeck.43) 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck (0. 150) SS.25 schillinge of Lübeck (0.67 0.66) (0. p. We assume: 1 mark lödig = 20 mark örtug.35) 1.8 2.8 (9.09 1 0. p.5 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck (good ones) 4-penning coin minted in Åbo = 2 holenpfennings of Lübeck 1 noble = 42 schillinge of Lübeck and 1 noble = 4 mark penningar 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck (probably older.8 2. p. and Sattler (1887.5 1 mark of Lübeck = 2 Swedish mark (0. Year 1 silver mark in mark of Lübeck 2. 27) Hallenberg (1798. and 1 Prussian mark = 30 schillinge of Lübeck (1399) (0.5 (0.55) 1100 mark lübska penningar = 400 mark lödigt silver (0. 287) SDhk 9056 SDhk 10692 SDhk 40742 SRP 2499 Hirsch (1858.3) (8. p.uni-kiel.75 2.5 2600 mark penningar = 1300 mark lybska 0. 21) SDhk 5862 SDhk 8044 Franzén (2006.5) (10. p. 15) Liedgren (1967. 243).html.6) * http://www. 26 Fauerholdt Jensen (1990.5) (7. p.8 (4) (5. Hallenberg (1798. 27) Liedgren (1967. p.4) 0.625 0. and Sattler (1887. 15). OO. p. 285) 1400 (2.histosem.96 1 0.25) 2.5 0. 405) * Hallenberg (1798. .65 0. f.6) 1400 1411 1413 1424 1424 1425 1453 1453 1460 1484 1524 1531 1532 1539 15411543 1544 2. 15) SDhk 27668 Stockholms stads skottebok 1516–1525 (p. p. p. p. p. p.5 5 lybska mark = 10 mark svenska penningar 0. and Hildebrand (1983. and 1 Prussian mark = 27. 405) Hammarström (1956.5 1 lybsk penning = 2 svenska penningar 0. p.de/lehrstuehle/land/waehrung/Katalog. 1 mark lybsk = 2 mark örtug Source 1307 1342 1349 1361 1364 1367 1375 1376 1390 1398 SDhk 2227 Fauerholdt Jensen (1990.46) 1 mark lödig = 45 schillinge of Lübeck (0.4. 11* 1.04 mark silver in the weight of Reval] = 6 mark revalsk 1 öre 1 mark silver in Swedish weight = 1 mark silver in the weight of Reval 1 mark silver = 6 mark rigiska 1 mark silver = 6 mark rigiska The coins of Riga were to be equal to Gotlandic coins. 161) KHL. 1 öre = 5 räfliska 5 ‘ræflisk’ = 1 öre 4 ‘Ræfflisca’ = 1 ‘øra’ ‘en Ræuelisc ortogh fore IX peninga’ 5 revalska = 1 öre 1 old (Åbo-)örtug = 6 penningar 1 revalsk = 5 svenska småpenningar 1 revalsk = 5 svenska småpenningar 1 revalsk = 3 penningar [official rate. p.89* 1. 1277–2008 Table A3.16* 0. probably not a market rate] ‘89 Åbo-mark (5 revalska = 1 öre – 1 penning)’ ‘40 mark viborgsmynt (4 revalska = 1 öre)’ 1 revalsk skilling = 1/5 öre 6 revalska örtug = 1 öre 1 revalsk = 5 svenska småpenningar 5 revalska örtug = 1 öre Åbosk penning [= 1/36 mark rigisk] = 4 penningar (according to the source. 345 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. ‘Baltiska mynt’ 1414 1415 1416 1416 1418 1431 1436 (9) (7) (9) (11) (9) (9) (11) 1. KHL. 81) Hyötyniemi (1999. p.07* 1.5 6 1 Swedish mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk Relation Source 1211 1265 1282 1315 1316 1343 1401 1404 1409 1409 1411 1414 1414 1414 1414 (7) (7) (6) (4) (7) (7) (8) (8) (13) 1.89* 1. ‘Baltiska mynt’ SDhk 18390 SDhk 18543 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. Year 1 silver mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk 4.11* 0.11* 1.07* 1.04) 1 . ‘Baltiska mynt’ KHL.5 mark silver). 364 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no.07* 1.33 1447 1451 9 (8. prices. 366 FMU 1521 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no.5) (1.120 Exchange rates. 161) FMU 2698 KHL. 6) Hyötyniemi (1999. 322 De la Gardiska archivet 16 (1842.11 1.5. p. p. p. 1 mark silver (Danish weight) [= 1.78* 6 6 1 mark rigisk = 1 mark gutnisk (=1/4. 81–4) Fauerholdt Jensen (1990. ‘Baltiska mynt’ Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no.04 mark silver Swedish weight = 1. 181) KHL. 349. ‘Baltiska mynt’ FMU 1426 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark rigisk/revalsk.11* 0. and wages. pp. p. 13) Hauberg (1891) Nordström (1850.89* 0. p. 435 Nordström (1850.59* 1. worth 6 penningar earlier) 1 mark lödig = 9 mark rigisk 3 skilling rigiska = 2 örtug Myrberg (2008.33* 1. 88) Fauerholdt Jensen (1990. 3.25 mark örtug 1541 8/9 1 mark [örtug] = 32 skylling [of Riga. Year 1 silver mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk (11) 1 Swedish mark in mark rigisk/ revalsk 1. 426) Handlingar till belysande af Finlands kamerala förhållanden på 1500-talet. 21) Hallenberg (1798.11 8/9 8/9 1 abo = 6 penningar Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (p. Up to the early 14th century the mark rigisk was set equal to 24 artig. p. the data must be divided by four). pp.5 (cont. during the 14th century up to the 1420s the mark silver of Riga was counted as 144 artig.). the table counts one mark rigisk as 36 revalsk for the first two decades of the 15th century as well (to estimate the value of the mark silver and Swedish mark in the higher-valued mark rigisk for this period. pp. 238–9) 1 mark rigisk = 9 öre 1034 mark revalska = 1163. p. 237–8) Handlingar rörande Finlands kamerala förhållanden på 1500-talet. Comment: There seem to be three different countings of mark rigisk in the Middle Ages. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 121 Table A3. ‘abo’ KHL. 226) KHL. Value of mark silver and the Swedish mark in mark rigisk/revalsk. To present a consistent series. 1 mark of Riga = 36 skilling] * See comment below. 2 (1899. p. ‘Baltiska mynt’ Hammarström (1956. 1) Hallenberg (1798. from 1420s the mark of Riga was set equal to 36 old artig or new schillings.33 Relation Source 1453 1 öre = 6 aboskor 1477 15051506 1527 1533 (8) (14) (16) (16) 8/9 1.25 mark örtug 1535 1539 (16) 8/9 8/9 1298 mark rigiska = 1460 mark örtug 1548 mark 12 skilling rigiska = 1741. . 1 (1892. 4 38. 288) Franzén (2006. p. 57) Åbo domkyrkas svartbok nr 349 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok nr 364 Hammarström (1956.6 3.6 3.7 38. and 1 mark silver = 5 penningar 1 solidus [12] gros tournois = 10 öre 1 mark silver Cologne weight = 5 skilling [12] gros tournois (old) SDhk 1499 Franzén (2006. which deteriorated in the 14th century.4 Relation Source 1291 1328 1332 1333 1334 10. In Denmark 1332–52.6 3.6 40.6 34. prices. no. 135c) Styffe (1864.6 25. p. and Fauerholdt Jensen (1990. 82-83) SDhk 4541 and 4543 SDhk 7186 Comment: The gros tournois initially weighed 4. and wages. Value of the Swedish mark in gros tournois.8533 mark in troy weight mark 4 ounce in troy weight [1 mark in troy weight = 8 ounces] 1 pound sterling = 7.044 3.4 mark 67 pound 167 sterlings = 500 mark 6 ½ öre. 1990. the circulating gros tournois weighed 3.6 Swedish mark in gros tournois Implied fine silver content of the mark (gram) 41 34.888 grams with 25/27 fineness (Fauerholdt Jensen.6 3.2 9. 17).Mark sterling probably refers to the ling Swedish mark silver. 1277–2008 Table A3. 288) SDhk 3956 Fauerholdt Jensen.22 grams and had 23/24 fineness (KHL.7. p.5 gros tournois = 20 öre 1 gros tournois = 20 penningar 1 gros tournois = 17 penningar 4 solidus [12] gros tournois = 4 ½ mark 15 mark penningar = 13 solidus 4 gros tournois [=160 gros tournois]. p.6. p. 1 mark silver/sterling = 144 ster. 1 mark silver in Swedish weight 167 mark silver in Swedish weight = 142 = 0. 135d) Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. 426) 1328 1328 1328 1398 1414 1416 1529 1 Preussian schillinge [=1/60 Preussian mark] = 8 penningar 1 Preussian schillinge [=1/60 Preussian mark] = 1/3 öre 2968 Preussian mark ≈ 3900 mark örtug .3 mark 1 Bohemian solidi = 10 öre Source SDhk 873 SDhk 919 SDhk 1207. 81) SDhk 3554 Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990.6 11. Other exchange rates for foreign silver coins. Table A3.122 Exchange rates.3 10⅔ 10⅔ 1339 1357 3. p. 1990 (pp. Year Assumed fine silver content in 1 gros tournois (gram) 4.6 9. no. Year 1267 1272 1282 Relation 1 mark sterling = 160 sterling Specified in the source/comments Mark sterling probably refers to the Cologne mark silver. ‘grossus’).5 mark 1 Preussian mark = 2. 3 skilling sterling = 10 öre 1 pound sterling = 8 1/3 mark 1 Bohemian penny = 20 Swedish pennies 1 Preussian mark = 3 mark 1 Preussian mark = 2.5 mark 1 Preussian mark ≈ 1. 8. 437 Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. 45: 6) Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. 485 Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. 551 . p. 446 FMU Nordström (1850. 444 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. Year 1395 1400 1410 1421 1422 1423 1424 1425 1425 1426 1426 1430 1431 1431 1431 1432? 1433 1433 1434 1434 1437 1438 1439 1439 1440 1440 1441 1441 1441 1441 1441 1442 1442 1443 1443 1448 1449 Noble in öre 24 32 40 16 32 32 32 32 31 32* 32 32 33* 22 32 33* 32* 32* 32 80*** 36* 36* 36* 34 34 28 36** 36 30 28 24 32** 32 36* 36 36* 36* Region Uppland Östergötland Finland Uppland Finland Finland Finland Finland Uppland Finland Södermanland Finland Finland Uppland Närke Finland Finland Finland Finland Finland Finland Finland Finland Finland Uppland Uppland Finland Finland Uppland Uppland Uppland Finland Uppland Finland Finland Finland Finland Source Styffe (1864. 464 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 46: 15) Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. p.3. I (1921. 29: 32) Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok. p. 45: 16) FMU 2455 Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. 44: 28) Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. I (1921) FMU 1709 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok nr 403 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 415 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 474 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 45: 11) Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. 180 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. I. 43: 32) Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. p. I (1921. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 123 Table A3. 19) SDhk 15507 FMU 1393 Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. p. p. probably Åbo marks Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. p. p. I (1921. 443 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. I (1921. p. I (1921. 418 Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (p. 421 SDhk 20741 FMU 1935 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 540 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. p. 32) Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 464 FMU 2388 Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. 157) Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 515 FMU 2547. I (1921. 477 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. Exchange rate of noble in öre.(1921. p. Year 1444 1444 1477 1482 1482 1485 1486 1489 1491 1491 1492 1492 1492 1492 1493 1493 1493 1493 1494 1495 1497 1498 Rhinish gulden in mark 6* 6* 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 1⅔ 1. E 216. 10) Sjögren (1944.). Table A3. 566 Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok. ‘Gyllen’ B. p. 325 n 22) Lappkatalogen. p. Hildebrands samlingar. Hildebrands samlingar.5 2** 2** 1. p. 325 n 22). RA Lappkatalogen. RA SDhk 24505 Lars Sparres kopiebok B 15 f 218. 139 Petersson (1973.124 Exchange rates. no. p. prices.9. 1277–2008 Table A3. 566 Arboga stads tänkebok 1 (p. vol 5 . 22) Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (p. 121. 249) Petersson (1973. p. p.8 (cont. RA Petersson (1973. Rääf (1856. ** Refers to Swedish coins. 180) FMU 3068 and 3069 FMU 3675 Funbo kyrkas räkenskapsbok. RA * Refers to Åbo-coins. 325 n 22. RA B. 325) SDhk 32853. Forssell (1872. UUB Räntekammarböcker.5 2** 2** 2** 1. 157) Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok. and wages. Exchange rate of noble in öre. Exchange rate of Rhinish gulden in mark. Lappkatalogen no. 512) Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (p. 325) Petersson (1973. 180 Nordström (1850. 263) Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (p. vol 1. RA Forssell (1872.E. p. *** Refers to Gotlandic coins. SDhk 32241 Petersson (1973. 556 FMU 2901 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 180 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no.E. p. Year 1450 1452 1454 1454 1454 1455 1456 1456 1456 1458 1477 1478 1527 Noble in öre 36* 32 36* 34 32 36 32* 35 32 32 38 40 72 Region Finland Finland Finland Närke Finland Närke Finland Västmanland Närke Finland Finland Uppland Uppland Source Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no.5 1. p. p. vol 5. 325 n 22) Lappkatalogen. p.5 2** Region Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Stockholm Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Uppland Uppland Uppland Småland Östergötland Östergötland Småland Östergötland Uppland Östergötland Source Lappkatalogen. 60) Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok (p. 281) Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 (p. 249) Petersson (1973. p. 23) KHL. 92 Stockholms stads skottebok 1516–1525 (p.E.5 mark örtug. 16 B. 119) SDhk 38656 FMU 6478 Sandbergska samlingen OO. 26 Hildebrand (1894. 14 B.E. 2 mark danska = 1. 12 B. 23) B. 17 B.E.).9 (cont.E. vol. p. vol 5 Lappkatalogen. Hildebrands samlingar. p. vol. ** Most likely expressed in mark danska. p. 11 B. vol. vol. 127) Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Östergötland Uppland Uppland Uppland Östergötland Viborg Västergötland * Most likely mark gutnisk. Hildebrands samlingar. 8 B. RA Forssell (1872. 18 Forssell (1872. RA Hallenberg (1798. vol. vol. Hildebrands samlingar. Hildebrands samlingar. vol. vol.E. 20 onwards). Hildebrands samlingar.E. 23) Historiska handlingar 40:1 (1977. vol.E. Hildebrands samlingar.25 3 4 4 2. vol. vol.E. 6 mark gutnisk ≈ 1. p.3.25 Region Östergötland Östergötland Source Petersson (1973.625 2 2 2. Hildebrands samlingar. Hildebrands samlingar.E.E. 7 B.E. p. vol. Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II-IV. Hildebrands samlingar. Hildebrands samlingar. Hildebrands samlingar. 13 B. Exchange rate of Rhinish gulden in mark. vol. f. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 125 Table A3.5 mark örtug. Hildebrands samlingar. p. Hildebrands samlingar.E. 10 B. p. Hildebrands samlingar. 5 B. vol.E. 947) Räntekammarböcker vol 1.E. Hildebrands samlingar. . 9 B. 15 B. 325 n 22) B.E. Year 1498 1500 1501 1503 1505 1505 1506 1506 1507 1508 1508 1508 1508 1509 1509 1509 1510 1510 1512 1518 1518 1519 1525 1529 1529 1529 1530 1534 Rhinish gulden in mark 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 2** 1. 6 B. vol I:2.5** 2. 135c) Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. 23) Hildebrand (1894. no. 475) Forsell (1872. 2) Uppland KHL. 390) SDhk 22089 1 gold florin = 0. 556. nr 265b and Bilaga 7) Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. no. 492 Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no.126 Exchange rates. Hildebrands samlingar. Exchange rate of the Hungarian gulden. no. Year 1489 1492 1500 1509 1512 1516 1527 1529 1534 1538 Hungarian gulden in öre 72** 18 22 32. 72 öre gutnisk = 18 Swedish öre. 231a) Fritz & Bäärnhielm (1990. 947) Helga lekamens gille II–IV (pp. vol. 127) Hallenberg (1798. vol I:2.2 mark silver Cologne weight gulden 7 1/3 7 1/3 16* 8 16. ‘Gyllen’ Västmanland Arboga stads tänkebok 3: 244 Sandbergska samlingen. refers to Åbo marks Finland Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. 92 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (p.10.11.62 10 Type of gold unit gold florin mark gold gold florin gold florin gold florin Region Source Östergötland Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. 35 . Table A3. p. 5 Uppland Stockholms stads skottebok 1460– 1468 (p. and wages. 1277–2008 Table A3. p. p. RA FMU 6478 Hallenberg (1798.8 7 6. p. no. 135c) Östergötland Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. 146) Uppland Fritz and Bäärnhielm (1990. 46–7) Räntekammarböcker vol 1. Exchange rate of other gold units in öre.3 32. lappkatalogen no. p. prices. 140) Uppland Stockholm Viborg Västergötland ** Expressed in öre gutnisk. f.E. O:1.5 6 8 6 20 20 arnisk gyllen arnoldsk gyllen arnoldsk gyllen arnoldsk gyllen arnoldsk gyllen arnoldsk gyllen light gulden gulden arnoldsk gyllen gulden gulden Uppland Uppland Uppland Västergötland Finland Finland Finland FMU Åbo domkyrkas svartbok no. Year 1328 1328 13321334 1333 1334 1363 1432 1432 1434 1436 1441 1449 1450 1453 1460 1492 1510 1520 Value in öre 12 577 12 11. no. 19) de Brun (1924. refers to Åbo marks Uppland 1453-10-11 B. no. 551. 10) Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (p. 1295) Örebro stads medeltidsurkunder 1 (1993.4 24 76 36 30 40 Region Småland Uppland Uppland Source RA. O:1 . 235 n 1) Sandbergska samlingen. vol. 139) * Probably expressed in öre gutnisk. Exchange rate of other gold units in öre. p. 1 Sandbergska samlingen.11 (cont. 104) Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (p. 70 Hallenberg (1798.3. Abbreviations FMU: Finlands medeltidsurkunder. O:1. Stockholm (RA) B. vol. Hildebrands samlingar. SRP: Svenska riks-archivets pergamentsbref. RA: Riksarkivet. Year 1521 1526 1527 1535 1538 Value in Type of gold unit öre 16 gulden 12 15 15 15 gulden of Lübeck probably gulden of Lübeck probably gulden of Lübeck probably gulden of Lübeck Region Uppland Uppland Uppland Source Stockholms stads skottebok 1516– 1525 (p. Stockholm. 16 öre gutnisk ≈ 7 Swedish öre. 5–18 Lappkatalogen Lars Sparres kopiebok B 15 Pergamentsbrev Räntekammarböcker.). 195) Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (p. KHL: Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956–78). Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 127 Table A3. f. RA.E. SDhk: Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven. SS: Sandbergska samlingen. Unpublished sources Riksarkivet. R. P. Finlands statsarkiv 1910–35. Edited by Hausen. vol. I. . C G. J A. 1–8. Edited by Almquist. Edited by Hildebrand. Helsingfors. Edited by Wiktorsson. Huitfeldt-Kaas. Historiska handlingar 40:1. Stockholm: Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. de Brun. Edited by Hausen. E 216. Frans (1924). Helsingfors. Stockholm. Stockholms stads jordebok 1420–1474 (1876). Handlingar till belysande af Finlands kamerala förhållanden på 1500-talet. Edited by Sjödin. Stockholm. Christiania. I.128 Exchange rates. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. H. 1277–2008 Uppsala universitetsbibliotek Funbo kyrkas räkenskapsbok. Raven van Barnekows räkenskaper för Nyköpings fögderi 1365–1367 (1994). Kumla kyrkas räkenskapsbok 1421–1590 (1946). Handlingar rörande Helga Lekamens gille i Stockholm. Norsk historisk kjeldeskrift-institutt. Edited by Wieselgren. Edited by Grandinson. De la Gardiska archivet. L F (1856). Edited by Fritz. UUB Landsarkivet i Uppsala Arboga stads tänkebok (Arboga stads rådhusrätts arkiv) Published sources Arvid Trolles jordebok 1498 jämte åtkomsthandlingar och andra därmed samhöriga aktstycken (1938). B. 3 (1846). Samlingar och anteckningar till en beskrifning öfver Ydre härad i Östergötland. Dalslands diplomatarium (1996). Edited by Kröningssvärd. Lunds universitet. I–IV (1921–30). Almqvist & Wiksell. Dalslands fornminnes. Helsingfors. Diplomatarium Norvegicum. Riseberga kloster (1935). Registrum ecclesiæ Aboensis eller Åbo domkyrkas svartbok (1890). II:1. prices. Edited by L:son Samzelius. P-A. Stockholm.J. 16 (1903). K G. Finlands medeltidsurkunder. and wages. and E Odelman. Handlingar till Nordens historia 1515–1523. IV. and E Odelman. Rääf. Edited by H. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. Stockholm. Edited by Hansson. Åmål. L. Stockholm. Lund.och hembygdsförbund. 16 (1842). Örebro. J. Holmiana at alia. Närkes medeltida urkunder 1. 1 (1892). R. Lund. Stockholm. Örebro stads medeltidsurkunder 1 (1993). Örebro stads bildningsförvaltning. Diplomatarium dalekarlicum. P. juli– december 1518 (1977). Linköping. Stockholm. Edited by Collijn. Norstedts. Vadstenadiariet (1996). J A. Svenska medeltidsregester 1434–1441 (1937).Svenska riks-archivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351. Stockholm. Stockholm. 3–54. Gleerup. 1383–1400 (1866–68). J (1978). Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (1930). no. Fritz. Edited by Hildebrand. Gleerup. ‘The Great Bullion Famine of the Fifteenth Century’. Kiöpebreef / Contracter och Räkningar. Jämtlands och Härjedalens historia. Intill 1537. Stockholm University. html (2008-09-01). Matts Kättilmundsson och hans tid. SRP . 2. Edited by Almquist. Lund. Dijkman. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. Norstedts. Attungen och marklandet: studier över agrara förhållanden i medeltidens Sverige. B. G. Stockholm. Edited by Tunberg. Stockholms stads tänkebok 1524–29 (1929–40). Stockholm. Stockholm. Observationer. B (1954). D. Beckman.dsl. Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven (SDhk) www. D. Dovring. række. J A.ra. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt burspråk (1917). Reprinted by Numismatiska Sällskapet i Göteborg (1980). Stockholm. Den påfliga beskattningen af Sverige intill den stora schismen. D. 1. S. Norstedts. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. P (1686). 79 (May). Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. Edited by Larsson. Lund. N (1948). L. Past and Present. Day. Word Perfect file. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1483–1492 (1944). Brilioth. Som kunna gifwa någon anledning til dhe forna Swenskars och Göthers Penninge Rächningz beskaffenheet / uthi många hundrade åhr tillbaka / uthur theras egne Handlingar / Lager /Afskeder / Recesser.html (2008-09-01). E.3. 1. Digital sources Danmarks riges breve. 1410–12. 1351–1382. Y (1915). Edited by Gejrot. Stockholm. Uppsala. Edited by Almquist.dk/oversigt/4-12. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 129 Stockholms stads skottebok 1516–1525 (1935). References Ahnlund. C. 2. pp. Stockholm. bind 12. F (1947). Stockholm. 1990. .se/ra/ diplomat. Sveriges mynthistoria: Magnus Erikssons tid 1319– 1363. Edited by Carlsson. and G Bäärnhielm. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. http://drb. 4. Almqvist & Wiksell. 1319–1326. mark och penningar’ in Jonsson. reprinted 1983). H (1894. htm (2008-09-01). Copenhagen. no. vol. vol. Anteckningar om mynt. prices.). Odense Universitetsforlag. Bonnier.dk/2/hauberg/hbggot1. Almqvist & Wiksell. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. Mark sølv: mark penninge – mark korn: mønt: mål og vægt i Danmark 1000–1340. H (1996). P (1891). Lund. Riksarkivet. Stockholm. Leiden. Hemmingsson. T (1858). Stockholm. vol. Svensk Numismatisk Tidskrift. B (2006). Folkungatidens monetära system: penningen mellan pest och patriarkat 1254–1370. Forssell. U Nordlind. ‘Makt. ‘När kungens mynt blev allmogens mynt: En översikt över mynt. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. Historisk tidskrift. Städerna. and I Wiséhn (eds. 68. Hildebrand. Gillingstam. Stockholm. Hammarström. K. 126–34. 1. Franzén. Uppsala. Sveriges medeltid. N. 1000–1550: Growth and Recession. Brill. Holmberg. M (1995). ‘Gullands Myntvæsen’ in Aarbøger for Nordisk Oldkyndighed og Historie. Golabiewski Lannby. I:1. Norstedts (reprint: Gidlunds). Stockholm. ‘“Mark karlgill”. K (1995). Copenhagen. B (2005). Sveriges medeltid. Almqvist & Wiksell International. Gunnar (1948).. II. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. Stockholm. H (1879. Det Kongelige danske videnskabernes selskab. 1277–2008 Dovring. I:2. Heckscher. Danmarks Myntvæsen i Tidsrummet 1146–1241. Norstedts (reprint: Gidlunds). Leipzig. Almqvist & Wiksell International. Ekström. Hinzel. I (1956). L E (1990). Brev ur askan: de i slottsbranden eller på annat sätt förlorade miscellaneabreven enligt äldre arkivförteckningar. Finansförvaltning och varuhandel 1504–1540: studier i de yngre Sturarnas och Gustav Vasas statshushållning. Svenskt arbete och liv. Sturetidens monetära system: pant eller penningar som information i köpstaden Arboga. The Danish Resources c. Stockholm. Hybel. Hauberg. Stockholm. Ett bidrag till det fornsvenska bötessystemets historia’ in Skrifter utgivna av Institutet för rättshistorisk forskning. Hallenberg. vol. P (1906). Norstedts. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. Hirsch.und Gewerbsgeschichte unter der Herrschaft des Deutschen Ordens. vigt. pp.). http://www. Hauberg. and I Wiséhn (eds. H (1872). and wages. B (1998). J (1798). Franzén. Johan Peringskiölds anteckningar m.gladsaxegymnasium. Stockholm. Danzigs Handels. mått och varupris i Sverige under de första femtio åren af Vasahusets regering. ‘När upptäcktes Östra Silverberget?’. .m. myntning och myntens roll i det svenska samhället under 1200-talet’ in Jonsson. F (1951). E (1941). reprinted 1983). Ser. Ekmansson.130 Exchange rates. U Nordlind. Hildebrand. Fauerholdt Jensen. Historisk avhandling om mynt och warors wärde i Swerige under Konung Gustaf I:s Regering. 3. Odense. Stockholm. K. Stockholm. and B Poulsen (2007). ‘Kenneth Jonsson: Utvecklingen av ekonomin som den speglas i myntningen’. Lund. Appleton and Company. Jevons. Stockholm. ca 1140–1220. and Nathorst-Böös. in Jonsson. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. Diakonistyrelsen. Stockholm. K (2002) ‘Utvecklingen av ekonomin som den speglas i myntningen’. Stockholm. Myrdal. E (1940). Varför fick Gotland dansk mynträkning vid 1400-talets mitt?. 45–59. N (2008).Mint prices 1273-1971 and market prices 1693-1977’. and I Wiséhn (eds. Nordisk numismatisk unions medlemsblad. ‘Fyra små gotar på en lybsk skilling’. Jesse. Hyötyniemi. and J Söderberg (1991). and M Östergren (1998). Malmer. Königsberg. Gothenburg. Stockholm.ucdavis.edu/files/Silver_value_of_1273-1977. B (1980). ‘Från utländsk metall till inhemskt mynt’. O (1939). Nordström. Jonsson. Almqvist & Wiksell International. Källström. Klackenberg.och antikvitetsakademien. Acta Universitatis Gothoburgensis. xls (2008-12-15). Myrberg. H (1992). J (1850).gladsaxegymnasium. 45–53. Nordisk numismatisk unions medlemsblad. J (1967). 4–16. Stockholm. Lindert. E (ed. Stockholm. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. E (1968). New York. Y (1999).3. pp. Der wendische Münzverein. U Nordlind. Statsmakt och statsfinans i det medeltida Sverige. Ett eget värde: Gotlands tidigaste myntning. in Birger Jarls tid – en brytningstid? Sex föreläsningar från ett symposium i Stockholm våren 2001. pp. Swedish Payment Systems 995–1534 131 Hyötyniemi. J. Medeltida kyrksilver från Sverige och Finland förlorat genom Gustav Vasas konfiskationer. Jonsson. Lagerqvist. Moneta nostra: Monetariseringen i medeltidens Sverige. Bidrag till penningeväsendets historia i Sverige intill konung . Lübeck. Lundholm. Stockholm.html (2007-08-03). Joachim. Kontinuitetens dynamik. Y (2002). Sten Sture den äldre och stormännen. Money and the Mechanism of Exchange. in Nordisk numismatisk årsskrift. Mynt.) (1896). L. Jonsson. D.htm (2007-02-01). ‘Silver in Britain -. Nordisk numismatisk unions medlemsblad. K. Thomas & Oppermann. S (1875). K. K-G (1956). Liedgren. Excel-file. http://www. Das Marienburger Tresslerbuch der Jahre 1399–1409. Vitterhets-. Opuscula 8. P (2006). historie. Stockholm. ‘Om grupperingar av äldre gotar’. Almqvist & Wiksell International. W (1928). Lönnroth. CWK Gleerup. http://www. pp.econlib.dk/2/artikler/jonssgot.). ‘Kontrakten med myntmästarna i Stockholm och Uppsala 1449– 1527’. Y (2000). Stockholms universitet.org/Library/YPDBooks/Jevons/jvnMMEtoc. Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts. Den senmedeltida penningen i Sverige. ‘Om gutnisk mynträkning på 1400-talet’. http://gpih. Hyötyniemi. Agrar ekonomi i 1500-talets Sverige. K (1995). Sällskapet Runica et Mediævalia. N L (1943). Styffe. pp. M (1989). 1350–1560. and wages. Sverige och Europa under forntid och medeltid. Lund.) (1887). vol. SKS/Finnish Literature Society. Almqvist & Wiksell. C (ed. ‘Varför fick Gotland dansk mynträkning vid 1400-talets mitt?’. Norstedts. historie. Handelsrechnungen des Deutschen Ordens. centuries). in Medeltidens födelse. and W Nikolaus (2006). ‘The Influence of Information Costs on the Integration of Financial Markets: Northern Europe. N L (1962). Bonniers.huberlin. Stieda. Cambridge University Press. Departemento de Educación y Culture. and K Jonsson (1998). Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser. Thordeman. Handbook of Medieval Exchange. Vitterhets-. Rasmusson. Stockholm. Bimetallism: An Economic and Historical Analysis. Appendix 3’.) (1921). P (2000). Pamplona. H (1973). Leipzig. Cambridge. 66. in Müller. Bidrag till Skandinaviens historia 2. .och antikvitetsakademien.132 Exchange rates. XXIX. B (1936). ‘Sveriges medeltidsmynt’. Helsinki. Rasmusson. in Proxima Thule. Journal of Economic History. Volckart. Boydell and Brewer. Wallroth. ‘Estimating Financial Integration in the Middle Ages: What Can We Learn from a TAR model?’. O (2006). Stockholm. 19 a 23 de julio de 1999. 1277–2008 Gustaf I:s tid: afhandling. Släkten Trolles historia intill år 1505. O (2007). P (1988). XXVI Semana de Estudios Medievales Estellas. Hirzel. London. Nordisk Kultur. W (ed. Spufford. M. Morgongåvoinstitutet i Sverige.htm (2008-09-01). Leipzig. and J Ojala (eds.wiwi. ‘Guldet i Norden under senmedeltiden’. Sattler. Stockholm. Money and its Use in Medieval Europe. 1. Jahrhundert. http://www.gladsaxegymnasium. Thurborg. Spufford. A (2000). Gyllenstiernska Krapperupsstiftelsen. Institutet för rättshistorisk forskning.de/wg/volckart/pdf_files/Infocosts%20Discussion%20Paper.pdf (200709-01). http://www2. Stockholm. Monetary Practice and Monetary Theory in Europe (12th–15th. Spufford. ‘Studier i norsk mynthistoria under tiden 1270–1513’ in Fornvännen. Cambridge University Press. Uppsala. Östergren. 122–39. Information Flows: New Approaches to the Historical Study of Business Information. P (1986). O. Vol. no.dk/2/artikler/jonssgot.). Petersson. C G (1864). Stockholm. K A (1918). P (1944). ‘Betalningsmedel under järnålder och tidig medeltid’. Duncker & Humblot. Gobierno de Navarra. L. Hildebrand Veckinghusen: Briefwechsel eines deutschen Kaufmanns im 15. Redish. 1350–1560’. Stockholm. ‘The Influence of Information Costs on the Integration of Financial Markets: Northern Europe. prices. Sjögren. Volckart. Cambridge. Volckart. The multiple currencies of Sweden-Finland 1534–18031 Rodney Edvinsson 4. Sweden-Finland had two silver currencies. came into use in the following centuries. a monetary term could bifurcate. What characterises most of the period was the perplexing parallel use of several domestic currencies. Introduction This chapter discusses the currency system of Sweden-Finland in 1534–1803. Claes Berg.4. such identities cannot automatically be assumed for the preindustrial era. Bo Franzén. . 1 For many insightful comments and suggestions. Lars O Lagerqvist. and the other one based on the silver daler (dollar). in contrast to the mono-currency standard with a single domestic currency (see Chapter 2) that is typical of the modern age. I want to thank especially Göran Ahlström. so that any two ‘American dollars’ are always equal.1. creating confusion and occasionally also disputes about how to interpret contracts. Göran Hansson. The axiomatic law of identity says that ‘A’ is always equal to ‘A’. Over time. the main one based on the mark. Klas Fregert. based on silver. The modern capitalist economy presumes such an identity. However. The silver daler was an international coin and was minted in Sweden-Finland from 1534 (see Chapter 5). Such a monetary system is here termed a multi-currency standard. capitalist economy. Exchange rates fluctuated not only on foreign currencies (see Chapter 5) but also between these domestic currencies. which was equal to 8 öre or 192 penningar (pennies). multiplying the number of monetary units in use that shared the same name. with a floating exchange rate between them. From the 16th century. Additional currencies. Rationalisation of monetary relations was part of the transformation from a pre-industrial to an industrial. since the meaning of a monetary term could differ between contexts and periods. Håkan Lobell and Johan Söderberg. copper and gold. Lars Jonung. so Finland’s monetary history coincided with Sweden’s in this period.134 Exchange rates. Jämtland. one based on the riksdaler banco and the other on the riksdaler riksgälds. when the gold standard was introduced and the riksdaler riksmynt was replaced by the krona as the main unit of account. The first bifurcation occurred in the late 16th century between the silver daler as a coin with a stable silver content and the daler as a unit of account equal to 4 marks or 32 öre. Finland was a part of Sweden until 1809. Halland. Since the same monetary label could have different meanings in different circumstances and in different periods. When the riksdaler riksgälds was fixed at 2/3 riksdaler banco in 1803. The silver daler was termed slagen daler and later riksdaler (rix-dollar) and riksdaler specie. that Sweden finally got a true mono-currency standard. In 1777 the riksdaler became the sole currency unit (if one disregards the gold ducat) but after only twelve years this mono-currency standard gave way to two different currencies. the period of multiple currencies was essentially over. with about the same fine silver content as the reichstaler according to the Leipzig convention of 1566 and later the Hamburger reichstaler banco. Scania. The riksdaler specie [i silver] and the ducat did continue to exist as separate currencies at a floating exchange rate but they were of minor importance as domestic currencies. Swedish Pomerania.3 the period 1624–1719. which continued to exist as a stable monetary unit up to 1873. In the 17th century further bifurcations occurred for the terms daler and riksdaler. coins were minted according to the Swedish standard.2 examines the period 1521–1624. In 17th century Estonia. but were conquered by Sweden during the course of the 17th century and are part of Sweden today. giving rise to multiple types of monetary units with a historical origin in the silver daler of the 16th century. The geographic spread of Swedish currency is a challenging issue. prices. Section 4.1 shows how the term ‘daler’ went through several semantic bifurcations in 1534–1873. Section 4. section 4. the first period with the copper and silver standard. it was not until 1873. Härjedalen and Gotland belonged to Denmark-Norway in the 16th century. 186–207).6 summarises the main results. The term SwedenFinland is sometimes used to describe the kingdom of Sweden from the Kalmar Union up to the Napoleonic wars. most of the monetary terms in this chapter are not 2 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968. pp. mainly in northern Germany and the Baltic region. Livonia. and section 4. Estonia and Ingria were transferred to Russia in 1721. Blekinge. . The boundaries of the kingdom of Sweden changed during the period studied here (see map below). section 4. and wages. However.2 The main disposition of the chapter is chronological.4 the period 1719–76. 1277–2008 Figure 4. when it was conquered by Russia. The German possessions (for example. which is further discussed in Chapter 5) had their own monetary systems and did not usually use Swedish currencies. Sweden also had other possessions in this period.5 the period after 1776 when riksdaler became the main currency unit in Sweden-Finland. Den karolinska tiden (1939. See Svenska folket genom tiderna: vårt lands kulturhistoria i skildringar och bilder. The annual figures are calculated as averages of the daily market exchange rates in Stockholm stads priscourant 3 and Post. 5. in accordance with the coins intrinsic metal value) cannot simply be assumed (see Chapter 2).4 In his study on copper minting in 1624–1714. the Swedish currency unit ‘daler silvermynt’ could be translated into ‘dollar silver coin’ or ‘dollar silver specie’. However. but are available in handwritten form at the Riksbank archive. However. vol. Furthermore. A problem with Wallroth’s exchange rate data is that he does not always present his sources. . circulation by weight (i. Wolontis (1936) presents monthly market exchange rates for the 17th century. One 3 4 5 Stocholms stads priscourant were published weekly from the early 18th century. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 135 translated into English because that could be misleading. O:2 and OO (Riksarkivet). ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ and untitled volume with exchange rates 1804–89.5 The material varies in quality but a check with other sources suggests that it is quite reliable. p. Both primary and secondary sources are used to estimate exchange rates between currencies. This material also provides information on the daily market exchange rates in the period 1705–36.1). Other sources have also been used and are discussed below.och Inrikes tidningar (some of these primary sources are missing today). fine metal content and exchange rates between monetary currencies in Sweden from the late Middle Ages to the First World War. but from March 1740 the price courants were published as a numbered paper. daler silvermynt was a unit of account in which copper plate coins were denominated as well. Sandbergska samlingen. which would give the impression of a dollar existing in the form of a silver coin. Its data on the market exchange rate for the riksdaler are used only when there are gaps in other sources. 33). For some periods he calculates the exchange rate between two coins on the basis of their fine silver contents. Initially the prices were handwritten on pre-printed formulas. Wallroth’s Sveriges mynt 1449–1917 (1918) presents data on the minting. The further back in time one goes.e.4. Riksbankens arkiv. Sveriges Riksbank (1931) presents annual exchange rates from 1740 onwards. The Sandbergska samlingen at the Riksarkivet contains some important information on the exchange rates from the Middle Ages to the 19th century. These daily exchange rates were never published by the Riksbank. O:1. For example. The first known issues are from 1705. after around 1665. Its data on the legally fixed relations between currencies in Sweden are readily accessible and have been used in this study. the less reliable are the exchange rates. actual silver coins were counted in daler courant and daler carolin rather than in daler silvermynt (see Figure 4. Purple: Daler kopparmynt (1624/1633–1776). Bifurcated from (svensk) daler. Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie).Yellow: Riksdaler courant (1660s–1776). Bifurcated from (svensk) daler. .Pink: Riksdaler carolin (1660s–1776). The bifurcations of the term ‘daler’ 1534–1873. and the differences between levels should not be interpreted as exact measures. and wages. Mint equivalent (monetary units per kg fine silver) daler kopparmynt daler daler silvermynt silvermynt i mynttecken daler klippingmynt riksdaler riksgälds krona riksdaler riksmynt dalercourant daler carolin riksdaler daler silvercourant (svensk) mynt i vitt daler mynt riksdaler carolin slagen daler 1604 1592 riksdaler riksdaler (specie) riksdaler riksdaler banco Joachimsdaler daler riksdaler specie Note: This type of figure of semantic bifurcations has been proposed by Klas Fregert. prices. Bifurcated from (svensk) daler. 1534 1650 1716 1809 1834 1624 1776 1789 1873 . . though its name could change over time: .Green: Daler courant (1650s–1776).Black: Riksdaler riksgälds/riksdaler riksmynt/krona (1789–present).Dark grey: Daler klippingmynt (1591–93).136 Exchange rates. . . . 1277–2008 Figure 4.Red: (svensk) daler/daler silvermynt i vitt mynt/daler carolin (1576–1776). Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie). Each colour denotes a particular monetary unit. Bifurcated from daler silvermynt. . .Brown: Riksdaler banco (1789/1809-1855/1873). . Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie).1. Bifurcated from riksdaler (specie). .Light grey: Daler silvermynt i mynttecken (1716–19). Bifurcated from daler. The left scale is ordinal. Bifurcated from daler silvermynt i vitt mynt.Dark blue: Joachimsdaler/daler/slagen daler/riksdaler/riksdaler specie (1534–1873).Light blue: Daler silvermynt (1624/1633–1776). . The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 137 Picture. Source: Cambridge Modern History Atlas (1912). The kingdom of Sweden around 1661.4. . 202). The two debasement phases were followed by recoinage and the reintroduction of better coins (with the same. Sweden-Finland had a de facto mono-metallic silver standard (see Chapter 2). albeit with some deviations. individuals did not possess the right to turn bullion into coins.707 pounds per dollar. Occasionally. respectively. fine silver content as before the debasement). When data are less reliable. vol.5 dollars per pound. prices. These attempts could succeed only if the quantity of minted coins was restricted. which expresses the value of one dollar in pounds. i. 1277–2008 specific problem is that the reported exchange rates were not always relevant for the whole of Sweden and the regional differences could be considerable. free minting was restricted (see Chapter 2). Some of the inferior coins were called clippings because they were cut into a square form to speed up minting. is 0. say that during a year one pound is variously worth one and two dollars. respectively). and the inverse value is 0. the value of the debased coins fell towards their intrinsic metal value. After some delay. the inverse of this value would be the same as the annual geometric average calculated for the monthly data of one dollar in pounds using the same data set.8 This was used by the Crown in attempts to raise the value of coins above their intrinsic metal value. The arithmetic average exchange rate is 1. Heckscher (1935. the arithmetic average is also used. The face value of the debased coins was reduced. calculating the arithmetic average of the exchange rate of one dollar in pounds (one dollar is worth one pound and half a pound. or nearly the same. The geometric average is 0. although it was not until the 18th century that such currencies were introduced on a larger scale. The advantages of a geometric average as opposed to an arithmetic average are the former’s symmetry and the fact that exchange rates tend to change geometrically rather than arithmetically. Both coincided with a need to finance a war effort by increasing seignorage. the median is used.6 Various methods are used to calculate central measures of exchange rate data. In the period 1534-1624 there were two major debasement cycles: 1561–76 and 1590–93. the geometric average is used. and wages. The arithmetic average does not gurantee such automatic equality. p. and finally transforming the average ratio into a percentage. When data are reliable.e. 8 . For example. which was done only in some periods and with limited success.7 4.138 Exchange rates. then calculating the geometric average of the data in ratio form. However. and thus to increase seignorage from minting. p. The 16th century thus saw elements of an inconvertible currency. The median is especially effective to eliminate extreme values. The geometric average of data expressed as a percentage (mainly various premiums) is calculated by transforming the data into ratios.667 pounds per dollar. 6 7 Hegardt (1975. Most notably.75 pounds per dollar. especially when annual averages are calculated from monthly data. 222). if an annual geometric average is calculated from the monthly data on one pound in dollars.2. during equal lengths of time. The period 1534–1624 Up to 1624. For example. I:1. 14 Sussman and Zeira (2003. Velde and Weber (1996) write that the profitability of debasement is still a puzzle.e. Peter Spufford similarly upholds.13 As Sussman and Zeira put it: ‘people did not go to an expert before each transaction at the marketplace. as with modern devaluations. As a result. 293). In his study of the Swedish Middle Ages. p. the greater the probability of recoinage. at least some of the time. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 139 There were also two minor debasements in this period. at most. p. not by weight. This could be used in the short term to increase the mint equivalent much more than the mint price. seignorage rose to as much as 57 per cent of government revenue. During the Great Debasement in England 1542–51. Hans Hildebrand (1983. Rolnick. there was a lag of up to several years before the price level adjusted to debasement. However. Sussman (1993) and Sussman and Zeira (2003). This was so because determining fineness required the specialised assistance of silversmiths. The two major debasement cycles followed the pattern in other countries. they concluded that gold coins circulated by weight (i. in 1540 and 1604. 935) also argues that the general public was well informed about the weight of coins but not so about the percentage of fine silver. the mint equivalent (the nominal value minted from a fixed weight of a metal) was not necessarily known to the general public. in relation to Medieval Europe.4. Expectations rose that the debased coins would be soon worth only their fine metal content. altered radically within weeks or even days’. only a matter of weeks.9 Sussman and Zeira stress that in time people found ways to protect themselves from the consequences of debasement and debasement policy became less effective. in accordance with their intrinsic metal value) and that silver coins did so. . the exchange rates. they also find that minting and seignorage increased dramatically in the wake of debasement. Nathan Sussman and Joseph Zeira maintain that debasement was an effective instrument of public finance. minting often declined towards the end of a debasement cycle. whereas the typical level under normal circumstances was less than two per cent. debased coins circulated by tale (i.11 In their study of the debasement cycles in France during the 14th and 15th centuries.e.12 In everyday life. in accordance with their face value). and thus to increase the rate of 9 10 11 12 13 Velde. Spufford (1988 p. Weber and Wright (1999.14 According to them. that when ‘the debasements or strengthenings of a currency were very large. but they were not followed (within the next 1–2 decades) by further debasements or recoinage and were therefore not part of a debasement cycle. From empirical evidence that lags in prices and exchange rates due to debasement were. but they did go to an expert after a debasement to check which coins to remint’. which was costly. 293). which would be illogical if coins did indeed circulate by weight (at least under free minting). 1776). Sussman and Zeira (2003).10 There was a limit to the extent to which the fineness of coins could be reduced. The lower the fineness. While the mint price was disclosed. too. p. is also reported for 1583 (see Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952. 55 and 61). which opened up for the possibility of a fluctuating exchange rate between coins of various denominations (so that one mark in coins of higher denomination could temporarily be worth more than 8 öre in coins of lower denomination. The exchange rate. 292). p. Such a multi-currency standard (see Chapter 2) probably existed temporarily in the early 1570s. 23) were exchanged for one mark in new coins. 1918. Weber and Wright (1999.25–1. For example. prices. In Sweden-Finland. Velde. The coins of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) (minted up to 1560) and King Erik XIV (minted 1561–8) continued to circulate in the last two decades of the 16th century. assuming a gross seignorage rate of 300 per cent.140 Exchange rates. Angela Redish concludes that the effect of undervaluation was ambiguous. In 1576. 1277–2008 seignorage (the ratio of the profit from minting to the mint price). Better coins minted earlier continued to circulate after the mint equivalent had been increased. Coins of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) circulated after 1576 at their nominal value. p. 1. 19 One example of a loan in engelots can be found in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941. at least temporarily. only 25 per cent of their nominal value is recovered. p. there were periods when the fine silver content per unit of value of coins of lower denomination was lower than that of coins of larger denomination. 79). If debasement policy is successful. in the 17th and 18th centuries. and wages. These are clear examples of a multi-currency standard and an economy where money was not fully a generalised unit of account. thus safeguarding the creditor from inflation. p. despite having a higher silver content than the coins minted after 1576. merchants voluntarily provided the mint with more bullion than previously. these older coins did not necessarily circulate by weight. 15 16 17 18 Sussman (1993. 624). de facto function as token coins. However.18 Loans were often paid back in the same coins (for example. when coins are converted into bullion. at least in the short term. the debased coins.625 marks in the coins of King Erik XIV (Wallroth. Despite the high seignorage. 1. marks of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) were exchanged at half their nominal value in 1598 (Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952. p. p. 33). The price level tended to follow the mint price rather than the mint equivalent. early 1590s and a few years after 1604. even though officially 1 mark = 8 öre). Redish (2000. pp. 271). but was more common later.15 In her study.16 The high seignorage rate during a debasement (which was typical17) partly constitutes a temporary deviation from free minting in the proper sense and introduces elements of a fiat standard. which was significantly below their intrinsic metal value. . silver daler or gold coins19) as those in which they were originally made. According to one source.625 marks in coins of King Erik XIV for one mark in new coins. The silver daler minted in the 16th century was still valid as a means of payment three centuries later. . The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 141 Riksdaler coins from 1542 (top left). Stockholm. and 1829 (bottom). In terms of what a male unskilled labourer could earn in Stockholm. 1631 (top right). Its fine silver content was stable but the purchasing power of metallic silver fell over time.4. around 6½ days in 1631 and around 3½ days in 1829. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet. one silver daler represented wages for around 12 days in 1542. 363). Riksarkivet. A riksdaler with a stable silver content was named riksdaler specie. Several sources are used to estimate the exchange rate of the silver daler in marks in the period 1534–1624 (see Figure 4. and wages. The daler with a stable silver content is referred to here as a silver daler (daler/ slagen daler in the 16th century. So-called gyllen coins were minted in the 1520s but were superseded later by the daler coins. pp. which had been introduced in the late 15th century.2. after which. p. riksdaler/riksdaler specie in the 17th. an indication that trade in larger volumes was becoming more common. Sandbergska samlingen.7). In the 1530s. although most years could be covered. A deliberate attempt was made to reduce minting.25 marks).142 Exchange rates. Heckscher (1935. Since the fine silver content of a silver daler was stable over time. Odén (1960) and Wallroth (1918). I:1. Later the term riksdaler also came to refer to various currency units of different values. one silver daler was worth between 3 and 4 marks (see Table A4. Shaw (1895. The Crown wanted the mark coins to circulate at the old exchange rate. 18th and 19th centuries). Odén (1955). which was set equal to 4 marks from the 1570s onwards. it provides a reference for prices to be expressed in grams of silver. the exchange rate should have been 3 marks for one silver daler. p. King Gustav Eriksson complained about this. Heckscher (1935. it had this stable silver content up to 1873 (when the krona was introduced). 211–2). 1277–2008 4. but initially this failed. a median value has been calculated. According to him.06 grams. The mint in Svartsjö was closed in 1550 and in 1551–5 it seems that no coins were 20 21 22 23 Wallroth (1918). The first daler coin was minted in 153420 after the German taler. In 1540 the silver content of both coins was reduced.6 grams.5 marks in the latter half of the 1540s (the theoretical exchange rate was 4. prices.23 Some interpolations are made for years when no reliable sources are available. vol. From 1540 it was reduced to 25. but more for the mark coins.1. 219). The exchange rate of the silver daler rose to 4–4.3). which was in accordance with the theoretical exchange rate based on the silver contents of the two coins. When values differ in the course of a year. From 1593 the slagen daler was also called riksdaler22 (earlier the term riksdaler mainly referred to foreign coins) and this became the only label for these coins from the early 17th century. . The daler as the unit of account depreciated continually relative to the riksdaler during the 17th and 18th centuries. with some minor changes. The first silver daler coins It was during the 16th century that the first larger silver coins were minted. The minted daler or riksdaler must be distinguished from the daler as the unit of account.21 At first the fine silver content of one daler was 28. Value ratio (in per cent) 1535–1625 of one gram fine silver in mark coins to one gram fine silver in riksdaler coins. 24 Lagerqvist (1995. Under circulation by weight.7 and Wallroth (1918).5–3. the value could fall somewhat below 100 per cent.2 presents the value ratio (in per cent) of one gram fine silver in mark coins to one gram fine silver in silver daler coins. although not as low as the 3 marks desired by the king. since mark coins were more exposed to wear and tear and silver daler coins were used in international trade. . p. 260 240 220 200 180 160 140 120 100 80 1540 1550 1560 1570 1580 1590 1600 1610 1620 Sources: Based on Table A4. and that the seignorage rate was higher for mark coins than for riksdaler coins. The exchange rate of the silver daler fell to 3. A value of 100 per cent denotes that the actual exchange rate of the mark was equal to the theoretical rate. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 143 minted in Sweden-Finland.75 marks in the latter half of the 1550s.2. A value above 100 per cent indicates that mark coins were overvalued in relation to silver daler coins. as can be observed for some periods. Seignorage could be positive at a level slightly below 100 per cent. since the unminted silver was worth some- Figure 4.24 The reduced quantity of minted coins partly had the desired effect. Figure 4. 142).4. The figure shows that the amount of seignorage was significant in the periods 1541–60. The depreciation was worst after the war. p. 28–9 and 36–7). and wages. In 1561–62. better coins from being melted down into bullion by others than the Crown. causing rampant inflation. In 1593.26 25 Wallroth (1918. market rate. I:1. pp. in 1566–67 at 6–7 marks. In 1563 the rate stood at 4. vol. one new mark was exchanged for 6. and in 1568 at 7–8 marks. which coincided with debasements.5 marks. what less than silver in the form of silver daler coins. However.2. Two breaks occur. 35 30 25 20 15 10 5 0 1530 1540 1550 1560 1570 1580 1590 1600 1610 1620 Daler in marks 1534-76 Slagen daler in marks 1576-93 Slagen daler/riksdaler in marks 1593-1625 Sources: See Table A4. In 1575/6. The debasement cycle of 1561–76 During and after the Northern Seven Years’ War 1563–70 there was a continuous depreciation of the mark. 205).25 Various measures were taken to enforce the face value of the coins and prevent the older.3.2. Sweden had to pay a ransom of 150. 1590–92 and 1604– 10.144 Exchange rates.5 debased mark coins. prices. 4. The price of one silver daler was at most 32 marks.7.000 daler for the Älvsborg fortress. in 1574. Daler/slagen daler/riksdaler i marks 1534–1624. . one silver daler stood at 4 marks. Although the Crown was initially able to exchange debased coins at par with the old coins (or at least at a better rate than suggested by their intrinsic metal content). the debasement in the early 1570s was probably not as successful in generating substantial seignorage to the Crown. 26 Heckscher (1935. 1277–2008 Figure 4. one new mark was exchanged for 4 debased marks. The fine silver content of one silver daler was 4.5 marks in the late 1580s. the various coins seem to have circulated by weight. After the inflation episode in the first half of the 1570s. p.4.25 times the fine silver content of the mark coin. The daler becomes two different monetary units The distinction between money as a unit of account and as a commodity (intrinsic value coins) increases the likelihood of terminological bifurcations of monetary units (see Figure 4. 1 silver daler = 1. it was in this period that the daler came to refer to two different currencies: the unit of account equal to 4 marks and the silver daler.28 4.25 marks (hence. but that could not be maintained. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 145 prices and exchange rates quickly adjusted in response to debasement. not by tale. In the second half of the 1570s and the early 1580s the silver daler stood at 4. While the official price of one silver daler was 4 marks in new money. 13 marks in coins of 1570. According to Birgitta Odén. Still. Odén argues that Heckscher was wrong in claiming that these two different meanings of daler did not arise until the 1590s. below its official exchange rate in 1575 as well as its intrinsic metal value. The rampant 27 Wallroth (1918. at least towards the end of the debasement cycle. which continued up to 1595. better coins. A decision on 12th May 1575 enabled the public to exchange the debased coins for new. 23).27 Hence.1). 4. i.4. King Johan III wanted the silver daler to equal 4 marks. In the closing years of the reign of Johan III the value of the Swedish mark then deteriorated rapidly. The annual Consumer Price Index presented in Chapter 8 closely followed debasement. p. However. After the introduction of the new mark. The value of the mark klipping-coin was later reduced to one öre (1/8 of a mark). there was a period when the currency was quite stable. 241).3. . 28 Odén (1955. the exchange rate varied.e. it was 9. it was not until the 1590s that a substantial difference can be observed between prices expressed in slagen daler (minted daler) and in räknedaler (daler as unit of account). it can probably be assumed that it was the coins of 1571–74 which dominated domestic trade (the Crown’s exchange operations also reduced the supply of older coins).2. Since coins were minted in 1571–74 on a much larger scale than in the previous period. and 26 marks in coins of 1571–74 (somewhat better than the market exchange rate in 1574).2.5–11 marks in coins of 1569.0625 räknedaler). The debasement cycle of 1590–93 The Northern Seven Years’ War was followed almost immediately by a war with Russia. the rate then increased to 4. It was not until May 1594 that the klipping mark 29 The minting statistics show that mark coins probably dominated circulation over coins of the lowest denomination. since people no longer trusted the coin as a means of exchange. but it was devalued to ¼ of the face value. However.31 The old price level could. Therefore. be retained. The fine silver content of the round one-mark coin was 0. 32 Wallroth (1918.29 The difference can be explained by the much lower silver content of the ¼-öre coin per unit of value relative to coins of higher denominations. However.1). the exchange rate based on relative silver contents would be 37. The exchange rate between the silver daler and marks was probably varied. . Birgitta Odén argues that the prices in Handlingsräkenskaperna in 1591–93 are fictitious.2 marks in ¼-öre coins. However. Wallroth’s assumptions for 1592 are not used. According to Wallroth. whereas in the mid-1570s debased coins were exchanged largely in accordance with their intrinsic metal value.32 according to Eli Heckscher. (1935. 30 Wallroth (1918. I:1. 39. not on prevailing market rates. The empirical material gives a somewhat confusing picture of prices and exchange rates in the early 1590s. therefore. 33 Heckscher. 44–5). His exchange rates for 1592 rather seem to be based on the fine silver metal contents of the minted coins (a method he uses elsewhere in his work). and wages. for example in Handlingsräkenskaperna. p. in 1592 the exchange rate for one silver daler rose to 38 marks in one-mark coins and to 84 marks in ¼-öre coins. Since the fine silver content of the one-daler coin was 25.9 marks in round one-mark coins. 31 Odén. vol. depending on the coins in which the mark was counted.30 In the present study.6473 gram.5 marks in mark klipping coins and 84. Barter trade was also common under normal circumstances. prices. 82). The price material. in 1593–94 they were exchanged at a much better rate than their fine silver content implied. 1277–2008 inflation caused much confusion and confidence in money weakened. Wallroth does not refer to any empirical sources.146 Exchange rates. most trade during the height of monetary disarray in the early 1590s was probably conducted by barter or was discontinued. 42–7). (1960. the rate varied between different debased coins (see Table 4. often indicates a remarkable stability in the early 1590s. no empirical sources have been found to support such high exchange rates. since they were used as the basis for barter trade to register relative prices between goods.0095 gram.6758 gram. As in 1575.5957 grams. p. p. the one-mark klipping coin 0.33 In 1593 and 1594 the inferior coins were exchanged for new coins. which suggests that the debased coins were accepted at their face value and did not cause any substantial inflation. in spite of the rampant inflation when it came to actual monetary transactions. pp. Although minting shows that the debased coins dominated circulation compared to coins minted earlier. and the ¼-öre coin 0. The fine silver content of the most inferior klipping-mark in 1592 was almost one-tenth of that of the new silver mark minted in 1593. 207). and that inflation during the debasement cycle in the early 1590s amounted to not more than 300 per cent.39 Since the exchange rate of the debased coins. to ¾ öre (=3/32 mark). klipping coins as well as proper coins were often rejected as payment. One explanation could be that the earlier debasement cycle was more 34 35 36 37 38 39 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939. in accordance with the prevailing market rate. Next day. in an emergency. p. A few days later traders were urged to sell at better prices and prices were imposed on beer and bread but the traders refused to conform. 218). part I. King Johan III solemnly promised that one year later the debased coins would be exchanged at their full nominal value in better coins. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1589–1591 (1948. This is a clear difference from the debasement cycle of 1561–76. 239). but would be paid for at 6 daler per ship pound in older. better coins.34 In 1593. to de facto introduce token coins that were supposed to circulate by tale. they continued to de facto function as token coins up to 1593 or early 1594. 118). p. 72). arguing against a ‘metallic viewpoint’ that the value of money is completely determined by its intrinsic metal content. Price regulations were imposed to ensure this. confidence in money had not yet been restored. the decision was revoked and it was decreed that the mark coin must be accepted at its full face value.36 According to Eli Heckscher. pp. part I. . however. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939. For example. p. p. 51–3 and 63). Heckscher (1935. 1592–95. the attempt only failed because too many of the inferior coins were minted. The attempt to de facto introduce a fiat currency was initially successful. it was announced that the mark klipping coin would be reduced to two öre (¼ mark). In January 1591. 1592–95. According to Stockholms stads tänkeböcker. and that prices would be freed. part I. not 800 per cent (or more) as suggested by the silver content of the debased coins. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 147 was devalued further. there is a report from July 1592 that iron was sold for 24 daler per ship pound in debased coins. At a meeting between the King’s representatives and the commons on 5th June 1592. 1592–95.4. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939.38 It is likely that during the second half of 1592 the exchange rate stabilised at four debased marks for one mark in proper (older) coins. He therefore insists that the quantity theory of money is of some relevance for explaining inflation in the 16th century.37 There was a time lag before debasement affected prices and exchange rates. but there are none in 1590 or 1591. even at its lowest in 1592. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939. p. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker is filled with reports of high prices and exchange rates in 1592. 1592–95. was more than twice their intrinsic metal value. 227).35 The debasement in the early 1590s could be seen as an attempt. in accordance with its fine silver content. vol I:1. part I. for klipping coins not exchanged previously: 1 new mark = 8 marks in klipping coins 1 new mark = 4 marks in 1-mark. 218). * .and 2-öre coins of 1591 and 1592 (1-mark klipping reduced to 2 öre already on 8/12 1592) 1 new mark exchanged for 2 marks in ½-öre coins of 1591 and 1592 1 new mark exchanged for 11/3 mark in coins of 1590 (including gold coins).125 marks in coins from Vadstena of 1568 1 new mark exchanged for 1. See Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941.625 (Swedish) daler (valid up to 16/8 1633) 1 new mark = 6. 1277–2008 Table 4.5 marks = 1. and wages.75 marks in coins of 1569 1 new mark exchanged for 2.5 marks = 1. The official conversion rates for various domestic currencies 1534–1624. According to a royal decree in January 1575. Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968) and Franzén (2006). Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet). 544). prices. and 2-mark and 1/2-mark coins of 1591 and 1592 1 new mark = 1 mark in coins minted before 1590 1 (Swedish) daler = 4 marks (unit of account used up to 1776) 1 silver daler (slagen daler) = 4.125 Swedish daler 22/3 1604 1607 7/9 1619 8/5 1594.25 slagen daler 1 daler = 4 marks in new money (valid up to 1589) 1 new mark exchanged for 6.125 daler 1 riksdaler = 52 öre = 6.1.148 Exchange rates.625 marks in coins of King Erik XIV 1 mark of coins of King Gustav Eriksson (Vasa). ** Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592.375–2.5 slagen daler 1 krongyllen = 1.5 marks = 1. no change in nominal value* After 6/3 1576. part 1 (1939. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956–78).5 old marks Assumption in this study 12/1 1593 1 new mark = 4 old marks Sources: Wallroth (1918).25 marks in coins of 1570 1 new mark exchanged for 2.** 1 (Swedish) daler = 4 marks (valid up to 31/12 1776) 1 riksdaler = 4. 1 mark klipping further devalued to ¾ öre. p. p.25–1.5 marks in coins of 1571–74 1 new mark exchanged for 3. Date 1568 12/5 1575 Official conversion rates 1 ungersk gyllen = 1. 44 Another gold coin. 5. according to the Sandbergska samlingen. However. However. so that agents had more time to come to terms with the true value of the inferior coins. in Stockholms stads tänkeböcker. 1605–08.45 The fine gold content of one ungersk gyllen was 4. 60). and 6 marks in 1611 (see Table A4. For example.42 Such a rate suggests circulation neither by weight nor by tale. The minor debasement in the early 17th century In the period 1593–1604 one silver daler was roughly equal to 4. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1963.7).5.25 marks in 1608–10. The first gold coin minted in Sweden-Finland was the ungersk gyllen. pp. folio 1434. In 1604 the silver content of the mark coin was reduced.6. lighter two-öre and one-öre coins did not come into circulation on a sizeable scale until 1608 and 1609.5 marks. p. In this study it is assumed that the exchange rate of the riksdaler was 4. p. vol. It must be borne in mind that it was the öre coins which dominated money supply. Gold coins The circulation of gold coins in Sweden-Finland in the period 1534-1624 implied that there was not a pure silver standard.1245 grams 40 41 42 43 Wallroth (1918. the official value of the riksdaler was fixed at 4. 4. 62–3). an exchange rate of 5 marks and 2 öre for one riksdaler is reported for early 1608. The lighter one-öre coins were not minted until 1609. 45 Forssell (1872. According to Wallroth. One reason for the exchange rate’s slow adjustment after 1604 was that the new. VI. Wallroth’s ‘metallistic’ assumptions must again be questioned. pp. since domestic transactions were overwhelmingly conducted in mark silver coins. was the krongyllen. 302). In 1607. the adjustment of the exchange rate was probably a drawn-out process lasting several years. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 149 protracted. 44 Tingström (1972.41 The exchange rate probably rose gradually from 4.2. Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet).43 It is possible that in the period 1605–9 the exchange rate for a riksdaler in mark coins differed from that in öre coins.5 marks to 6 marks in this period. but something in between. 4. It is also possible that the new mark coins were accepted initially at the same or almost the same face value as the older mark coins and thus at significantly above their intrinsic metal value.2. Rather than being immediate.5 marks. 84–8). . It was struck in 1568-1573. The 2-öre coins were minted on a small scale in 1605 and then annually from 1608 onwards. the monetary standard should be described predominantly as a monometallic standard in this period (see Chapter 2). O:1 .5 marks as late as 1610.5 marks up to 1607.40 this led to the exchange rate of one riksdaler being 6 marks from 1604 onwards. minted in 1569-1573 and 1598-1599. one riksdaler was worth 4. Wallroth (1918. 77).4. p. Sweden was the dominant international producer of copper. These were intrinsic value coins.285 grams per mark in 1610–11 and 0.25 silver daler. while the mark coin did not fall as much. Alongside the ungersk gyllen and krongyllen. In the late 1620s. the öre minted in silver also depreciated relative to the riksdaler. Also the international gold-silver (value) ratio (see Chapter 2) shows a significant increase between the late 16th century and the mid 17th century. the price of copper was high.4–1. The round gold coins struck in 1606–24 had a fine gold content of 0. and the klipping gold coins 0. the Rhine golden (rhensk gyllen) 0. 1277–2008 and of one krongyllen 3. 96). In comparison. copper coins were minted on an extremely large scale.05 grams. 1603 and 1606–26 gold coins were minted in the mark denomination.25 silver daler. various other foreign gold coins circulated in Sweden-Finland in the second half of the 16th century. The period 1624–1719 In 1624 the first copper coins were minted in Sweden-Finland. This ended in 1777. since their face values were supposed to follow the values of their copper contents.75–1 silver daler. the crona around 1. When copper prices were low.5 silver daler and one krongyllen to 1.3. the engelot around 2.0395 grams.31:1 based on the ungersk gyllen and 10. the ducat 1. 46 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941. One reason for introducing copper coins was to manipulate the price of copper. folio 61.48 Since the silver mark at the time had the fine silver content of 4. when the sole silver standard was reintroduced.2 to 1 in 1606–24 and 14. Since the fine metal content of one silver daler was 25. . Sweden-Finland had (to a greater or lesser extent) a combined copper and silver standard. this would imply that the gold-silver (value) ratio during the 1570s was 9. 48 Wallroth (1918).3.46 implying a gold-silver (value) ratio of 10. pp.25 silver daler. the double ducat around 3.273 grams per mark in 1626.4-14. According to one source. some of them as clippings since they were clipped in square form. 4. so that they tended to fall towards their intrinsic metal value. the ratio was around 1:15 in the second half of the 17th century and the 18th century.7 silver daler. However. One ungersk gyllen was equal to 1.5957 grams. prices.303 grams per mark. it was thought that they could be increased by reducing copper exports and minting a large amount of copper coins for domestic circulation. and the portugalös 12–15 silver daler. the price fell. O:1. p. When the copper coins were introduced in 1624. this would imply a gold-silver (value) ratio of 13.53:1 based on the krongyllen. 86–7) and Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet). In 1589–92. After a few years.150 Exchange rates. 47 See Forssell (1872.47 The rosenobel was valued at around 4 silver daler.8:1 in 1626. From then on. which is closer to the estimated value ratio based on the krongyllen. and wages. one ungersk gyllen was equal in value to 1⅔ daler in 1570 or the late 1560s.25 silver daler. k. There were some periods when additional currencies were in use. In some periods. 226). abbreviated d.m. In 1643 the copper öre coins were devalued by a further 20 per cent (for example.52 Although 1 mark = 8 öre was maintained as an accounting identity.m. all copper coins were denominated in öre. and the other in daler kopparmynt (daler copper coins). 1 d. The currency units in Sweden-Finland 1624–1776 From around the mid-17th century up to 1776. In 1665 the copper coins were devalued by a further 1/6.s. = 2.s. it was not valid between coins for all periods. = 3 d.k. 4. 1 daler = 4 marks = 32 öre in the respective system.m. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 151 During the first two decades of the copper standard.4. and one daler carolin to 4 marks in actual silver coins or to two carolins.m.1. = 2 d.5 d.k. 183). so that 1 d. p. Moreover.m. This was the last reduction. 2) mark/carolins (1 carolin = 2 silver marks) and 3) öre.m. while the copper coin minted as one öre silvermynt in 1635–41 was devalued to 4/5 öre silvermynt). some petty copper coins were minted in the denomination of öre silvermynt. abbreviated d. A decision on 26th August 1633 reduced the official value of the öre copper coins by 50 per cent. When payment was made in actual silver coins. One öre courant was the same as one öre in actual silver coins. Hegardt (1975. p. Sweden-Finland de facto had five or six different currencies.s. the one-öre copper coin from before 1633 was devalued to 2/5 öre silvermynt. From the 16th century there were three different types of currency based on silver: 1) silver daler/slagen daler/riksdaler (specie).49 This gave rise to two different counting systems: one in daler silvermynt (daler silver coins).. the terms ‘daler/mark silvermynt in specie’ or ‘daler/mark vitt mynt’ (daler/mark white coins) were often used initially. and one daler courant was equal to 32 öre courant. . while all copper plates were minted in the denomination of daler silvermynt. the term carolin came to refer to actual silver coins in mark denomination and the term courant to actual silver coins in öre denomination. Wallroth (1918.m.m. Hence.s. p.3. p. which lasted until 1776. Wolontis (1936. In fact. but in other periods the equality could not be upheld.50 The disinction between daler/mark/öre silvermynt and daler/mark/öre kopparmynt constituted a system of account and did not necessarily indicate whether the payments were made in coins of copper or of silver. the fine silver con49 50 51 52 Stiernstedt (1863. one or two based on copper and one based on gold. 109). the öre courant was in fact equal to öre silvermynt. Copper plates were struck in higher denominations from 1644 onwards. One carolin was equal to two marks in actual silver coins.51 From the 1660s.k. In 1633 the relation was: 1 d. three based on silver. 57). 55 Wallroth (1918). 57 Heckscher (1936. the mint equivalent became higher for petty coins than for copper plate coins. p. at least de jure). both petty copper coins and copper plate coins (disregarding the coin tokens of 1716–9) could be described as intrinsic value coins. but their role declined in the course of the 17th century. 121). Before 1719. and wages. that cheap money drives out dear money. pp. the former did not drive out the 53 Davidson (1919. 167). p. The difference was quite small in the late 17th and early 18th centuries (most likely motivated by the petty copper coins’ higher production costs per unit of value). Copper coins also de facto formed two different systems. 56 Own calculations based on Wallroth (1918). For example. vol.54 Alongside copper and silver coins. p. there were coins minted in gold. 54 Stiernstedt (1863.57 How could this multi-currency system exist for so long and why did not one of the currencies replace the others. there was a monetary standard based on three metals (trimetallism. pp. . 418–9) and Talvio (1995.56 In addition. but after 1719 this was true only for copper plates. The legal value of the ducat was fixed in the mid-1660s. but became significant from 1719 onwards. 203). prices. The main source for the ducat’s exchange rates before 1740 used in this study is the Sandbergska samlingen. applies only when there is a fixed rate of exchange between the two’. In Wolontis (1936. The ducat was minted in Sweden in the period 1654–1868 (in foreign provinces also in earlier years).53 After 1680. as suggested by Gresham’s law? Milton Friedman and Anna Schwartz point out that ‘Gresham’s law. monthly exchange rates are available for 1686. In a sense. because greenback and gold dollars in the 1860s were not interchangeable at a fixed rate. foreign coins were still used in domestic transactions. In the 18th century ducats probably did not account for more than a tiny fraction of the total minted stock. 638–9).152 Exchange rates.55 The total amount of ducats minted was quite small. one ducat was worth about twice as much as one riksdaler. 1277–2008 tent of 8 öre in silver coins in öre denomination was normally lower than the fine silver content of one mark in silver coins in mark denomination. The exchange rate between the ducat and the riksdaler fluctuated but roughly followed the change in the gold-silver (value) ratio. and that the law has been misunderstood and misused because this requirement is often forgotten. Throughout the period. one in petty coins of lower denominations (termed ‘slantar’) and the other in copper plates of higher denominations. In 1681 the mark coins were revalued relative to öre coins and this put an end to the equality between one daler carolin and one daler courant. I:2. The main minted gold coin after the mid 17th century was the ducat (imported ducats were already circulating in Sweden in the Middle Ages). 27). it should be taken into account that hoarding petty coins is more costly per unit of value than hoarding coins of higher denominations. 186). Without such transaction costs. it could buy around two hectolitres of grains or 14 kg of butter.58 A premium (agio) on dear money allows it to stay in circulation. 60 However. One ducat contained 3. There are transaction costs involved in using the dear money at a premium. the year in which the Riksbank was founded. it is often petty coins that are driven out of circulation. For example. p. latter and they could coexist for a time. Arthur Rolnick and Warren Weber go further and argue that while Gresham’s Law relies on the ‘existence of a fixed rate of exchange that is different from the market price’. a premium can reflect the costs involved in the exchange market. this does not imply that cheap money never drives out dear money.60 The relation between market and legal values is somewhat complicated. not coins of higher denominations. they ‘have found no evidence that such a fixed rate of exchange ever existed. . but it cannot constitute a law. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 153 A one-ducat coin from 1668. Stockholm.4 grams of fine gold and was equivalent in 1668 to a male unskilled labourer’s pay for around 12 days’ work in Stockholm.4. Since coins of small denominations are more expensive to use at a non-par premium than money of large denominations. p. That is 58 Friedman and Schwartz (1963. cheap money would never drive out good money. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet. and that is not surprising since it is hard to believe it ever could exist’. 59 Rolnick and Weber (1986.59 According to them. Rolnick and Weber’s hypothesis is that cheap money drives dear money out of circulation when the transaction costs involved in using the dear money as a means of payment at a premium are significant. 2. The premium on better coins could reflect other circumstances than the value relations of various currency units. O:1. The existence of several currencies based on the same precious metal presupposes a large ‘fiat component’ of the coins’ face value (see Chapter 2). an example of an economy based on self-subsistence and payments in kind. therefore tended to be driven out of circulation (exported) when undervalued due to high copper prices. it was during this period of multiple currencies circulating alongside each other that the fiat standard arose.154 Exchange rates. 167 and 313–4). vol. and was not fully all-purpose money. in Sweden-Finland in the 18th century. Heckscher (1936. 607) and Davidson (1919. I:2. pp. and later the Riksbank. and Sandbergska samlingen. coins of one of the metals become undervalued. Monthly exchange rates for the riksdaler exist for the period 1640–8663 and are presented in Table A4. which were of higher denominations. vol. p. The relation between copper and silver While there is constant pressure for depreciation under a mono-metallic standard.3. changes in the relative prices of the two metals imply that after some time. Wolontis (1936. With the latter. since they could not be substituted within their sphere of circulation by other coin currencies. 167 and 310–1).62 Money existed as several types of commodity. A very small fiat component. Even when undervalued.1. but information on these two types of rate is seldom available for earlier times.64 they are presented in Table A4. 638). in some respects the pressure is even greater under a bimetallic standard. Monthly exchange rates for carolins and öre courant exist for the period 1670–81 and for 1686. Wolontis (1936.2 and Table A4. Stockholm Banco. although the figures are not very reliable for every year. In Sweden-Finland. 117–20). Debts in one type of currency had to be paid back in the same currency. The Swedish multi-currency standard was based on different systems of account. annual exchange rates between domestic currencies are presented in Swenne (1933). prices. 4. Angela Redish points out ‘that undervaluation in a bimetallic standard could be removed either by depreciating the undervalued metal or by appreciating the overvalued metal. Copper plate coins. folios 1475–88.61 Eli Heckscher argues that this was so because the monetary system was not fungible. p. For example. I:2. and wages. Yet in virtually all instances it was 61 62 63 64 Heckscher (1936. . For the 1620s and ’30s. 1277–2008 why exchange rates should be calculated as the average of the buying and selling rates. due to free minting. pp. would in effect lead to fixed exchange rates between monetary units based on the same metal. had to be liquid in all domestic currencies. the high cost of transporting copper plates as means of payment resulted in a discount (negative premium) on copper plates. pp.3. various coin currencies were not driven out of circulation. Other factors were also at work. Sweden’s monopoly position in the copper market entailed that the price of copper could be affected by policy measures (not necessarily always profit maximising in the short-term) and was therefore not an independent variable.70 In 1660. silver in 1664–74. It was copper in 1624–33. pp. Ch. pp. the (net) seignorage tax (slagskatt) on the minting of private copper was increased significantly. which was adjusted by increasing either the mint equivalent of silver coins (mainly öre coins) or the official value of existing silver coins relative to copper coins. Wallroth (1918.66 Although both silver and copper coins circulated widely in trade. silver in 1681–1709. copper plates became overvalued. vol. xii). For example.67 In 1716–19 and 1745–76 there was de facto a fiat standard. 33). copper in 1709–66 and silver in 1766– 76.’65 This is especially relevant when analysing the double copper and silver standard in Sweden-Finland 1624–1776. Wolontis (1936. absorbed more than half of world’s total production of gold. in the period 1624–1776 the metals alternated as the official basis of the main currency unit. 89–91). 59 and 93).e. when gold became cheaper relative to silver in the 1850s and 1860s. according to him.4. 125–6). 185–9). p. In the 17th and 18th centuries. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 155 the former that occurred. Friedman (1990. 606). which was on a bimetallic standard at the time. There are also stabilising factors underpinning bimetallism. that high copper prices brought about a silver standard (since copper coins would then be driven out of circulation) and low copper prices brought about a copper standard (since silver coins would then be driven out of circulation). i. Wolontis questions the view that the alternation between the official silver and copper standards in the period 1624–1714 can be attributed to changes in the price of copper relative to silver. copper in 1674–81. I:2. Heckscher (1936. When the copper price subsequently fell. Minting was to a large extent conducted on government account. too.69 Free minting did not apply to copper. France. almost to the level of various charges on 65 66 67 68 69 70 Redish (2000. The relation between different currencies changed not only because the price of copper fluctuated relative to silver but also because the mint equivalent (the nominal value minted from a ship pound of copper or silver) of various coin currencies changed. silver in 1633–44. See Chapter 2. the mint equivalent of copper plates was increased on numerous occasions. . and Jevons (1875. The minting volume of private copper could be large but its maximum quantity was always predetermined. mostly as a consequence of temporary increases in the price of copper. pp. so no upper bound existed for the price of copper money. pp. Davidson (1919.68 The exchange rate between silver and copper coins was not fixed and it fluctuated during most of the period. copper in 1644–64. thus counteracting the fall in the gold-silver (value) ratio. p. Source: Nationalmuseum.71 Because free mining was restricted. to some silver and gold coins. p. and wages. . To stimulate minting of silver and gold coins. 1277–2008 Copper Foundry at the Falun Mine. shipping copper abroad. there were periods when the face value of copper plate coins was significantly above their intrinsic metal value. at least in some periods.156 Exchange rates. prices. by Pehr Hilleström the Elder (1732–1816). 133). Free minting did apply. in 1664 the (net) seignorage tax (slag71 Wolontis (1936. 234. 193). In reality. 1 ship pound copper = 136 kilograms. Private copper was usually unfree. 26–8 and 199). There were also periods when the export of copper plate coins was banned. the price of copper plate coins should be highly correlated with the prices of free copper in Sweden and garcopper in Amsterdam (with a deduction for transaction costs. . In 1709. of copper plate coins 45. pp. which contained less fine silver per unit of value than the carolins.72 One problem is the existence of more than one market price for copper. 319 and 325). The price of Swedish garcopper in Amsterdam in that year was 64.9 riksdaler per ship pound. which led to additional transaction costs if copper plate coins were smuggled abroad. Their quality did not differ. 73 Wolontis (1936. 244.18 daler silvermynt (see Table A4. 72 Nordisk familjebok (1913). This price is a measure of the value of copper plate coins as a means of exchange. For the period 1624–1715. free and unfree copper differed in price and did so substantially after 1655. 74 Wolontis (1936. including duties and smuggling costs in some periods). The higher the international price relative to the price of free copper. pp. which can be explained by the high costs of transportation and the risks involved (which could account for 10–15 per cent of the price in Amsterdam). in 1677 the price of unfree copper was 36 riksdaler (specie) per ship pound. a restriction was imposed so that only one third of the silver delivered to the mint would be minted into 5-öre silver coins. For example. except in the periods 1655–62 and 1666–73 (although the duties on copper plate coins were then lower than for unfree copper). Unfree copper that was shipped abroad was subject to various duties.9 riksdaler per ship pound and of free copper 50 riksdaler per ship pound. Furthermore. The mint equivalent of copper plates was 100 daler silvermynt per ship pound. This did not apply to 1-öre and 2-öre silver coins. p.16 mark kopparmynt or 2. Copper plate coins were usually exempt from duties when exported. while the riksdaler stood at 26. only their legal status. a fourth copper price could be estimated based on copper plate coins.75 In theory. The difference varied. There are also many gaps in the time series of the various copper prices. the stronger was the incentive to export copper from Sweden-Finland. such a price in riksdaler per ship pound of copper plates is calculated by Josef Wolontis from the exchange rate of the riksdaler and the mint equivalent of copper plates. while the other two-thirds would be seen as a loan to the Crown at 6 per cent interest. No written permission was required to deliver silver and get silver coins in return.73 Furthermore. while free copper was exempt from these taxes.7). 75 Wolontis (1936.4.74 The price difference in Amsterdam between Swedish copper coin (plates) and Swedish garcopper was insignificant. the price of Swedish garcopper in Amsterdam was usually substantially higher than the free copper price in Stockholm. Most notably. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 157 skatt) was abolished for them (except for silver coming from the Sala silver mine). If the value of öre silver coins had fallen to their intrinsic metal value. 194–209). 1625 and 1626. the riksdaler increased to as much as 12 marks in one-öre silver coins in 1631.158 Exchange rates. when there was a de facto metallic standard. 1277–2008 the prices of free copper in Sweden and garcopper in Amsterdam fluctuated sharply compared to the price of copper plate coins in Sweden. Wolontis (1936.5 marks in copper coins in 1624. When taken out of circulation. which is somewhat puzzling. the copper coins initially circulated by tale rather than by weight. 1625 and early 1626 to 8 marks in late 1626.5 marks in 1627 and increased to 9 marks in early 1628. the price of copper plate coins in riksdaler did not fall. The period 1624–33 During the period 1624–33. although there was de facto a multi-currency (copper and silver) standard since silver coins circulated alongside copper coins at a floating exchange rate. while the Amsterdam copper price was very low in the early 1650s. Göteborg and Norrköping were given permission to mint their own öre silver coins in 1623. Instead.77 These fluctuations are too large to be explained by the fluctuations in the copper price. The market exchange rate of one riksdaler rose from 6.7). copper plate coins were always worth more as means of payment than as copper for domestic use. Swenne (1933.79 Another explanation could be that the excessive minting 76 77 78 79 Wolontis (1936. These coins contained less than the stated amount of silver and were therefore declared invalid as means of payment as of 1st February 1632. fell back to 6. the copper coin was officially the main currency unit.5 and Table A4. Although the price of copper was high in 1624–25. respectively. p. the market value of copper öre in those years was significantly above the intrinsic metal value. one riksdaler would have increased to 7. pp. the price of copper plates as means of payment was probably never below the unfree copper price (which would have induced the melting down of copper plates for domestic use). and 14 marks in 1630–33 (see Figure 4. copper plate coins were almost exclusively either exported or saved as treasure.3. 185). pp.3. and wages. For example. 4.78 One reason for the fall in the value of öre coins in silver was that the towns of Kalmar. the value of öre kopparmynt soon fell. In other words. 193). p. Thus. .9 marks in one-öre silver coins. 66–76). The öre silver coin fell in value against both the riksdaler and the mark coin.76 With the exception of the 1760s and ’70s (during the fiat standard at the time). The öre in silver metal fell far below its intrinsic metal value.5 marks (52 öre) per riksdaler. and copper plates became worth much more as means of payment than as copper metal for export. Although initially at the par rate of 6. 10 marks in late 1628 and 1629. Tingström (1995. prices. In the late 1620s the copper klipping fell into disrepute and there was a premium on the round copper coin relative to the klipping coin. various copper coins minted in the late 1620s and recovered from the Vasa. the 2 öre kopparmynt (left) weighed around 60 grams and was the equivalent of around two hours’ wages for a male unskilled labourer in Stockholm. Right. Stockholm. A decision to withdraw the klipping coin from circulation was taken on 12th January 1629 but it was exchanged at par for round copper coins with a percentage reduction. which also affected the value of öre silver coins. It could buy around 0. Two kinds of öre copper coins were minted: klippings and round coins. pp. Already in 1629 there were fluctuations in the exchange rates between the four main currencies in Sweden-Finland: öre silver and öre copper coins. Photo (right): Swedish National Maritime Museum. a Swedish warship that sank in 1628. Photo (left): The Royal Coin Cabinet. After that the value of the öre copper coin fell more than that of the öre silver coin. 94–5). 81 Wolontis (1936.25 kg of butter or four litres of grains. of copper coins in particular overcame the previous shortage of means of payment. 80 Wolontis (1936. 71).80 The mark silver coin also fell in value relative to the riksdaler but not as much as the öre silver and copper coins. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 159 Sweden adopted a copper standard in 1624. Stockholm. mark silver coins and the riksdaler.4. . In 1625.81 The relation between öre silver and copper coins seems to have been one-to-one at least up to 1628. p. 109).83 However. 86 In the early 1640s the riksdaler stood at around 7.12 times higher than the fine silver content of the onemark silver coin. it seems that silver coins circulated by tale in some meetings and with a premium in other meetings (although not necessarily in full proportion to their weight). not least since the minting of copper coins was much larger than the minting of silver coins.160 Exchange rates. The theoretical exchange rate based on the fine silver content of öre coins was 6. folio 612. especially mark coins. 83 Stiernstedt (1863. the purpose being to reestablish the fixed relations that in theory should underpin bimetallism. The source material is not entirely reliable concerning the market exchange rate between copper and silver coins in the 1630s and ’40s. in his account of the exchange rate of the riksdaler in mark silver coins. However.82 A decision on 26th August 1633 officially devalued the öre copper coins by 50 per cent.87 At the same time the value of one daler silvermynt was increased a second time.86 However. Josef Wolontis argues that it was the copper coins that de facto dominated money supply. 84 This is not fully considered in Swenne (1933. p. one riksdaler in 1639 stood at 7.5 daler kopparmynt. 87 Stiernstedt (1863. became undervalued. p. the market exchange rate for the riksdaler was higher than 12 marks kopparmynt. i. The official value of one riksdaler was reduced to 48 öre silvermynt. 98). p. 1277–2008 4.3.84 The relation 1 daler silvermynt = 2 daler kopparmynt seems to have been upheld at least up to 1639. It is also possible that öre silver coins were more likely to circulate by tale than mark silver coins. to 2. prices. although this cannot be confirmed from any sources. ‘mark silvermynt’ could refer either to the accounting unit (equal to 2 marks kopparmynt or ½ daler kopparmynt) or to actual mark coins in silver. 6 marks silvermynt (or 12 marks kopparmynt). The period 1633–44 During the period 1633–44 the silver coins were officially the main currency unit. The fine silver content of the riksdaler coin was 6. .84 marks (55 öre) per riksdaler. Thus the official value of öre and mark silver coins increased relative to the copper öre coins. namely 13–14 marks in the period 1634–39 and 15 marks in 1640–44. 85 According to Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet). Silver coins.4.e.5 marks in ‘hwit mynt’ (white coins). On 24th March 1643 the official value of one riksdaler was increased to 15 marks kopparmynt.5 marks previously. from 6. OO. 119). 82 Wolontis (1936.85 implying a de facto bimetallic standard. and wages. in accordance with the market rate. In copper coins one riksdaler stood at 14–15 marks kopparmynt. For example.5 marks (60 öre) in silver coins. 190). p. in the early 1640s. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 161 Queen Christina. portrait by David Beck in 1650.4. Source: Nationalmuseum. . had the denomination 10 daler silvermynt and weighed 19. creating a shortage of money. The de facto bimetallic standard was transformed into a de facto multi-currency standard. the mint equivalent was further increased in 1660 for both copper plates and round copper coins. and wages. In 1661–4 the Bank therefore clipped the deposited copper plates to accord with the new higher mint equivalent established in 1660 and made huge profits from this operation. The minting of copper plates was suspended in 1645. The increase was so large that it led to subsequent increases in the riksdaler’s exchange rate as well as in the premiums on mark and öre silver metal coins. The old copper coins minted at a lower mint equivalent were exported and largely disappeared from circulation.90 This rather unusal way of increasing seignorage from debasement is an interesting example of how money as an abstract unit of account needs to be distinguished from money as a physical object circulating as means of payment. There was also a premium on these coins. 2. 108). 4 and 8 daler silvermynt) that could be used more effectively as means of payment in domestic trade.7 million 88 Wolontis (1936. which led to an increase in the exchange rate of the riksdaler during the 1650s. notwithstanding a large fall in copper prices 1650–2. especially towards the end of the decade. 1277–2008 4. pp. 89 Wolontis (1936. Initially. copper plates were also minted in lower denominations (1. 90 Wolontis (1936. prices. 114). These plates were mainly exported and not used as means of payment in domestic trade. since they were more convenient means of payment than the metal coins (in particular the heavy copper plates). Due to higher copper prices. but no reliable source for this could be found for the 1650s. minted in 1644. the bank notes were quite popular with the public. The notes probably did not account for more than 10–20 per cent of the total money supply (according to Palmstruch. At the same time the mint equivalent of copper plate coins (but not round copper coins) was increased by 14 per cent. After the mid-1650s there was a premium on the öre and mark silver coins relative to the copper coins.88 From then on. only to be resumed in 1649. Copper prices were quite high in 1654 and 1655. the total amount of issued notes was 2.3. with Johan Palmstruch as its director. large amounts of old copper plates of the mint equivalent before 1660 were deposited there. The first copper plates. 126–130). When Stockholms Banco was established in 1657.5.89 The premium for mark silver coins was probably somewhat higher than for öre silver coins.162 Exchange rates. p.7 kg. . partly in order to overcome the shortage of money that resulted from the increased mint equivalent in 1660. p. The mark and öre silver coins seem to have been at par with the copper coins at least up to 1655. In 1661 Stockholm Banco began to issue the first bank notes. The period 1644–64 In 1644–64 the copper coins were officially the main currency. There was even a small premium on the notes relative to metal coins. When the bank continued to exchange notes at their par value. After that. it was a very large sum of money. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet. although the circulation velocity of notes was most likely higher than that of copper plates. 9 oxen or 47 hectolitres of grains. 100 daler silvermynt was what a male unskilled labourer could earn in Stockholm for around 340 days’ work (equivalent to half a million SEK in the early 21st century) and could buy around 360 kg of butter. daler kopparmynt). vol. The picture shows a bank note issued five years later with the nominal value of 100 daler silvermynt. I:2. . pp.4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 163 Stockholm Banco.91 91 Heckscher (1936.. i. note-holders made a run on the bank. Notes then became inconvertible in 1664. no bank notes were issued in the rest of the 17th century. forerunner of the Riksbank. issued the first bank notes in Europe in 1661. 130–3). 629–30). the world’s oldest central bank. although the discount was never more than 8–10 per cent. The Riksdag took over Stockholms Banco and re-established it in 1668 as the Riksbank.e. Stockholm. In 1666. This was sufficient to reduce the value of the notes. and Wolontis (1936. pp. This was done at their full value. The Riksdag (the Diet of the Estates of the Realm) decided to withdraw the notes. . when the riksdaler’s official value was 15 marks kopparmynt.923 riksdaler. although there was de facto a multi-currency. i.94 Very few riksdaler coins were minted after the reign of Queen Christina. The period 1664–81 In 1664–74 silver coins were officially the main currency.6. In the period 1674–81 the plate copper coins became the official currency unit. now to 3 daler kopparmynt. 94 Wolontis (1936. Even before the riksdaler’s appreciation to 52 öre in 1665.92 and from 15 to 19. A riksdaler equal to 6 marks in silver coins. 93 Sandbergska samlingen.5 daler carolin). Since the mint equivalent of petty copper coins was not increased until 1680. which was in accordance with the market exchange rate. at least in some regions. following high copper prices in the previous years. i.e. Copper prices began to fall from 1674. O:1 .e. The mint equivalent of copper plates was further increased in 1674. was termed a riksdaler carolin (1 riksdaler carolin = 1. 2344 in 1707 and 9943 in 92 Stiernstedt (1863. This was a consequence of the previous increases in the mint equivalent of copper coins. the official value of one daler silvermynt was increased for the third time. p. On 7th October 1665. or 3 carolins.2739 grams and the fine gold content of one ducat was 3. 1277–2008 4.3. the derived value ratio of gold to silver would be around 1:15. since there was a premium on both carolins and öre courant.25 marks kopparmynt and of one riksdaler in ‘smått mynt’ (petty coins or öre courant) 17 marks kopparmynt.164 Exchange rates. which ended in 1654. between a riksdaler in actual specie coins. prices. in the second half of the 1670s there was also a premium on round copper coins relative to copper plates. p.5 marks in silver coins. the practice of counting a riksdaler in 48 öre or 6 marks in silver coins continued. The official value of one riksdaler was increased from 48 öre (6 marks) to 52 öre (6. For example.5 marks) in silver metal coins. Since the fine silver content of one riksdaler was 25. in 1662. although that was still below the market exchange rate. 153). Only 791 riksdaler were minted in 1676. and wages. folio 262. 1 ducat ≈ 1. The term riksdaler courant was also used but up to 1681 it could probably refer to either 48 öre courant or to 3 carolins (further investigation is needed on this issue).25 marks kopparmynt. there was a difference between a riksdaler expressed in different types of silver coin.3966 grams. even though the official value of the riksdaler specie was increased to 52 öre or 6. copper and silver standard. The official value of one ducat was set to 100 öre silvermynt. which was in accordance with the prevailing ratio in the international markets.5 marks kopparmynt. This can cause some confusion. but de facto a multi-currency standard was in place. in mark silver coins equal to 6 marks and in öre courant equal to 48 öre.93 After 1665. of one riksdaler in mark silver coins 17. the market value of one riksdaler in specie was 18. 159). .078 riksdaler during a 60-year period! No exact figures are known. This is a clear indication of relatively efficient markets. which were the most quoted foreign currencies in Sweden in the 17th and 18th centuries (see Chapter 5). the assumption in this study is that the riksdaler coin contained 25. altogether no more than 13. See Wallroth (1918). 97 Wolontis (1936. in accordance with the prevailing market exchange rates. the Hamburger reichstaler banco and the Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant.2739 grams.35 grams of fine silver and one Swedish riksdaler 25.3.5 riksdaler were minted in riksdaler coins. Since one Amsterdam rijksdaalder contained 24. 4.e.6973 grams of fine silver. and of one carolin from 6 to 7 marks kopparmynt.27 grams. However. 117.961 Swedish riksdaler. which is not surprising since the silver contents of the two currency units were almost identical. since the riksdaler coins of Queen Christina probably continued to dominate circulation in the late 17th and early 18th centuries. i. the official value of one riksdaler was increased from 19. Copper plates became dear money. On 19th March 1681. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 165 1713.5 marks kopparmynt. 96 In the year 1652 alone. the market exchange rates of the riksdaler and the carolin against copper coins implied that the copper plates had become undervalued in relation to the international price of copper.5 to 24 marks kopparmynt. only 0. On 15th May 1686 one carolin was further increased to 7.2739 grams of fine silver in 1639–1718.2 per cent above the actual median price during the period in question. 161). p. the theoretical price should have been 0. In the period 1660–81 the median price of one Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant (estimated spot price) was 0. the undervaluation of copper plates (in terms of the international bullion price) became legally fixed. but a guesstimate is that maybe up to one million riksdaler coins had been minted during Queen Christina’s reign. the Swedish riksdaler’s exchange rate seems to have been almost equal to the exchange rate on Hamburg.e.908. than the coins minted from 1676 onwards. and in the coming period were exported and disappeared from circulation. There are also 95 Wallroth (1918). In the latter half of the 17th century.6973 grams in 1719–1830.95 i. 25.7.4. and 25.97 When the official relations between silver coins and copper plates were adjusted to the market exchange rates. The period 1681–1709 The silver standard was officially reintroduced in 1681 and lasted until 1709. of one ducat to two riksdaler.963 Swedish riksdaler for one Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant. However. The exchange rate on Swedish riksdaler can be compared with the exchange rates on two other types of rix-dollar. which contained 25. This level was not surpassed until 1769.96 The riksdaler coins of Queen Christina contained less fine silver. Silver coins de facto became the main means of payment. This was recognized in the market exchange rate between courant öre coins and carolins.5 (3 times 7.166 Exchange rates.5 marks in 1686. See Wallroth (1918) and Wolontis (1936. After 1681. one riksdaler carolin was legally fixed to 22. When the official value of one carolin was increased to 20 öre silvermynt in 1686. One daler carolin (equal to two carolins or 4 marks in carolins) was no longer officially equal to one daler silvermynt or one daler courant. prices. This presupposes that 1 riksdaler courant is equal to 48 öre courant (which also confirms that the market rate was at par with the legal rate in the 1690s). Up to 1681. 100 The 5-öre silver coin that was minted from 1690 had the same fine silver content as the previous 4-öre silver coin. not 3 carolins.98 One öre silvermynt continued to be equal to three öre kopparmynt. p. folio 779) where 1 riksdaler courant is set equal to ¾ riksdaler specie and to 1. p. and wages. daler carolin and daler courant. there are two examples in Sandbergska samlingen. folio 774) and the other from 1697 (Sandbergska samlingen. 156) argues that the two units ‘riksdaler carolin’ and ‘riksdaler courant’ were the same.5 daler silvermynt. one from 1690 (Sandbergska samlingen. the fine silver content per unit of value of the öre courant was 15 per cent below the fine silver content per unit of value of the carolin. . from the 1680s onwards was a consequence of the bimetallic copper and silver standard. while not debasing carolins. it was somewhat higher for the 4-öre silver coin than for the 2-öre silver coin. The increase in the official value of the carolin in 1681 therefore simply recognized the market situation.99 This premium disappeared during the course of the next two decades as the fine silver content of the newly minted öre coins was decreased100 and the silver coins replaced the copper plates as the main currency. but this can be questioned. the difference between the two units became quite large. After the legal appreciation of the carolin to 7. It was further increased to 25 öre silvermynt in 1716. stating that ‘effter som här i landet gemeligen plägar förstås RD courant till 6 m Smt’.5) marks kopparmynt or 60 (3 times 20) öre silvermynt. 167). In 1686 there was still a premium on öre silver coins. and the attempt to make öre courant follow the copper currency. p. 4-öre coins were also reminted into 5-öre coins.5 daler silvermynt. 99 Wolontis (1936. O:1. in order to retain the relation 1 daler silvermynt = 1 daler courant = 3 daler kopparmynt. the fine silver content of the öre silver coin was simultaneously reduced. the riksdaler courant and the riksdaler carolin definitely became two different units of account. both equal to 3 carolins. 8 per cent in 1697). implying that the official value of one carolin was increased from 16 to 18⅔ öre silvermynt in 1681 and to 20 öre silvermynt in 1686. For example. 101 Wolontis (1936. Wolontis (1936. 1277–2008 reports of a premium on copper plates in the late 18th century (for example. O:1 . but here ‘6 m Smt’ most likely refers to 1. This was 25 per cent above the level of one riksdaler 98 See footnote 104. ensuring a stable relation between the two silver currency units. 156) quotes the same source.101 In 1686–1716. The widening difference between the two silver currencies. p. 168). O:1 . 27–27⅜ marks kopparmynt.75–27. in 1686–95 the exchange rate on Swedish riksdaler as well as on Hamburger reichstaler banco was quite stable at around 25 marks kopparmynt.e.e.25 marks. Furthermore.107 Stockholms stads priscourant contains weekly exchange rates for various currencies for the period 31st May 1705 to 9th February 1707.105 The riksdaler coins circulating in the late 17th and early 18th centuries were mainly those that had been minted during the reign of Queen Christina (and to a large extent also foreign taler coins). the spot rate would be slightly higher. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 167 courant equal to 48 öre courant. 106 Of the coin treasures found for the period 1701–21. in 1697. equal to 1. the market exchange rate of one riksdaler carolin was 22. pp. O:1. 108 Riksbankens arkiv. p. pp. but for 25 marks kopparmynt in copper plates.4.5 marks kopparmynt). the riksdaler courant became a pure unit of account.5 daler silvermynt (i. and thereafter ceased to be linked to the courant coins.102 According to Wolontis. 174–5). 1 riksdaler was sold for 72 to 73 öre silvermynt. p. throughout the period 1695–1709. See Sandbergska samlingen. 35). See Sarvas (1969). 103 Wolontis (1936. Moreover.000 in 1696 to a few thousand in the 1710s. 107 Sveriges Riksbank (1931. 110 In December 1708 the exchange rate of the Hamburger reichstaler-banco was 27 marks and of the Swedish riksdaler specie 26. in 1697 the riksdaler also stood higher than usual.104 According to Wolontis.106 The Riksbank’s holdings of riksdaler specie decreased from 134. 109 Direct data. the few riksdaler coins (a total of 11 coins) were from the reigns of Gustav II Adolf and Queen Christina. 111 Wolontis (1936. 104 In Sandbergska samlingen. 48 öre silvermynt). 105 Wolontis (1936. 127). Lars Herlitz writes that during the 18th century. copper plates had largely disappeared from domestic circulation in the late 1690s. folio 335 (Riksarkivet). one document reports that. . Mint treasures are often good indicators of which coins circulated during the time when the treasure was laid down (which can often be determined by the coin with the latest year of minting). 176). ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’.75 marks kopparmynt109) was valued at slightly above the Swedish riksdaler specie (at 26–26. its par value. However.108 These show that the Hamburger reichstaler banco (at 26.111 The exchange rate of the riksdaler specie also fluctuated around a nar- 102 Herlitz (1974. i. No findings of riksdaler coins are reported for the period 1722–38. at least in various official documents. p. the foreign taler coins were more numerous than the Swedish riksdaler coins.5 marks kopparmynt or 60 öre silvermynt.110 One explanation for the higher exchange rate of foreign currencies could be the greater demand on Sweden to finance its war efforts during the Great Nordic War 1700–21.103 In this study it is assumed that no premium existed on carolins and öre courant throughout the period 1687–1715. 175 and 322). folio 1780. and the only copper coins that were widely used were those of smaller denominations. The term was used only sporadically after the mid18th century. 1716–9. had the fine silver content of 23. Copper plates became dear money and tended to be driven out. 48). 112 Wolontis (1936. 1277–2008 rower band (0. prices.2 carolins.5 marks kopparmynt) than the Hamburger reichstaler banco (1 mark kopparmynt). which. One riksdaler in specie was officially 3. and wages.3.3. .112 On 17th May 1715 it was decided that copper plates would be revalued by 50 per cent. p. called ‘nödmynt’ (emergency coins) or ‘mynttecken’ (coin signs or coin tokens). pp. in turn. which was significantly lower than both the market exchange rate of the riksdaler and the Hamburger reichstaler banco. However. In a longer perspective this had a profound effect on the monetary system in Sweden-Finland and stimulated the rise of fiat monies. p. there is some similarity with the effect of the introduction of copper plates in the 1640s and 1650s.6 per cent below the fine silver content of one riksdaler in specie. When the minting of copper plates on a larger scale was resumed in 1710. which required a stamp. the mark kopparmynt as a unit of account was linked to carolins. The par value for the riksdaler stood at 24 marks kopparmynt. it was temporarily banned in 1713–14. 8.25 marks kopparmynt in the early 18th century. a currency linked to the carolin motivated an exchange rate for the riksdaler specie of 26. The average exchange rate of one riksdaler was also raised from 25 marks kopparmynt around 1690 to 26.113 Copper plates once again became cheap money. Based on these relations of fine silver contents. Since the carolins had become the main currency unit. copper plates were again minted on a larger scale.168 Exchange rates. although a fiat standard was in place in 1716–19 and 1745–76. When the export of copper plates increased. the monetary system was in disarray as a result of several changes. almost exactly in accordance with the theoretical exchange rate.25 marks kopparmynt. The reintroduction of the copper standard in 1709 During the period 1709–66 Sweden-Finland was officially on a copper standard. In 1710.9. most notably the circulation of token coins. in the early 1710s the price of copper rose substantially from the previous decade. 229). the mint equivalent was increased. 180–1) and Tingström (1984. at least from the 1690s onwards. and were more valuable as means of payment than as metal for export. 113 Hegardt (1975.8. Given there was free minting of carolins. The experiment with token coins in 1716–9 Towards the end of the Great Nordic War. which subsequently led to the issuing of the first bank notes in Europe in the 1660s.11 grams. 4. In this respect. such circulation by weight is an expected outcome of an efficient market. 4. the premium on better coins (mainly copper plates and öre courant) was less than 15 per cent. 116 Wallroth (1918. According to Gösta Lindeberg. they contributed to inflation. this was not the first instance of token coins being used to replace commodity money. however. 6–12 per cent in the first half of 1717. vol.4. the old official value of the carolin (before 1681). the metal value of the copper coins minted in the Spanish Low Countries in 1543 was around 20 per cent of their face value. and only for a few months or half a year did it rise above 50 per cent. ‘Hoppet’ (The Hope).115 Various measures were taken to ensure the use of coin tokens by the general public and to draw in proper money to the State. For example. valued at 2 öre silvermynt. they never came to dominate the money supply and mainly functioned as convertible fiduciary notes. I:2. By a decree of 23rd April 1719. the assumption in this book is that for 1719.2). 115 Heckscher (1936. since not all notes were exchanged at their full value (although a majority of them were repaid later on) and the value of the devalued coin tokens continued to depreciate. . The value of the copper metal from which these coins were minted was only 0. 114 Sargent and Velde (2002. 228). p. the circulated coin tokens valued at one daler silvermynt (32 öre silvermynt) were redeemed for another type of token coin. p. the following relation holds: 1 daler silvermynt in coin tokens = ½ daler silvermynt in proper money (see also the construction of the Consumer Price Index in Chapter 8). Although the bank notes issued by Stockholm Banco in the 1660s were non-metallic money. During most of the period with coin tokens. A decision on 20th December 1717 made the old carolins invalid as means of payment and exchanged for coin tokens.116 but they were reinstated as legal means of payment on 18th April 1719. From an international perspective. 117 Stiernstedt (1853. the premium was 4–8 per cent in the second half of 1716. 92). 12–36 per cent in the second half. To replace the old carolins. Initially the coin tokens did not significantly disturb the monetary system and were even welcomed for being easy to handle. the ‘Görtz’ carolin’ was minted in 1718 with a lower fine silver content and a face value of 16 öre silvermynt (instead of 25 öre silvermynt).117 The exchange was carried out in June 1719. and a note worth 14 öre silvermynt that would be exchangeable later at its full value. Despite this.5 to 1 per cent of their face value. 634). This implies that the coin token worth one daler silvermynt was in effect devalued by 50 per cent.114 The debased coins that circulated in Sweden in the early 1590s also partly functioned as token coins (see section 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 169 The coin tokens minted in 1716–9 were de facto fiat money. Later. In practice the devaluation was larger. 320–8). pp. Only briefly did they circulate as inconvertible fiat notes before being exchanged at their full value. p. and wages. 4–6.120 The index rose continually from July 1718 to March 1719 and then dropped 61 per cent from March to April 1719. barley. hops. equal to 425 g) from 27th January 1719 (12 öre silvermynt 22nd January) to 11th May the same year. the accounts of the hospital. 390. from 27th May. 120 The 18 goods are: wheat. malt. Although monthly exchange rates are not available for the late 1710s. bread and beer. The only reasonable explanation is that there was a change in the currency unit in which prices were expressed. 20 and 22. 119 Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900. 114. vol. but for 40 marks when paid in coin tokens. One problem is that the sources can report prices in either proper coins or coin tokens. in January 1719 the Uppsala Academy sold rye for 26 marks kopparmynt per barrel when paid in copper plates. which corresponds almost exactly to the change in the index based on the prices reported in the minutes of the Board of Commerce. oats. twist tobacco. vol.122 118 Lindeberg (1941. 408.118 According to Hegardt. Göteborgs landsarkiv. This is an expected result. tallow. butter was bought for 6 öre silvermynt. prices. pork. 121 Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900. and 20–80 per cent in October–December 1718. 146. Since this is in complete contrast to the concurrent change in monthly prices in Göteborg. 1277–2008 2–5 per cent in the first half of 1718. barley groats. implying a premium of 67 per cent on plates. . pp. 12–14 per cent in July–October 1718.e. a 62 per cent reduction. cheese. The best source for following monthly prices during this period is probably for Göteborg. there are some sources for monthly prices.170 Exchange rates. implying a premium of 33 per cent. peas. 6. for 40 marks kopparmynt in May 1719 and for 48 marks kopparmynt in December 1719. as explained above. salt. 195 and 223). Signum L:I (Kollegiernas protokoll). higher than implied by the official 50 per cent reduction of coin tokens announced in April 1719. Mixed grain was sold for 18 marks kopparmynt when paid in copper plates and 24 when paid in coin tokens. 122 ‘Priset på spannmålen i Fahlun från 1716 til 1723 inclusive. Both these sources indicate that the premium on better coins continued to increase in the early 1719 and may have been as much as 150 per cent in March to May that year. found in the minutes of the city’s Board of Commerce. February 1719 and March 1719. was de facto greater than 50 per cent. Another source of monthly prices is from Falun. p. Signum G:d (Handlingar angående hospitalet). vol. butter. fish. i. rye. without explicitly stating which. Another source from Göteborg. Göteborgs landsarkiv. it is highly likely that the prices in Falun were expressed throughout the period in proper coins rather than token coins. since the devaluation of the emergency coins.4 presents a weighted monthly price index for Göteborg based on 18 goods. meat. from coin tokens up to March 1719 to proper coins in April. av Erik Sjöberg” in Äldre Kommissioner (Riksarkivet).121 shows that butter was purchased for 16 öre silvermynt per Swedish pound (skålpund. where the salesman Erik Sjöberg sold rye for 36 marks kopparmynt per barrel in September 1718.119 Figure 4. Göteborgs landsarkiv. Top. Bottom. 4–6. prices for wheat and rye more than halved between these two months (from 32 to 14 daler kopparmynt per barrel for wheat and from 30 to 12 daler kopparmynt per barrel for rye). prices in June the same year. .4. vol. As can be seen. showing the effect of inflation and the ensuing devaluation of coin tokens. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 171 Price notations in Göteborg in 1719. Sources: Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv. when the coin tokens had been replaced by proper coins. which corresponds to the devaluation of the coin tokens. Signum L I (Kollegiernas protokoll). at the end of the Great Nordic Wars. prices in January 1719 at the height of the circulation of coin tokens. 332) writes that in Autumn 1719. and wages. The face value of the coin tokens was reduced but was still too high. on 18th February 1724 the face value of coin tokens still in circulation was officially reduced to 1 öre kopparmynt. p. 128 Stiernstedt (1863. 270). pp. coin tokens at the reduced value of 2 öre silvermynt were to be accepted up to the sum of 10 daler silvermynt. there were notes called ‘myntsedlar’ (coin notes) which circulated in the same period and fell in value even more than the coin tokens. According to a decree from 4th May 1719. The market value of coin tokens was well below 2 öre silvermynt after June 1719. 1/3 öre silvermynt). 125 Stiernstedt (1863.129 The exchange rates reported for this period on Amsterdam and Hamburg are most probably noted in proper money (mainly copper plates). when one riksdaler was registered (supposedly based on the average exchange rate on Hamburg) at the value of 58 marks kopparmynt and one ducat at 118 marks kopparmynt. these notes lost most of their credit worth. 295–6). prices.125 In 1719–20 large amounts of coin tokens were reminted to 1 öre kopparmynt (i. 129 Stiernstedt (1863. 324). i. 270).e.126 which was probably in accordance with the market rate. According to Stiernstedt. 130 Lindeberg (1941. before the dramatic increase in the premium on better coins towards late 1718. 323). pp. 21–3). and particularly for 1718.128 Stiernstedt gives one example for the first half of 1718.172 Exchange rates. the riksdaler was considered to be valued at 36 marks kopparmynt. 1277–2008 The coin tokens officially circulated at their full value up to early June 1719. p. Thereafter they circulated at a reduced official value of 2 öre silvermynt. p. Danish prisoners-of-war almost starved to death because the notes for their maintenance could not buy anything. The problem of exchange rates did not disappear after mid-1719. p.123 All these factors may have contributed to the high prices in late 1719. it is especially difficult to calculate a mean exchange rate of the riksdaler in mark kopparmynt. 126 Stiernstedt (1863. 339–40).e. . In addition to the coin tokens.130 The use of coin tokens could most likely be enforced only on domestic 123 Stiernstedt (1867. and above this 10 daler per 100 daler. not in coin tokens or notes. When the metal content of new copper plates was reduced by one third and the face value of old copper plates was increased by 50 per cent in 1715. pp.127 For the period 1715–19. For example. However. 124 Stiernstedt (1863. it was not until 29th December 1718 that the official value of one riksdaler was changed to 36 marks kopparmynt. The problem is partly connected with whether the mark kopparmynt is expressed in coin tokens or in copper plates. 127 Stiernstedt (1863. p. the coin token was not even accepted as one öre silvermynt.124 The effect was probably greatest on prices for smaller transaction volumes. Finally. respectively. Carolins had also been revalued (in 1716) but only by 25 per cent. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 173 transactions. 133 Stiernstedt (1863.133 Another explanation could be that the exchange rates. Ser. which indicates that the reported 58 marks kopparmynt for one riksdaler was probably counted in coin tokens. p. 135 Lindeberg (1941. the estimated premium on better coins is used as an indicator. This implies that the premium on better coins was 75 per cent. p.132 One contributory factor could be high copper prices. 231). such a rise did not occur until 1717. 269). the exchange rate on Hamburg varied between 43.75 and 83. 132 Hegardt (1975. 136 Stiernstedt (1863. To calculate the exchange rates in coin tokens. the exchange rate on Amsterdam was 42–47 marks kopparmynt in early 1718 and 80 marks in November and December 1718.4. at least in 1716. which is very close to Stiernstedt’s example. 197). folio 364. 22). Handel och sjöfart.131 Even so. This is in accordance with the source stating that the exchange rate on riksdaler in the late 1718 was 80 marks kopparmynt in proper coins and 140 in coin tokens. Only for the late 1718 are there reports of an exchange rate of around 80 marks kopparmynt in proper coins and 140 in coin tokens on Amsterdam and Hamburg. p.75 marks in 1718. the revaluation of older copper plates and carolins does suggest that the exchange rates should have already risen in 1716.136 131 Lindeberg (1941. For 1718 this calculation yields an annual average estimate of 60 marks kopparmynt for one riksdaler in coin tokens. were in units of account rather than actual market rates. not on foreign exchange. the fall in the exchange rate of Swedish relative to foreign currency affected not only coin tokens but proper coins as well. According to Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar (Riksarkivet). and according to Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet). p. vol. The confusion in the exchange rate market probably meant that some people were cheated. However.134 The exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam were well below 58 marks kopparmynt for most of 1718. p. the revaluation of old copper plates was announced on 17th May 1715 but was not enforced until the 22nd of that month. though this matter is somewhat controversial. p. . For example. One reason why foreign exchange rates did not increase in 1716 could be that much of the traffic to and from Sweden was controlled by foreigners. Some individuals used the opportunity to buy copper plates in the interval at the old rate from individuals who yet did not know about the revaluation. 1 Järnhandel. I. 270) argues that among the general public one riksdaler was seen to be valued at 36 marks kopparmynt already in 1716. 222). O:1.135 At the height of the monetary disarray. 134 Stiernstedt (1863. 600 500 400 300 200 100 0 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 Sources: Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv. Marks kopparmynt in coin tokens 1716–18. December 1714 (=100) to December 1720. vol.5. . The Consumer Price Index for Göteborg. market rate 1620–1720.4. Göteborgs landsarkiv.174 Exchange rates. 4–6. prices. 70 60 50 40 30 20 10 0 1620 1630 1640 1650 1660 1670 1680 1690 1700 1710 1720 Sources: See Table A4. 1277–2008 Figure 4.7. Signum L I (Kollegiernas protokoll). Figure 4. and wages. Riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt). Notes: Daler kopparmynt in coin tokens 1716–8.4. 12 10 8 6 4 2 0 1620 1640 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1 daler courant Sources: See Table A4.6. 1 daler carolin and 1 daler courant in daler kopparmynt 1624–1777. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 175 Figure 4. 1 daler carolin .9 and Table A4.10. m.m.2. (valid to 24/3 1643) 1 d. (valid to 7/10 1665) 1 riksdaler = 15 marks k. = 1 1/6 d.m. = 3 d. (valid to 19/3 1681) 1 daler carolin (= 2 carolins) = 3.m.m.s.k. = 40 öre s.m.m.6875 d. .) to 1 öre k.m.k. = 48 öre s.5 d.s. (valid to 29/12 1718) = 2 riksdaler (valid to 1776) 1 daler carolin = 3. = 37 1/3 öre s.s. = 3 d.25 d.m.5625 d.5 d.m. (valid to 1776.5 marks k.6 daler carolins (valid to 23/1 1716) Copper plates minted before 1715 revalued 50 per cent (valid to 1776).m. = 1.m. 19/3 1681 4/5 1719 18/2 1724 Sources: Wallroth (1918).m.m. for carolins to 19/3 1681) 1 riksdaler = 52 öre s.176 Exchange rates. (valid to 20/12 1717) 4-öre silver coins of 1665–84 and 5-öre silver coins of 1690–1715 revalued to 6 öre s.s.5 d.5 d.m.m.m. = 1.k.m.m. = 64 öre s.m.m.s. (valid to 24/3 1643) 1 riksdaler = 12 marks k. = 1. (valid to 15/5 1686) 1 riksdaler = 24 marks k. Stiernstedt (1863) and Lindeberg (1941).m.m.m.m.k.k. prices.k. = 2 d. = 2 riksdaler (valid to 1/1 1777) 1 daler carolin = 50 öre s.s.m.m.s.k.m.m.m. = 1.s.75 d. = 2. (valid to 1776) Coin tokens devalued by 50 per cent (1 d. 1 riksdaler = 1. = 0. except from 20/12 1717 to 18/4 1719) 4-öre silver coins of 1665–84 and 5-öre silver coins of 1690–1715 revalued to 5 1/3 öre s. = 4.m.5 daler s. The official conversion rates for various domestic currencies1624–1724. (valid to 1776.s. Date 1624 16/8 1633 24/3 1643 7/10 1665 Official conversion rates 1 öre in copper coins = 1 öre in silver coins (valid to 16/8 1633) 1 d. (6 öre k. = 48 öre s. = 4. of a token coin could be exchanged up to 16/6 for a new token coin of 2 öre s.s.) Assumption in this study: 1 d.m. (valid to 31/12 1776) 1 riksdaler = 36 marks k.m.m.m. 1277–2008 Table 4.m.5 d.k.m.and 2-öre silver coins revalued by 100 per cent (valid to 4/5 1719) 1718 29/12 1718 18/4 1719 23/4 1719 Old carolins no longer legal means of payment (valid to 18/4 1719) 1 Görtz’ carolin = 16 öre s. in proper coins = 2 d.m.s. and a debt note worth 14 öre s. (valid to 7/10 1665) 1 d. (valid to 29/12 1718) 1 riksdaler = 1 5/7 daler carolins (valid to 15/5 1686) 15/5 1686 22/5 1715 23/1 1716 18/3 1716 20/12 1717 1 ducat = 128 öre s.m. (valid to 31/12 1776) 1. = 1.m. = 1.m. although this did not apply to plates of cannon metal 1 daler carolin = 50 öre s. = 52 öre s. in coin tokens 1.m = 32 öre s. = 19. = 2 d.6875 d.5625 d.m. (valid to 1776) 1 ducat = 192 öre s.m.s.m.s.s. and wages.m.m.and 2-öre silver coins devalued to their actual face value Nominal value of remaining coin tokens reduced from 2 öre s. = 0.m.s.m. (valid to 19/3 1681) 1 ducat = 100 öre s.625 d.m. 139 137 Riksbankens arkiv. Handel och sjöfart. The background material for the work. riksdaler. which is kept in the Riksbank’s archive. 734). Table A4. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. II:2. In the course of 1720 it then declined to 36 marks kopparmynt – the perceived par value. The multi-currency. 1 Järnhandel. and for some years also for carolins and öre courant. ducats and copper plates – at a fluctuating exchange rate.4. A fiat standard based on paper notes arose in the 1740s. ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. carolins.2. these data have been used in this study to estimate monthly and annual averages. and remained stable until the Swedish-Russian War in 1741–3.1. The period 1719–76 The period 1719–76 saw a continuation of the previous period’s complicated multicurrency standard. the exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam are used as indicators for the Swedish riksdaler. 139 Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar (Riksarkivet). metallic standard of 1719–45 Sweden’s monetary system stabilised in 1719–20. although the monetary situation did become somewhat more stable during the 1720s and ’30s. also contains weekly exchange rates between Swedish currencies for parts of the period 1705–67. Sources Annual exchange rates between various domestic currencies for the period 1740–67 are published in Sveriges Riksbank (1931). p. 138 Heckscher (1949. 4.4. but they were not realised until 1777.137 Stockholms stads priscourant provides weekly data on the exchange rates for the riksdaler and the ducat in the period 1768–76. The official exchange rate of one riksdaler was 36 marks kopparmynt. For the years where no data are available. I. Ser.4 presents monthly exchange rates between Swedish currencies 1705–76.4. Plans were made to simplify the monetary system and introduce a mono-currency silver standard with the riksdaler as the main unit.4. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 177 4. The exchange rate on the Swedish riksdaler was of less importance than the exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco and Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant (see Chapter 5). The exchange rate of the Hamburger reichstaler banco was 38–41 marks kopparmynt in autumn 1719 and by January next year it had fallen to 37 marks kopparmynt (see Chapter 5). The gold-silver (value) ratio in Hamburg is used as an indicator to estimate the market rate of ducats in Swedish riksdaler when no other source exists. it commonly referred to the Hamburger reichstaler banco. The fiat currency existed alongside the five metallic currencies – öre courant. When the riksdaler exchange rate was mentioned without specifying the type of riksdaler.138 Few sources exist for the annual exchange rates of the Swedish riksdaler and ducats in the 1720s and ’30s. . vol. vol. They are based on Stockholms stads priscourant. 147 Sjöstrand (1908. the copper plate.142 but in the late 1720s it rose again to its par value.145 An official report in 1731 stated that the weaker coin. 9). 145 Based on minting data. the premium for carolins was larger than for riksdaler coins. had driven out the better coin. while the fine silver content of 96 öre courant was 22. The price level fell during the course of 1720 (a bad harvest in 1719 contributed to the high level in the first half of the year) and was quite stable in the 1720s and 1730s. 17). p. All three phenomena seem to have been present during the course of the 1720s and ’30s. four million carolins were melted down in Danish and Holstein mints. This could have several effects: the riksdaler could fall below the par value of 36 marks kopparmynt. the fine silver content of 3.84 carolins. 12–13).178 Exchange rates. one riksdaler was officially equal to 96 öre courant. free minting of silver coins was introduced on very favourable terms. In the mid-1720s the riksdaler’s exchange rate fell below its par value (36 marks kopparmynt). Since the silver content of the carolin was 8 per cent higher than the riksdaler according to the official relation between the two. . the official exchange rate of one riksdaler specie was 3.74 grams. 330–3).000 riksdaler was minted.4 shows that at least from January 1734. 142 Sjöstrand (1908. 140 Lindgren (1971. a small premium was paid on carolins. and wages. 62). given that there was no premium on them.146 In the same year. Important changes in the first decades of the 18th century created a pure circulation device.140 While the legal value ratio of riksdaler to carolins was too low (based on the fine silver contents of the two coins) up to 1715.147 Table A4. from 1719 onwards it became too high. p. 141 Calculations based on Wallroth (1918). which can be compared to just 13.34 grams in one-öre-coins and 24. pp.143 it was profitable to melt down carolins. see Wallroth (1918). pp.84 carolins was 27.96 grams in pjeser (in 5-öre and 10-öre coins with the legal values of 6 and 12 öre. In the period 1718–29 a total of around 75. a premium could arise on carolins or there would be a move to melt down or hoard carolins. At least up to 1757. 143 In 1719–76. However. p. counteracting the mechanisms of Gresham’s Law. In comparison. 146 Tingström (1984. the carolin.141 For 1724–33. prices. Some sources indicate that in the three years preceding 1731. but a premium on the riksdaler arose during the latter 1730s.144 amounting to around one-third of the total stock of carolins. 144 Sjöstrand (1908. 1277–2008 In 1728–33 the market rate of the riksdaler was probably the same as the official rate. Calculated from Wallroth (1918). without any intrinsic value content. respectively).078 during the whole period 1655–1717.7 grams. while the fine silver content of one riksdaler was 25. this study assumes that the market rate of carolins was at par with the copper coins. which allowed them to stay in circulation. 4. the copper standard was officially reintroduced in 1709 and from 1710 copper plates were again minted on a larger scale.219 daler silvermynt in 1722 to 1 million daler silvermynt in 1730 and to 5. In 1730 there was.152 However. 149 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968. only 5 per cent above the official par value (see Figure 4. As the name indicates. II:2. illiteracy was widespread among the peasantry and there were substitutes for notes (‘assignationer’ and ‘kassasedlar’) that functioned more efficiently. on average.e. 737–8). people learnt to avoid transportation until the new owner wanted to cash the note in the bank.46 148 Heckscher (1949.02 per cent of GDP in 1722 to 1–1.5 per cent in 1730 and 5–6 per cent in 1740. 737–8). In the early 1740s. Initially. pp. The use of transferred notes expanded significantly after 1710 and this coincided with the reintroduction of the copper standard. The Crown had an interest in facilitating more convenient means of payment. roughly from 0. p. There was also an additional charge (‘remissage’) of 6–7 per cent if plates were to be transported to the countryside. pp. 150 Based on Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Edvinsson (2005a) and (2005b). the exchange rate was. the exchange rate on riksdaler increased from an average of 3. The notes were convertible into copper plates by the Riksbank.17 daler silvermynt in 1741 to 3. The mark kopparmynt came to be linked to the market value of notes rather than of plates.4. . II:2. people did not want to put their name on the notes.01–0. In time. This obstructed a wider circulation in the early 18th century for various reasons: the procedure was time-consuming. re-assigned from the old to the new owner. only after 1733 did the market rate of the riksdaler increase above the par value of 3 daler silvermynt. 168–9).5–2 per cent on notes relative to plates. these notes had to be ‘transported’. A decree in 1726 ordained that the Riksbank’s transferred notes would be accepted for payment of taxes. and Talvio (1995. p. 152 Heckscher (1949. The fiat standard of 1745–76 After massive note issues during the war with Russia in the early 1740s. 206). II:2. the increase in notes did not cause a significant increase in the riksdaler’s exchange rate. 4.151 Eli Heckscher estimates that the exchange rate had to rise at least 10 per cent above the value of copper plates (free copper) to make it profitable to export copper. 746–7). in fact.3.7). p. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 179 In 1701. vol.148 As mentioned in the previous section. These plates were a very unpractical means of payment.150 The riksdaler’s exchange rate was expressed in marks kopparmynt. vol.149 The total amount of outstanding notes increased from 12. 151 Heckscher (1949. the Riksbank began to issue ‘transportsedlar’ (transferred notes).3 million daler silvermynt in 1740. vol. i. a premium of 1. forming a multi-currency standard. In the period 1768–76. the premium on copper plates was between 35 and 125 per cent (see Table A4.158 A decade passed before the great coin reform took place in 1776.153 In 1743. The policy focused instead on the exchange rate. In 1753. 37–48). the fiat standard was combined with the copper and silver standard. they attempted to reintroduce the riksdaler’s former parity (36 marks kopparmynt or 3 daler silvermynt). In the early 1760s the paper notes fell to their lowest levels hitherto. 46).4). Instead. Eli Heckscher argues that the notes in circulation did not decrease as much as indicated by the fall in the exchange rate. and wages. p. 157 Stiernstedt (1863. it still stood at 166 daler silvermynt per ship pound.5 million daler silvermynt. The Riksbank only converted notes into petty copper coins (‘slantar’)156 but the latter’s mint equivalent was 67 per cent higher that that of copper plates and they were de facto token coins. in the period 1741– 53 (with data missing for 1743–46 and 1751–52). Since various coin currencies continued to circulate alongside the notes. p. öre courant and later also copper plates. 158 Montgomery (1920.154 A decree in October 1745 made the Riksbank’s notes inconvertible into copper plates155 and Sweden-Finland de facto introduced a fiat standard that remained in place until the coin reform of 1776. 156 Sjöstrand (1908. but there was an increasing premium on carolins.7). the total amount of outstanding notes increased to 9. prices. roughly 10–12 per cent of GDP. the mint equivalent of copper plates. Since the bank notes were convertible. . p. 1277–2008 daler silvermynt in 1744 (see Figure 4. 93). 397). according to Stockholms stads priscourant (Kungliga biblioteket).157 Notes were supposed to be exchangeable into riksdaler specie but since they had been issued on a copper basis. there was severe deflation in the late 1760s. 48–9). In 1766 it was not entirely clear how silver would be brought into circulation. 63).159 The idea was that the return to the former parity would occur gradually over a ten-year period. 159 Montgomery (1920. Preparations were made to abolish the copper standard and reintroduce the silver standard. 155 Wallroth (1918. Large amounts of notes were withdrawn from circulation and saved in the expectation of an increase in their value relative to the silver 153 Sjöstrand (1909. 154 However.7).180 Exchange rates. pp. the exchange rate would be determined by the value relation of silver to copper (and copper stood low at that time). Petty copper coins followed the bank notes in value. but the fiat standard was de facto in operation up to 1776. with falling exchange rates (see Figure 4. When the Cap Party (‘mössorna’) ousted the Hat Party (‘hattarna’) from power at the Riksdag of 1765/6. non-metallic money came to constitute the largest part of the money supply in Sweden-Finland. the price of free copper fluctuated around 180 daler silvermynt per ship pound. there was a massive drain on the Riksbank’s metallic reserves. From the mid-1740s. pp. p. In 1762–63 the riksdaler occasionally stood at over 100 marks kopparmynt. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet.4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 181 A note issued as 6 daler kopparmynt. bank notes came to dominate the money supply in Sweden in the 18th century. . this sum was the equivalent of a male unskilled labourer’s wages for around three day’s work in Stockholm. In 1759. Stockholm. 7 per cent below.6 marks kopparmynt in 1769. copper and silver 160 Heckscher (1949.7) could be described as overreactions. In the period 1740–65. and the Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant 6. .5. This shows that the estimated spot rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam probably also reflected other factors than the price of silver (for example.1. Based on the intrinsic metallic values.977). The period after 1776 The minting reform of 1776 In 1776 a large minting reform amounted in principle to the abolition of the medieval division into marks. the spot exchange rate was mostly above the theoretical rate. the multi-currency. 1277–2008 currencies. p. 9). The discrepency between the exchange rates of the Swedish riksdaler and Hamburger reichstaler banco was largest during the deflation in the late 1760s (see Figure 4. Both the rise in the early 1760s and the fall in the late 1760s (see Figure 4. and Jonung (1975. 162 Montgomery (1920. the Swedish riksdaler stayed at 50. p.160 When the Hats regained power from the Caps in 1769. large amounts of riksdaler coins were minted. The par value of 36 marks kopparmynt had to be abandoned. For the period 1740–76 the correlation between the exchange rates of the Swedish riksdaler and ducats (+0.976) or the Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant (+0. While the Hamburger reichstaler banco decreased from its highest level of 89 marks kopparmynt in 1765 to 42 marks kopparmynt in 1768–9 (spot rates).7).162 In the period 1766–76.6 per cent less than the Swedish riksdaler. in fact. or overshootings. 161 Lobell (2000. The exchange rate of the Swedish riksdaler should therefore be preferable for transforming nominal prices into silver prices. 783). p. It was mostly in the period 1766–76 that the exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam was below the theoretical rate. II:2. In median terms. in both cases below the theoretical exchange rate (see also Chapter 5). öre and penningar. prices. fluctuations in the shadow interest rate of the bills of exchange). p. 181). 4. in 1740–76. 4.7 marks kopparmynt in 1768 and 60. the estimated spot rate of Hamburger reichstaler banco stood 2.182 Exchange rates. copper plates continued to be legal means of payment but were more used as commodities. the exchange rate rose again. vol.5 per cent less. the Hamburger reichstaler banco should be worth 1.5.996) is. though the calculation of Swedish prices in Hamburger reichstaler banco and Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant could be useful for international comparisons.7 per cent below the Swedish riksdaler and the Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant 7. and wages. stronger than the correlation between the Swedish riksdaler and either the Hamburger reichstaler banco (+0. 79).161 The Hats pressed on with the preparations for introducing a sole silver specie standard. One riksdaler was divided into 48 skillings.92 daler carolins. Counting in silvermynt and kopparmynt was abolished as of 1st January 1777. i. with the riksdaler – the only stable means of payment that had existed in Sweden-Finland since the 16th century – as the sole unit of account (disregarding the ducat). 1 riksdaler = 6 daler silvermynt (72 marks kopparmynt). 93). The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 183 Figure 4. set equal to 6 daler silvermynt in notes. i. p. 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1 0 1712 1720 1728 1736 1744 1752 1760 1768 1776 1 Hamburg reichstaler banco 1 riksdaler specie Sources: See Table A4. the Riksbank notes and the round copper coins were reduced in value by 50 per cent. silvermynt. The metallic value of 6 daler silvermynt of copper plates was worth more than one riksdaler.e.e. market rate. 164 Wallroth (1918. Hamburger reichstaler banco and Swedish riksdaler in daler silvermynt 1712– 76. However. Note: Daler silvermynt in coin tokens 1716–18. The riksdaler became the main currency unit in Sweden-Finland. A mono-currency. and one skilling into 12 runstycken.164 163 Montgomery (1920. 221). standard.7. one riksdaler for 3 daler courant or for 1. . The old currencies ceased to be legal means of payment as of 1777 and were exchanged for riksdaler coins and fiduciary notes (although notes in daler kopparmynt continued to circulate for some years). and the counting in kopparmynt. and on 7th October 1777 it was decided that one riksdaler would be exchanged for 4 daler silvermynt in copper plates. öre courant and carolins.4.7 and Chapter 5. in accordance with the riksdaler’s market rate. p.163 The old silver coins were exchanged at their full value. silver specie standard was de facto introduced. 165 For example. with some minor adjustments for the months when data are missing in one of the series. The calculated premium of the present study is an arithmetic average of the reported agio in Stockholm and Göteborg up to November 1798.5. Mårtensson’s series cover the whole period from March 1790 to December 1802. and wages. the premium based on foreign exchange seems to correspond quite well to the premium in Göteborg. Except for 1794 and early 1795 (when it increased to over 20 per cent). which were still convertible into specie (so that the riksdaler banco was equal in value to the riksdaler specie coin). Ahlström presents two series. silver standard did not last long. In the present study.184 Exchange rates. which lasted until 1803 (see also Chapter 2). as the main notes in circulation. . 205). From December 1798. 133–4) for Stockholm and Mårtensson (1958) for Göteborg. and from December 1798 an arithmetic average of the premiums based on foreign exchange and the Göteborg premium.166 They began to fall in value compared to riksdaler banco. ‘daler’. The existence of two different currencies created some confusion as to the currency in which prices and exchange rates were recorded. The foreign exchange rates presented in this study are based on Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and the background material to this work (see Chapter 5). From 19th May 1797 the exchange rate is expressed both in riksdaler riksgälds and in riksdaler banco. These notes soon dominated trade and replaced the Riksbank notes (banco riksdaler). covering the period May 1797 to August 1803. For the period 1789–96 it is not clear whether the exchange rates on foreign curren165 Talvio (1995. it was the need to finance war efforts that reinstated the fiat standard for some time. prices. p. 167 Based on Ahlström (1972. the premium based on exchange rates in Stockholm is substantially underestimated in comparison to the reported agio in Stockholm and Göteborg up to November 1798.8. combined fiat and silver standard. The reported agio in Stockholm corresponds quite well to the premium in Göteborg. In 1789. daler silvermynt continued to refer to 1/6 riksdaler or 8 skillings (later 12 skillings riksgälds). As on many other occasions. London and Amsterdam expressed in banco and riksgälds notes. ‘styver’. In 1798 and 1799 it rose continuously to around 50 per cent.2. etc) for currency units continued to be used well into the 19th century. which started to issue riksgälds notes in 1789. 166 Ahlström (1974. However. pp. the silver standard was de facto replaced by a multi-currency. and the other is based on the exchange rates on Hamburg. 4. 32–8). one is the reported agio (premium) from July 1789 to November 1798. See figure 4. The legal status of riksgälds notes was initially somewhat unclear. pp. it was around 10–12 per cent up to 1797. the monthly premium on banco notes relative to riksgälds notes is estimated as an average of Stockholm and Göteborg notations. The rise of three different riksdaler units after 1789 The reintroduced mono-currency. A war with Russia led to the establishment of Riksgäldskontoret (National Debt Office).167 The premium was 1–7 per cent in 1789 and the first half of 1790. 1277–2008 Many of the old labels (‘plåt’. which was much higher than the noted agio. The opposite situation prevailed in domestic trade when prices were quoted both in riksdaler riksgälds and in riksdaler banco. 0. O:1. 171 Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet). 169 Ahlström (1972.169 No definite conclusions can be drawn from a perusal of daily exchange rates during May 1797. 140). The foreign exchange rate in riksgälds partly included the premium on banco notes. respectively.171 The exchange rate in riksdaler banco in the period 1789–96 seems to follow the rate presented in Sveriges Riksbank (1931). it is possible that the reported exchange rates during parts of the period 1789–97 are a mixture of payments in riksdaler banco and riksdaler riksgälds. This is particularly the case for the periods March to September 1791 and August 1793 to January 1794. 53 and 57 skillings. that the stronger part in a transaction took out a higher agio instead of putting pressure on the prices’. Furthermore. For example. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803” (Riksbankens arkiv). according to Sandbergska samlingen. which can be found in the unpublished primary tables underpinning the work of Sveriges Riksbank (1931). while the premium calculated from the foreign exchange rates (which differs from the actually recorded premium) in Sandbergska samlingen is used to estimate rates in riksdaler riksgälds. but the ‘noted agio’ (the actually recorded premium) was 10 per cent. Ahlström argues that the type of transaction must be taken into account. 7.e. one Hamburg reichstaler banco was paid 52.9 per cent higher while the exchange rate in riksdaler riksgälds was. and argues that the exchange rate was most probably in riksdaler banco up to 1796. The same large difference is reported in various periods for the exchange rate on Amsterdam. on average (here geometric average). folio 364. p.168 Göran Ahlström questions this assumption. In Sveriges Riksbank (1931) it is claimed that the exchange rates for this period were in riksdaler riksgälds. 158).170 In Sandbergska samlingen there is a table that presents the exchange rate on Hamburg both in riksdaler banco och in riksgälds.75 and 53 skillings on the one hand and 57 skillings on the other seems to be quite large for the same transaction day. The difference between 52. The difference between the foreign exchange rate in riksgälds and banco was quite small in 1797. the calculated premium on banco notes for 1797 based on grain prices at Kungsåra Church was 18.4. the foreign exchange data presented in Sveriges Riksbank (1931) are assumed to be expressed in riksdaler banco for the period 1789–96. and ‘that the agio was used for purposes of price adjustment. the exchange rate in riksdaler banco in the period 1789–96 presented in Sandbergska samlingen was. on average.172 Ahlström therefore seems to be correct. 137). For example.75.9 per cent in 1797. .173 168 Sveriges Riksbank (1931. p. while the exchange rate in riksdaler riksgälds is significantly above the latter.5 per cent higher. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 185 cies are expressed in riksdaler banco or in riksdaler riksgälds. the premium on banco notes calculated from the foreign exchange was 2. In this study.7 per cent. on 8th November 1793. p. 172 Compared with the level in Sveriges Riksbank (1931). i. For example. 170 ”Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. 173 Ahlström (1972. 174 Since the riksdaler banco was convertible up to 1808. King Gustav III had riksgälds notes printed to finance the war against Russia (1788–90). War was often the main cause of monetary instability.186 Exchange rates. From 1799 the premium on banco notes centered on around 50 per cent. See also Ahlström (1974. in Göteborg the premium on banco notes calculated from the foreign exchange was higher than the noted agio. p. by Johan Tietrich Schoultz. 28). p. the noted agio was. 13. prices. 1277–2008 The First Battle of Svensksund on August 24.4 per cent in 1793–96. Source: Nationalmuseum. while the premium calculated from the price differences at Kungsåra Church was 57 per cent.7 per cent in December 1801. and the premium calculated from the exchange rates on Hamburg 9. which was the opposite of the situation in Stockholm. 1789. they soon fell in value relative to banco notes. Thus.5 per cent. and wages.5. this study assumes that 1 riksdaler specie [i silver] = 1 riksdaler banco = 48 skillings banco for the whole period 1777–1808 even though the Hamburger reichstaler banco was noted above 48 skillings (see Chapter 5). In 1799–1802. the premium calculated from price differences at Kungsåra Church was 17. In Göteborg the premium was as high as 66. The noted agio presented by Sture Mårtensson for Göteborg was in the same period 49 per cent and the premium calculated from the exchange rates on Hamburg was 51 per cent. According to Sandbergska samlingen.1 per cent. . In 1803 the relation between banco och riksgälds notes was fixed and the mono174 Mårtensson (1958. on average. the average premium calculated from the exchange rates noted in Stockholm was 44 per cent. See Table A4. 25). although it still fluctuated sharply. In the same period. which could still be exchanged for silver coins in the Riksbank. 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 187 Figure 4.8. Premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative to riksgälds notes 1789– 1803, market rate based on monthly data. 70 60 50 40 30 20 10 0 1790 1792 1794 1796 1798 1800 1802 Sources: See Table A4.6. currency, silver specie standard was briefly reintroduced. From then on, one riksdaler banco was equal to 1.5 riksdaler riksgälds. However, the exchange rate of the Hamburg reichstaler banco refused to bounce back to its par value, making it profitable to exchange notes for silver from the Riksbank. The war in 1808–10 led to a massive increase in Riksbank notes in circulation. In 1809, the banco notes were finally made inconvertible.175 The fiat standard prevailed until 1834. The banco notes fell drastically in value relative to the riksdaler specie [i silver], and since the riksdaler riksgälds was fixed to the riksdaler banco, it also fell in value. Hence, a difference arose between riksdaler banco and riksdaler specie [i silver], and from then on there were three different riksdaler units. There were also three different skillings, which followed these three riksdaler units.176 In 1834, when the mono-currency, silver specie standard was reintroduced once more, the relation between riksdaler specie and riksdaler banco was fixed so that: 1 riksdaler specie = 2⅔ riksdaler banco = 4 riksdaler riksgälds. In 1855 the riksdaler riksgälds was replaced by the riksdaler riksmynt; in 1873 the latter was replaced by the krona (SEK). The period after 1803 is further discussed by Håkan Lobell in Chapter 6. 175 Brisman (1931, pp. 9–15). Inconvertibility was de facto introduced in early 1809 but was not sanctioned until 1810. 176 The skilling specie was rather a unit of account; no coins with that denomination were ever minted. 188 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table 4.3. The official conversion rates for various domestic currencies from 1777 onwards. Date 1/1 1777 Official conversion rates 1 riksdaler = 48 skillings 1 skilling = 12 runstycken 1 skilling = 4 öre s.m. in petty copper coins (i.e. twice the old par value, valid to 29/8 1803) 1 riksdaler exchanged for 6 d.s.m. in paper notes (i.e. twice the old par value) 1 riksdaler exchanged for 3 d.s.m. in courant silver coins (i.e. in accordance with old par value) 1 riksdaler exchanged for 1.92 daler carolins (i.e. in accordance with old par value) 1 ducat = 94 skillings (specie) = 1 23/24 riksdaler (valid to 7/4 1830) 7/10 1777 29/8 1803 1 riksdaler exchanged for 4 d.s.m. in copper plates 1 riksdaler banco = 1.5 riksdaler riksgälds = 72 skillings riksgälds 1 skilling banco = 1.5 skilling riksgälds Öre s.m. in copper coins ceased to be legal means of payment 19/6 1816 7/4 1830 1/10 1834 1855 1 skilling (banco) = 2 öre s.m. in copper coins of 2- and 1-öre s.m. denomination minted up to 1778 1 ducat = 2.125 riksdaler specie (valid to 1855) 1 riksdaler specie = 2 ⅔ riksdaler banco = 4 riksdaler riksgälds 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 100 öre = 32 skillings banco 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 1 riksdaler riksgälds 1 ducat = 8.25 riksdaler riksmynt = 2.0625 riksdaler specie 29/12 1 carolin (gold coin) = 7.1 riksdaler riksmynt 1871 30/5 1873 1 krona = 1 riksdaler riksmynt =100 öre Source: Wallroth (1918). 4.5.3. Transforming historical prices into a common currency unit One problem when comparisons are made over time is that the currency unit has changed. In some studies, the krona (SEK) is also used as a unit of account for the period before 1873. Within numismatic and economic-historical research at least two different methods have been applied. Lennart Jörberg chooses to follow the nominal unit back to 1732. One krona is set equal to one riksdaler riksmynt 1855–73, to one riksdaler riksgälds 1789–55 and to one riksdaler specie 1776–89. Hence, one riksdaler specie was equal to 1 SEK in 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 189 1776 but to 4 SEK in 1873. Based on the relation 1 riksdaler = 6 daler silvermynt, Jörberg assumes that in 1732–76: 1 krona = 6 daler silvermynt = 18 daler kopparmynt = 72 marks (kopparmynt) This, however, can only be applied to the round copper coins and the Riksbank notes. Since the Riksbank notes were de facto the main means of payment, Jörberg’s assumption seems reasonable. His procedure is also advocated in Fregert and Gustafsson (2005). Wallroth (1918) chooses a method that follows the riksdaler specie unit backwards in time. In contrast to Jörberg, Wallroth follows not the main currency actually used in trade, but the coin with a stable silver content (the silver content of riksdaler specie changed only slightly over time). The method assumes that one riksdaler specie de facto became 4 kronor. Hence, one riksdaler specie was always equal to 4 kronor. To estimate other currencies in SEK, Wallroth uses both the officially fixed and the market exchange rates of the riksdaler in those currencies. 4.6. Summary This chapter deals with the history of currencies and exchange rates in Sweden-Finland in 1534–1803, a period that is notable and perplexing for its multiple domestic currencies. Since Finland belonged to the kingdom of Sweden up to 1809, in this period the two areas had the same monetary system. In 1534–1624 Sweden-Finland was on a mono-metallic silver standard. Although gold coins circulated as well, they played a rather marginal role. The main currency unit was the mark, equal to 8 öre or 192 penningar (pennies). At times in the 16th and early 17th centuries the monetary system approached a mono-currency standard, but there were also currencies of minor or temporary importance in domestic trade that circulated alongside the main currency, most importantly the silver daler. The first silver daler coins were minted in 1534. Throughout its lifetime, 1534– 1873, the fine silver content of the silver daler or riksdaler (specie) coin was stable (with only minor adjustments). In contrast, the fine silver content of the mark decreased over time. In the 1570s the silver daler was officially fixed at 4 marks or 32 öre, but its market exchange rate was somewhat higher. A bifurcation then occurred between the silver daler and the daler as a unit of account, equal to 4 marks or 32 öre. The silver daler was later called riksdaler. When the fine silver content of the mark silver coin was lowered in the 17th century, the exchange rate of the riksdaler in marks increased. In 1624, a copper standard was introduced; it lasted until 1776. The silver standard continued to exist alongside the copper standard. In this period, at least five or six domestic currencies were in use, three based on silver, one or two based on copper and one based on gold. In addition, fiat currency circulated in the mid-1660s, 190 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 1716–9 and 1745–76. Since attempts were made to fix the relations between various metallic currencies, the monetary system could be described as bi- or trimetallic. At times, however, the market exchange rates between these currencies floated and the official value relations had to be adjusted on numerous occasions. Since the price of copper fluctuated relative to silver, there was a tendency to debase copper coins when copper prices were high; when copper prices fell back, the silver coins were undervalued. Initially, one daler in copper coins was supposed to be equal to one daler in silver coins. However, in expectation of rising copper prices, which were already high, the copper content of the copper coins was set too low in 1624. The market value of copper coins relative silver coins then fell quickly in the late 1620s and early 1630s. A multi-currency standard arose. One daler silvermynt was set equal to 2 daler kopparmynt in 1633–43, to 2.5 daler kopparmynt in 1643– 65 and to 3 daler kopparmynt in 1665–76. Initially the daler kopparmynt was a unit for copper coins, and daler silvermynt for silver coins; later, copper coins were denominated both in daler kopparmynt and in daler silvermynt. The relation 1 mark = 8 öre was upheld as an accounting identity, but the value relations between the actual silver coins were not always in accordance with this. The fine silver content per unit of value was normally lower for öre coins than for mark coins. A distinctive feature of the multi-currency standard in Sweden-Finland during the 17th and 18th centuries was that market exchange rates fluctuated not only between the copper and silver currencies, but also between various silver currencies. From the 1660s the term carolin came to refer to silver coins in mark denomination and courant to silver coins in öre denomination. Carolins and öre courant were the main domestic silver currencies, while up to the 1760s the riksdaler was mainly used in international trade. One carolin was equal to two marks in silver coins, and one daler carolin to two carolins. One öre courant was the same as one öre in silver coins, and one daler courant was equal to 32 öre courant. In 1681 and 1686 the carolins were officially revalued relative to öre courant so that the identity between one daler carolin and one daler courant definitely disappeared. The widening difference between the two main silver currencies from the 1680s was a consequence of the bimetallic copper and silver standard, and the attempt to make one silver currency (courant) follow the copper currency by lowering its fine silver content, while not debasing the other silver currency (carolins). Officially, one öre courant was equal to one öre silvermynt, but during the fiat standards of the 18th century this identity could not be maintained in the market. The ducat, minted in gold, was also used as a currency unit, although mainly in international trade. Stockholm Banco issued bank notes in the 1660s, though they mainly functioned as convertible fiduciary notes. Only briefly did they circulate as unconvertible fiat notes before being exchanged at their full value. These notes never dominated the money supply. The fiat standard in 1716–9 was based on coin tokens, which circulated alongside 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 191 the silver and copper currencies. A premium arose on these metallic currencies. The unit daler silvermynt could refer to either coin tokens or metallic currencies, and it is not always clear in which currency prices and foreign exchange rates were quoted. Prices expressed in coin tokens increased dramatically during the course of 1718 and early 1719. Later in 1719, coin tokens were devalued by 50 per cent. During the fiat standard of 1745–76 the units daler kopparmynt and daler silvermynt followed the bank notes, but the metallic currencies continued to exist at a premium. The exchange rate of the riksdaler increased from 3 daler silvermynt in the early 1730s to 6 daler silvermynt in late 1776. In effect, the bank notes were devalued by 50 per cent. Although the value relations between copper coins were officially fixed in 1624– 1776, in some periods there were two different copper currencies, one based on copper plates and the other on round copper coins (‘slantar’). Most notably, this occurred during the fiat standard of 1745–76. The round copper coins (with a lower copper content per unit of value than copper plates) then followed the value of the notes. Tables A4.7 to A4.10 present the exchange rates between various domestic currency units used in Sweden-Finland. Table A4.7 contains the exchange rate of the riksdaler in mark silver coins for the period 1534–1624 and in mark kopparmynt for 1624– 1776. Table A4.8 presents the exchange rate of the ducat in mark kopparmynt and riksdaler specie for the period 1652–1776. Table A4.9 contains the exchange rate of daler carolin in daler kopparmynt and of the riksdaler in mark silver coins (half carolins) for the period 1624–1776. Table A4.10 presents the exchange rate of öre courant in öre kopparmynt and of riksdaler in öre courant. The copper standard contained the seeds of its own destruction, though it was remarkably long-lived. The high transaction costs involved when payments were made in intrinsic copper coins, especially copper plates, encouraged the introduction of a fiat currency. Once paper notes came to dominate circulation, even in smaller denominations, the need for a copper currency decreased. In 1777 a mono-currency, silver standard was reintroduced, but with the riksdaler as the main unit. However, the existence of paper money in the form of convertible fiduciary notes also became a threat to the silver standard itself, especially during times of war. The monetary uniformity only lasted until 1789. Riksgäldskontoret (National Debt Office) started to issue riksgälds notes in 1789 and they fell in value relative to the riksdaler banco, which continued to be convertible into silver coins (riksdaler specie) by the Riksbank. Hence, an unconvertible fiat standard was briefly combined with a convertible metallic standard. The monthly premium on banco notes relative to riksgälds notes is presented in Table A4.6. In 1803 the relation 1 riksdaler riksgälds = ⅔ riksdaler banco was fixed, which basically ended the period of multiple currencies. Even though the riksdaler specie and the ducat were on floating exchange rates after 1803, these two currencies played only a minor role in domestic trade. 192 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Appendix A4: Summary tables Table A4.1. Monthly data on riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt) 1626–86. Year 1626 1627 1628 1640 15 1641 15 1642 15 1643 15 1644 15 1645 16 1646 16 1647 15.5 1648 15 1649 16 1650 16 1651 16 1652 16 1653 16 1654 16 1655 16 1656 16.5 1658 17 9 15 15 15 15 15 16 16 15 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16.5 17 15 15 15 15 15 16 16 15 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16.5 17 15 15 15 15 15 16 16 15 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16.5 17 15 15 15 15 15 16 16 15 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 15 15 15 15 15 16 16 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 15 15 15 15 15 16 15.5 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 15 15 15 15 15 16 15 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 15 15 15 15 16 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 Jan Feb 6.5 Mar Apr May 6.5 6.5 10 15 15 15 15 16 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 15 15 15 15 15 16 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 15 15 15 15 15 16 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 Jun Jul Aug Sept Oct 8 Nov Dec Average 6.966 6.5 9.487 15 15 15 15 15.02 16 15.04 15.58 16 16 16 16 16 16 15.25 15 15.75 15.75 15.75 15.75 15.79 16.25 16.25 16.38 16.25 16.25 16.25 16.75 16.75 16.25 16.25 16.3 16.63 16.5 17 18 17 16.63 16.5 17 17 16.63 16.63 16.63 16.63 16.56 17 17 18 17 16 16.7 17 17.5 18 17.25 17.13 17.03 18 18 17.73 1657 16.25 16.75 16.63 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 17 1659 17.13 17.38 17.75 17.25 17.25 17.25 17.25 17.5 1660 17.25 17.25 17.25 18 1661 18 18 18 17.75 17.25 18 17.75 17.75 17.75 17.46 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.19 18.5 20 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 19 20.5 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 19 20.5 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 19 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 18.56 19.91 21.21 21 21 21.05 21.03 21 21 21 1662 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 1663 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.25 18.75 18.75 18.5 1664 20 1665 21.5 1666 21 1667 21 1668 21 1669 21 1670 21 1671 21 1672 21 1673 21 20 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 20 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 20 21.5 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 20 21 21 19 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 19 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 19 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21.75 21.5 21.25 21 21.25 21.25 21 21 21 21 21 21.06 21 21.25 21.13 21 21.13 21.13 21.13 21.13 21.31 21.07 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 193 Table A4.1 (cont.). Monthly data on riksdaler in marks (kopparmynt) 1626–86. Year Jan Feb Mar 21 Apr May Jun Jul 21.5 Aug Sept Oct 22 Nov 22 Dec 22 24.5 Average 21.53 23.4 1674 21.31 21 1675 22 1676 24 24 21.13 21.25 21.5 21.75 22 22.25 22.5 22.56 22.88 22.94 23.13 23.38 26.38 24.13 24.5 26 27 27 27 25 25 24 26.5 27 27 27 25 25 24 26 27 27 27 24 25 25 24 26 27 27 24 25 25 25 24 26.5 27 24.5 25 25 25 24 26.5 27 24.5 25 25 25 24 26.5 27 25 25 25 25 24 24.25 24.25 24.38 24.88 25.13 25.75 26 25.75 25.75 25.75 24.98 26.75 26.16 27 25 25 25 25 24 27 24.88 24.98 25.14 25 25.06 24.24 1677 25.75 25.75 25.75 26 1678 26.75 26.75 26.75 27 1679 27 27 27 27 24 25 25 1680 27.27 27 1682 24.75 25 1684 25 1685 25 1686 25.13 25.13 24.69 24 25 27.27 27 25 25 26.75 26.75 26.75 26.75 26.75 26.83 27.27 27.27 27.27 27.27 27.13 1681 27.27 27.27 27 22.56 24 1683 25.13 25.13 25.13 25.44 25.44 25.44 25 Sources: Wolontis (1936) and Swenne (1933). Annual average calculated as geometric. Table A4.2. Monthly data on one riksdaler carolin in mark kopparmynt 1670–86. Year Jan 1670 19 1671 19 1672 19 1673 19 1674 19 1675 20 1676 21 1677 22 1678 23 1679 23 1680 23 Feb 19 19 19 19 19 20 21 22 23 Mar 19 19 19 19 19 20 21 22 23 23 21.5 Apr 19 19 19 19 19 21 22 23 21 21 May 19 19 19 19 19 21 22 23 21 21 Jun 19 19 19 19 19.5 21 23 23 21 21 Jul 19 19 19 19 19.5 20.5 21.5 23 23 21 22.5 Aug 19 19 19 19 21 Sept Oct 19 19 19 19 21 19 19 19 19 20 22 23 23 21 22.5 Nov 19 19 19 19 20 22 23 23 21 22.5 Dec 19 19 19 19 20 22 23 23 21 22.5 Average 19 19 19 19 19.464 21.433 23.052 23 21.498 21.949 19.63 20 21.75 22 23 23 21 22.5 23 23 21 22.5 20.19 20.31 20.5 21.13 21.13 21.38 20.588 22.63 22.88 22.207 22.13 22.13 22.13 22.13 22.5 23.13 23.13 23.38 23 23.23 23.06 23 23.13 23.13 23.13 23.06 23.06 23.06 23.06 23.06 23.082 1681 23.19 23 1686 22 22 Source: Wolontis (1936). Annual average calculated as geometric. 1 riksdaler carolin = 3 carolins. 194 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A4.3. Monthly premium (per cent) on courant silver coins 1670–86. Year Jan 1670 0 1671 0 1672 0 1673 0 1674 0 1675 2 1676 6.25 1677 12.5 Feb 0 0 0 0 0 2.25 7.75 12.5 Mar 0 0 0 0 0 2.25 6.75 12.5 Apr 0 0 0 0 0 3 6.75 12.5 May 0 0 0 0 0 3 7.75 15 18.5 Jun 0 0 0 0 1 3 8.25 16.5 17 Jul 0 0 0 0 1 3 9.5 17.5 17 Aug 0 0 0 0 1.25 3 17.5 Sept Oct 0 0 0 0 1.75 3.75 17.5 0 0 0 0 1.75 3.75 17.5 16 Nov 0 0 0 0 2 3.75 17.5 16.5 Dec 0 0 0 0 2 5.5 17.5 16.5 Average 0 0 0 0 0.896 3.188 9.326 15.54 17.25 10.25 11.5 16.75 17 12.33 12.33 12.5 1678 17.75 17.75 17.75 18.5 1680 15.17 15.17 15.5 1681 9.778 6.5 1686 3* (2.5 **) 3* (2.5 **) 6.5 3* (2.5 **) 1679 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 16.75 15.17 15.17 16.49 14.44 13.5 (2) 1.5* (1**) (2) 1.5* (1**) 14.33 11.44 12.17 9.778 11.17 11.17 11.17 12.92 (2) 1.5* (1**) (2) 1.5* (2**) (2) 1.5* (1**) (2) 1.5* (1**) (2) 1.5* (1**) (2) 1.5* (1**) (2) 1.5* (1**) 3.398 1.77* (1.4**) Source: Wolontis (1936). Annual average calculated as arithmetic. Par value: 1 öre courant = 1 öre silvermynt. * 4-öre coins ** 2-öre coins Table A4.4. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Year 1705 1705 1705 1705 1705 1705 1705 1705 1706 1706 1706 Month May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 12 daler k.m. before 1718, 18 daler k.m. after 1718) Average 12.5 13.75 13.56 13.56 13.56 13.56 13.56 13.56 13.56 13.56 Lowest 12.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 Highest 12.5 14 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 1 riksdaler specie in daler kopparmynt (par value 6 daler k.m. before 1718, 9 daler k.m. after 1718) Average 6.5 6.5 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.559 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.594 Lowest 6.5 6.5 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.55 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 Highest 6.5 6.5 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.625 March 13.56 4. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 195 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Year 1706 1706 1706 1706 1706 1706 1706 1706 1706 1707 1707 1708 1711 1728 1729 1729 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 1733 Month April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Dec Sept Nov Sept Oct Jan Feb April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.75 13.7 13.54 13.5 13.94 14.06 18.5 18.25 18.31 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18.18 18.03 18 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.5 13.88 14.06 18.5 18.25 18.25 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18.16 18 18 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 13.63 14 14 14 13.5 14 14.06 18.5 18.25 18.38 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18.19 18.16 18 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.594 6.525 6.542 6.531 6.563 6.5 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.5 6.5 6.5 6.563 6.5 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.625 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.563 6.5 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 9 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 12 daler k.m. before 1718, 18 daler k.m. after 1718) Average Lowest Highest 1 riksdaler specie in daler kopparmynt (par value 6 daler k.m. before 1718, 9 daler k.m. after 1718) Average Lowest Highest March 18 196 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A4.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76. Year 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1734 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1736 1740 1740 1740 1740 1740 1740 1740 1740 1740 1740 1740 Month Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov 18.61 18.56 18.63 9.45 18.6 18.56 18.63 9.5 9.375 9.5 9.5 9.5 1.033 1.03 1.032 1.03 1.031 1.03 1.03 1.03 1.032 1.03 1.032 1.03 1.032 1.03 1.045 1.04 1.035 27.26 27.13 27.38 1.035 27.32 27.25 27.44 1.035 27.39 27.38 27.44 1.035 27.35 27.25 27.38 1.035 27.25 27.25 27.25 1.035 27.31 27.25 27.38 1.035 27.27 27.25 27.38 27.31 27.25 27.38 27.36 27.31 27.38 1.05 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.038 1.038 1.04 18.78 18.75 19 27.81 27.75 27.88 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.035 1.035 1.035 27.89 27.88 27.91 1.035 1.035 1.035 27.88 27.88 27.88 28 28 28.13 28.75 28.08 28 18.75 18.75 18.75 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.) Aver- Lowage est 1 riksdaler specie in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.m.) 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.) 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.) Highest High- Aver- Lowest age est High- Aver- Lowest age est High- Aver- Lowest age est 18.19 18.16 18.25 9.125 9.125 9.125 1.016 1.015 1.018 25.97 25.94 26 18.13 18.13 18.19 9.133 9.125 9.188 1.016 1.015 1.018 25.97 25.94 26 18.18 18.13 18.25 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.016 1.015 1.018 25.91 25.81 26 18.22 18.19 18.25 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.015 1.015 1.015 25.84 25.81 25.88 18.19 18.19 18.19 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.015 1.015 1.015 25.84 25.81 25.88 18.19 18.19 18.19 9.156 9.125 9.188 1.015 1.015 1.015 25.84 25.81 25.88 18.25 18.25 18.25 18 18 18 18.31 18.31 9.188 9.188 9.188 1.02 18.38 9.198 9.188 9.25 1.02 1.02 25.88 25.88 25.88 1.023 1.02 1.025 25.88 25.88 25.88 18.13 18 18.23 18 18.23 18 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.035 1.035 1.035 27.88 27.88 27.88 19.12 18.75 19.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 18.78 18.75 18.86 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.035 1.035 1.035 28 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.375 9.375 9.375 1.027 1.025 1.03 18.75 18.75 18.75 9.5 18.73 18.5 9.5 9.5 1.027 1.025 1.03 18.81 9.416 9.375 9.5 28.56 28.25 29 1.025 1.025 1.025 28.41 28 18.65 18.56 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 18.68 18.56 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 18.72 18.69 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 18.67 18.63 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 18.66 18.63 18.75 9.437 9.375 9.5 18.66 18.63 18.69 9.437 9.375 9.5 18.66 18.63 18.69 9.437 9.375 9.5 1.037 1.035 1.04 06 1.5 30.) Aver.07 1.5 19.38 27.56 19 19.63 18.047 1.12 20 20.5 19.036 1.076 1.067 1.08 1.38 20 19.5 9.38 27.624 9.05 1.563 9.63 18.56 27.75 9.5 19.75 27.07 1.055 1.06 1.5 1.63 18.07 10.5 20.25 28.38 27.5 20.065 1.46 27.5 19.25 20 20.25 30.044 1.5 19.63 18.5 18.065 28.487 9.04 1.51 27.Low.25 28. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 197 Table A4.m.88 28.055 1.75 9.69 18.08 1.045 1.874 9.08 19.75 9.052 1. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.075 29.523 9.06 1.12 10 10.05 27.049 1.045 1.5 28.5 19.045 1.06 1.06 1.05 1.Low.05 1.55 28.563 1.53 27.68 18.41 28.63 28.75 9.06 19 9.67 20 20.75 9.594 9.63 18.75 9.25 9.375 9.75 9.5 20.38 27.34 27.88 20 19.5 9.25 27.5 20 20 20 20 20 9.63 29.25 19.624 9.) Aver.03 1.62 29.64 19.08 28.25 10.75 28 27.5 9.75 20.69 9.594 9.5 18.25 19.75 9.72 18.085 1.5 19.5 9.624 9.06 1.563 9.07 10.4.77 28.05 28 28.06 1.55 19.066 1.07 1.25 28.Low.08 1.Highage est est 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.25 1.28 19.75 9.07 1.437 9.25 30.5 29.5 29.624 9.075 1.072 1.085 1.25 29 29.4 (cont.63 27.46 19.5 9.375 9.5 9.38 27.75 27.25 10.75 27.13 28.071 1.25 1.563 9.5 29.563 9.046 1.5 9.25 19.08 1.046 1.75 20 27.5 19.17 10 10.438 9.625 1.25 1.5 1.5 18.34 10.38 27.5 19.63 28.5 9.).69 18.Highage est est 27.56 29.62 19.67 27.04 10 10.75 9.05 1.625 1.25 27.12 10 10.594 9.38 1.75 30 30.03 1.049 1.12 10 10.75 10 10 10 10 1.5 29.38 27.625 1.5 27.56 27.m.75 9.63 18.75 20.5 9.625 1.437 9.625 1.5 29.047 1.04 1.85 27.56 28.03 1.5 9.08 10.5 9.5 18.5 29.31 19.06 1.05 20.5 27.75 9.06 1.5 9.11 1.05 19.7 27.19 19.62 19.062 1.3 27.624 9.28 27.832 9.08 29.66 19.05 1.75 9.72 18.5 19.38 9.5 20.03 1.06 9.5 10 20.25 27.08 1.06 1.75 9.437 9.04 1.25 10 22.75 9.24 27.75 10.8 27.5 18.041 1.88 27.5 9.29 28.08 1.22 29.5 9.08 1.75 9.625 1. Year 1740 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1741 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1742 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1743 1744 Month Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.44 28.05 1.83 19.) Aver.12 28 27.045 1.06 19.06 20 20 21 21 20 19.5 30 29.Highage est est 1.5 28.31 20 20.7 29.13 28.31 27.88 29.05 19.594 9.06 1.5 9.56 9.5 19.045 1.62 19.19 19.5 1.5 1.63 18.69 9.08 1.06 28 28.81 20.63 27.29 18.594 9.08 1.65 20 20.75 1.065 1.5 9.078 1.75 20.5 10.5 9.62 19.066 1.25 20 20.08 1.05 9.38 19.5 .63 9.77 27.13 28.5 27.m.75 18.35 27.5 19.25 27.08 10.08 19.055 1.66 9.64 18.07 1.5 20.05 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.25 10.12 20 20.5 29.05 1.563 9.065 1.716 9.5 21 21 10.34 27.78 20.065 1.5 18.624 9.5 9.25 27.5 9.43 19.38 27.581 9.25 28.067 1.5 9.5 21 20.5 29.058 1.057 1.072 1.5 9.624 9.13 27.33 27.045 27.07 29.5 28.25 30.63 28.25 27.07 1.38 27.) Aver.056 1.06 1.m.5 18.08 1.63 27.067 1.047 1.06 9.09 1.Highage est est 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.624 9.63 28.63 28.045 1.25 1.75 18.5 30 10.03 1.25 9.12 10 1.54 29.06 1.068 1.12 30 30.75 9.08 1.38 9.07 1.077 1.375 9.16 20 20.59 20.5 20.Low.25 28.65 18.25 1.63 18.87 29.75 30.624 9.34 10.05 1. 25 31.5 21 21.15 1.m.13 1.095 30.11 1.75 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21 21.115 1.5 30.25 10.25 10.25 31.135 32 1.147 1.06 21 21.112 1.25 30.87 30.15 1.Low.m.45 10.127 1.25 30.5 1.Highage est est 1.88 30.13 1.45 30.75 10. and wages.75 1.75 10.5 1.11 1.15 1.2 1.09 1.5 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.11 21.94 30.33 21.115 30.11 1.11 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.27 30.Low.55 30.143 1.75 22 20.09 1.87 20.62 21.09 1.5 21.136 1.) Aver.m.75 10.75 21.14 1.109 1.14 1.5 31.113 1.112 1.34 30.31 31.62 10.08 1.11 30 1.75 31 30.5 21.11 1.086 1.14 1.25 30.75 31.15 1.38 30.5 21.44 10.).131 1.65 30.69 30.14 31.31 10.132 1.9 31.5 1.11 1.38 1.141 1.37 10.12 21 30.5 21.13 30.5 30 30.12 1.105 1.5 1.44 30.75 10.25 10.11 1.12 30.115 30.11 10.25 30.11 1.38 30.09 10.25 21.Highage est est 20.5 21.119 1.25 10.11 1.11 1.75 31 1.145 1.25 10.88 31 31 31 31 31.132 1.12 1.115 1.38 1. prices.5 10.11 1.88 30 30.15 1.5 1.45 30.) Aver.14 1.25 30.82 30.1 1.14 1.38 10.25 30.14 1.5 10.22 20.11 1.m.25 30.87 30.75 1.13 1.38 1.107 1.64 30.38 1.38 30.14 1.87 20.5 30.125 30.25 30.14 1.13 30.38 30.75 30 29.115 30.5 10.115 1.105 1.34 30.75 21 20.5 10.135 30.12 1.11 1.19 10 10.25 31.94 21.142 1.145 32 1. 1277–2008 Table A4.Low.5 10.09 1.27 30.06 30 30.112 1.33 10.5 1.15 1.2 30 10.101 1.38 30.137 1.43 20 21 10.13 1.198 Exchange rates.19 31 1.115 1. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.38 30.25 30.5 10.09 1.115 30.112 1.105 1.5 10.75 1.135 1.106 1.) Aver.14 21.5 10.75 21 20.115 30.75 10.) Aver.25 10.117 1.5 21.15 32 .25 21.107 1.25 10.25 10.5 21.Highage est est 29.62 10.38 30.75 30.75 31 30.44 21.091 1.13 1.75 32 32 32 32 32 32 32 1.25 30.15 1.62 31.14 30.75 30.44 30.5 10.13 1.62 21.31 10.5 21.75 31 30.5 10.Highage est est 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.75 1.37 10.31 30.115 30.75 31 30.13 1.1 1.25 30.135 30.5 10.87 30.75 1.77 30.5 10.12 10.5 10.115 30.75 30.75 1.38 10.4 21.112 1.14 1.96 29.38 21.25 30.38 1.13 30.12 30.Low.38 1. Year 1744 1744 1744 1744 1744 1744 1744 1744 1744 1744 1744 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1745 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1746 1747 1747 1747 1747 Month Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 20 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.14 1.44 30.14 1.105 1.145 30.4 (cont.31 10.66 30.114 1.29 30.34 10.125 1.13 1.88 1.108 1.62 10.91 29.77 30.115 30.5 10.15 1.44 30.111 1.81 20.128 1.25 30. 75 11.165 1.m.5 32.173 1.37 32.12 33 11.12 21 21.17 1.16 1.5 11.75 23 22.25 32.75 1.4.177 1.12 33 1.5 32.75 1.75 1.62 11.175 1.18 11.4 (cont.18 11.16 11.5 32.62 11.62 11.5 22.87 22.178 1.75 22.5 11.5 22.75 21 11.37 32.18 11.5 11.5 22.5 11.5 22.5 22.75 1.87 20.94 22.m.25 32.25 33.75 22.5 22.178 1.62 22.75 32.75 32.75 1.56 22.Low.5 32.18 1.5 32.62 11.62 22.37 32.5 22.72 11.25 32.17 1.87 22.75 11.165 1.5 11.175 1.75 11.164 1.18 1.75 11.177 1.5 11.62 22.25 33.17 1.156 1.) Aver.) Aver.75 1.5 11.18 1.5 11.75 22.5 22.25 33.16 33.75 23 22.5 32.62 11.12 33 11.5 22 22 22 22 11.5 11.5 11.18 11.175 1.16 11.175 1.177 1.18 1.53 11.17 1.5 32.75 23 22.17 1.62 11.25 11.165 1.25 33.5 11.75 1.25 32.165 1.5 22.37 32.5 22.25 32.175 1.5 11.175 1.16 11.62 11.17 1.37 32.25 22.175 1.175 1.5 11.12 33 33.175 1.75 1.12 32 32.25 32.17 1.37 11.18 1.62 11.77 22.62 22.25 32.175 1.75 1.37 32.Low.177 1.175 1.87 22.25 32.75 1.67 22.5 23 11.75 23 22.62 22.75 1.5 11.75 1.62 11.5 11.5 11.62 11.75 11.18 1.75 23 23 23 23 22.175 1.177 1.18 1. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.16 11.3 32 32.5 22.5 22.5 11.18 11.12 32 32.15 32 32.Highage est est 11.75 1.62 11.75 11.38 32.55 11.).17 11.62 22.55 11.62 11.167 1.162 1.Highage est est 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.62 11.75 1.5 11.16 33.5 11.25 33.5 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.87 22.18 11.25 11.5 11.09 33 33.75 11.18 1.18 1.62 22.87 22.75 11.62 11.175 1.5 11.75 11.5 22.5 11.18 1.75 1.5 20.18 1.175 1.5 22 22 22 22.75 11.Highage est est 32.25 32.25 32.18 1.25 32.18 1.06 32 32 32 32.75 11.175 33. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 199 Table A4.145 1.75 1.37 32.75 23 22.5 11.175 1.75 1.5 22.165 1.18 1.25 32.17 1.62 22.16 11.17 1.75 1.25 22.16 11.5 22.12 33 33.75 1.18 11.87 22. Year 1747 1747 1747 1747 1747 1747 1747 1747 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1748 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1749 1750 1750 1750 1750 1750 1750 1750 Month May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July 22.75 22.25 33.18 11.Low.5 32.Low.17 1.25 32.5 22.62 22.25 32.62 11.75 33 33 33 33 33 33 33 33 33 33.75 23 22.25 33.25 32.175 33.75 1.37 32.5 32.12 33 11.5 .) Aver.5 22.5 22.169 1.5 22.5 21.25 33.5 11.177 1.63 1.75 23 22.5 11.19 32 32.87 22.18 1.5 22 22 22 22.5 22.25 32.175 33.175 33.18 32.165 33.62 11.18 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.75 11.75 1.5 11.25 32 32.75 1.25 33.18 1.m.18 1.18 1.5 1.62 11.25 32.5 11.18 11.62 22.Highage est est 1.152 1.18 22.75 11.) Aver.25 32.75 1.62 11.5 22.25 32.87 22.25 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.5 32.5 11.17 11.62 11.m.5 21.18 1.5 22.62 11.75 23 22.16 11.175 1.164 1.75 1.25 32 32.62 11.18 1.12 33 11.17 1.15 1.5 11.75 1.5 22.18 1.12 33 33.33 22 11.5 22.47 22.5 32.25 32.62 11.17 32.17 11.12 33 22.5 22.91 21.12 33 21.52 21 21.5 11.62 11.25 33.175 1.172 1.75 23 22.75 1.5 11.16 1.75 11.5 11.5 11. 075 1.87 19.).67 20.05 10.076 1.05 1.25 32.5 29.15 1.52 32.69 29.25 10.5 11.25 33.25 32 32 30.Highage est est 33.12 19 19 19 19 19 19.05 1.049 1.9 20 19.5 32.75 32.87 19.11 1.05 1.5 11.28 20 20.4 1.61 29.56 19 19.69 29.Low.75 20 19.5 10.67 29.071 1.07 1.082 1.077 1.12 20 21 20.25 1.75 10 10 10 10 10.62 19.09 1.085 1.87 19.5 11 11 11 10.75 11 10.08 1.072 1.05 10.) Aver.05 1.08 1.5 10.31 30 30.5 32.87 19.m.15 1.5 32.077 1.87 19.75 20 19.08 1.75 33 32.71 10 19.12 11 10.75 33 32. 1277–2008 Table A4.067 1.09 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.5 20.25 32 32.75 29.25 19.55 19.Highage est est 20.75 20 19.05 10.69 29.12 19 19.62 19.5 19.12 19 19.m.08 1.06 32 19.045 1.05 10 10 10 1.25 10 10.75 32.75 20.5 32.045 1.085 32.19 11 11 10.25 32.75 19.75 20 19.87 19.161 1.05 1.048 1.12 10 19.25 1.05 10.87 10.05 1.12 1.25 10.Low.5 11.37 32 32.05 1.12 32 1.37 11.12 10 19.09 1.08 1.075 1.052 1.) Aver.12 19 19.051 1.m.05 10.08 1.25 1.63 29. Year 1750 1750 1750 1750 1750 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1751 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1752 1753 1753 1753 1753 1753 1753 1753 1753 1753 1753 Month Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.075 32.25 10 10.12 10 19.25 10.05 1.25 10 19.69 29.09 1.25 10 20 10.25 19.06 1.87 32.) Aver.25 19.09 1.054 1. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.05 1.87 32.5 10.07 11.5 1.25 1.08 1.5 30.25 10.34 30 30.117 1.25 10.87 31.5 10 10 10 1.5 19 19 19.5 30 19.25 1.25 32 1.200 Exchange rates.075 32.5 10.09 1.Highage est est 11.075 1.25 1.05 1.5 19.87 32.5 20 10.5 31.12 19 19.4 19.44 19.08 10.62 19.5 10.75 10.25 1.65 10 10.5 32.5 10 10 10 10 11 1.05 1.75 10.25 1.87 32.75 10.25 10 32.97 19.12 19 19.09 33 33 33 32.5 29.75 10 19.33 32 32.37 32.07 1.07 19.75 29.25 1.5 19.87 19.25 1.75 20 19.05 1.4 (cont.5 20 19.75 20 19.75 33 32.05 1.63 29.75 20 19.63 30 29.06 1.5 19.25 32.074 1.05 1.06 1.05 10 10.22 19 19.15 10 19.12 10 19.75 11 10.75 10.05 1.75 33 32.5 32.12 1.05 1.75 10.075 1.4 32 1.9 19.62 32.87 10.16 19 19.5 10.072 1.75 10.07 1.25 10.5 1.12 19 19.12 19 19.11 32 31.5 19.12 33 11.085 1.87 10.75 19.97 10.5 10 10 10 10.07 1.12 19 19.25 1.72 32.081 1.25 10.08 1.5 32.05 1.05 30 29.75 29.78 29.05 10.25 10 19.08 1.25 19.165 33.5 19.25 11 1.05 1.75 29.07 1.25 11.16 10 19.m.14 20.16 10 19.074 1.08 1.63 29.25 10 10.12 10 19.5 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.075 1.25 1.07 1.075 1.07 1. prices.075 32.05 32 32.075 32.66 29.75 10 19.75 32.07 1.77 19.25 32.5 10.07 1.25 10.75 33 32.75 33 32.Low.Low.25 10 10.45 31 30.63 29.05 .05 29.5 10. and wages.25 10 10.87 32.05 1.25 10.12 10 19.5 30.75 29.Highage est est 1.07 1.62 29.05 11.5 19.5 10.115 1.06 1.05 1.75 29.87 32.5 10.75 20 19.05 1.09 1.5 20 20 20 20 10.31 19 19.08 1.) Aver.72 19.87 19.87 32.5 10.63 29.081 1.05 1.072 1.75 33 32.5 11 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.07 1.055 29.75 29.5 10.07 1.085 1.25 33 33 33 33.25 32.099 1.25 10.08 32.5 29.75 10.07 1. 75 30 1.25 1.5 19.06 1.5 30.5 10.62 19.75 20.057 1.06 1.055 1.49 10 19.25 19.37 19.5 10.055 29.62 30.13 31.75 9.62 29.055 1.62 19.25 10.25 19.055 29.75 20.87 19.05 30 10.055 1.055 1.63 10.5 19.5 19.25 21.62 19.07 1.91 29.75 1.75 1.5 19.057 1.95 29.5 19.75 10 19.52 19. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 201 Table A4.055 29.37 19.062 1.5 19.m.5 19.91 29.05 1.5 19.5 19.055 1. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.05 1.5 11 10.05 1.5 19.4.05 29.06 1.25 1.75 29.5 19.75 10.75 9.055 1.25 10.75 30.88 30 19.37 19.).5 10.055 1.78 19.05 10 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.25 10.19 10 19.055 29.75 10.) Aver.06 1.4 (cont.75 20.25 10 10 10 10 1.37 10.75 29.06 30.055 30 19.06 1.75 29.07 30.62 30.05 1.59 19.88 30 1.055 30 30 30 30 30 30 30.94 29.75 30 29.05 1.Low.05 1.94 29.5 19.05 1.25 1.Highage est est 29.055 29.055 1.07 1.37 10.05 1.13 30 30 30 10.055 1.05 1.5 31.5 11.88 30.5 19.25 10.5 19.75 10 19.07 1.75 31.Highage est est 1.5 10.5 30.06 1.Low.055 1.06 1.88 30.06 10.5 19.09 10 1.Highage est est 19.62 19.25 19.05 29.37 19.94 29.13 10.25 10.25 10.055 1.053 1.906 9.06 1.75 30 19.67 29.05 1.06 1.05 1.06 1.055 29.055 29.5 29.05 31 31 31 31 31 30.72 19.Low.75 10.055 1.065 30.75 20.75 10.75 29.25 21.5 19.5 19.055 1.55 19.75 10 10 10 10.75 20 19.5 19.75 21 21 21 11 11 11 11 11 11 11.055 29.062 1.051 1.5 19.06 1.055 1.055 1.05 1.5 19.) Aver.75 10.14 30.25 31 31 31.9 21 20.07 31.88 29.75 20.055 30.75 29.996 9.055 1.25 10.065 1.88 30 1.5 10.75 30 19.63 29.81 29.055 1.25 19.m.75 30 1.055 29.055 1.25 10.05 1.88 30.5 1.75 30.055 30.75 30.06 1.25 1.06 1.055 1.96 19.13 21.055 29. Year 1753 1753 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1754 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1755 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1756 1757 Month Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan 21.07 1.87 30.5 10.5 19.47 21.05 1.13 31.25 1.07 1.98 29.62 19.37 10.Low.05 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.75 1.m.065 30.07 31 31.5 19.75 20.52 19.06 1.051 1.5 19.5 1.06 1.37 10.062 1.25 10.055 1.055 1.13 30.3 10.05 1.05 1.) Aver.5 1.13 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.5 19.12 11 .) Aver.055 1.5 9.055 1.25 20.055 1.07 1.75 29.949 9.75 10 19.055 1.63 10.5 20 10 10 10 10 10 10.75 10.5 19.75 20.75 20.5 19.59 10.06 10 19.13 10.05 1.62 30.06 1.25 31.75 10 20 19.06 1.5 10.055 1.055 1.055 1.62 19.88 30 1.97 29.25 19.Highage est est 10 10 10 10 10 10 10 10.75 20.75 1.75 30.5 19.22 10 10.63 29.m.91 29.057 1.13 31.05 1.13 31.055 1.5 10.055 30 10.62 19.75 30 1.06 19.75 30 1.75 10.63 29.25 10.75 10.5 19.37 19.98 29.87 29.5 29.75 30 1.25 10.055 30.06 1.5 10.25 21.068 1.055 1.86 29.055 1.25 29.75 20.56 19.57 19.5 19.13 31.5 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.37 19 19.87 29.055 30 10.05 1.5 1.59 19.62 30.5 1.62 30.5 19.86 29.5 1. 5 39.275 1.5 36.5 15.5 14.06 1.5 26.48 32.07 1.5 39.75 13.5 36.28 1.46 1.33 1.24 1.44 34 35.25 32.5 26.28 1.12 37 37.87 10.5 26.75 13 27.282 1.34 1.22 14 14 13.8 11 10.5 36.335 1.46 1.5 15 15 34.27 1.5 36.06 1.19 1.75 11 10.33 1.m.5 13.5 13.5 26.5 11.75 15.48 1.075 32.5 36.Highage est est 1.87 10.202 Exchange rates.5 26.5 36.5 39.12 1.25 32.5 14.75 32.12 37 38.75 27.5 27.4 1.5 36.12 13 13 13 13 27.335 1.067 1.34 1.335 1.335 1.45 1.5 21.62 32.25 1.25 13 13.75 32.75 11.25 26.5 13.33 1.5 14.5 36.5 28 28.5 41.335 1.75 26 26.075 32 1.25 13 13.Highage est est 31.13 31.9 22 23 23.16 11.6 11 11 11.75 1.2 1.34 1.56 26.33 1.06 1.5 15 15.5 21.) Aver.Low.75 13.16 1.75 1.5 11 11 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.5 21. 1277–2008 Table A4.Highage est est 21.19 12.75 15.25 12.95 29.5 14.5 14.12 37 37.1 13.75 14.06 26.5 33.65 13 13.62 13.5 39.5 22 23 23 24 24 24 24 21.5 26.5 32. Year 1757 1757 1757 1757 1757 1757 1757 1757 1757 1757 1757 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1758 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1759 1760 1760 1760 1760 Month Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.09 26 26 26 25.m.62 31.45 1.75 31.5 26.85 24.25 32.5 36.335 1.5 31.5 26.18 1.33 1.5 43 43.5 13.75 14.268 1.15 1.25 39 39.75 39.66 12.5 36.5 43 43.5 15.3 1.75 13 26.5 13.34 1.5 13.5 13.357 1.335 1.5 26.25 31.7 21.327 1.75 15.55 12.085 1.5 37.5 14.5 28 28 29.Low.189 1.75 32.25 37.62 13.75 13.25 32.19 1.5 12.17 1.5 39.5 26.5 11.25 13 26 26 26.) Aver.5 11 11 11.25 15.32 1.) Aver.2 34 34 32.55 26.87 13.06 1.47 29.45 1.5 36.75 11.5 37 37.5 36.87 10.37 35 36.06 1.34 1.5 14.5 10.5 14.22 27 27.38 1.5 26.122 1.5 26.19 1.5 34 34.25 14 13.33 1.33 1.75 13.75 13.13 1.25 11.75 14.25 13.34 1.52 32.5 13.075 1.5 36.37 11.33 1.25 26.42 15.75 39.75 11 10.5 14.06 1.25 27 26.5 26.5 26.5 21.25 32.07 1.5 13 13 13.5 14.45 39 39.33 1.62 38.25 24.34 1.25 15.26 1.Low.26 1.286 1. and wages.) Aver.62 26.1 1.5 43.31 1.5 26.Highage est est 11 10.62 32.172 1.25 37.5 39 38.316 1.93 25 26.33 1.75 25 25.69 36.5 26.25 36 36.25 39 39.06 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.5 1.5 36.6 27.13 1.25 38.28 1.34 1.5 11.5 26.5 27.5 15.28 1.25 1.12 26 26.5 35 36 36.5 32.5 14 14 14 14 14 14 14. prices.m.5 26.45 15.186 1.4 (cont.48 12.4 27 26 26.81 25 25.12 35.235 1.5 40 40 40 42.75 21.25 31.32 1.6 43 43.).46 1.5 26.34 1.39 1.16 1.5 22 22 22 22 23 24 24 24 24 24 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.5 26.38 1.5 26.48 .37 43 26.5 15.5 13.18 12.5 30.16 1.75 1.19 1.75 11.45 26.257 1.75 39.34 1.19 31.45 1.25 39 39.Low.06 26.3 1.32 1.075 1.5 24.5 26.07 1.2 24 24 24 24 21.092 1.25 1.m.6 31.5 26.5 26.3 1.12 37 37.33 1.75 1.75 34 34 34.25 37.5 39.5 26.33 1.37 36 36.75 13.335 1.335 1.75 1.75 1.75 11 11 11 11.75 15.4 1.5 26.5 26.37 26.335 1.5 31.5 27.8 28 29 27.5 43.17 32.46 1.94 39.25 1.5 36.5 26.25 39 39.34 1. 5 48.25 51.565 1.65 1.75 39 41.06 2 2 2 2 2 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18.m.5 45.25 1.98 1.61 55 25.25 16.5 38 40 36.7 1.5 16.5 35.75 51.5 1.5 17 17.52 1.75 50.5 17 17.5 36.5 36.7 1.75 50.25 16.2 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18.).65 1.52 1.52 1.65 1.49 55 .5 57.25 46.4 40 36.75 18 1.88 2 2.5 17.75 1.Low.5 1.8 22 22 24.5 19 19.73 42 44.75 1.25 16.75 18.25 16.5 18.87 46.25 16.44 43.6 1.5 57.5 57.25 51.8 1.5 36.Highage est est 1.) Aver.5 57.75 48.5 19 19 20 20 21 22 22 22 27 27 25 25 24 24 22 21 20 20 48.5 35.58 1.5 39.75 33.5 57.75 45 45.75 50.75 50.81 15.75 50.Highage est est 29.Low.5 57.25 1.75 50.09 40 42.7 36.53 1.82 2 2.24 22.6 1.47 42 42.5 1.725 1.5 55 55 36.5 33 34 34 35.25 16.25 46.75 1.25 1.5 48.94 17.75 50.5 47.5 36.25 46.75 51 50.25 47. Year 1760 1760 1760 1760 1760 1760 1760 1760 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1761 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1762 1763 1763 1763 1763 1763 1763 1763 Month May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.75 50.75 50.59 48 45 45 43.75 1.5 45. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.5 47.25 51.7 1.5 36.75 50.75 50.m.5 16.72 1.Highage est est 44.5 36.m.5 1.5 47.25 21 20.5 17.5 1.75 1.6 1.5 55 55 52 52 55 57.8 1.5 1.8 36.7 1.4.5 57.55 17.52 1.75 50.5 57.65 1.Low.5 47.87 36.5 18.25 46.75 50.25 24 24.12 2.) Aver.5 17.5 36.1 35.75 50.8 1.5 37 39 40 40 42 43 43 43 50 50 45 45 45 45 42 42 40 40 30.25 1.56 36 36.75 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.5 18.61 1.52 1.5 1.) Aver.75 50.5 1.5 30 31 31 31 32.25 30 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.25 52 55.75 50.5 47.5 1.49 24 23.25 46.5 1.25 46.54 1.75 1.75 49.5 35.5 36.67 24 24. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 203 Table A4.5 17.5 17 17.25 36 36.75 50.5 1.7 1.54 1.53 46.8 1.5 45.995 1.7 1.75 50.5 22.Highage est est 15.5 21.5 55 55 52 52 52.5 36.25 46.75 33.75 35.5 1.5 57.5 47.75 50.75 1.19 40 39.5 19 19 20 20 22 22 23 17.75 42 43 43 43 43 18.56 50 50.54 1.5 1.524 1.59 20 19.25 51.9 2 2 2.5 38.75 1.6 1.5 1.5 36 30 30.54 1.49 19 2.79 22.98 2 2 56.09 2 2 2 2 2 1.68 48.095 2 1.5 57.9 21.75 50.) Aver.75 19 19.5 20 20.18 42 42 42 41.12 45 45.75 39 39.12 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.Low.75 48.75 50.7 1.5 16.4 (cont.5 18 18 18 18 18 18 18.82 1.75 1.804 1.725 1.m.5 16.12 34.75 1.5 55 57.75 1.5 36.5 1.5 35.49 48 49.75 50.75 1.81 51.5 33 34 34 34.75 50 50 50 50 50 50 50 50 50 50 50.75 18 1.992 1.25 46.75 50.5 57.5 1.75 1.75 1.5 1.5 17.959 1.5 1.25 16.5 1.5 39 52.73 1.5 36 36.5 36.25 16.25 46.675 1.25 52 52 52 55 57.75 21 48.65 50.2 29 30 31 31 31 31.52 1.12 47.5 30 31 31 31 32 33 34 34. 5 40.5 44.04 2 2 2 2.Highage est est 55 55 55 55 55 55 57.5 46 46 46 46 44.75 23. Year 1763 1763 1763 1763 1763 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1764 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1765 1766 1766 1766 1766 1766 1766 1766 1766 1766 1766 Month Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.5 19 21.5 42 43 45 47 45 45 44 43 43 43 43 44 44.1 2.5 18 18 18 45.m.24 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 22.99 2 2 2 2 2 2.3 39.5 23.1 2.15 2.5 23 23 22 22 22 22 22 22.15 2.) Aver.25 21 20.5 21 20 19 18 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.5 44.24 22.) Aver.12 22 22.6 22.99 22 22.2 45 46 45 46.1 23 23.5 41.) Aver.Low.99 37 37.66 40 40 40 38.Low.25 44 44.12 44 44.204 Exchange rates.5 57.4 (cont. and wages.4 44 43.125 2.06 18 19.12 22 22 22 22.61 18 18.1 2.15 2.98 56.2 43 43 43 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.5 2.1 2.025 2 2 2 2 2 2 2.25 43 42.1 2.25 44 44.5 46 46 46 46 46 42 40 40 39 38 42 42 42 41 40 38 37 42.15 2.15 2.25 23 23 22 22 22 22 22 22.5 23 24 24 23.5 23 22 22 22 22 22 22. prices.996 1.5 24 23.m.5 22.15 2.Low.15 2.1 18 18.17 22 20.15 2.87 45 22.25 21 21.08 2.15 2.75 42 44.87 22.5 37.5 21 20 20 19.49 23 23.5 22.5 22.24 55 56.08 2.74 45 44.5 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 55 2.m.5 47 46 46 44.5 45 46 46 46 2.12 18 21.15 2.83 23.15 2.15 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.5 22.Highage est est 2 2.m.1 2. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.15 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 1.1 44.5 21.25 44 45.75 23 44.25 42 42.37 45 45.15 2.15 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 1.125 2.79 18 19.3 46 45.03 37 1.24 43 45.Highage est est 20.73 37 37.5 46.49 18 20.33 45 40.).75 23.75 42 43 43 43.5 22.1 2.81 22.5 23.085 2.2 36.62 46 23.39 19 19.49 22 23.Highage est est 41 40.25 22 22.98 .Low.1 2.1 2 2 2 2 2 2.5 37 41 41 39 39 36 36 39.79 20 22.1 2.5 22. 1277–2008 Table A4.49 19 18.5 46.5 45.49 22 22.5 41.111 2 45.5 22.5 21.5 22 23 24 24 22.) Aver.5 23.5 23.1 2.1 2.5 22 23 22. 5 .25 17.5 27.Highage est est 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.) Aver.84 12.5 25.167 32 1.75 16.m.167 1.944 1.) Aver.5 33.25 1.Highage est est 1.25 27 27.4.25 30.m.4 (cont.167 32 32 32 30.29 33.Highage est est 1 daler s.25 11.5 27.5 30. 1768 Jan 1768 Feb 1768 Mar 1768 Apr 1768 May 22 1768 June 22 1768 July 1768 Aug 1768 Oct 1768 Nov 1768 Dec 1769 Jan 1769 Feb 1769 Mar 1.356 1.m.5 27.4 (cont.m.5 17 17 17.5 12 13.5 26.5 33 32 37 35. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 205 Table A4.43 17 17.85 26.75 33.167 1.Low.167 1.76 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.5 12.) Aver.6 32.5 1.25 13 12 30.15 17 17 17 16.75 12.49 24 24.Highage est est 24 22 22 24 22 22 22 22 24 22 22 22 22 25.154 1.25 17.Low.75 1.25 1.5 33.81 24.78 1.5 30.333 1.87 16.87 16.5 24.5 33.55 27 26.21 15. in plates in daler s.) Aver.5 16.75 12. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.167 1.87 16.25 1.5 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.).78 1.87 13.Low.33 26 27.8 1.) Aver.9 1.75 13.1 12 12 12.).25 25 13.5 25.25 1.167 13.5 27.m.464 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.385 1.Low.478 1.Highage est est 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.m.167 1.5 27.25 13 13 14 14 14 12.32 25 25.Highage est est 17.8 1.15 1.5 32 32 30.75 15.333 33 1.76 16.75 33.5 34 34 34 34 33 32 27 25 25 24 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.15 1. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.62 12.163 1.5 33.Low.5 18 17.5 33.333 1.5 16.79 1.372 1.m.Highage est est 17.78 1.5 Table A4.m.) Aver.m.5 33.75 13.25 24 24 24 11.m.68 35 34.37 33 33.383 1.75 33.78 1.25 1.Low.5 24.) Aver.Low.5 13 14 14 13 14 14 1.5 30.9 1.5 16.12 13 12.5 33.25 1. 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.Highage est est 35.25 15.5 33.25 1768 Sept 25.76 2 1.75 16.333 1.167 1.333 1.478 33 1.Low.5 16. Year 1766 1766 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 1767 Year Month Nov Dec Jan Feb Mar April May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Month 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.849 1.167 1.) Aver.5 13.333 33 33 33 33 1.5 26 26.87 11.167 1.7 16.12 14 13.75 12 12.75 25.03 11.25 25.5 27. 696 1.25 34 33.94 16.55 17.7 30 30 30 30 30 31 30 30 32 31.75 26.5 31 34.333 1.687 1.37 17.Highage est est 1.5 28 28 1.5 17.5 17.88 1.5 16.62 17.5 34.18 16.33 1.25 16.5 33 17.75 29.19 17 16.438 1769 Apr 1769 June 1769 July 1769 Aug 1769 Oct 1769 Nov 1769 Dec 1770 Jan 1770 Feb 1770 Mar 1770 Apr 1769 May 26. Year Month 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.13 17.Low.655 1.75 16.Low.5 18 18 17.). prices.25 17.5 1.5 13.75 17 16.737 1.25 17.25 17.5 33 17.Highage est est 13.m.333 1.25 33.5 1.4 (cont.m.735 1.5 1770 Oct 1770 Nov 1770 Dec 1771 Jan 1771 Feb 1771 Mar 1771 Apr 33 31 31 33.838 1.37 17.333 1.5 33 33 33 32.718 1.814 1.25 33.5 33.742 1.75 17 30.5 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.75 15.5 1771 July 1771 Aug 1771 Oct 1771 Nov 1771 Dec 1772 Jan 1772 Feb 1772 Mar 1772 Apr 1772 May 1772 June 33 33 32.06 17 17.66 1. 1.) Aver.5 16.96 16.5 16.688 1.58 16.5 16.788 1.5 1.5 1.25 17.13 1771 Sept 32.75 1.333 1.5 1.5 1.21 16 17.06 17 14 14 16 16.75 18 18 17.66 1.m.75 18 17.5 33 34 33.66 1.206 Exchange rates.874 1.5 17.25 33.655 1.9 .738 1.621 1.333 1.44 16.469 1.768 1.13 1.12 31 1770 July 1770 Aug 1770 Sept 34.5 16.5 32.8 26.) Aver.5 16.75 17.5 33.35 17.37 32 16.) Aver.5 33.25 33 1.62 13.Highage est est 26.02 15.87 16.5 16.37 16.59 16.37 17.25 16 16.75 16.13 17.75 17 16.5 16.852 1.5 17.5 15.17 33 33.5 33. and wages.86 1.5 17.25 33 33.332 1.333 1.87 16.25 17.333 34 1.75 1.5 17.75 16.16 1771 May 32.706 1.63 16.9 17 16.25 16.5 1.m.25 17.75 31. in plates in daler s.92 13.333 1.53 28.33 1.5 17.62 1.87 32.333 1.75 17.75 16.5 33 33 32.715 1.5 1770 June 31.75 18 17.5 16.56 33.75 17.5 32.25 1.47 16.) Aver.Highage est est 1 daler s.737 1.25 16.25 16.333 34 1.687 1. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.m.69 1.5 17.728 1.m.5 1.662 1.25 17.801 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.5 17.5 33 33.331 1.5 1.725 1.737 1.42 17.62 33.25 17.333 34 34 34 34 34 34 34 1.75 1.5 17.Low.5 33.65 33. 1277–2008 Table A4.65 1.505 1.5 1.655 1.735 1.75 17 1.5 1770 May 31.25 33.81 17.65 33.88 16 16.759 1.25 17.5 17.5 33 1771 June 32.89 28 1769 Sept 29.Low.5 32.75 17.5 27 27 28 30 30 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.5 1. 5 20.88 2 .44 19.12 36 36.144 2.5 36.992 2. in plates in daler s.781 1.94 39.5 34.25 18.5 18.Low.25 1.25 19.973 2 36.88 17.986 1.973 2 21.13 21.75 1.13 1.986 1.806 1772 July 1772 Aug 1772 Oct 1772 Nov 1772 Dec 1773 Jan 1773 Feb 1773 Mar 1773 Apr 1773 May 1772 Sept 33.5 36.986 1.5 36.048 2.973 2 1.5 18.5 36.75 18.5 1773 Sept 39.986 1.5 39 39 37 37 36.5 39.171 2.25 19.72 18.31 21 21.12 36 36.5 20.25 1.37 33 34.31 19.986 1.5 36.25 21.13 21.38 20.5 18.5 36.5 34.88 17.Highage est est 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.m.5 19.973 2 1.86 1.806 1.6 1.88 1.976 1.5 34.6 19.75 18.m.75 39.5 34.006 1.) Aver.973 2 1.165 2.75 39.5 39 39.973 2 1774 May 39.m.973 2 1.973 2 1.75 18.5 19.88 18.12 36 36.71 20 21.781 1.88 17.5 39.77 18.5 19.993 1.15 39 1774 June 39 1774 July 1774 Aug 1774 Oct 1774 Nov 1774 Dec 1775 Jan 1775 Feb 1775 Mar 1775 Apr 38.63 18.88 18.986 1.Low.31 21.87 20.973 2 1.57 19.31 20.m.88 2 1775 June 35.203 2.5 36.75 36.5 39 21.973 2 36.51 20.88 18.88 17.25 21.12 36 39.Highage est est 35 35 34.37 33.986 1.88 17.5 19.939 2.). 1.986 1.75 17.75 35.5 36.75 19.973 2 1.75 21 39.5 36.73 20.75 35.188 2.4.986 1.63 20.Highage est est 18.986 1.5 20.973 2 1.23 2.6 1.85 39 20.5 18.75 38.25 21.5 36.12 36 36.37 18 19 19 19 19 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.Low.986 1.75 21 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 39.5 34.5 39.191 2.186 2.5 34.973 2 1.5 18.75 18.5 21 21 20.986 1.87 39.88 17.m.75 1.25 20.38 20.) Aver. Year Month 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.25 20.5 1.) Aver.75 20. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.25 18.981 1.4 (cont.781 1.973 2 20.5 36.31 39 1773 Oct 39.88 2 1775 July 17.25 19. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 207 Table A4.25 2.965 1.5 40 40 20.75 18.986 1.973 2 21.986 1.973 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 1775 May 35.56 36.5 18.25 35.5 19.25 21.052 2.5 35.m.75 18.4 36.5 18.986 1.973 2 1.41 20.13 1.75 39.25 35.5 39.44 21.5 20.986 1.44 19.42 39 1773 July 1773 Aug 39.5 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.Low.75 21.5 18.973 2 1.5 36.25 19.986 1.263 2.Highage est est 1 daler s.38 19.25 19.223 2.878 1.5 36.87 39 1773 Nov 1773 Dec 1774 Jan 1774 Feb 1774 Mar 1774 Apr 40 40 40 40 39.217 2.25 18.5 1774 Sept 36.5 21.) Aver.25 39 18.88 1773 June 39.5 36.052 2.5 35.38 19.22 36 36.902 1.123 1.25 17.06 21 21.12 36 36. 25 35.25 35.25 18 35.667 1.Low.25 35.5 35.Highage est est 36 36 36 36 35.Highage est est 18 18 18 17.833 1.5 17.) Aver.Low.661 1.62 1.617 1. 1277–2008 Table A4.5 1 riksdaler in daler kopparmynt (par value 9 daler k.833 1.83 35.5 35.Low.5 17.208 Exchange rates.62 1.5 17.62 1.617 1.) Aver.617 1775 Aug 1775 Oct 1775 Nov 1775 Dec 1776 Jan 1776 Feb 1776 Mar 1776 Apr 1775 Sept 35.25 35.m. 1.656 1.5 17.75 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 18 35. Monthly exchange rates between Swedish currency units 1705–76.45 35.5 35.83 17.25 18 1776 July 1776 Aug 1776 Oct 1776 Nov 1776 Dec 35.5 17.25 18 35.617 1.5 17.5 35.25 18 35.833 1.5 35.25 35.25 35.833 1.5 17.25 18 Sources: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.629 1.833 1.5 35.25 35.94 17.5 17.617 1.5 35.833 1.Highage est est 1 daler s. Stockholms stadsarkiv and Wahrendorffska arkivet).m.5 17.25 18 35.59 17.833 1.833 1.5 35.5 35.m.5 35.87 17.5 17.m.m.833 1. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv) and Stockholms stads priscourant (Kungliga biblioteket.Highage est est 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 1 carolin in öre silvermynt (par value 25 öre s.5 35.25 35.833 1.833 1.) Aver.5 35.5 17.5 35.25 35. The monthly average is calculated as geometric.833 1.833 1. prices.833 1.62 1.5 35.88 18 1776 June 35.Low.617 1.5 17. Year Month 1 ducat in daler kopparmynt (par value 18 daler k.m.833 1.89 17.25 35.4 (cont. and wages.75 18 17.25 35.25 35.833 1.5 18 1 öre courant in öre silvermynt (par value 1 öre s.25 35.25 35.5 35.25 35.25 18 1776 Sept 35.25 17.833 1.655 1.5 17.5 35.25 35.5 1776 May 35. .) Aver.651 1.).5 35.5 18 17.25 35.833 1. in plates in daler s. 4 42.4 7. f.5.4 56.1 51. Year Noted premium (agio): Premium based on foreign exchange rate quotations Ss. 149) Mårtensson (1958.von ström ström O:1.9 12.5 8.4 21.1 56.8 38.0 43.6 50.3 8.7 4.1 40.8 10.1 10.9 11.1 11. ** See Table A4. (1903.5 14 10.4 10.3 49.6 10.8 47.8 16.5 8. 43) on on 3 burg on Ham.5 21.4.5 4.5 46. ensSchwe(1972.6 11.3 12.2 53.9 3. son rin p. O:1. 20-25) Ahlström (1972. Mårt.5 16. The premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative to riksgälds notes in 1789–1803 according to various sources.9 8.2 10.9 44.8 49.9 2.5 12.8 44. Ham.study** ences AhlAhlSs. (1972. 133) 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 6 6 10 14 22 10 10 14 23.5 1. f.1 21.8 41.2 41. 364–5 Price This differ. p.p.6 10.4 10. pp.1 10.curHamburg renburg) cies* 7.3 10 20. 134).8 18.9 30.9 Wallroth (1918.8 5. 364–5. on (1958.3 7.5 49.1 1.5 0.8 55.6.9 4.3 18. p.4 20.3 56.3 56. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 209 Table A4. p. Abbreviation: Ss – Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet).8 10.7 56.5 10 18. 26).2 * Average of the premiums calculated according to exchange rate quotations on Hamburg.9 48.9 44.3 16.3 50.8 41.5 50 47 48 50 50 5.4 20. p.3 11.2 58.8 10. London and Amsterdam.1 11.1 11. .4 12.0 56.1 44.9 48. 134).6 11.9 18.4 46.4 55.1 45. 9 11.0 10.1 10.5 51.8 11.7 12.3 50.2 10.9 44.9 11.5 11.5 12.6 52.0 10.2 10.5 11.9 23.5 11.3 41.7 44. and wages.7 22.9 12.6 55.6 10.2 11.7 61.7 52.3 17.1 40.5 11.1 17.0 36.0 1797 10.4 22.2 22.0 54.3 1.6 19.0 47.6 10. ** See footnote 7.1 10.5 52.7 10.1 10.4 20.5 1792 10.6 10.9 1789 1790 7.2 10.8 5.2 4.0 19.0 43.1 54.9 12.1 5.4 10.5 21.2 22.7 50* Sources: See footnote 167.2 12.3 50* 11.6 11.2 21.1 10.6 42.8 16. Year Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Annual geometric average** 1.1 10.8 44.5 19.4 53.2 42.2 10.8 19.1 42.5 1803 50.7 23.7 10.3 10.3 26.4 51.0 1798 12.4 21.7 49.5 39. prices.0 13.5 7.5 46.3 20.2 6.1 10.3 10.0 11.8 43.0 10.8 41.2 10.2 51.3 19.3 10.5 1793 10.6 11.0 11. .6 50* 11.7 10. Monthly premium (agio) on banco notes (in per cent) relative riksgälds notes 1789–1803.7 45.210 Exchange rates.5 53.0 10.4 50.1 10.3 1801 40.9 10.8 35.2 52.1 10.2 10.0 1799 36.6 52.0 50.1 10.1 51.8 12.1 17.3 1802 49.1 10.6.6 10.6 1800 57.9 38.1 10.3 6.6 22.5 50.3 32.9 46.0 43.9 39.2 26.9 1795 17.1 1796 10.5 11.5 8.2 10.5 12.8 9.7 33.2 10.3 52.4 10.8 44.4 51.2 22.6 10. * The premium was fixed at 50 per cent as of 29th August 1803.3 50* 12.3 11.3 50.6 10.9 54.4 1.1 46.0 47.7 1794 14.8 54.8 42.2 10.7 10.2 10.6 11.6 11.0 21.5 49.5 11.0 38.4 1791 11.3 10.0 6.0 11.8 10.7 51.8 51. 1277–2008 Table A4.5 56.1 10. 1774 and 1783. Vsat 1577–1610 (1952. 35 1537 Median of previous and next year 1538 Hallenberg (1798.5 3.5 3. f. pp. 83 and 1783.5 3. f. 102 .5 3.25 3 3. O:1. RAs ämnessamlingar. 26 Myntväsen vol 4 Heckscher (1935. 72. f.5 4 3.25 4. OO. 211–2). 211–2). p. and OO. O:1. 89. and OO. f. f. pp. 40 1565 Based on silver contents Based on silver contents.7. 107 and 1783 1568 Wallroth (1918. O:1. 314) 1563 Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar. pp.5 3. pp. and OO. Ss. 70 and 1784. pp.5 7.688 3.4. pp. O:1. 211–2). 99 and 1783. O:1. and OO. Hal1550 lenberg (1798. 173. 211–2) 1552 Median of previous and next year 1553 Heckscher (1935.5 3 3. f. 1566 28–9) 1567 Wallroth (1918. 266) Ss. Sst 1544–48 (1936. 211–2).5 4 4 4 3. O:1. f. 81.5 3.125 3 4 3. 176.875 3.5 4. 266) 1548 Ss. O:1. 70) 1556 Ss. O:1. f. f. f. p. pp. p. Year Source Official rate Market rate 3.75 3. f. 94–96. 314). Ss. 1542 Ss. 83 and 1783. and OO. 100. pp. f. p. 1774. See also Wallroth (1918. 743 1562 Hallenberg (1798. 90 and 1783 1554 Heckscher (1935. f. f. f. O:1. Forssell (1872.375 3 4 4 Lowest Highest 1534 Based on silver contents of daler and mark 1535 Ss. p. 1543 Ss.75 4 4 3.750 3.25 3. O:1. f. 313–4) 1561 Hallenberg (1798.187 6. Ss. Ss. 100 and 102. f. 211–2) 1555 Heckscher (1935. 84 1541 Ss. and 1559 OO 734. f. f. 85.5 3.5 4 4.5 4. p. f. 284). 87 and 1783. 87). and OO. f.169 3. p.5 5 7 8 8 4 6. Hallenberg 1560 (1798. and OO. f.5 3. p. Misc.187 6. Hallenberg (1798. 1536 Ss. O:1. 170 1546 Ss. 173. pp. Misc. 211–2). p. pp. O:1. O:1 . 28–9). 102. 26 Myntväsen vol 4 1564 Ss. 98 and 1783. Sst 1544–48 (1936. Ss. O:1. Hallenberg (1798. 78. 173. pp. O:1. 1544 Median of previous and next year 1545 Ss. 313) 1558 Heckscher (1935. 74 and 1783.125 3. Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. 139) 1539 Median of previous and next year 1540 Ss. p. f.750 4 4 4. 313) Ss. O:1. 211–2). f. 313) Heckscher (1935. 211–2). The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 211 Table A4.5 3. f.5 3 3 3.75 3. f.375 4 4. 1549 1551 Heckscher (1935.5 4 3. 7 marks in Ss. p. O:1. O:1. 93 and 1783 1557 Heckscher (1935. and OO. 170 1547 Heckscher (1935. Ss.5 3. f. f. pp.5 5 6. Hallenberg (1798. 84 and 1783. O:1. pp.625 3. 28–9). 875 10.5 4. O:1 . 126 and 1833 1581 Odén (1955.5 26* (4**) 4. 593 . p.5 4. part II. 1596–99.5 4. 130 1590 Median of previous and next year 1591 Odén (1960. 145 and 147. 237 and 256). p. pp.5 4. 240). f.5 4. 245) 1583 Odén (1955. 207). and OO. p. p. 50 1573 Odén (1955. p. p.5 4. 1597 Sst från år 1592 (1963. vol. 142 1603 Wallroth (1918.125 18 26 32 10 8 24 20 25 28.65 4.250 20 26 32 28 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4. O:1 .5 4. p. p. 1605–08. II. p. f.5 4. OO.5 4. Vsat 1577–1610 (1952.5 4. 14) 1598 Sst från år 1592 (1954. f. f. pp. O:1. 241) 1585 Odén (1955. 210) 1592 Sst från år 1592 (1939.8 15. 1601–02. O:1 . p.75 4.5**) 4. part II. O:1 . f. p.250 4. f. p.250 4.250 4. 241) 1584 Odén (1955. 185. O:1 . pp.5 4. f. OO . and Ss. and wages. 8. vol. p. p.480 4. f. p. O:1 . 544 and 615) Odén (1955. 107. 238) Odén (1955. 110 and 111. f. 119 1579 Odén (1955.5 4. 1860 1600 Wallroth (1918. 42 1570 Ss. p. O:1 . f. VI. 127) 1588 Odén (1960. 1592–95. 25 and 51) 1593 Wallroth (1918.5 4. Sst 1568–75 1575 (1941. 210) 1596 Sst från år 1592 (1954. O:1 .250 4. 544 and 1576 615) 1577 Odén (1955. Ss.250 4. and 1571 OO. Ss. Vsat 1577–1610 (1952. O:1 . O:1 .460 4. Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. p. 107 Odén (1955. f. f.212 Exchange rates. 128 and 129 1587 Odén (1960. 241) and Ss. 1277–2008 Table A4. prices. 108 and 109 1574 Odén (1955.5 4. Sst från år 1592 (1957. Sst 1568–75 (1941. and OO.5 4.). p.250 4. f. 216) 1599 Ss. 241) 1580 Odén (1955.5 4. 1833 1582 Odén (1955.5 4.5 4. 241). O:1 .375 Lowest 8 Highest 10 1569 Ss. 207). f. 237).7 (cont. 24 and 50) 1594 Ss. f.5 4.5 4.250 4.75 18* (4.550 4.5 4. 42 1572 Odén (1955. 241) 1586 Ss. part I. 378. 1601 149) 1602 Ss. 133) 1589 Ss. 241). f.250 4. 90). pp. 237–8).6875 4. pp. 50) Ss.5 4. pp. f.5 4. f. 1596–99. p. O:1 . Ss. p. Ss. f. O:1 . 137 1595 Odén (1960. p. p. 378.5 4. p. p.444 4. 104 and 107. 50 1604 Ss. Year Source Official rate Market rate 9 10 13. 241) 1578 Ss. 5 15.5 6. Riksdaler in marks 1534–1776. f.250 6. 12) Ss. and OO.5 4. p. and OO.5 4. O:1 . 196) Swenne (1933.5 6.5 as late as 1610.375 6. O:1 .5 14 17 16.5 6. f. O:1 . 4. O:1 .5 13th of April 1 rdr = 4 1/2 mark according to Ss. and OO.5 p.5 .5 4. p. f. f.5 14.132 15.75 6 6.5) Swenne (1933. f.5 Market Lowest rate (mark kopparmynt after 1624) 4. 173 Ss. Ss.5 6. 66) Swenne (1933. f.5 6. f.5 6. f. 595 Ss.5 302) Interpolation.5 6.5 4. 196) Swenne (1933. 161 assumes 1 slagen daler = 4. f. f.5 6.5 6.5 6.250 6 6 7 6. f. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 213 Table A4.5 4. 162.25 6.5 4.750 16.5 4.5 6.5 4. p. O:1 . O:1 . f. O:1 .240 15. f. 195) 4.5 4. O:1 . Year Source Official rate (mark kopparmynt after 1624) 4. Interpolation. 599 Wolontis (1936. p. O:1 . 196) 6. O:1 . 182 Ss. f.5 6.5 as late as 1610 Ss. 68) Ss. O:1 . 172 Ss.5 6.625 6.667 7 7 9.5 6.5 6. f. 97) Swenne (1933. f. p. 61) and Ss. 6. vol.5 6. O:1 . O:1 .5 Wallroth (1918. 145 and 148 1607 1608 1609 1610 1611 1612 1613 1614 1615 1616 1617 1618 1619 1620 1621 1622 1623 1624 1625 1626 1627 1628 1629 1630 1631 1632 Ss. p. 1466. 186 Ss. 1607 års myntplacat 4.5 (6.250 5.5 6. O:1 . 189 Ss. O:1 . VI. 1605–08. 169. p.5 6. 174 and 175 Ss.5 Highest 1605 1606 Ss. f. 595 Stierndstedt (1863. p. O:1 . p. 196) Swenne (1933.5 4. O:1 . and OO. p.5 5.5 4. 161 assumes 1 slagen daler = 4.4.5 4. 171 and 1434 Ss. f.). 1434. 197 Wolontis (1936.5 6.5 6. f. p. f.5 6. 1434 4. f.7 (cont. Sst från år 1592 (1963.583 6. 595 Ss. 164.250 5. 196). Stiernstedt (1863. OO.75 16. and wages. f. p.25 18.5 19.25 18. 1277–2008 Table A4.562 16.56 19.25 21 13 14 12 12 12 Highest 1633 1634 1635 1636 1637 1638 1639 1640 1641 1642 1643 1644 1645 1646 1647 1648 1649 1650 1651 1652 1653 1654 1655 1656 1657 1658 1659 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 Swenne (1933.25 19 21 21 21 21 21 21 15 15 15 15 15 15.25 18 18.75 21 21 21.5 16 17 17.031 21 14 15 15 15 15 15 16 15 15 15 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16.695 17.75 18 18.5 19. mark kopparmynt 6.491 13 14. 196) Swenne (1933.5 Market Lowest rate. mark kopparmynt 14. Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776.5 (12) 12 12 12 12 12 12 12 12 12 12 (15) 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 15 (19.7 (cont.041 15.5 15 15 15 15 15.187 18.789 15.907 21.301 16. 196) Swenne (1933. p. 196) Swenne (1933.).726 18. 196).207 21 21 21. 196) Swenne (1933. Ss. p. Year Source Official rate. p. p.5 19.5 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16. p.5) 19. 138) Swenne (1933. p.047 21. 196).5 14 16 .961 13.565 13 13.575 16 16 16 16 16 16 16.491 12.25 19 21 21. p.5 19. prices. 612 Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) 17.25 18.625 17 17.031 17.021 16 15. 196) Swenne (1933.214 Exchange rates. Vendels sockens dombok 1615–1645 (1925.125 17.25 21.25 16 16 15.25 17.457 17. 463 26. O:1 .75 25 25 27.146 26. 1780 Ss.375 24.5 19. O:1 . 335 Based on silver contents 21 21 21.016 27. f. p. f.25 25. f.5 25 21 21 21 21 22 24 25.5 19.062 24.4. f.5 19.747 24.27 27.749 25 24.611 26.5 26. f. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 215 Table A4. p.06242 25.75 27 27 22.25 27 27.978 26.833 27 27.125 . 328 Ss.25 24. O:1 . p.398 24. OO . 1780 Ss. mark kopparmynt 19.5 19.25 25.).5 19. 174) Wolontis (1936.535 24. Year Source Official rate.375 26 26.5 19.864 25. p.14 25 25. O:1 .3125 22 26.533 23.25 26. Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776. O:1 . 329 Ss. 653 Based on Hamburger banco Ss.884 24.244 26.5 (24) 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 Market Lowest rate.989 24. f.25 25.75 26.244 26 26 26 26.4375 25 25.135 24.5 19.27 25 25.241 25. 174) Wolontis (1936.7 (cont.068 21. mark kopparmynt 21 21 21. O:1 .5 19. f. 174) Wolontis (1936.25 26.164 26.186 26.5 19. 174) Ss.979 25.187 26.259 26.56 24.75 25 25 25 24 Highest 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 1690 1691 1692 1693 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 1699 1700 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936. 335 Based on Hamburger banco Based on Hamburger banco Based on Hamburger banco Based on Hamburger banco Based on Hamburger banco Based on Hamburger banco Based on silver contents Riksbankens arkiv Riksbankens arkiv Riksbankens arkiv Ss.5 19.75 27 27 27. 5 38 38 41 38 38.161 37.).7 (cont. 1277–2008 Table A4. f.696 36 36 36 36 36 36 36. f.5 37.405 40.5 36 37 39 42 Highest 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 1721 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 1727 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 Based on silver contents Ss.775 38. 345 Ss.371* (52.456 40. 580 and 1251 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Sjöstrand (1908. O:1 . f. 347 Interpolation. mark kopparmynt 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 (36) 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 Market Lowest rate.576 36. mark kopparmynt 26. f. p.625**) 41.25 37.386* (34. 344 Based on silver contents Based on silver contents Based on Hamburger banco Ss. 17) Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation Sjöstrand (1908. O:1 .244 26.103 36. 17) Interpolation Interpolation Riksbankens arkiv Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Riksbankens arkiv Riksbankens arkiv Sjöstrand (1908. Year Source Official rate. O:1 . based on Hamburger banco Ss.712 35.614 37.531 37.75 37.025 41. p.02 38.779 38. p. Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776. based on Hamburger banco Interpolation.244 25. and wages.216 Exchange rates.244 26 26.634 36. 48) Interpolation Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) .5 38 36 36.44 34 34.5 39 42 42 37.56* (26**) 38.314 37. based on Hamburger banco Interpolation.723 25 27.234 37.273**) 60. prices. O:1 . 172 60. see section ‘Abbreviations’.497 45. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 217 Table A4.759 42.371 72.994 87.654 84.478 71.5 72 71 78 86 86 75 75 *In debased coins (coin tokens 1716–18) ** In proper coins For abbreviations.417 59.411 40.701 91.594 72 40 40 40 46 46 42 40 40 40 39 38 42 42 49 52 61 70 74 76 88 72 68 47 48 54 64 64 68 77.384 46.258 46.702 87.).949 40 44.461 76.389 41.97 44.614 82.795 40.754 64.618 56.067 71. .692 68.4.572 52. Year Source Official rate. Riksdaler in marks 1534-1776.916 67. mark kopparmynt 40. mark kopparmynt 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 36 72 Market Lowest rate.584 72.143 78.894 50.643 40.55 41.7 (cont.5 74 70 70 Highest 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 1777 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter Stockholms stads priscouranter According to the mint reform of 1776 43 40 47 47 47 47 44 45 42 44 43 44 47 56 61 68 74 108 100 96 92 86 69 56 68. 33 14.31 14.40 14.788 14. 280 Ss.601 33.191 1.12 15. O:1 .39 14.923 1.125 33.15 15. 663 and 310 Ss. O:1 .12 15.923 1. f.867 14.885 15. p.457 14.12 15.923 1.41 14. 1724 Ss.14 14. f.474 42 42 42 42 42.477 14.125 37.923 1. O:1 . 322 Ss. prices.989 2 2.37 14.12 14.801 14.30 15. O:1 .86 14.16 15.8. f. f.98 15.135 44.923 1.914 35. O:1 . market rate 32 32 32 32.06 15.81 46. 295 and 298 Interpolation Interpolation Ss.44 14.42 14.063 2 2 1.846 36.923 1.20 15. O:1 .923 1. O:1 . 322 Wolontis (1936.923 1. O:1 . O:1 .33 14.20 15.12 15. O:1 .923 1.12 15.391 34. 628 Ss. ‘world’* 14.923 1.31 14. O:1 .882 14. f.16 15. O:1 .923 1.52 14.42 14.42 14.08 15.31 14. Year Source 1 ducat in mark kopparmynt. f. 255 and 566 Ss. f.915 2.882 14. 167 Ss. 262 Interpolation Interpolation Hegardt (1975.965 15. OO . 659 Ss.08 15.882 Goldsilver (value) ratio. f. f.923 1. f.989 50.867 15.12 15.923 1.353 14. f.44 14. O:1 .014 1.861 2 2 1. OO . f.49 14.391 15.02 1652 1653 1654 1655 1656 1657 1658 1659 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 Ss.251 14.968 52 52 48 48.882 15. 577 Ss.5 1 ducat in riksdaler specie. official rate Goldsilver (value) ratio. 1910 Ss.997 2 2 2 2 2.94 14.5 50. f. f.923 1.068 2. 1277–2008 Table A4.815 40. market rate 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2.269 49. f. O:1 .062 34.923 1.452 39.85 14. Sweden 14. f.53 14. 322 and 578 Interpolation Interpolation .385 40.923 1. 295 Ss.882 14.847 14. f. 562 Ss.882 14. O:1 .923 1. f. f. 570 Interpolation Ss.943 1. 258 and 259 Ss. f.09 15.80 14.5 49. O:1 .08 1. 563 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Ss.02 15.09 15.8 40.12 15.795 49.882 14.563 14.882 14.979 2 2 1. The exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776.27 15. O:1 .02 15. and wages.882 14.12 15.923 1. 315 Interpolation Ss.956 52 52 54 54. 226) Interpolation Ss. 286 Ss.218 Exchange rates.983 13. p.43 46.938 2 2 1.987 1.90 14.94 15. O:1 .24 15.923 1.923 (2) 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 1 ducat in riksdaler specie.782 40.12 16.44 14. 295 Ss. f. O:1 .12 39.882 14. 13 15.29 15.882 14.882 14. O:1 . f.633 14.058 2. f.44 15. 350 Stiernstedt (1863. 1922 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Riksbankens arkiv.547***) 122.52 15.803 15. 580 55.882 15.20 15.31 15.728 54 49.068 2.07 15.41 15. 270) Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Stiernstedt (1863. O:1 .285 15.882 14.00 15.131 Goldsilver (value) ratio.061 2 2 2.034 (107.13 15.882 14.628 1. p.07 14.304 50. 344 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Ss. Sweden 14.882 15.09 14.27 15. p.751 52.98 14.09 15.94 14.058 2.891** 2.998 60 56. f.012 16.07 49.81 15.097 2 2 2 2 2. O:1 .11 15.028 (52.076 2.101 2 2 2 2.882 14.223 52.882 15.033 2.392 15.054 2. 677 Ss.138 15. f.92 14.727***) 76.033 55.24 15.11 15.995 2 . f.25 53. ‘world’* 15.882 14.998 53. Riksbankens arkiv.098 15.882 15.09 15. Ss.8 (cont.444 15.606 14. O:1 .22 15. Year Source 1 ducat in mark kopparmynt.749 53. f.082 55.124 2.585 80. Riksbankens arkiv.772** 2 (68.882 15. market rate 50.82** 2.031 1 ducat in riksdaler specie. f.488 53.31 15. 335 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Ss.24 15. 335 Interpolation Interpolation Ss. f.333 14.02 15. official rate 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 Goldsilver (value) ratio. O:1 .06***) 82. 580) and Ss.759 53.02 14.22 15.11 15. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 219 Table A4.882 14.497 50 52 50 50 54.31 15.766 1 ducat in riksdaler specie.87 15.882 14. OO .048 2.502 54.163 2.31 17. market rate 2 2 2 2. The exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776.5 49.).791 54.4.11 15.13 15.04 1690 1691 1692 1693 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 1699 1700 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Ss.09 15.927 52. O:1 .286 2. O:1 . 330 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Ss.83 14.17 15.978 49. 87 14.029 2.26 15.27 82.91 14.145 76.985 2.985 1.91 14.05 15.989 2.11 15.94 14.005 2.91 14.031 2 2 2 2.881 68 69.205 15.975 1.15 15.942 15.80 1721 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 1727 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Riksbankens arkiv Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Riksbankens arkiv Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Interpolation based world gold-silver ratio Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) .037 1.18 15.09 15.15 15.2 15.015 15.056 2.131 14. official rate 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 Goldsilver (value) ratio.645 79. market rate 75.966 1.05 15.01 2 1.41 15.424 71.41 15.94 15. prices.39 15.063 2.92 14.368 14.009 2 2 2 2 2.392 74 73. market rate 1.20 15.971 1.122 15.13 15.069 72. Sweden 15.939 14.607 15.484 72.81 14.11 14.283 15.286 1 ducat in riksdaler specie.11 15.723 74.02 2.401 73.85 14.125 72 72 72 72.942 1 ducat in riksdaler specie.854 75.02 14.220 Exchange rates.98 15.17 15. and wages.146 15.18 15.11 15.411 73.181 73.17 15.999 1.931 90. ‘world’* 15.975 1. Year Source 1 ducat in mark kopparmynt.852 84.85 14.92 73.053 15.11 15.94 15.331 80.613 75.11 14.09 15.69 Goldsilver (value) ratio.297 80 87.002 1.02 14.552 15.706 74.971 1.8 (cont. 1277–2008 Table A4.24 15.351 15.92 14.872 14.).912 90. The exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776.81 14.99 2.24 15.91 14. 902 14.147 15.155 14.22 132.602 14.467 14.52 14.99 14.402 15.033 2.54 15.974 1 ducat in riksdaler specie. .94 114.742 104.332 14.1 176. Kraków.014 14. market rate 84.32 95.55 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant * Average of England.6 141.97 1.14 14.675 90.4.966 14.381 14.80 14. Sweden 14.72 14.852 1.70 14.894 1. ** In coin tokens *** In proper coins Ss – Sandbergska samlingen.68 14.901 1.11 137.80 14.871 1.54 14.379 15.18 120.884 1.93 1.009 1. France.99 14. Source: ‘MEMDB .011 14.69 142.87 14. Hamburg in 1687–1776.55 14.27 14.981 1.227 13.669 81.164 77.85 14.94 1.679 14.83 14.99 1.975 78.415 14.905 1.901 2.62 14.002 2.8 (cont.471 14.47 143.551 15. market rate 1.674 14. Luzern and Austria in 1652–86. official rate 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 Goldsilver (value) ratio.923 2.562 76.091 14.38 177.54 14.32 1 ducat in riksdaler specie. ‘world’* 14.032 78.66 14.85 14.39 14.985 1.).94 14.198 14. The exchange rate of the ducat 1652–1776.252 15.38 15. Year Source 1 ducat in mark kopparmynt.059 14. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 221 Table A4.48 14.846 1.913 1.55 156.14 152.13 127.15 14.411 14.2 167.863 1.73 106.62 14.Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’.41 170.057 79.99 120.036 1.933 Goldsilver (value) ratio.62 14.836 14.961 1.79 152.72 14.912 1.881 1.905 1.94 1. 077 1.5 6. p. 190).65**) 6.5 6.5 2.667 6. p.316 6.5 2.4 6.5) 2.4 6. 190) Swenne (1933.5 2. p.5 2. pp.5 2.222 Exchange rates. pp.5 2.9.5 6.811**) 2* (1. f. p. 102) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Swenne (1933. 94) Swenne (1933.588 2.5 2.5 6. p. Ss.5 2.4 6.782* (7.5 2. pp.949**) 2* (1.5 7. p. p.5 6.5 6.661 Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.5 6.5 2. 190) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation .5 2.809**) 2 2 2 2 2.5 6.745 6.5 6.4 6. O:1 .5 2.5 7* (8**) 6.481* (6. 94) Wolontis (1936.105 2.5 2. p. 189–90) Swenne (1933. p.008 6. p. market rate 1 1 1. 612 Interpolation Wolontis (1936.5 6.5 6.5 7.5 2.4 6. 190) Swenne (1933.125 7 6.07* (1. 97) Wolontis (1936. p.5 6 6.5 2.4 6. 102) Interpolation Wolontis (1936. 189-190) Swenne (1933.4 6. 1277–2008 Table A4.165 2. 197 Wallroth (1918) Wallroth (1918) Wolontis (1936. market rate 6. OO. Year Source Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.308 2. prices.4 6.5 2.5 7.5 2. 190) Swenne (1933.462 2.25 7. 189–90) Swenne (1933.5 2.5 6.609 2.4 6.5 2. The exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777.5 2. official rate 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 (2) 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 (2.5 2.5 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks). 94). p. Swenne (1933.5**) 6.23 6. f. Stiernstedt (1863.077 1.5 2. 94). 94) Wolontis (1936.5 2.5 2.4 6.018 2.5 (6) 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 1624 1625 1626 1627 1628 1629 1630 1631 1632 1633 1634 1635 1636 1637 1638 1639 1640 1641 1642 1643 1644 1645 1646 1647 1648 1649 1650 1651 1652 1653 1654 1655 1656 1657 1658 Wallroth (1918) Ss.5 6. official rate 6.5 2.143 2.071 2.4 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks). and wages.1 2. p.016 6. 189) Wolontis (1936.547 2. p. 190) Interpolation Swenne (1933.5 2. p.5 7 7. 728 2.75 3.6 3.855 3.5 2.5 (3) 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 (3. O:1 .4 6.857 6.733 6. 144) Wolontis (1936.842 3.833 3. p. 144) Ss.5 2. 286 Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Wolontis (1936) Interpolation Interpolation Ss.4.054 6.4 6.108 3.626 6.75 3.875 2.993 7.5) 6.757 6.819 6.983 6.5 2.9 (cont.167 3.572 3. p. 144) Wolontis (1936.5 3.75 3.667 3.5 6.757 6.5 6.75 3.842 2. p.5 6.857 6.5 (6.733 6.5 6.5 6.6 6. O:1 .857 6.043 7. 679 Interpolation Interpolation . 144) Wolontis (1936.5) 3.4 1659 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 1690 1691 1692 1693 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Ss.108 3. O:1 .5 6. f.75 3.658 3.757 6.5 6.138 3. The exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777.944 6.244 3.75 3. f. official rate 6 6 6 6 6 6 6 (6.6 3.431 3. 676 Ss.5 6.5 2.4 6. market rate 6.167 3.5 3.167 3. f.667 6.75 3.75 3.75 3. p. f. f.757 6.583 3.5 6.5 3.5 2.5 (3.5 6.5 2.835 6. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 223 Table A4.4 6.75 3.4 6.6 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks). 262 Interpolation Wolontis (1936.733 6.4 6.5 3. official rate 2.137 6.857) 6.77 2.75) 3.5 6.945 7.653 6. 677 Ss.701 3.5 6.167 3.5 6.063 3. p.348 6.4 6. O:1 .5 6.638 6.).632 6.847 3.75 Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.5 6.632 6.75 3.632 6. O:1 .5 6.4 6.4 6.5 3.75 3.75 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks).069 6.757 6.112 3.857 (6. market rate 2.857 6.115 3. 144) Wolontis (1936.733 6.4) 6.5 6. Year Source Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.984 7. 538 7.75 3.998 6.75 3.978 5. The exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777.4 6. and wages. 176) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Ss.75 3.75 3.6875 4. 1277–2008 Table A4. 176) Wolontis (1936. p.75 3. p.75 3.75 3.75 3.75 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks).75 3.25*** (4.538 7.563 7. p. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3. 176) Wolontis (1936.63 6. official rate 3.4 6.667 6.68 7.4 6.538 7.75 3. market rate 3. p.4 6.998 6.68 7. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3.75 3.457 5.75 3. market rate 6.4 6.75 3.68 7.4 6.75 3.538 7.75 3.204 7.547 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks).998 6.969*** (4.4 5. p.4 6.4 6. p.68 7. prices. f.4 6.75 3. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3. p.9 (cont. p.6875 4.933 6. official rate 6.6875 4.75 Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.348 4.75 3.538 7.4 6. Year Source Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.68 7.6875 7.575 4.75 3.75 3.12 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 1699 1700 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 Interpolation Wolontis (1936.511 4.6875 4.972 7 6.538 7.6875 ****) 5.6875 ****) 5. 176) Wolontis (1936.4 6.75 3.4 6. O:1 .6875 4.057 6.75 3.859 6.75 3.6875 4.667 7.312 5. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3.75 3.75 3. p. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3.802 4.998 6. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3.6875 4.12 7.4 6.68 .75 3.).75 3.224 Exchange rates.4 6.4 6. 687 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation 1717 1718 1719 1720 1721 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 Interpolation Not legal tender Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation 4. 176) Wolontis (1936. p.75 3. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3.6875 4.538 7.4 6.983 7.75 3.021 4. p.4 6.076 6.75 3.68 7. p.998 6.75 3.667 5.4 6.002 6. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3.4 6.866 6. p.216 7.664 6. p.6875 4.4 6.75 3.75 3. 176) Wolontis (1936. p.75 3. 176) Wolontis (1936.75 3.538 7.82 4.4 6.68 7. f.398 7.757 7.6875 4. official rate 4.029 4.538 7.263 7.68 7.601 5.6875 4. 48) Interpolation Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant .538 7.627 7.6875 4.336 9.149 7.68 7.6875 4.6875 4.68 7.722 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks).68 7.018 6.262 8.68 7.6875 4.442 7.022 7.352 7.68 7.675 8.539 7.68 7.257 5.781 4.154 5.538 7.6875 4.6875 4.167 6. market rate 7.329 6.68 7.6875 4.68 7.68 7.6875 4.6875 4.9 (cont.052 5.355 7.68 7.123 5.713 5.6875 4.4. 357 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation Sjöstrand (1908. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 225 Table A4.68 7.6875 4.68 7.6875 4.744 Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.68 7.6875 4.6875 4.6875 4.433 9.6875 4.68 7.6875 4.6875 4.624 5.529 7.6875 4. Year Source Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.6875 4.68 7.649 5.786 7.68 7.931 5.546 7.122 5.538 7.223 7.193 6.776 4.68 7. O:1 .776 4. p.776 4. market rate 4.68 7.262 5.167 6.6875 4.376 7.6875 4.6875 4.68 7.68 7.68 7.6875 4.68 7.68 7.68 7.248 7.781 5.854 4.6875 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks).996 5.6875 4.6875 4.6875 4.68 7.538 7.).68 7.68 7.065 6.791 7.6875 4.6875 4.68 1727 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 Interpolation Ss.806 6.376 7.776 4.355 7.374 7.6875 4.815 7.68 7.68 7.541 5.68 7.787 7.68 7.315 7.68 7.774 6.045 6. The exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777. official rate 7.538 7.6875 4.6875 4.68 7.776 4.704 4.284 7.597 7.564 5.89 7.68 7.355 7.6875 4. 375 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks).6875 4.481 8.68 7. The exchange rate of carolins 1624–1777.68 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 1777 Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Interpolation Interpolation Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation According to the mint reform of 1776 * In marks minted from 1633 onwards ** In marks minted before 1633 *** In coin tokens **** In proper coins Ss – Sandbergska samlingen. 193) 52 53.662 9.6 56 56 76 52 52 52 52 52 .000 8.6875 4.302 8.68 Riksdaler in half carolins (marks).892 8.68 7.993 7.6875 9.6875 4.336 9. prices.6875 4. p. 68) Ss.421 8.375 Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.6875 4.9 (cont.6875 4. Table A4.423 8. p.68 7. Year Source Daler carolin in daler kopparmynt.313 9.116 8.6875 4.68 7. official rate 7.33 8. official rate 1624 1625 1626 1627 1628 Wolontis (1936. official rate 4.031 8.529 10. and wages.6875 4.6875 4.68 7.68 7. market rate Riksdaler in öre courant.6875 4.6875 4.10.68 7. market rate 8.858 6. The exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777.226 Exchange rates.68 7.313 10.6875 4.565 9.380 5.581 8.68 7. f.792 7. 1277–2008 Table A4.753 9.6875 4.133 7.957 9. O:1 .68 7.066 8. market rate 1 1 1 1 1 Daler silvermynt in daler kopparmynt 1 1 1 1 1 Riksdaler in öre courant.).68 7.544 8.711 8.516 7.68 7. 197 Interpolation Interpolation Swenne (1933. market rate 10.68 7.68 7. Year Source Öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kopparmynt.222 8. 5 2.5 2. p.55 2.3* (76**) 52 53.5 2.801 2.5 2. 193) Swenne (1933. 193) Swenne (1933. market rate Riksdaler in öre courant.2 51.6 51. market rate 1.4.5 2.5 2.5 2. 193) Swenne (1933.833 Daler silvermynt in daler kopparmynt 1 1 1 1 1 (2) 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 2 (2.2 50.688 2.5 2. p. 193) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Wolontis (1936.). 262 88 88 96 72 52 52 52 52 56* (72**) 52 (48) 51.5 2. p. p.5 2.5 2.5 2.8* (68**) 54. 193) Swenne (1933.5 2.5 2. f.5 2.6 52 58 57 56 52 48 48 51. 193) Swenne (1933. 193) Swenne (1933.5 2. p.73 2.5 2.318 1.5) 2.5 2.07* (1. official rate 1629 1630 1631 1632 1633 1634 1635 1636 1637 1638 1639 1640 1641 1642 1643 1644 1645 1646 1647 1648 1649 1650 1651 1652 1653 1654 1655 1656 1657 1658 1659 1660 1661 1662 Swenne (1933.5 2. 102) Interpolation Wolontis (1936.428**) 2 2 2 2 2.5 2.5 2. The exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. p.5 2.5 2.5 2.5 Riksdaler in öre courant.61**) 2* (1.143 2.51 2.2 51. O:1 . p.308 2.623 2.571 2.353 1.2 51.5 2. 102) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Ss.5 2. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 227 Table A4.2 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 .525**) 2* (1.2 51.2 51. p. Year Source Öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kopparmynt.5 2. p.4 48 49.2 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 51.105 2.5 2.10 (cont.681 2.428 1.5 2.5 2. 67 66.5 2.5 (3) 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 Riksdaler in öre courant.93 60.33 66 66.3 65.228 Exchange rates.5 2.91 60. 144) Wolontis (1936. 144) Wolontis (1936. 144) Wolontis (1936.027 3. p.03 61.18 56. market rate Riksdaler in öre courant.33 67.096 3.102 3.18 65.388 3. official rate 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 1690 1691 1692 1693 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 Interpolation Wolontis (1936.06 3.39 61. Year Source Öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kopparmynt.048 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 Daler silvermynt in daler kopparmynt 2.814 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3.81 64.76 48 48 48 (52) 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 52 (64) 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 .67 72.). p. 144) Wolontis (1936. The exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777.33 67.518 3.47 60.06 3.04 72. and wages.10 (cont.36 65.16 70. 1277–2008 Table A4.33 67. 144) Wolontis (1936.466 3.63 67.06 3.8 56.8 52.08 56 56 56 56. p.06 3. prices. p.495 3. p.08 64. market rate 2.8 56 56 56.12 56.28 3. p.73 65. 144) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Wolontis (1936) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Wolontis (1936) Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation 52.52 63.67 66 66. market rate 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3. official rate 1699 1700 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 1721 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 1727 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation 66.72 70 69.57 95.7 101.02 69.83 70.10 (cont. Year Source Öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kopparmynt.19 96 96 96 96 96 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 .98 68.53 97.5 100.66 66. The exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777.67 73.98 69.98 69.49 102.3 68.4 107.64 65.33 69.4 161 110.442*** (3****) 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 Daler silvermynt in daler kopparmynt 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 Riksdaler in öre courant.36*** (3****) 3.57 69.18*** (3****) 3.98 69.59 66.4.6 97.63 70.17 90.67 92.98 69. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 229 Table A4.). market rate Riksdaler in öre courant. 814 4.230 Exchange rates.10 (cont.7 117.1 102.187 3.151 3.9 107.944 4.05 96. prices.25 97.045 4.4 110.).3 103 107.896 5.222 3.418 3.449 3.7 105. market rate Riksdaler in öre courant.561 3.3 102.3 114.234 3.2 105.9 105.7 118 115.03 96.191 3.064 5. The exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777.63 102.106 3.305 3.41 99.096 3.064 3.38 100.469 3.347 3.159 3.043 3.32 97.62 97.1 111. 1277–2008 Table A4.5 97.2 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 .3 105.216 6. market rate 3 3.518 3.533 3. and wages.319 3.043 3. official rate 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 Interpolation Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation Riksbankens arkiv Interpolation Interpolation Interpolation Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant 96 96. Year Source Öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kopparmynt.165 3.064 6.19 97.4 102.135 3.9 115.8 104.199 3.25 97.623 6.4 112.25 97.1 120.87 93.47 4.051 3.6 103.608 Daler silvermynt in daler kopparmynt 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 Riksdaler in öre courant.057 3. 808 5.7 121 113. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 231 Table A4.159 4.5 96. The exchange rate of öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) 1624–1777. market rate Riksdaler in öre courant.1 105.7 116.10 (cont.988 5. O:1 .83 101.959 5. f.9 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 96 * In öre minted from 1633 onwards ** In öre minted before 1633 *** In coin tokens **** In proper coins Ss – Sandbergska samlingen.4.8 5.735 4. official rate 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 1777 Stockholms stads priscourant Ss.765 4. market rate 4.621 6 Daler silvermynt in daler kopparmynt 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 6 Riksdaler in öre courant. 1263 and 1969 Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant Stockholms stads priscourant According to the mint reform of 1776 116.4 118.). Year Source Öre courant (‘vitt mynt’) in öre kopparmynt. . 20 and 22. – kopparmynt RA – Riksarkivet RBA – Riksbankens arkiv RD – riksdaler rdr – riksdaler s. Kungliga biblioteket Stockholms stads priscourant. Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar.m. I.s. 1 Järnhandel. vol. Untitled volume with exchange rates 1804–89. 6.m. 26 Myntväsen vol 4. O:1. – daler kopparmynt d. Äldre Kommissioner.k. O:2 and OO. vol. Misc. prices. vol. Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900. 408. – silvermynt SEK – Swedish krona Ss – Sanderbergska samlingen Sst – Stockholms stads tänkeböcker USD – US dollar Vsät – Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker Unpublished primary sources Göteborgs landsarkiv Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900. 1277–2008 Abbreviations d. 1740–55 and 1761–67 (microfilmed). vol. av Erik Sjöberg’. ‘Priset på spannmålen i Fahlun från 1716 til 1723 inclusive. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. Riksarkivet (RA) Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar. vol.m. .232 Exchange rates.m. Signum L I (Kollegiernas protokoll). Signum G d (Handlingar angående hospitalet). 4–6. Handel och sjöfart. Riksbankens arkiv (RBA) ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. – daler silvermynt k. and wages. Ser. Sandbergska samlingen. Lund. O (1945). Uppsala and Stockholm. G (1972). The Period 1776–1802’. http://clevelandfed. Ahlström. org/research/workpaper/1992/wp9205. Almqvist & Wiksell International.F.Medieval and Early Modern Data Bank’. http://www. http://sccweb. Vadstena stads äldsta tänkeböcker 1577–1610 (1952). http://www. Brisman. Lund. Monetary Endogeneity and the Quantity Theory: The Case of Commodity Money.:8. Davidson. 1756–60. ‘Part IV. Internet resources ‘MEMDB . Cottrell. 2. Studentlitteratur. vol.K Gleerup.measuringworth. Stockholm. Sveriges Riksbank. L. Stockholm. Uppsala. A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914. Crisis: With New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800–2000. 1919. in Sveriges Riksbank 1668-1924: Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. Lund.pdf (2007-07-29). part I. in Jörberg. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 233 Stockholms stadsarkiv Stockholms stads priscourant. C. and F Kydland (1992).com’. References and secondary sources Ahlström.pdf (2007-08-05).scc-net. Studier i svensk ekonomisk politik och prisutveckling 1776–1802. A (1997). edu/memdb (2007-06-10). Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1589–1591 (1948). S (1931).com (2007-06-10). 1768–74 and 1776 (microfilmed). Growth. Ser. Edvinsson. Stockholm. parts 1-21 (1939–2006). ‘Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1918’. Stockholms stads tänkebok under vasatiden (1908–).wfu. R (2005a). N. Stockholm. Stockholm. ‘Tiden 1803–-1834’. Stockholm. vol IV.rutgers. 1775–76 (microfilmed). Wahrendorffska arkivet Stockholms stads priscourant.W. 2. Skånes utrikessjöfart 1660–1720: En studie i Skånes handelssjöfart. G (1974). Stockholms stadsböcker från äldre tid. ‘Measuringworth. Accumulation. Bordo. M. GWK Gleerup. Bjurling.edu/~cottrell/commodit.4. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592. . in Ekonomisk Tidskrift. The Gold Standard as a Rule. Published primary sources Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1544–1548 (1936). (1752). D (1919). Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1568–1575 (1941). in Journal of Economic Perspectives. A (1975). B (2006). 70. Department of Economics. Gothenburg. M. A. Friedman.. Heckscher. vol. Stockholm. H (1872). 1. Heckscher. vol. and A Schwartz (1963). Gallarotti. in Bordo. pp. Akademiens spannmål: Uppbörd. Hansson. K (1995). Global Connections and Monetary History. and I Wiséhn (eds. No. I:2. Princeton.se/lunewp/abs/lunewp2005_040. Cambridge University Press. Hildebrand. II:1 and II:2. Burlington. Stockholm. Herlitz. Umeå universitet. vigt. Sveriges medeltid. prices. Studentlitteratur. Stockholm. Anteckningar om mynt. ‘The scramble for gold: monetary regime transformation in the 1870s’. 4 (Fall).htm (2005-10-01). 1867– 1960. Stockholm. Stockholm. G (2006). Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995.). Fiscal statistics for Sweden 1719–2003.). Lund. 85–104. K. A Monetary History of the United States. and L Jonung (2003). Almqvist & Wiksells Boktryckeri Aktiebolag. E (1935–49). 1470–1800. Almqvist & Wiksell International. Stockholm. Såld spannmål av kyrkotionden: Priser i Östergötland under Sveriges stormaktstid. K. Stockholm. Friis. Gidlunds. Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa. Ashgate. (2005). Fregert. R (2005b). ‘När kungens mynt blev allmogens mynt: En översikt över mynt. Hallenberg. Friedman. and K Glamann (1958). Monetary regimes in transation. vol. H (1983). Stockholm. Princeton University Press. . Lund University. A history of prices and wages in Denmark: 1660– 1800. in Jonsson. Fregert. De svenska penning-. and R Gustafsson. M (1990). ‘Bimetallism Revisited’. L (1974). Makroekonomi: Teori. 2. Flynn. handel och priser vid Uppsala universitet 1635–1719. J (1798). Uppsala.234 Exchange rates. http://swopec. Ekonomisk-historiska inst. E (1941). London. No. U Nordlind. G (1994).hhs.och måttsystemen: En historisk översikt. Folkungatidens monetära system: penningen mellan pest och patriarkat 1254–1370. Bonnier. D. Finansförvaltning och varuhandel 1504–1540: Studier i de yngre sturarnas Gustav Vasas statshushållning. Jordegendom och ränta: omfördelningen av jordbrukets merprodukt i Skaraborgs län under frihetstiden. Holmberg. politik & institutioner. Hegardt. Stockholm. Print & Media. mått och varupris i Sverige under de första femtio åren af Vasahusets regering. Cambridge. and wages. K. 2005:40. Ratio Working Papers No. Historisk avhandling om mynt och warors warde i Swerige under Konung Gustaf I:s Regering. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. Franzén. Hammarström. and F Capie (eds. Almqvist & Wiksell International. Annual estimates of Swedish GDP in 1720–1800. Forssell. Working Papers. vol. and R von Glahn (ed) (2003). 1277–2008 Edvinsson. vikt. M. I (1956). Städerna. A Giráldez. myntning och myntens roll i det svenska samhället under 1200-talet’. Umeå. 4. I:1. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. in American Anthropologist. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. No. and I Wiséhn (eds. and Foreign Exchange in Fourteenth-Century France. The General Theory of Employment. A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914. Jonung. Varför fick Gotland dansk mynträkning vid 1400-talets mitt?. Mynt. Lagerqvist. Stockholm. New Series. U Nordlind. Dagligt bröd i onda tider: Priser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1770. Vol. Ur sigtunamyntningens historia’. Stockholm. Lobell. Stockholm. ‘Från utländsk metall till inhemskt mynt’. Los Angeles. vol. Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration: De utländska växelkurserna i Sverige 1834–1880. Dordrecht. H (2000). L Andersson Palm. Stockholm. in Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918: bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. 1. in Jonsson. Lagerqvist. U Nordlind. and I Wiséhn (ed).dk/2/artikler/jonssgot. 5 (October). Appleton and Company. 5th edition. Norstedts.html (2007-08-03). Studies in the Monetary History of Sweden. F-K. http://www. Malmer. ‘Riksbanken och de valutapolitiska problemen. Natur och kultur/LT. 1022–40. K (1995). K. vol. Lund. J M (1936). A (1920). U Nordlind.htm (2007-02-01). Lagerqvist. MacMillan. 28. III. and J Söderberg (1991). Yale University Press. K. New York. Montgomery. Jonung. London. ‘Från guldmyntfot till inflationsmål – svensk stabiliseringspolitik under det 20:e seklet’. ‘Från Olof till Anund. Jonsson. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 235 Jansson. Almqvist & Wiksell International. and M Östergren (1998). Lindeberg. in Jonsson. L. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid från vikingatid till reformationstid (1956– 78). no. Stockholm. New Haven and London. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. L (1972). J (1970). in Ekonomisk Debatt. Svenska numismatiska föreningen.4. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995.priser och löner från medeltid till våra dagar. A. G (1941). H (1963).). 1719–1778’. L (2000). vol. and I Wiséhn (eds. pp. ‘The Polanyi School of Anthropology on Money: An Economist’s View’. ‘Äldre Vasatid’. K. 17–32. (1961). Jevons. Jonsson. . Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts. Keynes. D. Miskimin. Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskning. GWK Gleerup. Stockholm. Läge. 1 and 2. University of California. pp. Lund. Jörberg. S (1875).econlib. and E Nathorst-Böös (1968). Svensk ekonomisk politik under den Görtzska perioden. L (1975). Allhem. Lund. Money and the Mechanism of Exchange. Interest and Money. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. 72. Vad kostade det? . http://www. Prices. and E Nathorst-Böös (2002). Secular Inflation. L. Göteborg. L (1995). in Jonsson. Money. Riedel. Melitz.).org/Library/YPDBooks/Jevons/jvnMMEtoc.gladsaxegymnasium. B (1995). Malmö. K. Svenska folket genom tiderna: vårt lands kulturhistoria i skildringar och bilder. ‘Debasements. 789–808. and F Velde (2002). Stockholm. Stiernstedt. Inflation. pp. Gleerup. Cambridge University Press. Nordisk familjebok (1913). Almqvist & Wiksell. N (1993). pp. London. in Journal of Monetary Economics. Money and its use in Medieval Europe. Gleerup. Mårtensson. Rikets uppbörd och utgift: statsfinanser och finansförvaltning under senare 1500-talet. Princeton University Press. Stockholm. and W Weber (1986). S (1961). Oscar Isacsons Boktryckeri Aktiebolag. B (1955). A. 94. Sjöstrand. pp. ‘Commodity money inflation: theory and evidence from France in 1350–1436’. Gothenburg. S (1958). 185–99. Norstedt. Rolnick. 44–70. Redish. Lund. no. Odén. Mynt. and Output under Fiat and Commodity Standards’. Cambridge. 1415–1422’. Bidrag till kännedom af fäderneslandet. Royal Revenues. Om kopparmyntningen i Sverige och dess utländska besittningar. in The Journal of Political Economy. 1308–21. prices. 56. F Velde. Cambridge University Press. Bryggerinäringen i Göteborg: Tiden från bryggaregillets tillkomst år 1661 intill 1800-talets början. in The Journal of Economic History. Sussman. W (1895). 1769– 93. vol. and W Weber (1996). Princeton and Oxford. and Inflation in France During the Hundred Years’ War. Sargent. A. Rolnick. ‘Gresham’s Law or Gresham’s Fallacy?’. vol. Shaw. and Zeira. 53. E (1908). Vol. T. in The Journal of Economic History. 1277–2008 Mårtensson. Sarvas. Allhem.och bankpolitik under hattväldet 1738–1764. ‘Money. Bimetallism: An Economic and Historical Analysis. Sussman. 50. ‘The Debasement Puzzle: An Essay on Medieval Monetary History’. 105. A. 4 (December). no. 1 (February). Rikets uppbörd och utgift: statsfinanser och finansförvaltning under senare 1500-talet. Spufford. N. in Nordisk Numismatisk Årsskrift 1969. Odén.236 Exchange rates. Agiot under kreditsedelepoken 1789–1802. F B. Rolnick.org/nfbs (2007-08-14). P (1988). Den karolinska tiden (1939). and wages. Lund. and W Weber (1997). B (1955). http://runeberg. (1903). Cambridge. P (1969). pp. no. Göteborg. A (2000). 5. Malmö. in The Journal of Political Economy. J (2003). pp. A (1863). Stockholm. . von Schwerin. 1 (March). vol. ‘De svenska myntskatterna från 1700-talet’. The History of Currency. Uppsala. Wilsons & Milne. pp. vol. The Big Problem of Small Change. Almqvist & Wiksells Boktryckeri. 5 (December). 116–72. Odén. Kopparhandel och statsmonopol: studier i svensk handelshistoria under senare 1500-talet. B (1960). No. Version 3. Tingström. U Nordlind. ‘A Model of Commodity Money. Svenska numismatiska föreningen.minneapolisfed. Stockholm. Thurborg. Sveriges plåtmynt 1644–1776: En undersökning av plåtmyntens roll som betalningsmedel. and I Wiséhn (eds. Uppsala 1925. Tingström. vol. Wiséhn. Statistiska tabeller. Söderberg. 2.pdf (2007-08-10). U Nordlind. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. K. in Medeltidens födelse. No. H (1933).org/research/WP/WP588.).nl/hpw/stockholm. Söderberg. B (1936). in Jonsson. The multiple currencies of Sweden–Finland 1534–1803 237 Sveriges Riksbank (1931). Svensk numismatisk uppslagsbok. M (1989). Velde.). T (1995). Almqvist & Wiksell International. F. W Weber. Skrifter i mynt. and R Wright (1999). ‘Betalningsmedel under järnålder och tidig medeltid’. Federal Reserve Bank of Minneapolis. Working Paper 588 (August). U Nordlind. in Jonsson. B (1984). Tingström. Wallroth. XXIX. http://www.4. Lund. Nordstedts.och penninghistoriska ämnen utgivna av Kungl.). ‘Stormaktstidens penningväsen’. Nya metaller’. and W Weber (1998). in PECVNIA. May 2002. J (1936). U Nordlind. M (1995). Svenska numismatiska föreningen. in Jonsson. K A (1918). Kopparmyntningen i Sverige 1624–1714. Stockholm. http://www. ‘Den moderna mynthistorien. in Nordisk Kultur. Stockholm. ‘Sveriges medeltidsmynt’. K. ‘Från kaos till ordning: 1800-talets betalningsmedel’. with Applications to Gresham’s Law and the Debasement Puzzle’. Excel file. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. Prices in Stockholm 1539–1620. Erlanders boktryckeri AB. Stockholm. vol. Stockholm. B (1972). Wettmark.xls (2005-09-04). Göteborg. I (1995). A Model of Bimetallism. F. Stockholm. 291–323. Almqvist & Wiksell.). Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser. Talvio. J (1993). Lund. Numismatiska bokförlaget.och 1600-talets Sverige’. K. Svenska adelns ekonomiska privilegier 1612–1651: Med särskild hänsyn till Älvsborgs län. and I Wiséhn (eds. Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. Svenska numismatiska föreningen. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. Wolontis. Myntkabinettet. Mynt i ord och bild 1521– 1972. and I Wiséhn (eds. Bonnier. Stockholm. in Jonsson. Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924. in Review of Economic Dynamics. Stockholm. V. K. pp. ‘Inflation i 1500. Gyllenstiernska Krapperupsstiftelsen.iisg. 4. J (2002). Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. and I Wiséhn (eds. Thordeman. Stockholm. Vendels sockens dombok 1615–1645 (1925). . Myntningen i Sverige 995–1995. ‘Sedlarnas århundrade: Mynt och pappersmynt från 1724 till 1818’. Stockholm. B (1995). Velde. Swenne. vol. Research Department. Swedish currency was also current there. While foreign exchange was. Of these seven. from a few days (sight bills) up to more than 6 months. Hamburg. Before the spread of paper currency. the exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam were the most frequent. However. Since Finland was part of Sweden up to 1808/9. the price of sight bills is often the only available source for the calculation of spot exchange rates. For many insightful comments and suggestions. mainly conducted in bills. exchange between domestic currencies was mostly conducted in actual coins. the most frequently quoted exchange rates in Sweden were on Amsterdam. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–18031 Rodney Edvinsson 5. For earlier times. payments in international trade were often made in bills. 18). I want also to thank Göran Ahlström. A classic distinction is made between exchange of coins and exchange by bills.5. Nowadays. At that time. Klas Fregert. In the 18th century. Copenhagen. Paris.1. therefore. The price of 1 Some of the data presented in this chapter have been constructed in cooperation with Johan Söderberg.2 The bill of exchange is a written order by the drawer to the drawee to pay money to the payee. the primary data used in this study are from Stockholm and other towns in present-day Sweden. Jan T Klovland. Introduction This chapter deals with foreign exchange rates in Sweden in the period 1658–1803. Marc Flandreau. all seven currencies were based in one way or another on precious metals. Gdańsk and Swedish Pomerania. the spot exchange rate is usually calculated as the average of the buying and selling rates. primarily silver. and the par relations between them were. Lars O Lagerqvist and Håkan Lobell. Martin Sutinen and Göran Hansson. McCusker (1978. Bills of exchange had different terms to maturity. largely determined by their intrinsic metal values. p. London. at least from the 17th century. 2 . not London.5 Several authors emphasise that bills of exchange were useful instruments for evading usury ceilings and hiding interest rates. 231–2). . not London money. Knowing the prices of bills of various terms to maturity enables one to calculate the short-term market interest rate. as riksdaler in Sweden. and Hamburger Bank. By the 18th century. p. containing 1/10 of a Cologne mark of silver. 307). credit instruments had been developed that were based on exchange rate derivatives.5. Hayes (2001 [1740]) and Attman (1983. Flandreau. since it took time to transport the bill from one city to another and there was a grace period between the day when the bill was presented and the day when it was paid. The unit was adopted in other countries and was widely used across Europe.3 In Hamburg. included a premium or agio relative to current 3 4 5 6 7 See Flandreau. Galimard. According to Flandreau. A low bill price is tantamount to a high interest rate. pp. p. the interest rate calculated from bills of exchange on. and knowing the interest rate enables one to calculate a theoretical spot exchange rate. they argue that such a shadow interest rate is somewhat higher than the actual rate. Lobell (2000. and Marco (2006). since it includes additional transaction costs because the foreign market is located further away than the domestic market. Amsterdam traded in London provides information on the interest rate in Amsterdam.4 A bigger problem with historical exchange rates is that the sources do not always provide information on the durations of the bills of exchange.7 In 1754 the Reichstaler was replaced by the Conventionsthaler. In reality it is not as simple. Bank money supplied by the Bank of Amsterdam. 5. founded in 1619. Sometimes the term rix-dollar is used as a common label for the various national coins. rigsdaler in Denmark and rijksdaalder in Holland. p.2. for example. and Marco. 23). Bank money existed in the form of credit on the books of the bank. Jobst. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 239 bills with longer terms to maturity should be lower than the price of sight bills.6 Several of the quoted foreign currencies have their origins in the German reichstaler. According to the Leipzig convention in 1566. the German reichstaler as a coin was to contain 1/9 of a Cologne mark of silver. Galimard. one being actual coins or current money (courant) and the other notional or bank money (banco). the grace period could be up to 12 days. founded in 1609. 8). or 25. The price of a sight bill does not necessarily equal the spot exchange rate. Hayes (2001 [1740]. Current and bank money Exchange rates on Amsterdam and Hamburg could be quoted in two different currencies. since it is Amsterdam money that is bought. and in theory the difference would be determined by the prevailing interest rate. Jobst. Galimard.98 grams of fine silver. Furthermore. and Marco (2006. Jobst. 7 grams. pp. Monthly premiums on Amsterdam bank money can be found in McCusker (1978. The currency supplied by the bank became de facto inconvertible.5 per cent and sold 8 9 10 11 12 13 14 15 McCusker (1978. bank money had other advantages even compared to newly minted coins. The premium was much higher in Hamburg (around 20 per cent in the 18th century)9 than in Amsterdam (around 4–5 per cent).10). The premium on bank money was kept at a stable level since the bank usually bought bank money when the premium fell below 4. p. 89–90). clipping and small increases in the mint equivalent) and tended to drive out better coins (unless the latter circulated at a premium). etc. Smith (1999 [1776]. 301).13 Inferior coins circulated widely (because of wear and tear. 46–51) for the period 1638–1775. 65–8) for the period 1672–1775.14 In addition.3–25. weighing 25. Sjöstrand (1908. for example. which the extensive trade of Amsterdam brought from all parts of Europe.12 which were linked to the better coins. 42–79).10 although the two banks had much the same regulations. Before 1609 the great quantity of clipt and worn foreign coin. pp. is the supposed difference between the good standard money of the state. robbery and other accidents. had. and diminished currency poured into it from all the neighbouring states. As pointed out by Adam Smith in The Wealth of Nations:15 The agio of the bank of Hamburg. worn. reduced the value of its currency about nine per cent below that of good money fresh from the mint. Monthly premiums on Hamburg bank money can be found in McCusker (1978. in fact. for example. van Dillen (1936. At some time in the 18th century (not known when) the Bank of Amsterdam stopped paying specie for banco notes. However. pp. it could easily be transferred between cities. Hayes (2001 [1740]. Such money no sooner appeared than it was melted down or carried away. which is said to be commonly about fourteen per cent. pp.8 For example.240 Exchange rates. in. as it always is in such circumstances. . and wages. p. a higher fine silver content than in other countries. p.11 The premiums were a consequence of the two banks’ refusal to accept inferior coins at par with their bank monies. See Quinn and Roberds (2006). 57). and in Posthumus (1946. according to the standard of the mint. since it was secure from fire. 651–6) for the period 1648–1819. Most rix-dollar coins that circulated in the 17th and 18th centuries had a significantly lower fine silver content than the 25. prices. 1277–2008 money. pp. Amsterdam the premium was not officially sanctioned until the 1650s.98 grams established by the Leipzig convention. and the clipt. a premium of 4 percent on banco money implied that 100 guilders in banco money was the equivalent of 104 guilders in courant money. The Swedish riksdaler coins. the prices of these bills have been compared to the prices of one-month bills. in per cent. such as Stockholms stads priscourant. 101–2). Paris and London (the annual average of these series is arithmetic). since the price of bills was often rounded off. pp. Sources and calculations for this study For the period after 1740. data for the period 1705–36 and notations on other foreign currencies. but none on London. one month. is calculated as: 16 17 18 19 van Dillen (1936. Most notably in 1794–1802 there was a significant discount (negative premium) on banco money (at most 27 per cent in January 1795). Hamburg. Posthumus (1946. The interest rate r. pp. This could not be sustained in some periods. Riksbankens arkiv. Posthumus (1946. To estimate an interest rate for this period. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. Kammarkollegii. several other sources are used in this study. oordnade handlingar. 1669. and for 1668–85 on Paris. 1671 and 1672.17 In Sweden. the exchange rate on Hamburg was mostly quoted on banco money. p. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 241 whenever it rose above 4⅞ per cent16 (in this respect. 444 (Riksarkivet). Sveriges Riksbank (1931) presents a continuous annual series of exchange rates on Amsterdam.5. such detailed price differentiation between bills with various terms to maturity is available only from the mid-19th century onwards. it was a kind of specie exchange standard). Data on bills of longer duration. 1665. since the material includes weekly data. no. The best data are for 1660–85. When estimating interest rates. The rates are based on quotations in various newspapers. In contrast. ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. 14 days. . All the data that were collected for Sveriges Riksbank (1931) is stored in the archive of Sweden’s central bank.19 After that period. exist mainly for the period 1662–9. The exchange rates in 1660–85 are calculated from monthly data on bills with various durations and an estimated average interest rate for the period. 4 to 8 months. for example one-month bills relative to 14-day bills. and longer) on Amsterdam and Hamburg. 655). which could systematically distort the computed interest rate. two months. Monthly prices exist for bills of exchange of various durations (8 days. For the period before 1740. There are also a few notations on Gdańsk. the exchange rate on Amsterdam was mostly quoted on current money. 5.18 The data have been used in this study.3. 592–3) presents the exchange rate in Amsterdam on Stockholm for 1664. comparisons should not be made between bills of short duration. 577–81).4 per cent and 12.22 Lower interest rates. the shadow interest rate calculated from bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg must be seen as reflecting the interest rate in those cities. p.21 The extreme values can be explained by market fluctuations during the month and price differences between brokers.20 This is consistent with a monthly interest rate of one per cent (12. While the individual values are unreliable. and Marco (see above). 578). The 34 different interest rates that have been calculated range from -6. at least in the 1660s (which was a decade of some financial turmoil in Sweden). according to him. The high interest rate in 17th-century Sweden – despite a more homogeneous capital market in the latter part of the century and a statutory maximum rate of 8 per cent from 1666 and 6 per cent from 1687 – is known from many sources. not exist). 21 Heckscher (1936. A table of interest rates published in 1690 shows that they varied between 5 and 12 per cent.3 percent estimated from Hamburg bills.3 to 35. The median value is 12. the median should be quite reliable. which is an indication that the market interest rate seems to have been quite stable over time.7 percent and 12. especially the extreme values (and negative interest rates did.9 percent for the last 17 values (in 1667–9). p. The median interest rate estimated from Amsterdam bills is 12.5 per cent. which seems to be quite a robust result.5 per cent (based on both Hamburg and Amsterdam exchange rates). The variation can be explained by the variation in the risk premium. 6–8 per cent. despite the legislated maximum of 6 per cent. Christina Dalhede gives two examples of short-term interest rates in Lübeck.1 per cent. The median for the first 17 values (in 1662–6) is 12. 1277–2008 12 ⎛ (T −T ) ⎞ ⎜ ⎛ Pbill 1 ⎞ bill 2 bill 1 ⎟ × 100 − 100 ⎟ r= ⎜ ⎜⎜ P ⎟ ⎟ ⎜ ⎝ bill 2 ⎠ ⎟ ⎝ ⎠ where P is the price and T the time duration in months of two bills. the interest rate fell towards the end of the 17th century. Although the interest rate was probably lower in Amsterdam and Hamburg than in Stockholm. bill 1 and bill 2.3 per cent and of the third quartile 13. vol I:2. prices. . but mostly for loans with security and of a somewhat longer duration. and Montgomery (1920. one of 10 per cent in 1664 20 The interest rate of the first quartile is 9. which likewise is a negligible difference. 22 Heckscher (1936. not in Stockholm. pp. Galimard. which was probably roughly the range for the actual short-term interest rate at the time. were common in this period. Jobst. and wages. which according to Eli Heckscher was very common in the 17th century. of course.242 Exchange rates. involving lower risks. 140). the shadow interest rate was probably higher than the actual one because of the additional cost of acquiring information about the foreign markets. vol I:2. Heckscher mentions an interest rate as high as 42 per cent in 1631. Following the argument of Flandreau.7 per cent on an annual basis). Jobst. and Marco for the 18th century (after 1720). . which corresponds to Lobell’s assumptions for the early 19th century.5 per cent (which disregards the possibility that this rate may have 23 Dalhede (2006.24 Based on bills of exchange with various terms to maturity.12 present monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. That would mean that the interest rate was more than halved between the 17th and 18th centuries. based on bills with between 8 days and two months to maturity and an assumed interest rate of 12. on a 3-month loan and the other of 12 per cent in 1667 on a 4–12-month loan. Håkan Lobell assumes that the shadow interest rate was 5 per cent in the first half of the 19th century. For 1704–1804.1. Tables A5. p. Galimard.23 which conforms to the high interest rates calculated for Hamburg and Amsterdam in the present study. Amsterdam and Paris.5 per cent differs significantly from the interest rates in Amsterdam. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 243 View of Stockholm. 24 Flandreau. London and Paris as estimated by Flandreau. they conclude that the average interest rate was around 3–5 per cent in that century. The few notations on terms to maturity in the late 18th century are consistent with these conjectures. that is also the assumption in this chapter for the 18th century. p. for the period 1660–85 (for Paris 1668–85). it is also assumed that the term to maturity was 67 days for bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg and 90 days for bills on London and Paris. In Chapter 6. The computed median interest rate of 12.5. 1801. Jobst. Further investigation is necessary before such a conclusion can be drawn. respectively. by Elias Martin (1739–1818). Galimard. 117).5 and A5. and Marco (2006. A5. Source: Nationalmuseum. 24). Paris and London. the value of Swedish currency fell relative to the quoted foreign currencies during the course of the 18th century. exchange rates on Hamburg in 1696– 1704.0590/365. For the years when direct data are missing. For 1686–1703. 5. For the period 1704–1804. In 1716–9 so-called coin tokens circulated that fell in value relative to proper 25 Flandreau.21 to A5.27 and in London on Hamburg. the bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg are increased by one per cent and bills on London by 1.5 month bills and a 12 per cent interest rate. 85. Ser. which changed during the studied period (see Chapter 4).0567/365 and the bills on London and Paris by 1. prices. 26 Sandbergska samlingen (Riksarkivet). and Börstorpssamlingen (Riksarkivet).28 The cross rates are adjusted to take into account the difference between cross rates and actual rates in the adjacent periods where data on actual rates do exist. .26 For this period. See furthermore Tables A5.5 per cent in 1658–85.25 Neither has allowance been made for the grace period between the day when the bill was presented and the day when it was paid (this could be viewed as a pure transaction cost). which is consistent with. presents exchange rates on Hamburg from 1703 onwards. foreign currencies were usually quoted in mark kopparmynt (one daler kopparmynt = 4 marks kopparmynt). 27 Found in Posthumus (1946). based on the exchange rate in Stockholm on Hamburg. folio 364. exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam from 1703 onwards (also on London in 1704). When the sources do not provide information about the bills’ terms to maturity. the bills on Amsterdam and Hamburg are increased by 1. annual averages have been estimated mainly by taking the geometric average of the highest and lowest quotations. As a consequence of inflation.244 Exchange rates. cross rates have been calculated for the exchange rates on Amsterdam. 1277–2008 fluctuated over time). p.0590/365. consistent with the assumption of a 5 per cent interest rate. 28 Found in McCusker (1978). the spot rates are calculated from the direct data on exchange rates by increasing the latter by 1. The monthly data presented for the period 1705–1803 are raw data (mostly based on two.4. Jobst. and wages. Handel och sjöfart. not spot rates. I. Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar (Riksarkivet). vol. Galimard. and Marco (2006. Paris and Amsterdam. There are various sources for annual exchange rates in the period 1696–1739. 1. for example. 23).24 for annual series. vol. in Amsterdam on Hamburg. Up to 1776. Notations on foreign currencies in Swedish currency The presented foreign exchange rates are in Swedish currency. O:1.and three-month bills). The data have been collected and the calculations have been made in collaboration with Göran Hansson for Amsterdam and with Martin Sutinen for Hamburg and Paris. 1 Järnhandel. still convertible into riksdaler specie coins. which coincided with the circulation of fiat monies (see Chapter 2). 1756–62.21). Up to the 1770s the currency and the inflation indices follow each other in the long run.1 compares an index of the quotations on Hamburg. Hence. which fell in value relative to the specie coins. The currency index clearly shows how Swedish currency deteriorated relative to these three stable currencies. In 1789–1803. but after the 1770s the price level rose more than the quotation on the three foreign currencies. The bank money of Hamburg was viewed as one of the securest in Europe. the use of coin tokens was not easy to enforce on the foreign exchange.22 present the estimated exchange rates in coin tokens as well.21 to A5. the premium (agio) on banco notes cannot be used to transform exchange rates from banco to riksgälds. Figure 5. Hamburg was the centre of exchange for the Baltic area.5. Since one Swedish riksdaler was exchanged for 72 marks kopparmynt in 1777. The premium that can be estimated from these data differs somewhat from the noted agio (premium) in the domestic market. since the premium on banco notes was affected by market situations. 1769–73. the premium on bank money increased from 3 per cent in 1672 to over 20 per cent in the 1770s (see Table A5. 1788–99 and 1808–20. by using the premium on proper money to compute those rates (see Chapter 4). From May 1797 to 1803 the foreign exchange rates are expressed both in riksdaler riksgälds and in riksdaler banco. For the period 1789–96 the foreign exchange rates were most likely expressed in banco notes. part of the increase in prices in the late 18th century must be explained by other factors than a deteriorating currency. Between 1658 and 1838 the currency index increased 35-fold. Tables A5. although there are some uncertainties about this. The only exchange rates reported for this period were on Amsterdam and Hamburg. this implies that one skilling was exchanged for 1. As explained in Chapter 4.5. Sweden had two currencies: riksdaler banco (= 48 skilling banco).5 marks kopparmynt in that year. and riksdaler riksgälds (= 48 skilling riksgälds). In 1777–88 foreign currencies were usually quoted in skilling (one riksdaler was equal to 48 skilling). All three foreign currencies had a relatively stable precious metal content during the studied period (at least in the long run). Hamburg shared its current money with the city of Lübeck. while the price level rose 53-fold. not in coin tokens. which was due to debasements and the circulation of fiat money. . 5. Amsterdam and London with the Swedish inflation index (see Chapter 8) in 1658–1838. As the circulated coins deteriorated. although there are some uncertainties on this matter. and these were most probably noted in proper money. and all foreign exchange was negotiated through the bank. The sharpest devaluations of Swedish currency occurred in 1716–19. Quotations on Hamburg During the studied period the Hamburg reichstaler banco was the most important foreign currency quoted in Sweden. quotations on the Hamburg reichstaler banco were even more important than quotations on the domestic riksdaler. Before 1777. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 245 money (mainly copper plates). As discussed in Chapter 4. ’30 In comparison.855 grams (the Cologne mark).000 1. 31 Shaw (1895.984 gr.1 to A5.000 100 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 1820 1840 Inflation index. Note: The two indices follow mark kopparmynt in 1658–1776. Amsterdam and London in Swedish currency Sources: Tables A5. almost all exchange rates are quoted in bank money. Sweden Index.21 to A5.246 Exchange rates. in fine silver. Amsterdam and London in Swedish currency and the Swedish inflation index 1658–1838 (1658 = 100).24. in the 18th century the minted Swedish riksdaler (specie) had a fine silver content of 25.25 per mark of fine silver and of the mark banco 27. In the period 1716–19 they follow the coin tokens and assume that these tokens were devalued by 50 per cent in 1719.6973 grams. riksdaler specie in 1777–88 and riksdaler riksgälds in 1789–1838.31 In Sweden. 30 Heckscher (1934. Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 8. though in Sweden it was generally considered as corresponding only to 25. Since the mark of fine silver in Hamburg was equal to 233. 194). . which ought to give it a weight in fine silver of 25. 8). Index of quotations on Hamburg. quotations on Hamburg.29 Eli Heckscher writes that the ‘Hamburg Rixdollar Banco was an ideal money.. Tables A5. equivalent to oneninth of the mark of Cologne.1. p. 1277–2008 Figure 5. from then on one reichstaler banco was the equivalent of 25. From 1790 the issue rate of one reichstaler banco was 9. but a few notations on the current money of Lübeck are extant. 387).75 per mark of fine silver. 10. p. and wages. The Hamburger reichstaler banco was equal to 3 marks banco. p.4 present 29 Attman (1983.276 gr.2816 grams. prices. monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. 2 months. nr 444 (Riksarkivet). Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 247 An example of exchange rate notations in Stockholm in early 1668 (the year in which the Riksbank was founded). while an 8-day bill was sold for 21¼ marks kopparmynt. the few notations in Stockholm on the current money show that the premium on bank money estimated from the Stockholm data deviated somewhat from the noted premium in Hamburg. a 2-month bill on Amsterdam was sold for somewhat less than a 4-month bill by another broker. Source: Kammarkollegii. which is presented for the period 1672–1775 in Table A5. 1 month.21. In March. Although the exchange rate on current money of Hamburg can be estimated by deducting the premium on Hamburger reichstaler banco. Prices for bills differed with their terms to maturity (8 days. 14 days.23 give the annual rates. 4 months and 6 months). Tables A5.21 and A5. oordnade handlingar. reflecting a shadow interest rate.5. in January a 2-month bill on Hamburg (reichstaler banco) was sold for 20¾ marks kopparmynt. . For example.There were also differences between brokers. Bills of longer duration were cheaper. 21 and A5.2 presents the Hamburger Reichstaler banco in Swedish riksdaler (specie/banco) in 1658–1808. 1277–2008 Figure 5.1 1. 5.95 0.65 0. The rijksdaalder coin that was minted in the late 16th century and the first half of the 17th century had a fine silver content of 25. 47 stuivers in 1603. Figure 5.85 0. which in fact happened in 1808–9. The par level was slightly below 1 (0.6 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 Sources: Tables A5. 1. It was equal to 20 stuivers.248 Exchange rates.8 0. In 1769. the guilder/florin32 was a unit of account rather than a minted coin.23. but closer to 1 in the late 17th century). This level applied during most of the period but at times there were significant deviations.15 1. caused by monetary instability.984 in the late 18th century. The silver content of both currencies was stable throughout the period. Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 4.7 grams.9 0.05 1 0.2. which was an actual coin minted in the 16th and early 17th centuries. 48 32 The guilder as a money of account equal to 20 stuivers should not be confused with the silver carolus guilder. it was set equal to 42 stuivers in 1583.6. and wages.75 0. The deviation in 1769 most likely went beyond the specie points (see Chapter 6). .7 0. the high valuation of the Swedish riksdaler was an effect of deflationary policies (see Chapter 4). 46 stuivers in 1596. Swedish riksdaler per Hamburger Reichstaler banco 1658–1808. prices. while after 1789 the riksdaler banco was valued less than Hamburger reichstaler banco because of the circulation of riksgälds notes and expectations that banco notes could become inconvertible as well. most notably in 1769 and after 1789. Quotations on Amsterdam Up to 1681. Source: http://en.74 grams in 1660–81 (since the silver ducat contained 24.28 grams in 1620–59 (since the rijksdaalder was equal to 50 stuivers) and 9.89 grams in 1607–10. 6. From 1845 the guilder contained 9.jpg stuivers in 1610–9 and 50 stuivers (i. cviii–cix).5 per cent below the fine silver content of the rijksdaalder coins minted in the first half of the 17th century.33 On 25th December 1681 the states of Holland and West Friesland prescribed the minting of the first gulden (guilder) piece. 34 Shaw (1895.03 grams. which hitherto had existed only as money of account.37 grams fine silver and was set equal to the rijksdaalder). lv).wikipedia. Thus the fine silver content of one rijksdaalder courant became 24. p.5. 10. 350–5).17 grams in 1597–1603. a Dutch specialist in townscapes. Notations on Amsterdam were very frequent at the Stockholm exchange in the second half of the 17th century. 2. pp.5 guilders) from 1619 onwards. 10. 10. . i. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 249 Dam Square.45 grams of fine silver. by Gerrit Berckheyde (1638–98). which did not change until 1845.71 grams in 1611–9 (since the rijksdaalder was equal to 48 stuivers). pp.613 grams of fine silver. The guilder was fixed at 9. and Posthumus (1936. Amsterdam.e.94 grams in 1604–6.org/wiki/File:AmsterdamDamsquar. According to the Dutch price historian Posthumus.e.34 33 Posthumus (1946. 10. the fine silver content of one guilder was 11. 7. To express the exchange rate on Amsterdam in banco money. Tables A5. p. Tables A5. .36 Since the fine silver content of one penny was 0. 1277–2008 Figure 5.35 Figure 5. Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in Hamburger reichstaler banco 1660–1810 based on Swedish foreign exchange.8 present monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. which was also the average and the median value in Sweden in 1660–1810. prices. The par level based on the fine silver contents of the two currencies in the late 19th century was 0.94 0.23. Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 4.9 0.96. 5. 35).7 percent.88 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 Sources: Tables A5.98 0.1 35 See footnote 10. the exchange rate on rijksdaalder courant can be augmented with the premium on bank money.21 and A5. 36 McCusker (1978. The coefficient of variation was only 2.5 to A5. an indication of quite efficient markets and that the two currencies moved within the specie points.250 Exchange rates.3. Quotations on London One pound sterling was equal to 20 shillings or 240 pence.3 presents the cross rate of Amsterdam rijksdaalder in Hamburg reichstaler banco in 1660–1810 based on the data from the foreign exchange in Sweden.04 1.06 1.23 give the annual rates. and wages. for which annual data are presented for 1660–1776.464 grams in 1601– 1815.02 1 0.21 and A5.96 0.479 grams in 1560–1600 and 0. 1.92 0. the fine silver content of one pound sterling (if counted in pennies) was 115. org/wiki/File:Canaletto_london.11 present monthly exchange rates on London. Britain introduced a mono-metallic gold standard de jure in 1816.9 to A5. 38 Hayes (2001 [1740].072 to 1. based on a value ratio of gold to silver of 15.4 presents the cross rate of the British pound in Hamburger reichstaler banco based on the exchange rates in Sweden 1700–1830.5. Although England played a dominant role in the world economy.24 give the annual rates.jpg grams in 1560–1600 and 111. Tables A5. Figure 5. .Unger Database: European Commodity Prices 1260–1914’.3224 grams. The fine gold content of the sovereign with the nominal value of one pound was then fixed at 7. in the 18th century the exchange on Hamburg and Amsterdam was much more important for Sweden. 1747.4 grams in 1601–1815. p.22 and A5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 251 London: The Thames and the City of London from Richmond House. a Venetian artist. This is confirmed by what The Negociator’s Magazine wrote about Sweden in 1740: ‘To London they mostly exchange by the Way of Amsterdam or Hamburgh.wikimedia. This tended to overvalue gold and cause an outflow of silver and an inflow of gold. but sometimes Exchange may be directly to London …’38 Tables A5. 338). by Giovanni Antonio Canal (1697–1768). During the 18th century the pound sterling became an important currency on the Stockholm exchange. Source: http://commons. England had a bimetallic standard in 1717–1815. in the period 1717–1815 the silver content of the pound was de facto somewhat lower. The par level based on the 37 ‘Allen .37 However. Sveriges Riksbank (1931) and Chapter 4.8 3. .24.8 4. Convertibility into gold was not restored until 1821. The pound sterling in Hamburger reichstaler banco based on exchange rates in Sweden 1704–1830. Very few silver coins were in fact minted after 1717. p.2 4 3. and wages.4.4 3. among them David Ricardo.252 Exchange rates. prices. 4. 1277–2008 Figure 5.21 to A5.4 4. silver contents of the two currencies was around 4. 132–52). sterling reached its lowest level. and Britain was.2 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 1820 Sources: Tables A5. making British silver coins undervalued. therefore.6 4. where the Bullionists. while the Anti-Bullionists claimed that banks would not issue more notes than commerce demanded. During the 18th century the market rate was normally below this level because of the overvaluation of gold under the bimetallic standard. de facto on a gold standard in the 18th century.4 reichstaler per pound. The situation led to the Bullionist Controversy. due to excessive note issues and the suspension of conversion on demand in 1797. argued that convertibility must be restored.39 In the early 1810s sterling was one fourth below its par level against the reichstaler banco (see also Chapter 6). During the French Revolutionary and Napoleonic wars.6 3. 39 Mayhew (1999. One écu de change was equal to three livres tournois. July 1789. Quotations on Paris In the sources used in this study.wikimedia.24 give annual rates. and one livres tournois to 20 sou tournois. This accounting relation was stable in the 17th and 18th centuries up to the French revolution. but in écu de change in 1668–1707. the value of the livres tournois was quite stable relative to other currencies. Despite the dramatic events. 87–8). p. The French currency did not start to deteriorate until 1791. jpg 5.org/wikipedia/commons/5/57/Anonymous_-_Prise_de_la_Bastille. the exchange rate on Paris is quoted in livres tournois in 1740–1794.5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 253 The Storming of the Bastille in Paris. 40 McCusker (1978.12 to A5.15 present monthly exchange rates on Paris.40 Livres tournois ceased to be minted in 1641 but continued to exist as a unit of account. Tables A5. despite the monetary chaos in the 17th and early 18th centuries.22 and A5.41 In the 18th century some quotations were also made on Bordeaux and Marseille.8. . The écu de change was the French equivalent of the reichstaler. 78). Tables A5. Source: http://upload. 41 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968. pp. 29 grams.06–5.4 skilling banco for one livre tournois.21 to A5. 9. and 4. 7. 3. following the collapse of the shares in the Mississippi Company and John Law’s failed experimentation with bank notes. In 1803 a bimetallic standard was introduced. 5. 40 35 30 25 20 15 10 5 0 1660 1680 1700 1720 1740 1760 1780 1800 0 0.4 0. the exchange rate on Paris (in skilling banco) decreased by a third between 1789/90 and 1792/3. French currency reached its lowest level in 1720.3 grams in 1700–17.61 grams in 1603–35.5 grams.24. 42 ‘Allen . and wages. p. The fine silver content of one livres tournois was 11. p. As shown in Table A5. 44 Redish (1994. based on a gold-silver (value) ratio of 15.14. based on a decimal system (equal to 100 centimes).71–8. 1277–2008 Figure 5.5 to 1.42 As can be seen from Table A5. and Sveriges Riksbank (1931). 78).5.5 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) livres tournois in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) Sources: Tables A5.1 0.85–8.75 grams in 1642–99. prices. 70). The French currency was unstable in 1681–1725 but for this period only a few notations exist from Sweden.254 Exchange rates.2 0.22.44 The fine gold content of one franc was 0. and was set equal to the old livres tournois.7 grams in 1727– 89. The franc was introduced in 1795. Its fine silver content was 4.06–10.43 implying a par level of 8. .Unger Database: European Commodity Prices 1260–1914’ 43 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968.3 0. The livres tournois (franc) in marks kopparmynt (= 1/72 riksdaler specie 1777– 88 and 1/72 riksdaler riksgälds 1789–1810) and Hamburger reichstaler banco based on foreign exchange in Sweden 1668–1810 (estimated spot rates).64 grams in 1718–26.31 grams in 1636–41. In the aftermath of the French revolution the monetary system initially fell into disarray. French currency was stable against the Hamburger reichstaler banco. a premium arose on speciedaler in courant money (‘kurantmønt’). Therefore there was also a premium on the speciedaler in crown coins. pp. must be distinguished from the actual rigsdaler in specie coins. Since the late medieval period (see Chapter 3). In the period 1740–88. with the exception of a dip after the French Revolution.28 grams of fine silver. only slightly less than the Swedish riksdaler. the Danish mark was divided into 16 skillings. later at par with the Hamburg reichstaler banco. After the 1750s Swedish currency fell relative to French currency. In the late 17th century the crown was also minted. the Danish mark was set equal to roughly half the value of the Lübeck mark. The fine silver content of the crown was also debased.9 Hamburg reichstaler banco.45 The Danish rigsdaler as a unit of account.5 Swedish daler kopparmynt.9. in this period French currency fell relative to the stable Hamburger reichstaler banco. Since the Hamburg reichstaler was divided into 3 German marks. 5. The Danish rigsdaler or speciedaler was linked to the German reichstaler. with a common currency unit. Norway was part of the Danish kingdom. making it possible to estimate the exchange rates between these two currencies.5 presents the market value of the livres tournois (franc from 1795) in Swedish and Hamburg currencies in 1668–1808. although not as high as the premium on speciedaler in courant money. the data of Friis and Glamann show 45 Friis and Glamann (1958.7 Hamburg reichstaler banco. Göran Hansson finds that prices were quoted in Swedish daler kopparmynt as well as in Norwegian rigsdaler in the period 1666–88. the median value of one livres tournois was 0. In comparison. It shows that while the value relation between French and Swedish currency in the 1750s was about the same as in the 1660s. Given that low-standard coins were minted. In 1625 the following relation was fixed: 1 rigsdaler or speciedaler = 6 marks = 96 skillings. which was also the theoretical exchange rate between the two currencies based on their fine silver contents.8–0.5.46 Throughout this period one Norwegian rigsdaler stood at around 4. which Sweden conquered from DenmarkNorway in 1645. Quotations on Copenhagen Before the union with Sweden in 1814. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 255 Figure 5. In his study of prices in Jämtland. although this could not be maintained in some periods. set equal to 64 skillings or 4 marks. . The quoted Norwegian rigsdaler is. Like the Lübeck mark. therefore. in 1677–88 it was valued at only around 0. while. 3–4 and 15). 46 Hansson (2009). this implies that the par level of the Danish rigsdaler was 6 marks. mostly likely not the specie riksdaler. which was significantly below the market rate of the Swedish riksdaler specie and the Hamburg reichstaler banco. equal to 96 skillings in coins or notes.19 Hamburger reichstaler banco. While in 1666–76 one Norwegian rigsdaler was valued at 0. In the 18th century it contained 25. 16 to A5.47 One possible explanation for the low exchange rate of the Norwegian rigsdaler in Jämtland is that inferior coins circulated in Jämtland during the 1680s.9 Hamburg reichstaler banco in the 1690s. .2 0 1810 54 Danish rigsdaler kurant in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) Danish rigsdaler kurant in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) Sources: Tables A5. Sveriges Riksbank (1931). 6). 49 Friis and Glamann (1958.4 0.49 Figure 5. the Dansk-Norske Speciesbank was established and issued notes that initially were convertible into speciedaler.6 0. that the Danish rigsdaler in courant coins stood at around 0.16 to A5. 1277–2008 Figure 5.6 presents the exchange rate on the Danish rigsdaler kurant 1741–1815 in Swedish and Hamburg currencies (based on Tables A5.256 Exchange rates. untitled volume with exchange rates 1804– 89 (Riksbankens arkiv). prices.75 34 1.18 up to 1803). the most common coins that were minted contained only 65 per cent per unit of the nominal value of the fine silver of the speciedaler. Table A5. 47 Friis and Glamann (1958. 33–4). and Chapter 6. pp.2 1 0.8 0. The Danish rigsdaler kurant in marks kopparmynt (= 1/72 riksdaler specie 1777–88 and 1/72 riksdaler riksgälds 1789–1808) and Hamburger reichstaler banco based on foreign exchange in Sweden 1741–1815 (estimated spot rates). Although its notes were supposed to be convertible.21 and A5. paper money circulated in Denmark but was not equivalent to coins in value.48 In 1713–28. For example. In 1791. in 1660–70. and wages. it was nationalised in 1773.18. There were periods of varying length when the value of the Kurantbanken notes fell below the value of current money in coins. 140 120 100 80 60 40 20 0 1740 1750 1760 1770 1780 1790 1800 56 54 38 38 32. 48 Friis and Glamann (1958. pp. In 1737 the Kurantbanken was established as a privately-owned bank.23.6. Friis and Glamann also show that the fine silver content of the minted coins varied significantly in the late 17th century.4 1. p. 5–16). convertibility was suspended in 1745–7 and from 1759. There are also some quotations from the periods 1675–81 and 1777–81. later the Gdańsk florin fell back to lower levels. the value of the Polish florin in marks kopparmynt increased somewhat between 1740 and 1776. even though the latter fell substantially against the Hamburger reichstaler banco. Gdańsk was one of the largest cities on the Baltic seaboard and handled most of Poland’s maritime trade via the river Vistula. It shows that the value of both Gdańsk and Swedish currencies fell relative to the stable silver currency of Hamburg during the investigated period. While the ducat was worth around 7. the Danish currency was much more stable than the Swedish in the 18th century. while appreciating against the Swedish currency. 51 Furtak (1935. In Poland in the late 17th century both good and bad coins circulated. although not on the florin. from around six to four grams.10. reflecting the decline of Gdańsk as an important seaport. Hence. 45). at the time of the Napoleonic wars.6 shows that during most of the second half of the 19th century the Danish rigsdaler stood at around 0.7 presents the Gdańsk florin in Swedish marks kopparmynt and Hamburger reichstaler banco for the same period.19. After 1807. Figure 5. Figure 5. by the deterioration of the Danish currency in 1788–9. Quotations on Gdańsk Quotations on Gdańsk were quite common in the 18th century. and that is the currency that was quoted in Stockholm. for example. . The best material exists for the period 1740–76 and is presented in Table A5. In 1813 one Danish rigsbankdaler was exchanged for 6 rigsdaler kurant. 5. it was worth up to 18 Polish florins in inferior coins. due to the debasement of coins. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 257 The quotations on Copenhagen follow the Kurantbanken notes.5 Polish florins (Gulden or złoty) in better coins. p. pp. 47 and 77). Between 1750 and 1765 the fine silver content of the Gdańsk florin decreased.8 Hamburger reichstaler banco.50 The city of Gdańsk used the better coins. as is shown. forming parallel currencies. After 1781 quotations on Gdańsk no longer appear in the Swedish sources. as is further discussed by Håkan Lobell in Chapter 6. The worst Danish inflation occurred instead in the early 19th century.51 Since the Swedish currency deteriorated even more. which was especially important in foreign trade.5. the Danish currency fell like a stone against the Swedish currency. but on a taler unit. Although the value of the Gdańsk florin doubled in Swedish currency between 1755 and 1762 in connection with the high inflation in Sweden. despite the periods of inconvertibility. not the courant coins. The florin was divided into 30 grosz[y] in better coins. 50 Furtak (1935. the Pomeranian taler was often quoted at the foreign exchange in Sweden. from 1690 adopting the Leipzig Money Convention (although some deviations occurred from this Convention). and was of a lower fine silver content than the original reichstaler.25 0. pp.20 presents monthly exchange rates for the period 1740–1800.15 0. belonged to Sweden in the period 1637–1814 (formally from 1648). Swedish Pomerania minted its own coins and had its own currency system. and the subsequent appreciation. 5.258 Exchange rates.8 is the falling exchange rate on the Swedish-Pomeranian taler in the early 1760s. 30 25 20 15 10 5 0 1740 1744 1748 1752 1756 1760 1764 1768 1772 1776 0. Most notable in Figure 5. Table A5.2 0.11. including the cities of Stralsund och Greifswald and the island of Rügen. . prices.52 Since Swedish Pomerania had its own currency system. This was caused by 52 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968. and Figure 5.3 0. 1277–2008 Figure 5. The taler was the main unit of account. Gdańsk florin in Swedish marks kopparmynt and Hamburger reichstaler banco 1740–76 (estimated spot rates). Swedish Pomerania was ceded to Denmark in exchange for Norway in 1814 and was transferred to Prussia in 1815. Quotations on Swedish Pomerania Western Pomerania and a strip of Eastern Pomerania. 194–200).8 the Pomeranian taler in Swedish marks kopparmynt and Hamburger reichstaler banco for the same period. and wages.1 0.19 and Table 5.05 0 Gdańsk florin in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) Gdańsk florin in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) Sources: Table 5.7. Swedish notes were not accepted in Swedish Pomerania. After the Napoleonic wars.21. Source: http://upload. with the minting of better coins. Austria. The Pomeranian taler even fell in value relative to the weak Swedish currency.5. France. Amsterdam (rijks53 Lagerqvist and Nathorst-Böös (1968. Greifswald. Most of the domestic currency units were. 1820–2. However. p. In 1788 it stood at 0. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 259 Wiesen bei Greifswald. where Friedrich was born.17 reichstaler banco in 1764/5. 0. primary data on monthly exchange rates are presented on Hamburg (reichstaler banco). by April-May 1766 the exchange rate had increased again to 0.12.69 reichstaler banco. by Caspar David Friedrich (1774–1840). on average. a German Romantic landscape painter. belonged to Sweden from 1631 to 1814 (formally from 1648). However. 197).org/wikipedia/commons/b/be/Caspar_David_Friedrich_043. Swedish Pomerania retained its own currency. 0. Russia and Saxony. the same as before the inflationary episode.jpg rapid debasement of the Pomeranian taler to finance Sweden’s war efforts53 during the Seven Years’ War (1756–63) that pitted Prussia. originally imported. on average. Summary Foreign currencies played a crucial role in Sweden.wikimedia. In this study.74 Hamburger reichstaler banco in 1758 to. 5. The value of the Pomeranian taler decreased from. which was quoted in Stockholm.77 reichstaler banco. Britain and some smaller German states against Sweden. . in fact. daalder courant).260 Exchange rates. 90 80 70 60 50 40 30 20 10 0 1740 1750 1760 1770 1780 1790 1800 0. It is. 1277–2008 Figure 5. The primary data are bills of various durations.e. Jobst.7 0. In the period 1662–9 the estimated median shadow interest rate on bills of exchange was as high as 12. Galimard. Bank money existed also in Amsterdam. Swedish Pomeranian taler in Swedish marks kopparmynt (= 1/72 riksdaler specie 1777–88 and 1/72 riksdaler riksgälds 1789–1800) and Hamburger reichstaler banco 1740–1800 (estimated spot rates).3 0.1 0 Pomeranian taler in marks kopparmynt (left-hand scale) Pomeranian taler in Hamburger reichstaler banco (right-hand scale) Sources: Tables A5.5 per cent. but the quotations in Sweden were on its courant money. in the 18th century mostly 67and 90-day bills. an assumption must be made of a shadow interest rate on these bills. cross rates are used to fill in some gaps for the annual series. London (pound). All of these foreign currencies were courant money. Since direct data are missing for some years. . which was bank money. A5.4 0. i. linked to actual coins. therefore. Only the monthly data 1660–85 are of sufficiently good quality for estimating reliable spot rates for this period. Copenhagen (rigsdaler kurant = 96 skillings) and Swedish Pomerania (taler) in 1660–1803. This result deviates significantly from the shadow interest rates of 3–5 per cent in the 18th century recently estimated by Flandreau.5 0.2 0. except for the Hamburg reichstaler banco.21 and A5.9 0.6 0. likely that interest rates decreased substantially between the 17th and 18th centuries. and wages. Paris (livres tournois/franc). To estimate spot rates.8.8 0. prices.23.20. which is problematic since no such rate is known for the 18th century. and Marco. Gdańsk (florin/gulden/złoty = 30 groszy). which implies that the par values between those currencies were determined by their fine metal contents. The Swedish-Pomeranian taler fell substantially against the Swedish currency in 1758–65 but was also quite stable in other periods. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 261 The quoted currencies were all based on precious metals. Compared with its neighbours. although the Danish rigsdaler kurant was significantly devalued after 1807. Sweden experienced substantial inflation during the 18th century. the Danish rigsdaler kurant and the Polish florin were also more stable than the Swedish currency in the 18th century. and functioned as important reference points for the monetary system of Sweden.5. . The quoted currencies on Hamburg. The Hamburg and Amsterdam rix-dollars contained (more or less) fixed amounts of fine silver. at times of monetary instability. Amsterdam and London were relatively stable in the long term. The actual market rate deviated from these par relations. and the Swedish currency fell substantially relative to these three currencies. The Hamburg reichstaler banco was even used as a proxy for the value of the riksdaler specie coin. as was the Swedish riksdaler (specie). Sweden had a weak currency in the 18th century. the deviation could be quite large. and on some occasions. The French livres tournois (franc from 1795). 59 20.34 18.18 25.67 Aug 17.17 27.83 20.88 24.05 21 21.03 25.39 22.41 24.89 20.28 21 20.05 20.1 27.45 20.39 18.03 18.25 24.42 25.77 20.09 21.99 25.79 24.02 23.14 18.74 25.94 20.43 20.12 18.63 18.5 per cent.55 20.06 24.39 18 18.6 21 22.63 18.38 22.16 27. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates).86 Nov 17.13 20.96 20.09 20.8 21 20.94 20.91 20.87 24.37 24.87 24.28 24.52 21.07 21.52 25.88 24.49 18.12 25. .77 24.82 25.61 Oct 17.57 24.262 Exchange rates.92 26.84 21 21 21.29 26.8 20. 1277–2008 Appendix A5: Summary tables Table A5.42 20.39 22.79 26.93 21.84 18.96 21 20. Year 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 Jan 17.93 21.39 18.94 26.97 21.97 21.71 21.75 20.07 20.99 24.01 21.26 22.72 18.66 24.11 25.96 Sources: Kammarkollegiet.9 24.01 20.86 24.38 18.35 25.7 20.22 20.02 24.19 25.15 20.52 25.91 21 21 20.71 24.31 26.53 24.04 22.26 22.82 20.27 27.31 24.97 25.97 28.9 27.61 25.14 18.28 28.56 20.05 20.45 21.19 18.97 21.04 21.14 22.68 24.15 21.77 20.53 25.12 21.47 22.06 25.1.2 20.53 24.7 27.36 27.88 27.03 24.95 19.39 17.88 20.43 19.95 20.52 25.4 27.73 24.29 22.5 18.13 22.63 18.32 24.19 20. oordnade handlingar.97 21.1 22.93 Feb 17.73 23.49 18.9 20.56 24.92 18.24 27.67 20.1 22.82 21 20.57 25.92 24.04 22.07 23.14 25.55 20. no. The monthly data are based on bills of 8 days to 2 months.4 19.24 20.03 27.84 21 20.62 25.39 18.02 20.36 25.14 23.5 21. and wages.44 21.14 25. 444 (Riksarkivet).07 27.82 21 21.28 24.26 22.75 24.3 19.41 24.25 20.62 20.78 25.99 24.18 20.27 27.24 25.67 17.92 25.24 27.07 22.78 21.91 21.07 21.97 20.52 25.11 24.66 23.18 18.71 18.13 21 20.96 20.76 24.05 18.34 20.4 21.25 20.51 23. assuming an interest rate of 12.39 24.17 24.4 24.78 25.06 Mar 17.34 19.89 18.06 21.55 19.21 20.18 19.99 21.45 20.88 21.62 27.05 25.33 18.39 25.95 19. The data have been collected and calculated in cooperation with Martin Sutinen.05 20.75 20.14 20.3 24.75 21 22.44 25.13 20.11 24.05 20.38 18.36 24.13 20.74 24.71 24.26 23.87 20.65 21.05 21. prices.14 27.93 20.51 22.57 21.13 20.7 18.91 21.66 26.84 July 17.65 24.04 21.61 Sept 17.82 20.8 24.87 May 17.09 24.68 21.93 20.57 20.02 25.94 Dec 17.22 24.19 25.02 Apr 17.25 25.3 24.89 17.87 June 17.96 21 20.77 21.38 18.14 24.48 23.72 19.74 24.41 20.16 24.98 20.15 21.39 20.43 20.86 21 21.49 24.11 25.12 24.89 21.87 21.5 18.24 21. 94 40 35.94 35.88 36.88 38.19 37.38 36.38 74.38 38.75 72.5 39.94 Oct 25.25 40 40 45.63 35.75 36.81 37 37.81 38.5 37.44 35.13 72 101.69 35.25 55.13 43.63 84.88 53.5 37.19 35.5 47.94 35.63 38.31 41.13 38.13 37.56 44.5 35.75 77.88 49.5 85.25 63 71.88 44.25 91.13 40. Year 1705 1706 1707 1722 1723 1727 1728 1729 1733 1734 1735 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 43.75 73.19 41.13 73.69 36.75 38.31 26.13 41.5 44.75 50.25 51 66.88 35.88 43.25 76.19 40.81 37.81 40 41.13 35.63 37.75 34.13 39.25 52.38 37.88 38.13 37.63 38.75 26.75 73.63 48.63 49 54.13 35.88 69.81 Dec 27.19 43.25 49.2.38 40.25 39.44 36.38 40.5 35.75 38.88 36.5 44 42.63 38.88 35.5 44.38 68 69.19 37 39 37.69 38.5 35.06 39.38 52 48.06 45.75 35.25 39.38 46.63 44.63 81 37.88 36.25 43 40 40 44.88 71.38 44.81 39.63 38.38 43.25 74 81.5 39.5 35.38 35.88 35.13 47.5 40.75 71.25 39.94 27.75 40.25 40 40 45.5 46.75 43.75 60.5 75.38 44.38 41.25 75 35.75 88.38 40.63 38.5 89.88 40.75 40.75 46.38 47.5 49.88 40.5 58.38 40 40 45 45.44 27 July 27.38 38.38 42.75 43.63 38.25 36.06 37.38 41.25 53.06 37.75 35 34.38 42.25 35.13 43 45.5 39.38 43.25 37.31 37.75 38.88 53.75 40.63 43 41 40.44 39.06 38.63 46.75 40 40 46.94 40.63 37.63 38.63 38.5 79 34.5 40.13 35.13 77.81 36.63 38.81 40.94 June 27.5 43.31 27 Sept 27.88 61 73.25 38.5 40 36.25 36 35.06 35.63 36.56 36 37.13 42.88 37 37 27.5 41.13 102.38 49.81 40.06 38.88 38.5 27.13 48 49.13 71.44 38.88 83 37.31 Jan Feb Mar Apr May 27 26.38 46.88 49.13 39.63 54.63 43.13 43.8 86.25 35. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates).63 56.38 39.13 36.63 33.25 44.75 35.44 26.13 45.38 26.63 40 35.5 84 42.31 26.75 35.38 35.25 35.38 35.25 59.31 36.94 37.31 35.6 90 37.25 38.63 35.63 41.25 40 44.75 35 34.19 37.06 40.81 Nov 27.25 43.13 38.38 42.69 40.38 59.63 44.63 39.13 80. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 263 Table A5.38 37.81 39 41.31 40.44 43.13 38.5.13 48.38 38 38.5 .25 38.25 41.38 35.75 92.13 70.5 35 35.38 37.63 40.38 44.38 38.81 41.88 49.5 43.44 26.88 40.5 37.38 35.13 45.19 27.31 44.75 37.75 80 35 35.13 74.63 43.5 35.38 35.25 65.75 44.13 37 37 36.81 41.5 41.81 38.38 37.81 39.13 38.75 34.5 40.88 38.75 39 43.06 37.06 Aug 27.25 35.5 40 40 45 35.75 37.63 44.81 38.13 40.5 49.38 40 40 44.88 38.25 40 35.38 40.94 38. 5 48 56.2 (cont.5 42 42 65 62.13 47.75 55.13 48 53 49.75 77 66 42 Mar 81.264 Exchange rates. and mostly based on twomonth bills.13 45.21 46.5 67.63 69 Sept 92.25 48 Apr 46.33 47.75 69 69 Nov 92 80.5 75.5 55.75 77.3. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).88 51.5 85.13 45.75 54.38 46.88 55.29 45.5 46.79 48 49.75 68.63 46.75 45.5 70 62.75 51.5 44.5 48 47 .5 68.5 50.58 46.33 46.25 68.13 65 64.75 56.25 42.25 54.75 43.58 45 45.58 46 45.83 45.75 51 47 51 54 50.5 56 51.5 73.13 47.75 48 49.5 68.75 81 80.13 69.5 Feb 46.25 54.5 42 42 55 61 68.5 68.5 82.83 49.25 48 46.42 46.25 46.75 42 42 60.75 46.5 88.).63 55 52.88 July 84.13 69 69.71 47 46.5 81.5 69 69 Oct 93.75 47.75 47.63 47 46.5 46.5 52.75 50 50.25 46.5 71 69.25 80.88 47 46.25 46.5 62.75 48.88 51.5 49.38 69 Aug 86.67 46.92 45.13 47.13 70 64.5 82.25 80.5 70 57.08 45.29 45. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates).29 46.13 69.08 44.13 46.08 45.5 51.5 70.25 47 Oct 45.75 48 46.5 44.75 90.88 45.42 46. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.42 47 45.5 73.58 46 48 52 51.88 46.25 45.75 46.58 45.17 48 49.5 52.79 48 48.38 46.63 68.75 49 47 Dec 46.5 61.38 72. Year 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 Jan 84.25 48.75 42 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.75 47 55 53.63 45.5 70.5 68.5 65 66 Feb 81.5 83.42 47.29 45.88 49.58 48 51.5 68.5 49 47 Nov 46.33 45.42 45.5 49.25 48 46.13 72.42 52.17 45 45.29 46 48.25 50 53.5 70 80.75 66 42 42 56 65 64.25 71 81.25 85.5 46.5 47.5 50.75 45.25 49.25 69. and wages.42 47.75 54. prices.5 84.58 45.67 45.5 50.38 69 May 83.75 81 77.29 46 44.58 51 52.38 73.75 62 71 79.5 49.75 45.5 53.5 53.83 45.25 55.38 48 May 46.5 42 42 63.13 47.75 48 49.5 47 Aug 45.38 70.13 80.63 45.5 49.79 50 49.67 46.58 45.17 45.58 45 45.75 80.88 49.25 55.5 68.25 52.5 46 48 49.75 70 65. 1277–2008 Table A5.25 42 42 64.58 45.25 67 82 80.13 Apr 82.38 68.58 47. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates).58 47.88 June 85.75 42 42 55 61 68.5 46.13 69.5 49 53 52 48 Mar 46.58 46.88 48 48. Table A5.25 57.88 53.5 73.08 45.25 54.88 47. Jan 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 53.42 47 46.5 53.58 46.13 47.13 70 65.5 63.75 42 42 55 65.5 45.75 54.58 46.25 91.5 70 48 42 42 64.25 86.13 54.25 43.75 47 June 46.42 47.63 46.63 46.42 44.25 73 80.75 54.5 50.71 45 45.5 47.25 57.5 49.75 49 52.38 50 51.63 Dec 86 79.5 70 43.25 42 42 55 63.63 73.25 Sept 45.88 47.71 45.88 47 July 46.5 72. 5 76.75 Oct 47.5 50. Table A5.5 52 52 52.63 52 51 50 51.5 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.4.55 18.25 77.34 20. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling banco.43 18.75 20.2 20.82 19.25 20.17 20.39 20.2 20.25 Sept 53 52.5 51.5 51. Table A5.75 52 50.42 20.75 79.13 20.5 Dec 48 51.88 67.25 50 52 49.94 19.84 17.15 20. and mostly based on two-month bills.75 74.32 20.25 78.37 20.02 17.83 19. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates).32 20.12 17.21 Apr 17.25 49.5 50.25 73. Year 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 Jan 17.62 18.63 Apr 47 50.25 73.5 Sept 47 50.75 72.38 20.92 18 18.5 49 49.31 18.75 77.5 74.2 20.5 52.09 19.38 51 51 50.66 20.5.75 54 52.25 51 76 68 74.3 20.17 20.40 20.75 56 71 54 72 53.75 78 73.99 18. Jan 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 50 53 50.25 73.5 75.93 18.02 17. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).5 52.13 July 47 50 Aug 47 51.22 20.75 51.07 19. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburger reichstaler banco in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates).12 20.21 53 51 52 50.33 17.5 69.5 52 53 52.75 79.28 20.13 Feb Mar Apr May 51.75 Aug 53 53 76 69.5 77.62 20.1 21 20.5 69.75 51. and mostly based on two-month bills.5 75.75 77.5 Feb 47 49.81 19.98 17.75 74 75.28 20.25 75.5. 1777–1803 (not spot rates).28 20.67 47 49.5 51.5 51 75. Jan 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 69.05 19.28 20.68 19.25 75.4 July 16.5 50 50.91 20.21 Feb 17.75 78.5 49.1 20.45 20.33 18.25 70.8 20.13 49.75 76.57 20.5 May 47 50.21 20.07 Sept 16.33 52.45 20.3 (cont).42 17.2 20.13 Nov 53.25 17.09 17.17 20.75 Oct 54 54.25 73.5 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.5 50.31 19. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 265 Table A5.25 53.5 17.14 19.13 June 47.25 52.14 17.75 73.2 20. Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month figures.5 53.75 Dec 55.88 75.88 49. Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month figures.38 20.13 Mar 47 49.26 20.25 79. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).5 52.23 May 16.92 17.2 17.86 18.17 Mar 17.63 17.5 50.1 20.3 21.5 70 76.75 76 56.17 Nov 17.68 20.17 20.5 51 53 51 52.13 Oct 16.14 20.17 20.65 18.27 21.2 June 16.21 Aug 16.09 17.17 20.7 18.5 48.75 July 51.88 76.07 Dec 17.5 51.68 20.91 20.5 18.25 77.98 17.69 17.5 50.25 74.56 17.31 18.75 53 50.25 53.88 June 52.75 56 82 69.71 20.05 .25 Nov 48 51 50.75 19.5 69.39 20.75 75 75.37 17.25 48.75 76. 7 20.35 23.65 23.32 25.04 24.67 23.29 26.02 23.57 20.29 23.82 24.11 20.08 20.38 35.05 23.38 35 35 35 34.23 23.24 24. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates).15 23.06 34.81 33.73 Apr 20.5 34 33.5 20.69 23.25 35.35 25.88 July 26 25.2 20.12 25.11 23.73 24.59 20.44 24.1 Nov 20. assuming an interest rate of 12.31 24.66 26. 444 (Riksarkivet).13 22.35 May 20.46 23.19 25.56 26.63 20.44 21.18 20.69 20.38 35.7 22.42 20.52 23.82 20.31 23. The data have been collected and calculated in cooperation with Göran Hansson.81 Dec 26.91 23.89 23.58 21.16 26.86 24.44 34.5 26.65 23.19 25. 1277–2008 Table A5.5 33.48 22.45 23. no.31 25.88 35.38 21.69 34.31 July 19.5 34.08 23.88 34.03 20.44 25.94 34.36 27.).88 35.53 25.5 34. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1660–85 (estimated spot rates).5 34.44 20.1 23.25 20.7 20.5 25.2 20.27 20 20.98 23.81 35.88 32.63 34.5 (cont.85 Sources: Kammarkollegiet.20 20.34 20.61 Feb 20 20.74 20.59 20.11 24.56 34.35 23.51 24.24 23.94 20. Year 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 Jan 20.05 23.81 25.63 35 35 34.15 23.12 21.29 23.61 23.27 20.75 25.81 35 34.33 24.20 20.46 22.75 34.23 24.98 23.85 24.75 34.11 23.81 Nov 26.88 34.34 26.01 24.2 19.98 24.76 24.05 23.05 19.75 33.94 34.79 23.96 23.09 19.75 33.44 19.37 23. Table A5.51 23.13 34.18 20.1 23.63 22.32 20.87 26.42 23.94 26.83 24.75 33.38 33.81 35.35 June 20.266 Exchange rates.7 23. prices.19 20.83 23.75 35.27 20.12 23.79 26.88 35.89 24.67 23.42 20.24 23.73 24.88 35.25 34.56 20.94 26.34 21.79 24.38 20.13 25.07 27 24.94 Oct 26 25.5 .05 20.12 20.5 20.89 19.5 per cent.65 20.94 Aug 26.44 34.61 23.5 20.1 23.19 20. Year 1705 1706 1707 1724 1725 1726 1727 1728 1729 1733 1734 1735 1736 34.94 20.88 35.69 20.69 23.63 33.75 33.75 32.75 20.5 23.36 23.94 19.14 20.95 20.94 June 26.25 35 34.17 20.79 26.4 20.93 21.56 35 35.5 35 34.06 19.84 20.06 Aug 19.25 34.05 27.56 23.2 20.52 20.63 33.69 34.28 20.02 23.16 25.06 25.49 24.38 34.96 20.85 21.33 23.55 20.68 19.13 35 34. The monthly data are based on bills of 8 days to 2 months.37 24.12 24.12 26.31 23.12 20 20.35 25.13 34.31 23.06 Jan Feb Mar Apr May 25.19 26.12 20.75 35.91 23.6.16 26.38 35.75 20. oordnade handlingar.12 20.09 20.26 26 26.05 20.54 Mar 20.61 24.88 34 26.05 23.12 20.94 Sept 26. and wages.18 23.44 23.06 34.5 21.25 34.23 Dec 20.13 25.55 22.1 Sept 19.87 20.19 34.5 23.69 35.63 20.25 34.22 25.23 Oct 19.56 20.5 35.44 23. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.38 43.25 87. .88 35.5 41.25 44.63 35.13 50.63 79.19 36.75 67.13 Jan Feb Mar 35.5 65.25 38.63 41.25 36.25 42.63 36 36.13 65.).75 60 68.06 39.25 40.5 69 43.88 51 53.88 41.25 44.25 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.75 79.75 53 59 65 77.75 36 36 36.19 38.75 35.25 Oct 35.38 42 39.5 44.63 39.25 64.75 41.88 40.88 36.13 102.88 39.63 35.13 65.44 35.25 41.75 80.63 82.25 55 50.75 39.25 44.13 38.5 69 64 41.25 69.25 38.25 43.5 67.5 56.75 85 70 49 41.25 74 66 41.75 40.25 41.75 58.25 64.5 81 69 66 41.25 36.06 36.13 36.75 82.63 47.5 38.13 36 39.38 64.5 68.13 38.63 59.88 54.81 44.25 41.5 38.5 47.5 39.44 50.88 40.5 61 62.75 39 36.75 35.06 38.63 67.38 44 Apr 35.75 78.25 36.5 59.75 64.13 38.25 38.63 37.25 38.13 43.5 83 82 76.88 42 41.19 36.25 44.75 41.75 53.25 70 80.75 60.81 37.5 77.88 41 38.75 42 38.25 45.88 86.5 38.88 34.75 71.38 69.25 35.63 53 52.38 61 60 69 76 69.63 36.38 50.25 65.25 89.13 36 39.75 43.69 38.88 38.75 77 79.75 67 75 78.63 42.13 36.88 40.13 54.88 39.25 35.25 58. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).88 Aug 35.75 50.38 38.75 41.63 60 67.38 34.88 39.25 64.63 35.25 88.88 41.5 42.13 37.25 76.75 35.88 83 80.25 64.06 38.25 40.5 69 65.38 65.13 36.5 64.75 41.75 61.38 36.75 77.75 36.06 38.88 34.75 40.13 61.75 101 83.5 41.88 43 42.06 38.25 38.88 38.88 41 38.63 46.88 38.19 36.25 43.25 35.75 35.69 36.75 58 59.5 66.25 83.5 69 44.13 40 41.13 68.25 60.38 41.5 39.38 68.06 36.31 43.25 42.13 38.75 60.5 65.75 38.25 Nov 35.5 90 80.5 62.25 43.75 38.75 74 81 86 69.88 36. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates).94 36.31 42.13 42 41.88 67 65.75 78.5 58.5.69 37.13 38.75 39.88 36.38 36.25 70.5 38.5 66.88 42.88 79 78 81.13 36.5 84.25 Dec 35.88 52.13 35.13 38.25 73. and mostly based on twomonth bills.13 52 62.38 69 65.5 88.38 37.75 65.63 51.63 47.75 54 61 60.25 38.25 65.25 41.63 53 61 63 78 76 66.13 50.06 39.69 36.13 July 35.13 85 75.25 43.5 41.63 35.5 82.38 38.75 41.38 53 58.69 35.13 37.25 64.38 41.25 40.25 35.25 43.13 Sept 35.25 38.38 57.5 41. Year 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 41 38.63 40.25 67.25 75 66 41.25 41.63 55.25 May 35.25 35.88 40.75 35.81 36 36.75 69 77.38 42 50.81 38.88 41.25 37.5 66 93.63 63 65.5 39.38 65.5 67 78.13 43.25 June 35.5 76 66 65.13 38.13 36.5 38.56 41.69 55.75 69.25 45.13 35.63 42 41 38.88 39.5 69 74 80 78.75 41.88 59.5 36. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 267 Table A5.5 62.38 49.88 51 52.5 59 67 76.5 69 66 41.5 70 44.69 35.5 69.13 65.13 76 66.75 53 58 64.88 41.75 36.13 36.25 41.5 48.5 35.75 38.88 37.56 35.13 51.25 38.25 81 69 66 41.25 76.38 67.13 40.5 71.5 50.56 37.25 75.94 38.6 (cont. 58 49 51.83 42.88 41.81 53.5 47 51 48.25 42.38 42.5 47 46 47 45.63 41.5 42.5 47 42 41.33 48.25 45 42 41.75 45.63 44.5 52.88 46.5 51.33 43.33 47.268 Exchange rates.17 42.75 42.38 47 48.42 51.88 44.17 43.63 44.75 44.13 45.5 51.33 43.5 51.75 43.08 45 42.17 45.5 46 41.5 53 47.5 47 50 53.5 48 48.5 41.5 47.33 46 45 43.58 44.75 52.75 43.33 43. and mostly based on two-month bills.25 48 52.75 53.5 50 48 50.5 47 47 46.25 44.5 45.25 51 48.5 45.5 42.88 42.21 43. .08 43.33 44 43. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).25 46.25 43.5 47.33 46.13 49 46 48 46 47.33 47 Oct 42.75 52.75 52.88 46 43 43 42 45 50 50.7.42 Feb 43.5 46 45.75 42 47.5 46 45.13 43.25 46.75 45 48 46 47 46.63 43.75 43.42 43.58 43.5 44 43.33 46 46.63 52 50 48.75 45.13 50.08 44.5 May 44 43.42 50 53.5 43.79 44.75 51.5 47.75 Apr 43.33 45 July 43.5 49.42 42.5 53 49.33 41.5 47 49.58 43.17 42.25 50. 1277–2008 Table A5.5 44 43.88 41.5 44 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.75 Dec 43.75 48.5 46 46.63 51 46.5 43 40.17 41.88 53.67 44.58 45.88 44.75 49.25 41.71 46.38 45.5 46 50.58 43.13 Nov 43.25 48.75 46 42 45 June 43.5 43. and wages.25 48 47 42.25 43.25 46.5 41.75 45.13 Sept 42.5 46.63 47 47.21 42.75 42 42.42 43.5 43.33 43 44.75 45.75 45.38 44.63 44.42 43.75 43 43.5 47.75 47.5 43.25 46.25 42. see Chapter 6.5 45.5 45 43. For monthly exchange rates after 1803.5 47.13 45.33 46 45.38 51 47.5 47.5 45.67 44.08 43.08 44 43.25 43. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates).5 44.63 48 41 43.75 43.38 52.5 47 48.5 50 47.13 49.75 42.17 44 43 43. Jan 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 47 47.5 49.25 43 45.25 43 43.75 42.5 52.5 47 45 44 42.33 44 44.75 46. Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month figures.5 45. prices.75 47.5 46.38 45 44 42.79 46.67 46.88 45.5 48.88 45.13 45 42.25 Aug 42.38 40.75 45 43.08 40.13 42 42 45.25 Mar 43.08 44 42.13 43.5 45.17 42.25 46.75 45. 5 72.38 37.25 41.31 Sept 27.25 38.13 40.88 Aug 48 49 69 65.31 39.88 39.13 47.75 71.5 June 27 27.63 38.13 41.5 72.5 39.5 38.44 38.63 44.13 41. Monthly exchange rates are estimated from the mid-month figures.63 46.25 53.88 41.13 46.5 70.25 37. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 269 Table A5.5.5 39.25 70.75 47.63 41.75 45.19 Oct 27.25 Feb Mar Apr May 46.25 Nov 27.25 July 47 48 69 66 68.13 44.25 75.5 47.5 37.75 71.63 39.75 41.13 39.63 27.88 37.5 68 66 70.5 38.38 38.38 27.13 45.5 48.25 70.38 37.19 37.63 44.5 41.25 39.38 38.5 37.5 37.38 39.13 37.25 June 48 48 67 64 70 71.25 45.5 65.5 48.5 49. Year 1705 1706 1707 1727 1728 1729 1733 1734 1735 1736 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 41.25 39.5 47.69 39 42.38 46.38 60.56 28 .63 39.75 48.13 43.5 37 37.75 38.13 33.75 68.19 41.25 38.63 27.75 44.5 37.25 38.81 37.75 64.75 37.25 48.5 47.31 27.88 37.38 61.5 45. Table A5.13 38 36.88 39.88 41.5 69.38 27.31 48.38 37 37.94 37.5 41.88 37.88 39.88 47.13 39.25 37.25 65 72 69 71.5 July 27.5 72 67 70.5 37.25 47.25 38.75 45.44 39.13 41.56 28.56 39.38 38.5 41.5 41.25 72.44 Jan Feb Mar Apr May 27 27.63 39.88 36.38 48.5 48.75 74. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in daler kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates).44 41.13 39.25 37.5 73.19 44.13 42.5 48.5 46.5 37.25 37 37 37.13 44. Jan 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 64.31 39.38 38.63 48.63 39.25 39. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).31 38.25 Nov 50 51 71 65.63 41.38 37.63 37.38 37.8.31 42.38 42.25 72.25 69.38 45 47.5 39 38.63 48.5 46.75 39.5 48.31 27.5 71.9.38 Aug 27.38 37.38 38.5 39.75 45.38 39.56 39 41.63 39. and mostly based on two-month bills.63 45.5 69.63 38.75 51.38 Sept 49 50.31 27.25 74 70. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam rijksdaalder courant in skilling riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates).13 42.75 39.13 27.88 37.13 27.63 39.5 50.25 38.81 Dec 27.63 39.5 37.5 46.38 36.13 33.13 46.5 50 41.13 42 40.5 52 63 50 63.13 40.5 69.75 42.5 48.25 42.5 70.63 47.38 71.5 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.5 73.75 71 65.25 41.5 49 48.88 37.63 47.38 42.25 Oct 50.13 39.63 41.94 39.25 Dec 51.63 50. 75 86.021 4.38 72 70.13 46.5 39.5 75.5 98.5 86.88 38.44 44.042 3.13 39.13 64.917 3.13 72.5 74.25 70.5 108 90 99.63 58.917 3.75 79.5 38.25 65.38 67.44 42.25 38.9 (cont.25 Oct 41.25 65.38 55.75 74.06 44 51.06 41.63 84 72.76 Aug 3.).5 64 July 43.5 39. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in daler kopparmynt 1705– 76 (not spot rates).859 4.5 54.5 63. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.63 62 69.5 89.75 63.88 45.63 76 69.5 90.63 41.88 39.38 40.5 40.63 83.925 3.75 72.38 72.5 52.13 46 60.5 79 72 70.88 56.5 110.026 3.729 3.38 64. Table A5.25 54.63 3.75 47.25 87.13 41 43.5 71.38 42.75 85.25 64.13 39.742 3.13 65. and mostly based on three-month bills.5 42.5 69 71.953 4.38 39.021 3.01 3.88 40 41.677 Feb 3.38 72.75 65.10.5 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.38 66 67.25 41.5 74.38 41.5 63.5 89.031 4.25 71 63.63 59.047 3.25 47.182 4.5 72.5 96.5 93 94.194 3.5 46.63 72.708 Oct 3.5 42.063 4.188 4.698 Apr 3.854 3.91 3.5 87.75 100 79.099 4.94 40.5 54.81 45. and wages.75 38.734 June 3.88 46 Mar 44.5 67.25 62.5 86.69 40. Jan 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 3.75 38.75 84.88 40.88 38 38.146 4.75 62.19 Jan 45.5 55.75 72.88 47.5 54.38 86.75 90.5 86 77.854 3.5 95.208 4.146 4.75 May 43.589 3.979 3.25 41.38 70.927 4.021 3.708 Mar 3.75 72.5 Aug 42.38 56.5 75.25 42.06 43.5 77.901 3.5 73.688 Nov 3.979 4.25 90.25 72 71. 1277–2008 Table A5.13 77.25 89 93.88 40.25 49.078 3.75 54.25 53.688 .099 3.25 72.5 89.75 57 54.75 64 76.5 Sept 41.88 43.63 48.5 72 87.5 84 73 45.5 73. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates).5 86.5 93 100 89 74 47.5 39.38 72 46.38 39.771 3.708 3.25 83 71.104 4.88 42.88 40.25 Apr 44.88 40.5 Nov 42.073 3.13 40.25 56.13 64.88 58.25 44.25 72 70.38 71.927 4.75 July 3.75 93 76.75 51.5 54.270 Exchange rates.75 72.938 4.38 38.06 75 71.13 39.38 54.156 4.88 86.5 98.5 86 77.688 Dec 3.88 76 86.823 3.06 44.99 4.63 40 40.13 81 85 86.38 42.958 3.25 92.5 75.25 67.75 86.13 42.13 41 43.13 86.698 3.25 39.5 78.859 4.5 52.25 69.5 54.25 38.88 38.5 83 72 46 Feb 45.75 June 43.198 3.5 62.5 48.88 58.818 4.724 May 3.38 54.13 37.25 81.88 42.5 92.931 3.25 62.75 54.63 39.25 68.75 39.88 63.91 3.953 4.75 76.25 78 91.5 77.5 74.073 4.44 41.75 65 72 81.5 76 71.25 68. prices.88 56.052 3.75 51.38 Dec 42. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).888 4.38 82.63 44.81 39.875 3.75 85.38 70.224 4.609 3.135 4.75 93 76 71.5 64.75 69.13 40.88 40.75 70.44 45 46.25 71. Year 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 67.625 3.63 67 70.13 42.5 57 66 67 56.5 96 76.25 58.948 4.56 40.755 Sept 3.25 66.06 65. 313 5.297 4.01 4.094 4.146 6.708 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.146 4.182 4.406 4.917 5. .979 4.125 4.625 5.375 4. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 271 Table A5.479 6.438 6.375 4.042 4.875 4.375 6.885 4.167 4.875 4 4.104 4.125 4.729 4.854 4.781 4.24 4.703 4.167 4.49 4.823 4.313 6.125 6.344 4.25 Oct 5.109 4.917 4.818 4.75 4.719 5.5 4.229 4.156 4.542 May 3.01 4.313 6.104 4.719 4.448 5. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.813 Nov 4.083 4.146 6.703 5.417 4.135 3.26 4.208 5.063 4.021 4.625 Sept 5.219 4.854 4.849 4.938 4.333 4.714 4.438 4.385 4.375 3.11.75 6.75 5.771 4.917 4.208 4.75 Feb Mar Apr May 4.104 4.708 5.703 4.083 3.021 4.75 5.302 6.25 4.281 4.375 6.245 4.37 4.688 6.51 5.724 4.042 6.688 6.167 3.604 4.677 Aug 4.688 6.396 Mar 3.167 4.438 4.198 4.448 Dec 5.583 5.083 5.604 5.151 4.719 4.792 3.167 6.26 4.563 4.167 4.167 4.813 5.917 4.188 5.255 5.823 4.323 4.724 4.083 4.896 4.104 4. Jan 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 5.438 4.917 6.01 4.375 3.083 4.813 5.625 3.417 4 4.25 4.458 3.161 4. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler riksgälds 1797–1803 (not spot rates).854 4.604 July 3. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).448 5.521 4.958 5.104 4.104 4.271 4. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).167 6.25 5.833 3.125 4.125 4.896 4.833 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.313 6.917 4.156 4.141 4.281 4.776 4.333 4.552 5. Table A5.938 4.536 4.938 4.417 5.021 4.208 6.526 5.479 4.698 4.417 Apr 3.125 4.188 4.104 4.208 5.708 5.229 4.917 6.427 4.391 5.271 6.979 4.938 4.958 4.344 4.354 6.292 Nov 5.75 4.724 4.5.344 4.172 6.083 5.635 5.25 5 4.208 4.469 5.323 6.76 5.083 4.938 4.099 Sept 3.448 5.151 4.208 Feb 3.323 4.833 5.438 5.073 4.125 4.219 4.688 June 4.656 5.484 4.156 4.).5 3.521 6.125 4.5 3.167 4.073 4.177 4.177 5.208 4.938 5.458 4.958 6.958 6.229 4.214 4.167 4.917 4.104 4.156 4.24 4.792 5.792 July 4. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.875 4 4.219 4.729 6.094 4.375 6.188 3. Monthly exchange rates on pound sterling in riksdaler banco 1777– 1803 (not spot rates).865 4.521 4.203 6.359 5.979 6.484 4.38 4.875 6.469 5.271 4.833 4.10 (cont.161 4.181 4.786 4.208 4.01 4.802 Aug 3.688 4.281 4.125 4.531 5.271 6.875 4.036 4. and mostly based on three-month bills.917 4.083 6.896 4.948 Oct 4 4.208 4.208 4.583 6.375 Dec 4.177 4.516 4.083 4.792 4.271 6.042 4.313 3. Jan 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 4.354 6.484 4.193 4.073 4.5 4.854 4.49 5.583 June 3.188 4.625 3. and mostly based on three-month bills.667 4. 71 21.21 21.93 24.21 21.563 7.41 21.25 25.5 7. no.25 24.83 21.21 21.139 Aug 7.41 21.272 Exchange rates.13 28.95 21.06 24.99 24.37 25.16 24.56 21.5 9.21 21.25 7.21 21. and wages.125 7.15 21.24 25.21 21.21 21.58 24.21 21.167 .167 Nov 7.37 24.14 24.125 7.47 25.62 27.41 21.56 22.56 22.49 24.25 7.14 27.06 25.25 7.5 25.25 7.31 21.25 24.4 22.25 25.41 24.6 22.28 25.13 24.11 21. 1277–2008 Table A5.74 28.27 27.28 25.24 25.4 22.31 20.21 21.74 25.13.8 24.25 24.41 21.53 25.375 7.73 22.63 21.21 20.25 7.92 24.61 27.27 25.31 20.41 21.73 21.438 7.125 9.41 Oct Nov Dec Source: Kammarkollegiet.21 21.25 25.13 24.24 25.25 7.74 24.84 25.77 26.06 21.84 24.9 24.25 7.21 21.25 24.21 21.375 7.12 24.41 21.09 24.13 27.02 20.11 Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug Sept 21. Table A5.61 27.41 21.125 7.29 21.75 25.25 7.11 25.06 21.12.24 25.13 25.21 21.1 25.21 21.75 8.75 8.74 21.72 24.5 7.167 Dec 7.25 7.04 25.25 24.72 24.56 22.28 27.125 7.99 25.25 7. oordnade handlingar.73 25.74 24.5 7.07 26.87 24.7 21.25 7.73 25.73 24. Monthly exchange rates on écu de change (= 3 livres tournois) in marks kopparmynt 1668–85 (estimated spot rates).07 20.41 21.74 28.5 25.25 24.29 21.25 8.56 22. Year 1705 1706 1707 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 7.18 21.81 21.5 per cent.06 21.98 21.5 7.73 26.25 7.22 24.97 27.28 27.58 25.7 21.61 26.22 23. 444 (Riksarkivet).21 20.41 21.25 24.74 27. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates).95 21.95 24.07 23.73 21.25 24.75 7.167 Sept 7.125 7.31 20.25 July 7.125 9.24 24.73 24.21 21.61 26.25 7.21 21.625 7.25 7.75 8.41 21.4 25.125 9.25 25.4 21.27 28.25 24.2 24.13 27. The monthly data are based on bills of 8 days to 2 months.25 9.89 28.98 25.65 25.5 7.56 21.25 7.27 26.55 25.06 24.25 7.75 7. assuming an interest rate of 12. Year 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 21.56 22.18 21.15 25.07 22.438 7. prices.25 7.61 28.75 8.167 Oct 7.75 8.93 24.125 8.25 Jan Feb Mar Apr May 7.96 25.62 24.25 June 7.75 8 9 9 9.14 28.5 25.73 25.78 21.61 26.95 21.5 7.125 7.31 21.5 7. 25 12.375 8 Dec 8.75 8.375 8.5 8.5 8 July 8.25 7.5 12 13 13.375 8 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.875 Oct 8. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).75 14 13.25 17 18 16 15 13.25 7.5 12. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois in marks kopparmynt 1705–76 (not spot rates).5 8.75 13.5 14.5 12.06 12.5 8 8 8 7.75 8.5 7.25 9.375 8 8. Year 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 13.75 7.5 12.13 (cont.5 8.38 14.5 13.375 7.5 8 7.5 17 15 18 18 13. and mostly based on three-month bills.375 8 Sept 8.94 12.5 15 13.5 17 13 13 14 14 16 13 16 16 19 12 13 16 12.375 7.38 12.375 8.25 7.75 12.5 7.5 8 7.38 14.5 12.5 Jan Feb Mar Apr May 8.5 8 June 8.25 12.375 8 Nov 8.5 13.375 8.5 8.5 13.938 8 8 8 8 8 7 7.5 8.5 7.188 7. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 273 Table A5.5 8 7.25 9.75 11.).5.75 11.75 12.5 10.5 8 Aug 8. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.5 13.25 12.25 17 16.438 7.75 12 16. .75 9.5 12. 417 8.5 9.417 Feb 8.167 7.875 7.25 8.375 8.417 8. 1277–2008 Table A5.25 8.833 8.833 9.75 8 8.917 8.25 8.375 June 8.167 8.167 8.333 8.333 8 8.5 8.25 9.167 8.917 9.5 8.333 8.667 8.625 8.833 9.25 8.167 9.25 9.25 9.042 9.333 7.333 8.75 7.417 8.333 7.083 8.667 9.375 8.667 8.25 8.25 7.333 8. Monthly exchange rates on livres tournois (franc from 1795) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates).667 8.792 8.208 8.25 8.917 9.333 8 7.333 Mar 8.333 8.667 8.5 8.375 8.292 8.292 8.375 9.625 8.417 8. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.5 8.25 8.417 8.417 8.333 8.292 8.875 9 9.417 8.875 Dec Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.083 July Aug 8.208 8.542 8.375 9.083 8.5 8.208 8.25 9. prices.25 8.667 8.167 9.208 8.167 9.917 7 8 7 Nov 8.274 Exchange rates.308 May 8.25 8.042 8.5 8.333 8.25 8.125 8.5 9 8.417 8.417 9.875 8.25 8. and wages.125 8.333 7.125 8.167 8.875 9.333 8.5 8.75 8.333 8.333 8.375 8.167 8.083 8.75 8.167 8.333 8. Jan 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 9.229 8.417 8.083 8.167 8.125 Oct 8.167 8 8 9.5 9 9 8.333 8 6.14.333 8.917 8 8.333 8.75 8.333 8.25 8.75 8.333 8 8.083 8.083 8.125 8.292 8.333 8 8 8.292 8.333 Sept 8.333 8.875 8. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).5 7 7 9 9 6.125 8.375 9. Underlined data = exchange rates on Bourdeaux.833 9 7.875 8.5 9. .75 8.25 8.5 8.042 8.5 8.458 8.625 8.417 8.75 6 6 6 6 6.219 8.167 8.25 10 9.167 Apr 8.375 8. and mostly based on three-month bills.75 9. 5 13.5 July 31. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 275 Table A5.25 14.13 12. Year 1741 1752 1753 1754 1755 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 50 50 50 66 64 50 65 66 65 66 68 72 66 72 34 56 54 54 55 38 38 32. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).04 14 13. and mostly based on three-month bills.67 May June 9.16.67 13. . Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).75 12.5 Nov 31.71 15 12.5 Dec Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.38 13.75 13. Jan 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 12.5 Sept 31.5 14 13. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.5 Oct 31.75 14. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurantbanken notes) in marks kopparmynt 1741–67 (not spot rates).25 14 14 13.5 14 12.5.5 Aug 31.75 Feb Mar Apr 10 13 12.5 14.5 13.13 13.75 Jan Feb Mar Apr May June 31.38 13.75 July Aug Sept Oct Nov Dec Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.33 13.5 13.79 12 12. Table A5.25 14.15.5 14 14 13.75 14 13. Monthly exchange rates on franc in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates). 25 37 39.5 33.5 42 39.75 39 41 39 40.5 52.38 55. Table A5.25 43.75 55.38 37.5 41 38.25 54.13 54.75 56 55 54.25 55.25 39 38 36.5 36 33.25 52.13 42 33 38 37.75 56.5 53.5 39.17. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).5 May 44.75 34 34.25 57.63 51.5 35.25 Apr 44.25 53.63 34 34.25 53.75 36. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.5 41 39.5 37 37 38 37 36 Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug 36 Sept Oct Nov Dec 37 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.33 36 37 35.5 35 33.63 58.5 51.75 35.75 34.5 40 42.5 32.83 36.5 36.25 55 53.5 39 40 43 40.5 39 39 40. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in Kurantbanken notes) in skilling banco 1777–1803 (not spot rates).5 55.75 38.5 55 53.5 39 40 38.18.5 54.88 Sept 43.25 37.75 45. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).75 40 38 40 36.75 59 55. Jan 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 52 55.5 40. and wages.5 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.25 39.5 36 34 36 36.75 34.38 35.25 64 54.25 Aug 43 58 55 54.25 54.5 40 38.5 40.75 36 41 38 40 40.75 51. Monthly exchange rates on Danish courant rigsdaler (= 6 marks in courantmoney) in skilling riksgälds 1798–1803 (not spot rates).5 38 42 42 39.5 52 Dec 56. 1277–2008 Table A5.75 35.75 35 40.5 41 39 39.38 53.88 43 36.75 55.5 37 36.5 35 37 36.75 32.276 Exchange rates.75 37 40 36.75 36.5 June 41. .25 56 July 42.25 42.33 34.5 41 41.38 51 Oct 43 60.88 57 54.04 36.5 51 Nov 45.5 40.75 Mar 45 56.5 34 33 34 33.25 31.25 58.5 35.5 56.25 Feb 46.5 38.5 36.75 37 39.5 37 36 34.25 32.75 56.5 54 54.25 35. Jan 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 37 38 36 37 38 37 34.5 39.5 42. prices.25 38.75 54.5 56.13 39.5 42 39.5 40.13 37 34 33 33 37.75 39.5 33. 5 12 13 14 21 12.5 10 Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.75 11.5 12 15 11.5 9.5 9.13 10.25 11.38 11.5 10 9.063 9 9.125 11 9.88 17 12.5 11.5 9.13 10.13 10.25 12.25 13 11.5 9.25 22 11 10 9.5 11 12.75 15 16 17 16.5 11.5 9.5 13.375 9.5 9. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates.5 10.63 11.375 9 9 11.88 14 14.25 14 14 15.5 11. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 277 Table A5.5 9.75 11.5 11.88 12.75 9.5 14 15 19.438 9.5 10 9.5 14.75 11.25 11.25 10.5 11.75 Sept 9.5 10 9.25 10.25 10.438 9.5 16 14 16 15.75 Oct 9.38 11.5 12 11.5 11.625 9.38 11.5 9.438 July Aug 9.88 12.25 9.75 10 9.5 9.5 9.125 11.875 9. Monthly exchange rates on Gdańsk florin/gulden/złoty (= 30 grosz) in marks kopparmynt 1740–76 (not spot rates).5 9.25 9 11.5 9.5 11 10 9.5.88 17 12.75 9.625 9.5 9.125 11 10 9.5 10 9.13 9.75 11 10 9.5 9.38 10. .5 9.5 9.38 10.625 Nov 9.38 10.88 12.5 15. 5 9.63 11.5 12 12 12 12 11.19.5 9.5 9.5 Jan Feb Mar Apr May June 9 9.5 14 15 19 9 9.375 9. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv).5 12. Year 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 13.25 9 9.56 12 17 19 15.44 12 12 12 13 12.25 12.875 10.75 Dec 9.25 15.563 9.75 9 11 9.5 16 12.5 9.125 9.063 9 9.75 10.25 14 11. 38 15.25 28 28.5 27 26.75 26 25.5 32.5 27. 1277–2008 Table A5.5 17.75 Dec 27.278 Exchange rates.88 14 26.5 33 33.5 22 23 29 26 28.5 33. Year 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 in skilling banco 1788 1792 in skilling riksgälds 1799 1800 44 48 51 48 48 48 48 36 35. and wages.88 Oct 27.5 30 26 25.5 41.25 32 29.5 30.25 33 33.5 30 32.06 49 49 14.63 27 32.13 Jan Feb Mar Apr May June July Aug 28 28.5 27.5 29.5 48 42 41 26.20.5 30 25.5 26 26 28 28.5 29.5 34.13 30.5 26.5 28.5 32 29.5 28 28 28 28 28 31.5 30 28.75 30.5 30 28 32.5 34.5 15 15 15 15.75 30.5 16.25 26 32.5 28.5 29.5 in marks kopparmynt Source: ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.5 29.5 28. Monthly exchange rates on Swedish-Pomeranian taler courant in Swedish currency 1740–1800 (not spot rates).5 27.5 30 27 34. .5 30.63 33.5 28 28.75 13. The monthly data are estimated as the median of highest and lowest rates. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’ (Riksbankens arkiv). prices.75 Sept 27 28.5 26 26 26.5 32 28.75 34 32.5 31 28 27.5 33 33 27.88 35 35 35 33 34 32.25 33 33 33 30.5 26.75 32.5 34 32 30 26 28 32.25 Nov 27.25 29.5 33. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 279 Table A5.21. The exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660-1685) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est 17 17 17.255 17.255 16.924 16.284 17.545 16.924 17.768 17.081 18.297 17.768 17.724 17.167 18.297 17.724 18.628 18.051 19.839 18.628 19.929 18.583 21.597 19.929 20.465 20.09 20.394 19.63 21.095 20.465 21.054 20.394 3.25 3.06 3.06 3.25 Premium on Hamburg bank money (%) Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660–85) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est Premium on Amsterdam bank money (%) 1658 1659 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 1690 1691 1692 1693 17.572 17.077 18.297 17.572 18.258 17.672 18.548 18.258 18.213 17.591 18.583 18.213 18.857 18.177 20.302 18.857 20.121 18.356 21.67 20.121 20.866 19.375 21.555 20.866 20.909 20.395 21.305 20.909 20.767 19.187 21.555 20.767 20.964 20.197 21.305 20.964 20.61 20.302 21.095 20.61 20.804 20.133 21.206 20.804 21.003 20.592 21.206 21.003 20.929 20.702 21.054 20.929 20.984 20.512 21.206 20.984 21.502 20.954 22.469 21.502 22.708 21.964 24.062 22.708 23.034 22.307 24.187 23.034 24.661 23.731 25.566 24.661 24.585 24.187 25.566 24.585 25.934 24.312 27.77 25.934 27.529 26.761 28.275 27.529 26.354 24.993 28.072 26.354 24.935 24.108 25.566 24.935 24.884 23.983 25.372 24.884 24.974 24.642 25.53 24.241 25 25 25 25 25 25 25 24.974 24.483 25.25 25.25 25.25 25.25 25.25 25.25 25.25 10.21 9.88 10.12 10.89 10.73 9.98 9.6 24.854 24.488 25.239 24.854 7.12 20.171 19.692 20.302 20.171 20.176 19.758 21.305 20.176 20.044 19.313 20.702 20.044 20.392 19.597 21.054 20.392 20.026 19.613 20.905 20.026 20.214 19.801 20.803 20.214 20.446 20.051 21.206 20.446 20.31 21.44 23.6 19.944 20.844 20.31 20.302 23.059 21.44 23.104 24.488 23.6 4.16 3.66 3.78 3.96 3.78 4.16 4.01 3.58 4.01 4 4.28 4.25 5.06 5.18 5.47 5.42 5.48 7.38 20.895 20.302 21.711 20.895 23.599 22.721 24.563 23.599 25.017 23.226 26.769 25.017 26.475 25.498 27.265 26.475 25.316 23.606 27.07 25.316 23.887 23.059 24.741 23.887 23.616 22.601 24.359 23.616 23.584 23.226 24.108 23.584 23.371 23.037 23.964 23.371 22.907 24.252 23.761 23.432 23.376 23.009 23.572 23.136 24.495 23.999 23.666 23.609 23.239 23.808 3.88 3.8 3.65 280 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A5.21 (cont.) . The exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660-1685) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est 25 25 26.749 26.5 26.685 26.25 26.28 25 24.625 24.5 25.499 25.25 24.749 24.5 24.375 24.25 26.209 24.5 27.098 26.25 27.311 27 27.122 26.75 26.998 26.75 26.781 26.5 27.299 26.5 26.711 26 26.608 25.5 25.56 25 25.793 25 26.546 25 33.952 29 52.056 43.75 40.03 36.24 38 35 27 27.25 24.75 25.75 25 24.5 27.75 27.75 27.5 27.5 27 28.75 27.75 28 26 27.5 28.75 39.75 83.75 41 37 37 37.25 25.25 25.25 27.016 26.952 24.871 25.754 24.996 24.618 27.342 27.557 27.366 27.241 27.022 27.545 27.734 26.951 27.519 26.847 25.79 26.025 26.785* 28.39** 34.258* 38.37** 52.525* 60.26** 40.39 36.615 36.566 36.945 35.526 34.274 33.854 34.602 Premium on Hamburg bank money (%) 11.09 12.67 14.29 13.98 13.74 13.57 14.28 13.39 13.34 15.1 17.17 18.8 18.24 17.56 16.95 16.78 16.73 16.71 16.54 17.28 18.28 19.7 20.9 24.72 27.74 29.7 28.33 28.84 29.53 30.35 31.35 33.24 16 16 Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660–85) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est 23.553 23.925 25.505 26.216 25.287 23.495 24.6 24.247 23.749 23.788 24.164 25.76 26.478 25.54 23.73 24.846 24.489 23.986 Premium on Amsterdam bank money (%) 4.77 4.83 4.76 4.96 4.82 5.17 4.65 4.73 3 2.81 2.69 3.27 5.54 5.62 4.84 4.83 4.76 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 1699 1700 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 1721 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 1727 27.625 26.543 26.875 26.471 24.855 23.875 25.875 25.103 25.225 24.125 26.375 25.452 25.872 25.5 26.245 25.75 25.875 25.75 25.687 25.5 26.921 26 26.118 25.5 25.367 24.75 26.58 25.48 26 24.5 26.25 26.75 26 26.105 26.481 26.107 25.875 25.918 27.875 27.163 26.75 26 27 26.5 25 27.25 38 80 42 35.5 36 36.25 35 34 33.75 34.75 26.352 25.596 26.41 26.819 25.71 24.195 25.803* 27.35** 32.765* 36.7** 50.382* 57.8** 39.234 35.439 36.071 36.323 34.447 34.55 33.282 32.899 34.039 27.486 26.375 28.75 27.274 26.375 28 26.175 25.375 27 4.5 23.979 23 25.573 24 32.473 27.75 49.933 42 38.884 36 35.123 34.75 35.749 35.5 35.999 35.75 34.242 33.5 32.985 32 32.606 31.5 33.735 32.75 4.59 36.289 36 36.616 35.25 5.25 4.94 4.57 4.42 4.88 4.97 35.577 34.125 36.625 35.897 35.209 34.125 36 33.968 32 33.552 32.5 34.293 32.5 35.75 34.5 35.5 34.139 32.375 36 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 281 Table A5.21 (cont.) . The exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660-1685) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est 35.11 33.5 36 35.5 35.75 35.5 35.426 35.119 35.435 35.247 35.272 35.627 35.688 36.352 36.256 36.632 37.393 38.201 39.886 40.844 44.224 43.962 40.36 44.628 44.87 43.841 42.116 40.642 38.342 38.332 39.058 38.978 40.642 44.234 51.953 49.996 63.779 72.688 86.047 82.556 34.806 34 35.119 34.25 34.933 34.25 35.308 34.75 35.31 35.68 34.75 34.75 35.369 34.75 36.028 35.5 35.933 35.25 36.305 35.25 37.06 37.86 39.53 40.48 43.83 43.57 40 44.23 44.47 43.45 41.74 40.28 38 37.99 38.71 38.63 40.28 43.84 51.49 49.55 63.21 72.04 85.28 81.82 36 36.75 36.75 37 42 40 40 40 42.25 40 39.25 36 37.5 38.5 37.5 39 40.25 48.75 47.25 55 67.75 73 73 Premium on Hamburg bank money (%) 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16 16.31 17.48 18.03 17.49 17.79 18.85 19.37 20 18.67 16.5 16.17 17.05 17.51 17.68 16.44 17.34 17.24 17.56 17.42 11.7 7.68 8.02 18.58 24.83 22.39 23.85 Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660–85) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est 34.869 34.25 34.227 33 33.369 32.75 33.496 33 34.369 33.75 34.623 34.25 34.869 34.25 34.992 34.25 34.667 33.5 35.5 35.5 34 34 35 35 35.5 35.75 35.183 34.535 33.669 33.798 34.679 34.934 35.183 35.307 35.25 35.371 35.311 36.768 38.15 39.089 42.358 42.126 38.594 43.498 43.468 41.904 40.047 38.261 36.001 36.072 36.394 36.657 39.432 45.102 53.376 52.357 62.184 68.016 84.685 81.154 Premium on Amsterdam bank money (%) 4.79 4.77 4.58 4.52 4.02 3.8 4.44 4 3.9 4.02 4.45 5.11 5.23 4.64 4.43 4.8 4.86 4.93 4.86 4.65 4.74 4.64 4.53 4.88 4.48 4.63 4.51 4.18 4.22 3.76 3.33 2.27 3.11 4.53 3.02 2.36 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 34.958 33.625 35.75 35.75 36 36.5 36.5 37 37.5 41 42 44.25 45.75 47 40 47.5 44.75 43.75 41 40 38.75 39 40.75 43 49.75 56.25 55 76 75.75 108 94.5 35.875 35.626 36.375 36.001 35.875 34.979 34.936 34.625 35.25 35.056 34.375 35.75 34.996 34.5 35.55 36.44 37.81 38.74 41.98 41.75 38.25 43.11 43.08 41.53 39.69 37.92 35.68 35.75 36.07 36.33 39.08 44.7 52.9 51.89 61.63 67.41 83.93 80.43 34.75 35.25 35.75 40 38.25 38.25 38.25 41.75 40.5 37 33.75 35 36 36 37.75 40.25 50.25 55.5 63.75 68.5 71.5 35.5 35.875 35.87 40 42.5 44 45.25 38.25 46.25 46 42.75 38.25 37.75 36 36.25 39 42.25 50 56.25 70 70.75 108 93 35.375 39.5 43.125 47.25 38.125 41 50.125 57.25 282 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A5.21 (cont.) . The exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1658–1776. Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660-1685) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est 86.08 88.87 70.53 56.42 42 42 60.54 62.93 70.26 80.23 75.75 69.3 69.06 79 79 66.5 42 42 42 55 60 64 73.5 72 68.25 68.5 96 94 80 66 42 42 68 65.5 74.5 82.5 80.5 72 70 86.854 89.669 71.165 56.928 42.378 42.378 61.085 63.496 70.892 80.952 76.431 69.923 69.681 Premium on Hamburg bank money (%) 26.21 21.44 19.88 17.72 22.35 24.6 24.26 24.64 25.08 24.71 23.88 21.88 Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder courant in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates Esti1660–85) mated Aver- Low- High- spot rates age est est 82.07 81.69 69.88 56.41 41.64 41.59 57.15 59.41 66.08 76.88 71.91 65.72 64.9 74 76 66.5 41 39.25 39 53 57 60 69 69 65.25 64 93 90 77 66 41.75 41.75 64 61 70 79.5 76 68 65.25 82.808 82.425 70.509 56.917 42.015 41.964 57.664 59.944 66.674 77.572 72.557 66.311 65.484 Premium on Amsterdam bank money (%) 3.12 3.76 4.74 4.76 4.58 4.87 4.9 4.88 4.75 4.66 4.73 4.7 4.781 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 Underlined data = based on cross rates. Sources: See the main text. For 1660–85, the exchange rates on Hamburg and Amsterdam are estimated spot rates, based on bills of 8 days to 2 months, assuming an annual interest rate of 12.5 per cent, and the average calculated as the geometric average of the monthly data (see Table A5.5). To calculate spot rates for the period 1658–9 the direct data are increased by 1.5 per cent; for 1686– 1703 the increase is 1 per cent. For 1704–77 the direct data is increased by 1.0567/365. * Estimated rates in proper coins 1716–18. ** Estimated rate in coin tokens 1716–18. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 283 Table A5.22. The exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Direct data Estimated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 17.49 18.197 20.226 21.137 21.206 22.108 22.026 21.096 21.81 22.936 22.517 22.826 22.921 22.316 21.487 21.526 23.315 24.302 26.424 26.664 26.235 29.829 28.784 26.872 26.556 26.552 26.831 17.752 18.47 20.53 21.454 21.525 22.44 22.356 21.413 22.137 23.28 22.855 23.168 23.265 22.651 21.809 21.849 23.665 24.666 26.82 27.064 26.628 30.277 29.216 27.276 26.954 26.95 27.234 7.151 7.138 7.138 7.108 7.108 7.033 7.018 7.12 7.286 7.592 8.259 8.352 8.477 9.25 8.939 8.429 8.327 8.317 8.31 7.138 7.138 7.061 7.069 6.943 6.901 7.069 7.188 6.985 8.079 8.203 8.203 9.048 8.415 8.217 8.021 8.207 8.243 7.138 7.138 7.138 7.209 7.104 7.069 7.199 7.405 7.91 8.498 8.499 8.71 9.425 9.425 8.71 8.469 8.499 8.415 7.151 7.138 7.138 7.108 7.108 7.033 7.018 7.12 7.286 7.592 8.259 8.352 8.477 9.25 8.939 8.429 8.327 8.317 8.31 6.914 7.013 7.043 6.914 7.013 7.043 Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates up to Esti1702) mated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 1658 1659 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 1690 1691 1692 1693 25.869 25.234 25.39 25.738 24.711 26.182 25.54 25.698 26.049 25.01 8.294 7.302 7.364 7.191 8.294 7.302 7.364 7.191 284 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table 5.22 (cont.). The exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Direct data Estimated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 24 22.224 25.564 29.253 27.932 25.846 27.079 26.985 25.659 26.351 26.625 27.25 27.375 28 27.695 27.624 27.763 27.483 27.994 28.281 27.498 27.972 28.256 35.458 54.381 42.695 38.29 38.262 39.63 37.957 36.999 35.611 35.973 37.25 36.5 38 26.875 26.75 27.75 27.625 28 28.25 24.291 22.493 25.873 29.607 28.27 26.159 27.407 27.312 25.969 26.67 26.947 27.58 27.706 28.339 28.03 27.959 28.099 27.815 28.333 28.623 27.831 28.311 28.598* 30.314** 35.887* 40.193** 55.039* 63.14** 43.212 38.754 38.725 40.11 38.417 37.447 36.042 36.408 37.701 6.263 6.494 7.936 7.647 10.02 11.9 7.229 3.763 5.55 5.453 5.105 6.706 8.078 7.752 7.256 6.339 6.572 8.032 7.74* 8.2** 10.14* 11.35** 12.05* 13.82** 7.317 3.808 5.617 5.519 5.166 6.788 8.176 7.846 7.343 7.222 7.25 7.333 7.447 7.583 7.549 7.111 7.167 7.167 7.333 7.333 7.5 7.31 7.338 7.422 7.537 7.675 7.64 Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates up to Esti1702) mated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 7.434 7.332 7.927 7.732 7.318 6.882 7.153 6.875 6.477 7.434 7.332 7.927 7.732 7.318 6.882 7.153 6.875 6.477 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 1699 1700 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 1721 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 1727 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 285 Table 5.22 (cont.). The exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Direct data Estimated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 37.5 37.25 36.405 37.052 37.307 37.46 39.02 38.84 38.57 38.499 38.42 39.229 39.25 39.28 41.04 42.31 45.36 45.93 41.5 47 48.12 46.82 43.53 42.13 39.77 38.92 40.07 41.01 44.03 49.34 56.44 55.64 66.58 71.18 90.72 84.33 91.61 38 38.125 38.75 39.75 43.25 41.5 41.5 41.5 46.75 45.5 41 41.25 37.5 38.375 39.75 40.375 42.25 46 54 54.25 61.5 68 74 76 83 39.75 42.5 43.125 46.5 47 49.25 41.5 51 50.5 48.75 45.75 42.75 42.25 40 40.5 43.5 47.5 53.75 61 62.5 75 76 117 93 102.5 37 38 38.5 37 38 39.5 39 40 36.5 36.5 38.5 38 37.954 37.701 36.845 37.5 37.759 37.913 39.492 39.31 39.037 38.965 38.885 39.704 39.725 39.755 41.537 42.822 45.909 46.486 42.002 47.569 48.702 47.387 44.057 42.64 40.251 39.391 40.555 41.506 44.563 49.937 57.123 56.313 67.386 72.041 91.818 85.351 92.719 Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates up to Esti1702) mated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 7.197 7.008 6.979 6.926 7.091 7.081 7.26 7.187 7.145 7.288 7.192 7.169 7.19 7.26 7.48 7.963 8.79 9 7.8 7.5 8.95 8.43 8.36 7.88 7.244 7.31 7.35 7.5 8.03 8.489 9.75 9.75 11.94 13.03 14.42 16.52 16.97 9.75 9.75 10.75 12.75 13.25 16 15 9.75 9.75 12.5 14 17 17 19 6.5 7.25 7.5 7.875 7.5 7.5 7.5 8.5 7.5 8.75 8.25 8 7.75 7.5 9.125 8.75 8.5 8 8.5 8.5 9 9.25 7 7 7.25 7.5 7.75 7.625 7.284 7.093 7.064 7.01 7.176 7.167 7.348 7.274 7.232 7.376 7.279 7.256 7.277 7.348 7.571 8.059 8.896 9.109 7.895 7.591 9.058 8.532 8.461 7.975 7.332 7.398 7.439 7.591 8.127 8.591 9.868 9.868 12.08 13.19 14.59 16.72 17.18 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 286 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table 5.22 (cont.). The exchange rate on London and Paris 1658–1776. Year London, 1 pound sterling in daler kopparmynt Direct data Estimated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 92.06 77.46 60.41 45.9 42.207 63.14 63.96 71.78 85.78 80.08 72.71 70.93 55.5 61 67 67 77 71.75 69.875 68 66 77 88 86.5 76 72.375 83 73 45 44.5 101 85 72 46.5 93.174 78.398 61.141 46.456 42.718 63.904 64.734 72.649 86.818 81.049 73.59 71.788 Paris, 1 livres tournois in marks kopparmynt Direct data (spot rates up to Esti1702) mated Average Lowest Highest spot rates 17.2 14.56 13.24 8.097 7.996 11 11.88 13.24 14.5 13.5 12.8 12.51 14.5 13 12.38 12.25 14.5 14.25 13.125 13.5 11 11 16 13.5 12 18 15 13.5 17.41 14.74 13.4 8.195 8.093 11.13 12.03 13.4 14.68 13.66 12.95 12.66 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 Underlined data = based on cross rates. Sources: See the main text. To calculate spot rates, the direct data are increased by 1.5 per cent for London in 1658–85, by 1.0590/365 for London in 1686–1703, and by 1.0590/365 for Paris and London in 1704–76. For Paris 1668–1685, see Table A5.12. * Estimated rates in proper coins 1716–18. ** Estimated rate in coin tokens 1716–18. 5. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 287 Table A5.23. The exchange rate on Hamburg and Amsterdam 1777–1804. Year Hamburg, 1 reichstaler banco in skilling banco, direct data AveLowHighrage est est skilling banco, spot rate 46.575 46.384 46.424 46.666 45.718 45.839 47.261 49.794 50.006 48.21 46.888 47.009 52.014 55.283 51.983 51.63 54.486 51.499 47.746 47.766 51.075 51.398 52.821 51.075 52.286 51.277 51.146 51.237 55.711 55.785 54.507 53.411 57.485 55.913 53.274 52.99 52.115 54.496 74.878 70.983 75.967 76.038 78.106 76.855 skilling riksgälds, spot rate Amsterdam, 1 rijksdaalder courant in skilling banco, direct data Aver- LowHighage est est skilling banco, spot rate 43.589 43.579 44.406 44.436 43.417 42.176 43.79 46.928 46.979 45.647 44.012 43.508 48.916 52.397 49.774 49.451 52.125 48.079 43.861 42.216 45.475 45.849 47.342 47.524 47.837 47.211 46.979 47.998 47.907 51.439 66.523 66.796 70.741 71.205 73.667 71.997 skilling riksgälds, spot rate 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 1804 46.16 45.97 46.01 46.25 45.31 45.43 46.84 49.35 49.56 47.78 46.47 46.59 51.55 54.79 51.52 51.17 54 51.04 47.32 47.34 50.62 50.94 52.35 50.62 51.82 50.82 50.69 50.78 45 44.5 45 45 44.13 45 45 48 48 46.5 45.75 45.75 47 52 49 49 51.5 48 47 47 50 50 50 49 50 48.67 48 49.5 47 47 47.5 47.5 47 46.5 48.5 54 52.5 49 47.75 47.5 58.5 58 54 52.5 58 57.25 48 49 52.5 53.5 54 54 53 54 53 53 43.2 43.19 44.01 44.04 43.03 41.8 43.4 46.51 46.56 45.24 43.62 43.12 48.48 51.93 49.33 49.01 51.66 47.65 43.47 41.84 45.07 45.44 46.92 47.1 47.41 46.79 46.56 47.57 42 42 43.25 43 41.25 40 41 45.33 45 44.25 42.75 42.25 43.25 49 47 47 48 44.5 41 40.33 43 44 46 46 46.5 45.75 45 46 44 44.33 45 45.5 45.75 43 46 49.5 48.5 47 44.75 43.75 54 56 51.5 50 53.5 53.25 47 43 48 51 48 50.5 50 47.75 49.5 49 Sources: See the main text. To calculate spot rates, the direct data are increased by 1.0567/365. 288 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A5.24. The exchange rate on London and Paris 1777–1804. Year London, 1 pound sterling in riksdaler banco, direct data Aver- LowHighrage est est riksdaler banco, spot rate 3.881 3.9957 4.1549 4.1387 3.8028 3.7576 3.8761 4.4351 4.5281 4.2896 4.1718 4.2295 4.6909 5.1748 4.8585 4.5465 5.147 4.7213 4.0263 4.115 4.6736 4.8918 4.888 4.1032 4.1817 4.2597 4.3194 4.62 4.8834 5.3253 6.6383 5.7667 6.1291 6.4131 6.7727 6.9301 9.83 8.9 8.87 9.12 9.75 8 8 8.25 10 10 10 10 9.949 9.0077 8.9774 9.2304 8.5 8 9 8.6029 9 9 9 9.1089 9.949 13.431 13.036 13.785 13.38 14.25 13.846 riksdaler riksgälds, spot rate Paris, 1 livres tournois (franc from 1795) in skilling banco, direct data Aver- Lowest Highage est skilling banco, spot rate 8.3701 8.4612 8.3296 8.4511 8.2588 8.1069 8.3094 9.2506 8.7446 8.4915 8.2891 8.2891 8.6434 9.4429 8.4308 6.5179 6.5787 7.0847 skilling riksgälds, spot rate 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 1804 3.835 3.948 4.105 4.089 3.757 3.713 3.83 4.382 4.474 4.238 4.122 4.179 4.635 5.113 4.8 4.492 5.085 4.665 3.978 4.066 4.618 4.833 4.83 4.054 4.132 4.209 4.268 4.565 3.688 3.854 3.854 3.99 3.5 3.656 3.677 4.229 4.25 4.083 4.063 4.125 4.219 4.792 4.396 4.333 4.656 4.167 3.833 3.917 4.333 4.833 4.583 3.938 3.896 4.146 3.917 4.333 3.938 4.01 4.24 4.229 4.021 3.771 4.167 4.792 4.625 4.438 4.25 4.281 5.167 5.333 5.042 4.667 5.292 5.292 4.25 4.333 5.104 4.833 5 4.25 4.271 4.323 4.5 4.75 8.27 8.36 8.23 8.35 8.16 8.01 8.21 9.14 8.64 8.39 8.19 8.19 8.54 9.33 8.33 6.44 6.5 7* 8 8.2 7.917 7.917 7.5 7.5 7.75 8.5 8 8.167 7.833 8 8 8.5 7.833 6 6 7 8.75 8.417 8.417 8.5 8.333 8.25 9 9.667 9.333 8.667 8.5 8.5 9.167 10 9 7.5 7 7 Sources: See the main text. To calculate spot rates, the direct data are increased by 1.0590/365. * Bordeaux Ser. Lwów. J G (1934). kapital: en 1600-talshandel med potential? Fjärrhandelsfamiljerna Jeronimus Möller i Lübeck och Sibrant Valck i Göteborg. Bokförlaget PAN/Norstedts. Kungl. The Hague. A. and E Nathorst-Böös (1968). Dalhede. Mynt. in Van Dillen. Vetenskaps. Elibron Classics. Lagerqvist. Paris. vol. Stockholm.). E (1934). weights. I:1. Dutch Enterprise in the World Bullion Trade 1550–1800. J G (ed. Viner. C Jobst. ‘The Bank of Amsterdam’. A History of Prices and Wages in Denmark 1660– 1800. Facsimile reprint. and measures of the principal places of the world. References Attman. M. van Dillen. Untitled volume with exchange rates 1804–89. Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa. Institute of Economics and History. and F Zumer (2004). Handelsfamiljer på stormaktstidens Europamarknad. Heckscher. 85. OECD. vol. Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar.och Vitterhets-Samhället. 1.5. The Hague. Heckscher. ‘The bank of Sweden in its connection with the bank of Amsterdam’. 1688–1789. vol. in Van Dillen. I:2. R (2001 [1740]). flandreau/fichiers_articles/BELLJAR_draft121. Copenhagen.ekhist.sciences-po. L. T (1935). Partille. . Flandreau. vol. Kammarkollegii. 444. and K Glamann (1958). History of the Principal Public Banks. O:1. Ceny w Gdańsku w latach 1701-1815. vol.fr/marc. Friis. M. Riksbankens arkiv (RBA) ‘Växelkurser å Stockholms börs.). Skład Glówny. Hayes.se/filedownload. I. Flandreau. Hansson. Gothenburg. J G (ed. Sandbergska samlingen. II:1 and II:2. Handel och sjöfart. no. The negociator’s magazine: or the most authentick account yet published of the monies. Warne förlag. kvinnor.ekhistmotet09. Primärtabeller (1705–)/1740–1803’. The Making of Global Finance 1880–1913. Furtak. 1 Järnhandel. oordnade handlingar. C Galimard. Foreign exchange rates in Sweden 1658–1803 289 Unpublished sources Riksarkivet (RA) Börstorpssamlingen. Stockholm. ‘Priser på spannmål i Jämtland och Härjedalen 1648–1721’. E (1935–49). History of the Principal Public Banks. The Bell Jar: Interest Rates Between Two Revolutions.pdf (2007-07-28). C (2006). http://coursenligne. A (1983).php?id=116 (2009-03-28). http://www.uu. G (2009). and P Marco (2006). 4. Bonnier. J (1978). Shaw. Books IV-V. Working Paper Series. Posthumus. S. A (1920). .pdf (2007-08-04). Bills of Exchange. Norstedts. 1277–2008 Lobell. Monetary Regimes in Transition.Unger Database: European Commodity Prices 1260–1914’. ‘Riksbanken och de valutapolitiska problemen. 2006-13.htm (2007-06-17). Redish. http://www2.J. Leiden. H (2000). and the Emergence of the First Central Bank.org/filelegacydocs/wp0613. London. W (1895). McCusker. Quinn. 1719–1778’ in Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918: bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. Almqvist & Wiksells Boktryckeri. and wages. Wilsons & Milne. ‘The Latin Monetary Union and the emergence of the international gold standard’ in Bordo. I. and F Capie (eds. Uppsala. III. Mayhew.). vol. Federal Reserve Bank of Atlanta. vol. Brill.ubc. Almqvist & Wiksell International. A (1994). New York. An Economic Explanation of the Early Bank of Amsterdam. history. Lund. The Wealth of Nations. E. Debasement. Mynt. Cambridge University Press. Cambridge. Sterling: The History of a Currency. Kingsport. The History of Currency. E (1908). Wiley. and W Roberds (2006). Inquiry into the History of Prices in Holland.ca/unger/htm_files/new_grain. A (1999 [1776]). http://www.och bankpolitik under hattväldet 1738–1764. 1600–1775: A Handbook. N W (1946). N (1999). M. Tennessee. Montgomery. Smith. Internet resources ‘Allen . Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration: De utländska växelkurserna i Sverige 1834–1880. Kingsport Press. frbatlanta. Sjöstrand. prices. Stockholm.290 Exchange rates. Penguin Books. Money and Exchange in Europe and America. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 Håkan Lobell 6. foreign exchange policy and monetary regimes in the 19th century Figure 6.2. which for Sweden were the principal international financial centres in the 19th century. Another factor that needs to be taken into account is the integration of credit markets and associated foreign exchange markets.1 shows monthly exchange rates on Hamburg and London. however. . the variety of the instruments that were traded at different times and the changing composition of exchange market participants. a ‘rising foreign exchange rate’ denotes a ‘fall’ or ‘depreciation’ of the Swedish currency and vice versa.1 A pronounced depreciation and large fluctuations in these exchange rates give way to 1 Note that the exchange rates are expressed in terms of Swedish currency units per unit of the foreign currency. First. Introduction This chapter presents foreign exchange rates in the ‘long’ 19th century (from 1804 up to the outbreak of the First World War in 1914). Exchange rates. comes a summary of the development of foreign exchange policy and monetary regimes in the 19th century. In this context. 6.1. The account notes the types of exchange rate series that are included in the data base and the sources for those series. The new monthly exchange rate series that are the fruit of this work turn out to be extremely suitable as a starting point for an analysis of the history of Sweden’s monetary system in the 1800s. The new exchange rate data that this project has produced also pave the way for new analyses of the integration process.6. The way in which a number of these problems have been tackled is reported in this chapter. Obtaining long and reasonably homogeneous series entails dealing with matters such as some currencies being issued in different places at different times. That was how exchange rates were expressed in Sweden in the 19th century. 1277–2008 Figure 6. and wages.292 Exchange rates.2.1 Exchange rates with Hamburg (left scale) and London (right scale) 1804–1914 110 23 100 21 19 90 17 80 15 70 13 60 11 50 9 40 7 30 1804 1814 1824 1834 1844 1854 1864 1874 1884 1894 1904 1914 Hamburg SEK/100 mark London SEK/£ 5 Source: Tables A6.1 and A6. prices. . 1. other commodities that are used as a standard. for that matter. this assumes a free exchange of silver between countries and in practice this exchange is associated with transaction costs for commissions. Meanwhile. however.2 Moreover. The silver standard 1803–09 At the turn of the 18th century Sweden was obliged to move to an inconvertible paper standard. when parliament became unicameral. insurance and transport. such as Sweden restored in 1803. A paper currency based on silver4. The monetary system was based on a silver coin. Prices could therefore vary within certain limits before it became profitable to export/import silver to/from other countries with a silver stan2 3 4 Heckscher (1941). on a paper standard. but in 1789 excessive note issues denominated in riksdaler riksgälds in connection with the war with Russia had forced the Riksbank to suspend the redemption of notes for silver. four fairly distinct periods are evident in the series. These periods are considered in somewhat more detail below. The introduction of a silver or a gold standard had considerable implications for the workings of the foreign exchange market and for exchange rate movements. in practice.2. 6. Here we have a good illustration of what Eli Heckscher described as a transition from confusion and disorder to an orderly and harmonious monetary system. riksdaler specie. meant that notes could be exchanged for silver coin and this tied the value of the paper currency to the silver coin. then a bicameral parliament up to 1970. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 293 increasing stability that leads up to the international gold standard with its historically exceptional exchange stability. . This necessitated a corresponding devaluation of riksdaler riksgälds. The Diet of the Estates of the Realm up to 1866. the period of inconvertibility had led to an agio of 50 per cent between the two paper currencies: riksdaler banco and riksdaler riksgälds. Riksdaler riksgälds were issued by the National Debt Office (Riksgäldskontoret) – side by side with the Riksbank’s note issues in riksdaler banco and skilling banco – to enable the Crown to finance the war despite the intransigence of the Riksbank. However. which was controlled by the Riksdag3. Or any other precious metal or.6. This was also the period with a marked depreciation. the currency remained inconvertible until 1834 and Sweden was. when this was replaced by a gold standard. The exchange rate with another silver-based currency will then have a parity that is determined by the nominal value of the domestic currency expressed in silver in relation to the nominal value of the foreign currency for the same amount of silver. for example. Sweden then remained on a silver standard until 1873. Specie payments were resumed in 1803 (the ‘realisation’ of 1803) and notes could again be redeemed for silver. From 1803 to 1809 Sweden was on a silver standard. This was suspended in 1809 in connection with the war with Russia and the deposition of Gustav IV Adolf. A currency reform in September 1834 meant that bank notes could again be redeemed for silver. it becomes profitable to import goods from countries where the purchasing power of the currency is unchanged. Rates above or below these points would have meant it was profitable to carry out foreign transactions in silver instead of in customary financial instruments. In general terms. as we say today. These limits are known as silver points (more generally. neither coin nor precious metals were used for international foreign exchange transactions. the exchange rates shown in Figure 6. prices. His ideas were current in Sweden in the early 19th century but so were a number of other opinions about how the monetary system functioned with a silver standard. For most of the period. and wages. One of the first to present a theoretical argument of this type was the 18th century philosopher David Hume. In other words.5 So as long as the domestic paper currency could be redeemed for silver and this silver could be used for foreign transactions. which uses exchange rate differentials and silver transactions with the sole aim of profiting from the spread between the silver point and the exchange rate.294 Exchange rates. the resumption of convertibility in 1803 was commonly regarded as a failure in that the National Debt Office’s notes – which circulated alongside the Riksbank’s notes and were responsible for the monetary expansion which had necessitated the paper standard – were devalued by 50 per cent relative to banco money. these were arranged instead with bills of exchange (or drafts). Hume wanted to demonstrate the futility of the contemporary mercantilist ambition to maintain a trade surplus and build up a stock of bullion. The silver points accordingly determined the limits of the exchange rate’s deviations from parity. As the outflow of money to pay for the additional imports reduces the quantity of the domestic currency. the value of the currency will return to its equilibrium level. for instance because the quantity of money increases without a corresponding change in the amount of available goods. commodity points). the currency performed comparatively satisfactorily in the years after the resumption.1 are actually the prices of foreign bills from exchange dealing on Swedish bourses. At the time. the exchange rate could neither fall below nor rise above the silver points. As a rule. which in principle would have corresponded to transaction costs for silver.1 shows that in these years. which is tantamount to a fall in the value of money. If the proportion shifts. the adjustment occurs in markets for goods as well as for money. 1277–2008 dard where the purchasing power of silver differed. however. which at this time were primarily bills. Figure 6. whose model for adjustment with a metallic standard is usually known as the ‘price-specie flow mechanism’. he asserted that the value of a country’s coin is determined by the quantity of metallic currency in proportion to the output of goods and services (the quantity theory of money). prices tend to rise. At macro level. the domestic price level tends to fall to a level that is internationally competitive. If money is worth less. which in the case of Sweden were almost exclusively drawn on foreign banks or bankers. He used an analogy with fluids to explain that trade and the money supply tend to find their own levels. . Even so. fluctuations around parity for the 5 A special case is silver point arbitrage. Post-war economic setbacks also hit Sweden. notwithstanding large note issues. because British subsidies enabled the Riksbank to replenish its silver reserves. pp. particularly Göteborg and the western region.6 6. . p. which suggests that the silver points had ceased to be effective. It is possible. The currency’s depreciation. 9-16). however. By 1807 the situation had changed. foreign exchange rates rose to the silver point and notes were converted into silver. for instance at the time of the campaign against Norway in 1817 and the British financial crisis in 1825. This was followed by a period of long-term depreciation. or mint parity. Dornbusch (1976).6.2. Cf. The huge initial depreciation can have been an instance of overshooting – the tendency for financial market participants in particular to generate excessive price movements. Brisman (1931. accompanied by considerable exchange rate fluctuations. exchange rates started to rise and then shot up in the winter of 1810/11. in this context is the theoretical exchange rate expressed as units of domestic currency per foreign currency units equal in value to the same amount of silver. the agio between paper and silver money and the suspension of convertibility were frequently likened to a national bankruptcy 6 7 8 Brisman (1931. when there were also periods of international deflation. This precarious situation was exacerbated by the war with Russia.7 With a paper standard unequivocally in place and ineffective silver points. Convertibility was maintained initially. ongoing war and blockades on the Continent led to exchange market unrest. An indication that this was the case is that exchange rates began to exceed the levels at which silver had been exported earlier. Parity. mainly for export.2. that deflation was less pronounced than in other countries and instead took the form of a marked depreciation of the currency. 10). The paper standard was by far the most important economic policy issue in the 1810s and ’20s.8 The rates did fall back but the depreciation still amounted to as much as about 65 per cent in 1812. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 295 exchange rates with Hamburg and London amounted to a few percentage points. Convertibility became increasingly restricted as the war proceeded and seems to have been suspended in practice in the final phase when the king was deposed and power passed to the Riksdag. Convertibility was formally suspended in March 1810. The suspension period 1809–34 The war and acute financial requirements after the deposition of Gustav IV Adolf led to greatly increased note issues in 1808–09. The ensuing inflation resulted in a combination of agio between banco and silver currency and growing pressure on Sweden’s banco currency relative to the principal foreign currencies. The depreciation occurred during the international recession in the wake of the Napoleonic wars. 9 The force of the Danish depreciation between 1808 and 1813 is well illustrated by the dramatic decline against the Swedish currency. between 1817 and 1834 the Danish currency appreciated considerably in terms of Swedish currency. parliamentary debate in 1817 had resulted in a decision to implement a formal devaluation of sterling and resumption of specie payments in 1821. to little or no avail. from around 30 to about 100 SEK per 100 DKK. 137-196). During the 1820s. 1277–2008 in that the State could not meet its commitments (notes) with specie (silver). though the fluctuations remained considerable. Unlike their colleagues in Denmark. In 1813 the courant rigsdaler was replaced by a new rigsbankrigsdaler (or rigsbankdaler) at the rate of 6:1. at least in terms of Swedish currency. on several occasions in these decades ‘finance secretary’ Skogman attempted to counter the depreciation and exchange rate fluctuations by means of extensive currency operations. This led the Riksdag to start a serious discussion about a new currency reform. pp. which was an ideal currency that could not depreciate in terms of silver. even the franc. Denmark was deeply involved in the continental conflict and the military effort was largely financed by issues of courant bank notes. In Britain. the Nationalbank conducted contractive monetary policies in the 1820s and ’30s in an attempt to accomplish a considerable appreciation of the rigsbankrigsdaler. However. In 1818 the Danish Nationalbank was established and organised as an independent joint stock company in a further attempt to stabilise the monetary system. The Swedish monetary reforms after the currency depreciation were not nearly as far-reaching as those in Denmark. While Sweden’s exchange rates with the major international currencies. On behalf of the Crown Prince (subsequently the King). The new currency was not convertible but nevertheless became more stable.1 suggests that the Swedish depreciation went further than the British since the Swedish currency depreciated almost as much as against reichsthaler Hamburg banco. The path of the Swedish exchange rate against sterling in Figure 6. the Swedish depreciation against the major currencies was less marked. By the Riksdag of 1822/23 it was increasingly recognised that the depreciation was an irrevocable fact.296 Exchange rates. the exchange rates on Copenhagen declined spectacularly. Swedish politicians considered that the advantages of an appreciation of the banco currency were outweighed by the drawbacks because a monetary tightening could be economically harmful.2). As a result.10 Furthermore. The large exchange rate fluctuations and the comparatively sizeable price movements during this period were attributed to this lack of confidence and were judged to be a serious impediment to economic development. and wages. pp. 84-99). The virtual collapse of the Danish courant currency necessitated far-reaching monetary reforms in Denmark. prices. . 10 Svendsen and Hansen (1968. which was itself depreciating rapidly (see Figure 6. the Swedish 9 Svendsen and Hansen (1968. increased dramatically after 1809. which led to inflation and currency depreciation. In the end. presumably the opportunities for arbitrage would have led to a major influx of notes and exports of silver.1) in connection with the political disturbances on the Continent and Britain’s financial crisis. Riksdag decided to put off a return to convertibility on the grounds that the Riksbank had not yet accumulated adequate reserves of silver.3. In September. just as the session of 1828–30 was drawing to a close. until the next Riksdag had approved constitutional amendments in September 1834.4 and A6. Another factor was the King’s objection to a solution that involved devaluation. he continued to argue for an appreciation of the riskdaler note to its pre-war level. A resumption of specie payments in silver had to wait. . A6. If silver payments had been resumed when the exchange rate was highest. a law prescribing convertibility into silver and regulating the administration of the Riksbank was passed in March 1830. and Karl XIV Johan continued throughout the decade. That these fears were by no means unfounded is indicated by the marked increase in the exchange rate during the first half of the 1830s (Figure 6. where a majority favoured an official banco devaluation. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 297 Figure 6.11 The struggle between the Riksdag.g. however. During the Riksdag of 1833–34 there was some concern that a resumption of silver payments would occasion a run on the Riksbank. Paris (right scale) and Amsterdam (right scale) 1804–30 400 350 300 140 250 200 150 100 40 50 0 1805 1810 1815 1820 1825 1830 1835 20 0 120 100 80 60 200 180 160 Copenhagen SEK/100 DKK Paris SEK/100 franc Amsterdam SEK/100 gulden Source: Tables A6. Andreen (1961).6. the King relented. how11 See e.2 Exchange rates on Copenhagen (left scale).6. no fixed parity could be calculated between these two metals. The weight of riksdaler specie was reduced by approximately 0. and wages. prices. as the price of silver fluctuates relative to the price of gold. . from c. as mentioned. Prior to the First World War there was no lasting depreciation or appreciation.1 grams to approximately 25. while the paper currencies were officially written down from 1 till 2⅔ riksdaler banco. The international economic recovery probably contributed to this but so did the credibility of the new monetary regime. The silver standard 1834–73 The Riksbank actually started to accept notes for silver in September 1834. Some appreciation of the Swedish riksdaler against sterling can be discerned in Figures 6. 48 to 127. on Amsterdam in Holländsk riksdaler kurant and on Paris in francs. So there was a de facto devaluation of the Swedish paper currencies against foreign currencies. This long-term external integration is considered in more detail below. exchange rates in the period on a silver standard up to 1873 reflected two main tendencies. Exchange rate movements in this period were essentially limited by silver points at first.3. By vigorously defending the convertibility of the paper currency and naturally also thanks to Sweden not being directly involved in military conflicts. at least against other silver currencies such as the one in Hamburg.1.4 skilling banco per Hamburger reichsthaler banco. Exchange rates with the other Scandinavian currencies were calculated in Danish rigsdaler and Norwegian specie. The paper riksdaler had then depreciated to only 3/8ths of its earlier value against the silver riksdaler.1 grams fine silver. The exchange rate fluctuations that continued to occur (see Figure 6. or from 48 to 128 skilling banco. The profound change that accompanied the return to a silver standard in 1834 is also evident from Figure 6. There was no fixed parity with sterling because since 1821 Britain had adopted a gold standard.1 and 6. 1277–2008 ever.1) were connected as a rule with changing international economic conditions and largely remained within the range of the silver points. Britain. exchange rates became considerably more stable. presumably because the discovery of gold in California and Australia greatly increased the supply of gold and this affected the price of gold relative to silver.2. was on a gold standard both de facto and de jure from 1821. the Riksbank managed to maintain convertibility until the outbreak of the First World War. transaction costs decreased over time and this led to a narrower range between the silver points. One was that with ongoing integration.298 Exchange rates. 6. per riksdaler specie.3. exchange rates were on the way down and silver payments could be resumed without difficulty. This is evident in the exchange rates from Paris. Otherwise. later by gold points. when convertibility was restored. But there were no sizeable fluctuations or permanent depreciations or appreciations. Following the resumption of silver payments. The other tendency was for exchange rate fluctuations to occur largely in the upper part of the range between the silver points. 6.3 Foreign exchange rates during the silver standard 1834–73 160 24 150 140 22 130 20 120 18 110 100 16 90 14 80 12 70 60 1835 1840 1845 1850 1855 1860 1865 1870 10 Hamburg SEK/100 mark Paris SEK/100 franc Amsterdam SEK/100 gulden Copenhagen SEK/100 Dkr Christiania SEK/100 Nkr London (Right scale) SEK/£ Source: Tables A6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 299 Figure 6.1 to A6. .8. 5 riksdaler specie (since 1 ‘riksdaler i silfwer’ = 4 riksdaler riksmynt) or 20 ‘ort’ (= 85 grams) silver of 12/16 fineness (‘tolf-lödigt’) in minted coins. either 2. the equivalent of 64 grams of fine silver in minted coins.3) and could be evidence of some continuous pressure for a depreciation of Sweden’s currency. For Sweden. prices. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet. Silver exported in this way was . This led to a diminishing supply of currency until the exchange rate had risen to the silver export point and it became profitable to use silver for foreign transactions instead of the conventional instruments. Stockholm. 1277–2008 This 10-riksdaler riksmynt note from January 1873 was still redeemable for silver coins in the Riksbank. a typical international economic cycle went roughly as follows. Sweden switched from a silver to a gold standard later that year. International downturns weakened Swedish exports at the same time as the international credit market became less liquid because downturns were usually associated with credit crunches and financial crises of varying severity. and wages. 10 riksdaler riksmynt was. Copenhagen and Hamburg (see Figure 6. setting 1 krona (linked to gold) = 1 riksdaler riksmynt. or even to practicing silver arbitrage.300 Exchange rates. See also the next illustration. therefore. Meanwhile there was extensive arbitrage with the Riksbank’s stock of Spanish piastres to Asia. a reduction of the money supply. silver was exported to London towards the end of the period. . the Bank itself set about importing silver when exchange rates were approaching their parities. international downturns did result in a rather drastic tightening of the credit market due to direct reductions of the money supply and credit restrictions. The domestic macroeconomic adjustment effects of the cyclical external flows of silver were probably rather limited because economic conditions usually improved simultaneously for Sweden and for trading partners and credit markets abroad. More12 Of course there were exceptions.6. where the crisis was more financial than economic. for instance by using unexploited noteissuing rights or by supplementing its specie and bullion with foreign financial assets/ drawing rights. in practice the Riksbank created a floor for exchange rates at their par value.12 In that notes were redeemed for much the same amount. whereupon the panic spread across the world and even Hamburg banks. The pattern was repeated during the international economic downturns and crises around 1837. But instead of waiting for increased exports and an improvement in international credit markets that would bring exchange rates close to the silver import point. The failure of the Ohio Life Insurance and Trust Company triggered a collapse of financial and credit markets. 1847 and 1857. Contemporaries referred to this as a strypsystem (literally: ‘throttle system’). for instance. required the board of directors to cancel credit to banks and the public when silver was exported (the Bank was still engaged in purely commercial transactions at this time). usually solvent and liquid. however. or counter. Moreover. from 1844. the revised version of the Riksbank’s regulations. This was seldom done on a sizeable scale because to some extent the Riksbank could sterilise. a stock of predominantly Swedish notes in Finland was redeemed for silver that was then exported. Moreover. The Riksbank was generally short of silver and aimed to replenish the metallic reserves as soon as exchange rates had fallen back and the outflow of silver had ceased. there was a domestic monetary squeeze and this limited the potential supply of credit from the Riksbank. 1842/43. In the 1840s. making it profitable for people to import silver and deposit it in the Riksbank. which was one reason why exchange rate fluctuations on Hamburg tended to stay in the upper part of the band. when a separate monetary system was established in what had become a Russian province. The pattern during economic recoveries was somewhat different. and to a lesser degree during Britain’s brief but intense financial crisis in 1866. was when the downturn that followed the boom during the Crimean war led to a sharp international financial crisis and a run on banks in 1857. had to suspend payments. By purchasing large amounts of foreign currency for this purpose. Sweden lost a major part of its comparatively large exports of bar iron and an even larger share of more manufactured iron products to the United States. During the depression after the crisis in 1837. On the whole. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 301 largely withdrawn from the Riksbank and most of it was shipped to Hamburg. The external shocks were considerable. Another example. 1. . The new paper currency. 15 In 1871 there were still three different currencies in the territories that were to become Germany: the Prussian thaler. the Swedish economy was still predominantly agricultural and less affected by international fluctuations.4. the monetary regime (in Sweden as well as internationally) should have had a deflationary effect.13 However. the Hamburger mark banco and the south-German gulden. was subdivided into 100 öre. and wages. With a largely unchanged money supply and a trendwise increase in demand. 132. The indemnity which France. But even in agriculture. meant on the whole that the long-term growth of the money supply in Sweden was determined by the international supply of and demand for silver.302 Exchange rates. Sweden’s overall annual economic growth averaged rather more than 3 per cent (at current prices). i.2.5:1. The new exchange rate parities on Hamburg and Amsterdam were then c. and c. which could be expected to have generated a corresponding increase in demand for money because it was not until the latter half of the century that the banking system and routine transactions became appreciably more up-to-date. had to pay Prussia served as a basis for the unification of Germany and a final amalgamation of German currency systems.4 riksdaler riksmynt per 100 guilders.15 Germany’s adoption of a gold standard was followed 13 See e. riksdaler riksmynt. the Riksbank made hardly any contribution to the increase in the money supply.e. with the exchange rate as a central variable. The regime also lay behind the fact that during the four decades with a silver standard. As a result. They did so. 1277–2008 over. 14 Ögren (2006). a process of commercialisation and international integration was under way during the period with a silver standard. not so much via the credit multiplier in the way that is usually understood. The ratio of new riksdaler riksmynt to old riksdaler banco was the same as for riksdaler riksgälds. it probably helps to explain why no permanent currency depreciations occurred during the rest of the period up to 1914.70 riksdaler riksmynt per 100 Hamburger mark banco. as the loser. The gold standard 1873–1914 The creation of a universal international monetary system based on the French gold franc was discussed in earnest in the 1860s but the idea had to be shelved after the Franco-Prussian war of 1870–71. 6. McKinnon (1993).g. this monetary regime. However. but by issuing notes based on their capital and reserves of the Riksbank’s paper currency. Moreover. the private banks helped to generate a long-term increase in the money supply and growing liquidity.14 The metric system was applied to Swedish currency in the second half of the 1850s. Bills on Amsterdam were calculated in guilder as of 1858. prices. the units in which exchange rates on Hamburg were quoted were changed so that the currency was reported in terms of Hamburger mark banco (3 Hamburger mark banco =1 Hamburger reichsthaler banco) and rates were expressed in riksdaler riksmynt per 100 Hamburger mark banco. 150. there was a protracted recession with deflationary tendencies and this was followed in the 1890s by a lengthy international economic upswing with rising prices.17 With Sweden on a gold standard. The break in the international price trend is usually associated with an increased international supply of monetary gold as a consequence of the discovery of gold deposits in South Africa and Alaska. Under the 19th-century gold standard. as did a more domestic Swedish financial crisis in 1878 and 1879. which imposed stringent restrictions on monetary policy as well as on economic policy in general. with the result that gold points had a much smaller range than silver points.9903 kronor/100 guilders with the Netherlands. The resultant symmetry promoted currency harmonisation and the Union’s long existence16.4). 18. One reason was that a gold standard cut the cost of transactions in gold compared with silver. 1:1. and 149. Still.1595 kronor/pound with Britain. The Union’s internal exchange rate parity was. pp. The band within which exchange rates could fluctuate without eliciting corrective arbitrage or transactions in gold became correspondingly narrower. . Convertibility into precious metal continued 16 Talia 2004. the main reason why the Union worked so well for almost three decades was the gold standard. and in 1875 by Norway. In the years up to 1889. 72 kronor/100 francs with France and Belgium. the gold standard was no doubt an important factor behind the particular nature of Sweden’s industrialisation.6. The Swedish economy underwent extensive and profound changes that were accompanied by a massive import of capital.8888… kronor/100 marks with Germany. when these two countries agreed on a common currency system. The new exchange rate parities were 88. 1903 and 1907. 17 Schön (2007). 1890. which sustained high longterm growth of both investment and consumption. The krona was equivalent in value to the former riksdaler riksgälds and riksdaler riksmynt. Note that this was by no means a period of financial and economic calm. together with more efficient technology for extracting metals. In that a stable exchange rate could be maintained for so long. exchange rates were notably stable (see Figure 6. The three countries in the Scandinavian Currency Union each retained their central bank and cooperated and coordinated their monetary and exchange rate policies. the operational aspects of monetary and exchange policy changed considerably. 201 onwards. which were both participating in the Latin Monetary Union. which also joined what then became the Scandinavian Currency Union with the Scandinavian krona as the unit of account. moreover. New external parities were established and were fixed in practice both with sterling and quite soon with a growing number of other currencies as these were tied to gold during the emergence of the classic or international gold standard. of course. Serious international financial crises occurred in 1874. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 303 by Sweden and Denmark in 1873. But it also resulted in a long series of large current-account deficits. 304 Exchange rates. and wages.1 to A6. 1277–2008 Figure 6.8. .4 Exchange rates during the gold standard 1873–1914 160 24 150 140 22 130 20 120 18 110 100 16 90 14 80 12 70 60 1875 1880 1885 1890 1895 1900 1905 1910 10 1915 Hamburg SEK/100 mark Paris SEK/100 franc Amsterdam SEK/100 gulden Antwerpen SEK/100 franc Brussels SEK/100 franc Copenhagen SEK/100 Dkr Christiania SEK/100 Nkr London(Right scale) SEK/£ Source: Tables A6. prices. however. the Bank began to trade in foreign currency to a growing extent. convertible into gold coins by the Riksbank. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 305 A 10-krona note from 1877. the Riksbank’s redemption of banknotes and the 18 Note. 10 SEK was the equivalent of 4 grams of fine gold and corresponded to a male manufacturing labourer’s pay for 40 to 50 hours’ work. Two of the directors were designated ‘delegates for foreign operations’ with the task of managing foreign exchange policy. that this change only applied to interest on short-term credit/paper. an amendment to the usury law meant that interest rates ceased to be limited to maximum 6 per cent (see Figure 6. . for instance by setting up operational functions.5). both with banks and with the general public.6. From 1864. Moreover. The Bank had been experimenting with interest rate adjustments since the crisis of 1857. In the 1870s. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet. Stockholm.18 Interest rate adjustments and financial transactions accordingly replaced the regular earlier flows of precious metal. Another important development was the Riksbank’s increasingly well-prepared discount rate adjustments to conditions abroad and to the situation in exchange markets. See also the previous illustration. moreover. to be the Riksbank’s overriding concern but the means for this were augmented. It should be born in mind that it was not until around the time of the transition to a gold standard that a number of preconditions for an efficient interest rate policy were in place.5. . The Riksbank: official discount rate 1828–1914 1830 1840 1850 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 Source: Sveriges Riksbank (1931) Del V. 1277–2008 Figure 6. J. effects of this on the credit market via the money supply as a mechanism for adjustment. possibly the most important. It is worth considering whether an interest rate policy would have been at all meaningful or effective in earlier times when international liquidity was less abundant and financial flows may not have been sufficiently large to influence with interest rates. the Bank was able to achieve an unbroken long-term accumulation of gold reserves and a corresponding growth of the money supply.19 A firm 19 Bordo and Kydland (1995). prices. Still. The private banks’ right to issue notes was finally withdrawn in 1902. Instead of constantly struggling to safeguard or replenish the silver reserves. and wages.g. Goschen’s The Theory of the Foreign Exchanges. There had been a growing understanding of how interest rates and interest rate policy work. So what is the explanation? One interpretation that has become influential is that the gold standard constituted a ‘credible commitment mechanism’. in the early 1860s this acquired a more scientific foundation.306 Exchange rates. Statistiska tabeller. for instance through G. This is evident not least in a comparison with later decades of the 20th century (see e. Another factor. the next chapter in this volume). was that both the financial system and the banking system in Sweden had not only become considerably larger and more developed but were also increasingly integrated internationally. the above is not a sufficient explanation for the outstanding stability of exchange rates during the international gold standard. Transaction costs were therefore higher during the winter because shipping became ice-bound.1. at least in peacetime. The seasonal variation in exchange rates seems to have largely 20 Lobell (2000. moreover. Silver and gold points Sweden’s foreign exchange market was affected.6.20 Initially. This integration can be connected to some extent with innovations in transport and falling transport costs but what helped above all to lower transaction costs was decreased costs for commissions. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 307 and perhaps above all a historically long-term undertaking to maintain convertibility to precious metal sent a signal to financial market participants that. The new exchange rate series which the project has yielded can be used to both extend and deepen the analyses of long-term integration. the minimised exchange rate risk meant that credit was almost always available. this variation diminished as new forms of transport. This created confidence among international creditors and investors. Borrowers in turn could disregard exchange risks. as mentioned. 2006). In that the relative level of transaction costs determined the levels of silver and gold points. the State would not go to any extremes of either fiscal or monetary policy.3. reduced the cost of moving silver by land. 6. a practice that in those days was not as dependent on seasonal conditions as shipping.3. . by an ongoing integration during the periods with a silver or gold standard. above all the construction of railways. insurance and so on. The significance of integration for the level of silver and gold points is analysed and thereby the changes in this period in the range formed by these points. the level of silver points varied seasonally because shipping was the cheapest form of transport for silver transactions. In this way. Matters were probably not made worse by the fact that Sweden had managed to uphold convertibility to precious metal ever since September 1834. The section ends with a look at the development of integration related to the Scandinavian Currency Union. brokerage. Market integration During the 19th century the credit and foreign exchange markets in Sweden underwent an extensive and thorough transformation and integration. 6. integration contributed to a long-term stabilisation of exchange rates. These processes are analysed in this section with reference to their possible importance for the concurrent development of foreign exchange rates. over time the range within which exchange rates could fluctuate without eliciting silver or gold arbitrage became narrower. In time. this meant that the distance between the silver points widened. This is followed by a study of how the transformation and integration of the Swedish credit and financial markets can be related to the process of integration. moreover. and wages. p. Integration led. i. Another factor was that during the 19th century Sweden’s foreign trade became increasingly diversified and less dependent on seasonal conditions. for example. It seems that this fall was preceded by a much steeper reduction since 1807. The Riksbank’s new Historical Monetary Statistics now permit new indirect observations of market integration in the period from 1807/08 to 1834. 2006). 1277–2008 ceased during the 1860s. foreign bills. From the present material it is not possible to conclude whether or not the above-mentioned reduction of costs for transactions between Sweden and the Continent occurred between the same periods but it does not seem improbable.308 Exchange rates. .1 together with data from Lobell (2006. so that silver could be used when the exchange rate reached a level at which it became profitable to use silver for foreign transactions despite the above-mentioned additional costs. The silver export points refer to exchange rates on Hamburg (which received virtually all the monetary silver that was exported) and are expressed as a percentage of the exchange rate parity. Transaction costs are then calculated as the difference between exchange parity and the implicit silver or gold point. pp. This assumes that normal means of payment. In a study of the integration of Anglo-American foreign exchange markets. Officer (1996. One approach to estimating costs for transactions and arbitrage involves observing the level of exchange rates in periods when we know that silver or gold was exported. the average exchange rate for the shipping season was used as an indirect measure. for the early 19th century one has to rely on indirect information from the Riksbank in Brisman (1930. Brisman states. The new observation is presented in Table 6. pp. transaction costs decreased from about two per cent to about half of one per cent of parity. 182– 185) demonstrated that transaction costs fell markedly between the periods 1791– 1800 and 1821–30. Given also that the market was efficient. when the Continent was embroiled in war and blockades. the exchange rate ought not to exceed the silver point. This tendency in the period 1834–80 has been analysed earlier in Lobell (2000. that silver was withdrawn from the Riksbank and exported at least in 1807. The figures in Table 6. as mentioned above. Comparisons between direct and indirect measurements of transaction costs have shown fairly good agreement for the period 1834–80. In this case. which led in turn to a narrowing of the range between silver or gold points and thereby contributed to increasing exchange rate stability. in which case the prevailing rate when silver was actually exported should in practice represent the silver point. In the work mentioned above.e. prices. to falling transaction costs for foreign arbitrage and transactions in silver and gold. and silver were substitutes. 8–9).1 indicate that between the end of the 1830s and the mid 1870s. export statistics for silver and gold from the Board of Trade (Kommerskollegium) served as an indicator of the years in which precious metal was exported. 316). when transaction costs for exporting silver apparently amounted to more than thirteen per cent of parity. The average exchange rate for the period from April to October would then constitute a measure of the silver export point’s level in that year. This is not entirely unreasonable in view of the situation in 1807. 1 0. foreign currency and maritime insurance.0 . foreign exchange rates are the foreign bill prices that were set in the exchanges’ auctions up to the end of 1889. This figure denotes the average of exchange rates between September 1874 and April 1875.1 1.. 1. Sources: Data for 1807 and 1808 are calculations from exchange rates on Hamburg in database Historical Monetary Statistics of Sweden 1668–2008.. . Data between 1837 and 1880 are from Lobell (2006). Fridlizius (1981.1. Swedish exchange trading in the 19th century was dominated by bills drawn on Hamburg and London. .6. ... 23 Auctions were held on two days each week when the items traded were largely goods.21 Their operations included goods.. .3 . . Andersson (2007).. Until the end of the 1870s the Swedish foreign exchange market was centred on these exchanges..6 . . ...5 1. credit. 1... 0. . Certain brokers were appointed to perform the auctions. 23 21 See e. p..2 1.4 0. .. which lasted for one hour (see Algott 1963)..3. p.. 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1. . .. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 309 Table 6. . 22 Lobell (2000.. 417).2 . 1. Year Average exchange rate Year Average exchange rate Year Average exchange rate 1807 1837 1838 1839 1840 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 * This figure is from observations by Skogman (1846). Sveriges Riksbank.9 1.. .3 . .. 1848 1849 1850 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 2. ... 1. p.2. 45)... transport and foreign exchange. They were a direct source of foreign currency to clients but foreign exchange trading was largely a matter for the exchanges in the principal towns.7* . 1. 144). Average exchange rate for the shipping season in years when specie and bullion were exported (deviation from mint parity..2 . . The Swedish financial system and foreign exchange market In the first half of the 19th century the major part of Swedish foreign exchange transactions was associated with the sizeable merchant bankers in Stockholm and Göteborg..5 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 .. which for Sweden were the most important international commercial and financial centres. Söderlund (1964..5 1. . .4** .g. per cent) Year Average exchange rate 13. ** 6.22 In the present context. . ..8 2. followed by the first private banks and mortgage institutions in 1830 and 1833. 285.27 As a 24 25 26 27 Brisman (1937. Meanwhile the Swedish banks were becoming more integrated internationally. p. Lobell (2000). new participants and practices caused the international credit and foreign exchange markets to expand and change. Bills on Hamburg and London were the most important currencies on the Swedish exchanges and bills in other currencies were traded less frequently. the rudimentary nature of Swedish credit instruments and the difficulties in promoting operations in domestic bills made Swedish commercial paper less attractive internationally.26 The Riksbank began to trade in foreign exchange on a regular basis in 1872. pp. Einzig (1962). During the boom in the 1850s. As a rule. however. it has been shown that the foreign exchange market became more sophisticated. The growth of international interbank trading in the 1860s included the Swedish banking system and helped to improve the liquidity and elasticity of the international foreign exchange market. Göteborg and Malmö. Brisman (1931. the note-issuing banking companies did not trade in foreign exchange until around 1860. 186–7). but they all failed during the international post-war crisis of 1817. 1277–2008 The role of banking companies in the foreign exchange market was very modest in the first half of the century. The Bank sold foreign currency when the foreign exchange rates were approaching the silver export point.310 Exchange rates. Besides expanding. in Stockholm. however. 222).24 Moreover. At the turn of the century. The exchanges in turn were in the process of becoming stock exchanges. discounting caught on. The Bank’s purchases of foreign currency in connection with imports of bullion were probably more extensive. The Riksbank was active in the foreign exchange market from time to time in the period with a silver standard. In the 1850s the banks also began to discount domestic bills. . though the financial bubble that accompanied this did come to a disastrous end in the crisis of 1857. respectively. in the 1880s the Bank became the central player in the Swedish interbank and foreign exchange markets. deposits and cash transactions got under way in the 1850s and made a breakthrough in the 1860s. but as the Bank’s foreign assets and drawing rights were comparatively small. This is reflected in the correspondingly large gaps in the exchange rate quotations for these currencies in the present database. The first savings banks appeared in the 1820s. however. p. and wages. its sales were relatively insignificant up to the end of the 1880s. Three private banks (discount companies) were established in 1803. It varied seasonally and was affected by the above-mentioned international credit market conditions. albeit on a very modest scale. Exchange market liquidity was rather unstable in the first half of the 19th century. in the 1860s as the number of banks increased and the banking system became more widespread. foreign exchange transactions had left the exchanges and become a natural part of banking operations. prices.25 In banking. conditions had also been created for making Swedish paper internationally acceptable on an entirely new scale. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 311 result. transformation and integration. Petersburg in 1878. As of 1882. The more or less continuous falling trend for the mean as well as the standard deviation (see Figure 6. only Swedish notes had been listed on the Copenhagen and Hamburg exchanges and virtually all the Swedish bonds that were 28 Riksbank archives: F1A:3. In a statement in 1911 about how exchange rates changed increasingly frequently. instead of the silver or gold points that were used to study external integration and the resultant exchange rate band.3. Short Swedish paper began to be quoted regularly abroad.28 Together with innovations in transportation and communication. Bror Karl Johan Langenskiöld. a somewhat different type of commodity points (or rather ‘three-month sterling bill points’) is employed in this analysis of the internal integration of the Swedish credit and foreign exchange markets.3. Previously. as we saw in the previous section. In perfectly integrated markets that conform to the law of one price. Langenskiöld related that commercial banks could obtain information about exchange rates from the Riksbank by telephone or by messenger. 6. the Riksbank’s official exchange rates served as a benchmark for the Swedish market. described how foreign currencies were priced. starting with St. The price differentials comprise both positive and negative deviations from the price of rather homogeneous three-month sterling bills on London. The Riksbank’s exchange rates were presumably adapted to the market rates. It seems that banks in Sweden normally followed the Riksbank’s exchange rates. apart of course from Swedish specie. The Scandinavian Currency Union By the time the Swedish financial system had undergone this expansion. the Bank’s principal delegate. His account shows that the Bank set exchange rates on the basis of information cabled from foreign markets. . to both the internal and the international integration of the Swedish foreign exchange market. Thus. the Bank’s rates are included in the database as of 1890. The integration of the Swedish foreign exchange market is illustrated below in terms of a one-year moving average of daily price differentials for three-month bills on London between the exchanges in Stockholm and Göteborg from 1843 (when the Göteborg exchange was established) to 1880. Swedish bills were also being listed in the major international financial centres.6. prices should be completely uniform. One way of measuring this integration involves studying the development of price differentials for equivalent financial assets at geographically separate markets.6) indicates a correspondingly continuous rate of integration of the Swedish foreign exchange market and presumably of the Swedish financial system as a whole. this qualitative transformation and development of the Swedish credit and foreign exchange markets contributed. 161). bonds denominated in Swedish currency were marketable internationally. A more unexpected finding is that the Hamburg exchange rate quotations for Scandinavian currencies show a slightly rising trend over as much as fifteen to twenty years. One-year moving average of daily market quotations 1843–80. The x-axis indicates the month and year of the last observation in 52-week series (104 trading days).312 Exchange rates. which has not been noted earlier for exchange rates under the gold standard. Mean and standard deviation of absolute price differentials between the Stockholm and Göteborg exchanges (SEK/pound sterling). pp. (Moving sample: n=104) (Log scale) 0. Source: Modified from Lobell (2000.04 0. From the 1880s onwards.06 0. The present project’s new data with Scandinavian bill prices from Hamburg confirm Talia’s observations in that they show that certain small price deviations occurred initially but became even smaller over time (see Figure 6.6. 135–153) has shown that the Scandinavian Currency Union and. Thus. the first observation concerns 104 price differentials in the period from 3 January 1843 to 2 January 1844. traded abroad had been made out in foreign currency. perhaps above all. 1277–2008 Figure 6. p.7). The stable currency based on gold and membership of the Scandinavian Currency Union were naturally no less important in this respect.10 0. A .08 0. the Union’s clearing agreement in the late 1880s promoted the integration of foreign exchange markets in Scandinavia. Talia (2004.12 0. and wages. prices.02 1845 1850 1855 1860 1865 1870 1875 1880 Mean Standard Deviation Note. The Swedish centres for the foreign exchange market. There still seems to have been some price differential at the outbreak of the First World War. 0. reveals a price differential that diminishes in the long run. from . 6. The price differential amounted at most to c.6 112.4 112.6 111.0 111. had been introduced on the internationally more important exchanges as recently as 1882.8 112.6.7.2 112. the most probable explanation is that it represented a risk premium which presumably concerned two circumstances. at least up to the 1870s.8 111.0 112.0 1885 1890 1895 1900 1905 1910 Copenhagen mark/100 DKK Stockholm mark/100 SEK Christiania mark/100 NOK Hamburg/Berlin mark/100 SEK Source: See the main text. as mentioned. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 313 Figure 6. Christiania) and German bills in Stockholm 1882–1913 (Hamburg/Berlin) (mark/100 kronor) 113. One part of the premium can relate to uncertainty about how the Currency Union and the gold standard would succeed in the Scandinavian countries.7 per cent of parity. Exchange rate data 1804–1914: description and sources Foreign exchange rates in the 19th century were actually prices for foreign bills of exchange. Stockholm. comparison of Hamburg bid prices for Scandinavian bills with prices for bills drawn on Hamburg/Berlin and priced in Stockholm.2 111. Exchange rates for Scandinavian bills of exchange in Hamburg Börse (Copenhagen. were the Stockholm exchange and. which show no trend. Most of the trading from which the price information in this project has been obtained was done on the exchanges. The other part can be due to the international markets still being somewhat sceptical about Scandinavian bills of exchange which.4.4 111. their prices sometimes include other components besides the ‘true’ exchange rate. Ed. The volume of interbank trading and the Riksbank’s trading gradually outweighed exchange trading as the period drew to a close. bills on the Hamburg exchange. the exchange in Göteborg. For the period 1890–1914 the exchange rates in this database are the Riksbank’s and have been compiled from the Bank’s internal documents. statistical volume for the history of the Riksbank that was published in 1931. The actual rate of exchange is our concern but as bills are financial instruments. usually had 67 days to maturity. interest rate series from the financial centres where the bills were made 29 Sveriges Riksbank (1931). On the Stockholm exchange. Es.e. the sight rate for a sight bill. Sight rates and time bills Assembling 19th century exchange rate data is not entirely straightforward. which means that the calculation of an actual sight exchange rate has to allow for trade practices and time to maturity. Prior to 1847. The underlying data cover almost all trading days (i. foreign bills were traded on Tuesdays and Fridays. for example. The market quotations for bills on the Stockholm exchange have been obtained from two daily newspapers: Aftonbladet and Post.4. 30 Sveriges Riksbank (1931. prices. for example. two per week) from 1800 to 1889. where the interest rate at the financial centre where the bill was made out is given by i: Es = Ed ⎛ i ⎞⎛ d ⎞ 1−⎜ ⎟⎜ ⎟ ⎝ 100 ⎠⎝ 365 ⎠ (1) Eliminating the discount gives bill rates that are closer to the ‘true’ exchange rates.och Inrikes Tidningar was also the basis for those statistics. Take. . can be derived by simply cancelling the discount on a time bill.30 As mentioned in the previous section. 1277–2008 its establishment in 1842. p. Foreign bills were normally priced with a discount for the time to maturity.29 Information from the manuscript has been used mainly for the periods 1800–34 and 1881–89. In the first half of the century. 142). and wages. market quotations for foreign bills were based on usance or a time perspective. Another source is the manuscript for the fifth. Market quotations were published regularly by local newspapers. time bill Ed with d days to the due date. However.314 Exchange rates. In this study. the trade practices and the way in which foreign exchange rates were quoted changed in the latter part of the century. 6.1.och Inrikes Tidningar. However. a note on sources in the above-mentioned volume makes it clear that the daily newspaper Post. Trade in Swedish bills in financial centres abroad started as late as in 1882. 9 with rates that were reconstructed by applying equation 1 above. etc. stated that this was a common procedure for discounting maturity periods at the Stockholm exchange in the mid-19th century. calculations were invariably done in this way. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 315 out have served as a basis for calculating sight or ‘true’ exchange rates in accordance with equation 1.00 0. p. p.54 0.org). The results show fairly good agreement in terms of the level of the series and its medium. and for Paris for the period 1804–53. It could be argued that this approach should also be adopted for the period to which Nordström refers. as there are no grounds for assuming that. as mentioned. 125) and is based on calculations of monthly averages using O. Nordström (1853. In a book on the credit market. J. A standardised rate of five per cent has then been used instead. that the foreign exchange market became more ‘refined’ in the mid-19th century. since there is insufficient information on maturity periods. It should be noted.nber. It represents the difference between a series of time bill quotations and a series of estimated quotations of sight rates in the period 1834–52. An exchange rate series from which discounting has been eliminated is presented in Figure 6. in practice.69 1.54 Sight or short sight 0. which meant that more consideration was paid to maturity periods. The foreign exchange historian Paul Einzig (1962. For the latter part of the 19th century. The interest rate series from London for the period 1836–80 is ‘Minimum Rate of Discount. Gaedechen’s annotations.2 Correlation between first differences for unprocessed. head of the national archives and subsequently bank inspector. Actual sight rates are compared in Figure 6.54 Calculated 0. J.00 0. postal days. grace periods.31 In our opinion. respectively.69 0. that there is no direct evidence to show that five per cent was used as a standard rate in the early part of the 19th century. monthly interest rate data for Hamburg and London are missing for the period 1804–23 as well as for 1835. which makes it possible to compare the ‘accuracy’ of the sight rate calculations. Bank of England’ and comes from NBER online Macro History Database (http://www. p. The interest rate series from Hamburg for the period 1824–52 is ‘Discont an der Hamburger Börse’ from Soetbeer (1855. However. Table 6. The figure is not simply guesswork. 175) has claimed. which is based in turn on information from The Economist.6. however.00 31 Note that postal days and grace periods are not considered in the present calculations. 161). reconstructed and original series 1870–80 3-month Sight or short sight Calculated 3-month 1.54 1.and long-term variation. though. There has been no elimination of the discount for time bills on Amsterdam and Copenhagen during the periods 1804–52 and 1804–34. it is preferable to use the actual discount rate whenever this is available.8. . C. quotations are available for both sight and time bills. 6 18.1 18 17.9 Comparison of a reconstructed and an original series of sight rates 1870–80 (SEK/£) 18.2 18.6 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 Exchange rate on £ at Stockholm Exchange.8 An original series compared with a series with discounting eliminated (skilling banco per reichsthaler Hamburg banco) 140 138 136 134 132 130 128 126 124 1834 1836 1838 Original series 1840 1842 1844 1846 1848 1850 Series with discounting eliminated Source: See the main text.9 17. Figure 6. .5 18. and wages.4 18.316 Exchange rates. prices.8 17. sight rate Source: See the main text.7 17.3 18. 1277–2008 Figure 6. reconstructed Estimated monthly average. with 32 to obtain skilling banco. the rate in SEK.5 to obtain reichsthaler Hamburg banco in the denominator. one may multiply the numerator.5 riksdaler riksgälds = 1. This is even clearer in a more thorough comparison of the short-term (monthly) changes in the reconstructed and the ‘actual’ exchange rates.16 skilling banco per reichsthal er Hamburg banco . for example. if an exchange rate for example in August 1846. and to convert 128 skilling banco into riksdaler banco the figure in skillings is divided by 48 (128 ÷ 48 = 2 2/3 riksdaler banco [or 2 riksdaler banco and 32 skilling banco]). Accordingly. K.5 ⎟ ⎥ ⎠ ⎦ ⎣ ⎝ 100 = 12816 100 = 128. and divide marks with 4. or into riksdaler banco by dividing it with 1.5 (50 ÷ 1. Thus. (probably the banker Knut Wallenberg) writes. 33 For example. on the other hand.2 it will be seen that the first differences of the unprocessed series for 3-month and sight rates are more closely correlated than those of the reconstructed series.33 Quotations during the period 1804–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange. Between 1804 and 1857.6. p. Appendix A6.W. to convert for example 50 kronor in order to obtain skilling banco the figure in kronor is multiplied by 32 (50 × 32 = 1600 skilling banco). 995) that mark banco (of Hamburg and Altona) had a value somewhat above 1. and finally divide the rate with 100: ⎡ (89 × 32 )⎤ ⎢ ⎥ ⎢ ⎥ ⎢ ⎛ 1 ⎞ ⎥ ⎢ ⎜ 4.5 SEK.5 = 33 1/3 riksdaler banco [or 33 riksdaler banco and 16 skilling banco]). from 1858 to 1872 they were made in riksdaler riksmynt per 100 marks Hamburg banco and between 1873 and 1914 in kronor per 100 marks (in some instances referred to as riksmark or reichsmark). Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 317 There is some difference. in the encyclopedia Nordisk familjebok (1911. in order to convert 128 skilling banco into kronor (or riksdaler riksgälds or riksdaler riksmynt) the figure in skillings is divided by 32 (128 ÷ 32 = 4 kronor). From Table 6. quotations on Hamburg were made in skilling banco per reichsthaler Hamburg banco.50 reichsmark. while the Riksbank’s official quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. 89 SEK per 100 mark.A. is converted to obtain the original rate expressed in skilling banco per reichsthaler Hamburg banco. 32 The exact conversion rate in the transition period 1871–76 between mark Hamburg banco and mark is not entirely clear in the literature.5 marks32 and 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 32 skilling banco and 1 riksdaler banco = 48 skilling banco = 1. Conversions into SEK/100 marks have been done on the basis of 1 reichsthaler Hamburg banco = 3 marks Hamburg banco = 4. in the pattern of short-term variations.1 Quotations on Hamburg and Hamburg/Berlin The currency units that were most important for the Swedish foreign exchange market as regards quotations on Hamburg and Hamburg/Berlin changed a few times during the period and have been converted into consistent series of SEK per 100 marks. Consequently the discount embedded in the prices has to be added in order to obtain exchange rates short sight or sight. and wages. Quotations are short sight for the period 1848–80 and sight for 1881–1914. 1277–2008 The Harbour of Hamburg. endof-month 1834–80 and monthly average 1890–14. Official Riksbank quotations on ‘Hamburg/Berlin’ 1890–1914 are from unpublished material in the Bank. The sources for the periods 1804–33 and 1881–89 are unpublished tables that most likely were the basis for calculations for the fifth. . The primary instruments traded on the Stockholm stock exchange between 1804 and 1847 were 67-day bills drawn on Hamburg. The exact calculations and data sources are presented in the previous section of this chapter. prices.318 Exchange rates. by Anders Zorn (1860–1920). Bills on Hamburg were the most quoted foreign currency in Sweden in the first half of the 19th century. daily newspapers are reported to be the sources in that volume. statistical volume in Sveriges Riksbank (1931). Source: Nationalmuseum. Observations are monthly mid-range in the periods 1804–33 and 1881–89. Daily newspapers (mostly Post och inrikes tidningar and Aftonbladet) are sources for Hamburg quotations in the period 1834–80. 96 89.47 90.71 90.52 88.48 36.80 May 35.58 81.25 92.83 103.62 89.90 97.86 90.92 89.05 89.53 88.49 84.86 92.94 92.89 89.58 88.47 84.32 94.04 39.49 90.37 39.67 36.91 84.62 81.14 90.83 73.48 35.66 37.10 102.75 55.52 71.28 89.30 92.52 89.20 90.49 88.21 86.88 66.23 77.70 90.15 Jul 35.61 88.79 89.45 62.39 91.93 Dec 36.33 53.53 92.81 86.60 103.95 97.57 36.84 77.24 65.92 37.83 89.40 90.34 88.04 96.30 84.32 88.48 94.88 90.89 75.10 89.98 85.10 65.32 90.61 71.24 88.40 94.42 90.78 35.25 93.31 36.42 89.57 87.85 89.51 90.50 80.85 88.18 85.08 84.66 90.65 90.96 85.96 88.88 91.93 96.55 88.96 90.10 75.79 77.91 77.76 89.26 94.01 89.51 86.16 88.27 59.03 64.73 65.75 86.30 Feb 35.18 60.37 76.10 82.36 90.22 87.56 35.24 91.06 89.42 88.00 93.91 90.35 91.53 89.15 43.38 89.04 37.45 44.61 86.11 94.56 89.90 101.00 87.67 90.07 38.09 62.77 90.89 90.66 89.11 72.54 84.22 88.49 81.63 90.10 89.85 101.31 89.71 97.80 88.32 88.53 75.89 71.54 90.39 91.37 91.66 34.60 74.62 92.01 38.09 90.00 88.29 91.12 89. Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg.76 90.90 94.66 89.11 91.57 35.89 90.18 65.28 65.81 87.42 85.32 88.85 95.63 76.25 87.85 77.07 91.41 95.18 99.41 36.67 101.00 90.57 35.55 90.93 88.12 89.85 103.74 91.51 81.16 58.19 96.14 87.80 86.20 89.63 68.16 90.83 95.32 92.75 89.35 89.04 91.40 91.24 91.39 83.87 36.15 39.40 88.03 60.83 89.65 77.89 97.11 77.40 97.96 89.57 90.11 72.30 88.30 89.37 90.41 93.04 88.20 92.67 101.81 95.15 48.36 34.90 103.23 96.31 36.95 45.05 88.60 89.31 89.40 63.31 88.37 37.20 99.37 90.55 90.34 90.28 81.30 88.16 85.96 87.89 91. Jan 1804 1805 1806 1807 1808 1809 1810 1811 1812 1813 1814 1815 1816 1817 1818 1819 1820 1821 1822 1823 1824 1825 1826 1827 1828 1829 1830 1831 1832 1833 1834 1835 1836 1837 1838 1839 1840 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 1848 72.55 90.80 89.37 76.04 88.31 89.89 89.03 91.97 103.2 101.43 72.85 96.67 99.90 103.53 Nov 36.95 91.18 Aug 35.43 93.00 88.41 36.45 90.87 94.71 86.22 37.45 65.69 86.36 89.20 91.26 88.17 87.02 90.85 89.67 63.40 85.83 65.45 Jun 35.05 92.74 90.33 91.22 83.18 47.63 91.83 90.63 97.35 87.25 44.37 90.40 90.16 70.36 89.66 88.24 90.57 88.83 78.32 93.78 103.18 34.67 89.79 70.00 94.63 92.31 89.60 86.92 84.48 34.54 90.64 88.62 35.30 80.90 88.49 62.87 39.18 65.19 71.67 37.50 88.11 91.50 87.65 69.54 89.53 65.95 102.6.83 35.34 89.03 90.10 85.33 85.70 89.77 95.89 86.59 95.18 35.97 93.71 87.65 89.62 88.60 99.92 36.98 Apr 35.68 89.57 88.05 62.21 84.65 87.40 91.65 97. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914.80 88.69 88.11 88.32 64.49 91.90 88.95 44.44 94.15 37.86 54.85 36.83 90.89 95.54 91.57 35.11 94.28 84.94 82.51 90.78 102.13 89.27 35.57 88.39 100.00 89.10 103.22 89.91 89.57 89.58 92.95 89.42 39.95 96.73 Oct 35.48 60.59 90.81 95.11 87.97 77.50 86.69 89.41 93.90 39.78 35.06 94.84 66.49 88.61 85.65 89.94 91.65 94.63 55.66 38.27 91.07 87.45 40.43 89.32 74.74 90.42 85.66 90.41 85.97 36.24 89.78 39.27 34.63 64.63 92.91 90.17 88.35 90.91 93.63 .29 80.87 90.69 80.04 88.00 89.34 89.25 86.50 50.89 88.29 88.13 77.34 89.21 77.52 83.28 51.51 87.18 97.71 86.19 78.11 88.37 37.96 90.11 97.20 90.10 83.17 85.58 95.57 73.04 86.91 88.93 90.76 89.32 79.00 86.95 87.16 88.35 100.96 37.54 90.17 89.31 89.19 102.45 90.09 67.62 97.94 75.48 35.07 91.25 37.48 81.64 81.08 89.95 86.52 92. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 319 Table A6.01 72.1.71 90.88 95.08 91.34 71.18 85.54 90.45 44.57 96.71 65.81 89.31 84.40 100.50 89.10 88.61 86.00 86.78 91.52 88.87 89.21 85.68 90.73 Sep 35.66 37.24 90.48 34.11 78.65 48.06 85.89 89.45 42.95 38.81 68.43 70.95 76.45 92.76 Mar 35.36 86.37 90.83 91.30 89.28 91.38 88.30 92.91 86.12 88.94 89.50 80.24 91.25 81. 320 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A6.1 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914. Jan 1849 1850 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 91.67 89.93 90.28 89.93 89.06 89.24 89.58 89.58 91.15 94.11 90.78 89.77 90.84 90.27 89.60 89.94 89.44 89.77 89.77 89.77 89.77 88.99 88.77 88.27 88.42 89.30 89.25 89.15 89.00 89.15 89.10 89.03 88.98 89.21 89.19 89.10 89.11 89.23 89.10 89.07 89.09 89.12 89.24 89.18 88.99 Feb 91.49 89.76 89.76 89.93 88.89 89.06 89.93 89.81 91.15 90.24 89.77 89.94 90.60 90.27 89.44 89.60 89.44 89.77 89.60 89.60 89.60 88.99 88.77 88.20 89.00 89.20 89.10 88.90 89.00 89.15 89.10 88.87 89.00 89.20 89.11 89.07 89.10 89.14 89.11 89.10 89.08 89.05 89.25 89.01 88.91 Mar 90.97 89.41 89.41 89.24 88.89 89.24 89.76 89.81 89.93 90.10 89.93 89.77 89.94 89.54 89.60 89.60 89.27 89.60 89.44 89.44 89.34 88.99 88.67 88.20 88.90 89.10 89.00 88.90 89.00 89.15 89.10 88.80 88.99 89.16 89.09 89.04 89.08 89.01 89.08 89.12 88.99 89.08 89.13 88.95 88.86 Apr 90.28 89.24 89.24 89.41 88.89 89.06 89.41 89.41 89.58 90.10 89.70 89.60 89.94 89.77 89.60 89.60 89.27 89.77 89.44 89.34 89.30 88.99 88.60 88.20 89.35 89.15 88.90 88.90 88.95 89.15 89.10 88.87 88.99 89.15 89.06 89.01 89.15 88.96 89.12 89.12 88.93 89.13 89.04 88.91 88.85 May 90.28 89.24 89.24 89.58 89.06 89.06 89.24 89.41 89.58 89.67 90.27 89.27 89.84 89.44 89.60 89.54 89.27 89.77 89.54 89.44 89.27 88.99 88.50 88.20 89.75 89.00 88.75 88.90 89.00 89.15 89.10 88.86 89.09 89.15 89.03 89.01 89.20 89.00 89.15 89.05 88.90 89.10 88.90 88.90 88.85 Jun 89.58 88.89 88.89 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.41 89.24 88.89 89.17 90.10 89.44 89.44 89.60 89.60 89.60 89.44 90.10 89.44 89.60 89.20 88.94 88.37 88.10 89.35 88.90 88.80 88.85 89.00 89.10 88.90 88.81 88.90 89.13 88.98 88.93 89.11 88.97 89.11 89.04 88.89 89.20 88.94 88.96 88.87 Jul 89.24 89.06 89.58 89.58 89.06 89.06 89.24 89.58 89.76 90.10 89.94 89.54 89.77 89.27 89.60 89.60 89.44 90.10 89.44 89.94 89.10 89.84 88.30 88.10 89.40 89.00 89.00 88.85 89.00 89.10 88.90 88.81 88.98 89.14 89.03 89.00 89.13 88.95 89.10 89.00 88.91 89.14 89.03 88.94 88.99 Aug 89.41 89.24 89.41 89.76 89.06 89.06 89.24 89.88 89.58 89.77 89.43 89.60 89.44 89.27 89.10 89.50 89.60 89.77 89.38 89.94 89.04 89.27 88.30 88.44 89.40 89.00 89.00 88.85 89.00 89.10 88.85 88.84 89.00 89.14 89.00 89.03 89.19 88.95 89.09 88.97 88.93 89.10 89.12 88.86 89.01 Sep 89.58 89.06 89.24 88.72 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.70 89.06 88.99 89.43 89.77 89.77 89.44 89.44 89.77 89.60 89.60 89.34 89.94 88.87 88.99 88.27 88.27 89.10 88.90 89.05 88.90 89.20 89.10 88.85 88.91 89.08 89.08 89.01 89.06 89.23 88.95 89.10 89.01 88.95 89.13 89.18 88.94 89.13 Oct 90.28 89.24 89.58 89.24 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.76 89.58 89.26 89.43 89.70 89.44 89.60 89.60 89.44 89.60 89.77 89.44 89.34 88.87 88.94 88.30 88.27 88.80 89.25 89.20 89.00 89.20 89.10 89.15 88.94 89.18 89.05 88.98 89.11 89.29 89.01 89.10 89.12 88.99 89.21 89.20 88.98 89.18 Nov 90.28 90.80 89.24 89.24 89.06 89.06 89.06 89.93 90.28 89.77 89.43 89.94 90.10 89.77 89.94 89.44 89.44 89.77 89.44 89.37 88.99 88.94 88.27 87.93 89.00 89.25 89.10 88.90 89.10 89.00 89.10 89.00 89.18 89.11 89.04 89.10 89.27 89.10 89.09 89.15 89.11 89.28 89.21 88.95 89.19 Dec 89.76 90.28 90.80 89.06 89.24 89.58 89.35 90.63 92.36 90.61 89.43 89.94 90.44 89.77 90.27 89.44 89.60 89.60 89.50 89.60 88.99 88.94 88.20 87.93 88.75 89.00 89.00 88.90 89.10 89.00 89.05 88.99 89.18 89.22 89.10 89.14 89.27 89.10 89.05 89.15 89.20 89.30 89.20 88.99 89.17 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 321 Table A6.1 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Hamburg. SEK per 100 marks 1804–1914. Jan 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 89.07 88.90 88.88 89.14 89.01 89.20 89.10 89.00 88.96 89.01 89.04 88.92 89.01 89.18 89.36 88.90 89.06 88.97 88.94 89.04 88.90 Feb 88.91 88.90 88.93 89.07 88.93 89.20 89.10 88.98 88.94 89.00 89.05 88.93 88.96 89.15 89.18 88.91 89.02 89.00 88.92 89.15 88.90 Mar 88.88 88.90 88.93 89.00 88.90 89.22 89.11 88.95 88.95 89.02 89.07 88.88 88.95 89.19 89.22 88.99 89.05 88.95 88.99 89.58 88.98 Apr 88.84 88.86 88.90 88.98 88.90 89.18 89.12 88.95 88.95 88.97 89.05 88.80 88.90 89.15 89.22 88.99 88.97 88.90 88.93 89.17 88.94 May 88.85 88.85 88.89 88.95 88.96 89.08 89.10 88.86 88.95 89.00 89.07 88.77 88.87 89.12 89.20 88.94 88.97 88.90 88.90 89.15 89.01 Jun 88.85 88.85 88.90 88.95 88.98 89.02 89.08 88.88 88.95 89.02 89.03 88.80 88.88 89.07 89.22 88.92 88.95 88.89 88.95 89.18 89.01 Jul 88.85 88.86 88.90 88.95 89.03 88.96 89.08 88.90 88.90 89.05 89.02 88.87 88.92 89.05 89.07 89.02 88.95 88.90 88.90 89.12 89.00 Aug 88.87 88.90 88.90 88.95 89.01 88.99 89.01 88.87 88.90 89.07 88.91 88.87 88.97 89.12 88.97 88.96 88.97 88.86 88.90 89.13 89.16 Sep 88.90 88.90 88.95 89.01 89.07 89.05 89.07 88.91 88.88 89.14 89.02 88.91 89.06 89.19 88.98 88.96 88.99 88.95 88.95 89.10 89.26 Oct 88.90 88.87 89.06 89.04 89.13 89.12 89.10 88.97 88.90 89.13 89.13 88.91 89.07 89.26 88.94 89.04 88.92 88.99 88.97 89.11 87.62 Nov 88.90 88.87 89.10 89.05 89.11 89.15 89.01 88.95 88.87 89.07 89.17 88.98 89.10 89.31 88.87 89.09 88.92 88.95 88.97 89.04 84.97 Dec 88.90 88.83 89.13 89.05 89.17 89.09 89.00 88.97 88.91 89.02 89.04 89.07 89.12 89.38 88.89 89.04 88.94 88.91 89.04 88.93 87.41 Sources: 1804–33 and 1881–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1834– 80: Post och inrikes tidningar and Aftonbladet; 1890–1914: Riksbankens växelkurser på Hamburg/Berlin, 1890–1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Appendix A6.2 Quotations on London As the British currency was unchanged throughout the 19th century, even though it was officially converted into a monometallic gold currency in 1816, calculating consistent series of SEK per £1 is a simple matter. Quotations for bills drawn on London were made in skilling banco per £1 before 1858, in riksdaler riksmynt per £1 between 1858 and 1872 and in kronor per £1 thereafter. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been done on the basis of 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 32 skilling banco. Sterling quotations in the period 1804–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange, while the Riksbank’s official quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. Observations are monthly mid-range in the periods 1804–42 and 1881–89 and monthly average in 1843–80 and 1890–1914. The sources for periods 1804–42 and 1881–89 are unpublished tables from the Riksbank; daily newspapers are reported to be the sources in that volume. Daily newspapers (Post och inrikes tidningar, Aftonbladet and Göteborgs handels- och sjöfartstidning) are sources for daily London quotations 322 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 in the period 1843–80 from which monthly averages have been calculated. Official quotations on London 1890–1914 are from unpublished material in the Bank. The most homogeneous series of quotations on London before 1870 are 90-day sterling bills. Consequently the discount that was deducted from these prices has to be added in order to obtain exchange rates short sight or sight. The exact calculations and data sources are presented in the previous section. Table A6.2. Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. Jan 1804 1805 1806 1807 1808 1809 1810 1811 1812 1813 1814 1815 1816 1817 1818 1819 1820 1821 1822 1823 1824 1825 1826 1827 1828 1829 1830 1831 1832 1833 1834 1835 1836 1837 1838 1839 1840 6.74 6.98 6.36 7.48 7.15 6.76 8.16 9.58 9.72 10.25 11.50 13.07 13.54 16.20 14.15 16.69 19.46 18.48 18.10 18.35 18.49 18.55 17.38 20.12 18.73 17.21 18.50 19.43 20.50 21.55 19.51 18.81 18.26 17.89 18.64 18.36 18.31 Feb 6.68 7.06 6.60 7.40 6.96 6.76 7.78 9.59 9.74 10.63 11.49 13.23 15.06 14.52 14.43 15.61 18.98 18.45 18.10 18.32 18.38 18.55 17.70 19.69 18.54 17.38 18.78 19.22 20.93 21.63 19.48 18.80 18.36 17.93 18.58 18.23 18.29 Mar 6.83 7.06 6.71 7.23 6.80 6.88 8.57 9.60 9.75 10.69 11.52 12.12 15.95 13.79 14.37 15.99 18.96 18.54 17.44 18.25 18.46 18.10 18.16 19.99 18.53 17.44 18.79 19.42 20.93 21.58 19.52 18.85 18.31 18.15 18.89 17.96 18.35 Apr 6.96 7.06 6.58 7.28 6.74 6.94 8.46 9.62 9.76 9.37 11.17 11.88 15.69 15.95 14.33 15.29 19.08 17.85 17.71 18.05 18.53 17.49 18.47 19.73 18.35 17.71 18.79 19.41 21.13 21.47 19.26 18.81 18.26 18.35 18.79 17.63 18.13 May 7.06 7.01 6.90 7.21 6.82 6.93 8.84 9.63 9.77 10.19 10.33 12.64 15.82 15.22 14.14 15.82 19.24 17.06 17.96 18.33 18.51 17.32 18.45 19.78 18.12 17.65 18.85 19.74 21.51 21.47 19.11 18.69 18.17 18.73 18.71 17.73 18.29 Jun 7.02 6.96 6.74 7.12 6.79 6.91 9.56 9.64 9.78 10.62 10.36 12.51 16.45 15.41 14.80 16.44 19.33 17.40 16.89 18.07 18.48 17.37 19.09 20.09 18.28 17.78 18.86 19.91 21.01 21.51 19.06 18.02 17.76 18.73 18.70 17.76 18.15 Jul 7.02 6.91 6.76 7.02 6.81 6.91 9.14 9.65 9.80 10.63 10.92 12.64 17.09 14.93 14.49 17.47 19.13 17.43 18.22 17.83 18.55 17.13 19.11 19.69 18.28 17.55 18.28 19.84 21.32 20.72 18.84 18.27 17.74 18.65 18.51 17.84 18.17 Aug 6.98 6.71 6.80 6.94 6.80 7.07 9.37 9.66 9.81 11.33 11.36 12.64 17.67 14.98 14.53 17.84 18.70 17.97 18.01 18.05 18.58 17.24 19.01 19.58 17.74 17.45 18.59 19.76 21.26 20.01 18.84 18.27 17.75 18.79 18.49 17.72 17.86 Sep 6.93 6.58 6.64 6.85 6.79 7.10 9.59 9.68 9.41 11.61 11.79 13.02 17.34 14.68 14.28 17.57 17.97 17.37 17.96 18.21 18.60 17.11 19.43 19.08 17.81 17.65 18.46 19.54 20.93 19.36 18.72 18.25 17.76 18.76 18.41 17.79 17.64 Oct 6.91 6.33 6.76 6.99 6.79 7.04 9.65 9.69 9.60 10.99 11.50 13.40 17.34 13.91 14.01 17.67 16.96 18.05 18.10 18.60 18.59 17.34 19.70 18.79 17.21 18.22 18.78 20.10 21.32 19.92 18.53 18.30 17.77 19.03 18.46 17.64 17.63 Nov 7.15 6.39 7.07 7.01 6.80 7.06 9.56 9.70 9.81 11.07 11.99 13.54 17.34 13.69 14.36 18.72 18.48 18.48 18.14 18.60 18.57 17.10 19.74 19.23 17.08 18.85 19.74 20.18 21.38 19.55 18.98 18.25 17.91 18.98 18.48 17.95 17.91 Dec 6.90 6.17 6.91 7.09 6.77 7.15 9.57 9.71 9.87 11.74 12.37 13.54 17.97 14.81 15.06 19.74 18.73 18.22 18.13 18.58 18.60 17.24 19.74 18.86 17.39 18.58 19.33 20.31 21.42 20.12 18.90 18.19 18.02 18.88 18.30 17.95 17.88 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 323 Table A6.2 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. Jan 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 1848 1849 1850 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 17.90 18.67 18.90 18.76 18.28 18.15 17.98 18.46 18.88 18.47 17.85 18.17 17.59 17.55 17.72 18.04 18.01 18.55 18.06 17.69 18.05 18.11 17.77 17.84 17.78 18.03 17.94 18.11 18.14 17.97 17.92 17.75 17.96 18.03 18.27 18.19 18.14 18.21 18.21 18.15 18.16 18.24 18.17 18.19 18.26 18.21 Feb 18.03 18.75 18.90 18.73 18.36 18.19 17.91 18.33 18.76 18.48 18.01 18.22 17.63 17.58 17.82 18.22 18.12 18.24 17.93 17.77 18.08 18.09 17.86 17.81 17.80 18.14 17.98 18.09 18.15 17.96 17.96 17.78 18.01 18.10 18.25 18.21 18.19 18.17 18.19 18.15 18.22 18.27 18.22 18.24 18.27 18.21 Mar 18.10 18.67 18.86 18.67 18.21 18.20 17.86 18.66 18.56 18.45 17.95 18.08 17.69 17.49 17.84 18.40 18.01 17.96 17.81 17.75 18.10 17.94 17.79 17.78 17.83 18.10 17.99 18.09 18.12 17.97 17.94 17.76 17.94 18.09 18.25 18.22 18.18 18.19 18.20 18.16 18.21 18.25 18.23 18.25 18.29 18.18 Apr 18.22 18.61 18.78 18.63 18.20 18.18 17.93 18.89 18.51 18.48 17.87 18.14 17.70 17.44 18.06 18.32 17.93 17.88 17.79 17.77 18.03 17.98 17.85 17.80 17.86 18.07 17.92 18.05 18.17 18.00 17.93 17.82 17.99 18.11 18.27 18.16 18.15 18.21 18.19 18.14 18.23 18.24 18.21 18.22 18.27 18.18 May 18.41 18.37 18.87 18.57 18.15 18.28 18.02 18.97 18.49 18.40 17.81 18.23 17.72 17.56 17.96 18.25 17.89 17.90 17.61 17.73 18.08 17.91 17.86 17.92 17.91 18.03 17.98 18.08 18.17 17.97 17.95 17.88 18.05 18.09 18.28 18.12 18.20 18.21 18.16 18.15 18.23 18.24 18.22 18.20 18.24 18.19 Jun 18.22 18.36 18.74 18.35 18.19 18.30 17.99 18.61 18.48 18.21 17.84 18.17 17.71 17.62 17.89 18.09 17.78 17.75 17.59 17.68 18.05 17.90 17.85 17.86 17.92 17.86 17.97 18.08 18.15 17.94 17.90 17.84 18.02 18.07 18.28 18.15 18.21 18.19 18.13 18.17 18.22 18.23 18.24 18.20 18.19 18.16 Jul 18.16 18.56 18.62 18.16 18.17 18.16 17.95 18.49 18.45 18.11 17.87 18.10 17.63 17.64 17.87 17.89 17.78 17.92 17.64 17.70 18.16 17.89 17.90 17.87 17.90 17.99 17.99 18.10 18.14 17.82 17.80 17.90 18.05 18.11 18.26 18.16 18.17 18.22 18.17 18.19 18.23 18.23 18.24 18.20 18.18 18.15 Aug 18.17 18.53 18.62 18.19 18.10 18.19 17.98 18.51 18.44 18.12 17.90 18.05 17.66 17.71 17.83 17.96 17.88 18.08 17.68 17.76 18.07 17.83 17.96 18.00 17.99 18.15 18.05 18.11 18.11 18.01 17.80 17.94 18.03 18.20 18.15 18.18 18.18 18.28 18.18 18.19 18.23 18.23 18.25 18.19 18.18 18.17 Sep 18.22 18.28 18.60 18.10 18.09 18.14 18.01 18.34 18.44 18.09 17.89 18.03 17.63 17.73 17.78 17.81 17.77 17.85 17.70 17.74 18.12 17.75 17.85 17.89 17.95 17.90 18.07 18.10 17.98 17.99 17.77 17.84 17.99 18.17 18.13 18.18 18.23 18.29 18.17 18.18 18.23 18.23 18.23 18.18 18.19 18.17 Oct 18.29 18.56 18.54 18.01 18.02 18.05 18.18 18.35 18.48 18.04 18.01 17.92 17.63 17.74 17.87 17.76 17.75 17.78 17.63 17.71 18.13 17.72 17.77 17.93 17.98 17.90 18.04 18.06 17.92 17.94 17.87 17.96 18.08 18.18 18.09 18.16 18.25 18.24 18.12 18.17 18.24 18.20 18.18 18.18 18.18 18.17 Nov 18.48 18.81 18.70 18.18 18.00 18.02 18.34 18.61 18.65 18.06 18.12 17.72 17.53 17.71 17.89 17.86 18.04 17.85 17.66 17.81 18.05 17.72 17.84 17.90 17.96 17.93 18.06 18.02 17.93 17.88 17.82 18.04 18.14 18.23 18.08 18.13 18.26 18.24 18.16 18.13 18.22 18.18 18.17 18.22 18.18 18.18 Dec 18.53 18.69 18.75 18.17 18.10 18.12 18.48 18.78 18.49 17.85 18.19 17.61 17.56 17.66 17.93 17.90 18.45 18.05 17.68 17.93 18.12 17.75 17.85 17.76 17.92 17.88 18.08 18.11 17.99 17.90 17.71 17.97 17.96 18.27 18.12 18.12 18.21 18.22 18.15 18.15 18.21 18.17 18.17 18.26 18.18 18.18 324 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A6.2 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on London. SEK per £1 1804–1914. Jan 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 18.20 18.16 18.19 18.21 18.18 18.16 18.12 18.17 18.15 18.18 18.19 18.17 18.23 18.28 18.21 18.16 18.21 18.22 18.17 18.20 18.28 18.33 18.21 18.22 18.21 18.23 18.23 18.23 Feb 18.18 18.16 18.21 18.23 18.17 18.18 18.16 18.20 18.19 18.21 18.19 18.18 18.22 18.28 18.23 18.19 18.24 18.25 18.21 18.23 18.29 18.26 18.24 18.22 18.23 18.24 18.26 18.18 Mar 18.19 18.14 18.23 18.20 18.17 18.19 18.17 18.18 18.18 18.20 18.17 18.21 18.22 18.26 18.19 18.20 18.25 18.21 18.19 18.22 18.30 18.25 18.25 18.22 18.20 18.22 18.26 18.19 Apr 18.17 18.14 18.20 18.18 18.16 18.18 18.16 18.14 18.19 18.17 18.14 18.25 18.24 18.27 18.16 18.21 18.24 18.21 18.18 18.21 18.28 18.23 18.21 18.24 18.19 18.22 18.26 18.20 May 18.17 18.16 18.18 18.17 18.19 18.16 18.20 18.13 18.19 18.16 18.14 18.25 18.23 18.28 18.17 18.22 18.22 18.18 18.18 18.22 18.24 18.21 18.18 18.25 18.18 18.20 18.24 18.24 Jun 18.16 18.14 18.17 18.16 18.17 18.13 18.16 18.12 18.17 18.13 18.11 18.16 18.20 18.20 18.15 18.21 18.18 18.17 18.18 18.21 18.23 18.20 18.18 18.21 18.16 18.20 18.23 18.25 Jul 18.15 18.16 18.17 18.21 18.14 18.15 18.16 18.12 18.16 18.13 18.11 18.15 18.21 18.22 18.14 18.20 18.15 18.18 18.19 18.20 18.21 18.16 18.20 18.19 18.19 18.21 18.24 18.25 Aug 18.19 18.21 18.19 18.24 18.14 18.15 18.21 18.13 18.19 18.14 18.13 18.17 18.24 18.25 18.16 18.21 18.15 18.19 18.18 18.21 18.22 18.15 18.19 18.20 18.19 18.20 18.24 18.36 Sep 18.22 18.23 18.22 18.19 18.15 18.14 18.19 18.12 18.16 18.14 18.15 18.18 18.22 18.24 18.15 18.19 18.17 18.17 18.17 18.21 18.26 18.15 18.16 18.19 18.21 18.20 18.20 18.63 Oct 18.20 18.23 18.20 18.20 18.15 18.14 18.14 18.10 18.15 18.15 18.13 18.22 18.25 18.23 18.14 18.18 18.19 18.16 18.18 18.23 18.29 18.16 18.20 18.20 18.25 18.24 18.24 18.85 Nov 18.16 18.19 18.17 18.22 18.17 18.13 18.14 18.13 18.19 18.17 18.12 18.23 18.23 18.20 18.17 18.17 18.21 18.16 18.18 18.28 18.36 18.18 18.24 18.21 18.20 18.26 18.26 18.99 Dec 18.14 18.19 18.17 18.20 18.16 18.12 18.14 18.13 18.16 18.16 18.14 18.22 18.27 18.18 18.16 18.18 18.19 18.15 18.17 18.27 18.36 18.19 18.22 18.17 18.19 18.21 18.23 19.19 Sources: 1804–42 and 1881–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1843– 80: Post och inrikes tidningar and Aftonbladet; 1890–1914: Riksbankens växelkurser på London, 1890– 1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Appendix A6.3 Quotations on Amsterdam The currency units in quotations on Amsterdam changed a few times during the period and have been converted into consistent series of SEK/100 gulden. Quotations on Amsterdam were originally made in skilling banco per Holländsk riksdaler kurant between 1804 and 1857. From 1858 to 1872 quotations were made in riksdaler riksmynt per 100 Holländsk gulden and between 1873 and 1914 in kronor per 100 gulden. Conversions into SEK per 100 gulden have been done on the basis of 2.5 Holländsk gulden = 1 Holländsk riksdaler kurant, 1 Holländsk gulden = 1 gulden and 32 skilling banco = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 1 SEK (krona). 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 325 Quotations between 1804 and 1889 are from the Stockholm stock exchange and are monthly mid-range observations. The sources are unpublished tables that most likely were the basis for calculations for the fifth, statistical volume in Sveriges Riksbank (1931); daily newspapers are reported to be the sources in that volume. Monthly averages from the Riksbank’s official quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. Official quotations are from unpublished material in the Bank. Quotations on bills drawn on Amsterdam in the period 1804–52 are u.s.o. since there is no information on periods of maturity. Quotations are short sight or less than 50 days for 1853–80 and sight for 1881–1914. Table A6.3. Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. Jan 1804 1805 1806 1807 1808 1809 1810 1811 1812 1813 1814 1815 1816 1817 1818 1819 1820 1821 1822 1823 1824 1825 1826 1827 1828 1829 1830 1831 1832 1833 1834 1835 1836 113.8 112.5 121.3 125.0 139.1 123.8 137.2 165.0 151.6 146.6 151.1 153.4 155.9 143.6 164.7 155.4 145.6 149.4 163.1 170.6 175.7 161.9 153.3 148.8 111.3 123.8 130.0 127.8 127.4 138.2 161.3 149.9 146.6 151.3 153.3 155.2 143.8 162.7 154.4 144.8 150.6 161.9 171.3 177.3 160.5 152.8 150.0 119.4 135.3 115.5 128.3 138.8 158.8 150.6 143.0 150.9 154.1 153.8 147.4 163.8 154.7 145.9 153.0 163.1 173.5 178.4 159.7 153.6 150.0 125.6 133.1 132.3 129.0 137.4 159.4 147.5 143.1 148.4 155.5 150.0 147.3 163.0 153.1 145.9 152.0 162.5 171.9 178.8 158.0 153.3 149.1 102.5 107.5 111.3 113.8 132.5 133.1 133.5 126.9 141.1 159.4 138.9 145.6 147.1 155.3 146.4 149.0 163.4 150.2 144.9 152.3 163.9 174.5 176.9 156.0 153.0 149.0 114.4 133.8 136.6 130.1 131.1 142.6 160.6 137.5 147.2 146.9 155.3 146.1 151.9 163.0 149.7 144.5 152.0 165.0 172.8 176.1 155.8 148.8 147.5 114.1 125.0 142.5 129.7 130.9 146.3 158.1 139.2 149.0 144.6 155.6 144.4 155.3 164.2 150.3 143.7 150.4 163.9 171.1 173.4 153.8 148.4 145.9 108.1 123.8 143.5 128.5 130.5 148.5 151.3 139.5 147.8 144.1 154.4 144.4 154.4 163.0 146.6 142.6 149.0 164.4 171.3 166.9 152.7 148.4 144.5 140.4 127.4 127.7 147.5 145.6 140.4 146.3 145.5 154.4 144.4 157.3 160.8 145.9 142.8 149.7 163.2 171.6 162.2 152.4 148.0 144.9 108.1 108.8 123.8 142.5 117.5 125.6 149.3 148.4 141.3 147.4 149.3 155.3 142.4 159.8 158.2 144.6 145.5 152.5 165.3 171.9 162.5 151.3 148.3 145.3 115.0 123.1 145.5 121.0 128.5 157.5 150.9 146.9 150.6 152.5 155.8 144.6 162.4 159.0 143.4 150.0 161.3 168.4 173.8 163.1 152.4 148.6 146.7 118.1 125.0 148.2 126.3 132.0 166.3 152.8 148.1 151.0 153.1 156.9 143.8 164.2 158.4 145.0 150.6 163.5 170.3 175.0 164.7 154.1 149.2 149.4 81.3 77.5 83.1 136.9 107.5 115.0 98.1 88.8 58.3 59.5 56.7 66.9 66.9 Feb 58.1 59.8 56.9 66.7 66.9 Mar 58.8 59.5 58.6 66.6 64.7 75.0 93.1 126.9 105.0 116.3 71.9 97.5 103.8 118.8 115.0 100.0 Apr 59.4 59.7 59.2 65.6 May 59.7 59.5 60.9 64.4 Jun 59.7 59.5 59.4 64.7 Jul 59.7 59.2 59.7 64.1 Aug 59.5 58.3 60.5 63.9 Sep 59.5 57.7 60.2 64.1 Oct 59.5 57.7 60.2 64.7 Nov 60.0 57.7 61.3 66.3 66.3 Dec 60.3 56.9 65.6 68.1 326 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Table A6.3 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. Jan 1837 1838 1839 1840 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 1848 1849 1850 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 149.3 151.3 155.2 151.0 150.9 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.1 150.7 148.0 154.4 153.1 148.4 148.4 152.3 154.2 153.8 150.0 148.1 148.8 150.6 154.5 153.8 151.3 152.7 149.7 150.0 149.7 151.3 152.8 154.1 153.0 152.0 152.3 152.5 152.3 150.9 151.9 151.5 153.0 152.1 152.0 151.6 151.4 152.8 151.5 149.3 150.4 153.1 156.4 151.2 151.1 150.6 151.0 150.9 150.2 150.8 151.5 149.0 149.4 152.9 154.5 151.1 151.3 150.8 150.8 151.0 150.3 152.4 152.0 151.5 152.5 152.6 154.0 151.0 150.4 152.4 152.0 Feb 148.1 152.7 152.2 150.9 149.1 152.2 153.8 153.4 149.4 148.8 147.5 150.0 154.4 153.4 151.6 152.5 150.9 150.3 150.3 151.6 153.4 Mar 149.1 154.1 151.9 150.0 150.0 152.0 153.8 153.1 149.1 148.3 147.2 151.6 153.1 152.6 151.3 153.1 149.9 150.2 150.9 151.3 152.2 151.6 151.6 152.3 151.5 154.0 152.0 151.0 152.3 152.5 152.5 152.2 151.8 150.6 151.0 148.6 149.9 152.4 156.4 151.0 151.5 150.9 151.0 150.7 150.6 151.8 150.9 148.9 150.7 152.8 156.3 150.7 151.1 150.9 151.3 150.4 150.7 152.8 152.4 151.0 151.5 149.5 148.8 150.4 152.9 154.4 150.9 151.4 150.5 151.2 150.6 150.8 150.6 152.4 153.0 150.8 151.2 150.9 151.2 150.3 150.8 150.8 152.8 152.5 150.7 151.1 151.2 151.2 150.2 150.5 150.5 150.4 153.0 152.2 150.6 150.7 150.9 150.9 150.1 150.0 150.3 151.0 153.4 151.0 150.8 150.8 151.1 150.4 150.0 150.1 150.1 151.8 151.8 152.0 152.6 152.6 151.6 150.0 152.5 150.4 150.2 148.8 151.1 154.3 150.9 151.0 151.0 150.2 150.4 150.1 150.1 150.9 154.8 151.0 150.9 150.6 150.8 150.4 150.1 150.3 150.5 Apr 148.4 154.1 148.6 151.6 149.1 150.9 152.3 153.1 148.1 146.1 147.8 152.2 153.5 152.2 150.9 151.9 149.1 149.1 150.6 150.9 150.3 150.5 151.5 151.5 150.5 154.0 151.9 May 151.3 151.7 147.5 150.6 149.0 150.9 153.1 151.6 147.2 147.3 147.2 154.1 152.8 150.0 149.7 151.3 149.2 149.3 149.2 150.6 150.0 150.5 150.5 150.3 152.1 151.9 152.0 Jun 151.1 152.0 147.0 149.9 149.2 149.8 152.8 150.0 147.2 147.8 146.6 152.5 152.2 150.2 150.5 150.8 150.0 149.4 148.6 149.4 149.5 152.0 150.9 150.0 150.0 151.6 150.5 Jul 151.5 150.8 146.4 149.4 148.8 149.4 150.6 149.4 147.0 146.9 146.9 152.1 151.9 149.4 150.6 150.1 148.4 149.7 148.8 149.5 150.0 150.8 151.3 150.3 150.5 151.8 150.1 149.5 150.5 Aug 152.3 150.2 146.0 148.3 149.1 150.3 150.9 149.4 146.6 146.9 147.2 152.1 152.2 149.6 151.4 150.6 149.4 149.5 149.4 150.3 150.5 151.1 150.8 149.8 150.4 150.3 150.5 149.5 150.0 153.0 152.2 Sep 152.1 150.5 145.5 146.6 149.8 148.4 151.6 149.1 146.4 146.8 147.3 151.9 152.3 149.1 150.0 150.1 149.1 149.4 148.6 150.2 149.7 150.5 151.0 150.3 152.3 150.8 151.5 149.3 150.4 150.5 148.6 150.3 152.0 152.0 153.0 152.3 152.0 151.5 Oct 153.8 150.4 145.0 147.8 150.2 149.1 151.3 147.8 145.6 145.8 147.3 151.9 152.2 149.5 150.6 150.2 148.4 149.7 148.6 150.5 149.1 150.5 151.6 150.5 150.5 150.8 152.8 150.4 151.6 Nov 155.6 151.8 146.5 148.1 151.6 153.8 152.5 150.0 145.4 146.9 147.2 153.8 152.5 151.5 151.3 150.6 149.1 149.1 149.5 150.8 149.4 152.0 152.0 Dec 155.9 153.1 150.6 149.2 153.8 154.1 154.5 150.4 147.5 148.4 149.1 154.7 153.2 151.3 152.2 150.6 150.3 149.5 149.4 152.2 153.1 153.0 151.8 152.8 152.8 153.8 151.0 150.9 150.3 153.0 152.1 152.0 151.9 151.8 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 327 Table A6.3 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Amsterdam. SEK per 100 gulden 1804–1914. Jan 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 150.4 150.6 151.0 150.4 150.6 150.6 150.5 150.8 150.6 150.3 150.9 150.4 149.7 150.4 150.5 150.6 151.3 150.9 150.0 150.1 151.0 150.6 150.5 150.9 151.4 150.9 150.4 150.8 150.9 150.9 150.8 150.8 151.1 151.0 150.2 150.8 150.7 150.5 150.6 150.5 150.6 151.0 150.6 149.8 150.5 150.8 150.5 151.1 150.9 150.0 150.3 151.0 150.7 150.3 150.8 151.2 150.7 150.2 150.8 150.8 150.8 150.7 150.9 151.2 151.0 150.2 150.7 150.7 150.5 150.7 150.5 150.6 150.8 150.4 150.0 150.3 150.7 150.3 150.5 150.5 150.0 150.3 150.7 150.6 150.1 150.8 150.8 150.6 150.0 150.7 150.7 150.5 150.6 150.9 151.3 151.0 150.3 150.7 150.6 150.6 150.6 150.5 150.6 150.5 150.2 150.2 150.2 150.8 150.3 150.7 150.2 150.0 150.4 150.7 150.5 150.0 151.0 150.6 150.8 150.5 150.7 150.8 150.6 150.7 Feb Mar Apr May 151.4 150.8 151.2 150.9 150.7 150.6 150.7 150.8 150.6 150.5 150.4 150.4 150.3 150.3 150.3 150.9 150.2 150.9 150.6 150.1 150.4 150.6 150.5 150.1 151.1 150.6 150.7 150.8 150.7 150.8 150.4 150.7 150.6 151.1 150.6 150.6 150.5 150.6 150.6 150.5 150.4 150.1 150.3 150.1 149.8 150.2 150.6 149.9 150.5 150.3 150.0 150.1 150.2 150.4 150.1 151.0 150.4 150.4 150.7 150.5 150.7 150.2 150.5 Jun Jul 150.7 150.6 151.1 150.5 150.5 150.6 150.6 150.7 150.5 150.4 149.8 150.3 150.2 150.0 150.1 150.8 150.0 150.7 150.3 150.0 150.4 150.5 150.6 150.3 151.0 150.4 150.6 150.8 150.7 150.8 150.3 150.6 Aug 150.5 150.3 151.0 150.5 150.5 150.8 150.6 150.7 150.4 150.4 150.1 150.1 150.1 150.0 150.1 150.8 150.4 150.6 150.1 150.1 150.4 150.5 150.7 150.6 151.2 150.3 150.5 150.9 150.6 150.8 150.3 150.8 Sep 150.4 150.3 150.8 150.4 150.5 150.6 150.6 150.5 150.2 150.2 150.3 149.8 149.9 149.9 150.0 150.6 150.4 150.5 150.9 150.1 150.4 150.3 150.1 150.5 151.2 150.4 150.3 150.8 150.5 150.8 150.3 155.6 Oct 150.2 150.2 150.7 150.2 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.5 150.2 150.2 150.6 150.0 149.7 149.9 150.2 150.5 151.0 150.8 150.0 150.0 150.7 150.5 150.0 150.6 151.6 150.5 150.3 150.7 150.6 151.1 150.6 160.6 Nov 150.3 150.2 150.9 150.4 150.5 150.5 150.3 150.4 150.4 150.3 150.7 150.3 149.8 150.2 150.4 150.6 151.2 150.9 150.2 149.9 150.9 150.7 149.9 150.7 151.6 150.8 150.3 150.7 150.7 151.0 150.7 161.0 Dec 150.3 150.3 150.9 150.3 150.4 150.5 150.3 150.5 150.5 150.3 150.7 150.2 149.7 150.0 150.3 150.4 151.0 150.7 150.0 149.9 150.9 150.6 150.0 150.7 151.5 150.8 150.2 150.7 150.7 150.8 150.5 161.9 Sources: 1804–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables, Sveriges Riksbank); 1890–14: Riksbankens växelkurser på Amsterdam, 1890–1914 (unpublished volume, Sveriges Riksbank). Appendix A6.4 Quotations on Paris Quotations on Paris were made in skilling banco per franc before 1858 and in riksdaler riksmynt per franc between 1858 and 1872. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been done on the basis of 32 skilling banco = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 1 SEK. Quotations on bills drawn on Paris in francs during the period 1804–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange, while the Riksbank’s official quotations are used for the period 1890–1914. 328 Exchange rates, prices, and wages, 1277–2008 Observations on franc rates are monthly mid-range in the period 1804–89 and monthly average 1890–1914. The sources for the period 1804–89 are unpublished tables from the Riksbank. Official quotations on Paris 1890–1914 are from unpublished material in the Bank. The maturity periods of bills drawn on Paris before June 1853 are somewhat unclear. However, it seems quite clear that the rates refer to paper with a longer duration than short sight. A note in the primary tables says that rates from 1853 refer to 90-day paper, so it seems safe to assume that quotations are on at least 90-day paper. Consequently, the discount embedded in the prices has to be added in order to obtain ‘true’ sight exchange rates. Because interest rate data from Paris are lacking for this period, a standard interest rate of five percent has been used to calculate sight rates. The exact procedure is outlined in the previous section. Table A6.4. Monthly exchange rates on Paris. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914. Jan 1804 1805 1806 1807 1808 1809 1810 1811 1812 1813 1814 1815 1816 1817 1818 1819 1820 1821 1822 1823 1824 1825 1826 1827 1828 1829 1830 1831 58.53 61.70 66.44 60.12 66.44 77.52 71.98 71.45 72.38 72.77 73.83 70.66 80.42 74.35 69.87 72.38 78.31 58.53 60.91 64.07 59.85 67.10 78.57 73.96 71.72 72.38 72.51 75.15 70.99 79.63 74.49 69.74 72.38 78.05 56.95 64.86 57.74 61.70 68.03 75.80 74.22 71.19 73.30 72.24 74.88 71.59 78.31 73.96 69.74 73.30 78.31 62.49 60.91 60.25 65.65 75.94 72.77 70.53 72.77 73.17 72.64 70.27 77.52 73.43 69.87 73.30 78.31 56.95 64.86 66.84 58.53 65.65 76.07 69.34 70.27 71.72 73.56 70.93 71.32 77.39 72.11 69.21 73.43 79.23 61.83 61.30 67.76 76.46 66.44 71.98 71.72 73.56 70.79 73.43 78.18 72.24 69.08 73.70 80.68 62.49 62.49 68.42 78.57 69.48 73.43 70.66 73.96 69.87 74.35 78.05 71.72 68.03 72.24 79.50 70.40 60.64 61.57 69.61 76.73 70.40 71.32 70.00 73.30 69.21 73.43 77.65 70.53 68.42 72.51 79.10 68.16 60.78 59.59 68.69 71.59 70.53 71.19 71.06 74.09 68.82 74.75 76.60 70.53 68.55 72.64 78.57 70.40 56.16 57.35 70.14 72.24 68.95 71.45 71.06 73.96 68.55 75.94 74.75 70.00 69.61 73.56 79.36 52.21 41.13 63.28 54.58 56.42 68.03 56.95 50.62 55.37 52.73 41.13 63.28 42.32 62.49 54.58 63.28 55.37 28.74 29.40 28.21 33.22 33.22 Feb 29.40 28.87 26.89 32.96 34.01 30.85 39.55 41.13 47.46 64.86 57.74 58.53 53.39 53.26 55.37 61.70 71.19 58.93 58.93 75.94 73.30 72.77 71.85 73.70 73.96 69.34 77.91 75.01 68.03 72.51 77.39 80.02 56.56 61.30 70.00 58.80 63.28 79.89 73.70 71.19 71.98 73.70 74.75 69.21 79.36 75.54 69.21 72.38 78.31 81.21 49.04 63.28 37.97 50.62 63.28 55.37 62.23 55.37 39.55 38.76 56.95 57.74 56.95 Mar 27.42 28.48 27.95 Apr 29.53 28.34 27.82 33.22 May 29.53 29.40 29.53 32.96 Jun 28.61 28.21 26.89 30.98 Jul 28.08 28.48 30.06 31.24 Aug 28.21 27.95 28.48 30.06 Sep 29.53 27.16 28.61 Oct 28.61 27.95 30.06 Nov 28.48 25.84 30.85 33.22 Dec 30.06 28.48 6. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 329 Table A6.4 (cont.). Monthly exchange rates on Paris. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914. Jan 1832 1833 1834 1835 1836 1837 1838 1839 1840 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 1848 1849 1850 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 70.28 71.43 72.80 70.70 71.70 72.84 71.63 69.95 70.73 71.85 72.80 70.48 70.80 71.95 72.73 70.93 71.93 72.70 70.50 71.90 72.60 70.70 71.88 72.30 71.10 72.18 72.20 70.95 70.95 72.13 72.10 71.25 70.50 69.70 71.05 72.33 72.10 71.08 72.38 72.00 71.10 72.60 71.83 71.10 72.85 71.95 71.65 72.00 71.50 71.90 71.90 72.00 72.92 70.38 71.75 71.18 71.50 71.90 70.95 71.00 70.50 71.08 70.90 71.09 70.75 71.75 70.75 70.50 72.92 70.80 70.75 71.13 71.00 71.00 70.85 71.13 70.70 70.75 70.88 71.75 71.50 70.98 71.45 70.90 70.95 70.10 71.00 71.88 70.00 71.00 70.20 72.25 71.00 70.50 71.25 69.83 72.00 70.05 69.90 70.10 70.50 71.00 71.00 70.60 70.30 70.80 70.50 71.00 70.80 68.75 72.00 70.60 71.13 70.63 70.75 70.75 70.67 71.22 72.50 70.88 71.38 71.00 70.75 70.38 70.25 81.47 83.45 77.78 74.35 72.90 72.11 73.56 72.90 72.51 71.59 73.83 74.35 74.09 72.24 71.06 71.06 72.51 75.41 73.43 73.30 72.51 71.72 70.96 Feb 81.61 83.71 77.65 73.83 72.64 71.72 73.30 72.64 73.43 71.59 73.83 74.35 73.96 72.51 71.72 70.79 72.11 75.41 73.83 72.77 72.90 71.59 70.57 Mar 82.79 82.79 76.99 74.22 73.70 71.59 74.22 72.77 73.17 71.45 73.70 74.49 73.96 72.38 71.72 71.19 72.64 75.15 73.96 72.51 72.90 71.98 70.64 71.16 Apr 82.53 83.71 76.33 74.09 71.72 72.11 73.96 71.45 72.90 71.98 73.83 74.09 73.30 71.59 71.45 70.66 74.35 73.96 73.30 73.17 72.64 72.11 70.70 May 83.06 83.32 75.80 73.96 71.45 73.56 73.43 70.66 72.24 72.24 72.90 73.83 73.04 71.59 71.45 70.14 75.67 74.35 73.30 73.30 72.77 71.45 70.70 Jun 82.13 83.32 75.15 71.72 70.40 72.51 73.56 71.19 72.11 71.98 72.64 73.04 72.24 71.72 71.32 70.53 74.35 74.22 73.04 72.05 73.04 71.45 70.70 Jul 81.67 82.26 74.09 71.72 70.00 72.77 72.77 71.19 71.85 71.92 72.24 72.64 71.72 71.06 70.93 70.27 73.30 73.43 73.17 73.17 72.11 71.09 70.70 71.35 Aug 81.61 79.10 74.09 71.19 69.61 73.43 72.51 70.40 71.26 71.92 72.51 72.77 71.32 71.32 70.79 70.79 74.22 73.56 72.24 72.38 72.24 71.61 70.96 70.83 Sep 81.87 77.12 73.43 71.72 70.14 73.17 72.38 70.27 71.72 71.98 72.51 73.30 71.72 71.19 70.93 70.79 73.17 73.56 72.24 72.24 72.11 71.61 71.35 71.35 Oct 81.74 76.99 73.30 71.26 70.27 74.35 72.38 70.14 71.45 72.24 72.38 72.51 71.06 70.93 70.73 70.93 73.56 73.70 72.24 72.51 71.85 70.83 71.35 71.35 70.44 Nov 83.45 77.39 73.83 71.26 71.72 74.75 72.51 70.66 71.06 73.17 73.56 73.43 71.45 70.93 71.45 71.19 74.62 73.83 72.90 72.77 71.85 70.83 Dec 83.32 78.31 74.62 71.06 72.77 74.62 73.30 71.72 71.32 73.83 73.83 73.70 72.11 71.06 71.19 72.11 74.88 73.56 73.04 73.30 71.59 70.83 71.29 70.83 08 72.50 72.30 72.13 71.96 72.80 72.18 Mar 72.08 72.53 72.88 71.20 72.09 72.28 72.12 72.4 (cont.81 72.19 72.36 72.00 72.88 72.19 72.35 72.20 72.52 72.93 72.46 72.37 72.04 72.01 72.01 72.30 71. and wages.46 72.48 Jun 71.07 72.29 72.52 72.54 72.02 72.90 72.78 72.98 71.08 71.07 72.73 71.08 72.40 72.16 72.05 72.90 72.27 72.18 72.11 73.26 72.05 72.44 72.50 72.26 72.37 72.13 72.06 72.25 72.28 72.15 72.73 71.08 72.05 72.19 72.17 72.45 72.19 72.50 72.85 72.03 72.38 72.30 71.07 72.19 72.26 72.95 71.16 72.38 72.24 72.65 71.08 71.40 72.83 71.05 72.40 71.00 72.27 72.65 72.32 72.28 72.45 72.56 72.13 72.24 72.38 72.33 72.95 71.04 72. SEK per 100 francs 1804–1914.83 72.88 71.90 71.15 72.33 71.13 72.13 71.25 72.62 72.93 72.26 71.38 72.32 72.05 72.26 72.05 72.40 72.24 72.15 72.31 72.25 72.87 71.35 72.43 72.10 71.18 72.97 71.08 72. 1890–1914 (unpublished volume.35 72.30 72.00 72.93 72.52 72.15 72.32 72.49 71.03 72.28 72.20 72.73 71.10 71.96 72.14 72.50 72.21 Feb 72.78 71.33 72.18 72.51 72.29 72.13 72. Sveriges Riksbank).04 72.34 72.00 72.37 72.30 72.27 72.07 72.53 72.23 72.10 72.03 72.58 72.20 72.21 72.13 71.05 72.27 72.25 72.73 72.13 72.39 72.08 72.44 72.32 72. Monthly exchange rates on Paris.04 71.22 72.21 72.35 72.26 72.53 Aug 72.09 72.34 72.13 72.03 72.11 72.27 72.30 72.24 72.21 72.47 72.17 72.14 72.43 72.24 72.19 72.85 72.06 72.15 72.24 71.98 71.27 72.16 71.16 Apr 72.40 72.45 Sources: 1804–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables.00 71.15 72.44 72.34 May 72.04 72.16 72.20 71.15 72.06 72.03 71.10 72.31 72.08 71.25 71.25 71.40 72.35 72.09 Dec 72.23 72.99 72.47 72.33 72.00 71.10 72.55 72.33 72.95 72.15 71.14 72.37 72.39 72.21 72.25 72.93 71.32 72.00 72.28 72.21 72.92 72.08 72.18 71.13 72.00 71. Sveriges Riksbank).00 72.08 72.98 72.13 71.50 72.18 72.37 72.28 72.48 72.25 72.94 72.30 72.02 77.30 71.44 72.35 72.14 72.28 72.08 72.00 71.75 72.94 71.18 71.93 71.31 72.17 72.34 72.85 72. .39 72.01 72.83 72.03 72.02 72.99 71.49 72.28 72.20 72.53 72.20 72.40 72.90 71.34 72. 1890–1914: Riksbankens växelkurser på Paris.23 72.85 72.00 71.88 72.00 72.48 72.50 72.15 72.29 72.82 72.54 72.06 72.79 72.48 72.36 72.21 72.26 72.73 71.22 72.73 Oct 72.21 71. Jan 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 72.20 71.06 72.04 72.35 72.28 72.07 72.79 71.18 76.87 72.80 71.70 71.26 71.17 72.05 72.68 72.25 72.91 71.35 72.79 72.99 71.22 72.65 71.26 72.22 72.06 72.10 72.85 72.98 71.05 72.27 72.330 Exchange rates.79 72.30 72.07 72.79 72.40 72.15 72.38 72.23 72.24 73.47 72.90 72.17 72.29 72.08 72.37 72. 1277–2008 Table A6.05 72.12 71.13 72.00 72.28 72.58 72.08 72.).22 72.80 71.08 72.22 72.03 72.92 72.23 72.80 72.18 72.25 72.09 72.34 72.20 72.35 71.25 Sep 72.29 71.15 72.35 72.97 72.35 72.10 72.49 Jul 71.20 72.99 72.40 72.41 72.15 72.95 72.56 72.05 71.10 72.23 72.23 72.16 72.25 72.83 72.97 71.36 72.58 72.00 72.08 72.20 72.10 72.37 72.16 72.10 72.11 72.15 72.35 72.05 72.11 72.00 71.37 72.44 72.65 71.05 72.88 72.38 72.05 72.71 72.51 72.30 72.96 72.67 Nov 72.95 71. prices.88 72.97 71.62 72.10 71.28 72.94 72.21 72.23 71.17 71.10 72.95 72.13 72.27 72.29 72.28 71.10 72.85 72.19 74.00 72.56 72.10 72.03 71.83 71.29 72.20 72.27 71.11 72.21 72.99 71.28 72.38 72.85 72.91 72.44 72.47 72.24 72.93 72.20 72.37 72. 83 72.33 71.95 71.90 71.23 72.88 72.00 71.15 72.40 Jun 70.95 Jul 70.20 71.83 72.25 72.25 72.80 71.98 72.15 71.25 72.15 71.25 72.25 72.5.90 71.08 71.28 72.28 Mar 71.83 72.75 71.70 72.10 .73 71.00 71.15 72.35 72.25 72.05 72.15 72.40 71.35 70.38 72.77 71. Sveriges Riksbank).13 72.05 71.85 71.83 72.03 72.6.80 72.25 72.33 72.50 71.25 72.65 71.95 Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 71. Observations on franc rates are monthly mid-range in the period 1873–89 and monthly average for 1890–1914.09 Oct 71.12 71.6.10 72.00 Sep 71.77 72.08 72.45 72.28 72.00 72.35 Apr 70.35 72.15 71.00 72.88 72.13 72.13 72.28 72.20 72.15 72.45 72.00 72.80 71.98 71. Table A6.90 72. Jan 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 71.30 72. SEK/franc applies for the whole sample 1873–1914.78 72.98 72.13 71.95 72.40 May 70.35 72.25 72.23 72.75 72. while the Riksbank’s official quotations are used for the period 1890–1914.57 71.85 71.20 72.58 72. Official quotations on Antwerp and Brussels for 1890–1914 are from unpublished material in the Bank.05 72.38 72.25 72.13 71.00 71.15 72.18 72.80 72. Table A6.10 71.05 Dec 70.83 71.08 72.40 72. Quotations for bills drawn on Antwerp and Brussels in francs during the period 1873–89 are from the Stockholm stock exchange.63 72.13 72.20 72.48 72.30 Feb Mar 70.28 72.35 72.78 72. The sources for the period 1873–89 are unpublished tables from the Riksbank.38 72.85 72.25 72.13 71.65 71.00 72.13 72.08 72.13 72.5 Quotations on Antwerp and Brussels Belgium adopted an independent franc – equal to the French franc – in 1832 and joined the Latin Monetary Union in 1865.08 71.15 71.88 71. Jan 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 70.23 72.18 72. SEK per 100 francs 1873–89.00 72.40 72.00 71.35 72.90 72.13 71.25 72. Monthly exchange rates on Brussels.75 72. Monthly exchange rates on Antwerp.10 72.25 72.45 72.10 Nov 71.15 71.10 72.70 71. Thus.15 72.03 71.30 72.90 72.03 72.33 72.18 72.98 72.85 71.60 71. Quotations on Antwerp and Brussels refer to short sight bills of exchange in 1873– 89 and to sight bills between 1890 and 1914.77 72.98 72.69 71.99 71.70 72.88 71.75 72.98 72.95 72.65 71.72 72.23 72.13 72.23 72.23 71.75 Sources: 1890–1914: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables.85 Feb 71.13 72.00 71.95 71.90 71.18 72. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 331 Appendix A6.95 71.93 71.53 72.00 72.35 72. SEK per 100 francs 1873–1914.85 Aug 71.95 72.00 72.10 72.68 72.34 72. 06 72.93 71.96 71.14 72.10 71.03 72. .91 72.08 72.10 71.05 72.32 72.17 72.36 72.95 71.92 72.32 72.03 71.01 72.04 72.73 71.18 71.89 71.99 72.06 72.94 71.12 71.23 72.28 72.79 71.01 71.26 72.95 71.94 71.95 71.13 72.95 71.98 71.05 72.00 72.85 71.96 71.20 72.15 72.41 72.89 71.).11 72.25 72.96 71.02 72. Jan 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 72.93 71.87 71.15 72.02 72.84 72.79 71.91 72.90 71.11 72.07 71.97 72.19 72.90 72.09 71.36 72.28 72.05 71.11 71.18 72.21 72.45 72.00 71.34 72.19 72.18 72.82 71.90 71.21 72.79 71.84 72.37 72.17 72.81 71.44 72.65 71. 1890–1914: Riksbankens växelkurser på Bruxelles.12 72.08 72.30 72.30 71.75 71. Sveriges Riksbank).05 71.85 72.75 71.69 72.05 72.95 71.17 72.15 72.15 72.25 72.67 71.96 72.87 72.92 71.22 72.24 71.77 72.17 72.09 72.80 71.06 71.12 72.19 72.09 72.08 71.15 72.40 72.20 72. SEK per 100 francs 1873–1914.82 72.75 73.39 72.95 71.01 72. and wages.20 72.43 72.16 72.87 71.05 72.6 (cont.75 71.02 72.28 72.84 72.22 72.00 72.29 72.23 72.37 71.12 72.02 72.04 72.00 71.84 71.15 72.48 72.00 72.61 71.15 72.83 71.41 72.38 72.00 72.60 71.16 72.89 71.18 72.78 71.03 72.01 71.06 72.22 72.09 72.83 71.07 72.24 72.75 71.79 72.10 71.46 72.12 72.78 72.13 71.03 72.02 71.24 72.91 71.12 72.30 72.17 72.88 71.32 72.05 71.00 71.99 71.93 72.39 72.34 72.14 72.00 72.83 72.10 72.82 72. 1277–2008 Table A6.15 72.83 72.90 71.81 72.13 72.85 71.25 72.00 72.75 72.85 71.21 72.40 72.20 72.75 73.95 72.15 71.04 71.26 72.27 72.15 72.12 72.18 72. prices.98 72.29 72.00 72.20 72.91 72.98 72.09 72.24 72.19 72.20 72.00 72.01 71.17 72.99 71.13 72.08 72.08 72.23 72.23 72.15 72.17 72.77 71.48 72.25 71.10 71.04 71.07 72.95 72.05 71.26 72.14 71.12 72.40 71.08 72.332 Exchange rates.02 71.83 71.99 72.33 72.06 72.08 72.08 72. Monthly exchange rates on Brussels.08 72.34 71.38 72.09 71.99 71.28 72.25 72.11 72.13 72.99 72.16 72.05 72.99 71.04 72.02 72.76 72. Sveriges Riksbank).95 72.99 72.05 72.19 72.21 72.23 72.72 72. 1890–1914 (unpublished volume.96 71.16 72.26 72.40 72.55 72.90 71.19 72.94 72.19 72.13 72.10 72.12 71.21 72.13 72.25 72.01 71.99 72.14 72.10 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec Sources: 1873–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables.02 72.13 71.15 72.81 71.91 71.14 72.74 72.90 71.05 72.12 72.15 72.41 72.25 72.03 72.95 72.49 72.08 72.83 71.01 71.58 71.16 72.38 71.95 71.29 72. 9 26.9 27.6 28.8 Mar 327. The conversion rate between krone (DKK) and rigsbankrigsdaler was 2:1.1 29.2 60. available at Commerzbibliothek at Hamburg stock exchange.6 344.8 31.5 166.7.7 344.3 27.4 110. the silver-based rigsbankrigsdaler.1 Aug 331.0 28.5 28.8 334.7 82.3 109.9 349.3 338.5 30.s.0 32.1 336.5 Jul 331. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been based on 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt = 32 skilling banco. Quotations between 1804 and 1889 are from the Stockholm stock exchange and are monthly mid-range observations.6 345.5 344.3 27.1 128.8 349.4 .0 166.6 27.1 150.6 300.1 138.3 51.2 288.6 105. Quotations were made in riksdaler riksmynt per rigsbankrigsdaler after Sweden switched its currency unit in 1858. After the collapse of the rigsdaler kurant.8 321.6 353. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914.8 168.0 100.3 346.5 30.8 152.5 344.4 37.6 27.9 317.1 26.8 34.0 343.7 208.3 Oct 328. When Denmark and Sweden formed a Scandinavian Currency Union in 1873 (Norway joined in 1875).3 335.2 337.8 133.9 89. Jan 1804 1805 1806 1807 1808 1809 1810 1811 1812 1813 1814 1815 1816 1817 1818 1819 1820 28.0 119.5 344. The sources are unpublished tables that most likely were the basis for the fifth.1 Jun 330.1 117. Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen.5 350.4 131.7 271.0 33.0 180. Officielle Ausgabe.8 359.3 111.5 178.8 336.0 27.1 37.1 May 327.1 Dec 332.5 337.7 295.5 314.6 Quotations on Copenhagen The Danish courant currency virtually collapsed during the Napoleonic wars.4 206.9 Nov 330.3 352.8 332. Quotations on bills drawn on Copenhagen in the period 1804–34 are u.5 26. since there is no information on time to maturity.8 290.3 27.7 50.und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN.4 28.3 116.8 348.4 344.5 28. Denmark adopted a new currency.9 Feb 323.9 342.1 30.7 29.4 322.0 342. which in turn was based on daily newspapers.0 346.0 110.3 341.4 27.3 154.7 27. Exchange rates for the period 1882– 1914 are cross-calculations of exchange rates on Stockholm and Copenhagen based on end-of-month quotations at the Hamburg stock exchange.4 189.6 27.o.3 187.2 336.5 300.0 339.5 285.9 30.5 343. statistical volume in Sveriges Riksbank (1931). The data are bid prices (‘geld’) from Hamburger Geld. Table A6.9 295.4 332. as we have seen earlier. which equalled six rigsdaler kurant.8 113. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 333 Appendix A6.0 329.2 Apr 325.3 29.5 304.3 175.5 70.4 339.6 353. Quotations on Copenhagen were made in skilling banco per Dansk rigsdaler kurant between 1804 and February 1813.3 159.3 26.9 182.6 40.6 157.5 137.2 309.0 358.7 150.7 352.6 234.0 Sep 327.4 28.8 341.7 28.5 29. Denmark changed to the joint Scandinavian gold-based krone as its official currency.7 27.0 171.8 53.6.4 132.3 27.4 127.0 55.9 178. 8 104.7 104.3 105.5 102.4 101.2 100.0 103.2 104.0 102.2 102.4 99.5 100.2 100.4 100.6 104.6 99.4 101.8 100.4 100.3 100.2 105.8 103.0 100.9 101.7 101.6 102.0 101.2 103.0 100.0 102.1 103.0 101.6 102.5 104.5 102.8 102.0 100.1 100.0 99.2 98.0 101.3 102.0 100.6 99.4 99.4 100.4 100.5 102.3 104.7 (cont.3 102.5 102.9 100.7 105.4 102.7 101.8 100.6 102.8 101.4 99.2 100.8 104.6 100.5 101.8 103.3 104.5 93.5 101.8 101. Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen.3 104.7 102.4 99.3 99.6 103.9 100.8 99.8 101.9 101.7 105.8 104.8 100.9 101.3 102.9 100.8 102.2 101.3 100.2 101.1 101.6 100.2 101.5 103.2 101.8 101.8 100.2 100.2 103.8 104.3 100.8 101.7 102.3 101. and wages.9 101.3 99.4 100.7 99.2 105.1 104.0 100.0 100.3 105.7 102.6 105.0 102.3 101.6 101.9 102.3 103.0 100.6 100.0 100.4 101.3 101.5 100.9 103.1 103.8 99.0 102.6 99.0 102.6 102.5 103.2 101.0 102.1 102.0 102.7 104.3 101.3 102.7 100.1 102.9 100.9 99.6 105.6 100.6 99.7 100.4 102.9 100.5 102.0 96.3 102.8 104.7 104.0 100.8 100.3 104.3 102.4 100.0 103.7 105.2 100.6 101.1 105.3 99.0 101.6 103.7 101.2 100.7 102.2 102.1 99.1 105.2 102.5 101. prices.0 100.6 103.6 104.6 102.3 100.8 101.8 103.7 103.5 102.8 100.0 98.0 101.4 100.3 99.4 100.6 101.3 99.3 101.3 102.0 100.7 102.3 102.6 104.1 102.7 101.0 104.7 102.3 104.0 101.0 103.5 100.7 102.0 101.5 105.1 100.8 101.4 100. 1277–2008 Table A6.8 100.3 105.8 87.3 100.0 101.0 99.0 99.2 104.5 101.7 102.7 100.7 102.1 102.3 100.5 106.6 102. Jan 1821 1822 1823 1824 1825 1826 1827 1828 1829 1830 1831 1832 1833 1834 1835 1836 1837 1838 1839 1840 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 1848 1849 1850 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 102.8 99.0 101.0 100.6 101.2 104.0 100.0 101.1 99.1 100.3 100.3 100.1 104.3 101.3 100.1 100.1 100.9 100.5 100.5 102.0 99.1 103.7 102.9 103.9 101.4 104.7 102.5 103.1 104.5 100.8 101.9 100.4 105.7 102.3 101.8 101.0 99.1 100.5 102.5 102.8 102.9 100.6 101.3 101.2 102.7 103.3 103.7 102.4 100.2 104.8 104.0 101.3 101.2 100.2 101.0 104.9 104.4 102.0 100.2 99.7 101. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914.9 94.0 102.0 100.7 100.6 99.3 101.6 100.8 99.6 97.9 100.5 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec .3 100.9 101.4 100.7 105.1 102.6 100.2 102.7 99.3 99.1 105.0 99.4 102.4 100.1 102.1 101.334 Exchange rates.4 100.5 101.9 101.5 102.8 103.7 104.8 102.8 102.).9 99.5 104.1 99.1 104.4 100.7 104.7 101.3 101.8 103.0 102.1 102.1 103.7 101.3 104.8 100.4 101.2 97.6 100.1 103.3 104.0 100.8 104.8 100.7 100.8 101.9 102.6 102.0 99.3 105.3 101.9 100.7 100.5 100.5 101.6 100.1 99.6 103.6 103.5 99.8 100.3 105. 0 100.0 100. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.8 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 99.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.9 100.1 99.9 99.0 100.0 100.7 99.0 100.1 99.0 100.1 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.3 99.0 99.7 98.0 100.0 100.8 100.0 100.0 100.5 100.0 99.8 99.0 100.0 99.0 100.7 (cont.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.7 99.0 100.9 100.0 100.9 100.6 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.4 99.8 99.1 100.6 99.0 100.1 99.1 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.4 99.8 99.1 99.8 99.0 100.0 100.6 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 335 Table A6.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 99. Jan 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 May 99.0 100.0 100. Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen.9 99.0 100.7 99.5 100.5 99.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.9 .0 100.0 99.9 101.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.4 99.7 99.1 99.9 97.0 100.6 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.2 100.0 100.0 100.7 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.5 99.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.3 Oct 99.7 98.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.9 Dec 99.5 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 Sep 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.6.0 100.0 100.0 100.7 98.9 98.0 100.0 100.9 Apr 99.0 100.9 100.0 100.8 100.0 100.0 100.5 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.3 99.3 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 99.5 99.7 99.0 100.4 Feb 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.5 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.8 Mar 99.3 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.9 100.5 100.5 100.0 100.0 100.4 Nov 99.0 100.0 100.4 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.5 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.8 99.0 99.9 100.9 100.8 100.0 99.9 100.0 100.7 98.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.5 100.4 99.6 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.7 98.8 99.5 Jun 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.9 99.6 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.4 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.3 99.0 100.7 98.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.8 100.0 100.6 100.0 100.4 100.0 100.0 100.7 99.5 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.4 99.9 100.0 100.7 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.5 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.8 100.0 100.8 99.0 100.6 99.0 100.0 100.1 99.0 100.3 100.6 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 98.0 100.3 99.0 100.5 Jul 99.0 100.0 100.7 99.0 100.0 100.5 100.0 100.7 99.0 100.0 100.1 99.2 99.).5 99.5 99.0 100.0 100.7 98.0 100.0 100.8 99.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.3 99.0 100.0 100.1 98.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 Aug 99.0 100.0 100.0 99.8 100.9 99.7 97.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.5 100. 0 99.0 98.0 100.7 Quotations on Christiania/Oslo Quotations on Norwegian currency in Sweden were made in riksdaler riksmynt per Norsk specie between 1858 and 1872 and in kronor per Norsk specie in 1873 and 1874.0 Dec 100.0 100.3 100.0 100.0 100.0 100. Monthly exchange rates on Christiania/Oslo.0 100.8 98. Quotations between 1858 and 1882 are from the Stockholm stock exchange and are monthly mid-range observations. Sveriges Riksbank).0 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 101.0 101.0 99.0 100.). Jan 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 100.0 99.9 May 100.0 98. Norway joined the Scandinavian Currency Union in 1875 and adopted the joint Scandinavian gold-based krone as its official currency.0 100.0 100.6 101.0 100.0 Aug 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 101. based on end-of-month quotations at the Hamburg stock exchange. The data are bid prices (‘geld’) gathered from annual volumes of Hamburger Geld.0 100. based in turn on daily newspapers.0 100.0 101.0 101. Officielle Ausgabe.0 100.0 101.9 Feb 100. SEK per 100 NOK 1858–1914.0 101.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 98.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 Jul 100.0 100.9 100. The sources are unpublished tables for the fifth. 1277–2008 Table A6.8 99. Exchange rates for the period 1883–1914 are cross-calculations of exchange rates on Stockholm and Christiania.0 100.0 100.0 100.8 100.0 99.0 100.9 Sources: 1804–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables.0 98.0 101. prices.9 100.0 100.0 100.5 100. Hamburger Börse. The conversion rate between krone (NOK) and Norsk specie was 4:1.0 100.0 99.0 Jun 100.0 Sep 100.5 99.336 Exchange rates.0 100.und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN.und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN.8.6 .0 99.9 Apr 100.8 100. available at Commerzbibliothek at Hamburg stock exchange.3 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 Oct 100. Conversion into SEK (kronor) has been based on 1 SEK = 1 riksdaler riksmynt.9 99.0 100.0 100. Appendix A6.0 100.5 101.0 Mar 100. Table A6. 1890–1914: Crosscalculations of data from Hamburger Geld. statistical volume in Sveriges Riksbank (1931).9 100. Monthly exchange rates on Copenhagen.0 100.0 100. Officielle Ausgabe. and wages.3 100.0 99.7 (cont.0 100.0 Nov 100. Jan 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 98.0 100. SEK per 100 DKK 1804–1914.0 100. Commerzbibliothek.0 100. 0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99. 1890–1914: Cross calculations of data from Hamburger Geld.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100. Monthly exchange rates on Christiania/Oslo.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.9 100.9 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100. SEK per 100 NOK 1858–1914.0 99.9 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.3 98.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.9 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 99.9 100. Sveriges Riksbank).0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.8 (cont.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.).0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.8 99.9 100.0 99.8 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 99.0 100. .9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.5 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec Sources: 1858–89: ‘Växelkurser NN’ (unpublished tables.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.5 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 99.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100. Jan 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100. Hamburger Börse.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.9 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 99.9 100.0 100.0 100. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 337 Table A6.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.5 99.6.0 99.0 99. Commerzbibliothek.0 100.0 99.0 100.0 99.9 99.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.1 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 99.9 99.0 100. Officielle Ausgabe.9 100.0 99.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.0 100.9 99.0 100.0 100.0 100. (ed. Brisman. ‘Tiden 1803–1834’ in Sveriges riksbank 1668–1918 : bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. Tredje delen/1820–1870. ‘Kreditförbindelser på Europamarknaden Peter Ekman III 1793 och Ekman & Co 1810. Ashgate.’ Conference paper.’ Vierteljahrschrift für Sozial.) Malmö stads historia. Malmö.. Stockholms fondbörs 100 år. No. ‘The Gold Standard as a Rule: An Essay in Exploration. H (2004). Schön. ‘Expectations and Exchange Rate Dynamics. ‘The Rules of the Game: International Money in Historical Perspective. Lange. (eds. ‘Handel och sjöfart – förändringens tid. O. R I (1993). Einzig. Vol. Aldershot. Cambridge University Press. Stockholm. ‘The Range of Stockholm-Hamburg and Stockholm-London Specie Points 1834–1880. Officer. Svenskt arbete och liv: från medeltiden till nutiden.338 Exchange rates. 6. 1823–1830. Svenska ekonomisk-historiska mötet (Stockholm 12–14 October 2007). Stockholm. S (1931). H (2000). Malmö stad. F and R Sédillot (1971).’ Journal of Political Economy. bokh. ‘Capital Movements. 2004:1. ‘Integration and Efficiency in the Foreign Exchange Market in Sweden 1834–1880’ Scandinavian Economic History Review. 1277–2008 References Algott. March 1993. R (1976). pp. Nordström.und Wirtschaftsgeschichte. [Exchange Rate Policy and Market Integration. Norstedt. Politik och finansväsen: från 1815 års riksdag till 1830 års realisationsbeslut. Linköping. Heckscher. and Olsson. . Almqvist & Wiksell. MacMillan. Andreen. 2006:3. De utländska växelkurserna i Sverige 1834−1880. 1–44. Between the Dollar-Sterling Gold Points: Exchange Rates. Foreign Exchange Rates in Sweden 1834–1880] Dissertation. Lobell. Nord. Vol. London. Lobell.). Östergötlands enskilda bank. Växelkurspolitik och marknadsintegration. L (2007). Almqvist och Wiksell International. Lobell. Dornbusch. Bonnier. No. Stockholm. P. 32. E F (1941). Stockholm. Exchange Rates and Market Integration: The Baltic Area 1870–1913’ in Centres and Peripheries in Banking. Cottrell. New York. 1161–76. 4. S (1937). Afhandlingar hörande till läran om crediten. 84. A Chronicle of Currency Values. prices. Studies in Banking and Financial History. XXXI. The Historical Development of Financial Markets. Stockholm. and wages. Andersson. L H (1996). J J (1853).’ in Bjurling. Brisman. S (1963). Vol. U. Bordo. All the Monies of the World. Del 4.’ Journal of Economic Literature. M (2007).’ Explorations in Economic History. Södertälje. McKinnon. Sveriges Riksbank. M D and F E Kydland (1995).. Fridlizius. P (1962).. Pick Publication Corp. Stockholm studies in history. P G (1961). Pick. E. Parity and Market Behavior. Del två. G (1981). H (2006). The History of Foreign Exchange. pp. L. Cambridge. 6. Sveriges Riksbank (1931).org/databases/macrohistory/contents/. The Scandinavian Currency Union 1873–1924 – Studies in Monetary Integration and Disintegration. Bind 1. Statistiska tabeller. Riksbankens växelkurser på Paris. Sveriges Riksbank. Svendsen. Other sources Hamburger Geld. 1890–1914. Riksbankens växelkurser på Hamburg/Berlin.) Institute for Research in Economic History.’ Unpublished tables. SSE/EFI Working Paper Series in Economics and Finance No 544 November. K (2004). Ögren. C D (1845–6). Moll. Ögren. Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924. Money Supply and Prices: The International Adjustment Mechanism in Sweden under the Silver and Gold Standards. 2003. Hamburger Börse. Sveriges Riksbank. E (1964). 1890–1914. 1890–1914.und BankFragen mit besonderer Rücksicht auf Hamburg. Skandinaviska banken i det svenska bankväsendets historia 1864– 1914. Various years. 43. Riksbankens växelkurser på London. ‘Free or central banking? Liquidity and Financial Deepening in Sweden. Valutor. Anteckningar om rikets ständers bank och allmänna lånerörelsen i Sverige. Söderlund. Danmarks nationalbank. Foreign exchange rates 1804–1914 339 Skogman. Beiträge und Materialen zurBeurtheilung von Geld. 1834–1913. Riksbankens växelkurser på Bruxelles. A (2005).und Wechsel-Cours im jahre NN.nber. København. V. Dansk Pengehistorie 1700–1960. Soetbeer. Riksbank archive ‘F1A:3 Riksbankschefers protokoll. Talia. Herold. Unpublished volume. Stockholm Sveriges Riksbank ‘Växelkurser NN. Unpublished volume. Officielle Ausgabe. Hamburg. Stockholm. utländska’ Riksbankens växelkurser på Amsterdam. http://www. . various years. Reserves. Commerzbibliothek. Vol. Stockholm. Unpublished volume. A (1855). Norstedts. Sveriges Riksbank. 1890–1914. Stockholm. 1890–1914. NBER ‘Online Macro History Data Base’. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet. Unpublished volume. A (2003). K E and S A Hansen (1968). (PhD Diss.’ Explorations in Economic History. Sveriges Riksbank. V. Sveriges Riksbank. 1834–1913. Unpublished volume. Skandinaviska Banken. A more comprehensive dataset can be downloaded from Sveriges Riksbank’s website for historical monetary statistics. an exchange rate index has been constructed with the aims of including the currencies of 1 Monthly exchange rates and annual averages of monthly exchange rates are in Appendix A7. after the break-up of the Gold Standard. clearing exchange rates were often used in international transactions.1. The sources used for constructing monthly exchange rates are given in Appendix A7. 2 . when the monthly rate is the average of the highest and lowest daily quotations in that particular month. monthly exchange rates of the Swedish krona are presented for the period 1913–2008. Introduction In this chapter. The exchange rates are the prices quoted in Stockholm for currencies. and during the Second World War and its aftermath. exchange rate data may also be downloaded from Sveriges Riksbank’s website.7.1 2 To get a better overview of the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate. and the latter are used in this chapter. the clearing rates closely tracked the official market exchange rates. however. For the period after 1995.1. how many Swedish kronor (SEK) equalled a given unit of a foreign currency. international trade was to a large extent characterised by bilateral trading arrangements and for many currencies there was no active exchange market. The monthly exchange rates are calculated as monthly averages of daily quotations. In the 1930s. in other words. 1913–2008 Jan Bohlin 7.1. In most cases. During the Second World War and its aftermath. From appreciation to depreciation – the exchange rate of the Swedish krona. the same exchange rate was used for many years and daily quotations are lacking for most currencies. except for the period 1952–1974. Accordingly. In some cases. 5 . currency reforms and data availability have led to periods being a little longer or shorter. An obvious example is the Swiss franc. Weights have been adjusted every five years. this could not be achieved for some years and some countries.se. Governments to a large extent financed war efforts by printing 3 4 SOS Handel (from 1961 SOS Utrikeshandel).2. which mirrored the cost of transporting gold between countries.7.4 When interpreting the evolution of the exchange rate index. The fully-fledged gold standard rested on a few central pillars: the unit of account was tied to a certain amount of gold. the availability of unbroken series of data led to the inclusion in the index of the currencies of some countries whose shares in Swedish foreign trade were less than one per cent in particular years. Table A7. gold coins circulated domestically and banknotes could be converted into gold on demand.5 When these rules were adhered to. the base year for each period and the countries included. and an exchange rate index has been calculated for each five-year period. it is important to take into consideration the evolution of the international monetary system in the 20th century. It also shows the included countries’ shares of total Swedish foreign trade (exports + imports) in the chosen base years. exchange rates between countries on the gold standard were fixed. there were no legal restrictions on the melting of gold coins into bullion.1.2 documents the chosen sub-periods. 7. Several regime shifts have occurred and the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate must be viewed against the background of those changes. 117). Trade weights have been constructed with the use of official Swedish foreign trade statistics. The First World War put an end to the classical gold standard. p. Moreover. From 1977 the trade weight data derive from the website of Statistiska Centralbyrån (Statistics Sweden): www. and there were no obstacles to the export of gold.scb. They could only vary between the ‘gold points’. The following sections contain an account of the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate under the varying regimes of the international monetary system in the 20th century.19 in Appendix A7.2. The First World War and the demise of the classical gold standard 7. we therefore need to adjust weights periodically. From appreciation to depreciation 341 countries whose share of Swedish foreign trade (exports + imports) amounted to at least one per cent and of covering at least 80 per cent of Swedish foreign trade. In constructing an exchange rate index.3 Countries’ trade shares shift over time and political changes lead to the disappearance of some states and the (re-)birth of new ones. Swedish exchange rate policy during and after the First World War From 1873 until 1914 Sweden was on the gold standard. political changes. Due to a lack of data. Kenwood and Lougheed (1985. In the early months of 1916 the Swedish krona rose above the old parities. one might have expected that the krona would be driven down towards the gold parities. Since gold backing was more than sufficient. p.342 Exchange rates. as did the supply of sterling and US dollars when Swedish export income rose after Swedish timber was removed from the German list of contraband goods. . some remnants of the old gold standard were still in place. the Swedish exchange rate could deviate from the old gold parities. However. many central banks ceased to honour their obligation to exchange banknotes for gold and banned the export of bullion and gold coins. 1277–2008 money and the rate of inflation rose. 1914. Norwegian and Danish firms and citizens could still use their own countries’ gold coins in Sweden. This meant that in practice Sweden had left the gold standard.7 Wartime conditions severely obstructed private shipments of gold to Sweden. After a meeting of representatives of the Scandinavian central banks at the end of February 1916. as the gold export ban was still in force. 6 7 8 The following account of the evolution of Swedish exchange rate policy 1914–24 is based on Heckscher (1926) and Östlind (1945). Accordingly. especially since the gold reserves were now deemed to be more than sufficient. The currency union prevented the Swedish krona from deviating all that much from the Danish and Norwegian krona. the Riksbank reintroduced the convertibility of banknotes for gold at the turn of 1915. 1916. When gold started to flow out of Sweden following the outbreak of war. Heckscher (1926. Östlind (1945. the Riksbank decided to ban the export of gold. The Riksbank’s gold reserves increased again. while it appreciated against the German mark. Between the autumn of 1914 and March 1915 the krona depreciated by 6–8 per cent against currencies such as sterling. the US dollar and the French franc. Since gold could flow into Sweden and the Riksbank was committed to exchanging banknotes for gold. p. exchange rates started to deviate from the gold parities and there was no longer any mechanism for bringing them back. being obliged to exchange banknotes for gold at the old parities was bad business. 38).8 For the Riksbank. the Riksbank (Sweden’s central bank) decided on 2 August. In the spring of 1915 the depreciation of the German mark against the krona accelerated and from April 1915 the krona started to appreciate against ‘high-valued currencies’ such as sterling and the US dollar. this did not happen because. a month or so after it had been reinstalled. Accordingly. 44). The immediate consequence was a loss of exchange rate stability. prices. on November 25. The only country that stuck to a fully-fledged gold standard during the war was the United States. and wages. according to Heckscher. the gold standard did not function properly. it was no longer a ‘bona fide gold standard’. since the Scandinavian currency union was still in operation.6 Then. Thus. From 1915. However. However. gold convertibility was again abandoned on February 8. 1914 that banknotes would no longer be convertible into gold. After negotiations between the Scandinavian central banks in the spring of 1917. gold coins started to be exported from Norway and Denmark to Sweden. Despite the flow of gold coins to Sweden from Denmark and Norway. the central banks of Denmark and Norway also abolished their obligation to exchange gold for banknotes. . At the same time. since the export of gold coins from the Danish and Norwegian central banks did not affect the valuation of the currencies in the hands of the general public. In this respect the Scandinavian currency union was still in force. The Norwegian central bank used gold coins to settle its liabilities with Sveriges Riksbank. Source: Stockholm City Museum. From appreciation to depreciation 343 A queue outside the Riksbank to exchange notes for gold at the outbreak of the First World War in 1914. Norway and Denmark also prohibited the export of gold. For Sveriges Riksbank. When the Danish and Norwegian krona started to fall against the Swedish from the summer of 1916. the inflow of gold coins from Denmark and Norway was unwelcome since the appreciation of the Swedish krona meant that gold could be bought more cheaply elsewhere. the ban on exports on gold was extended to include gold coins.7. the Swedish krona appreciated against its Scandinavian neighbours. the three Scandinavian central banks all withdrew the right for citizens of their countries to mint gold coins. In mid April 1916. the only remnant of the old gold standard that still existed was the central banks’ possibility of settling debts in gold coins. Gold coins did not circulate and the central banks refused to exchange gold for banknotes. After this. 10 After the Scandinavian gold embargo in April 1916 there was no limit to the krona’s appreciation above the old gold parities.344 Exchange rates. The immediate effect was that the Riksbank cancelled its obligation to exchange gold for banknotes on March 17. .9 Another part of the Swedish export surplus was arranged by extending credit to foreign buyers. so that a year later the krona had returned to approximately the same level as two years earlier. 11 Heckscher (1926. The Riksbank willingly converted some of the gold into banknotes because the regulations were such that an increased circulation of banknotes required an increase in the Bank’s gold reserves. and wages. pp. Strong appreciation up to November 1917 was followed by depreciation. Financial assets which Swedish borrowers had pledged to foreigners could now be mobilized to pay for Swedish exports and were accordingly repatriated to Sweden. 1277–2008 Despite the gold embargo. pp. two years later it had returned to the old gold parities and then stabilized at that level. as other currencies depreciated more against the dollar. 10 Schön (2000. a leading economist. However. whereupon exporters would earn a nice profit. When the ban on gold exports was abolished and the 9 Östlind (1945. The period of depreciation was apparently a result of expectations that the war would soon end and exchange rates would then return to the old gold parities. In 1919–20 the krona’s exchange rate followed that of sterling and it accordingly depreciated against the dollar. 280–81). urged the Swedish public to exert their right to exchange banknotes for gold in the Riksbank. In late 1920 the krona started to appreciate again against the dollar. Even after its depreciation at the end of 1917. In a newspaper article on March 11. Especially in Germany this arrangement was a common way of paying for imports from Sweden. the krona still appreciated against a trade-weighted average of other currencies. pp. Swedish exporters were prepared to extend credit to foreign customers denominated in their currencies since the currencies were expected to return to the old gold parities soon after the end of the war. Eli Heckscher. Sweden ran a substantial trade surplus in these years and part of it was regulated with gold payments. 47–48).11 The Riksbank also raised the discount rate and kept it at a high level even when the business cycle turned downwards in the autumn of 1920 and prices started to fall precipitously. prices. 1920. His aim was to push the Riksbank into raising the discount rate and thereby help to curb the rate of inflation. particularly against the German mark but also against sterling and to a lesser extent the US dollar. Economists considered that the gold export ban was responsible for the krona’s depreciation against the dollar. the krona was still above the prewar gold parities. 112–13). To understand the financing of the Swedish export surplus during the war years. The dollar’s exchange rate against the krona rose above the old gold parities. which was rising. it must be born in mind that since the middle of the 19th century Sweden had imported massive amounts of capital. gold continued to flow into Sweden. which means that in 1924 a Swedish citizen had to pay .20 to A7. foreign currency/kr (Jan 1914=100) right scale Source: See Appendices A7.2. which for him also meant abandoning the gold standard. Riksbank again undertook to exchange gold for banknotes. 7. on 1st April 1924 the krona was also formally back on the gold standard.7.1 shows the path of the Swedish krona’s exchange rate against a trade-weighted average of Sweden’s trading partners in the period 1914–24. foreign currency/kr Jan 1914=100) left scale Exchange rated index 1914-24 (excluding German hyperinflation). whereas most economists favoured more lenient deflation and a return to the gold standard.22. The return to gold was seen as necessary in order to anchor the price level to a fixed norm. The Swedish exchange rate 1914–24 This section presents a summary view of the Swedish exchange rate during and after the First World War up to the restoration of the gold standard in 1924. Figure 7. The return to the gold standard had been preceded by an intense discussion among economists about the goals of monetary and foreign exchange rate policy. with and without German hyperinflation. Table A7. the German hyperinflation of 1921–23 has a large impact on the exchange rate index. Given Germany’s large weight in Sweden’s foreign trade. foreign currency/kr (Jan 1914=100) right scale Exchange rate index 1914-1924.1: Exchange rate index.2. The broad picture is nevertheless the same. The exchange rate excluding German hyperinflation shows an appreciation of the krona by roughly 100 per cent between 1914 and 1924. The primary goal for a majority of Swedish economists was price stability. From appreciation to depreciation 345 Figure 7. The wellknown economist Knut Wicksell advocated severe deflation and a return to the price level from 1914. A separate index that excludes the German hyperinflation has therefore been calculated for these years. 1914–24 (January 1914=100) 150 320 140 280 130 240 120 200 110 160 100 120 90 1914 1916 1918 1920 1922 1924 80 Exchange rate index 1914-24 (excluding Germany).2. while a return to the price level from 1914 was considered unrealistic. only half as many kronor as in 1914 for a trade-weighted basket of foreign currencies. After the war. left scale) the krona appreciated by 20–30 per cent between 1914 and 1924. and wages. . prices. did the krona’s purchasing power increase in terms of foreign goods? To answer that question we must look at the evolution of the price level in Sweden and among Sweden’s trading part12 The same weights (excluding Germany) as in the other indices have been used. the krona’s appreciation is to a large extent driven by the depreciation of the German mark.1.346 Exchange rates. Even before the German hyperinflation in 1921–23. According to such an index12 (see Figure 7. The inflation notes burned for longer than the firewood that people could buy for the same amount of money. the krona continued its upward float until the restoration of the gold standard in the mid-1920s.07. 1277–2008 A woman feeding a stove with old German marks in 1923. The sharp fluctuations in the krona’s exchange rate in 1917–18 are also clear. Did the krona also appreciate in real terms? In other words. between 1914 and 1920 the mark fell more than 90 per cent from its gold parity of 0. It is therefore of some interest to calculate an exchange rate index where Germany is excluded altogether in the period 1914–24.89 to 0. much of this appreciation occurred between the end of hostilities and the restoration of the gold standard in 1924. Data show that exchange rates can diverge for decades from what would be expected from PPP levels. many commodities do not enter international trade. we must discuss the concept of real exchange rates and its relationship to the purchasing power parity doctrine. where Ph is the price for a bundle of goods in the home country. This was the version of the PPP doctrine espoused by the Swedish economist Gustaf Cassel.7. with high cross-border mobility of finance. for example. The latter are asset prices and therefore to a large extent governed by expectations. When testing the relative version of the PPP doctrine. and e is the exchange rate (how many units of their own currency home country citizens have to pay for a unit of foreign currency). dealers would make a profit by buying wheat in the US and selling it at the higher price in Sweden. What applies to a single commodity applies to a bundle of commodities. This arbitrage would last until the dollar price of wheat is the same in both countries. If. which states that an identical commodity must fetch the same price everywhere. even for countries at a similar level of development. It has been shown that countries at a lower level of development. We would therefore not expect commodity arbitrage to directly bring exchange rates into line with changes in price levels. ^ ^ i. the PPP doctrine cannot be expected to hold in its absolute version. 13 For an overview of the PPP doctrine. economists commonly use price index numbers for the various countries. for instance GDP deflators. . Another reason why we cannot expect the PPP doctrine to apply directly is that changes in wages and prices are more sluggish than changes in exchange rates. The purchasing power parity (PPP) doctrine is an influential theory in international economics on what determines exchange rates. see Sarno (2008). such as tariffs. An obvious problem here is that commodity baskets differ between countries. with tradable sector wages that are lower than in developed countries. exchange rates deviate from what we would expect from the PPP doctrine. which states that the percentage change in the exchange rate between two countries equals the difference in the percentage rate of price level changes between the two countries. Moreover. as this is not mirrored in their exchange rates.: ê = Ph – Pf . Before doing so. their currencies are undervalued. consumer price indices or wholesale price indices. From appreciation to depreciation 347 ners. In its absolute form. the dollar price of wheat of a given quality is lower in the US than in Sweden. In financially deregulated economies. where the caret stands for growth rates. Because of transport costs and other obstacles to trade. who is often credited with being the originator of the PPP doctrine.13 It is based on the law of one price. Their general price level is therefore lower than in more highly developed countries. Pf is the price for the same bundle of goods in a foreign country. the PPP doctrine for exchange rate determination states: e = Ph/Pf . also have lower wages and therefore prices in the non-tradable sector compared to developed countries. More common is the relative version of the PPP doctrine.e. UK. According to a PPP benchmark for 1914. Note: Williamson’s PPP data pertain to 1905 except for the US and Sweden.2: Real exchange rate index 1914–24 (1914=0.4 1.0 1914 0. Economists often calculate the real exchange rate. RER calculations are done with price index numbers that are set to unity in a common period. publish PPP benchmarks for recent decades. 1277–2008 Figure 7. The real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1915 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark. the currencies are ‘fairly’ valued. the exchange rate is undervalued. purchasing power parities 1914 (Williamson 1995). If it is larger than unity. RER. the Swedish krona was slightly . but we do not know whether its value in the period set to unity is ‘fair’ in the sense that PPPs are equalised.1 1. the exchange rate is overvalued. for which they pertain to 1909 and 1914. Statistical agencies. For earlier periods we have to rely on the efforts of economists and economic historians. If it is lower than unity. Without such a reference point we cannot tell whether exchange rates are ‘overvalued’ or ‘undervalued’ at a certain point in time. prices. In practice.3 1. USA and France. at best we can only tell in which direction RERs are headed. consumer price indices (Mitchell 2003b. Mitchell 2003a).96) 1. Norway.9 1914 1916 1918 1920 1922 1924 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs 1914 Real exchange rate 1914-25 (1914=0.96) Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7. From that period we can calculate RERs forwards and backwards.or undervaluation at a point in time. The various available PPP benchmarks are not directly comparable with respect to coverage and methods of calculation. and wages. They have been recalculated to 1914 values by means of consumer price index numbers derived from Mitchell. If RER is unity. They therefore give us only some general idea of the extent of a currency’s over. meaning that the home country’s citizens have more purchasing power abroad than at home. such as Eurostat and the OECD.2 1.1). according to the following formula: RER = Ph /Pf e.348 Exchange rates.5 1. when the price level fell precipitously. which led to a fast fall in the Swedish RER in the first half of the 1920s.1.2. indicating that at that time the krona was possibly only slightly overvalued. 329–30). Austria reconstructed its monetary unit in that way in 1923. and politicians taking advice from them. the stabilization of the price level entailed the creation of new monetary units backed by gold. Norway in the 14 Calculated from trade weighted RERs for the Swedish krona against the currencies of Denmark. by roughly 40 per cent according to our calculation.3.16 The inflationary conditions during the war continued in the first post-war years. 18 Eichengreen (1996. 16 The following overview of the international monetary system in the inter-war period is largely based on Kenwood and Lougheed (1985. Denmark went back to gold in January 1927. As shown by Figure 7. where inflation had been contained. in 1925 it was nearly back at unity. 1924–39 After the First World War. Britain’s return to gold prompted other countries. 17 Eichengreen (1996. For the following ten years the RERs have been calculated from annual averages of our monthly exchange rates and consumer price index numbers for the various countries. Germany and Poland in 1924 and Hungary in 1925. such as Germany. a combination of a sharp economic downturn and harsh deflationary policies broke inflation in 1921–23. Germany was excluded from the calculations for the period 1914–24. high inflation developed into hyperinflation. The trade weights are from 1915. pp.18 Re-establishing the old gold parities took longer in Denmark and Norway.15 The deflation that followed in 1921–23 was extraordinarily harsh in Sweden. such as Australia. went back to gold in 1924 and 1925 at the old parities. Because of the distorting effects of the extraordinary German depreciation and hyperinflation. Austria and Hungary. with a PPP of 0. A monetary system founded on gold was considered to be the only guarantee of price stability. Ch. Countries like Sweden and the UK. In those countries. among them Sweden and the UK. p. to follow suit. USA and France. 47–48). currencies continued to float. 15 Östlind (1945. From appreciation to depreciation 349 undervalued. The restoration and fall of the inter-war gold standard Overview of the international monetary system. That the krona was overvalued at that time was also the opinion of contemporary economists. 7. . the Netherlands and South Africa. Norway.96. Economists.96 for 1914. argued for a return to the gold standard.14 I have accordingly scaled the Swedish RER to 0. Great Britain. 7.3. PPP data come from Williamson (1995).17 In other countries. Ch. 3). For later periods Germany is also included in the calculated RER indices. 47). In some countries. p. 12–13) and Eichengreen (1996.7. the exchange rate of the krona seems to have been greatly overvalued at the end of the First World War. To stem the tide.350 Exchange rates. p. Uruguay and other Latin American countries limited gold convertibility in 1929. The asymmetry in the interwar gold standard was exacerbated by international capital flows in the late 1920s. The USA possessed almost half of the available gold reserves and in Europe it was France that accumulated gold. 1277–2008 autumn of 1927. apparently because of an overvalued pound. they went back to gold in 1925 and 1927. German governments were now forced to adopt deflationary policies to defend the gold standard. both countries installed exchange controls that prohib19 Klovland (1998. Argentina. p. while the UK struggled with persistent current-account deficits. 20 France stabilized its currency in late 1926 and went back de jure to the gold standard in June 1928 (Eichengreen 1996. respectively. the supply of finance to these countries dried up. The French franc was clearly undervalued at the new parities. The Genoa conference in 1922 therefore decided that central banks should be allowed to hold reserves not only in gold but also in convertible currencies. Belgium and Italy experienced inflation in the 1920s which was not followed by sharp deflation. Credit Anstalt. as did Australia and New Zeeland. 47). Peripheral countries dependent on exporting prime commodities were hard hit by declining export revenues at the same time as capital imports diminished. was on the brink of default and was bailed out by the government. (1997. The world’s gold reserves grew much more slowly than output. Brazil. An additional problem was the unequal distribution of the available gold reserves. while Germany and East European states were the main borrowers. there was the problem of insufficient gold reserves with which to back currencies. Gold tended to accumulate in just a few countries. When the US Federal Reserve raised the interest rate in 1928 to curb the Wall Street boom.19 France stabilized its currency at about the same time as Denmark20 but did so at a fifth of the pre-war gold parity. 49).22 The strains on the inter-war gold standard grew when in November 1931 an Austrian bank. In the middle of a deep economic crisis.21 A large part of the international lending was short-term. Like France. Everything appeared to be back to normal but in fact the gold standard only lasted another five years. . The interwar gold standard was accordingly a gold exchange standard. By 1927. Capital flowed freely across national borders. p. as it was in Britain and the Scandinavian countries. 31). 21 Feinstein et al. The banking crisis led to capital flight that spread to Hungary and Germany. First. 22 Eichengreen (1996. Many factors exerted a strain on the interwar gold standard and caused it to function less smoothly than before the First World War. Canada introduced an embargo on gold exports. In the context of political democracy it was difficult for the British to pursue deflationary policies. all the major countries’ currencies were convertible into gold at fixed parities. The USA was the major lender in that decade. while the French did not permit the price level to rise. Signs that the gold standard was beginning to crumble first appeared in 1929. prices. Ch 5). and wages. Exchange controls in Austria. 7.16 in November 1931. Switzerland. which were now of dubious value. arresting the capital flight and defending the gold parity of sterling proved impossible. and in 1934–36 various European gold bloc countries also devalued their currencies. Sweden followed suit a week later because the Riksbank’s foreign currency reserves were dwindling rapidly. Belgium. Britain’s decision was followed by the countries in the British colonial empire and dominions. as well as by the Scandinavian countries. Finland and some other countries.3. The Swedish exchange rate in the 1930s When the UK left the gold standard in mid-September 1931. p. Although their currencies were backed by gold. This entailed abandoning the fixed exchange rate regime so the exchange rate could be used to stabilize the price level. From appreciation to depreciation 351 ited the free cross-border flow of capital. after which the krona started to depreciate again and was back to the old parity at 18. the use of exchange controls signified that they had left the gold standard. 87) 25 The following account of Swedish exchange rate policy in the 1930s is based on Jonung (1979) and Berg and Jonung (1999). Germany and countries in Eastern Europe under German influence prohibited the free cross-border movement of capital. the Bank of England suspended gold convertibility and devalued the pound by roughly 30 per cent against the gold currencies. The Riksbank did not intervene in the foreign exchange market immediately after Sweden had left the gold standard. On September 19. . The British balance of payments deteriorated sharply in the summer of 1931.23 After the events of 1931. Poland and Czechoslovakia – tried to adhere to the gold standard and formed the Gold Bloc. The krona started to appreciate against sterling. (1997. the international monetary system disintegrated into three blocs. In 1933 the USA devalued the dollar and suspended gold convertibility24. notably France. A policy declaration stated that the primary goal of monetary policy would now be to keep the krona’s purchasing power stable. The Riksbank then decided to peg the krona to sterling at the old gold parity. governments had to arrange bilateral agreements.2.25 It was disclosed that a considerable part of these reserves consisted of dollar bills of exchange issued by various Krueger enterprises. Despite interest rate hikes by the Bank of England. Financial capital fled from Britain.7. By the mid 1930s there was not much left of the gold standard. Thereby these countries de facto left the gold standard. pp. which fell below 17 kronor. 151-4) 24 Eichengreen (1996. a decision that was at odds with the 23 Feinstein et al. To trade with these countries. the Netherlands. The remaining gold countries – the USA and the remaining European countries. The Sterling Bloc consisted of the countries that followed Britain in suspending gold convertibility and pegged their exchange rates to sterling. 1931. such as Portugal. despite a slight appreciation between 1934 and 1937. In sum. 27 That the devaluation of the Swedish krona as well as the Danish and Norwegian krona also corresponded to a real depreciation has been pointed out by Klovland (1998. Germany and France as given in Williamson (1995).4. 28 Calculated from PPP benchmarks 1927 for Sweden.26 Furthermore. USA. The peg at the old parity could not be maintained for long.40. it seems obvious that the krona did depreciate in real terms in the interwar period. the 1931–32 depreciation only brought it back to a ‘fair value’. by 1934 its value had fallen by roughly 25 per cent. The extent to which it was ‘overvalued’ or ‘undervalued’ during parts of 26 Lundberg (1983).352 Exchange rates. prices. From the spring of 1932 it was abundantly clear that the international depression had hit the Swedish economy and that deflationary forces were building up. If our real exchange rate index for Sweden against six major trading partners is set at 0. This allowed the Riksbank to let the krona depreciate without importing inflation and risking the stated monetary policy goal of price stability. Figure 7. 318–21). gives an overview of the Swedish exchange rate in the period 1924–39. Did the krona also depreciate in real terms? Swedish economic historiography considers that the krona did depreciate in real terms in the 1920s. since deflation in Sweden was more severe than in most other countries. mainly due to devaluations in gold bloc countries. Denmark. indicating a ‘fair value’ for the krona. Nevertheless. at the outbreak of the Second World War the krona had depreciated more than 20 per cent compared to the situation before Sweden left the gold standard in 1931. and wages. the krona’s real exchange rate fell even more in the early 1930s. the depreciation in the 1920s must be seen in the light of the krona’s clear overvaluation in the early 1920s as a result of its appreciation during the First World War.27 The inter-war depreciation of the Swedish real exchange rate is evident in Figure 7. However. the krona was more or less stable until its depreciation in 1931–32. UK. in which case the depreciation in 1932 led to an undervaluation of the krona by 10–15 per cent in the 1930s. which rose above 19. In June 1933 the Riksbank decided to peg the krona to sterling at 19. The peg was maintained until the outbreak of the Second World War. From the level in 1934 it appreciated slightly up to 1937. Norway.50 kronor in the summer of 1932. After the US left the gold standard in the spring of 1933. showing the evolution of our trade-weighted exchange rate index. pp. based on a PPP benchmark for that year. Starting instead from a PPP benchmark for 192728. . the value for 1926 is close to unity. the international currency market became less volatile and the exchange rates of sterling and the US dollar stabilised.3. following the depreciation in 1931–32. After the major currencies had returned to gold in the mid 1920s. which indicates a 12 per cent overvaluation of the krona in that year. After the Krueger crash in March 1932 the krona depreciated against sterling.96 for 1914. 1277–2008 monetary policy declaration two months earlier that the goal of a fixed exchange rate would be abandoned. 7.20. Figure 7. Mitchell 2003a). Germany and France.10 1. .85 0.15 1927 1. purchasing power parities 1927 (Williamson 1995).1). Table A7. Note: The real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1930 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark.3: Exchange rate index.95 0. From appreciation to depreciation 353 Figure 7. Norway. consumer price indices (Mitchell 2003b. 1924–39 (January 1929=100) 110 105 100 95 90 85 80 75 70 1924 1926 1928 1930 1932 1934 1936 1938 Exchange rate index.90 0. USA. foreign currency/kr (Jan 1929=100) Sources: See Appendix A7.05 1. UK.00 0.4: Real exchange rate index 1925–39 (1926=1) 1.2.80 1926 1928 1930 1932 1934 1936 1938 Real exchange rate 1925-39 (1926=1) Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1927 Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7. 30 The following account of the international monetary system in the period 1944–1973 is primarily based on Eichengreen (1996) and Kenwood and Lougheed (1985). corresponding to the USA’s leading role in the international economy.4. Each country’s currency would be pegged to the dollar at a fixed rate.4. An enduring trade surplus may indicate undervaluation. Exchange rate adjustments would be allowed only after consultations with a new ‘International Stabilization Fund’.30 The conference had been preceded by proposals for the functioning of a new international monetary system from Keynes. Sweden had a surplus of 1–2 per cent of GDP during the 1920s29 whereas the surplus was smaller in the 1930s. the leader of the US delegation. to achieve external balance. who headed the British delegation. Edvinsson (2005). The result of the Bretton Woods proceedings was a compromise between the proposals of Keynes and Dexter White. 7. while trade with Germany. delegates from 44 allied nations convened in Bretton Woods. given the difficulty of establishing reference points of ‘fair value’ against which to measure this. but a deviation of one per cent up or down from this rate would be allowed. New Hampshire. to draw up the guidelines for a new international monetary system. He foresaw a system of fixed exchange rates where each national currency was pegged to gold. prices. The dollar in turn was pegged to gold and exchangeable for it at the rate of 35 dollars per ounce. Dexter White’s proposal was closer to the old gold standard. An overview of the international monetary system in the Bretton Woods era In July 1944.1. The latter may perhaps be explained by the fact that the krona did not depreciate against the sterling area. Only in a situation of ‘fundamental disequilibrium’ in the external balance was a country allowed to devalue its 29 Krantz and Schön (2007). when the krona depreciated most markedly in real terms. 1277–2008 this period is more difficult to determine. . He also suggested the creation of an international clearing system with extensive credit facilities for the participating countries and a new international unit of account which he called bancor. and wages.354 Exchange rates. Dexter White suggested the creation of credit facilities. in other words an ‘adjustable peg system’. against which the krona depreciated sharply. The reshaping of the international monetary system after the Second World War: the Bretton Woods system 7. the size of which was dependent on quotas paid in gold or in the countries’ own currencies to the ‘International Stabilization Fund’. The Bretton Woods system was a fixed exchange rate system. To support countries with external deficits. was conducted via bilateral negotiations. with the latter clearly exerting more influence. Keynes argued for a system where countries could adjust their exchange rates. and Dexter White. Although the dollar was exchangeable for gold. Countries had difficulties in exporting enough to earn the dollars they needed to pay for goods from the US. IMF. Under the EPU. when all currencies would be fully convertible. A lack of export revenue and a shortage of dollars made it hard for European countries to restore the convertibility of their currencies. A case in point was the British attempt to restore the gold convertibility of sterling in 1947. The new international monetary system agreed upon in Bretton Woods was supposed to become fully operational after five years. international reserves diminished so rapidly that after only six weeks the Bank of England was forced to re-suspend gold convertibility in August 1947. also called the Marshall Plan. a new international agency. they devalued their currencies by 30 per cent against the dollar in September 1949. it was an ‘adjustable peg system’. When the US economy went into recession in 1948–49. The size of the quotas reflected each country’s economic strength and also determined the country’s voting rights in the IMF. Thirdly. The countries taking part agreed to work towards current account convertibility and also adopted a ‘code of liberalization’ which mandated the removal of restrictions on currency conversion for trade purposes. countries were allowed to use capital controls to avert volatile capital flows. helped to alleviate the dollar shortage. also called the World Bank. European countries found it even harder to earn sufficient export revenue. EPU. the International Bank for Reconstruction and Development. The Bretton Woods system established the dollar as the world’s leading reserve currency. the Bretton Woods system was fundamentally different from the old gold standard. trade restrictions were abolished more quickly among European countries than on imports from the . of which 25 percent was to be paid in gold or ‘convertible currencies’ (meaning the dollar) and the rest in national currency. Firstly. the participating countries were also granted a certain amount of credit facilities. The EPU was a clearing arrangement for facilitating trade between West European countries. the Organization for European Economic Cooperation. Secondly. a new international agency set up to monitor the system. the IMF. To strengthen their competitiveness. it was possible to devalue a currency instead of being obliged to follow a deflationary monetary policy to restore competitiveness. dependent on and financed by country quotas. which was put into effect in 1947. was set up under its auspices. Through the IMF. To promote economic development. The IMF could also extend credit to countries in trouble and had the right to sanction governments who did not play by the rules. was founded and the European Payment Union. was created to monitor the system. From appreciation to depreciation 355 currency by up to ten per cent after consultation with the International Monetary fund. fifteen years passed before all the major currencies became fully convertible in December 1958. OEEC. To administer this Plan. was set up to provide loans to developing countries. In fact. In practice. The European Recovery and Relief Plan. European reconstruction after the Second World War required enormous resources. In other words.7. the international monetary system was now based on a dollar standard. This worked until 1967. The French president de Gaulle pointed out that the international monetary system gave the US seigniorage privileges that were not available to other countries and on many occasions he threatened to exchange the French dollar reserves for gold. which suggested that sterling was overvalued. among them the Belgian monetary economist Robert Triffin. The US deficits represented a dilemma for countries. for the first time since the Second World War. France left the Gold Pool in 1968 and was soon followed by Britain. From 1968 a two-tiered system emerged. pointed out that the Bretton Woods system had a built-in contradiction. eight countries among the Group of Ten created a Gold Pool in order to preserve the official price of gold at 35 dollars per ounce by means of market interventions. while the UK tended to have continual trade deficits. Although the USA still had a positive trade balance. Two months earlier. since the dollar was the reserve currency. Critical observers. The situation worsened in the 1960s as the US surplus on merchandise trade was gradually undermined by the increasing competitiveness of other industrial nations. which signified that the Bretton Woods system was in full operation. in October 1969. US deficits supplied the world economy with liquidity. at the same time as growing US deficits undermined the dollar’s stability. France had devalued the franc by the same amount after a year of student protests and rampant labour unrest. It soon became apparent that the main problem with the international monetary system had ceased to be insufficient dollar liquidity and was rather a ‘dollar overhang’. The architects of the Bretton Woods system had not foreseen the rapid growth of world trade in the 1950s and ’60s. prices. The lack of gold reserves also threatened to drive up the price of gold to well above the official parities. the West German mark was revalued by 10 per cent. In December 1958 Western European countries restored the convertibility of their currencies. In 1961. In 1961. 1277–2008 USA. such as West Germany. The crisis in the Bretton Woods system in the late 1960s was manifested in the realignment of exchange rates. which indicated that the D-mark was undervalued. The fixed rates that had been set in the 1950s were becoming increasingly outdated because countries differed in the development of productivity and hence of competitiveness. that ran a cur- . its balance of payments had shown a deficit since 1958 as a result of investment and military expenditures abroad. The supply of gold grew much more slowly than world trade and it became increasingly clear that the gold reserves of the US would not suffice if countries with a trade surplus were to insist on exchanging their dollar reserves for gold at official parities.356 Exchange rates. where the free market price of gold rose high above the official price. moreover. when sterling came under pressure. West Germany ran persistent current-account surpluses. and wages. In November 1967 sterling was devalued by 15 per cent and two years later. The system lasted for another fifteen years. France resorted to a devaluation in 1957. For example. European countries also used exchange controls to alleviate balance of payments problems. other countries’ combined reserves of gold and hard currencies exceeded the US gold and currency reserve. To lessen the need for more dollar liquidity. This put an end to the Bretton Woods fixed exchange rate system. by 10 per cent. which were allocated to countries in relation to their quotas in the IMF.7. 128–34). participants from the Group of Ten countries signed the Smithsonian Agreement. countries in the IMF agreed to create additional credit facilities. From appreciation to depreciation 357 rent-account surplus. In the spring of 1971 dollars flowed to Western Europe in a steady stream. To stem price increases for imported goods. The suspension of gold convertibility removed a central pillar of the Bretton Woods system. The US trade balance turned into a deficit in 1971. The latter problem was exacerbated by the growing Eurodollar market. At a meeting at the Smithsonian conference centre in New York in December 1971. The US 10 per cent import surcharge was rescinded and the dollar was devalued by 8 percent. central banks discussed how the international monetary system could be reformed.2.32 7. pp. the band within which exchange rates were allowed to float without requiring central bank intervention was widened to ±2 ¼ per cent. The Group of Ten (the central banks in the ten leading countries). which increased liquidity in the banking system outside the control of central banks. however. on August 13 that year the US President. which spilled over to the home market and fostered inflation. moreover. pp. which was increasing. Moreover. Sweden and the Bretton Woods system In the aftermath of the Second World War. A devaluation of the dollar would deprive them of some of their savings. Richard Nixon. against major European currencies was negotiated in 1973 but this time West Germany and other European countries decided to let their currencies float. The built-in contradiction of the Bretton Woods system – that the international reserve currency was also a national currency whose stability was being undermined by mounting US deficits – remained. 32 Eichengreen (1996. nothing really changed. As of 1970. . while the German. an important issue in Swedish economic policy was the prevention of inflation. if.31 The Special Drawing Rights and other credit facilities were clearly insufficient to replace the dollar as an international reserve currency. 31 Kenwood and Lougheed (1985. Despite Nixon’s claim that the Smithsonian Agreement was ‘the most significant monetary agreement in the history of the world’. A second devaluation of the dollar. had already entered a ‘General Agreement to Borrow’ in 1962. they continued to accumulate dollar reserves they risked inflation since dollars could be exchanged for local currency at a fixed rate. countries could accumulate reserves in the form of Special Drawing Rights. announced that the US had suspended the dollar’s convertibility into gold and imposed a 10 per cent surcharge on merchandise imports. 279–80). In the following months. Swiss and Benelux currencies were revalued.4. The Dutch and West German central banks permitted their currencies to float upwards. The US dollar continued to be a weak currency. which Sweden had ratified. such as the Japanese yen. and wages.20. see also Ahlström and Carlsson (2006).2. foreign currency/kr (Jan1950=100) Sources: See Appendix A7. the krona followed suit along with many other European currencies. In the 1950s Sweden participated in the EPU and in 1958 the Swedish krona became fully convertible along with other European currencies.5 gives an overview of the evolution of the Swedish exchange rate in the 33 The following account of Swedish exchange rate policy under the Bretton Woods system is primarily based on Wihlborg (1993).33 This had the drawback of weakening the competitive position of Swedish producers. When. the krona was revalued by 14 per cent in 1946.34 Figure 7. However. presupposed membership of the Bretton Woods institutions. it depreciated by only 6 per cent against the krona. Sweden did join in August 1951. The Swedish exchange rate against the dollar was stable from 1949 to 1971. The history of the Swedish exchange rate from adherence to the Bretton Woods system up to its demise in 1973 is intertwined with that of other West European countries. 34 Wihlborg (1993) . at the time of the Smithsonian agreement.358 Exchange rates. Table A7. 1277–2008 Figure 7. Sweden’s currency depreciated against the German mark and the Japanese yen. 1946–73 (January 1950=100) 120 115 110 105 100 95 90 1946 1950 1954 1958 1962 1966 1970 Exchange rate index. in other words. prices. When sterling was devalued by 30 per cent against the US dollar in September 1949. Sweden did not at first participate in the Bretton Woods system since it was considered incompatible with Swedish neutrality in foreign policy.5: Exchange rate index. the immediate reason seems to have been that the GATT agreements. the dollar depreciated by 10 per cent against the German mark and other strong currencies. For Sweden and the Bretton Woods institutions. our trade-weighted exchange rate index fell by 14 per cent following the devaluation.35 The krona was then quite stable in the 1950s. Note: The real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1975 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark. with a tendency to appreciate slightly in 1957 and 1958 due to the devaluation of the French franc in these years. Early in 1973.04 1.6: Real exchange rate index 1950–75 (1951=1) 1. period 1946–73. Germany and France. Figure 7. 205) that the 30 per cent devaluation in 1949 was of no great importance since it was done against the US dollar and the Swiss franc. A PPP benchmark from 1975 indicates that at that time the Swedish krona was overvalued by 12 per cent against a trade-weighted aver35 It has been argued (Wihlborg 1993. Mitchell 2003a).96 0. purchasing power parities 1975 (Williamson 1995). consumer price indices (Mitchell 2003b.7. p. The increasing turbulence in international currency markets towards the end of the 1960s is also clearly visible in the graph.92 1952 1956 1960 1964 1968 1972 1975 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1975 Real exchange rate 1950-1975 (1951=1) Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7.00 0. . Norway. a not insignificant amount. The net result of the exchange rate realignment in late 1971 was a slight appreciation of the krona. USA. From appreciation to depreciation 359 Figure 7.1). as measured by our trade-weighted exchange rate index. The krona appreciated in 1967 due to the devaluation of sterling in 1967 and then depreciated slightly in 1969 due to a revaluation of the West German mark in the autumn.16 1. The revaluation in 1946 and the devaluation in 1949 are clearly visible.12 1. after which the krona floated along with other European currencies.6 shows the development of the krona’s real exchange rates against six main trading partners 1950–75. Sweden joined the European snake arrangement. UK. However.08 1.20 1. both of which had relatively small weights in Swedish foreign trade. and sterling weakened even more. which led to 36 As before. To safeguard price stability.38 By 1985 many observers were worried that exchange rates were ‘misaligned’. Trade weights derive from 1975. for a Swedish citizen abroad. pp. France and the USA. In the second half of the 1970s the US dollar depreciated against the Japanese yen and the German mark. while the US and Japan let their currencies float.360 Exchange rates. prices. the real exchange rate index is calculated with respect to Denmark. central banks had to rely on monetary policy. 1277–2008 age of six main trading partners. It was mainly in the 1960s that the krona appreciated in real terms when it revalued nominally against the pound at the same time as the rate of inflation in Sweden (and many other West European countries) was markedly higher than in Germany and the US. After a shift in economic policy doctrine around 1980. In other words. the post-Bretton Woods international monetary system can be characterized as a regime of ‘managed floating’.12 for the real exchange rate in 1975 (according to a PPP benchmark from1975). 146–47) . initially without regard to their value. 1973–2008 7. The central banks in both countries raised interest rates and their currencies appreciated. i. which led to an even larger appreciation of the dollar. exchange rates were determined by market forces. Ch. Overview of the international monetary system after the breakup of the Bretton Woods system The demise of the Bretton Woods system was a watershed in the history of the international monetary system. Foreign capital was attracted by high interest rates in the US. 7.36 In other words. both the US and the UK gave priority to combating inflation. 37 The following overview of the international monetary system since 1973 is primarily based on Eichengreen (1996.1.5. All this signifies that the krona appears to have been overvalued when the Bretton Woods system collapsed. however.5. Norway.e. 5) and Kenwood and Lougheed (1985. European central banks tried to limit fluctuations among European currencies that were involved in various forms of European monetary cooperation. Great Britain. this reflected the higher rates of inflation in the US and the UK. and wages. the krona’s purchasing power was on average 12 per cent higher than at home.37 Currencies now ‘floated’ against each other. The system was no longer anchored to a metallic currency. 18) 38 Eichengreen (1996. We have therefore scaled the real exchange rate index to unity for this year. In many respects. governments and central banks did not completely disregard the evolution of exchange rates. gives a value close to unity for 1951. which now could be pursued without regard for its effect on exchange rates. Germany. Ch. In practice. Extrapolating backwards from a level of 1. 16. they did not reflect economic fundamentals. without central banks being obliged to intervene in order to stabilize them at some predetermined rate. After Bretton Woods. now named just ‘the snake’. From appreciation to depreciation 361 central bank agreements to rectify them by means of market interventions. When the US dollar started to float freely and the tunnel broke up in 1973. namely if one currency depreciated by 4½ per cent against the dollar while another country appreciated by the same amount. To prevent such a drifting apart of exchange rates. other European countries. When the G5 finance ministers and central bank governors met at the City Plaza Hotel in New York in September 1985.39 These examples show that while the currencies of the major economic powers floated against each other in the 1980s. meant that the European currencies taking part floated as a group against other currencies. For example. implying a maximum change of 4½ per cent in the exchange rate between any two currencies. After the demise of the Bretton Woods system. However. they agreed to press for ‘an orderly appreciation of non-dollar currencies’ in order to fend off rising protectionist sentiments in the US Congress caused by the dwindling competitiveness of US firms due to the high value of the dollar. At a G7 summit in Louvre in February 1987 it was agreed to stabilize exchange rates at the current levels. that could jeopardize the goals of a European economic union.7. varying rates of inflation and varying fiscal and monetary policies among the European countries made the snake arrangement difficult to uphold. the US dollar depreciated rapidly and the Europeans and the Japanese raised concerns that the dollar deprecation had gone too far. since there was now no tunnel. European countries decided to continue their commitment to limit mutual exchange rate variations to ±2¼ percent. After the Plaza accord. whose board was made up of representatives for the national central banks. The end result was that in the troubled macroeconomic environment of the late 1970s the European countries failed to keep fluctuations in their 39 Eichengreen (1996. for which a common currency was a central pillar. France withdrew in January 1974. there were still attempts to realign exchange rates by means of policy coordination. There were occasional devaluations and revaluations of currencies and countries withdrew and re-joined the snake. such as the dollar and the yen. The arrangement. when countries were permitted to let their currencies fluctuate within a band of ±2¼ per cent against the dollar. or ‘the snake in the lake’. European countries decided to continue with monetary cooperation in a regime of managed floating. pp. The snake countries established shortterm credit facilities to member countries with weak currencies and set up a European Monetary Cooperation Fund. also participated in the arrangement. Theoretically this made it possible for the exchange rate gap between two European currencies to widen by nine percent. This arrangement was named ‘the snake in the tunnel’. European monetary cooperation had started after the Smithsonian agreement in 1971. to monitor monetary policies. European countries agreed that their exchange rates should not deviate by more than ±2¼ per cent against each other. If exchange rates were permitted to drift apart unduly. re-entered in July 1975 and withdrew again in March 1976. Apart from the original EEC countries. among them Sweden. 149–50) . None of the original participating countries left the EMS in the 1980s but exchange rates were frequently ‘realigned’. In October 1976. the krona was devalued by 6 per cent against the snake currencies. From now on the Swedish krona was pegged to a basket of 14 currencies. The original six EEC countries and the new members Denmark and Ireland participated. pp. by 10 per cent. At the same time.40 In 1979. 152-59). Sweden decided to withdraw from the European currency cooperation in the snake. manifesting itself in current-account deficits. while the UK stayed outside. 42 Wihlborg (1993. and against the Belgian/Luxembourg franc and the Danish krona by more than 30 per cent. each weighted for its share in Sweden’s foreign trade.5. was presented as an ‘offensive’ measure.41 7.362 Exchange rates. 1277–2008 mutual exchange rates within the narrow band stipulated by the snake arrangement. in October 1982. in 1976 the Swedish exchange rate appreciated against a weighted average of Sweden’s trading partners. From the mid-1970s Sweden was hard hit by structural crises in manufacturing and a loss of competitiveness due to rising unit labour costs. the Frankfurt realignment of European exchange rates entailed a devaluation of the krona by 3 per cent against the mark. p. The devaluation’s obvious ‘beggar thy neighbour’ nature was criticized by the IMF and also raised concern among Sweden’s Nordic neighbours. in the sense that they were undertaken to ‘rectify’ an alleged overvaluation of the krona.2. Another devaluation. it was agreed that participating countries should strive to keep mutual exchange rate variations within a band of ±2¼ percent. 164). though Italy was granted a wider band of ±6 percent. . As with the snake. with a double weight for the US dollar. European exchange rate collaboration was renewed through a French initiative by setting up the European Monetary System (EMS). The new Social Democrat government motivated it as a means to strengthen the profitability and competiveness of manufacturing and to kick-start the economy. Over the course of the 1980s the German mark appreciated against the Italian lira by more than 60 per cent. In the course of the 1980s Sweden’s unit labour costs rose faster than many of its 40 Eichengreen (1996. due to the decline of the US dollar and sterling. followed in August that year. prices. The Swedish krona after the fall of the Bretton Woods system Sweden joined the European snake arrangement in March 1973 and for the next two years the krona’s exchange rate against the German mark was quite stable.42 While the devaluations in 1977 and 1981 might be considered defensive. Even so. the next devaluation. pp. especially in the first half of that decade. In April 1977. 41 Eichengreen (1996. 226-28). against the French franc and the Irish pound by more than 40 per cent. and wages. Further loss of competiveness and concern over currentaccount deficits led to another 10 per cent devaluation against the currency basket in September 1981. its long-run evolution is similar to our index. From appreciation to depreciation 363 Bengt Dennis. This is clear from our exchange rate index for the period 1973–2008. . se/templates/ Page.riksbank.7. mainly due to the depreciation of the US dollar and sterling. all of which are clearly visible in the graph.aspx?id=4231 competitors’. which eroded the benefits that the Swedish manufacturing industry had obtained from the devaluation in 1982. as can be seen from Figure 7. The Swedish central bank. According to the Bank of International Settlements. Sweden has had a floating exchange rate regime ever since. the Riksbank’s reserve losses amounted to more than 10 per cent of Sweden’s Gross National Product. In the EMS crisis in 1992 the krona was one of the currencies that came under speculative attacks. Governor of the Riksbank at the time of the EMS crisis in 1992. the krona was tied to the European Currency Unit in May 1991.43 On 19 November the Riksbank had to abandon its defence of the krona. the Riksbank.7. The end result was a depreciation of the krona by 30–35 per cent from the situation at the break-up of the Bretton Woods system. It is based on fewer currencies and different (fixed) weights from our index. the TCW index. Instead. Nevertheless. The break-up of the Bretton Woods system inaugurated a long period of depreciation of the Swedish krona. p.7. declared that there would not be a devaluation this time round. 174).44 The krona drifted upwards in the first few years. Source:http://www. The Riksbank tried in vain to defend the exchange rate by raising the marginal rate of interest to three digit levels and by purchases in the currency markets. Figure 7. 44 From October 1981 the Riksbank publishes an exchange rate index. 43 Eichengreen (1996. Thereafter it was taken down by a series of three devaluations in 1977–82. 7. foreign currency/kr (Jan 1975=100) TCW index.8 1975 1980 1985 1990 1995 2000 2005 Real exchange rates 1973-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rates based on purchasing power parities for GDP (OECD).364 Exchange rates. UK. purchasing power parities 1975 (Williamson 1995). Norway. and wages. .0 0.20. Note: The TCW index starts in October 1981.9 0. prices. Figure 7. Sveriges Riksbank’s website. 1973-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1985 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1975 Sources: Exchange rates (Appendix A7.1). Sveriges Riksbank Sources: Exchange rate index see Appendix A.1 1. purchasing power parities for other years.8: Real exchange rate index 1973–2008 (1983=1) 1. purchasing power parities 1985 (Maddison 1991). Table A7. Germany and France.2 1975 1985 1. consumer price indices. Note: The real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average (1985 weights) of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark. at which date it has been scaled to the same number as our exchange rate index.3 1. 1973–2008 (January 1975=100) 110 100 90 80 70 60 50 40 1975 1980 1985 1990 1995 2000 2005 Exchange rate index 1973-2008. 1277–2008 Figure 7.7: Exchange rate index.TCW index.2. OECD website. OECD web site. USA.4 1. The krona’s real exchange rate against a weighted average of six main trading partners47 is more or less stable from 1993 to 2008 when computed directly from PPPs and nominal exchange rates. 2002 and 2005.06 in 1985 (calculated from PPP data) for Sweden against a trade-weighted average of six countries (Maddison 1991. A real exchange index constructed instead from the consumer price indices of the various countries and nominal exchange rates shows a marked depreciation after 1993. see Figure 7. From 1995 the OECD has computed Purchasing Power Parities (PPP) for all OECD countries for the years 1995. 2002 and 2005. or whether the krona will bounce back. UK. PPP benchmarks from 1995 onwards make it possible to compute real exchange rates directly. PPPs supplied by the OECD and Eurostat are backcasted by means of the implicit GDP price deflator for each country. 197). based on relative prices for a given basket of commodities. Denmark and Norway. The floating exchange rate system since 1992 has brought a sharp increase in the volatility of the exchange rate.7. initiating the current period of floating exchange rates. the krona fell by about 30 per cent. The real exchange rate was more stable. as shown in Figure 7. 49 That the krona was ‘fairly valued’ in 1983 is based on a real exchange rate of 1. p. initiated towards the end of 2008 and ongoing in the first two months of 2009. which meant that the value of the krona in the spring of 1993 was roughly half of what it had been when the Bretton Woods system collapsed 20 years earlier. it remains to be seen whether the current sharp fall in the krona. the common opinion among observers seems to have been that the krona was undervalued after the devaluation.48 As always. for example. see also Wihlborg (1991). 1999. 50 In 1982. hitherto without any clear trend. 46 PPP data can be downloaded from the OECD’s website. it is difficult to fix a point in time when the krona can be said to have been ‘fairly’ valued. When the Riksbank then abandoned the defence of the fixed exchange rate. though. From appreciation to depreciation 365 The devaluation in the autumn of 1982 was followed by a period of relative stability until the EMS crisis in 1992. 1999. From the OECD and Eurostat PPP data from 1985 it would appear that the krona was approximately ‘fairly’ valued49 in 1983 after the 1982 devaluation. Germany. The main difference between the two indices is the period 1995–2000.8. as measured for example by unit labour costs (Nordin 1991). France. This example illustrates the problems involved in extrapolating by means of price index numbers between benchmark levels. . 47 The real exchange rate index is calculated with respect to the same six countries as before: USA.46 Before 1995. Eurostat has constructed PPP data for European countries for the years 1995–98.45 The basic reason for the decline in the value of the Swedish krona was of course that the price level in Sweden rose faster than in its trading partners.8. Also. the krona seems to be wildly undervalued at the time of writing in February 2009. the real exchange rate backcasted by means of price index data from a level of unity in 1983 leads to a much higher overvaluation of the real exchange rate in the mid-1970s than is shown by. the 1975 PPP benchmark. 48 No matter how we calculate. will be permanent.50 We have 45 At the time of writing in February 2009. when the information obtained from consumer price indices deviates from the implicit price evolution mirrored by PPPs. while it was ‘fairly’ valued just before the 1982 devaluation. therefore set the real exchange rate index to unity in 1983. One was from 1915 to early 1924. The difference would be approximately the same with PPPs based on private consumption backcasted by means of consumer price indices. Its subsequent evolution is.1 and A7. . namely GDP deflators.366 Exchange rates. 1913–2008 The history of the Swedish exchange rate since the First World War can be summed up by noting that there were two periods when the value of the krona changed markedly. Between 1924 and 1977 there was no long-run change in the value of the krona. After the depreciation in 1992–93 it became ‘fairly’ valued again. as we have pointed out. A bird’s-eye view of the krona’s exchange rate. From this perspective. when the krona appreciated. 1277–2008 Figure 7.2. when the krona depreciated in several steps. event though the depreciation in the 1930s and the appreciation in the aftermath of the Second World War were sig51 There is also a large difference in 1973–83 between the real exchange rate calculated from consumer price indices or from PPP data from the OECD. the krona was clearly overvalued at the onset of the EMS crisis in 1992.9: Exchange rate index 1913-2008 (January 1929=100) 120 110 100 90 80 70 60 50 40 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 Exchange rate index 1913-2008 (excluding Germany 1913-24). This is strange since the OECD data are supposedly backcasted by means of price indices. prices. dependent on which measure we adopt for the real exchange rate. foreign currency/kr (Jan 1929=100) Sources: See Appendices A7.51 7. and wages. The other was 1977–93. foreign currency/kr (Jan 1929=100) Exchange rate index 1913-2008.6. the depreciation of Sweden’s krona in 1977–92 has brought its value back to much the same level as before the First World War. UK.8. 7. USA. If Germany is excluded from the index for those years. Note: The real exchange rate index is a trade-weighted average of the real exchange rates of the krona against the currencies of Denmark. Norway. .4.10: Real exchange rate indices.0 1914 1927 1975 1985 0.4 1.3 1. this picture is heavily dependent on the sharp depreciation of the German currency in the period 1913–23.7.8 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 Real exchange rate index 1914-25 (1914=0. nificant episodes in the history of the Swedish exchange rate. 7.2 1. From appreciation to depreciation 367 Figure 7. except for 1913–23 when Germany is excluded from the index. 1914–2088 1.9 0. showing the long-run evolution of the krona’s exchange rate against a trade-weighted average of Sweden’s trading partners. since 1913 the krona has depreciated by roughly 40 per cent against a weighted average of trading partners.5 1. Germany and France.2. However.1 1.9. In this case.96) Real exchange rate index 1925-39 (1926=1) Real exchange rate index 1950-75 (1951=1) Real exchange rate index 1973-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rates index based on PPPs 1983-2008 (1983=1) Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1914 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1927 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1975 Real exchange rate benchmark based on PPPs for 1985 Sources: See Figures 7. As can be seen from Figure 7.6 and 7. the krona’s appreciation during and after the First World War is less pronounced. e. as illustrated by Swedish data. the krona’s nominal exchange rate shows only minor fluctuations. Norway. USA. its long-run evolution was connected to the buying power of the krona. in other word devaluations or revaluations. During the Bretton Woods period the krona appreciated in real terms against our group of six major trading partners. many economists have concluded that the purchasing power parity doctrine is of limited value for the determination of exchange rates in the short or medium term. 1277–2008 The evolution of the Swedish krona’s exchange rate must be put in perspective by relating it to regime shifts in the international monetary system. based on information from PPP data. Both periods also signify major changes in the value of the krona. over the very long run. the fluctuations were also larger than in other periods. UK. when the Riksbank had a target for the exchange rate by pegging the krona to other currencies: sterling in the 1930s and a basket of currencies in the 1970s and 1980s. France. The krona was probably undervalued in the 1930s. appreciation during the First World War and depreciation after 1992/93. real exchange rates do sooner or later mean-revert. Because of the rather long periods during which exchange rates can deviate from what would be predicted from varying inflation rates. the exact magnitude of the measured real exchange rate should obviously be taken with a pinch of salt.10 shows a trade-weighted average of the real exchange rate against six other currencies52 for various sub-periods. such as sterling and the US dollar. . i. the interwar gold standard and the Bretton Woods system 1951–73. which strengthened the competitiveness of Swedish producers. i. The krona subsequently depreciated in real terms but this should be seen against the background of its high overvaluation in the early 1920s. Germany is excluded from the index for the period 1914–24. Secondly. Given that PPP benchmarks are error-prone. there are clearly periods of real appreciation or depreciation. following the 1931 devaluation. The appreciation of the krona during the First World War was also a real appreciation. A value larger than unity indicates overvaluation of the krona. As mentioned.e. A first conclusion is that there is no long-run trend in the evolution of the real exchange rate. Real exchange rates can drift in one direction for as long as two decades. The real exchange rate has been set to unity in a year in which the nominal exchange rate seems to have been close to ‘fair value’. The major exchange rate realignments that did take place in the period 1931–92 were a result of discretionary decisions by the Riksbank. in which a previous period of overshooting/undershooting in the value of the krona is corrected.368 Exchange rates. and wages. Figure 7. while a value below unity indicates undervaluation. For Sweden this was also the case in the periods 1931–51 and 1973–92. We can be more certain about long-run trends. 1915–24 and since 1992/93. During and after the Second World War there was no functional international monetary system and the krona’s exchange rate was pegged to major currencies. However. as are the price indices used to backcast or forecast from PPP levels. The devaluation in 1931 also led to a depreciation in real terms. The devaluations in 1977–81 52 Denmark. In the periods of free floating. In the periods of fixed exchange rates. Whether the exchange rate was adjusted by the Riksbank’s discretionary decisions or by the interplay of market forces during a period of floating exchange rates. Germany. prices. The depreciation of the krona since the autumn of 2008 is a vivid illustration of the extent to which prices of financial assets are governed by expectations of the future. The same can be said for the depreciation of the krona in 1992/93. From appreciation to depreciation 369 addressed a problem of overvaluation of the krona and strengthened the competitiveness of Swedish industry. Thereafter the krona has depreciated in real terms.7. . Most economists agree that in terms of ‘fundamentals’ the krona is undervalued today (at the time of writing in February 2009). 94 16.73 Apr 18. For the period 1980–99 the exchange rate data derive from information collected in the archives of Sveriges riksbank (Sweden’s central bank) except for the Swiss franc and the Icelandic krona in 1980.87 18. from 1915.04 18.23 17.11 16.02 17. the US dollar derive from information in Sveriges riksbank årsbok (Yearbook of the Swedish Central Bank). from 1978 Sveriges riksbank statistisk årsbok (Statistical Yearbook of the Swedish Central Bank).12 Dec 18.04 14.16 14.aspx?id=15882. the sum in Swedish kronor (SEK) that was equivalent to a given unit of a foreign currency.78 18.38 17. and wages.68 Mar 18.1 Sources The exchange rates are the currency prices quoted in Stockholm.24 16.28 17.41 17.19 19.16 Jul 18.37 16.26 17.88 14.68 16. SEK per GBP 1913–2008.25 18.69 15.08 Oct 18.64 16. For the period 1960–77 the monthly exchange rates between the Japanese yen and the Swedish krona have been calculated from monthly exchange rates between the Norwegian krona and the Japanese yen and between the Norwegian krona and the Swedish krona as reported on the Norwegian Central Bank’s website of exchange rates: http://www.13 16.84 17.68 17.1: Monthly exchange rates 1913–2008 A7.09 16.14 15.23 18.11 Aug 18.81 May 18.30 16. prices.61 17.78 17.70 16.21 16.89 17.40 16.1.23 16.07 17.22 19.93 16.75 17.21 18.99 16.50 16.38 18.23 18.23 19.19 18.85 18.15 Jun 18.26 18.27 17.26 18. 1277–2008 Appendix A7.05 14.69 16.82 11.26 18.26 18. Monthly exchange rates on UK.25 18.27 16.93 17.25 17.87 16.48 17.88 16.89 17.norges-bank. where the data derive from Sveriges riksbank statistisk årsbok.08 18.07 17.22 18.23 16.77 17.14 14.27 18. In this source we lack data on the exchange rate between the Swedish krona and the Japanese yen before 1977.86 17.94 18.38 16.1.41 13.65 16.27 17.26 18. i. In collecting monthly exchange rate data.48 16.40 17.39 17.01 16.14 16.46 17. Table A7.30 17.20 16.95 18.no/english/statistics/ exchange/.26 18.37 18.13 16.riksbank.24 18.31 17.63 17. the French franc and.40 18.77 17.11 16.45 16.58 17.73 16.41 18.14 13. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 18.75 Feb 18.38 15.28 17. For the period 1920–79 the exchange rate data derive from Sveriges riksbank årsbok.95 17.25 16.70 16.33 17. the German reichsmark.33 16.87 17.91 18.74 17.67 18.24 18.96 17.08 Sep 18.34 16.44 17.66 17.44 17.95 17.70 17.01 18.71 14.se/templates/stat.11 16. All other exchange rates for this period derive from information on monthly exchange rates collected in the archives of Sveriges Riksbank (Sweden’s central bank).71 15.10 17.97 17.20 18.87 14.43 18.88 14.40 17.09 15.76 13.370 Exchange rates.08 Nov 18.12 16.14 17.e.11 .68 16. For the period from 2000 onwards the exchange rate data derive from the website of Sveriges riksbank (Sweden’s central bank): http://www.34 13.18 19.57 16.28 16. the following sources have been used: For the period 1913–19 the monthly exchange rates for sterling.02 16.85 16.57 17.15 16.78 12. 53 14.95 16.17 18.50 14.50 14.15 17.50 14.50 14.56 14.50 14.47 12.53 14.40 19.91 18.40 19.53 14.50 14.59 14.38 12.42 14.95 16.95 16.54 14.53 14.95 16.95 16.95 16.41 14.51 14.54 14.95 16.41 19.39 12.50 14.40 19.14 18.45 12.50 14.50 14.44 Feb 18.43 14.49 14.94 19.95 16. SEK per GBP 1913–2008.17 18.53 12.53 14.95 16.46 12.47 14.50 14.58 14.50 14.40 14.50 14.45 12.52 14.95 16.95 16.47 14.95 16.50 14.10 18.48 12.51 14.50 14.40 19.56 14.10 18.54 14.41 19.95 14.40 12. From appreciation to depreciation 371 Table A7.10 18.95 16.95 16.51 Mar 18.43 12.41 19.41 14.10 17.50 14.7.38 12.50 14.36 12.16 19.50 14.15 18.38 19.40 19.95 16.40 19.40 19.63 19.95 16.15 18.50 14.95 16.1 (cont.57 14.16 18.36 12.15 18.40 19.95 16.55 14.38 12.16 18.95 16.50 14.40 14.19 18.40 19.60 14.40 19.55 14.50 14.95 16.40 19.46 14.95 14.52 14.15 18.40 14. Monthly exchange rates on UK.42 14.95 16.53 14.95 18.14 18.57 14.95 16.50 14.40 19.95 16.50 Apr 18.78 19.53 14.40 19.40 19.95 16.95 16.53 12.14 18.50 14.95 16.14 18.16 18.95 16.52 14.50 14.45 14.53 14.49 14.50 14.40 19.52 Nov 18.53 14.43 14.14 18.95 14.40 19.49 14.50 14.57 14.92 14.54 14.40 19.59 14.12 18.14 17.46 14.35 14.13 18.34 12.43 16.40 16.96 14.15 18.47 14.47 14.60 14.40 19.53 14.50 14.95 16.95 16.51 14.40 19.56 14.55 14.31 19.47 14.19 18.53 14.45 Dec 18.95 16.16 18.40 19.14 18.16 18.43 14.43 16.55 14.50 14.54 14.36 12.40 19.44 14.40 19.40 19.40 12.43 14.51 12.95 16.44 14.50 14.45 14.50 14.51 14.95 14.95 16.95 16.50 14.60 16.12 18.40 19.50 14.11 18.54 14.43 14.35 12.09 18.50 14.52 14.10 18.70 16.95 16.46 14.55 14.44 14.51 14.95 14.95 16.54 14.19 18.40 19.95 16.54 14.95 16.48 14.10 18.95 16.12 18.50 14.51 14.49 14.50 14.14 18.48 12.54 14.50 14.52 14.13 18.50 14.45 14.53 14.36 12.52 14.03 18.95 16.50 14.50 May 18.16 18.42 16.50 14.40 19.95 16.50 14.43 14.44 14.29 16.51 Jun 18.44 12.53 14.42 14.40 19.95 16.47 14.50 14.66 19.54 14.50 14.38 12.36 14.50 14.60 14.40 19.50 14.50 14.49 14.51 14.37 14.42 16.95 16.43 14.41 12.95 16.50 14.14 18.41 19.95 14.51 Sep 18.51 14.43 14.49 14.41 19.50 14.50 14.50 19.16 18.64 19.40 12.57 14.40 19.14 18.50 14.40 19.50 14.45 12.54 14.95 16.).50 14.95 16.43 16. Jan 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 18.55 14.95 16.40 19.95 16.40 19.32 18.51 14.50 14.95 16.53 14.95 16.41 19.39 12.53 14.12 18.40 14.54 14.53 14.95 16.56 14.50 14.55 14.44 14.40 19.41 12.95 16.52 14.50 14.35 12.42 19.50 14.40 19.93 18.40 19.50 14.10 18.40 19.50 14.51 Jul 18.54 14.54 14.50 14.40 14.95 16.37 14.95 16.39 12.41 19.38 .10 18.50 14.46 19.34 12.95 16.38 12.38 12.50 14.42 12.40 19.95 16.50 14.50 14.40 19.95 15.53 14.10 16.37 12.50 14.35 19.53 14.48 19.14 19.45 19.50 14.56 14.95 16.50 14.54 14.42 14.50 14.95 16.48 14.42 16.15 19.10 17.50 14.36 12.50 14.09 18.42 16.42 16.40 12.47 14.15 19.43 14.52 14.95 16.16 18.40 19.40 19.80 19.56 14.43 14.52 14.40 19.40 19.54 14.42 16.16 18.95 16.50 14.45 14.95 16.15 18.08 19.47 14.10 18.50 14.37 14.47 14.41 19.40 19.13 18.18 18.17 18.51 14.35 12.40 19.56 14.51 14.50 14.95 14.50 14.37 14.50 14.95 16.43 12.18 18.15 18.99 16.49 14.50 14.95 16.52 19.40 19.41 16.50 14.45 13.10 18.50 14.16 18.50 14.45 14.51 Aug 18.52 14.54 14.54 Oct 18.50 14.55 14.33 14.94 14.40 19.48 14.37 12.13 18.56 14.95 14.95 16.39 12.37 14.47 14.09 18.50 14.50 14.40 19.45 12.95 16.49 14.44 14.50 14.50 14.51 14.50 14.36 12.51 14.39 12.13 18.40 19.18 18.57 14.52 14.40 19.42 14.42 12.50 14.95 16.15 19.11 18.95 16.35 12.45 12.46 12.37 14.40 19.33 14.50 14.95 16.50 14.51 14.43 14.52 19.40 19.41 14.92 19.41 19.54 14.47 14.40 19.46 14. 00 7.20 14.34 10.75 11.25 9.03 13.80 13.23 13.76 13.57 12.68 13.71 13.45 10.16 10.59 13.63 10.64 13.76 10.82 10.33 10.80 11.76 10.47 15.59 11.88 10.33 12.86 10.92 8.18 12.68 10.37 11. prices.94 10.63 9.82 11.78 13.28 13.74 9.10 12.50 13.17 11.29 13.24 10.29 13.53 12.51 12.16 7.20 15.69 12. Jan 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 12.39 11.24 10.31 9.24 10.28 11.55 9.43 13.1 (cont.40 10.99 11.84 15.97 7.77 9.91 9.18 10.82 11.73 9.72 13.72 10.51 11.60 10.30 10.77 8.47 10.01 13.14 10.372 Exchange rates.94 13.06 9.18 12.92 11.53 10.45 13.13 13.27 11.58 10.44 8.75 12.87 10.53 11.00 10.03 8.45 10.63 14.34 13.66 10.31 13.11 12.67 10.01 10.58 13.40 11.71 10.25 12.28 13.90 11.41 11.71 10.56 11.99 8.57 10.20 10.54 13.58 10.06 7.44 10.02 13.13 10.85 13.82 10.76 10.35 10.62 11.85 Sep 11.84 Jul 11.41 10.05 11.35 12.08 13.54 14.11 10.96 13.59 11.01 7.82 11.31 10.72 9.96 13.02 13.63 10.82 8.14 7.20 12.44 13. and wages.48 Mar 12.56 13.84 10.89 14.88 7.98 11.58 13.67 13.39 13.00 9.57 9.86 11.19 10.32 13.16 11.12 10.16 11.81 14.48 8.88 7.85 10.11 13.09 14.80 11.86 10. SEK per GBP 1913–2008.26 13.81 14.92 13.93 6.37 15.61 11.19 12.48 9.84 10.48 9.68 12.59 7. Monthly exchange rates on UK.85 10.20 11.44 11.73 13.77 11.66 10.01 11.17 10.31 9.67 12.33 9.62 11.16 10.74 10.21 14.83 13. 1277–2008 Table A7.63 Feb 12.08 13.90 11.50 11.65 11.50 8.82 10.16 12.12 10.88 10.89 10.27 13.22 10.59 10.03 10.).24 11.49 11.98 12.05 10.71 13.00 8.36 11.74 8.77 13.53 10.32 10.93 10.26 12.30 10.94 11.67 10.05 13.85 14.21 10.82 10.32 13.17 10.51 13.35 13.90 13.87 13.85 9.68 11.70 10.60 13.41 9.42 13.45 12.62 11.40 10.55 8.91 13.65 9.39 10.21 13.10 11.17 11.79 10.46 9.68 12.94 13.55 11.99 10.51 13.12 15.05 8.55 9.96 13.52 13.57 9.86 10.74 14.50 10.51 11.78 11.50 14.37 11.20 Dec 11.72 10.53 9.67 9.62 10.75 13.61 11.48 8.45 9.80 9.10 9.12 12.76 Jun 12.02 10.61 11.76 10.09 10.28 9.47 11.26 12.60 10.89 14.01 12.14 Apr 12.02 10.55 10.66 10.55 13.25 8.20 10.41 11.63 13.23 10.96 10.22 10.88 11.31 13.55 9.05 10.79 13.31 10.15 9.77 May 12.58 11.61 8.91 9.44 12.94 10.25 10.55 11.85 10.56 10.45 10.48 15.85 13.70 10.88 7.79 11.69 14.29 13.32 11.45 13.74 13.90 7.23 12.96 13.56 10.82 13.34 14.62 9.99 11.91 10.17 13.41 9.69 9.62 10.52 14.74 14.16 15.35 10.24 11.50 8.67 11.26 12.49 11.97 Oct 11.19 10.45 11.23 9.61 10.25 10.53 10.49 11.80 8.42 10.51 Nov 11.68 11.94 13.01 10.75 13.63 13.64 9.05 10.52 11.02 10.96 .61 11.61 9.50 10.12 10.41 10.93 12.22 11.72 9.69 10.73 13.54 10.71 14.29 11.99 10.21 10.12 13.83 8.30 12.18 9.24 12.90 10.55 8.51 8.23 14.45 12.57 8.34 10.41 13.13 10.93 Aug 11.28 7.78 10.11 9.16 11.31 10.97 10.36 13.50 14.28 12.89 10.67 13.02 6.55 11.15 8.02 8.85 14.93 10.72 10.38 10.25 10.49 11.85 12.59 13.46 11.59 9.44 13.69 10.05 10.01 14.29 10.57 10.13 13.22 11.51 8.51 8.66 11.31 12.84 11. 02 3.91 3.92 4.89 4.20 4.46 3.18 5.97 3.75 4.74 3.75 3.20 4.18 5.74 3.48 2.18 5.20 4.18 5.57 5.89 4.73 5.74 3.74 3.72 3.73 3.18 5.72 3.17 3.75 3.20 4.74 3.02 3.73 4.94 3.15 4.71 3.76 3.75 3.18 5.73 3.18 5.20 4.90 4.20 3.15 4.04 3.80 3.76 3.84 3.71 3.60 3.18 5.56 2.41 3.96 3.60 3.18 5.72 3.60 5.20 3.73 5.18 5.18 5.87 3.94 3.7.18 5.18 5.18 5.76 3.75 3.75 4.20 4.18 Jun 3.20 4.72 4.80 3.08 3.95 3.18 5.94 3.26 4.64 4.20 4.73 3.73 3.18 5.62 4.75 3.18 Jul 3.38 3.20 3.70 3.20 3.18 5.18 5.18 5.18 5.05 4.18 5.16 4.90 3.79 3.09 4.74 5.75 3.72 3.01 3.18 5.73 3.55 4.75 3.18 5.18 5.20 4.89 3.20 4.91 3.20 4.18 5.18 5.18 3.20 4.87 3.20 4.60 3.60 5.53 3.18 5.60 3.73 3.96 3.20 4.94 3.20 4.20 4.20 4.74 5.22 5.91 4.74 3.20 4.76 3.77 3.20 4.20 4.88 3.18 5.18 5.18 5.20 4.60 3.20 4.20 4.99 3.18 5.18 5.18 5.73 3.03 3.60 3.20 4.20 4.18 5.82 3.20 4.20 4.15 4.17 4.95 3.18 5.18 5.74 3.79 3.35 5.63 3.74 3.54 3.37 2.74 3.98 4. SEK per USD 1913–2008.18 Feb 3.20 4.73 3.18 5.18 5.67 3.73 3.20 4.18 5.60 3.75 3.18 Aug 3.60 5.72 3.74 3.59 4.50 4.58 3.10 4.18 5.18 5.73 3.18 5.75 4.76 3.2.18 5.20 3.94 3.97 3.27 3.93 3.74 3.18 5.15 4.53 3.52 3.87 4.20 3.18 5.73 3.60 3.71 3.73 5.75 3.18 5.91 3.73 3.89 3.73 3.90 3.20 4.92 3.75 3.18 5.74 3.73 3.18 5.18 5.85 4.75 3.72 3.68 5.18 May 3.73 3.20 4.60 3.73 3.20 4.60 5.76 3.08 4.32 3.89 3.91 3.20 4. From appreciation to depreciation 373 Table A7.18 5.18 5.60 3.85 3.74 3.18 5.60 3.18 5.20 4.13 5.75 3.75 3.20 4.79 3.73 3.86 3.18 Dec 3.20 4.18 5.75 3.23 5.73 3.18 5.18 5.89 4.77 3.18 5.20 4.88 4.20 4.18 5.41 4.74 3.69 3.20 4.20 4.01 4.73 4.20 4.56 2.74 3.72 3.20 3.18 5.18 5.18 5.73 3.97 3.18 5.73 3.18 5.18 5.87 3.18 5.20 4.20 4.20 4.92 3.75 3.76 3.18 5.18 5.60 5.81 3.76 3.99 3.94 3.62 4.12 4.60 3.20 2.20 4.82 4.60 5.18 5.73 3.55 2.59 3.72 3.18 5.74 3.33 3.36 5.77 3.94 4.18 5.77 3.99 4.71 3.18 5.88 3.71 3.88 4.60 3.74 5.60 3.96 3.74 3.60 3.60 5.96 3.90 3.20 3.81 3.18 5.40 3.98 3.85 3.20 4.18 5.18 5.60 3.18 5.20 3.37 3.73 3.18 5.60 3.16 4.75 3.60 5. Monthly exchange rates on USA.75 3.18 5.60 3.79 3.02 2.18 5.31 3.74 3.57 3.97 4.74 3.85 3.83 4.93 3.18 5.20 4.75 3.74 3.20 4.20 4.74 3.71 3.71 3.72 3.35 2.60 5.18 5.73 3.49 3.79 3.20 4.09 3.25 3.60 5.96 3.84 3.20 3.60 3.07 3.20 4.18 Sep 3.15 4.94 3.51 3.60 4.90 4.96 3.40 3.18 5.87 3.76 3.20 4.20 4.75 3.18 5.74 5.50 4.48 3.73 5.18 5.60 3.18 5.91 3.75 3.60 3.74 5.20 4.18 Mar 3.18 5.20 4.18 5.20 4.20 4.18 Apr 3.18 5.20 4.18 5.60 3.60 5.20 4.73 3.74 3.13 4.20 3.60 3.37 5.76 3.34 3.86 3.77 4.15 4.96 3.18 5.73 4.18 5.18 5.74 3.72 3.18 Nov 3.20 4.47 3.72 3.83 3.06 5. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 3.77 3.02 4.18 .60 3.20 4.18 5.41 3.18 5.75 4.86 3.35 4.83 5.60 3.86 3.76 3.80 3.92 3.18 5.92 4.18 5.36 4.20 4.74 3.73 3.20 3.20 4.98 3.06 4.80 3.20 4.20 4.87 3.39 4.85 5.20 4.06 3.88 4.79 3.20 4.48 4.20 4.92 4.18 5.60 4.18 5.97 3.74 3.60 4.18 5.18 5.20 4.18 Oct 3.76 3.84 3.60 3.98 3.74 3.79 3.75 3.18 5.19 5.41 3.82 4.79 3.75 3.33 2.73 3.75 3.74 3.20 4.72 3.20 3. 89 6.17 5.53 7.99 4.80 4.56 8.56 9.19 5.07 7.63 6.).75 6.43 5.61 9.18 5.15 5.13 6.17 5.60 6.35 4.84 7.32 5.14 7.14 5.88 8.08 6.17 5.17 5.86 7.81 7.21 5.34 10.49 Aug 5.55 7.41 4.44 8.08 4.82 8.55 7.96 6.79 4.19 5.66 10.62 5.63 7.26 6.72 7.19 5.62 7.48 5.00 8.97 6.25 6.51 6.17 5.18 5.45 4.61 5.40 4.13 5.34 8.91 8.65 9.84 4.14 5.21 5.15 5.14 5.16 5.00 7.16 5.15 5.27 10.17 5.81 7.97 8.05 8.84 7.93 10.43 5.74 4.17 5.38 4.15 4.76 4.16 5.12 4.48 5.98 6. 1277–2008 Table A7.18 5.76 7. and wages.46 4.20 4. Jan 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 5.94 Dec 5.56 7.08 7.18 5.18 5.17 5.25 5.69 8.26 4.54 5.17 5.61 Jun 5.48 6.74 9.16 7.17 4.24 6.18 5.49 4.18 5.25 Feb 5.19 4.28 7.05 4.35 8.15 5.18 5.09 10.69 10.92 7.22 4.18 5.20 5.44 9.70 7.68 6.02 9.67 4.62 5.95 8.22 8.18 5.18 5.94 6.47 6.42 5.22 4.81 7.17 4.68 7.33 4.15 5.38 6.77 6.96 10.60 9.20 5.40 6.18 5.73 4.34 4.17 5.33 7.29 3.33 10.06 6.45 5.51 4.06 6.64 7.40 8.96 6.18 5.26 4.91 7.36 4.91 8.77 7.48 9.48 4.19 5.26 6.45 4.17 5.10 6.15 5.74 10.03 7.14 7.99 8.46 8.32 7.42 4.17 5.36 6.69 6.20 5.35 6.42 4.07 4.15 5.18 5.99 4.18 5.69 7.66 4.42 4.16 5.19 5.18 5.19 5.88 8.43 6.16 5.18 5.16 5.97 7.23 5.16 5.37 8.95 7.06 6.64 8.41 6.26 Mar 5.18 5.51 7. SEK per USD 1913–2008.26 Nov 5.34 5.15 5.17 5.17 4.26 7.17 5.64 7.23 7.70 7.85 7.61 5.75 4.46 8.22 9.17 5.17 5.22 4.89 6.22 6.18 5.57 7.78 9.18 5.49 7.78 7.20 5.23 4. prices.01 7.374 Exchange rates.17 5.32 8.18 5.20 5.76 4.18 5.17 5.87 7.73 7.41 4.17 5.23 6.67 7.34 8.20 10.31 6.35 4.47 9.31 8.40 7.16 5.18 5.16 5.35 4.69 5.29 8.74 7.90 5.16 5.65 5.84 6.34 6.69 8.18 5.78 6.40 3.18 5.55 5.40 4.18 6.06 8.47 10.16 5.36 6.19 6.18 5.51 8.18 5.89 6.43 7.75 4.17 4.93 4.16 5.53 Jul 5.07 6.15 5.26 6.31 5.11 8.19 5.15 5.95 4.49 6.22 4.64 7.37 6.34 4.09 6.96 7.28 6.42 4.17 5.16 6.96 6.62 4.58 8.18 5.84 8.54 Sep 5.96 7.22 8.30 4.56 8.92 5.81 6.21 4.22 4.74 7.45 6.74 4.18 5.18 5.18 4.78 8.17 5.19 5.25 8.41 4.86 4.44 4.54 4.17 4.99 4.17 5.17 5.18 5.49 7.15 5.42 5.74 7.17 5.03 10.17 5.69 7.36 8.19 5.54 7.19 5.71 3.17 5.16 5.87 8.40 4.02 7.15 5.44 7.72 7.12 7.88 7.92 8.34 6.58 8.81 7.17 5.37 4.18 5.31 8.35 6.09 6.17 5.65 4.07 7. Monthly exchange rates on USA.65 6.80 4.18 5.92 6.05 7.17 5.88 7.18 5.39 4.74 4.44 4.18 5.19 4.17 5.65 May 5.61 4.17 5.18 5.16 5.39 3.69 6.26 9.36 4.08 7.17 5.13 4.37 4.14 6.55 3.82 8.18 5.37 4.35 4.44 6.32 6.74 10.94 6.65 7.20 5.60 6.50 8.29 6.72 10.33 8.49 7.22 4.13 5.18 4.52 6.85 8.18 5.23 4.17 5.20 5.33 9.20 5.20 5.18 5.17 5.28 7.44 8.75 4.92 7.98 7.56 7.31 6.74 7.39 4.39 6.17 5.18 9.13 8.38 4.41 4.80 7.19 5.15 4.45 Oct 5.46 4.91 4.43 4.99 8.02 7.49 4.18 5.18 5.17 4.18 4.06 8.44 7.16 5.61 4.18 5.36 7.53 7.17 5.27 6.15 5.52 Apr 5.20 5.66 10.17 5.20 5.18 4.15 5.79 8.16 5.91 6.09 7.18 5.41 7.80 4.62 8.55 4.17 4.18 5.23 4.21 5.68 7.60 7.17 5.93 4.48 7.57 5.46 5.36 8.16 5.75 4.60 6.03 4.58 7.15 9.96 6.12 5.01 7.09 9.17 5.77 9.17 5.08 6.15 5.36 4.20 5.20 5.18 5.59 4.38 6.19 5.18 5.50 7.78 4.17 5.19 5.70 .05 7.08 10.38 4.62 5.20 4.72 7.2 (cont.76 4. 11 88.898 Oct 89.53 148.69 89.84 5.77 136.09 158.41 57.66 60.65 21.13 89.87 88.500 0.2 (cont.76 53.17 88.7.42 Feb 6.97 89.85 88.03 89.25 7.72 155.74 89.13 2.08 159.32 157.88 7.70 7.99 88.03 84.69 6.01 89.08 58.99 78.52 7.60 150.40 88.75 4.23 156.65 157.83 88.49 45.39 158.97 26.24 134.20 134.84 7.42 6.18 89.98 88.03 88.61 88.38 42.04 135.).93 74.64 89. SEK per 100 reichsmark 1924–1945.92 87.72 89.96 88.14 88.36 56.75 133.71 88.47 7.02 6.46 30.83 7.71 89.32 158.61 3.24 9.11 121.81 156.31 6.3b.29 155.55 2746 0.39 88.69 62.01 88.00 17. Monthly exchange rates on Germany.09 102.99 Jun 7.14 89.30 157.61 158.70 56.36 159.41 158.58 46.79 159.93 151.21 124.02 6.93 65.35 88.70 3963 2.56 89.98 88.82 7.41 89.97 131.11 7.95 88.44 67.40 7.888 0.42 .30 145.89 139.81 159.04 89.000.98 7.* Jan 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 88.90 87.92 88.59 15.90 0.11 88.07 88.3a.97 83.86 88.00 Table A7.16 88.74 165.79 52.000. Table A7.01 157.89 88.61 6.79 124.33 7.09 88.92 6.00 1.24 79.13 89.52 88.873 0.06 51.21 69.89 161.98 88.87 37.65 128.32 54. Monthly exchange rates on Germany.01 78.996 0. SEK per 1 million mark January 1922 to September 1923.17 46.60 0.80 27.99 163.40 165.03 77. Jan 2005 2006 2007 2008 6.81 88.95 89.39 48.92 149.11 88.900 Aug 89.94 88.57 89.88 88.03 88. 1924: 1 Reichsmark = 1.61 156.94 89.91 88.53 160.34 6.90 130.34 5.62 89.48 159.13 88.99 Jun 89.00 58.39 141.18 159.47 8.11 88.943 0.49 6.86 88.10 158.95 80.92 91.898 0.61 62.96 88.97 61.09 6.36 61.70 6.25 157.47 Mar 89.71 6.12 88.30 134.41 125.72 78.89 88.71 57.51 54.11 156.884 21388 18654 14012 13518 13643 12771 8231 294.35 158.75 2368 1. SEK per 100 mark 1913–1921.54 158.25 15.77 0.88 88.68 148.96 6.46 158.69 11.82 37.41 145.98 6.54 150.34 8.99 10.82 7.96 Dec 7.05 88.52 47.56 148.09 137.95 6.34 160.21 93.16 88.34 61.62 7.97 88.86 58.00 0.19 142.63 11.58 63.09 88.58 185.53 160. Monthly exchange rates on USA.85 88.94 157.04 88.21 523 0.79 May 89.12 89.94 35.07 88.95 May 7.12 Apr 89.905 Jul 89.40 41.00 Aug 7.60 7.35 Mar 6.21 91.10 87.52 89.62 154.15 88.19 6.10 89.42 127.26 6.15 88.29 62.71 160.44 137.35 157.71 89.22 151.84 89.80 159.70 131.84 6.70 6.40 89.83 88.90 89.00 160.79 158.90 85.06 Apr 7.48 5.82 88.90 7.22 115.58 40.10 157.90 88. and SEK per 1 trillion mark October 1923 to December 1924.86 Dec 88.39 12.20 78.35 162.000.889 Dec 88.07 6.86 39.45 7.41 62.98 7.61 7.59 159.04 148.27 Sep 7.87 88.32 88.896 Sep 89.03 Jul 7.16 59.40 Feb 89.23 158. SEK per USD 1913–2008.07 130.09 1396 0.17 127.48 156.83 167.13 89.29 6.81 5.65 158.91 8.87 30.71 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov 88.29 10.79 157.72 48.898 0.56 42.* Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 89.19 89.77 51.69 89.65 Oct 7.31 157.33 159. From appreciation to depreciation 375 Table A7.84 158.898 Nov 89.75 88.0500 1275 * October 11.28 6.10 162.000 Papiermark.71 159.02 88.67 7.85 6.41 Nov 8.71 89.60 157.01 88.23 7.08 7.71 42. 95 129.75 221.85 176.33 129.69 167.98 150.50 168.03 124.63 150.30 123.95 124.68 124.08 129.59 166.30 123.76 174.43 148.63 129.55 129.98 233.00 124.80 123.60 129.55 221.48 123.50 129.18 145.40 129.75 171.98 129.15 130.90 164.67 176.85 169.50 168.30 123.53 123.89 167.15 129.43 123.99 166.08 124.50 168.50 168.50 168.79 167.50 168.83 130.00 169.78 190.79 230.48 123.75 129.50 168. SEK per 100 DEM 1950–2002.00 169.33 235.00 129.00 169.63 143.08 143.20 233.65 123.45 129.70 173.50 168.30 123. Table A7.03 129.50 168.80 123.05 232.3b (cont.10 123.15 146.13 124.35 129.93 214.40 176.86 172.27 221.50 168.03 123.30 123.38 .30 123.33 173.50 168.50 168.30 123.98 128.05 124.60 172.50 129.55 129.98 123.30 123.00 169.30 123.03 123.75 123.11 170.33 129.08 142.50 168. 1277–2008 Table A7.82 166.65 149.70 129.50 168.15 123.50 168.30 123.78 129.72 167.73 124.05 127.35 124.376 Exchange rates.30 123.75 123.50 168.30 123.63 129.48 129.68 148.63 173.78 150.77 175.00 167.48 129.20 209.14 230.18 130.43 124.50 168.03 149.98 123.50 * 21 June 1948: 1 DEM = 1 reichsmark for essential currency such as wages.00 129.30 123.08 174.06 220.60 224.65 123.50 168. payment of rents.48 123.48 123.48 123.50 168.40 123.20 174.45 129.88 159.48 130.30 123.60 168.50 173.00 169.15 124.33 123.97 170.48 129.00 129.90 123.65 168.55 123.78 123.35 142.30 150.20 124.77 167.30 123.15 124.05 129.30 123. prices.50 168.50 168.90 171.17 210.30 123.50 168.77 223.50 168.83 123.26 184.85 123.18 129.53 151.92 168.50 168.88 130.28 129.38 158.93 124.98 128.38 130.20 129.30 123.92 173.30 123.58 130.25 123.50 168.24 171.30 123.73 233.45 173.62 231.30 130.73 123.53 167.29 169.11 172.03 129.00 167.53 130.50 168.83 123.90 123.50 168.).35 124.30 123.48 183.63 132.03 168.05 129.55 129.50 168.00 148.68 129.38 169. Monthly exchange rates on Germany.13 124.50 168.75 123.00 124.00 168.67 192.35 151.83 123.80 130.13 130.18 124.03 124.50 168.50 168.40 140.50 168.78 142.40 129.23 142.25 151.63 123.85 129.33 148.70 130.10 124.30 123.30 123.90 123.30 123.58 158.35 175.50 168.30 123.50 171.73 130.83 153.93 173.93 123.50 168.18 142.59 172.88 129.33 130.25 130.83 235.28 130.03 148.30 123.30 130.63 142.60 123.38 171.50 168.10 123.50 168.58 130.20 124.90 130.23 129.03 123.68 238.50 168.45 140.70 128.88 123.23 129.50 174.75 123.40 168.30 123.33 123.85 129.68 150.10 123.40 124.83 150.38 150.98 124.81 225.13 130.00 129.33 129.63 123.55 129.85 129.50 168.71 174.58 142.08 142.35 130.50 123.43 130.50 168. and 1 DEM = 10 reichsmark for the remainder in private non-bank credit balance.14 230.38 143.95 124.30 123.10 128.35 130.60 129.63 123. Jan 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 123.83 123.10 124. and wages.00 128.30 124.68 123.20 140.50 168. SEK per 100 reichsmark 1924– 1945.08 130.50 168.50 168.18 130.13 221.85 124. etc.78 128.43 235.30 123.33 148.50 168.53 129.95 123.75 141.28 130.38 138.43 130.50 168.95 123.30 123.93 124.* Jan 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 167.37 222.00 129.88 129.63 230.63 148.60 140.05 129.50 168.50 168.68 130.78 123.49 169.80 143.28 129.71 129. Monthly exchange rates on Germany.38 170.43 169.83 187.50 168.50 168.10 124.50 168.3c.50 168.50 168.60 129.50 168.50 129.50 168.50 168.16 167.68 169.30 123.05 124.35 129.70 123.53 123.83 124.43 123.50 168.50 168.33 171.25 129.50 129.15 128.75 123.53 123.48 171.75 172.96 226.20 129.35 123.58 129.50 168.48 129.50 129.88 129.54 235.46 241.78 143.30 123.88 123.50 168.80 168.70 123.10 130.03 129.08 129.53 123.50 168.38 129.03 123.88 123.35 123. 30 60.03 322.64 361.78 14.95 449.20 57.15 14.16 296.58 65.86 28.14 465.11 20.49 72.55 23.66 11.93 57.82 239.90 350.54 59.64 56.32 297.45 374.65 Sep 72.83 22.50 310.89 31.40 446.75 245.69 Dec 72.97 289.41 283.64 9.59 63.68 65.01 35.38 431.45 72.26 340.79 377.12 36.62 364.94 14.63 441.30 66.52 235.65 213.92 17.81 481. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1959.64 449.50 69.27 19. Monthly exchange rates on Germany.44 473.52 46.68 307.58 438.25 285.63 58.42 57.24 424.07 460.34 440.28 31.73 448.68 14.38 72.98 362.86 364.54 367.81 516.56 430.68 494.46 52.18 338.73 345.84 363.74 17.25 368.17 76.55 25.69 31.45 455.47 58.58 344.84 421.34 346.27 439.32 248.82 351.89 19.80 245.27 285.70 221.44 233.03 365.37 296.01 19.67 33.12 14.71 212.93 12.44 345.93 454.09 23.32 291.65 494.16 53.90 339.65 32.65 360.05 19.97 363.47 14.77 14.72 Table A7.03 30.69 14.93 500.69 360.22 489.74 341.18 14.47 223.66 14.24 475.07 236.94 63.29 344.59 51.40 361.36 518.82 364.89 430.81 466.85 471.87 53.98 460.05 19.90 485.71 245.97 306.37 289.05 459.10 442.66 Aug 72.70 19.85 14.12 367.99 474.60 10.04 347.63 358.17 429.28 348.08 17.65 14.77 16.49 31.98 48.66 21.93 354.54 457.10 224.30 436.93 20.29 430.17 10. Jan 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 240.08 58.70 14.02 475.88 469.65 14.64 Jul 72.74 25.56 478.22 60.29 13.53 465.98 283.66 May 72.41 17.91 14.91 343.29 243.89 30.79 359.* Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 72.28 433.69 14.30 294.96 441.02 459.48 62.34 38.31 450.99 436.87 212.89 14.23 34.20 77.45 464.36 31.32 363.77 58.85 60.12 392.78 488.72 361.54 63.75 483.16 469.97 451.73 463.47 33.56 464.43 51.29 439.13 14.54 55. Monthly exchange rates on France.30 289.96 348.79 464.48 533.67 14.91 59.75 337.83 29.12 516.64 Oct 72.34 455.05 54.29 52.80 462.68 Nov 72.89 429.29 301.78 14. From appreciation to depreciation 377 Table A7.70 14.88 458.17 22.17 17.72 31.17 296.59 37.93 294.46 61.27 72.29 51.63 437.98 296.39 72.11 18.03 20.63 477.19 445.65 14.48 232.92 14.17 77.23 422.96 364.46 317.65 14.70 14.3c (cont.36 518.81 217.88 348.03 235.51 228.50 299.52 33.07 22.36 444.89 26.99 250.37 11.46 441.37 298.95 341.35 446.39 287.51 72.65 14.51 236.10 25.02 362.97 17.58 344.39 35.44 295.67 14.64 .61 248.96 283.72 36.85 361.02 442.03 22.63 36.88 35.69 494.49 435.11 435.14 50.52 466.35 12.46 49.28 320.69 446.81 297.44 23.34 233.56 25.39 246.20 51.18 35.97 477.21 32.06 318.80 328.44 246.33 432.79 212.53 246.85 352.43 456.76 64.4a.60 214.65 488.64 Feb 72.82 14.26 479.03 356.80 30.95 11.91 470.43 455.30 441.29 72.76 349.49 58.65 14.7.67 14.65 370.13 35.96 65.70 14.49 482.82 22.22 450.24 73.44 32.16 449.36 73.30 454.63 361.48 72.63 46.48 483.89 50.26 489.05 37.57 491.03 441.65 Jun 72.84 337.79 61.13 14.57 291.07 77.37 343.91 487.14 352.67 13. SEK per 100 DEM 1950–2002.19 295.65 Apr 72.77 283.83 362.81 321.60 60.00 438.29 356.01 55.25 361.92 347.07 248.11 301.45 304.18 77.30 348.59 352.41 342.76 44.48 68.27 293.93 364.29 482.10 435.).62 30.40 467.73 341.72 286.80 338.32 361.28 305.60 364.57 356.64 14.71 361.12 348.45 36.47 294.49 478.81 441.67 14.11 74.09 362.70 43.29 494.57 365.25 291.87 19.16 439.31 230.08 363.57 465.64 14.77 436.70 374.00 65.32 248.01 59.73 376.72 306.99 467.08 62.20 61.11 299.37 336.43 291.12 52.54 311.18 74.08 469.67 373.70 14.83 60.12 20.81 59.65 14.48 14.48 441.95 218.12 14.64 14.22 369.64 Mar 72.10 303.35 34.51 350.70 443.86 458.67 447.31 447.13 19.55 19.41 433.89 48.95 41.69 27.98 429.27 21. 28 105.49 1.15 1.98 18.05 9.31 25.82 12.48 1.49 1.48 1.12 9.06 Aug 14.00 9.51 9.00 9.05 8.24 1.03 1.05 8.61 14.00 104.03 3.49 1.06 Oct 14.00 8.00 9.05 105.49 1.06 Sep 14.93 106.64 14.49 1.70 105.00 9.00 9.32 25.49 1.68 21.75 17.38 105.70 105.49 1.11 11.06 7.49 1.65 25.03 105.67 14.67 20.23 1.65 21.66 11.48 1.09 22.53 105.20 106.33 105.72 23.00 9.18 105.48 3.34 12.10 105.45 105.49 1.00 9.03 3.05 105.60 105.80 105.00 9.68 22.58 105.58 105.08 105.18 106.94 9.11 18.25 105.02 23.00 9.00 9.02 18.49 1.15 106.49 1.03 9.49 1.55 9.49 1.00 9.23 24.49 1.24 1.52 9.49 1.35 105.05 9.28 105.03 3.03 1.48 3.65 105.59 9.06 3.89 21.70 105.66 14.58 105.00 9.03 3. 1277–2008 Table A7.49 1.23 22.06 3.48 8.49 1.48 1.73 .65 105.62 21.49 1.00 9.00 9.95 105.70 105.00 9.49 1.49 1.48 1.53 3.64 17.53 3.66 25.00 9.49 1.49 1.20 26.49 1.06 8.11 21.95 26. Jan 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 105.24 1.51 12.00 9.06 Jul 14.50 24.53 17.99 11.13 105.24 1.00 Mar 14.68 105.94 9.63 14.61 14.49 1.13 105.49 1.25 10.49 1.00 Apr 14.49 14.99 18.49 1.00 May 14. Monthly exchange rates on France.49 1.48 1.18 106.63 105.52 9.49 1.24 1.69 26.49 1.48 1.30 11.35 105.25 10.50 13.* Jan 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 3.49 1.49 1.00 9.65 105.00 *January 1.03 3.00 9.25 11.98 106.53 105.80 105.23 1.53 105. 1960: 1 new franc = 100 old francs.61 9.33 14.63 20.97 26.33 1.64 20.65 105. SEK per 100 franc 1960–2002.03 1.4b.48 1.75 105.58 105.35 1.63 21.49 1.03 1.00 11.03 3.88 9.49 1.66 19.01 25.06 3.74 9.50 105.24 1.00 9.49 1.38 1.30 105.22 25.49 1.60 9.70 105.20 25.98 10.50 13.37 1.00 9.00 9.81 13.53 3.13 26.49 1.49 1.98 25.49 1.64 15.33 1.00 9.43 105.00 9.49 1.35 105.24 1.58 105.49 1.48 3. Monthly exchange rates on France.76 25.48 1.48 3.49 1.76 24.10 105.43 26.00 9.08 3.53 3.04 18.49 1.08 105.48 3.49 1.49 1.05 9. and wages.75 105.03 3.).00 8.17 22.38 1.17 27.10 106.00 9.05 7.49 1.50 105.06 8.43 26.70 106.48 1.33 1.48 1.48 1.55 105.48 1.49 1.80 9.03 3.70 105.66 14.49 1.49 1.47 1.49 1.45 105.15 106.25 105.77 25.49 1.28 105.06 25.53 105.63 105.24 1.58 3.23 1.03 1.68 20.75 9.81 11.03 1.03 3.03 3.49 1.00 9.55 25.23 105.49 1.96 25.00 Jun 14.49 1.49 1.03 1.25 105.84 25.64 15.68 105.93 25.00 9.03 1.24 1.03 3.64 14.33 1.03 3.00 11.49 1.49 1.25 105.38 105.49 1.00 9.03 1.24 1.30 26.49 1.00 9.70 10.00 8.18 106.51 13.86 22.23 3. prices.03 3.03 1.40 105.07 11.24 1.03 3.62 21.66 21.49 1.48 1.48 1.378 Exchange rates.00 9.75 9.38 1.00 9.48 1.00 Feb 14.20 26.80 105.82 3.06 3.38 1.06 14.95 9. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913– 1959.49 1.58 25.13 105.48 1.49 1.20 11.49 1.00 Dec 14.48 1.03 26.00 Nov 14.48 1.00 8.00 9.48 1.49 1.48 1.70 105.01 25.57 11.43 22.49 1.49 1.96 9.75 105.96 18.49 1.01 10.53 3.49 1.90 104.92 17.03 1.00 9.03 3.80 105.24 1.48 1.00 9.00 106.22 23.99 9.4a (cont.03 3.49 1.65 105.97 24.02 25.35 105.23 106.82 25.35 22.03 1.45 22.49 1.00 25.43 105. Table A7.05 9.49 1. 20 98.13 90.33 108.75 73.84 93.33 128.03 90.14 102.84 131.25 144.84 101.24 94.62 101.95 92.78 Oct 71.52 102.96 129.99 Jul 71.85 94.31 107.00 Nov 71.20 93.98 96.15 88.34 104.60 84.00 94.03 94.67 133.45 102.53 105.53 87.09 101.49 97.91 72.60 104.03 91.29 98.00 94.20 106.13 Aug 71.83 98.23 95.21 105.62 100.60 106.07 93.76 94.98 126.63 89.90 89.43 145.65 132.95 71.75 73.98 99.79 71.42 108.75 127.69 100.58 104.63 95.44 142.24 129.93 106.70 104.90 84.89 142.78 94.14 105.74 128.48 104.84 109.14 101.73 99.13 95.94 131.51 139.88 94.59 96.47 133.15 105.07 100.64 136. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913–1926.09 130.68 105.43 107.96 107.76 92.88 94.05 93.05 104.73 103.87 141. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium.63 101.10 88.93 100.88 103.80 93.53 133.07 135.23 105.61 133.94 107.70 89.03 Jun 71.84 107.18 104.61 96.99 131.01 94.90 98.00 128.23 96.22 93.65 100.05 93.65 93.91 99.90 137.58 .96 97.94 100.33 108.16 135.77 96.61 105.81 143.24 131.08 99.48 93.37 93. From appreciation to depreciation 379 Table A7.55 107.08 128.05 105.22 96.40 108.25 93.43 94.01 98.71 128.14 144.70 104.85 92.88 104.70 96.32 95.96 71.34 130.07 131.20 139.80 129.83 105.59 138.49 92.16 100.01 99.12 138.38 94.45 92.18 128.57 130. SEK per 100 franc 1960–2002.14 93.50 135.93 99.99 101.20 91.36 135.83 110.51 145.38 100.10 100.06 101.48 135.10 88.74 111.91 102.81 146.62 107.33 105.98 100.52 130.78 93.15 105.85 95.11 103.69 129.22 106.09 110.59 138.21 110.18 104.20 104.73 106.36 136.83 100.38 101.00 105.15 94.01 101.90 127.69 99.64 132.68 103.98 133.76 102.60 105.03 92.97 140.00 100.63 97.87 104.82 Apr 71.68 89.75 151.27 141.93 136.36 102.25 103.87 100.08 133.52 147.88 104.89 99.78 99.36 93.99 96.07 131.33 135.84 106.16 89.60 97.75 95.47 98.04 129.75 94.53 141.95 99.22 102.88 93.20 93.73 129.25 99.38 130.90 106.58 148.50 99.91 95. Jan 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 104.75 132.56 105.65 Sep 71.71 100.83 147.98 85.83 72.91 88.74 97.62 136.16 95.57 103.15 107.63 98.96 71.83 136.08 139.45 93.45 106.75 95.83 Mar 71.52 132.93 106.7.05 100.61 95.53 101.84 72.10 141.39 96.39 130.77 98.56 101.11 129.28 104.80 105.11 99.61 99.40 105.97 97.85 134.11 97.73 104.88 94.80 139.33 100.65 92.73 Dec 71.38 96.44 97.50 143.55 101.15 104.04 143.88 95.04 95.58 93.75 111.28 93.00 103.48 100.49 102.4b (cont.40 92.63 132.37 133.75 94.33 88.03 104.24 83.45 92.46 130.74 Feb 71.5a.08 125.28 104.08 93.09 141.70 140.73 98.39 133.40 99.95 140.60 126.43 99.43 105.20 108.74 98.88 91.30 93.37 101.15 108.89 135.58 94.53 102.67 133.11 94.58 127.45 99.55 139.43 111.86 98.10 138.00 107.08 92.69 99.75 98.05 106.37 146.44 100.74 104.11 102.75 94.22 137.89 138.83 95.93 92.27 101.45 142.24 94.75 102.64 89.).86 101.19 137.05 Table A7.30 100.71 99.43 102.87 71.87 97.22 107.98 94.15 100.91 92. Monthly exchange rates on France.92 96.99 89.69 72.15 98.96 138.69 88.44 107.53 104.54 134.62 106.52 131.84 130.75 104.05 94.64 95.63 95.52 135.48 94.74 108.13 85.* Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 71.11 85.48 104.76 106.58 141.26 107.75 90.17 115.03 130.75 94.17 128.84 94.28 99.55 105.43 105.97 May 71.97 107.25 98.33 92.89 141.30 104.35 99.07 100.44 105.88 106.62 135.12 103.48 135.43 93.40 109.30 105.62 131.48 107.35 93.75 104.85 104.21 93.91 102.58 100.46 92.46 135.02 140.47 95.75 138.91 102.55 97.70 99. 75 67.50 52.00 70.98 52.04 70.13 72.94 52.43 67.23 18.60 90.78 65.18 66.65 67.21 88.86 70.50 67.10 51.36 9.80 18.15 73.58 18.50 67.34 32.50 .32 67.50 67.21 17. and wages.16 78.65 67.03 67.32 34.18 76.50 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct 52.13 71.09 52.).03 51.92 20.24 66.05 52.27 18.07 89.01 66.74 14.05 51.50 67.55 17.50 67.50 67.77 67.* Jan 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 41.50 67.34 83.11 36. Table A7.59 80.05 37.75 67.89 33.88 52.11 51.67 66.30 31.52 23.21 67.50 67.08 71.25 66.50 20.70 67.10 52.74 66.75 67.96 75.50 51.26 85.50 51.25 65.05 52.85 38.13 52.03 78.59 21. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium.87 24.54 18.18 66.40 67.97 53.01 52.40 36.41 66.50 52.80 16.16 70.79 69.03 52.50 67.88 17.20 51.06 52.37 68.26 44. prices.25 71.03 91. Jan 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 52.31 37.70 18.32 27.50 67.50 52.50 67.89 11.33 93.54 18.73 65.66 66.96 52.70 66.03 67.98 51.99 70.85 67.60 67.96 77.90 78.94 52.49 81.24 88.17 17.20 51.50 51.55 17.50 51.11 66.71 66.71 66.50 67.17 76.18 23.50 52.50 Nov 52.62 30.41 71.55 17.36 70.03 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec * October 25.50 67.50 67.41 65.10 70.89 13.88 67.54 70.50 67.50 67.55 18.60 67.73 11.59 18.50 67. 1926: 1 Belga = 5 Old Francs.90 17.80 10.93 32.73 91.80 68.92 70.63 35.02 52.04 51.50 67.02 66.01 31.72 67.06 51.03 52.96 67.00 70.65 68. SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913– 1926.06 52.20 65.07 32.75 66.45 35.34 17.28 71.82 32.06 30.10 51.68 18.02 10.05 51.02 39.43 66.35 70.99 61.21 67.39 84.97 92.72 52.11 74.96 52.90 18.88 67.90 16.00 20.96 17.82 93.58 67.30 30.88 34.80 52. 1277–2008 Table A7.25 17.5b.46 66.42 66.09 51.25 66.46 86.88 18.29 80.05 51.28 26.40 31.26 51.50 67.50 67.60 92.02 92.50 67.58 66. SEK per 100 belgas 1926–1944.52 67.33 67.57 80.45 66.03 52.98 52.06 51.50 67.99 74.01 19.55 67.50 67.98 52.05 52.96 52.75 66.73 71.62 31.81 89.78 30.98 52.90 32.55 32.02 10.29 77.50 Dec 52.79 67.50 67.25 51.99 17.50 67.21 67.65 72.67 71.27 69.50 14.81 66.83 17.50 67.80 90.06 32.21 40.28 66.50 67.03 16.96 18.50 67.380 Exchange rates.93 52.50 67.53 33.00 75.04 70.01 67.89 52.37 93.50 67.72 51.83 78. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium.19 71.19 86.95 52.51 18.83 81.92 28.97 52.55 70.89 66.24 18.32 35.50 67.89 21.15 51.5a (cont.13 83. 56 13.22 18.87 14.47 11.30 14.43 10.36 10.41 10.85 16.31 11.38 10.23 8.39 10.41 10.38 10.86 11.24 14.39 10.43 10.44 10.17 Dec 9.39 10.97 11.45 10.39 10.65 Aug 9.81 16.39 10.42 10.16 14.60 8.41 10.54 14.69 Feb Mar Apr May Jun 9.24 11.67 13.40 10.37 10.30 17.36 10.76 14.7.10 12.40 10.74 16.60 8.38 10.24 14.44 10.28 12.48 11.49 14.56 16.36 10.34 10.42 10.41 10.38 10.80 11.41 10.23 10.57 17.60 8.46 10.89 11.82 11.43 11.45 10.42 9.48 16.14 14.43 10.36 13.23 8.27 14.37 10. Jan 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 9.39 10.37 10.39 10.51 14.58 14.77 8.42 10.51 17.23 10.26 17.39 10.71 14.38 10.79 14.40 10.64 16.63 16.36 10.42 10.76 14.00 12.40 10.37 10.44 10.43 10.30 13.96 16.90 10.84 16.37 10.29 17.44 10.35 10.37 10.37 10.45 10.20 11.36 10.78 12.50 14.23 10.42 10.55 11.60 8.35 10.45 10.61 14.32 10.44 10.00 16.33 10.44 14.59 14.44 10.41 10.42 10.42 10.60 8.08 11.47 10.43 11.37 10.65 16.64 16.43 10.38 10.41 14.37 11.42 10.39 10.44 14.41 10.42 10.37 10.43 10.01 14.23 8.33 10.47 10.34 17.94 14.36 14.90 16.96 16.40 10.59 14.20 15.42 10.41 10.23 8.32 11.37 10.26 14.79 14.43 10.23 8.39 10.39 10.32 10.40 10.43 10.42 11.39 10.42 10.46 16.41 14.07 14.23 8.23 17.65 14.40 10.43 10.82 10.37 10.42 10.48 14.28 11.23 15.43 10.87 14.40 10.40 10.41 10.81 11.37 10.51 10.37 10.15 17.44 9.37 10.43 10.50 14.31 11.43 10.42 10.50 11.54 14.31 10.51 14.68 14.43 10.39 10.43 10.33 11.23 8.43 10.43 13.39 10.18 11.72 16.38 10.43 11.90 16.45 10.28 11.42 10.69 17.37 10.23 8.23 10.23 8.83 13.54 14.45 10.61 13.37 10.60 8.41 10.32 10.36 13.37 10.28 14.60 8.83 11.48 9.37 10.23 8.37 10.38 10.41 11.35 17.02 14.23 10.47 15.29 14.99 13.77 11.40 10.42 10.30 11.44 10.35 10.38 10.49 10.41 11.32 10.41 14.15 17. From appreciation to depreciation 381 Table A7.42 10.62 14.43 10.37 10.25 11.23 8.91 Sep 9.28 15.43 10.79 11.51 10.32 10.43 10.35 10.23 8.52 15.44 10.44 10.41 10.37 10.56 14.37 14.34 10.40 10.18 15.34 14.33 10.39 10.73 16.65 14.08 15.38 10.35 17.44 10.37 10.52 11.43 10.21 .03 14.34 10.65 16.42 10.39 10.56 17.85 16.39 10.39 10.45 14.43 10.23 8.80 11.5c.69 14.33 11.98 14.43 10.37 10.85 16.37 10.97 16.75 13.54 13.66 14.44 11.88 Oct 9.39 10.48 11.35 10.35 10.39 10.43 10.45 10.37 10.39 10.43 10.43 10.46 10.56 9.44 11.42 15.91 11.40 10.67 10.49 10.23 8.42 10.44 10.22 11.23 10.23 10.85 16.42 10.44 10.37 16.45 10.80 14.42 10.33 10.09 14.38 10.47 15.42 10.16 14.31 10.46 14.39 10.46 10.37 10.46 11.43 10.24 16.39 10.75 18.75 10.37 10.49 10.37 10.60 8.23 8.37 10.45 10.17 17.00 Nov 9. SEK per 100 BEF 1945–2002.38 10.37 10.40 10.23 8.39 10.62 14.09 14.12 13.54 14.44 10.34 12.44 10.23 8.34 10.37 10.38 10.37 10.46 10.60 8.35 10.38 10.39 10.38 10.33 10.44 14.37 10.91 16.37 10.60 8.44 10.20 17.97 14.37 10.94 14.58 14.65 14.23 10.38 10.37 10.35 10.35 10.60 9.42 10.43 10.08 16.37 10.98 14.33 10.20 14.28 16.39 10.32 11.51 10.73 13.23 8.86 11.83 13.46 11.60 8.44 10.47 16.96 14.52 14.43 10.37 10.39 10.39 10.37 10.41 10.35 11.03 13.23 8.37 10.30 16.23 8.42 10.71 15.41 10.40 10.39 10.37 10.43 10.62 Jul 9.38 10.23 8.37 10.56 14.46 10.46 10.33 10.23 8.91 14.37 10.38 10.46 10.23 8.30 12.37 10.23 10.40 16.42 10.41 10.23 8.43 10.39 15.37 10.51 10.10 14.37 10.37 15.38 11.41 10.34 11.23 8.81 10.37 10.48 18.43 13.30 11.25 12.25 11.60 8.72 13.39 10.32 15.23 10.39 10.24 14.23 8.38 10.48 10.41 10.47 11.41 10.40 16.09 15.12 15.37 10.25 17.36 10.23 10.44 10.37 10.45 10.36 10.07 15.46 10.87 10.87 16. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium.32 11.44 10.97 16. 49 93.99 72.80 97.39 22.00 97.80 97.95 91.80 90.39 71.382 Exchange rates.40 20.26 67.33 94.19 21.04 21.65 75.12 72.13 94.79 72.27 111.06 69.92 107.20 72.10 72.05 21.75 21.76 21.44 Jun 17.17 67.38 21.56 89.00 97.06 72.18 107.00 72.25 25.68 128.80 Nov 69.14 71.54 21.68 21.23 23.75 94.16 70.58 21.00 97.85 23.43 20.21 72.90 128.86 21.50 126.14 23.14 71.80 97.85 71.06 72.87 68.79 72.53 68.33 71.80 91.90 78.02 114.84 21.21 72.00 97.29 71.17 23.23 94.92 90.15 22.62 Apr 17.96 67.07 73.60 22.01 22.02 23.06 130.25 20.88 71.86 128.80 97.49 17.27 21.07 71.24 74.09 21.31 71.22 22.64 21.94 128.03 74.50 20.27 21.71 72.18 71.77 Mar 17.84 72.06 79.34 128.09 70.97 20.63 17.42 22.58 22.95 93.98 95.88 72.96 69.37 67.13 71.79 128.62 22.80 90.47 90.80 91.39 93.51 128.27 68.89 109.09 72.06 Sep 17.59 91.92 66.51 71.76 124.81 65.75 Nov 17.93 21.48 118.25 97.01 120.80 .57 113.32 71.40 21.31 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct 71.99 120.99 63.01 71.64 128.25 22.67 71. Jan 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 18.89 23.65 67.37 72.31 21.25 97.38 85.84 72.28 105.99 66.61 23.49 23.00 97.28 57.62 17.78 127.05 22.39 67.46 67.33 71.83 72.99 63.79 66.76 95.13 72.29 75.03 24.57 128.94 Aug 17.84 84.33 Dec 17.75 81.17 90.53 111.28 123.89 129.93 71.32 71. Jan 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 70.20 77.38 68.73 72.56 70.35 107.03 90.36 71.81 Jul 17.67 22.90 20.56 93.80 91.58 97.92 122.83 21.35 72.35 21.39 21.40 21.07 72.11 66.41 66.80 97.55 95.15 95.84 78.23 128.97 72.96 Oct 17.22 21.65 22.98 71.67 123.23 71.58 May 17.84 109.13 67.04 128.89 76.62 72.47 65.86 67.14 58.98 25.39 23.13 72.05 72.02 22.84 22.80 97.03 72. SEK per 100 CHF 1915–2008.36 95.68 25.88 22.13 21.80 97.89 71.80 97.25 125.78 20.78 68.29 21.99 94.54 102.75 72.73 125.41 67.22 21.96 80.52 79.81 22.68 22.46 106.40 72.00 71.14 97.97 81.51 21.25 93.44 102. 1277–2008 Table A7. Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland.00 97.99 68.27 22.80 97.20 83.09 75.29 23.06 97.54 72.52 70.96 96.24 71.31 22.68 70.74 21.00 97.34 24.94 76.52 21.69 126.17 20.32 Dec 68.80 97.80 97.88 23.45 23.31 22.).00 97.69 17.86 90.20 17.98 71.60 71.55 97.04 71.37 91.15 23.81 22.48 23.00 79.02 79.32 68.25 97.6.01 22.89 67.58 73.96 71.76 78.51 72.22 23. SEK per 100 BEF 1945–2002.97 67.59 72.35 129.15 72.70 72.66 66.39 21.06 22.5c (cont.48 105.78 67.07 88.14 83.80 90.24 74.90 81.03 128.80 73.16 91.62 71.79 22.25 126.86 22.00 90.14 72.32 89.91 72.31 85.00 97.79 97.15 71.50 22.43 21.76 126.65 17.19 72.55 70.02 72.58 22.63 105.55 97.30 97.00 97.63 81. prices.04 73.55 97.00 73.47 23.62 25.36 94.80 89.00 64.14 21.86 22.14 72.81 66.00 95.33 74.06 80.80 115.34 21.89 82.12 72.75 72.80 91.00 97.90 22.00 72.71 20.38 71.81 72.76 21.80 97.27 71.18 128.68 21.91 95.97 126.88 Feb 18.55 67.28 102.10 22.80 97.00 98.14 16.93 97.44 17.76 66.96 71.94 23.85 69.98 74.06 65.18 111.17 21.80 90.80 23.81 23.67 21.45 125.04 72.21 66.80 91. and wages.63 117.37 67.69 18.59 22.41 95.54 25.32 72.32 72.46 73.17 71.25 133.39 66.82 72.97 72.45 72.60 73.84 72.11 72.06 68.38 89.49 72.68 97.80 97.10 20.76 69.48 94.35 73.05 91.80 89.35 70.22 72.41 Table A7.33 108.00 73.69 20.10 94.92 71.82 93.80 86.67 17.54 21.99 71.06 106.68 129.40 23.27 22.14 72.89 72.77 73.29 122. Monthly exchange rates on Belgium.74 79.74 19.43 21.33 71.99 112.21 22.99 72.00 97.92 90.45 22.81 67. 38 118.48 119.50 118.42 177. From appreciation to depreciation 383 Table A7.37 257.25 120.78 378.35 120.03 119.38 119.70 355.07 407.00 119.83 119.70 83.22 173.08 119.90 119.40 119.33 253.50 118.66 83.85 119.95 120.80 88.98 120.50 118.99 417.70 Mar 97.26 297.18 119.65 119.88 119.85 379.70 Aug 97.78 118.38 254.45 367.38 342.50 118.38 119.73 351.85 239.70 119.28 83.50 118.43 119.25 247.56 358.35 165.30 418.85 118.65 83.95 119.45 119.43 120.50 118.03 119.32 204.39 292.70 Nov 97.80 97.14 260.40 148.70 118.).41 345.23 165.70 Dec 97.53 119.62 185.80 97.46 244.53 118.25 119.70 83.68 118.45 119.70 83.50 118.80 97.33 119.50 345.33 127.50 118.05 120.97 344.50 118.83 252.47 369.20 118.73 119.53 120.70 Jun 97.28 172.80 97.65 83.02 386.82 419.80 97.63 119.98 119.87 305.55 119.33 123.24 417.51 356.68 118.13 119.80 97.68 120.50 118.33 120. SEK per 100 CHF 1915– 2008.15 120.73 118.88 119.73 119.85 83.78 119.29 435.58 119.60 120.70 83.20 253.6 (cont.39 369.40 172.20 118.75 140.70 83.50 118.15 119.50 119.71 414.16 169.43 119.26 229.50 118.43 168.25 367.46 415.53 118.08 260.41 420.50 118.77 255.05 118.70 138.06 364.35 118.80 83.31 237.70 Sep 97.61 180.50 409.63 119.93 118.68 121.38 120.50 170. Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland.04 291.18 118.90 120.20 120.70 118.70 83.75 119.93 120.93 119.98 177.79 255.30 120.88 118.55 256.19 365.83 150.50 118.93 118.08 411.83 359.75 118.36 366.28 119.30 341.72 422.23 118.60 422.12 439.00 118.63 118.90 343.63 118.00 120.80 97.88 119.7.80 89.38 120.08 120.95 119.06 235.05 119.98 125.60 118.65 118.50 118.67 244.34 429.78 120.38 118.66 446.43 119.44 419.13 125.15 119.30 138.19 361.15 120.75 125.88 120.80 97.32 164.15 120.18 119.50 120.40 348.64 330.25 120.43 118.80 97.05 120.65 118.48 119.78 120.10 119.70 83.53 137.43 119.50 118.70 May 97.80 97.13 120.70 83.63 119.69 157.86 .93 126.50 120.61 304.55 120.88 118.25 124.50 118.13 119.70 83.68 261.70 83.80 97.00 118.30 119.04 309.85 118.70 83.80 97.88 125.15 178.48 124.89 165.73 255.00 120.73 118.10 119.70 Apr 97.45 118.50 118.70 148.13 148.56 171.50 118.93 155.03 148.80 119.68 422.10 137.90 120.83 364.70 83.70 Feb 97.60 119.80 97.70 83.80 118.05 147.68 120.17 261.08 120.50 118.25 119.00 125.50 119.70 83.34 242.50 118.50 118.55 118.85 249.75 139.50 118.33 253.23 247.50 118.98 367.55 120.80 97.74 426.48 119.00 120.10 119.38 118.90 119.50 118.90 159.13 125.17 256.50 118.33 125.80 83.50 118.80 120.40 119.53 118.75 118.28 119.96 238.08 128.60 120.50 118.35 256.23 120.70 83.35 158.83 118.90 120.36 157.03 120.71 404.70 83.77 444.10 120.38 126.70 83.16 360.38 118.93 119.80 119.35 118.90 120.40 120.93 118.27 414.08 119.89 218.28 119.95 120.80 281.05 363.65 83.50 118.93 119.00 365.25 119.93 146.10 119.50 118.50 118.90 119.73 167.15 120.13 391.50 118.05 119.88 127.37 424.30 118.70 94.71 260.26 358.57 305.00 120.80 83.77 255.45 120.48 119.50 118.48 168. Jan 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 97.70 83.77 381.98 418.50 120.39 335.37 244.73 119.73 118.50 118.52 409.05 120.13 120.35 123.18 176.65 83.48 118.77 364.60 413.65 119.45 152.70 Oct 97.58 363.90 119.48 120.27 174.70 83.73 160.83 118.50 118.10 124.50 118.00 120.93 121.33 119.07 158.90 118.67 260.53 118.53 118.70 83.48 126.50 118.84 261.93 140.75 119.70 363.16 294.70 83.75 119.55 118.00 119.71 255.78 124.75 119.50 118.40 425.83 119.80 236.20 120.00 170.13 120.06 425.64 362.36 244.35 266.99 279.47 344.50 143.28 343.58 346.73 144.90 119.78 126.35 290.30 119.70 Jul 97.13 119.80 97.50 118.61 333.57 210.72 347.40 126.70 83.70 83.45 180.95 268.50 118.53 120.68 119.40 372.43 118.63 119.45 302.08 120.93 417.21 363.07 253.58 118.80 97.78 118.80 97.70 83.68 120.80 118.15 119.85 119.96 174.70 141.25 307.12 259.50 118.70 83.40 119.21 249.25 425.26 161.08 120.23 119.46 262.50 118.47 161.25 157.72 237.50 118.65 83.70 140.88 119.10 367.75 118.03 118.48 118.15 120.20 243.38 140.80 97.50 118.75 118.66 180.70 291.05 148.28 119.30 118.58 119.80 120.08 119.23 118.55 244. 64 144.63 593.83 566.7.75 419.76 403.57 543.35 150.37 141.80 149.93 585.78 587.80 387.44 397.43 583.42 580.95 556.13 563.07 566.93 217.47 149.53 150.79 616.11 147.54 152.70 605.15 553.96 150.74 668.99 584.92 525.08 144.77 509.36 .90 161.93 490.10 177.98 547.52 391.96 640.32 598.65 524.67 150.83 443.48 567.27 149.36 401.37 570.6 (cont.70 621.69 592.14 537.32 576.95 585.61 406.30 176.75 427.40 231.26 148.35 395.08 144.31 599.32 538.28 554.14 509.69 146.74 565.81 145.29 150.95 576.01 145.16 420.06 567.45 563.08 592.29 142.47 147.61 508.59 633.66 560.52 150.06 625.93 148.64 398.80 408.80 523.43 579.69 154.64 150.48 604.56 618.89 556.82 519.90 149.14 586.03 210.56 150.02 145.10 150.87 145.56 148.10 141.22 597.83 425.60 182.20 155.73 625.81 150.39 557.30 532.93 602.72 150.04 565.67 623.60 150.30 148. SEK per 100 NLG 1913–2002.17 521.17 137.78 149.85 143.28 531.43 136.18 149.12 124.62 144.58 569.37 549.45 529.75 217.68 563.67 580.70 551.11 554.59 147.06 150.06 609.53 569.38 150.80 632.10 149.05 150.65 523.49 210.38 443.02 150.21 150.09 150.17 150.28 401.88 496.48 541.93 590.89 596.23 164.54 553.00 394.94 149.88 150.49 111.95 150.20 204.85 514.31 391.36 405.57 587.99 151.85 159.06 148.17 397.09 145.43 539.76 150.45 157.57 160.00 619.58 212.29 150.05 572.48 601.88 146.05 536.70 529.32 406.79 608.32 155.03 150.15 Table A7.05 226.74 563.73 441.74 519.93 149.85 150.21 611. prices.03 150.31 150.06 149.09 151.03 545.58 149.93 156.42 169.51 150.03 427.73 150.84 172.95 150.73 148.58 162.66 156.89 147.27 163.06 541.75 570.76 585.00 587.10 592.15 150.60 160.53 217.84 149.01 144.52 154.47 521.97 149.22 150.49 537.57 149.73 149.32 527.00 149.28 435.12 574.84 586.61 391.66 139.77 612.72 136.79 149.16 581.42 144.90 623.67 589.71 536.10 147.39 145.59 138.22 409.91 520.35 150.57 600.73 599.33 146.89 526.91 152.21 543.55 584.56 137.79 149.39 150.04 151.16 595.94 149.07 135.82 147.79 155.12 411.42 146.33 647.40 141.10 568.72 579.00 149.18 153.384 Exchange rates.81 150. Jan 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 402.78 148.95 549.47 533.13 148.66 427.53 589.26 592.06 153.41 507.28 626.36 417.41 155.85 144.70 584.14 150.59 564.22 149.20 149.49 150.53 412.70 140.90 413.90 148.09 150.99 149.01 583.64 149.30 595.82 149.34 226.67 149.05 582.74 149.37 222. Monthly exchange rates on Switzerland.12 566.37 583.87 592.43 136.66 150.17 525.02 582.69 147.84 155.55 393.48 599.12 550.17 150.).14 583.43 150.18 152.37 141.35 115.67 397.48 130.07 150.87 581.60 552.16 148.57 416.03 562.37 694.36 182.22 152.97 149.49 537.97 557.77 440.36 146.45 619.46 150.84 601.62 148.25 150.55 146.19 604.63 150.61 627.35 126.13 140.58 627.29 416.57 161.07 440.48 149.71 149.35 626.57 586. 1277–2008 Table A7.56 151.50 614.38 441.21 145.41 149.07 604.03 161.79 149.04 143.55 150.90 166.66 149.48 599.25 150.70 194.15 562.27 136.75 140.38 547.13 149.23 150.87 155.52 564.06 146.05 150.38 594.98 149.89 506.00 149.89 577.42 150.87 201. and wages.98 647.45 149.05 151.24 147.91 150.10 149.07 601.35 551.26 551.83 148.46 217. Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands.94 621.84 399.37 149.30 591.85 146.22 590.61 412.47 527.46 150.70 149.31 560.43 587.69 151.98 149.19 158.45 150.86 577.92 150. SEK per 100 CHF 1915– 2008.11 601.35 542.85 154.57 146.11 594.54 483.22 423.23 619.56 149.57 149.37 150.38 231.89 156.16 150.59 147.13 571.15 150.68 542.49 437.69 425.95 150.87 146.53 425.70 160.15 147.32 127.06 547.84 546.23 150.53 145.27 586.80 564.31 529.20 150.14 151.65 538.58 602.18 503.17 621.67 537.45 582.69 618.21 149.24 146.25 641.99 647.58 647.71 158.40 573.05 380. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 150.41 416.38 581.66 535.00 633.44 141.98 547.37 527.99 150.17 599. 38 136.90 135.41 262.45 143.98 136.12 136.75 158.20 143.47 197.75 137.48 142.35 149.94 164.76 217.50 142. From appreciation to depreciation 385 Table A7.00 136.50 143.97 222.28 143.60 143.48 163.53 222.03 217.77 261.23 137.78 143.50 223.23 165.55 136.55 144.50 223.43 143.03 136.04 162.97 163.20 224.33 144.27 239.33 136.98 153.50 216.75 154.23 213.98 136.90 135.90 135.10 135.03 137.88 164.08 217.28 143.08 136.37 262.05 143.93 136.10 137.33 143.03 136.90 135.88 137.31 268.61 257.86 225.50 223.98 136.28 214.50 333.50 223.87 264.50 136.09 217.58 142.94 258.90 135.18 143.50 223.33 143.50 223.58 136.33 148.26 217.90 135.30 165.18 137.88 149.50 158.75 136.55 136.55 136.85 136.85 142.25 136.05 136.70 142.25 143.30 147.10 137.50 223.56 216.12 267.90 135.23 216.08 137.18 162.35 143.54 178.60 146.30 143.95 136.83 143.43 142.53 178.41 260.05 143.50 144.93 137.67 268.43 163.53 261.30 143.50 223.35 137.50 223.08 217.15 162.90 135.19 224.88 136.90 135.10 135.97 216.15 223.48 153.01 223. SEK per 100 NLG 1913– 2002.90 135.10 137.63 136.50 223.93 136.90 135.15 143.20 143.55 143.95 143.50 223.98 136.05 136.80 162.50 223.88 162.41 269.50 158.55 136.39 216.50 223.28 143.34 221.10 137.90 135.50 223.72 215.89 265.58 137.78 143.15 143.50 223.55 163.73 144.50 263.11 267.57 168.48 144.56 222.78 143.75 164.04 239.17 263.11 245.50 204.50 223.38 143.80 146.16 164.03 143.90 135.45 144.08 143.03 143.40 149.34 231.50 323.05 143.55 136.35 157.13 142.08 142.15 142.90 135.40 136.93 135.97 223.53 143.73 143.23 143.50 156.88 143.55 136.93 143.03 165.55 136.55 136.18 152.55 164.60 255.90 135.55 136.55 136.66 221.13 224.31 221.10 144.24 267.40 143.50 223.50 223.55 136.35 137.70 135.87 216.07 271.53 137.18 137.97 222.10 136.58 145.98 136.95 150.48 136.57 218.23 144.90 135.50 149.55 136.10 144.50 223.53 165.50 157.7 (cont.54 222.35 136.65 143.28 137.50 150.55 136.21 249.28 149.50 223. Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands.90 144.00 164.55 137.93 137.68 140.90 135.45 143.50 223.01 221.23 151.98 136.62 267.40 137.70 144.50 223.55 136.63 142.55 136.90 165.15 165.55 136.68 143.90 135.45 143.13 144.50 223.55 136.55 136.90 135.90 135.29 266.90 166.95 142.90 135.55 166.90 135.23 166.25 136.88 235.50 223.33 141.77 216.57 323.37 266.73 224.43 137.55 144.50 323.45 143.55 136.64 165.28 137.45 143.90 137.19 217.55 142.55 136.31 169.90 135.62 183.90 135.16 269.28 167.80 137.60 169.78 143.50 223.90 135.32 223.12 167.20 137.50 223.90 135.25 137.50 223.31 255.30 142.68 143.08 143.63 136.90 143.50 223.68 144.03 268.55 136.96 220.20 143.55 136.50 223.60 165.90 135.55 136.90 136.23 .66 257.33 165.73 147.55 136.55 136.20 136.30 137.53 142.00 143.90 136.28 143.55 136.50 158.50 142.08 143.10 144.94 135.13 144.28 137.53 136.16 176.50 223.50 223.85 143.62 262.71 233.15 137.93 166.90 135.95 136.00 142.43 197.10 136.68 143.35 142.45 143.18 150.63 143.53 143.70 215.20 147.00 136.83 137.58 165.28 267.78 163.13 136.55 136.94 215.50 223.33 143.90 135.73 143.13 137.15 149.50 333.90 136.18 143.55 136.30 266.85 144.78 144.55 136.23 142.).79 226.90 137.90 135.60 155.03 144.10 163.83 144.55 136.50 223.60 223.13 143.30 221.63 143.68 145.85 142.35 136.50 158.50 223.75 136.20 136.33 142.50 223.55 166.60 137.90 143.30 137.55 136.05 144.55 136.36 164.33 137.50 223.35 137.30 137.44 244.38 143.23 137.50 144.65 167.55 136.23 135.80 217.55 136.93 144.03 136.23 136.93 136.10 216.88 165.50 223.90 135.25 137.76 165.83 136.10 167.08 137.68 224.04 177.50 143.63 144.98 143.98 143.33 136.38 250.55 136.93 216.7.74 267.72 226.50 223.48 144.30 198.50 223.65 145.38 137.55 136.50 143.73 166.38 143.33 144.38 143.28 136.53 148.35 143.25 217.50 223.68 143.20 148.23 143.18 137.50 158.03 142.25 137.23 137.90 135. Jan 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 220.50 223.50 223.23 143.90 135.35 137.55 136.50 223.00 224.38 267.46 222.90 135.90 135.90 135.28 223.45 136.75 157.55 136.43 143.50 277. 55 385.50 282.19 434.20 414.96 417.36 70.89 99.34 280.33 91.68 415.08 390.69 88.34 326.07 218.11 401.73 386.00 100.00 100.82 67.68 95.93 263.76 390.00 100.00 100.26 75.71 88.47 65.85 419.33 426.95 214.72 87.45 94.40 85.60 323.57 92.89 99.88 Table A7.00 412.47 93.69 99.65 224.88 82.13 217.37 322.08 348.45 92.10 323.79 79.48 261.80 416.36 324.02 68.82 88.54 322.85 223.58 97.73 80.07 224.31 382.10 77.33 319.00 100.00 100.72 275.76 80.00 302.19 93.89 404.00 100.78 269.41 83.88 84.00 100.48 321. Jan 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 206.8.73 460.72 81.22 214.49 191.07 410.25 66.24 436.24 321.00 100.00 100.00 100.22 99.15 428.43 95.04 320.48 393.11 272.92 251.03 309.83 309.10 391.30 405.86 63.08 435.78 398.30 254.00 100.04 99.47 91.22 380.67 400. Monthly exchange rates on Netherlands.94 315.10 403.24 398.97 270.30 218.33 256.60 256.11 403.00 422.76 326.89 283. 1277–2008 Table A7.89 263.36 276.52 89.57 394.03 82.88 86.30 88.07 65.56 99.96 99.44 262.85 310.87 93.62 98.08 95.08 97.54 381.02 66.43 298.76 256.86 377.60 206.09 413.45 214.76 258.70 416.13 64.65 332.22 218.31 79.30 207.94 314.58 393.74 264.34 257.40 98.84 76.32 74.81 317.54 79.00 100.98 224.38 206.15 409.48 271.09 411.22 306.04 222.97 413.05 92.83 225.39 99.32 59.85 313.22 304.00 100.62 391.71 391.71 428.86 303.00 99.28 373.10 99.06 99.83 99.49 212.62 96.91 97.99 397.45 323.13 66.56 307.45 212.57 424.16 393. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008.96 308.35 197.02 91.40 321.17 77.00 381.40 320.00 100.23 266.82 390.33 191.70 65.20 328.11 71.67 95.23 301.32 192.29 303.89 387.47 447.24 321.00 100.75 396.18 206.78 213.85 440.00 100.70 211.77 391.18 438.99 76.84 67.53 278.29 262.11 286.52 265.76 214.78 309.05 386.83 210.71 427.73 399. and wages.05 436.93 96.92 391.97 68.07 203.17 381.41 300.18 253.68 440.59 99.17 95.00 100.67 434.00 100.05 440.78 196.00 100.94 197.35 388.44 302.04 264.84 99.34 223.52 420.08 315.43 309.62 66.09 218.37 321.93 331.95 375.09 384.02 70.24 79.86 212.49 213.38 223.08 328.48 332.18 322.44 212.00 100.34 400.26 310.22 407.06 90.52 400.35 326.38 .18 322.07 304.07 305.44 391.75 433.85 393.82 222.51 433.11 92.63 389.50 303.74 71.47 306.17 383.19 318.33 324.74 210.72 299.39 83.08 87.00 100.81 285.19 75.17 263.74 421.89 258.39 98.84 417.45 71.75 427.28 92.32 311.86 396.03 399.18 90.57 387.00 100.00 100.53 387.90 410.38 335.16 252. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 100.62 421. Monthly exchange rates on Denmark.09 99.91 307.63 76.85 315.45 396.84 69.04 99.56 93.20 404.97 84.57 322.46 227.90 263.78 264.30 99.55 224.01 208.97 71.31 259.00 100.81 99.33 81.30 322.53 418.86 310.94 68.59 277.22 216.81 80.60 407.39 321.60 86.).26 399.67 70.83 92.29 431.03 83. SEK per 100 NLG 1913– 2002.55 61.91 61.30 463.00 100.07 407.00 100.20 66.62 99.38 412.85 96.33 212.48 395.68 291.46 93.10 94.09 463.93 100.28 267.07 205.43 81.16 93.98 323.41 410.27 261.07 387.88 92.30 324.67 225.81 215.13 92.22 191.29 63.22 216.00 100.23 92.33 414.07 311.56 391.00 100.20 267.81 214.75 215.02 99.85 76.89 99.36 304.27 305.68 415.14 67.94 438.02 90.83 92.80 93.61 476.45 267.96 72.95 65.21 92.98 279.18 321.56 205.72 79.16 99.07 427.48 426.7 (cont.08 299.00 100.16 211.51 323.00 100.42 407.69 407.34 83.27 210.51 320.00 93.52 417.06 461.97 75.66 259.66 72.56 93.386 Exchange rates.25 207.84 251.13 64.00 100.46 77. prices.45 321.23 382.69 385.53 79.91 206.00 100.24 76.69 253.60 76.33 312.00 100.30 60.00 100.23 300.00 100.61 323.56 99.19 333.62 210.54 250.28 93. 58 69.90 87.05 74.03 75.15 69.13 74.25 87.05 75.78 75.93 85.90 87.25 69.79 86.65 99.43 69.05 75.70 74.53 69.05 75.78 75.90 87.67 75.08 75. From appreciation to depreciation 387 Table A7.93 75.85 86.65 75.48 75.95 74.98 74.15 68.13 Nov 99.28 74.10 69.08 74.72 99.83 81.38 74.77 99.90 87.25 81.00 74.90 75.20 75.86 104.58 75.23 75.88 68.10 74.25 87.05 75.93 69.58 75.25 81.08 75.82 99.70 99.15 101.75 86.74 99.30 74.70 74.43 69.40 74.18 75.25 81.25 75.60 75.73 75.85 86.03 69.18 75.40 68.80 81.13 73.78 75.23 75.05 75.75 75.25 81.25 83.68 74.23 74.25 Aug 99.98 75.85 86.68 74.89 99.95 100.85 86.90 75.90 75.45 69.05 69.79 99.25 87.45 74.05 75.40 74.90 87.13 73.85 86.88 74.88 69.05 75.78 73.79 81.05 75.60 74.28 75.90 87.85 71.25 87.90 87.83 99.40 75.93 69.58 74.25 81.85 86.05 75.60 75.28 75.90 87.18 75.75 86.05 75.45 74.55 75.18 75.68 68.13 86.85 86.55 75.30 75.01 99.05 74.79 99.90 87.25 75.66 86.20 69.05 75.85 86.42 86.75 86.00 75.75 69.03 72.08 75.20 75.85 86.10 68.85 86.38 74.98 86.05 74.98 68.55 75.23 68.25 81.23 69.81 81.50 73.92 87.30 68.05 75.10 75.13 75.00 75.55 69.90 87.70 75.05 75.05 75.22 86.73 74.02 87.09 86.80 75.08 75.90 87.45 68.05 68.15 69.85 86.80 99.05 75.05 74.05 75.44 99.63 68.28 74.30 74.50 69.83 81.55 75.08 68.70 69.70 95.05 75.90 74.05 75.45 99.05 75.05 75.20 75.35 69.80 74.05 75.18 74.65 74.90 69.90 87.25 81.25 81.00 75.85 86.55 68.85 74.90 87.33 74.05 75.05 75.40 74.85 86.05 75.05 75.86 93.05 75.08 75.73 74.55 75. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008.90 87.72 81.85 86.72 99.16 107.65 99.04 101.85 86.85 86.01 86.90 87.80 106.98 75.7.60 73.05 75.77 86.50 68.25 87.85 86.50 69.05 75.85 86.85 86.93 69.05 75.18 69.90 87.63 74.90 87.03 74.20 Feb 99.05 75.90 87.85 86.94 87.05 75.73 74.05 75.05 75.25 81.20 75.25 87.8 (cont.68 74.05 75.90 87.90 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.20 75.60 69.85 86.13 69.05 75.90 75.75 86.40 74.13 74.05 75.58 69.).90 87.55 75.10 74.90 87.25 87.20 75. Monthly exchange rates on Denmark.77 81.90 87.66 99.75 81.68 74.04 108.06 86.94 .33 74.85 86.90 87.92 84.85 86.85 75.85 86.82 99.85 86.85 86.90 87.25 87.85 86.25 68.23 75.05 75.85 86.05 75.02 86.05 75.57 99.25 86.60 75.25 74.75 86.73 99.85 86.35 75.93 74.25 81.90 87.05 75.05 75.05 75.05 75.69 99.03 75.83 69.95 84.90 87.23 75.68 73.24 81.18 74.05 75.75 74.55 75.85 86.75 86.90 87.25 87.38 100.05 75.42 86.05 75.05 74.18 75.05 75.05 75.20 75.90 105.05 75.90 80.85 86.38 74.75 86.05 75.93 69.85 86.15 74.98 74.89 99.05 75.90 87.95 Oct 99.10 68.05 75.85 75.90 87.10 69.03 74.86 86.85 74.05 75.76 99.05 75.45 73.83 69.18 75.90 69.10 68.80 81.83 69.00 74.08 Mar 99.98 75.25 74.78 74.85 86.25 69.05 75.90 87.43 Jul 99.41 86.90 87.80 75.13 Sep 99.05 74.45 75.25 81.75 74.84 81.38 74.00 69.85 86.48 69.05 75.33 75.72 99.46 99.05 75.25 81.10 75.13 75.13 75.78 99.67 98.73 99.85 86.28 75.90 87.70 74.30 74.85 86.10 74.25 75.05 75.05 75.90 87.75 75.15 Dec 99.38 74.85 86.58 74.98 74.33 68.83 74.90 87.85 86. Jan 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 99.05 75.75 74.74 86.85 86.93 87.05 75.25 74.05 75.45 72.05 75.23 68.75 86.81 81.69 96.18 69.90 87.25 75.83 69.90 87.28 75.99 99.85 86.95 74.05 75.05 75.05 75.50 74.05 75.95 86.85 99.71 99.88 69.56 99.90 75.80 75.85 86.75 75.55 75.13 74.05 75.90 87.93 74.95 74.90 74.68 74.79 81.35 74.05 75.85 86.77 99.79 99.25 Apr 99.10 75.28 68.25 81.05 75.25 87.05 75.67 75.05 75.90 87.48 69.93 74.95 74.25 87.25 81.25 81.55 75.69 74.89 98.90 87.05 75.38 72.05 75.05 75.85 86.05 May 99.75 74.85 86.93 74.05 75.05 75.05 75.30 Jun 99.85 86.90 87.38 69.84 98.85 86.30 75.72 86.74 99.85 86.25 75.90 87.05 75.85 74. 31 73.25 122.76 93.40 93.00 100.17 87.00 100.64 69.56 126.35 79.21 92.21 Aug 73.02 123.00 100.60 73.59 Oct 73.44 80.85 124.44 115.25 125.15 75.76 118.02 97.17 97.27 121.88 116.80 81.50 124.72 83.00 95.43 114.72 76.68 72.21 117.67 124.91 123.00 100.56 97.67 88.21 93.88 125.84 78.32 112.81 124.05 96.77 114.30 132.18 95.00 100.82 126.34 118.97 135.00 100.37 115.45 93.19 94.14 84. Jan 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 72.73 111.93 116.74 115.25 86.39 83.00 100.89 125.41 112.19 120.34 80.39 89.79 87.05 122.41 94.57 82.97 82.14 83.88 93.20 72.89 125.17 80.71 83.60 86.31 118.82 125.68 123.00 100.09 93.68 97.89 92.91 122.83 94.68 126.00 100.13 86.76 123.19 124.45 87.13 100.94 75.46 75.24 122.82 78.00 100.98 81.28 91.69 122.38 90.07 121.87 79.85 80.00 100.67 74.07 135.92 94.95 71.17 122.51 90.75 124. 1277–2008 Table A7.50 92.88 117.40 68.04 123.19 86.72 87.73 93.34 121.50 71.25 88.44 81.21 86.64 71.84 86.11 121.47 123.52 73.01 69.34 126.91 81.79 79.34 119.48 Apr 73.19 126.25 122.55 80.70 96.68 123.53 120.48 89.25 118.11 124.84 114.73 73.22 83.05 94.97 123.23 71.00 100.72 122.68 91.58 83.58 123.91 89.85 123.96 80.00 100.82 82.03 94.19 91.82 121.14 125.70 123.95 121.49 111.91 94.06 126.37 126.65 Mar 73.44 91.60 128.41 100.14 122.388 Exchange rates.00 100.61 88.33 73.12 113. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008.48 115.54 122.35 Nov 73.98 79.75 81.00 100.09 76.41 132.42 125.25 126.44 123.58 112.40 80.00 100.26 Jun 73.15 91.34 91.81 93.05 82.10 72.00 123.91 93.09 95.60 122.28 122.81 99.51 116.23 124.94 81.51 80.75 72.00 100.76 132.48 72.87 80.66 126.16 120.20 93.17 123.99 122.24 121.55 119.44 Sep 72.40 May 73.05 73.50 123.48 113.81 78.17 76.98 125.23 85.46 125.65 121.85 72.12 124.73 89.87 86.96 120.69 120.02 123.22 117.48 69.04 73.56 84.83 120.86 94.95 77.52 95.70 129.43 67.68 81.00 100.40 73.29 122.00 100.91 81.04 67.92 85.01 87.51 125.92 87.00 100.00 100.58 94.91 93.92 94.04 92.42 78.00 122.86 74.01 115.14 76.8 (cont.97 128.00 100.62 .79 118. Monthly exchange rates on Denmark.48 119.92 81.58 95.00 100.22 123.24 72.29 124. Monthly exchange rates on Norway.91 128.34 123.01 88.85 97.15 97.00 100.76 124.00 100.83 Feb 73.12 124.02 99.00 100.32 91.45 98.79 115.89 121.07 72.03 75.34 71.07 93.44 114.83 80.00 100.00 100.00 100.62 117.00 100.11 114.07 81.54 93.26 86.87 Table A7.28 78.33 94.60 67.26 72.33 124.50 82.17 94.03 71.40 124.08 125.36 117.32 92.11 92.49 115.09 113.9.00 100.80 112.94 118.70 124.16 123.51 122.13 76.22 123.34 75.23 73.51 71.71 72. and wages.00 99.28 93.31 81.67 114.86 114.60 91.98 80.58 113.84 119.66 97.77 86.49 86.90 96.).50 120.04 122.27 80.53 114.76 75.56 95.95 92.05 124.87 98.00 100.88 95.99 71.35 72.49 72.05 119.19 79.03 122.26 120.20 94.83 117.43 98.11 121.63 91. prices.63 80.00 100.07 90.83 116.28 81.56 96.72 90.78 91.13 126.20 81.44 116.90 122.70 115.51 93.86 73.73 72.17 132.97 125.70 98.87 94.61 125.80 74.55 112.00 100.73 114.35 117.56 122.24 75.61 99.17 119.28 121.01 110.34 81.25 97.35 123.40 119.60 83.10 72.34 71.43 124.35 72.21 122.58 70.47 79.14 91.13 117.88 95.69 97.95 97.94 118.45 118.83 125.26 96.19 114.69 120.22 122.65 72.11 Dec 73.86 93.02 85.60 72.10 72.84 72. SEK per 100 DKK 1913–2008.77 84.70 86.60 124.68 101.01 80.85 87.94 113.90 113.40 72.87 82.79 121.06 115.97 129.71 116.86 124.62 78.95 115.00 100.85 81.15 87.64 80.43 126.69 95.73 112.29 89.28 128.92 82.76 116.65 124.98 86.73 72.10 95.13 125.93 89.98 100.27 94.39 123.03 99.14 125.17 123.83 123. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 100.00 100.10 72.93 143.90 122.49 83.38 94.71 Jul 74. 78 72.65 84.74 99.65 95.96 68.63 72.55 72.94 97.95 56.83 72.55 95.49 99.00 65.60 99.60 97.65 84.83 72.65 95.89 99.74 96.25 72.38 72.65 95.55 72.55 72.60 97.55 72.63 72.70 96.52 97.90 72.30 97.89 99.35 72.73 75.55 72.70 72.65 95.49 90.20 72.60 72.92 63.50 72.60 97.55 72.43 99.55 72.83 67.55 72.67 97.00 95.55 72.41 82.15 93.19 88.65 97.73 95.73 72.59 70.84 64.00 95.15 Dec 95.55 72.35 99.75 94.01 96.70 95.23 72.70 72.69 99.65 95.55 95.36 97.80 98.60 97.80 75.41 98.60 97.85 72.65 95.55 72.65 72.79 97.55 72.70 72.55 95.75 97.65 95.61 95.04 94.55 72.65 95.55 72.60 97.78 99.19 70.83 56.35 72.55 72.65 84.16 67.93 50.27 82.60 97.60 97.55 72. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008.61 99.14 99.55 72.65 95.22 96.94 97.94 97.70 72.60 97.55 72.69 97.65 95.55 72.65 72.60 97.65 95.55 72.59 67.65 95.55 95.65 95.80 70.20 72.55 72.60 97.18 Apr 96.69 96.68 72.73 72.32 97.60 97.63 72.94 96.55 72.55 72.28 72.55 72.55 95.55 72.55 95.65 72.9 (cont.78 72.75 72.65 72.60 97.55 72.60 72.83 72.18 94.60 96.55 72.55 72.55 72.48 72.88 72.65 95.55 72.65 72.55 72.60 97.75 99.68 72.65 97.90 72.65 97.34 97.87 99.75 97.80 72.98 97.55 72.43 72.60 97.73 72.25 72.68 72.84 99.70 72.58 72.85 99.55 72.65 95.75 72.68 72.80 72.28 68.54 95.60 97.65 72.84 94.55 72.65 57.57 96.01 96.65 84.50 72.55 72.55 72.16 95.75 99.55 72.70 62.60 97.70 99.50 72.65 84.78 72.65 97.55 72.55 72.55 82.78 72.60 97. Monthly exchange rates on Norway.00 95.73 72.92 99.55 72.72 98.65 72.65 99.55 72.94 76.75 97.48 72.55 72.64 99.84 71.55 72.09 69.78 71.85 72.55 72.55 72.99 98.14 61.23 99.20 72.83 62.55 72.55 95.68 95.60 97.71 99.55 72.65 72.85 72.71 72.65 84.50 72.70 96.65 95.68 71.49 61.60 97.93 81.60 97. From appreciation to depreciation 389 Table A7.55 72.72 99.73 72.55 72.60 72.18 52.55 72.93 95.22 72.91 53.50 99.83 72.21 50.08 Jun 97.55 72.55 72.35 72.73 72.55 72.03 Jul 96.65 72.55 72.75 76.65 95.65 95.61 97.65 95.60 97.00 54.03 96.05 62.75 99.65 77.66 99.60 97.55 95.65 84.58 60.75 98.55 72.65 84.55 72.71 53.80 72.65 95.55 72.06 99.60 72.73 72.65 95.69 96.65 95.55 72.41 93.55 72.78 51.88 72.43 72.00 95.45 72.70 95.70 67.55 72.38 56.65 72.65 84.05 98.65 95.60 72.10 May 98.60 97.55 72.89 97.60 72.31 87.60 97.78 72.43 72.45 60.44 62.65 95.55 72.43 66.73 99.28 72.63 72.60 97.55 72.00 95.55 72.93 99.60 97. Jan 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 97.24 97.48 72.60 97.53 72.44 60.69 97.15 72.14 77.7.55 72.65 95.36 .65 72.80 72.65 97.67 99.65 95.25 58.65 84.55 72.75 72.55 72.65 99.47 99.18 80.39 72.88 99.52 84.60 97.20 80.43 72.65 95.60 97.38 72.48 75.33 63.57 97.83 69.88 72.68 72.55 72.76 99.49 99.91 97.44 99.63 72.65 95.47 99.60 97.65 95.70 99.89 97.60 97.68 56.70 72.37 72.01 76.93 97.55 72.65 95.66 97.80 99.66 95.07 63.82 99.55 72.99 56.65 84.57 97.72 68.25 72.65 95.85 72.98 Oct 94.85 72.94 97.13 52.65 97.65 95.68 72.70 72.55 72.65 72.75 96.83 72.04 71.79 97.09 82.53 72.65 95.40 59.55 72.85 72.60 97.70 72.17 100.65 72.55 72.23 72.60 97.65 97.55 72.50 72.55 Mar 96.46 55.72 99.55 95.16 82.65 72.33 72.60 97.78 52.85 72.78 99.55 72.42 51.65 95.97 97.93 Sep 94.56 69.75 97.65 95.65 95.73 72.56 63.85 72.82 88.55 72.48 95.80 72.60 97.).55 72.20 Nov 96.65 95.68 72.62 97.55 72.50 72.05 Aug 94.55 72.64 99.87 63.65 72.60 97.32 70.79 99.61 65.65 90.69 99.03 99.48 72.10 99.55 72.55 72.55 72.65 95.60 97.55 72.75 72.55 72.83 72.30 97.55 72.88 72.68 67.65 95.02 96.74 99.20 97.73 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.64 97.65 84.65 97.78 72.65 62.65 72.75 72.09 98.60 97.00 80.65 72.55 72.55 72.55 72.60 97.55 72.65 95.60 97.60 97.70 72.63 72.95 80.69 52.68 Feb 97.78 99.65 78. 15 72.69 106.53 72.48 81.60 105.00 79.).65 72.64 98.80 103.89 86.33 96.60 72.40 94.02 119.25 105.79 96.15 79.71 115.05 105.71 122.92 85.29 102.68 84.24 88.09 103.23 72.96 86.69 109.01 112.11 93.72 Mar 71.60 85.27 108.85 112.31 103.60 72.87 93.12 86.66 105.46 80.61 92.38 96.57 97.63 104.28 118.05 116.07 111.75 95.45 80.14 103.83 73.04 107.82 104.43 79.80 92.90 92.64 100.08 85.50 72.62 116.20 84.65 100.48 72.65 116.01 Apr 72.97 106.40 92.13 107.35 79.27 109.77 93.38 81.53 117.89 86.83 115.74 106.48 Oct 72.33 104.10 76.70 72.32 94.18 109.17 108.71 94.11 110.58 72.55 76.75 80.56 107.11 103.90 72.72 97.50 72.28 72.68 72.00 72.60 104.46 100.02 93.36 108.83 110.09 90.60 73.05 93.73 103. 1277–2008 Table A7.55 82.15 93.12 Sep 72.84 118.84 80.34 105.99 125.75 101.63 92.47 94.73 92.02 85.70 117.30 72.42 104.46 93.44 98.00 105.83 111.30 108.86 115.46 83.66 93.90 93.25 118.20 79.20 92.34 92.78 118.54 110.68 111.55 72.55 72.95 107.95 103.20 104.55 72.22 95.80 80.02 85.29 110.26 110.84 100.80 81.50 72.82 105.75 76.02 105.94 118.04 Feb 72.02 96.85 112.79 118.66 104.63 80.58 72.81 102.22 115.14 95.64 96.02 123.80 118.28 72.15 110.55 72.93 77.05 121.53 72.33 80.50 72.65 72.58 117.75 117.57 84.68 107.99 124.60 72.21 93.97 110.43 85.33 117.95 72.11 93.15 105.37 117.14 115.30 117.42 109.68 72.84 113.47 101.25 113.05 104.93 119.72 84.07 104.35 94.33 84.48 107.61 109.80 85.98 93.53 120.40 93.54 108.76 109.01 105.00 72.07 93.97 117.98 71.34 94.01 94.14 92.41 96. prices.33 72.06 92.24 122.84 91.24 94.22 94.40 110.68 107.91 98.06 99.57 124.15 79.09 107.37 86.60 72.42 94.91 95.23 80.83 86.65 94.60 72.94 106.390 Exchange rates.34 105.05 78.57 88.25 72.43 72.22 105.34 100.50 81.73 72.53 94.53 92.02 115.01 92.20 82.82 118.62 85.59 108.63 101.93 Nov 72.69 118.73 110.48 72.54 105.46 106.88 72.50 111.42 99.38 72.09 95.92 109.33 111.27 94.92 116.31 117.66 101.98 73.69 95.15 72.41 May 72.65 72.09 90.9 (cont.93 116.20 85.35 72.05 80.83 117.67 94.47 Dec 72.68 108.45 95.29 113.38 72.32 106.48 100.98 72.08 90.64 92.26 107.95 81.00 119.18 77.98 72.28 72.65 73.04 117.99 105.77 105.41 116.25 79.43 72.00 106.03 84.16 93.80 79.60 72.85 114.23 79.21 111.88 94.46 .11 115.77 92.22 106.63 109.63 80.31 96.60 72.94 97.00 81.60 72.15 96.81 94.30 106.30 72.48 72.65 120.53 72.28 104.02 92.35 115.30 100.89 111.77 109.63 80.78 92.91 85.62 84.08 91.80 113.98 92.99 116.55 72.38 114.92 103.41 83.48 72.38 72.93 103.70 87.57 109.55 72.55 111.42 86.18 92.78 109.01 107.15 94.62 119.52 94.02 94.33 84.75 94.61 80.25 111.03 80.77 116.37 113.90 100.70 73.25 72.49 117.45 Aug 72.16 93.97 108.43 95.80 101.68 93.93 105.56 97.76 104.45 72.99 84.55 72.88 101.05 104.60 72.03 100.45 92.48 72.07 96.39 105.19 103.23 112.99 94.32 80.74 85.22 92.73 110.44 110.65 109.45 79.10 Jun 72.02 109. and wages.30 114.43 85.16 107.13 80.60 114.85 92.70 79.77 107.10 79.43 72.36 86.28 110.95 76.35 88.28 74.28 102.28 72. Jan 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 71.80 72.03 112.67 93.69 107.44 105.22 111.83 72.97 85.24 85.05 79.52 103.77 85.98 110.50 106.61 103.80 73.55 80.73 72.17 103.47 112.45 72.43 107.29 103.53 76.63 75.90 104.60 80.73 112.63 72.86 100.78 80.01 98.70 122.06 115.90 85.35 119.85 99.69 104.51 96.58 72.81 101.06 113.35 82.25 81.37 106.60 86.98 104.65 80.56 93.73 79. Monthly exchange rates on Norway.63 72.83 85.80 72.48 86.45 104.92 117.79 119.53 107.31 92.24 94.05 117.58 125.73 93.58 72.14 124.58 100.52 95. SEK per 100 NKK 1913–2008.81 105.34 86.38 109.30 104.41 108.00 86.37 113.48 Jul 72.11 84.33 72.48 72.46 104.30 72.55 72.38 109.48 72.41 102.33 84.56 114.27 87.52 118.79 85.35 99.42 110.60 95.43 105.59 100.66 94.48 124. 89 21.88 66.69 2.60 8.26 1.27 2.70 54.27 2.51 2.60 8.27 2.37 9.61 8.27 2.42 8.39 9.27 2.41 7.64 .27 2.14 8.59 8.89 9.60 8.59 8.12 2.59 8.32 9.60 8.85 67.63 53.27 2.59 8.36 9.27 2.60 8.14 9.37 9.59 8.43 9.27 2.31 46.10a.27 1.86 29.27 2.46 8.69 2.60 8.42 9.60 8.37 53.43 9.26 1.12 2.42 9.69 2.18 41.96 39.82 7.61 8.60 8.38 9.69 2.27 2.27 1.59 4.60 8.59 8.59 8.53 34.69 8.36 9.60 8.27 2.60 8.60 8.7.69 2.40 9.69 6.65 8.69 2.32 21.97 52.41 9.77 35.38 9.59 3.67 8.39 9.59 8.40 9.18 9.37 9.00 71.59 8.27 2.27 10.00 71.60 8.94 25.35 9.60 8.43 9.40 9.60 8.27 2.60 8.27 2.27 1.27 2.42 9.05 71.59 8.39 9.60 8.27 2.60 8.43 9.38 8.86 2.43 9.69 2.73 50.61 8.27 2.36 9.43 9.60 8.60 8.00 50.22 23.27 2.43 9.27 1.92 7.62 8.27 2.39 9.60 8.88 62.59 8.39 9.60 8.39 9.69 2.37 9.90 57.69 2.59 8.27 2.89 55.27 2.59 8.42 9.59 8.64 Jul 72.36 8.41 9.48 46.59 3.27 2.60 8.60 8.60 8.63 1.41 8.64 8.60 8.59 8.69 2.59 8.41 8.27 2.58 18.02 24.27 2.12 10.60 8.76 9.59 8.40 9.27 2.27 2.77 34.67 7.69 2.42 9.24 15.60 8.60 8.60 8.60 8.59 4.27 2.27 2.38 9.69 2.77 41.31 2.92 15.27 2.27 2.27 2.18 8.37 9.63 1.37 9.27 2.27 2.59 3.27 2.27 2.60 8.64 8.27 2.27 2.41 9.60 8.60 8.65 46.32 2.58 7.27 2.27 2.60 8.61 8.27 2.27 2.27 2.59 8.59 8.27 2.40 8.42 8.60 8.59 8.27 2.27 2.44 9.27 2.18 9.59 8.59 8.39 9.60 8.40 9.05 47.73 8.70 42.26 10.41 8.36 7.12 2.51 2.27 2.17 8.53 9.69 2.90 51.43 9. From appreciation to depreciation 391 Table A7.12 2.59 8.32 47.37 9.29 41.40 9.27 2.27 2.24 50.39 9.15 8.60 8.27 1.27 2.04 9.27 2.64 Jun 72.66 26.64 Aug 72.60 8.04 71.95 55.06 8.42 9.04 71.41 9.69 2.69 2.72 2.26 8.59 8.85 66.38 9.43 9.90 66.40 9.27 2.12 2.59 8.59 8.64 9.98 67.81 18.64 Oct 72.00 71.64 37.32 9.17 8.27 2.27 2.38 9.39 9.38 9.59 8.59 8.60 8.59 8.34 8.42 9.60 8.27 2.45 10.39 9.46 11.12 2.60 8.56 9. Monthly exchange rates on Finland.60 8.68 51.27 2.02 70.71 8.76 8.27 2.42 9.59 8.69 2.59 8.69 2.60 8.59 8.69 2.17 10.43 9.75 47.98 16.60 8.12 2.39 9.38 9.27 2.85 65.48 12.38 9.59 8.45 9.90 8.64 Nov 71.73 10.45 9.26 35.60 8.27 2.59 8.42 9.69 2.00 50.64 Dec 71.27 2.91 3.62 45.59 8.38 38.46 9.27 2. SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913–1962.60 8.41 9.60 8.60 8.59 8.59 8.27 2.69 2.27 2.87 18.16 8.60 8.38 48.61 9.60 Apr 72.58 45.60 8.59 8.59 3.49 10.59 8.27 1.27 2.18 13.27 2.73 9.00 71.61 55.64 Sep 72.69 2.43 9.39 9.59 3.59 8.60 8.43 9.99 7.42 9.59 8.59 8.69 2.27 2.98 Mar 72.37 9.38 9.59 8.59 8.05 71.60 8.35 9.97 10.69 2.26 26.59 8.76 48.69 2.73 7.46 46.45 9.60 8.71 8.27 2.38 6.69 2.36 9.04 14.59 8.11 8.59 3.27 2.38 9.59 8.45 9.59 8.27 2.15 49.94 14.* Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 72.27 2.69 2.26 1.24 35.59 8.27 1.59 8.27 2.36 8.10 11.80 9.61 8.43 9.69 2.39 7.45 9.23 34.36 9.69 2.61 8.27 2.26 9.87 38.79 14.69 2.60 8.59 45.70 7.27 1.60 8.60 8.42 9.60 8.12 2.69 2.60 8.27 1.69 2.69 2.60 8.64 8.41 9.60 8.18 31.42 9.69 2.59 3.60 8.27 2.52 10.59 8.59 8.27 2.59 8.90 May 72.27 2.40 9.95 51.11 8.27 2.59 8.27 2.59 3.27 2.39 9.64 Feb 72.63 1.27 2.27 2.34 9.69 2.59 3.95 1.05 71.60 8.64 36.27 2.69 2.46 8.60 8.59 8.27 2.64 38.59 8.60 8.60 8.27 2.59 8.17 8.27 2.34 9.59 3.43 9.48 50.42 9.44 9.45 9. 71 138.95 132.49 115.63 1.59 132.87 112.62 1.63 1.84 128.63 1.79 151.95 140.95 109.15 124.20 120.44 112.10 137.32 140.93 114.18 121.63 1.08 154.33 108.63 1.59 147.63 120.74 139.48 115.34 147.07 111.00 111.75 160.58 161.05 123.36 114.94 137.63 1.01 151.20 122.38 124.63 123.38 109.88 160.28 144.01 138.70 115.28 114.65 153.10b.34 137. Table A7.67 159.88 123.31 140.62 113.98 114.98 124.62 Mar 1.85 160.28 124.68 114.63 1.39 142.74 113.43 147.28 160.02 136.85 121.69 140.95 123.65 123.89 133.03 161.26 155.40 115.90 123.30 160.93 123.23 156.30 137.12 169.61 Aug 1.62 155.16 151.65 119.63 1.65 117.60 149.00 124.08 138.95 160.92 137.03 109.80 161.95 160.63 139.42 114.82 140.06 110.53 160.38 145.63 119.80 123.75 147.63 114.55 132.05 123.57 146.38 160.37 138.19 147.33 134. SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913– 1962.54 141.73 144.08 115.90 123.11 115.37 114.25 145.36 142.03 144.39 109.88 112.18 113.22 137.15 120.99 146.10 163.49 112.63 1.42 111.93 144.00 149.67 116.88 160.70 113.11 143.90 114.10 161.88 149.45 123.29 114.43 112.85 161.63 1.75 111.10 134.30 118.49 148.03 120.94 138.63 1.08 122.28 123.00 160.60 110.17 147.61 Nov 1.38 145. prices.54 137.56 128.63 124.62 1.35 124.57 129.55 114.88 112.58 113.72 138.93 172.03 147.90 123.03 157.47 113.10 160.65 151.40 151.55 160.77 113.63 161.23 159.61 Sep 1.15 160.95 128.63 1.62 Feb 1.79 133.10 160.62 1.70 136.60 114.93 116. Jan 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 161.80 123.01 143.48 160.02 127.55 161.61 Oct 1.33 115.40 115. and wages.63 1.77 152.83 111.62 Dec 1.50 154.93 160.11 151.43 145.25 155.71 140.83 160.78 118.43 153.55 156.63 1.98 160.53 125.70 124.51 152.81 156.63 1.98 140.).18 113.44 148.33 123.59 140.83 141.03 123.90 160.66 110.63 1.38 123.23 147.42 138.23 152.48 141.80 124.25 109.34 144.75 143.73 114.01 129. SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963–2002.69 126.93 125.63 1.71 150.00 168.14 153.25 123.32 113.36 114.79 143.00 161.00 123.90 116.61 Jul 1. 1963: 1 new markkaa = 100 old markkaa.63 1.80 123.45 152.53 114.93 149.63 1.78 161.88 110.20 111.99 114.28 147. Monthly exchange rates on Finland.62 * January 1.85 117.90 124.73 137.58 160.95 154.24 146.53 123.00 118.10 159.81 110.65 142.35 160.89 114.73 132.13 109.06 114.85 123.80 161.28 156.50 116.63 1.68 116.45 127.95 124.10 107.03 114.60 160.48 160.63 161.77 144.03 165.70 124.21 139.88 116.62 1.63 1.47 113.* Jan 1959 1960 1961 1962 1.47 136.02 143.95 114.75 113.85 160.63 122.13 143.00 160.88 160.28 110.25 161.70 114.60 124.79 150.31 110.97 132.82 133.80 153.35 160.80 160.80 160.52 154.13 115.93 160.75 147.96 143.55 112.18 109.87 136.99 147.28 116.01 139.25 138.48 112.11 138. 1277–2008 Table A7.15 142.55 116.50 160.96 .63 1.22 141.86 137.63 109.68 161.63 142.24 142.85 133.80 149.14 151.10 145.90 124.62 1.22 155.01 143.86 143.45 149.98 148.95 150.55 109.00 160.41 140.02 114.73 115.58 108.11 108.80 146.50 160.62 May 1.12 108.13 138.53 153.96 109.62 1.05 113.75 123.13 124.63 145.62 1.23 116.04 143.28 123.61 142.25 111.30 139.43 161. Monthly exchange rates on Finland.05 118.92 110.35 146.75 143.36 139.77 114.78 114.63 1.10a (cont.54 129.00 169.85 116.40 145.63 1.38 161.00 129.38 147.98 123.45 160.71 140.50 110.14 110.01 114.44 138.24 155.67 147.25 150.29 108.41 149.28 155.03 139.62 1.63 1.41 139.90 138.13 123.44 129.11 139.81 155.29 138.96 136.46 114.63 1.58 161.91 144.00 114.06 108.22 139.32 134.45 160.64 132.63 1.08 124.58 129.20 127.48 123.32 142.55 132.57 114.03 169.06 137.28 115.90 123.62 Apr 1.62 1.95 160.09 138.18 124.27 115.33 112.55 116.74 132.29 151.68 160.42 150.62 Jun 1.392 Exchange rates.75 114.20 155.95 145.50 161.45 139. 00 21.42 19.77 146.7.12 158.15 141.17 33.75 19.43 16.59 34.25 20.76 19.65 22.10 19.22 154.20 17.83 0.72 20.58 29.69 16.54 20.12 34.69 22.40 21.56 19.75 21.08 20.56 20.80 32. Jan 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 145.21 20.59 19.08 22.08 19.10 20.07 15.37 21.86 32.53 23.61 33.58 14.83 0.20 15.83 0.79 16.00 22.25 20.83 0.99 30.00 21.88 34.29 32.50 21.83 0.83 0. SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963–2002.83 0.83 18.44 149.46 144.83 0.83 0.90 18.00 21.40 22.63 32.20 146.58 14.30 28.14 147.47 33.57 139.83 14.17 20.73 15. Jan 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 0.00 22.61 19.20 22.35 19.00 21.96 20.40 22.83 0.00 29.40 22.20 22.59 27.20 19.88 15.70 19.80 21.97 31.50 30.96 150.16 13.58 17.05 20.17 149.83 0.20 23.07 32.47 29.68 15. From appreciation to depreciation 393 Table A7.75 21.46 152.83 0.32 19.04 19.51 Table A7.83 0.83 0.64 19.83 0.55 19.50 21.83 0.80 140.83 0.95 16.27 13.83 0.28 32.96 16.44 22.09 138.83 0.58 19.75 21.10 145.83 0.15 144.51 19.83 0.83 0.86 21.83 0.21 141.44 14.40 22.83 0.40 22.55 21.60 17.10 32.56 28.00 22.83 0.00 22.73 19.48 153.55 19.83 0.83 0.83 0.47 32.83 0.85 150.67 21.83 0.57 32.56 19.25 22.64 19.83 0.57 19.65 22.20 22.50 31.63 14.55 19.20 . SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2002.83 0.49 33.58 14.80 20.83 0.54 18.20 16.83 155.83 0.52 31.20 22.91 16.83 0.47 15.80 152.51 33.20 22.20 22.73 32.).81 145.58 14.26 16.40 15.38 19.58 20.32 32.00 20.57 147.85 21.70 20.37 19.58 27.05 16.80 16.51 19.50 32.35 142.67 156.62 145.16 16.56 28.34 16.36 33.65 19.96 22.61 19.50 21.63 14.83 0.48 162.65 22.84 21.35 21.74 28.20 22.56 27.45 32.83 0.57 28.22 152.62 15.43 20.13 21.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 17.87 22.40 22.83 0.83 0.00 20.49 18.55 22.32 19.22 146.61 18.83 0.80 19.71 15.35 22.57 15.20 22.43 22.20 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct 20.30 16.00 22.83 0.88 15.10 30.34 16.00 22.59 31.87 20.51 19.83 0.30 16.30 21. Monthly exchange rates on Finland.13 31.48 16.81 16.83 0.53 19.36 158.79 141.83 0.62 150.54 25.83 0.77 28.58 14.00 21.25 22.50 21.95 22.67 18.55 18.83 0.00 21.25 22.58 14.83 0.32 16.20 Nov 19.54 19.02 19.83 0.82 143.25 22.42 16.35 15.78 149.22 29.00 21.25 32.08 19.62 22.83 0.83 0.77 12.83 0.25 22.99 17.83 0.00 22.25 22.50 21.60 19.83 0.52 20.20 33.98 148.70 149.76 18.48 143.03 21.79 31.42 21.30 16.50 23.40 32.94 20.20 17.53 19.20 21.41 141.81 32.60 14.10b (cont.59 19.36 21.27 154.99 22.66 19.25 22.83 0.77 21.50 21.81 13.82 21.20 22.20 22.20 19.00 20.57 19.75 155.83 0.20 20.84 16.72 12.96 19.25 32.32 158.46 19.27 34.57 143.09 15.59 161.00 20.52 157.20 Dec 18.41 156. Monthly exchange rates on Italy.11 29.33 14.83 0.31 145.56 33.72 19.57 32.05 21.11.83 0.83 0.35 17.83 0.37 19.83 0.83 0.57 19.83 0.83 0.93 153.83 0.58 14.16 16.11 16.58 14.29 15.84 18.41 145.83 0.48 13.83 0.97 34.83 0.00 22.58 26.83 0.62 22.40 22.83 0.51 15.19 139.05 15.08 21.73 22.65 19.00 28.56 19.00 22.63 19.57 21.13 16.00 20.83 0.59 26.45 17.99 31. 49 0.49 0.84 0.84 0.84 0.48 0.84 0.83 0.44 0.83 0.84 0.49 0.83 0.83 0.48 0.46 0.66 0.46 0.75 0. SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2002.47 0.47 0.48 0.50 0.45 0.44 0.84 0.84 0.48 0.45 0.43 0.43 0.65 0.83 0.46 0.84 0.50 Oct 0.83 0.50 0. prices.83 0.52 0.83 0.84 0.49 0.43 0.45 0.82 0.83 0.69 0.83 0.83 0.75 0.49 0.45 0.46 0.84 0.49 0.49 0.45 0.44 0.84 0.49 0.84 0.83 0.47 0.49 0.51 0.50 0.47 0.50 0.47 0.68 0.83 0.43 0.84 0.51 0.83 0.70 0.50 0.45 0.82 0.48 0.84 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.43 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.84 0.55 0.45 0.46 0.48 0.84 0.49 Nov 0.83 0.46 0.44 0.69 0.84 0.54 0.43 0.83 0.).83 0.84 0.48 0.84 0.44 0.48 0.83 0.83 0.46 0.83 0.50 0.52 0.50 0.48 0.48 0.44 0.47 Jun 0.84 0.83 0.54 0.63 0.50 0.50 0.84 0.49 0.84 0.83 0.47 0.44 0.49 0.65 0.84 0.47 0.43 0.49 0.84 0.48 0.83 0.44 0.82 0.52 0.50 0.46 0.47 0.83 0.47 0.45 0.68 0.46 0.83 0.65 0.83 0.83 0.49 0.45 0. Jan 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 0.84 0.48 0.45 0.47 0.11 (cont.84 0.51 0.55 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.63 0.48 Sep 0.45 0.49 0.46 0.47 0.64 0.44 0.83 0.51 0.55 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.54 0.48 0.53 0.45 0.44 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.80 0.73 0.83 0.47 0.48 0.83 0.46 0.64 0.45 0.83 0.47 0.73 0.46 0.46 0.83 0.47 Apr 0.44 0.47 Mar 0.49 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.50 0.50 0.45 0.49 0.54 0.50 0.84 0.48 Aug 0.84 0.42 0.83 0.48 0.82 0.84 0.49 0.65 0.84 0.46 0.84 0.46 0.50 0.47 0.83 0.43 0.49 .49 0.47 0.55 0.84 0.54 0.49 0.51 0.53 0.67 0.82 0.45 0.48 0.83 0.76 0.50 0.83 0.53 0.46 0.44 0.44 0.47 0.83 0.48 0.43 0.50 0.49 0.49 0.55 0.49 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.49 0.48 0.83 0.52 0.83 0.83 0.84 0.45 0.45 0.82 0.83 0.83 0.52 0.46 0.53 0.50 0.72 0.48 0.78 0.46 0.49 0.44 0.84 0.47 0.84 0.83 0.48 0.83 0.82 0.79 0.83 0.52 0.45 0.83 0.45 0.83 0.53 0.49 0.45 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.47 0.46 0.54 0.83 0.48 0.83 0.48 0.46 0.68 0.82 0.49 0.42 0.50 0.48 0.44 0.49 0.83 0.43 0.82 0.84 0.83 0.45 0.43 0.84 0.47 0.47 0.47 0.83 0.46 0.43 0.54 0.47 0.72 0.49 0.50 0.45 0.84 0.50 0.49 0.84 0.63 0.50 0.51 0.82 0.50 0.58 0.83 0.46 0.48 Jul 0.43 0.52 0.49 0.48 0.84 0.82 0.394 Exchange rates.84 0.82 0.84 0.75 0.63 0.84 0.83 0.63 0.84 0.83 0.53 0. and wages.47 0.83 0.47 0.47 May 0.84 0.50 0.83 0.54 0.47 0.45 0.50 0.83 0.84 0.45 0.83 0.84 0.83 0.45 0.51 0.45 0.83 0. 1277–2008 Table A7.83 0.41 0.84 0.83 0.45 0.83 0.63 0.83 0.46 0.83 0.83 0.46 0.49 0.83 0.84 0.51 0.83 0.53 0.51 0.50 0.46 0.83 0.83 0.50 0.84 0.49 0.49 0.43 0.65 0.44 0.47 0.48 0.84 0.47 0.47 0.83 0.55 0.44 0.83 0.43 0.84 0.83 0.55 0.46 0.83 0.43 0.47 0.44 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.46 0.83 0.49 0.50 0.43 0.50 0.84 0.49 0.84 0.47 0.49 0.51 0.85 0.43 0.48 0.50 0.83 0.84 0.46 0.84 0.63 0.49 Dec 0.55 0.46 0.48 0.52 0.76 0.47 0.84 0.84 0.45 0.52 0.56 0.83 0.83 0.83 0.48 Feb 0.48 0.83 0.84 0.54 0.43 0.47 0.84 0.84 0.83 0.54 0.83 0.84 0.86 0.51 0.52 0.44 0.48 0.84 0.50 0.50 0.83 0.44 0.51 0.44 0.83 0.84 0. Monthly exchange rates on Italy.83 0.84 0.82 0.83 0.73 0.46 0.49 0.49 0.83 0.48 0.83 0.50 0.52 0.45 0.83 0.53 0.83 0.53 0.46 0.83 0.49 0.83 0.82 0.45 0.48 0.47 0.76 0.83 0.44 0.84 0.45 0.49 0.48 0.48 0.49 0.52 0.48 0.45 0.50 0. 86 2.73 8.20 3.60 8.60 2.20371 Dutch gulden = 5.45 1.66 2.56 1.16 3.05 9.482 Portuguese escudos = 166.92 8.59 1.50 Feb 1.90 1.46 1.72 1.25 3.27 2.45 1.19 9.40 9.88 2.45 1.59 1.44 1.45 1.06 9.53 1.26 9.44 1.46 1.44 1.46 1.44 1.48 1.46 1.16 3.15 3.01 2.46 1.46 1.44 1.44 1.38 3.23 2.45 1.04 1.50 Oct 1.44 1.3399 Luxembourg francs = 200.58 1.59 1.69 2.95 1.45 1.56 Oct 9.41 1.47 1.47 1.09 9.20 3.58 1.14 9.45 1.83 8.84 Nov 9.96 2.51 1.34 9.08 9.64 1.38 1.14 9.05 9.42 10.10 9.44 1.46 1.49 1.26 9.24 2. SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008.52 1.53 9.55957 French francs = 1.46 1.46 1.58 9.92 2.20 9.44 1.35 1.46 Aug 8.38 1.386 Spanish pesetas = 340.08 9.42 9.46 1.59 1.27 9.52 2.46 1.45 1.44 1.17 2.45 1.56 1.27 9.59 1.56 1.34 9.23 9.35 8.76 8.63 9.74 2. SEK per EUR 1998–2008.48 1.96 1.45 1.44 1.46 1.61 1.46 1.44 1.12 Dec 9.01 9.40 9.22 9.30 1.95 2.59 1.43 3.45 3.23 9.22 9.98 9.47 1.65 3.46 Sep 1.29 9.44 1.04 3.26 9.44 1.99 2.95583 German Mark = 0.43 Feb 8.98 8.27 9.35 1.59 1.68 1.46 1.44 1.53 1.17 9.44 1.47 1.50 1.28 10.21 9.44 1.59 8.34 9.44 1.66 9.17 9.96 8.19 9.55 3.11 2.37 May 8.47 1.44 9.46 1.46 1.45 1.18 9.19 9.37 1.57 9.72 8.76 2.11 9.35 3.45 1.44 1.22 2.3399 Belgian francs = 2.63 2.46 1.46 1.37 2.37 3.44 1.45 1.18 9.44 1.02 8.15 3.48 1.19 9.44 1.15 9. Monthly exchange rates on euro.38 1.30 9.37 Mar 8.46 1.20 1.46 1.95 2.54 8.20 9.27 Italian lire = 40.51 8.35 1.46 1.64 1.45 1.56 1.44 1.87 2.13 8.45 1.41 9.45 1.44 1.48 1.44 1.25 2.38 3.59 1.49 1.43 9.30 9.* Jan 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 8.29 1.06 9.58 .44 8.44 1.44 9.51 Jun 1.44 1.45 1.45 1.04 9.44 1.44 1.44 1.44 1.18 9.43 3.48 8.56 1.70 1.46 1.12 9.46 1.47 1.750 Greek drachmas.15 9.03 1.46 1.59 1.46 1.44 1.47 1.24 9.59 2.44 1.07 9.43 1.45 1.44 1.65 8.13.48 Jul 1.45 1.46 1.21 9.41 9.71 9.46 1.13 9.28 2.00 1.94 8.14 1.34 9.46 1.53 1.63 8.97 9.44 Mar 1.45 1.10 9.22 3.67 9.08 2.01 2.83 2.46 1.59 1.44 1.12.45 1.44 1.75 2.46 1.54 1.49 1.53 Dec 1.45 1.49 May 1.40 Sep 9.44 1.24 9.16 9.45 1.45 1.72 2.13 9.45 1.46 1.76 2.33 9.47 1.03 2.45 1.41 3.44 1.44 1.45 1.91 8.59 1.85 3.34 9.46 1.44 1.51 1.38 1.98 2.94573 Finnish markka = 6.44 Apr 1.22 1.46 1.44 1. Jan 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1.20 9.41 3.44 1.08 8.44 1.51 3.43 1.41 1.37 1.90 9. Table A7.63 8.46 1.19 9.53 1.18 9.7.45 1.46 1.32 9.55 8.63 1.75 2.44 1.43 1.84 2.46 1.46 1.44 1.46 3.46 1.46 1.45 1.44 1.7603 Austrian schillings = 40.44 1.46 1.44 1.32 9.40 9.72 * 1 Euro = 13.19 3.37 Jul 8.44 1.75 8.32 Jun 8.00 9.40 2.61 1.43 Aug 1.43 1.46 1.45 1.44 1.25 9.53 Nov 1. From appreciation to depreciation 395 Table A7.59 1.47 1.90 2.31 9.09 9.44 1.44 1.46 1.78 8.46 1.40 Apr 8.21 2.44 1.45 3.41 9. Monthly exchange rates on Japan.43 1.56 1.64 1.99 9.17 9.79 8.787564 Irish pounds = 1936.46 1.47 2.24 9.57 1.43 1.11 9.11 9.44 1.44 1.23 9.46 1.60 1.19 2.45 1.26 1.72 1.08 8.13 9.63 1.44 1.09 2.44 1. 18 11.35 4.93 17. Jan 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 6.08 16.05 11.07 11.80 5.64 5.28 8.75 14.52 4.58 6.69 16.47 5.78 5.94 7.66 7.93 16.37 5.98 16.05 8.41 Nov 3.13 11.74 4.99 6.53 16.59 4.62 6.75 7.24 8.47 4.13 11.04 7.57 4.24 4. Jan 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 3.06 11.50 4.65 3.51 4.08 11.79 5.30 4.80 May 3.99 17.88 7.70 6. SEK per 100 CSK 1922–2008.00 6.84 4.10 11.18 5.07 17.18 11.18 11.72 16.24 7.36 11.67 5.61 4.93 4.93 4.05 8.21 14.82 17.62 8.30 7.96 9.46 17.88 6.79 6.08 11.30 7.27 13.53 16.21 11.80 4.18 11.61 7.79 6.03 5.26 6.46 6.61 7.30 14.51 6.91 8.15 11.36 11.26 4.01 6.47 6.07 11.41 Sep 12.77 14.80 7.29 11.10 13.76 14.09 16.80 4.03 4.11 7.26 11.40 4.75 16.13 (cont.82 6.27 6.06 11.93 6.01 6.05 16.97 13.01 Apr 3.68 7.64 Jul 3.81 14.06 11.50 16.28 16.51 5.92 8.97 4.25 4.18 11.85 16.10 16.09 15.49 7.10 11.51 6.19 11.64 7.64 7.83 3.60 8.14 6.07 11.32 6.11 16.03 13.32 7.71 4.15 11.10 11.60 Dec 11.83 6.83 5.82 6.87 14.65 11.69 9.75 Jun 3.87 5.22 11.46 7.26 4.14.89 7.67 5.60 .).10 11.72 14.55 16.83 6.39 4.87 16.10 11.15 11.78 5.15 11. prices.29 4.09 11.02 7.27 11.16 11.51 6.08 6.70 10.12 11.05 6.67 14.10 15.10 11.12 11.50 Jun 7.99 6.37 13.28 5.03 6.58 3.18 6.86 8.42 4.18 11.82 7.40 Aug 11.15 11.06 16.63 8.85 6.48 4.72 4.18 6.63 7.94 6.69 16.76 7.74 17.11 11.93 4.10 11.47 18.00 13.55 4.03 6.06 11.28 7.60 14.97 6.65 11.34 16.97 8.36 6.62 16.76 6.03 6.46 4.60 Nov 12.22 4.52 17.61 7.15 11.87 8.77 4.46 4.41 8.76 5.15 11.84 5.25 8.69 4.31 17.19 8. SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008.77 14.12 11.08 11.15 11.09 13.20 6.40 13.95 4.07 11.13 11.41 4.38 7.76 6.64 14.58 11.75 14.21 Dec 3.85 4.67 9.16 8.25 17.60 4.38 16.62 7.01 16.50 5.11 11.85 6.65 4.36 11.13 11.71 5.07 11.93 16.58 6.15 11.99 6.49 6.50 Apr 7.65 6.23 6.95 6.28 8.56 11.10 11.59 18.71 7.96 6.10 11.63 4.40 Jul 8.24 Oct 3.58 4.45 8.28 4.96 4.80 4.09 14.20 5.61 7.90 4.65 6.37 6.64 3.60 6.10 11.18 4.07 8.15 11.10 15.09 16.23 11.22 4.396 Exchange rates.29 8.00 6.88 7.17 11.95 4.63 17.23 7.74 Sep 3.15 11.47 5.91 7.69 4.77 3.20 11.58 8.88 14.81 6.55 16.15 11.47 17.60 6.15 11.64 11.13 11.97 16.57 11.23 13.38 5.83 16.55 7.37 17.29 4.83 11. and wages.78 5.25 11.77 8.15 11.95 Feb 3.82 7.50 7.58 16.07 14.70 8.07 8.37 16.91 7.64 5.26 4.55 5.50 Mar 6.14 6.84 13.58 16.11 6.46 4.10 16.63 7.15 11.88 7.48 7.19 13.49 7.82 14.40 6.70 11.15 11.60 Oct 12.51 4.08 11.88 7.12 11.77 Table A7.14 4.73 14.59 4.87 6.88 16.54 6.30 11.74 6.87 8.00 11.12 5.06 13.87 4.54 6.86 14.66 6.39 7.84 16.93 8.10 11.86 6.11 11.27 6.10 11.17 4.25 6.18 11.75 7.51 16.32 17.51 7.37 5.15 11.62 7.81 6.87 4.50 May 7. Monthly exchange rates on Czech Republic.79 6.69 4. 1277–2008 Table A7.68 5.90 6.19 7.36 11.48 4.08 13.38 7.60 14.18 11.15 11.50 7.19 11.91 6.27 8.09 11.55 4.13 11.24 11.47 6.06 4.04 6.66 7.76 15.02 6.43 4.07 18.59 16.22 5.49 14.00 4.58 5.01 6.78 16.69 4.15 11.80 4.80 13.71 4.62 Aug 3.31 11.56 4.60 14.13 11.62 14.16 11.11 6.73 16.52 19.10 11.44 4.11 6.57 7.15 11.26 13.29 4.31 4.10 13.52 6.53 8.77 6.56 4.50 6.15 11.43 6.63 4.82 6.07 11.46 4.01 4.12 11. Monthly exchange rates on Japan.15 11.48 5.33 4.64 7.93 Mar 3.68 6.45 14.56 5.52 Feb 7. 52 30.42 75.73 33.53 26.66 Apr 41.46 2.69 23.90 Aug 41.73 77.50 2.56 26.96 23.00 74.84 32.71 73.34 74.14 27.15.89 41.31 2.20 2.34 2.00 79.49 34.08 2.56 2.25 2.02 32.53 78.57 2.93 29.84 65.80 73.27 2.85 41.87 32.98 23. Monthly exchange rates on Poland.30 78.89 65.).38 2.20 1.93 41.02 2.33 30.15 78. Jan 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 41.18 2.30 2.15 2.43 32.50 23.62 74.90 60. Monthly exchange rates on Czech Republic.61 27.57 32.57 23.94 27.93 58.75 33.59 74.90 28.27 2.44 2.31 32.69 28.30 2.30 2.47 23.94 2.25 1.75 74.14 Nov Dec Table A7.94 28.58 32.55 29.85 62.95 57.17 28.63 36.38 2.27 2.58 25.94 75.89 Mar 14.41 2.45 2.27 75.64 69. From appreciation to depreciation 397 Table A7.88 75.93 28.09 2.03 2.50 2.93 65.33 31.42 2.37 28.53 75.93 2.08 74.64 75.12 2.94 41.49 22.83 81.56 39.46 74.95 30.60 2.83 32.10 2.11 Oct 16.99 2.25 1.44 2.14 37.89 41.39 33.82 33.77 23.88 74.18 28.49 2.00 2.85 29.12 1.28 2.02 28.65 33.10 2.50 25.28 2.71 2.02 28.05 28.25 74.31 2.48 74.38 2.43 23.28 1.59 2.43 2.48 2.60 22.32 23.22 68.94 59.10 30.37 75.65 33.99 2.86 23.78 Jul 41.28 2.62 29.16 81.40 2.76 Nov 41.05 31. SEK per 100 CSK 1922– 2008.63 25.37 2.30 1.52 35.13 2.21 2.55 23.92 72.07 2.81 23.21 2.28 2.40 73.67 32.20 Feb 14.45 2.90 29.74 28.37 30.74 Jun 41.07 2.62 2.53 36.32 1.23 78.11 81.78 74.07 2.88 63.42 2.45 2.00 30.73 24.85 73.62 Mar 41.00 63.50 2.42 May 14.46 62.50 23.57 2.89 43.59 37.97 59.27 .12 2.90 2.22 28.39 2.46 81.88 54.08 2.63 73.24 26.53 75.16 28.54 2.00 2.38 2.99 2.06 70.07 29.76 74.95 62.57 2.53 32.15 2.33 30.48 66.29 2.00 2.10 27.22 2.35 Apr 14.65 75.64 72.71 23.45 2.39 28.50 76.30 2.50 25.71 26.10 69.52 74.00 2.01 29.02 2.23 73.14 (cont.59 74.58 75.27 29.32 2.64 75.84 Oct 41.05 28.68 Sep 14.04 2.25 74.30 30.53 Jul 14.26 72.50 78.84 75.10 75.89 41.21 74.37 78.27 2.08 2.32 28.71 38.16 31.40 2.08 2.77 2.18 29.96 2.43 74.26 2.95 62.47 38.60 65.65 2.39 40.72 67.20 23. SEK per 100 zloty 1930–39 and per PLN 1998–2008.56 32.96 2.90 28.45 32.44 23.79 31.78 32.86 60.90 74.37 2.85 41.75 32.78 26.13 Jun 14.49 23.00 78.37 2.28 32.87 60.06 2.64 23.61 Feb 41.78 31.87 29.01 37.88 42.23 2.09 28.63 2.81 22.74 24.57 63.82 24.72 Dec 41.37 2.12 76.84 25.93 2.54 2.20 30.36 2.13 28.17 2.25 1.34 2.53 2.74 40.07 2.14 74.20 2.22 2.47 2.81 29.72 74.89 30.50 77.71 39.36 2.75 23.39 74.88 49.72 May 41.84 29.25 75.44 2.50 2.94 2.61 23.95 2.90 41.13 1.51 2.50 74.46 75.87 32.30 63.18 78.19 27.73 23.09 2.25 74.16 74.52 2.23 26.31 2.15 2.13 1.25 74.25 2.91 23.39 32.75 27.94 2.44 2.50 23.7.24 32.15 1. Jan 1940 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 14.34 65.76 72.19 Aug 14.96 73.00 74.35 73.86 Sep 41.11 2.05 1.50 24.00 79.53 28. 61 0.00 101.50 107.46 14.27 14.50 13.41 13.60 May 99.33 99.56 0.39 13.54 0.58 0.02 13.50 77.33 99.36 13.62 16.93 13.31 14.24 13.57 0.56 Mar 99.17 .00 101.12 13. 1277–2008 Table A7.58 0.57 0.58 0.00 13.75 79.13 71.50 107.00 0.56 0.77 Sep 99.08 13.00 13.56 0.60 14.41 99.44 77.63 Nov 71.39 13.55 0.50 107.00 101.35 77.57 0.00 101.25 107.25 107. and wages.06 14.99 16.96 13.25 107.81 13.50 77.45 Jul 99.44 77.25 107. prices.55 0.37 14.39 13.54 0.62 0.54 0.25 107.11 13. Monthly exchange rates on Latvia.02 13.57 0.39 13.86 15.48 13.55 0.10 14. SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008.24 16.53 0.83 13.75 80.51 15.41 13.59 0.90 72.01 17.00 13.63 16.53 0.94 71.00 101.58 0.39 13.04 15.39 13.71 13.34 77.55 13.48 99.74 13.60 0.49 Aug 99.72 16.58 99.59 0.26 14.46 Feb 99.67 125.21 13.50 77.93 71.96 Feb 71.25 107.00 14.75 79.06 16.21 13.00 101.35 16.02 80.42 13.50 80.88 77.93 80.95 15.39 13.54 77.46 15.33 100.87 16.89 13.00 101.96 79.59 0.24 14.96 15.90 71.45 77.10 13.48 15.30 13.33 77.69 14.54 0.29 Nov 99.54 0.42 107.25 107.20 Dec 71.75 79.05 14.23 99.75 78.69 17.00 101.25 107.41 80. Jan 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1998 1999 2000 2001 107.13 13.25 107.00 13.53 15.25 107.59 0.60 0.57 0.39 99.00 14.63 Apr 99.54 13.56 76.75 80.51 13.75 79.97 15.35 77.57 14.43 13.27 77.24 14.39 13.55 0.75 78.51 77.17.91 13.00 15. SEK per 100 lats 1930–40 and per LVL 1998–2008.89 13.20 16.56 0.60 99.50 77.95 13.21 13.95 Jul 71.53 0.62 13.61 13.54 0.25 107.70 14.60 101.77 14.94 71.55 0.56 Jun 99.00 101.13 14.59 0.57 14.13 Oct 71.94 13.05 13.54 0.54 15.74 13.398 Exchange rates.27 99.50 80.49 77.68 13. Jan 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 77.74 13.35 77.84 90.63 13.75 79.42 77.70 16.12 13.93 13.56 0.39 13.39 13.13 15.57 0.83 107.50 77.17 13.56 0.30 13.58 0.00 13.87 77.93 71. Monthly exchange rates on Estonia.99 13.00 13.54 0.50 107.35 107.35 77.90 72.50 77.00 101.68 13.42 14.89 71.27 16.98 15.35 107.47 13.55 0.83 Table A7.16.00 13.01 14.24 13.20 13.06 16.25 14.51 14.30 99.36 14.55 12.25 107.18 13.52 14.98 Aug 71.00 101.00 101.39 13.25 107.39 16.00 101.00 May 71.55 0.28 14.05 16.37 Oct 99.30 13.04 13.55 0.50 107.88 72.99 Apr 71.55 0.12 Sep 71.97 Mar 71.00 101.48 16.05 13.35 Dec 99.96 Jun 71.78 14.53 13.76 13.57 0.05 13. 64 2.59 0.29 66.68 2.15 2.98 1.72 55.68 2. SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008.46 68.96 2.25 66.75 66.73 67.58 0.25 70.60 Mar 0.73 2.14 2.65 2.69 Table A7.69 2.71 55.66 2.91 70.50 67.64 2.12 2.58 0.25 72.66 2.63 2.02 1.58 0.59 66.05 2. Jan 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 0.59 0.59 0.11 70.66 2.49 70.67 2.00 2.61 Oct 0.69 2.59 67.66 2.58 0.70 2.71 69.61 2.63 2.45 66.7.64 2.59 0.59 0.60 0.78 71.59 0.72 2.93 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 56.59 0.99 2.25 70.40 64.64 2.58 0.25 2.65 2. Monthly exchange rates on Lithuania.66 2.67 2.66 71.80 67.60 2.37 71.13 2.59 0.60 0.69 2.65 2.65 2.60 Apr 0.25 72.60 0.66 2.59 0.66 2.59 0.43 2.68 67.00 1.16 68.59 0.68 2.62 2.58 0.63 2.21 67.59 0.88 72.55 2.77 67.85 70.59 0.58 0.70 66.00 2.70 65.11 2.59 0.54 66.61 64.00 1.73 3.70 2.70 2.35 66.63 2.42 67.73 2.58 0.66 65.65 2.59 0.61 2.83 67.26 66.73 2.18.60 Jun 0.68 2.06 2.58 0.67 2.63 2.96 2.86 65.60 0.45 66.67 2.59 0.59 0.49 2.69 2.59 0.70 2.61 2.66 2.31 71.70 2.09 66.58 0.00 2.58 2.65 Dec 0.59 0.58 0.74 69.70 58.63 2.59 0.59 0.68 2.75 66.60 0.77 2.57 0.61 2.58 0.51 66.06 2.31 70.40 2.60 0.69 2.96 2.17 (cont.60 2.77 62.25 72.00 2.67 2.66 2.96 66.58 0.02 66.00 1.58 2.59 0. SEK per 100 litas 1932–40 and per LTL 1998–2008.68 2.66 2.50 66.59 0.32 2.60 Aug 0.60 May 0.27 2.58 0.08 67.64 2.69 67.65 2.03 2.23 2.62 71.59 0.60 0.62 2.08 2.71 67.60 0.01 2.08 2.69 2.59 0.16 2.00 2.51 2.73 55.72 62.60 0.59 0.89 65.10 .58 0.04 2.96 67.57 0.52 2.60 0. From appreciation to depreciation 399 Table A7.70 1.25 72.42 2.50 71.38 65.23 66.50 72.65 2.58 0.17 66.98 2.66 2.08 64.62 2.70 2.58 0.60 0. Jan 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 55.37 2.25 70.25 70.76 64.58 0.12 60.50 71.58 0.99 2.59 0.58 0.).65 2.56 67.50 66.83 65.25 70.59 0.68 2.59 0.61 0.98 2.72 58.59 0.25 66.50 66.85 61.76 66.70 1.71 59.11 2.63 2.40 65.29 65.17 71.35 70.13 2.00 2.59 0.65 2.59 0.63 2.92 2.70 2.42 72.64 2.50 61. Monthly exchange rates on Estonia.00 1.30 67.37 66.74 59.66 2.60 0.67 2.60 0.60 Jul 0.60 Sep 0.60 Feb 0.58 0.58 0.32 2.06 66.63 Nov 0.70 2.23 2.58 0.64 2.25 66.59 0.34 66. Netherlands. Netherlands. Finland.6) 1913.2 (excl. USA. Finland. USA.1–1965.1 UK. 86. Netherlands. 83. Belgium.9 (1943) 1944. Czechoslovakia. 82. USA. Poland UK.1 (1946) 1950. Germany. Germany. Finland. Germany. Argentina.6 Denmark. France. Switzerland.1 (1975) UK.7 UK. France. Russia UK. 85.400 Exchange rates. Finland.1 (1950) 1955. Denmark. Finland. USA.1–1924. Period (weights pertaining to year) Countries whose currencies are included in the exchange rate index Percentage of Sweden’s total foreign trade (imports + exports) for countries included in the index 88. Italy. France.5 72.5) UK.8 Denmark. USA. Denmark.1(1960) See. Switzerland. Belgium. Norway. Brazil UK. Denmark. USA.9–1955. Germany. Switzerland. Spain. Netherlands.1–1921.1 (1930) 1935.1 (1940) 1943. Norway. Netherlands. France. Belgium.1–1960. Netherlands. Portugal.7 66. Switzerland.1 (1925) 1930. previous period . Czechoslovakia UK.1–1950.1 (1970) 1975. Norway. Netherlands. Germany. Argentina UK.9 (1950) 1950.1–1980. Austria. Netherlands. Switzerland. Germany 53. Argentina UK. Germany. Portugal.1 (1915) 1921. Argentina UK. Italy.5 Denmark. Finland.6 (excl. France. Norway. the countries included in the indices and the percentage of Sweden’s foreign trade covered by countries included.2–1930. Norway. Austria. Argentina UK.1–1975. Japan See previous period See previous period 85. Germany. Norway. Norway UK. USA. 81. Finland. Switzerland. Italy. 86.2 Denmark.1 60. USA. USA.5 Denmark. France. Netherlands. Norway.2: Exchange rate index January 1913– December 2008 Table A7.12 (1945) 1945.1–1916. Finland.9–1945. Switzerland. Germany. Switzerland. France. Denmark. Belgium. Norway. 84 Denmark.1–1935. Belgium. Switzerland. 82.7 Denmark. USA.12–1950. Germany 74. Denmark. Italy. Spain. Norway. Norway. Italy Spain (excl. Belgium. Germany. Switzerland. Norway. Netherlands. France.2 Denmark. Netherlands. 1277–2008 Appendix A7. Norway. Switzerland.2 (1920) 1924. USA. Italy. Spain. Belgium. Belgium. Denmark. USA.19: Periods for which separate exchange rate indices are calculated. Canada. Finland.1 (1955) 1965. Switzerland. Czechoslovakia. Brazil 79.1–1943. Germany.1 (1965) 1970. Germany 58.5 (1944) 1945. France. France. Italy UK. Germany. France. USA. Finland. Italy 76. Netherlands. Belgium.5–1945. Netherlands. Finland.1–1970. USA. Switzerland.1–1940. Finland. Denmark. France. Norway. Finland. Switzerland. Poland UK.2) 83. prices. Belgium.2 66. Belgium.1 (1935) 1940. and wages.1–1944.9 82 1960. Norway. Italy. Argentina.1 (1915) 1916. USA. Finland. Italy. France. 70 94.12 231.70 232.China.11 95.00 199. Finland.7.67 231. Australia. Canada.3 Table A7.68 172.21 97.18 96. Canada.59 97.80 98. Turkey.63 161. Switzerland.19 231.45 174.55 92.75 210.61 101.08 223.56 108. Greece).59 .69 157.23 133.13 97. Taiwan. France.26 93. USA.91 189. Finland.91 217. Australia UK.71 92.25 231. Switzerland.1– (2005) 90. Portugal. Poland.00 149. Spain.1 (2000) 2005.70 99.1 (980) 1985.50 112. Japan.11 198. Ireland.2–2005.1 2002.49 101.99 96. Italy.85 163.59 122.44 93.71 124.20 99.60 175. Australia.2 (2000) See previous period See previous period UK.68 93.87 95.32 172.77 99. Japan. Poland. Estonia.89 96.83 123. Hong Kong.94 180. Norway.84 162.04 109. Norway. Canada. France.65 136. France Belgium.98 96.54 160.71 100. Belgium.46 169.86 139.20 188.75 144.32 100.Australia UK.14 109.01 145.93 233.85 98.48 165. Germany. Canada.58 97. USA.7 Denmark.95 189. China.36 145. Belgium.50 99.55 99.70 97.69 168.37 231.86 146. Mexico.92 99. Finland.95 146.49 231.28 163. 88 Denmark. Hungary.91 141.12 141. Turkey.25 99. Ireland.87 139.88 98. Austria.09 145.1–2002. Germany. Latvia.23 231.42 231.93 122.67 98. Czech Republic. Netherlands.23 178.02 103.82 179.34 228.18 97.81 231. Hong Kong. P. Portugal.19 98.07 158. Turkey.77 98.31 120. P.56 231. Austria.59 101.R. Poland. Russia Euro-land (Germany.50 167. Germany.89 176.87 97. Estonia. UK.19 140. France Belgium.00 231.20 100.14 101.82 93. Norway.42 231. Mexico. Malaysia.62 231.84 99. Portugal. Finland.26 231. France.20 167.37 95. SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100). 83. From appreciation to depreciation Period (weights pertaining to year) Countries whose currencies are included in the exchange rate index 401 Percentage of Sweden’s total foreign trade (imports + exports) for countries included in the index 76.97 118. Japan.1 (1985) 1990. Exchange rate index 1913-2008. Switzerland. Australia. Hong Kong.76 106. Mexico. Spain. Switzerland.42 231.20.97 106.34 159.03 97.58 190.29 101.R. USA.88 99. P. Netherlands.80 190.1–2000.82 141. Japan.37 173. Netherlands. Austria.35 99.51 95.65 183.79 95. Russia Euro-land (Germany.92 124.1–1985.84 98.59 106.80 185.68 153.38 186.02 99.88 154.54 207. Czech Republic.80 217. R. Estonia.01 99.81 163.1 (1990) 1995.70 159.84 233. Malaysia.93 108.38 99. 85.65 123.58 93.85 99. Denmark. Italy. Denmark.09 231. Canada. Japan.62 166. Taiwan.44 231. Spain.51 94.98 152.1–1995. Lithuania. Switzerland. Norway.87 187.67 101.29 128. Greece). China.26 214. Russia 91.48 173.50 216. Spain.38 149.83 219. Netherlands.64 93.67 108. Portugal. Finland. Spain. Netherlands.3 Denmark. Italy.27 231.1 (1995) 2000.73 95.82 194.4 1980. Italy.51 231. Belgium. Norway.49 146. UK.57 93.48 142. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 231.05 95. USA.26 231.–1990. Italy. USA.92 233.45 141.24 95.17 97.62 150. Czech Republic.75 145.76 94.30 233.76 97. Austria.5 82. 96 138.26 93.98 118.01 102.92 104.80 126.27 105.71 103.90 102.12 100.15 99.04 105.11 132.74 102.98 102.22 127.23 104.40 127.32 99.69 103.02 103.75 101.42 130.17 101.79 103.74 115.25 126.01 103. and wages.17 126.81 126.17 131.30 99.15 105.01 105.58 99.69 126.).72 128.34 105.42 126.43 104.88 102.05 105.38 103.50 101.42 128.59 103.83 104.36 103.65 136.48 106.05 100.96 104.80 126.22 99.54 134.55 103.18 105.48 106.95 131.16 126.18 Mar 99.04 100.29 125.17 104.10 127.50 127.38 101.67 127.18 101.18 101.08 105. Jan 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 100.48 122.80 104.37 133.76 95.07 99.31 105.36 104.03 104.12 100.36 99.33 126.52 104.13 95.77 127.09 116.11 95.43 103.30 105.67 103.54 100.02 127.01 104.26 105.52 133.69 126.48 105.53 104.87 105.42 103.20 99.94 127.22 127.21 101.68 134.90 99.97 103.22 Feb 99.13 95.83 101.26 105.44 103.93 103.59 129.22 93.01 102.87 105.72 127.09 126.48 106.11 95.49 134.63 100.48 106.31 131.00 Aug 99.99 Nov 99.89 110.34 127.05 95.82 131.32 103.24 128.92 105.12 127.21 125.32 134.25 99.66 125.41 104.69 126.63 103.97 104.52 103.41 130.31 104.40 103.40 132.89 103.25 99.88 110.52 103.94 103.22 130.26 128.88 103.40 99.27 105.13 95.57 103.93 134.46 126.31 99.31 100.59 103.43 136.30 103.08 125.94 115.00 99.52 134.48 104.38 131.46 126.13 126.79 126.03 105.64 95.18 103.42 104.52 101.08 105.19 132.44 135.93 99.06 125.16 105.68 126.84 133.45 131.03 103.06 125.22 .67 103.65 135.13 99.18 127.02 117.86 102.74 103.18 95.78 127.05 103.69 103.48 103.14 126.35 105.81 101.07 100.80 126.28 132.29 110.95 126.19 104.93 103.99 105.79 126.46 126.48 106.61 125.24 105.94 103.39 105.27 105.95 129.33 101.37 103.94 103.59 95.402 Exchange rates.13 105.30 106.68 99.69 126.39 105.24 99.61 99.47 131.44 103.04 105.17 122.25 126.05 99.17 105.98 105.87 102.57 127.97 103.01 Oct 99.91 102.65 95.35 105.38 101.21 101.05 104.62 127.06 99.49 128.70 131.29 126.38 105.48 99.45 104.27 105.65 99.40 103.74 95.17 99.28 105.59 101.73 103.35 128.29 99.34 99.46 126.03 102.62 99.01 Jul 99.81 134.20 124.20 127.74 103.20 99.58 136.69 126.06 105.65 115.93 102.13 99.23 99.04 105.76 127.10 105.28 105.73 127.07 107.54 134.25 105.20 131.69 126.27 95.85 100.48 106.25 105.46 126.84 104.58 100.56 103.37 103.37 136.13 127.22 95.05 100.20 105.23 105.11 100.83 103.89 104.22 127.75 104.11 105.89 103.46 131.67 126.71 103.94 104.69 102.53 103.85 103.13 126.69 98.10 105.48 134.79 103.00 105.71 103.06 104.81 103.08 105.03 102.28 92.82 105.18 104.22 127.04 104.36 134.69 103.64 106.45 104.38 105.63 99.17 101.11 130.82 91.06 105.18 104.00 103.36 102.32 131.48 106.97 102.86 128.09 127.38 129.50 95.60 101.82 103.07 127.04 104.14 126.25 104.24 101. Exchange rate index 1913-2008.90 104.99 103.94 135.08 101.72 103.02 131.11 95.99 99.61 126.57 104.13 95.27 92.37 99.34 105.77 91.65 130.22 127.61 103.13 95.89 100.05 134. 1277–2008 Table A7.06 101.91 102.98 104.91 103.16 99.07 100.01 104.07 95.03 130.35 126.07 104.99 132.15 93.08 105.97 115.59 126.37 131.67 126.69 126.12 92.01 103.30 125.07 99.43 129.62 127.65 103.35 103.34 99.92 103.41 128.42 131.50 103.52 127.85 102.77 103.95 101.48 106.97 103.34 129.08 105.52 103.10 127.34 129.48 106.22 99.06 105.51 99.02 133.84 102.49 99.15 100.62 103.04 100.45 99.07 95.67 101.81 105.77 97.60 103.18 99.61 103.79 102. prices.27 133.95 110.35 99.13 95.42 99.00 105.09 103.85 127.17 128.28 92.86 102.86 102.20 (cont.45 104.42 134.06 105.89 99.92 103.55 103.14 126.79 95.06 105.35 105.32 121.38 105.89 132.86 126.45 103.70 102.50 128.74 104.96 110.39 105.46 126.97 100.41 103.12 Sep 99. SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100).17 99.56 126.75 103.73 103.36 101.23 93.87 99.28 92.82 129.76 131.93 102.07 131.80 126.80 126.08 125.96 116.46 104.31 130.27 93.04 135.20 Dec 99.34 105.56 103.66 127.21 100.27 92.53 103.51 104.31 105.79 127.31 103.68 103.21 93.32 101.67 99.20 127.13 95.10 98.81 99.00 105.07 105.13 126.28 115.99 104.24 Apr May Jun 99.21 102.34 105.99 104.36 128.15 100. 27 178.40 193.96 215.40 153.09 151.53 197.21 154.76 175.16 156.78 143.08 148.17 125.60 .46 182.12 197.45 149.65 152.43 104.58 116.23 112.73 156.57 151.81 191.36 96.31 101.37 190.68 190.74 187.32 102. From appreciation to depreciation 403 Table A7.45 199.27 205.43 146.88 145.20 (cont.60 151.75 102.47 154.39 115.75 179.02 115.86 100.43 154.26 204.04 182.81 145.74 190.72 190.92 97.29 175.68 152.72 192.62 150.82 144.13 189.20 182.38 195.80 152.04 197.11 193.09 185.11 199.55 152.51 147.21 154.98 182.81 178.15 179.25 207.99 145.44 203.83 193.91 194.17 113.86 103.36 202.08 102.67 146.21 192.32 147.19 95.11 179.41 96.26 149.35 173.50 183.77 199.91 189.38 194.44 189.98 203.15 198.36 188.85 103.85 199.31 101.59 153.55 150.14 146.06 115. SEK/foreign currency (January 1929 = 100).18 189.85 146.28 204.30 155.57 194.87 176.76 153.82 187.61 99.49 183.54 144.12 150.68 190.29 196.53 207.73 100.80 101.48 186.71 126.97 193.25 105.81 113.25 185.29 192.78 184.88 149.02 125.78 126.73 143.99 102.38 197.23 103.94 145.28 148.18 154.99 145.48 145.91 193.32 149.01 99.83 111.26 116.19 186.35 102.49 204.41 193.02 193.90 114.85 193.90 174. Jan 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 99.70 191.95 116.22 100.32 99.34 187.27 141.96 181.14 101.03 101.69 182.84 191.04 196.37 192.57 200.05 207.00 192.20 102.22 185.37 188.04 149.02 155.88 113.13 146.75 187.97 99.37 186.19 113.75 188.77 155.58 114.23 199.27 193.96 192.17 126.72 192.57 194.22 116.31 113.62 186.63 200.88 188.19 113.52 155.22 104.74 147.64 195.56 177.16 143.03 116.75 99.31 202.20 186.94 125.18 115.12 111.42 199.69 189.17 146.62 147.46 151.05 209.93 154.29 190.25 183.73 191.30 190.59 145.44 142.11 181.86 142.94 100.07 151.51 148.68 105.59 151.89 114.88 206.24 115.59 211.52 179.93 186.66 196.11 152.43 190.93 185.42 151.30 195.60 99.50 189.44 116.55 148.29 152.58 96.59 100.70 191.25 115.05 112.60 157.28 183.66 190.48 186.45 186.50 101.85 194.62 104.73 202.17 151.74 147.24 189.30 146.96 99.03 151.07 116.65 147.61 192.78 182.37 115.28 145.48 178.46 189.15 125.63 203.88 192.22 193.59 192.93 102.94 195.34 103.62 155.50 149.22 154.27 208.42 155.94 150.44 196.25 204.21 114.40 151.35 114.83 146.50 194.14 197.49 153.67 193.66 144.14 126.65 156.14 188.71 102.11 153.13 173.02 198.44 150.07 175.84 180.62 191.34 142.41 193.90 151.09 116.06 115.03 204.10 143.48 115.45 116.90 150.30 195.89 189.09 114.48 113.24 145.80 105.24 191.21 192.69 157.72 146.77 186.25 187.05 154.34 211.10 126.80 115.45 188.21 189.46 144.17 196.74 185.19 150.21 149.17 157.86 187.33 100.12 196.33 102.51 189.7.14 103.05 184.16 151.16 191.09 199.30 150.26 171.29 149.19 115.59 189.27 150.02 187.93 185.29 189.86 147.04 191.12 181.09 125.85 155.69 191.26 152.01 115. Exchange rate index 1913-2008.64 116.73 192.51 215.34 213.89 188.47 145.98 102.90 101.01 209.83 152.29 174.49 113.43 98.10 153.37 185.68 103.84 99.82 152.09 119.06 197.49 116.19 199.34 194.93 155.67 151.92 192.00 113.95 115.84 182.26 195.06 148.96 191.12 154.82 125.41 150.).21 178.61 125.15 102.46 189.47 151.29 101.45 116.72 188.98 191.42 100.13 174.95 151.27 151.41 146.81 96.62 198.73 187.07 151.01 104.35 115.33 115.76 181.23 152.37 185.97 115.23 101.33 140.73 116.12 150.74 201.27 154.49 151. 54 112.85 119.57 93.59 92.88 106.76 126.62 101.24 98.04 98.01 120.44 107.26 116.37 95.38 123.60 198.54 94.35 162.76 107.15 118.21.00 114.64 107.32 112.22 101.96 102.99 119.46 124.51 94.59 101.88 98.73 109.99 98.84 119.25 177.17 97.90 200.74 109.41 99.90 105.03 122.55 198.89 120.67 88.57 107.44 93.88 98.00 101.21 161.67 94.01 120.14 110.28 104.63 107.54 120.47 198.17 97.50 Because of the rapid German inflation during World War One and the hyperinflation in 1921–23.25 114.75 198.39 108.49 95.75 167.48 105.36 94.60 109.73 181.94 119.08 97.29 186.84 142.19 98.45 118.95 126.61 124.58 184.39 198.89 96.09 150.93 153.10 102.64 93.24 93.05 121.64 107.16 117.16 100.37 200.67 93.58 99.87 95.10 149.24 95.56 100.44 107.99 163.60 104.01 163.61 136.84 95.56 101.51 95.10 102.82 93.65 122.54 120.62 198.40 155.00 119.83 112.23 188.16 108.76 103.78 171.88 125.98 98.62 101.84 119.16 100.35 121.92 121.98 98. prices.39 103.57 119.85 131.60 200.75 198.46 140.87 92.56 101. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 120.72 122.71 128.39 103.37 95.93 120.99 98.08 96.54 196.88 119.18 94.07 108.11 95.19 112.03 119.98 140.88 121.10 200.31 98.59 101.04 186.49 198. Jan 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 Feb Mar Apr May Jun Jul Aug Sep Oct Nov Dec 198.59 136. .77 198.28 117.35 100.33 109.14 143.41 125.21 118.57 107.09 119.24 95.62 111.24 120.74 143.23 119.19 98.05 120.73 107.70 97.73 115.51 122.98 120.58 198.93 119.62 111.58 122.99 121.07 100.02 122.21 97.18 94.82 198.28 104.57 93.404 Exchange rates.56 101.49 95.13 98.73 144.45 138.58 93.58 99.44 101.60 110.61 198.74 109.13 135.81 198.05 120.51 107.05 120.22 129.53 117.13 98.47 148.05 95.85 104.51 95.11 130.02 113.84 95.20 125.97 198.25 149.49 160.80 119.50 Table A7.59 92.18 96.61 126.39 163.10 119.54 124. Exchange rate index excluding German hyperinflation.29 153.13 103.54 122.66 104. Exchange rate index excluding Germany 1913–24.72 116.96 109.04 120.00 148.82 93.46 192.98 119.87 92.67 93.80 112.70 97.00 159.63 151.51 94.44 157.85 121.54 113.12 125.96 109.89 120.71 198.83 142.22 101.71 199. and wages.81 126.56 101.80 198.79 186.96 138.85 148.64 93.18 96.75 198.11 120.22.74 133.11 95.83 145.76 107.66 104.88 106.20 115.56 125.10 131.42 139.05 120.84 103.22 113.18 96.05 95.90 105.24 93.00 101.03 99.89 96.42 137.33 109.70 111.64 107.03 99.92 198.87 95.87 198.85 104.62 199.44 93. 1277–2008 Table A7. separate exchange indices have been calculated that exclude Germany in the periods 1913–24 and 1921–23.48 105.17 124.95 114.58 93.60 104.22 108.21 97.46 113.00 170.84 119.24 163.37 121.04 121.67 94.40 125.96 102.40 85.83 116.07 100.40 128.28 140.37 124. 55 72.80 97.59 8.27 8.90 87.17 4.08 136.11 95.76 3.00 9.74 99.02 55.61 97.68 91.65 88.29 73.94 Germany France Belgium Switzer.24 142.62 17.84 99.41 9.60 97.81 79.37 10.38 4.85 3.95 16.41 149.16 168.03 1.05 75.66 67.21 67.95 16.97 50.17 14.79 91.05 74.23 8.80 97.50 223.12 3.85 86.57 97.13 18.05 75.17 68.69 39.58 219.49 9.05 75.98 154.72 125.94 91.88 94.32 78.37 10.81 17.28 10.28 129.86 52.50 14.49 1.92 82.51 3.09 99.00 95.92 17.39 19.00 99.64 15.36 80.65 97.60 8.62 95.59 8.01 88.68 168.85 86.30 88.24 2.39 1.60 8.37 90.84 129.37 10.99 5.18 5.26 223.20 99.85 3.89 69.27 73.20 4.69 2.65 95.48 2.19 74.90 136.94 19.15 112.50 14.25 66.67* 0.90 81.27 2.50 67.03 72.32 16.03 3.51 153.49 1.66 78.76 14.55 72.52 14.24 18.40 19.66 150.90 135.79 119.24 86.12 16.60 3.99 18.20 94.56 22.41 18.99 52.76 3.50 168.08 3.72 12.73 15.25 62.69 14.41 18.86 254.18 23.20 3.95 16.95 18.60 14.99 19. Year 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 UK 18.55 72.27 .Netherland lands 89.96 3.20 4.80 3.98 4.30 123.64 156.70 83.91 138.91 2.69 250.74 3.45 230.92 4.84 97.63 97.23 8.82 72.02 149.73* 89.23 16.45 3.52 152.60 17.73 3.52 144.60 8.51 10.18 5.50 118.12 88.37 160.18 83.05 75.71 52.54 USA 3.45 47.50 75.92 216.75 72.23.40 9.7.38 147.45 9.19 72.04 72. From appreciation to depreciation 405 Appendix A7.59 8.38 3.21 27.99 90.56 135.18 5.69 2.31 149.85 86.46 97.90 71.00 100.3: Summary tables of annual rates Table A7.90 87.64 59.24 76.55 72.43 97.64 168.00 9.01 62.08 68.52 52.03 52.75 3.91 3.01 70.50 70.38 26.38 9.40 19.84 11.18 5.26 9.55 9.25 87.50 168.71 99.55 72.61 3.75 147.62 33.80 97.46 91.00 Denmark 100.00 52.64 99.27 2.40 9.78 55.83 67.60 8.67 14.50 16.32 70.21 69.74 89.06 150.65 14.77 84.36 43.50 118.99 5.41 79.65 66.40 9.86 218.86 86.50 14.95 15.87 234.30 159.73 149.48 17.50 14.73 3.43 17.24 51.87 54.11 17.73 3.55 136.43 8.40 72.78 76.98 Norway Finland 100.37 10.18 123.55 3.60 8.37 80.99 59.96 147.55 136.27 2.67 99.46 102.20 4.10 9.72 21.17 116.50 118.73 98.95 16.52 8.05 222.51 168.92 72.60 8.24 71.50 71.55 72.16 18.40 19.28 53.30 123.55 136.96 29.20 118.43 4.48 87.25 31.95 4.81 96.76 77.37 23. Annual exchange rates 1913–2008.73 3.68 99.11 259.40 19.05 75.60 3.63 17.53 92.20 4.09 89.47 69.64 106.50 8.44 8.33 69.00 36.23 77.41 9.83 86.27 2.02 8.77 10.50 157.65 95.93 3.00 99.77 81.00 97.93 8.83 67.7 88.55 72.69 99.49 1.20 19.95 16.93 17.09 9.81 25.69 89.50 14.84 72.15 18.59 5.73 3.28 33.97 99.35 83.49 223.85 160.60 8.96 74.06 65.28 22.59 145.19 63.10 167.65 95.91 3.89 58.16 81.83 3.30 123.25 81.49 1.60 97.78 137.06 93.70 92.82 72.51 14.76 14.96 149.52 66.73 130.92 34.60 8.47 67.89 66.13 18.77 157.89 158.29 94.20 4.97 18.12 98.80 268.67 123.16 150.00 100.80 97. 35 10.11 1.11 105.52 310.73 352.70 164.06 174.53 110.04 11.40 144.49 14.63 72.32 120.23 1.44 11.78 82.67 8.22 165.85 11.10 234.66 .47 12.13 103.93 96.75 150.27 2.54 80.18 5.52 120.20 123.76 364.77 72.67 21.26 7.42 10.54 72.15 173.71 132.68 418.27 71.27 111.39 113.31 548.68 74.53 401.28 470.06 6.83 8.65 109.59 160.39 10.75 144.98 107.56 124.38 72.64 130.99 17.59 160.95 365.09 10.18 5.37 136.22 142.39 10.31 92.34 115.16 300.45 76.60 72.21 75.57 72.48 1.22 68.87 85.20 21.19 5.91 372.89 161.55 146.38 105.42 129.95 11. Year 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 UK 14.12 149.79 80.61 603.10 143.45 5.44 325.63 100.02 74.29 214.57 313.64 269.48 124.48 4.58 165.92 117.12 80.34 84.19 5.98 169.10 128.67 11.24 5.13 130.00 72.01 419.39 69.36 4.37 12.05 5.07 92.99 131.18 5.88 10.67 148.13 6.92 353.60 99.32 86.72 72.69 115.49 1.52 14.52 119.20 422.15 526.27 2.66 257.00 124.56 72.92 118.85 137.35 139.25 258.40 10.46 146.42 10.05 14.22 7.47 91.83 497.75 526.37 143.61 161.56 343.86 10.98 136.35 6.10 9.81 93.91 94.26 93.35 112.37 4.18 115.68 9.59 397.81 11.06 105.82 124.84 253.17 5. and wages.93 308.44 10.50 13. 1277–2008 Table A7.98 75.83 10.91 94.53 143.63 157.18 5.42 119.70 129.08 138.57 105.93 330.82 209.75 72.54 72.05 121.82 92.54 164.94 119.87 7.02 137.54 15.39 10.61 98.58 155.05 225.86 75.26 137.79 351.77 7.13 75.20 253.33 11.36 72.40 10.53 14.99 445.29 4.11 4.52 94.42 72.52 4.49 11.30 413.88 440.57 10.40 127.16 5.04 94.25 10.08 84.36 129.71 7.29 11.60 72.73 18.63 7.55 122.54 10.75 15.40 10.63 1.49 14.37 105.55 72.32 12.76 4.41 9.67 10.10 105.58 103.93 149.01 74.61 72.88 108.83 129.70 109.38 10.17 5.36 143.17 5.17 130.23 293.66 119.48 14.44 14.16 4.17 5.82 541.87 119.27 233.01 143.62 1.23 (cont.28 88.50 13.70 73.Netherland lands 123.81 7.85 10.13 6.65 452.72 103.00 139.82 97.58 94.56 123.82 123.76 427.19 224.34 259.66 101.).72 136.66 118.09 Denmark 74.65 13.25 75.71 75.97 74.01 22.55 142.57 123.34 74. prices.38 1.10 143.16 5.33 137.90 291.54 14.43 72.46 113.48 120.45 106.94 94.09 24.52 323.41 10.31 97.29 193.78 424.37 105.30 142.84 291.19 148.96 143.54 397.35 129.54 101.98 69.48 84.89 134.98 163.71 Norway Finland 72.95 Germany France Belgium Switzer.43 10.58 186.14 328.88 258.03 100.49 14.10 81.37 2.51 23.06 75.30 74.27 101.21 10.93 391.24 81.89 75.12 258.25 444.02 16.93 91.77 74.24 110.31 72.85 119.05 69.06 213.31 108.54 14.35 10.48 105.48 138.48 10.84 88.05 105.71 7.63 1.16 12.44 4.46 10.48 88.26 68.28 125.71 16.06 1.32 96.12 140.27 8.55 10.72 10.18 147.08 182.43 14.35 14.65 119.66 118.25 203.38 12.40 93.18 5.79 394.13 6.36 100.41 95.87 136.17 5. Annual exchange rates 1913–2008.35 21.84 123.48 118.41 234.16 101.49 14.51 171.13 142.40 93.15 91.37 564.40 10.42 146.04 120.76 129.80 73.40 14.16 104.75 17.64 11.23 475.05 139.33 94.63 105.16 USA 5.71 115.64 304.27 119.92 6.69 96.49 14.59 113.70 146.17 5.40 17.25 349.64 1.10 120.59 7.74 79.63 129.65 14.51 160.06 147.406 Exchange rates.17 72.00 118.35 426.16 5.39 109.40 14.22 11.36 366.44 12.42 95.62 118.40 10.77 152.04 149. 56 188.25 591.15 121.96 114. change Ger.87 14.05 117.12 599.84 20.41 588.30 124.German many hyperinrate index 1913-24 flation (ERI) 231. Table A7.85 14.46 231.70 155.67 124. Annual exchange rates 1913–2008.04 155.36 142.75 141.46 7.28 122. Switzerland: SEK per 100 CHF 1915-2008 Netherlands: SEK per 100 NLG 1913-2001 Denmark: SEK per 100 DKK 1913-2008 Norway: SEK per 100 NKK 1913-2008 Finland: SEK per 100 (old) mark 1913-1962.11 123. SEK per 100 belgas 1926-1943.08 7.52 12.32 9.52 431. SEK per 100 BEF 1945-2001.).35 7.30 563.00 104.92 170.13 109.7.Netherland lands 450. Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008.92 121.17 128.00 21.27 605.90 134.06 124.31 133.37 6.55 Germany France Belgium Switzer.70 162. ERI excl.20 111.57 13.11 198.03 148. Year 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 UK 13.08 USA 8.01 121.93 550.42 165.80 472.45 13.24.33 128. Belgium: SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913-1925.84 Norway Finland 106.26 612.74 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 . SEK per 1 million mark 1922-1923.54 124.63 542.44 117.23 (cont.56 * SEK per 1 million mark. SEK per 100 reichsmark 1924-1945.33 624.85 383.73 120. SEK per 100 franc 1960-2001.20 142.37 13.50 113.09 114.83 115.04 115.25 146.26 600.57 13.71 8.26 9.15 10.52 218.57 13. France: SEK per 100 (old) franc 1913-1959.23 419.06 101.83 187. Italy Euro Japan Czech Poland Republic Latvia Estonia Lithuania Ex.ERI excl.78 198. SEK per DEM 1950-2001.94 22. From appreciation to depreciation 407 Table A7.79 122.03 115. Note: UK: SEK per GBP USA: SEK per USD Germany: SEK per 100 mark 1913-1921.76 6.42 399.71 Denmark 118. SEK per 100 (new) mark 1963-2001 The annual averages have been calculated as geometric averages of monthly exchange rates.19 13.96 99. 93 28.41 122.18 94.43 77.83 71.31 30.83 0.00 99.71 65.84 0.92 14.75 14.25 74.02 11.65 99.08 11. and wages.65 107.25 74.38 19.10 99.82 99.84 1.81 75.15 11.20 22.17 108.12 11.94 21.07 99.44 66.03 105.22 95.95 67.86 97.German many hyperinrate index 1913-24 flation (ERI) 143.03 105.36 102.23 103.93 13.96 102.93 16.66 119.56 14.23 11.12 94. ERI excl.61 19.54 20.42 103.25 75.87 126.10 11.49 16.21 11.10 104.68 19.05 79.02 135.94 14.51 95.408 Exchange rates.85 20.74 100.84 0. 1277–2008 Table A7.94 73.91 128.90 128.65 129.37 33. Italy Euro Japan Czech Poland Republic Latvia Estonia Lithuania Ex.10 105.10 94.83 0.54 102.93 99.97 128.01 21.06 22.86 123.14 11.99 61.95 13.83 0.70 126.82 16.08 105.68 41.26 105.20 9.45 1.22 95.81 122. prices.28 19.59 33.46 21.16 105.29 105.45 106.57 78.19 66.79 102.57 132.ERI excl.86 0.89 103.93 126. Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008.86 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 .99 22.59 95.53 79.00 58.11 28.83 0.73 65.83 0.88 21.87 15.54 17.93 99.51 14. change Ger.37 18.69 71.24 (cont.90 74.34 126.89 44.83 0.83 0.56 19.22 101.67 16.28 17.10 94.83 0.22 95.12 11.18 67.71 133.).57 70.44 105.80 126.80 102.14 108.19 127.83 0.87 103. 32 99.12 1.64 0.44 0.54 1.28 2.00 99.62 4.11 99.69 0.44 1.46 1.50 0.44 1.79 4.48 0.29 146.47 0.44 1.61 7.16 9.38 2.83 0.49 14.58 1.44 101.47 0.7.48 0.52 0.40 4.88 23.78 14.85 104.ERI excl.29 152.52 0.46 1.28 2.61 115. Italy Euro Japan Czech Poland Republic Latvia Estonia Lithuania Ex.53 102.83 182.47 0.47 0.99 2.66 2.83 0.63 149.09 7.59 0.49 0.49 1.92 8.76 0.69 103.59 0.45 1.58 114.65 190. Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008.97 1.17 6.25 0.49 1.25 101.55 7.43 0.95 100.07 15.45 0.25 4.92 145.59 1.83 0.65 143.56 0.46 0.52 2.09 101.77 103.45 0.83 0.70 27.82 0.68 115.47 0.45 9.79 203.74 28.84 0.69 2.48 8. ERI excl.16 29.88 2.50 0.84 0.66 23.).63 1.German many hyperinrate index 1913-24 flation (ERI) 103.50 7.53 0.25 9.26 193.49 3.44 1.42 1.58 2.10 4.12 152.71 193.42 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 0.45 1.53 3.28 8.18 1.56 6.32 6.46 0.51 0.66 103.10 16.13 188.54 0.83 0.49 0.50 0.09 2.93 117.08 13.83 0.65 2.85 155.41 206.38 104.02 175.11 2. change Ger.90 153.49 8.06 187.81 8.06 154.24 3.45 0.27 150.97 .30 2.21 188.50 4.43 103.69 4. From appreciation to depreciation 409 Table A7.54 0.24 (cont.45 1.56 0.51 15.00 103.06 2.83 0.00 7.05 130.27 24.64 186.76 6.44 0.83 0. 16 32.79 6. and wages.59 0.78 6. pp. 1277–2008 Table A7.44 196. References: Official statistics publications: SOS handel SOS Utrikeshandel Sveriges riksbank årsbok Sveriges riskbank statistisk årsbok www.50 195.28 9. The Swedish experience 1931-1937.66 33. Sverige och Bretton Woods.norges-bank.61 6.52 192. Growth. Crisis: with New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800-2000.68 2.64 2. Accumulation.33 13. prices. Journal of monetary economics 43.78 Note: Italy: SEK per 100 ITL 1920–2001 Euro: SEK per EUR 1998–2008 Japan: SEK per 100 JPY 1960–2008 Czech Republic: SEK per 100 CSK 1922–2008 Poland: SEK per 100 zloty 1930–39 and per PLN 1998–2008 Latvia: SEK per 100 lats 1930–40 and per LVL 1998–2008 Estonia: SEK per 100 krooni 1930–40 and per EEK 1998–2008 Lithuania: SEK per 100 litas 1932–40 and per LTL 1998–2008 The annual averages have been calculated as geometric averages of monthly exchange rates.no/english/statistics/exchange/ Literature: Ahlström.ERI excl.24 (cont. Vägval i valutafrågan. R (2005).69 2. 525–51.38 2. Stockholm: Stockholm Studies in Economic History 41.59 0.45 2.68 2. Edvinsson.35 28. G and B Carlson (2006).20 194.61 2. .73 13.70 13.60 31.25 9. Annual exchange rates and the exchange rate index 1913–2008.13 9.31 2.25 9.74 6.58 0. Stockholm: SNS förlag.44 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 9. change Ger.oecd.34 5. ‘Pioneering price level targeting’.67 0.org www.se www.German many hyperinrate index 1913-24 flation (ERI) 190.22 13. ERI excl.35 38. Berg.35 13.).410 Exchange rates.scb.52 2. C and L Jonung (1999).02 2. Italy Euro Japan Czech Poland Republic Latvia Estonia Lithuania Ex.riksbank.59 0.se www. Princeton NJ: Princeton University Press. European Review of Economic History 2. J G (1995). A (1945).) Från räntereglering till inflationsnorm. L (1979). A. From appreciation to depreciation 411 Eichengreen. Kenwood. 240–57. Krantz. The European economy between the wars. ‘The evolution of global labor markets since 1830: background evidence and hypotheses’. pp. pp. O and L Schön (2007). Klovland. Globalizing Capital. Oxford: Oxford University Press. ‘Knut Wicksell’s norm of price stabilization and Swedish monetary policy in the 1930’s’. Lundberg. Mitchell. In E F Heckscher (ed. London Palgrave Macmillan. Stockholm: SNS. J T (1998).). pp. Lund: Almqvist & Wicksell International. pp. Swedish Historical National Accounts 1800–2000. In L Werin (ed. Feinstein. M (1991). Ekonomiska kriser för och nu.) Devalveringen 1982 – rivstart eller snedtänding? Perspektiv på svensk devalveringspolitik. 1750–2000. C (1991). 196–244. In L Jonung (ed. Stockholm: P. 141–96. pp. 32. E (1983). . New York: Palgrave Macmillan. ‘Monetary policy and business cycles in the interwar years: the Scandinavian experience’. Nordin. Tillväxt och strukturomvandling under två sekel. E F (1926). C H. B R (2003a). 118–40. L (2008). C (1993). A History of the International Monetary System. Oxford: Oxford University Press. Sarno. Williamson. B (1996). ‘Den reala växelkursen 1974–1989’. Svensk samhällsekonomi 1914–1922. Det finansiella systemet och riksbankens politik 1945–1990. Vol. Stockholm: SNS. In The New Palgrave Dictionary of Economics Online. Stockholm: SNS. ‘Växelkurspolitiken’. Östlind. Stockholm: Svenska bankföreningen. 309–44. ‘purchasing power parity’. Maddison. The growth of the international economy 1820–1980. Jonung. Stockholm: SNS. In L Jonung (ed. Från krigsutbrottet till den internationella guldmyntfotens återställelse 1914–1925’. Wihlborg. En modern svensk ekonomisk historia. 459–96. New York: Palgrave Macmillan. Journal of Monetary Economics 5. Heckscher. Del II. An introductory text. Stockholm: SNS. L (2000).7. Schön. A G and A L Lougheed (1985). Norstedt söners förlag.) Bidrag till Sveriges ekonomiska och sociala historia under och efter världskriget. B R (2003b). ‘Den svenska industrins konkurrenskraft 1973–1989’. London: George Allen & Unwin. International historical statistics: the Americas. ‘Penningväsende och penningpolitik. Mitchell. International historical statistics: Europe. Explorations in Economic History. S N Durlauf and L E Blume (eds. Dynamic Forces in Capitalist Development.) Devalveringen 1982 – rivstart eller snedtändning? Perspektiv på svensk devalveringspolitik. Wihlborg. A (1991). pp. P Temin and G Toniolo (1997). 1750–2000. The two most common price indices are the CPI and the GDP deflator in market prices (the deflator is used to transform nominal values into volume values.1. but rather to use the rich empirical material collected in earlier studies on the price history of Sweden to construct a price index that as far as possible uses a consistent method over time. a procedure termed ‘deflation’. The price indices can be constructed in various ways. The GDP deflator is in a certain sense a broader price 1 2 We want to thank Ulf Jonsson. . Per Simonsson and Daniel Waldenström for commenting earlier versions of this chapter.8. depending on how the individual prices are weighted. A volume (or real) index is derived by dividing the ratio between nominal values in two years by the price index.2 The chapter also discusses some theoretical and conceptual problems in relation to constructing a historical CPI. 1290–20081 Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg 8. Methodological issues A price index is a measure of the level of prices in the compared year (t) in relation to the level of prices in the price reference period (0). The aim is not to present new empirical material. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices. 8. 2004). Astrid Kander. An index covering a span from the Middle Ages to the present raises much more questions than modern-type consumer price indices. It raises the issue of what inflation actually is. and can be seen as a price index). The terminology of this chapter follows as closely as possible the one used in Consumer price index manual (ILO and others. Introduction The purpose of this chapter is to describe the construction of a Consumer Price Index (CPI) for Sweden 1290–2008.2. government final demand. for example in a Laspeyres price index.8. index. This is not necessarily the case in calculations of a CPI. 3 ILO and others (2004. The CPI should not be confused with the deflator of household and NPISH final consumption used in the national accounts. p. Often imputed values of rents for self-owned dwellings are included. Source: Stockholm City Museum. While the CPI mostly uses quantities from an earlier period. only private consumption in towns. the national accounts mostly use quantities of a later period. A CPI can be based on a narrower range of goods and services. while imputed values of agricultural products for own use are excluded. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 413 A store in Stockholm in 1910. for example. they are based on different methods. .3 The deflator of household and NPISH final demand shall include all types of consumption. the wealthiest households are sometimes excluded). gross fixed capital formation and net export. The index principles of the two indices often differ. The CPI normally also covers a smaller number of households (for example. The latter are included in the deflator of household and NPISH final demand. and is a weighted average of the price indices for the final demand of households and NPISH (Non-Profit Institutions Serving Households). 58). the price reference period is changed regularly. The differences between the index principles are usually quite small if an annual chain index is applied. One problem with price indices is that the pattern of consumption changes over time. vol. Chaining is preferable if the studied period is very long. and wages. and the different consecutive time series are linked to each other with one common period as the base period. This makes chaining necessary. i. Comparison over time becomes increasingly difficult.e.414 Exchange rates. for example in a Paasche price index. which were semi-market prices. but this presupposes knowledge of the composition of consumption in every year. as is the case with a historical CPI. The price level in the 21st century cannot be reasonably estimated on the basis of consumption weights pertaining to the 17th century. 1277–2008 There are a number of sources for pre-industrial prices in Sweden. prices. These are price notations in Göteborg from December 1734 according to the market scales. which can be difficult to obtain for a historical price index (although historical national accounts could provide certain information in . Source: Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900. 6 (Göteborgs landsarkiv). The preferred option is an annual chain index. L 1. there is a theoretical difference between the cost of a representative basket of consumption products and the cost of guaranteeing a certain level of utility or welfare of a consumer. The second best option is to change the weights regularly. and is therefore best represented by the concept of a basket of products. This is also the chosen option in the present study for the period before 1914. that direction). a so-called Lowe . by Georg von Rosen (1843–1923). The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 415 The Christmas Fair. The former is called a Consumer Price Index. Source: Nationalmuseum. although not as often as annually. Furthermore. A CPI measures the average change of prices. while the latter is a Cost-of-Living Index. The period with a common price reference year or period is named a deflation period.8. approach a COLI.e.6 This study mainly uses the Laspeyres formula. the price reference period. however. the annual fluctuations in relative prices are actually the most reliable indicator of annual fluctuations in relative consumption quantities. the introduction of potatoes in the late 18th century enabled consumers to partly switch from rye and barley to potatoes. for example Gunnar Myrdal’s The Cost of Living in Sweden 1830–1930. The price elasticity of individual foodstuffs can be high. whose main purpose was to ‘serve as a means for the investigation of real wages in Sweden’. . This partly stands in contrast to previous studies on the cost of living in Sweden. The Laspeyres price index is a measure of the level of prices of products i in period t in relation to period 0. p. b. which for the Laspeyres price index is the same as the weight reference period. There are also some price indices that can be assumed to better approximate a COLI. The main purpose of a Cost-of-Living Index is. This purpose also reflects the central bank concept of inflation. not to provide a general measure of inflation.416 Exchange rates. which has to do with consumer preferences and cross-elasticities of demand for the consumed products (i. The more often the weight reference period is changed. The substitution effects depend on the cross-elasticity of various products. 1277–2008 type index. a constant basket index will overestimate the cost of living in later periods compared to earlier periods. 49). Another problem is that the cross-elasticity of demand can vary significantly both between products and between types of expenditure at a more aggregated level. especially if the basket of consumed products is changed regularly and a chain index is constructed. Grytten (2004).4 For example. If the weight reference period is situated earlier in time. the more such a price index tends to. Myrdal (1933. when potatoes were not part of consumption. a Consumer Price Index (CPI) can be assumed to roughly approximate a Cost-Of-Living Index (COLI). and wages. which is possible if the Laspeyres formula is used. q: 4 5 6 Statistiska centralbyrån (2001. pp. when a chain index is constructed. at least theoretically. The main consideration behind constructing a historical CPI in this study is the central bank concept of inflation and to a lesser degree the notion of a cost-of-living index. but the price elasticity of food expenditures as a whole is probably quite low. the responsiveness of the quantity demanded for a good to the price change of another good). Nevertheless. even though the CPI is not specifically designed to measure general inflation. 7–9). The weights are quite difficult to estimate and the calculations are based on estimates of expenditure shares during certain base periods.5 Since we do not have access to annual changes in the composition of consumer products for earlier periods. the period of the quantities. prices. but rather to serve as an instrument for deflating nominal wages in order to calculate real wages. 7 ILO and others. Periods of hyperinflation or high inflation also cause problems for the construction of a historical CPI. The currency unit for the CPI in this study Since 1873. one in the debased currency and one in a more stable currency unit. moreover. One theoretical problem is that prices only relate to goods sold on the market. p. Nevertheless. before that year. Furthermore. Calculations of a CPI for modern times normally ignore barter transactions. Prior to 1850. causing prices to fall back to previous levels. if the economy is dominated by barter transactions.0 period ( s i ) as weights. volume GDP per capita was stagnant. while most produced goods were not traded. This of course makes it virtually impossible to construct an annual chain index.i q0 . 8.i (1) Formula 1 shows that the Laspeyres price index can be rewritten as a weighted arithmetic average of the price relatives using the expenditure shares in the price reference 0. which could be measured in price terms. At the end of such inflation periods the currency unit is often changed by devaluing the weaker currency. which must be taken account of when constructing a historical CPI.i P = L 0 . whereby the quantities are changed every year.i 0 .0 si p0 . the Swedish currency was changed on numerous occasions (see Chapters 2. In a long-term perspective. Such an alternative cost would.i i = i pt. one that can be used to deflate other price series and another that better functions as a measure of inflation. the alternative cost should be related to the market price to some degree. . the data are often restricted to some or only one region. the Swedish currency unit has been the krona (SEK).7 However. However.3. the existence of a market implies that producers had the alternative of either consuming the product or selling it on the market. Hence. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 417 pt.i q0 . This is specifically addressed in this study by constructing two different CPIs. there was an alternative cost for the use of product. This is because in such periods prices can be expressed in prices of different types. be lower than the market price since we have to deduct various transaction costs involved in trade. 3. such an approach is problematic. consumption patterns generally did not change as much as they have done later. However. the further back in time. 19). of course. the fewer the products that could be represented by longer price data time series. (2004. Hence.8. 4 and 6). The weights and the duration of deflation periods must take this into account.t i p0 . the deflation periods are longer for the earlier periods. for example a foreign currency or previously minted coins in precious metal. As a general rule. It is an index of prices expressed in the main currency unit: 1 SEK = 72 marks. when the inflation money is appreciated for various reasons.9 for concrete examples). which we call a deflator index. Period 1290–1624 1624–1776 1776–89 1789–1855 1855–73 1873 onwards Currency Mark penningar Mark kopparmynt (in 1624 equal to mark penningar) Riksdaler specie (in 1776 equal to 72 marks kopparmynt) Riksdaler riksgälds (in 1789 equal to the riksdaler specie) Riksdaler riksmynt (in 1855 equal to riksdaler riksgälds) Krona (SEK) The currencies in Table 8. and wages.418 Exchange rates.1 presents the currencies that are followed by the Consumer Price Index of this study for different periods. At the end of these inflation periods. when domestic currencies existed side-by-side. However. An example of this is the deflation in Sweden in the early 1920s. . when inflation money was circulated which later was replaced by a more stable currency. This occurred in six periods: 1351–4. The development of a price index expressed in one of these currencies may. 1590–3 and 1715–9. therefore. This could be compared to modern times when zeros have been struck from inflation notes on various occasions. is also constructed to take into consideration times of very high inflation.1 are the basis for the construction of a first variant of a CPI. a second variant. Table 8. 1521–4. since this is just a matter of changing one currency for another. the CPI should follow the currency that was used most frequently in transactions. but in such a situation an inflation index should not record any dramatic deflation. the inflation coins could be exchanged for new coins. most notably 1624–1803. When prices were expressed in proper coins. Genuine deflation can occur following a period of inflation.e. differ from the development of a price index expressed in another currency. prices. they have been converted into prices in inflation coins by using the exchange rate between the inflation coins and proper coins. This index is most suitable for deflating other price series. 1277–2008 There were also periods. to estimate real or relative prices (see section 8. This is most clearly shown when prices are recorded in both currencies during the overlapping period. for example when the new mark was introduced in Germany in 1924 and was set equal to one trillion old marks. an inflation index. Table 8. 1361–4. albeit at a much lower rate than was nominally assigned to the inflation coins. when the CPI fell by more than 30 per cent. The introduction of new notes implies that prices of products are sold at a lower nominal figure. The direct cause was the reintroduction of the same relation of the krona to gold as before the First World War (see also Chapter 7).1: The currencies followed by the Consumer Price Index presented in this study. 1561–76. i. with a fluctuating exchange rate between them. 5142 grams fine silver. 37 and 41). 1624–1665 and 1789–1834. The problem is most clearly illustrated by the development of the deflator index between 1574 and 1576. and the annual change in the deflator index is corrected accordingly. a 4-öre coin of 1575 contained 3. however. illustrating the effects of hyperinflation. i. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 419 Hungary in 1946. There were also two other inflation periods. while in the periods 1351–4. 1521–4.8 8 Wallroth (1918. The deflator index in these cases follows the inflation coins.e. pp. where it is not clear which currency to follow. not be interpreted as a period of severe deflation.088 grams fine silver. The difference between those two periods and the six periods mentioned above is that in the former the inflation currency became the main currency afterwards. 1361–4. 1561–76. a six-fold increase. What happened was that a new mark was introduced in 1575 with a higher fine silver content than the old mark (see Chapter 4). 1590–3 and 1715–9 the old currency was restored. For example. This should.8. . while a 4-öre coin (a half mark) of 1572 contained 0. The inflation index is based on the exchange rate between the inflation money and the new coins that were introduced (see Chapters 3 and 4). during which this index records a fall by 82 per cent. When only a single CPI is compiled and published. The interpolations are based on silver prices (see section 8. though not for every year. Grain prices are the most frequent. salt. . partly reflect different purposes of price indices. respectively. oxen. and iron. beer. Though the focus on these goods is motivated by the state of the sources. wax.420 Exchange rates.10 From the early 15th century the price data are quite rich for the most important commodities.4.4. only a few years and a few commodities can be covered. p. and vice versa. The period 1290–1539 The data for constructing a CPI for the period 1290–1539 are based on price data collected by Bo Franzén and Johan Söderberg (2006). 10 See also Söderberg (2007). but at different exchange rates. The missing years have been interpolated for various commodities. However. the exchange rates presented in Chapter 4 can be used to transform the CPI of this study. and wages. grain prices usually refer to unspecified grain or barley. are used through time. if the price index is to measure inflation. there is a risk that it may be used for purposes for which it is not appropriate. The two CPIs are presented in Table A8. since a simple deflator does not always reflect actual inflation when currencies with the same name. it seems. The price of barley or unspecified grain has been interpolated using the price of rye.4 below). The cultivation of rye gradually spread at the expense of barley. The CPI of the present study also uses data on the prices of three other goods – rye. the inflation index should be preferable. prices. If the price index is to measure the cost-of-living in order to deflate nominal wages over time or to estimate the real price of various goods. For these three goods data exist mainly from the 1460s onwards. then a deflator index could be used. The best data exist for seven goods: grain. or daler carolin instead of daler kopparmynt in 1624–1777). butter. To calculate price indices expressed in other Swedish currencies (for example riksdaler banco instead of riksdaler riksgälds in 1789–1803. 8. can price series covering fifty years or more be assembled. More than one CPI could be published in order to meet different analytic or policy needs. only in the second stage are they transformed into nominal prices. 33). which was more expensive. the mix 9 ILO and others (2004. but the latter crop still dominated in the 16th century. not to rye.1. Before 1500. hops and copper. Only for these goods. 1277–2008 The Consumer Price Manual argues that it is not necessary to refrain from having more than one CPI:9 ‘There is no necessity to have only a single CPI.’ The deflator and inflation indices. Before that period. These documents report many market transactions in various goods. though their number is not large. The majority of the price quotations stem from market transactions carried out by various institutions. Several oxen and butter prices. Beer was an increasingly popular and important consumption good. which appears to have been fairly price-integrated with Uppland. Finland was part of the kingdom of Sweden in the medieval era. Three sources are of particular importance: Parish churches regularly sold the surplus of grain that resulted from tithes delivered by their tenants. Andræ (1965).1. Grain was of course the most essential good in the domestic economy. It was mainly used for making candles for religious ceremonies. bordering on Denmark.11 Many grain price quotations.g. This reflects the regional division of labour. but the beef trade was also subject to substantial changes in organization. in which Småland and some western provinces had a prominent role in cattle-raising. Oxen were exported in certain periods. wax played a smaller role in the economy. very useful source is the large collection of medieval letters that has been published on the Internet by Riksarkivet (The National Archives): ‘Svenskt Diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven’. Nearly all of them come from Turku (Åbo) in south-western Finland. For this reason. The beer market widened during the late Middle Ages. more than 40. and most wax prices. refer to transactions involving these churches. that was vital in popular consumption. are from the southern province of Småland. the largest town. It also was the only imported good. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 421 has some advantages. For instance. 8. but also the fact that oxen and cows were sometimes used as partial payment in land sales. iron (and copper) became the dominant export articles from Sweden. Compared to these goods.000 documents have been registered and are digitally searchable. The accounts of the City of Stockholm report many kinds of purchase. Finnish prices are also included. Some prices are valuations in connection 11 See. Uppland probably was the most commercialized part of medieval Sweden. This is closely linked to the increased use of hops in brewing. e. During the Middle Ages. however. Iron and butter were Swedish export articles. Sources The major part of the price quotations are from the province of Uppland. at least from the late 14th century. besides hops in the late Middle Ages. A third.4. but in foreign trade it was rather marginal. About seven litres of beer per person was consumed at the annual May feast in Stockholm City Hall in the 1460s. Salt is the only good that was always imported.8. which included Stockholm. . Currently. making for a more tasteful and durable beer. the City bought considerable amounts of beer to be consumed on festive occasions.. Stockholm. col. and Morell (1988. .647 kg. The 18 lispund barrel is documented from southern Sweden. prices are usually given per ship pound (skeppund = 20 lispund). The weight of the medieval ship pound is not known for certain but was probably about 133 kg. prices. 544). a few prices are recorded in the provincial laws. mainly in connection with various fines.8 kg of silver (below). Morell (1988. p. This constitutes a problem. a dead person’s relatives could demand the following payments for manslaughter: . 1277–2008 From an exhibition at the Museum of National Antiquities. with land transactions or the bequeathing of property.12 For butter and wax. one barrel is assumed to comprise 117.14 The use of the 13 (or 13½) lispund barrel seems to have been limited to West Sweden.2.13 Butter prices could also be given per barrel.422 Exchange rates.Free Gotlander – 4. which is the weight known from the 16th century.15 12 13 14 15 Sahlgren (1981. Tariffs generally aimed at lowering market prices during dearth. Dovring (1947. These prices seem to conform well to outright market prices. one of 16 and one of 18 lispund. col. p. Hammarström (1956. The lispund is assumed to equal 6. p. No Swedish market price notations for consumer goods exist before 1290. However.Free non-Gotlander – 2 kg of silver (middle) . For copper. and Jansson (1995. Price tariffs set by the authorities are not used in this study. prices are often given per lispund.4. 58). p. 204). 8. which is the weight known from the 16th century. and wages. 33). p. and it is not known to what extent such maximum prices were followed. 10 and 46).5 litres. Jansson (1981. whereas the 16 lispund barrel was commonly used in Uppland and other parts of East Sweden. pp. Units of measurement For beer. since there were at least three barrels in use in the butter trade: one of 13 (or 13½).Slave – 225 grams of silver (above) . 380 n 20). 10). 274). and Morell (1988. According to the Gutalag from the early 13th century. Silver prices As mentioned above. The calculation of the silver price of the various goods is based on these exchange rates. which express prices in grams of silver per modern metric weight or volume unit.040 kg. Nationalencyklopedin. prices are usually given per barrel. The gross weight of the silver mark is here. 132).6 grams of silver. the price of an ox was 3 mark penningar. Prices refer to cut pieces of iron (osmonds).20 8. the iron last would correspond to about 2. although the fine silver content was somewhat lower (assumed in Chapter 3 to be between 184 and 197 grams). For the period after 1450 it is not completely clear whether some of the prices were expressed in mark penningar or mark danska.0. the exchange rate of mark penningar to the silver mark was 5. The fine silver content of the Swedish mark was gradually reduced during the Middle Ages.19 Consequently a barrel of salt is assumed to amount to 99. For that year 16 17 18 19 20 Jansson (1981.4.4. followed by recoinage. as in previous research. which was not introduced until after the medieval period. col. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474-1483 (p. One example: in 1346. It is particularly during periods of debasement. The weight of the medieval fat is not known for certain but is generally assumed to have been about 170 kg. Throughout the Middle Ages the following relations were defined in the monetary system (see also Chapter 3): 1 mark penningar = 8 öre = 24 örtug = 192 penningar. Morell (1988).18 The lispund is assumed to equal 6. since the latter method could completely miss price increases caused by such debasements. Nominal prices Prices are expressed in the nominal currency. equal to ¾ mark penningar (see Chapter 3). 8. that interpolating missing values using silver prices is preferable to interpolating such values based on nominal prices.4.17 Hence. which is discussed further in Chapter 3. prices are usually given per last or fat (1 last = 12 fat). mark penningar (which during the late Middle Ages commonly was labelled mark örtug). People were aware of this and therefore often specified the exchange ratio between the currency actually used and the stable silver mark (mark lödig) that was to be applied in each particular economic transaction. not to bar iron. article ‘Fat’. one last is assumed to equal 45 hectolitres. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 423 For grain. assumed to be 210.8. At the same time.16 For iron. the interpolation of missing values is based on so-called silver prices. For salt. The salt barrel is assumed to equal 15 lispund according to a regulation from 1478.647 kg.3. Silver prices also facilitate comparisons with international prices. .7 kg. 183). 2).00 11. 8.00 30.37 3. For the period 1290–1420. och Söderberg (1991). one mark penningar was exchanged for 197/5 ≈ 39 grams of fine silver.00 Iron Copper Oxen Wax Salt Hops Sum 100 100 100 8. For the period 1420–1539 ten commodities are covered: grain. and wages.77 22. there are indications of two debasement cycles following the Black Death. copper.00 Beer Butter 23. wax.00 5.00 5. copper and oxen. for a further discussion on the budget composition in the 16th century. Possible high inflation in the 1350s and 1360s Periods of high inflation caused by debasement cycles are reliably documented from the 16th century onwards. For 1330–1420 the price index is based on seven commodities: grain.71 30. salt and hops. Table 8. Period 1290–1330 1330–1420 1420–1539 Grain Rye 46. For the period 1420–1539. Thus. butter. but here we assume that the price of beer was largely determined by the price of rye and grain. rye. The weight for non-food products is only 12 per cent. rye. The weights (in per cent) in the present study for calculating the CPI in 1290– 1539. grain and beer weigh most heavily (55 per cent).00 3. prices.21 The five per cent weight given to beer may seem rather small.62 5.4. The relative weights for earlier periods are the same as for 1420–1539 (see Table 8.74 6. since vegetable products were the most important part of consumption. roughly in 1351–4 and 1361–4. With the exception of 1445. The annual fluctuations of the CPI in the period 1420–1539 should be interpreted with caution. price data exist for at least one commodity in every year of this period.5.08 16.6.00 3. 1330–1420 and 1420–1539 (see Table 8.2.15 33. Andersson Palm.424 Exchange rates. not of annual fluctuations.4. Index construction The index is constructed differently for each of the periods 1290–1330. oxen. as discussed fur21 See Jansson.00 6. with the difference that some commodities are missing. Animal products (butter and oxen) are assumed to have accounted for 25 per cent of the total budget. Prior to that. the CPI is an indicator. For 1290–1330 the index is mainly based on the price of grain. complemented with some annual data on the price of butter.85 15. since not all years could be covered. but rather of the long-term trend. The silver price of this ox of 3 mark penningar then equals (3/5)*197 ≈ 118 grams of fine silver. bear. iron.47 20. . butter.00 3. iron. 1277–2008 the fine silver content of the silver mark was 197 grams according to Chapter 3.2).24 10. rye. bear. 22 Franzén (2006. This was 100 per cent above the price in 1366–67 and five times the price in 1333. which is discussed further in Chapter 3. This price index has been improved by Johan Söderberg.4. suggesting an inflation rate of more than 1000 per cent if prices followed debasement. 8. respectively. . which favours the hypothesis that the klipping coins were. The fine silver content of the debased penning coins was less than 1/5 and 1/10. 388). The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 425 ther in Chapter 3. p. In this study it is therefore assumed that 1 new mark = 50/19. the main coins in circulation. better coins dominated trade instead.8. not only for foreign products but also for domestic ones. this is the basis for calculating the difference between the deflator index and the inflation index for this period.24 As discussed in Chapter 3.7. but returned as means of payment from 1524 onwards. p.22 Prices are missing for several years. The high-inflation period of 1521–23 In 1521–23 Christian II and Gustav Eriksson (Vasa) minted so called klipping coins with a very low silver content compared to their nominal value. circulated substantially above their intrinsic metal value.e.25/50) of their nominal value in proper coins. It may be suspected that the debased coins were exchanged for newer. the exchange rates of mark lödig in proper and klipping coins.23 For foreign trade there are many examples of foreign coins being used as means of payment. According to Ingrid Hammarström.25 old marks. It is not completely clear how common the klipping coins were in trade in these years. better coins at a significant discount. which cost 50 mark penningar per ship pound.5. In this study it is assumed (as in Chapter 3) that the debased coins were devalued by two thirds in 1354 and by half in 1364. The older coins were probably hoarded and taken out of circulation in those years. The only price data that exist to support the hypothesis of high inflation is a price notation for copper in 1361. but this was also common during periods of low inflation. prices increased many times over in 1522 and 1523. The period 1539–1732 Eli Heckscher has constructed a price index for Sweden for the period 1540–1620 based on Stockholm prices. respectively. although the debased coins may also have functioned as token coins. However. p. 8. in fact. or whether the older. 51). which is the basis for calculating the difference between the deflator index and the inflation index for this period. i. 870). pp. 77 and 232). 24 Hammarström (1956. of the fine silver content of previously minted penning coins (minted in 1332–50). suggests that the klipping coins were worth less than half (19. in early 1524 the klipping coin was devalued by one third. and Thordeman (1936. 23 Hildebrand (1983. 1277–2008 with additional data. (1991) is the accounts of the Town Council of Stockholm. Substantial quantities were traded on the market. From 1650 the main source in Jansson et al. The prices in Jansson et al. prices. the price of rye in the accounts of Crown trade at Stockholm (the ‘handling’) was. For the years when rye and barley prices are missing. och Söderberg (1991). The price index for the period 1719–32 is based on data presented in Fregert and Gustafsson (2005). Slottsarkivet). 28 The price of barley was somewhat lower than the price of rye and therefore also somewhat lower than the price of grain (‘spannmål’).27 These are barley prices from Uppland. The citizens of Stockholm most probably had to pay higher prices for their daily needs but in this context it is important that the sources are of the same character throughout the period. Also the Church accounts (for example. The main source for prices of building materials in Jansson et al. This material provides information about the purchases in cash of various commodities. (1991) have been collected from various accounts. This material contains detailed descriptions of the building works initiated by the Town Council and the wages of various building workers. The most important source for food prices during the first half of the 17th century is the accounts of Stockholm Castle.28 25 Söderberg (2002) and Jansson.26 Price scales set by the authorities have not been used. (1991) draw on the grain prices presented by Hegardt for the sales of Uppsala Academy in Stockholm. See also Söderberg (1987). which in turn are based on Stockholm prices in Jansson et al. However. This type of price generally referred to rye and barley in equal amounts. (1991) is the food prices on the accounts of the orphanage of Stockholm (Allmänna barnhuset). The grain price for the period 1600–27 is the average of the prices of rye and barley. which consisted of half rye and half barley. see Sandström (1983) and Ericson (1988). One difference for the period 1539–1620 is that the price of rye has been changed from the consumption year to the harvest year (which is the practice internationally). the price of grain (spannmål) has been used. . those of Storkyrkoförsamlingen and the German Church) provide information on prices of building materials as well as wages. and the price data are therefore to be seen as producer prices. The accounts of Danviken Hospital provide some complementary information. Söderberg has constructed a Laspeyres-type cost-of-living index for Stockholm for the period 1539–1719. Jansson et al. although the proportion could have shifted somewhat over time. the price difference between barley and grain was most probably not so large that a systematic distortion would arise when the price series of grain (‘spannmål’) up to 1635 is linked to Hegardt’s barley price thereafter. since they cannot be assumed to reflect market prices. 27 Hegardt (1975). 26 On the accounts of the Town Council of Stockholm during the first decades of the 17th century. as well as deliveries in kind from the castles and counties. 15 per cent above the price of barley. In 1600–20. and wages.426 Exchange rates. For the period 1635–1719.25 This is the basis of the present CPI. (1991). Andersson Palm. most importantly those of the Town Council of Stockholm and of Stockholm Castle. on average. Cloth prices are gathered from the accounts of Stockholm Castle (klädkammaren. . The Nordic people to the left offer flour. Processing barley Foreign wines Drawings by Olaus Magnus. axes. butter. dried pike fish. arrows. The Russians to the right offer skins. knives. and cloth. scissors. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 427 Beer brewing Exchange without money. and bows.8. the assumption in Jansson et al. which was used to weigh butter and meat.8 per cent below the prices in Kungsåra. the price level in the Kungsåra accounts was somewhat above the price level of the sales of Uppsala Academy in Stockholm. In 1634 the pound was increased to 8. Some quotations that exist for Stockholm for those years do not seem to differ significantly from the calculated prices based on Kungsåra accounts.5 litres is assumed to have been in use until 1570. 36). Here.6 litres. but some corrections have been made to the series by Kurt Ågren (1964. (1991) makes the same assumption as Hannerberg and Morell that the Royal decree on weights and measurement in 1605 did not entail any change in the barrel used in the Mälardalen region. In 1575 a recoinage took place and one new mark was exchanged for 6. 202). measures and weights in 1638. For weights and measures. Hence.1. (1991). Jansson et al.04 kg to 8. 1277–2008 Certain lacunae in the accounts make the source material more problematic for some of the years before 1635. pp. (1991) is that the grain barrel was not changed in Mälardalen by the decision on targets.428 Exchange rates.43 kg and in 1665 to 8. 30 As in Hegardt (1975. prices. (1991) the prices are transformed to the measures and weights that were valid from 1665 onwards. 8. (1991) (with corrections by Kurt Ågren). it had grown further to 146. The series was used by Heckscher. The medieval grain barrel of 117. tallow and meat. The barrel was further changed to 156 litres in 1665 and to 165 litres in 1739. The high-inflation period 1561–76 In the period 1560–75 the mark coin was debased continually. By 1600. See Hannerberg (1946. p. To correct for this difference in price levels in Västmanland and Stockholm. (1991) follows Mats Morell in the case of the pound as well as the fish barrel. information about changes is often lacking. The assumption in Jansson et al. (1991) assumes that the barrel for lime and tar was increased by the same amount in 1665.30 The pound. p. using a linear interpolation from 1570. 25 onwards) after checking the original accounts.31 kg in 1605. In Jansson et al. the barrel in which salted commodities and fish were measured was changed in 1665. 25 onwards).29 This series starts in 1624 and continues for a very long period. p.5 to 125. Jansson et al. It is likely that the so-called old Stockholm barrel of 146. the Kungsåra prices for the period 1628–34 have been reduced by this difference in Jansson et al.5 marks 29 von Schwerin (1903. The fish barrel (the same as the salt and flour barrel) was increased from 117. the following assumptions concern the grain barrel in Stockholm. 423). Grain prices in the years around 1630 are not available for Stockholm. pp.31 Prices have been interpolated for the years when direct data are missing. and wages. For the period 1635–49. 31 Morell (1988). . Hegardt’s prices are 7. when it increased to 127 litres.5. The pound used as measure for commodities such as butter. as discussed further in Chapter 4. so the price series of Kungsåra Church in Västmanland county are used instead in Jansson et al.6 litres continued to be used throughout the first half of the 17th century.6 litres. especially before 1600.5 kg. Furthermore. which caused substantial price increases. was according to Morell changed from 6. and Morell (1988. also increased on several occasions. The high-inflation period 1590–93 In the final years of the reign of Johan III (d. The effect of debasement on prices came with a time lag. which would suggest that the debased coins were accepted at their face value and did not cause any substantial inflation.8. the deflator index is adjusted according to the exchange rate of the silver daler in the period 1589–92 (see Chapter 4) while the relation 1 new mark = 4 old marks is assumed for 1593. In 1719 the value of the coin tokens was reduced by 50 per cent. 8. often displays a surprising stability in the early 1590s. To calculate an inflation index.32 which is the basis for estimating the inflation index from the deflator index. for example the accounts of Crown trade (Handlingsräkenskaperna) that form the basis for the deflator index. . but it does not show the expected upward trend. 1592). the ratio of the deflator index in 1576 to 1575 is multiplied by the factor 6. the value of the Swedish mark deteriorated rapidly and the rampant inflation caused much confusion. followed by an 80 per cent decrease in 1576.5. and the worst one-mark coins were reduced to ¼ of their face value. To calculate the inflation index from the deflator index in the period 1589–93. 23). The price material.5. As discussed in Chapter 4. The inflation period 1715–19 Another period of high inflation occurred in 1715–19. 32 Wallroth (1918.5. p. at the end of this period prices did rise significantly. Between 1589 and 1593 the inflation index increased by 291 per cent. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 429 minted 1571–74. The deflator index shows a high figure in both 1574 and 1575. for that year it is therefore assumed here that 1 daler silvermynt in token coins = ½ daler silvermynt in proper money. In this study it is therefore assumed that 1 new mark = 4 old marks.2. it was not until 1592 that the debasement had a significant impact on prices and exchange rates. In 1593 and 1594 the debased coins were exchanged for new coins. as discussed in more detail in Chapter 4. Exactly which currency the CPI follows is not completely clear. Although initially the coin tokens did not cause any large price increase. Thus the deflator index does not show any increase in the recorded price level (it actually indicates a slight fall). based on the exchange rate between new and old marks.3. Thus the deflator index partly conceals the inflation of 1592. as a consequence of the circulation of token coins. 8. This would imply that the prices were still expressed in the old currency in 1575. as discussed further in Chapter 4. but it was in that year that a recoinage took place and prices were reported in the new coins. prices in proper coins. . the last emergency coin. the assumption here is that the ratio of prices in tokens coins to prices in proper coins was 1. prices. Photo: The Royal Coin Cabinet. the equivalent in 1716 of an unskilled labourer’s wage for two days’ work in Stockholm. Stockholm. and wages. Since regulations depressed prices in token coins in Stockholm.5 in 1718 and 2 in 1719 (end-of-year figures).6. Andersson Palm.33 while the prices of other products are probably in token coins. The price of rye is based on proper coins. 34 Statistiska centralbyrån (2005).24 in 1717. A number of supplements can be made to this index in the light of new price data that have been produced by various researchers. A variety of consumer price indices for the 18th century are presented in Jörberg 33 The price of rye for Stockholm in Jansson. 1.430 Exchange rates. One question is whether the prices on which the deflator index is based are in proper coins or in token coins. ‘Hoppet’ (The Hope). 1. which involves setting the exchange rate between the two types of currency (see Chapter 4). och Söderberg (1991) is based on the sales of Uppsala Akademi in Stockholm in proper coins. The latter series can be found in Hegardt (1975). To transform the deflator index into the inflation index.06 in 1716. In order to calculate an inflation index for 1717 and 1718 it is necessary to estimate the price level in token coins and in proper coins. in fact. minted in 1719.34 However. 1277–2008 The emergency coins that were minted towards the end of the Great Nordic Wars circulated at the nominal value of 1 daler silvermynt. The period 1732–1914 Gunnar Myrdal’s (1933) annual cost of living index extends back to 1830 and is still used by Statistics Sweden. the assumption in this study is that the basis for the deflator index was. Myrdal’s index must be regarded as somewhat dated. which in that year was equivalent to an unskilled labourer’s wage in Stockholm for only 45 minutes’ work. 8. circulated at the nominal value of 2 öre silvermynt. Source: Nordiska museet. the new CPI includes goods such as potatoes. The differences between the new CPI and Jörberg’s index are negligible from 1732 up to about 1870. by an unknown artist. This is due to the differences in the composition of index weights. which are missing in Jörberg’s index.1 compares the present Consumer Price Index with Jörberg’s for 1732– 1914 and Myrdal’s for 1830–1914. For the period 1865–1914 lighting is not included in Jörberg’s index.35 Figure 8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 431 A Stockholm Market in 1750. . supplemented with data on salt published in Stefan Carlén (1997) and price indices of various industrial products presented by Lennart Schön (1988). For the period 1870–1914. gas and coke.3). coffee. Different weights apply to each of the periods 1732–82. 1830–70 and 1870–1913 (see Table 8. the new CPI does not increase as much as Jörberg’s index. the differences with the new index are quite small. and to fit the patterns of consumption according to historical national accounts. sugar. The weights have been adjusted in accordance with earlier studies by Gunnar Myrdal and Lennart Jörberg. After that year.8. Compared to Myrdal’s index for the period 1830–1914. The new index thus includes more industrial goods and imported goods. whereas the new index includes goods that reflect this cost (rape oil and tallow candles). 1782–1830. which tended to become relatively cheaper in the decades after 1870. For the period 1732–1914 the present CPI is based on data in Jörberg (1972) and Myrdal (1933). (1972) and Åmark (1921). 35 Edvinsson (2005). Jörberg (1972) and Myrdal (1933).1. . prices. 1732– 1914 (1850 = 100). The present Consumer Price Index compared to Jörberg’s and Myrdal’s. and wages.1. 200 180 160 Index 1850 = 100 140 120 100 80 60 40 20 0 1730 1750 1770 1790 1810 1830 1850 1870 1890 1910 Index Jörberg Index Myrdal New CPI Sources: Table A8.432 Exchange rates. Source: Östergötlands Länsmuseum. 1277–2008 Market Day in Linköping in 1891. Figure 8. 1732–82 Rye Barley Wheat Oats Hard ryebread Coffee Sugar Salt Potatoes Peas Beef Pork Butter Milk Cheese Eggs Baltic herring Dried fish Birch wood Pine wood Charcoal Gas Coke Tallow Rape oil Tallow candles Linen Coarse cloth Tanned cow hides Pig iron Bar iron Bricks Tar Sum 6 6 1.2 0.65 6 6 1.25 3 3 1 1. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 433 Table 8.5 100 2.75 21 7.5 1 0.5 6.72 0.88 15.2 2.72 2.25 4.5 0.8 4.8 1.1 1.25 3 3 1 2.7 2.7 0.4 0.4 7.5 1.8 0.44 0.5 1830–70 14.32 1.88 2.5 100 2.25 2.2 0.1 2.3 1 0.5 2.5 6.16 2.48 2.5 6. CPI weights (in per cent) in the present study.2 4.75 0.9 2.16 4.5 0.44 0.4 5.75 2.5 100 1.65 0.8 1.75 2.75 2.6 2.32 6.5 0.72 2.5 1782–1830 21 7.72 0.75 18.25 2.8 4.8.16 4.5 0.5 0.5 100 1 0.25 4.25 4. 1732–1914.25 4.4 2.12 1.5 1 0.16 3 3 1 1870–1913 9.4 1 1 1.1 2 2 1 1 1 1 .9 12.5 7 7 1.3.5 1 1 1.8 6.6 9.7 0.75 0.75 18.5 0.5 2. Bouvin (1933. municipalities and important industrial districts. 1277–2008 8. Socialstyrelsen (1961. the new weights were based on the budget inquiry of 1923. which recommended a chain index of Edgeworth’s type. 15th of July and 15th of October. but rather in towns. In 1932 a revision was made. The first official cost-of-living index was calculated from July 1914 and onwards. the CPI is the same as the index presented by Statistics Sweden. Kungl. Bouvin (1933. From 1918 the cost-of-living index was calculated four times a year. p. Socialstyrelsen (1961. 2). Kungl. April. implying that the price increase was underestimated. but only for foodstuffs and fuel and lighting. the cost-of-living in the period 1932–43 was strictly speaking not a Laspeyres price index. The quotations did not reflect prices in purely rural districts with agricultural production. Regional coverage was fairly wide. 160). 15th of March.e.42 When Sweden left the gold standard in September 1931. p.36 The main concern was to represent the conditions of the life of the less well-to-do and it was therefore not a general CPI. 92). For example. when it was replaced by the monthly CPI. July and October and the prices referred to the 15th of the last month of each quarter. the cost-of-living index was seen as a not entirely satisfactory measure of changes in retail prices.39 In 1943 a major revision was made to the cost-of-living index based on the findings of a Commission in 1943. In the period 1914–31. .41 One problem for the cost-of-living index arose during the World Wars. p. i.434 Exchange rates. 268). prices. 158). The period 1914–2008 For the period after 1914. This explains 36 37 38 39 40 41 42 Bouvin (1933). From September 1916 monthly indices were also calculated. p. The Edgeworth price index is a basket index (Lowe index) whose quantities are the arithmetic average of the quantities in two periods. on about the 1st of January. (2004. ILO and others. pp. During this period the cost-of-living index could therefore be considered to be of a Laspeyres type. This index continued on a quarterly basis up to 1954. it was feared that this would lead to price increases.38 The budget inquiry of 1923 was broader and also included some middle social layers. See ILO and others. but rather a Lowe price index. Taxes were also included but are easily eliminated to obtain an index without taxes. the quantities of the cost-of-living index were based on a budget enquiry in 1913–1437 which happened to coincide with the price reference period (July 1914). while the price reference period was shifted to 1931.7. Since the weight reference period was not the same as the price reference period. 101–4). during the First World War the deterioration in the quality of clothes was not taken into consideration. p. In 1939 a revision was made based on the budget enquiry of 1933. 15th of December.40 The revision of the household budget was to be made every December. and wages. (2004. Because of its special character. pp.12. 25 and 84–5). The formula used by the Riksbank in 1931–7 was adopted for the cost-of-living index from 1943 onwards. in the period 1931–48 with the aim of obtaining an index that reflected price changes for the whole of private consumption. 44 Kungl.45 Chaining was based on a long-term index.12 qit (2) 43 Kungl. its name was changed to the General CPI of the Social Welfare Board and there was a return to the arithmetic formula. The quantities used were in principle an average of the two periods compared. 104–6). It was calculated as follows: pit.8. 104–6). Socialstyrelsen (1961. not just consumption by a specific type of household. 18–9). . fruit and vegetables by replacing the monthly price by the average of prices in the previous 12 months. (1949. the index was taken over by the Social Welfare Board. This index replaced the other indices. pp. not to the monthly Riksbank index. The CPI was linked to the cost-of-living index. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 435 why the Riksbank constructed a monthly price index. in spite of the fact that the Riksbank index was more similar to the construction of the CPI. 45 Kungl. Socialstyrelsen (1961. but from 1937 this was replaced by the geometric formula of a Törnqvist price index type.12 qit Lt. Sveriges Riksbank. which estimated the change from December in the previous year to December in the present year.12 = t-1 i i pit-1. eggs. 107). In 1949. (1949. The Törnqvist price index is a weighted geometric average of price relatives using the arithmetic average of the expenditure shares in two periods. The choice was made because the cost-ofliving index had a more official character. The fictive lower-income family was dropped and the index came to be a measure of price changes generally for the whole of private consumption. when several goods disappeared from the market. pp. 21*–30*). which estimated the change from December in the previous year to the month in question in the present year. Socialstyrelsen (1961.44 The present official monthly CPI has been published by Statistics Sweden since June 1954. and was of an Edgeworth type. called a consumption price index. 46 Statistiska centralbyrån (2001. p. pp. and Sveriges Riksbank.46 The long-term index (L) used the weights for the present year. and a short-term index. this price index had the advantage that its weights were changed more frequently. pp. Besides being monthly. This was an advantage particularly during the Second World War. Seasonal fluctuations were eliminated for potatoes. This followed the recommendation of the Commission in 1943.43 In 1931–7 the Riksbank’s consumption price index applied an arithmetic formula of the price index type. The method of changing weights annually was also applied to the cost-of-living index on the recommendation of the Commission from 1943. 5 per cent per year. A short overview Figure 8. The scale is logarithmic.12 qit-1 (3) From January 2005 Statistics Sweden has changed its method once again. a so-called shadow index is computed with corrections for these mistakes.8. The computations are made in two steps. and was of a Laspeyres type. the price level of one month is compared to the price level two years earlier using that year’s quantities. It was calculated as follows: pit.12 = i i pit-1.e. in that case the Laspeyres formula is used.2 I t.m r t 2 i pk. and wages.i qk-1. applying an annual chain index.m qit. or. The long-term chaining is no longer made from December to December. .2 i (4) k r 1 One problem with Statistics Sweden’s officially produced CPI is that it is legally fixed and cannot be changed.e. Figure 8. i. Therefore. six such mistakes were corrected in the shadow index. Statistics Sweden also produces other consumer-type price indices that are not considered here. by 2.48 For its historical CPI series. 48 Statistiska centralbyrån (2001.m qit-1 K t. prices.i pk-1. even though errors are sometimes detected later. Statistics Sweden seems to use the shadow index rather than the legally fixed CPI. p.m t-1. 72).2 qit. 8.436 Exchange rates. Hence.i qk-1. to calculate the price level of month m in year t in the price level of year r the following formula would be used (r > 2003. 1277–2008 The short term index (K) used the weights of the previous year. However. to estimate a monthly index. Between 1290 and 2008 the price level increased by a factor of 55 million. 47 Statistiska centralbyrån (2004) and Statistiska centralbyrån (2006. i. which can be compared to the Riksbank’s present inflation target of two per cent per annum. since Statistics Sweden used another method up to 2004): pit. 0 = t-1).i qk.2 shows that there is a secular pattern of inflation demarcated by international events such as major wars. on average. 61). p. but from one whole year to another using the Walsh formula (where the price reference period is the previous year.i qk.i i = i pit.47 The Walsh price index is a basket index (Lowe index) whose quantities are the geometric average of the quantities in the two periods. In the period 1980–2000.2 presents the deflator index and the inflation index for the period 1290– 2008. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 437 Figure 8. The highest inflation rate can be recorded for the 16th century. from the 16th century to today.1. the deflator index and the inflation index.8 per cent in 1633–1715. 3.5 per cent in 1812–1914 and 1. and the period from the early 1990s onwards were accompanied by stability of prices. the recent low inflation is combined with a fiat standard. despite the presence of a commodity standard at the time (see Chapter 2). Interestingly. not the 20th.1 0. the 17th and 19th centuries. finds a similar pattern of the secular movement of prices as in Sweden. 0. inflation under commodity money is well known.000 1.0001 0.00001 1300 1400 1500 Deflator index 1600 1700 1800 1900 2000 Inflation index Source: Table A8. The high inflation in the 18th and 20th centuries was caused by the circulation of fiat monies. High inflation typified the 1350s and 1360s.01 0.8. 6. Ola Grytten.5 per cent in 1715–1812 and 4. .49 49 Grytten (2004. If the relative price of bullion does not change considerably.04 per cent in 1364–1518.7 per cent in 1914–91. who presents a CPI for Norway back to 1516.1 per cent in 1290–1351. 73–4). pp. Most of the Middle Ages. 18th and 20th centuries.2 The two CPIs. and the 16th. 10. 0. The average annual rate of inflation was 18 per cent in 1351–64. While the price stability in earlier periods was connected with the prevalent commodity standards.7 per cent in 1991–2008.3 per cent in 1518–1633. The average annual rate of inflation was 0. commodity money should be accompanied by price stability.001 0. 0. Nevertheless.000 100 10 1 0. 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100). respectively. deflated by the CPI deflator index.9.1. 1277–2008 The Dannemora Iron Mine in Uppland. by Elias Martin (1739–1818). Iron and grain prices Figure 8. The CPI at work It is time for some illustrations of the potential usefulness of the new CPI.3 presents the evolution of the price of iron in Stockholm. but from 1540 onwards they pertain to bar iron (the two series have been linked at .438 Exchange rates. prices. in the very long term. Deflating the price of an item by the CPI could be interpreted as a calculation of that item’s real price. 8. relating to iron and grain prices. and land prices. 8. A further example concerning the real wage is given in Chapter 9. Below we briefly present two applications. The medieval prices refer to osmond iron. and wages. since such a series shows how much the item could buy in terms of goods and services constituting the CPI.9. 1. 1291– 2007 (index 1580–99 = 100). From the latter 14th century up to the First World War. roughly follows an inverted U-shaped curve. stagnated during the 17th century. with the 16th and 18th centuries as growth periods. Bar iron was a more refined product which cost about twice as much per weight unit as osmond iron. England. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 439 Figure 8. exports were largely constant for half a century up to about 1780. on the other hand. For the first time. The real price of grains.3: Prices of iron and grains in Sweden deflated by the CPI deflator index. In the first half of the 19th century. there were long periods when per capita harvests rose. climbed again and peaked during the latter decades of the 18th century. technological progress and economies of scale was the main factors behind the long-term decline in the relative price of iron. the upward shift in the deflated price curve around 1720 is probably due to the Swedish authorities’ deliberate attempts to hold back output and limit the supply of exported iron in the hope that this would raise the price in the major market. something decisive happened.8. the real price of iron was reduced by a factor of ten. The relative price of grain began to drop. These trends conform to the trends in population.000 100 10 1300 1400 1500 Iron 1600 1700 Grains 1800 1900 2000 Source: See the main text. however. the reduction of the deflated price proceeded at a fairly constant rate up to the early 18th century. As a result. The real price of grains rose during the late Middle Ages and the 16th century. However. These price relations capture the fundamental production problems of pre-indus- . Instead. Presumably. It is striking that this decline in the real price of iron did not accelerate in the early modern era. despite a growing demand for iron in the world market. when the real price rose. that year). The fall in the relative price of grains has continued until very recently. primarily in the province of Uppland. and in some periods multiple currencies were used at a floating exchange rate relative to each . the changes were dramatic and rapid. The basic advantage of the CPI presented in this chapter is that it allows the linking of medieval price data to those of more recent periods. prices. since population growth was probably substantial during the 16th century as a whole. Constructing an index that covers more than seven centuries poses conceptual as well as empirical problems. Agricultural per capita growth came late.440 Exchange rates. Land purchases had to be registered in the local court. An exception is the recent pioneering study by Bo Franzén (2006). land prices in Sweden have not been studied extensively.10. 8. making possible an extended analysis of Swedish prices in a European and global context. The longevity of the decline may be explained by restrictions on the land market. It is clear from these data that the decline continued throughout most of the 16th century. This also opens up for broader international comparisons. Summary and conclusions The purpose of this chapter is to present a CPI for Sweden for the period 1290– 2008. Land prices Even though land was one of the most important commodities in the pre-industrial economy. It makes it possible to estimate the inflation rate during various periods and to compare the price level in one year with the price level in an earlier year. For example. the currency unit was changed on numerous occasions. Signs of a reversal occur at the very end of the series. Figure 8. forcing the seller to offer the land to his or her relatives before selling to anybody else. The long-term decline in this relative price is notable.4 presents results from a pilot study of land prices. however. 8. though this is an upsurge from a historically extremely low level of the relative price of grain. Previous research has observed that the relative price of land dropped after the Black Death. which sometimes applied fixed prices per land that were considerably below prices in the unrestricted market. presenting the evolution of land prices for part of the medieval era up to 1370. 1277–2008 trial society.9. deflated by the CPI deflator index. from 1294 to 1651. The index is linked up with the present CPI published by Statistics Sweden. It is based on 605 land sales. and this large but relatively immobile sector dominated the economy for centuries. Once agriculture began to industrialize.2. and wages. and that the relative price of land did not turn upwards until after about 1580. During the second half of the 20th century. the drop in the real price of grains was much larger than for iron. This may at first sight seem surprising. It raises many more questions than do modern type consumer price indices. 8. 10. the currency deteriorated and was later replaced by a stronger currency at a reduced value.4. 1361–4. that one öresland was not a large landholding. however. p. 1590–3 and 1715–9. 1521–4. daler kopparmynt 1624–1776. riksdaler riksgälds 1789–1855. specie riksdaler 1776–89. The chapter presents two different CPIs: a deflator index and an inflation index. Land prices per öresland in East Sweden.000 100 10 1 1260 1300 1340 1380 1420 1460 1500 1540 1580 1620 1660 Sources: Table A8. deflated by the CPI (1500 = 100). no exact translation can be made into modern measurements. Dovring (1947. These units aimed at capturing the yield of a farming unit rather than measuring its area. During so-called debasement cycles. other. when inflation money was circulated and was later replaced by a more stable currency. Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven. vol 1 and 2 (1866–1868). The öresland was part of the medieval and early modern land measurement system in East Sweden. 1294–1651.000 1. riksdaler riksmynt 1855–73. 31) estimates the median size of the markland at about 14 hectares by the mid-16th century. the inflation coins could . Uppländska domböcker (1925–1956). The deflator index follows the main currency unit through time. Svenska riksarchivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351. The inflation index is constructed to take into consideration times of very high inflation.1. 1561–6. 1–9. vol. The deflator index is an index of prices expressed in the main Swedish currency unit: 1 SEK = 72 marks. There are different ways of constructing a price index under such circumstances. Therefore. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 441 Figure 8. and krona for the period 1873 onwards. mark for the period 1290–1624. It is clear. in which 1 markland = 8 öresland = 24 örtugland. Sjuhundra härads domböcker 1601–1651 (1984). At the end of these inflation periods. The normal size of the öresland would then be slightly less than 2 hectares. Note. This occurred in six periods: 1351–4. In Chapter 9 it is shown that real wage rates even declined between the 15th and the early 19th centuries. the relative price of grain either increased or stagnated before the industrial revolution. On the other hand. by 75 per cent in 1593 and by 50 per cent in 1719. before the industrial revolution this sector was too small to generate substantial increases in the living standards of a majority of the population. The iron industry shows that there was a dynamic sector in the pre-industrial period that could achieve significant advances in productivity. and this large but relatively immobile sector dominated the pre-industrial economy. by 11/13 in 1576. Agricultural per capita growth came first in the 19th century. some long-term economic trends can be analysed. The chapter also presents some examples of how our CPI could be used. better currency must be viewed as two different currencies (going under the same name). Under such assumptions the old. . and wages. only slightly above the Riksbank’s present inflation target. Our study finds that the relative price of iron declined significantly from the latter 14th century to the early 18th century. by 61. This study finds that in the period 1290–2008 the average annual rate of Swedish inflation was 2. they have been converted into prices in inflation coins by using the exchange rate between these coins. whereas the deflator index does not. 17th and 19th centuries were characterised by relative price stability. by 50 per cent in 1364. which usually is the weaker one. The inflation index takes into account that the inflation coins were devalued by two thirds in 1354. the 15th. This chapter argues that if the purpose is to measure the rate of inflation over longer time spans. There was also a clear secular movement in prices. Whether the 21st century will once again mark the return of price stability is an open question. which our inflation index takes into account. By deflating various relative prices by the CPI.5 per cent in 1524. prices. 18th and 20th centuries saw high rates of inflation. debased currency. 1277–2008 be exchanged for the new coins. When prices were expressed in proper coins.442 Exchange rates. These price relations capture the fundamental production problems of preindustrial society. 16th. While the 14th. a price index should be measured in the currency most in use.5 per cent. However. albeit at a much lower rate than was nominally assigned to the inflation coins. and the new. 0669 0.000071 0.0553 0.000422 0.000083 0.1548 0.0676 0.000081 0.000518 0.000087 0.0797 0.0708 0.1230 0.0777 0.0607 0.0865 0.0730 0.000063 0.0445 0.000205 0.0602 0.000079 0.000077 0.000469 0.0651 0.000088 0.000045 0.0575 0.000221 0.0819 0.000462 0.0707 0.000527 0.000445 0.0729 0.0653 0.000509 0.000453 0.000087 0.000221 0.000943 0.0753 0.0651 0.0719 0.000077 0.000087 0.0771 0.1.0703 0.0725 Inflation index 0.0596 0.0637 0.000705 0.000226 0.0610 0.2737 0.000065 0.0650 0.1274 0.0572 0.0368 0.000461 0.000482 0.0641 0.0710 0.0596 0.000482 0.0584 0.0845 0.000086 0.000086 0.0570 0.0699 0.000090 0.000091 0.0703 0.000532 0.0656 0.000483 0.000482 0.0741 0.000098 0.0608 0.0797 0.0561 0.1831 0.000068 0.000448 0.000448 0.000083 0.0746 0.8.000075 0.0465 0.000157 0.000055 0.000534 0.0633 0. The two Consumer Price Indices.000482 0.000083 0.000090 0.000090 0.0707 0.000080 0.0601 0.0953 0.0652 0.000064 0.0954 0.0569 0.0837 0.0628 0.0648 0.000069 0.000526 Year 1380 1381 1382 1383 1384 1385 1386 1387 1388 1389 1390 1391 1392 1393 1394 1395 1396 1397 1398 1399 1400 1401 1402 1403 1404 1405 1406 1407 1408 1409 1410 1411 1412 1413 1414 1415 1416 1417 1418 1419 1420 1421 1422 1423 1424 Deflator index 0.000251 0.000497 0.0512 0.0710 Inflation index 0.0797 0.000087 0.000524 0.000087 0.000221 0.0659 0.0687 0.000068 0.000449 0.000082 0.0856 0.0624 0.0596 0.0676 0.000464 0.0738 0.000470 0.0721 0.0628 0.000460 0.000072 0.000504 0.0645 0.0732 0.0766 0. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 443 Appendix A8: Summary table Table A8.000549 0.000098 0.0671 0.0612 0.000575 0.000084 0.000475 0.000098 0.0610 0.000641 0.0635 0.0867 0.000567 0.0623 0.0678 0.0797 0.0368 0.0681 0.0741 0.000073 0.0560 0.000503 0.0626 0.0593 0.0550 0.1263 0.0523 0.0715 0. 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100).0690 0.0797 0.000571 0.000072 0.000098 0.0997 0.0579 0.000085 0.0623 0.0708 0.1272 0.1300 0.000738 0.0567 0.0666 0.000085 0.000057 0.000071 0.0644 0.000069 0.000093 0.000534 0.000450 0.000452 0.0644 0.000530 0.0605 0.000074 0.000098 0.000462 0.0687 0.000607 0.000045 0.0621 0.0571 0.000338 0.000088 0.0674 0.0687 0.0627 0.000084 Year 1335 1336 1337 1338 1339 1340 1341 1342 1343 1344 1345 1346 1347 1348 1349 1350 1351 1352 1353 1354 1355 1356 1357 1358 1359 1360 1361 1362 1363 1364 1365 1366 1367 1368 1369 1370 1371 1372 1373 1374 1375 1376 1377 1378 1379 Deflator index 0.000553 0.0680 0.000619 0.0681 0.000573 0.000485 0.000760 0.000079 0.000524 0.0672 0.000474 0.000537 .0620 0.0368 0.0605 0.0684 Inflation index 0.0653 0.0702 0.000233 0.000450 0. the deflator and inflation indices.000511 0.000045 0.000118 0.000626 0.0695 0.0692 0.0713 0.000229 0.000642 0.000088 0.000083 0.0624 0.0608 0.000480 0.0700 0. for Sweden.000072 0.1026 0.000083 0.000070 0.000472 0.0555 0.000071 0.0522 0.000467 0.000085 0.000483 0.000465 0.0721 0.000152 0.0584 0.0716 0.000420 0.000634 0.000549 0.0640 0.0623 0. Year 1290 1291 1292 1293 1294 1295 1296 1297 1298 1299 1300 1301 1302 1303 1304 1305 1306 1307 1308 1309 1310 1311 1312 1313 1314 1315 1316 1317 1318 1319 1320 1321 1322 1323 1324 1325 1326 1327 1328 1329 1330 1331 1332 1333 1334 Deflator index 0.0712 0.000962 0.000462 0. 0561 0.002973 0.0643 0.1485 0.0783 0.0757 0.0696 0.0960 0.0622 0.000458 0.000450 0.1228 0.0750 0.0781 0.2042 0.2887 0.000481 0.1789 0.000471 0.005436 0.000480 0.000516 0.0600 0.0844 0.005440 0.002867 0.0875 0.000494 0.000646 0.0987 0.002421 0.000541 0.0931 0.000509 0.000404 0.000518 0.4035 Inflation index 0.000597 0.0553 0.005657 0.000731 0.0675 0. and wages.000376 0.0587 0.000487 0.006086 0.0741 0.000496 0.000448 0.1646 0.2892 0.1922 0.0542 0.000598 0.0700 0.000561 0. 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100).0593 0.0563 0.1597 0.0873 0.000441 0.2450 0.0702 0.0546 0.000498 0.0736 0.000394 0.0751 0.000444 0.003927 0.000507 0.000420 0.006318 0.2316 0.000589 0.0866 0.1289 0.0780 0.0873 0.000493 0.0738 0.2942 0.002673 0.0807 0.000480 0.0567 0.005603 0.000683 0.000744 0. for Sweden.0797 0.0722 0.005552 0.0508 0.0969 0.0677 0.004712 0.000424 0.000590 0.3285 0.003072 0.2927 0.000580 0. 1277–2008 Table A8.).0657 0.1305 0.1102 0.3170 0.0605 0. Year 1425 1426 1427 1428 1429 1430 1431 1432 1433 1434 1435 1436 1437 1438 1439 1440 1441 1442 1443 1444 1445 1446 1447 1448 1449 1450 1451 1452 1453 1454 1455 1456 1457 1458 1459 1460 1461 1462 1463 1464 1465 1466 1467 1468 1469 1470 Deflator index 0.000555 0.2826 0.000417 0.000464 0.002773 0.002934 0.000437 0.0808 0.000553 0.0657 0.3017 0.000593 0.444 Exchange rates.0749 0.0685 0.0596 0.005562 0. The two Consumer Price Indices.000641 0.000520 0.003166 0.000623 0.2223 0.0614 0.1004 0. the deflator and inflation indices.0621 0.000455 0.0707 0.0727 0. prices.002478 0.1491 0.000647 0.1693 0.0649 0.000459 0.003255 0.000473 0.0841 0.0687 0.000546 0.1546 0.0728 0.0619 0.0758 0.0661 0.000468 0.000520 0.000535 0.000541 0.0923 0.000578 0.000616 0.002234 0.000539 0.0747 0.004276 0.002510 0.1526 0.3165 0.005629 0.000435 0.000508 0.007759 .0727 0.000561 0.0644 0.0666 0.001015 0.0499 0.001423 0.0573 0.0533 0.1442 0.0639 0.000402 0.005067 0.000577 0.000486 0.000410 0.2262 0.004434 0.0847 Inflation index 0.0669 0.000460 0.000538 0.000909 0.000718 0.0673 0.000357 0.0953 0.0709 0.003474 0.0686 0.1806 0.000690 0.002855 0.000711 0.005435 0.1015 0.000554 0.000816 0.1390 0.2827 0.000489 0.000545 0.000477 0.000648 0.0482 0.000592 Year 1517 1518 1519 1520 1521 1522 1523 1524 1525 1526 1527 1528 1529 1530 1531 1532 1533 1534 1535 1536 1537 1538 1539 1540 1541 1542 1543 1544 1545 1546 1547 1548 1549 1550 1551 1552 1553 1554 1555 1556 1557 1558 1559 1560 1561 1562 Deflator index 0.002336 0.0795 0.000524 0.2115 0.2306 0.1371 0.000370 0.0615 0.005525 0.0703 0.1328 0.000538 0.0607 0.000706 0.002555 0.000455 0.1 (cont.0802 0.1259 0.004068 0.004349 0.003440 0.0666 0.0731 0.1402 0.000493 0.2913 0.000501 0.0590 0.000627 Year 1471 1472 1473 1474 1475 1476 1477 1478 1479 1480 1481 1482 1483 1484 1485 1486 1487 1488 1489 1490 1491 1492 1493 1494 1495 1496 1497 1498 1499 1500 1501 1502 1503 1504 1505 1506 1507 1508 1509 1510 1511 1512 1513 1514 1515 1516 Deflator index 0.0649 0.0627 0.2829 0.0636 0.000476 0.1215 0.004454 0.0800 Inflation index 0.006096 0.0728 0.0731 0.002696 0.0833 0.2873 0.000460 0.000415 0.000549 0.0619 0.000556 0.000625 0.2635 0.000525 0.0667 0.0621 0.0632 0.001951 0.0648 0.000461 0.000500 0.000437 0.000539 0.0591 0.000439 0. 040 3.038 1.4237 0.588 1.277 1.4583 0.4094 0.093 3.074 2.7326 0.266 4.387 2.058 3.4132 0.947 1.164 1.984 1.680 1.3115 0.4001 0.518 2.215 3.5159 0.5266 0.690 2.7167 0.170 1.6848 2.956 2.7138 0.636 4.703 1.003 3.4205 0.007 1.05746 0.928 1.8882 0.7235 0.978 1.06449 0.941 1.9672 1.865 1.2448 0.155 3.5448 0.781 1.003 3.212 2.2457 2.021 1.529 1.843 2.110 1.3593 0.4514 0.05177 0.8475 0.01501 0.834 3.298 2.395 2.822 3.386 Inflation index 0.193 4.234 4.05264 0.555 2.122 2.8536 0. The two Consumer Price Indices.4475 0.859 3.025 3.198 1.4099 0.039 0.4141 0.3663 0.05211 0.432 1.555 2.386 2.8830 0.4415 0.6674 Inflation index 0.9197 1.3378 0.6457 0.3459 0.857 2. Year 1563 1564 1565 1566 1567 1568 1569 1570 1571 1572 1573 1574 1575 1576 1577 1578 1579 1580 1581 1582 1583 1584 1585 1586 1587 1588 1589 1590 1591 1592 1593 1594 1595 1596 1597 1598 1599 1600 1601 1602 1603 1604 1605 1606 1607 1608 Deflator index 0.405 3.7185 0.04045 0.3843 0.244 5.6759 0.4597 0.01969 0. the deflator and inflation indices.562 3.4716 0.03240 0.193 1.5360 0.2680 0.839 2.3381 0.564 1.3229 0.473 3. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 445 Table A8.537 1.7803 1.044 1.4326 0.122 1.6761 0.502 1.04881 0.328 2.06810 0.7139 0.063 2.345 1.077 1.425 4.220 2.8.068 3.5003 0.3569 0.4268 0.04803 0.6980 0.649 1.175 3.129 3.05729 0.359 3.4836 0.512 1.380 2.414 2.996 1.681 1.428 1.207 1.244 3.013 3.2633 0.042 2.4895 0.607 1.7600 0.6269 0.880 2.3132 0.6231 0.179 1.4211 0.06523 0.05043 0.440 1.155 1.2989 0.3337 Year 1609 1610 1611 1612 1613 1614 1615 1616 1617 1618 1619 1620 1621 1622 1623 1624 1625 1626 1627 1628 1629 1630 1631 1632 1633 1634 1635 1636 1637 1638 1639 1640 1641 1642 1643 1644 1645 1646 1647 1648 1649 1650 1651 1652 1653 1654 Deflator index 0.6918 0. for Sweden.06253 0.4112 0.9029 0.5765 0.520 1.947 .8223 0.8212 0.597 2.3115 0.117 2.417 1.4142 0.01055 0.850 2.01206 0.8033 0.111 4.4034 0.411 1.047 1.7584 0.529 1.362 3.05165 0.4021 0.199 1.4017 0.01109 0.0237 1.358 2.02896 0.1575 2.6264 0.5978 0.04319 0.877 3. 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100).5219 0.982 2.1 (cont.3379 0.036 5.01066 0.4421 0.4106 0.702 2.4441 0.04149 0.422 1.6779 0.211 1.008318 0.8199 0.865 3.818 2.079 1.048 2.5541 0.425 1.351 1.3390 0.3792 0.127 4.2358 0.520 1.398 2.502 1.998 0.9918 0.731 3.6231 0.076 2.8410 0.01378 0.9703 0.8189 0.6755 0.3618 0.024 1.960 2.1036 0.633 2.929 4.058 2.).894 Inflation index 1.854 2.8950 0.309 2.465 2.3904 0.429 1.5058 1.491 1.439 1.8003 0.193 Year 1655 1656 1657 1658 1659 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 1690 1691 1692 1693 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 1699 1700 Deflator index 2.5484 0.3490 0.05177 0.894 3.693 1.534 1.5220 0.736 1.05026 0.927 1.4169 0.480 1.423 3.05526 0.190 1.340 2. 39 13.40 89.91 77.414 4.94 82.272 4.446 Exchange rates.81 58.99 .22 53.038 4.71 77.703 4.825 1.04 20.882 1.703 4.038 4.923 6.87 64.727 1.84 89.163 3.172 6.202 6.24 11.858 2.148 3.93 60.20 56.73 58.23 87.022 5.35 55.680 4.805 3.327 4.340 2.401 4.13 54.140 4.61 11.765 3.348 5.985 4.098 3.17 78.136 4.432 5.84 85.266 7.1 (cont.148 3.10 76.626 1.83 60.983 6.03 78.36 57.58 12.23 79.30 50.65 57.44 90.985 4.50 83.312 5.66 27.13 51.389 5.967 7.252 3.93 28.24 55.04 50.913 7.81 63.66 12. and wages.364 7.85 12.83 13.556 3. 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100).504 4.242 4.78 61.432 5.079 12.327 6.34 61.912 5.41 73.72 14.80 89.065 2.401 4.06 25.627 7.82 42.34 75.778 1.01 31. for Sweden.91 13.43 65.669 Inflation index 1.054 4.61 8.715 4.949 7.72 18.09 13.63 18.22 73.51 19.054 4.931 1.43 13.327 4.976 3.242 4.716 5.669 Year 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 Both indices 6.140 4.41 63.29 13.58 64.56 77.007 6.60 12.30 12.49 13.790 9.33 55.606 4.983 6.272 4.084 4.00 43.389 5.830 4.82 50.130 4.62 11.906 5.17 89.863 3.88 61.69 63.50 9.174 2.06 58.673 5.079 5.63 60.48 12.92 11. The two Consumer Price Indices. Year 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 1721 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 1727 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 Deflator index 3.67 12.06 49.067 5.079 5.12 59.92 80.752 2.049 1.81 76.62 85.63 Year 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 1804 1805 1806 1807 1808 1809 1810 1811 1812 1813 1814 1815 1816 1817 1818 1819 1820 1821 1822 1823 1824 1825 1826 1827 1828 1829 1830 1831 1832 1833 1834 1835 1836 1837 1838 Both indices 15.10 28.764 6.824 9.34 83.02 63.42 49.68 82.05 71.149 5.82 Year 1839 1840 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 1848 1849 1850 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 Both indices 61.95 13.37 43.63 23.32 56.149 5.58 13.964 4.604 4.05 9.94 55. prices.454 3.78 89.843 9.98 27.29 59.830 4.05 51.71 14.28 9.791 4.60 81.46 61.414 4.40 60.70 32.716 5. the deflator and inflation indices.05 13.04 60.63 63.62 84.65 13.43 17.43 73.136 4.070 6.172 6.43 61.604 4.964 4.99 70.902 1.24 82.87 27.73 82.084 4.312 5.673 5.988 1.606 4.453 6.912 5.37 54.80 8.651 3. 1277–2008 Table A8.511 7.).48 11. 91 71.95 73.91 91.80 97.05 82.40 79.88 71.58 82. 1290–2008 (July 1914 = 100).72 98.07 70.94 82.8. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 447 Table A8. Year 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 Both indices 74.62 83.85 70.15 91.63 73.1 115 130 164 241 266 271 221 184 174 174 177 171 169 170 168 162 157 155 151 152 Year 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 Both indices 155 157 162 165 170 193 219 234 235 234 233 234 241 255 256 260 304 326 328 331 339 356 372 388 391 Year 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 Both indices 407 416 436 449 463 487 519 540 551 566 605 650 689 735 808 887 979 1090 1200 1286 1461 1638 1778 1937 2092 Year 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 2008 2009 Both indices 2246 2341 2440 2582 2748 3036 3319 3395 3553 3631 3723 3740 3760 3754 3772 3809 3902 3986 4063 4078 4097 4153 4243 4390 (4378) Sources: See the main text.69 92. the deflator and inflation indices.98 86.32 93.81 Year 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 Both indices 91.85 83.05 66.1 (cont.27 75. The two Consumer Price Indices.27 80.01 70.80 100.15 74. .80 76.59 82.00 73.). for Sweden. N. Stockholm. vol. 1756–60. 2. 1. and wages. Stockholms stads statistiska kontor (1906–36). Samfundet för utgivande af handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia.se/ra/diplomat. 1740–55 and 1761–67 (microfilmed). Svenskt Diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven. Kungliga biblioteket Stockholms stads priscourant. . Stockholm. Misc. prices. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker från år 1592 (1939–).448 Exchange rates. in Riksarkivets ämnessamlingar.:8.F. vol. 4–6. (1752). vol. 20 and 22. vol. Norrtälje. Signum L I (Kollegiernas protokoll).ra. Norrtälje släktforskarförening. Stockholms stadsböcker från äldre tid. 4. Statistisk månadsskrift. 1768–74 and 1776 (microfilmed). Published primary materials Sjuhundra härads domböcker 1601–1651 (1984). Signum G d (Handlingar angående hospitalet). Riksarkivet ‘Myntz och Sölfwers Werdering’. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt burspråk (1917) Kungl. Edited by E Hildebrand. 26 Myntväsen. Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900.html (2007-06-01). www. 1277–2008 Primary sources Göteborgs landsarkiv Göteborgs rådhusrätts och magistrats arkiv före år 1900. N. 1775–76 (microfilmed). Stockholm. Stockholm. Ser. Stockholms stadsarkiv Stockholms stads priscourant. Wahrendorffska arkivet Stockholms stads priscourant. Editor: Sundelius. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1589–1591 (1948). C G (1965). O (1945). Lund University. Riksarkivet. pp.se/lunewp/abs/lunewp2005_040. L (1988). Uppsala. P. G (1972). in Myrdal. 2. Uppsala. Accumulation. pp. vol.S. Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway 1819–2003. Department of Economics. Stockholm. The Period 1776–1802’. 2. . 126. 2 (1383–1400). Crisis: With New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800-2000. vol. Attungen och marklandet: Studier över agrara förhållanden i medeltidens Sverige. Fregert. Folkungatidens monetära system: penningen mellan pest och patriarkat 1254-1370. Historisk tidskrift. The Cost of Living in Sweden 1830–1930. Uppländska domböcker (1925–56). Norges bank. ‘Part IV. Westminster. Almqvist & Wiksell International. 189–214. Almqvist & Wiksell. and vol. Lund. and J Söderberg (2006). in Jörberg. Staten som marknadens salt: en studie i institutionsbildning. F (1947). O (2004). L. Stockholm. GWK Gleerup.ra.). Ericson. Bjurling. Edvinsson. G (ed. Bouvin. Fiscal statistics for Sweden 1719–2003. Stockholm. Gleerup. Almqvist & Wiksell International. Lund.se/ra/ diplomat. http://swopec. B. Andræ. Omvandlingen av Stockholms stadsförvaltning 1599-1637. Ø. vol. B (2006). Growth. Kungl. Franzén. Historisk Tidskrift. Almqvist & Wiksell International. S (1997). Gleerup. 385–440. kollektivt handlande och tidig välfärdspolitik på en strategisk varumarknad i övergången mellan merkantilism och liberalism 1720-1862. Hammarström I (1956). hhs. ‘A consumer price index for Norway’. No 2005:40. in Eitrheim. 1-9. Lund. R (2005). Borgare och byråkrater. J Klovland.8. Stockholm. ‘Studier i Funbo kyrkas räkenskaper’. Humanistiska Vetenskapssamfundet i Uppsala. Grytten. och R Gustafsson (2005). vol. S (1933). The Official Statistics of Retail Prices and Cost of Living in Sweden up to 1931’. ‘Svenska spannmålspriser under medeltiden i ett europeiskt perspektiv’. and J Qvigstad (eds. King & Son. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 449 Svenska riks-archivets pergamentsbref: från och med år 1351 (1866–68). Franzén. no.). Ltd. Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven (SDhk) www. Dovring. Oslo. ‘Appendix. 85. Working Papers. A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914. Carlén. vol. 1 (1351– 82). Skånes utrikessjöfart 1660-1720: En studie i Skånes handelssjöfart. K. Finansförvaltning och varuhandel 1504–1540: Studier i de yngre sturarnas Gustav Vasas statshushållning.html (2008-09-01). References and secondary sources Ahlström.htm (2005-10-01). Stockholm. I:2. K Lantbruksakademiens tidskrift. Vad kostade det? . Sverige’. Rosenkilde og Bagger. Jansson. E (1940). Norstedts (reprint: Gidlunds). Jansson. vol. København. Jörberg. Gothenburg.S. . andra upplagan. Lund. Stockholm. Uppsala Papers in Economic History. B (1960). Sveriges ekonomiska historia från Gustav Vasa. Jansson. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid. King & Son. Bonnier. Stockholm. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid. ‘Tunna’. Myrdal. E (1935–49). L (1972). L Palm. I:2. vol. København.priser och löner från medeltid till våra dagar. Stockholm. H (1971). Hegardt. Akademiens spannmål: Uppbörd. vol. ‘Skippund. Kulturhistoriskt lexikon för nordisk medeltid. Eurostat. M (1988). 85. Hansson. Natur och kultur/LT. L. G (2006). Research report 16. The Cost of Living in Sweden 1830–1930. Kungl. vol. Bra Böcker. Sahlgren. N (1981). II:1 and II:2. Lönnroth. S O (1981). vol. A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914. København.och viktsystemens utveckling i Sverige sedan 1500-talet. ILO. Wettergren & Kerbergs förlag. Morell. Konsumentpriser och indexberäkningar åren 1931– 1959. and E Nathorst-Böös (2002). Lindgren. Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskning. Gleerup. Umeå. Dagligt bröd i onda tider: Priser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1770. article ‘Fat’. prices. vol. Stockholm. Rosenkilde og Bagger. 19. Umeå universitet. Stockholm. Hildebrand. OECD. S O (1981). Consumer Price Index Manual: Theory and Practice. ‘Läst’. Uppsala. Almqvist & Wiksell. Höganäs. Heckscher. Stockholm. vol. Måttordboken. I:1. reprinted 1983). Spannmålshandel och priser vid Uppsala akademi 1720–1789: en prövning av markegångstaxornas källvärde. Almqvist & Wiksell International. vol. Jansson. Westminster. Stockholm. Rosenkilde og Bagger. Statsmakt och statsfinans i det medeltida Sverige: Studier över skatteväsen och länsförvaltning. 15. Såld spannmål av kyrkotionden: Priser i Östergötland under Sveriges stormaktstid. Om mått. H (1894. and wages. IMF. ‘Centrala och officiella svenska spannmålsmått från 1500-talets mitt till 1665’. Nationalencyklopedin (1991). Almqvist & Wiksell. G (1933). D (1949). Lagerqvist.450 Exchange rates. 11. Nordiska museets förlag. 1-2. FN and World Bank (2004). 5th edition. Odén. A. A (1975). S O (1995). Socialstyrelsen (1961). P. Städerna. handel och priser vid Uppsala universitet 1635–1719. Sveriges medeltid. Geneva. Kopparhandel och statsmonopol: studier i svensk handelshistoria under senare 1500-talet. och J Söderberg (1991). 6. 1277–2008 Hannerberg. [Written by Jörgen Dalén]. 1. Sveriges riksbank (1979–2001). 3. The Swedish Consumer Price Index: A handbook of methods. The evolution of Swedish consumer prices 1290–2008 451 Sandström. 53. no. Statistisk årsbok – Sveriges riksbank. Söderberg. L (1988). 128–52. Statistiska centralbyrån (2006). 44–70. Ekonomisk-historiska föreningen. Statistiska Meddelanden PR 15 SM 0501. Stockholm. vol. J (2002). vol. Bihang. J (2007). pp.se/statistik/PR/PR0101/2004M03/ Pm11307. . Förbättrad KPI-konstruktion från januari 2005: Teknisk beskrivning. (1903). N (1993). I. 107. http://www. Myntkabinettet. 55. Industri och hantverk 1800–1980. ‘Debasements.xls (2005-09-04). vol. Sveriges Riksbank (1931). Scandinavian Economic History Review. Statistiska tabeller. maj 2002. Statistiska tabeller öfver Sveriges industriela utveckling åren 1860–1879. von Schwerin.och 1600-talets Sverige’. Bankens tillkomst och verksamhet.pdf (2006-06-01). Sveriges riksbank (1909–78). Schön.iisg. J (1987). Stockholm. http://www. vol. no. 103. 2. Statistiska centralbyrån (2004). Norstedt & Söner. Örebro. Skrifter i mynt. Royal Revenues. Sveriges mynt 1449–1917: bidrag till en svensk mynthistoria meddelade i myntdirektörens underdåniga ämbetsberättelser. Å (1983). Wallroth. Statistiska centralbyrån (2005). Historiska nationalräkenskaper för Sverige. Stockholm. Om kopparmyntningen i Sverige och dess utländska besittningar. Norstedt. Tullkomitén (1865). Statistiska centralbyrån (2001). P. J (1993). ‘Hade Heckscher rätt? Priser och reallöner i 1500-talets Stockholm’. 1 (March). Lund. Stockholm. in PECVNIA. no. F B. ‘Prices and Economic Change in Medieval Sweden’. Konsumentprisindex 1830–2005 (Consumer Price Index 1830–2004). pp.scb. Söderberg. Tullkomiténs underdåniga betänkande af år 1882. and Inflation in France During the Hundred Years’ War. 341–56. Priser i Stockholm 1539–1620. Söderberg. Söderberg.8. K A (1918). Stockholm. no. Excel file. ‘Stockholms stads finanser 1608–1621’. V. 2. 4. Historisk tidskrift. Konsumentprisindex 1830–2004 (Consumer Price Index 1830–2004). vol. Stockholm. version 3. pp. Årsbok – Sveriges riksbank. Norstedts. Bidrag till kännedom af fäderneslandet. ‘Inflation i 1500. Sveriges Riksbank 1668–1924.och penninghistoriska ämnen utgivna av Kungl. The Journal of Economic History. Underdånigt betänkande: afgifvet af de för uppgörande af förslag till ny tulltaxa den 6 november 1863 i nåder tillförordnade komiterade. Stiernstedt. A (1863). 1415–1422’. Stockholm. Stockholm. Historisk Tidskrift. Stockholm. Tullkomitén (1882). vol. Sussman.A.nl/hpw/stockholm. Statistiska Meddelanden PR 15 SM 0601. Ekonomisk Tidskrift. vol. Stockholm. Spannmålshandel och spannmålspolitik i Sverige 1719–1830. ‘En svensk prishistorisk studie’. Adelns bönder och kronans. Skatter och besvär i Uppland 1650–1680. Åmark. and wages. . XII. 1277–2008 Ågren. Åmark. innefattande vissa internationella prisjämförelser angående viktigare jordbruksprodukter.och prisöversikter rörande spannmål: jämte bihang. Stockholm. K (1921). Handels.och Traktatkommitténs utredningar och betänkande XXV. Åmark. K (1964). Uppsala. Stockholms högskola. prices. SOU 1924:55. Tull. K (1915). K (1924).452 Exchange rates. g. . Jansson.9.2 Parish accounts (e. since this is the only category for which long series of daily wage rates are available. particularly in Stockholm.3 From 1864 onwards. about 100 km south of Stockholm). and female labourers) for the 17th and early 18th centuries. p.1. from medieval times up to the present. masons. For wages of other groups of labourers in Stockholm (e. Jonsson and Persson (1991). 18–21. and gave them some beer). Daily wage rates of unskilled labourers in Stockholm 1860–64 are drawn from Höjer (1967.. carpenters. supplemented with some institutional and parish archives. The wages series is based on the building accounts of Stockholm City. pp.2 below). this series is linked to the series of wages for industrial and mining workers in Sweden presented by Svante 1 2 3 Söderberg (1987a). Emphasis is on the pre-industrial era up to about 1860. Palm and Söderberg (1991. Here we focus on unskilled labourers. Introduction This chapter presents a very long-term view of real wages of unskilled labourers in Sweden. 96–108). Wages were paid in cash and for most of the period examined there were no substantial additional benefits in kind (though the City occasionally did pay for the gloves used by labourers. 423). For the period 1365–1864.1 The accounts of the Town Council of Stockholm contain detailed descriptions of the building works initiated by the Council and the daily wages of various building workers.g. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers Johan Söderberg 9. pp.. see Jansson. beer and food could be a substantial part of wages (see Section 9. In the late medieval era. Palm and Söderberg (1991). Storkyrkoförsamlingen and the German Church) also provide information on wages. wages refer to daily summer rates of male unskilled labourers in Stockholm (the 1365 quotation actually refers to the town of Nyköping. Söderberg. though. work intensity.0 100.5 100. Nevertheless. After all. at least when it comes to producing long-term series. the length of the working day and the intensity of work may vary in a way that is not reflected in daily wage rates. it should give a rough general overview of real wage trends over a very long period.454 Exchange rates.0 10. Real wages are often used as an indicator of material living standards. Furthermore. to which women and children may have contributed as well.5 They are somewhat lower than the weights employed by Jörberg in previous 4 For the period 1865–1930. These weights are based on data on the composition of food at two Stockholm institutions.5 4. with weights ranging from 75 to 70 per cent. 216–7). (1935.2 2. The weights of goods used in the construction of the CPI were also presented there. Real incomes may therefore evolve differently from real wages. p. It should be kept in mind.0 As seen from Table 9. As a result.0 1782–1830 75. Table 9.3 13. The deflator CPI presented in Chapter 8 above is used here for the calculation of real wages. the real wage rates of male labourers used here do not automatically mirror family or household incomes.0 7. lighting. However. a series of earnings of unskilled municipal workers in Stockholm is published in Bagge et al. Also. 55).5 15.1 below. A few words should be added regarding the choice of these weights. 1277–2008 Prado in Chapter 10 below. statistical agencies have not been eager to use the term ‘unskilled’ during the 20th century.0 1732–82 75. building materials Clothing Other Total Period 1539–1731 75. prices.2 2. real wage calculations often seem to be the single best proxy available for trends and fluctuations in purchasing power among various categories of labourers. 5).0 7.6 14.0 9. II. pp.0 9. As pointed out by Prado in the subsequent chapter.0 9.5 100. and wages. the Danviken asylum and the Orphanage. Weights of main components in the deflator CPI (per cent) Component Foodstuffs Fuel. the series presented is not homogeneous.1.5 10.1.5 100.0 1830–70 72. and household incomes in the past. Vol. This series does not appear sufficiently reliable to be used here.3 13. Utterström (1978. at selected points in time from 1571 and 1781. Jansson.4 4. the construction of reliable wage series for unskilled non-agricultural workers from the 1860s onwards will require further research.0 1870–1913 70. that real wage rates do not say anything about unemployment. we rarely have information on unemployment. Palm and Söderberg (1991. foodstuffs are the dominant item in the deflator index for the period up to 1913. p.4 Hence. though. since the rate of increase over the period as a whole in unrealistically high.0 100. 5 . and are given in simplified form in Table 9. p. 143. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 455 The Ebonists.4 per cent (for the period 1865–1914). by Elias Martin (1739–1818). . I. Swedish research.5 per cent for foodstuffs (including beer and tobacco) in his construction of a price index employed to cap6 Jörberg (Vol. 1972.3 per cent (for the period 1732–1804) and 81.6 They are fairly close to weights used in modern international research. Source: Nationalmuseum. p. 119. 349) used weights for foodstuffs ranging between 83. For Britain. 182. p. Robert Allen assumes a weight of 73. p.9. m.7 This is slightly less that the weights put forward in earlier research by Feinstein (1998). p. Journeymen earned around 15 per cent more than apprentices. with a 2¼-hour break). Scholliers (1960) constructs an index with a food component of 75 per cent.m. 1277–2008 Regulation of working hours and wages for journeymen and apprentices in the building sector (‘mur-gesäller’ and ‘mur-gossar’) and carpenters (‘timmermän’) in Göteborg in 1804. with a 1-hour break) to 11¾ hours from 8 April to 15 September (from 5 a.456 Exchange rates. as there is general agreement that food was the dominant component. Source: Göteborgs stadsarkiv.m. For Antwerp in the late 16th century.m. from 7 hours from 26 November to 21st January (from 8 a. to 7 p. declining somewhat to 76 per cent in 1828/32 and further to 73 per cent in 1858/62. The length of the working day varied over the year. the daily wage varied with the number of hours per day. Oordnade inneliggande handlingar E II j:3 ture real wage developments during the Industrial Revolution (1770–1869). p. to 4 p. Moreover. who assumes a weight of 79 per cent for food and drink in 1788/92. 16). Feinstein (1998. * 7 Allen (2007. which is identical to the weight used in the present study for that period. prices.8 The differences between various modern researchers in their assumptions about the share of food in the cost of living thus appear to be modest. 8 . 635). and wages. there is a strong upsurge in real wages.11 There are also examples from Stockholm of wage rates of labourers who were given no food being twice as high as when food was included in the daily wage. p. Second. some assumptions have to be made regarding medieval wage rates. regulations of maximum wage rates were issued by the Stockholm City authorities. He argued that real wages of Swedish labourers were unusually favourable during the 15th century. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 457 Figure 9. These phases are further discussed below. while yet others do not give any information in this respect. 1478. the labourer received food and beer. the daily rates in Figure 9. 10 Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 (1917. pp. and 1496. Normally.1 refer to regulations issued by the Stockholm City authorities. Here. especially its latter half. After about 1800. and 1496. 1478. The medieval era and the 16th century Data on late medieval wages in Sweden are very sparse. . some wage rates include food and beer. pp. 11 Sommarin (1908. In a few cases. However. 42–51. 271).9 In order to make such a comparison possible.2. and in 9 Note.10 They should be interpreted as probable minimum wages. First. continuing up to about 1730. for male as well as female labourers. 47–8). the early attempt at real wage analysis by Sommarin (1908. In addition.5 öre for these years. The second phase is a recovery during the 17th century. whereas others do not. since their purpose would be to counteract increases in market wages. The main trends in real wages in Stockholm after 1500 can be divided into four phases: 1. For the years 1476. Assuming that food comprised half the wage rate seems reasonable in the light of conditions in the copper-producing district at Kopparberget in the province of Dalarna. 2. In modern research there has been no attempt to compare Swedish wages for the medieval era with those of later periods. 467). the value of food and beer is estimated at 0. 9. pp. however. p. 4. the daily wage rate for a labourer without food in 1499 was set at twice the wage rate including food. the regulated daily summer cash wage rate was 0. 3.1 below reports real wages of labourers from 1365 up to 2004. late medieval daily wage rates are of two kinds. For the years 1476. though. the rates given in such regulations should be expected to be lower than actual wages paid. the major part of the prices he included in the discussion was of a normative character.5 öre. continuing in the early years of the 16th century. Even as such. Most of them refer to actual wages paid according to the accounts. This relationship is found in 1517. they suggest a relatively high level of real wages during the 15th century. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (1930.9. The first phase is characterized by a decline during most of the 16th century. expressed in various royal regulations. This is based on several pieces of information. There. 75). A new phase of depression of real wages occurred from about 1730 up to 1800. 179. p. and wages.1. 13 Stockholms stads skottebok 1501–1510 (1915. beer could sometimes be a substantial part of the daily wage. 137). and industrial workers in Sweden 1865–2004 (index 1950 = 100). p. Real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm. .5 öre at Stockholm in 1508.171). p. prices. 1. e.g. 14 Stockholms stads skottebok 1460–1468 (1926. Although the number of observations before 1500 is small. 72–3. when beer made up 1/6 of the wage for some labourers and 1/8 of the wage for some others. 135. p. Beer grew in popularity in Sweden during the late Middle Ages and became a central item of consumption on festive occasions. 1525–1526: Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II–IV (1923. a statistical test (t test) 12 1517: Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II–IV (1923.13 During the late Middle Ages. since much of the energy content of the raw material (barley) is lost in the brewing process. Labourers living at the physical subsistence level would be expected to consume cereals in other forms. At least seven litres of beer per person was.000 100 10 1 1300 1400 1500 1600 1700 1800 1900 2000 Source: Table A9. p.12 It may also be noted that the cost of a soldier’s daily food was set at 0. 59.15 This of course also indicates that material living conditions exceeded the minimum level. 15 Dahlbäck (1987. 1525–26. 274). This was the case at least in 1467. 287). p.1. Note: A vertical line marks the change in 1865 from unskilled labourers in Stockholm to industrial workers in Sweden. as bread or porridge. 1365–1864. 1277–2008 Figure 9. for example. pp. consumed at the annual May feast at Stockholm City Hall in the 1460s. p.14 This is suggestive of a fairly high living standard.458 Exchange rates. 75). 57 and -5. Letter to Svante Nilsson 28 June 1508 on poverty in the province of Småland. There are also many qualitative statements on the poverty of the country in the early 16th century.000 1. 18 See.16 Late medieval labourers thus found themselves in a rather favourable situation.. Letter from the inhabitants of the province of Hälsingland. the t value is -7. Letters to Svante Nilsson 22 February 1509 (SDhk 36448) and 12 December 1508 (SDhk 36356) on poverty in northern Sweden and Finland.17 In Stockholm. reveals a significant difference in means between real wages before that year and those registered for the period 1500–1800. Nominal wage rates of unskilled labourers in Stockholm and deflator CPI.g. due to poverty. 1.18 16 Assuming equal or unequal variances.000. more detailed analysis in Clark (2005) and Clark (2007b). in Stockholm as well as in other parts of northern and western Europe. characterized by war and civil unrest.61.000 100. The high volatility suggests a low level of welfare where basic living conditions were unstable.000 10. This is a turbulent period in Swedish history. See also Letter from the Mayor and Council of Uppsala to Svante Nilsson.9. 14 July 1511 (SDhk 37033). where population decline after the Black Death raised the price of labour. A letter to Svante Nilsson dated 1 September 1510 describes the lack of food in the mining district of Norberg (SDhk 36804). 1510). the high level of real wages did not last much beyond 1500. e. respectively. 17 For an overview of conditions in England see Clark (2007a.1. Real wages were quite volatile in the 1510s and ’20s. 41). On the severe famine of 1509 see Olsson (1947). p. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 459 Figure 9. reporting that the town. Both are significant at a very high level. 1291–2004 (index 1780/89 = 100). .000 100 10 1 0 1250 1300 1350 1400 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 1900 1950 2000 Wage rate CPI Source: Table A9. 22 June. 19 February 1507 (SDhk 35724). Note: Missing values in the deflator CPI have been interpolated. is unable to keep the prisoners assigned to it and that the peasants threaten to kill them if they stay much longer (see also SDhk 36759.2. however. real wages tended to return to their former levels. 352). there are indications in the sources of unusually severe conditions for these labourers. the great increase in landless labourers did not take place until the 19th century. 96–108).460 Exchange rates. At the Horn brick-yard. This conforms to trends elsewhere in western Europe. Braudel and Spooner (1967. the Stockholm City accounts register that extra cash payments were given to the day labourers ‘since they had a poor daily wage’. and marginal land was increasingly used for grain production. 482–3). 21 Söderberg (1987a. e. quantities of herring and smelt were distributed to the workers in 1592 ‘in order that they would be serviceable for work’. it seems that the total output of grains in Sweden did not keep pace with population growth. By 1600. The decline in per capita grain production seems to have been the major force behind the substantial rise in the relative price of grains.. 117). that nominal wages were frequently rather inflexible for long periods. prices. 1277–2008 The 16th century was characterized by strong population growth in Sweden as well as generally in northern and north-western Europe. pp.2 illustrates that. Figure 9.23 After the inflationary periods. This may seem a remarkably strong fall but it resembles trends found in several other places in Europe. when daily wage rates of 19 Kriedte (1983). for example. 20 Myrdal and Söderberg (2002. as a rule. real wages were about 40 per cent lower than in 1540. though. Abel (1967. in southern England and Valencia. p. 354). During the latter inflation period. p. pp. to the stability of nominal wages observed in southern England from 1412 up to 1545. as nominal daily wage rates were practically unchanged. It is clear. though. the trend in real wages in Stockholm is clearly downward.19 Despite land reclamation. Thus. There is no counterpart here. where inflation was an ongoing phenomenon. 425–7.g. 23 Söderberg (1987a.20 After about 1540. whereas food prices were rising. Growing population pressure led to the expansion of cultivated land. . extreme inflation had no lasting influence on real wages. This suggests that real incomes had fallen below the physiological minimum at which meaningful work could be carried out. that these wages declined at least around mid-century.22 The real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm fell dramatically during the extreme inflation around 1573 and 1592. that agricultural labourers in Sweden made up a small proportion of the total labour force at this time. Grain prices in Sweden rose more steeply than prices of animal foodstuffs. however. Thus. Bowden (1967). p. 22 Söderberg (1987a. and wages. nominal wages in the pre-industrial era closely followed the changes in the general price level. Already in October 1591. 353). which in turn rose less than prices of textiles and building materials. does not fully fit the situation in Stockholm.21 The real wages of agricultural labourers in Sweden during the 16th century have not been systematically explored. p. the view often put forward in international literature. It should be remembered. 9. Palm and Söderberg (1991. During the winter season (the dark half of the year) work was to be carried out from sunrise to sunset.m. several other capitals.g.. As grain prices were still a major element of the cost of living of labourers and nominal wages were rather inflexible. and Copenhagen. 28). This decision was taken in response to complaints that workers did not arrive at work until 6 a. 30–1). Paris.m. It is part of a general European tendency for big towns and cities. 27 Vries (1984). Slicher van Bath (1963. e.000 in the early years of the century to nearly 60. The rise in real wages can be linked to stagnating or declining relative food prices and tendencies to depression in the agrarian sector. The period c.3. as occurred around 1592.26 This expansion helps to explain the upward trend in real wages. to expand during the period 1600–1750. . This is in agreement. 9. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 461 unskilled building labourers were unchanged at 4 pence a day. 28 Pursche (1979. Rising grain prices was a general European tendency from about 1730 to 1800.24 Sharp drops in wage rates relative to prices.g. often with a large administrative or military sector. Demand for labour. p. for building and shipbuilding.. it should be noted that the population increased rapidly in the 17th century. e. 209–10). 1730–1800 The trend towards stagnating or falling food prices ended during the first part of the 18th century. Besides Stockholm. Felloni (1977.28 If this regulation was adhered to. 304). the outcome was a depression of real wages 24 Brown and Hopkins (1981. pp. 100. 25 See.. during the summer season (covering the light half of the year).000 around 1690. and continue until 7 p. On the other hand. seems to have been high as Stockholm became the capital of a centralized state. from about 10. 11). 82). exhibited dynamic tendencies during this phase.4. Brown and Hopkins (1981. and left at 6 p. however. 28). The Stockholm magistrate decided that work should start at 5 a.g. 1600–1730 The most surprising feature of the long-term evolution of real wages is perhaps that the wars and the militarization of the Swedish economy during the Great Power Era (ending in 1721) did not prevent a growth in real wages. 26 Jansson.m.9. e. Hobsbawm (1965. The working day was thus set to comprise 14 hours. were rare in Stockholm. with upward real wage trends in several other places in Europe during the 17th century.25 In the Stockholm case. pp.m. p. pp.27 It may be of some interest to note that the length of the working day for carpenters and masons was regulated in 1675. p. many industrial towns regressed during this period. there must have been very little possibility of earning extra income by performing work over and above the summer-season working day. Madrid. p. 150 ff. The period c. in Sweden as well as in Europe in general. . Source: Stockholm City Museum. As a result.3 compares real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm with real wages of male agricultural labourers in rural Sweden from 1732 up to 1914 (the latter series deflated with the CPI used elsewhere in this chapter). Similar tendencies are seen in France.29 Figure 9. 78–80). around 1800 most urban as well as rural labourers actually seem to have been worse off in terms of material living standards than at any other time during the preceding five centuries. As in the 16th century. This was in fact the case in Sweden. In particular. and wages. In general. Jonsson and Persson (1991. Despite substantial technological and institutional changes. stimulating the division of farms.462 Exchange rates. prices of small landholdings surged upwards. prices. 29 Herlitz (1974). farmers who produced a surplus for sale on the market should have gained from the relative price shift in favour of grains. A new period of land reclamation started during the 18th century. A deep trough in real wages occurred during the Revolutionary and Napoleonic wars. similar to the one in the 16th century. pp. due to sharply rising food prices. income differentials between rich and poor widened. for example. Agricultural land prices and rents should be expected to have turned upwards. by Johan Sevenbom (1721–84). 1277–2008 Labourers in Stockholm in 1767. The stratum of landless labourers grew strongly after 1750. The surplus from agrarian production was distributed more unequally than before. The relative price change was driven by population growth. it was grain prices in particular that rose strongly. Söderberg. 31 Statistisk årsbok för Stockholms stad 38 (1905. Some civil and military functionaries. The declining real wage rates of male labourers may to some extent have been compensated by increased labour market participation by women and children. Could it be realistic to assume such a dramatic downturn not only in real wage rates but also in real incomes and living standards? Probably not. Jonsson and Persson (1991. These informal occupations included illegal or quasi-legal activities such as the production of handicraft items without belonging to a guild. This is an effect of greater flexibility in nominal wage rates in Stockholm compared to rural Sweden.3 we also see that the fluctuations in real wages in Stockholm exceeded those in rural Sweden. pp. .3. had their pay in kind from tithes and rents. institutional changes were undertaken in Stockholm in order to facilitate the running of small businesses in certain branches 30 Söderberg. Low profits forced many Stockholm artisans into bankruptcy during the latter part of the 18th century. and part of the labour force was driven into informal sector occupations. It should be kept in mind that these real wage trends are not typical of social groups who enjoyed substantial payment in kind. the erosion of real wages in Stockholm was pronounced in the period 1730–1800. Food and lodging was the major part of their pay. particularly the clergy and officers of the county regiments. p. The real wage decline for them must have been less steep during this period (and. and the marriage rate fell from 13. Unemployment in the capital probably increased. One reason for this may be that Stockholm real wages suffered not only from the price rise of grains and other foodstuffs. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 463 The real wage decline 1730–1800 was more pronounced in Stockholm than in rural Sweden. During the 18th and early 19th centuries. One large such group was male and female servants in urban as well as in rural Sweden. or the selling of alcohol or various goods in the streets. 66). for example. 32 Artéus (1982. were often money-salaried. whereas the opposite was often true for low-price years. and their total number fell. correspondingly. the rise in their real wages during the 19th century should have been less pronounced than for labourers with no payment in kind). Most of the silk industry.9. which declined during the second half of the 18th century and the first part of the 19th. They became increasingly disadvantaged compared with their colleagues in rural regions.3 per 1.31 From Figure 9. Chapter 5). on the other hand.30 The economic problems affected demographic trends. as elsewhere. During years of high prices.32 Here. They probably gained from the grain price rise. the Stockholm curve tended to fall below that for rural Sweden. The population of Stockholm hardly changed in the latter half of the 18th century and the early 19th. but also from de-industrialization. The most important industrial branch in the capital was textile manufacturing.2 in 1801– 10. As seen in Figure 9. ceased to exist. Urban functionaries.000 in 1751–60 to only 8. 46–64). we observe a redistribution of income from urban to rural regions during the latter part of the 18th century. While most trades remained closed to women. involving an increased supply of market-oriented and money-earning activities and a simultaneous increase in 33 Bladh (1991. this new interest in female employment could not prevent the loss of many jobs for women as textile manufactories closed. pp. by women and widows. certain textile goods or used clothes. 50–56).33 This expansion of female trades should to some degree have counteracted the decline of male incomes in lower social strata. quite a number of women were allowed to earn an income in various occupations: as hawkers (making and selling certain kinds of food). The authorities were well aware that many married men were unable to provide for their families.464 Exchange rates. rowing mamsels. the concept of ‘the industrious revolution’ has been used to delineate a new type of household behaviour. Real wage rates of unskilled labourers in Stockholm and of male agricultural labourers in Sweden. furniture and household utensils. or bakers. and wages. or heavy drinking. 710 onwards. 1277–2008 Figure 9. prices. Yet. In order to avoid increased poor relief costs. the authorities stimulated the opening of certain businesses to women.3. illness. In international research. 400 350 300 250 200 150 100 50 0 1740 1760 1780 1800 1820 1840 1860 1880 1900 1920 Stockholm Rural Sweden Sources: Stockholm: see Figure 9.1. index 1780/89 = 100. innkeepers. . due to insufficient income. pp. rural Sweden: Jörberg (1972). 1732–1914. They could also work as vendors of tobacco. I. Vol. In Sweden as well as in England. ‘People are more inclined towards multiform than uniform’. On England see Lemire (1988). 496–504).37 New types of consumption were spreading to rural areas. The growing role of married women in the Stockholm economy fits this pattern. . the peasants criticized young people and servants for being affected by urban habits such as wearing watches.39 In Småland in southern Sweden. 430 n 2). pp. p. one author from rural northern Sweden observed around 1770. The growing incomes of peasants stimulated handicrafts and small industries such as book-binders’ shops. silk waistcoats. Svensson (1969. not only married women but also girl servants. Sylwan (1896. including silk items imported 34 35 36 37 38 39 Vries (2008).9. p. Even though real wage rates of labourers fell during most of the 18th century. there were several ways in which household incomes could be further supplemented by children’s work. Nordenström (1923. now dressed like the urban population. annual household incomes could increase as a result of working longer hours during the year.38 The traditional dark. velvet trousers. contemporaries observed that dress fashion was now changing from year to year. and high hats with buckles and silk ribbons.36 Consumers in Sweden. This revolution. This newspaper was distributed by a combination of subscriptions and street sales by newspaper boys. greater specialization in household production.35 There is as yet no thorough study of Swedish conditions from the perspective of ‘the industrious revolution’ but there are several indications that such an interpretation could be realistic. took place roughly between 1650 and 1850 in western Europe. uniform dress habits among the peasantry were giving way to more varied styles. several towns in other parts of Sweden expanded. the newspaper Dagligt Allehanda was started in Stockholm in 1767 as an advertising medium (in itself a typical phenomenon of the rising consumer aspirations and market expansion connected with ‘the industrious revolution’). While the economy of Stockholm stagnated in the period 1760–1850. the growth of second-hand markets in clothes and other goods was probably also important in making consumption cheap enough to include the lower classes. a higher work intensity. calendars and almanacs were made. as elsewhere in western Europe. contemporaries referred to the latter method as ‘the English way’ of distribution. where hymnbooks.34 In the Stockholm case. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 465 demand for many kinds of goods offered in the market. 82). They followed the latest fashion. Men as well as women. p. were attracted by new and exotic goods such as tobacco. sugar. and increased labour market participation by women and children. In parts of northern Sweden during the late 18th century. Söderlund (1949). This problem was said to be most serious along the trade routes to Stockholm. 60). driven by consumer aspirations. For example. and silk. Sylwan (1896. Much of the urban growth now took place in relatively small cities.1 is of course the steep increase in real wages after 1800. prices. or what de Vries labels a new urbanization period from 1750 to 1800/1850. stimulated by relative price shifts to the advantage of agrarian producers.wikipedia. . by Carl Johan Billmark (1804–70). as grain prices declined. De-industrialization in Stockholm thus went hand in hand with industrial (or proto-industrial) growth in rural areas. and other colourful fabrics.466 Exchange rates. 41 Vries (1984).org/wiki/Fil:Skeppsbron_1860_Carl_Johan_Billmark. this is also part of a broader European pattern. and wages. but this growth did not continue in the second quarter of the 19th century.5. in the old town of Stockholm. cottage production of textiles grew in many rural areas and seems to have been better adapted to local demands than were the products of manufactories in the capital.40 In response to increased demand. Source: http://sv. Real wages rose after the Napoleonic wars.41 9. 66–8). The period after 1800 The dominant feature of Figure 9. These regional shifts can also be interpreted against the background of the new consumer aspirations that were driving the industrious revolution.jpg by the Swedish East India Company. The first sustained rise in the purchasing power of labour did not materialize until after about 40 Gaslander (1982. Like the changes in the previous period. 1277–2008 Skeppsbron in 1860. pp. real wages of unskilled labourers in Stockholm began to depart from those of agricultural labourers in rural Sweden. surging prices increased the risk of malnutrition and excess mortality.44 For this reason. (1935. A new industrial structure was established in Stockholm.3. such as the textile and match industries.9. when industrialization gained ground. Stable prices enhanced welfare by facilitating more regular provisioning with basic foodstuffs. Vol I. 42 Bagge et al. This further underscores the improvement of labourers’ conditions connected with industrialization. Already by 1900. At about that time. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 467 1870. In other words. relying on relatively high wages.1 it is immediately obvious that the real wages of Stockholm labourers became more stable in the long run. the working day had been shortened to 10 hours and the 48-hour week was introduced in 1920.4 and Table 9. In 1895. became key branches.2 provide a clearer picture of how volatility has changed. 404–7). interprets the standard medieval economic policy of price regulation against the background of unstable prices and their repercussions on living standards. an unprecedented wage rise went hand in hand with a substantial shortening of working hours. 14–5). By 1900. But in years of crisis. pp. The short-term fluctuations around the trend were clearly greater before the mid-18th century than afterwards. 43 Persson (1999. Unstable prices were a fundamental problem of pre-industrial economies due to the large fluctuations they caused in living conditions. as is evident from Figure 9. p.42 In other words. 44 Cipolla (1967. pp. 31). Volatility in real wages and prices International research has emphasized that fluctuations in real wages (or in prices of basic necessities) can be seen as a welfare indicator. as nominal wages were inflexible. could not survive in the capital and had to relocate to regions where wages were lower. Large swings from one year to another had serious welfare implications. 9. it is important to assess not only the level of real wages but also the magnitude of the fluctuations around the trend. the working day of Stockholm building labourers was still as long as 12 hours in the summer half of the year (April to September). volatility was reduced. Low-wage branches. 23. From Figure 9.43 The Italian economic historian. Carlo Cipolla. p. In times of falling prices.6. Mechanical engineering and typographic industry. . this could give rise to unforeseen increases in purchasing power. Figure 9. real wages were substantially higher than ever before. 1291–2004. Volatility of the deflator CPI. prices.1. 350 300 250 200 150 100 50 0 -50 -100 1250 1300 1350 1400 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 1900 1950 2000 Note: Missing values in the deflator CPI have been interpolated.4. 150 100 50 0 -50 -100 1450 1500 1550 1600 1650 1700 1750 1800 1850 1900 1950 2000 Source: Table A9. and wages. . Figure 9.5. Volatility of real wages of labourers in Stockholm/Sweden 1468–2004. measured as the percentage year-onyear change in the CPI.1. 1277–2008 Figure 9. Source: Table A9.468 Exchange rates. measured as the percentage year-on-year change in real wages. however. 161). Period 1291–1399 1400–99 1500–99 1600–99 1700–99 1800–99 1900–2004 Volatility of real wages Volatility of deflator CPI 38. 15–6.xls.2 suggest that price volatility. Price data are more continuous. Crops were damaged by cold and wet weather. Ahnlund (1953. It should be added. This makes it possible to give a picture of price volatility for earlier periods. real wage volatility cannot be calculated before the 16th century. and the grain shortage led to extremely high prices. 353). 6–10). The rainy weather may be connected with an eruption of the volcano Kaharoa in New Zealand. Figure 9. p. See the large price data file compiled by Gregory Clark.2. measured as the standard deviation of the percentage year-on-year change. p. was quite high during the period 1291–1399. England_1209-1914_(Clark). as measured by the deflator CPI. Volatility in real wages and in the deflator CPI. pp.6 6. p. who used a now lost source. since it seems unlikely that Sweden escaped this harvest failure. was higher in 1316 and 1317 than in any other year between the start of the series in 1209 and the years 1623 and 1637. Jordan (1996. http://gpih.ucdavis. is probably realistic. the calculation of price volatility for this early period should be viewed with caution since data are sparse and the extremely high price in 1313 (which should perhaps be dated to the harvest year 1315) has a strong impact on the result. Vol.1 17. . described in Chapter 8 above. in grams of silver per litre.9. the very high price of rye in 1315 was noted by the chronicler Detmar. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 469 Table 9.9 7.2 14. Historiske kildeskrifter og bearbejdelser af dansk historie især fra det 16.0 20. The fairly high level of volatility in the 15th century. The Swedish price record from 1313 stems from the 15th-century chronicler Ericus Olai. respectively. contributed to the high volatility in the 16th century. available from Global Price and Income History Group.3 9. however. Lucas (1930. Jordan (1996. which lasted about five years. However. Nairn et al (2004). aarhundrede.1. pp.7 Source: Table A9. 194 note 63) refers to Swedish chronicles mentioning unusual thunder and terrible displays of lightning in 1315. At Lübeck.8 19.5 4.0 16. 1291–2004. probably the worst during the century. The years of monetary crisis.4 13. 1 (1873.5 and Table 9. p. 589). The price of wheat and barley in England. After that. 50–2). Due to the scarcity of medieval wage data.7 12.45 Data availability is much better from the early 15th century onwards. that the period 1315–17 is wellknown for harvest failures in northern Europe.edu/. It is possible that this quotation should be dated to the harvest year of 1315 instead. and even more so in the 16th century. Danish chroniclers also wrote about the high prices this year following the destruction of crops by rain. volatility decreased for 45 Kershaw (1973. It is also likely that Swedish harvests became more stable during the 19th century. prices. In particular. 9. an unskilled labourer could buy approximately 1 kg of butter for his daily wage. no long-term improvement in living standards was possible because population growth would tend to exceed the increase in food production. the Malthusian mechanism was no longer effective. but only temporarily. whereas real wages improved during the 17th century when population pressure was weaker. the price of labour would rise. In 2004. Land reclamation could not solve the problem since the cultivation of less productive marginal lands would lead to rising food prices. especially the price of grains. According to Malthus.7. and wages. No sustained growth in real wages occurred in the pre-industrial era. With industrialization. During the industrial period.g. Yet it was not until industrialization had gained momentum around 1870 that the highest levels in the pre-industrial era were surpassed. as well as in many other parts of Europe.. no doubt due in part to the expansion of trade in the Baltic area in the 17th century. or war). During the pre-industrial era up to 1800. as population as well as real wages surged upwards. producing a substantial decline in price volatility. The years around 1800 were characterized by lower real wages than in any other period (though single years with even lower wages can be found in connection with the harvest failures of the late 1590s). The parallel trend is not surprising since short-run fluctuations in real wages were primarily due to changing prices of the goods included in the CPI.470 Exchange rates. famine. despite temporary upturns during the World Wars. The reduction in the volatility of prices and real wages suggests more regular provisioning. Real wages improved from the early 19th century onwards. the First World War had a strong impact on price volatility. If the population declined (e. leading to more stable living conditions after the 16th century. the average male industrial worker . For this reason. This reduction continued throughout the pre-industrial era. due to epidemics. not to fluctuating nominal wages. The actual pattern in Sweden. This would lead to an improvement for the labourers. enabling Sweden to import grains from Livonia and other regions in times of high prices or harvest failures. Concluding discussion The real wage trends during the period up to about 1800 seem to agree with an economic model of the type presented by Thomas Robert Malthus more than two hundred years ago. overall price volatility during the period 1900–2004 was of the same magnitude as during the 19th century. fits this model fairly well. We have seen that strong population growth during most of the 16th and 18th centuries pushed real wages down. since renewed population growth would soon press real wages down again. 1277–2008 prices as well as real wages. Malthus assumed that agricultural productivity could not rise in the longer run. prices as well as real wages became even more stable in the short run. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 471 could buy 25 times as much for his pre-tax daily wage. resulting in a more regular supply. .9. This levelling tendency is probably due to the expansion of trade in grains. at least they benefited from more stable prices and wages. based on the assumption that large swings in these variables were harmful to labourers. followed by further reductions during the subsequent century. Volatility in real wages and prices has been used here as a welfare indicator. Prices as well as real wages became more stable in the long run. The evolution of volatility tells a somewhat different story than does the mere movement of real wages. So even if Stockholm labourers did not enjoy any sustained rise in real wages before the advent of industrialization. as the short-term fluctuations were already diminishing in the 17th century. real wage development in the last two centuries is one of strong and almost uninterrupted growth. Despite some setbacks during the two world wars and a tendency towards weaker growth after the late 1970s. 7 2.33 2.25 2.0 3.75 (11i) Gram silver 2.4 3.6 2. prices. 1277–2008 Table A9.1 3.5 3 3 Gram silver 4.2 3.7 2.9 3.25i 1 1 1 1 1 1 2 2 2.0 Real wage 17 15 15 15 14 16 16 15 14 16 13 15 14 14 22 19 17 17 14 11 10 8 11 15 14 15 14 14 13 14 15 15 15 14 13 13 11 12 11 11 6 7 Year 1594 1595 1596 1597 1598 1599 1600 1601 1602 1603 1604 1605 1606 1607 1608 1609 1610 1611 1612 1613 1614 1615 1616 1617 1618 1619 1620 1621 1622 1623 1624 1625 1626 1627 1628 1629 1630 1631 1632 1633 1634 1635 Nominal wage 4 (16i) 5 5 5 5 5 5 4.8 3.8 1.25 2 3 3 2. and wages. skilling 1777-1788.6 3.3 1.6 3.63 2.6 4.25 6.4 2.6 3.33 1.33 1.5 5 5 5 5 5 5 5 6 6 6 6 6 6.7 2.4 0. and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100).4 3.5 2.5 3.4 2.0 3.6 2.6 3.9 2.33 1.5 3.1 4.9 1.6 3.5 2.7 1.8 2.7 2.3 4.7 3.6 3.2 3.5 2.0 1.7 3.7 2.2 3.0 2.42 5.2 2.2 2.9 4.33 1.4 3.6 3.1 3.8 2.4 3.1 2.1 1.9 3.7 2.3 1.0 2.8 1.4 2. öre kopparmynt 1625-1776.0 1.7 1.0 2.8 2.1 1.2 Real wage 13 14 11 9 11 11 14 10 10 11 11 12 12 11 11 12 11 12 11 11 10 11 12 13 11 14 16 19 16 14 14 16 14 14 12 14 13 15 13 10 11 13 .25 2. daily wage in gram silver.2 2.8 2.8 1.4 2.83 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1 1.7 2.6 3.7 Real wage 18 16 19 22 22 24 30 25 27 23 27 15 20 19 23 25 20 21 16 21 14 10 11 12 12 15 11 11 11 17 17 18 14 20 19 16 16 15 16 13 15 15 Year 1552 1553 1554 1555 1556 1557 1558 1559 1560 1561 1562 1563 1564 1565 1566 1567 1568 1569 1570 1571 1572 1573 1574 1575 1576 1577 1578 1579 1580 1581 1582 1583 1584 1585 1586 1587 1588 1589 1590 1591 1592 1593 Nominal wage 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3 3.0 3.7 3.2 1.7 3.9 3.0 1.0 1.6 2.7 2.0 3.9 3.8 2.1 3.0 1.5 1. Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624.17 1 1.0 3.1 3.2 3.7 2.4 1.6 3.9 3.1.33 1.1 2.5 3.6 3.4 3.6 3.6 2.6 2.7 2.3 2.0 3.9 3.0 1.8 1.9 4.2 2.33 5.83 0.0 3.33 1.2 1.9 3.6 2.33 1.5 3.33 8 8 8 9 10 11 11 12 16 21.5 7 7 7 8 8 8 8 8 8 9 9 10 12 14 18 20 16 16 16 18 Gram silver 2. and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850).33 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 4 2 (8i) 2.8 1.8 4.9 2.0 3.1 3.2 3.2 2.2 2.9 3.8 2.2 2.8 3.472 Exchange rates.5 4. Year 1365 1430 1440 1467 1468 1476 1478 1496 1497 1501 1502 1509 1510 1512 1513 1516 1517 1518 1519 1520 1521 1522 1523 1524 1525 1526 1529 1536 1537 1539 1540 1541 1542 1543 1544 1545 1546 1547 1548 1549 1550 1551 Nominal wage 1 0. 8 3.3 6.7 4.4 4.1 5.6 4.4 5.9 3.0 4.2 4.8 4.7 4.2 4.8 4.2 4.0 5.1 4.8 4.3 4.1 5.1 5.3 4.8 3.9 4.6 4. and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850).8 5.3 5.5 4.1 5.8 5.5 5.0 2.2 4.5 4.1 5.3 4.3 4.5 6.8 3.1 5.1 4.5 4.7 5.3 4.4 3.8 4.8 4.6 3. Year 1636 1637 1638 1639 1640 1641 1642 1643 1644 1645 1646 1647 1648 1649 1650 1651 1652 1653 1654 1655 1656 1657 1658 1659 1660 1661 1662 1663 1664 1665 1666 1667 1668 1669 1670 1671 1672 1673 1674 1675 1676 1677 1678 Nominal wage 18 18 18 18 20 20 24 24 24 24 24 25 24 24 24 22.5 5.8 4.2 5.3 4.2 4.9 3.1 5.5 4.4 24 26.9 6.3 4.1 5.2 4.8 4.2 4.1 6. Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624.8 4.1 (cont.2 5.0 4.2 4.1 5. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 473 Table A9.3 4.8 4.6 4.1 4.3 4.1 5.1 Real wage 19 15 15 15 14 14 15 16 17 18 17 16 17 16 15 17 24 22 18 17 18 20 22 17 17 16 15 16 16 16 16 16 15 14 13 12 12 13 14 13 11 9 9 .0 4.6 4.1 5.9.0 5. öre kopparmynt 1625-1776.9 4.8 3.8 3.0 4.5 4.7 4.9 5. and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100).3 6.4 4.).3 4.0 5.4 5.9 4.8 Real wage 13 13 14 13 14 12 15 15 13 15 15 16 15 13 9 11 9 17 20 19 13 12 15 12 12 10 11 10 11 10 12 12 14 13 15 15 13 14 10 10 12 11 12 Year 1679 1680 1681 1682 1683 1684 1685 1686 1687 1688 1689 1690 1691 1692 1693 1694 1695 1696 1697 1698 1699 1700 1701 1702 1703 1704 1705 1706 1707 1708 1709 1710 1711 1712 1713 1714 1715 1716 1717 1718 1719 1720 1721 Nominal wage 32 32 32 32 32 32 32 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 40 48 48 48 48 48 80 64 72 Gram silver 3.1 5. daily wage in gram silver.3 4.7 3.2 4.2 4.8 5.6 5.2 5.0 5.5 4.2 4.7 4.2 Real wage 13 15 16 17 17 12 16 21 20 18 19 19 20 19 13 14 19 14 12 11 14 15 17 16 16 18 17 17 14 14 10 15 16 15 16 15 16 13 9 9 12 15 18 Year 1722 1723 1724 1725 1726 1727 1728 1729 1730 1731 1732 1733 1734 1735 1736 1737 1738 1739 1740 1741 1742 1743 1744 1745 1746 1747 1748 1749 1750 1751 1752 1753 1754 1755 1756 1757 1758 1759 1760 1761 1762 1763 1764 Nominal wage 64 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 48 64 64 64 64 64 68 72 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 64 68 76 80 96 88 88 Gram silver 5.9 4.2 4.1 4. skilling 1777-1788.88 32 32 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 24 28 28 28 28 28 28 28 28 28 28 30 32 32 Gram silver 4.3 4.2 4.6 3.0 4.2 3.4 4.1 3.2 4.1 5.4 4.2 4.4 4.2 5.5 5.1 3.8 4.1 5.2 4.7 4.6 3. 6 9.7 5.4 7.7 Real wage 10 14 17 15 15 14 11 14 15 17 12 14 14 13 13 13 13 13 12 13 12 12 13 12 12 12 12 11 11 11 10 10 10 9 8 7 7 7 8 10 10 9 9 Year 1808 1809 1810 1811 1812 1813 1814 1815 1816 1817 1818 1819 1820 1821 1822 1823 1824 1825 1826 1827 1828 1829 1830 1831 1832 1833 1834 1835 1836 1837 1838 1839 1840 1841 1842 1843 1844 1845 1846 1847 1848 1849 1850 Nominal wage 20 20 20 24 24 33 33 33 33 33 33 33 33 30 30 37.5 49.33 9.7 6.2 7.5 49.3 4.2 24.33 9.6 17.0 5.5 15.2 7.2 7.0 5.5 10.3 27.1 4.0 5.1 4.4 3.33 9.67 10.7 4.5 4.67 12 16 16 16 16 Gram silver 3.67 10.0 15.2 7.2 7. öre kopparmynt 1625-1776.0 5.67 10.33 9.2 21.0 14.33 9.6 9.67 10.8 3.2 13. Year 1765 1766 1767 1768 1769 1770 1771 1772 1773 1774 1775 1776 1777 1778 1779 1780 1781 1782 1783 1784 1785 1786 1787 1788 1789 1790 1791 1792 1793 1794 1795 1796 1797 1798 1799 1800 1801 1802 1803 1804 1805 1806 1807 Nominal wage 96 112 112 88 88 88 88 112 112 112 96 112 9.33 9.2 4.0 5.2 7.0 4.67 10.33ii (112iii) 9.33 9.5 19.0 5.1 6.33 9.9 Real wage 15 16 14 15 13 14 15 20 20 16 15 16 17 16 18 16 15 16 19 18 18 20 19 21 21 20 21 22 22 22 22 23 23 25 26 27 28 27 28 28 27 29 30 .33 9.5 4.1 (cont.7 5.7 15.2 7.33 9.0 17.6 4.2 7.0 4.4 11.7 6. 1277–2008 Table A9.33 10.6 18.6 8.2 7. and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850).1 5.).6 9.4 4.9 4.4 14.2 7.33 9.0 3.6 11.5 54 54 51 51 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 54 57 Gram silver 7.5 4.5 6.474 Exchange rates. skilling 1777-1788.0 9.5 49.1 5.6 7.7 4.1 16.1 5.2 11. prices.7 5.5 4.7 4.33 9.1 4.5 42 49.67 10.9 20.2 16.0 5.6 4.3 5. and wages.5 15.2 7.0 4.6 7.7 10.8 4.6 Real wage 8 8 8 8 7 10 10 11 10 10 10 10 11 10 10 14 15 17 15 16 17 18 17 15 16 17 17 17 16 16 15 16 16 15 15 16 17 16 15 15 16 16 16 Year 1851 1852 1853 1854 1855 1856 1857 1858 1859 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 Gram silver 7.1 5.33 9.5 4.0 6.5 15. Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624.5 4.2 5.3 9.7 21.7 9.9 5.67 10.6 7.0 5.2 7.0 5.7 5.6 4.0 5.6 9.0 8.5 6.1 5.2 17.6 9.2 7.9 6. and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100).67 10.0 5.8 18.2 9.7 7.3 6.5 6.2 7.0 10.0 5.0 9.8 5.1 5.2 5.8 12.2 5.3 5. daily wage in gram silver.2 4.33 9.33 9.2 7.0 5. 6 65. skilling 1777-1788. and skilling riksgälds 1789-1850).0 46.4 70.1 (cont. In skilling.4 50.).7 32 32 33 33 34 34 34 35 35 36 37 37 38 38 38 40 42 42 41 42 43 Year 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 Real wage 39 38 38 37 45 55 67 58 59 60 61 64 64 65 67 70 72 71 72 72 71 Year 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 Real wage 71 72 74 74 71 67 69 72 74 78 83 93 95 98 100 In klipping coins. and real wage 1365-1850 (1950=100).6 34.4 44. Year 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 i Gram silver Real wage 34.4 66.0 69.0 43.7 64.8 53.9 53.4 69. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 475 Table A9.7 51. 1 daler kopparmynt (in 1625-1777) = 32 öre kopparmynt. Daily nominal wage (in öre 1365-1624.0 34. öre kopparmynt 1625-1776.1 40.9.4 45.7 74.3 47. daily wage in gram silver.0 51. iii In öre kopparmynt. ii . Princeton University Press. The Cambridge Economic History of Europe III. Stockholm. England_1209-1914_(Clark). Cambridge University Press. Stockholm. Oxford University Department of Economics Working Paper 314. Economic History Review. 1209–2004”. Vol. Vol. ‘Farm Wages.). Cambridge University Press. E E Rich and E Miller (eds. G (1982). A Farewell to Alms: A Brief Economic History of the World. Cipolla. Clark. Agricultural Fluctuations in Europe from the Thirteenth to the Twentieth Centuries. F and F Spooner (1967). C (1991). England. Princeton. Stockholmsmonografier utgivna av Stockholms stad. N (1953). Pessimism Preserved: Real Wages in the British Industrial Revolution. Clark G (2007b). Stockholm. London. W (1967). London. Population and Economic Growth. 1307–1340. in M M Postan. .). E Lundberg and I Svennilsson (1935). Wages in Sweden 1860–1930. Clark. Cambridge. Journal of Political Economy. H Phelps and S V Hopkins (1981). Brown. prices. Månglerskor. Methuen. I–II. Krigsmakt och samhälle i frihetstidens Sverige. Bladh. G (2007a). and rents’. Artéus. Bagge. 97–135. pp. ‘The Condition of the Working-Class in England. in J Thirsk (ed.se/ra/diplomat. A Perspective of Wages and Prices. Online at: www. Militärhistoriska förlaget. Bowden. Oxford. 113(6). C M (1963). G (1987). G. 12091869’. ‘Agricultural prices. I medeltidens Stockholm. ‘Prices in Europe from 1450 to 1750’.476 Exchange rates. and wages. Cambridge. Cambridge Economic History of Europe IV. farm profits. Monografier utgivna av Stockholms kommunalförvaltning. Dahlbäck. Economic Organization and Policies in the Middle Ages.ucdavis. G (2005).ra. Vol. Att sälja från bod och korg i Stockholm 1819–1846. Braudel. 60(1). Stockholm. Online at: http://gpih. Cambridge University Press. London. pp. The Agrarian History of England and Wales IV. Cambridge. ‘The Italian and Iberian Peninsula’.xls. Allen. Stockholms historia före Gustav Vasa. P S King & Son. Ahnlund. 1277–2008 References Digital sources Global Price and Income History Group. Methuen.html Published sources Abel. R C (2007). Stockholms medeltidsmuseum.edu/ SDhk = Svenskt diplomatariums huvudkartotek över medeltidsbreven. P (1967). Hobsbawm. Berg. Omfördelningen av jordbrukets merprodukt i Skaraborgs län under frihetstiden. Kershaw. Monumenta historiæ danicæ. Stockholm. Elanders. Herlitz. 1560–1660. Almqvist & Wiksell. Göteborg. Sundsvall. Nairn. Beskrifning om svenska allmogens sinnelag och seder. Peasants. Tarawera Volcano. Holger Rørdam (ed. Journal of British Studies. Vol. Speculum. in T Aston (ed. 625–658.). Utkast till beskrifning öfwer Stöde socken vid Medelpads södra ådal belägen. Lemire. I Collijn (ed. B (1988). Studier tillägnade Curt Weibull.). Dagligt bröd i onda tider: priser och löner i Stockholm och Västsverige 1500–1700. pp.). 3–50. Sockenstämmor och kommunalförvaltning i Stockholm fram till 1864. 58. New Zealand’. Lucas. 1316. 5. Vol. Princeton. Olsson. Crisis in Europe. London. L (1972). Stockholm. Jansson. M M (1923). Jörberg. pp. 59. Gleerup. 343–77. L (1974). No. aarhundrede. Landlords and Merchant Capitalists. E J (1965). I (1973). pp. An Introduction to the Sources of European Economic History 1500-1800. T (1967). Europe and the World Economy. Myrdal. Kriedte. Princeton University Press. P (1983).. Lund. Institutet för lokalhistorisk forskning. H S (1930). The Agrarian Economy of Sixteenth-Century Sweden. Rediviva. 265–294.). ‘Pessimism Perpetuated: Real Wages and the Standard of Living in Britain during and after the Industrial Revolution’. N J G Wide (ed. C (1998). W C (1996). Stockholm. Monografier utgivna av Stockholms kommunalförvaltning. ‘The Great Famine’. Jordan. Journal of Economic History. Gaslander. Nordenström. ‘Consumerism in Preindustrial and Early Industrial England: The Trade in Secondhand Clothes’. Long-term trends in real wages of labourers 477 Feinstein. The Great Famine: Northern Europe in the Early Fourteenth Century. ‘Rhyolite Magma Processes of the AD 1315 Kaharoa Eruption Episode. København. ‘Italy’. 3 (Sep. Ledin. Historiske kildeskrifter og bearbejdelser af dansk historie især fra det 16. ‘The Great European Famine of 1315. Journal of Volcanology and Geothermal Research. 27 (Jan. pp. and 1317’. Vol. No. ‘The General Crisis of the European Economy in the Seventeenth Century’. 4 (Oct. Stockholm. . I. A History of Prices in Sweden. Vol. Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen.). 1998). Jordegendom och ränta. G (1977). Göteborg.). in C Wilson and G Parker (eds. L A Palm and J Söderberg (1991). Oxford. P (1982). Vol. J and J Söderberg (2002). 1–24. Felloni. ‘Freden i Köpenhamn 1509’. Past and Present No. pp. 1 (1873). London. Västbo härad. A. 131. Vol. Handlingar rörande Helga lekamens gille II–IV (1923). Almqvist & Wiksell International.9. Göteborg.). Weidenfeld & Nicolson. Småland [1774]. Höjer. G (1946). 1500–1800. I A et al (2004). Gleerup. pp. Söderlund. 155–176. Lund. Stockholm.478 Exchange rates. 3. B H (1963). Antwerp. Sommarin. prices. Loonarbeid en honger: de levensstandaard in de XVe en XVIe eeuw te Antwerpen. Cambridge. Bygd och yttervärld. European Urbanization 1500–1800. Vol. Historisk tidskrift. The Industrious Revolution: Consumer Behavior and the Household Economy. J (1987b). Nordiska museet. Universitetsbiblioteket. J A Almqvist (ed. Cambridge University Press. Statistisk årsbok för Stockholms stad. Stockholms byggmästareförening. Stockholm. London. 1650 to the Present. 1500–1900: Integration and Deregulation. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. 341–356. Vries. ‘Hade Heckscher rätt? Priser och reallöner i 1500-talets Stockholm’. Univ. E (1949). Vries. S (1969). Stockholm. Svenska pressens historia till statshvälfningen 1772. Cambridge University Press. 1750–1850. Söderberg. ‘Vår första dagstidning’. E (1908). Svensson. pp. Cambridge. Slicher van Bath.). J (1987a). Tiden. ‘Real Wage Trends in Urban Europe. . Stockholm. O (1896). Sylwan. Edward Arnold. II. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. G (1978). Stockholms stads skottebok 1460–1468 (1926). Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. H Hildebrand (ed. Stockholm. Stockholm. Samfundet för utgivande av handskrifter rörande Skandinaviens historia. Fattig och föräldralös i Stockholm på 1600. 1277–2008 Persson. Vol. Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1474–1483 samt burspråk (1917). J de (1984). Ord och Bild.). Stockholm.). U Jonsson and C Persson (1991). Sylwan. Grain Markets in Europe. Cambridge. Lund. Social History. Vol. Vol. Stockholms stads skottebok 1501–1510 (1915). Stockholms stads tänkeböcker 1492–1500 (1930).och 1700-talen. Hantverkarna. Scholliers. K G (1999). E Hildebrand (ed. J. 38 (1905). 12. A Stagnating Metropolis: The Economy and Demography of Stockholm. Cambridge University Press. Methuen. Vol. W (1979). Stockholms stads statistiska kontor. 107. J A Almqvist (ed. O (1896). 1730-1850: Stockholm in a Comparative Perspective’. Stockholm. Bidrag till kännedom om arbetareförhållanden vid svenska bergverk och bruk. Utterström. J de (2008). The Agrarian History of Western Europe. Umeå. London. Söderberg. Timmermansämbetet i Stockholm före år 1700. and wages. E (1960).). Söderberg. Pursche. From our vantage point. Any remaining errors rest with the author. as well as improved working conditions and greater security 1 The author would like to acknowledge Daniel Waldenström. annual household earnings. would be a better indicator of material well-being. preventing workers from gaining sustainable increases in the purchasing power of goods and services.25 per cent annually. Lars Svensson. It is only during the era of modern economic growth that expectations of perpetual rises in real wages have been fulfilled. Furthermore. they have also enjoyed shorter working hours per week. indicates progress or decline in living standards. the most important by-product of economic growth. the movement of nominal wages. Rodney Edvinsson. deflated by a cost-of-living index. implying that purchasing power thus measured has increased by a factor of 26. Workers have gained access to an almost infinite variety of goods and services. Jan Bohlin.2 Throughout most of the pre-modern era. Oskar Broberg. 1860–2007 Svante Prado 10. real wages of male manufacturing workers have on average increased 2. Introduction The nominal wage represents the marginal return to a unit of labour input. longer holidays and decreased years of work over the lifetime. Stefan Öberg. these real hourly earnings exclude payroll taxes. In addition. Of course. Jonatan Svanlund.10. 2 . Johan Söderberg. workers have gained enormously since the onset of sustainable increases in income per capita in the mid-19th century. the significance of which increased notably in the latter half of the twentieth century. the ratio between wages and prices has failed to remain on a long-term upward track.1. To address issues of material living standards. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. There are various objections to using the growth of real hourly earnings as a measure of changing living standards.1 The rise or fall in nominal wages is one of the most central aspects of an economy in which competitive labour markets determine the price of manpower. Christer Lundh. Since 1860. and also in many of today’s less developed countries. Martin Fritz and Erik Bengtsson for helpful suggestions. or annual disposable incomes. Still. and wages. employers have altered minimum hiring standards many a time since 1860. like unskilled. This project shares with all historical wage studies the intention of establishing wage series with as high a degree of inter-temporal consistency as possible in the qualifications demanded of the workers. with particular attention to the different wage sources before and after 1913. manual or plain labourer. 4 . The first half of the chapter deals with the nature. who constructed 7 industry-specific wage series based on archival research and wage series of agriculture and municipal workers spanning 1860–1913. Therefore unskilled workers are subjected to 3 Scholliers (1989) is an excellent introduction to the significant role which the measurement and interpretation of real wages have played in the historiography of economic history. who constructed annual wage series covering the period 1870–1950 and all major sectors of the economy. prices.2. Research on the long-term evolution of wages by sectors in Sweden is relatively scarce. Other works include Jungenfelt (1959. despite the many far-reaching implications of technological development. It is also sometimes suggested that this kind of labour service commands no industry-specific formal skill or requires little or no on-the-job training. spanning the era in its entirety and circumventing the constraint imposed by inter-temporal inconsistency in the classification of industry. which contain wage series for day workers in agriculture based on market price scales in 1732–1914. has remained fairly unchanged over time. and Ljungberg (2004). 1935). In brief.480 Exchange rates.4 An attempt is made to construct nine wage series for groups of industries and an overall average series for manufacturing as a whole. The second half contains a discussion of the results. The idea is that it is possible to trace the nominal price of a particular kind of labour service. modern approaches also use nominal and real wages to address issues of. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933. An early example is Bagge. 1966).3 The purpose of this chapter is to document series of nominal and real wages of male and female manufacturing workers in 1860–2007. divergence and convergence between sectors. who presented annual wages for 6 manufacturing industries in 1870–1950. who explored the female-to-male wage gap in 1913–90 on the basis of wage data from the official statistics for 11 manufacturing industries. who has compiled series of earnings of graduate and college engineers in 1867–2002 to study educational pay-off. Quality of labour Needless to say. Björklund and Stenlund (1995). Commonly. most importantly in the discussions of the British industrial revolution. sources and definitions of the historical wage sources available. Jörberg’s (1972) magisterial volumes of prices. Svensson (1995). 10. 1277–2008 in the face of unemployment and sickness. the importance of real wages as a manifestation of the material benefits of economic growth serves to justify the close attention social scientists devote to the measurement of nominal wages. whereas an older tradition used real wages as an indicator of the evolution of living standard. the essential feature of which. for instance. regions and countries and various aspects of income distributions. attempts to document long-term series for wages seek to trace the evolution of wages for an unchanged professional characteristic. with respect to growth rates of male real wages and the evolutions of the female-to-male wage gap and inter-industry wage differentials. see Gustafsson (1965) and Cornell (1982). typical workers labelled unskilled were mostly found in the construction sector.9 employed a mass of helpers and transport 5 6 Williamson (1995).8 Other industries. they were what Kenneth Sokoloff tellingly referred to as artisanal shops.10. for the labour service performed at the sawmill industry. 1956). Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.7 For instance. A more recent one is Allen (2001). 7 8 9 . For Sweden.jpg. in the Swedish mechanical engineering industry at the beginning of the 20th century. Lundh Nilsson (2007. for instance helpers in the building trade or unskilled road and canal construction workers. 1860–2007 481 The Kohlswa ironworks in 1900.5 Before the proportion of manufacturing industries reached significant importance in the economy.wikimedia. The most classic example of long-term series of construction workers is that of Phelps Brown and Hopkins (1955. p. Utterström and Söderlund (1959) provide insights into the type of labour that iron works needed. Sokoloff (1984). 96). only 13 per cent were helpers and 83 per cent were workers with a specific profession (the rest were supervisors and apprentices). see Johan Söderberg’s contribution in Chapter 9 of this volume. Source: http://commons. similar forces of demand and supply in the labour market which do not derive from industry-specific developments of new technologies. for instance the sawmill industry and iron and steel works.6 In the initial stages of industrialisation it is perhaps doubtful whether unskilled workers were a common category of labour since most manufacturing industries were small-scaled and relied on handicraft-based technologies. Monthlies.org/wiki/File:Kohlswa_jernverk. and from steam and water power to electricity. Statistical agencies in the 20th century have in general not responded to economic historians’ infatuation with the prefix unskilled. 1277–2008 workers. . They simply distinguish between workers on the one hand and technical personnel (engineers.12 We also lack the type of government surveys which were conducted in the US post-bellum years. do not mention a specific occupational category like common labour or unskilled labour. Their model.10 The Social Board’s official wage statistics. With wage statistics one is however inclined to take a less benign view on the supply of useful source material. which makes the enterprise to patch some or all of them together.3. Historical wage sources Today’s researchers with a keen eye on the historical dimensions of wages depend crucially on past generations’ concern with the detailed documentation and compilation of wage records. predicts that the increase in the relative demand for skilled labour was associated with the technological shifts from factories to continuous-process and batch methods. L. 13 Margo (2006). When the 20th century drew to a close. we have nothing that at all closely resembles the Norwegian Wedervang’s Arkiv. which supplies a wealth of wage quotations back to the mid-18th century. supported by historical evidence from the early 20th century. to capture as long a time span of history as possible. but unskilled workers probably did no become preponderant in manufacturing industries before the mass production technologies in the 20th century. and wages. have instead become the most important employer of unskilled workers. the label unskilled fell out of favour among statistical agencies. prices. Perhaps the market service sectors. administrative staff and shop assistants on the other. the so-called Weeks and Aldrich reports. particularly challenging. Thus the label worker is very heterogeneous.H. 11 David and Sollar (1977). The use of modern technology reduced the need for unskilled workers and increased the proportion of white-collar workers.13 or the wage material which A. Wood used to compile their pioneering index of average earnings in the UK during the 19th centu10 Goldin and Katz (1998) argue along a somewhat different line. and the forces of technical development and capital accumulation served to contract the labour force in manufacturing industries. Sweden is known for its rich source of statistical material from earlier times. 12 Grytten (2007).482 Exchange rates. which came into being in 1913. Various possible wage sources are at our disposal. for instance a census from 1749 and annual publications of industrial statistics from the mid-19th century. For instance. in particular for the 19th century. some of which are characterised by a multiplicity of quite monotonous labour services. and supervisors). chemists. the share of unskilled workers started to decline. 10. Bowley and G.11 It is a great paradox that whereas the rise of mass production technologies in the 20th century turned the manufacturing industry into a large employer of the typical unskilled worker. Source: http://commons. 1860–2007 483 The AGA factory in Lidingö.jpg ry. Lindert and Williamson (1983) and Feinstein (1998). de Long (1960) and Rees (1961). Our knowledge of wage movements before the First World 14 Feinstein (1990).14 The scarceness of wage data may be one explanation for the faint interest which Swedish economic historians have taken in the evolution of wages during the era of industrialisation before the First World War. Three well-known books are Douglas (1930). . the most cited works have focused on the development of wages during the industrial revolution and the 19th century. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. outside Stockholm. Action was taken only when the first major labour conflicts occurred around the turn of the century. 15 In contrast. Hartwell (1961). in 1915. for instance Hobsbawm (1957). the overwhelmingly agrarian nature of the Swedish economy in the latter half of the 19th century may explain the low priority Swedish authorities gave to the systematic collection and presentation of wages in sectors other than agriculture.org/wiki/File:AGA_ Fabrik_1910.15 In relation to the US and the UK.10.wikimedia. the list of works on the historical evolution of real wages for American manufacturing workers is lengthy. In the British case. A series of investigations into working conditions and wage remunerations in manufacturing industries paved the way for the establishment of the Social Board’s official wage statistics in 1913. posing a threat to the social order. Gösta Bagge. thereby eliminating the influence of age on 16 Bagge. In the 1920s. and the second covers 1913–2007.3. cost of living and national income for Sweden between 1860 and 1930. Second. A worker’s wage was recorded for no more than 5–10 years.16 The presentation of the sources and methods used to construct the present series of Swedish wages thus falls into two parts. bonuses and other forms of payment by result as well as any rise in hourly rates paid to compensate for a reduction in standard hours worked. bonuses and other forms of payment by result. coinciding with the publication of official wage statistics. are forced to depend on a mixture of these two types of measure. or on wage rates established by labour unions. 15–46). pp. Instead they relied on wage rates paid to individual workers based on information from about 100 firms whose payrolls had been preserved. and for premiums. 1935). the first in the manufacturing and mining sectors and the second in the municipal service sectors and the agriculture and forestry sectors. Wage rate is the stipulated return for a given time unit of labour input. which presents the results of a major research programme intended to trace the evolution of nominal and real wages. select workers from a few representative occupations in each firm. Weak unionisation in Swedish manufacturing industries pre-1900 precluded the authors of Wages in Sweden from using union wage rates.17 Two of the final five volumes which were published in the 1930s deal with wages. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933. prices. premiums. although the boundary between them is frequently blurred. launched a large-scale project with the explicit intention of tracing the evolution of wages. Wages in Sweden. sex. The method used to construct wage series for 1860– 1913 can be described as a four-stage procedure:18 First. One of the selection criteria was that the worker’s employment exceeded 11 months. at the Institute for Social Sciences at Stockholm University. including the present one. 17 Carlsson (1982) gives all the fascinating details about the whole project. skill and region. 18 Bagge. as well as payment in kind. . and wages. 10. 1277–2008 War relies instead on the large-scale project Wages in Sweden. Many historical studies. Studies intending to establish the movement of wage rates and capture a lengthy time span rely ultimately on firm records that show the stipulated wage rate. usually hourly or daily for blue-collar workers and monthly for white-collar workers.1. collect payrolls from firms whose wage records had survived.484 Exchange rates. 1860–1913 It may be useful to distinguish between wage rates and earnings. Earnings is a more inclusive measure which incorporates the effects of changes in the composition of the labour force between industries and of changes within each industry by age. The first covers 1860–1913 and deals with Wages in Sweden. It also allows for the effect of payments for overtime work. Dividing the wage bill by the number of working hours gives a measure of average hourly earnings. Lundberg and Svenningson (1933. thus excluding temporary workers. It excludes payment for overtime work. the size of the firm and the relative importance of the industry.19 The most important benefit was access to free housing. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. L. in a few cases also semi-skilled. compute wage averages for each firm. I have attempted to establish wage series for these industries. gender and professional qualifications. when some workers received a cash allowance for rent while others had free housing. For most of the industries there are separate series for skilled. but no aggregate series. Wages in Sweden does not provide wage series for the quarrying industry and the chemical industry. the authors considered the problems of heterogeneity with respect to age. for instance.10. 85–90).20 Cross-sections were therefore used to compare the wage levels of the selected workers in relation to the average level of all workers in a particular concern. a methodology which is attributed to A. In most instances the value of free housing was not incorporated into earnings. the value of free housing was included. Today we stand to benefit greatly from that careful consideration because it made possible the documentation of homogeneous professional characteristics. Furthermore. was generally omitted. These cross-sections were made for 1865. In other cases. though undeniably these two series rest on a more tenuous empirical foundation. In addition. Payment in kind. The wage data for manufacturing represent the most comprehensive part of the project. while the appendix contains the original wage data from the firm records. Bowley. In relation to the 9 industries included in the present chapter. pp. Lundberg and Svennilson 1933. 20 Bowley (1895). The authors documented 7 industry-specific wage series in the main section of the volume. textiles and food. For female workers there are two industry-specific wage series. 1885 and 1905 and it was found that in most cases the wage level of the selected workers was on average five per cent higher than the average of all workers. the industry-specific wage series exclude the potential influence of changes in the composition of the labour force. although a more important component in the latter half of the 19th century than it is today. The major exception to this rule is the payment system of the iron works where the values of benefits in kind and free housing were significant and therefore included in the estimate of hourly and annual earnings (Bagge. Fourth. 19 The value of food allowance made up a minor value relative to the cash wage in most industries. 1860–2007 485 wage movements. Third. The method described above is sometimes called kinetic since it tracks the movement of wages better than it establishes the average wage level of all workers in a particular industry. with weights based on the quality of the series. combine the different firm-specific wage series to form industry-specific series. It is also doubtful whether these wage levels can be used to address issues of standards of living since they do not reflect the levels of income which workers had at their disposal. Besides these 7 manufacturing industries there are wage series for sugar industries and railway workers. the low coverage and the equivocal approach to benefits in kind. and unskilled workers. . Based on the wage material presented in their monographs section. The authors discussed the matter at length yet approached it ambiguously. The disadvantages concern. What do we know about the reliability of the wage evidence presented in Wages in Sweden? Admittedly.1. Based on an investigation into the movement of wages for sawmill workers in Norrland 1896–1913.0 Sources: Bagge.2 1. Prado (2008a). Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 table 26). Lennart Schön has raised the level of gross output for several industries. annual Female workers hourly hourly First observation 1860 1860 1860 1868 1870 1860 1861 1865 1871 Food Textile 1888 1865 Table 10.6 2.2. 1868–1913 Wage New series Bagge. Lundberg and Svennilson hourly hourly annual Sawmills included 1. daily. including sawmills.1. and wages. He has also raised concerns about the omission of temporary workers.9 Sawmills excluded 2. Bo Gustafsson has shown that there are problems with the wage series of sawmill workers in 1890–1913. not all that much. within the context of Swedish Historical National Accounts. Wage series for 1860–1913 from Wages in Sweden used in the present study Wage Male workers Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemical annual hourly hourly hourly. 1277–2008 Table 10. Lundberg and Svennilson Bagge.22 The present author has cast some doubt on the weighting scheme applied in Wages in Sweden.21 Others have criticised the methodology and the wage data for workers in the match industry.23 The lack of transparency in the description of how the different wage series were combined into an aggregate measure makes it difficult to replicate the result. Schön (1988).24 We therefore have reasons to suspect that weighting 21 22 23 24 Gustafsson (1965). Berglund (1982). . table A10. prices.486 Exchange rates. daily hourly hourly hourly hourly hourly. he argued that the sawmill series in Wages in Sweden shows too little progress and that the wage levels are too high. Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal wages in the manufacturing industry. new series: Appendix. the method used by the Social Board from 1913 onwards was designed to provide a measure of average hourly earnings. which limited the possible number of industries and years to be investigated. several modifications. 10. 57) is slightly different from the growth rate reported in Table 10. the difference between a series with sawmills included and one with them excluded remains. sawmill workers’ wages did not resume a sustained upward course like that of manufacturing until the beginning of the 1890s. To meet that requirement. Otherwise they would be outdated and of limited use by the time they saw the light of day. and thereby employment.27 To render an annual publication possible. the inflationary conditions in the aftermath of the First World War.2 because the constituent series are not identical and have different weights. as Table 10. in 1899–1909 the Board of Trade (Kommerskollegium) undertook a number of special investigations into the following industries: bakeries. As with most official wage statistics. thus fundamentally different from the attempt made in Wages in 25 The computed growth rate in Prado (2008a p. The methodology of these investigations conformed to a resolution passed by the International Statistical Institute requiring wage statistics to be based on individual wage data. 27 SOU (1931).2 shows. tobacco industry. 1913–2007 Apart from the wage statistics for day-workers in agriculture that were reported in the Swedish Agricultural Statistics. Lundh Nilsson (2007). . 1860–2007 487 with respect to these higher levels of gross output. Weighting the industry-specific series to allow for the large number of workers employed in the sawmill industry lowers the estimated growth rate of the new series of wages for manufacturing as a whole before 1890 compared to the aggregate series in Wages in Sweden. will modify the series of average wages for manufacturing workers in Wages in Sweden. In fact. 26 A recent doctoral dissertation. Therefore. This was because the first far-reaching labour conflicts in Sweden occurred among industrial workers. the first official attempt to document wage conditions covered the manufacturing sector. Thus. The authorities felt a pressing need for more information on labour and wage conditions in several manufacturing industries. the aggregate series of manufacturing wages offered here shows slower progress than the corresponding series in Wages in Sweden. when money wages first rose dramatically and then plummeted in the ensuing deflation.2. each wage survey was directed at a single industry in a particular year. which rose steeply in the wake of booming conditions in world markets for sawmill products in the first half of the 1870s but collapsed when the boom turned to bust in the second half of that decade. is based on the investigation of wages in the mechanical engineering industry.3. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. The official wage statistics. mechanical engineering and book printing.10.25 The reason is the sluggish growth of sawmill workers’ wages. However. required that wage statistics be published annually. in practice simplifications. were necessary.26 However. Thus. Bagge. in their final shape.and part-time workers. the Social Board and Statistics Sweden use the c-wage to illustrate movements of hourly earnings over time. whether piece wages. . In many cases the actual number of employed workers is higher than the average number of workers given by the statistics. The method does not. pp. 1277–2008 Sweden to provide a more specific and homogeneous measure of wages. apart from holding constant for the impact of females. 243–7). benefits in kind. Label c is the total wage sum paid out divided by the number of working hours. so will the measure of average earnings. the increase in the average wage mirrors not only changing wage rates but also the compositional effect of higher wages for skilled workers. Likewise. Categories a and b represent payment for regular working hours. and wages. The Social Board collected data by requesting firms to provide information on wages and other closely related issues in surveys. for instance once a week). after 1992 Statistics Sweden provides only wage data that exclude overtime pay. it is not accessible throughout the period. Further problems include the proportions of full. Lundberg and Svennilson levelled damning criticism at the way the official wage statistics were constructed. which lowers their reported wage levels by around twenty per cent. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933. This is especially problematic in industries with pronounced seasonal characteristics or those employing casual labour. days or workers (the average number of workers on a number of pay-days. cause any problems with the number of hours. holiday pay or overtime. b and c. A substantial proportion of temporary workers will drive a wedge between the measures of average annual and hourly earnings. males and the under-age. For instance. There are three types of hourly wage. labelled a. is that a change in the computed average may be caused by a number of factors other than changing wage rates. time wages. which leads to too high an estimate of annual income per worker. for which the official wage statistics provided separate information. which means that in the official statistics hourly wages are more useful than annual. Even though Bagge. It extracted from a single firm the total sum paid out as wages during one year and divided this sum by the number of working hours. if the average age of the working population in a specific firm increases.28 A series of earnings so constructed makes no distinction between factors which change the composition of the work force. In this way the Social Board tackled the reluctance of many employers to submit detailed information about wages. The inherent problem with this method. they acknowledged the statistics’ usefulness for 28 Bagge. piece wages are generally higher. however. where a stands for time wages and b piece wages. prices. However. It is the most satisfactory available measure of average hourly earnings and is used in the present study. the official wage statistics concealed firmspecific wage information. if the proportions of skilled and unskilled workers change in favour of skilled workers. Lundberg and Svennilson painted the method of the official statistics in rather derogatory colours. as the authors correctly pointed out. In their own publications.488 Exchange rates. The wage sum includes all kinds of payment. . However. Besides. Few industries have been classified 29 Svensk näringslivsindelning.29 which was put into practice in 1993. In 1918 the Social Board requested firms to report wages not only for that year but also for 1913–17. no information on average hourly wages was given between 1913 and 1920. a solution which gives the misleading impression that all industries grew in tandem. the official post-1913 series is linked to their pre-1913 series to provide a wage series covering the entire era 1860–1930. Later on. neither of them very satisfactory. but the gap in our knowledge as to the evolution of hourly wages in different industries still exists. They also admitted that the official statistics covered a much broader segment of the manufacturing sector. This wage material is less complete. than for post-1919 years. for instance. 30 SNI 92 became SNI 2002 but that involved only minor modifications. The rate at which reductions took place varied widely by type of activity and location.4. The preferred solution here is to leave out all industry-specific wage series 1913–21. Similar breaks have occurred in 1952 and 1971. and there are no wage data for 1914 and 1915. And there are still gaps in 1914 and 1915. 10. In their final index. making it difficult to ascertain the movement of hourly wages for different industries. the Social Board estimated hourly wage series for male and female workers for manufacturing as a whole on the basis of information on working hours. One is to extrapolate backwards from 1920 to 1913 by drawing on the series of daily wages. The other way out involves filling the gap with the Social Board’s aggregate hourly wage series. Aggregation Constructing wage series spanning the most recent one-and-a-half centuries encounters major difficulties and many potential pitfalls. wood industries do not include furniture after 1993. the substantial reduction of working hours in the two years preceding the Hours of Labour Act in 1920 makes daily wages a bad indicator of hourly wages. it encompassed 67 per cent of the industries.10. In the coming section an attempt is therefore made to deal with inter-temporal inconsistencies. The years before 1921 represent the most serious lacuna in the official statistics. The labels for the nine different manufacturing industries are conditioned by a classification scheme called SNI 92. In 1930. it rose in the course of the 20th century to include the lion’s share of all firms.30 Some of the major changes which SNI 92 brought about cannot be dealt with satisfactorily. whereas in fact it did not do so until 1919. It is sometimes wrongly asserted that the Social Board began to publish wage statistics annually in 1913. There are two ways out of this dilemma. Frequent changes in classification schemes pose a challenge to the very idea of establishing long-term wage series for different industries. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. 1860–2007 489 indicating wage movements post-1913. and while that share admittedly was smaller in 1913. and less reliable. Modern economic growth often entails the expansion of dynamic industries whose wage levels exceed those of industries sliding into decline. All this has of course changed a lot since 1860. with indices of hourly earnings in . the tasks workers are set to carry out and labour’s working conditions more generally.org/wiki/Fil:Storstrejk. Another closely related problem is the effects of economic growth and technical development on the evolution of skill requirements (human capital). prices. Still. are difficult per se. indices of average hourly earnings for nine industries are compiled with no attention paid to the actual wage levels in different industries. and wages.wikipedia. Source: http://sv. To deal with inter-temporal inconsistencies in the definition of industries and the different sources and methodologies used before and after 1913. in the same manner throughout the entire era. The approach used in the present study is therefore designed to provide an estimate of levels of average hourly earnings in nine industries. whose product varieties defy efforts to capture their nature by labels.490 Exchange rates. 1277–2008 A mass meeting in Stockholm during the general strike in 1909. Industries like metal and engineering. the construction of an aggregate measure requires allowance for these wage levels because an important part of the movement in average hourly earnings may be due to the changing proportions of low and high wage occupations. The only thing a worker in the wood industry in 2007 has in common with his peer 150 years earlier is probably the material (wood) that is being processed.jpg. whereas other difficulties arise mostly because of breaks in classifications. Wi. Estimated wage levels = indexi. Before 1880 the gap expands because the new series grows more slowly. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. t * W i. AKU.1950. and employment weights had to be derived elsewhere. while the official wage statistics did not apply it until 1972. The next step is to come up with the corresponding numbers of workers for the nine industries for which hourly wage levels have been estimated. Whereas interpretations of actual wage levels extending further back in history admittedly call for great caution. They are not designed to provide a measure of the actual number of people employed. the Swedish Industrial Statistics started using SNI 69 in 1969. Thus. however. not as absolute numbers. industry-specific employment series underlying the aggregate series of employment in manufacturing in Prado (2008a p. The Swedish Industrial Statistics pre-1913 suffer from insufficient coverage and cannot therefore be used as a source of employment. they appear as employment shares. That gives industry-specific series of estimated employment for the entire era. 1860–2007 491 each industry scaled proportionally to the actual hourly wages in a reference year. 32 Arbetskraftsundersökning (labour force surveys). 33 Registerbaserad arbetsmarknadsstatistik (register-based labour market statistics). are multiplied by all the years in each industry’s wage index. and permit the computation of proper index numbers on the other. They also track Wages in Sweden’s pre-1913 estimated wage levels very well. these series of wage levels at least allow the computation of inter-industry and gender pay ratios on the one hand.32 which is based on household surveys about people’s current employment. as in (1). which render necessary a solution similar to (1). the different sources suffer from inter-temporal variations in reported levels of number of workers. from then on employment figures from RAMS33 were used. they incorporate Schön’s (1988) estimated number of handicraft workers. In the appendix. was used as an indicator of employment trends between 1986 and 1992. This requirement is only party met.1950 w (1) The wage levels thus constructed comply with the official wage statistics between 1913 and 1992. Alternative employment series are used instead.31 Another major change in the way employment was recorded occurred in 1989. The employment series are only intended to measure the changing proportions of employment between different industries. . for instance. the difference is on average less than one per cent in 1880–1913. From the perspective of the present study.10. That requires data for employment which tally with the classification of the nine wage series. indices of employment were compiled and scaled proportionally to the actual number of workers in 1950. 31 The unpublished. A more severe shortcoming concerns the ways in which employment figures have been obtained for different sub-periods. To make these new employment series comparable to the Swedish Industrial Statistics’ post-1913 series. From 1992 onwards the wage levels of the new series are. where the wage levels for each industry in 1950. higher than Statistics Sweden’s because the latter exclude overtime pay. 194) have been used. r i =1 ∑Ni. Differ34 Dividing (2) by (3) gives (4).b (3) i . over such a long period the insignificance of weighting is an expected result.492 Exchange rates. a Laspeyres index (3).t Ni. The effect of the intra-industry growth rates dwarfs the potential impact of the employment structure on the movement of the series of weighted means. This series of wages incorporates the effects of inter-industry growth rates and shifts in employment structure but does not satisfy the properties of an index number because the choice of reference year does not affect the estimated annual growth rate.34 Laspeyres index numbers = ∑W ∑W i =1 i =1 n n i .r i=1 n ∑Ni. Two Laspeyres index numbers can be computed.t i =1 ∑Wi. one showing intra-occupational wage movements. and the other inter-occupational structural shifts. where r stands for reference year.b ∑ Ni . the series needs to be decomposed into two proper index numbers.t Ni.t ∑Wi. one with the first and the other with the last year as base year. It cannot tell us whether structural transformation contributed to the rise in average earnings.r Ni. Further evidence of the insignificance of inter-occupational structural shifts for the estimated growth rates is that the Paasche index remains essentially flat. In fact. A Laspeyres index number measures the way wages would have changed if the sectoral structure had remained the same as in the base year. . in the form of either levels or an index.b i =1 i =1 n n × ∑N i =1 n i =1 n i .t (4) Now the chosen base year (b) will affect the movement of the series. as in (2). and wages. to gain at least a brief understanding of the extent to which the structure influenced the average annual growth rate. prices.t Ni .t i=1 n (2) Equipped with series of wage and employment levels annually.b Paasche index numbers = ∑Wi.02 percentage points. To do that. a Paasche index (4).t Ni. The computation of these two index figures reveals that the choice of early or late base year has a negligible affect on the estimated annual growth rate: the difference is 0. a series of weighted means can be straightforwardly computed.b Ni . 1277–2008 n n An index of average hourly earnings = ∑Wi. 10. and/or there are very large inter-industry wage gaps.1 is an expected result because. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. because female wages outgrew male in the 20th century at the same time as the share of female workers increased. Wages then fell substantially in the ensuing deflation but remained quite stable in the rest of the 1920s and the 1930s. the movement of nominal wages may give a misleading impression of the evolution of workers’ final means for purchasing goods and services. when wage progress was notably uniform. Intra-industry growth rates do sometimes diverge over short time spans. 10. especially when fluctuations in prices were very much greater than those in nominal wages. The most remarkable surge in nominal wages took place towards the end and in the aftermath of the First World War. but in the long run it is not entirely likely that wages in any industry will either race ahead perpetually or notoriously lag behind. Nominal wages increased on average by 5. At times.2 . The first era of industrialization until 1913 was accompanied by steady increases in nominal wages.5. Bringing in the measure of cost-of-living which Rodney Edvinsson and Johan Söderberg offer in Chapter 8 permits a preliminary assessment of the speed at which improvements in living standards have taken place from 1860 to today. and disappears altogether after the Second World War. nominal wages have increased moderately. After the crises. A steady and long-term rise followed from the 1950s until the depression at the beginning of the 1990s.3 per cent annually but the rate fluctuated significantly. Long-term evidence of nominal and real wages The series of hourly wages for male manufacturing workers offers the most consistent evidence of the evolution of nominal wages for the era in its entirety. upward movement of nominal wages depicted in Figure 10. The importance of weighting diminishes gradually in the interwar years. The most striking feature of Figure 10. nominal wages do not take price increases for consumables into account. However. when there were frequent shifts in intraindustry growth rates. reliable measurement of price changes is a far more crucial element in achieving a correct assessment of movements in real wages. the influence of labour unions through centralized bargaining contributes to even out the variability in inter-industry growth rates of wages. the chosen weights have an impact on the movement of the series comprising both female and male wages. as testified by the previously discussed example of the sawmill industry in 1870–90. first. Furthermore. In addition. quite steep. and second. when wages rose 134 per cent. Competitive forces and movements of labour tend to keep the band within which rates of wage growth range quite narrow. The longterm. between 1917 and 1921. the investigated period coincides with the onset of modern economic growth in Sweden. The weights employed affect the estimated growth rate of the aggregate for the more volatile pre-1913 era. 1860–2007 493 ent weighting schemes will only exert an influence on a series of means if the constituent components grow at significantly varying rates. Table A10. Most economists and economic historians would probably agree that the growth of labour productivity is the most important determinant of the growth of real wages. 1860– 2007 1000.494 Exchange rates. brief in time yet serious in terms of losing foregone gains in consumption. A significant part of the series’ volatility comes from the sawmill industry. the average rate of progress varied widely. as indicated by the computed growth rates in Table 10.0 100.4 per cent.35 Turning now to the sub-periods. the general tendency is undisputable. 36 Maddison (1991). somewhat different turning points in fact give a better fit with the evolution of Swedish real wages. Between 1870 and 1912 the series’ average annual growth rate was 0. Still. . As will be clear below. that exogenous growth in real wages may trigger the growth of labour productivity.1 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 Note: Logarithmic scale Source: Appendix.1. where the time spans follow Angus Maddison’s widely used classification of the last one-and-a-half centuries. there are those who have argued that the reverse may be the case. is the incessant force with which economic growth has propelled the growth of real wages since 1860.36 The first wave of industrialization from 1860 to about the mid-1890s brought with it steady if erratic progress of real wages. Although a few setbacks. The rapid expansion of this industry peaked in 1874 and the subsequent drop to the trough in 1891 cut the wage level by half.3. did interrupt the general upward movement of workers’ purchasing power. which weighs heavily.0 10. prices. Nominal hourly earnings (kronor) of male manufacturing workers.0 0. even though intermittent changes in the share of value added accruing to labour at times drive a wedge between the movements of labour productivity and real wages. 1277–2008 Figure 10.0 1.1. which was 72 per cent less than the rate for 35 Wright (2006) and David and Wright (2003). and wages. Table A10. 1860–2007 495 Figure 10. Unlike the series of nominal wages. the real wage measurement highlights the initial. detrimental war conditions.1 3. which is surprising given that the growth of labour productivity was appreciably faster after the mid-1890s. .3.1 Source: Appendix. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.3 1. which gives the impression of unbroken improvements in the lot of workers during the First World War. Table 10.8 1.10. Although volatility decreased after the 1890s. cost-of-living: Chapter 8. Table A10.6 2.1 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 Note: Real hourly earnings in kronor of 1950.2. 167). Average annual growth rates (per cent) of real wages for male workers in manufacturing Label The whole era Industrialisation Interwar years Golden age Globalisation Years 1860–2007 1860–1913 1913–1950 1950–1973 1973–2007 Growth rate (per cent) 2.37 Here is a possible macro-economic clue to workers’ dissatisfaction with the wage benefits they reaped in relation to profits. Real wages dropped about 11 per cent from 1914 to 1918 because shortages of imported food led to price increases 37 Prado (2008a p.0 1. manufacturing as a whole.4 in this volume. manifested most significantly in the general strike in 1909. Real hourly earnings of male manufacturing workers.0 0. Logarithmic scale Sources: nominal earnings: Appendix.2. 1860–2007 10.1. the average annual growth rate actually decelerated somewhat. Table 8. and wages. establishing a set of rules governing central wage negotiations and restrictions circumscribing the adverse effects of strikes. Eichengreen (1996). workers in most developed countries enjoyed a long-lasting period of peace and prosperity. real wages then soared in the following three years. brought comparatively modest real wage increases.38 Annual wages did not increase by nearly as much as hourly wages. prices. Edvinsson (2005). the era which followed the Second World War brought large and permanent gains in living standards. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 pp. Even though the subsequent severe deflation cut real wages by 14 per cent. Because of rapid increases in labour productivity and an institutional set-up designed to promote consensus between the combatants in labour markets. Workers gained annual real wage increases of more than twenty per cent and the total increase was no less than 77 per cent. the opening (three) years reduced real wages by about 8 per cent and in both cases reductions were caused by price increases for goods and services. plagued by recurrent labour disputes and high rates of unemployment.41 The 1938 Saltsjöbad agreement between the employers association. labour’s share of value added in the manufacturing industry decreased. LO.496 Exchange rates. which lasted until the end of the 1960s. in 1920.43 The traditional dating of this golden era is 1950 to 1973. There is a striking parallel here between the two World Wars. did not in fact leave a conspicuously negative mark in the wage record but the 1930s as a whole looks particularly pale given the Swedish growth record in that decade: the annual per capita GDP growth rate was more than 3 per cent in 1930 to 1939 and the growth of labour productivity in manufacturing industry was vigorous. real wage reductions occurred initially in the Second World War because price increases for consumables exceeded nominal wage increases. commerce and transport.42 As with the beginning of the First World War.40 By inference. . the Great Depression. contemporaries witnessed an unprecedented rise in real wages. Schön (2004). from 1918 to 1921. Bagge. and the labour union. SAF. It ushered in an era of relative peace and consensus between the representatives of capital and labour. mostly because of stagnation in the 1930s. However. These anomalous increases in average hourly earnings are partly explained by the marked reductions in working hours in 1918–20. The fearsome crisis at the beginning of the 1930s. 1277–2008 that greatly exceeded the increases in nominal wages. the working week was restricted to 48 hours in manufacturing. Until at least the end of the 1960s there were few labour disputes and the latter half 38 39 40 41 42 43 Isidorsson (2000). was the culmination of a series of attempts to solve the problems of recurrent labour disputes. 260–1 ).39 The interwar era. However. Lundh (2004). Economic policy was therefore designed to safeguard employment with massive industrial subsidization to prevent substantive destruction of human and material capital and the labour unions continued to demand high nominal wage increases in response to soaring inflation. which meant that modest nominal wage increases translated into respectable increases in real wages. however. was comparatively brief. that the golden era actually started in 1942 and lasted until 1976. the crises in the late 1970s and early 1980s seem to have entailed the most protracted and deepest wage recession in the entire era. The long series of years during which real wages grew rapidly and sustainably has perhaps tended to perpetuate the notion that this achievement is the standard against which other growth records should be judged.10.2 per cent per annum. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. deceleration and even temporary declines. however.44 The Swedish real wage series indicate. when both nominal and real wages grew at a sedate pace. Since 1994 we have enjoyed 13 years of unbroken real wage gains. the growth of real wages has been relatively sluggish. which makes it unsuitable as a benchmark.45 The expectations of a brief slump came to naught. on average 1. unprecedented in modern times. The average annual growth rate was no less than 4. between 1994 and 2007 real wages grew by 2. Between 1976 and 1983 real wages actually decreased by 11 per cent. Since then. we need a further 23 years of uninterrupted real wage growth. 1.1 per cent. The next severe setback. historically rivalled only by the golden period 1942–76. The long-term evidence of real wages suggests instead that the era after the Second World War was exceptional. with brief episodes of rapid acceleration. Contemporaries predicted just a brief deceleration in the growth of real wages and a rebound in economic growth in the next few years.4 per cent per annum. That is questionable. which does not allow for the inflationary conditions in the wake of the oil crises and the three consecutive devaluations of the currency. 1860–2007 497 of that decade also saw the emergence of the so-called Swedish model. to break the record after the Second World War.4 per cent between 1990 and 1993. signifying 35 years of uninterrupted real wage increases. and the conflict between labour unions and the employers’ association heightened. . 45 Bohlin (1999). By historical standards. 44 Lundberg (1985). Lindbeck (1997). at the beginning of the 1990s. the crises at the end of the 1970s involved nominal wage increases that greatly exceeded the growth of real wages. reducing real wages by 4.1. Above all. In sharp contrast with the interwar period.8 percentage points above the growth rate recorded for the period 1860– 2007 as a whole. Yet. The rate of inflation was brought down. progress in this period has been more episodic. which contrasts sharply with the more optimistic nominal wage picture in Figure 10. an accomplishment that seems increasingly remote in the light of the current economic crisis. The evolution of the wage structure The present investigation permits a cursory scan of two measures of wage dispersion: the gender pay ratio and inter-industry wage differentials.6. This evidence of sharp contractions of the male to female wage gap in manufacturing in three marked episodes during the 20th century accords well with what Lars Svensson. Löfström and Gustafsson (1991) and Gustafsson and Lantz (1985). Lars Svensson questions the idea that these strategies to favour wage compression were solely responsible for the female wage catch up in the 1960s and 1970s. in Sweden as well as in other developed countries. and wages. However.48 The three occurrences of gender wage gap contractions in the 20th century. 1996). 47 Blau and Kahn (2000). on the basis of the official wage statistics.47 Another noteworthy aspect is the increase in the female participation rate in the manufacturing industry. those who are prepared to waive all reservations concerning the multitude of possible interpretations may find some interest in what the long-term gender pay ratio suggests. for instance the abolition of separate wage tariffs for male and female workers and agreements designed to promote workers at the lower end of the market. Before 1960 the proportion of women in gainful employment engaged in manufacturing was 30 per cent. although female catching up has been episodic rather than continuous. . 49 Hibbs (1990). 1277–2008 10. from 16 per cent in 1913 to 29 per cent at the end of the 1980s. prices.3 shows that convergence was manifest in three. The interpretation of the ratio’s size requires caution. have attracted close attention. Figure 10. the gap between male and female wages has been quite stable.46 Apart from these episodes of rapid developments of female relative wages. between 1961 and 1978. the second between 1943 and 1949 and the third. particularly the last one. were implemented in the 1960s and 1970s. easily identifiable periods. The female to male wage ratio for blue-collar workers in manufacturing at large is a crude measure of the inequality of pay.49 Most of these policies. 48 Most women are employed in sectors other than manufacturing. and most pronounced. Two factors cast doubt on the policy change 46 Svensson (1995.498 Exchange rates. An outstanding feature of this ratio is that female wages have outgrown male wages since 1865. This marked contraction of the gender wage gap is one of the most pervasive aspects of the evolution of labour markets in the 20th century. today it is down to 10 per cent (Svensson 2003). The measure does not reveal whether the observed payment gaps were in fact generated by differences in educational attainments and job-related qualifications. the rate has fallen back to 25 percent. a female worker had to toil twice as long as a male worker to earn the same annual wage. In 2007. thus. the first of which took place immediately after the First World War. An earlier camp interpreted the narrowing of the gender pay gap after the Second World War as a response to policy changes promoting equal opportunities for male and female workers. Since then. the male wage advantage had narrowed to on average 8 per cent. the female-to-male pay ratio was on average 50 in the textile industry. found in his investigation. Before 1913. 1865–2007 100 90 80 70 60 50 1860 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 Note: The pre-1913 series is based solely on wage ratios in the textile industry. Svensson shows that the increase in demand for female labour was particularly strong in the metal. 1860–2007 499 Figure 10. . 51 Cullen (1956).10. Thus the effects of inter-industrial employment structures do not seem to have played an important part in the race between female and male wages in the manufacturing industry. The female-to-male wage ratio in manufacturing.50 The other measure of wage dispersion which the present investigation enables us to explore is the variation of wage levels by industry. These inter-industry wage gaps are sometimes referred to as a surprisingly sustainable feature of economic development that calls for an explanation. see Svensson (2004) and Hibbs and Locking (1996. hypothesis: first. Sources: Appendix. Johansen (1958). and female employment increased by 750 per cent. in 1919–22 and from 1943 to 1949.2. One would perhaps expect the gaps to disappear altogether as a result of equilibrating market forces but they disobey this simple logic and thus have engaged numerous minds in economics and economic history. in terms of a relative scarcity of married women willing to enter the labour markets. For Sweden.51 The 50 Svensson (1995). second. 2000). engineering and electro-mechanical industries. were very favourable for the development of female relative wages. The most striking example is the automotive industry.1 and A10. Krueger and Summers (1987) and Allen (1995).3. market and demographic forces. the tendency towards wage compression started before the change in wage policy. and surplus demand for female labour services in connection with technological developments and rationalization. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. Similar unbalanced growth characteristics – varying rates of female relative wage gains within different industries – served to contract the gender pay gap in the two earlier episodes of convergence. where the female to male wage ratio increased by 32 percentage points between 1960 and 1965. Tables A10. each of them by about forty per cent. the two measures nearly converged around the turn of the century. Disregarding for a moment the anomalous peak in the mid-1870. The reason for the sudden wage compres52 Lundh (2002 p. 1277–2008 Figure 10. 203) documents the coefficient of variation for a similar classification of industries from the official wage statistics between 1930 and 1970.500 Exchange rates. Inter-industry wage dispersions were generally smaller among female workers for the period as a whole but since the tendency towards wage compression among male workers was more pronounced and there was a slight tendency towards increased dispersion among female workers in the 1970s and 1980s. 1871–2007 (coefficient of variation) 40 35 30 25 20 15 10 5 0 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930 1940 1950 1960 1970 1980 1990 2000 2010 male female Sources: Appendix.4. from the end of the 1950s to the beginning of the 1970s. and the third spanned the golden period after the Second World War. and for female wages since 1921. His documentation also shows that the wage structure became more compressed in the 1930s. Three eras of major wage compression permanently reduced the magnitude of the coefficient of variation. prices. attributable to the anomalous behaviour of wages for male sawmill workers. Tables A10. and wages. the ratio was roughly halved between the pre-1913 era of industrialization and the end of the 1960s. .1 and A10. The first coincides broadly with the first pre-1913 wave of industrialization. In the course of the nearly oneand-a-half centuries this chapter encompasses. The evolution of inter-industry wage dispersion. Figure 10. the second started at the beginning of the 1930s and lasted until the end of the 1940s.4 shows the evolution of the coefficient of variation for male wages since 1871. after which it has remained quite stable. 1940s and 1960s. these differentials have diminished but have not completely disappeared.52 The deflation at the beginning of the 1920s also compressed the wage structure temporarily but wage dispersion quickly rebounded during the rest of the 1920s.2 long-term Swedish evidence indicates that the 20th century witnessed a pronounced compression of these wage differentials. Other low wage industries were food (apart from the pre1913 period). the wood industry seems to have performed consistently badly. the concurrence of wage compression on the one hand and centralized bargaining and wage solidarity on the other in the 1960s hints at a possible connec- . sion during the deflation was that industries with relatively high wage levels experienced a more precipitous drop in wages than did low-wage industries. In general. the 1870s notwithstanding. 1860–2007 501 The Little Brewery. high-wage industries were oriented towards the world market. Low wages were paid to female workers in the textile. when female wages in mining rose from the lowest to the highest position in just a few years. The size order of the hourly wage levels among the nine industries underwent some changes. mining remained at the top of the table. by Anders Zorn (1860–1920). while engineering wages declined relatively. The same mechanism compressed the wage structure at the beginning of the 1930s and during the Second World War. The highest wages were paid to female workers in the engineering industry until the mid-1960s. At the other end of the scale. textiles and quarrying. food. During the rest of the period. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. 1890. The female story is similar. It is tempting to view this movement towards greater wage compression as a response to the rise of labour unions and to government involvement in the labour market through regulation and legislation designed to promote wage equality. usually followed by engineering and paper. wood and quarrying industries.10. Source: Nationalmuseum. In particular. Wages in mining remained at the top throughout the period. particularly before 1913. 1 Female 6. prices.9 6.8 6. 550).0 7. the American labour market. Lundh (2002 pp.56 The remarkably uniform pace of wage progress among the nine industries since at least the 1970s – itemized in Table 10. The difference between the two countries suggests that labour unions play an important part. mandated work councils and centralized bargaining. running from policy to performance. The share of workers associated with a labour union recovered in the 1920s and rose steadily from then on until the 1950s. The establishment of new labour unions continued through the 1890s and 1900s until the general strike in 1909.502 Exchange rates. when close to 80 per cent of blue-collar workers belonged to a labour union. Kreuger and Summers (1987).9 7. employment security laws. Swedish wage differentials by occupation have been almost erased.53 The interlude of prominent equalization of inter-industry wage gaps in the 1960s made the Swedish wage structure in manufacturing very compressed in an international perspective.4.54 In Sweden. the industry variable is a more important wage determinant. 1277–2008 tion.2.8 6. and wages. Edin and Zetterberg (1992).1 and A10. 53 54 55 56 57 Hedin and Holmlund (1995) and Hibbs and Locking (2000). Average annual growth rates (per cent) of nominal hourly earnings by industry. the first wave of labour unions occurred in the 1880s.7 6.0 6. Tables A10. while in the US. which shows the annual growth rates of female and male wages by industry in 1970–2007 – is difficult to imagine without the establishment of collective agreements and pervasive unionization in the manufacturing industry. .7 6. Goldin (2000 p. European labour markets have been fundamentally transformed by institutional wage settings.8 6.0 7.4.9 7.8 6. especially in relation to the US. In Sweden.1 Sources: Appendix. 100–1).9 7. most of the industry wage differentials can be explained by industry differences in labour quality and working conditions.57 Table 10. and which contrasts with her study object. 1970–2007 Male Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemical 6. which marked a turning point in labour union memberships.55 And.8 6.7 6. as Claudia Goldin concludes.0 7. Source: Riksbanken.10.se . 1860–2007 503 A modern printing works. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. After 1913 the Social Board. prices. The allocation of industries into nine groups is based on Statistics Sweden’s latest classification scheme. later. The coverage is significantly improved in relation to Wages in Sweden but the measure of average hourly earnings by industry in the official statistics makes no distinction between worker’s formal and professional qualifications. with indices of hourly earnings in each industry scaled proportionally to the actual hourly wages in a reference year (1950). provide average hourly earnings by industry.7.3 per cent from 1860 to 2007. Wages in Sweden. Wage data from the pre-1913 period. The decomposition of the series of average wages into Laspeyres and Paasche index numbers shows that inter-occupational employment shifts did not contribute significantly to the growth of average earnings. Lundberg and Svennilson’s major contribution. before labour unions appeared on the stage and the levelling tendency of inter-industry wage differentials predated the policy of wage solidarity. SNI 1992/2002. qualifications and gender.504 Exchange rates. Roine and Waldenström (2009) show that the wealth share of the top decile started declining long before the welfare state and a set of redistributive policies could possibly have affected income distribution.58 Sustainable gains in real wages started in the 1860s. and wages. Wages in Sweden still sums up what we know about wage movements in the manufacturing sector before 1913. when there is a paucity of official wage statistics. for 9 separate industries and for manufacturing as a whole. authors often conclude that the voice and actions of unionized labour and the legislation which often follows in their wake simply reinforce long-term forces that have already been set in motion. . In spite of all the decades that have elapsed since its publication. as others have pointed out many times. Scheve and Stasavage (2009) likewise demonstrate that the decline of top income shares occurred before centralized wage bargaining was introduced in a sample of OECD countries. paying due consideration to the effects of age. the perceived wisdom that policy and labour market institutions always exert a strong influence on the way history unfolds often turns out to be unfounded. 10. Because nominal wages fail to account for price increases for the goods which make up workers’ consumption bundle. are taken from Bagge. first. 1277–2008 Still. The approach used to construct a weighted average of manufacturing is designed to provide an estimate of levels of average hourly earnings in nine industries. Male nominal wages in the manufacturing sector increased at an annual average rate of 5. making it possible to carry the series forward henceforth. They attempted to establish wage rates for homogeneous professional classifications. they lead 58 For instance. Conclusions This chapter presents series of earnings for female and male manufacturing workers from 1860 to 2007. Instead. whose first volume (1933) contains industry-specific wage series based on thus far novel and extensive archival research. The same methodology was used to establish series of employment. and Statistics Sweden. The real wage. The most recent and important of these episodes ran from 1961 to 1978. 2. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. closed most of the remaining gender wage gap in the 1960s and 1970s. Since then. This long-term wage study permits a preliminary look at the evolution of two measures of wage dispersion: the gender pay ratio and inter-industry wage differentials. The measure was roughly halved between the pre-1913 era of industrialization and the end of the 1960s.10. The most astonishing leap forward took place. The movement of the coefficient of variation indicates that the wage structure has become more compressed since the pre1913 initial surge of industrialization. when average hourly earnings soared by about 20 per cent annually. Female wage convergence was profound in three well-defined periods. which is the preferred measure. 1860–2007 505 us astray as to the real gains in purchasing power. The most prolonged and severe real wage crisis occurred in 1977 to 1983. in the aftermath of the First World War. however. the ratio has been rather stable. cutting earlier real wage gains by 11 per cent. after which it has remained quite stable. has grown more moderately.1 per cent annually. The era after the Second World War stands out for the series of 35 years of unbroken real wage progress.25 per cent annually. raising the female to male wage ratio from about 50 to 90. and the supply of and demand for female labour services. unprecedented in modern times. collective agreements between labour unions and the employer’s association surely set the stage for the levelling tendency during the 20th century. due above all to cuts in working hours. A combination of policy. 1919–21. averaging 4. . intended to promote wage compression via regulation. While it is true that wage compression began before unionization and legislation could possibly have had a significant impact on the wage structure. 104. male hourly wages at iron works 1913–51: Järn. Statistiska centralbyrån 1987–92: Arbetskraftsundersökning. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. Industri. and wages. Statistiska centralbyrån Employment: 1913–58: Statens offentliga statistik. male annual wages at mines in central Sweden 1913–51: Gruvor och anrikningsverk 1952–71: Malmgruvor 1972–93: SNI69 2 1994–2007: SNI92 10–14 Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) 1913–67: Järnmalmsgruvor och anrikningsverk. Löner. Statistiska centralbyrån 1993–2007: Registerbaserad arbetsmarknadsstatistik.506 Exchange rates. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. Socialstyrelsen 1961–93: Statens offentliga statistik. Järn. Industri. Words in italics mark entries in any of the following volumes: Wages: 1913–28: Sociala meddelanden.och stålmanufaktur.1 Classification of industry The following account gives the sources underlying the nominal wage series and employment weights. Guldoch silverfabriker . Kommerskollegium 1959–86: Statens offentliga statistik. Table 6). Socialstyrelsen 1929–51: Statistisk årsbok. 74–5. Löner.stål och kopparverk. Table 8). prices. Statistiska centralbyrån 1994–2007: Statistiska meddelanden. Metalmanufaktur. Andra malmgruvor och anrikningsverk 1968–85: SNI69 2 1986–2007: SNI92 10–14 Metal Wages 1860–1913: Bagge. Statistiska centralbyrån Mining Wages 1860–1913: Bagge. Socialstyrelsen 1952–60: Statens offentliga statistik. 1277–2008 Appendix A10. Annan metallindustri 1972–93: SNI69 37.och metallverk. Fabriker för elektriska apparater. Skeppsvarv och båtbyggeri. Reparationsverkstäder. clay and glass industry Wages 1868–1913: Bagge. . SNI69 381 1986–2007: SNI92 27–28 Engineering Wages 1860–1913: Bagge. Instrument. Guld. 1860–2007 507 1952–71: Järn.och urfabriker. 115.och silverfabriker. For a more detailed description.och karosserifabriker. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. monograph section).10. Skeppsvarv och båtbyggeri. Instrument. SNI69 381 1994–2007: SNI92 27–28 Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–39: Verk för framställning av järn och stål. Annan järn. Bil.och urfabriker. see Prado (2008a p. Järn.silveroch nysilverfabriker 1969–85: SNI69 37. Andra metallverk. Metallmanufaktur. Table 10). Järn. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. Järn. Instrument och urfabriker.och stålmanufaktur.och metallindustri 1940–68: Järn. 1913–51: Mekaniska verkstäder. 59). Transportmedelsfabriker (utom skeppsvarv).och stålverk. workers at cement factories and hewers. Skeppsvarv och båtbyggerier.och stålmanufaktur.och stålmannufaktur. Elektroteknisk industri 1968–85: SNI69 38. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933. Guld. with SNI69 381 excluded 1986–2007: SNI92 29–35 Quarrying. Verk för framställning av andra metaller. Fabriker för elektriska apparater och ledningar 1940–67: Andra Mekaniska verkstäder och gjuterier. Elektroteknisk industri 1972–93: SNI69 38 with SNI69 381 excluded 1994–2007: SNI92 29–35 Note: The wage series for 1860–1913 contains a certain amount of industries that actually belong to Metal. based on wage series for glass workers. male hourly wages at metal manufacturing and engineering works. workers at china factories. brick makers. Skeppsvarv. Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–39: Mekaniska verkstäder. Fabriker för elektriska maskiner 1952–71: Mekaniska verkstäder. 172.och stenindustri 1952–71: Jord.och stenindustri 1952–68: Jord. Pappersvaru. SNI69 34113 1986–2007: SNI92 20 Pulp. 187. arithmetic mean of the series of hourly earnings of sawers and plank pilers 1913–71: Träindustri 1972–93: SNI69 33 1994–2007: SNI92 20 Note: The wage series for 1870–1913 and 1994–2007 do not include the furniture industry Employment 1870–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–51: Träindustri 1952–68: Träindustri. paper and printing Wages 1860–1913: Bagge.och grafisk industri 1952–71: Massafabriker och pappersbruk. and wages. 143. Employment 1860–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) . Table 15). Kolgruvor 1972–93: SNI69 36 1993–2007: SNI92 26 Employment 1868–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–51: Jord.och stenindustri. hourly earnings for male wood pulp workers and hourly earnings for skilled paper mill workers (p.508 Exchange rates. 1277–2008 1913–51: Jord. 1913–51: Pappers.och stenindustri. Table 16).och grafisk industri 1972–93: SNI69 34 1994–2007: SNI92 21–22 Note: The wage series for 1860–1913 does not include the book printing industry. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. prices. Wallboardfabriker 1969–85: SNI69 33. Table 12). Lundborg and Svennilson (1933 p. Kolgruvor 1969–85: SNI69 36 1986–2007: SNI92 26 Wood industry Wages 1870–1913: Bagge. Läder. . Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. Employment 1865–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–68: Textil.och hårindustri 1969–85: SNI69 32 1986–2007: SNI92 17–19 Chemical Wages 1871–1913: Bagge. beverages and tobacco Wages 1861–1913: Bagge.och beklädnadsindustri. male and female hourly wages 1913–51: Livsmedelsindustri 1952–71: Livsmedelsindustri. Table 18). Läder. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. Dryckesvaru.10. nitroglycerine factories. leather and hair Wages 1865–13: Bagge. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 p. 1860–2007 509 1913–51: Pappers.och tobaksindustri 1969–85: SNI69 31 1986–2007: SNI92 15–16 Textiles. 220. male and female hourly wages 1913–71: Textil. with SNI69 34113 excluded 1986–2007: SNI92 21–22 Food.och tobaksindustri 1972–93: SNI69 31 1994–2007: SNI92 15–16 Note: The wage series for 1861–1913 does not include the tobacco industry Employment 1861–1912: Prado (2008b) less handicraft workers from Schön (1988 Table 14) 1913–51: Livsmedelsindustri 1952–68: Livsmedelsindustri. Grafisk industri 1969–85: SNI69 34. Lundberg and Svennilson (1933 monographic secton) arithmetic mean of the series of wages for workers at soap factories.och grafisk industri 1952–68: Massa. 196. Table 20). Dryckesvaru.och beklädnadsindustri.och hårindustri 1972–93: SNI69 32 1994–2007: SNI92 17–19 Note: The wage series for male and female wages in 1865–1913 does not include the leather and hair industry.och pappersindustri. 16 0.17 0.23 0.17 0.13 0.12 0.30 0.17 0.22 0.23 0.19 0.14 0.28 0.27 0.17 0.13 0.17 0.18 0.25 0.31 0.18 0.26 0. Gummirepationsverkstäder 1969–85: SNI69 35 1986–2007: SNI92 23–25 Appendix A10.25 0.35 0.17 0.17 0.21 0.22 0.21 0.14 0.20 0.20 0.29 0.22 0.17 0.16 0.14 0.12 0.17 0.14 0.15 0.20 0.17 0.19 0.27 0.16 0.25 0.14 0.16 0.21 0.20 0.19 0.10 0.27 0.33 0.19 0.12 0. 1860-2007.13 0.30 0.22 0.27 0.22 0.12 0.23 0.18 0.21 0.22 0.23 0.12 0.18 0.22 0.Weightcal ed average 1860 1861 1862 1863 1864 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 0.22 0.18 0.18 0.12 0.34 0.22 0.25 0.19 0.11 0.510 Exchange rates.13 0.22 0.14 0.16 0. prices.08 0. For a more detailed description.25 0.16 0.12 0. and wages.2. 1913–71: Kemisk-teknisk industri.28 0.13 0.22 0. Gummivaruindustri 1972–93: SNI69 35 1993–2007: SNI92 23–25 Employment 1871–1912: Prado (2008b) 1913–68: Kemisk-teknisk industri.21 0.19 0.29 0.12 0.09 0.17 0.27 0.17 0.18 0.22 0.22 0.20 0.11 0.10 0.16 0.15 0.15 0.19 0.1.20 0.12 0.16 0.15 0.16 0.12 0.12 0.32 0.22 0.21 .22 0.13 0.16 0.19 0.21 0. Gummivaruindustri.20 0.16 0.27 0.12 0.17 0.32 0.17 0.13 0.20 0. 61–2).23 0.19 0.20 0.13 0.22 0.22 0.18 0.32 0.18 0.23 0.19 0.17 0.20 0.10 0.17 0.13 0.09 0.11 0.33 0.13 0.44 0.24 0.15 0.30 0. Table A10.18 0.18 0.15 0.18 0.13 0. Male hourly earnings.23 0.22 0.21 0.20 0.17 0.22 0. match factories and candle moulders at stearine factories.12 0. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.12 0.23 0.16 0.11 0.19 0.13 0.24 0.18 0.13 0.12 0.22 0. 1277–2008 superphosphate factories.20 0.19 0.18 0. see Prado (2008a p.29 0. 32 0.41 0. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.26 0.31 0.21 0.51 0.23 0.23 0.31 0. Male hourly earnings.35 0.23 0.12 .37 0.99 1.36 0.96 1.37 0.08 1.25 0.20 0.19 0.37 0.04 1.48 0.20 0.25 0.19 0.29 0.19 0.23 0.30 0.07 1.41 0.21 0.31 0.07 1.22 0.28 0.42 1.19 0.25 0.29 0.49 0.41 1.37 0.35 0.45 0.20 0.23 0.27 0.27 0.22 0.38 0.29 0.06 1.98 0.28 0.19 0.28 0.26 0.19 0.17 0.19 0.32 0.26 0.31 0.39 0.36 1.26 0.23 0.35 0.18 0.08 1.28 0.32 0.35 0.32 0.36 0.21 0.21 0.22 0.26 0.34 0.29 0.24 0.21 0.07 1.23 0.46 2.44 0.40 0.40 0.10.68 1.32 0.26 0.Weightcal ed average 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 0.17 0.17 0.22 0.34 0.31 0.29 0.09 1.39 1.99 1.18 0.34 0.28 0.20 0.22 0.25 0.67 0.32 0.44 0.20 0.33 0.37 0.06 1.33 0.20 0.28 0.13 1.18 0.97 0.29 0.38 0.24 0.24 0.26 0.03 1.26 0.07 1.42 0.38 0.55 1.25 0.26 0.36 0.19 0.33 0.22 0.43 0.48 0.41 0.38 0.33 0.28 1.32 0.32 0.30 0.53 0.45 0.29 0.24 0.44 0.30 0.23 0.34 0.36 0.39 0.37 0.23 0.23 1.29 0.22 0. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.47 0.34 0.29 0.32 0.37 0.18 0.21 0.24 0.21 0.22 0.30 0.44 0.37 0.43 0.30 0.36 0.47 0.24 0.35 0.47 0.38 0.41 0.16 1.42 0.18 0.33 0.25 0.29 0.43 0.20 0.33 0.43 0.57 0.25 0.22 0.32 0.28 0.34 0.17 0.36 0.42 0.43 1.18 1.31 0.28 0.21 0.45 0.66 1.24 0. 1860–2007 511 Table A10.24 0.32 0.25 0.29 0.27 0.40 0.28 0.45 0.33 0.17 0.11 1.32 0.19 1.27 0.39 0.58 1.37 0.1 (cont.23 0.94 0.30 0.24 0.20 0.57 1.21 0.31 0.30 0.).27 0.19 0.06 1.23 0.41 0.32 0.22 0.22 0.98 0.32 0.19 0.22 0.43 0.14 0.24 0.35 0.39 0.20 0.43 0.25 1.43 0.18 0.45 0.22 0.40 0.35 0.25 0.34 0.26 0.49 0.26 0.30 0.48 1.23 0.28 0.22 0.44 0.42 0.27 0.23 0.22 0.26 0.28 0.19 0.20 0. 1860-2007.37 0.29 0.95 0.32 0.30 0.02 1.41 0.30 0.33 0.32 0.21 0.46 0.18 0.22 0.32 0.22 0.26 0.08 1.39 0.21 0.42 0.20 0.10 1.28 0.26 0.28 0.36 0.25 0.53 0.11 1.31 0.29 0.29 0.22 0.31 0.23 0.26 0.41 0.39 0.30 0.18 0.17 0.19 0.27 0.23 0.13 1.48 0.21 0.17 1.22 0.35 0.23 0.22 0.28 0.31 0.79 1.24 0.21 0.17 1.28 0.21 0.17 0.55 0.32 0.19 0.33 0.36 0.29 0.31 1.31 0.23 0.06 1.27 0.21 0.42 0.55 0.20 0.22 0.36 0.16 0.22 0.34 0.35 0. 76 4.67 6.59 2.80 5.57 1.75 3.62 1.14 1.35 5.96 2.08 1.58 1.09 1.85 1.12 1.23 1.28 5.97 0.94 0.20 10.01 11.00 1.09 1.46 10.78 1.13 1.85 1.76 1.66 7.07 1.28 4.37 1.88 2.53 11.16 8.01 1.63 1.52 1.45 2.58 10.95 3.57 1.13 1.28 1.67 9.15 3.36 6.93 6.20 3.34 2.48 4.83 7.83 8. and wages.14 1.61 1.27 3.73 1.63 1.07 1.98 1.10 1.83 4.61 5.50 5.30 5.85 1.44 1.78 3.17 1.04 9.10 3.14 4.84 6.23 1.45 1.27 1. Male hourly earnings.33 1.55 1.79 1.55 1.82 1.36 1.25 1.50 2.46 13.05 5.96 1.09 8.75 5.16 2.19 4.41 12.19 1.63 1.46 10.33 5.02 8.55 4.37 11.26 1.59 2.09 1.86 9.31 2.73 6.36 4.34 2.26 11.63 1.97 0.07 2.65 2.30 1.71 6.87 1.14 6.59 3.17 10.76 11.27 4.14 1.79 1.46 6.64 6.45 1.68 8.65 1.52 4.79 5. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.17 1.46 1.06 1.66 4.72 1.25 2.92 7.57 3.20 5.73 3.10 6.91 8.10 7.27 1.13 1.13 1.01 5.63 3.10 1.56 1.18 2.15 1.51 0.09 1.78 12.17 4.30 5.71 1.51 12.31 2.02 1.89 4.11 4.512 Exchange rates.70 1.74 10.54 2.37 4.00 6.57 1.06 11.71 1.52 1.15 1.93 2.35 7.78 3.41 1.47 8.25 6.96 5.95 0.32 5.34 3.20 1.85 4.42 2.97 9.59 3.23 8.73 1.98 0.63 1.24 1.38 1.95 0.37 1.24 1.51 3.55 8.04 2.31 9.19 1.79 1.20 1.59 8.85 3.55 2.15 1.17 1.40 2.97 0.28 2.05 2.01 6.06 1.06 1.18 1.17 1.31 4.98 1.47 2.09 1.04 2.51 1.70 3.39 1.62 9.54 1.94 0.19 7.68 5.23 1.98 1.23 1.07 7.21 1.15 1.06 1.24 3.32 1.19 6.19 1.58 9.82 10.57 3.01 1.13 1.40 2.18 5.07 1.16 1.31 1.05 5.92 2.19 10.77 5.46 4.13 1.23 1.36 1.20 1.95 2.59 3.35 1.92 2.42 1.91 2.05 3.69 1.21 1.34 2.37 1.23 4.40 1.19 1.77 1.13 4.95 2.95 11.1 (cont.94 10.12 1.00 4.72 9.13 11.51 5.44 1.53 8.26 2.76 5.80 7.60 4. prices.67 2.14 1.31 1.27 5.45 7.55 1.00 0.53 5.23 1.35 5.04 3.51 8.03 8.97 7.49 1.34 4.37 1.15 1.52 5.81 2.82 1.70 9.25 2.22 1.64 6.09 1.10 2. 1860-2007.72 1.66 2.91 4.).Weightcal ed average 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1.56 7.91 1.76 2.27 1.08 5.20 7.07 2.46 2.06 5.57 4.38 1.85 .56 11.32 6.33 2.96 2.19 1.21 1.94 0.14 1.76 7.39 2.99 6.18 1.93 8.05 7.68 5.96 0.08 1.06 7.75 6.47 1.33 1.38 10.03 2.94 0.62 2.97 0.35 1.11 1.20 1.43 1.20 1.11 6.30 1.27 1.77 9.49 2.23 1.77 11.84 4.03 4.27 1.83 1.32 1.84 1.44 4.73 10.60 10.15 2.27 1.40 1.75 3.08 9.34 1.51 7.20 1.04 1.15 1.04 0.04 10.07 1.42 3.14 1.00 1.41 4.19 1.34 1.97 4.59 11.70 1.65 1.31 8.83 1.50 1.12 6.62 2.84 1. 1277–2008 Table A10.88 3.05 1.57 2.05 4.06 1.75 1.63 1.20 1.43 1.60 7.24 1.19 5.19 9.11 1.93 5.03 5.38 1.46 1.92 6.02 1.48 5.25 7. 79 107.40 91.16 128.61 108.80 15.76 124.27 83.07 126.93 105.35 32.46 45.90 126.17 100.77 72.83 140.56 123.61 143.45 39.47 128.11 23.72 49.52 87.75 135.31 150.21 75.36 124.56 60.30 61.98 104.11 31.58 24.05 94.95 80.79 19.51 59.67 17.31 41.11 63.14 17.27 51.32 56.54 43.45 117.22 142.80 150.32 94.26 18.90 17.90 137.09 157.12 72.76 15.22 115.42 135.05 41.65 154.19 160.96 26.57 131.96 64.28 50.62 20.74 46.12 17.40 49.06 69.01 55.60 20.84 71.41 45.59 24.96 29.28 119.18 142.67 90.09 43.34 65.18 166.83 101.78 161.86 20.57 99.21 19.53 129.85 38.81 81.30 31.01 76.83 150.36 94.24 62.74 50.85 135.09 23.56 49.43 129.34 100.10.94 40.88 29.16 59.02 25.84 30.14 33.82 121.51 84.53 138.88 117.99 14.02 94.63 42.85 113.15 48.85 55.83 46.12 43.32 16.33 83.95 13.91 23.72 133.11 110.47 77.87 80.89 33.30 28.16 33.53 58.58 171.23 63.24 166.66 152.03 146.81 132.78 148.18 105.78 149.15 30.23 67.50 146.25 67.71 46.13 31.55 157.27 27.61 100.02 127.00 64.99 115.93 95.43 102.31 18.32 159.59 54.54 171.52 146.92 19.63 32.30 15.44 83.28 63.50 36.45 38.56 21.62 119.54 34.29 69.16 154.32 126.14 149.93 148.20 14.82 129.34 29. 1860–2007 513 Table A10.69 150.89 108.76 117.91 137.47 97.02 32.52 154.46 46.70 36.88 124.07 13.16 105.62 133.51 43.95 166.87 47.).07 137.52 102.82 115.40 122.25 60.25 100.96 183.24 93.04 36. Male hourly earnings.72 45.00 56.94 147.67 117.90 23.75 115.84 99.81 131.32 120.43 13.74 143.98 55.65 20.67 12.14 14.70 170.75 15.84 97.13 23.39 138.82 21.27 41.66 72.03 160.63 103.80 69.45 94.37 105.59 139.22 154.54 126.54 110.39 121.51 12.32 54.56 102.64 68.10 154.88 52.44 44.69 184.18 138.36 59.26 103.61 23.00 110.21 40.50 140.81 30.43 20.47 15.58 142.24 150.70 116.10 113.30 128.49 96.13 17.71 92.94 15.31 16.80 94.90 144.61 27.13 12.90 54.10 18.69 144.77 33.29 46.79 87.08 11.29 35.80 62.47 129.24 76.Weightcal ed average 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 14.60 50.49 36.11 132.13 26.50 161.77 44.17 13.28 13.56 129.78 38. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.68 107.85 13.49 192.40 17.08 157.83 29.88 106.62 75.82 118.75 124.04 24.95 136.66 89.44 16.33 18.18 29.08 145.48 141.57 92.81 75.29 102.48 144.51 120.08 83.1 (cont.02 145.53 12. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.89 162.82 92.08 27.23 16.72 156.06 14.95 44.80 78.03 40.18 83.40 172.19 158.78 67.79 51.69 119.75 46.25 150.86 14.52 112.58 13.54 62.60 41.36 88.61 118.19 122.37 49.95 12.08 27.17 .89 135.99 176.62 17.85 36.57 102.84 34.77 67.03 16.92 160.96 25.87 29.18 91.64 27.44 55.44 18.16 111.11 131.68 74.75 136.20 83.75 151.89 117.87 37.20 51.69 109.09 41.23 72.31 158.14 58.77 168.50 15.50 68.39 86.39 40.37 32. 1860-2007.73 11.15 101.70 97.72 139.97 17.57 21.66 111.80 64.57 19.49 54.71 87.68 40.92 95.16 18.50 97.76 27. 15 0.20 0.08 0.11 0. Female hourly earnings 1865–2007.12 0.09 0.11 0.13 0.15 0.15 0. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.15 0.15 0.13 0.16 0.14 0.16 0.09 0.17 0.09 0.09 0.09 0.15 0.11 0.13 0.16 0.08 0.07 0.07 0.08 0.2.18 .17 0.10 0.08 0.514 Exchange rates.12 0.13 0.15 0.11 0.09 0.12 0.12 0.13 0.17 0.10 0.16 0.07 0.14 0.08 0.13 0.10 0.15 0.12 0.18 0. 1277–2008 Table A10.18 0.16 0.07 0.09 0.10 0.Weightcal ed average 1865 1866 1867 1868 1869 1870 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 0.11 0.09 0.12 0. and wages.14 0. prices. 27 1.19 0.74 0.93 0.78 1.88 0.43 1.65 0.73 1.05 1.76 0.Weightcal ed average 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 0.87 0.67 0.86 0.67 0.81 0.74 0.70 0.02 1.83 0.83 0.96 1.89 1.77 0.57 0.84 0.00 1.26 0.35 1.43 1.75 0.27 0.64 0.76 0.72 0.35 1.23 0.28 1.75 0.85 0.77 0.72 0.93 0.48 1.86 1.77 0.22 1.61 1.72 0.74 0.61 1.08 1.09 1.75 0.76 0.00 0.04 1.75 0.75 0.71 0.68 0.89 0.30 1.69 0.88 0.84 0.74 0.86 0.85 0.91 0.83 0.73 0.73 0.74 0.21 0.21 0.91 1.78 0.13 1.72 0.23 1.65 0.75 0.91 1.22 1.55 0.30 1.59 0.76 0.71 0.23 0.87 .72 0.).33 1.88 0.74 0.76 0.15 1.01 1.75 0.15 1.70 0.26 1.69 0.91 0.73 0.89 0.20 0.70 1.53 1.75 0.74 0.69 0.07 1.19 1.69 0.91 1.07 0.71 0.80 1.69 0.69 0.68 0.70 0.82 0.72 0.73 0.77 0.84 0. Female hourly earnings 1865–2007.90 0.69 0.84 0.99 0.64 0.74 0.10.16 1.78 0.65 0.00 1.86 0.83 0.70 0.27 0.75 0.40 1.23 0.79 1.76 0.80 0.81 0.98 1.70 0.64 1.37 1.00 1.19 1.69 0.08 1.87 0.85 0.83 0.71 0.73 0.85 0.77 0.02 1. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.86 0.91 0.74 0.85 0.80 0.96 0.79 0.68 0.68 0.60 0.75 0.69 0.84 0.75 0.75 0.70 0.72 0.68 0.69 0.10 1.73 0.12 1.86 0.72 0.74 0.71 0.76 0.98 0.96 1.77 0.70 0.69 0.20 1.84 0.65 0.74 1.74 0.09 1.13 1.61 0.74 0.92 1.64 0.10 0.72 0.73 0.47 1. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.19 0.2 (cont.57 1.73 1.71 0.09 1.66 0.72 0.74 0.72 0.18 1.93 1.13 1.95 1.69 0.99 1.20 1.26 0.22 1.82 0.81 1.71 0.69 0.76 0.27 1.69 0.86 0.69 1.83 0.88 1.59 0.75 0.38 1.18 1.98 0.28 0.66 0.63 0.66 0.06 1.25 1.57 1.76 0.73 0.70 0.70 0.78 0.11 1.21 0.72 0.75 0.70 0.01 1.89 0.80 0.90 0.87 0.76 0.77 0.77 0.86 0. 1860–2007 515 Table A10.63 1.83 0. 36 26.59 66.13 3.83 1.18 78.73 5.82 40.72 2.76 9.06 17.27 81.29 47.28 4.04 8.78 44.81 36.14 42.29 57.92 3.50 7.40 15.86 30.40 3.49 81.14 2.25 3.35 17.71 2.49 84.11 4.63 6.82 7.00 3.11 4.79 6.24 2.98 56.46 90.54 4.78 25.17 28.02 5.09 77.87 40.57 34.93 60.516 Exchange rates.46 11.12 4.36 40.58 8.43 13.55 15.77 59.07 35.75 58.73 60.89 10.94 17.94 4.64 74.81 2.19 30.34 67.97 7.32 5.27 5.22 3.05 3.92 2.59 55.30 37.90 44.79 4.56 54.55 63.11 3.21 78.14 4.42 11.49 15.84 3.75 16.82 3.20 3.84 4.80 5.44 55.33 1.03 8.76 28.24 58.83 15.01 3.52 58.26 11.45 3.45 27.91 2.79 23.00 80.25 49.60 14.38 4.08 4.08 44.35 7.33 39.81 9.71 3.48 25.26 11.55 3.42 20.28 10.11 47.67 2.73 29.49 91.45 15.39 3.97 14.53 4.68 15.13 1.15 15.17 16.23 3.25 3.95 92.77 9.49 7.43 90.74 84.47 17.07 73.34 33.55 33.33 10.55 33.01 6.64 66.01 78.31 48.62 11.42 74. and wages.38 51.27 59.Weightcal ed average 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 2.46 6.55 12.62 72.20 21.96 71.67 50.63 33.07 2.99 3.52 2.50 4.59 2.97 4.49 14.97 6.13 51.55 24.30 2.10 77.14 3.21 7.85 4.93 72.45 65.96 21.26 86.80 2.40 8.18 8.82 2.48 43.27 86.73 85.21 84.50 6.96 8.76 16.35 62.98 54.66 7.96 4.62 65.87 3.21 4.06 64.42 52.45 23.59 2.57 56.85 2.50 94.88 90.93 29.75 3.49 2.27 28.39 20.90 2.37 22.09 45.05 7.82 82.77 9.98 1.82 14.91 53.00 59.58 27.50 14.40 38.78 11.14 13.44 18.42 73.2 (cont.40 84.43 29.39 19.79 1.39 5.75 6.88 5.01 1.07 2.47 36.46 65.87 14.65 10.21 3.19 82.19 9.34 48.18 3.33 3.87 5.29 2.02 4.88 3.32 4.40 5.90 73.34 24.82 24.80 22.54 92.25 80.76 35.56 3.75 54.52 70.98 4.05 79.98 22.25 3.37 50.69 5.69 3.29 11.02 8.98 8.66 21.61 74.80 5.78 5.10 24.22 67.85 40.).90 8.55 25.94 3.29 2.55 10.83 6.38 9.61 .00 49.43 16.11 39.81 20.77 2.00 41.66 10.93 2.64 7.30 5.22 81.17 31.82 2.48 12.31 2.76 55.31 7.71 40.12 10.46 24.34 8.39 3.02 45.45 92.50 3.02 45.49 12.96 38.90 62.89 13.69 9.57 41.83 17.47 31.24 36.29 36.11 12.18 67.97 31.08 29.09 16.16 7.84 32.82 45.70 1.74 11.54 3.77 5.74 52.73 13.53 7.62 43.28 4.57 40.13 4.90 35.88 4.99 9.59 62.91 6.89 12.96 3.82 5.90 4.41 4.57 27.14 18.73 41.56 5.79 2.43 4.82 26.48 26.55 3.74 25. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.29 2.32 7.87 17.41 7.92 4.62 3.21 5.21 4.31 3.73 37.15 5.15 1.24 63.82 6.41 4.99 8.53 3.82 87.80 70.22 26. Female hourly earnings 1865–2007.38 10.86 18.25 68.42 3.02 8.83 48.14 34.53 50.04 6. prices.91 3.03 60.57 2.88 41.68 3.91 3.42 45.90 11.78 46.51 18.59 8.46 42.68 3.72 25.27 8.82 9.67 60.67 2.33 73.39 9.20 42.01 3.12 5.96 2.25 12.21 101.49 3.21 2.61 20.75 43.05 36. 1277–2008 Table A10.27 15.94 9.10 32.42 32.87 2.76 3.26 5.70 2.82 13.68 2.56 10.35 4. 25 130.17 0.01 137.23 138.29 103.07 0.53 127.17 0.16 0.05 0.11 0.52 120.21 80.16 Textile 0.10 0.36 138.10 0.21 120.51 149.43 119.63 130.17 0.04 0.82 121.06 0.43 119.18 0.11 0.49 121.58 134.93 125.10 0.09 130.07 0.09 0.08 137.01 134.05 0.09 0.05 0.04 0.15 Paper 0.04 0.92 147.10 0.05 0.08 0.48 97.10 0.93 94.52 114.08 0.10 0.14 Wood 0.10 0.24 0.87 110.53 138.39 105. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.04 0.17 0.05 0.09 0.58 128.33 110.20 0.05 0.08 .60 113.94 91.).05 0.76 117.27 142.03 0.07 0.19 0.65 134.07 0.17 0.44 110.05 0.39 93.08 0.23 96.24 0.10 0.05 Chemical 0.07 0.Quarryeering ing 0.90 94.93 96.18 0.05 0.25 0.05 107.68 101.17 0.24 0.04 0.47 115.24 0.89 186.04 0.03 109.05 0.08 0.35 114.85 Table A10.11 0.16 105.14 0.70 153.40 154.Weightcal ed average 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 99.07 0.09 0.86 140.24 0.17 0.16 0.10 0.67 117.65 120.50 115.10 0.94 145.47 147.13 125.44 132.84 104.16 0.94 106.04 0.10 0.16 0.09 0.95 94.78 122.09 0.82 122.26 0.70 119.11 0.14 126.86 151.05 0.03 0.08 0.82 141.09 0.95 111.10 0.53 119.18 0.95 125.03 0.03 0.51 141.10 0.14 0.94 145.92 125.04 0.20 100.93 107.18 0.08 0.25 0.15 0.10 0.05 0.09 0.60 141.07 0.06 84.10 0.2 (cont.96 116.04 0.63 133.05 0.10 0.62 112.08 0.56 113.35 130.05 0.04 Metal 0.08 0.10 0.10 0.25 0.24 0.58 117.04 0.33 107.16 0.61 116.05 135.65 94.51 176.39 142.06 0.06 0.54 93.19 0.10 0.25 0.25 0.78 98.41 127.44 146.92 108.60 125.20 Engin. kronor Mining Metal Engineering Quarrying Wood Paper Food Textile Chemi.90 104.16 0.75 93.34 159.10 0.17 0.25 0.05 0.25 0.13 144.16 91.18 0.05 0.04 0.05 0.16 0.03 0.31 125.50 104.05 0.73 88.85 128.24 0.05 0.57 149.09 0.10 0.04 0. Female hourly earnings 1865–2007.08 0.19 117.25 0.05 0.05 0.82 102.04 0.15 0.09 0.09 0.10 0.46 152.03 0.09 0.14 91.10 0.07 Food 0.24 121.09 99.04 0.24 0.05 0.21 152.23 110.64 140.01 159.14 91.08 0.07 0. 1871–2007 Mining 1871 1872 1873 1874 1875 1876 1877 1878 1879 1880 1881 1882 1883 1884 1885 1886 1887 1888 1889 1890 1891 1892 0.12 125.45 106.95 129.18 0.14 0.05 134.98 90.31 97.05 0.57 133.19 108.3 Male employment weights.08 0.05 0.10 0.00 94. 1860–2007 517 Table A10.04 0.75 114.14 0.07 0.15 138.47 143.52 91.47 138.04 0.17 0.31 90.11 88.16 0.10.04 0.18 0.15 0.41 95.47 123.20 134.25 0.09 0.04 0.62 88.10 0.08 116.08 117.05 0.05 0.72 126.57 99.43 120.17 0.16 0.08 0.16 0.19 129.05 0.65 114.98 123.19 0.47 81.05 0.16 0.05 0.09 0.11 0.85 148.14 154.17 0.42 136.16 0.05 0.16 0.60 149.08 0.05 0.40 109.10 0.04 0.11 130.25 0.16 0.24 0.25 0. 22 0.04 0.18 0.15 0.12 0.02 0.06 0.03 0.08 0.14 0.12 0.14 0.06 0.11 0.14 0.09 0.10 0.16 0.16 0.20 0.07 0.06 0.07 0.09 0.14 0.14 0.11 0.19 0.06 0.02 0.10 0.13 0.06 0.14 0.10 0.06 0.15 0.10 Paper 0.11 0.14 0.14 0.11 0.09 0.14 0.10 0.10 0.06 0.11 0.13 0.05 0.13 0.13 0.11 0.13 0.11 0.02 0.14 0.13 0.15 0.06 0.20 0.02 Metal 0.12 0.04 0.07 0.17 0.12 0.11 0.06 0.06 0.13 0.14 0.14 0.14 Food 0.15 0.03 0.15 0.13 0.03 0.06 0.10 0.15 0.15 0.Quarryeering ing 0.06 0.04 0.13 0.18 0.14 0.11 0.08 0.04 0.15 0.16 0.14 0.13 0.13 0.07 0.11 0.04 0.15 0.12 0.14 0.12 0. 1277–2008 Table A10.09 0.20 0.13 0.04 0.15 0.05 0.06 0.07 0.11 0.11 0.07 0.13 0. Male employment weights.16 0.06 0.07 0.11 0.14 0.09 0.05 0.14 0.02 0.13 0.09 0. prices.16 0.12 0.14 0.11 0.14 0.14 0.15 0.10 0.14 0.15 0.13 0.10 0.10 0.18 0.05 0.15 0.16 0.09 0.10 0.06 0.08 0.14 0.05 0.15 0.13 0.11 0.06 0.15 0.06 0.12 0.18 0.18 0.05 0.08 0.11 0.11 0.14 0.03 0.03 0.10 0.17 0.08 0.14 0.05 0.16 0.18 0.13 0.05 0.15 0.).12 0.14 0.12 0.06 0.04 0.16 0.13 0.16 0.10 0.06 0.05 0.07 0.02 0.22 0.14 0.21 0.18 0.11 0.14 0.14 0.13 0.04 0.19 0.07 0.11 0.14 0.13 0.12 0.03 0. 1871–2007 Mining 1893 1894 1895 1896 1897 1898 1899 1900 1901 1902 1903 1904 1905 1906 1907 1908 1909 1910 1911 1912 1913 1914 1915 1916 1917 1918 1919 1920 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 0.05 0.11 0.18 0.14 0.10 0.13 0.05 0. and wages.19 0.14 0.07 0.13 0.13 0.06 0.07 0.12 0.02 0.04 0.07 0.15 0.15 0.08 0.05 0.04 0.15 0.03 0.16 0.12 0.01 0.10 0.06 0.17 0.07 0.08 0.04 0.18 0.16 0.05 0.13 0.05 0.05 0.15 0.06 0.15 0.04 0.02 0.11 0.16 0.18 0.21 0.05 0.07 0.14 0.17 Engin.17 0.19 0.15 0.20 0.15 0.17 0.03 0.06 0.14 0.11 0.18 0.04 0.08 0.06 0.10 0.15 0.03 0.18 0.11 0.12 0.14 0.14 0.09 Textile 0.06 0.09 0.17 0.16 0.02 0.11 0.17 0.15 0.518 Exchange rates.08 0.20 0.18 0.13 0.19 0.13 0.13 0.14 0.14 0.16 0.12 0.02 0.15 0.04 0.12 0.16 0.17 0.11 0.11 0.07 0.14 0.11 0.02 0.04 0.13 0.11 0.06 0.14 0.20 0.10 0.11 0.04 0.15 0.13 0.06 0.05 0.07 0.13 0.13 0.12 0.14 0.10 0.17 0.16 0.11 0.05 .15 0.09 0.06 0.14 0.13 0.21 0.09 Chemical 0.06 0.18 0.14 0.03 0.16 0.13 0.15 0.16 0.16 0.12 0.09 0.14 0.20 0.18 0.13 0.05 0.13 0.07 0.16 0.06 0.16 0.12 0.15 0.04 0.12 0.08 0.19 0.19 0.11 0.15 0.08 0.17 0.12 0.17 0.16 0.05 0.18 0.08 0.18 0.3 (cont.04 0.06 0.12 Wood 0.04 0.07 0.14 0.08 0.02 0.04 0.11 0.09 0.02 0.10 0.12 0.05 0.19 0. 39 0.19 0.07 0.02 0.05 0.08 0.37 0.12 0.10 0.31 0.12 0.10 0.3 (cont.06 0. 1860–2007 519 Table A10.09 0.06 0.06 0.10 0.12 0.06 0.14 0.17 0.02 0.06 0.11 0.08 0.11 0.02 0.05 0.06 0.05 0.29 0.10 Food 0.08 0.11 0.07 0.08 0.02 Chemical 0.11 0.16 0.40 0.20 0.12 0.06 0.11 0.09 0.28 0.09 0.19 0.08 0.07 0.17 0.02 0.20 0.16 0.07 0.07 0.07 0.13 0.14 0.08 0.12 0.10 0.20 0.20 0.17 0.07 0.11 0.06 0. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.09 0.07 0.10 0.10 0.07 0.09 0.06 0.07 0.07 0.09 0.07 0.07 0.09 0.06 0.10 0.09 0.09 0.05 0.06 0.09 0.20 0.07 0.06 0.06 0.02 0.03 0.07 0.).07 0.09 0.24 0.08 0.07 0.06 0.07 .06 0.07 0.09 0.08 0.03 0.07 0.02 0.08 0.39 0.12 0.12 0.01 Metal 0.08 0.32 0.08 0.01 0.10 0.02 0.37 0.07 0.01 0.09 0.14 0.01 0.04 0.06 0.12 0.33 0.08 0.08 0.29 0.12 0.15 0.06 0.05 0.14 0.03 0.30 0.11 0.08 0.11 0.06 0.07 0.17 0.13 0.02 0.34 0.17 0.07 0.08 0.07 0.04 0.06 0.Quarryeering ing 0.06 0.14 0.06 0.20 0.41 0.37 0.08 0.06 0.19 Engin.02 0.09 0.07 0.09 0.12 0.10 0.38 0.08 0.08 0.17 0.10 0.32 0.14 0.08 0.16 0.34 0.01 0.07 0.30 0.08 0.05 0.07 0.34 0.33 0.29 0.09 0.07 0.07 0.08 0.10 0.06 0.04 0.04 0.06 0.08 0.06 0.32 0.14 0.11 0.12 0.05 0.02 0.05 0.08 0.35 0.09 0.06 0.07 0.41 0.05 0.06 0.20 0.01 0.12 0.07 0.07 0.42 0.12 0.09 0.10 0.08 0.02 0.06 0.03 0.17 0.06 0.37 0.02 0.09 0.12 0.17 0.11 0.10 0.07 0.16 0.07 0.01 0.02 0.01 0.10 0.01 0.07 0.09 0.03 0.06 0.09 0.37 0.01 0.42 0.10 0.01 0.31 0. 1871–2007 Mining 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 0.01 0.09 0.07 0.07 0.01 0.01 0.06 0.09 0.07 0.06 0.33 0.09 0.19 0.12 0.09 0.06 0.10 0.07 0.01 0.06 0.06 0.15 0.10 0.10 0.08 0.08 0.12 0.13 0.07 0.09 0.07 0.06 0.09 0.07 0.07 0.09 0. Male employment weights.07 0.08 0.01 0.02 0.07 0.33 0.01 0.04 0.12 0.05 0.08 0.15 0.20 0.12 0.09 0.24 0.08 0.08 0.34 0.06 0.01 0.09 0.08 0.14 0.33 0.01 0.09 0.01 0.06 0.10.11 0.05 0.14 0.37 0.07 0.15 0.09 0.07 0.12 0.15 0.01 0.09 0.07 0.02 0.05 0.08 0.01 0.08 0.04 0.08 0.08 0.16 0.08 0.07 0.36 0.34 0.15 0.01 0.09 0.07 0.02 0.07 0.07 0.01 0.01 0.08 0.10 0.07 Textile 0.09 0.13 0.10 0.09 0.06 0.08 0.07 Paper 0.42 0.02 0.16 0.11 0.09 0.07 0.09 0.08 0.06 0.18 0.05 0.42 0.41 0.07 0.05 Wood 0.07 0.37 0.07 0.20 0.02 0.23 0.02 0.12 0.02 0.12 0.08 0.07 0.09 0.08 0.17 0. 06 0.03 0.45 0.11 0.01 0.08 0.12 0.05 0.09 0.13 0.03 0.04 0.01 0.07 0.09 0.18 0.43 0.08 0.04 0.10 0.06 0.05 0.08 0.08 0.12 0.41 0.01 0.03 0.03 0.01 0.08 0.05 0.01 0.06 0.01 0.01 0.08 0.01 0. 1921–2007 Mining 1921 1922 1923 1924 1925 1926 1927 1928 1929 1930 1931 Metal 0.11 0.10 0.06 0.04 0.01 0.24 0.08 0.06 0.06 0.01 0.18 0.01 0.01 0.44 0.11 .43 0.01 0.08 0.03 0.11 0.10 0.11 0.06 0.10 0.06 0.04 0.06 0.03 0.03 0.42 0. 1871–2007 Mining 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 0.17 0.19 0.08 0.08 0.16 0.Quarryeering ing 0.02 0.06 0.08 0.08 0.43 0.04 0.08 Table A10.01 Chemical 0.06 0.18 0.07 0.04 0.08 0.01 0.42 0.01 0.11 0.).02 0.08 0.12 0.08 0.10 0.07 0.10 0.17 0.41 0.12 0.05 0.10 0.02 0.01 0.01 0.12 0.42 0.01 0.03 0.08 0.12 0.11 0.41 0.01 0.03 0.06 0.08 0.05 0.18 0.05 0.01 0.03 0.08 0.08 0.06 0.05 0.10 0.44 0.03 0.03 0.Quarryeering ing 0.43 0.01 0.13 0.43 0.02 0. Male employment weights.06 0.01 Metal 0.06 0.03 0.18 0.01 0.08 0.04 0.02 0.03 Wood 0.08 0.06 0.02 0.01 0.21 0.43 0. and wages.01 0.43 0.44 0.19 0.12 0.03 0.43 0.05 0.08 0.18 0.01 0.18 0.09 0.3 (cont.04 0.16 0.06 0.11 0.08 0.03 0.05 0.04 0.01 Paper 0.03 0.04 0.06 0.06 0.04 0.43 0.09 0.06 0.42 0.02 0.44 0.06 0.08 0.10 0.06 0.03 Wood 0.06 0.08 Textile 0.01 0.43 0.16 0.01 0.47 Chemical 0.06 0.11 0.43 0.01 0.01 0.01 0.18 0.08 0.11 0.39 0.03 0.08 0.03 0.08 0.18 0.04 0.01 0.20 0.02 0.45 0.12 0.01 0.01 0.03 0.44 0.18 0.19 0.03 0.04 0.43 0.05 0.01 0.01 0.08 0.12 0.01 0.08 0.11 0.10 0.03 0.41 0.44 0.19 Engin.06 0.01 0.10 0.18 0.42 0.01 0.09 0.13 0.03 0.04 0.08 0.12 0.19 0.08 0.10 0.01 0.04 0.42 0.4 Female employment weights.21 0.08 0.07 0. prices.18 0.44 0.03 0.10 Food 0.08 0.08 0.07 0.10 0.16 Textile 0.06 0.09 0.04 0.08 0.04 0.08 0.12 0.12 0.11 0.18 0.02 0.01 0.19 0.12 Food 0.07 0.01 0.18 0.18 0.07 0.08 0.11 0.43 0.01 0.17 0.01 0.18 0.08 0.05 0.04 0.43 0.01 0.11 0.02 0.08 0.17 0.01 0. 1277–2008 Table A10.19 0.02 0.44 0.19 0.02 0.12 0.02 0.08 0.08 0.01 0.07 0.43 0.05 Engin.18 0.12 0.06 0.06 0.02 0.520 Exchange rates.01 0.07 Paper 0.43 0.10 0.01 0.18 0.10 0.09 0. 002 0.11 0.03 0.39 0.03 0.12 0.11 0.03 0.09 0.10 0.12 0.03 0.03 0.13 0.002 0.13 0.01 0.24 0.15 0.10 0.19 0.03 0.16 0.29 0.12 0.12 0.09 0.08 0.01 0.42 0.13 0.22 0.11 Textile 0.31 0.12 0.01 0.29 0.03 0.03 0.09 0.03 0.13 0.08 0.27 0.01 0.09 0.03 0.10 0.15 0.003 0.12 0.28 0.07 0.11 0.12 0.25 0.11 Food 0.08 0.12 0.05 0.13 0.13 0.004 .13 0.01 0.01 0.003 0.42 0.09 0.24 0.12 0.11 0.12 0.33 0.12 0.03 0.08 0.02 0.11 0.12 0.49 0.05 0.13 0.11 0.10 0.44 0.08 0.11 0.09 0.09 0.03 0.11 0.09 0.07 0.4 (cont.04 0.02 0.05 0.11 0.50 0.10 0.16 0.48 0.22 0.14 0.11 0.04 0.14 0.11 0.003 0.03 0.15 0.03 0.01 0.03 Wood 0.11 0.12 0.11 0.11 0.04 0.08 0.01 0.13 0.14 0.11 0.10 0.01 0.002 0.01 0.16 0.13 0.01 0.10 0.16 Engin.13 0.08 0.01 0.13 0.12 0.03 0.03 0.14 0.13 0.10 0.20 0.05 0.16 0.15 0.02 0.12 0.25 0.03 0.19 0. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers.08 0.01 0.42 0.09 0.04 0.50 0.12 0.08 0.09 0.22 0.12 0.03 0.12 0.14 0.48 0.07 0.14 0.09 0.13 0.10 0.01 0.10 0.002 0.01 0.06 0.33 0.13 Chemical 0.03 0.03 0.11 0.03 0.12 0.03 0.08 0.08 0.12 0.08 0.43 0.12 0.47 0.11 0.12 0.13 0. 1921–2007 Mining 1932 1933 1934 1935 1936 1937 1938 1939 1940 1941 1942 1943 1944 1945 1946 1947 1948 1949 1950 1951 1952 1953 1954 1955 1956 1957 1958 1959 1960 1961 1962 1963 1964 1965 1966 1967 1968 1969 1970 1971 1972 1973 1974 1975 Metal 0.36 0.12 0.11 0.002 0.003 0.05 0.01 0.01 0.22 0.40 0. 1860–2007 521 Table A10.08 0.003 0.14 0.13 0.37 0.03 0.13 0.06 0.08 0.01 0.08 0.10 0.06 0.14 0.002 0.03 0.02 0.03 0.11 0.05 0.08 0.40 0.45 0.13 0.15 0.05 0.12 0.12 0.11 0.48 0.34 0.03 0.13 0.05 0.12 0.36 0.15 0.12 0.17 0.003 0.48 0.13 0.03 0.01 0.14 0.003 0.11 0.09 0.03 0.01 0.12 0.08 0.05 0.12 0.13 0.08 0.03 0.12 0.18 0.05 0.14 0.12 0.45 0.12 0.11 0.32 0.13 0.16 0.02 0.13 0.01 0.28 0.12 0.09 0.07 0.05 0.13 0.42 0.01 0.11 0.02 0.03 0.003 0.08 0.45 0.08 0.04 0.002 0.10 0.03 0.002 0.38 0.03 0.002 0.09 0.21 0.01 0.01 0.01 0.12 0.Quarryeering ing 0.002 0.47 0.08 0.05 0.01 0.17 0.10.01 0.13 0.10 0.12 0.03 0.12 0.08 0.08 0.11 0.42 0.43 0.01 0.08 0.003 0.03 0.08 0.01 0.002 0.09 0.11 0.04 0.13 0.09 0.12 0.16 0.12 0.08 0.12 0.002 0.05 0.20 0.08 0.002 0.03 0.08 0.01 0.11 0.08 0.12 0.08 0.01 0.13 0.) Female employment weights.12 0.14 0.08 0.01 0.31 0.15 0.03 Paper 0.04 0.08 0.002 0.10 0.04 0.09 0.12 0.30 0.10 0.12 0.12 0.12 0.12 0.10 0.45 0.11 0. 33 0.005 0.13 0.15 0.02 0.03 0.09 0.05 0.03 0.33 0.006 Metal 0.15 0.14 0.18 0.18 0.15 0.006 0.03 0.02 0.17 0.12 0.004 0.03 0.02 0.522 Exchange rates.07 0.03 0.005 0.16 0.008 0.04 0.008 0.03 0.33 0.05 0.13 0.02 0.36 0.33 0.36 0.004 0.03 0.36 0.14 0.15 0.03 0.15 0.10 0.02 0.13 0.35 0.12 0.35 0.02 Wood 0.11 0.14 0.34 0.11 0.08 0.13 0.10 0.14 0.02 0.10 0.03 0. and wages.08 0.10 0.02 0.35 0.12 0.10 0.05 0.03 0.10 0.14 0.13 0.10 0.16 0.14 0.16 0.13 0.16 0.34 0.35 0. prices.13 0.12 0.12 0.10 0.18 0.05 0.03 0.15 0.006 0.35 0.12 0.12 0.03 0.15 0.34 0.09 0.12 0.09 0.03 0.004 0.004 0.14 0.16 0.4 (cont.11 Engin.005 0.03 0.12 0.13 0.16 0.03 0.36 0.11 0.004 0.14 Textile 0.15 0.36 0.35 0.04 0.37 0.13 0.004 0.16 0.006 0.36 0.03 0.14 0.005 0.004 0.12 0.03 0.13 0.004 0.02 0.11 0.03 0.12 0.12 0.35 0.12 0.03 0.12 0.10 0.11 0.03 0.10 0.005 0.11 0.06 0.03 0. 1921–2007 Mining 1976 1977 1978 1979 1980 1981 1982 1983 1984 1985 1986 1987 1988 1989 1990 1991 1992 1993 1994 1995 1996 1997 1998 1999 2000 2001 2002 2003 2004 2005 2006 2007 0.08 0.18 0.13 0.16 0.03 0.09 0.04 0.10 0.13 0.04 0.15 .03 Chemical 0.08 0.33 0.02 0.14 0.03 0.03 0.16 0.02 0.11 0.02 0.02 0.004 0.16 Food 0.36 0.06 0.04 0.10 0.13 0.12 0.14 0.36 0.03 0.09 0.12 0.03 0.14 0.16 0.03 0.03 0.03 0.12 0.03 0.36 0.02 0.33 0.03 0.15 0.03 0.14 0.16 0.06 0.17 0.006 0.17 0.16 0.005 0.02 0.02 0.02 0.12 0.02 0.03 0.03 0.09 0.005 0.005 0.005 0.10 0.03 0.11 0.11 0.14 0.004 0.13 0.10 0.02 0.11 0.34 0.13 0.005 0.14 0.07 0.11 0.16 0.33 0.10 0.004 0.13 0.35 0.11 0.16 0.) Female employment weights.33 0.03 0.11 0.03 0.12 0.03 0.02 0.Quarryeering ing 0.02 0.004 0.10 0.19 0.10 0.004 0.04 Paper 0.03 0.36 0.10 0.14 0.12 0.12 0.16 0.16 0.14 0.14 0.03 0.11 0.02 0.13 0.02 0.16 0.14 0.03 0.006 0.34 0.03 0.13 0.03 0.17 0.02 0.05 0. 1277–2008 Table A10.12 0.12 0.004 0. London. Industriarbetarklassens formering: arbete och teknisk förändring vid tre svenska fabriker under 1800-talet. Explorations in Economic History. Lindahl och nationalinkomsten: om National Income of Sweden 1861–1930. E Lundberg and I Svennilson (1933). J and Federico. Journal of the Royal Statistical Society. Allen. pp. 353–69. ‘Updated Notes on the Interindustry Wage Structure. ‘The Swedish Wage Structure: the Rise and Fall . pp. Edin. Aldershot. London. Oxford. Part Two. Douglas. P A and P Solar (1977). Sundsvallsdistriktets sågverksarbetare 1860–1890: arbete. Industrial and Labor Relations Review. 223–85. P (1930). P. in Foreman-Peck. ‘The Rise and Fall of the Swedish Model’. The Economic Future in Historical Perspective. P. P A and B Holmlund (1995). J (1999). 75–99. vol 48. P A and M Thomas (eds. A L (1895). pp. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. ‘Changes in Average Wages (Nominal and Real) in the United Kingdom between 1860 and 1891’. Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen. V (eds. Bohlin. in David. 411–47. 1–80. Elgar. R C (2001). Boston. S. ‘The Great Divergence in European Wages and Prices from the Middle Ages to the First World War’. Oxford University Press. Bowley. Carlson. Bagge. Oxford. Berglund. 1870–1950: a Study of Six Industrial Branches’. Houghton Mifflin. Journal of Economic Perspectives. Cornell. in Scholliers. Göteborgs universitet. vol 58. Bagge. vol 38. 305–21. ‘General Purpose Technologies and Surges in Productivity: Historical Reflections on the Future of the ICT Revolution’. pp. pp. vol 14. S G (1995). Wages in Sweden 1860–1930. European Industrial Policy: the Twentieth-Century Experiences. P and Zamagni. Oxford University Press. David. pp. J and H Stenlund (1995). ‘The Interindustry Wage Structure: 1899–1950’. King & Son. Real Wages in the United States: 1891–1926. King & Son. E Lundberg and I Svennilson (1935). Göteborgs universitet. L (1982). Research in Economic History. ‘Real Wages in Sweden. Lunds universitet. Blau. Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen. ‘Gender Differences in Pay’. G (eds. Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen. rekrytering. ‘A Bicentury Contribution to the History of the Cost of Living in America’. Wages in Sweden 1860–1930. Labour’s Reward. 1860–2007 523 References Books and articles Allen.10. American Economic Review. Björklund. David. G. levnadsförhållanden. B (1982).). doctoral dissertation. doctoral dissertation. B (1982).). S. Bagge. G. P A and G Wright (2003). D (1956). 1890– 1990’. F D and L M Kahn (2000). vol 2. Cullen. vol 46.). Part One. ‘Institutions and Economic Growth: Europe after World War II’. N F R and Toniolo. Göteborgs universitet. Hibbs. and Crises: with New Macroeconomic Data for Sweden 1800–2000. vol 13. Goldin. Cambridge University Press. 46–68. Hartwell. in Crafts. D A and H Locking (1996). Economic History Review. Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen. Stockholm. ‘The Rising Standard of Living in England. 1277–2008 of Solidarity Wage Policy’. C and J Katz (1998). The Cambridge Economic History of the United States: the Twentieth Century. Growth. ‘The British Standard of Living’. Striden om tiden: arbetstidens utveckling i Sverige under 100 år i ett internationellt perspektiv. pp. Edvinsson. J T Klovland. P A and J Zetterberg (1992). 1800–1850’. C (2000). S and P Lantz (1985). doctoral dissertation. 30. D A (1990). Differences and Changes in Wage Structures. 595–632. 38. vol 58. Uppsala universitet. Vol. ‘New Estimates of Average Earnings in the United Kingdom. Accumulation. pp. R M (1961). ‘Labour Markets in the Twentieth Century’. in Gallman. Eichengreen. 1341–49.). vol 3. pp. R E and S Engerman (eds. ‘Wage Dispersion and Productivity Efficiency: Evidence for Sweden’. Journal of Labor Economics. Vol. Feinstein. Wedervang’s Historical Archive on Wages and Prices’. IUI. Labour Economics. 1880–1913’. Den norrländska sågverksindustrins arbetare 1890–1913: arbetsoch levnadsförhållanden. D A and H Locking (2000). Norges Bank’s Occasional Papers No. T (2001).). Gustafsson. vol 10. pp. ‘Professor Dr. doctoral dissertation.). pp. Feinstein. FIEF Economic Research Report No. Hobsbawm. Department of Economic History. Wage Drift and Wage Inflation in Sweden’. Journal of Economic History. Ø. R B and L Katz (eds. and J F Qvigstad (eds. G (eds. Oslo. B (1996). 113. ‘Wage Compression. Cambridge. Grytten. Economic History Review.524 Exchange rates. doctoral dissertation. Arbete och löner: ekonomiska teorier och fakta kring skillnader mellan kvinnor och män.). Cambridge University Press. Cambridge. in Eitrheim. prices. Economic History Review. Gustafsson. C H (1998). Goldin. . B (1965). 104–41. Stockholm University. ‘Wage Compression under Solidarity Wage Bargaining in Sweden’. Isidorsson. 397–416. American Economic Review. Quarterly Journal of Economics. pp. Historical Monetary Statistics for Norway. E J (1957). pp. vol 43. C H (1990). 625–57. ‘Pessimism Perpetuated: Real Wages and the Standard of Living in Britain during and after the Industrial Revolution’. Economic Growth in Europe since 1945. Arbetslivscentrum. ‘Interindustry wage differentials: evidence from Sweden and a comparison with the United States’. Chicago. 693–732. R (2005). Hibbs. O (2007). pp. Edin. vol 18. Historiska institutionen. 755–82. and wages. Stockholm. ‘The Origins of technology-skill complementarity’. University of Chicago Press. in Freeman. Ingvar B. Hibbs. 82. Lundh Nilsson. Almqvist & Wiksell. Maddison. 109–13. Oxford. Uppsala. pp. Women’s Wages: Stability and Changes in Six Industrialized Countries. Nationalekonomiska institutionen. ‘A Note on the Theory of Interindustrial Wage Differentials’. Review of Economic Studies. New York. S and van Zanden. International Institute of Social History. vol 25. L (1958). vol 35. Stockholm. 1–36. London. S B (ed. Exploring Economic Growth. S L (eds). L Schön and L Svensson (eds. Long. vol 23. Almqvist & Wiksell. Stockholm. ‘Earnings Differentials and Productivity in Sweden. A History of Prices in Sweden 1732–1914. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. Almquist & Wicksell. Fagerstabrukens historia: arbetare och arbetarförhållanden. E (1985). K and J S Leonard (eds. Lundberg. pp. Dynamic Forces in Capitalist Development: a Long-Run Comparative View. A (1997). ‘English Workers’ Living Standards during the Industrial Revolution: a New Look’. Ljungberg. Stockholm. C. Jai Press. Wage Formation. 1860–2007 525 Johansen. doctotral dissertation. Kreuger. ‘The Rise and Fall of the Swedish Model’. Labour Market Institutions and Economic Transformation in Sweden 1860–2000. Unemployment and the Structure of Labor Markets. Lundh. Löfström. Uppsala universitet. ‘The Swedish Experiment’. Oxford University Press. L (1972). Jungenfelt. A B and L H Summers (1987). pp.10.). Lönande lärande: teknologisk förändring. 1–25. G Utterström and E Söderlund (1959). Lund. Wages and Earnings in the United States 1860–1890. Oxford. Princeton. yrkesskicklighet och lön i svensk verkstadsindustri omkring 1900. R A (2006). ‘Reflections on the Interindustry Wage Structure’. SNS.). F (2007). Princeton University Press. Margo. Cambridge University Press. Jörberg. Economic History Review. pp. J (2004). Work and Welfare. Löneandelen och den ekonomiska utvecklingen.). Amsterdam. K G (1959). vol 36.). Journal of Economic Literature. Historical Statistics of the United States: Earliest Times to the Present. Lönernas andel av nationalinkomsten: en studie över vissa sidor av inkomstfördelningens utveckling i Sverige. 1870– 1980’. 1273–319. Lindert. Lundh. in Lang. Montelius. C (2004). . J Olofsson. Spelets regler: institutioner och lönebildning på den svenska arbetsmarknaden 1850–2000. in Willborn. S. vol 1. ‘Policy Changes and Women’s Wages in Sweden’. ‘Wages and Wage Inequality’ in Carter. Gleerup. Journal of Economic Literature. A and S Gustafsson (1991). Ekonomiskhistoriska institutionen. P H and J G Williamson (1980). K G (1966). ‘Wage Formation and Institutional Change in the Swedish Labour Market 1850–2000’ in Lundh. Blackwell. A (1991). in Heikkinen. C (2002). vol 2. Lindbeck. Lunds universitet. Jungenfelt. C D (1960). J L (eds. in Lundh. vol 111. Svensson. pp. L (1988). E H and S V Hopkins (1955). pp. Svensson. K and D Stasavage (2009). J and D Waldenström (2009). National Bureau of Economic Research. vol 22. ‘Explaining Equalization: Political Institutions. Schön. Explorations in Economic History. 1860–1950. pp. Lund University. 1960–1990’. Lunds universitet. Phelps Brown.S. Department of Economic History. Social Science History. pp. vol 44. Schön. Sokoloff. 161–82. S (2008b). L (1995). New York. and Reduction of the Gender Wage Gap in Sweden. Svensson. P (ed. 151–87. vol 27. Prado. Compared with Builders’ Wage Rates’. unpublished manuscript. University of Gothenburg. pp. and wages. Wage Formation. ‘Wealth Concentration over the Path of Development: Sweden. 1920–95’. 215–53. C. . ‘Institutions. 371–95. E H and S V Hopkins (1956). pp. Scholliers. Market Forces. Scandinavian Journal of Economics. Historiska nationalräkenskaper för Sverige: industri och hantverk 1800–1980. Department of Economic History. doctoral dissertation. Socialstyrelsen. 296– 314. vol 61. ‘The Wage Share. Phelps Brown. 351–82. in Scholliers. P (1989). Berg. ‘Introductory Remarks: Comparing Real Wages in the 19th and 20th Centuries’. 1277–2008 Olofsson. Manufacturing Censuses of 1820 and 1850’. Department of Economic History. Labour Market Institutions and Economic Transformation in Sweden 1860–2000. Economica. Roine. prices. ‘Seven Centuries of the Prices of Consumables. Prado. L (1996). University of Gothenburg.526 Exchange rates. Ekonomisk-historiska institutionen. S (2008a). Real Wages in 19th and 20th Century Europe: Historical and Comparative Perspectives. Aspiring to a Higher Rank: Swedish Factor Prices and Productivity in International Perspective. Economica. World Politics. vol 21. A (1961). 195–206. Rees. 1873–2006’. ‘Seven Centuries of Building Wages’. SOU 1931:32.). L (2004).). and Inequality in the Long Run’. J. 1868– 1912’. Partisanship. L (2003). 1890–1914. ‘Estimates of employment in Swedish manufacturing. Stockholm. Cycles and the Kuznets Curve’. Scandinavian Economic History Review. Almqvist & Wiksell. Utredning och förslag rörande viss omläggning av socialstyrelsens lönestatistik. Real Wages in Manufacturing. Closing the Gender Gap: Determinants of Change in the Female-toMale Blue Collar Wage Ratio in Swedish Manufacturing 1913–1990. pp. doctoral dissertation. L Schön and L Svensson (eds. vol 23. K L (1984). ‘Was the Transition from the Artisanal Shop to the Nonmechanized Factory Associated with Gains in Efficiency? Evidence from the U. Scheve. Oxford. ‘Politics or Market Forces? The Determinants of the Relative Wage Movements of Female Industrial Workers in Sweden. Wage Formation. Almqvist & Wiksell. Explorations in Economic History. J G (1995).). pp. ‘Industrial Dynamics.10. . vol 32. 1860–2007 527 Svensson. Nominal and real wages of manufacturing workers. Labour Demand. G (2006). C. ‘Productivity Growth and the American Labor Market: the 1990s in Historical Perspective’. in Rhode. Labour Market Institutions and Economic Transformation in Sweden 1860–2000. P W and G Toniolo (eds. J Olofsson. Stockholm. L Schön and L Svensson (eds. Cambridge University Press.). and Wage Differentials in the Swedish Manufacturing Industry 1930–1990’ in Lundh. L (2004). Williamson. Cambridge. ‘The Evolution of Global Labor Markets since 1830: Background Evidence and Hypotheses’. Wright. The Global Economy in the 1990s: a Long-Run Perspective. 141–96. University of Gothenburg. agrarian history. Professor in Economic History at Stockholm University. His dissertation was completed in 2008 dealing with Swedish factor prices and productivity in international perspective. 1860–1950. Håkan Lobell (PhD) is Assistant Professor in Economic History at Lund University. He has published in international journals in economic history. Johan Söderberg. price history and monetary history. He has previously worked at Uppsala University and at the Stockholm School of Economics. His is currently working on Swedish wages and labour markets in the 19th and 20th century as well as early 20th century international comparisons of labour productivity. Svante Prado is Ph.se. His published research is in the fields of empirical macro and empirical banking. School of Business. Bo Franzén is a senior lecturer at Department of Economic History at Stockholm University. . His research interests involve medieval and early modern price history as well as the history of climate. Mr. Economics and Law.D in economic history at the Department of Economic History. His research interests involve income and wealth inequality and historical financial development. Daniel Waldenström is a research fellow at the Research Institute of Industrial Economics (IFN) with doctoral degrees in both economics and in economic history. Rodney Edvinsson is PhD in Economic History and researcher at Stockholm University. He is also the editor of Historia.Presentation of the authors Jan Bohlin is a teacher and researcher in economic history at the Department of Economic History. His research fields are: historical national accounts. economic growth from the Middle Ages to the present. His main field of interests lies in quantitative economic history of the late nineteenth and twentieth century. Tor Jacobson is head of research at Sveriges Riksbank. historical monetary and financial statistics and growth and stagnation in the Western European economies. Recent research has focused on historical national accounts for Sweden. University of Gothenburg. and in statistics. Franzén is a former secondary-school teacher who in the last one and a half decade has done research about markets and their participants in medieval Sweden. His main research interests lie in fields of monetary and financial history and long term economic growth and change.
Copyright © 2024 DOKUMEN.SITE Inc.